Skip to main content

Full text of "A brief history of the Wesleyan missions on the west coast of Africa : including biographical sketches of all the missionaries who have died in that important field of labour : with some account of the European settlements and of the slave-trade"

See other formats


/ 


n 


A  BRIEF  HISTORY 

OP 

THE    WESLEYAK    MISSIONS 

ON 

THE  WESTERN    COAST  OF  AFRICA: 


INCLUDING 

BIOGRAPHICAL    SKETCHES 

OF 

ALL  THE  MISSIONARIES  WHO  HAVE  DIED  IN  THAT   IMPORTANT 
FIELD  OF  LABOUR. 


SOME  ACCOUNT  OF  THE  EUROPEAN  SETTLEMENTS,       ^^     £q^ 

AND  OP  THE  SLAVE-TRADE.  ^iS    ¥/  ^t  V      '^^A* 

ILLUSTRATED  WITH  A  MAP   AND  .SIX  ENGRAVINGS.  l/y*'    '      '  *  « V.* 

BY  WILLIAM  FOX,  ^>>     c^^ 

UPWARDS    OP    TEN   YEARS    MISSIONARY    ON    THE    GAMBIA.  *.   .  *-» 


-Vm  American  Mi.ssionnry.  just  Itefore  his  departure  for  Africa,  said  to  liis  friend,  "I  go  to  that 
land  of  death  ;  hut  if  I  die,  you  must  come  and  write  my  epitaph."  It  was  asliod,  "  What 
shall  I  write?"     "AVrite,"   said  he,   "Though  a   thousand    f.m.l,  i-rt   not    Africa    be 

FORGOTTEN  !  " 


LONDON: 

PRINTED   FOR   THE   AUTHOR. 
PUBLISHED  BY  AYLOTT  AND  JONES, 

«.    PATERNOSTER-ROW: 

SOLD   ALSO    BY   -TOHN    MASON,   66,   PATERNOSTER-ROW 


MUCCCLI. 


Boston   University 

c.s, 
6V 
35^0 


LONDON  : 

?K1J>TKD    BY   JAMES   NICHOLS, 

HOXTON-SQUARE. 


THE  COMMITTEE,  TREASURERS,  AND  GENERAL  SECRETARIES 


WESLEYAN-METHODIST  MISSIONARY  SOCIETY; 


UNDER    WHOSE    AUSPICES   THE    AUTHOR    COMMENCED    HIS    ARDUOUS 
LABOURS   ON    THE    RIVER   GAMBIA, 

BY    WHOSE    COUNSELS    HE    WAS    INSTRUCTED 
AND    ENCOURAGED, 

WHOSE    APPROBATION   CHEERED   HIM    UNDER   TRIALS   AND    DIFFICULTIES, 

AND    FROM    AVHOM    HE    HAS    ALWAYS   RECEIVED    GRATIFYING 
TOKENS   OP    ESTEEM    AND    CONFIDENCE; 


THIS  VOLUME 


IS  RESPECTFULLY  INSCRIBED. 


PHEFACE. 


For  many  generations  the  name  of  Africa  has  produced  a 
kind  of  taUsmanic  effect  upon  various  parts  of  the  civihzed 
Avorld.  It  has  arrested  the  attention  and  awakened  the 
sympathies  of  mankind;  and  brought  into  action  some  of 
the  lioblest  energies — mental,  moral,  and  physical — with  which 
human  nature  is  endowed.  The  phil«athro]3ist  and  the  phi- 
losopher, the  man  of  science  and  of  commerce,  the  states- 
man and  the  Christian,  have  all  alike  in  their  turn  directed 
their  attention  to  "  that  realm  of  wonder,^'  to  that  once 
bright,  but  long  since  (and  still)  dark,  continent.  No  part  of 
the  globe  is  richer  in  all  the  three  kingdoms  of  nature,  animal, 
vegetable,  and  mineral ;  and  yet,  alas  !  no  part  of  the  world  is 
more  deeply  degraded,  demoralized,  and  polluted. 

The  very  name  of  Africa,  therefore,  prepares  us  for  revolt- 
ing scenes  of  wrong,  oppression,  and  cruelty ;  for  deeds  of  dan- 
ger, of  desolation,  and  of  death.  The  following  pages  will  exhi- 
bit this  unhappy  country  in  some  of  its  darkest  features  :  with 
its  brutal  rites  and  ceremonies,  its  demon- worship,  and  its  mil- 
lions of  inhabitants  slain  in  battle,  and  millions  more  the  victims 
to  the  sacrificial  knife,  the  instrument  of  a  sanguinary  supersti- 
tion, and  still  millions  more  pining  away  in  the  horrid  holds  of  the 
slave-ships  !  But  without  referring  to  this  awful  loss  of  life,  which 
to  a  great  extent  occurs  annually,  what  a  number  of  valuable 
lives  have  been  sacrificed  in  exploring  its  unknown  regions,  in 
tracing  the  sources  of  its  mighty  rivers,  in  attempting  to  miti- 
gate some  of  its  untold  miseries,  and  in  scattering,  by  means  of 
Christian  missions,  the  blessings  of  a  Saviour's  love  among  some 
of  the  numerous  tribes  skirting  that  long  line  of  coast ! 

The  present  work  owes  its  existence  to  a  desire  long  felt,  on  the 
part  of  the  writer,  to  see  placed  upon  record  some  brief  memorial 
of  departed  worth  in  connexion  with  the  last  class  of  European 
agents  who  have  lost  their  lives  in  the  welfare  of  Africa.  Soon 
after  his  arrival  in  England  in  the  summer  of  1843,  he  was 
requested  by  an  intelligent  gentleman  to  publish  some  account 
of  his  missionary  labours ;  but  he  did  not  then  entertain  the  pro- 
position. Since  that  period  he  has  been  frequently  solicited  by 
other  esteemed  friends  to  enter  on  this  undertaking ;  but  he  still 
declined.    However,  having  attended  many  missionary  meetings, 

b 


VI  PREFACE. 

and  having  not  unfrequently  referred  to  the  prejudicial  effects  of 
the  climate  of  Western  Africa  on  European  constitutions^  as  one 
of  the  great  drawbacks  to  the  rapid  progress  of  Christianity ;  it 
often  occurred  to  him  on  those  occasions,  that  a  brief  history  of 
the  Wesleyan  missions,  Avith  a  biographical  sketch  of  those 
excellent  men,  and  "  also  of  honourable  women  not  a  few,"  who 
have  fallen  in  that  land  of  death,  could  not  but  be  interesting  to 
the  friends  of  missions  in  general,  and  especially  to  the  nearest 
connexions  of  the  deceased.  It  is  true  that  the  death  of  each 
missionary  and  missionary's  wife,  as  they  have  occurred,  has 
been  invariably  announced  in  the  "Missionary  Notices,"  with 
some  suitable  and  appropriate  remarks ;  and  a  further  record  of 
each  departed  missionary  has  been  published  in  the  Obituary 
department  of  the  "  Minutes  of  Conference."  But  the  writer 
conceived,  that  something  in  a  more  connected  form,  with 
further  particulars,  was  due  to  that  noble  and  self-denying 
band  of  the  devoted  soldiers  of  the  cross,  who  have  volunta- 
rily rushed  into  the  field,  to  fill  up  the  breaches  made  by  "  the 
last  enemy,"  or  to  aid  the  few  standard-bearers  w^ho  were 
still  remaining,  and  who  have  cheerfully  laid  down  their  lives, 
and  sacrificed  their  all,  in  this  hallowed  cause.  He  was,  more- 
over, not  without  hope  that  a  brief  account  of  their  successful 
labours,  their  sickness  and  death,  though  following  each  other 
(as  it  w  ill  be  seen  they  did)  in  rapid  succession,  instead  of  act- 
ing as  a  check  to  missionary  ardour,  or  deterring  young  men 
from  venturing  on  this  pestilential  clime,  would  rather  tend 
to  fan  the  flame  of  missionary  zeal,  already  kindled  in  many 
hearts,  and  that  it  would  induce  others  to  say,  "  Here  am  I ; 
send  me  ! "  The  past  history  of  these  missions  warrants  and 
encourages  this  expectation. 

The  author,  having  long  waited  for  some  one  more  competent 
to  undertake  this  task,  at  length  resolved  to  make  the  attempt 
himself;  and,  as  soon  as  he  had  taken  this  resolution,  he  made 
known  his  intention  to  the  public,  and  solicited,  from  the 
parents  and  other  friends  of  deceased  missionaries,  such  inter- 
esting incidents  connected  with  their  conversion  to  God,  their 
call  to  the  ministry,  and  other  facts,  as  they  might  be  able  to 
furnish.  To  this  application  many  friends  in  different  parts 
of  the  kingdom  soon  responded ;  and  the  substance  of  those 
letters  are  embodied  in  the  biographical  sketches  found  in  the 
following  pages ;  and  the  author  tenders  his  grateful  acknow- 
ledgments for  those  valuable  communications.  Some  of  the 
memoirs  are  exceedingly  brief  when  compared  with  others ; 
but  it  must  be  remembered,  that  this  has  arisen  from  circum- 


PREFACE.  VU 

stances  over  which  the  writer  had  no  control ;  for  in  no  instance 
has  he  extolled  the  virtues  and  zeal  of  one  missionary  at  the 
expense  of  those  of  others^  but  has  endeavoured  to  do  justice  to 
all,  as  far  as  he  was  enabled  from  his  personal  knowledge  of 
them,  and  the  materials  with  which  he  was  furnished.  For  this 
purpose  he  has  availed  hioiself  of  all  the  published  documents 
that  were  within  his  reach ;  and,  when  these  failed  to  satisfy 
him,  he  has  written  scores  of  letters  to  ascertain  the  correctness 
of  some  fact,  or  the  precise  date  of  some  event,  and  has  thus 
tried  to  elicit  further  information,  and  to  insure  accuracy. 

But,  in  sitting  down  to  his  task,  it  was  natural  to  say  some- 
thing of  Africa  and  the  Africans.  This  led  him,  almost  as 
naturally,  to  speak  of  Slavery  and  the  Slave-Trade ;  and  hence 
the  work  has  swollen  to  more  than  twice  the  bulk  he  originally 
intended.  This  he  regrets ;  as  the  size  of  the  book  materially 
affects  the  price,  and  he  was  most  anxious  to  have  brought  it 
within  the  reach  of  the  generality  of  readers  on  missionary 
subjects.  He  has  been  cheered  and  encouraged,  however,  in  his 
attempt  to  give  to  the  public  some  account  of  Africa,  and  of  the 
Wesleyan  missions  in  the  Western  part  of  that  continent,  by  many 
valued  ministers  and  intelligent  friends,  who  have  written  to 
him,  and  who  have  urged  him  "  not  to  be  too  brief,^'  but  to 
give  ample  information  on  the  real  state  of  African  society, 
with  its  scenery  and  productions,  and  the  progress  of  the  mis- 
sions. It  was  almost  impossible  to  touch  on  West-African 
affairs,  and  not  refer  to  that  monster  foe,  the  Slave-Trade; 
that  enemy  to  the  well-being  of  Africa,  which  has  hitherto 
laughed  to  scorn  the  Acts  of  the  British  Legislature,  and  the 
noble  attempts  that  have  been  made  by  the  various  philan- 
thropic societies  of  the  land,  who  have  tried  in  vain  to  crush 
the  evil. 

The  author's  views  on  this  great  political  question  will  be 
found  in  the  following  pages ;  and  he  conceives  that  Western 
Africa  has  claims  on  the  whole  of  Christendom,  which  no  other 
part  of  the  world  can  exhibit.  If  his  appeal  to  all  classes  of 
the  community  meets  with  a  due  response,  Africa  will  soon 
arise,  and  "put  on  her  beautiful  garments,^'  and  that  great 
moral  wilderness  "  shall  rejoice  and  blossom  as  the  rose." 

In  the  brief  history  of  the  missions,  a  considerable  part  of 
the  writer's  personal  narrative  is  interwoven  with  the  Avliole 
of  that  period  during  which  he  remained  in  Africa.  This  could 
not  well  be  avoided.  But  he  hopes  he  has  not  unnecessarily 
obtruded  himself  on  the  notice  of  the  reader.  Having  thrice 
sailed  to  Western  Africa  direct  from  England,  and  six  times 

b  2 


Vm  PREFACE. 

crossed  the  Atlantic  in  connexion  Tvitli  the  missions  on  the 
E,iver  Gambia;  and  having  sailed  up  and  down  that  magnificent 
stream  between  thirty  and  forty  times,  and  journeyed  by  land 
further  into  the  interior  than  any  European  now  living ;  and 
having  resided  there  many  years ;  he,  as  a  matter  of  course,  not 
only  became  intimately  acquainted  with  the  state  of  the  mis- 
sions, but  gained  a  tolerable  knowledge  of  the  physical,  moral, 
and  social  condition  of  the  country.  This  knowledge  he  has 
endeavoured  to  impart  to  others;  sometimes  by  extracts  from 
his  journal  written  down  at  the  time,  with  the  occasional  use  of 
the  personal  pronoun  ''1/'  but  in  other  cases,  and  as  often  as  he 
could,  he  has  delivered  himself  in  the  third  person ;  and  has  thus 
endeavoured  to  hide  himself  w  hile  he  exhibited  the  real  state  of 
the  missions,  Avith  concomitant  facts  and  incidents,  in  their 
proper  character  and  true  colours. 

It  would  have  afforded  the  writer  sincere  pleasure  to  have 
made  more  frequent  allusion  to  the  labours  of  kindred  institu- 
tions which  are  found  in  active  operation  on  the  Western  Coast 
of  Africa ;  particularly  those  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society, 
that  for  nearly  half  a  century  has  had  missionaries  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  and  of  late  years  on  different  parts  of  the  Coast.  This, 
however,  Avas  found  to  be  impracticable ;  and  he  has,  therefore, 
according  to  announcement,  confined  himself  to  the  labours  of 
the  Weslej^an  missionaries  :  for,  though  other  missionaries  were 
sent  to  Sierra-Leone  some  fcAv  years  before  any  regular  Wes- 
leyan  missionary  landed  there,  yet  a  small  society  of  Wesleyan 
Methodists  was  formed  in  that  colony  almost  immediately  after 
its  establishment. 

For  two  of  the  illustrations  contained  in  the  Avork  the  writer 
is  indebted  to  a  kind  friend,  Mr.  Samuel  Smith  of  Nottingham, 
who  has  greatly  improved  the  rough  draughts  Avhicli  Avere  sent 
to  him.  All  the  views  have  been  reduced  to  the  proper  size, 
and  drawn  on  stone,  by  that  eminent  artist,  Mr.  Walton ;  who, 
with  his  usual  skill,  has  furnished  tasteful  representations  of  the 
scenes  which  he  was  engaged  to  delineate. 

He  also  embraces  this  opportunity  of  gratefully  acknowledg- 
ing his  obligations  to  his  numerous  subscribers,  who  have  by 
their  Avarm  patronage  encouraged  him  in  this  undertaking. 

His  intention  w  as,  to  have  introduced  copious  remarks  on  the 
principal  obstructions  which  the  heralds  of  the  Cross,  the  har- 
bingers of  civilization,  have  to  encounter  in  Western  Africa, 
while  attempting  to  extend  the  triumphs  of  Christ,  and  to 
"  make  manifest  the  sAveet  savour  of  His  knowledge  in  every 
place/^     These  obstacles   may  be  appropriately  designated  as 


PREFACE.  IX 

physical,  moral,  aud  diabolical, — in  reference  to  the  prejudicial 
effects  of  the  climate  on  the  constitution  of  European  residents, 
to  the  immoral  and  degraded  condition  of  the  natives,  and  to  that 
egregious  evil,  the  Slave-Trade.  These  and  other  coUateral 
topics  he  purposes  to  discuss  in  a  pamphlet,  which  will  be  pub  - 
lished  simultaneously  with  the  present  volume. 

To  his  missionar}^  brethren  both  at  home  and  abroad,  many  of 
whom  have  most  cheerfully,  and  some  of  them  without  solicita- 
tion, contributed  much  valuable  information,  the  writer  returns 
his  best  thanks ;  and  he  will  feel  obliged  to  them,  and  any  other 
friends,  for  such  additions  and  improvements  as  may  suggest 
themselves  on  perusal. 

The  work  has  been  written  amidst  numerous  other  engage- 
ments, with  frequent  and  serious  interruptions  arising  from 
various  causes,  and  without  aiming  at  any  thing  more  than 
the  plain  statement  of  unadorned  facts.  It  is  now  before  the 
reader;  and  if  the  perusal  of  the  volume  shall  lead  the  churches 
of  Christ,  with  the  nation  at  large,  to  send  the  Gospel  to  Africa 
on  a  scale  commensurate  to  her  wants  and  woes,  the  author  will 
consider  that  his  chief  object  is  answered. 

WILLIAM  FOX. 


Pendleton, 
Manchester, 

December  SOth,  1850. 


CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER    I. AFRICA    AND    THE    AFRICANS. 

Page. 
Africa — Its  Size — Position — Population — Demoralized  Condition — Alysteri- 
ous  why  so  long  neglected — Its  Inhabitants  supposed  to  he  a  ditferent 
Species  from  other  Parts  of  the  human  Race — Unjustly  and  cruelly  treated 
— God  hath  made  of  one  Blood  all  Nations  of  Men — All  possess  one 
common  Nature  and  Origin — Objections  to  this  raised  on  the  Ground 
of  Diiference  of  Colour,  Configuration,  &c. — Climate  assigned  as  the 
chief  Cause  for  Difference  of  Colom- — Illustrations  of  this — Particularly 
in  the  Case  of  the  Jews — Physiologists  are  not  agreed  as  to  the  Colour  of 
the  human  Race  originally — Scripture  Quotations — A  Supposition — Edin- 
burgh Review — Josephus— The  Colour  of  some  of  the  African  Nations 
corresponds  with  that  of  the  ancient  Egyptians — Dr.  Primatt — Colom-, 
after  all,  only  superficial — Not  even  Skin-deep — Though  the  Africiins  are 
black,  the  Skin  is  sleek  and  soft,  and  well  adapted  to  the  Chmate — 
The  physical  Character  of  the  Africans  described  from  personal  Observa- 
tion— Confirmed  by  other  Writers — Extracts  from  Dr.  Prichard's  Re- 
searches into  the  physical  History  of  Mankind — Africans  and  ourselves 
of  one  common  Origin,  and  a  Part  of  the  human  Family — Supposed  by 
some  to  be  mentally  inferior  to  those  of  other  Portions  of  the  Globe — 
Personal  Intercourse  with  the  native  Tribes  in  Western  Africa  rei)udi- 
ates  this  Opinion — Further  Extracts  from  Dr.  Prichard's  Work,  with 
Professor  Tidemann's  Researches — Rev.  Richard  Watson — The  above 
Theory  proved  to  be  without  Foundation — Another  Mode  of  meeting  the 
Charge  of  mental  Inferiority  urged  against  the  African  is  found  in  the 
Power  of  the  Gospel — That  solves  the  whole  Case — The  Africans  capable 
of  Improvement — The  Negroes  supposed  to  be  under  the  Ban  of  the 
Almighty — This  Theory  also  without  Foundation — If  it  ever  was  so,  the 
Curse  has  long  since  been  repealed — Africa  included  in  the  World's 
Redemption,  in  the  Saviour's  Commission  to  his  Disciples,  and  in  the 
Prophecies  referring  to  the  universal  Empire  of  the  Son  of  God — Special 
Allusions  to  Africa  in  the  Word  of  God — Its  Conversion  predicted— It  is 
destined  to  rise,  and  will  idtimately  be  saved 1 

II. AFRICA,    AND    THE    AFRICAN    SLAVE-TRADE. 

By  whom  and  at  what  Time  Africa  was  circumnavigated — The  Discovery  of 
America,  and  the  Doubling  of  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope — Both  these 
Events  proved  injurious  to  Africa — Origin  of  the  African  Slave-Trade — 
Cruelty  of  the  Spaniards  towards  the  Aborigines  of  America — Las  Casas' 
Proposal  to  Cardinal  Ximenes,  Regent  of  Spain — The  Emperor,  Charles 
v.,  grants  a  Patent — Las  Casas'  Account  of  Spanish  Cruelty  to  the  native 
Indians — Heylin's  and  Dr.  Robertson's  Account  of  an  Indian  Nobleman 
— The  Inconsistency  of  sending  to  Africa  for  a  Supply  of  Slaves — 
Charles  V.  and  Las  Casas  saw  their  En'or — The  Spanish  Slave-Trade 
revived — The  English  engage  in  the  Slave-Trade — Captain  Hawkins — 
Queen  Elizabeth — Contradictory  Accounts  of  the  English  Slave-Trade 
cleared  up  by  James  Bandinel,  Esq. — The  English  Slave-Trade  continued 
— Thrown  open  by  Act  of  Parliament — The  Trade  rapidly  increased — 
The  French  actively  engage  in  it — Great  Britain,  though  not  the  First  to 
embark  in  it,  was  soon  Foremost — As  a  Nation  we  are  verily  guilty — -The 
Voice  of  our  Brother's  Blood  crieth  against  us  from  the  Ground    29 


CONTENTS.  XI 

CHArXEIl    III. THE    AFRICAN    SLAVE-TRADE. 

Page. 
The  Existence  of  tlie  Slave-Tradc  to  be  deeply  regretted — The  Attention  of 
some  eminent  Men  directed  to  its  Abolition — High  Tribute  to  Granville 
Sharp — Negro  Slaves  coming  to  England — Famous  Case  of  Somerset, 
in  1772 — Thomas  Clarkson  and  William  Wilberforce — The  Society  of 
Friends — Writers  in  Favour  of  Abolition — Godwyn — Baxter — Whiteficld 
— John  Wesley — Kamsay — First  Petition  sent  to  Parliament — Small 
Committee  of  Quakers— The  Inhabitants  of  Bridgewater  petition  Par- 
liament— Clarkson's  "  Essay  on  the  Slave-Trade" — Importance  of  its 
Publication — Clarkson  devotes  his  Life  to  the  Cause — A  Society  organ- 
ized, and  Committee  formed — Magnitude  of  the  Object — The  Subject 
introduced  into  Parliament — Opposition  to  the  Measure — The  Friends  of 
Abolition  persevere — Debates  in  Parliament — Memorable  Session  of 
1807 — The  Slave-Trade  abolished  by  the  British  Parliament 44 

IV. ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY. 

AnoLiTTON  of  the  British  Slave-Trade — More  stringent  Measm'es  adopted  to 
render  it  effectual  and  complete — The  Slave-Trade  and  Slavery  two  dis- 
tinct Things — The  Attention  of  the  Public  is  now  directed  to  the  latter 
—Miseries  of  West-Indian  Slavery — Anti-Slavery  Society  foi-mcd — Peti- 
tions to  Parliament  for  the  Abolition  of  Slavery — Mr.  T.  F.  Buxton 
selected  as  the  parliamentary  Leader  by  the  venerable  \Yilberforce — • 
liCtters  of  Mr.  Wilberforce  to  Mr.  Buxton — The  Subject  introduced  into 
the  House  of  Commons  by  Mr.  Buxton — His  spirited  Reply  at  the  Close 
of  the  Debate — Opposition  in  the  Colonies  to  any  Change  in  the  System 
— Persecution  of  Missionaries — The  Rev.  John  Smith's  Imprisonment  at 
Demerara — Feeling  of  the  Nation  in  favom-  of  Emancipation — Death  of 
the  Rev.  John  Smith  in  the  Jail  at  Demerara — "  Smith's  Case"  brought 
l)efore  the  House  of  Commons — Touching  Incident — The  Proto-martyr 
Stephen — Rev.  W.  J.  Shrewsbury  driven  from  Barl:)adoes — Mr.  Buxton 
brings  this  Case  before  the  House — Persevering  Efforts  of  the  Anti- 
Slavery  Society— The  Cabinet  Ministers,  though  favourable  to  Abolition, 
lean  towards  the  Planters — The  Nation  becomes  aroused  in  favour  of 
immediate  and  total  Abolition — Petitions  sent  to  Parliament — Opposi- 
tion of  the  Planters  and  others  interested  in  the  Continuance  of  Slavery 
— Persecutions  of  Missionaries — Parliamentary  Session  of  1833 — Great 
Anti-Slavery  Meeting  at  Exeter-Hall — Number  of  Petitions — One  from 
the  Females  of  Britain — Presented  by  Mr.  Buxton — The  Abolition  Bill 
passes  both  Houses  of  Parliament — Receives  the  royal  Assent — Memora- 
ble First  of  August,  1834,  and  183B — British  SlaveiT  exterminated — 
Noble  Effect  of  the  Measure 68 

v.- THE    AFRICAN    SLAVE-TRADE. 

The  Slave-Trade  unsubdued — Great  Britain  no  longer  pai-ticipatcs  in  the 
Traffic — Has  used  her  diplomatic  Influence  with  other  Nations — Great 
Expenditure  incurred  in  discouraging  the  Slave-Trade — The  Slave-Trade 
not  destroyed,  but  increased — Sir  T.  F.  Buxton's  Statement — The  Con- 
struction of  Slave-Ships — Enormous  Profits  of  the  Slave-Trade — The 
Middle  Passage — Capture  of  the  "Carolina" — Original  Tonnage  allowed 
to  Slave-Ships — The  "Patacho"  Slaver  at  Rio  de  Janeiro — Extracts 
from  the  Rev.  P.  G.  Hill's  Pamphlet,  entitled  "  Fifty  Days  on  Board  a 
Slaver"  —  A  recent  Capture  near  Sierra-Leone — The  Negroes  branded 
with  red-hot  Irons — Twenty  thousand  Negroes  constantly  on  the  Atlantic 
— Villages  depopulated  by  Slave-Hunters — The  Distress  of  the  Africans 
at  the  Loss  of  their  Relatives  —  The  Hebrew  Maid,  and  Jacob's  Son 
Joseph — An  Appeal  to  Christian  Parents     88 


XU  CONTENTS. 

CHAPTER    VI. THE    AFRICAN    SLAVE-TRADE. 

Page. 
The  Method  of  procuring  Slaves — A  Definition  of  true  Humanity — The  prin- 
cipal Wars  in  Africa  originate  in  the  Slave-Trade — Towns  and  Villages 
burnt,  aud  the  Inhabitants  led  into  Captivity — The  great  Amount  of 
MortaUty  involved  in  the  Seizure — Testimony  of  M.  Brue,  French 
Director  at  the  Senegal  in  1G97 — Mr.  Moore  at  the  Gambia  in  1730 — ■ 
Bruce  of  Abyssinia  in  1770 — Laird  and  Rankiu  in  1832-4 — Communi- 
cations from  Africa  by  the  Author  in  1837-8  and  1841 — Extract  from 
the  Narrative  of  Joseph  Wright,  a  liberated  African  at  Sierra-Leone — 
Rev.  R.  M.  jMacBrair's  Statement  of  two  liberated  African  Youths  at 
Macarthy's  Island — The  March  down  to  the  Coast — Major  Gray's 
Account  of  a  Caravan  of  Slaves — The  Slave-Barracoons  on  the  Coast — 
Letter  from  a  Gentleman  at  the  Senegal  in  1818 — Captain  Cook  in  1837 — 
Joseph  Wright's  Nan-ative  continued — Rev.  W.  Allen's  Description  of 
Whydah  and  Badagry,  two  notorious  Slave-trading  Ports  in  the  Bight 
of  Benin — Hasty  Manner  in  which  the  Slaves  are  put  on  Board — Cruel 
Treatment  in  the  Middle  Passage — Insurrections  on  Board  Slave-Ships — 
The  Arrival  of  a  Cargo  of  Slaves  in  America — Disposal  of  the  Negroes 
— Letter  from  the  Havannah  in  1838 — Miserable  Condition  of  newly- 
imported  Negroes — Brazilian  Slavery — Disgraceful  Advertisement — 
Slavei-y  and  the  Slave-Trade  contrary  to  the  Principles  of  Justice  and 
Humanity — Great  Mortality  incident  on  the  Seizm-e —  Maixh  and  Deten- 
tion— The  annual  Loss  to  Africa  immense — Vast  Amount  of  Guilt  and 
Misery  involved  in  the  Traffic — Comparison  of  the  Eifects  of  Napoleon's 
destructive  Career  with  those  of  the  Slave-Trade — The  probable  Loss  to 
Africa  up  to  the  Close  of  the  last  Century,  and  from  the  Commencement 
of  the  Slave-Trade  to  the  present  Period — The  Miseiy  consequent     101 

VII. "W^ESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

The  Circumnavigation  of  Africa — Early  Discoveries  of  the  Western  Coast — 
Hanno  aud  Eudoxus — Strange  Report  of  the  former — Since  found  to  be 
substantially  correct — The  Decline  of  maritime  Discovery — Invention 
of  the  Mariner's  Compass — Discovery  of  the  Canary  Islands  by  the 
Spaniards — The  Portuguese  lead  the  Way  in  maritime  Enterprise — Dis- 
covery of  the  Madeira  Islands  in  1418 — Cape  Bojador  passed  in  1433 
— Prince  Henry's  Instructions  to  his  Navigators — His  Wishes  gratified 
by  Gonzales  in  1442— Presentation  of  the  Negroes  to  the  Pope — His 
Bull  in  favour  of  the  Portuguese- — The  Portuguese  enter  the  Tropics — - 
Cape-Verd  —  Senegal  and  Gambia  —  The  Gold-Coast — -Coumiercial  Pros- 
pects— John  II.  sends  an  Expedition — A  Portuguese  Colony  formed  on 
the  Gold-Coast — John  assumes  the  Title  of  "  Lord  of  Guinea" — 
Emmanuel  succeeds  John — The  renowned  Vasco  de  Gama — Portuguese 
Forts  and  Slave-Factories  established  on  different  Parts  of  the  Coast — 
Oljjects  of  the  Portuguese  in  exploring  the  Coast — Gold  and  Slaves  the 
principal  Attractions — Commencement  of  the  European  Slave-Ti'ade — 
Mode  of  taking  Slaves— Gonzales  and  Nunez  Tristan  both  killed  in 
kidnapping  Slaves — Increase  of  the  Portuguese  Slave-Trade  —  The 
Spaniards  iml)ibe  a  Taste  for  Man-stealing — Portuguese  engage  in  the 
"  Carrying  Trade" — CathoUc  Missionaries  sent  to  the  Coast  in  1490  — 
Well  received— Wholesale  Method  of  baptizing  —  Rapid  Progress  of 
the  Catholic  Religion — Its  early  Decline — Total  Extinction    129 

VITI. WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

The  EngUsh  embark  in  the  African  Trade — John  II.  of  Portugal  remonstrates 
against  this  to  Edward  IV.,  King  of  England — His  Wishes  for  some 
time  complied  with — English  Traders  visit  the  Coast — Success  of  Lok's 
Voyage  in  1554 — The  French  embark  in  the  Trade — The  Enghsh,  though 
much  annoyed  by  the  Portuguese,  still  persevere — Captain  Hawkins  and 


CONTENTS.  XIU 

Page, 
the  Slave-Trade — The  English,  French,  and  Dutch  engage  in  lawful 
Commerce — Queen  Elizaheth  grants  a  Patent  to  some  Exeter  Merchants 
to  carry  on  the  Trade  of  the  Senegal  and  the  Gambia — French  Vessels 
touch  at  both  these  Kivers — The  Dutch  actively  engaged  in  the  African 
Trade — James  I.  grants  a  Charter  to  some  Merchants  in  London,  for  the 
Pm-pose  of  "  Adventuring  in  the  Golden  Trade  "■ — George  Thompson 
reaches  Tenda  in  the  Upper  Gambia — Jobson  sent  by  the  Company  in  the 
same  Direction — The  French  found  an  Establishment  at  the  Senegal — 
The  English,  French,  Dutch,  Portuguese,  and  Spaniards,  all  engaged  in 
the  Slave-Trade  —  The  Company  of  Royal  Adventurers  of  England 
trading  to  Africa  founded — Opposition  to  the  Trade  from  the  Dutch 
— War  with  Holland — New  Company  incorporated  under  the  Name  of 
"  The  Royal  African  Company  of  England  " — The  British  Trade  in  Africa 
placed  upon  a  better  Basis  —  Several  Forts  built  —  The  African  Trade 
mixed  up  with  the  West  Indies — The  French  sell  their  Estabhshment  at 
the  Senegal  to  the  French  West-India  Company,  with  an  exclusive  Right 
to  trade  from  Cape  Blanco  to  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope — The  Spanish 
Papal  Bull — The  French  and  English  commit  the  same  Blunder — The 
Slave-Trade — The  Spirit  of  African  Discovery  revived  in  1720 — Stibbs 
sails  up  the  Gambia,  and  passes  the  Falls  of  Barraconda — Brue  ascends 
the  Senegal  as  far  as  Gallara — Conflicting  Accounts  of  the  Niger — The 
English  Company  contracts  with  Spain  to  supply  her  Colonies  with 
Slaves — This  proved  to  be  a  losing  Concern — The  Company  cede  to  the 
Crown  all  their  Possessions — The  European  Forts  and  Settlements  on 
the  Western  Coast  of  Africa — A  new  Era  in  the  Annals  of  Africa — 
Formation  of  "The  African  Association" — Modern  Travellers — The 
Niger — Tribute  to  Mungo  Park  1 39 

CHAPTER    IX. WESTERN    AFRICA. SIERRA-LEONE. 

Limits  of  Western  Africa — Windward  and  Leeward  Coasts — Low  Land — 
Various  Rivers — Despotic  Power  of  the  Chiefs — Humiliating  Reflections 
— First  Protestant  Missionary — Origin  of  the  Colony  of  Sierra-Leone 
— Dr.  Smeathman  and  Granville  Sharp — The  American  Revolution — 
Four  hundred  Blacks,  with  sixty  Whites,  sail  for  Sierra-Leone — Sickness 
and  Mortality  amongst  the  Settlers — Granville  Sharp's  Liberality — The 
Town  destroyed  by  a  neighbouring  Chief — Mr.  Falconbridge  sent  out 
— Granville-Town — "  The  Sierra-Leone  Company  "  chartered — A  Re- 
inforcement of  Settlers  from  Nova-Scotia — ^Upwards  of  one  hundred 
Europeans  sent  out — Sickness  and  Death — The  Colony  attacked  and 
destroyed  by  the  French — Reflections  on  this  Disaster — The  spirited 
Conduct  and  Exertions  of  the  Company — Nova-Scotian  Malecontents 
— The  Arrival  of  the  Maroons — An  Attack  on  the  Colony  by  the 
Timmanees — The  Assailants  repulsed — Transfer  of  the  Colony  to  the 
Crown — The  African  Institution— State  of  the  Colony  in  1807 154 

X. SIERRA-LEONE. 

Situation  of  the  Colony— The  Principles  on  which  it  was  founded — View 
and  Description  of  Sierra-Leone  in  1796 — The  African  Institution — 
Capture  of  Slave -Vessels — Disposal  of  the  captiu'ed  Negroes — State  of 
the  Colony  in  181G-1818 — Number  of  Villages  erected — Major  Gray's 
Statements  respecting  the  Colony  in  1821-p-Continuance  of  the  Slave- 
Trade^ — Reports  of  the  Colony  in  1821-1823 — Letter  from  Sir  Charles 
Macarthy — Sierra-Leone  Gazette — Great  Mortality  in  1823 — Lamented 
Death  of  Sir  Charles  Macarthy  in  1821 — Successive  Governors— Mor- 
tality— Commission  of  Inquiry  into  the  State  of  Sierra-Leone — Hostility 
to  the  Colony — The  Expenditure  reduced — Some  Statistics  in  1833 — 
Population  in  1838  and  in  1846— The  Settlers — Maroons  and  liberated 
Africans — Miserable  Condition  of  the  latter  on  being  landed — Dr.  Fer- 


XIV  CONTENTS. 

rase, 
gnsson's  "  Letter  on  the  Character  of  the  liberated  Africans  " — Extract 
from  "  Letters  from  Sierra-Leone,  by  a  Lady  " — Moral  Means — A  Tribute 
to  the  Church  Missionary  Society    175 

CHAPTER    XI. WESLEYAN    MISSIONS. SIERRA-LEONE. 

Wesley  AN  Missions  commenced  by  the  Rev.  John  Wesley  and  Dr.  Coke — 
America — Origin  of  the  Mission  at  SieiTa-Leone — Applications  for  a 
Missionary — Failure  of  the  Foulah  Expedition  in  1796 — Reflections — The 
Appointment  of  two  Missionaries  on  the  proper  Plan — Sierra-Leone  still 
without  a  Mission  ai7 — George  Warren  appointed  by  the  Conference  in 
1811 — His  Reception  in  the  Colony — LTsefuluess — First  Death — Biogi'a- 
phical  Sketch — The  little  Flock  again  without  a  Missionary — The 
Appointment  of  Mr.  Davies  in  1814 — State  of  the  Society  and  Schools 
— Death  of  Mrs.  Davies — Sketch  of  her  Character 203 

XII. WESLEYAN    MISSIONS.— SIERRA-LEONE. 

A  Conversion — State  of  the  Society  in  1816 — Christian  Spirit  and  Conduct 
of  the  Colonial  Chaplain — AiTival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Brown — Sickness  of 
the  Missionaries — Death  of  Mrs.  Brown — Sketch — Mr.  Davies  retirrns  to 
England — Letter  from  Mr.  Brown — An  African  Fever — Appointment  of 
Messrs.  Baker  and  GilUson — State  of  the  Mission  in  1819 — Mr.  Brown's 
Return  Home — Death  of  Mr.  GilUson — Letter  from  Mr.  Baker — Revival 
of  Religion — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Huddlestone  and  Mr.  Lane — 
Numbers  in  the  Society  in  1821 217 

XIII. NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY. 

Source  and  Termination  of  the  River  Gambia — Influence  of  the  Tide — 
Scenery^ — Birds  and  Animals,  &c. — The  native  Tribes — Jollofs — Man- 
dingoes — Foulahs — And  Jollars — Western  Africa— The  moral  Degra- 
dation of  tlie  Natives — Slave-Trade  and  Slavery — Polygamy — Degrada- 
tion of  the  female  Character — African  Superstitious — Greegrees — Various 
Olijects  in  Nature  regarded  with  superstitious  Dread — The  three  worst 
Features  of  Superstition  are  Vritchcraft,  a  System  of  Deraonology  or 
Devil- Worship,  and  human  Sacritices — A  Reference  to  Romans  i.  21 — 32.   232 

XIV. THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

Discovery  of  the  Gambia — Long  been  an  English  River — Fort  James  — 
British  Settlement  at  St.  Mary's — Commencement  of  the  Wesleyan  Mis- 
sions— Messrs.  Baker  and  Morgan — First  Impressions — Tentabar — ?vlan- 
danaree  and  St.  Mary's — Erection  of  Mission-Premises  at  JMandanaree — 
The  Missionaries  visit  St.  Marj-'s  once  a  Week — First-Fruit —  Sickness  of 
the  Missionaries — Rainy  Season — Mr.  Baker  removed  to  the  Vvest  Indies 
— Mr.  Bell  appointed — His  Sickness  and  Death — Sketch  of  his  Character 
— Mr.  Lane  sent  from  Sierra-Leoue — The  Missionaries  visit  Mandanaree 
— St.  Mary's — Letters  from  the  Brethren — Sickness  of  Mr.  Lane — His 
Removal  to  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Lane's  Death — His  Character — Death  of 
Mr.  Huddlestone — Sketch — Mrs.  Huddlestone's  Return  to  England — 
State  of  the  Mission  at  Sierra-Leone — Messrs.  Piggott  and  Harte 
appointed — Their  Arrival  and  Reception — Number  of  Members  in  the 
Society    259 

XV. THE  GAMBIA  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

The  two  Stations  blended  for  the  Sake  of  chronological  Order — The  Gambia — 
Mandanaree — St.  Mary's — Mr.  Morgan  visits  the  upper  River,  with  the 
Commandant — Formation  of  a  new  Settlement — Named  after  Sir  Charles 
Macarthy — Its  Situation,  Sec. — Mr.  Morgan's  Return  to  St.  Mary's — Ex- 
tracts from  his  Journal — Missionary  Fruit — Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Haw- 
kins— Mr.  Morgan  visits  Macarthv"s   Island — Excessive   Heat — Extracts 


CONTENTS.  XV 

Page. 
from  his  Journal — Attacked  with  Fever — Returns  to  St.  Mary's — The  Mis- 
sion-House and  Chapel  tinished — Communication  from  Mr.  Morgan  and 
Mr.  Hawlvins — Sickness  of  the  Missionaries — Sierra-Leone — Death  of 
Mr.  Ilarte — Sketch — Communications  from  Mr.  Piggott  at  Sierra-Leone — 
The  Gambia — Return  of  i\Ir.  Morgan  to  England — Reflection  on  the 
Result  of  Missionary  Labour  at  the  Gambia — Communication  from  Mr. 
Hawkins — Mr.  Piggott — Sierra-Leone — The  Appointment  of  Messrs. 
Dawson,  Courties,  and  May — Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dawson  at  SieiTa- 
Leone — Death  of  Mrs.  Dawson — Joint  Letters  from  Messrs.  Piggott 
and  Dawson — The  Gambia — The  Arrival  of  Messrs.  Courties  and  May 
at  Sierra-Leone — The  Gift  of  Tongues — Negro  Patois — The  Day  of 
Pentecost — Great  Diversity  of  Nations  at  Sierra-Leone— Prevalence  of 
the  English  Language — Tlie  Holy  Spirit  graciously  vouchsafed,  produc- 
ing Fruit — Mr.  Piggott's  Return  to  England — Mr.  Dawson  proceeds  to 
the  Gambia  to  succeed  Mr.  Hawldns,  who  also  returns  to  England — 
Both  these  Brethren  had  remained  beyond  the  prescribed  Term  of  Ser- 
vice— Mr.  Piggott  remains  in  England — Mr.  Hawkins  goes  to  the  West 
Indies 277 

CHAPTER    XVI. THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

State  of  the  Mission  at  both  Stations — Extract  of  Letters — Appointment  of 
Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  to  Sierra-Leone,  and  Mr.  Marsliall  to  St.  Mary's — 
Their  Depai'ture — Remarks — Their  Arrival  and  Reception — Death  of  Mr. 
May — Letter  from  Mr.  Peck — Sketch  of  Mr.  May's  Life — Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Marshall's  Arrival  at  the  Gambia — Extracts — Capture  of  Slave-Vessels — 
Illness  of  Mr.  Courties — Sails  for  England  in  a  very  weak  State — Dies  at 
Sea — Character  of  Mr.  Courties — Letter  from  Mr.  Marshall  at  the  Gambia 
— And  from  Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  at  Sierra-Leone^ — The  Perusal  of 
such  Letters  truly  refreshing — lu  the  Midst  of  Life  we  are  in  Death — 
Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  both  cut  down  as  Flowers  of  the  Field — 
Letter  from  Messrs.  Betts  and  Davey  of  the  Church  Missionary  Soci- 
ety, announcing  the  Deaths  of  Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck — Sketches  of 
their  Characters — The  Impression  produced  among  the  Friends  of  Mis- 
sions in  England  on  hearing  of  this  great  Amount  of  Mortalit)^ — The 
dying  Fears,  Hope,  and  Faith  of  Mr.  Peck  on  the  Subject  of  this  Mission 
— The  previous  Statement  of  the  Committee,  that  they  had  never  wanted 
a  Man  when  needed,  still  substantially  con-ect — Mr.  Keightley  emljarks 
for  this  Mission — Arrival  at  Sierra-Leone- — Extract  from  his  first  Letter 
— Mr.  and  Mrs.  Marshall  at  the  Gambia — State  of  this  Mission — 
Death  of  Mr.  Marshall — Sketch — Death  of  Mrs.  Marshall  two  Days 
after  she  arrived  in  Bristol — Sketch  of  her  Character — The  Orphan 
Boy  and  black  Nurse — Reflections 298 

XVII. THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

A  Review  of  the  six  Deaths  recorded  in  the  preceding  Chapter — Mr.  Keightley 
now  the  only  Wesleyan  Missionary  in  Western  Africa — Extract  from  his 
Letter — Mr.  Moister  ai)poiuted  to  the  Gambia — Touching  Incident — Mr. 
Moister's  Arrival  and  Reception  at  St.  Mary's — The  first  Sabbath — Mr. 
Moister  visits  Macarthy's  Island — The  Conversion  of  a  Mohammedan  at 
Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Ritchie — Extract  of  a  Letter  from  Mr.  Moister  at  the 
Gambia — Termination  of  the  Barra  War— Mr.  Moister's  second  Voyage 
up  the  River — Takes  with  him  a  native  Teacher — Commencement  of  the 
Macarthy's  Island  Mission — Mr.  Keightley's  Return  to  England — Tlie 
Appointment  of  Mr.  Maer  to  Sierra-Leone — Extracts  of  Letters  from 
both  Stations — Mr.  Ritchie's  Return  to  Europe — Mr.  Clarke  appointed 
— Mr.  Moister's  third  Visit  to  Macarthy's  Island — Pleasing  Prospects  of 
that  Mission 330 


XVI  CONTENTS. 

CHAPTER    XVIII. THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

Page. 
The  Writer  takes  Part  in  these  Missions — Tliis  was  an  eventful  Year  in  the 
great  Mortality  amongst  the  Ministers  at  Home — Two  of  the  General 
Secretaries  cut  off  in  the  Prime  of  Life — The  Author's  Appointment 
to  St.  Mary's — AiTival  there  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  who  were  appointed 
to  Macarthy's  Island — Dr.  Lindoe  and  the  Southampton  Committee — 
Plan  of  an  Institution  for  benefiting  the  Foulah  Tribe— Extract  from  the 
General  Report  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society — Copy  of  the  first 
Annual  Report  of  the  Southampton  Committee — -The  Extension  of  the 
Mission  at  Sierra-Leone — Revival  of  Religion  at  St.  Marj''s,  Macarthy's 
Island,  and  Sierra-Leone — Extract  from  the  Annual  Report — Extract  of 
a  Letter  from  Mr.  Dove  at  Macarthy's  Island — -Prosperous  State  of  the 
Mission  at  St.  Mary's — The  Necessity  for  a  new  Chapel — Letters — The 
Author  appointed  Acting  Colonial  and  GaiTison  Chaplain — Extracts  from 
his  private  Joirrnal — Letter  from  Mr.  Dove— Extracts  of  Letters  from 
the  Author— Permission  to  erect  a  new  Chapel — More  Help  needed — 
Death  of  Mr.  Clarke  at  Sierra-Leone — The  Appointment  of  Mr.  Crosliy 
• — The  Fouudalion-Stone  of  the  new  Chapel  laid  at  St.  Mary's — Extracts 
from  the  Author's  Journal — An  Attack  on  the  Mission — Defended  by  an 
European — Christmas-Day  and  Watchnight— Triumphant  Death  of  a 
Member  of  the  Society — Funeral  Sermon— Another  heavy  Day's  Work — 
Souls  converted — Substance  of  a  Letter  to  the  Committee — A  Penitent 
"smiting  upon  his  Breast" — MaiTiage  of  liberated  Africans — Arrival  of 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wilkinson — Trip  to  Cape  de  Verde — The  Portuguese — 
Return  to  St.  Mary's — Extracts  from  Journal — Personal  and  domestic 
Affliction — Opening  of  the  new  Chapel — Farewell  Sermon — The  Author 
sails  for  England 341 

XIX. THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

The  Discovery  of  the  Coast  of  Guinea — Situation  and  Description  of  Cape- 
Coast— Europeans — Native  Population — Prospect  of  the  Castle,  &c., 
from  the  Sea — Trade — ^Origin  and  Commencement  of  the  Mission — 
Death  of  Mr.  Joseph  R.  Dunwell^The  Committee  "  perplexed,  but 
not  disheartened  " — Resolved  to  send  two  Missionaries — State  of  the 
Mission  at  SieiTa-Leone — Mr.  Sanders  sails  for  that  Station — The 
Author  and  Mr.  MacBrair  embark  for  the  Gamljia — The  Latter  sent  as 
a  Translator  of  the  Scriptures — Our  An'ival  and  Reception — Communica- 
tion from  the  Author — Mr.  MacBrair  proceeds  to  his  Station  at  Macar- 
thy's Island — Opposition  to  the  Mission — Extracts  from  Mr.  MacBrair's 
Journal — Outrage  on  the  Mission  at  Macarthy's  Island — The  Assistant's 
House  demolished  by  a  lawless  Gang — The  Author  requested  to  go 
thither  with  all  Speed — Mr.  MacBrair  returns  to  St.  Mai7's — Finally 
sails  for  England — The  Writer  now  at  Macarthy's  Island — Extracts  from 
his  unpublished  Journal — The  rainy  Season-^Personal  Affliction — Is 
appointed  to  Macarthy's  Island — Goes  down  to  St.  Mary's  to  settle  his 
Accounts  with  that  Station — The  AiTival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wrigley  at 
Cape-Coast — And  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Patterson  at  Sierra-Leone — The 
Author  returns  to  Macarthy's  Island — Close  of  the  Year — Statistics  of 
the  Mission  at  each  Station     378 

XX. THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

The  Year  1837  one  of  unprecedented  Mortality — Eight  Deaths  in  nine 
Months — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Harrop  at  Cape-Coast — Their 
Sickness  and  Death — Death  of  Mrs.  Wrigley — The  Shock  to  Mr.  Wrigley 
— Extracts  from  his  Letter  upon  the  Subject — Brief  Sketches  of  Mrs. 
Harrop,  Mr.  Harrop,  and  Mrs.  Wrigley — Mr.  Wrigley  now  the  only  Mis- 
sionary at  Cape-Coast — His  Appeal  for  more  Help — Sierra-Leone — 
Death  of  Messrs.  Maer,  Crosby,  and  Patterson  of  the  Yellow  Fever — 


CONTENTS.  XVU 

Page. 
Sketches  of  their  Character — The  Announcement  of  these  Deaths  in  the 
"  Missionary  Notices  " — Remarks  thereon — Macarthy's  Island — The  Pro- 
vidence of  God — The  Author's  various  Employments — Visits  St.  Mary's 
— A  Soldier  hanged — Hope  in  his  Death — The  Author  returns  to 
Macarthy's  Island — Letters  on  the  Suhject  of  the  Epidemic,  &c. — Wild 
Beasts  on  the  Continent— Death  of  a  Mandingo  Man  and  Boy  hy  a  Leo- 
pard— Further  i\.ccounts  of  the  Epidemic  at  St.  Mary's — The  Author  hears 
of  the  Death  of  Mr.  Wilkinson — Resolves  to  go  down— Peculiar  Circum- 
stances of  the  Case— Incidents  on  the  Passage — Death  of  Governor 
Rendall — Safe  Arrival  at  St.  Mary's — Sketch  of  Mr.  Wilkinson — His 
funeral  Sermon — Some  Remarks  on  the  Effects  of  the  Yellow  Fever — 
One  Half  of  the  Eiu-opeans  at  St.  Mary's  cut  down  in  a  few  Weeks — 
The  Gold-Coast — Mr.  Wrigley — His  lamented  Death — Mr.  Sanders  at 
Sierra-Leone,  and  the  Author  at  the  Gamhia,  now  the  only  two  Wesleyan 
Missionaries  on  the  Coast — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  with 
Mr.  Badger,  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow,  with  Mr.  Wall, 
at  the  Gamhia,  and  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Freeman  at  Cape-Coast — Statistics 
of  the  Missions — Mr.  Sanders  returns  to  England — The  present  Appoint- 
ments, with  an  Extract  from  the  Annual  Report  on  the  Subject  of  the 
MortaUty  during  the  Year,  &c 411 

CHAPTER    XXI. THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE,    WITH    A 

JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU. 

Great  spiritual  Prosperity  of  the  Missions — Native  Agency — Triumphant 
Deaths  of  the  Missionaries  and  their  Wives — A  Supply  of  Labourers  still 
found — The  Gold-Coast — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Freeman — Death  of  the  latter — 
SieiTa-Leone  and  the  Gambia — Another  Robin  Hood  and  Saul  of  Tarsus 
near  Macarthy's  Island — The  Author  pays  him  a  Visit — The  fifth  and 
last  Report  of  the  Southampton  Committee — The  Author  sets  out  on  a 
Journey  to  Bondou — AiTival  at  Fattatenda  in  the  upper  River — Some 
Account  of  the  Port,  Trade,  and  Neighbourhood — Incidents  on  the  Way 
to  Madina,  the  Capital  of  WooUi— Some  Account  of  Madina  and  Barra- 
kunda — Circumcision — Bambako,  the  Residence  of  Mantamba,  the  King's 
General — Albino  Negroes — Incidents  on  the  Way,  and  Description  of 
Kanipe,  Dirma,  Walufarra,  and  Tambakunda — The  Author  sleeps  in  the 
Wilderness — Wild  Beasts — Arrival  at  Kotchair,  the  last  Town  of  Woolli 
— Enters  Nouday,  the  frontier  Town  of  Bondou — Well  received — 
Julangal,  a  Town  of  Sen-awoollies — AiTival  at  Jume,  a  modern  Athens — 
Incidents  at  Jume,  and  on  the  Way  to  Weegi,  Gallordie,  and  Goodeerie 
— First  Rain — Proceed  to  Fittinyibbi,  Dandudy,  and  Fettibooki — Country 
more  open,  populous,  and  better  cultivated — Arrival  at  the  Capital — The 
Almamy  encamped  at  a  short  Distance  from  the  royal  Residence — The 
Author  pays  him  a  Visit — Is  introduced  into  the  Camp — Interview  and 
Conversation  with  this  Chief  on  the  Subject  of  Christian  Missions — 
Gives  to  the  Almamy  and  his  Warriors  a  brief  Summary  of  the  Doctrines 
and  Precepts  of  the  Gospel — Is  listened  to  with  Attention — This  Sum- 
mary well  received — The  Author  then  addresses  the  Almamy  on  the 
Impropriety  of  going  to  War — This  was  a  critical  Moment — In  the 
Midst  of  a  Band  of  half  Savages,  all  armed  with  Weapons  of  Destruction 
— But  "  Lo,  \  am  with  you  "  was  present — Second  Interview  vnth  the 
Almamy — Again  warned  him  of  his  Danger — The  Author's  Return  to 
the  Capital — The  Almamy  and  SolcUers  immediately  followed — Interview 
with  the  Almamy  at  Boollil)any — His  friendly  Conduct  to  the  Author, 
who  bids  him  Farewell — Boundaries  of  Bondou  defined — Some  Account 
of  Boollibany- — The  Manners  and  Customs  of  the  People— Theh*  Houses 
— Furniture — Dress — Food — Religion — Government — Almamy  Saada — 
Their  Laws — Polygamy — Commerce  and  Trade — Agriculture — Mode  of 
Cultivation — Scripture  Illustrations — The  rainy  Season — Tornadoes — 
Fertility  of  the  Soil — "  The  Pastures  are  clothed  with  Flocks,  the  Val- 


XVlll  CONTENTS. 

Page, 
leys  are  covered  over  with  Corn  " — Muiigo  Park— Their  Wars — Super- 
stitions— Sahitations — The  Author's  Return  to  Fattatencla — Incidents  on 
the  Way — Arrival  at  the  Banks   of  the  Gamhia— xVfrican  Travelhng — 
Safe  Arrival  at  Macarthy's  Island — Meets  his  Class    439 

CHAPTER   XXII. THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

The  Author's  Return  from  Bondou — A  Hint  to  Travellers  in  Africa — The 
Commotions  in  the  immediate  Neighbourhood  of  Macarthy's  Island — 
Happy  Contrast  in  the  State  of  the  Mission-^AtHictions  in  the  Mission 
Family — Death  of  Mr.  Wall  at  St.  Mary's — The  Author  proceeds  thither 
— Serious  Illness  of  Mr.  Swallow — ^A  Trip  to  Goree — Arrival  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Moss  for  Macarthy's  Island,  of  Mr.  Edwards  for  Sierra-Leone, 
and  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson  for  St.  Mary's — Mr.  Fleet's  Arrival  at 
Sierra-Leone — Death  of  Mrs.  Fleet  at  Sea — Terrible  Gales  in  the  English 
Channel — Wreck  of  the  "  Columbine,"  with  the  Loss  of  a  Missionary 
and  his  Wife  bound  for  the  Gambia — Death  of  Mrs.  Moss  at  IVIacai'thy's 
Island — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  Spencer,  the  Agriculturist — Printed  Docu- 
ment with  standing  Regulations  respecting  that  Mission — Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Swallow's  Departiu'e  for  England — -Extract  of  a  J/Ctter  from  Dr.  Beecham 
to  the  Author,  on  the  Subject  of  his  Return  Home — Visits  Macarthy's 
Island — On  his  Return,  finds  the  Inhabitants  of  St.  Mary's  in  a  State  of 
partial  Insurrection — Origin  and  Cause  of  this- — Moral  Influence  of  the 
Mission  saves  the  Island  from  a  civil  War — The  Author  \'isits  the  Kings 
of  BaiTa  and  Combo — Mr.  Spencer's  Illness — The  Writer's  Anxiety  about 
that  Mission — Death  of  Mr.  Fleet  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Freeman,  at  the 
Gold-Coast,  visits  Coomassie,  the  Capital  of  Ashantee — The  Author  em- 
barks with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Spencer  for  England— Arrival  at  Home — The 
Liverpool  Conference — Again  volunteers  for  Western  Africa — Not  hastily, 
but  from  a  Sense  of  Duty — Missionary  Meetings  in  England — Difficulty 
in  saying,  "  No  ! " — Letter  from  Dr.  Bunting — A  second  Letter  from  the 
Doctor,  with  the  painful  Intelligence  of  the  Death  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Parkinson  at  St.  Mary's — Meets  the  Committee  in  London — A  School- 
master, with  two  Missionaries,  appointed  to  the  Gambia — Biographical 
Sketches  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson — Atfecting  Incidents  connected  wath 
their  Death — Mr.  Jehu  sails  for  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  and  INIrs.  Mycock 
and  Mr.  Brooking  depart  for  the  Gold-Coast — The  Author  and  Family 
proceed  to  London — Dr.  Bunting — The  Mission-Party  embark  at  Graves- 
end — Detention  at  Portsmouth — Safe  AiTival  at  the  Gambia — Happy 
Death  of  a  Negro — Centenary  Meetings — Death  of  Mrs.  Dove  and  Mr. 
Jehu  at  Sierra-Leone — And  of  Mr.  James  at  Macarthy's  Island — Mrs. 
James's  Departure  for  England — The  Author's  severe  personal  Afflictions 
and  Bereavements  489 

XXIII. THE    GOLD-COAST,   GAMBIA,  AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

Letters  of  Condolence  to  the  Author — His  other  Trials — The  Arrival  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Swallow — The  Judge  drowned,  and  the  Sessions  postponed — 
Departure  of  Mr.  Moss  for  England — The  Gold-Coast — ^Ir.  Freeman  in 
England — His  Embarkation  for  Africa  with  a  noble  Band  of  Missionaries 
— ^Their  safe  Arrival — Return  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Mycock — Death  of  Mr. 
Thackwray  and  Mr.  Walden,  and  of  Mrs.  Freeman  and  Mrs.  Hesk— Mr. 
Hesk's  Return  Home — Messrs.  Freeman  and  Brooking  enter  Coomassie 
— Sierra-Leone  Mission — Liberated  Africans  and  condemned  Slave-vessels 
— The  Niger  Expedition — Dr.  Madden — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  Symons  for 
the  Gambia,  with  Messrs.  Raston  and  Annear  for  Sierra-Leone — Messrs. 
William  Allen,  Wyatt,  and  Rowland  arrive  at  the  Gold-Coast — Death  of 
Messrs.  Wyatt  and  Rowland — The  Gambia — Extracts  from  the  Author's 
Journal — Institution — The  Author's  Interview  with  the  desperate  Chief 
Kemmingtau — Moral  Influence  of  the  Mission—  Fidehtv  of  a  Negro  Ser- 


CONTENTS.  XIX 

Page, 
vanl — A  Visit  to  Sierra-Leone — Call  at  Bissac — Contrast  between  the 
two  Places — Mr.  Dove  and  Mr.  Badger  return  to  England — The  Gambia 
— Rainy  Season — Prince  de  Joinville — The  Author  visits  the  Upper 
Gambia  in  Company  with  the  Acting  Governor — Extracts  fiom  his  Jour- 
nal— Cantalicunda  the  highest  Trading-port  on  the  Gambia — Influence  of 
the  Tide — Return  to  Macarthy's  Island  and  St.  Mary's — Sickness  and 
Death  of  Mrs.  Swallow — The  Anival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Watkins,  with  Mr. 
George  Chapman,  at  the  Gold-Coast — And  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Quick  and 
Mr.  Amos  at  Sierra  Leone — Death  of  Mr.  Shipman  and  Mrs.  Watkins  at 
the  Gold-Coast — The  Gambia  District-Meeting — Arrival  of  !\Ir.  Lynn,  the 
Schoolmaster — The  "  Madagascar  "  Frigate — Commodore  Foote — Letter 
from  an  African  Chief  on  the  Subject  of  the  Slave-Tradc — The  Arrival 
of  Messrs.  Godman  and  Parsonsou  at  St.  Mary's — Annual  Subscrip- 
tions— The  Author's  Residence  in  Africa  drawing  to  a  Close — Testi- 
monial from  Europeans — Farewell  Sermon — The  Missionary's  Grave — ■ 
The  Author  embarks  for  England  with  Mr.  Swallow,  by  Way  of  France 
— Reflections  on  leaving  Africa — Incidents  on  the  Passage — Arrival  in 
England 530 

CHAPTER    XXIV. THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 

The  Shefiicld  Conference — Departure  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  with  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Badger,  for  SieiTa-Leone ;  and  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Annear,  with  Mr. 
Timothy  T.  Greaves,  and  Mr.  John  Martin,  for  the  Gold-Coast — Death  of 
Mr.  Symons  at  the  Gambia,  of  Mrs.  Badger  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  of  Mr. 
Watkins  at  the  Gold-Coast — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Brooking  at 
Cape-Coast-Castle — Letter  from  Mr.  George  Chapman  at  Coomassie — Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Quick's  Return  to  England — Death  of  Mr.  Greaves  at  British 
Akrah — The  Gambia  Mission — Mr.  Benjamin  Chapman's  Arrival  there — 
Mr.  Freeman  in  England,  with  his  Defence  of  himself  and  the  Mission — 
His  Departure  for  the  Coast  with  Mr.  Wharton,  a  West  Indian — Return 
of  Mr.  George  Chapman — Departm-e  of  Messrs.  Raston,  Wayte,  and 
Grifiiths  for  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Amos's  Return  to  England — Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Parsonson's  Arrival  at  the  Gambia — Mr.  and  Mrs.  AUen,  with 
Messrs.  Findlay  and  Addison,  sail  for  the  Gold-Coast — Return  of  Mr. 
Brooking — Death  of  Mrs.  Raston  and  of  Mr.  Wayte  at  Sierra-Leone,  of  Mr. 
Findlay  at  the  Gold-Coast,  and  of  Mr.  Lynn  the  Schoolmaster  at  the  Gambia 
■ — Return  to  this  Country  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Annear  and  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Dove — Departure  for,  and  Arrival  at,  Sierra-Leone  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Wrench,  with  Mr.  Lewis — Messrs.  John  Thomas,  Harrop,  and  Hillard 
safely  arrive  at  the  Gold-Coast — Death  of  Mrs.  Godman — Return  of 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wrench,  Mrs.  Parsonson,  and  Mr.  David  Griffiths — 
Mr.  Raston's  third  Embarkation  for  Western  Africa,  accompanied  by 
Mrs.  Raston  and  Messrs.  Richard  Hart  and  Purslow — Arrival  of  Messrs. 
Meadows  and  Lean  at  the  Gambia, — Return  to  England  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Allen  and  Mr.  Martin — Death  of  Mr.  Lean  at  the  Gambia — And  of  Mr. 
Purslow  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Badger  and  the  Gambia  Mission — Death 
of  the  benevolent  Dr.  Lindoe — Arrival  of  Mr.  Garry  at  Sierra-Leone — 
And  of  Mr.  Frederick  Hart  at  the  Gold-Coast — Return  to  England  of 
Messrs.  Addison,  Thomas,  Harrop,  and  Hillard — Extracts  from  the 
annual  Report,  with  the  Statistics  of  the  Stations — Present  Extent  of  the 
Society's  Operations  on  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa 568 

XXV.— CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS. 

Serious  Reflections — Matter  for  Congratulation — Present  State  of  the  Mis- 
sions— Facts  illustrative  of  Negro  Piety,  and  of  the  Importance  of  the 
Wesleyjfn  Missions — The  three  principal  Obstructions  to  the  rapid  Spread 
of  evangelical  Truth  are,  the  Climate,  the  awfully-degraded  State  of  the 
Inhabitants,  and  the  Slave-Tradc — A  few  Fads  in  connexion  with  the 


XX  CONTENTS. 

Page. 

fifty-four  Agents  of  tlie  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  who  have  fallen  in 
the  Field — Not  all  to  be  attributed  to  the  Climate — Melancholy  Fact, 
that  more  than  half  a  Hundred  have  died  there — This  Loss  of  Life, 
though  great,  not  too  much  to  save  immortal  Souls — The  Agents  who 
fell  were  Men  of  the  right  Stamp — Wesleyan  Theological  Institution — 
The  Manner  of  their  Death — A  Word  to  the  Friends  of  Wesleyan  Mis- 
sions— The  Gospel  a  sufficient  Remedy  for  the  deplorable  Immorality  of 
Africa 606 


LIST  OF  ENGRAVINGS. 

Page. 

The  Map,  as  Frontispiece. 

Insurrection  on  board  a  Slave-Ship    116 

Free-Town,  Sierra-Leone 174 

The  Town  of  Bathurst,  on  the  Island  op  St.  Mary's,  River  Gambia  262 

Cape-Coast  Castle 379 

Boollibany,  the  Capital  of  Bondou 472 

The  Missionaries'  Grave 562 


BRIEF  HISTORY 

OF 

THE  WESTEEN  COAST  OE  AFRICA, 


CHAPTER  I. 

AFRICA  AND  THE  AFRICANS. 

Africa — Its  Size — Position — Population — Demoralized  Condition — Mysterious  why 
so  long  neglected — Its  Inhabitants  supposed  to  be  a  different  Species  from 
other  Parts  of  the  human  Race — Unjustly  and  crueUy  treated — God  hath  made 
of  one  Blood  all  Nations  of  Men — All  possess  one  common  Nature  and 
Origin — Objections  to  this  raised  on  the  Ground  of  Difference  of  Colour, 
Configuration,  &c. — Climate  assigned  as  the  chief  Cause  for  Difference  of 
Colour — Illustrations  of  this — Particularly  in  the  Case  of  the  Jews — Physiolo- 
gists are  not  agreed  as  to  the  Colour  of  the  human  Race  originally — Scripture 
Quotations — A  Supposition — Edinburgh  Review — Josephus — -The  Coloiur  of 
some  of  the  African  Nations  corresponds  with  that  of  the  ancient  Egyptians — 
Dr.  Primatt — Colour,  after  all,  only  superficial — Not  even  skin-deep — Though 
the  Africans  are  black,  the  Skin  is  sleek  and  soft,  and  well  adapted  to  the 
Climate — The  physical  Character  of  the  Africans  described  from  personal 
Observation — Confirmed  by  other  Writers — Extracts  from  Dr.  Prichard's 
Researches  into  the  physical  History  of  Mankind — Africans  and  ourselves  of 
one  common  Origin,  and  a  Part  of  the  human  Family — Supposed  by  some  to 
be  mentally  inferior  to  those  of  other  Portions  of  the  Globe — Personal  Inter- 
course with  the  native  Tribes  in  Western  Africa  repudiates  this  Opinion — 
Further  Extracts  from  Dr.  Prichard's  Work,  with  Professor  Tidemann's 
Researches — Rev.  Richard  Watson — ^The  above  Theory  proved  to  be  without 
Foundation — Another  Mode  of  meeting  the  Charge  of  mental  Inferiority  urged 
against  the  African  is  found  in  the  Power  of  the  Gospel — That  solves  the 
whole  Case — The  Africans  capable  of  Improvement— The  Negroes  supposed  to 
be  under  the  Ban  of  the  Almighty — This  Theorj-  also  without  Foundation — If 
it  ever  was  so,  the  Curse  has  long  since  been  repealed — Africa  included  in  the 
World's  Redemption,  in  the  Saviour's  Commission  to  his  Disciples,  and  in  the 
Prophecies  referring  to  the  universal  Empire  of  the  Son  of  God — Special 
Allusions  to  Africa  in  the  Word  of  God — Its  Conversion  predicted — It  is  des- 
tined to  rise,  and  will  ultimately  be  saved. 

In  size^  Africa  holds  the  third  rank  in  the  five  great  divisions 
of  the  globe ;  but  is  the  lowest  in  political  and  moral  importance 
and  improvement.  Its  geographical  position  is  now  too  w^ell 
known  to  require  its  boundaries  being  particularly  specified. 

B 


^  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

It  is  a  peninsula  of  prodigious  extent,  and  is  joined  to  Asia 
by  a  narrow  neck  of  land,  the  Isthmus  of  Suez.  In  its  extreme 
length  from  north  to  south,  that  is,  from  Cape  Bianco  in  Tunis, 
to  Cape  L^Agulhas,  (a  little  eastward  of  the  Cape  of  Good 
Hope,)  it  is  upwards  of  4,300  geographical  miles;  and  in  its 
broadest  part,  from  Cape  Verd  on  the  west,  to  Cape  Guardafui 
on  the  east,  it  is  nearly  4,200 :  thus  exhibiting  a  difference 
between  its  longitudinal  breadth  and  its  length,  of  about  thirty- 
five  leagues ;  and  comprising  an  area  of  not  less  than  thirteen 
millions  of  square  miles,  unbroken  by  any  considerable  estuary 
or  arm  of  the  sea;  and,  as  the  northern  portion  of  this  conti- 
nent is  fully  twice  the  size  of  the  southern  portion,  notwith- 
standing its  nearly  insular  form,  its  extent  of  sea-coast,  though 
not  less  than  ten  thousand  miles,  is  much  less,  in  proportion  to 
its  area,  than  in  other  quarters  of  the  globe. 

The  greater  part  of  Africa  lies  within  the  torrid  zone,  under 
the  immediate  power  and  dominion  of  the  sun,  which  renders 
the  heat  almost  insupportable  in  many  places ;  for  most  of  its 
inhabitants  see  that  great  luminary  in  its  annual  progress,  from 
tropic  to  tropic,  pass  twice  over  their  heads,  and  thus  experience 
a  repetition  of  its  intense  and  perpendicular  rays. 

Its  interior  remained  till  lately  a  large  blank  on  the  map  of 
the  world,  and  even  now  it  is  comparatively  unknown;  but, 
through  the  curiosity  of  men  of  science  and  research,  and  the 
enterprise  of  modern  travellers,  a  considerable  extent  of  this 
vast  continent  has  been  explored.  Yet  the  privations  incident, 
in  a  barbarous  country  like  the  greatest  part  of  Africa,  to  the 
progress  of  discovery,  and  especially  the  withering  effects  of  the 
climate  on  European  constitutions,  have  too  often  terminated 
the  days  of  the  adventurer,  and  left  the  traveller's  tale 
untold. 

The  population  of  Africa  has  been  estimated  at  from  fifty  to 
one  hundred  and  fifty  millions ;  but,  as  we  have  no  certain  data 
from  which  to  compute  any  thing  like  a  correct  estimate  of  its 
inhabitants,  it  is  difficult  to  arrive  at  a  proper  conclusion.  Yet 
I  have  no  hesitation  in  saying,  if  the  numerous  tribes  and 
thickly-inhabited  parts  of  the  western  coast  may  be  taken  as  a 
criterion  of  the  whole,  that  the  latter  number  (150,000,000)  is  a 
much  nearer  approximation  to  the  standard  than  the  former; 
and  I  believe  it  is  by  no  means  too  high  a  figure. 

Assuming  this  point,  then,  that  Africa  contains  one  hundred 
and  fifty  millions  of  inhabitants,  how  many  painful  reflections 
does  this  arouse  in  the  breast  of  every  Christian,  when  he  recol- 
lects the  fact,  that  this  immense  population  is  now  buried  (for 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES. 


the  most  part  of  it  at  least)  in  the  depths  of  ignorance  and  vice, 
superstition  and  idolatry, — superstition  and  idolatry  in  some  of 
its  most  cruel,  debasing,  and  revolting  forms  !  Why  so  many 
millions  of  my  fellow-men  should  never  have  heard  of  the  name 
of  Jesus,  I  cannot  tell.  It  is  a  mysterious  subject;  and  I 
should  be  quite  disposed  to  leave  the  matter,  in  regard  to  the 
past,  as  one  of  those  facts  in  the  administration  of  Divine  Pro- 
vidence which  we  are  not  in  a  situation,  at  present,  fully  to 
understand,  were  it  not  that  the  poor  African,  by  one  party,  has 
been  denied  the  dignity  of  man,  and  therefore  to  attempt  his 
elevation,  we  are  told,  is  an  hopeless  task ;  and,  by  others,  the 
mysterious  problem  is  attempted  to  be  solved  by  a  reference  to 
Divine  Revelation,  and  in  the  present  dark  and  demoralized 
condition  of  that  continent  they  see,  or  think  they  see,  the  ful- 
filment of  prophecy  and  the  execution  of  a  curse  pronounced 
upon  Africa  by  the  Almighty  near  four  thousand  years  ago; 
thus  absolutely  throwing  the  reproach  upon  Him  who  "  created 
man  in  his  own  image.^^  (Gen.  i.  27.)  As  though  it  were  not 
enough  to  deprive  the  Negro  of  the  honours  of  a  human  intel- 
lect, but  he  must  be  represented  as  under  a  Divine  anathema, 
struck  out  of  the  human  family,  excluded  from  the  covenant  of 
grace,  and  even  the  compassion  of  his  Maker  !  As  to  the  first  of 
these  charges,  it  is  now,  thank  God,  somewhat  too  late  in  the 
day  to  find  many  adherents  to  a  system  of  philosophy,  which 
proclaims  a  large  proportion  of  our  species  as  incapable  of 
improvement,  merely  from  the  contour  of  the  countenance,  the 
colour  of  the  skin,  or  the  formation  of  the  head.  And  yet  there 
are  not  wanting  advocates,  even  now,  of  this  description,  who 
not  only  attribute  to  the  Negro  race  a  mental  inferiority  to  the 
nations  of  Europe,  but  who  contend  they  must  ever  remain  in 
that  degraded  condition.  The  advocates  of  this  theory,  in  sup- 
port of  their  assertion,  argue  thus : — They  tell  us  that  "  the 
gradations  of  animated  nature  are  gentle  and  almost  impercepti- 
ble ; "  and,  not  content  that  the  ape  and  baboon  should  fill  up 
the  chasm  which  exists  between  the  quadruped  and  man,  an 
intermediate  link  is  invented,  and  the  African,  or  some  of  the 
African  tribes,  at  least,  are  placed  just  in  one  ascending  link 
between  the  orang-outang  and  the  human  species,  and  as  such 
we  are  told  that  they  were  destined  by  nature  to  serve  the  lords 
of  the  creation,  that  is,  those  of  a  fairer  complexion,  as  domestic 
animals  in  common  with  their  oxen  and  horses,  and  are  there- 
fore reckoned  among  their  "goods  and  chattels,"  as  so  much 
valuable  property,  and  nothing  more. 

One  would  wish  to  ask  the  advocates  of  this  theory,  "  In 


4  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

what  chapter  of  nature's  law  is  it  declared,  that  one  quarter  of 
the  globe  shall  breed  slaves  for  the  rest  ?  Where  shall  we  find 
a  charter  conferring  authority  on  the  one,  and  ascertaining  the 
submission  of  the  other?  Are  no  conditions  annexed,  no  rights 
reserved,  which,  when  violated,  the  subjected  race  can  plead 
before  their  common  Lord  ?  Such  a  state  cannot  be  imagined 
as  existing  under  the  government  of  God :  it  is  blasphemy 
against  his  benevolence  even  to  suppose  it.  The  inanimate  and 
brute  creation  was  fitted  for,  and  subjected  to,  man's  dominion ; 
but  man  himself  was  left  independent  of  every  personal  claim  in 
his  fellows.  And  nothing  but  an  implied  voluntary  surrender 
of  his  independency  to  society,  for  the  benefits  of  law,  can  con- 
trol or  lessen  his  claim.  But  North-American  or  West-Indian 
Slavery  implies  no  surrender,  supposes  no  submission,  but  to 
necessity  and  force. 

"  Had  the  Author  of  nature  intended  Negroes  for  slavery,  he 
would  have  endowed  them  with  many  qualities  which  they  now 
want.  Their  food  would  have  needed  no  prej»aration,  their 
bodies  no  covering;  they  would  have  been  born  without  any 
sentiment  for  liberty ;  and,  possessing  a  patience  not  to  be  pro- 
voked, would  have  been  incapable  of  resentment  or  opposition, 
— that  high  treason  against  the  divine  right  of  European  domi- 
nion !  A  horse  or  a  cow,  when  abused,  beaten,  or  stoned,  will 
try  to  get  out  of  the  reach  of  the  lash,  and  make  no  scruple  of 
attempting  the  nearest  enclosure  to  get  at  pasture.  But  we 
have  not  heard  of  their  withdrawing  themselves  from  the  service 
of  a  hard  master,  nor  of  avenging  with  his  blood  the  cruelty  of 
his  treatment."*  But  it  is  otherwise  with  a  slave;  he  is 
human,  and  can  disobey,  and  not  only  so, — he  can  resist ;  and 
many  an  oppressed  African  has  spurned  his  master's  authority, 
broken  the  tyrant's  chain,  and,  in  defence  of  his  liberty,  has 
murdered  his  oppressor,  or  has  died  in  the  struggle. 

But,  notwithstanding  this,  modern  writers  have  been  found 
who  have  adopted  the  atheistical  doctrine  of  Hume,  respecting 
"  different  species  of  men,"  and  have  not  hesitated  to  place  the 
African  in  the  lowest  scale  of  intellectual  being,  and  even  below 
the  dignity  of  man.  One  of  them  (Mr.  Long)  has  gone  so  far 
as  to  "  extol  the  docility  of  the  orang-outang,  in  order  by  com- 
parison to  depreciate  that  of  the  Negro;"  and  with  unblushing 
effrontery  says,  "  I  do  not  think  that  an  orang-outang  husband 
would  be  any  disgrace  to  an  Hottentot  female .'"     And  yet  this 


*  Ramsay's  "  Essay  on  the  Treatment  and  Conversion  of  African  Slaves,"  pp. 
233,  234.  (1784.) 


DESCRIPTION    Of    THE    NATIVES.  O 

same  writer  acknowledges  the  fact,  that  the  white  men  generally 
of  the  West-India  Islands  do  not  scruple  to  '' cohabit  with 
Negresses  and  Mulattoes,  free  or  slaves,"  that  "not  one  m 
twenty  can  be  persiiaded  that  there  is  either  sin  or  shame  in 
cohabiting  with  his  slave."*  What  must  we  think,  then,  of  the 
pretended  inferiority  of  the  Negroes,  and  of  the  "  moral  sensa- 
tions" of  those  who  think  that  an  "orang-outang  husband 
would  be  no  disgrace  to  an  Hottentot  female/'  when  some  of 
those  who  believe  in  this  theory,  or  link  in  the  chain  which  con- 
nects the  homo  sapiens  with  the  brute ;  a  species  of  orang- 
outang, differing  from  their  brethren  of  the  woods  only  in 
possessing  the  faculty  of  speech, — when  these  said  fair- 
complexioned  philosophers  themselves  associate  with  them,  and 
habitually  cohabit  with  the  female  part  of  this  species  of  what 
they  deem  to  be  the  brute  creation  ? 

But  it  is  not  my  intention  to  enter  at  large  upon  a  refutation 
of  this  wholesale  piece  of  slander,  against  the  woolly-haired,  and 
"black  but  comely,"  inhabitants  of  the  continent  of  Africa. 
Dr.  Prichard,  in  his  able  "Researches  into  the  Physical  History 
of  Mankind,"  has  done  this;  and  it  is  to  be  hoped  that  the 
advocates  of  the  doctrine  will,  for  the  future,  be  small  in  num- 
ber "and  miserably  less."  That  all  men  have  one  common 
parent,  appears  evident  from  the  Mosaic  account  of  the  creation 
in  the  first  chapter  of  Genesis;  and  the  following  quotation 
from  the  New  Testament  is  explicit  upon  this  point :  "  God 
that  made  the  world  and  all  things  therein,  seeing  that  he  is 
Lord  of  heaven  and  earth,  dwelleth  not  in  temples  made  with 
hands ;  neither  is  worshipped  with  men's  hands,  as  though  he 
needed  any  thing,  seeing  he  giveth  to  all  life,  and  breath,  and 
all  things;  and  hath  made  of  one  blood  all  nations  of  men  for  to 
dwell  on  all  the  face  of  the  earth,  and  hath  determined  the  times 
before  appointed,  and  the  bounds  of  their  habitation."  (Acts 
xvii.  24—26.) 

That  we  all  possess  the  same  common  nature  and  origin,  is 
evident  from  the  preceding  declaration  of  holy  writ ;  to  which 
we  may  add  a  number  of  other  arguments  corroborative  of  that 
fact.  Let  two  suffice.  .  And  the  first  is  to  be  seen  in  the  uni- 
form resemblance  in  the  physical  organization  of  the  various 
"nations  of  men  that  dwell  on  all  the  face  of  the  earth."  For, 
in  whatever  region  we  find  man,  his  body  is  exactly  constructed 
like  our  own,  and  possesses  the  same  senses,  is  sustained  by 
the  same  process,  proceeds  through  the  same  stages,  is  subject 

*  See  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  ii.  Appendix  iv.  pp.  11,  15. 


6 


AVESTEKN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


to  the  same  diseases,  and  terminates  in  the  same  dissolution.* 
Further  evidence  is  found  in  the  fact,  that,  wherever  we  find 
man,  though  as  to  his  body  he  is  erect,  "  fearfully  and  wonder- 
fully made,^'  yet  he  is,  as  to  his  soul,  the  inner  man,  mentally 
and  morally  fallen,  degraded,  and  depraved  like  ourselves;  a 
proof  this  that  men  every  where,  in  all  places  and  in  all  ages, 
are  the  descendants  of  Adam  and  Eve,  who  fell  in  the  Garden  of 
Eden,  and  whose  posterity,  it  is  declared,  are  "  born  in  sin  and 
shapen  in  iniquity." 

But  to  this  common  origin  of  the  human  race  infidelity  has 
raised  many  objections.  These  are  chiefly  founded  in  difference 

OF    COLOUR,    DIFFERENCE    OF    CONFIGURATION,   and    REMOTENESS 

OF  SITUATION.  That  there  is  some  difficulty  in  harmonizing 
these  with  the  fact,  that  all  have  descended  from  one  common 
ancestry,  is  readily  conceded.  But  if  every  thing  must  be 
rejected  which  is  attended  with  difficulty,  we  must  sink  into 
atheism  and  universal  unbelief;  every  thing  in  religion  and 
philosophy  must  alike  be  renounced.  The  objections,  however, 
are  more  specious  than  solid. 

I.  Colour,  for  instance,  depends  partly  on  diet,  partly  on 
situation,  partly  on  habit,  but  chiefly  on  climate.  "  Hence  per- 
sons living  in  the  same  latitudes,  when  the  localities  of  these 
latitudes  resemble  each  other,  will  generally  be  found  of  the 
same  complexion."  t  The  Africans  generally  are  of  a  dark 
colour;  the  greater  part  of  them,  indeed,  dwelling  as  they  do 
within  the  torrid  zone,  are  black ;  and  hence  we  start  with  the 
proposition  that  climate  is  the  "  chief  cause"  of  this  difference  of 
colour  in  the  human  race. 

It  has  been  properly  remarked  by  an  intelligent  writer,  that 
"the  diversity  of  complexion  which  we  observe  in  our  own 
country  scarce  excites  our  attention,  and  appears  perfectly  con- 
sistent with  the  causes  assigned  to  it, — a  greater  or  less 
exposure  to  the  action  of  the  sun  and  air.  Even  when  we  com- 
pare the  skins  of  the  different  nations  of  Europe  together, 
climate  is  considered  as  a  sufficient  cause  for  the  variety  of  tints 
which  we  remark;  but  when  the  skin  of  the  European  is  con- 
trasted with  that  of  the  Negro,  the  dissimihtude  appears  so 
great,  that  recourse  is  had  to  the  unscriptural,  and,  I  may  add, 

*  The  monstrous  things  reported  by  the  ancients,  that  some  of  the  nations  of 
the  interior  of  Africa  were  dumb,  others  without  tongues,  one  people  vnX\\  no 
mouth,  and  others  without  heads,  having  their  eyes  and  mouths  in  then-  breasts, 
&c.,  have  long  since  been  proved  to  be  mere  fables. 

t  Kev.  Jacob  Stanley,  Sen. 


DESCKIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  7 

impliilosopliical,  idea  of  different  races  of  men  having  been 
originally  created.  Yet  these  two  extremes  of  colour  are 
approximated  by  such  a  variety  of  intermediate  tints,  and  so 
exquisitely  blended,  that  we  pass  from  one  to  the  other  by 
almost  imperceptible  gradations."*  Dr.  Robertson,  in  his 
"  History  of  America,"  observes  on  this  subject :  "  In  what  part 
or  membrane  of  the  body  that  humour  resides  which  tinges  the 
complexion  of  the  Negro  with  a  deep  black,  it  is  the  business  of 
anatomists  to  inquire  and  describe.  The  powerful  operation  of 
heat  appears  manifestly  to  be  the  cause  which  produces  this 
striking  variety  in  the  human  race.  All  Europe,  a  great  part  of 
Asia,  and  the  temperate  countries  of  Africa,  are  inhabited  by 
men  of  a  white  complexion.  All  the  torrid  zone  of  Africa, 
some  of  the  warmer  regions  adjacent  to  it,  and  several  countries 
in  Asia,  are  filled  with  people  of  a  deep  black  colour.  If  we 
survey  the  nations  of  our  continent,  making  our  progress  from 
cold  and  temperate  countries  towards  those  parts  which  are 
exposed  to  the  influence  of  vehement  and  unremitting  heat,  we 
shall  find,  that  the  extreme  whiteness  of  their  skin  soon  begins 
to  diminish ;  that  its  colour  deepens  gradually  as  we  advance ; 
and,  after  passing  through  all  the  successive  gradations  of  shade, 
terminates  in  a  uniform  unvarying  black."  f  This  we  know  to 
be  really  the  case,  as  one  moment^s  "survey"  will  prove.  "In 
all  warm  climates  we  see  the  skin  has  a  tendency  to  a  darker 
colour.  The  French,  for  instance,  are  browner  than  the 
Swedes,  Danes,  English,  and  Germans.  The  inhabitants  of  the 
southern  parts  of  Spain  are  darker  than  the  French;  and  the 
Portuguese,  in  complexion,  differ  but  a  few  shades  from  the 
^Mulatto.  And  as  we  approach  the  equator,  the  skin  assumes,  in 
general,  a  darker  hue,  until  it  '  terminates  in  a  uniform  unvary- 
ing black.'  It  is  worthy  of  remark,  that  Negro  children  are 
nearly  as  fair  as  Europeans  at  birth,  and  that  they  continue  so 
for  several  days ;  thus  proving  that  the  weather  and  sun  act 
principally  in  giving  them  a  darker  hue.  The  palms  of  the 
hands,  however,  and  soles  of  the  feet,  continue  through  life 
nearly  as  white  as  those  of  Europeans;  a  circumstance  not 
sufficiently  attended  to  by  painters. 

"  But  perhaps  the  most  striking  example  we  have  of  the  influ- 
ence of  climate,  is  to  be  found  among  that  persecuted  race  of 
people,  the  Jews.     Dispersed  over  the  chief  parts  of  the  civilized 

*  Dr.  Winterbottom's  "  Account  of  the  Native  Africans  in  the  Neighbourhood 
of  Sierra-Leone." 

f  Dr.  Robertson's  Works,  vol.  ii.  p,  96. 


8  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

globe,  but  prevented  by  religious  motives  from  mixing  with  the 
rest  of  mankind,  they  still  retain  their  characteristic  features, 
though  they  have  assumed  the  complexion  of  every  country  i^ej 
inhabit.  Thus  they  are  fair  in  Britain  and  Germany,  brown  iu 
France  and  in  Turkey,  swarthy  in  Portugal  and  in  Spain,  olive 
in  Syria  and  in  Chaldea,  tawny  or  copper-coloured  in  Arabia 
and  Egypt,  and  nearly  black  in  Abyssinia."*  And  yet  they 
are  all  Jews,  of  one  common  ancestry,  nation,  and  language, 
though  "  scatter'd  o'er  all  the  earth  they  lie." 

"If,  therefore,"  as  has  been  well  observed,  "the  human 
race  be  divided  into  species  merely  from  the  colour,  it  must 
necessarily  follow,  that,  if  the  Negroes  form  a  specific  class 
because  they  are  black,  those  of  an  olive  and  tawny  complexion 
must  form  another  class,  because  they  are  not  white ;  and,  from 
the  same  cause,  the  Spaniards  and  Swedes  would  form  two  dis- 
tinct species  of  men;  and  then,  on  the  same  principle,  how 
many  distinct  species  should  we  have  among  the  seed  of 
Abraham  ?  " 

In  a  recent  Number  of  the  Edinburgh  Review  I  find  an  able 
article  on  the  subject  of  "  Ethnology,  or  the  Science  of  Races," 
in  Avhich  this  precise  line  of  argument  is  adopted.  After  speak- 
ing of  the  varieties  of  colour  in  some  branches  of  the  Syro- 
Arabian  stock,  the  writer  observes  : — 

It  would  be  easy  to  multiply  proofs  to  the  same  effect ;  but  we  shall  satisfy  our- 
selves ^rith  adverting  to  the  case  of  the  Jewish  nation,  which,  though  frequently 
appealed  to  by  the  advocates  of  the  permanence  of  complexion  and  other  physical 
characters,  really  tells  the  other  way,  when  fully  stated.  This  case  is  particularly 
satisfactory,  on  account  of  the  evidence  of  general  purity  of  descent  through  a  long 
succession  of  generations,  during  which  the  scattered  residence  of  the  race  has 
subjected  its  members  to  a  great  variety  of  external  conditions.  Now,  although  the 
descendants  of  Abraham  are  still  generally  recognisable  by  certain  peculiarities  of 
physiognomy,  we  find  a  great  variety  of  complexion  among  them.  In  this  country 
blue  eyes  and  flaxen  hair  ai'C  not  unfrequent ;  but  a  light  brunette  hue  with  black 
hair  is  most  common.  In  Germany  and  Poland,  the  ordinary  complexion  is  more  florid, 
with  blue  eyes  and  red  hair.  On  the  other  hand,  the  Jews  of  Portugal  are  very 
dark ;  whilst  those  who  have  been  settled  from  very  remote  times  in  Cochin  and 
the  interior  of  Malabar,  are  so  black  as  not  to  be  distinguishable  by  their  com- 
plexion from  the  native  inhabitants.  Thus  it  may  be  stated  as  a  general  proposition, 
that  the  complexion  of  the  Jews  tends  to  assimilate  itself  to  that  of  any  nation 
in  which  their  residence  has  been  sufficiently  prolonged  ;  while  of  this  assimilation, 
the  introduction  of  a  small  amount  of  extraneous  blood  does  not  by  any  means 
afford  an  adequate  explanation. 

After  dwelling   upon  the   effects  of  climate  on  many  other 

*  Dr.  Winterbottom,  vol.  i.  p.  187.  From  Smith  "On  the  Complexion  and 
Figure  of  the  Human  Species;"  and  Professor  Zimmerman. 


DESCRirilON    OF    THE    NATIVES.  \f 

nations  in  Asia,  and  of  the  different  tinges  and  hues  of  several 
of  the  African  tribes,  the  writer  proceeds : — 

Complexion,  therefore,  must  be  admitted  to  be  no  such  definite  distinction,  as 
can  sever  the  Negro  races  from  other  branches  of  the  human  family.  Nor  wll  the 
character  of  their  b.air  be  found  more  conclusive ;  though  it  has  been  asserted  by 
some  to  be  a  more  lasting,  and  therefore  more  trustworthy,  criterion, — so  much  so, 
that  the  African  nations  have  been  collectively  termed  "  woolly -haired."  Now,  it  is 
clearly  proved  by  microscopic  examination,  that  the  hair  of  the  Negro  is  not  wool ; 
and  that  its  intimate  structure  differs  from  that  of  the  fairer  races,  solely  in  the 
greater  quantity  of  pigmentory  matter  contained  in  its  interior, — as  is  the  case  with 
jet-black  hair  in  our  own  country.  The  crisp,  twisted  growth  of  Negro  hair  is  the 
only  sign  by  which  it  can  be  really  separated  fi'om  the  straight  and  flowing  hair  of 
Europeans.  But  a  little  consideration  will  show  the  futihty  of  attempting  to 
separate  races  on  distinctions,  which  do  not  exceed  such  variations  as  may  be 
observed  within  the  limits  of  any  single  race.  For  instance,  among  the  African 
nations,  some  have  a  dark  complexion,  and  are  conformable  in  other  respects  to  the 
Negro  type,  yet,  at  the  same  time,  have  long  flowing  hair.  On  the  other  hand, 
there  are  many  Europeans,  having  no  admixture  of  Negro  blood,  with  hair  so  crisp 

and  frizzled  as  almost  to  deserve  the  epithet  of  woolly A  general  view  of  the 

phenomena  belonging  to  the  various  complexions  of  the  human  race  must  compel 
us  to  admit,  to  a  very  considerable  extent,  the  influence  of  climate  among  the 
causes  of  these  varieties.  Thus  it  is  only  in  the  intertropical  regions,  and  in  the 
countries  l)ordering  upon  them,  that  we  meet  with  the  greatest  depth  of  colour  in 
the  skin  ;  and  all  the  nations  inhal)iting  those  regions  have  an  inclination  to  com- 
plete blackness,  which  may,  however,  be  kept  in  check  by  other  circumstances. 

It  must  be  admitted,  that  the  relation  between  climate  and  colour  is  not 

perfectly  uniform ;  but  it  is  at  least  as  uniform  as  the  relation  between  colour  and 
race ;  that  is,  the  difference  of  shade  among  different  families  of  nations  which 
have  been  exposed  sufficiently  long  to  the  same  climatic  influences,  is  not  greater 

than  that  which  presents  itself  among  incUviduals  of  the  same  nation We 

have  seen  that  the  Arab,  li^ing  in  the  country  of  the  Negro,  becomes  of  Negro 
blackness ;  that  the  Negro,  dwelling  on  the  banks  of  the  Nile,  presents  the  dark 
red  tinge  of  the  ancient  Egyptian  ;  that  the  Jew,  trans])lanted  into  the  northern 
regions  of  Europe,  has  the  original  swarthy  complexion  of  his  race  replaced  by  a 
fair  and  even  a  florid  hue,  whilst  another  offset  of  the  same  stock  rivals  in  black- 
ness the  Hindoos  among  whom  he  dwells ;  that  the  Hindoo,  when  he  migrates  to 
the  high  lands  of  the  Himalaya  range,  becomes,  in  process  of  time,  as  fair  as  the 
Europeans  who  have  come  thither  from  the  far  north ;  that  the  nations  proved  by 
aftinities  of  language  to  be  descendants  of  the  great  Asian  stock,  wliich  has  dis- 
persed itself  through  every  variety  of  climate,  admit  of  every  variety  of  colour ; 
and  that  equal  and  similar  varieties  abound  among  the  members  of  other  groups  of 
nations  (for  instance,  the  American  and  the  Polynesian)  whose  geographical  cUstri- 
bution  and  linguistic  affinities  afford  a  strong  presumption  of  a  common  origin. 
We  cannot  conceive  that  any  cantlid  person  can  weigh  this  mass  of  evidence,  with- 
out coming  to  the  conclusion,  that  the  most  extreme  difterences  of  complexion  are 
unsafe  inchcatious  of  an  original  distinctness  of  race  ;  and  that  these  differences 
owe  their  origin  far  more  to  the  prolonged  influence  of  external  physical  conditions, 
than  to  any  other  assignable  causes. 

Any  other  conclusion,  this  intelligent  writer  observes,  involves 
the  case  in   inextricable  difficulties   and   inconsi'^'tencies ;    and 


10 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


having  arrived  at  precisely  the  same  result  by  a  comparison  of 
the  cranial  conformation  of  the  different  races,  he  once  more 
returns  to  the  subject  of  colour : — 

If  we  take  complexion,  again,  as  our  guide,  we  shall  be  led  into  greater  absurd- 
ities ;  for  we  must  then  split  up  the  Jewish  people  into  half  a  score  of  diverse 
races :  between  the  ruddy  Saxon  and  the  black  Hindoo  we  must  establish  a  dozen 
of  distinct  grades;  and  when  we  come  to  the  African,  American,  and  Oceanic 
nations,  we  must  assign  a  new  Adam  and  Eve  to  almost  every  tribe.* 

Physiologists  are  not  agreed  as  to  the  original  colour  of  the 
human  race,  nor  does  revelation  afford  us  any  direct  assist- 
ance upon  this  subject.  About  the  close  of  the  first  thousand 
years,  Ave  read,  "  There  were  giants  in  the  earth  in  those  days," 
and  that  "  the  daughters  of  men  were  fair."  (Gen.  vi.  2,  4.) 
And  in  the  Old  Testament  we  often  find  women  praised  for 
their  beauty.  Because  Sarai,  the  wife  of  Abram,  was  ''  a  fair 
woman  to  look  upon," — that  is,  there  was  something  in  her  per- 
sonal appearance  that  was  more  than  common, — the  father 
of  the  faithful  was  induced  to  give  way  to  unbelief,  and  dis- 
trust of  the  providence  of  God,  when  he  gave  the  improper 
advice,  "Say,  I  pray  thee,  thou  art  my  sister." f  (Gen.  xii.  11, 
13.)  Of  Rebekah  it  was  said,  "And  the  damsel  was  very  fair;" 
(Gen.  xxiv.  16 ;)  and  of  Rachel,  Laban^s  youngest  daughter, 
that  she  "was  beautiful  and  well  favoured."  (Gen.  xxix.  17.) 
And  it  is  also  recorded  of  Esther,  that  "the  maid  was  fair  and 
beautiful."  (Esther  ii.  7.)  Samson's  father-in-law,  who  had 
unjustly  deprived  him  of  his  wife,  said  to  him,  "Is  not  her 
younger  sister  fairer  than  she  ?  take  her,  I  pray  thee,  instead  of 
her."  (Judges  xv.  2.)  And  subsequently  we  read,  that  "in  all 
the  land  were  no  women  found  so  fair  as  the  daughters  of  Job." 
(Job  xlii.  15.)  The  description  given  of  the  birth  of  Moses  is  not 
only  that  "he  was  a  goodly  child,"  (Exod.  ii.  2,)  and  "  a  proper 
child,"  (Heb.  xi.  23,)  but  that  he  "  was  exceeding  fair."  (Acts 
vii.  20.)  And  on  his  coming  "  down  from  the  Mount,"  whither 
he  had  gone  to  receive  "the  two  tables"  from  Jehovah,  it  is 
said  "  that  Moses  wist  not  that  the  skin  of  his  face  shone  w^hile 
he  talked  with  him."  "  And  the  children  of  Israel  saw  the  face 
of  Moses,  that  the  skin  of  Moses'  face  shone."  (Exod.  xxxiv. 
29,  35.)  It  is  said  of  David  the  son  of  Jesse,  that  "he  was 
ruddy,  and  withal  of  a  beautiful  countenance,  and  goodly  to 
look  to:"  that  he  was  "a  comely  person;"  and  that  "when  the 
Philistine  looked  about,  and  saw  David,  he  disdained  him  :  for  he 


*  "Echnburgh  Review,"  pp.  449,  452,  457,  458,  482.    (1848.) 
t  Which  she  was,  although  by  another  mother. 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  11 

was  but  a  youth,  and  ruddy,  and  of  a  fair  countenance." 
(1  Sam.  xvi.  13,  18 ;  xvii.  42.)  Absalom  was  distinguished, 
amongst  other  things,  for  his  fine  person.  "  In  all  Israel  there 
was  none  to  be  so  much  praised  as  Absalom  for  his  beauty; 
from  the  sole  of  his  foot  even  to  the  crown  of  his  head  there  was 
no  blemish  in  him."  (2  Sam.  xiv.  25.)  Of  the  three  Hebrews, 
with  Daniel  at  their  head,  who  had  declined  to  partake  of  the 
king's  food,  and  Avho  had  "  pulse  to  eat,  and  water  to  drink,"  it 
is  said,  "  Their  countenances  appeared  fairer  and  fatter  in  flesh 
than  all  the  children  which  did  eat  the  portion  of  the  king's 
meat."  (Dan.  i.  12,  15.)  In  other  parts  of  the  inspired  volume, 
we  have  similar  allusions :  "  My  beloved  is  white  and  ruddy. 
His  head  is  as  the  most  fine  gold,  his  locks  are  bushj^,  and 
black  as  a  raven.  His  eyes  are  as  the  eyes  of  doves  by  the 
rivers  of  waters,  washed  with  milk,  and  fitly  set.  His  cheeks 
are  as  a  bed  of  spices,  as  sweet  flowers  :  his  lips  like  lilies,  drop- 
ping sweet  smelling  myrrh."  (Solomon's  Song  v.  10 — 13.)  We 
also  read,  "  Sweet  is  thy  voice,  and  thy  countenance  is  comely." 
"  Thy  lips  are  like  a  thread  of  scarlet,  and  thy  speech  is  comely  : 
thy  temples  are  like  a  piece  of  a  pomegranate  within  thy  locks." 
"Thine  head  upon  thee  is  like  Carniel,  and  the  hair  of  thine 
head  like  purple."   (Solomon's  Song  ii.  14;  iv.  3  ;  vii.  5.) 

On  the  other  hand,  we  find  it  written,  "  I  am  black,  but 
comely,  O  ye  daughters  of  Jerusalem,  as  the  tents  of  Kedar 
as  the  curtains  of  Solomon."  (Solomon's  Song  i.  5.)  Again, 
it  is  written,  "  My  skin  is  black  upon  me,  and  my  bones  are 
burned  with  heat."  (Job  xxx.  30.)  "Their  visage  is  blacker 
than  a  coal.  Our  skin  was  black  like  an  oven  because  of  the 
terrible  famine."  (Lam.  iv.  8;  v.  10.)  "All  faces  shall  gather 
blackness."  (Joel  ii.  6  ;  Nahum  ii.  10.) 

Now,  it  must  be  admitted  that  many  of  the  preceding  quota- 
tions from  the  sacred  scriptures  are  to  be  understood  in  a  meta- 
phorical sense.  Those  from  the  Minor  Prophets  are  applied 
to  the  Jews,  whose  countenances  are  said  to  have  changed  and 
turned  black,  like  persons  ready  to  be  strangled,  being  struck 
with  terror  at  the  approach  of  God's  judgments.  The  passages 
from  Solomon's  Song  unquestionably  refer  to  Christ  and  his 
church,  in  the  various  conditions  to  which  it  is  liable  in  this 
world.  And  even  in  those  taken  from  the  first  book  of  Moses, 
and  other  historical  parts  of  holy  writ,  in  which  the  expressions  of 
"  fair  to  look  upon,"  "  very  fair,"  "  beautiful  and  well  favoured," 
and  others,  so  frequently  occur,  it  is  a  question  whether  these 
terms  do  not  apply  as  much  to  a  beautiful  symmetry  of  form, 
with  a  comeliness  of  features,  and  a  gracefulness  of  movement, 


12  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

as  to  the  colour  of  the  skin,  or  to  a  freshness  or  whiteness 
of  complexion. 

But,  adrjQitting  the  latter  to  be  included  in  those  com- 
mendations of  corporeal  beauty,  we  have  no  account  of  the 
complexion  of  Adam  and  Eve.  We  may,  however,  indulge 
in  the  supposition,  that  our  first  parents  were,  as  to  colour, 
like  Moses,  "exceeding  fair,"  understanding  the  term  in  its 
general  acceptation;  and,  in  support  of  this  opinion,  it  may 
be  said,  that  "  God  created  man  in  his  own  image;"  and  that 
as  white  is  an  emblem  of  purity,  Adam  was  created  a  white 
man ;  and  all  the  pictorial  representations  of  our  great  pro- 
genitor, both  ancient  and  modern,  seem  to  favour  the  idea.  On 
this  point  others  think  differently,  and  amongst  these  are  some 
of  the  Africans,  who  state  our  race  to  have  been  at  first  black. 
Cain,  they  say,  was  a  Negro ;  but  he  became  so  pale  with  fear 
and  remorse  when  he  had  murdered  his  brother,  that  his  colour 
never  returned. 

Yet  not  only  Negro  biit  White  physiologists  have  been  found 
who  held  the  opinion  that  the  human  race  was  originally  black. 
We  have  already  centioned  that  Negro  children  are  nearly  as 
fair  as  Europeans  at  birth,  that  they  continue  so  for  several 
days,  and  that  the  palms  of  their  hands  and  the  soles  of  their 
feet  continue  whitish  through  life.  Another  fact  is  certain, 
that  whilst  white  parents  have  never  been  known  to  have  black 
offspring,  children  are  born  of  black  parents  sometimes  entirely 
white,  and  retain  that  colour :  these  are  of  the  Albino  variet}', 
several  instances  of  which  have  come  under  my  own  observation. 

"Secret  things  belong  unto  the  Lord  our  God;"  and  where 
no  distinct  revelation  is  made  on  a  subject,  it  is  in  general 
perhaps  safer  for  us  to  be  silent,  or  to  confess  our  ignorance, 
and  thus  refrain  from  speculation.  But  the  primary  condition 
of  the  human  race  even  in  this  respect  is  too  interesting  a  ques- 
tion to  be  passed  by  altogether;  and,  therefore,  without  enter- 
taining either  of  the  extreme  views  of  white  or  black,  much  less 
the  strange  and  marvellous  accounts  which  have  been  put  forth 
by  some  writers  as  to  the  original  size,  physical  strength,  &c.,  of 
the  first  man,  but  taking  into  consideration  the  locality  and  the 
climate  where  Adam  and  Eve  first  breathed  the  vital  air,  the 
nature  of  the  composition  of  which  man  was  formed,  and  the 
name  given  to  him,  Adam,  "which  signifies  rec?,"  without  at 
all  wishing  to  be  wise  above  what  is  written,  may  we  not 
indulge  in  the  supposition  that  they  resembled  in  complexion 
some  of  the  light  brownish  or  copper-coloured  Moors  or  Foulahs 
in   Western    Africa?     The   writer  in    the   Edinburgh   lleview 


DESCRIPTION  OF  THE  NATIVES.  13 

already  quoted  says, — "  We  may  state  our  own  conclusion, 
drawn  from  a  comparison  of  the  geographical,  physiological,  and 
glottological  considerations  involved  in  it,  that  some  part  of 
High  Asia  was  the  centre  from  which  the  world  was  peopled ; 
and  that  the  race  still  inhabiting  that  region  most  nearly  repre- 
sents the  original  stock."*  Against  this  conclusion  it  maybe 
objected,  that,  since  the  deluge,  there  has  been  a  considerable 
change  in  the  climate  of  that  country  as  well  as  of  others.  It 
may  be  so ;  but  admitting  this  for  the  sake  of  argument,  then 
we  fall  back  upon  one  of  the  princip.al  reasons  for  supposing 
that  our  first  parents  were  neither  white  nor  black;  that  is, 
upon  the  colour  "of  the  dust  of  the  ground"  of  which  "the 
Lord  God  formed  man,"  and  the  name  which  he  received. 
"Josephus  thinks  that  he  was  called  Adam  by  reason  of  the 
reddish  colour  of  the  earth  out  of  which  he  was  formed ;  for 
Adam  in  Hebrew  signifies  rec?."  This  is  disputed  by  Sir 
William  Jones,  "  who  thinks  it  may  be  from  Adlm,  which  in 
Sanscrit  signifies  the  first.  The  Persians,  however,  denominate 
him  Adamah,  which  signifies,  according  to  Sale,  red  earth."  f 

This  opinion  receives  additional  weight  from  the  mass  of 
"  evidence  collected  by  Dr.  Prichard  respecting  the  physical 
characters  of  the  ancient  Egyptians.  The  conclusion  to  which 
it  conducts  him  is  a  conviction  that  the  ancient  Egyptians  were 
so  closely  allied  to  the  Negro  race,  that  the  origin  of  both  was 
probably  the  same.  The  complexion  of  the  ancient  Egyptians, 
as  represented  by  their  own  artists,  seems  to  have  been  of  a  red 
copper  or  light  chocolate  colour,  and  to  have  resembled  the 
present  complexion  of  the  reddest  of  the  Foulah  and  Kafir 
tribes."  % 

Dr.  Primatt,  who  wrote  upwards  of  a  century  ago,  Avhen 
touching  upon  the  subject  of  colour,  says, — "It  has  pleased 
God  to  cover  some  men  with  white  skins,  and  others  with  black ; 
but  as  there  is  neither  merit  nor  demerit  in  complexion,  the 
white  man,  notwithstanding  the  barbarity  of  custom  and  pre- 
judice, can  have  no  right,  by  virtue  of  his  colour,  to  enslave 
and  tyrannize  over  the  black  man.  Eor  whether  a  man  be 
white  or  black,  such  he  is  by  God's  appointment;  and,  abstract- 
edly considered,  is  neither  a  subject  for  pride,  nor  an  object  of 
contempt."  It  comes  to  this,  then,  "  V\^hether  a  man  be  white 
or  black,"  or  neither,  "such  he  is  by  God's  appointment;"  it 
was  foreseen,  and  determined  that  it  should  be  so :  and  here,  as 

*  "  Edinburgh  Review,"  p.  486.  (1848.) 

t  Rev.  Richard  Watson's  "  Biblical  and  Theological  Dictionaiy,"  art.  Adam. 

X  "  Edinburgh  Review,"  p   452.  (1848.) 


14  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

in  all  the  other  parts  of  the  Divine  workmanship,  we  see  the 
wisdom  and  the  goodness  of  God  in  adapting  the  skin,  hair,  &c., 
both  of  animals  and  the  human  species,  to  the  various  and 
changeable  climates  and  latitudes  in  which  they  reside.  In 
northern  climates,  for  instance,  men  have  long  hair,  and  sheep 
have  wool.  In  southern  climates  sheep  have  hair,  and  Africans 
and  others  have  woolly  heads ;  and  we  know  that  climate  affects 
the  hair  of  the  head,  as  well  as  the  complexion. 

After  all,  the  very  striking  difference  of  colour  between  the 
African  and  European  is  merely  superficial.  "We  are  accus- 
tomed to  say,  that  colour  is  ^only  skin-deep;^  but,  in  point  of 
fact,  it  is  not  even  skin-deep ;  for  it  does  not  reach  the  true  skin, 
being  entirely  confined  to  the  epidermis,  or  scarf  skin.  It 
was  formerly  supposed  that  between  the  true  skin  and  scarf 
skin  there  lay  a  proper  colouring  layer,  to  which  the  term  rete 
mucosum  was  given;  and  it  was  imagined  that  this  layer  was 
greatly  developed  in  the  dark-skinned  races,  but  nearly  wanting 
in  those  of  fair  complexion.  This  account  of  it,  however,  when 
submitted  to  the  test  of  microscopic  inquiry,  has  been  found  to 
be  totally  incorrect."  * 

One  thing  is  certain,  that  though  the  Negro  skin  is  black,  it 
is  less  rough  than  that  of  the  children  born  in  northern  lati- 
tudes, and  has,  in  fact,  the  sleekness  and  softness  of  velvet; 
and  that,  though  the  Negroes  work  naked  in  the  hottest  hours 
of  the  day,  their  skin  never  blisters,  while  that  of  white  sailors 
does  whenever  the  sun  reaches  them.  How  common  it  is  for 
Europeans  who  have  been  much  exposed  to  the  direct  rays  of 
the  sun,  especially  in  a  tropical  climate,  to  become  "  tanned  "  or 
"  sun-burnt "  in  the  face  and  hands,  while  the  parts  of  the  body 
which  are  habitually  covered  retain  their  original  fairness  !  On 
the  other  hand,  the  Africans  enjoy  hot,  dry  weather,  while 
moisture  and  cold  make  them  shiver,  and  unfit  for  labour.  We 
close  this  part  of  the  subject,  therefore,  in  the  language  of  holy 
writ,  as  applicable  to  the  Negro  race : — "  Look  not  upon  me, 
because  I  am  black,  because  the  sun  hath  looked  upon  me  :  my 
mother's  children  were  angry  with  me ;  they  made  me  keeper 
of  the  vineyards ;  but  mine  own  vineyard  have  I  not  kept." 
(Solomon's  Song  i.  6.) 

II.  As  to  CONFIGURATION  :  I  havc  sccn  thousands  of  the 
Jollof,  Mandingo,  Foulah,  and  other  tribes  on  the  continent  of 
Africa,  who  are  not  a  whit  behind  some  of  the  finest  specimens 
in  England  for  beautiful  features,  symmetry  of  form,  height  of 


*  "  Ediiibiivgli  Review,"  p.  445.  (1848.) 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  15 

stature,  and  physical  strength.*  But  as  we  shall  have  occasion 
to  refer  to  some  further  particulars  of  these  and  other  nations, 
I  shall  here,  in  support  of  the  foregoing  statement,  adduce  a 
few  quotations  from  some  respectable  writers.  Dr.  Winterbot- 
tom  was  for  some  time  physician  to  the  colony  of  Sierra-Leone, 
soon  after  the  formation  of  the  settlement ;  and,  from  his  resi- 
dence there,  professional  skill,  and  general  intelligence,  was  well 
qualified  to  write  upon  this  subject.  When  speaking  of  the 
inhabitants  in  that  locality,  he  says, — "  Both  men  and  women 
are  in  general  above  the  middle  size,  well  proportioned,  sprightly, 
and  of  an  open  countenance.  Although  the  palm  of  elegance 
may  be  denied  to  them,  yet  they  possess  a  great  degree  of  ease 
in  all  their  actions.  The  manners  of  the  females,  particularly 
the  younger  part,  are  not  devoid  of  grace,  and  are  free  from 
every  appearance  of  constraint.  The  estimation  of  female 
beauty  among  the  natives  in  this  country  is  the  same  as  in  most 
others.  The  young  women  are  in  general  remarkable  for  the 
beautiful  contour  of  their  limbs,  and  for  an  ingenuous,  open 
countenance.  Their  eyes  are  often  large  and  well  formed,  their 
ears  small  and  neat.  Their  necks  and  bosoms  are  well  turned, 
scarcely  indeed  to  be  surpassed  by  ^the  bending  statue  which 
enchants  the  world.'  The  frankness  of  their  manners  is  tem- 
pered with  an  agreeable  timidity  towards  strangers,  which 
renders  them  still  more  interesting.'^  The  learned  Doctor 
admits  that  there  is  "  as  great  a  variety  of  features  among  these 
people  as  is  to  be  met  with  in  the  nations  of  Europe,"  but  that 
"  the  sloping  contracted  forehead,  small  eyes,  depressed  nose, 
thick  lips,  and  projecting  jaw,  with  which  the  African  is  usually 
caricatured,  are  by  no  means  constant  traits ;  on  the  contrary, 
almost  every  gradation  of  countenance  may  be  met  with,  from 
the  disgusting  picture  too  commonly  drawn  of  them,  to  the 
finest  set  of  European  features.  Want  of  animation  does  not 
characterize  them,  and  faces  are  often  met  with  which  express 
the  various  emotions  of  the  mind  with  great  energy."  When 
speaking  of  the  Foulahs,  this  gentleman  says,  "  Among  those 
of  them  whom  either  curiosity  or  commerce  had  attracted  to  the 
settlement  at  Sierra-Leone,  I  saw  a  youth  whose  features  were 
exactly  of  the  Grecian  mould,  and  whose  person  might  have 
afforded  to  the  statuary  a  model  of  the  Apollo  Belvidere."  t 

*  Witness  the  celebrated  athlete  from  the  Guinea-Coast ;  a  cast  of  whose  body 
is  conspicuously  displayed  in  the  museum  of  the  Royal  College  of  Surgeons, 
London. 

t  Dr.  Winterbottom's  "  Account  of  the  Native  Africans  in  the  Neighbour- 
hood of  Sierra-Leone,"  &c.  vol.  i.  pp.  181,  197,  200.  (1803,) 


16  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

M.  Goldberry,  an  intelligent  French  writer  on  Western 
Africa,  when  speaking  of  the  Jollofs,  says, — "  They  are  always 
well  made :  their  features  are  regular,  and  like  those  of  Euro- 
peans, except  that  the  nose  is  rather  round,  and  their  lips 
thick.  They  are  said  to  be  remarkably  handsome,  and  their 
women  beautiful.  The  complexion  of  the  race  is  a  fine,  trans- 
parent, deep  black ;  their  hair  is  crisp  and  woolly."  The  same 
writer,  when  speaking  of  the  Mandingoes,  whose  colour  is  also 
black,  with  a  mixture  of  red,  says, — "  Their  features  are  regular, 
their  character  generous  and  open,  and  their  manner  gentle." 
Major  Laing  says, — "  The  appearance  of  the  Mandingoes  is 
engaging ;  their  features  are  regular  and  open ;  their  persons 
well  formed  and  comely,  averaging  a  height  rather  above  the 
common." 

With  regard  to  the  Foulahs,  who  are  spread  in  various  tribes 
over  the  countries  between  the  Senegal  and  Gambia  Rivers,  and 
in  the  regions  farther  south  as  far  as  Sierra-Leone,  and  for 
some  hundreds  of  miles  in  the  interior,  though  the  case  cited  by 
Dr.  Winterbottom  cannot  be  taken  as  a  sample  for  the  whole  in 
all  its  particulars,  yet  those  who  have  seen  any  of  this  numerous 
part  of  the  population  of  Western  Africa  agree  in  describing 
them  substantially  as  Mungo  Park  has  done ;  though  it  must 
be  admitted,  there  is  considerable  difference  between  the  vari- 
ous branches  of  the  Foulah  tribe,  both  as  to  complexion  and 
features,  as  will  be  shown  in  a  subsequent  chapter. 

"The  Foulahs,"  says  Mr.  Park,  "such  of  them  at  least  as 
reside  near  the  Gambia,  are  chiefly  of  a  tawny  complexion,  with 
soft,  silky  hair,  and  pleasing  features;"  and  this  he  repeats 
when  speaking  of  the  Foulahs  of  Bondou.  M.  Goldberry  says, 
"  The  genuine  Foulahs,"  meaning  the  Foulahs  of  Teembo  and 
Foota  Jollon,  "  are  very  fine  men,  robust  and  courageous. 
They  have  a  strong  mind,  and  are  mysterious,  reserved,  and 
prudent ;  they  understand  commerce,  and  travel  in  the  capacity 
of  merchants  even  to  the  extent  of  the  Gulf  of  Guinea.  They 
are  formidable  to  their  neighbours.  Their  women  are  hand- 
some and  sprightly.  The  colour  of  their  skin  is  a  kind  of 
reddish  black;  their  countenances  are  regular,  and  their  hair 
is  longer  and  not  so  woolly  as  that  of  the  common  Negroes." 

It  may  be  objected,  that  these  are  particular,  detached,  and 
isolated  cases,  and  that  they  are  exceptions  to  the  rule.  In 
reply  to  this,  let  the  reader  peruse  the  following  summary  from 
Dr.  Prichard^s  excellent  work : — 

The  dark  coloured  nations  of  Africa  do  not  appear  to  form  a  distinct  race,  or  a 
distinct  kind  of  people,  separated  from  all  other  families  of  man  hy  a  broad  line 


DEyCRIPTIO.V    OF    THE    NATIVES.  17 

and  uniform  among  tliemselves,  such  as  we  ideally  represent  under  the  term  Negro. 
There  is,  perhaps,  not  one  tribe  in  whicli  all  the  characters  ascribed  to  the  Negro 
are  found  in  the  highest  degree ;  and  in  general  they  are  distributed  to  different 
races,  in  all  manner  of  ways,  and  combined  in  each  instance  with  more  or  fewer  of 
the  characters  belonging  to  the  European  or  the  Asiatic. 

The  distinguishing  peculiarities  of  the  African  nations  may  be  summed  up  into 
four  heads;  namely,  the  characters  of  complexion,  of  hair,  featm-es,  and  figure. 
We  have  to  remai-k, — 

1.  That  some  races,  with  woolly  hair  and  complexions  of  a  deep  black  colour, 
have  fine  forms,  regular  and  beautiful  featui'es,  and  are  in  their  figure  and  counte- 
nances scarcely  different  from  Europeans.  Such  are  the  Jolofs  near  the  Senegal, 
and  the  race  of  Guber,  or  of  Ilaiisa,  in  the  interior  of  Siidon.  Some  tribes  of  the 
South-African  race,  as  the  darkest  of  the  Kafirs,  are  nearly  of  this  description,  as 
well  as  some  families  or  tribes  in  the  empire  of  Kongo  ;  while  others  have  more  of 
the  Negro  character  in  their  countenances  and  form. 

2.  Other  tribes  have  the  form  and  features  similar  to  those  above  described  : 
their  complexion  is  black,  or  a  deep  olive  or  copper  colour  approaching  to  black ; 
while  their  hair,  though  often  crisp  and  frizzled,  is  not  the  least  woolly.  Such  are 
the  Bisheri,  and  the  Dawakil,  and  Ilazorta,  and  the  darkest  of  the  Abyssinians. 

3.  Other  instances  have  been  mentioned  in  which  the  complexion  is  black,  and 
the  features  have  the  Negro  type,  while  the  nature  of  the  hair  deviates  considerably, 
and  is  even  said  to  be  rather  long  and  in  flowing  ringlets.  Some  of  the  tribes  near 
the  Zambesi  are  of  this  class. 

4.  Among  nations  whose  colour  deviates  towards  a  lighter  hue,  we  find  some 
who  have  woolly  hair,  with  a  figure  and  features  approaching  to  the  European. 
Such  are  the  Bechuana  Kafirs,  of  a  light  browni  complexion.  The  tawny  Hot- 
tentots, though  not  approaching  the  European,  differ  from  the  Negro.  Again  : 
some  of  the  tribes  on  the  Gold-Coast  and  the  Slave-Coast,  and  the  Ibos  in  the  Bight 
of  Benin,  are  of  a  lighter  complexion  than  many  other  Negroes,  while  their  fea- 
tures are  strongly  marked  with  the  peculiarities  of  that  race.* 

There  is,  then,  we  contend,  nothing  in  the  phj'sical  pecu- 
liarities, or  the  variety  which  is  observable  in  the  countenances 
and  features  of  the  preceding  nations  and  tribes  of  Africa,  to 
indicate  that  they  are  a  distinct  species  of  the  human  race  ;  and 
even  if  we  were  to  select  the  most  unfavourable  specimens  of 
the  African  tribes,  we  may  add,  in  the  language  of  the  above 
excellent  writer,  that  "  their  personal  deformity  and  intellectual 
weakness,  if  these  attriljutes  really  belong  to  them,  must  be 
regarded  as  individual  varieties.  Similar  defects  are  produced 
in  every  human  race,  by  the  agency  of  physical  circumstances, 
parallel  to  those  under  which  the  tribes  in  question  are  known 
to  exist.  If  these  were  reversed,  it  is  probable  that  a  few 
generations  would  obliterate  the  eifect  which  has  resulted  from 
them.^'  This  is  the  case ;  for  we  know  that  climate,  diet,  and 
the  various  modes  of  life,  have  great  power  over  the  features, 

*  Dr.  Prichakd's  "Researches  into  the  Physical  History  of  Mankind,"  vol.  ii. 
pp.  340,  341. 


18  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

form,  and  stature  of  man,  as  well  as  in  affecting  the  colour. 
Hence  West-Indian  children,  educated  in  England,  improve 
not  only  in  complexion,  but  in  elegance  of  features  ;  an  altera- 
tion arising,  perhaps,  equally  from  change  of  climate,  of  diet, 
and  of  education.  The  difference  between  the  children  of 
liberated  Africans  who  attend  the  Mission-schools  in  Western 
Africa  and  their  parents,  in  point  of  intelligence,  and  even  in 
their  features  and  personal  appearance,  is  very  striking.  But, 
"  as  to  configuration,  we  sometimes  see  great  variety  of  this  in 
the  same  families, — the  prominent  and  the  retiring  forehead ; 
the  aquiline  and  the  Grecian  nose ;  the  long,  the  round,  and  the 
oval  face.  The  man  who  should  gravely  assert  that  these  could 
not  be  the  children  of  the  same  parents,  would  be  considered 
one  with  whom  it  would  be  folly  to  hold  any  argument."  * 
Again :  in  members  of  the  same  family  we  see  some  smooth, 
some  hairy;  some  tall,  some  short;  some  fair,  some  brown: 
but  are  we  able  to  tell,  from  these  peculiarities,  which  carries 
the  ensigns  of  genius,  which  bears  the  impression  of  wisdom  ? 
We  see  genius,  and  the  expansion  of  the  intellectual  powers, 
sporting  and  developed  in  various  physical  forms :  we  see  this, 
tall  in  Newton,  bulky  in  Hume,  slender  in  Voltaire,  diminutive 
and  deformed  in  Pope :  to  say  nothing  of  many  eminent 
divines  who  were  small  in  stature,  one  of  whom  gave  a  practical 
exemplification  of  his  own  poetic  effusion, — 

"  The  mind 's  the  standard  of  the  man." 

We  close  our  observations  on  this  subject  in  the  words  of  an 
elegant  author,  who  observes,  that  "  of  all  animals,  the  differ- 
ences between  mankind  are  the  smallest.  Of  the  lower  races 
of  creatures  the  changes  are  so  great  as  often  entirely  to  dis- 
guise the  natural  animal,  and  to  distort  or  to  disfigure  its  shape. 
But  the  chief  differences  in  man  are  rather  taken  from  the 
tincture  of  his  skin,  than  the  variety  of  his  figure ;  and  in  all 
climates  he  presents  his  erect  deportment,  and  the  marked 
superiority  of  his  form."  * 

III.  Then,  as  to  remoteness  of  situation. — Whatever 
weight  there  may  be  in  this  objection  as  to  the  peopling  of  the 
New  World,  (and  even  this  has  been  sufficiently  cleared  up  in 
BoBERTSON^s  "  History  of  America,")  the  objection  can  scarcely 
be  entertained  for  a  moment  with  regard  to  Africa ;  for  it  is  not 
improbable  that  some  parts  of  North-Eastern  Africa  were  inha- 
bited previous  to  the  deluge ;  but  if  they  were  not,  we  have  the 

*  Rev.  J.  Stanley,  Sen.  f  Goldsmith's  "Animated  Nature." 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  19 

clearest  evidence  that,  soon  after  the  flood,  Africa  was  peopled 
by  the  descendants  of  Noah,  or,  rather,  by  one  branch  of 
Noah's  family,  namely,  by  Ham  and  his  descendants ; — Cush, 
the  son  of  Ham,  and  grandson  of  Noah,  and  Nimrod,  NoaVs 
great-grandson,  the  mighty  hunter,  who  became  a  mighty 
builder.  Besides,  from  the  contiguity  of  that  continent  to 
Asia,  and  some  parts  of  it  especially  to  the  Garden  of  Eden,  the 
residence  of  our  first  parents,  and  from  the  very  early  mer- 
cantile traffic  which  we  know  to  have  taken  place  between 
Northern  Africa  and  the  East,  even  prior  to  the  era  of  Moses, 
there  can  remain  no  doubt  that  the  inhabitants  of  Africa  have 
all  sprung  from  the  same  source;  and,  with  ourselves,  are  the 
descendants  of  one  common  pair. 

But  it  is  still  contended,  even  by  those  who  believe  in  the 
common  origin  of  the  human  race,  that  the  continent  of  Africa 
generally,  or  the  greater  part  of  the  kingdoms  in  the  interior, 
and  the  native  tribes  in  the  South  and  on  the  Western  coast  in 
particular,  are  nevertheless  mentally  inferior  to  the  inhabitants 
of  other  parts  of  the  globe  ;  and  not  only  so,  but  that  education 
and  other  circumstances  will  never  be  able  to  raise  them  to  an 
equality  with  those  of  their  fellow-men  who  enjoy  the  blessings 
of  civilization.  That  they  are  in  the  mass,  at  present,  far 
behind  the  white  races,  I  at  once  admit ;  but  I  am  at  issue  with 
those  who  advocate  the  latter  part  of  this  sentiment :  such 
writers  must  have  forgotten,  that  there  was  a  time  in  the 
history  of  Britain,  when  our  own  ancestors  were  described  by 
the  philosophers  at  Bome,  not  only  as  being  below  mediocrity 
in  civilization,  but  they  were  considered  to  be  too  stupid  even 
for  slaves ;  and  therefore  Cicero  advised  his  friend  Atticus  not 
to  obtain  his  slaves  from  Britain,  "  because  they  are  so  stupid, 
and  utterly  incapable  of  being  taught,  that  they  are  unfit  to 
form  a  part  of  the  household  of  Atticus.'^ 

In  the  preceding  brief  description  of  the  physical  character 
of  several  of  the  nations  in  Western  Africa,  (of  the  Foulahs,  for 
instance,)  we  find  them  spoken  of  as  "  having  a  strong  mind," 
that  they  are  "prudent"  and  "understand  commerce,"  and 
that  "in  the  capacity  of  merchants"  they  travel  some  hundreds 
of  miles.  The  same  may  be  said  of  many  other  tribes  :  indeed, 
no  unprejudiced  person  who  has  had  much  personal  intercourse 
with  the  Mandingo,  Jollof,  Foulali,  Serrawoolli,  Bambarra,  and 
other  nations,  can  entertain  the  slightest  doubt  of  the  equality 
of  intellect  between  white  and  black  men.  Dr.  Prichard,  in  his 
general  observations  on  the  intellectual  faculties  of  the  African 
nations,  observes :  "  But  if  it  is  pretended,  that  all  the  woolly- 

c  2 


20  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

haired  races  in  Africa  are  uniformly  inferior  in  intellect  to  other 
tribes  of  men,  the  assertion  is  at  most  a  gratuitous  one.  Nay, 
it  is  contradicted  by  the  most  clear  and  decisive  testimony. 
Travellers  in  South  Africa  have  been  struck  with  the  proofs  of 
vigour  and  acuteness  of  understanding  displayed  by  the  Ama- 
zulah,  Amakosah,  Bechuana,  and  other  Kafir  nations.  And  if 
the  alleged  inferiority  of  organization  and  of  capacity  in  the 
skull  is  the  ground  on  which  deficiency  of  intellect  is  ascribed 
to  the  woolly-haired  nations;  this,  at  least,  does  not  apply  to 
the  Kafirs,  many  of  whom  have  a  form  of  the  head,  and  parti- 
cularly an  expansion  of  the  anterior  parts  of  the  skull,  resem- 
bling the  heads  of  Europeans."  "  A  similar  objection  to  this  doc- 
trine might,  indeed,  be  furnished  by  many  black  races  between 
the  tropics,  and  among  those  tribes  who  are  considered  as 
genuine  Negroes.  I  need  not  repeat  what  I  have  said  respect- 
ing the  physical  and  the  intellectual  characteristics  of  the  Man- 
dingoes,  and  the  people  of  Guber,  Hausa,  and  other  nations."  * 
On  "the  assertion,"  "All  the  woolly-haired  races  in  Africa 
are  uniformly^  inferior  in  intellect  to  other  tribes  of  men,"  Dr. 
Prichard  has  well  observed  that  it  "  is  at  most  a  gratuitous  one ; 
nay,"  that  "  it  is  contradicted  by  the  most  clear  and  decisive  testi- 
mony," as  in  the  preceding  paragraph  ;  and  he  then  proceeds  to 
show  that  those  minute  philosophers,  who  take  the  gauge  of 
intellectual  capacity  from  the  disposition  of  the  bones  of  the 
head,  and  link  morality  with  the  contour  of  the  countenance, — 
men  who  measure  mind  by  the  rule  and  compasses,  and  estimate 
capacity  for  knowledge  and  salvation  by  a  scale  of  inches,  and 
the  acuteness  of  angles, — have  not  done  the  African  nations 
justice  even  on  this  principle :  for,  he  remarks, — 

The  crania  of  Negroes  existing  in  European  collections,  and  those  wliich  have 
been  principally  examined  by  anatomists,  have  been  almost  exclusively  taken  from 
ti-ibes  who  may  be  supposed  to  have  presented  the  most  unfavourable  specimens  of 
the  African  organization.  They  have  been  the  skulls  of  unfortunate  wretches 
kidnapped  from  the  coast,  or  their  enslaved  offspring.  It  was  from  Negro  skulls  of 
this  description  that  those  proportional  measm-ements  were  taken  by  Soemmering 
and  others,  from  which  an  attempt  was  made  to  prove  that  the  ampUtude  of  the 

brain  is  less  in  the  Negro  than  in  other  races  of  men I  have  endeavoured  to 

prove,  that  there  is  a  fallacy  in  all  those  statements,  arising  from  the  standard 
of  comparison,  which  is  a  given  extent  of  facial  bones,  or  length  of  the  superior 
maxilla ;  that  one  of  the  prominent  peculiarities  of  the  strongly-marked  Negro 
head  is  an  absolute  excess  in  the  length  of  the  upper  jaw,  the  extent  of  which, 
therefore,  ought  to  be  the  basis  of  comparison  ;  and  that  from  these  measurements 
of  Soemmering  no  decisive  result  can  be  deduced.     This  opinion  has  received  a 

*  Dn.  Prtchard's  "  Researches  into  the  Physical  History  of  Mankind,"  vol.  ii. 
pp.  347,  348. 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  21 

most  ample  confirmation  from  the  results  of  a  series  of  observations  by  Professor 
Tidemann,  published  in  the  "  Philosophical  Transactions  "  for  1836,  on  the  brain 
of  the  Negro  in  comparison  with  the  brain  of  the  Em-opean  and  that  of  the 
orang-outang.  In  this  paper  the  learned  author  proposes  to  answer  the  two  follow- 
ing questions : —  - 

"  First.     Is  there  any  important  and  essential  difference  in  the  structure  of  the 
brain  between  the  Negro  and  the  European  ? 

"  Secondly.    Has  the  brain  of  the  Negro  any  greater  resemblance  to  the  brain  of 
the  orang-outang  than  has  the  brain  of  the  European.'" 

To  these  inquiries  the  author  has  obtained  very  satisfactory  solutions In 

comparing  the  Africans  with  other  races  of  men  in  rela+ion  to  the  capacity  of  the 
cranium,  by  which  he  estimates  the  magnitude  of  the  brain,  M.  Tidemann  adopted 
the  following  method  of  proceeding :  1.  He  weighed  the  skull  with  and  without  the 
under  jaw-bone.  2.  He  then  filled  the  cavity  of  the  skull  with  dry  millet-seed, 
through  the  foramen,  occipitale  magnum.  The  skuU  was  then  weighed  again  care- 
fully filled.  3.  He  then  deducted  the  weight  of  the  empty  skull  fi-om  that  of  .the 
filled  one,  and  thus  obtained  a  measure  of  the  capacity  of  the  cavity  of  the  cranium. 
Tidemann  has  given  the  results  of  a  great  number  of  observations  made  on  this 
method.  Forty-one  instances  display  the  capacity  of  the  cavity  of  the  cranium  in 
Negroes  of  different  races.  Seventy-seven  similar  measurements  of  male  European 
skulls  are  added,  twenty-four  of  male  Asiatics  of  the  so-termed  Caucasian  race,  twelve 
of  female  Europeans,  twenty  of  skulls  of  the  Mongolian,  and  twenty-seven  of  the 
American  race,  and  forty-three  of  the  Malayan  and  Polynesian  nations,  in  which 
Australians  are  included.  The  general  result  of  these  comparisons  is,  that  the 
cavity  of  the  skull  in  the  Negro  is  generally  in  no  degree  smaller  than  in  Europeans 
and  others  of  the  human  race.  Tidemann  concludes,  that  "  the  opinion  of  many 
naturaUsts,  such  as  Camper,  Soemmering,  Cuvier,  Laurence,  and  Vivey,  who  main- 
tain that  the  Negro  has  a  smaller  brain  than  the  European,  is  ill-founded  and 
entirely  refuted  by  ray  researches."  He  says,  "  I  look  upon  Camper's  facial  line 
and  facial  angle  as  very  unsatisfactory  in  determining  the  capacity  of  the  skidl,  the 
size  of  the  brain,  and  the  degree  of  intellectual  power."  * 

In  harmony  with  this  we  may  add,  in  the  language  of  another 
able  writer,  "And,  for  Negro  physiognomy,  as  though  that 
should  shut  out  the  light  of  intellect,  go  to  your  national 
museum;  contemplate  the  features  of  the  colossal  head  of 
Memnon,  and  the  statues  of  the  divinities  on  which  the  ancient 
Africans  impressed  their  own  forms ;  and  there  see,  in  close 
resemblance  to  the  Negro  feature,  the  mould  of  those  counte- 
nances which  once  beheld,  as  the  creations  of  their  own  immor- 
tal genius,  the  noblest  and  most  stupendous  monuments  of 
human  skill,  and  taste,  and  grandeur.  In  the  imperishable 
porphyry  and  granite  is  the  unfounded  and  pitiful  slander  pub- 
licly, and  before  all  the  world,  refuted.  There  we  see  the  Negro 
under  cultivation.  If  he  now  presents  a  difl"erent  aspect,  culti- 
vation is  wantius;.     That  solves  the  whole  case."  t 


*  Dr.  Prichard's  "  Researches  into  the  Physical  History  of  Mankind,"  &c. 
t  Rev.  Richard  \A'atson's  Works,  vol.  ii.  pp.  91,  95. 


22  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

It  appears,  then,  from  the  preceding  extracts,  in  the  infer- 
ences from  which  I  have  been  confirmed  by  personal  observa- 
tion, that  there  is  nothing  in  the  physical  character  and  consti- 
tution of  the  African, — nothing  in  the  organization  of  the  brain, 
the  contour  of  the  countenance,  the  colour  of  the  skin,  or  the 
formation  of  the  woolly-haired  head, — which  affords  the  least 
presumption  of  inferior  endowment  of  intellectual  or  moral 
faculties.  The  Rev.  J.  Ramsay,  from  whom  we  have  already 
quoted,  who  spent  many  years  in  the  West  Indies,  and  who 
had  an  opportunity  of  judging  of  the  mental  character  of  the 
Africans,  even  in  a  state  of  slavery,  in  the  fifth  section  of  his 
"  Essay  on  the  Treatment  and  Conversion  of  African  Slaves  in 
the  British  Sugar  Colonies,"  observes : — 

Having  shown  how  Uttle  can  he  rationally  concluded  against  the  capacity  of 
Negroes  from  their  equatorial  settlement,  flat  nose,  woolly  head,  projecting  chin, 
high  calves,  and  black  skin,  we  come  to  facts. 

Now  we  know,  that  house  Negroes,  who  are  generally  Creoles,  and  are  conver- 
sant with  their  white  masters,  have  all  the  address,  intrigue,  and  cunning  of  family 
servants  in  Eiu-ope.  In  their  masters  they  can  mark  the  ridiculous  point,  the 
improper  conduct,  and  often  give  these  superior  beings  that  advice,  wliich  they  have 
not  wisdom  enough  to  foUow ;  often  manage  their  foibles,  and  mould  them  to  their 
own  interest Negroes  are  capable  of  learning  any  thing  that  requires  atten- 
tion and  correctness  of  manner.  They  have  powers  of  description  and  mimicry 
that  would  not  have  disgraced  the  talents  of  our  modern  Aristophanes.  The  thstil- 
lation  of  rum,  the  tempering  of  the  cane-juice  for  sugar,  which  may  be  considered 
as  nice  chemical  operations,  are  universally  committed  to  them.  They  become 
good  mechanics ;  they  use  the  square  and  compass,  and  easUy  become  masters  of 
whatever  business  they  are  put  to.  They  have  a  particular  turn  for  music,  and  often 
attain  a  considerable  proficiency  in  it  without  the  advantage  of  a  master.  Negro  sick 
nurses  acquire  a  siu^jrising  skill  in  the  cure  of  ordinary  diseases,  and  often  conquer 
disorders  that  have  baffled  a  host  of  regulars.  Hence  our  black  beans,  black 
beUes,  black  gamesters,  black  keepers,  black  quacks,  black  conjurers,  and  all  that 
variety  of  character  which  strikes  in  their  masters,  or  promises  to  add  to  their  own 
dignity  or  interest.  But  what  can  we  expect  them  to  attempt  in  the  higher  depart- 
ments of  reason  ?  Their  slavish  employments  and  condition  ;  their  being  abandoned 
to  the  caprice  of  any  master ;  the  subjection  in  which  it  is  thought  necessary  to 
keep  them :  all  these  things  depress  their  minds,  and  subdue  whatever  is  manly, 
spirited,  ingenuous,  and  independent  among  them.  And  these  ai'e  weights  sufficient 
to  crush  a  first-rate  human  genius.  Had  it  been  the  lot  of  a  paradoxical  Hume,  or 
of  a  benevolent  Kaimes,  to  have  cultivated  the  sugar-cane,  under  a  planter,  in  one 
of  our  old  islands,  the  first  probably  would  have  tried  to  have  eked  out  his  scanty 
pittance  of  two  pounds  of  floiu-  or  grain  per  week,  by  taking  up  the  profession  of  a 
John  Crowman,  or  conjm-er ;  and  doubtless  would  have  got  many  a  flogging  for 
playing  tricks  with,  and  imposing  on  the  credulity  of,  his  fellows,  to  cheat  them  of 
their  allowance.  The  turn  of  the  other  to  works  of  taste  might  have  expressed 
itself  in  learning  to  blow  a  rude  sort  of  music  from  his  nostril,  through  a  hollowed 
piece  of  stick ;  or,  if  blessed  with  an  indulgent  master,  he  might  have  learned  to 
play  by  the  ear  a  few  minuets,  and  fiddle  a  few  country  dances,  to  enable  the  family 
and  neighbours  to  pass  an  evening  cheerfully  togetlier. 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  23 

The  truth  is,  a  depth  of  cunning  that  enahles  them  to  overreach,  conceal, 
deceive,  is  the  only  province  of  the  mind  left  for  them,  as  slaves,  to  occupy.  And 
this  they  cultivate,  and  enjoy  the  fruits  of,  to  a  siu-prising  degree.  I  have,  as  a 
Magistrate,  heard  examinations  and  defences  of  culprits,  that  for  quibhling,  subter- 
fuge, and  subtlety,  would  have  done  credit  to  the  abilities  of  an  attorney,  most 
notoriously  conversant  in  the  villanous  tricks  of  his  profession.  Their  command  of 
countenance  is  so  perfect,  as  not  to  give  the  least  clue  for  discovering  the  truth  ; 
nor  can  they  be  caught  tripping  in  a  story.  Nothing  in  the  turn  or  degree  of  their 
mental  faculties  distinguishes  them  from  Europeans ;  though  some  ditFerence  must 
appear,  if  they  were  of  a  diiferent  or  an  inferior  race.* 

This  brings  us  again  to  the  fact  of  the  universal  corruption 
of  human  nature.  The  African  has  actually  got  the  family  mark 
upon  him.  Originally,  "  the  Negro  was  God's  image  carved  in 
ebony/'  but  he  is  fallen ;  and  now, 

"  His  follies  and  liis  crimes  have  stamp'd  him  man." 

But  we  hasten  to  a  different  process  or  mode  of  meeting  the 
charge  of  mental  imbecility  urged  against  the  teeming  millions 
of  the  descendants  of  Adam  who  are  scattered  over  the  vast 
continent  of  Africa :  for  the  sacred  scriptures  have  not  left  us  to 
determine  the  title  of  any  tribe,  or  nation,  or  continent,  to  the 
full  honours  of  humanity  by  accidental  circumstances,  "  To 
man  has  been  given  the  law,  ^Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy 
God  with  all  thy  heart ;'  and  to  be  capable  of  loving  God  is 
the  infallible  criterion  of  our  peculiar  nature.  So  extensively 
has  this  principle  been  applied  by  Missionary  Societies,  that  the 
philosophy  in  question  is  now  refuted  more  by  facts  than  by 
reasoning.  They  have  determined  whether  the  races  cast  out 
and  spurned  by  this  theory  are  our  brethren,  and,  as  such, 
entitled  to  our  fraternal  yearnings;  they  have  determined  who 
are  men,  by  determining  Avho  are  capable  of  that  universal  and 
exclusive  law  to  man, — the  love  of  God.  The  Negro  through 
all  his  shades,  the  Hottentot  through  all  his  varieties,  the 
Indians  of  America,  and  the  natives  of  New-Holland,  have  all, 
in  our  own  days,  been  inspired  with  the  love  of  God  through 
the  gospel;  and  again  we  see,  that  'in  Christ  Jesus  there  is 
neither  Jcav  nor  Greek,  barbarian  nor  Scythian,  bond  nor  free, 
but  that  Christ  is  all  in  all.'  "  "  They  have  dived  into  that 
mine  from  which,  we  were  often  told,  no  valuable  ore  or  precious 
stone  could  be  extracted ;  and  they  have  brought  up  the  gem 
of  an  immortal  spirit,  flashing  with  the  light  of  intellect,  and 
glowing  with  the  hues  of  Christian  graces."  f  We  say  notliing 
of  by-gone  days,  of  Africa's  ancient  glory,  where  still  moulder 

*  Ramsay's  "  Essay,"  pp.  242 — 246. 

t  Rev.  Richard  Watson's  Works,  vol,  ii.  ]'p.  90,  93. 


24  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA, 

the  ruins  of  Thebes  with  its  hundred  gates,  and  where  the 
mighty  pyramids  still  rear  their  lofty  fronts,  after  the  lapse  of 
three  thousand  years.  We  say  nothing  of  that  day  when 
"  she  poured  forth  her  heroes  on  the  field,  gave  bishops  to  the 
church,  and  martyrs  to  the  fires  :^^ — "Modern  times  have 
witnessed,  in  the  persons  of  African  Negroes,  generals,  phy- 
sicians, philosophers,  linguists,  poets,  mathematicians,  and  mer- 
chants, all  eminent  in  their  attainments,  energetic  in  enterprise, 
and  honourable  in  character ;  and  even  the  Mission-schools  in 
the  West  Indies  exhibit  a  quickness  of  intellect,  and  a  thirst  for 
learning,  to  which  the  schools  of  this  country  do  not  always 
afford  a  parallel."*  Still  more  modern  times  have  produced  "a 
great  cloud  of  witnesses"  to  bear  their  testimony,  that,  how- 
ever degraded,  and  even  brutalized,  the  mind  of  the  African 
may  be  by  sin  and  deep-rooted  superstition, —  a  superstition 
interwoven  and  dovetailed  in  his  nature,  and  rendered  venerable 
from  its  antiquity  and  long-continued  habit, — yet  there  is  in 
the  "  gospel  of  Christ,"  which  is  "  the  power  of  God,"  a  mighty 
moral  lever  that  can  and  does  raise  him  in  the  scale  of  civil  and 
religious  society ;  a  principle  which  can  disinter  the  mental 
faculties,  and  quicken  into  quivering  sensibility  what  appeared 
to  be  a  mass  of  unconscious  brutality ;  a  principle  which  takes 
hold  of  the  heart,  transforms  and  expands  the  mind,  elevates 
and  ennobles  the  whole  man,  and  makes  him  altogether  "  in 
Christ  a  new  creature."  And  many  an  African  Negro — "  the 
savage  all  wild  in  his  glen" — has  been  arrested  by  the  triumphs 
of  gospel-grace;  and  those  that  "went  out  to  see  what  was 
done,  have  found  the  man  sitting  at  the  feet  of  Jesus,  clothed, 
and  in  his  right  mind;"  and  therefore,  without  mixing  the 
smallest  particle  of  acrimony  in  replying  to  this  unfounded 
slander  against  the  Negroes,  we  say  that  "  the  charge  of  mental 
inferiority  must  in  future  lie  rather  against  those  who  bring  it, 
than  against  the  African ; "  f  for  he  has  been  proved  to  be  "  a 
man  and  a  brother,"  a  Christian  and  a  scholar.  J 

*  Rev.  Richard  Watson's  Works,  vol.  ii.  pp.  94,  95. 

f  Dr.  Harris's  "  Great  Commission." 

J  The  spirited  author  of  an  admirable  little  work,  entitled  "  Jamaica  Enslaved 
and  Free,"  touching  on  the  Negro  character,  says, — "  But  let  facts  bring  out  the 
truth,  as  they  do  in  the  circumstance,  that  two  native  Africans  are  gone  back  to  the 
wild  plains  which  gave  them  birth,  as  English  clergymen ! "  And  he  then  asks, 
"  Can  Hume's  lie  be  again  repeated,  after  this  additional  confutation  of  his  theo- 
retical statements,  when  in  the  arrogance  of  his  mind  he  said  of  native  Africans, 
'  They  ai-e  inferior  to  the  rest  of  the  species,  and  utterly  incapable  of  the  higher 
attainments  of  the  mind  ?'  " 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES.  25 

This  fact,  therefore,  it  is  contended,  gives  the  direct  negative  to 
the  other  charge,  "  tlie  judicial  sentence  of  God  resting  upon  the 
Negro."  A  part  of  Africa  has  been  reclaimed.  Christianized, 
and  civilized ; — no  one  dares  question  this :  testimonies  the  most 
disinterested  and  impartial  have  been  voluntarily  borne  to  this 
fact,  by  naval,  military,  and  civil  officers,  as  well  as  by  intelli- 
gent and  enterprising  travellers  who  have  visited  the  various 
evangelical  Mission-stations  in  Southern  and  Western  Africa. 
It  is  true  the  bright  spots  on  this  dark  continent  "  are  few  and 
far  between."  But  if  a  part  has  already  been  enlightened  and 
evangelized,  however  small  a  portion,  why  may  not  the  whole  ? 

And  yet,  strange  to  say,  to  this  one-fifth  part  of  the  popula- 
tion of  our  world  is  applied  the  prophetic  malediction  of  Noah : 
"  Cursed  be  Canaan  ;  a  servant  of  servants  shall  he  be  unto  his 
brethren."  (Gen.  ix.  25.)  And  it  is  inferred  from  this  passage, 
that  Africa  is  still  under  the  ban  of  the  Almighty ;  and  from 
this  supposed  fact  the  inference  has  been,  that  Africa  is  the 
common  plunder  of  any  invader  who  has  hardihood  enough  to 
steel  his  heart  against  every  principle  of  justice  and  humanity. 
What  an  accumulation  of  misery  and  wrong  has  been  inflicted 
upon  that  unhappy  country  for  many  generations  past,  in  the 
shameful  traffic  in  human  flesh  and  blood !  And  yet  there  is 
nothing  in  scripture  to  warrant,  or  even  to  palliate,  these 
enormous  injuries  perpetrated  upon  Africa :  for,  as  the  eloquent 
advocate  and  friend  of  the  Negro  already  quoted  observes,  "  The 
malediction  of  Noah  (if  we  even  allow  it  to  be  one,  and  not  a 
simple  prediction)  fell  not  upon  the  Negro  races ;  it  fell  chiefly 
on  Asia,  and  only  to  a  very  limited  extent  upon  Africa ;  it  fell,  as 
the  terms  of  the  prophecy  explicitly  declare,  upon  Canaan ;  that 
is,  in  scripture  style,  upon  his  descendants,  the  Canaanites,  who 
were  destroyed,  or  made  subjects,  by  the  Israelites  ;  and  perhaps 
upon  the  Carthaginians,  who  were  subverted  by  the  Romans. 
Here  was  its  range  and  its  limit :  the  curse  never  expanded  so 
as  to  encompass  a  single  Negro  tribe."  * 

But,  waving  this  somewhat  controverted  point,  whatever 
may  have  been  the  intention  of  that  passage  originally,  it  will 
be  sufficient  for  our  present  purpose  to  state,  in  reply,  that 
the  gospel  repeals  every  national  malediction,  and  addresses 
itself  to  men  everywhere :  "  The  law  was  given  by  Moses,  but 
grace  and  truth  came  by  Jesus  Christ."  (John  i.  17.)  The 
anathemas,  therefore,  of  former  dispensations  have  long  since 
been  rescinded  and  abolished ;  for  no  nation  or  tribe  can  remain 

*  Rev.  Richard  Watison's  Works,  vol.  ii.  p.  96. 


26  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

accursed  under  the  Christian  economy,  since  Christ,  "the  De- 
sire of  all  nations,"  hath  appeared  "  to  give  light  to  them  that 
sit  in  darkness  and  in  the  shadow  of  death,  to  guide  our  feet 
into  the  way  of  peace."  (Luke  i.  79.)  "  For  God  sent  not  his 
Son  into  the  world  to  condemn  the  world ;  but  that  the  world 
through  him  might  be  saved."  (John  iii.  17.)  It  was  for  this 
very  purpose  that  "  God,  having  raised  up  his  Son  Jesus,  sent 
him  to  bless"  mankind,  "in  turning  away  every  one  from  his 
iniquities."  (Acts  iii.  26.)  Christianity,  therefore,  we  repeat, 
turns  all  curses  into  benedictions.  Its  office  is  to  bless,  and  to 
bless  "  all  the  kindreds  of  the  earth  :"  it  is  light  after  darkness, 
health  after  sickness ;  it  announces  "  liberty  to  the  captives,  and 
the  opening  of  the  prison  to  them  that  are  bound;"  it  pro- 
claims "the  acceptable  year  of  the  Lord;"  (Isai.  Ixi.  1,  2  ;)  and 
it  is  emphatically  "good  tidings  of  great  joy  to  all  people." 
(Luke  ii.  10.) 

Having,  as  I  hope,  satisfactorily  proved  that  the  inhabitants 
of  the  vast  continent  of  Africa  have  a  common  origin  with  our- 
selves ;  that  they  are  the  descendants  of  Adam  and  Eve ;  and 
that,  though  morally  and  mentally  degraded,  they  are  neverthe- 
less capable  of  improvement;  that  there  is  in  the  gospel  a 
divinity  and  power  that  can  and  does  meet  their  case ;  it  fol- 
lows, that  Africa,  as  well  as  other  nations  of  the  earth,  is 
destined  to  become  subject  to  the  dominion  of  the  Redeemer, 
and  to  "  be  blessed  in  him  whom  all  nations  shall  call  blessed." 
For  the  teeming  millions  of  Africa  "  God  spared  not  his  own 
Son;"  for  them  Christ  shed  his  "precious  blood;"  and  there- 
fore "  will  have  all  men  to  be  saved,  and  to  come  unto  the 
knowledge  of  the  truth.  For  there  is  one  God,  and  one  Media- 
tor between  God  and  men,  the  Man  Christ  Jesus;  who  gave 
himself  a  ransom  for  all,  to  be  testified  in  due  time."  (1  Tim.  ii. 
4 — 6.)  It  was  not  for  a  few  out  of  each  quarter  of  the  globe 
that  the  Saviour  died,  or  for  many  out  of  all  nations,  or 
even  for  the  greater  part  of  the  human  race ;  but  "  He  tasted 
death  for  every  man/'  (Heb.  ii.  9.)  And  to  Africa  the  com- 
mission of  the  risen  Saviour  doubtless  extended,  when  he  said  to 
his  disciples,  "  Go  ye  into  all  the  world,  and  preach  the  gospel 
to  every  creature."  (Mark  xvi.  15.)  And  Africa  is  unquestion- 
ably included  in  those  glorious  and  sublime  passages  of  holy 
writ  which  predict  the  universal  empire  of  the  Son  of  God ; 
when  "  He  shall  have  dominion  from  sea  to  sea,  and  from  the 
river  unto  the  ends  of  the  earth ;"  (Psalm  Ixxii.  8 ;)  and  shall 
receive  "  the  Heathen  for  his  inheritance,  and  the  uttermost 
parts  of  the  earth  for  his  possession;"  (Psalm  ii.  8  ;)  when  "the 


DESCRIPTION    OF    THE    NATIVES,  27 

earth  shall  be  full  of  the  knowledge  of  the  Lord,  as  the  waters 
cover  the  sea ;"  (Isai.  xi.  9 ;)  "  and  there  shall  be  one  fold,  and 
one  Shepherd/^   (John  x.  16.) 

To  these  general  scriptural  truths  we  may  add,  that  there  are 
special  and  particular  allusions  to  this  part  of  God's  creation  in 
the  sacred  volume  :  not  only  as  regards  the  past,  but  also  with 
respect  to  the  future.  From  sacred  as  well  as  from  profane 
history,  we  know  what  Africa  has  been.  But  here  we  cannot 
enlarge :  suffice  it  to  say  that  Africa,  though  not  the  birth-place 
of  the  adorable  Redeemer,  was  the  asylum  of  the  infant  Saviour  ; 
for  "  the  young  child  departed  into  Egypt,''  and  there  found  a 
refuge  from  his  blood-thirsty  foes  ;  that  Africa  was  the  cradle  of 
the  Christian  church,  and  the  repository  of  ancient  literature ; 
and  that  in  that  part  of  the  globe  Christianity  achieved  some  of 
its  proudest  conquests,  and  secured  many  of  the  noblest  testi- 
monies to  its  truth  and  power  which  were  ever  suppHed  in  any 
region  where  the  banner  of  the  cross  has  been  unfurled.  And 
we  know  that  there  was  a  period,  and  that  for  centuries,  when 
Northern  Africa  occupied  no  subordinate  station  in  ecclesias- 
tical rank ;  when,  from  her  episcopal  thrones  and  councils,  she 
issued  her  decrees  in  all  the  dignity  of  conscious  authority,  and 
enforced  them  with  a  power  which  she  knew  could  not  be  dis- 
puted :  twelve  centuries  of  darkness  and  degradation  intervene 
between  that  period  and  the  present.  But  though  the  voice  of 
Africa  has  been  for  centuries  silent  amid  the  Christian  commu- 
nities of  the  earth,  her  candlestick  removed,  her  light  extin- 
guished, and  little  or  nothing  left  of  her  once  numerous  and 
flourishing  churches;  yet  she  is  not  forgotten,  much  less  ex- 
cluded from  the  compassion  of  the  Saviour;  she  is  not  doomed 
to  outer  darkness,  but  shall  come  "  forth  as  the  morning,  fair 
as  the  moon,  clear  as  the  sun,  and  terrible  as  an  army  with 
banners."  It  is  true  ''  the  young  child"  tarried  in  Africa  but 
for  a  short  period  :  he  "  was  there  until  the  death  of  Herod  : 
that  it  might  be  fulfilled  which  was  spoken  of  the  Lord  by  the 
prophet,  saying.  Out  of  Egypt  have  I  called  my  Son."  (Hosea 
xi.  1 ;  Matt.  ii.  15.)  But,  though  he  was  called  out  of  Egypt, 
he  "shall  come  into"  it  again,  "and  the  idols  of  Egypt  shall  be 
moved  at  his  presence,  and  the  heart  of  Egypt  shall  melt  in  the 
midst  of  it.  For  they  shall  cry  unto  the  Lord  because  of  the 
oppressors,  and  he  shall  send  them  a  Saviour,  and  a  Great  One, 
and  he  shall  deliver  them.  And  the  Lord  shall  be  known  to 
Egypt,  and  the  Egyptians  shall  know  the  Lord  in  that  day.  In 
that  day  shall  Israel  be  the  third  with  Egypt  and  with  Assyria, 
even  a  blessing  in  the  midst  of  the  land  :  whom  the  Lord  of 


28  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

hosts  shall  bless,  saying.  Blessed  be  Egypt  my  people,  and 
Assyria  the  work  of  my  hands,  and  Israel  mine  inheritance." 
(Isai.  xix.  1,  20,  21,  24,  25.) 

"Africa,"  then,  "with  all  thy  just  complaints"  against  thy 
slanderous  foes  and  cruel  oppressors,  and  "  against  the  practice 
of  Christian  states,  thou  hast  none  against  the  doctrines  of  the 
Christian's  Bible !  That  is  not  a  book,  as  some  have  interpreted 
it,  written,  as  to  thee,  ^within  and  without,'  in  'lamentation, 
and  mourning,  and  woe : '  it  registers  against  thee  no  curse ; 
but,  on  the  contrary,  exhibits  to  thee  its  fulness  of  blessings ; " 
and  "establishes  thy  right  to  its  covenant  of  mercy,  in  common 
with  all  mankind."*  Nay,  it  foretells  thy  future  greatness;  for 
thy  name  is  written  there,  not  with  a  curse,  but  thou  too  "  shalt 
know  the  Lord,"  and  "the  Lord  of  hosts  shall  bless"  thee, 
"  saying,  Blessed  be  Egypt  my  people,  and  Assyria  the  work  of 
my  hands."  And  it  is  further  written,  "  Princes  shall  come  out 
of  Egypt;  Ethiopia  shall  soon  stretch  out  her  hands  unto  God." 
(Psalm  Ixviii.  3L) 

The  conversion  of  Africa  to  God,  then,  is  clearly  predicted : 
not  merely  some  parts  of  it,  such  as  Egypt,  Ethiopia,  or 
Abyssinia,  but  the  whole  continent.  Africa  !  lift  up  thy  head : 
for  though  thou  art  fallen,  "  thy  redemption  draweth  nigh ! " 
The  blessed  Jesus  gave  thee  honour,  and  bade  thee  hope,  at  the 
baptism  of  the  "  man  of  great  authority  under  Candace  queen 
of  the  Ethiopians"  by  Philip  the  deacon,  who  "preached  unto 
him  Jesus : "  and  when  he  was  baptized,  though  he  "  saw 
Philip  no  more,"  yet  he  "went  on  his  way  rejoicing."  (Acts 
viii.  27,  35,  39.)  And  soon  shall  all  thy  peoples  and  nations  "be 
baptized  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  with  fire."  Africa,  weep  no 
more  !  Deeply  as  thou  art  plunged  in  ignorance  and  vice,  thou 
art  included  in  the  purchase  of  redeeming  mercy;  and  in  all 
thy  sun-burnt  plains,  and  in  all  thy  trackless  forests,  shall  thy 
children  ultimately  stretch  out  their  hands  unto  God !  Tene- 
riffe,  lift  up  thy  voice  from  thy  throne  of  clouds,  nor  let  Atlas 
refuse  an  answer  to  the  watchman's  cry,  and  let  it  echo  along 
the  sides  of  the  hills,  and  on  the  tops  of  the  mountains,  and  in 
the  dales  and  valleys,  "  The  morning  cometh ! "  Break  forth 
into  singing,  ye  noble  rivers  Senegal  and  Gambia,  ye  Niger  and 
Nile,  and  let  the  whole  continent,  in  its  every  latitude  and  lon- 
gitude, join  in  the  swelling,  bursting  chorus  that  shall  be  heard 
"  in  heaven,"  on  earth,  and  in  hades,  saying,  "  The  kingdoms  of 
this  world  are  become  the  kingdoms  of  our  Lord,  and  of  his 
Christ;  and  he  shall  reign  for  ever  and  ever !"  (Rev.  xi.  15.) 
*  Rev.  Richard  Watson's  Works,  vol.  ii.  p.  96. 


CHAPTER  II. 

AFRICA,  AND  THE  AFRICAN  SLAVE-TRADE. 

By  whom  and  at  what  Time  Africa  was  circumnavigated — The  Discovery  o^ 
America,  and  the  Douhling  of  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope — Both  these  Events 
proved  injurious  to  Africa — Origin  of  the  African  Slave-Trade — Cruelty  of  the 
Spaniards  towards  the  Aborigines  of  America — Las  Casas'  Proposal  to  Cardi- 
nal Ximenes,  Regent  of  Spain — The  Emperor,  Charles  V.,  grants  a  Patent — 
Las  Casas'  Account  of  Spanish  Cruelty  to  the  native  Intlians — Heylin's  and 
Dr.  Robertson's  Account  of  an  Indian  Nobleman — The  Inconsistency  of  send- 
ing to  Africa  for  a  Supply  of  Slaves— Charles  V.  and  Las  Casas  saw  their 
EiTor — The  Spanish  Slave-Trade  revived — The  English  engage  in  the  Slave- 
Trade — Captain  Hawkins — -Queen  Elizabeth— Contradictoi7  Accounts  of  the 
English  Slave-Trade  cleared  up  by  James  Bandinel,  Esq. — The  English  Slave- 
Trade  continued — Thrown  open  by  Act  of  Parliament — The  Trade  rapidly 
increased — The  French  actively  engage  in  it — Great  Britain,  though  not  the 
First  to  embark  in  it,  was  soon  Foremost — As  a  Nation  we  are  verily  guilty — 
The  Voice  of  our  Brother's  Blood  crieth  against  us  fi-om  the  Ground. 

The  whole  of  Africa,  except  in  that  part  where  it  is  joined  to 
Asia,  was  known  to  be  surrounded  by  the  sea ;  but  of  its  gene- 
ral figure,  and  its  extent  towards  the  south,  the  ancients  had  no 
accurate  knowledge.  If  we  may  credit  the  story  of  Herodotus, 
however,  Africa  was  circumnavigated,  instrumentally,  at  least,  by 
Necho  king  of  Egypt,  upwards  of  two  thousand  years  ago.  For 
though  the  Egyptians  themselves  were  not  navigators,  their 
country  necessarily  became  the  channel  of  a  large  portion  of  the 
Indian  trade,  as  well  as  that  of  Ethiopia ;  and  Necho,  one  of  the 
most  illustrious  of  the  native  kings  of  Egypt,  who  was  in 
advance  of  the  age  in  which  he  lived,  eagerly  sought  the  solu- 
tion of  the  grand  mystery  regarding  the  form  and  termination 
of  Africa.  For  this  purpose  he  employed  a  number  of  Phenician 
sailors,  who,  proceeding  down  the  Red  Sea,  entered  the  Indian 
Ocean,  and  made  the  circuit  of  the  southern  promontory,  pass- 
ing through  the  Pillars  of  Hercules,  and  ascending  up  the  Medi- 
terranean back  to  Egypt.  "  They  related  that,  in  the  course  of 
this  very  long  voyage,  which  occupied  three  years,  they  had 
frequently  drawn  their  boats  on  land,  sown  grain  in  a  favourable 
place  and  season,  Avaited  till  the  crop  grew  and  ripened  under 
the  influence  of  a  tropical  heat,  then  reaped  it  and  continued 
their  progress.  They  added,  that,  in  passing  the  most  southern 
coast  of  Afj'ica,  they  were  surprised  by  observing  the  sun  on 
their  right  hand,  that  is,  to  the  north  of  them;  a  statement 
which  causes  Herodotus  himself  to  reject  their  report :  and  yet 


30  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

this  very  fact  affords  the  strongest  confirmation  of  it  to  us  who 
know  that  to  the  south  of  the  equator  this  must  have  really 
taken  place."*  Subsequently  to  this,  we  have  another  account 
of  the  circumnavigation  of  Africa  by  a  private  adventurer  of  the 
name  of  Eudoxus,  a  native  of  Cyzicus,  who  lived  about  one 
hundred  and  thirty  years  before  Christ.  This  account  is  per- 
haps somewhat  apocryphal,  though  by  some  it  is  contended  that 
Eudoxus  actually  made  the  circuit  of  Africa:  but,  whether 
these  statements  be  true  or  not,  for  the  actual  discovery  of  the 
southern  extremity  of  Africa  we  are  indebted  to  the  Portuguese. 

The  fifteenth  century  of  the  Christian  era  was  the  age  of 
maritime  enterprise  and  inquiry.  Though  the  science  of  navi- 
gation was  then  in  its  infancy,  and  the  mariner's  compass  but 
little  understood,  there  were  not  wanting  a  few  bold  spirits, 
who,  actuated  by  an  ardent  passion  for  discovery,  ventured  to 
brave  the  terrors  of  the  deep,  far  from  the  sight  of  land.  In 
the  year  1487  Bartholomew  Diaz,  under  the  patronage  of  John 
II.  of  Portugal,  fitted  out  a  fleet,  and  proceeded  along  the  coast 
of  Africa ;  and,  having  endured  many  hardships,  he  at  length 
came  in  sight  of  the  Cape  which  terminates  Southern  Africa. 
But  he  proceeded  no  farther,  fancying  that  he  had  arrived  at 
the  boundary  of  the  earth;  and,  being  intimidated  by  the 
darkness  and  tempests  with  which  he  was  surrounded,  he 
returned  without  effecting  a  landing  on  its  shores.  On  account 
of  the  heavy  gales  which  he  experienced,  he  gave  it  the  name  of 
Cabo  des  totos  Tormentos,  or  "the  Cape  of  Storms,"  which, 
however,  was  subsequently  exchanged,  by  the  king  his  master, 
for  Cabo  du  buonne  Espei-anse,  or  "  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope," 
from  the  prospect  or  "  good  hope"  which  it  afforded  him  of  open- 
ing a  maritime  path  to  India.  Thus  one  grand  incitement  to 
European  enterprise,  at  that  time,  was  the  discovery  of  a  pas- 
sage by  sea  to  the  East  Indies,  which  laid  open  to  all  nations  the 
commerce  of  that  country,  then  monopolized  by  the  Venetians. 

It  was  in  the  year  1492  that  Columbus,  in  quest  of  a  westerly 
passage  to  the  East  Indies,  was  unexpectedly  interrupted  in  his 
course  by  the  islands  of  America ',  and,  five  years  afterwards,  (in 
1497,)  another  enterprising  nautical  spirit  was  found  in  the 
person  of  Vasco  de  Gama,  who  pursued  and  accomphshed  the 
same  object  by  doubling  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope ;  and  to  him 
belongs  the  honour  of  first  setting  foot  on  that  part  of  the  vast 
continent  of  Africa.  It  was  in  the  spring  of  the  same  year  that 
*'  John  Cabot,  the  father  of  Sebastian  Cabot,  a  Venetian  by 

*  Murray's  "  Narrative  of  Discoveiy  and  Adventure  in  Africa."  (Eilinburgh.) 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  31 

birth,  but  who  resided  many  years  in  Bristol,  was  sent  by  the 
king  of  England,  Henry  VII.,  on  an  expedition  of  discovery  in 
the  same  direction ;  the  main  object  being  to  find  a  north-west 
passage  to  the  Indies.  He  steered  directly  west,  and  arrived  in 
June  at  a  large  island,  which  he  called  Prima  Vista,  but  which 
has  since  become  well  known  under  the  familiar  name  of  New- 
foundland. Upon  the  discoveries  made  in  this  voyage  the 
English  founded  their  claim  to  the  eastern  portion  of  North 
America."  * 

But  the  treasures  of  the  East  were  still  the  objects  of  pursuit 
to  the  Portuguese  and  other  nations ;  and  therefore  each  of  these 
events,  the  two  former  especially,  (the  discovery  of  America  by 
Columbus,  and  the  doubling  of  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope  by 
Vasco  de  Gama,)  operated  greatly  to  the  disadvantage  of  Africa. 
For  the  coast  of  that  continent,  after  having  served  as  a  clue  to 
conduct  navigators  to  India,  was  itself  comparatively  neglected, 
not  on  account  of  any  natural  inferiority  in  its  soil,  climate,  or 
productions,  but  because  the  Africans,  not  having  advanced  so 
far  in  the  arts  as  the  East  Indians,  nor  having  then  discovered 
such  quantities  of  the  precious  metals  as  the  Americans,  could 
not  immediately  supply  the  European  demand  for  those  desir- 
able productions  which  the  commerce  of  the  East  and  West 
afforded.  Thus  Asia  and  America  became  the  principal  theatres 
of  the  ambition  and  cupidity  of  Europeans ;  and  happy  had  it 
been  for  Africa  if  they  had  so  continued.  It  is  distressing  to 
record  the  rapid  progress  of  European  iniquity  among  the  sim- 
ple and  untutored  nations  inhabiting  the  other  quarters  of  the 
world.  Its  operation  in  America  was  deplorably  injurious  to 
Africa ;  for  it  was  soon  found,  that  the  aborigines  of  the  Western 
world  could  not  endure  the  toils  imposed  on  them  by  their  new 
masters.  "  Hence  arose  the  apparent,  or  rather  pi^etended, 
necessity  of  resorting  to  Africa  for  a  supply  of  labourers  in  the 
form  of  slaves;   and  here  commenced  the  Slave-Trade,t  that 

*  Conder's  "  Modern  Traveller,"  vol.  xxii.  p.  73. 

t  This,  we  say,  was  the  commencement  or  origin  of  the  African  Slave-Trade,  but 
not  of  Slavery  itself;  for  that,  in  one  form  or  other,  had  existed  in  the  world 
from  the  most  remote  period  of  history.  It  was  tolerated  among  the  jjatriarchs, 
and  recognised  among  the  Jews.  It  also  existed  among  the  ancient  Pagan  nations, 
— the  Egyptians,  Phenicians,  and  Greeks ;  and,  eighteen  centuries  ago,  when  Bri- 
tain was  a  distant  colony  of  Rome,  the  unfortunate  inhabitants  of  our  own  island 
were  torn  from  their  homes,  and  toiled  for  a  Roman  master,  along  with  the  dark- 
skinned  and  more  pliant  natives  of  Ethiopia.  Long  before  the  first  voyage  of  the 
enterprising  Columbus,  the  celebrated  Portuguese  navigator  Anthony  Gonzales,  of 
whom  more  will  be  said  anon,  in  exploring  the  coast  of  Africa,  had,  in  1434,  seized 


32  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

scourge  of  the  human  race  which  has  kept  dowu  a  great  part  of 
the  Africans  in  a  state  of  anarchy  and  blood,  and  which,  while 
its  nefarious  existence  is  tolerated,  will  prove  the  grand  obstacle 
to  their  improvement  and  civilization/^* 

It  was  not,  however,  till  the  beginning  of  the  sixteenth  cen- 
tury that  the  Slave-Trade  assumed  a  regular  form.  "  So  early 
as  the  3^ear  1503,  a  few  slaves  had  been  sent  from  the  Portu- 
guese settlements  in  Africa  into  the  Spanish  colonies  in 
America."  t  But  still  the  native  Indians  sank  under  the 
harassing  tasks  assigned  to  them  by  their  masters,  which  were 
so  overwhelming,  that  the  extinction  of  the  whole  race  seemed 
inevitable ;  for  "  the  natives  of  Hispaniola  alone  were  reduced, 
in  the  short  space  of  fifteen  years,  from  at  least  one  million  to 
about  sixty  thousand  souls."  J  In  1511,  Ferdinand  V.,  king  of 
Spain,  permitted  them  to  be  carried  in  great  numbers;  and, 
after  Ferdinand's  death,  and  during  the  minority  of  Charles  V., 
Las  Casas,  bishop  of  Chiapa,  styled  the  Protector  of  the  Indians, 
proposed  to  Cardinal  Ximenes,  then  regent,  to  establish  a 
regular  system  of  importing  Negro  slaves  from  Africa  into 
Hispaniola  to  work  the  mines  of  the  island.  The  bishop  urged 
the  cardinal  to  adopt  this  measure  upon  the  ground  of  humanity 
to  the  natives  of  Hispaniola.  But  this  enlightened  statesman 
dismissed  the  plan  altogether,  declaring  it  to  be,  in  his  opinion, 
unlawful  to  consign  innocent  people  to  slavery  at  all,  and  wholly 
inconsistent  with  humanity  to  deliver  the  inhabitants  of  one 
country  from  a  state  of  misery,  by  consigning  to  that  state  the 
inhabitants  of  another  country.  "The  cardinal,  however,  in 
rejecting  the  scheme  of  Las  Casas,  was  not  inattentive  to  the 
miseries  suffered  by  the  Indians,  He  gave  directions  that  strict 
inquiry  should  be  made  into  their  state,  and  stringent  regula- 
tions adopted  for  securing  their  kind  treatment ;  but  his  views 
as  to  the  African  Slave-Trade,  and  his  wishes  as  to  the  Indians, 
were  alike  disregarded." 

Charles  V.  soon  afterwards  assumed  the  reins  of  empire ; 
and  representations  were  made  to  him  of  the  diminution  of  the 
Indians  in  the  several  islands  settled  by  the  Spaniards,"  and  of 

a  number  of  Negi'oes,  whom  he  carried  to  the  south  of  Spain ;  and  from  that  time 
it  became  customary  for  the  captains  of  vessels  who  landed  on  the  Gold-Coast,  or 
other  parts  of  the  coast  of  Guinea,  to  carry  away  a  few  young  Negroes  of  both 
sexes  ;  and  thus  the  practice  soon  grew  into  a  tratfic. 

*  C.  B.  Wadstrom's  "  Essay  on  the  Colonization  of  Western  Africa,"  p.  4. 
(1794.) 

t  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  p.  48. 

X  Robertson's  "  Histoiy  of  America,"  p.  60. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  33 

the  superior  patience  and  hardihood  of  the  Africans ;  and  he 
was  urged  to  permit  a  further  importation  of  the  latter  into  tlie 
islands,  porque  era  mas  util  el  trabajo  de  un  Negro  que  de  quatro 
Indios :  "  because  the  work  of  one  Negro  was  more  than  equal 
to  that  of  four  Indians."  *  In  1517  he  "  granted  a  patent  to 
one  of  his  Flemish  favourites,  containing  an  exclusive  right 
of  importing  four  thousand  Africans  into  America;"  and  the 
islands  of  Hispaniola,  Cuba,  Jamaica,  and  Porto-Rico  received 
at  that  time  the  annual  supply  of  four  thousand  Africans  to 
work  their  mines  and  cultivate  their  lands.  The  conduct  of  the 
Spaniards  towards  the  aborigines  of  the  New  World  appears  to 
have  been,  about  this  time,  almost  without  a  parallel,  even  in 
the  history  of  the  Slave-Trade  itself;  and  it  has  been  well 
observed,  that  "  although  the  suggestion  of  Las  Casas  is  not 
justifiable,  yet  his  pity  for  the  Indians  is  not  to  be  wondered  at, 
when  the  horrors  he  witnessed  are  considered.  '  The  whole 
story  of  mankind/  says  Edwards,  (vol.  i.  p.  104,) '  affords  iio  scene 
of  barbarity  equal  to  that  of  the  cruelties  exercised  by  the 
Spaniards  on  the  unoffending  natives  of  the  Leeward  Islands.' 
The  Spaniards  distributed  them  into  lots,  and  compelled  them 
to  dig  in  the  mines  without  intermission  till  death  put  an  end 
to  their  sufferings.  Such  as  attempted  resistance  or  escape 
were  hunted  down  with  dogs,  which  were  fed  on  their  flesh. 
Some  Spaniards  called-in  religion  to  sanctify  their  cruelty; 
forced  their  captives  into  the  water,  and,  after  baptizing  them, 
cut  their  throats  to  prevent  their  apostasy."  f 

Las  Casas  mentions,  himself,  the  following  story :  "  I  once 
beheld,"  says  he,  "  four  or  five  principal  Indians  roasted  at  a 
slow  fire ;  and  as  the  victims  poured  forth  screams  which  dis- 
turbed the  commanding  officer  in  his  slumbers,  he  sent  word 
they  should  be  strangled.  But  the  officer  on  guard  (I  know  his 
name,  and  I  know  his  relations  in  Seville)  would  not  suffer  it ; 
but,  causing  their  mouths  to  be  gagged,  that  their  cries  might 
not  be  heard,  he  stirred  up  the  fire  with  his  own  hand,  and 
roasted  them  till  they  all  expired  :  I  saw  it  myself."  J  Dr. 
Peter  Heylin,  in  his  "History  of  the  whole  World,"  who 
wrote  about  eighty  years  after  Las  Casas,  after  speaking  of 
the  probable  origin  or  peopling  of  America,  says,  "But  from 
what  root  soever  they  did  first  descend,  certain  it  is  that  they 
had  settled  here  many  ages  since,  and  overspread  all  the  parts 

*  Bandinel,  "  Some  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves  from  Africa,"  p.  29. 
t  Idem,  ibid. 

X  Edwards's  "History  of  the  British  West  Indies,"  vol.  i.  p.  HI.  From  Las 
Casas,  Ant.  1579. 

D 


34 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


and  quarters  of  this  spacious  continent :  there  being  no  place 
which  tlie  Spaniards,  or  anj'  other  adventurers,  found  desolate, 
or  waste,  and  without  inhabitants.  But  their  numbers  are  much 
diminished  since  these  late  discoveries;  the  Spaniards  behaving; 
themselves  most  inhumanly  towards  this  unarmed  and  naked 
people ;  killing  them  up  like  sheep  appointed  to  the  slaughter, 
or  otherwise  consuming  them  in  their  mines  and  works  of 
drudgery.  And  had  not  Charles  V.  ordained,  with  most  Chris- 
tian prudence,  that  the  natives  should  not  be  compelled  to  work 
in  the  mines  against  their  will,  but  that  the  Spaniards  should 
provide  themselves  of  slaves  elsewhere,  the  natives  in  a  little 
longer  time  had  been  quite  exterminated,  to  the  great  reproach 
of  Christianity  and  the  gospel.  For  so  exceeding  barbarous  and 
bloody  were  they  at  their  first  coming  thither,  that  Haithney,  a 
nobleman  amongst  them,  being  persuaded  to  embrace  the  Chris- 
tian faith,  demanded,  first,  what  he  should  get  by  being  of  that 
religion ;  and  was  answered,  that  he  should  get  heaven,  and  the 
joys  thereof :  then  would  he  know,  what  place  was  destinate  to 
such  as  died  uubaptized ;  and  was  answered,  that  thej  went  to 
hell,  and  the  torment:-;  of  it :  finally,  asking  unto  which  of  these 
two  places  the  Spaniards  went,  and  being  told  they  Avent  to 
heaven,  he  renounced  his  baptism,  protesting  that  lie  would 
rather  go  to  hell  with  the  unbaptized,  than  to  live  in  heaven  with 
so  cruel  a  people.'^  * 

The  "  nobleman,'^  or  chief,  here  referred  to,  must  have  been 
very  imperfectly  acquainted  with  the  principles  of  our  holy 
religion,  even  in  its  theory;  nor  could  he  have  formed  any  just 
conception  of  the  miseries  of  that  place  "  where  their  worm 
dieth  not,  and  the  fire  is  not  quenched;"  or  he  would  not  have 
expressed  himself  as  he  did,  when  he  said,  "  he  would  rather  go 
to  hell  with  the  unbaptized,  than  to  live  in  heaven  with  so  cruel 
a  people  -J'  but  it  shows  the  man's  strong  feeling  of  indignation 
at  the  oppressive  and  barbarous  conduct  of  the  Spaniards;  and 
so  far  as  the  Slave-Trade  is  concerned,  and  in  protesting  against 
its  iniquitous  and  diabolical  traffic,  it  reflects  no  discredit  either 
on  his  head  or  his  heart.  This  strong  feeling  he  entertained 
against  the  Spanish  nation  up  to  his  death ;  for  on  the  conquest 
of  Cuba  in  1511,  under  the  command  of  Diego  Velasquez, 
"  the  only  obstruction  the  Spaniards  met  with  was  from  Hatuey, 
a  cazique,  who  had  fled  from  Hispaniola,  and  had  taken  posses- 
sion of  the  eastern  extremity  of  Cuba.  He  stood  upon  the 
defensive  at  their  first  landing,  and  endeavoured  to  drive  them 

*  Heylin's  "  Cosmographie,  and  Historj'  of  the  whole  World,"  p.  1017.  (1657.) 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  35 

back  to  their  ships.  His  feeble  troops^  however,  were  soon 
broken  and  dispersed;  and  he  himself  being  taken  prisoner, 
Velasquez,  according  to  the  barbarous  maxim  of  the  Spaniards, 
considered  him  as  a  slave  who  had  taken  arms  against  his 
master,  and  condemned  him  to  the  flames.  When  liatuey  was 
fastened  to  the  stake,  a  Franciscan  friar,  labouring  to  convert 
him,  promised  him  immediately  admittance  into  the  joys  of 
heaven,  if  he  would  embrace  the  Christian  faith.  ^Are  there 
any  Spaniards,'  says  he,  after  some  pause,  '  in  that  region  of  bliss 
which  you  describe?'  'Yes,'  replied  the  monk;  'but  only 
such  as  are  worthy  and  good.'  '  The  best  of  them,'  returned 
the  indignant  cazique,  'have  neither  worth  nor  goodness:  I  will 
not  go  to  a  place  where  I  may  meet  with  one  of  that  accursed 


race 


>  "  >k 


But  to  return  to  the  importation  of  Africans  into  the  Ame- 
rican islands :  as  they  were  found  to  be  a  more  docile  and 
hardier  race  than  the  Indians,  so  they  were  worked  accord- 
ingly ;  and  we  shall  be  at  a  loss  to  find  the  principle  of  humanity 
either  in  the  one  case  or  the  other.  The  island  of  Margarita 
was  discovered  in  the  third  voyage  of  Columbus,  in  1498  ;  and  it 
grew  rapidly  into  importance  "  by  reason  of  the  rich  pearl  fish- 
ing which  they  found  on  the  shores  thereof.  But  the  Spaniards 
either  could  not,  or  would  not,  compel  the  natives  to  dive  into 
the  sea  for  pearl;  but  bought  Negro  slaves  from  Guinea,  and 
the  coast  of  Africa,  whom  they  enforced  with  great  torments  to 
dive  unto  the  bottom  of  the  sea,  many  times  seven  or  eight 
fathoms  deep,  to  bring  up  the  shells  in  which  that  treasure  was 
included  :  where  many  of  them  were  drowned,  and  some  maimed 
with  sharks  and  other  fishes."  t  The  natives  of  Western  Africa, 
therefoi'e,  who  were  forcibly  shipped  and  sent  to  the  Spanish 
colonies  in  America,  under  the  soft  name  of  "Negro  labourers," 
were  compelled  to  dig  in  the  mines,  dive  into  the  sea,  or  culti- 
vate the  land,  namely,  the  sugar  plantations.  Now,  whether 
the  sugar-cane  be  indigenous  to  the  West  Indies,  is  doubtful ; 
but  it  is  certain  that  it  grows  spontaneously  in  Africa;  and 
therefore,  to  take  no  higher  ground,  it  was  surely  a  preposterous 
thing  to  drag  the  Africans  across  the  Atlantic  to  the  West 
Indies,  there  to  drudge  and  toil  amidst  whips  and  chains,  in 
cultivating  a  commodity  which,  had  they  been  prudently  and 
humanely  dealt  w-ith,  they  might  have  been  induced  to  raise  as 
an  article  of  commerce  upon  their   ow-n  soil,  and   that  much 

*  Robertson's  "  Histor\'  of  America,"  vol.  i.  p.  GO.     From  Las  Casas,  p.  40. 
t  Heylin's  "  Cosmographie,"  p.  1090. 


36 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


nearer  to  the  European  markets  than  the  nearest  of  the  West- 
Indian  islands.     We  cannot,  therefore,  join  with  the  historian 
previously  quoted,  in  commending  the  "  Christian  prudence " 
of  the  sovereign  of  Spain,  in  compelling  his  subjects  in  America 
to  "provide  themselves  of  slaves  elsewhere,"  much  as  we  may 
admire  him  for  interposing  on  behalf  of  the  aborigines  of  the 
New  World  in  protecting  them  "from  Avorking  in  the  mines 
against  their  will."     There  is  a  difficulty,  alsp,  in  reconciling 
the  proposal  of  Las  Casas,  with  the  humane  and  charitable  spirit 
of  that  excellent  man ;  but  "  the  fault  was  in  the  head,  not  in 
the  upright  heart;"    and  it  is  some  relief  to  know  that  the 
Spanish  philanthropist  at  length  saw  his  error  and  confessed  it, 
as  appears  from  the  following  quotation  :  "  It  was  proposed  by 
Las    Casas    to   relieve   the   natives   by   sending   out    Castilian 
labourers,    and   by  importing   Negro   slaves   into   the   islands. 
This  last  proposition  has  brought  heavy  obloquy  on  the  head  of 
its  author,  who  has  been  freely  accused  of  having  thus  intro- 
duced Negro  Slavery  into  the  New  World.     Others,  with  equal 
groundlessness,  have  attempted  to  vindicate  his  memory  from  the 
reproach  of  having  recommended  the  measure  at  all.     Unfortu- 
nately for  the  latter  assertion,"  but  opportunely  for  the  full  vin- 
dication of  his  purity  of  intention,  "  Las  Casas,  in  his  '  History 
of  the  Indies,^  confesses,  with  deep  regret  and  humiliation,  his 
advice  on  this  occasion,  founded  on  the  most  erroneous  views, 
as  he  frankly  states ;  since,  to  use  his  own  words,  '  the  same  law 
applies  equally  to  the  Negro  as  to  the  Indian.^     But  so  far 
from  having  introduced  Slavery  by  this  measure  into  the  islands, 
the  importation   of  Blacks  there  dates  from  the  beginning  of 
the  century.     It  was  recommended   by  some   persons  in   the 
colony,  as  the  means  of  diminishing  the  amount  of  human  suf- 
fering ;  since  the  African  was  more  fitted  by  his  constitution  to 
endure  the  climate  and  the  severe  toil  imposed  on  the  slave, 
than  the  eflFeminate  islanders.    It  was  a  suggestion  of  humanity, 
however  mistaken ;  and,   considering  the  circumstances  under 
which  it  occurred,  and  the  age,  it  may  well  be  forgiven  in  Las 
Casas,  especially  taking  into  view,  that,  as  he  became  more 
enhghtened  himself,   he  v.as  so  ready  to  testify  his  regret  at 
having  unadvisedly  countenanced  the  measure."  * 

Charles  V.  also  "  lived  long  enough  to  repent  of  what  he  had 
inconsiderately  done "  by  the  patent  he  had  granted  in  1517; 
for,  "in  the  year  1542,  he  made  a  code  of  laws  for  the  better 
protection  of  the  unfortunate  Indians  in  his  foreign  dominions, 

*  Prescott's  "  History  of  the  Conquest  of  Mexico." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  37 

and  he  stopped  the  progress  of  African  Slavery  by  an  order  that 
all  slaves  in  liis  American  islands  should  be  made  free/^  thus 
showing  that  he  was  a  friend  both  to  the  Indians  and  to  the 
Africans,  as  a  part  of  the  human  race  :  manumission  took  place 
as  well  in  Hispaniola  as  on  the  Continent.  Shortly  afterwards, 
however,  Charles  abdicated  the  throne ;  and  on  Philip  assuming 
the  reins  of  government,  the  order  was  reversed ;  Slavery  was 
revived  in  America ;  and  the  importation  of  slaves  from  Africa 
was  again  permitted.*  Not  only  so,  but  they  were  imported  in 
such  quantities,  that  tliere  was  soon  a  Negro  for  every  Spaniard 
in  the  colonies ;  and  in  whatever  new  direction  the  Spaniards 
advanced  in  their  career  of  conquest,  Negroes  went  along  with 
them,  not  willingly,  but  of  necessity.  But  though  they  bore, 
with  tolerable  patience  and  fortitude,  the  hardships  connected 
with  their  new  situation,  we  have  instances  recorded,  even  of  an 
early  date,  when  they  attempted  to  rescue  themselves  from 
servitude,  and  thus  become  their  own  masters ;  but  they  were 
generally  severely  chastised  for  their  temerity,  or  cruelly  put  to 
death. 

The  precise  time  when  the  English  Slave-Trade  commenced 
is  not  known ;  but  the  first  importation  of  slaves  from  Africa  by 
our  own  countrymen,  of  which  we  have  any  authentic  record, 
was  in  the  reign  of  Elizabeth,  in  the  year  1562  :  this  was  by  a 
Captain  (afterwards  Sir  John)  Hawkins,  who,  having  received 
information  that  Negroes  were  very  good  merchandise  in  His- 
paniola, and  that  slaves  or  Negroes  might  easily  be  had  on  the 
coast  of  Guinea,  fitted  out  three  ships,  sailed  to  Guinea, 
obtained  three  hundred  Negroes,  carried  them  to  Hispaniola, 
sold  them,  and  returned  to  England  with  the  produce.  Queen 
Elizabeth  is  reported  to  have  sent  for  him  on  his  return  from 
this  voyage,  to  have  expressed  her  concern  at  the  undertaking, 
and  to  have  told  him  that  "if  any  Africans  should  be  carried 
away  without  their  free  consent,  it  Avould  be  detestable,  and  call 
down  the  vengeance  of  Heaven  upon  the  undertaking."  Captain 
Hawkins  promised  to  comply  with  the  injunctions  of  Elizabeth 
in  this  respect ;  but  he  did  not  keep  his  word ;  for,  being  a 
species  of  freebooter,  he  persisted  in  his  lawless  enterprises ; 
and,  in  two  years  after,  he  made  another  voyage,  when  he  seized 
many  of  the  inhabitants,  and  carried  them  off  as  slaves,  which 
occasioned  Hill,  in  his  "Naval  History,"  in  the  account  he 
gives  of  this  second  voyage,  to  use  these  remarkable  words  : 
"  Here  began  the  horrid  practice  of  forcing  the  Africans  into 


*  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  p.  50. 


38  WESTERN  COAST  OP  AFRICA, 

slavery,  an  injustice  and  barbarity  which,  so  sure  as  there  is 
vengeance  in  heaven  for  the  worst  of  crimes,  will  some  time  be 
the  destruction  of  all  who  allow  or  encourage  it."  In  1568 
Hawkins  made  his  third  and  last  piratical  and  kidnapping 
voyage  to  Africa ;  and  the  remarkable  words  of  Hill  just 
quoted,  and  the  fate  which  Elizabeth  had  predicted,  fell  upon 
him ;  for  this  last  voyage  terminated  miserably.*  Surprise 
has  been  expressed  by  some  writers,  "that  such  a  trade 
should  have  been  suffered  to  continue  under  a  queen  who  had 
so  solemnly  and  properly  expressed  her  abhorrence  of  its  injus- 
tice and  cruelty;  but  this  is  attributed  to  the  pains  taken,  by 
those  interested,  to  keep  her  in  ignorance  of  the  truth  :"  whilst 
some  affirm  that  "  the  first  recognition  of  the  trade  by  the  English 
government  was  in  1562 — 3,  in  the  reign  of  EHzabeth,  when  an 
Act  was  passed  legalizing  the  purchase  of  Negroes ;  yet,  as  the 
earlier  attempts  made  by  the  English  to  plant  colonies  in  North 
America  were  unsuccessful,  there  did  not,  for  some  time  after 
the  passing  of  this  Act,  exist  any  demand  for  Negroes  sufficient 
to  induce  the  owners  of  English  trading-vessels  visiting  the 
coast  of  Africa  to  make  Negroes  a  part  of  their  cargo." 

There  appears  to  be  some  discrepancy  in  these  two  state- 
ments. How  an  Act  could  be  passed  "  legalizing  the  purchase 
of  Negroes,"  and  Queen  Elizabeth  "  kept  ignorant  of  the 
truth,"  is  difficult  to  solve.  But  this  little  mist  is  dispersed  in 
a  work  of  great  merit  by  James  Bandinel,  Esq.,  a  gentleman 
long  employed  in  the  Foreign  Office,  and  who,  from  his  official 
connexion  with  the  Government,  is  well  qualified  to  give  to  the 
public  an  authentic  and  correct  record  of  its  transactions.  The 
work  alluded  to  is  entitled,  "  Some  Account  of  the  Trade  in 
Slaves  from  Africa,"  and  was  published  in  1842.  It  is  inscribed 
to  the  Earl  of  Aberdeen,  at  that  time  Her  Majesty's  Secretary 
of  State  for  Foreign  Aifairs,  and  was  placed  at  the  disposal  of 
Government.  Mr.  Bandinel  states,  that,  in  1585,  (not  in 
1562,)  Elizabeth  granted  to  Lords  Leicester  and  Warwick  a 
patent  to  trade  to  Barbary  for  a  period  of  twelve  years ;  and  in 
three  years  afterwards  (1588)  she  granted  another  patent  to  a 
company  to  trade  to  the  Senegal  and  Gambia  for  the  space  of  ten 
years.  Many  authors  insinuate,  that  by  this  patent  she  virtually 
gave  permission  to  trade  in  slaves ;  whilst  some  affirm,  that  no 
voyage  was  actually  undertaken  under  the  patent  which  she 
granted.      Mr.    Bandinel   observes :    "  Those   writers,   however, 

*  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  p.  52 ;  "  Pailiamentary  Debates," 
p.  212.  (1806.)  See  also  Bandinel's  "Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves  from 
Airica,"  pp.  36,  37. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  39 

appear  to  have  been  mistaken  in  both  points;  for  I  find  in 
Hakluyt  and  in  Astell  a  mention  of  three  voyaa;es  undertaken 
under  this  patent :  one  in  1589;  a  second  in  1590,  by  Thomas 
Dassell  and  others ;  and  a  third  in  1591,  by  II.  Rainolds  and 
Dassell ;  and  this  last  voyage  is  specially  declared  to  have  been 
undertaken  in  virtue  of  Her  Majesty^s  most  gracious  patent 
given  in  the  year  1588.  The  account  of  it,  though  short,  is 
very  precise :  the  several  places  visited,  and  the  trade  at  each  of 
the  places  resorted  to,  are  particularized  :  hides,  gums,  ivory, 
grains,  ambergris,  rice,  ostrich-feathers,  and  some  gold.  But 
Negroes  are  not  mentioned  ;  so  that  I  see  no  ground  for  sup- 
posing that,  excepting  Hawkins,  any  Enghshman  had,  as  yet, 
mixed  himself  up  with  the  African  Slave-Trade.^^  *  Mr.  Ban- 
dinel  adds  in  a  note,  from  Hakluyt,  vol.  ii.  p.  610,  "  Hakluyt 
considers  this  patent  to  be  of  sufficient  importance  to  give  it  in 
extenso.  No  mention  in  it  is  made  of  a  trade  in  slaves."  In 
1631,  Charles  I.  granted  a  charter  to  Sir  B.  Young,  Sir  K. 
Digby,  and  others,  for  trade  to  Africa.  "  This  was  the  second 
British  chartered  company  for  trading  to  Africa ;  and  Edwards 
says,  that  the  merchants  under  that  charter  supplied  the  British 
settlements  in  the  West  Indies  with  Negroes  for  working  the 
estates.  This,"  observes  Mr.  Bandinel,  "is  the  first  record  I 
find  of  the  English  embarking  in  undertakings  for  the  African 
Slave-Trade  since  the  solitary  instance  of  Hawkins."  f 

But,  detestable  as  every  pure  mind  must  perceive  it  to  be,  the 
trade  in  slaves  was  so  lucrative,  and  so  gratifying  to  the  lust 
of  gold,  that  it  blinded  the  mind  to  all  its  horrors,  and  so 
blunted  the  feelings  of  Europeans  to  all  sense  of  justice,  tliat  it 
is  not  improbable  that  some  of  our  own  countrymen  engaged  in 
trade,  vigilant  and  calculating  as  they  are,  had,  previous  to  this, 
embarked  in  tlie  traffic.  One  instance  we  have  upon  record, 
(in  addition  to  that  of  Captain  Hawkins,)  which  has  escaped,  it 
is  presumed,  the  notice  of  Mr.  Bandinel.  This  was  on  the 
island  of  Margarita,  at  one  time  so  famous  for  its  pearls,  but 
since  of  less  note.  This  island  was  visited  "  in  the  year  1601, 
by  the  English  under  Captain  Parker,  who  received  here  £500 
in  pearls  for  the  ransom  of  prisoners ;  and  took  a  ship  w^hich 
came  from  the  coast  of  Angola,  laden  with  three  hundred  and 
seventy  Negroes,  to  be  sold  for  slaves."  %  This  was  about  forty 
years  after  Hawkins  had  first  disgraced  the  British  nation  and 

*  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves  from  Africa,"  pp.  38,  39. 
t  Idem,  p.  44.     From  Andehsgn,  vol.  ii.  p.  42, 
X  Heylin's  "  Cosmograpliie,"  p.  1000. 

O  Q  Q  19 


40  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

name.  But,  according  to  INIr.  BandineFs  statement,  the  char- 
tered company  of  1631  did  not  actually  embark  in  this  trade  till 
ten  years  after  tl^  charter  had  been  granted,  Avhich  would 
make  about  other  forty  years  subsequent  to  Captain  Parker's 
visit  to  Margarita.  It  was  "  in  1641  the  industrious  planters  in 
Ba^badoes  procured  some  sugar-canes  from  Pernambuco  in 
Brazil.  This  was  the  first  of  our  colonies  which  fell  into  sugar- 
plantations  ;  and  as  it  was  impossible  to  manage  the  planting 
of  that  commodity  by  white  people  in  so  hot  a  climate,  so 
neither  could  a  sufficient  number  of  such  be  had  at  any  rate. 
Necessity,  therefore,  and  the  example  of  Portugal,  gave  birth  to 
the  Negro  Slave-Trade  from  the  coast  of  Guinea."  *  "  This 
seems  to  mark  the  time,  when  the  English  began  to  embark  in 
undertakings  for  importing  slaves  from  Africa;  but  it  does  not 
appear  that  they  yet  entered  into  what  was  called  the  '  carrying 
trade'  for  other  nations.  They  contented  themselves  with 
supplying  to  the  British  settlements  already  mentioned  (Ber- 
muda, Antigua,  Montserrat,  &c.)  the  few  slaves  which  they 
wanted."  f  This,  therefore,  clears  up  the  contradictory  state- 
ments of  previous  writers,  so  far  as  the  British  Government  is 
concerned,  up  to  that  period. 

But  though  Great  Britain  did  not  take  the  lead  in  commenc- 
ing the  Slave-Trade,  yet,  as  her  settlements  were  forming  in  the 
West-India  islands,  and  the  shameful  traffic  in  human  beings 
having  once  begun,  it  proceeded  and  gathered  strength  from 
day  to  day  :  every  where  the  colonists  commenced  plantations, 
and  these  colonies  were  stocked  with  slaves.  Sanctioned  by 
Charles  I.  and  Charles  II.,  and  by  succeeding  monarchs,  this 
new  species  of  commerce  rapidly  increased.  In  the  year  1662 
a  third  chartered  company  was  formed,  entitled,  "  The  Company 
of  Royal  Adventurers  of  England,  trading  to  Africa.'^  That 
company  undertook  to  supply  the  British  West-India  colonies 
with  three  thousand  slaves  annually ;  but  they  soon  amounted  to 
about  four  thousand  five  hundred,  and  in  a  few  years  afterwards 
to  treble  that  number ;  so  that  the  island  of  Jamaica,  which  was 
added  to  the  British  crown  in  1655,  and  which  contained  at  that 
period  only  about  fifteen  hundred  Whites,  and  about  an  equal 
number  of  Negroes,  had  so  greatly  increased,  that,  in  1673, 
there  were  7,768  Whites  and  9,504  Negroes  on  the  island ;  and 
Barbadoes,  about  the  same  time,  had  50,000  Whites,  and 
100,000  Negroes,  t 

*  Bandinel's  "  Some  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves  from  Africa,"  p.  47.    From 
Anderson,  vol.  ii.  p.  72. 

t  Idem,  p.  48.  %  Idem,  p.  o3. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  41 

But  "  in  1697  the  trade  was  thrown  open  by  Act  of  Parha- 
ment/^  and  the  statute-book  of  Britain  was  stained  with  the  foul 
blot  of  thus  officially  and  publicly  recognising  this  inhuman 
traffic;  the  consequence  was,  that  at  this  period  about  25,000 
Negroes  were  landed  in  the  British  colonies  annually,  partly  by 
the  Royal  African  Company,  and  partly  by  British  traders  ;  yet, 
after  the  passing  of  this  Act,  "  the  annual  exportation  was  at  once 
nearly  doubled.  In  1712  the  number  of  British  ships  engaged  in 
the  Slave-Trade  was  thirty- three ;  but  so  rapidly  did  the  trade 
increase  in  the  succeeding  thirteen  years,  that  in  1725  the  num- 
ber of  ships  had  risen  to  two  hundred.^^  *  "  Macpherson,  in  his 
'History  of  Commerce,'  states  that  the  number  of  Africans 
shipped  in  1768,  by  all  nations,  for  America  and  the  West 
Indies,  was  estimated  at  97,000 ;  that  of  these  the  British  ship- 
ping took  60,000,  and  the  French  23,000 ;  the  remainder  being 
divided  in  small  portions  among  the  shipping  of  other  nations  ; 
the  Portuguese  at  that  time  only  taking  1,700."  t  But  the 
French  soon  after  this  were  found  to  be  more  energetic  in  this 
trade.  "  The  average  export  of  France  from  Africa  for  ]  786, 
1787,  and  1788,  is  given  by  Arnould  {Balance  de  Commerce, 
part  ii.  §  3)  at  30,000;  and  this  statement  is  confirmed  by  the 
official  returns,  which  make  the  importation  for  the  year  1787, 
30,839,  and  for  1788,  29,506.  Thus,  in  the  five  years  imme- 
diately preceding  the  revolution,  about  150,000  Negroes  had 
been  imported  into  the  island  of  St.  Domingo,  of  whom,  if  the 
usual  proportions  were  preserved,  near  two-thirds  must  have 
been  male  adults.  Can  we  wonder  at  the  scenes  which  have 
since  passed  there,  when  we  combine  with  this  circumstance  the 
absurd,  perfidious,  and  cruel  proceedings  of  the  French  Govern- 
ment towards  the  colonies,  and  the  manner  in  which  it  has 
uniformly  sported  with  the  hopes  and  fears  of  the  Negro 
race  ? "  J  It  appears  from  Mr.  Bandinel's  statistics  on  the 
European  Slave-Trade,  that  about  the  middle  of  the  last  cen- 
tury, there  were  in  the  European  settlements  in  America,  and 
in  the  British  possessions  in  the  West  Indies,  777,736  Negro 
slaves,  nearly  one  half  of  whom  belonged  to  Britain ;  and  that 
"  list  does  not  include  the  Danish,  Swedish,  and  Dutch  posses- 
sions in  the  West  Indies ;  nor  the  English,  French,  or  Dutch 
possessions  in  Guyana ;  nor  the  Spanish  possessions  on  the  main- 
land of  America,  and  in  Cuba  and  Porto  Rico ;  nor  the  Portu- 


*  "  Parliamentary  Debates,"  p.  199.  (1806.) 

t  Bandinel's  "  Some  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves  from  Africa,"  p.  63. 

J  "Parliamentary  Debates,"  p.  197.  (1806.) 


42  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

guese  possessions  in  Brazil  and  elsewhere/^  *  At  this  period 
Jamaica  contained  90,000 ;  but  from  1700  to  1786  the  number 
of  slaves  imported  by  Britons  into  that  one  island  was  com- 
puted at  610,000;  and  in  little  more  than  a  single  century, 
from  the  year  1680  to  1786,  2,130,000  Negroes  were  imported 
into  the  British  West  Indies  alone ! 

Great  Britain,  then,  has  nothing  to  boast  in  the  simple  fact^ 
that  the  guilt  of  originating  this  horrible  system  does  not 
belong  to  her ;  for  she  was  not  far  behind  in  the  start ;  and 
having  once  followed  the  example  of  other  nations,  and  em- 
barked in  it,  she  threw  into  it  her  accustomed  energy,  and  soon 
outstripped  all  the  rest.  The  language  of  the  sons  of  Jacob, 
therefore,  when  they  said  one  to  another,  ''  We  are  verily  guilty 
concerning  our  brother,  in  that  we  saw  the  anguish  of  his  soul, 
when  he  besought  us,  and  we  would  not  hear,"  is  but  too 
applicable  to  us  as  a  nation.  "  We  aYe  verily  guilty''  recklessly 
guilty,  ten-fold  more  guilty,  concerning  our  African  brother, 
than  any  other  nation,  in  that  we  saw  the  anguish  of  his  soul, 
when  he  besought  us  to  come  to  his  rescue,  and  we  would  not 
hear.  It  was  not  because  we  did  not  hear,  or  that  we  could  not 
feel  for  him.  It  was  because  we  Avould  not  hear.  Humanity 
gave  way  to  avarice,  justice  to  oppression ;  and  a  power  that 
ought  and  might  have  been  exerted  in  protecting  the  Africans, 
and  in  punishing  the  man-stealer,  was,  alas  !  more  energetically 
employed  than  any  other  state  in  robbing  Africa  of  her  chil- 
dren, to  increase  her  own  comfort  and  private  wealth,  and  thus 
add  to  her  public  revenues. 

I  repeat,  ive  are  verily  guilty ;  guilty  in  proportion  to  our 
station  in  the  scale  of  nations ;  more  guilty,  because  mentally, 
morally,  and  physically  superior  to  the  puny,  popish,  and  half- 
civilized  countries  which  had  originated  this  monstrous  evil. 
We  are  verily  guilty,  "  in  that  we  saw  the  anguish  of  his  soul, 
when  he  besought  us,  and  we  would  not  hear."  Yes ;  ''  when 
he  besought  us;"  for  as  this  language  is  not  metaphorical,  but 
was  doubtless  literally  true  in  reference  to  Joseph's  captivity,  so 
has  this  petition  been  presented,  with  uplifted  hands,  with 
imploring  looks  and  gestures,  by  many  a  poor  Negro  :  he  has 
"besought  us,"  with  streaming  eyes  and  pathetic  appeals; 
appeals  which  would  have  melted  into  pity  any  heart  save  that 
of  the  slave-dealer,  who  goes  out  sometimes  singly,  and,  when  a 
convenient  opportunity  presents  itself,  he  then,  tiger-like,  springs 
upon  his  prey,  drags  his  victim  into  the  thicket,  and  in  the 

*  Bandinel's  "  Some  Account  nf  the  Trade  in  Slaves  from  Africa,"  pp.64 — 68. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  45 

night  carries  him  off  a  slave.  And  this  has  been  the  case  not 
merely  with  here  and  there  an  individual,  or  now  and  then  a 
family ;  but  whole  villages  have  been  depopulated ;  and  cargo 
after  cargo  of  the  defenceless,  innocent  Negroes  have  we  as  a 
nation  carried  away  from  their  native  land.  And  year  after 
year,  and  generation  after  generation,  have  British  ships,  and 
British  capital,  and  British  subjects  been  engaged  in  trading 
with  the  flesh  and  blood,  the  bones  and  muscles,  of  their  fellow- 
creatures  ! 

Surely,  "  the  voice  of  our  brother's  blood  crieth  "  against  us 
"  from  the  ground."  Yes,  the  sands  of  Africa,  saturated  with  the 
life's  blood  of  tens  of  thousands  who  have  been  slain  in  the 
seizure,  cry  against  us  from  the  ground ;  the  deserts  and  the 
trackless  forests,  strewed  with  the  skulls  and  bones  of  the  thou- 
sands who  have  sickened  and  died  in  the  march  to  the  coast, 
cry  against  us  from  the  ground ;  the  prison-houses  and 
slave-barracoons  planted  along  the  skirts  of  the  coast  on  the 
borders  of  the  Atlantic,  crammed  with  hundreds  of  Negroes 
who  have  survived  the  deadly  march,  promiscuously  thrown 
together  with  shackles  on  their  legs,  half  perished  with  hunger, 
— these  cry  against  us  from  the  ground.  And,  now  that  the 
black  hull  of  the  rakish  vessel  is  approaching  the  coast,  and  these 
prisoners  are  liberated, — liberated  only  to  be  the  more  closely 
packed  on  board  the  slaver, — O,  what  bitter  lamentations,  Avhat 
multitude  of  voices,  cry  against  us  from  the  ground  !  The 
wind  and  the  waves,  the  mighty  surge  on  the  beach, — these 
join  in  the  melancholy  chorus ;  and  the  scores  of  Negroes  who 
are  often  swamped  and  drowned  on  their  passage  to  the  slave- 
ships,  and  whose  bodies  are  washed  ashore  by  the  swelling  tide, 
— these,  once  more,  cry  against  us  from  the  ground.  But 
the  bitter  cries  that  are  heard  on  board  those  floating  tombs  of 
gasping  humanity  on  the  mighty  deep,  by  the  hundreds  who 
are  stowed  below  the  decks,  and  the  sum  total  of  misery  endured 
by  those  who  live  to  reach  the  opposite  continent,  are  known 
only  to  God  himself ! 


CHAPTER  III. 

THE  AFRICAN  SLAVE-TRADE. 

The  Existence  of  the  Slave-Trade  to  be  deeply  regretted — The  Attention  of  some 
eminent  Men  directed  to  its  Abolition — High  Tribute  to  Granville  Sharp — 
Negro  Slaves  coming  to  England — Famous  Case  of  Somerset,  in  1772 — 
Thomas  Clarkson  and  William  Wilberforce — The  Society  of  Friends — "Writers 
in  Favour  of  Abolition — Godwyn — Baxter— Whitefield— John  Wesley — Ram- 
say— First  Petition  sent  to  ParUament — Small  Committee  of  Quakers — The 
Inhabitants  of  Bridgewater  petition  Parliament — Clarkson's  "  Essay  on  the 
Slave-Trade" — Importance  of  its  Publication — Clarkson  devotes  his  Life  to  the 
Cause — A  Society  organized  and  Committee  formed — Magnitude  of  the 
Object— The  Subject  introduced  into  Parliament — Opposition  to  the  Measure 
— The  Friends  of  AboUtion  persevere — Debates  in  Parliament — Memorable 
Session  of  1807 — The  Slave-Trade  abolished  by  the  British  Parliament. 

A  REVIEW  of  the  origin,  progress,  and  frightful  extent  of  the 
African  Slave-Trade,  with  the  dreadful  evils  and  miseries  con- 
nected with  it,  cannot  but  awaken,  in  the  mind  of  every  lover 
of  his  species,  surprise  and  deep  regret  that  the  statute-book  of 
Great  Britain  should  ever  have  been  tarnished  with  so  foul  a 
stain.  That  such  a  crime  should  have  been  allowed  to  continue 
so  long  without  bringing  down  upon  us  some  heavy  national 
judgment  from  Heaven,  can  only  be  attributed  to  the  long- 
suffering  and  abundant  goodness  of  Him  who  is  "slow  to 
anger,"  and  who  "delighteth  in  mercy."  But,  "after  this 
scourge  had  been  permitted  to  desolate  Africa  and  to  disgrace 
mankind  for  two  centuries  and  a  half,  the  attention  of  men  was 
at  length  directed  to  it  by  some  eminent  philanthropists  of  this 
country.  Among  these,  a  high  place  must  be  assigned  to 
Granville  Sharp,  than  whom  a  purer  spirit  never  resided  in  the 

human  form The  wholesale  violation  of  all  human  rights, 

and  flagrant  wreck  of  all  Christian  duties,  with  which  the  Slave- 
Trade  and  West  Indian  Slavery  had  so  long  outraged  and  in- 
sulted the  world,  early  attracted  his  regard  ;  and  he  persevered 
in  trying  the  legal  question,  at  first  held  to  be  desperate, —  How 
far  a  slave,  coming  to  this  country  under  the  power  of  his 
master,  continues  subject  to  that  authority,  or  gains  his  per- 
sonal liberty  in  common  with  the  other  subjects  of  the  realm. 
Although  not  bred  to  the  legal  profession,  he  devoted  himself 
to  the  study  of  the  law,  for  the  purpose  of  prosecuting  this 
contention ;    he    enlightened    lawyers    with    the   result    of    his 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  45 

researches;  he  overpowered  opposition  by  the  force  and  the 
closeness  of  his  reasonings ;  he  disarmed  all  personal  opposition 
by  the  unruffled  serenity  of  his  temper,  the  unequalled  suavity 
of  his  simple  yet  frank  and  honest  manners ;  he  gave  his  fortune 
as  well  as  his  toil  to  the  cause;  and  he  ceased  not  until  he 
obtained  the  celebrated  judgment  of  the  King's  Bench,  so 
honourable  to  the  law  and  constitution  of  this  country, — that  a 
slave  cannot  touch  our  soil,  but  immediately  his  chains  fall 
away/'* 

Of  "  the  celebrated  judgment  of  the  King's  Bench,"  to  which 
allusion  has  been  made,  and  which  took  place  in  1772,  the  follow- 
ing was  the  origin: — It  had  been  a  common  practice  with  planters, 
merchants,  and  others,  residing  in  the  West  Indies,  even  before 
the  year  1700,  when  they  occasionally  came  to  England,  to  bring 
with  them  Negro  slaves  to  act  as  servants  during  their  stay.  It  was 
perfectly  natural  that  persons  thus  circumstanced  should  compare 
their  own  condition  of  slavery  and  hardship  with  the  freedom 
and  comfort  enjoyed  by  servants  in  England ;  and  that,  con- 
sidering what  would  be  their  own  hard  fate  on  their  return  to 
the  islands,  they  should  frequently  abscond  from  their  masters. 
By  the  slaveholders  it  was  contended  that  the  Negroes  were  as 
much  their  slaves  when  on  British  ground  as  when  in  the 
colonies ;  and  therefore  the  masters,  by  advertisement  and 
otherwise,  made  search  for  them,  and  often  had  them  seized  and 
carried  away  by  force.  The  London  papers  not  onl}^  contained 
descriptions  of  the  persons  of  the  runaways,  and  stated  the 
rewards  offered  for  their  apprehension,  but  sometimes  inserted 
advertisements  of  auctions  at  which  slaves  who  had  not  ab- 
sconded were  to  be  sold,  either  by  themselves,  or  in  the  same 
lot  with  horses,  carriages,  and  harness,  or  any  other  stock  of 
the  proprietor.  An  announcement  of  this  kind  was  published 
in  the  "  Gazetteer,"  April  18th,  1769,  and  reads  as  follows  : — 
"At  the  Bull  and  Gate  Inn,  Holborn,  a  Chestnut  Gelding,  a 
Tim  Whisky,  and  a  well-made,  good-tempered  Black  BoyJ" 
And  on  November  28th  of  the  same  year,  an  advertisement 
appeared  in  the  "Public  Advertiser"  to  this  effect:  "To  be 

sold,  a  Black  Girl,  the  property  of  J.  B ,  eleven  years  of 

age ;  Avho  is  extremely  handy,  works  at  her  needle  tolerably, 
and  speaks  English  perfectly  well ;  is  of  an  excellent  temper, 
and  wilUng  disposition.  Inquire  of  Mr.  Owen,  at  the  Angel 
Inn,  behind  St.  Clement's  Church,  in  the  Strand."  f 

*  "  Speeches  of  Henry  Lord  Brougham,"  vol.  ii. 
t  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  i.  pp.  8,  75. 


46  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Thus  was  England  for  a  time  disgraced,  as  the  seat  both  of 
Slavery  and  the  Slave-Trade,  "  The  slaves  could  be  sold,  with  all 
their  good  qualities  particularized;  and  those  who  had  absconded 
were  seized  by  their  masters,  or  by  men  employed  by  them,  in 
the  very  streets,  and  dragged  from  thence  to  the  ships :  and  so 
unprotected  were  these  poor  slaves,  that  people  in  nowise 
connected  with  them  began  to  institute  a  trade  in  their  persons, 
making  agreements  with  captains  of  ships  going  to  the  West 
Indies  to  put  them  on  board  at  a  certain  price."*  What  a 
palpable  contradiction  was  this  to  the  bold  assertion  of  the 
advocates  of  Slavery, — that  Negroes  were  not  kidnapped  in 
Africa, — when  the  thing  was  actually  done  in  the  streets  of 
London  !  But  matters  of  this  kind  were  not  allowed  to  con- 
tinue with  impunity ;  and  Granville  Sharp  was  one  of  the  first, 
most  active,  and  energetic  agents  in  putting  a  stop  to  such 
disgraceful  proceedings. 

In  the  year  1765,  an  African  slave,  named  Jonathan  Strong, 
was  brought  from  Barbadoes  by  his  master,  who,  while  in  Eng- 
land, treated  him  very  cruelly,  particularly  by  beating  him  on 
the  head  with  a  pistol,  which  occasioned  it  to  swell,  and  after- 
wards produced  a  disorder  in  the  eyes,  which  threatened  the 
loss  of  his  sight.  To  this  an  ague  and  fever  succeeded,  and  a 
lameness  in  both  his  legs.  In  this  deplorable  condition  he  was 
turned  adrift  by  his  master,  and  left  to  go  whither  he  pleased. 
He  was  happily  directed  to  Mr.  Granville  Sharp^s  brother, — a 
surgeon,  whose  kindness  and  humanity  led  him  to  devote  a 
portion  of  his  time  to  healing  the  diseases  of  the  poor.  Here  it 
was  that  Granville  Siiarp  met  with  him,  Avho,  pitying  his  hard 
case,  supplied  him  with  money,  and  afterwards  got  him  a  situa- 
tion in  the  family  of  an  apothecary,  to  carry  out  medicine. 
When  Strong  had  become  healthy  and  robust  in  his  appear- 
ance, his  master  (Mr.  David  Lisle,  a  lawyer)  happened  to  see 
him  engaged  in  this  new  employment ;  and  immediately  formed 
the  design  of  repossessing  himself  of  him.  Having  found  out 
Strong^s  residence,  he  employed  two  persons  to  kidnap  him. 
This  was  managed  by  sending  for  him  to  a  public-house  in 
Fenchurch- street,  and  there  seizing  him.  By  these  men  he 
was  conveyed  without  a  warrant  to  the  Poultry  Compter,  where 
he  was  sold  by  his  master  to  John  Kerr,  for  thirty  pounds.  In 
his  distress.  Strong  sent  to  Mr.  Sharp,  who  immediately  went 
to  see  the  prisoner,  but  was  refused  access  to  him.  He,  how- 
ever, insisted  on  being  admitted  to  him,  and  charged  the  keeper 

*  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  p.  65. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  47 

of  the  prison  at  his  peril  to  deliver  him  up,  until  he  had  been 
carried  before  a  magistrate.  Mr.  Sharp  then  waited  upon  Sir 
Robert  Kite,  the  lord  mayor,  and  obtained  from  him  an  appoint- 
ment to  hear  the  case.  At  the  time  assigned,  Mr.  Sharp  attended, 
as  did  also  a  notary  public,  and  the  captain  of  a  ship  which  was 
to  have  conveyed  Strong  to  Jamaica.  After  a  long  discussion,  the 
lord  mayor  discharged  Strong,  as  he  had  been  taken  up  with- 
out a  warrant.  But  no  sooner  was  the  poor  African  thus  dis- 
charged, than  the  captain  took  hold  of  him,  and  said  aloud, 
"Then  I  now  seize  him  as  my  slave."  On  this,  Mr.  Sharp 
promptly  laid  his  hand  on  the  shoulder  of  the  captain,  and  said 
to  him,  "  I  charge  you,  in  the  name  of  the  king,  with  an  assault 
upon  the  person  of  Jonathan  Strong ;  and  all  these  are  my 
witnesses."  At  this  charge,  made  in  the  presence  of  the  lord 
mayor  and  others,  the  captain  was  greatly  intimidated,  and, 
fearing  a  prosecution,  let  go  his  prisoner,  who  departed  under 
the  protection  of  Mr.  Sharp.* 

But  though  the  injured  Africans,  M'hose  causes  had  been 
tried,  escaped  slavery;  and  though  many  who  had  been  forcibly 
conveyed  into  dungeons  and  on  ship-board,  ready  to  be  trans- 
ported into  the  colonies,  had  been  delivered  from  their  captivity 
through  the  indefatigable  exertions  of  Mr.  Sharp ;  he  was  not 
yet  satisfied.  The  issue  had  not  hitherto  been  put  on  the  broad 
ground,  "Whether  an  African  slave  coming  into  England  became 
free."  This  v. as  the  question  which  he  wished  to  see  determined; 
and  he  resolved  to  have  it  fairly  settled  at  the  first  opportunity 
that  off'ered.  A  case  exactly  in  point  soon  occurred.  A  Negro, 
named  James  Somerset,  was  brought  to  England  by  his  master 
in  1769,  who  intended  after  a  time  to  take  him  back:  but, 
before  their  departure,  Somerset,  anxious  to  avoid  another  ex- 
posure to  the  evils  of  Slavery,  absconded.  A  strict  search  was 
made  for  him,  and  he  was  taken  and  forcibly  conveyed  on  board 
ship.  The  circumstance  was  brought  under  the  notice  of  Mr. 
Sharp,  who  immediately  commenced  legal  proceedings  upon  it ; 
and  as  the  master  defended  his  right  to  the  Negro,  it  was 
brought  to  a  trial,  and  was  argued  at  three  difterent  sittings,  in 
January',  February,  and  May,  1772.  The  ablest  counsellors 
were  employed  on  both  sides,  and  the  opinion  of  the  judges  was 
taken  on  the  point.  The  memorable  result  was  a  glorious 
triumph  for  the  cause  of  humanity.  It  was  declared,  that  as 
soon  as  the  Negro  set  his  foot  on  British  ground,  he  was  free. 

In  allusion  to  this  decision  Cowper  wrote  his  beautiful  lines : — 


*  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  pp.  66,  67. 


48  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

"  Slaves  cannot  breathe  in  England  :  if  their  lungs 
Iml)ihe  our  air,  that  moment  they  are  free : 
They  touch  our  country,  and  their  shackles  fall. 
That 's  noble,  and  bespeaks  a  nation  proud 
And  jealous  of  the  blessing.     Spread  on,  then, 
And  let  it  circulate  through  every  vein 
Of  all  your  empire  :  that  where  Britain's  power 
Is  felt,  mankind  may  feel  her  mercy  too." 

"  Thus  ended/^  says  Mr.  Clarkson,  "  the  great  case  of  Somer- 
set, which,  having  been  determined  after  so  dehberate  an  inves- 
tigation of  the  law,  can  never  be  reversed  while  the  British 
constitution  remains.  The  eloquence  displayed  in  it  by  those 
who  were  engaged  on  the  side  of  liberty,  was  perhaps  never 
exceeded  on  any  occasion ;  and  the  names  of  the  counsellors, 
Davy,  Glynn,  Hargrave,  Mansfield,  and  Alleyne,  ought  always 
to  be  remembered  Avith  gratitude  by  the  friends  of  this  great 
cause."  But  chiefly  to  Granville  Sharp,  under  Divine  Provi- 
dence, are  we  to  give  the  praise,  as  being  the  man  "  who  became 
the  first  great  actor  in  it,  who  devoted  his  time,  his  talents,  and 
his  substance  to  this  Christian  undertaking,  and  by  whose  labo- 
rious researches  the  very  pleaders  themselves  were  instructed 
and  benefited.  By  means  of  his  almost  incessant  vigilance  and 
attention  and  unwearied  efi"orts,  the  poor  African  ceased  to  be 
hunted  in  our  streets  as  a  beast  of  pre3^  Miserable  as  the  roof 
might  be  under  which  he  slept,  he  slept  in  security.  He  walked 
by  the  side  of  the  stately  ship,  and  he  feared  no  dungeon  in  her 
hold.  To  him  we  owe  it,  that  we  no  longer  see  our  public 
papers  polluted  by  hateful  advertisements  of  the  sale  of  the 
human  species,*  or  that  we  are  no  longer  distressed  by  the 
perusal  of  impious  rewards  for  bringing  back  the  poor  and  the 
helpless  into  slavery,  or  that  we  are  prohibited  the  disgusting 
spectacle  of  seeing  man  bought  by  his  fellow-man.  To  him,  in 
short,  we  owe  this  restoration  of  the  beauty  of  our  constitution, 
this  prevention  of  the  continuance  of  our  national  disgrace.^f 

This  benevolent  and  distinguished  individual  stopped  not 
here,    but   continued    to    be   a   zealous   and   useful  coadjutor, 

*  This  execrable  practice  was  not,  however,  wholly  abolished  at  once.  For  seve- 
ral years  afterwards,  rebels  against  humanity  were  still  to  be  found.  Tlie  following 
advertisement  was  sent  to  Mr.  Sharp  in  1782,  copied  from  a  Liverpool  newspaper: 
— "Liverpool,  Oct.  15th,  1770.  To  be  sold  by  auction,  at  George  Dunbar's  office, 
on  Thursday  next,  the  21st  inst.,  at  one  o'clock,  a  Black  Boi/,  about  fourteen  years 
old,  and  a  large  Mountain  Tiger-Cat."  — "  Memoirs  of  Grau\ille  Sharp,"  vol.  i. 
p.  140. 

t  Ci-arkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  pp.  71,  72. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  49 

through  the  long  period  of  his  after-life,  in  all  that  related  to 
the  extinction  of  the  African  traffic  and  the  Slavery  of  the  colo- 
nies. He  was  soon  after  followed  in  his  bright  course  by- 
Thomas  Clarkson  and  William  Wilberforce.  Of  the  former  "  it 
has  been  justly  said, — nor  can  higher  praise  be  earned  by  man, 
— that  to  the  great  and  good  qualities  of  Las  Casas, — his  bene- 
volence, his  unwearied  perseverance,  his  inflexible  determination 
of  purpose,  piety  which  would  honour  a  saint,  courage  which 
would  accomplish  a  martyr, — he  added  the  sound  judgment  and 
strict  sense  of  justice  which  were  Avantiug  in  the  otherwise  per- 
fect character  of  the  Spanish  philanthropist/^  And  of  Mr. 
Wilberforce  it  has  been  observed,  with  equal  truth,  that  "  few 
persons  have  ever  either  reached  a  higher  or  more  enviable  place 
in  the  esteem  of  their  fellow-creatures,  or  have  better  deserved 
the  place  they  had  gained,  than  William  Wilberforce.  He  was 
naturally  a  person  of  great  quickness  and  even  subtilty  of  mind, 
with  a  lively  imagination,  approaching  to  playfulness  of  fancy. 
And  hence  he  had  wit  in  an  immeasurable  abundance,  and  in 
all  its  varieties ;  for  he  was  endowed  with  an  exquisite  sense 
of  the  ludicrous  in  character, — the  foundation  of  humour, — as 
well  as  the  perception  of  remote  resemblances, — the  essence 
of  wit.  These  qualities,  however,  he  had  so  far  disciplined  his 
faculties  as  to  keep  in  habitual  restraint,  lest  he  should  ever 
offend  against  strict  decorum,  by  introducing  light  matter  into 
serious  discussion,  or  be  betrayed  into  personal  remarks  too 
poignant  for  the  feelings  of  individuals.  For  his  nature  was 
mild  and  amiable,  beyond  that  of  most  men ;  fearful  of  giving 
the  least  pain  in  any  quarter,  even  Avhile  heated  with  the  zeal 
of  controversy  on  questions  that  roused  all  his  passions ;  and 
more  anxious,  if  it  were  possible,  to  gain  over,  rather  than  to 
overpower,  an  adversary ;  disarming  him  by  kindness,  or  the 
force  of  reason,  or  awakening  appeals  to  his  feelings,  rather  than 
defeating  him  by  hostile  attack. 

"  His  eloquence  was  of  the  highest  order.  It  was  persuasive 
and  pathetic  in  an  eminent  degree ;  but  it  was  occasionally  bold 
and  impassioned,  animated  with  the  inspiration  which  deep 
feeUng  alone  can  breathe  into  spoken  thought,  chastened  by  a 
pure  taste,  varied  by  extensive  information,  enriched  by  classical 
allusion,  sometimes  elevated  by  the  more  sublime  topics  of  holy 
writ, — the  thoughts 

'  That  wrapt  Isaiah's  hallow'd  soul  in  fire.' 

"  Few  passages  can  be  cited  in  the  oratory  of  modern  times  of 
a  more  electrical  effect  than  the  singularly  felicitous  and  striking 


50  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

allusion  to  Mr.  Pitt's  resisting  the  torrent  of  Jacobin  principles  : 
'  He  stood  between  the  living  and  the  dead,  and  the  plague 
was  stayed.'. . .  Wherefore,  when  he  stood  forward  as  the  leader 
of  the  Abolition,  vowed  implacable  war  against  Slavery  and  the 
Slave-Trade,  and  consecrated  his  life  to  the  accomplishment  of  its 
destruction,  there  was  every  advantage  conferred  upon  this  great 
cause."* 

But  without  detracting  one  iota  from  the  well-earned  fame  of 
the  three  illustrious  individuals  already  mentioned,  who  may  be 
regarded  as  the  leading  stars  in  this  moral  hemisphere,  whose 
brilliancy  and  usefulness  to  mankind  death  itself  could  not 
extinguish;  for,  tbough  dead,  they  are  yet  speaking  by  their 
writings ; — yet  justice  to  other  friends  of  Africa  and  the 
Abolition  cause,  who  had  previously  exerted  themselves  on 
behalf  of  the  oppressed  Negroes,  demands  here  a  passing  notice 
of  their  efforts. 

It  cannot  be  denied,  then,  that  in  a  collective  capacity  the 
Society  of  Friends  have  the  fairest  claim  to  be  considered,  if  not 
the  originators,  yet  among  the  earliest,  the  warmest,  and  the 
most  persevering  supporters  of  Abolition.  Their  founder, 
George  Fox,  had  solemnly  warned  them  not  to  engage  in  a 
traffic  so  utterly  indefensible ;  and  the  celebrated  William  Penn, 
as  early  as  1668,  denounced  it  as  cruel,  impolitic,  and  unchris- 
tian. At  their  Annual  Meeting  in  1696,  the  subject  was  intro- 
duced to  the  whole  society  in  America ;  and  the  members,  some 
of  whom,  notwithstanding  the  instructions  of  their  leaders,  had 
engaged  in  the  traffic,  were  cautioned  not  to  purchase  any  more 
slaves,  and  enjoined  to  treat  most  mercifully  those  whom  they 
might  then  possess.  Similar  injunctions  and  cautions  were 
given  at  every  Annual  Meeting  for  many  successive  years ;  and, 
in  1727,  at  the  general  Yearly  Meeting  in  London,  it  was 
resolved,  "  That  the  importing  of  Negroes  was  cruel  and  unjust, 
and  was  therefore  severely  censured  by  the  Meeting.^'  At  each 
Annual  Meeting  for  twenty  years  afterwards,  they  invariably 
passed  substantially  the  same  resolution ;  thus  keeping  the  sub- 
ject continually  before  their  members.  But,  in  1760,  they 
proceeded  still  farther  :  for  they  passed  a  declaration,  at  their 
Annual  Meeting  of  that  year,  that  they  would  exclude  from 
their  Society  all  who  participated  in  any  way  in  the  guilty 
traffic.  Almost  the  first  recorded  instance  of  a  voluntary  sur- 
render of  slave-property  occurred  in  1770,  when  a  gentleman  of 
that  Society,  named  Miffin,  having  inherited  from  his  father 

*  "  Speeches  of  Lord  Broujrhain." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE,  51 

nearly  forty  slaves,  generously  gave  them  their  liberty,  and 
employed  them  as  freemen,* 

It  appears,  then,  that,  as  a  body,  the  Friends  were  the  earliest 
advocates  of  the  Negro  race,  and  made  the  most  vigorous  and 
systematic  efforts  to  effect  their  rescue.  But  while  we  give 
them  the  commendation  which  is  so  justly  their  due,  it  would  be 
absurd  to  assign  to  them  all  the  merit  of  Abolition.  Several  of 
the  old  English  writers  of  eminence,  without  expressly  referring 
to  African  Slavery,  had  in  a  general  way  testified  against  the 
criminality  of  "bringing  one  human  being  into  absolute  subjec- 
tion to  the  will  of  another."  Our  great  poet  Mdton,  Bishop 
Sanderson,  and  others  had  gone  thus  far ;  and  were  followed  by 
several  distinguished  individuals  of  the  English  Church,  and  of 
other  communities,  who  raised  their  voice  against  the  accursed 
traffic  by  Avriting  expressly  on  the  subject. 

The  first  EngUsh  writer  who  specially  advocated  the  cause  of 
the  Africans  was  IVIorgan  Godwyn,  a  Clergyman  of  the  Church 
of  England.  He  wrote  a  treatise  entitled,  "  The  Negro's  and 
Indian's  Advocate,"  which  he  dedicated  to  the  Archbishop  of 
Canterbury.  In  the  island  of  Barbadoes  he  had  been  an  eye- 
witness of  the  sufferings  of  the  oppressed  Blacks,  and  in  an 
affecting  manner  he  exposed  to  his  countrymen  the  brutal  senti- 
ments and  conduct  of  their  tyrants.  About  the  same  time,  the 
celebrated  Richard  Baxter  on  several  occasions  pleaded  the 
rights  of  the  Negroes.  In  his  "  Christian  Directory "  he 
severely  animadverts  upon  the  trade,  saying,  that  "  those  who 
go  out  as  pirates,  and  take  any  poor  Africans,  and  people  of 
another  land,  who  never  forfeited  life  or  liberty,  and  make  them 
slaves  or  sell  them,  are  the  worst  of  robbers,  and  ought  to  be 
considered  as  the  common  enemies  of  mankind;  and  that  they 
who  buy  them,  and  use  them  as  mere  beasts  of  burden,  for  their 
own  convenience,  regardless  of  their  spiritual  welfare,  are  fitter 
to  be  called  demons  than  Christians."  He  then  proposes 
several  queries,  which  he  answers  in  a  close  and  forcible  man- 
ner, showing  the  great  inconsistency  of  this  traffic,  and  the 
necessity  of  treating  those  already  in  bondage  with  tenderness, 
and  with  a  due  regard  to  their  spiritual  concerns. 

About  this  time,  and  subsequently,  many  other  tracts  and 
pamphlets  relating  to  Slavery  issued  from  the  press  ;  and  several 
authors  who  did  not  write  expressly  on  the  subject,  took  care  to 
denounce  the  traffic  in  Negroes  as  one  which  is  no  less  repug- 
nant  to  the   feelings   of  humanity  than  to  the  principles  of 

*  Taylor's  "  Biographical  Sketch  of  Tliomas  Clarkson." 
E    2 


52 


WESTERN    COAST    OF     AFRICA. 


religion.  Poets,  as  well  as  divines  and  historians,  and  even  dra- 
matic writers,  did  not  fail  to  lift  up  their  voice  in  its  execration. 
The  Rev.  Messrs.  J.  Wesley  and  G.  Whitefield,  both  of  whom 
had  witnessed  the  worse  than  brutal  treatment  of  the  Blacks  in 
America,,  fearlessly  proclaimed,  from  the  pulpit  and  from  the 
press,  the  evils  of  "  this  complicated  villany."  As  far  back  as 
1739,  Mr.  Whitefield,  when  in  America,  addressed  a  printed 
letter  to  the  settlers  of  several  of  the  States  in  which  Slavery 
most  abounded.  This  production  had  the  desired  effect  upon 
many  of  those  who  perused  it.  He  continued  a  firm  friend  to 
the  poor  Africans,  pleading  their  cause  through  life,  and  w^as  the 
means  of  enlisting  many  thousands  of  his  followers  in  their 
favour.  Mr.  Wesley,  too,  wrote  a  spirited  and  able  pamphlet 
on  the  subject,  which  he  entitled  "  Thoughts  upon  Slavery," 
and  which  was  pubhshed  in  1774,  two  years  after  the  famous 
case  of  Somerset  had  been  decided.  In  this  little  work  Mr, 
Wesley  grapples  with  the  monster  evil  in  a  masterly  manner. 
After  defining  Slavery,  and  distinguishing  it  from  that  mild 
domestic  service  which  obtains  in  our  country,  he  refers  to  the 
place  whence  the  slaves  are  taken,  and  describes  Africa,  in  its 
physical  and  moral  aspects.  He  states  that  the  soil  is  pro- 
ductive, and  in  many  parts  well  cultivated,  bringing  forth  fruits, 
vegetables,  and  grain  in  abundance ;  and  that  the  meadows  are 
capable  of  feeding  large  herds  of  cattle.  He  speaks  of  the  inha- 
bitants as  being  comparatively  mild  and  well  disposed ;  and 
affirms  that  they  are  by  no  means  difficult  to  govern,  and  that, 
instead  of  being  the  stupid,  senseless  savages  which  they  have 
been  described  to  be,  they  are,  considering  their  few  advan- 
tages, the  very  reverse.  He  next  touches  upon  the  manner  in 
which  the  slaves  are  procured,  the  places  to  which  they  are 
conveyed,  and  the  treatment  which  they  undergo  in  the  colo- 
nies ;  and  he  closes  the  pamphlet  with  an  appeal  to  merchants, 
captains,  planters,  and  others  interested  in  the  continuance  of 
the  Slave-Trade.  The  last  paragraph  consists  of  a  prayer 
devoutly  off'ered  up  to  Almighty  God,  and  is  as  follows : — 

"  O  thou  God  of  love,  thou  who  art  loving  to  every  man,  and 
whose  mercy  is  over  all  thy  works  ;  thou  who  art  the  Father  of 
the  spirits  of  all  flesh,  and  who  art  rich  in  mercy  unto  all ;  thou 
who  hast  mingled  of  one  blood  all  the  nations  upon  earth  ;  have 
compassion  upon  these  outcasts  of  men,  who  are  trodden  down 
as  dung  upon  the  earth  !  Arise,  and  help  these  that  have  no 
helper,  whose  blood  is  spilt  upon  the  ground  like  water  !  Are 
not  these  also  the  work  of  thine  own  hands,  the  purchase  of  thy 
Son^s  blood  ?     Stir  them  up  to  cry  unto  thee  in  the  land  of 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  53 

their  captivity,  and  let  their  complaint  come  up  before  thee ;  let 
it  enter  into  thy  ears  !  Make  even  those  that  lead  them  away 
captive  to  pity  them,  and  turn  their  captivity  as  the  rivers  in 
the  south.  O  burst  thou  all  their  chains  in  sunder ;  more  espe- 
cially the  chains  of  their  sins  !  Thou  Saviour  of  all,  make  them 
free,  that  they  may  be  free  indeed  !  ^'  * 

Nor  did  Mr.  Wesley  stop  here ;  for  Mr,  Clarksou,  in  his 
"  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,'^  after  speaking  of  "  the  cele- 
brated divine "  who  "  undertook  the  cause  of  the  poor 
Africans"  in  the  above-mentioned  tractate,  adds,  "  Mr.  Wesley 
had  this  great  cause  much  at  heart,  and  frequently  recom- 
mended it  to  the  support  of  those  who  attended  his  useful 
ministry:"  and  soon  after  the  first  Abolition  Committee  was 
formed,  one  of  their  sittings  "  was  distinguished  by  the  receipt 
of  letters  from  two  celebrated  persons."  One  of  these  "was 
Mr,  John  Wesley,  whose  useful  labours  as  a  minister  of  the 
gospel  are  so  well  known  to  our  countrymen."  The  date  of  this 
Committee  was  August  27th,  1787.  Mr.  Clarkson  further  re- 
marks, "  Mr.  Wesley,  whose  letter  was  read  next,  informed  the 
Committee  of  the  great  satisfaction  which  he  also  had  experi- 
enced, when  he  heard  of  their  formation.  He  conceived  that 
their  design,  while  it  would  destroy  the  Slave-Trade,  would  also 
strike  at  the  root  of  the  shocking  abomination  of  Slavery  also. 
He  desired  to  forewarn  them  that  they  must  expect  difficulties 
and  great  opposition  from  those  who  were  interested  in  the  sys- 
tem; that  these  were  a  powerfid  body;  and  that  they  would 
raise  all  their  forces,  when  they  perceived  their  craft  to  be  in 
danger.  They  would  employ  hireling  writers,  who  would  have 
neither  justice  nor  mercy.  But  the  Committee  were  not  to  be 
dismayed  by  such  treatment,  nor  even  if  some  of  those  who 
professed  good-will  towards  them  should  turn  against  them. 
As  for  himself,  he  would  do  all  he  could  to  promote  the  object 
of  their  institution.  He  would  reprint  a  new  and  large  edition 
of  his  '  Thoughts  on  Slavery,'  and  circulate  it  among  his  friends 
in  England  and  Ireland,  to  whom  he  would  add  a  few  words  in 
favour  of  their  design.  And  then  he  concluded  in  these  words  : 
'  I  commend  you  to  Him  who  is  able  to  carry  you  through  all 
opposition,  and  support  you  under  all  discouragements.'  "  f 

On  October  30th,  1787,  "a  second  letter  was  read  from  Mr. 
John  Wesley.  He  said  that  he  had  now  read  the  publications 
which  the  Committee  had  sent  him,  and  that  he  took,  if  pos- 
sible, a  still  deeper  interest  in  their  cause.     He  exhorted  them 

*  Wesley's  Works,  vol.  xi.  pp.  75,  7G. 

t  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  p.  259. 


54  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

to  more  than  ordinary  diligence  and  perseverance ;  to  be  pre- 
pared for  opposition ;  to  be  cantious  about  the  manner  of  pro- 
curing information  and  evidence,  that  no  stain  might  fall  upon 
their  character ;  and  to  take  care  that  the  question  should  be 
argued  as  well  upon  the  consideration  of  interest  as  of  hu- 
manity and  justice;  the  former  of  which,  he  feared,  would  have 
more  weight  than  the  latter  :  and  he  recommended  them  and 
their  glorious  concern,  as  before,  to  the  protection  of  Him  who 
was  able  to  support  them."  *  Nor  was  this  all :  for  it  may  be 
further  added,  as  proof  of  the  deep  and  unabated  interest  which 
he  took  in  the  abolition  of  Negro  Slavery,  that  one  of  the  last 
letters  he  ever  wrote  was  addressed  to  Mr,  Wilberforce  only 
four  days  before  his  death,  exhorting  him  to  persevere  in  the 
"  glorious  enterprise"  of  effecting  the  abolition  of  the  traffic  in  the 
sinews  and  blood  of  men.  "  Go  on,"  he  writes,  "  in  the  name  of 
God,  and  in  the  power  of  his  might,  till  even  American  Slavery 
(the  idlest  that  ever  saw  the  sun)  shall  vanish  away  before  it."t 
Such  was  Mr.  Wesley's  brief,  but  strong  and  dying,  testimony 
against  Slavery :  for  it  is  believed  that  this  was  actually  the  last 
letter  he  ever  wrote ;  and  the  eminent  statesman  and  Christian 
philanthropist  to  whom  it  was  addressed,  docketed  the  letter, 
"  John  Wesley's  Last  Words."  J 

Several  able  pamphlets  and  tracts  preceded  and  followed  Mr. 
Wesley's  publication  in  1774,  which  assisted  the  good  cause ; 
but  which  we  cannot  particularize  in  this  brief  account  of  the 
Slave-Trade.  It  must  not  be  omitted,  however,  that  in  1784, 
another  able  and  zealous  advocate  of  the  Negroes  was  found  in 
the  Rev.  James  llamsay,  vicar  of  Teston,  in  Kent,  who  had  re- 
sided nineteen  years  in  the  island  of  St.  Christopher's,  where  he 
had  abundant  opportunities  of  observing  the  treatment  of  the 
Negroes,  and  had  studied  the  laws  relating  to  them.  Some  two 
or  three  years  after  his  return  to  England,  he  published  a  work 
which  he  called,  "  An  Essay  on  the  Treatment  and  Conversion 
of  African  Slaves  in  the  British  Sugar  Colonies."  Attempts 
were  made  by  interested  parties  to  answer  and  refute  the 
charges  contained  in  Mr.  Ramsay's  Essay ;  but  these  attacks 
only  served  to  call  forth  "  A  Reply  to  personal  Invectives  and 
Objections,"  by  the  same  author :  and  Captain  J.  S.  Smith, 
R.N.,  who  had  been  an  eye-witness,  nobly  came  forward  and 
corroborated  the  statements  of  Mr.  llamsay;  so  that  by  this 
controversy  the  cause  of  truth  gained  increased  sway. 

Public   attention  being   thus  in  some  degree   arrested,  the 

*  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave -Trade,"  p-  261. 

t  Wesley's  Works,  vol.  xiii.  p.  127.        J  "  Life  of  Wilberforce,"  vol.  i.  p.  297. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  00 

wrongs  of  Africa  soon  found  an  active  commiseration  among  the 
body  of  Friends,  of  whom  we  have  already  spoken.  From  this 
time  that  benevolent  Society  appears  to  have  entertained  a 
growing  desire  to  step  out  of  its  ordinary  course  in  behalf  of 
this  injured  people.  It  had  hitherto  confined  itself  to  the  keep- 
ing of  its  own  members  unpolluted  by  any  gain  from  the  oppres- 
sion of  the  Blacks.  But  it  was  now  ready  to  make  an  appeal  to 
others,  and  to  bear  a  public  testimony  in  favour  of  the  Negroes. 
Accordingly,  in  the  month  of  June,  1783,  when  a  Bill  had  been 
brought  into  the  House  of  Commons,  providing  certain  regula- 
tions with  respect  to  the  African  trade,  the  Society  of  Friends 
presented  a  petition  to  the  legislature,  praying  that  something 
might  be  done  to  ameliorate  the  condition  of  the  slaves.  This 
was  the  first  petition  which  was  ever  presented  to  parliament  in 
favour  of  the  abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade.* 

These  efforts  led  to  the  combined  exertions  of  a  few  indi- 
viduals, who  met  together  to  consult  what  steps  could  be  taken 
to  abolish  the  Slave-Trade,  and  to  liberate  the  slaves  in  the  West 
Indies,  The  first  meeting  was  held  in  July,  1783,  one  month 
after  the  Friends  had  petitioned  the  House  of  Commons;  and 
it  consisted  of  only  six  individuals ;  namely,  William  Dillwyn, 
George  Harrison,  Samuel  Hoare,  Thomas  Knowles,  John  Lloyd, 
Joseph  Woods.  To  promote  the  object  which  they  had  in  view, 
they  conceived  it  necessary  that  the  public  mind  should  be 
enlightened  respecting  it.  They  had  recourse,  therefore,  to  the 
public  papers ;  to  which  each  member  in  turn  was  appointed  to 
write.  Several  articles,  consequently,  appeared  in  two  of  the 
London,  and  in  many  of  the  provincial,  newspapers.  The  next 
year,  (178i,)  they  began  to  print  books  on  the  subject.  The 
first  was  from  the  pen  of  Joseph  Woods,  one  of  the  Committee, 
It  was  entitled,  "Thoughts  on  the  Slavery  of  the  Negroes;" 
and  contained  a  sober  and  dispassionate  appeal  to  the  reason  of 
all,  without  offering  offence  to  the  prejudices  of  any.  It  was 
distributed  at  the  expense  of  the  Association,  and  proved  to  be 
highly  useful  to  the  cause  which  it  was  intended  to  promote.t 

About  the  same  time,  the  Society  of  Friends,  in  their  collec- 
tive capacity,  published  a  pamphlet  exposing  the  horrors  of 
Slavery ;  copies  of  which  were  sent  to  the  king,  the  queen,  and 
most  of  the  members  of  parliament.  This  work  was  entitled, 
"  The  Case  of  our  Fellow-creatures,  the  oppressed  Africans,  re- 
spectfully recommended  to  the  serious  Consideration  of  the 
Legislature  of  Great  Britain.     By  the  People  called  Quakers." 

*  Clarkson's  "  History  of  the  Slave-Trade,"  p.  93.  t  Ihid.  j).  9(i. 


56 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


Two  thousand  copies  of  this  pamphlet  were  printed :  these  were 
soon  disposed  of;  and  shortly  after  orders  were  given  by  the 
same  body  of  Christians  for  the  reprinting  and  circulation  of 
ten  thousand  additional  copies  of  "  the  Case/^ 

In  the  following  year,  (1785,)  the  Association  continued  their 
exertions  as  before,  and  the  public  attention  was  again  called 
to  the  subject  by  Beuezet's  "Warning  to  Great  Britain  and  her 
Colonies  on  the  calamitous  State  of  the  enslaved  Negroes/* 
Copies  of  this  pamphlet  were  sent  by  the  Society  of  Friends  to 
magistrates,  clergymen,  and  ministers  of  all  denominations,  and 
to  the  masters  of  all  the  great  schools,  and  several  academies. 
In  this  year,  this  little  band  of  philanthropists  was  strengthened 
by  the  addition  of  David  Barclay,  an  active  member  of  the 
Society  of  Friends,  who  soon  gave  practical  proof  of  his  abhor- 
rence of  Slavery  and  his  love  of  liberty :  for,  on  becoming  pos- 
sessed of  an  estate  in  Jamaica,  on  which  were  more  than  thirty 
slaves,  he  very  honourably  emancipated  them  all.  In  this  same 
year,  a  public  meeting  was  held  in  the  town  of  Bridgewater, 
when  the  mayor,  the  Rev.  G.  White,  and  some  other  gentle- 
men, advocated  the  cause  of  Abolition.  The  result  of  this  meet- 
ing was,  that  a  petition  to  the  British  Parliament  from  the 
inhabitants  of  Bridgewater,  in  favour  of  the  Abolition  of  the 
Slave-Trade,  was  agreed  upon,  and  was  presented  to  the  House 
of  Commons  by  the  Honourable  A.  Poulet  and  Alexander 
Hood,  Esq.,  the  members  for  the  tov.n.  This  was  the  second 
petition  that  was  drawn  up  respecting  this  important  subject. 

Thus  this  little  Association,  though  "  small  and  feeble  was 
its  day,"  was  nevertheless  silently  doing  a  great  work ;  and  by 
not  being  "  weary  in  well  doing,"  but  continuing  their  publica- 
tions and  other  means,  they  had  already  effected  a  happy  change 
in  the  minds  of  many  influential  individuals,  and  won  them  to 
the  support  of  their  great  undertaking.  Every  year  now 
brought  with  it  some  fresh  and  able  friends ;  whereby  their 
faith  was  strengthened,  their  hope  encouraged,  and  their  exer- 
tions stimulated. 

But  the  year  1785  was  perhaps  most  remarkable  on  account  of 
the  publication  of  a  pamphlet  by  Thomas  Clarkson,  to  whom,  while 
pursuing  his  studies  at  Cambridge,  "the  Slave-Trade"  was  given 
as  the  subject  of  an  Essay  which  gained  one  of  the  University 
prizes.  The  origin  of  this  important  event  was  as  follows  : — Dr. 
Peckard,  then  Vice -Chancellor  of  the  University,  had  distin- 
guished himself  in  the  early  part  of  his  life  by  certain  publications 
on  the  intermediate  state  of  the  soul,  and  by  others  in  favour  of 
civil  and  religious  liberty,  and  had  read  with  attention  and  inter- 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE. 


57 


est  the  publications  of  the  Association  against  the  Slave-Trade. 
When  it  devolved  upon  him  to  pi-each  a  sermon  before  the 
University,  he  powerfully  and  eloquently  exposed  the  evils  of 
Slavery,  and  denounced  it  as  a  system  utterly  at  variance  with 
every  Christian  precept.  As  he  was  then  considering  what  sub- 
ject he  should  select  for  a  Latin  prize-essay  for  the  Senior 
Bachelors,  it  occurred  to  him  that  none  would  be  more  suitable 
than  some  point  connected  with  Slavery  :  he  therefore  fixed  upon 
the  question,  "  Is  it  right  to  make  slaves  of  others  against  their 
will?'^     Only  a  few  weeks  were  allowed  for  the  composition. 

Clarkson,  having  in  the  preceding  year  gained  the  first  prize  for  the  Latin 
dissertation,  entered  with  all  the  ardoiir  of  rival  scholarship  on  the  subject,  deter- 
mined, if  possible,  to  sustain  his  reputation.  To  obtain  all  the  information  he 
could  upon  Slavery,  he  repaired  to  London  ;  and,  having  pm-chased  Benezet's 
"  Historical  Account  of  Guinea,"  with  such  other  books  bearing  oa  the  question  as 
he  could  then  procure,  he  retiu-ned  to  Cambridge,  and  commenced  his  task. 
Little  did  he  imagine  what  would  be  the  result.  Instead  of  the  pleasure  he  had 
anticipated  in  the  skilful  arrangement  of  his  materials  to  secure  success  in  his 
hterary  contest,  his  mind  was  continually  on  the  rack  by  the  successive  narrations, 
in  the  course  of  his  reading,  of  oppression  the  most  villanous  and  cruel.  "  It  is 
impossible,"  he  remarks  in  his  "  History  of  Slavery,"  "  to  imagine  the  severe  anguish 
which  the  composition  of  this  Essay  cost  me.  All  the  pleasure  I  had  promised 
myself  from  the  contest  was  exchanged  for  pain  by  the  astounding  facts  that  were 
now  continually  before  me.  It  was  one  gloomy  subject  from  morning  till  night. 
In  the  day  I  was  agitated  and  uneasy ;  in  the  night  I  had  little  or  no  rest.  I  was 
so  overwhelmed  with  grief,  that  I  sometimes  never  closed  my  eyes  during  the 
whole  night ;  and  I  no  longer  regai'ded  my  Essay  as  a  mere  trial  for  literary 
distinction.  My  great  desire  now  was  to  produce  a  work  that  should  call  forth  a 
vigorous  public  effort  to  redress  the  wrongs  of  injured  Africa." 

Bearing  this  idea  constantly  in  mind,  and  being  extremely  anxious  that  no 
thought  that  was  connected  with  the  subject  should  escape  unrecorded,  Clarkson 
always  slept  with  a  light  in  his  room,  so  that  he  might  rise  at  any  time  in  the 
night,  and  put  down  any  thing  that  occurred  to  his  mind.  An  Essay  composed 
under  such  intensely  excited  feelings,  and  with  such  great  care,  could  hardly  fail  to 
be  successful.  On  completing  it,  Clarkson  handed  it  to  the  Vice-Chancellor,  and 
was  again  honoured  with  the  first  prize.  But  neither  his  literary  reputation, 
though  he  was  by  no  means  insensible  to  this,  nor  the  time  which  elapsed 
from  the  period  when  he  finished  his  Essay  to  the  day  when  its  merits  were 
adjudged,  could  divert  his  attention  from  the  all-absorbing  subject.  His  desire  to 
expose  the  cruelties  of  Slavery  abated  not.  After  reading  his  Essay  in  the  Senate- 
house,  in  June,  1785,  as  is  the  usual  practice,  when  the  interest  in  such  composi- 
tions commonly  subsides,  the  subject  continued  to  engross  all  his  thoughts.  "  I 
could  not,"  he  says,  "  divest  myself  of  the  feeling  that  it  was  the  duty  of  some  one 
to  expose  the  horrors  of  this  bloody  traffic.  It  grew  upon  me  from  day  to  day, 
and  I  could  no  longer  keep  my  mind  at  rest."  * 

It  will  be  seen,  then,  that  though,  previously  to  Clarkson's 
Essay,  much  had  been  done,  but  little  good  comparatively  had 

*  Taylor's  "  BiograjDhical  Sketch  of  Thomas  Clarkson." 


58  WESTERN    COAST    OF    ATRrCA. 

been  the  result.  Some  more  decided  step  required  to  be  taken 
to  briug  the  facts  of  the  case  fully  before  the  pubhc.  An  indi- 
vidual was  needed  who  would  boldly  and  incessantly  labour  in 
the  work.  Such  an  one  was  now  raised  up  by  a  gracious  Pro- 
vidence in  the  person  of  Clarkson,  on  whose  mind  a  growing 
conviction  fastened  itself,  tliat  a  vigorous  personal  effort  ought 
immediately  to  be  made.  His  feelings  on  repairing  to  London, 
after  having  read  his  Essay  before  the  University  Senate,  he 
thus  touchingly  describes :  '*  During  my  journey,  the  melan- 
choly subject  was  not  a  moment  absent  from  my  thoughts.  I 
became  several  times  seriously  affected  on  the  road.  I  occa- 
sionally stopped  my  horse,  dismounted,  and  walked.  I  tried 
frequently  to  persuade  myself  that  the  statements  in  my  Essay 
could  not  be  true.  But  the  more  I  reflected  on  the  authorities 
on  which  they  were  founded,  the  more  constrained  was  I  to  give 
them  credit.  I  sat  down  disconsolate  on  the  turf  by  the  road- 
side; and  here  it  forcibly  occurred  to  me,  that  if  the  statements 
I  had  made  were  facts,  it  was  high  time  that  something  should 
be  done  to  put  an  end  to  such  cruelties. ^^ 

This  was  in  the  summer  of  1785.  In  the  autumn  this  con- 
viction became,  if  possible,  deeper.  The  Abolition  question  was 
the  sole  object  of  his  thoughts  :  w  aking  or  sleeping,  he  scarcely 
ever  forgot  it.  He  sometimes  walked  into  the  woods,  that 
he  might  meditate  on  it  in  solitude.  But  there  the  question 
still  recurred,  "Are  these  things  true?"  and  the  reply  was  the 
same :  "  They  are :"  and  the  same  inference  was  drawn  :  "  Then 
surely  some  person  should  interfere.'^  At  length,  with  a 
modest  hesitation  arising  from  his  being  "  a  young  man  of  onl}'' 
twenty-four,"  he  embarked  on  his  glorious  career  by  translating 
his  Essay  into  English,  and  enriching  it  with  such  additional 
facts  and  illustrations  as  had  occurred  to  him  since  he  first  com- 
posed it, — facts  which  were  the  most  likely  to  impress  the  public 
mind  with  the  abominations  practised  in  the  horrid  traffic. 
The  work  Mas  printed,  and  entitled,  "  An  Essay  on  the  Slavery 
and  Commerce  of  the  Human  Species,  particularly  the  African, 
translated  from  a  Latin  Dissertation,  which  was  honoured  with 
the  First  Prize  in  the  University  of  Cambridge,  for  the  year 
1785  :  with  Additions."  It  Avas  ushered  into  the  world,  as  he 
himself  tells  us,  "  in  the  month  of  June,  1786,  or  in  about  a  year 
after  it  had  been  read  in  the  Senate-house  in  the  first  form." 

This  work  contained  a  much  more  able  exposure  of  the  evils 
connected  with  the  African  Slave-Trade  than  v/as  to  be  found 
in  any  former  one.  It  was  welcomed  by  all  the  friends  of 
liberty  and  humanity ;  and  Clarkson  soon  found,  by  the  nume- 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  59 

rous  invitations  which  he  received  from  different  families,  that 
there  were  some  who  took  a  hvely  interest  in  tbe  welfare  of  the 
despised  and  oppressed  Negro. 

While  the  Essay  was  making  its  way,  and  bringing  many 
new  friends  to  the  cause  of  Abolition,  Clarkson  was  using  his 
utmost  efforts  to  acquire  more  knowledge  on  the  subject,  that 
he  might  the  more  effectually  expose  its  evils.  He  remarks, 
"I  considered,  lastly,  that  if  I  took  up  the  question,  I  must 
devote  myself  wholly  to  it.  I  was  sensible  that  a  little  labour 
now  and  then  would  be  inadequate  to  the  purpose,  and  that, 
where  the  interests  of  so  many  thousand  persons  were  likely  to 
be  affected,  constant  exertion  would  be  necessary.  I  felt  cer- 
tain that  if  ever  the  matter  were  to  be  taken  up,  there  could  be 
no  hope  of  success,  except  it  should  be  taken  up  by  some  one 
who  would  make  it  an  object  or  business  of  his  life.^''  This 
Mr.  Clarkson  emphatically  did,  though  not  without  due  delibe- 
ration. Dining  one  day  with  some  friends  of  the  cause  at  the 
house  of  Sir  Charles  Middleton,  then  Comptroller  of  the  Navy, 
and  afterwards  Lord  Barham,  he  avowed  that  he  was  ready 
cheerfully  to  relinquish  all  other  pursuits  and  prospects,  and  to 
devote  himself  entirely  to  the  cause  of  Abolition.  This  declara- 
tion was  made  in  the  presence  of  several  gentlemen,  all  of  whom 
applauded  it  highly,  and  promised  to  further  the  great  object  by 
every  means  in  their  power. 

Clarkson,  though  he  had  not  made  this  avowal  inconsider- 
ately, was  nevertheless  the  next  morning  "  a  little  uneasy,"  and 
questioned  whether  he  had  deliberated  sufficiently  to  be  able  to 
fulfil  the  pledge  which  he  had  given  to  the  company  on  the 
preceding  day.  He  therefore  determined  to  give  the  subject  a 
full  consideration,  and  to  balance  every  thing  on  both  sides  of 
the  question.  For  this  purpose  he  took  a  walk  to  the  favourite 
place  of  his  meditations, — the  woods  ;  and  having  reached  their 
solitude,  he  reviewed  the  whole  matter.  He  derived  encou- 
ragement, on  the  one  hand,  from  his  interview  v.'ith  Sir  Charles 
Middleton,  ]\I.P.,  which  opened  to  him  a  new  source  of  informa- 
tion and  knowledge  on  the  Slave-Trade,  Sir  Charles  being 
connected  with  the  naval  department  of  the  public  service. 
Clarkson  could  also  calculate  on  the  assistance  and  support  of 
Dr.  Porteus  and  Lord  Scarsdale,  both  of  whom  were  members 
of  the  House  of  Lords.  He  had  likewise  secured  the  co-opera- 
tion of  Mr.  Langton,  who  had  an  extensive  acquaintance  with 
members  of  both  Houses  of  the  legislature ;  and  he  could 
depend  upon  Granville  Sharp,  J.  Phillips,  Ramsay,  Dillwyn, 
and  the  little  Committee  to  vthich  he  belonged,  as  Avell  as  on 
the  whole  Society  of  Friends,  and  some  of  his   own  personal 


60  WESTERN    COA.ST    OF    AFRICA. 

acquaintance.  On  the  other  hand,  he  had  been  designed  for 
the  Church,  had  ah'eady  advanced  as  far  as  deacon's  orders  in 
it :  his  prospects  were  brilliant,  and  the  idea  of  sacrificing  them 
all  staggered  him  not  a  little.  He  felt,  too,  a  thirst  after  worldly 
interests  and  honours,  which  he  could  not  at  once  extinguish. 
He  then  asked  himself  seriously,  "  Am  I  prepared  to  make  the 
sacrifices  that  will  be  required,  and  to  endure  the  hardships  that 
will  probably  have  to  be  borne  ?  And  is  there  any  chance  that 
my  efforts  will  be  successful?"  He  "was  more  than  two  hours 
in  solitude  under  this  painful  conflict:"  but  at  length  he 
yielded,  grace  triumphed,  divine  power  was  imparted,  and  he 
made  up  his  mind  according  to  the  pledge  he  had  given, — "  not 
because  I  saw  any  reasonable  prospect  of  success  in  my  new 
undertaking,  but  in  obedience,  I  believe,  to  a  higher  Power." 
He  adds,  "  I  can  say,  that  both  on  the  moment  of  this  resolu- 
tion, and  for  some  time  afterwards,  I  had  more  sublime  and 
happy  feelings  than  at  any  former  period  of  my  life." 

In  Mr.  Clarkson  we  have  a  fine  illustration  of  Christian  phi- 
lanthropy,— that  charity  which  "seeketh  not  her  own,"  He 
had,  on  other  occasions,  as  well  as  in  the  instance  which  thus 
determined  his  public  career,  obtained  sufficient  academical 
honours  to  open  before  him  the  high  road  to  further  fame ;  and 
he  had  at  his  command  private  property  enough  to  set  him  at 
liberty  from  any  necessity  of  taking  up  the  labours  of  a  learned 
profession  as  the  means  of  his  support.  Having  a  higher  ambi- 
tion than  that  which  is  content  to  receive  honour  from  men,  he 
was  at  once  determined  in  the  one  object  of  his  disinterested 
pursuit, — one  which  was  of  sufficient  interest  to  demand  all  the 
energies  of  his  soul,  while  it  would  most  assuredly  be  blessed 
with  "  the  honour  which  cometh  from  God  only." 

Being  fully  decided,  Clarkson  now  entered  on  his  work  with 
renewed  zeal.  He  visited  every  person  that  he  could  find  in 
and  around  London  who  had  been  in  Africa,  or  in  the  West- 
Indian  colonies,  or  in  any  situation  which  gave  them  an  insight 
into  the  Slave-Trade.  He  boarded  all  the  vessels  that  had  been 
engaged  in  that  traffic,  and  inspected  the  wretched  apartments 
in  which  the  slaves  had  been  confined  during  the  voyage.  In 
short,  he  devoted  his  life  to  waging  an  implacable  war  with  the 
huge  monster  of  Slavery.  The  evidence  which  he  collected,  and 
brought  before  a  Committee  formed  to  obtain  the  Abolition  of 
the  trade,  drew  the  attention  of  Mr.  Wilberforce,  and  secured 
at  once  the  services  of  that  great  man,  whose  subsequent  life 
was  devoted  to  the  cause  of  liberty,  whose  dying  moments  were 
cheered  by  its  triumphs,  and  whose  name  M'ill  be  immortalized 
in  connexion  with  its  history. 


THE    SL.WE-TRAUE.  61 

The  first  meeting  of  this  Committee  was  held  at  the  house  of 
Mr.  Wilberforce ;  and  there  were  present,  besides  Mr.  Clarkson, 
the  Hon.  John  Vilhers,  Mr.  Powj's,  Sir  Charles  Middleton,  Sir 
Eichard  Hill,  Mr.  Granville  Sharp,  Mr.  Ramsay,  and  Dr. 
Gregory.  After  this,  several  friends  of  the  Abolition  met  once 
a  week ;  and  they  were  now  of  opinion  that  the  time  was 
approaching  when  they  might  petition  with  good  effect :  they 
were  only  waiting  for  Mr.  Wilberforce  to  give  his  word  that  he 
would  introduce  the  subject  in  Parliament.  Mr.  Langton  deli- 
cately hinted  this,  adding  that  no  one  could  do  it  with  such 
good  effect :  on  which  IMr.  Wilberforce  pledged  himself  that  he 
would  do  so  when  the  proper  time  arrived,— a  pledge  which  all 
were  happy  to  receive,  and  which  he  nobly  performed. 

There  was  now  no  difficulty  in  forming  a  Committee  to  bring 
the  evils  of  Slavery  more  fully  before  the  British  nation,  and  to 
organize  a  Society  for  its  entire  Abolition  :  an  object  which 
Clarkson  had  regarded  as  of  great  importance.  Accordingly,  on 
May  22 d,  1787,  he  had  the  happiness  to  see  it  formed.  The 
names  of  the  individuals  composing  it  were  the  twelve  follow- 
ing : — Granville  Sharp,  William  Dillwyn,  Samuel  Hoare,  George 
Harrison,  John  Lloyd,  Joseph  Woods,  Thomas  Clarkson,  Rich- 
ard Phillips,  John  Boston,  Joseph  Hooper,  James  Phillips, 
Philip  Sansom.  All  these  were  present :  and  Granville  Sharp, 
who  stands  at  the  head  of  the  list,  and  whom  Clarkson  styles 
"  the  father  of  the  cause  in  England,^'  was  called  to  the  chair. 
The  next  five  on  the  list  had  been  members  of  the  previous 
Association ;  and  the  whole  Committee,  except  three, — Clark- 
son, Sharj),  and  Sansom, — were  members  of  the  Society  of 
Friends.  Several  other  benevolent  and  distinguished  persons 
belonged  to  the  Abolition  Society,  though  they  were  not  mem- 
bers of  the  Committee. 

The  Abolition  of  Slavery,  and  the  Abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade, 
were  two  distinct  things  ;  and  as  the  former  evil  owed  its  exist- 
ence to  the  latter,  it  was  thought  desirable  to  commence  opera- 
tions against  the  traftic.  Almost  their  first  resolution  pledged 
them  to  circulate,  more  extensively  than  had  yet  been  done, 
information  on  this  subject.  They  therefore  published  a  "  Sum- 
mary View  of  the  Slave-Trade,  and  the  probable  Consequences 
of  its  Abolition,"  besides  several  other  powerful  tracts.  It  was 
not  enough  for  this  little  band  of  philanthropists  to  know  that 
the  air  of  England  was  too  pure  to  be  breathed  but  by  freemen, 
and  that  a  slave  cannot  touch  our  soil  but  immediately  his 
chains  fall  off.     No ;  though 

"  That 's  noble,  and  bespeaks  a  nation  proud," 


62  WESTERN    COAST    OF    ArillCA. 

yet  that  was  uot  enough.  Their  object  was  to  cut  ofr  any  far- 
ther suppHes  from  Africa  for  the  West-India  markets,  to  block 
up  the  impure  stream  at  the  fountain-head,  to  dig  up  the  poi- 
sonous tree  by  the  root,  to  destroy  the  monster,  and  lay  the 
giant  low :  it  was  to  sever  the  head  from  the  trunk ;  for  they 
conceived  that,  on  the  abolishing  of  the  trade  in  slaves,  the 
death  of  Slavery  must  inevitably  follow. 

But  an  object  so  great,  and  the  removal  of  evils  so  numerous 
and  complicated,  were  not  expected  to  be  accomplished  without 
steady  and  united  effort,  combined  and  untiring  perseverance. 
The  trade  in  slaves  was  not  confined  to  a  single  locality,  or  to 
one  or  two  parts  of  the  continent  of  Africa.  It  began  at  the 
river  Senegal,  and  continued  winding  with  the  coast  through  its 
several  geographical  divisions  for  more  than  three  thousand 
miles.  It  Avas  not  merely  by  the  inhabitants  skirting  this  long 
line  of  coast  that  the  supplies  were  furnished :  but  towns  and 
villages  many  hundred  miles  inland  were  ransacked,  and  their 
indwellers  led  captive  to  the  sea-side,  where  vessels  were  waiting 
to  carry  them  across  the  Atlantic.  Besides,  this  species  of  trade 
had  existed  for  nearly  three  hundred  years ;  it  was  interwoven 
into  the  system  of  commerce,  and  was  an  important  item  in  the 
revenue  of  nations.  The  planters  and  African  merchants  vigor- 
ously exerted  themselves  to  oppose  its  annihilation  :  thousands, 
deeply  interested  in  its  continuance,  lifted  up  their  voice  against 
its  abolition.  Looking,  then,  at  these  as  some  of  the  evils  and 
difficulties  in  connexion  with  the  Slave-Trade,  it  "  may  be  con- 
sidered, like  the  fabulous  hydra,  to  have  had  a  hundred  heads, 
every  one  of  which  it  was  necessary  to  cut  off  before  it  could  be 
subdued.  And  as  none  but  Hercules  was  fitted  to  conquer  the 
one,  so  nothing  less  than  extraordinary  prudence,  courage, 
labour,  and  patience  could  overcome  the  other." 

But  the  Committee  was  now  formed;  and,  two  days  after  its 
formation,  its  members  met  again  to  promote  the  object  of  its 
institution;  and  on  June  12th  its  fourth  meeting  was  held. 
While  the  Committee  was  prosecuting  its  labours  in  London, 
Clarkson  was  journeying  from  one  part  of  the  kingdom  to 
another,  Adsiting  Bristol,  Liverpool,  Manchester,  and  other 
places,  to  collect  further  information  upon  the  subject.  Many 
pamphlets  and  letters,  illustrative  of  the  evils  of  Slavery,  were 
now  printed,  and  distributed  gratuitously  throughout  the 
country.  The  subject  having  at  length  excited  general  atten- 
tion, public  meetings  were  held,  and  many  petitions  were  sent  to 
Parliament,  praying  for  the  abolition  of  a  traffic  which  had  so 
long  disgraced  our  national  character. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  63 

The  time  had  now  arrived  for  tlie  topic  to  be  discussed  in  the 
British  Parhament ;  which  was  accordingly  done  on  May  9th, 
1788,  Mr.  Pitt,  in  the  unavoidable  absence  of  Mr.  Wilberforce 
through  indisposition,  introduced  the  subject  in  the  House  of 
Commons.  He  was  ably  supported  by  Mr.  Fox,  Mr.  Burke, 
Sir  W.  Dolben,  Mr.  Whitbread,  and  several  others.  The 
Motion  passed  unanimously :  but,  as  it  only  went  to  pledge  the 
House  that  the  Slave-Trade  should  be  investigated  the  next 
sessions,  the  result  could  scarcely  have  been  otherwise.  "It 
was  supposed  that  this  would  have  terminated  the  parliamentary 
discussion  of  the  subject  for  that  session ;  but  Sir  W.  Dolben,  a 
warm  friend  of  Abolition,  desirous  of  at  once  abolishing  some  of 
the  cruelties  practised  in  the  trade,  moved,  on  May  22d,  for 
leave  to  bring  in  a  Bill,  that  the  number  of  slaves  brought  in 
the  vessels  should  be  in  proportion  to  their  tonnage.  The 
Motion  was  seconded  by  Mr.  Whitbread,  and  ably  supported  by 
several  members ;  and  leave  was  given  to  bring  in  the  Bill. 
The  parties  at  Liverpool  and  Bristol  now  became  alarmed,  and 
resolved  to  oppose  the  measure  with  all  their  power.  They  got 
up  several  petitions  in  favour  of  the  trade ;  and  they  so  far  suc- 
ceeded as  to  obtain  leave  to  be  heard  by  counsel  at  the  bar  of 
the  House  in  its  defence."  But,  notwithstanding  this,  the 
Motion  was  carried  by  a  large  majority. 

"The  Bill  was  carried  to  the  Lords  on  June  18th;  and  its 
opponents  had  the  audacity  again  to  apply  to  be  heard  by 
counsel,  though  they  had  so  signally  failed  in  the  Commons. 
Leave  was  granted  them,  and  the  same  witnesses  were  exa- 
mined ;  but,  as  the  same  searching  queries  were  not  put  to  them, 
the  impression  was  less  favourable  for  Abolition.  The  debate 
was  protracted  for  several  days ;  the  Bill  was  violently  opposed, 
and  it  was  feared  by  its  friends  that  it  would  have  been  lost  for 
the  session.  At  length,  however,  it  was  carried,  and  on  the  last 
day  of  the  session  it  received  the  royal  assent."* 

Thus  it  will  appear  that  though  a  great  impression  had  been 
made  on  the  public  mind  generally  in  favour  of  the  poor 
Africans,  there  were  many  both  in  and  out  of  Parliament  who 
contended  for  the  continuance  of  the  disgraceful  traffic.  Nor 
did  this  opposition  easily  subside ;  for  "  when  Mr.  Wilberforce 
had,  with  matchless  powers  of  eloquence,  sustained  by  a  body  of 
the  clearest  evidence,  unveiled  all  the  horrors  of  a  traffic  which, 
had  it  been  attended  with  neither  fraud  nor  cruelty  of  any  kind, 
was  confessedly,  from  beginning  to  end,  not  a  commerce,  but  a 

*  Taylor's  "  Biographical  Sketch  of  Thomas  Clarkson." 


64  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

crime,  he  was  defeated  by  large  majorities,  year  after  year. 
When,  at  length,  for  the  first  time,  in  1804,  he  carried  the 
Abolition  Bill  through  the  Commons,  the  Lords  immediately 
threw  it  out ;  and  the  next  year  it  was  again  lost  in  the  Com- 
mons. All  this  happened  while  the  opinion  of  the  country  was, 
with  the  single  exception  of  persons  having  West-India  con- 
nexions, unanimous  in  favour  of  the  measure.  At  different 
times  there  was  the  strongest  and  most  general  expression  of 
public  feeling  upon  the  subject;  and  it  was  a  question  upon 
which  no  two  men  endowed  with  reason  could  possibly  differ ; 
because,  admitting  whatever  could  be  alleged  about  the  profits 
of  the  traffic,  it  was  not  denied  that  their  gain  proceeded  from 
pillage  or  murder.  Add  to  all  this,  that  the  enormous  evil  con- 
tinued to  disgrace  the  country  and  its  legislature  for  twenty 
years,  although  the  voice  of"  nearly  "  every  statesman  of  any 
eminence  was  strenuously  lifted  up  against  it,  and  although 
every  press  and  every  pulpit  in  the  island  habitually  cried  it 
down."* 

But  the  day  of  redemption  was  drawing  nigh;  and  the 
friends  and  advocates  of  the  Abolition  ceased  not  their  endea- 
vours:  they  were  not  yet  "weary  in  well-doing;"  nor  did  they 
doubt  of  success,  though  they  had  been  defeated  again  and 
again.  The  indefatigable  Clarkson,  therefore,  "took  another 
journey"  to  collect  fresh  matters  of  fact;  that,  in  case  the 
House  of  Lords  should  insist  upon  hearing  evidence  on  the 
general  question,  he  might  be  prepared  to  furnish  them  with 
it :  for  the  point  Avas  now  almost  certain  of  being  carried 
in  the  next  session  in  the  House  of  Commons.  Accordingly, 
on  June  10th,  1806,  the  subject  was  again  introduced  in  the 
Lower  House  by  Mr.  Fox,  and  in  the  Upper  House,  on  the 
24th  of  the  same  month,  by  Lord  Grenville.  The  Resolu- 
tion which  was  moved  in  both  Houses  successively  was  to  the 
following  eff'ect :  "  That  this  House,  considering  the  African 
Slave-Trade  to  be  contrary  to  the  principles  of  justice,  humanity^ 
and  sound  policy,  will,  with  all  practicable  expedition,  take 
efi'ectual  measures  for  the  Abolition  of  the  said  Trade,  in  such 
manner,  and  at  such  period,  as  may  be  deemed  advisable." 
This  Motion  led  to  a  lengthy  debate  in  both  Houses.  Its  prin- 
cipal opponents  in  the  House  of  Commons  were  General  Tarle- 
ton,  Lord  Castlereagh,  General  Gascoyne,  and  Sir  W.  Young ; 
and,  in  the  House  of  Lords,  Lord  Hawkesbury  and  the  earl  of 
Westmoreland  were  the  two  greatest  opponents.     The  advocates 

*  Lord  Brougham. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADl 


65 


for  Abolition  in  the  Lower  House,  in  addition  to  the  illustrious 
names  of  Fox  and  Wilberforce,  were  Sir  Ralph  Milbank,  Mr. 
Francis,  Sir  Samuel  Romilly,  Lord  Henry  Petty,  Sir  John 
Newport,  Mr.  Canning,  and  Mr.  Smith;  and,  in  the  Upper 
House,  besides  Lord  Grenville,  who  introduced  the  Motion,  its 
supporters  were  the  bishop  of  London,  the  Lord  Chancellor, 
the  bishop  of  St.  Asaph,  Lord  Holland,  the  earl  of  Suffolk, 
Earl  Stanhope,  Earl  Grosvenor,  Lord  Ellenborough,  and  Earl 
Spencer. 

The  opponents  to  the  measure  had  a  variety  of  objections, 
which  they  hesitated  not  to  urge.  The  Motion  was  considered 
as  ill-timed,  and  likely  to  prove  injurious  to  the  trade  of  Liver- 
pool. It  was  asserted  to  be  an  act  of  injustice  to  the  African 
merchants,  especially  the  planters  and  others  holding  property 
in  the  West  Indies.  It  was  alleged,  too,  that  tlie  revenue  of 
the  country  would  be  considerably  affected  by  the  Motion. 
Some  contended  for  the  continuance  of  this  iniquitous  traffic  on 
account  of  its  antiquity,  and  actually  quoted  from  the  sacred 
volume  in  support  of  its  perpetuation.  Nay,  they  coolly  urged, 
that  it  was  an  act  of  kindness  to  the  Africans  to  carry  them  to 
the  West  Indies,  inasmuch  as  they  were  so  totally  degraded  in 
their  moral  and  mental  faculties,  that  nothing  could  cure  them, 
being  evidently  doomed  by  nature  to  Slavery :  and  they  com- 
plained of  the  harsh  language  which  some  of  the  advocates  of 
the  Abolition  used  in  denouncing  the  Trade. 

But  these  extraordinary  views  of  the  case  were  ably  met  and 
combated  by  the  friends  of  the  oppressed  Negro.  As  to  its 
being  ill-timed,  the  bishop  of  St.  Asaph,  in  the  Upper  House, 
commenced  by  observing,  "My  Lords,  I  cannot  but  assent  to 
every  part  of  the  Resolution  now  before  your  Lordships  at  any 
season  of  the  year,  or  any  day  of  the  year,  or  any  hour  of  the 
day."  Mr.  Francis  said,  "  The  members  for  Liverpool  were  at 
liberty  to  ask  for  compensation,  but  he  for  one  would  never 
grant  it,  for  the  loss  of  a  trade  which  had  been  decLared  to  be 
contrary  to  humanity  and  justice.'^  And  as  to  its  antiquity, 
the  bishop  of  London  contended  that  this  afforded  no  argument 
for  its  continuance.  Such  a  mode  of  defence,  he  observed, 
would  prevent  the  removal  of  any  evil.  It  would  justify  the 
practice  of  the  Chinese,  who  have  for  many  hundred  years 
exposed  their  infants  in  the  streets  to  perish.  It  would  justify 
piracy ;  for  that  practice  existed  long  before  we  knew  any  thing 
of  the  African  Slave-Trade.  Besides,  as  Mr.  Smith,  in  a  previ- 
ous debate  upon  the  Abolition,  in  replying  to  the  antiquity  of 
Slavery,   very  forcibly   remarked,    "Because    a    practice    had 


6G  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

existed,  did  it  necessarily  follow  that  it  was  just?  By  this 
argument  every  crime  might  be  defended  from  the  time  of 
Cain!" 

The  assertion  that  scripture  countenanced  this  ungodly 
traffic,  was  most  ably  refuted  in  both  Houses ;  and  it  was  pro- 
nounced to  be  "  one  of  the  greatest  libels  that  was  ever  pub- 
lished against  the  Christian  religion."  Both  Mr,  Wilberforce 
in  the  Commons,  and  two  noble  Lords  in  the  Upper  House, 
fearlessly  and  very  justly  placed  the  slave-dealers  where  the 
apostle  places  them;  namely,  with  "man- stealers,"  with  the 
"murderer  of  fathers  and  of  mothers,"  and  with  the  most  pro- 
fane criminals  upon  earth.  Lord  H.  Petty  rescued  the  slandered 
Africans  from  the  imputation  of  mental  inferiority,  by  showing 
that  they  had  proved  to  be  good  soldiers  and  non-commissioned 
officers ;  and  that  they  had  been  placed  in  situations  requiring 
fidelity,  intelligence,  and  courage,  and  had  fully  answered  the 
expectations  of  those  who  thought  the  most  favourably  of  them. 
And  then,  lastly,  as  to  the  "hard  words"  which  some  of  the 
advocates  of  Abolition  had  applied  to  the  Slave-Trade,  and  of 
which  the  opponents  to  Abolition  complained,  such  as  "  robbery, 
rapine,  and  mm^der ;"  it  was  contended  that  there  was  no  rea- 
son to  recall  any  of  those  epithets ;  for  they  were  the  most 
appropriate  to  the  system  which  they  designated.  It  was 
proved  that  Mr.  Bryan  Edwards,  himself  interested  in  the 
Slave-Trade,  had,  in  a  speech  in  the  House  of  Assembly  of 
Jamaica,  designated  it  "  a  system  of  rapine,  robbery,  and  mur- 
der:"  and  Lord  H.  Petty  well  remarked,  "  I  wish  tbey  who  com- 
plain of  these  hard  words  would  reserve  their  indignation  for 
those  who  are  guilty  of  the  acts,  instead  of  visiting  it  on  those 
who  only  do  their  duty  in  describing  them."* 

After  many  able  speeches  in  support  of  the  Resolution,  it  was 
triumphantly  and  gloriously  carried  in  the  House  of  Commons 
by  a  majority  of  99;  there  being  for  the  Motion  114,  and 
against  it  only  15.  It  also  passed  the  House  of  Lords  by  a 
majority  of  41  to  20. 

Encouraged  by  this  moral  ^dctory,  the  Abolition  Committee 
and  the  other  friends  of  the  oppressed  Negro  received  fresh 
strength  and  spirit ;  for  it  was  now  almost  universally  believed, 
in  consequence  of  what  had  already  taken  place,  that  the  Slave- 
Trade  had  received  its  death- wound,  and  that  the  hateful  system 
could  not  long  survive.  At  length  the  memorable  session  of 
1807  arrived;  and  now  a  Bill  called  "An  Act  for  the  Abolition 

*  Hansard's  "  Parlianientarv  Debates." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  67 

of  the  Slave-Trade "  was  introduced  into  Parliament ;  and, 
contrary  to  the  practice  hitherto  adopted,  it  was  first  brought 
forward  in  the  House  of  Lords.  Lord  Grenville  opened  the 
debate  with  a  very  luminous  speech ;  and,  the  question  being 
called  for  at  four  o'clock  in  the  morning,  it  appeared  that  the 
personal  votes  and  proxies  in  favour  of  the  Motion  amounted  to 
100,  and  those  against  it  to  36.  Thus  passed  the  Upper  House 
the  first  Bill  in  England  which  decreed  that  the  African  Slave- 
Trade  should  cease.  On  February  10th,  the  Bill  was  carried  to 
the  House  of  Commons ;  and,  after  much  able  speaking,  the 
House  divided,  when  there  were  for  the  question  283,  and 
against  it  only  16.  The  feeling  in  favour  of  the  measure  had  now 
become  so  general  in  the  Commons,  that,  Mr.  Clarkson  observes, 
"  several  of  the  old  opponents  of  this  righteous  cause  went  away 
unable  to  vote  against  it,  while  others  of  them  stood  in  their 
places  and  voted  in  its  favour."  On  March  16th,  the  Bill  was 
read  a  third  time,  and  then  passed  without  a  division ;  and  on 
the  23d  of  the  same  month,  it  received  the  last  sanction  of 
the  House  of  Peers;  and  Lord  Grenville  congratulated  the 
House  on  the  completion,  on  its  part,  of  the  most  glorious 
measure  that  had  ever  been  adopted  by  any  legislative  body  in 
the  world. 

But  even  at  this  stage  of  its  progress,  when  victory  had 
all  but  crowned  the  mighty  and  long-continued  eff"orts  of  its 
friends,  there  was,  says  Clarkson,  "an  awful  fear  throughout 
the  kingdom,  lest  the  Bill  should  not  receive  the  royal  assent 
before"  the  dissolution  of  the  ministry,  which  was  hourly  ex- 
pected. Happily,  however,  the  commission  for  the  royal  assent 
to  the  Bill  was  obtained  in  time,  and  but  just  in  time,  to  be 
executed  before  the  dissolution  took  place.  At  half-past  eleven 
in  the  morning  of  March  25th,  1807,  letters  were  received  by 
each  member  of  the  Cabinet,  requesting  them  to  deliver  up  the 
seals  of  office.  The  Lord  Chancellor,  having  just  then  been 
informed  that  His  Majesty  had  ordered  his  consent  to  be  given 
to  this  Bill  bj^  commission,  proceeded  immediately  to  pass  it  in 
the  usual  way.  "  And  just  as  the  clock  struck  twelve,  while  the 
sun  was  shining  in  its  meridian  splendour,  as  if  to  witness  the 
august  act,  and  to  sanction  it  by  its  glorious  beams,  the  Magna 
Charta  of  Africa  was  completed."  Thus  terminated,  after  twenty 
years'  struggle,  one  of  the  most  glorious  contests  that  was  ever 
carried  on  in  any  age  or  country :  and  thus,  to  a  certain  extent, 
was  realized  tlie  poet's  aspiration, — 

"  That  where  Britain's  power 
Is  felt,  mankind  may  feel  her  mercy  too  ! " 
F    2 


CHAPTER  IV. 

ABOLITION  OF  BRITISH  SLAVERY. 

Abolition  of  the  British  Slave-Trade — More  stringent  Measures  adopted  to  render 
it  effectual  and  complete — The  Slave-Trade  and  Slavery  two  distinct  Things — 
The  Attention  of  the  Public  is  now  directed  to  the  latter— Miseries  of  West- 
Indian  Slavery — Anti-Slavery  Society  formed — Petitions  to  ParUament  for  the 
Abolition  of  Slavery — Mr.  T.  F.  Buxton  selected  as  the  parliamentary  Leader 
by  the  venerable  Wilberforce — Letters  of  Mr.  Wil])erforce  to  Mr.  Buxton — - 
The  Subject  introduced  into  the  House  of  Commons  by  Mr.  Buxton — His 
spirited  Reply  at  the  Close  of  the  Debate — Opposition  in  the  Colonies  to  any 
Change  in  the  System — Persecution  of  Missionaries — The  Rev.  John  Smith's 
Imprisonment  at  Demerara — Feeling  of  the  Nation  in  favour  of  Emancipation 
— Death  of  the  Rev.  John  Smith  in  the  Jail  at  Demerara — "  Smith's  Case" 
brought  before  the  House  of  Commons — Touching  Incident — The  Proto- 
martyr  Stephen — Rev.  \V.  J.  Shrewsbury  driven  from  Barbadoes — Mr.  Buxton 
brings  this  Case  before  the  House — Persevering  Eitbrts  of  the  Anti-Slavery 
Society — The  Cabinet  Ministers,  though  favourable  to  Abolition,  lean  towards 
the  Planters — The  Nation  becomes  aroused  in  favour  of  immediate  and  total 
Abolition  —  Petitions  sent  to  Parliament  —  Opposition  of  the  Planters  and 
others  interested  in  the  Continuance  of  Slavery — Persecutions  of  Missionaries 
— Parliamentary  Session  of  1833 — Great  Auti-SlaveiT  Meeting  at  Exeter-Hall 
— Number  of  Petitions — One  from  the  Females  of  Britain — Presented  by 
Mr.  Buxton — The  Abolition  BiU  passes  both  Houses  of  Parliament — Receives 
the  royal  Assent — Memorable  First  of  August,  1834,  and  1838 — British 
Slavery  exterminated — Noble  Effect  of  the  Measure. 

The  BiE  for  the  Abolition  of  the  British  Slave-Trade,  as  we 
have  seen,  received  the  royal  assent  on  March  25th,  1807 ;  and 
this  law  came  into  operation  on  and  after  January  1st,  1808. 
That  was  a  deed  well  done.  Though  the  struggle  was  long, 
and  the  issue  of  the  conflict  sometimes  appeared  doubtful, 
at  length  victory  came;  and  the  authorised  and  shameless 
traffic  in  slaves  which  had  so  long  stamped  a  stigma  upon  our 
country  was  abolished,  and  the  gigantic  foe  was  ''cast  down;" 
but,  alas !  he  was  "  not  destroyed."  For  though  the  above- 
mentioned  Act  made  the  Slave-Trade  illegal,  by  whomsoever 
carried  on,  in  the  British  dominions,  and  prohibited  British 
subjects  from  engaging  in  it  in  any  country  whatsoever;  yet, 
as  forfeitures  and  penalties  of  a  pecuniary  kind  were  the  only 
consequences  of  violating  the  law,  the  temptations  of  high  profit 
induced  many,  both  capitalists  and  adventurers,  to  defy  the 
prohibitions  of  the  statute ;  and  the  clearest  proofs  were  soon 
furnished  of  Englishmen  being  employed   in  the  Slave-Trade 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  69 

under  the  most  flimsy  disguises.  In  the  year  1811^  therefore, 
an  Act  was  carried  by  Mr.  Brougham,  making  the  Slave-Trade 
felony,  punishable  with  transportation  for  fourteen  years,  or 
imprisonment  and  hard  labour.  But  even  this  was  found  inade- 
quate to  check  or  bank  up  the  poisonous  stream ;  so  that  in 
1824  the  Slave-Trade  was  declared  to  be  piracy,  and  the  punish- 
ment enacted  was  death.  In  1837,  however,  when  the  number 
of  capital  offences  was  diminished  in  consequence  of  the  milder 
character  that  was  given  to  the  criminal  law,  the  punishment 
for  trading  in  slaves  was  changed  to  transportation  for  life. 
And  there  is  every  reason  to  think  that  no  British  subjects  are 
now,  or  have  for  many  years  been,  directly  engaged  in  this 
execrable  traffic. 

Bnt  the  friends  and  supporters  of  Abolition  did  not  content 
themselves  with  the  accomplishment  of  that  victory,  great  and 
glorious  as  it  was.  The  Abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade,  and  the 
Abolition  of  Slavery,  are  two  distinct  things;  and  having  suc- 
ceeded in  the  former,  they  now  turned  their  attention  to  the 
latter.  For,  supposing  that  the  Slave-Trade  was  abolished,  its 
effects  were  not  annihilated.  Personal  and  hereditary  Slavery 
still  existed  in  all  its  cruel  and  aggravating  forms.  There  were 
thousands  and  tens  of  thousands  in  the  British  colonies  in  the 
West  Indies,  who  were  groaning  under  the  heavy  task,  and 
bending  beneath  the  iron  yoke.  Mr.  Clarkson,  therefore,  not 
long  after  the  Abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade,  composed  and 
printed  a  pamphlet  entitled,  "  Thoughts  on  the  Necessity  of 
abolishing  Slavery."  Neither  he  nor  his  coadjutors  had  ever 
regarded  the  Abolition  of  the  Trade  as  a  final  measure.  Their 
ultimate  object  had  ever  been  the  entire  extinction  of  Slavery 
itself,  which  in  that  publication  was  proved  to  be  the  source 
of  innumerable  evils,  and  as  impolitic  as  it  was  unjust. 
To  promote  this  and  other  objects,  a  Society  was  formed  in 
May,  1807,  called  ^^ The  African  Institution;"  which,  while  it 
directed  its  attention  to  the  foreign  Slave-traffic  as  still  carried 
on  by  other  nations,  with  the  view  of  inducing  them  to  adopt 
measures  for  its  abolition,  bestowed  its  chief  care  upon  West- 
Indian  matters,  as  they  naturaUy  came  more  within  the  power 
of  this  country. 

The  accounts  received  from  the  colonies  confirmed  the  state- 
ments which  Mr.  Clarkson  had  made  in  his  able  pamphlet. 
The  sufferings  of  the  captive  Negroes  were  still  unalleviated ; 
they  were  held  in  the  most  degrading  bondage,  and  treated  with 
the  utmost  cruelty.  They  were  over-worked  and  ill-fed,  and 
every  means  was  employed  to  brutalize  and  stvdtify  their  minds. 


70  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Facts  have  beeu  related  in  connexion  with  West-Indian  Slavery, 
sufficient  to  wring  the  soul  with  anguish,  to  mingle  gall  in  our 
bread  in  the  day  when  we  heard  them,  and  to  agonize  the 
slumbers  of  the  night  with  thoughts  of  horror.  Many  pages 
of  true  narrative  have  met  the  eye  on  this  subject,  that  we 
should  shrink  from  encountering  a  second  time;  deeds  have 
been  listened  to,  which  the  lips  refuse  to  utter;  books  have 
been  perused,  that  are  laid  aside,  being  "written  within  and 
without,"  full  of  "  lamentations,  and  mourning,  and  woe." 
The  writhing  population  of  our  colonies  were  "  minished  and 
brought  low;"  their  bodies  were  crushed  with  unvarying  op- 
pression ;  and  hope  was  utterly  expelled  from  their  hearts. 
Like  the  children  of  Israel  under  their  Egyptian  taskmasters, 
they  "  hearkened  not  to "  the  voice  of  the  comforter,  "  for 
anguish  of  spirit,  and  for  cruel  bondage."  (Exod.  vi.  9.)  "  On 
the  side  of  their  oppressors  there  was  power;  but  they  had  no 
comforter."  (Eccles.  iv.  1.)  Years  had  passed  away,  but  the  Abo- 
lition of  the  Slave-Trade  had  not  conferred  on  thetn  the  slightest 
boon :  there  was  no  appearance  of  that  gradual  Abolition  of 
Slavery  which,  it  was  confidently  asserted,  would,  without  any 
farther  legal  enactment,  certainly  follow.  Clarkson  had,  in  his 
able  pamphlet,  exposed  the  folly  of  supposing  that  such  would 
be  the  result.  He  had  likewise  proved  Slavery  to  be  at  variance 
alike  with  Christianity  and  with  the  laws  of  England ;  and  had 
demonstrated  that  its  effects  were  most  pernicious,  morally  and 
physically,  to  the  owners  as  well  as  to  the  slaves ;  that  emanci- 
pation was  safe  and  practicable,  and  would  be  beneficial  to  both 
parties ;  and  that  liberty  was  essential  to  accoimtability,  being 
the  birth-right  of  every  intelligent  being,  in  whatever  country 
or  condition  he  might  be  born. 

Similar  statements  had  been  made  in  several  other  able  pam- 
phlets, published  at  difi'erent  times,  by  various  authors :  but  the 
political  affairs  of  Europe  for  some  years  prevented  the  matter 
from  being  vigorously  taken  up.  In  March,  1823,  the  Anti- 
Slavery  Society  was  formed.  The  first  thing  which  they  did  was 
to  circulate  authentic  information  on  the  subject  as  extensively  as 
they  could.  They  did  this  by  the  publication  of  various  tracts 
and  pamphlets  descriptive  of  British  Colonial  Slavery.  These 
were  drawn  up  in  a  simple  yet  interesting  style,  and  contained 
most  powerful  appeals  to  the  sympathies  of  the  nation  in  behalf 
of  the  suff"ering  Negro.  They  were  eagerly  read  by  all  classes  ; 
and  England  seemed  to  be  suddenly  aroused  from  its  insensi- 
bility; so  that,  before  the  ensuing  May,  more  than  two  hun- 
dred petitions  from  various  parts  of  the  country  were  presented 


ABOLlTIOxV    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  71 

to  Parliament,  praying  that  some  measure  might  be  taken  to 
abohsh  Slavery  in  the  British  Colonies.  Most  of  the  speeches 
delivered  at  the  meetings  held  in  different  towns  were  powerful 
and  striking ;  and,  as  these  were  printed,  the  matter  was  thus 
brought  more  fully  before  the  public,  and  became  one  of  deep 
and  unusual  interest.* 

The  magnitude  of  the  subject  was  indeed  worthy  of  all  the 
interest  it  excited.  The  destiny  of  nearly  a  million  of  human 
beings  quivered  in  the  balance.  Whether  they  should  be 
treated  as  men  endued  with  immortal  souls,  or  be  looked  down 
upon  as  the  beasts  which  perish  ;  whether  they  should  enjoy 
the  liberty  to  which  all  God's  creatures  are  entitled,  as  of  right, 
or  be  harassed,  oppressed,  tormented,  and  stinted  both  of  bodily 
food  and  of  spiritual  instruction;  whether  the  colonies  should 
be  peopled  with  tyrants  and  barbarians,  or  be  inhabited  by 
civilized  and  improving  Christian  communities ;  were  questions 
calculated  to  put  in  action  all  the  best  principles  of  our  nature, 
and  to  move  all  the  noblest  feelings  of  the  human  heart.  It 
was  no  wonder,  therefore,  that  a  matter  of  such  vast  importance 
was  taken  up  by  the  enlightened,  the  humane,  and  the  religious, 
all  over  the  empire. 

But,  after  all,  Parliament  was  the  field  in  which  the  battle  was 
to  be  fought.  Mr.  Wilberforce,  the  eloquent  champion  of  the 
African  race,  was  sinking  enfeebled  under  the  weight  of  years, 
and  the  want  was  felt  of  a  new  parliamentary  advocate.  But  a 
gracious  Providence,  always  ready  to  help  those  who  look  for 
Divine  aid,  had  provided  one  in  the  person  of  Mr.  (afterwards 
Sir  Thomas  Powell)  Buxton,  whose  name  so  early  as  1817  was 
amongst  the  directors  of  the  African  Institution,  and  who  had 
been  in  the  House  of  Commons  for  five  years  as  member  for 
the  borough  of  Weymouth.  He  had  already  proved  himself  an 
able  ally  of  Sir  James  Mackintosh  in  the  amelioration  of  our 
criminal  code,  had  taken  an  active  part  in  the  abolition  of 
suttees  in  India,  and  had  given  powerful  support  to  Mr.  Wilber- 
force in  his  endeavour  to  prevent  an  apprehended  extension  of 
Slavery  in  our  South- African  possessions.  Indeed,  Mr.  Wilber- 
force had  had  his  eye  upon  him  for  some  time,  as  an  able  and 
active  coadjutor  in  every  thing  that  was  humane,  philanthropic, 
and  truly  good,  even  before  he  came  into  Parliament.  In  a 
letter  which  Mr.  Wilberforce  wrote  to  Mr.  Buxton  in  Novem- 
ber, 1816,  when  the  latter  had  taken  an  active  part  in  relieving 
the  distress  which  prevailed  in  Spitalfields,  and  had  made  an 


*  Taylor's  "  Biographical  Sketch  of  Thomas  Clarkson." 


73  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

excellent  speech  on  the  occasion,  after  congratulating  him  on 
his  "  successful  effort  in  belialf  of  the  hungry  and  the  naked," 
he  says,  "I  anticipate  the  success  of  the  efforts  which  I  trust 
you  will  one  day  make  in  other  instances,  in  an  assembly  in 
which  I  trust  we  shall  be  fellow-labourers/^  And  in  the  fol- 
lowing year,  when  Mr.  Buxton  had  published  a  work  on  "  Prison 
Discipline,"  which  produced  a  powerful  impression,  Mr.  Wilber- 
force  wrote  to  him  on  the  subject,  and  thus  concluded :  ''  May 
it  please  God  to  continue  to  animate  you  Avith  as  much  bene- 
volent zeal,  and  to  direct  it  to  worthy  objects !  I  hope  you 
will  come  soon  into  Parliament,  and  be  able  to  contend  in 
person,  as  well  as  with  your  pen,  for  the  rights  and  happiness  of 
the  oppressed  and  the  friendless.  I  claim  you  as  an  ally  in  this 
blessed  league."  And  in  May,  1821,  Mr.  Wilberforce  again 
addressed  him,  in  a  letter  of  some  length.  After  stating  that 
"it  is  now  more  than  thirty-three  years  since"  he  "for  the 
first  time  gave  notice  in  the  House  of  Commons  that  he  should 
bring  forward  the  question  concerning  the  Slave-Trade ;"  and 
that  he  was  prevented  from  doing  so,  when  the  time  arrived,  by 
indisposition ;  but  that  Mr.  Pitt  readily  at  his  request  under- 
took ttie  matter :  he  now  appealed  to  Mr.  Buxton,  under  some- 
what similar  circumstances,  as  he  had  long  wished  "  to  bring 
forward  that  great  subject, — the  condition  of  the  Negro  slaves 
in  our  transatlantic  colonies ; "  but  he  had  been  waiting,  with 
no  little  solicitude,  for  a  proper  time  and  suitable  circumstances 
of  the  country  for  introducing  this  great  business  :  and,  latterly, 
for  some  Member  of  Parliament,  who,  if  I  were  to  retire  or  to  be 
laid  hy,  would  be  an  eligible  leader  in  this  holy  enterprise."  He 
then  states,  "  I  can  no  longer  forbear  resorting  to  you,  as  I  for- 
merly did  to  Pitt,  and  earnestly  conjuring  you  to  take  most  seri- 
ously into  consideration  the  expediency  of  your  devoting  yourself 

to  this  blessed  service Let  me,  then,  entreat  you  to  form  an 

'alliance'  witli  me,  that  may  truly  be  termed  '  holy  •/  and  if  I 
should  be  unable  to  commence  the  war,  and,  still  more,  if,  when 
commenced,  I  should  be  unable  to  finish  it,  do  I  entreat  that 
you  would  continue  to  prosecute  it."  * 

It  was  not,  however,  till  after  long  and  mature  deliberation 
that  Mr.  Buxton  accepted  the  weighty  charge  involved  in  Mr. 
Wilberforce's  proposal, — that  he  should  become  the  leader  of  the 
Anti-Slavery  cause  in  the  House  of  Commons;  though  he  had 
been  nominated  to  it  by  the  solemn  voice  of  the  venerable 
Wilberforce,   and  the   unanimous    suffrages   of  such    men   as 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Sir  Thomas  Fowell  Buxton,"  pp.  62,  75,  117,  118. 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  73 

Stephen,  Allen,  William  Smith,  Lushington,  Zachary  Macaulay, 
and  other  friends,  who  encouraged  him  to  enter  vipon  this  ardu- 
ous undertaking.  But  he  appears  to  have  arrived  at  his  final 
decision  in  the  autumn  of  1822,  when  Mr.  Wilberforce  and 
Mr.  Macaulay  spent  some  weeks  at  his  residence  at  Cromer- 
Hall  in  Norfolk.  The  session  of  1823  was  now  rapidly  approach- 
ing :  and  as  "  the  great  subject  has  fallen  into  my  hands,'^  to 
use  his  own  words,  "  I  am  very  earnest  about  Slavery.  It  seems 
to  me  that  this  is  to  be  the  main  business  of  my  life, — this  and 
Hindoo  widows."  Early  in  March,  1823,  Mr.  Wilberforce 
published  his  well-known  "  Appeal  on  behalf  of  the  Slaves." 
Petitions,  as  already  observed,  now  "began  to  flow  in:"  the 
lead  was  taken  by  the  Society  of  Friends,  and  it  was  determined 
that  the  presentation  of  their  appeal  by  the  hands  of  Mr. 
Wilberforce  should  be  the  opening  of  the  parliamentary  cam- 
paign. 

He  introduced  it  by  saying  that  a  similar  petition  which  he 
had  had  the  honour  of  presenting  nearly  thirty  years  before, 
had  been  the  first  effort  against  the  kindred  iniquity  of  the 
Slave-Trade ;  and  that,  in  presenting  this  one,  he  considered 
that  the  first  stone  was  laid  of  an  edifice  which  would  flourish  at 
some  future  period,  an  ornament  to  the  land.  Mr.  Canning 
asked  whether  it  was  his  intention  to  found  any  Motion  upon  it. 
Mr.  Wilberforce  said  it  was  not,  but  that  such  was  the  intention 
of  an  esteemed  friend  of  his.  Mr.  Buxton  then  gave  notice 
that  on  the  15th  of  May  he  would  submit  a  Motion,  "  that  the 
House  should  take  into  consideration  the  state  of  Slavery  in  the 
British  colonies."  The  15th  of  May  arrived,  and  just  before  he 
went  to  his  honourable  post,  Mr.  Buxton  wrote  to  a  friend  as 
follows :  "  In  five  minutes  I  start  for  the  House.  I  hope  to 
begin  at  five  o'clock.  I  am  in  good  health,  in  excellent  spirits, 
with  a  noble  cause,  and  without  a  fear.  If  I  am  only  given 
a  nimble  tongue,  Ave  shall  do."  * 

Such  was  the  manner  in  which  Mr.  Buxton  entered  upon  this 
"  holy  enterprise,"  this  "  blessed  service."  He  began  by  mov- 
ing a  Resolution,  "  That  the  state  of  Slavery  is  repugnant  to 
the  principles  of  the  British  constitution  and  of  the  Christian 
rehgion ;  and  that  it  ought  to  be  gradually  abolished  throughout 
the  British  colonies,  with  as  much  expedition  as  may  be  found 
consistent  with  a  due  regard  to  the  well-being  of  the  parties 
concerned."  This  was  the  first  sound  of  the  trumpet  in  the 
holy  war  of  emancipation ;  and  from  that  moment  the  doom  of 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Sir  Tliomas  Powell  Buxton,"  pp.  127 — 129. 


74  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

British  Slavery  was  sealed  :  for  though  many  a  hard-fought 
battle  and  many  a  wearying  delay  intervened,  the  great  cause 
of  African  freedom  was  never  more  to  be  effectually  obstructed. 
The  debate  concluded  with  a  reply  from  Mr.  Buxton,  who 
had  been  told  by  his  opponents  that  the  Negro  did  not  feel  his 
slavery,  and  that  the  danger  arose  not  from  Slavery  itself,  but 
from  the  discussion  of  it  in  the  House ;  to  which  he  answered, 
"What,  then,  does  the  slave  require  any  hint  from  us  that  he 
is  a  slave,  and  that  Slavery  is  of  all  conditions  the  most  misera- 
ble ?  Why,  Sir,  he  hears  this,  he  sees  it,  he  feels  it,  too,  in  all 
around  him.  He  sees  his  harsh,  uncompensated  labour;  he 
hears  the  crack  of  the  whip;  he  feels,  he  Avrithes  under,  the 
lash.     Does  not  this  betray  the  secret  ? 

'  This  is  no  flattery ;  these  are  counsellors 
That  feelinyly  persuade  him  what  he  is.' 

He  sees  the  mother  of  his  children  stripped  naked  before  the 
gang  of  male  Negroes,  and  flogged  unmercifully ;  he  sees  his 
children  sent  to  market,  to  be  sold  at  the  best  price  they  will 
fetch ;  he  sees  in  himself,  not  a  man,  but  a  thing, — by  West- 
Indian  law  a  chattel,  an  implement  of  husbandry,  a  machine  to 
produce  sugar,  a  beast  of  burden !  And  will  any  man  tell  me, 
that  the  Negro — with  all  this  staring  him  in  the  face,  flashing 
in  his  eyes,  when  he  rises  in  the  morning,  and  when  he  goes  to 
bed  at  night — never  dreams  that  there  is  injustice  in  such  treat- 
ment, till  he  sits  himself  down  to  the  perusal  of  an  English 
newspaper,  and  there  to  his  astonishment  discovers,  that  there 
are  enthusiasts  in  England,  who  from  the  bottom  of  their  hearts 
deplore  and  abhor  all  Negro  Slavery  ?  There  are  such  enthu- 
siasts ;  I  am  one  of  them ;  and  while  we  breathe,  we  will  never 
abandon  the  cause,  till  that  thing,  that  chattel,  is  reinstated  in 
all  the  privileges  of  man."  * 

Mr.  Buxton^s  characteristic  style,  and  his  spirited  reply,  are 
mentioned  by  Mr.  Wilberforce  as  having  been,  "not  sweet 
indeed,  but  excellent :"  and  a  recent  writer  on  this  subject  has 
beautifully  remarked,  "It  must  have  been  interesting  and 
affecting  to  see  the  comparatively  youthful  senator  step  forward 
and  consecrate  his  energies  to  the  great  cause,  while  the  venera- 
ble AVilberforce  sat  by,  like  a  parent  eagle,  impelling,  directing, 
supporting,  and  dehghting  in  the  flight  of  its  eaglet ;  or,  rather, 
like  the  ancient  prophet  Elijah,  anointing  his  successor,  and 
leading  him  to  the  spot  where  his  own  prophetic  mantle  should 

*  Hansard's  "  Parliamentarv  Dehates." 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  75 

descend  upon  liim,  as  tlie  pledge  of  '  a  double  portion  of  liis 
spirit/ "  *  Mr.  Buxton  had  indeed  caught  his  spirit,  and 
he  gave  the  subject  a  voice  within  those  walls  which  have 
so  frequently  echoed  with  the  eloquence  awakened  by  the 
most  momentous  interests.  In  introducing  that  celebrated 
Motion  he  boldly  declared,  "The  object  at  which  we  aim  is 
the  extinction  of  Slavery, — nothing  less  than  the  extinction  of 
Slavery, — in  nothing  less  than  the  whole  of  the  British 
dominions.^^ 

.  The  Motion,  upon  the  whole,  was  well  received  by  the  House, 
though  it  involved  too  many  interests  for  it  to  make  its  way  to 
the  extent  so  much  desired  by  its  advocates.  Mr.  Canning's 
Amendment,  therefore,  varying  but  little  from  the  Motion  of 
Mr.  Buxton,  speedily  passed  both  Houses  of  Parliament.  But 
as  the  execution  of  the  Bill  was  left  to  the  colonial  authorities, 
it  proved,  as  had  been  feared,  to  be  entirely  useless.  The  plans 
for  the  instruction  of  the  Negroes,  and  for  the  amelioration 
of  their  condition,  with  those  corrections  of  abuses  upon  which 
Parliament  had  determined,  were  entirely  disregarded  by  the 
colonial  authorities;  and  the  Bill  became  a  mere  dead  letter. 
Indeed,  the  news  of  Mr.  Buxton's  attack  on  what  the  planters 
considered  to  be  their  just  rights,  and  of  the  acquiescence  of  the 
Government  in  his  principles,  were  received  in  the  West  Indies, 
with  two  or  three  honourable  exceptions,  with  the  most  vehe- 
ment indignation.  For  some  weeks  after  the  arrival  of  the 
despatches,  not  the  slightest  restraint  seems  to  have  been  put  on 
the  violent  rage  of  the  planters.  An  extract  from  the  "  Jamaica 
Journal"  of  June  28th,  1823,  will  furnish  a  specimen  of  the  abuse 
lavished  upon  the  British  Parliament,  and  "  those  canting,  hypo- 
critical rascals,"  the  Abolitionists.  The  extract  is  as  follows  :  "  We 
will  pray  the  Imperial  Parliament  to  amend  their  origin,  which 
is  bribery ;  to  cleanse  their  consciences,  which  are  corrupt ;  to 
throw  off  their  disguise,  which  is  hypocrisy  ;  to  break  with  their 
false  allies,  who  are  the  saints;  and  finally  to  banish  from 
among  them  all  the  purchased  rogues,  who  are  three-fourths  of 
their  number."  t 

The  missionaries  on  the  spot,  of  various  denominations, 
received  a  large  share  of  abuse  and  persecution,  and  were,  in 
several  instances,  imprisoned.  But  the  Anti-Slavery  Society 
had  been  previously  formed  and  organized ;  and  many  provincial 
and  local  societies   and  committees,  in  different  parts   of  the 

*  Copley's  "  History  of  Slavery." 

t  "  Memoirs  of  Sir  Thomas  Fowell  Buxton,"  p.  138. 


76  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

country,  were  in  active  operation,  in  which  the  venerable  Clark- 
son  again  took  an  active  and  distinguished  part :  and  this  great 
philanthropic  Society  took  care  to  inform  the  public  of  all  that 
transpired  in  the  colonies,  by  means  of  the  seasonable  pamphlets 
and  tracts  which  they  constantly  published. 

It  was  also  about  this  time,  that  is,  early  in  the  year  1824, 
that  the  great  case  of  the  missionary  Smith's  persecution,  trial, 
imprisonment,  and  untimely  death, — in  which  all  the  forms  of 
judicature  had  been  prostituted,  all  the  rules  of  law  broken, 
and  all  the  principles  of  justice  outraged, — came  before  the 
House  of  Commons.  The  Rev.  John  Smith  was  an  excellent 
and  devoted  missionary  belonging  to  the  body  of  Independents. 
He  was  an  innocent  man ;  yet,  being  brought  before  a  court- 
martial  of  militia  officers  at  Demerara,  he  was  condemned  to  be 
hanged.  But  his  treatment  in  prison  destroj'cd  his  previously 
failing  health,  and  he  died  in  his  dungeon  about  half-past 
one  o'clock  on  the  morning  of  February  6th,  to  the  everlasting 
disgrace  of  the  local  authorities  and  most  of  the  European  inha- 
bitants of  that  island.  The  persecution  and  imprisonment  of 
Mr.  Smith  caused  a  great  sensation  in  England,  even  before  the 
report  of  his  death  arrived  :  and  the  conduct  of  the  directors  of 
the  London  Missionary  Society,  on  this  deeply  affecting  occa- 
sion, was  marked  by  deep  sympathy  for  their  calumniated  agent, 
as  well  as  by  much  prudence,  self-possession,  and  dignified  firm- 
ness in  seeking  redress  at  the  Colonial  Office. 

On  the  1st  of  June  a  Motion  respecting  "  Smith's  Case"  was 
brought  forward  in  the  House  of  Commons  by  Mr.  (now  Lord) 
Brougham,  "in  a  brilliant  speech  of  four  hours'  length,  which 
produced  a  strong  effect  upon  public  feeling."  Nearly  two 
hundred  petitions,  from  various  denominations,  and  from  differ- 
ent parts  of  the  kingdom,  had  been  presented  at  that  time, 
expressing  the  same  sentiments  of  indignation.  Mr.  Brougham's 
Motion  of  censure  was  powerfully  supported  by  Mr.  Wilberforce, 
Mr.  Denman,  Mr.  Williams,  and  Dr.  Lushington  :  and  though 
the  Motion  was  lost,  the  debate  was  of  singular  service  to  the 
cause.  The  great  speeches  delivered  were  spread  through  all 
parts  of  the  country ;  the  nakedness  of  the  horrid  system  was 
exposed ;  the  corruptions  as  well  as  the  cruelty  of  Slavery  were 
laid  bare ;  the  determination  of  the  colonies  to  protect  its  worst 
abuses  was  demonstrated  ;  the  necessity  of  the  interference  of  the 
mother-country  with  a  strong  hand  was  declared  ;  and  even  the 
loss  of  the  Motion  showed  the  people  of  England  how  much 
their  own  exertions  were  still  required,  if  they  would  see  Slavery 
extirpated,  by  proving  that  upon  them  alone  the  fate  of  the 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  11 

execrable  system  huug.  From  that  time  the  nation  began  to 
awaken  to  the  truth;  and  the  rehgious  pubHc  especially  was 
strongly  enlisted  on  behalf  of  the  oppressed  missionaries  and 
their  persecuted  converts ;  and  this  feeling  soon  increased  into 
a  detestation  of  the  system  of  which  such  intolerance  was  the 
natural  fruit. 

I  cannot  forbear  transferring  to  these  pages,  from  "  the  Life 
of  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton,"  an  affecting  yet  deeply  interesting 
fact  connected  with  some  of  the  last  moments  of  the  perse- 
cuted and  martyred  Smith,  which  the  amiable  and  excellent 
editor  of  the  work  has,  in  a  most  praiseworthy  manner,  rescued 
from  oblivion.  "When  Smith  was  dying  in  his  prison,  (which  is 
described  as  a  place  only  suited  to  purposes  of  torture,)  he  was 
compelled  by  his  persecutors  to  draw  a  bill  upon  the  funds  of 
the  London  Missionary  Society,  in  order  to  defray  the  expenses 
of  his  so-called  trial.  Many  years  afterwards  the  secretary  of 
that  Society,  in  arranging  some  old  papers,  met  with  this  bill. 
In  looking  at  it,  his  attention  was  drawn  to  one  corner  of  the 
sheet,  and,  on  examining  it  more  carefully,  he  found,  written  in 
a  minute  hand,  the  reference,  2  Cor.  iv.  8,  9  j  on  turning  to 
which  he  found  the  text,  '  We  are  troubled  on  every  side,  yet 
not  distressed ;  we  are  perplexed,  but  not  in  despair ;  perse- 
cuted, but  not  forsaken ;  cast  down,  but  not  destroyed.^ "  * 
This  touching  incident  affords  a  striking  proof  of  the  divinity 
and  power  of  the  gospel  which  Mr.  Smith  had  preached  to 
others,  in  the  support  which  it  afforded  him  under  peculiarly 
trying  circumstances  :  for  it  may  be  truly  said  he  died  hi  the 
cause  of  God,  and  he  died  for  it ;  but 

"  His  God  sustain'd  liim  in  his  final  hour  : 
His  final  hour  brought  glory  to  his  God." 

We  have  also,  in  this  beautiful  quotation,  a  fine  illustration  of 
that  divine  charity  that  "  thinketh  no  evil,  beareth  all  things, 
believeth  all  things,  hopeth  all  things,  endureth  all  things ; 
charity  "  that  "  never  faileth."  (1  Cor.  xiii.  5,  7,  8.)  We  recog- 
nise in  the  persecuted  missionary  of  Demerara  the  spirit  of  the 
proto-martyr  Stephen,  who,  whilst  pelted  to  death  with  stones, 
"which  crushed  his  body,  "  kneeled  down,  and  cried  with  a  loud 
voice.  Lord,  lay  not  this  sin  to  their  charge.  And  when  he  had 
said  this,  he  fell  asleep."  (Acts  vii.  60.) 

But  though  there  was  a  similarity  in  the  deaths  of  these  two 
Christian  martyrs,  their  funerals  were  very  dissimilar.  The 
bitter  persecuting  Jews  had  stoned  Stephen  to  death  ;  but  they 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Sir  Thomas  Fowell  Buxton,"  p.  140. 


78  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

were  not  so  inhuman  as  to  deny  him  burial,  they  did  not  pro- 
hibit his  friends  from  attending  him  to  the  grave.  Hence  it  is 
stated,  "Devout  men  carried  Stephen  to  his  burial,  and  made 
great  lamentation  over  him/^  (Acts  viii,  2.)  But  this  pri\ilege 
was  denied  to  the  martyred  Smith,  and  that  in  a  British  isle  in 
the  nineteenth  century.  The  authorities  at  Demerara  had  even 
prohibited  the  afflicted  wife  from  attending  the  body  of  her 
husband  to  its  last  resting-place ;  and  he  was  interred  at  four 
o^clock  in  the  morning  instead  of  ten  in  the  forenoon,  as  was 
at  first  intended.  But  "Mrs.  Smith  exclaimed,  in  aloud  and 
frantic  voice,  '  General  Murray  shall  not  prevent  my  following 
my  husband  to  the  grave,  and  I  will  go  in  spite  of  all  he  can 
do.'"  Accompanied,  therefore,  by  her  faithful  friend  Mrs. 
Elliott,  though  they  were  threatened  with  imprisonment  if  they 
attempted  to  follow  the  corpse,  she  "  left  the  jail  at  half-past 
three  in  the  morning,  dark  as  it  was,  accompanied  only  by  a 
free  black  man,  ■with  a  lantern;  and  proceeded  to  the  burial- 
place,  where  they  beheld  the  mournful  spectacle, — a  beloved 
husband,  and  a  dear  friend,  committed  to  the  silent  grave."  * 

But  to  return :  In  the  following  year  Mr.  Wilberforce,  the  great 
champion  of  the  oppressed,  retired  from  Parliament ;  on  which 
occasion  he  wrote  to  Mr.  Buxton  as  his  "  Parliamentary  Exe- 
cutor," wishing  him  to  move  for  a  new  writ  for  Bramber :  and, 
seven  years  afterwards,  his  heart  being  still  in  the  Avork,  though 
he  had  left  the  House,  he  again  wrote  to  his  "  dear  friend,"  as  his 
"  heir-at-law,"  urging  him  to  direct  his  attention  to  the  subject 
of  the  Slave-Trade  as  conducted  by  foreign  nations,  as  well  as 
to  the  extinction  of  Slavery  in  the  British  colonies. 

Soon  after  the  insurrection  at  Demerara,  a  riot  took  place  at 
Barbadoes  ;  the  Eev.  William  J.  Shrewsbury,  a  Wesleyan  mis- 
sionary, was  driven  from  the  island  by  an  infuriated  mob  of 
Whites,  the  Wesleyan  chapel  was  demolished,  and  "not  one 
stone  left  upon  another."  In  June  of  this  year,  (1825,)  Mr. 
Buxton  brought  this  subject  before  the  House  of  Commons,  in 
a  long  and  able  speech.  He  did  this  without  any  apphcation 
on  the  part  of  the  Wesleyan  Society  :  his  speech  was  the  spon- 
taneous emanation  of  his  own  sense  of  justice,  and  respect  for 
religious  liberty :  and  in  this  spirit  he  was  ably  supported  in  the 
House  by  different  Members.  Mr.  Canning,  when  speaking  of 
Mr.  Shrewsbury,  said,  that  "  there  did  not  appear  the  slightest 
ground  of  blame  or  suspicion."  Mr.  Shrewsbury  had  been 
charged,  among  other   matters,  with   corresponding  with  Mr. 

*  Smith's  "  History  of  Missionan-  Societies,"  vol.  ii.  p.  355. 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  79 

Buxton :  but  the  latter  stated  iu  the  House,  "  I  never  received 
from  or  wrote  to  him  a  single  letter ;  nor  did  I  know  that  such 
a  man  existed,  till  1  happened  to  take  up  a  newspaper,  and 
there  read,  with  some  astonishment,  that  he  was  going  to  be 
hanged  for  corresponding  with  me  ! "  The  result  of  this  discus- 
sion was  the  unanimous  "  indignation  "  of  the  House  of  Com- 
mons at  the  disgraceful  transaction  in  Barbadoes,  and  an 
assurance,  in  its  Address  to  His  Majesty,  of  its  readiness  "  to 
concur  in  any  measure  which  His  Majesty  may  deem  necessary 
for  securing  ample  protection  and  religious  toleration  to  all  His 
Majesty's  subjects  in  the  West-India  colonies." 

Mr.  Buxton,  in  his  reply,  observed,  "  He  was  glad  that  the 
discussion  had  taken  place ;  he  was  sure  it  would  do  much  ser- 
vice. He  rejoiced,  also,  at  the  manly  sentiments  uttered  by  the 
Right  Honourable  Secretary  for  Foreign  Affairs.  It  would 
teach  the  West  Indians  to  be  more  moderate  in  their  future 
measures.  They  had  had  their  triumphs  over  justice  and 
humanity :  the  missionary  Smith  was  mouldering  in  his  grave ; 
the  missionary  Shrewsbury  was  an  exile;  and  the  noble-minded 
Austin,  who  vainly  attempted  to  stem  the  torrent  of  prejudice, 
had  lost  his  golden  hopes  of  church-preferment,  and  was  at  that 
moment  a  stipendiary  curate  in  an  insignificant  village.  A  few 
more  such  triumphs  would  only  hasten  the  downfall  of  the 
whole  system.  He  wished  it  to  be  distinctly  understood,  that 
it  was  his  firm  and  unalterable  resolution  to  devote  all  his  life 
and  his  efforts  to  advocate  the  cause  of  the  slaves ;  and  that  he 
would  persist  in  that  course,  in  spite  of  opposition,  unpopularity, 
obloquy,  or  falsehood." 

The  Anti-Slavery  Society  at  this  juncture  commenced  the 
issue  of  regular  monthly  publications  ;  and  at  the  end  of  the 
year  they  held  a  public  meeting  in  London,  and  again  peti- 
tioned Parliament  to  take  into  consideration  the  subject  of 
Negro  Slavery,  and  to  adopt  more  effective  means  for  its  Aboli- 
tion. Their  example  was  followed  by  the  country  at  large;  and 
nearly  six  hundred  and  fifty  petitions,  all  most  respectably  and 
numerously  signed,  were  presented  during  the  ensuing  Session. 
The  effects  of  the  debates  on  the  persecuted  missionaries  and 
the  destruction  of  mission-property  became  the  universal  topic ; 
and  the  name  of  the  martyred  Smith  especially  was  the  general 
rallying  cry.  The  Cabinet  Ministers,  on  the  whole,  were  rather 
friendly  than  otherwise  to  Abolition  ;  but  they  wished  it  to  be 
carried  on  their  own  plan,  and  were  averse  to  the  employment 
of  other  agents  than  the  regularly  constituted  colonial  autho- 
rities.    There  was,  in  fact,  on  the  part  of  the  Government,  too 


80  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

much  leaning  towards  the  planters ;  and  the  most  flimsy  excuses 
were  constantly  adduced  for  not  adopting  decisive  measures. 
Mr.  Buxton  in  1824  had  boldly  charged  the  Government  with 
vacillation,  and  with  the  violation  of  a  "  distinct  pledge  that  the 
condition  of  the  slave  population  should  be  ameliorated:^'  and 
when  the  same  devoted  advocate  of  the  Negroes  presented  the 
London  petition  against  Slavery  on  the  1st  of  March,  1826,  he 
again  pointed  out  how  ineffectual  had  been  the  recommenda- 
tions of  the  Government  to  the  colonial  legislatures  geuerally. 
He  closed  his  speech  by  saying,  "  I  am  anxious  to  say  nothing 
that  can  give  offence  to  any  party ;  but  it  is  my  duty  broadly  to 
declare  my  confirmed  and  deliberate  conviction,  that  this  House 
must  do  the  work  themselves,  or  suffer  it  to  be  altogether 
abandoned."  * 

But  the  Government  preferred  to  give  the  West  Indians 
"  another  year  "  before  they  would  legislate,  so  that  nothing  was 
accomplished  during  that  session.  But  the  impossibility  of  any 
thing  being  done  effectively  by  the  legislatures  abroad  to  relieve 
the  oppressed,  became  daily  more  apparent.  The  accounts 
received  from  the  colonies  were  still  most  unsatisfactory.  The 
most  studied  inattention  was  paid  to  the  parliamentary  injunc- 
tions, and  very  determined  opposition  made  to  the  intro- 
duction of  any  measures  that  would  diminish  the  rigours  of 
Slavery.  It  now  became  certain  that  Slavery  would  never  be 
ameliorated  by  the  masters  of  slaves;  their  laws  would  never 
reach  the  evil :  the  remedy,  as  Mr.  Buxton  had  stated,  could 
only  be  effectually  applied  by  the  Government  of  a  free  people. 
At  length  the  British  lion  was  aroused,  shook  his  mane,  stood 
erect,  and  resolved  to  accomplish  his  purpose.  The  spirit- 
stirring  lines  of  Cowper  were  the  sentiment  of  the  whole  nation  : 

"  My  ear  is  pain'd, 
My  soul  is  sick,  wath  every  day's  report 
Of  wrong  and  outrage  -with  which  earth  is  fill'd. 
We  have  no  slaves  at  home :  then  why  abroad  ?  " 

The  time  was  now  approaching  when  the  chains  of  the  Negro 
were  to  be  snapped  asunder  :  their  cry,  and  the  united  cry  of 
Britain,  had  reached  the  ear  of  Heaven.  Upwards  of  five  thou- 
sand petitions  in  favour  of  Negro  Emancipation  were  presented 
to  Parliament  during  the  session  of  1831 ;  and  the  annual 
meeting  of  the  Anti-Slavery  Society  of  that  year  was  crowded 
to  excess,  and  the  Besolutions  were  in  favour  of  immediate  and 
total  Abolition.     The  West-Indian  proprietors  resident  in  Eng- 

*  Hansard's  "  Parliamentary  Debates." 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVEKV.  81 

land  were  panic-stricken  at  the  miglity  movement  that  was  now 
going  on;  and,  to  counteract  the  progress  of  public  opinion, 
they  published  and  circulated  through  the  country  a  manifesto, 
declaring  Abolition  to  be  inevitably  ruinous  to  the  slaves  as 
well  as  to  their  owners,  boldly  contradicting  the  well-authen- 
ticated instances  that  had  been  published  of  the  manner  in 
M^hich  the  slaves  were  still  treated,  and  falsely  asserting  that  so 
much  was  their  condition  now  improved  that  they  were  per- 
fectly contented  and  happy.  These  assertions  were  believed  by 
a  few ;  but  by  the  great  majority  of  the  nation  they  were 
treated  with  the  contempt  which  they  merited. 

The  colonial  authorities,  finding  that   matters  were  coming 
to  a  crisis,   were  maddened  wdth  rage.      They  determined  to 
wring  from  the  oppressed  Negroes  the  utmost  degree  of  labour 
they  could  exact,  and  to   treat  them  with  the   most  rigorous 
severity.     Their  plan  was,  wickedly  and  wantonly  to  goad  them 
into  disobedience  by  their  unreasonable  exactions,  and  then  to 
make  their   revolt   a  pretext  for   asserting  their   unfitness  for 
emancipation.*     They  abridged  the  Christmas  holidays,  which 
from  time  immemorial  had  been  allowed  to  the  slaves  ;  and  ones 
more  vented  their  spleen  against  the  missionaries,  several  of 
whom   they  arrested  in    the   street,  dragged  them  from  their 
homes,  and  "  cast  them  into  prison,  charguig  the  jailor  to  keep 
them    safely."    (Acts  xvi.   23.)     The    missionaries   of   different 
denominations  were    designated   sectaries,    and  none   was    ex- 
empt from  abuse  and  persecution.     Moravians,   Baptists,  and 
Wesley ans  were  alike  stigmatized  as  fanatics.    The  Rev.  Messrs. 
Knibb  and  Burchell  of  the  Baptist  Society  were  driven  from  the 
island  of  Jamaica;   and  they  arrived  in   England  at  the  very 
juncture  when  their  evidence  before  a  Parliamentary  Committee 
was  of  the  utmost  value.     Among   the  Weslcyans,  the    Rev. 
Messrs.   AVilliams,  Campbell,  Whitehouse,  Orton,  Greenwood, 
Box,    and   Rawden,   had    been    thrown   into   jail,    and   barely 
escaped  with  their  lives.     The  planters  stopped  not  here,  but 
dem  oil  shed  the  chapels  in  which  the  poor  despised  Negro  had 
worshipped   the    God   of  heaven,    burnt   or    pulled    down   the 
mission-houses,  and  tried  every  expedient  to  banish  the  mis- 
sionaries, intimating  that  nothing  short  of  their  removal  could 
save  the  islands  from  ruin. 

But  all  this  outburst  of  feeling  on  the  pai't  of  the  planters, 
and  others  interested  in  the  continuance  of  Slavery,  only  tended 
to  increase  the  desire  and  determination,  on  the  part  of  the 

*  Taylor's  "  Biographical  Sketch  of  Tliomas  Clarkson." 
a 


83  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

friends  of  the  long-oppressed  Negro,  to  ask  for  immediate  and 
total  Abolition.  At  length  the  session  of  1833  arrived,  and  the 
first  reformed  ParUament  assembled.  The  Anti-Slavery  Society 
in  London  held  their  meeting  this  year  a  month  earlier  than 
usual.  The  Great  Room  at  Exeter-Hall  was  crowded  to  excess. 
Lord  Suffield  took  the  chair.  The  speeches  were  most  elo- 
quent and  interesting;  and  the  Resolutions  were  to  the  effect 
that  immediate  emancipation  was  safe  and  practicable,  and  was 
a  debt  which  had  long  been  due  to  the  oppressed  Negroes.  A 
few  days  afterwards,  another  meeting  was  held  in  the  same 
Hall,  at  which  were  present  delegates  from  the  principal  towns 
in  the  United  Kingdom.  Samuel  Gurney,  Esq.,  took  the  chair. 
A  Resolution  was  passed  unanimously,  that  Slavery  must  and 
should  be  exterminated ;  and  a  memorial  to  that  effect,  signed 
by  all  the  delegates,  was  drawn  up  and  presented  the  next  day 
to  Earl  Grey.* 

Lectures  were  delivered  in  all  the  counties  of  the  kingdom. 
Crowded  meetings  were  every  where  held;  and  the  friends  of 
the  cause  bestirred  themselves  from  one  end  of  the  country  to 
the  other.  The  newspapers  and  periodicals  caught  the  enthu- 
siasm; the  cause  of  mercy  seemed  the  cause  of  religion;  and 
many  of  the  clergy  and  Dissenting  ministers  did  not  hesitate  to 
urge  upon  their  flocks  the  sinfulness  of  Slavery,  and  the  righte- 
ousness of  joining  heart  and  hand  for  its  overthrow.  The  flame 
soon  spread  far  and  wide ;  and  from  every  corner  of  the  land 
petitions  poured  in.  The  number  of  signatures  attached  to  the 
petitions  presented  this  session  were  calculated  to  amount  to 
nearly  a  million  and  a  half.f  One  of  the  petitions  was  from  the 
females  of  Great  Britain,  which,  within  a  very  short  period,  had 
received  no  less  than  187,000  signatures.  This  was  presented 
by  Mr.  Buxton ;  but  the  document  was  so  bulky  that  he  was 
himself  unable  to  carry  it ;  so  that  "  three  honourable  members 
went  out  with  JNIr.  Buxton,  and,  by  the  united  exertions  of  the 
four,  the  petition  Avas  brought  in  and  placed  upon  the  table, 
amidst  the  laughter  and  cheers  of  the  House.^'  J 

This  was  on  the  14th  of  May,  and  the  Government  BiU  for 
Emancipation  Avas  introduced  to  the  House  by  Mr.  Stanley, 
then  Colonial  Secretary,  on  the  same  evening.  It  underwent 
various  modifications,  and  did  not  finally  pass  both  Houses  till 
the  20th  of  August.  It  was  not  entirely  what  the  Abolitionists 
wished;    but   they   were   thankful   for   it   as   it   was;    and   on 

*  Taylor's  "  Biographical  Sketch  of  Thomas  Clarlvson." 

t  "Memoirs  of  Sir  Thomas  Fowell  Buxton,"  p.  31G.  J  Idem,  p.  321. 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  83 

August  28th  it  received  the  royal  assent.  The  Bill  which  was 
then  passed  enacted,  that  Slavery  should  cease  to  exist  in  the 
British  colonies,  on  the  1st  of  August,  1834.  From  that  time  a 
system  of  apprenticeship  was  to  commence;  and  the  domestic 
slave  was  to  have  his  full  liberty  in  1838,  and  the  field-slave  two 
years  later.  The  premium  of  twenty  milUons  to  the  planters,  as 
a  remuneration  for  the  loss  which,  it  was  assumed,  they  would 
sustain,  was  strongly  objected  to  by  some  of  the  Abolitionists, 
who  also  contended  that  every  Negro  ought  at  once  to  have 
been  made  absolutely  free,  without  any  pecuniary  grant  what- 
ever. But  Slavery  was  felt  to  be  an  evil  of  dreadful  magnitude ; 
and,  as  the  nation  had  for  ages  participated  in  the  guilt  of  it,  both 
by  connivance  and  direct  sanction,  though  the  sacrifice  of  twenty 
millions  of  money  on  the  part  of  the  country  was  great,  the  sum 
was  cheerfully  advanced ;  and  the  measure  altogether  gave  general 
satisfaction,  especially  to  the  religious  part  of  the  community. 

The  anxiously-expected  First  of  August,  1834,  at  length 
arrived;  and  the  precious  boon  of  liberty  was  bestowed  on 
upwards  of  eight  hundred  thousand  Negroes,  who  were  then 
raised  from  the  condition  of  chattels,  and  goods,  and  things,  to 
the  dignity  of  man ;  and  our  nation  was  freed  from  a  load  of 
guilt  which  had  long  hung  like  a  mill-stone  about  our  necks, 
ready  to  sink  us  to  perdition.  In  the  Statute-Book  there  was 
now  an  Abolition  Code.  Liberty  of  conscience  was  given  to  the 
too  long  degraded  and  persecuted  Negro  in  all  our  Colonies; 
and  Great  Britain,  from  whose  empire  the  sun  never  sets, 
became  on  that  day  universally  free  ! 

That  day  was  hailed  with  unutteraljle  delight  by  the  recipi- 
ents of  the  boon,  as  well  as  by  the  friends  of  Abolition.  That 
day  made  the  slave  a  free  man,  knocked  off  his  fetters,  and 
healed  that  soul  into  which  the  iron  had  so  frequently  entered. 
It  was  observed  very  generally  throughout  England  as  a  day  of 
rejoicing :  and  what  a  pleasing  contrast  did  that  morning  pre- 
sent, in  the  West  Indies,  to  the  assertions  of  the  fearful  and 
feverish  planter,  and  to  scenes  of  former  times !  In  several  of 
the  islands  proclamations  were  issued  which  announced  the 
First  of  August  as  a  day  of  Public  Thanksgiving,  and  ordered 
all  churches  and  chapels  to  be  opened  at  the  usual  time  for 
morning  service,  as  on  the  sabbath-day.  Business  was  sus- 
pended, and  the  shops  were  universally  closed  :  it  was  a  holiday 
by  common  consent ;  and  that  ever-memorable  and  glorious  day 
was  passed  in  a  religious  and  most  happy  manner.  Many  thou- 
sands of  human  beings,  who  had  that  morning,  for  the  first 
time,  breathed  the  air  of  freedom, — of  freedom  at  least  from 

G  2 


84  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

absolute  bondage, — assembled  iu  cheerful  crowds  to  praise  and 
Avorship  Him  who  "looseth  the  prisoners." 

The  Rev.  Peter  Duncan,  though  not  in  the  West  Indies 
at  the  time,  was  intimately  acquainted  with  West-Indian 
affairs;  and,  in  his  interesting  "Narrative  of  the  Wesleyan 
Mission  to  Jamaica,"  observes  on  this  subject :  "  The  eventful 
First  of  August  at  last  arrived, — a  day  which,  according  to  the 
predictions  of  some,  was  to  be  marked  with  disorder,  rapine, 
and  blood.  But  how  delightfully  were  such  predictions  falsi- 
fied !  The  behaviour  of  the  emancipated  Negroes  exceeded  the 
expectations  of  their  best  friends.  On  that  day,  and  the  follow- 
ing sabbath,  thousands  of  the  apprentices  were  seen  wending 
their  way  to  the  house  of  prayer.  Jamaica  had  never  witnessed 
such  vast  religious  assemblies  before.  Never  on  that  island  had 
so  many  voices  been  raised  in  praise  to  the  Giver  of  all  good : 
never  had  so  many  united  in  prayer  at  the  throne  of  the  hea- 
venly grace.  Thousands  of  petitions  ascended  to  God  on  behalf 
of  the  king,  and  the  benevolent  in  the  mother-country,  through 
whose  efforts  the  oppressed  had  been  set  free.  It  is  true, 
restrictions  did  exist  under  the  system  of  apprenticeship;  but 
much  was  gained.  The  reign  of  persecution  was  at  an 
END;  and  no  man  was  allowed  to  invade  the  sacred  rights  of 
conscience.  Sunday  markets  were  abolished;  and  all  might 
employ  the  time  of  the  day  in  attending  to  those  sacred 
exercises  for  which  the  sabbath  was  instituted."* 

In  some  of  the  Wesleyan  chapels  watch-night  services  were 
held  on  the  previous  evening,  when  suitable  and  appropriate 
sermons  were  preached ;  and,  just  as  the  clock  struck  twelve,  it 
was  stated  that  the  First  of  August  had  arrived,  with  the  cheer- 
ing announcement,  "  You  are  all  free  ! "  Gratitude  flowed  from 
every  heart,  and  tears  of  joy  ran  down  many  a  sable  face; 
whilst  some,  in  the  fulness  of  their  loyalty  to  their  beloved  sove- 
reign, and  with  an  enthusiasm  which  had  never  before  been 
witnessed,  loudly  exclaimed,  "  God  save  the  king  !  Long  live 
King  William  IV. !  God  save  the  king  ! "  Devout  and  fervent 
prayers  were  then  offered  up  for  the  king,  the  royal  family,  the 
British  Parliament,  and  British  Christians  generally,  by  whom, 
under  God,  the  great  boon  was  conferred;  and  the  spirit  of 
loyalty  and  gratitude  was  great  and  general.  But  was  the 
Author  and  Giver  of  "cAory  good  and  perfect  gift"  left  out  of 
the  question?  By  no  means.  One  of  the  missionaries,  from 
whom  we   have   already  quoted,    and  who   communicated   the 


*  Duncan's  "NarratiTe  of  the  Wesleyan  Mission  to  Jamaica,"  pp.  361,  362. 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  85 

result  of  tlie  First  of  August  to  the  Missionary  Committee  from 
the  island  of  Antigua,  where  the  legislature  wisely  dispensed 
with  the  apprenticeship,  thus  writes :  "  O  how  did  my  heart 
thrill  with  ecstasy,  while  hundreds  upon  hundreds,  just  delivered 
'  from  the  house  of  bondage,'  made  the  place  ring  again,"  whilst 
3^et  upon  their  knees,  "  with  the  voice  of  joy  and  thanksgiving  ! 
It  was  like  Israel  in  the  time  of  David  and  Solomon,  when  '  all 
the  congregation  blessed  the  Lord  God  of  their  fathers,  and 
bowed  down  their  heads,  and  \vorshipped  the  Lord,  and  the 
king/  (1  Chron.  xxix.  20.)"* 

Another  Wesley  an  missionary,  in  describing  a  parallel  scene 
wdiich  occurred  in  another  chapel  on  the  same  island  at  the  same 
hour,  says,  "  It  seemed  as  if  the  very  heavens  rejoiced  with  us ;  for 
just  at  this  moment  the  thunder  rolled,  with  all  the  majesty  of  a 
royal  salute,  while  the  clouds  poured  down  their  precious  contents 
upon  the  thirsty  ground,  as  if  emblematical  of  those  hallowing 
influences  of  the  Holy  Spirit  which  we  then  felt/'t  Through- 
out every  island,  in  fact,  rang  the  glad  sound  of  thanksgiving  to 
the  Father  of  all;  for  the  chains  were  broken,  and  the  slaves 
were  free.  One  of  the  Moravian  missionaries,  writing  from 
Jamaica,  says,  "  We  have  good  reason  to  believe  that  this  was  a 
day  of  real  blessing.  The  Negroes  frequently  expressed  their 
thankfulness  to  God  for  the  benefit  conferred  upon  them ;  and 
promised  good  conduct,  on  their  part,  in  their  new  civil  condi- 
tion. One  said,  '  First  we  thank  the  Father  in  heaven,  and 
then  the  king,  and  massa/  his  master  and  former  owner. 
Surely,  then,  on  the  first  day's  enjoyment  of  freedom,  a  suffici- 
ent pledge  was  given  for  its  future  improvement.  To  God  were 
its  earliest  hours  devoted,  in  a  grateful  acknowledgment,  that, 
while  the  boon  was  a  blessing  in  itself,  it  was  the  more  sacred, 
because  He  was  the  great  Dispenser  of  it.  At  his  feet  the  freed 
men  poured  out  the  exuberant  joy  of  their  hearts;  and,  from 
the  lips  of  his  minister,  they  willingly  received  those  truths 
which  were  calculated  to  make  tliem  free  indeed,  to  seal  on  their 
hearts  a  lasting  sense  of  the  favour  that  day  conferred,  and 
embody  in  their  lives  every  thing  which  could  adorn  the 
doctrine  of  God  their  Saviour." 

The  interest  of  that  auspicious  day  was,  indeed,  greatly 
heightened  by  the  consideration  that  the  pure  influence  of  our 
holy  religion,  the  religion  of  the  gospel,  had  procured  this  great 
blessing,  on  the  one  hand ;  and,  on  the  other,  had  prepared  the 
recipients  for  the  right  use  and  enjoyment  of  it.     It  was  the 

*  "  Wesleyan  Missionary  Notices,"  voL  vii.  p.  555.  f  Idem,  p.  554. 


rf6  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

influence  which  Christianity  had  exerted  upon  the  masses  of  the 
people  at  home,  that  obtained  this  great  charter;  -and  it  was 
missionary  toil  abroad,  and  the  preaching  of  the  same  everlast- 
ing gospel,  which  had  supported  the  Negro  under  the  infliction 
of  grievous  wrongs,  and  which  now  fitted  and  prepared  him  to 
enter  upon  the  possession  of  his  undoubted  rights.  "Glad 
tidings ^^  of  the  peaceable  conduct  of  the  Negroes  reached  Eng- 
land from  all  the  colonies,  thus  proving  that  they  were  worthy 
of  the  confidence  which  was  reposed  in  them :  and  the  general 
feeling  was,  "To  God  be  all  the  praise  \" 

Thus  closed  the  memorable  First  of  August,  1834.  By  many 
persons  that  great  measure  was  regarded  as  an  experiment,  con- 
nected with  considerable  hazard ;  but  it  succeeded  beyond  the 
hopes  of  its  most  devoted  advocates.  The  religious  Negroes 
very  generally  did  honour  to  their  profession ;  and  subsequent 
events  have  proved  emancipation  to  be  productive  of  great  good. 
Education  now  began  to  advance  with  surprising  rapidity ;  and 
Christianity  made  a  steady  progress,  that  sanctified  the  boon 
which  the  emancipated  Negro  had  received;  so  that  the 
debased  and  crouching  slave  became  converted  into  an  industri- 
ous and  happy  peasant,  whose  godliness  and  honesty  com- 
manded general  respect.  The  following  extract  from  a  series  of 
articles  on  the  West  Indies,  which  appeared  in  the  "  Christian 
Times"  of  March  2d,  1849,  will  exhibit  the  truth  of  this  state- 
ment : — 

In  Jamaica  and  British  Guiana  there  are  at  least  fifty  thousand  jjersons  who, 
only  a  few  years  ago,  were  slaves,  who  are  now  living  on  their  own  freeholds,  upon 
which  they  liave,  for  the  most  part,  erected  houses  for  tliemselves  of  a  far  more 
durahle  and  comfortahle  kind  than  the  Negro  houses  they  formerly  occupied.  It  is 
no  uncommon  thing,  in  the  latter  colony,  for  twenty  or  thirty  Negroes  who  have 
been  refused  leases  of  the  houses  and  grounds  they  occupied  when  slaves,  or  to 
whom  the  land-owners  decUned  to  sell  those  houses  and  grounds,  to  become  pur- 
chasers of  an  estate  of  five  hundred  acres ;  to  employ  a  surveyor  to  divide  it 
amongst  them  in  lots  proportioned  to  the  capital  which  each  one  contributed ;  by 
their  united  labour  to  make  up  the  sea  and  back  dams ;  to  open,  widen,  and  deepen 
the  canal  by  which  the  laiul  is  drained ;  to  make  up  the  roads  running  through  the 
estate ;  to  build  each  one  a  comfortable  house  for  his  family ;  and  to  erect,  by  their 
joint  exertions,  a  place  of  worship  in  which  they,  and  the  Negroes  on  contiguous 
estates,  meet  for  mutual  instruction  and  the  worship  of  the  Almighty. 

Four  years  soon  passed  away,  and,  by  the  praiseworthy  exer- 
tions of  British  Christians,  on  the  First  of  August,  1838,  the 
apprenticeship  system  throughout  all  the  islands  ceased,  and 
Slavery  was  entirely  exterminated.  That  day  was  also  cele- 
brated as  a  day  of  public  thanksgiving ;  and  rehgious  services 
were  held,  when  appropriate  sermons  were  preached,  and  suitable 


ABOLITION    OF    BRITISH    SLAVERY.  87 

addresses  delivered.  The  Negro  then  became  fully  free ;  every 
link  of  the  galling  chain  was  broken ;  the  sun  of  liberty  slione 
upon  him  in  unclouded  glory :  his  sabbaths  were  his  own,  his 
children  were  his  own,  and  he  could  worship  God  according  to 
the  dictates  of  his  conscience.  On  that  day  the  sceptre  of 
Queen  Victoria  extended  only  over  freemen  in  the  West  Indies, 
not  a  single  slave  being  left  in  thraldom. 

"  '  But  then,  it  has  cost  the  country  twenty  millions  !  ^  And 
do  we  grudge  it  ?  It  has  cost  us  twenty  millions ;  but  it  has 
saved  the  colonies  !  It  has  cost  us  twenty  millions  ;  but  it  has 
liberated  the  Negroes  !  It  has  cost  us  twenty  millions ;  but  it 
has  preserved  our  honour,  and  raised  our  fame  among  the 
nations  of  the  earth.  It  has  cost  us  twenty  millions ;  but,  I  trust, 
it  has  saved  us  from  the  anger  of  that  Deity,  who  could  not  but 
have  looked  upon  us  in  wrath  and  indignation,  had  not  this 
evil  been  removed.^^  Tlius  spoke  Sir  Fowell  Buxton  at  the 
Wesleyan  Missionary  Anniversary  in  Exeter-Hall.  And  this 
feeling  w^as  general ;  for  the  poet's  philanthropic  aspiration  was 
caught  by  the  nation :  that  was  the  feeling 

"  Through  every  vein 
Of  all  your  empire  : — that  where  Britain's  power 
Is  felt,  mankind  may  feel  her  mercy  too." 

And  therefore  twenty  millions  of  money  were  cheerfully  given. 
That  was  a  noble  sacrifice  ;  but  it  was  in  a  noble  cause  ;  and  we 
may  conclude  this  chapter  in  the  words  of  an  eloquent  citizen  of 
another  nation  :  "  Great  Britain,  loaded  with  an  unprecedented 
debt,  and  with  a  grinding  taxation,  contracted  a  new  debt  of  a 
hundred  million  dollars,  to  give  freedom,  not  to  Englishmen,  but 
to  the  degraded  African.  I  know  not  that  history  records  an 
act  so  disinterested,  so  sublime.  In  the  progress  of  ages,  Eng- 
land's naval  triumphs  will  shrink  into  a  more  and  more  narrow 
space  in  the  records  of  our  race.  This  moral  triumph  will  fill  a 
broader,  brighter  page."  * 

*  Du.  Channing. 


CHAPTER  V. 

THE  AFRICAN  SLAVE-TRADE. 

The  Slave-Trarle  unsubdued — Great  Britain  no  longer  participates  in  the  Traffic — 
Has  used  her  diplomatic  Influence  with  other  Nations — Great  Expenditure 
incurred  in  discouraging  the  Slave-Trade — The  Slave-Trade  not  destroyed, 
but  increased — Sir  T.  F.  Buxton's  Statement — The  Construction  of  Slave-Ships 
— Enormous  Profits  of  the  Slave-Trade — The  Middle  Passage — Capture  of 
the  "Carolina" — Original  Tonnage  allowed  to  Slave-Ships — The"Patacho" 
Slaver  at  Rio  de  Janeiro — Extracts  from  the  Rev.  P.  G.  Hill's  Pamphlet,  entitled 
"  Fifty  Days  on  board  a  Slaver" — A  recent  Capture  near  Sierra-Leone — The 
Negi-oes  branded  with  red-hot  Irons — Twenty  thousand  Negroes  constantly 
on  the  Atlautic — Villages  depopulated  by  Slave-Hunters — The  Distress  of  the 
Africans  at  the  Loss  of  their  Relatives — The  Hebrew  Maid,  and  Jacob's  Son 
Joseph — An  Appeal  to  Christian  Parents. 

Having  briefly  sketched  the  rise,  progress,  and  abolition  of 
the  British  Slave-Trade,  and  the  termination  and  destruction 
of  Slavery  in  the  British  empire,  the  accomplishment  of  wliich 
sheds  an  lialo  of  glory  on  our  nation,  and  which  is  worthy 
of  being  placed  upon  everlasting  record ;  the  question  almost 
involuntarily  starts  up,  "But  is  the  Slave-Trade  abolished?" 
Facts  the  most  incontrovertible  and  unquestionable,  and  almost 
innumerable,  not  only  furnish  an  unqualified  answer  in  the 
negative,  but  most  clearly  prove  that  the  Slave-Trade  is  carried 
on  at  this  day  to  a  greater  extent  than  it  ever  was ;  and,  still 
further,  that  it  is  attended  with  more  horrible  cruelties,  and 
with  a  greater  amount  of  mortality,  than  it  was  sixty  years  ago, 
when  the  attention  of  Great  Britain  was  first  directed  to  its 
abolition.  These  are  lamentable  facts,  and  furnish  a  proof 
demonstrative  of  the  magnitude  of  the  evil,  while  they  vouch  fur 
the  correctness  of  Clarkson's  metaphor,  when  he  compared  the 
Slave-Trade  "  to  the  fabulous  hydi-a,  having  a  hundred  heads, 
every  one  of  which  it  was  necessary  to  cut  off  before  it  could  be 
subdued." 

It  is  matter  of  congratulation,  however,  that  our  own  country 
no  longer  participates  in  the  guilt  of  buying  and  selling  men, 
women,  and  children,  like  cattle  in  a  market ;  that  our  ships, 
whose  canvass  whitens  every  sea,  and  whose  flag  flutters  in 
every  breeze,  are  not  crowded  above  and  below  with  living 
cargoes;  and  that  our  merchandise,  which  is  carried  to  every 


Til  13    SLAVE-TRADE.  89 

port,  is  now  a  legitimate  tradcj  one  article  being  given  ia 
exchange  for  another.  English  merchants  do  not  now  send  a 
few  trinkets  of  finery,  or  a  piece  or  tAvo  of  blue  baft,  in  barter  for 
a  human  being.  Powder  and  shot  and  fire-arms  are  not  now 
furnished  bj^  them  to  some  petty  chief,  who  employs  and 
expends  that  powder  and  shot  in  procuring  for  the  European  some 
of  his  own  subjects  in  payment  for  those  very  articles.  No : 
though  it  is  to  be  feared  that  British  capital  has  in  some 
instances  found  its  way  into  this  corrupted  and  contraband 
channel,  thank  God,  the  British  Slave-Trade  is  abolished,  and 
British  Slavery  too  !  It  is  also  to  the  honour  of  Great  Britain, 
that  she  has  used  her  diplomatic  influence  in  rousing  the 
government  of  other  countries  to  the  importance  of  this  subject, 
and  that  her  influence  has  been  felt,  and  her  example  followed, 
b}^  most  of  the  foreign  powers  j  two  of  Avhom  proceeded  to 
make  the  traflSc  piracy,  punishable  with  death,  as  England 
had  done.  These  two  were  the  United  States  and  Brazil. 
The  rest  did  not  go  quite  so  far ;  but  all  of  them  made  the 
traffic  illegal,  and,  with  the  exception  of  the  United  States,  have 
consented  to  what  is  called  "the  mutual  Right  of  Search:" 
that  is,  each  nation  has  agreed  to  permit  its  ships  to  be  searched 
at  sea  by  the  ships  of  the  other  contracting  parties,  so  as  to 
detect  any  slaves  who  may  be  on  board.  And  for  some  years 
past  a  line  of  British  cruisers  has  been  stationed  along  the 
African  coast,  and  others  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  Atlantic, 
near  South  America  and  the  West  Indies,  to  chase  and  capture 
slave-vessels. 

The  people  of  England,  indeed,  have  taken  a  more  lively  and 
intense  interest  in  this  than,  perhaps,  in  any  other  foreign  sub- 
ject :  and  the  Government,  whether  in  the  hands  of  one  party 
or  another,  cannot  be  accused  of  having,  for  a  long  series  of 
years,  been  wanting  either  in  zeal  or  in  exertion  for  the  sup- 
pression of  the  Slave-traffic.  Towards  the  end  of  the  last 
century,  the  cruelty  and  the  carnage  Avhicli  raged  in  Africa 
were  exposed ;  and,  as  already  stated,  after  tAventy  years' 
struggle.  Great  Britain  in  1807  prohibited  her  subjects  from 
engaging  in  the  Slave-Trade  :  in  1833  she  borrowed  tAventy 
millions  of  pounds  sterling  to  purchase  the  freedom  of  the  slaves 
in  her  West-India  and  other  colonies;  aud  on  the  First  of 
August,  1834,  British  Slavery  became  extinct ;  and  the  British 
Government,  in  abolishing  Slavery,  then  laid  doAvn  the  principle 
that  no  human  being  has  a  right  to  enslave  another;  and  all 
or  most  of  the  great  poAvers  of  Europe  have  been  induced  by 
Great  Britain  to  unite  in  expressing  their  abhorrence  of  this 


90  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

traffic,  and  with  all  of  them  treaties  more  or  less  stringent  have 
been  made  for  its  extinction. 

Eight  years  ago,  England  had  expended  in  payment  to  foreign 
powers  on  account  of  the  Slave-Trade,  in  bounties,  and  in 
the  maintenance  of  courts  established  for  the  adjudication  of 
captured  slavers,  upwards  of  fifteen  millions  sterling.  If  Ave 
add  this  to  our  twenty  millions,  and  the  large  sum  still 
annually  expended  in  supporting  a  considerable  force  of  cruisers 
to  intercept  and  destroy  the  traffic,  and  the  five  or  six  millions 
which,  it  is  calculated,  the  people  of  the  United  Kingdom 
annually  lose — or  did  lose,  up  to  1846 — in  the  purchase  of 
sugar,  coftee,  &c.,  from  the  West  Indies,  by  way  of  encouraging 
free  labour,  instead  of  buying  them  from  Brazil  and  other  slave- 
holding  countries,  whence  these  articles  can  be  had  much 
cheaper;  the  amount  is  enormous.  And  to  this  we  must  add 
the  immense  loss  of  British  life  which  is  necessarily  occasioned 
in  pursuing  the  object.  But  what  is  the  result  of  aU  this  ? 
The  question  again  presents  itself,  "  Is  the  Slave-Trade  sup- 
pressed? Does  Brazil,  does  Cuba,  does  Porto  Rico,  does  Buenos 
Ayres,  does  Texas,  do  the  United  States,  import  no  Negroes 
now  ?  Are  there  no  slave-ships  packed  with  Negroes  crossing 
the  Atlantic  at  this  moment  ?  Are  they  only  wax,  teak- wood,  and 
elephants^  teeth  that  form  the  cargoes  for  which  vessels  now 
visit  the  Guinea  coast  ?  Are  there  no  slave-warehouses  now  on 
the  line  of  shore  between  Cape  Verd  and  Biafra?  Are  the 
inhabitants  of  Timbuctoo  and  the  banks  of  Lake  Tchad  wonder- 
ing what  strange  thing  has  befallen  the  "Wliites,  that  there  is 
now  no  demand  for  Negroes  ?  And  do  they  now  find  it  useless 
to  kidnap  one  another  as  they  did  formerly  ?  Do  no  droves  of 
slaves  come  westward  now  ?  Has  the  stream  of  traffic,  disap- 
pointed of  its  western  outlet,  turned  northward  in  the  direction 
of  the  Barbary  States  and  the  Isthmus  of  Suez?  Have  the 
labours  of  our  Sharps  and  Clarksons  and  Wilberforces,  of  our 
philanthropists  and  statesmen,  and  the  struggles  and  negotia- 
tions of  forty  years,  been  crowned  with  success?"*  In  one 
word :  after  the  millions  of  money  that  have  been  expended, 
and  the  multitudes  of  lives  that  have  been  sacrificed,  once  more 
we  ask,  "  Is  the  Slave-Trade  at  an  end  ? " 

Startling  as  the  assertion  is,  The  Slave-Trade  is  not  extin- 
guished, the  Slave-Trade  is  not  diminished,  the  Slave-Trade  is 
really  abolished  only  in  reference  to  Great  Britain.  Nay,  more, 
the  number  of  Negroes  imported  into  America  is  twice  as  great 

*  Chambers's  "Miscellany,"  No.  19. 


THE    SLAVE-TilADE.  91 

as  it  Avas  half  a  century  ago ;  whilst  this  odious  traffic  is  accom- 
panied with  the  most  unparalleled  and  unheard-of  cruelties — 
cruelties  aggravated,  and  in  some  measure  occasioned,  by  the 
decided  determination  with  which  our  country  has  set  its  face 
against  this  ungodly  and  detestable  trade.  The  cause  is  this  : 
During  the  latter  period  of  the  existence  of  the  Slave-Trade 
among  ourselves,  the  slave-merchants  and  traders  were  induced 
to  adopt  and  comply  with  certain  regulations  which  Avere 
intended  to  diminish  as  much  as  possible  the  horrors  of  the" 
Middle  Passage,  that  is,  of  the  voyage  from  Africa  to  the  West 
Indies.  But,  now  that  the  whole  trade  is  proscribed,  and  our 
own  countrymen  take  no  part  in  it,  and  many  other  nations 
have  joined  in  reprobating  the  system,  and  in  determining,  if 
possible,  to  crush  it,  the  traffic  in  human  flesh  has  fallen  into 
the  hands  of  needy  and  unprincipled  adventurers  and  despe- 
radoes, Avho  care  not  through  what  oceans  of  crime  and  blood- 
shed they  wade,  if  they  can  only  secure  a  little  paltry  and 
present  advantage.  The  consequence  is,  that  the  Slave-Trade 
is  now  carried  on  with  a  waste  of  human  life  almost  beyond 
conception,  arising  from  the  vessels  being  small,  ill- contrived, 
badly  constructed,  and  scantily  provisioned,  and  from  the  hasty 
manner  and  various  precautions  which  their  captains  are  com- 
pelled to  adopt,  in  order  to  escape  detection. 

Sir  Fowell  Buxton,  on  the  failure  of  past  efforts  for  the  sup- 
pression of  the  Slave-Trade,  observes :  "  It  is,  then,  but  too 
manifest,  that  the  efforts  already  made  for  the  suppression  of 
the  Slave-Trade  have  not  accomplished  their  benevolent  object : 
we  have  only  the  afflicting  conviction,  that  the  Slave-Trade 
is  as  far  as  ever  from  being  suppressed.  Nay,  I  am  afraid  the 
fact  is  not  to  be  disputed,  that  while  we  have  thus  been  endea- 
vouring to  extinguish  the  traffic,  it  has  actually  doubled  in 
amount."  And  this  Sir  Fowell  most  clearly  proved  "  by  docu- 
ments which  cannot  be  controverted, — that  for  every  village 
fired,  and  every  drove  of  human  beings  marched  in  former 
times,  there  are  now  double.  For  every  cargo  then  at  sea,  two 
cargoes,  or  twice  the  number  in  one  cargo,  wedged  together  in 
a  mass  of  living  corruption,  are  now  borne  on  the  waves  of  the 
Atlantic.  But  whilst  the  numbers  who  suffer  have  increased, 
there  is  no  reason  to  believe  that  the  sufferings  of  each  have 
been  abated :  on  the  contrary,  we  know  that  in  some  particulars 
these  have  increased :  so  that  the  sum  total  of  misery  swells  in 
both  ways.  Each  individual  has  more  to  endure;  and  the 
number  of  individuals  is  twice  what  it  was.  The  result,  there- 
fore, is,  that  aggravated  suffering  reaches  multiplied  numbers." 


92  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

In  order  to  escape  tlic  British  cruisers,  all  slave-ships  are 
now  built  on  the  principle  of  fast  sailing ;  so  that  the  exulting 
expression  of  an  old  weather-beaten  Spaniard  mentioned  by  the 
preceding  writer,  "  Once  outside  in  my  trim  vessel,  you  may  catch 
me  if  you  can,"  is  unhappily  something  more  than  an  empty 
vaunt.  For  we  know  too  well,  that,  with  his  slaves  safely  on 
board,  and  his  vessel  fairly  at  sea,  it  is  not  often  that  the  slave- 
trader  is  captured, — probably  not  more  than  once  in  thirty 
times.  Even  this  small  risk  of  being  captured  takes  away  all 
inducement,  from  mere  selfish  motives,  to  make  the  cargo  mode- 
rate :  on  the  contrary,  it  is  an  object  now  to  make  the  cargo  as 
large  as  possible ;  because  then  the  escape  of  one  cargo  out  of 
three  will,  it  is  calculated,  give  to  those  engaged  in  this  dis- 
graceful trade  a  net  profit  of  from  150  to  180  per  cent.  And 
here  it  is  that  we  find  the  cause,  the  principal  cause,  of  the  con- 
tinuance of  the  Slave-Trade.  It  is  "  Mammon,"  it  is  "  filthy 
lucre,"  it  is  the  "love  of  money,"  which  is  emphatically  "the 
root"  of  this  monster  "evil."  Accordingly  the  Negroes  are 
now  packed  in  the  slave-ships  like  bales  of  goods  in  a  warehouse, 
or  herrings  in  a  barrel.  They  have  neither  standing-room,  nor 
sitting-room,  nor  lying-room.  They  are  cooped  up  anyhow, 
squeezed  into  crevices,  or  jammed  up  against  the  curved  planks, 
or  wedged  together  in  water-casks,  and  are  literally  fed  on 
the  "  bread  aud  Avater  of  afiliction."  These  poor  creatures  are 
sometimes  actually  packed  in  butts  or  casks  covered  over  at  the 
top ;  and  the  OAvners,  on  being  chased  by  a  British  cruiser,  have 
been  known  to  throw  the  casks,  with  their  living  contents,  into 
the  sea. 

The  reader  may  form  some  idea  of  the  misery  endured  by 
these  unhappy  creatures  on  the  Middle  Passage,  from  the  fol- 
lowing account  of  the  capture  of  a  slaver  off  Whydali,  in  the 
year  1834.  This  narrative  was  kindly  furnished  to  me,  when  in 
Africa,  by  the  Heverend  gentleman  himself,  soon  after  it  was 
penned. 

EXTRACT    FROM    A    JOURNAL    ON    BOARD    H.    M.    S.    "  ISIS,"    KEPT    BY 
THE    REV.    W.    V.    HENNEH,    CHAPLAIN. 

February  16th,  1834.  Latitude  5°  4'  South,  longitude  4°  52'  East.  We  yester- 
day fell  in  with  the  "  Griffon  ; "  and  by  signal  were  informed  that  she  had  chased  a 
vessel,  which  she  supposed  to  be  a  slave-vessel,  all  day  and  night,  but  had  lost  her. 
Guessing  her  course,  the  captain  stood  on  all  night :  and  early  this  morning  she 
was  seen  in  the  wind's  eye.  After  chasing  her  some  time  and  nearing  her,  it  fell 
calm  ;  when  our  l)oats  were  hoisted  out,  manned  and  armed,  and  dispatched  to  the 
chase,  now  about  seven  miles  distant.  At  noon  the  boats  boarded ;  and  at  one 
P.M.  a  fine  brigantine  came  alongside  of  us  with  three  hundi-ed  and   fifty  slaves  on 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  93 

board.  It  was  Sunday ;  and,  after  sending  away  the  boats,  the  duties  of  the  day 
were  not  forgotten,  and  service  was  performed  on  the  quarter-deck.  In  the  after- 
noon I  went  on  board,  when  the  sight  that  presented  itself  beggars  all  description. 
The  upper  deck  was  crowded  mth  women  and  children,  sitting  and  lying  down  so 
thickly,  that  the  sailors  to  whom  the  duty  of  setting  and  trimming  sails  devolved, 
could  with  difficulty  make  their  way  among  them  without  treading  upon  some. 
All  were  naked,  and  apparently  unconscious  of  a  breach  of  decency.  On  my 
getting  upon  deck,  and  looking  upon  them  with  the  eye  of  commiseration,  mixed 
with  indignation  at  the  perpetrators  of  this  cruel  breach  of  laws  both  Divine  and 
human,  some  caught  me  by  the  hand  or  feet,  others  held  out  to  me  their  tongues, 
black  and  parched  for  want  of  water,  and  all  in  the  most  piteous  accents  begged  for 
uqua.  I  took  a  can,  and  gave  them  enough  to  moisten  their  tongues,  which  they 
seized  with  the  greatest  avidity,  licking  up  even  that  which  dropped  upon  the  deck. 

But  the  sufferings  here  were  light  in  comparison  to  those  upon  the  deck  below, 
where  the  men  were  stowed.  There,  with  three  feet  from  deck  to  deck,  with  irons 
round  their  legs,  and  panting  for  air  as  well  as  water,  were  the  miserable  victims  of 
tills  diabolical  traffic  laid,  groaning  and  exhausted  with  anguish.  Some  had  been 
brought  up  into  the  air  on  the  upper  deck,  worn  out  with  sufferings  and  gasping 
for  life :  to  others,  alas  !  the  remedy  had  been  too  long  delayed,  they  were  extended 
lifeless  corpses.  Every  feeling,  the  pangs  occasioned  by  the  being  torn  from 
friends  and  relations  and  country  and  home,  the  sense  of  decency  and  common 
modesty,  were  all  forgotten,  and  sacrificed  to  the  agony  created  by  a  want  of  food 
and  water.  Heu,  gens  infelix!  Shall  there  be  found  men  to  advocate  thy 
miseries  ?  Can  man  advocate  the  miseries  of  his  fellow-man  ?  Where  are  the 
advantages  to  balance  the  miseries  .'  Nowhere,  but  in  the  imaginations  of  those 
who  mistake  gain  for  godliness,  or  who  are  led  astray  by  the  fallacious  reasonings 
of  man  worshipping  mammon  instead  of  God. 

A  change  was  soon  wTOught  in  the  melancholy  scene.  The  irons  were  struck 
oft' ;  food  and  water  were  distributed  ;  their  parched  and  feverish  boches  were  well 
washed  ;  joy  beamed  in  every  countenance ;  and  the  Divine  attribute  of  doing  good 
was  experienced  both  by  those  who  gave  liberty  to  the  captives,  and  by  those  who 
received  the  boon. 

The  "Carohna"  was  an  eighty-seven  Spanish  tons'  ship. 

A  law  passed  the  British  legislature  in  1788  by  which  it  was 
provided  that  vessels  under  a  hundred  and  fifty  tons  should  not 
carry  more  than  five  men  to  every  three  tons ;  that  vessels  above 
a  hundred  and  fifty  tons  should  not  carry  more  than  three  men 
to  every  two  tons ;  and  that  the  height  of  slave- vessels  between 
decks  should  not  be  less  than  five  feet.  In  1813  it  was  decreed 
by  the  Grovernment  of  Portugal  and  Brazil,  that  two  tons 
should  be  allowed  for  every  five  men ;  and  the  Spanish  "  Ce- 
dula'^  of  1817  adopted  the  same  scale.  It  should  be  under- 
stood, however,  that  the  Spanish  and  Portuguese  ton  bears  the 
proportion  of  one  and  a  half  to  the  British  ton  ;  so  that  the 
above  scale  of  two  tons  Spanish  to  five  men,  is  the  same  as  five 
men  to  three  British  tons.  But  then  it  is  often  found,  on 
re-measuring  the  slave-vessels,  that  the  tonnage  is  much  less 
than  that  stated  in  their  papers ;  and  thus  the  accommodation, 


94  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

limited  as  it  was  at  tlic  best,  lias  been  greatly  diminished.  It 
turned  out,  in  fact,  that  "the  'Carolina^  was  only  seventy-five 
tons'  burden,  yet  she  had  three  hundred  and  fifty  Negroes 
crammed  on  board  of  her ;  one  hundred  and  eighty  of  whom  were 
literally  so  stowed  as  to  have  barely  sufiicient  height  to  hold 
themselves  up  when  in  a  sitting  posture."  *  How  could  they, 
indeed,  when  there  was  only  "three  feet  from  deck  to  deck,'' 
and  they  had  "  irons  round  their  legs,  and  were  panting  for  air 
as  well  as  water?"  No  wonder  that  those  poor  creatures 
crowded  round  their  deliverers,  with  their  mouths  open  and 
their  tongues  black,  and  parched  for  want  of  water,  "  which  they 
seized  with  the  greatest  avidity,  licking  up  even  that  which 
dropped  upon  the  deck,"  and  presenting  a  perfect  spectacle  of 
human  misery.  But  to  others,  alas  !  the  remedy  had  been  too 
long  delayed ;  death  had  terminated  their  suflerings ;  "  they 
were  extended  lifeless  corpses." 

The  capture  of  the  "  Patacho,"  reported  by  the  Commission- 
ers at  Rio  de  Janeiro  in  1835,  affords  another  instance  of  the 
worse  than  brutal  treatment  Avhich  the  poor  Africans  are  called 
to  endure  on  board  these  horrible  floating,  coffin-like  dungeons. 
"  This  vessel  was  in  the  first  instance  detained  only  on  suspicion, 
and  the  capturing  party  had  had  possession  forty-eight  hours, 
and  had  made  every  possible  search,  as  they  supposed,  before  it 
was  discovered  that  there  were  any  slaves  concealed  on  board. 
What  the  state  of  these  wretched  beings,  to  the  number  of 
forty-seven,  must  have  been,  deprived  for  so  long  a  time  of  air 
and  food,  and  packed  in  the  smallest  possible  compass,  like  so 
many  bales  of  goods,  we  need  not  pain  your  Lordship  by 
describing."  f 

Mr.  Cowper,  Consul  at  Pernambuco,  under  date  of  January 
1st,  1844,  writes,  "I  cannot  report  to  your  Lordship  any  new 
features  connected  with  this  traffic,  further  than  that  the  vessels 
in  it  are  daily  diminishing  the  space  allowed  on  board  their 
ships  to  these  unhappy  beings,  thereby,  of  course,  increasing  the 
horrors  attendant  upon  the  voyage,  and  sacrificing  more  and 
more  the  lives  of  their  wretched  victims.  Por  instance,  it  must 
appear  incredible  to  those  unaccustomed  to  these  details,  that 
ninety-seven  human  beings  could  have  been  stowed  away  in  a 
vessel  (the  "  Conceicao  ")  of  twenty-one  tons,  giving  five  indivi- 
duals to  each  ton,  or  one  fifteenth  of  the  space  allowed  in  the 
transport  service  of  Great  Britain  to  each  soldier,  and  this  for  a 
period   of  twenty   days,   with  the   thermometer   certainly   not 

*  Sir  Thomas  Fowell  Buxton's  "  Slave-Trade  and  its  Remedy."         f  Idem. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  95 

averaging  less  than  86°  of  Fahrenheit,  without  exercise  even 
for  the  necessities  of  nature ;  without  air,  excepting  such  as 
could  find  its  way  betwixt  the  gratings  of  the  hatchway ;  and 
that  ninety-one  of  these  poor  creatures  should  have  reached  their 
prison-land  in  safety.  I,  who  know  this,  and  have  seen  the 
vessel,  or  rather  boat,  cannot,  by  any  stretch  of  imagination, 
conceive  how  the  powers  of  human  endurance  could  have  sup- 
ported them  twenty  days  in  this  floating  hell."  * 

Other  cases  of  equal  cruelty  and  barbarity  the  reader  will  find 
in  Sir  FoweU  Buxton's  work  on  the  Slave-Trade,  and  elsewhere ; 
but  since  that  painfully  interesting  book  was  published,  a  har- 
rowing pamphlet,  describing  the  wretched  condition  of  the  poor 
Negroes  at  sea,  even  after  they  fell  into  British  hands,  has  been 
printed  and  published  by  the  Rev.  P.  G.  Hill,  and  is  entitled, 
"  Fifty  Days  on  Board  a  Slave-Vessel  in  the  Mozambique 
Channel,  in  April  and  May,  1843.'^  This  slaver  was  the 
"  Progresso,"  a  Brazilian  vessel,  and  was  captured  on  the  coast 
of  Madagascar  by  Her  Majesty's  cruiser  "  Cleopatra,"  on  board 
of  which  Mr.  Hill  was  chaplain.  The  "  Progresso  "  was  bound 
for  Rio  Janeiro,  had  quitted  the  coast  of  Africa  only  the  pre- 
vious evening,  and  was  consequently  captured  within  a  few  hours 
after  the  embarcation  of  the  slaves.  She  was  of  about  one  hun- 
dred and  forty  tons,  and  the  slaves  on  board  amounted  to  four 
hundred  and  forty-seven.  Of  this  number,  one  hundred  and 
eighty-nine  were  men,  few,  however,  if  any,  exceeding  twenty 
years  of  age ;  forty-five  were  women ;  and  two  hundred  and 
thirteen,  boys.  The  slaver,  immediately  on  being  captured,  was, 
as  is  usual,  taken  charge  of  by  a  British  crew,  who  were  to 
navigate  her  to  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope,  most  of  the  sailors  of 
the  "Progresso"  being  placed  on  board  the  "Cleopatra."  Mr. 
Hill,  at  his  own  request,  accompanied  the  slaver ;  and  his  pam- 
phlet is  a  narrative  of  what  took  place  during  the  fifty  days 
which  elapsed  before  their  arrival  at  the  Cape,  and  is  perhaps 
one  of  the  most  heart-rending  tales  of  woe  by  which  the  history 
of  the  horrid  Slave-Trade  has  been  distinguished.  We  cannot 
here  quote  the  details  of  the  treatment  of  the  Negroes  given  by 
Mr.  Hill ;  but  the  following  account  of  the  horrors  of  a  single 
night  may  suffice  as  a  specimen. 

Shortly  after  the  "Progresso"  parted  company  Avith  the 
cruiser,  a  squall  arose,  and  the  Negroes,  who  were  breathing 
fresh  air  on  the  deck,  and  rolling  themselves  about  for  glee,  and 

*  "  First  Report  of  the  Select  Committee  of  the  House  of  Commons  on  the 
Slave-Trade,  1848,"  p.  252. 


96  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

kissing  tlie  hands  and  clothes  of  their  deliverers,  were  all  sent 
beloAV. 

The  night  (says  Mr.  Hill)  being  intensely  hot,  four  hundred  wretched  beings, 
thus  crammed  into  a  hold  twelve  yards  in  length,  seven  in  breadth,  and  only  three 
and  a  half  feet  in  height,  speedily  began  to  make  an  effort  to  re-issue  to  the  open 
air.  Being  thrust  back,  and  striving  the  more  to  get  out,  the  after -hatch  was 
forced  down  on  them.  Over  the  other  hatchway  in  the  fore  part  of  the  vessel,  a 
wooden  gi-ating  was  fastened.  To  this,  the  sole  inlet  for  air,  the  suffocating  heat  of 
the  hold,  and,  perhaps,  panic  from  the  strangeness  of  their  situation,  made  them 
press  ;  and  thus  great  part  of  the  space  below  was  rendered  useless.  They  crowded 
to  the  grating ;  and,  cUnging  to  it  for  air,  completely  barred  its  entrance.  They 
strove  to  force  their  way  through  apertures  in  length  fourteen  inches  and  barely  six 
inches  in  breadth,  and  in  some  instances  succeeded.  The  cries,— the  heat, — I  may 
say  without  exaggeration,  "  the  smoke  of  their  torment," — which  ascended,  can  be 
compared  to  nothing  earthly.  One  of  the  Spaniards  gave  warning  that  the  conse- 
quence would  be  "  many  deaths."  Next  day  the  prediction  of  the  Spaniard  was 
fearfuUy  verified.  Fifty-four  crushed  and  mangled  corpses  Ufted  up  from  the  slave- 
deck  have  been  brought  to  the  gangway  and  thrown  overboard.  Some  were 
emaciated  from  disease ;  many,  bruised  and  bloody.  Antonio  tells  me  that  some 
were  found  strangled,  their  hands  still  grasping  each  other's  throats,  and  tongues 
protruding  from  their  mouths.  The  bowels  of  one  were  crushed  out.  They  had 
been  trampled  to  death  for  the  most  part,  the  weaker  under  the  feet  of  the 
stronger,  in  the  madness  and  torment  of  suffocation  from  crowd  and  heat.  It  was 
a  horrid  sight,  as  they  passed  one  by  one, — the  stiff,  distorted  limbs  smeared  with 
blood  and  filth, — to  be  cast  into  the  sea.  Some,  still  quivering,  were  laid  on  the 
deck  to  die ;  salt  water  thrown  on  them  to  revive  them,  and  a  little  fresh  water 
poured  into  their  mouths.  Antonio  reminded  me  of  his  last  night's  warning.  He 
actively  employed  himself,  with  his  comrade  Sebastian,  in  attendance  on  the 
wretched  hving  beings,  now  released  from  their  confinement  below ;  distributing  to 
them  their  morning  meal  of  "  farinha,"  and  their  allowance  of  water,  rather  more 
than  half  a  pint  to  each,  which  they  grasped  with  inconceivable  eagerness ;  some 
bending  their  knees  to  the  deck,  to  avoid  the  risk  of  losing  any  of  the  liquid  by 
unsteady  footing :  their  throats  doubtless  parched  to  the  utmost  with  ciying  and 
yelling  through  the  night."  * 

The  mortality  which  took  place  within  the  space  of  fifty  days, 
the  period  which  elapsed  from  the  capture  of  the  "  Progresso  " 
until  her  arrival  at  the  Cape, — was  one  hundred  and  sixty-nine ; 
a  little  short  of  one  half  of  the  human  cargo.  Many  also  died 
after  being  lauded.  The  crew  of  the  slaver  escaped,  there  being 
no  court  empowered  to  try  them  at  the  Cape. 

Instances  of  the  great  cruelty  with  which  the  Slave-Trade  is 
still  carried  on  are  daily  occurring.  The  "  St.  Helena/'  whose 
case  was  reported  in  a  letter  from  the  Sierra-Leone  Commis- 
sioners, dated  January  6th,  1844,  "was  of  eighty  tons  only: 
she  had  a  crew  of  eighteen  persons,  and  five  hundred  and  forty- 
nine  slaves;   making,  with  the  crew,   seven  persons  to  a  ton. 

*  Hill's  "  Fifty  Days  on  board  a  Slave-Ship,"  pp.  23,  24. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  97 

One  hundred  and  twenty  of  these  died  between  the  capture  and 
the  condemnation/^  Another  example  is  communicated  in  a 
letter  from  Mr.  Pakenham  to  Lord  Aberdeen,  respecting  the 
American  bark  "  Pons.^^ 

The  "  Pons  "  was  at  anchor  at  Cabenda  for  about  twenty  days  before  she  took 
on  board  the  slaves,  during  which  time  she  was  closely  watched  by  Her  Britannic 
Majesty's  brig  "  Cygnet."  At  about  nine  o'clock  on  the  morning  of  the  27th  of 
November  the  "  Cygnet  "  got  under  weigh,  and  stood  to  sea.  Immediately  Berry 
gave  up  the  ship  to  GaUono,  who  commenced  getting  on  board  the  water,  pro- 
visions, and  slaves ;  and  so  expeditious  were  they  in  their  movements,  that  at  eight 
o'clock  that  evening  the  vessel  was  under  weigh,  having  embarked  nine  hunflred 
and  three  slaves.  Two  days  afterwards  we  captured  her.  The  next  morning  I 
regretted  to  learn  that  eighteen  had  died,  and  one  had  jumped  overboard.  The 
vessel  has  no  slave-deck;  and  upwards  of  eight  hundred  and  fifty  were  piled, 
almost  in  bulk,  on  the  water-casks  below.  About  forty  or  fifty  females  were  con- 
fined in  one-half  of  the  round-house  cabin.  As  the  ship  appeared  to  be  less  than 
three  hundred  and  fifty  tons,  it  seemed  impossible  that  one-half  could  have  lived  to 
cross  the  Atlantic.  The  stench  from  below  was  so  great,  that  it  was  impossible  to 
stand  more  than  a  few  moments  near  the  hatchways.  Our  men  who  went  below 
from  curiosity,  were  forced  up  sick :  then  all  the  hatches  were  off.  Wliat  must 
have  been  the  sufferings  of  these  poor  wretches  when  the  hatches  were  closed  ?  I 
am  informed,  that  very  often,  in  those  cases,  the  stronger  will  strangle  the  weaker  ; 
and  this  was  probably  the  reason  why  so  many  died,  or  rather  were  found  dead, 
the  morning  after  the  capture.  None  but  an  eye-witness  can  form  a  conception  of 
the  horrors  these  poor  creatures  must  endure  in  their  transit  across  the  ocean.* 

One  more  capture  I  will  mention,  which  occurred  in  the 
month  of  October,  1846.  It  topk  place  in  the  neighbourhood 
of  Sierra-Leone,  and  the  particulars  of  it  were  published  in  the 
'' Watchman ''  newspaper  of  that  colony,  in  November  of  the 
same  year.  The  article  was  kindly  furnished  to  the  editor  by 
an  intelligent  friend  under  the  signature  of  "  Joliba,"  and  is  as 
follows : — 

On  the  1st  instant.  Her  Majesty's  brig  "  Cygnet,"  Commander  Montresu",  arrived, 
having  in  tow  the  Brazilian  brigantine,  "  Paqueta  de  Rio,"  which  vessel  had  been 
captured  off  the  Sherbro  on  the  27th  ult.,  having  on  board,  at  the  time  of  capture, 
five  hundred  and  fifty-six  slaves,  nine  of  whom  died  on  the  passage  here.  Through 
the  politeness  of  the  prize-officer,  I  was  permitted  to  inspect  the  vessel.  Although 
I  have  frequently  been  on  board  full  slavers  on  their  anival  at  this  port,  I  cer- 
tainly never  was  on  board  of  one  where  human  beings  were  stowed  in  the  smallest 
imaginable  space,  as  was  the  case  in  this  vessel : — five  hundred  and  forty-seven 
human  beings,  besides  the  crew  and  "passengers,"  (as  they  styled  themselves,) 
twenty-eight  in  number,  in  a  vessel  of  about  ninety  tons  ! 

The  slaves  were  all  stowed  together  perfectly  naked,  with  nothing  but  the  sur- 
faces of  the  water-casks,  which  were  made  level  by  fiUing-in  billets  of  wood,  which 
formed  the  slave-deck.  The  slaves  who  were  confined  in  the  hold, — it  being 
utterly  impossible  for  the  whole  of  them  to  remain  on  deck  at  one  time, — were  in 

*  "  First  Report  of  the  Select  Committee  of  the  House  of  Commons  on  the 
Slave-Trade,  1848,"  p.  252. 

H 


98 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


a  profuse  perspiration,  and  panting  like  so  many  hounds  for  air  and  water.     The 
smell  on  board  was  dreadful.     I  was  informed  that  on  the  officers  of  the  "  Cygnet  " 
boarding  the  slaver,  the  greater  part  of  the  slaves  were  chained  together  with  pieces 
of  chain  which  were  passed  through  iron  collars  round  their  necks ;  iron  shackles 
were  also  secured  round  theu'  legs  and  arms.     After  the  officers  had  boarded,  and 
the  slaves  were  made  to  understand  they  were  free,  their  acclamations  were  long 
and  loud.     They  set  to  work,  and,  with  the  billets  of  wood  which  had  hitherto 
formed  their  bed,  knocked  off  each  other's  shackles,  and  threw  most,  of  them  over- 
board.    There  were  several  left,  which  were  shown  to  me.     We  w'ill  leave  it  to  the 
imagination  of  yoirr  readers,  what  must  have  been  the  feelings  of  those  poor  people, 
when  they  found  they  were  again  free, — free  through  the  energy  and  activity  of  a 
British  cruiser.     On  examining  the  poor  creatm-es,  who  were  principally  of  the 
Kosso  nation,  I  found  they  belonged  to,  and  were  shipped  to,  different  individuals : 
they  were  branded  Uke  sheep.     Letters  were  burnt  in  the  skin,  of  two  inches  in 
length.     Many  of  them,  from  the  recent  period  at  which  it  had  been  done,  were  in 
a  state  of  ulceration.     Both  males  and  females  were  marked  as  follows :  On  the 
right  breast,  J. ;  on  the  left  arm,  P. :  over  women's  right  and  left  breast,  S.  and  A. ; 
under  the  left  shoulder,  P. ;  right  breast,  R.  and  R.  J. ;  on  the  right  and  left  breast, 
S.  S. ;  and  on  the  right  and  left  shoulder,  S.  S.     She  was  captmed  off  the  Sherbro, 
not  eighty  miles  from  this  place,  on  Thursday  the  27th  of  October.     This  is  the 
same  vesssl  that  cleared  out  from  here,  about  three  weeks  previous  to  the  capture 
from  Rio  de  Janeiro.     The'  slaves  were  all  embarked  from  the  slave -factories  at 
GalUnas,  under  the  notorious  Don  Luiz ;  and  the  vessel  was  under  weigh  in  five 
hours  ;  and  had  there  been  the  slightest  breeze,  she  would  have  escaped.     Amongst 
the  slaves  were  two  men  belonging  to  Sien'a-Leone  : — a  man  named  Peter,  once 
employed  by  Mr.  Elliott  the  pilot.     He  stated  that  he  had  been  employed  by  a 
Mr.  Smith,  a  Popah-man,  to  go  to  the  Sherbro  to  purchase  palm-oil ;  and  that 
whilst  pursuing  that  object,  he  was   seized  and  sold  by  a  Sherbro  chief,  named 
Sherry.     The  other  man,  who  stated  his  name  to  be  James,  had  once  worked  for 
Mr.  Hornell,  merchant  of  tliis  town.     WhUe  at  the  Galhuas,  he  was  sold  by  a  cliief 
named  Mannah.     Dming  the  day,  the  marshal  of  the  Vice-Admiralty  Court  landed 
two  hundred  and  ninety-seven  men,  sixty-seven  women,  one  hundred  and  fifty-foiu- 
boys,  and  twenty-nine  girls :  nine  deaths  on  the  passage  made  a  total  of  five  hun- 
dred and  fifty-six  slaves  on  board  at  the  time  of  captiu:e.     The  poor  creatures  were 
amply  suppUed  with  clothing,  and  their  wants  attended  to,  when  lodged  in  the 
capacious  quarters  at  the  Liberated  African  Yard. 

It  was  a  liappy  circumstance  for  these  unfortunate  Negroes^ 
branded  though  they  had  been  with  the  red-hot  iron,  and 
placed  in  the  slave-ship,  and  consigned  to  certain  dealers  in 
human  flesh  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  Atlantic,  and  already 
under  weigh,  that  the  sharp  cut  and  black  hull  of  this  Brazilian 
slaver  were  so  soon  discovered  by  the  watchful  eje,  and  then 
captured  by  the  activity,  of  our  brave  officers  and  crew  of  the 
"  Cj^gnet.^'  A  vast  amount  of  misery  was  thus  prevented,  and 
many  lives  were  saved.  But  it  is  often  the  case,  that,  when  a 
slaver  is  captured,  hundreds  of  these  our  fellow-creatures,  men, 
women,  and  children,  have  been  on  board,  and  in  the  holds  of 
these  dismal  dens,  for  two  or  three  or  four  weeks,  wedged  toge- 
ther between  the  decks,  in  a  space  which,  in  some  cases,  is  not 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE,  99 

more  than  twenty-two  inches  from  the  floor  to  the  ceiling.  The 
agony  of  the  position  of  the  croncliing  slaves  must  be  dreadful ; 
and  when  they  are  once  fixed,  relief  by  motion  or  change  of 
posture  is  next  to  impossible.  The  body  frequently  stiffens ; 
and,  on  being  rescued,  the  poor  creatures  cannot  stand,  and  it 
requires  the  utmost  exertions,  favoured  by  a  hot  sun,  to 
straighten  their  rigid  and  distorted  limbs;  while  many  can 
never  resume  the  upright  position. 

Let  the  reader  also  bear  in  mind,  that  the  preceding  facts  are 
not  gleaned  from  the  records  of  former  times,  and  preserved  by 
historians  as  illustrations  of  the  strange  and  prodigious  wicked- 
ness of  a  darker  age.  They  are  the  common  occurrences  of  our 
own  era,  the  "  customs  "  which  prevail  at  tliis  very  hour.  Every 
day  that  we  pass  in  security  and  peace  at  home,  witnesses  many 
a  herd  of  wretches  toiling  over  the  Avastes  of  Africa  to  slavery  or 
death  :  every  night,  villages  are  roused  from  their  sleep,  and 
exposed  to  the  alternatives  of  the  sword,  or  the  flames,  or  the 
manacle.  "  At  the  time  I  am  writing,^'  remarks  one  of  Africans 
best  friends.  Sir  T,  Fowell  Buxton,  "  there  are  ^t  least  twenty 
thousand  human  beings  on  the  Atlantic;" — not,  it  may  be  added, 
free,  voluntary  emigrants  from  Great  Britain  to  America  or 
Australia,  as  cabin  or  steerage  passengers,  who  are  crossing 
"  the  wide  blue  sea "  in  the  hope  of  bettering  their  temporal 
condition.  No ;  these  twenty  thousand  human  beings  are 
Negroes  from  Africa,  who  have  been  kidnapped,  torn  from  their 
native  land,  and  forced  on  board,  who  are  now  between  the 
decks  of  the  slave-ship,  and  who  are  suffering  from  every  variety 
of  M'retchedness  that  the  preceding  ]:)ages  describe,  or  that  can 
well  be  imagined  :  or  rather,  as  Mr.  Pitt  once  eloquently  said, 
when  speaking  of  the  Slave-Traffic,  ''  there  is  something  in  the 
horrors  of  it  which  surpasses  all  the  bounds  of  imagination," 

The  Slave-Trade,  then,  still  exists ;  and  this  appalling  fact  is 
every  day  receiving  confirmation.  It  is  proved,  beyond  the  possi- 
bility of  doubt,  that,  notwithstanding  all  our  past  efforts,  the  traffic 
in  slaves  is  still  carried  on,  to  an  alarming  extent,  by  some  other 
nations.  Accursed  system  !  who  can  contemplate  it  without  feel- 
ings of  indignation  ?  I  have  myself  seen  villages  depopulated,  the 
huts  reduced  to  ashes,  and  the  inhabitants  led  captive  to  the  sea- 
coast,  or  taken  from  one  petty  state  to  another,  to  be  exchanged  for 
cattle,  or  sold  for  merchandise.  I  have  seen  the  husband  lamenting 
the  loss  of  his  wife, — not  by  death;  but  in  his  absence  a  marauding- 
banditti  had  fallen  upon  his  native  town,  and  his  wife  was  carried 
away  into  all  the  horrors  of  Slavery.  I  have  seen  Negro  parents 
wringing  their  hands,  and  with  bitter  cries  and  tears  mourning 

H  2 


100  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

the  loss  of  their  children, — not,  I  repeat,  by  death :  though  such 
bereavement  is  distressing  enough,  yet  there  is  no  comparison 
between  the  sorrow  excited  by  the  death  of  a  child,  and  the 
anguish  caused  by  its  being  kidnapped  and  enslaved.  The  loss 
of  a  son  at  sea  must  be  deeply  felt ;  and  the  removal  of  a  child 
from  the  domestic  circle  by  the  wasting  disease  of  "slowly 
rolling  years,^'  or  by  the  sudden  sickness  of  a  day,  must  leave 
an  aching  void  in  the  heart  of  a  parent.  But  to  have  a  son,  or 
perhaps  a  daughter,  carried  off  by  robbers,  and  made  a  captive, 
a  slave,  exposed  to  infamy,  to  abuse,  to  insult,  and  to  contamina- 
tion,— this,  this  is  far  more  painful. 

Which  of  us  has  not  sympathized  with  the  little  Hebrew 
maid  mentioned  in  the  Second  Book  of  Kings,  that  vras  car- 
ried "  away  captive  out  of  the  land  of  Israel"  by  the  Syrians 
who  "had  gone  out  by  companies?"  (2  Kings  v.  3.)  Had 
those  Syrians  killed  the  father  and  mother  of  the  Israelitish 
maid  ?  Perhaps  so ;  but  if  they  escaped  and  were  still  alive, 
what  agony,  what  inexpressible  distress  must  they  have  felt, 
when  they  thought  of  the  condition  of  their  daughter,  of  their 
"  little  maid  ! "  Who  lias  perused  the  history  of  Joseph,  and 
has  not  been  deeply  aflected  with  that  touching  narrative  ?  O 
yes,  we  have  sympathized  with  the  mother  of  the  little  maid; 
and  with  the  good  old  patriarch,  bereaved  and  afflicted,  when 
his  son  Joseph  Avas  sold  into  slavery :  but  have  we  no  hearts  to 
feel  for  the  thousands  of  Jacobs  in  Western  Africa  who  are 
bitterly  lamenting  that  Joseph  is  not,  and  Simeon  is  not,  and 
that  Benjamin,  too,  has  been  stolen  from  them !  Mothers  of 
Britain  !  ye  who  are  so  alive  to  Christian  sympathy,  ye  who  can 
retire  to  rest  with  your  "olive  branches"  in  perfect  safety, 
"  none  daring  to  make  you  afraid,"  you  know  not  how  many 
Rachels  are  now  weeping  in  Africa,  and  refusing  to  be  com- 
forted, because  their  children  "  are  not."  Their  offspring  are 
not  dead,  but  the  man-stealer  has  taken  them  away :  and 
though 

"  Skins  may  differ,  yet  affection 

Dwells  in  Blacks  and  Whites  the  same." 

This  is  not  a  mere  poetic  effusion  from  the  fancy  of  some  bene- 
volent and  humane  individual :  it  is  matter  of  fact.  Oft  have  I 
seen  the  Negro  mother  wrap  her  swarthy  infant  to  her  bosom, 
and  plant  upon  its  little  sun-burnt  lips  ten  thousand  kisses. 
There  may  be  exceptions  ;  we  know  there  are,  and  in  other  lands 
besides  Africa  :  but  the  rule  is  for  African  mothers  to  love  their 
children.  And  yet  how  often  are  their  infiints  cruelly  torn 
from  them,  or  barbarously  put  to  death  in  their  sight  ! 


CHAPTER  VI. 

THE  AFRICAN  SLAVE-TRADE. 

The  Method  of  procuring  Slaves— A  Definition  of  true  Hamanity — The  principal 
Wars  in  Africa  originate  in  the  Slave-Trade — Towns  and  Villages  hurnt,  and 
the  Inhabitants  led  into  Captivity — The  great  Amount  of  Mortality  involved 
in  the  Seizure — Testimony  of  M.  Brue,  French  Director  at  the  Senegal  in 
1G97 — ^Mr.  Moore  at  the  Gambia  in  1730 — Bruce  of  Abyssinia  in  1770 — 
Laird  and  Rankin  in  1832-4 — Communications  from  Africa  by  the  Author  in 
1837-8  and  1841 — Extract  from  the  Narrative  of  Joseph  Wright,  a  liberated 
African  at  Sierra-Leone — Rev.  R.  M.  MacBrair's  Statement  of  two  liberated 
African  Youths  at  Macarthy's  Island — The  March  down  to  the  Coast — Major 
Gray's  Account  of  a  Caravan  of  Slaves — The  Slave-BaiTacoons  on  the  Coast — 
Letter  from  a  Gentleman  at  Senegal  in  1818 — Captain  Cook  in  1837 — Joseph 
Wright's  Nan-ative  continued — Rev.  W.  Allen's  Description  of  Whydah  and 
Badagry,  two  notorious  slave-trachng  Ports  in  the  Bight  of  Benin — Hasty 
Manner  in  which  the  Slaves  are  put  on  Board — Cruel  Treatment  in  the  Mid- 
dle-Passage-— Insurrections  on  Board  Slave-Ships — The  Arrival  of  a  Cai'go  of 
Slaves  in  America — Disposal  of  the  Negroes — Letter  from  the  Havannah  in 
1838 — Miserable  Condition  of  newly-imported  Negroes — Brazilian  Slavery — 
Disgraceful  Advertisement — Slavery  and  the  Slave-Trade  contrary  to  the  Prin- 
ciples of  Justice  and  Humanity — Great  Mortality  incident  on  the  Seizure — 
March  and  Detention — The  annual  Loss  to  Africa  immense — Vast  Amount  of 
Guilt  and  Misery  involved  in  the  Traffic — Comparison  of  the  Effects  of  Napo- 
leon's destructive  Career  with  those  of  the  Slave-Trade — The  probable  Loss  to 
Africa  up  to  the  Close  of  the  last  Century,  and  from  the  Commencement  of  the 
Slave-Trade  to  the  present  Period — The  Misery  consequent. 

The  mode  of  taking  or  procuring  slaves,  in  the  first  instance, 
is  now  pretty  generally  understood;  and  I  have  no  wish  to 
harrow  the  feelings  of  my  readers  by  going  into  lengthened 
details  respecting  this  part  of  my  subject,  especially  as  in  the 
preceding  pages  a  tolerable  specimen  has  been  given  of  the 
cruelties  and  miseries  inflicted  upon  the  unhappy  Africans  in 
what  is  called  "the  Middle  Passage."  Yet  I  cannot  help 
thinking  with  a  celebrated  member  of  the  House  of  Commons,* 
who,  in  the  course  of  a  debate  on  the  Slave-Trade,  observed, 
"True  humanity  consists  not  in  a  squeamish  ear;  it  consists 
not  in  starting  or  shrinking  at  such  tales  as  these ;  but  in  a  dis- 
position of  heart  to  relieve  misery.  True  humanity  appertains 
rather  to  the  mind  than  to  the  nerves,  and  prompts  men  to  use 
real  and  active  endeavours  to  execute  the  actions  which  it  sug- 

*  The  Right  Honourable  Charles  James  Fox. 


103 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


gests.^'  In  the  spirit,  then,  of  this  observation,  let  tis  look  at 
the  mode  iu  which  the  Africans  are  made  slaves.  It  has  been 
said,  on  high  authority,  "that  the  principal,  and  almost  the 
only,  cause  of  war,^^  on  the  Western  Coast  and  "  in  the  interior 
of  Africa,  arises  from  the  desire  to  procure  slaves  for  traffic; 
and  that  every  species  of  violence,  from  the  invasion  of  an  army 
to  that  of  robbery  by  a  single  individual,  is  had  recourse  to  for 
the  attainment  of  this  object.^^*  And  in  this  opinion  I  sub- 
stantially concur.  I  am  aware  that  there  are  other  causes  of 
war  besides  that  inhuman  traffic;  and  I  am  also  aware  that 
there  are  other  sources  of  African  Slavery  besides  war ;  such,  for 
instance,  as  debt,  famine,  and  crime :  but  very  few  slaves  are 
thus  supplied,  in  comparison  of  the  great  numbers  furnished  by 
the  wars  and  marauding  excursions  which  are  perpetually  occur- 
ring in  some  part  or  other  of  the  vast  continent  of  Africa. 
This  assertion  is  substantiated  by  the  experience  of  every  person 
at  all  conversant  with  African  affairs.  Bruce  and  Park,  Den- 
hara  and  Clapperton,  Lander  and  Laird,  and  almost  every  other 
writer,  ancient  and  modern,  unite  in  the  declaration,  that  the 
Slave-Trade  has  produced  the  most  baneful  effects,  causing 
anarchy,  injustice,  and  oppression  to  reign  in  Africa,  and 
exciting  nation  to  rise  up  against  nation,  and  man  against  man. 

The  towns  or  villages  are  usually  attacked  in  the  night ;  in 
order  to  increase  the  confusion,  they  are  frequently  set  on  fire ; 
and,  as  the  huts  are  mostly  constructed  of  wattled  cane,  and 
roofed  with  long  dry  grass,  there  is  immediately  a  general  con- 
flagration; and  the  wretched  inhabitants,  as  they  are  flying 
naked  from  the  flames,  are  seized  and  carried  into  slavery. 
They  massacre  all  the  men  that  offer  any  resistance ;  and  often 
the  aged  and  infirm  are  deliberately  kiUed,  while  the  infants  are 
left  in  the  streets  to  die,  or  are  thrown  into  the  devouring 
flames. 

If  we  go  back  towards  the  close  of  the  seventeenth  century, 
we  find  the  testimony  of  M.  Brue,  Director- General  of  the 
French  Senegal  Company,  who  resided  several  years  in  Western 
Africa,  and  penetrated  some  distance  into  the  interior,  and  who, 
from  the  position  he  occupied  as  the  Director- General  of  the 
Company's  affairs  on  the  coast,  as  well  as  from  the  opportunities 
for  observation  afforded  him  in  his  travels,  must  be  regarded  as  a 
competent  judge.  This  gentleman  thus  writes :  "  The  Europe- 
ans are  far  from  desiring  to  act  as  peace-makers  amongst  them'' 
(namely,  the  natives  of  Africa).     "It  would  be  too  contrary  to 

*  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton's  "  Slave-Tiade,  and  its  Remedv." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  103 

their  interests;  for  the  ouly  object  of  their  wars  is  to  carry  off 
slaves;  and^  as  these  make  the  principal  part  of  their  traffic, 
they  would  be  apprehensive  of  drying  up  the  source  of  it,  were 
they  to  encourage  these  people  to  live  well  together."  Again : 
"  The  neighbourhood  of  the  Darnel  and  Tin  keep  them  perpetu- 
ally at  war,  the  benefit  of  which  accrues  to  the  Company,  who 
buy  all  the  prisoners  made  on  their  side ;  and  the  more  there 
are  to  sell,  the  greater  is  their  profit ;  for  the  only  end  of  their 
armaments  is  to  make  captives,  to  sell  them  to  white  traders." 
"  They  have  every  thing  they  wish  to  aim  at  from  their  wars, 
when  they  are  able  to  make  captives  from  one  another.  Ava- 
rice, and  the  desire  of  making  slaves,  are  often  the  veritable 
motives  for  going  to  war." 

The  testimony  of  M.  Brue,  not  an  advocate,  let  it  be  remem- 
bered, for  the  Abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade,  but  a  Director- 
General  of  that  commerce,  is  fully  confirmed  by  Le  Maire, 
Barbot,  Bosman,  Smith,  and  all  the  old  writers.  They  concur  in 
stating,  not  only  that  w^ars  are  entered  into  by  the  natives  for  the 
sole  purpose  of  making  slaves,  but  that  they  are  also  fomented 
by  Europeans  with  a  view  to  that  object.  But  the  Slave-Trade 
not  merely  excites  wars  between  neighbouring  nations ;  it  gives 
birth  to  the  most  dreadful  outrages  which  are  perpetrated  by 
kings  on  their  own  subjects.  On  this  point  the  author  above 
cited  says,  "The  Negro  kings  have  not  always  slaves  to  treat 
with ;  but  they  have  always  a  sure  and  ready  way  of  supplying 
their  deficiency;  that  is,  by  making  inroads  upon  their  own 
subjects,  carrying  them  off  and  selling  them,  for  which  they 
never  want  pretensions  in  order  to  justify  their  pillage  and 
rapine."  And  then  he  states  an  instance  in  which,  in  order  to 
trade  with  M.  Brue  himself,  the  king  of  Damel  made  incursions 
on  his  own  subjects,  seized  about  three  hundred  of  them,  and 
then  sent  word  that  he  was  ready  to  trade  with  him. 

Mr.  Moore,  a  factor  to  the  English  Boyal  African  Company  in 
the  river  Gambia,  about  the  year  1730,  a  writer  of  acknowledged 
credit,  and,  it  will  be  admitted,  a  very  competent  witness  with 
respect  to  the  real  nature  of  the  Slave-Trade,  writes :  "  When- 
ever the  king  of  Barsally  wants  goods  or  brandy,  he  sends  a 
messenger  to  the  Governor,  at  James  Fort,  to  desire  he  would 
send  a  sloop  there  with  a  cargo.  This  news  being  not  at  all 
unwelcome,  the  Governor  sends  accordingly.  Against  the 
arrival  of  the  sloop,  the  king  goes  and  ransacks  some  of  his 
enemies^  towns,  seizing  the  people,  and  selling  them  for  such 
commodities  as  he  is  in  want  of.  In  case  he  is  not  at  war  with 
any  neighbouring  king,  he  then  falls  upon  one  of  his  own  towns, 


104  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

wliicli  are  numerous^  and  uses  them  in  the  very  same  manner. 
He  very  often  goes  with  some  of  his  troops  by  a  town  in  the 
day-time,  and  returns  in  the  night  and  sets  fire  to  three  parts  of 
it,  and  sets  guards  to  the  fourth  to  seize  the  people  as  they  run 
out  from  the  fire.  He  ties  their  arms  behind  them,  and  marches 
them  to  the  place  where  he  sells  tliem.^^  He  then  gives,  in 
illustration  of  his  general  statement,  the  following  instance : 
"Yesterday,  March  20th,  1732,  the  king  fell  upon  one  of  his 
own  towns,  and,  having  taken  a  good  many  prisoners,  brought 
them  along  with  him,  with  intent  to  sell  them.^' 

Bruce,  the  enterprising  Scotchman,  who  travelled  in  Abys- 
sinia in  1 770,  in  describing  the  slave-hunting  expeditions  there, 
says,  "  The  grown-up  men  are  all  killed,  and  are  then  mutilated, 
parts  of  their  bodies  being  always  carried  away  as  trophies. 
Several  of  the  old  mothers  are  also  killed ;  while  others,  frantic 
with  fear  and  despair,  kill  themselves.  The  boys  and  girls  of  a 
more  tender  age  are  then  carried  off"  in  brutal  triumph.'^ 

"In  1822  our  Minister  at  Paris  thus  addressed  Count  de 
Villele :  '  There  seems  to  be  scarcely  a  spot  on  that  coast  (from 
Sierra-Leone  to  Cape  Mount)  Avhich  does  not  show  traces  of  the 
Slave-Trade,  with  all  its  attendant  horrors ;  for,  the  arrival  of  a 
ship,  in  any  of  the  rivers  on  the  windward  coast,  being  the 
signal  for  war  between  the  natives,  the  hamlets  of  the  weaker 
party  are  burnt,  and  the  miserable  survivors  carried  off',  and 
sold  to  the  Slave-Traders.^^* 

"  Laird  ascended  the  Niger,  and  its  tributary  the  Tschadda, 
in  1832,  and  was  an  eye-witness  of  the  cruelties  consequent  on 
the  Slave-Trade,  while  in  the  river  near  to  the  confluence  of  the 
two  streams.  He  says,  speaking  of  the  incursions  of  the  Fela- 
tahs,  '  Scarcely  a  night  passed  but  we  heard  the  screams  of  some 
unfortunate  beings  that  were  carried  off  into  Slavery  by  those 
villanous  depredators.  The  inhabitants  of  the  towns  in  the 
route  of  the  Felatahs  fled  across  the  river  on  the  approach  of  the 
enemy .^  '  A  few  days  after  the  arrival  of  the  fugitives,  a  column 
of  smoke  rising  in  the  air,  about  five  miles  above  the  confluence, 
marked  the  advance  of  the  Felatahs ;  and  in  two  days  afterwards 
the  whole  of  the  towns,  including  Addali,  Cuddah,  and  five  or 
six  others,  were  in  a  blaze.  The  shrieks  of  the  unfortunate 
wretches  that  had  not  escaped,  answered  b}^  the  loud  wailings 
and  lamentations  of  their  friends  and  relations,  (encamped  on 
the  opposite  bank  of  the  river,)  at  seeing  them  carried  off"  into 
Slavery,   and    their  habitations   destroyed,   produced   a  scene 

*  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton  on  tbe  "  Slave-Trade,  and  its  Remedy." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  105 

which,  though  common  enough  in  the  country,  had  seldom,  if 
ever  before,  been  witnessed  by  European  eyes,  and  showed  to 
me,  in  a  more  striking  hght  than  I  had  hitherto  beheld  it,  the 
horrors  attendant  on  Slavery/  "  * 

Mr.  Rankin,  in  the  narrative  of  his  visit  to  Sierra-Leone  in 
1834,  says,  that  the  warlike  Sherbros  had  recently  invaded  the 
territories  of  the  Timmanees,  and  had  fallen  on  the  unguarded 
Rokel,  which  became  a  prey  to  the  flames.  "The  inhabitants 
who  could  not  escape  across  the  river  to  Magbelly  perished,  or 
were  made  slaves ;  and  the  town  was  reduced  to  ashes/^  f 

From  these  statements  it  appears,  that  the  mode  of  procuring 
slaves  is  precisely  the  same  now  as  it  was  upwards  of  a  hundred 
years  ago;  that  the  inhabitants  are  taken  by  surprise,  kid- 
napped, and  "forced  from  home  with  all  its  pleasures;"  and 
that  this  mode  of  seizure  is  attended  with  many  horrible  cruel- 
ties, and  a  vast  amount  of  mortality.  It  would  be  almost  an 
endless  task  to  cite  all  the  evidence  Avhich  might  be  adduced : 
but  two  or  three  specimens  of  what  I  have  seen  and  heard 
myself,  while  in  Africa,  will  serve  still  further  to  corroborate 
these  positions. 

The  following  is  an  extract  from  a  letter  which  I  addressed  to 
the  General  Secretaries  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society,  a 
part  of  which  the  reader  may  find  in  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton^s  Avork 
on  the  African  Slave-Trade.     It  is  dated, 

"  Macarthy's  Island,  River  Gambia,  March  ISth,  1837. 

"  The  Foolahs,  Teucolors,  and  Mandingoes  from  Jamalli  have 
all  dispersed,  in  consequence  of  an  attack  made  upon  them,  not 
by  Kemmingtan  himself,  though  he  was  the  cause  of  it.  This 
desperate  chief  had  sent  to  Bambarra  for  assistance  to  make  war 
upon  Woolli,  when  his  messenger  happened  to  meet  a  number 
of  the  Bambarras,  who  had  left  their  country  in  search  of  plun- 
der, and  who  immediately  proceeded  with  the  messenger  to 
Dunkaseen,  Kemmingtan's  residence;  but  they,  it  appears, 
refused  to  join  him  against  Woolli,  owing  to  some  previous 
pledge  which  they  or  their  fathers  had  given,  never  to  make  war 
upon  that  kingdom.  The  consequence  was  that  Kemmingtan 
had  to  point  them  to  some  place  where  they  might  obtain  some- 
thing, they  having  come  so  far  at  his  request.  He  therefore 
sent  them  into  this  neighbourhood,  and  gave  them  his  son  and 
several  other  warriors  to  assist  them.  They  immediately  com- 
menced their  marauding  excursion,  driving  all  the  cattle  before 

*  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton  on  the  "  Slave-Trade,  and  its  Remedy." 
t  Rankin's  "  Sierra-Leone,"  vol.  ii.  p.  259. 


106  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

them,  the  inhabitants  flying  for  their  lives.  They  came  close  to 
the  river's  bank,  opposite  where  I  am  writing,  and  carried  off 
near  one  hundred  head  of  cattle  belonging  to  persons  on  this 
Island,  But  the  militia,  and  about  thirty  soldiers,  being  sent 
off  immediately,  overtook  them  near  Jamalli,*  where  they  were 
feasting  upon  one  or  two  bullocks  which  they  had  just  killed  • 
but,  seeing  our  soldiers  and  militia,  they  immediately  fled, 
and  most  of  the  cattle  were  re-captured,  with  one  man  and  a 
horse.  Another  was  killed,  whose  body  was  consumed  by  wild 
beasts  the  following  night. 

"  I  visited  Jamalli  a  few  weeks  ago,  and  also  Laming,  another 
small  Maudingo  town  on  the  way.  At  the  latter  place  I 
counted  twelve  huts  that  had  been  destroyed  by  fire,  and  at  the 
former  about  forty.  Proceeding  to  the  Foulah  town,  about  half 
a  mile  eastward,  I  found  it  was  not  in  the  least  injured,  but, 
like  the  other  two,  was  without  inhabitants ;  not  a  soul  was  to 
be  seen. 

"  Foolokolong,  a  large  Foolah  town  in  Kemmingtan's  domi- 
nions, has  lately  been  attacked  by  Woolli,  and,  I  believe,  nearly 
the  whole  of  it  destroyed,  the  cattle  driven  away,  many  of  the 
inhabitants  killed,  and  many  others  taken  prisoners.  On  Wed- 
nesday evening  last,  I  returned  from  a  hasty  visit  to  the  upper 
river.  I  went  as  far  as  Fattatenda.  At  Bannatenda,  not  quite 
half  the  way,  I  found  a  poor  aged  Foolah  woman  in  irons. 
Upon  inquiry  I  found  that  she  was  from  Foolokolong,  one  of 
the  many  who  were  captured  in  the  recent  war ;  and  that  she 
was  sent  on  the  south  side  of  the  river  to  be  sold  for  a  ho7^se. 
I  immediately  rescued  the  half-famished  and  three-parts-naked 
female  from  the  horrors  of  slaver}^,  by  giving  a  good  horse  in 
exchange  for  her.  I  then  broke  off  her  chains,  and  brought  her 
to  this  settlement,  where,  by  a  singular  but  happy  coincidence, 
she  met  with  her  own  brother,  who  lives  upon  Kattaba's  land, 
and  who,  hearing  that  she,  her  daughter,  and  her  daughter's 
children  had  been  taken  in  the  war,  had  been  a  considerable 
way  up  the  river  to  inquire  after  them,  but  heard  nothing  of 
them,  and  had  consequently  returned.  I,  of  course,  gave  the 
woman  up  to  her  brother ;  from  whom,  as  well  as  from  herself 
and  several  Foolahs  who  came  to  see  her,  I  received  a  number 
of  blessings. 

"  From  Fattatenda,  supposed  to  be  three  hundred  miles  from 
this,  (though  I  do  not  thiuk  it  is  so  far,)  I  proceeded  to  Madina, 
the  capital  of  Woolli,  about  twenty-four  miles  in  the  interior, 

*  In  tbe  kingdom  of  Kattaba,  about  tbrec  miles  from  Macartby's  Island. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  107 

and  had  an  agreeable  interview  with  His  sable  Majesty,  Mansa 
Koi,  who  promised  to  give  me  land,  his  own  children  to  be  edu- 
cated, &c.  &c.,  if  I  wished  to  sit  down  in  his  kingdom.  In  this 
journey  I  gathered  some  further  particulars  of  the  recent  war ; 
and  from  the  king  himself  I  learnt  that  they  brought  three 
hundred  and  fifty  Foolahs  from  Foolokolong,  (Kemmingtan's 
largest  Foolah  town,)  besides  one  hundred  whom  they  killed  on 
the  spot/^ 

In  another  letter,  of  the  5th  of  January,  1838,  I  again  wrote 
from  the  same  place : — 

"  The  neighbourhood  of  Macarthy's  Island  is  again  in  a  very 
disturbed  state.  Scarcely  are  the  rains  over,  and  the  produce  of 
a  plentiful  harvest  gathered  in,  ere  the  noise  of  battle  and  the 
din  of  warfare  are  heard  at  a  distance,  with  all  its  attendant 
horrors.  Mothers,  snatching  up  their  children,  with  a  few 
necessary  articles,  flee  for  their  lives ;  towns,  after  being  pillaged 
of  as  much  cattle,  &c.,  as  the  banditti  require,  are  immediately 
set  on  fire ;  columns  of  smoke  ascend  the  heavens ;  the  cries  of 
those  who  are  being  butchered  may  be  more  easily  conceived 
than  expressed;  and  those  who  escape  destruction  are  carried 
into  the  miseries  of  hopeless  slavery.  A  number  of  Bambarras 
are  again  on  the  north  bank  of  the  river,  not  far  from  this 
place ;  and  the  poor  Foolahs  at  Jamalli  have  consequently  fled 
to  this  Island  for  protection,  bringing  with  them  as  many  of 
their  cattle  and  other  things  as  they  could." 

From  my  next  communication  to  the  Committee,  which  was 
written  only  about  a  fortnight  after  the  preceding  one,  and 
which  was  printed  in  the  Annual  Report  of  the  Wesleyan  Mis- 
sionary Society  for  1838,  I  make  the  following  extract: 
"  Brooko  and  Jamalli  have  not  been  regularly  visited  for  some 
time,  owing  to  the  very  disturbed  state  of  the  country,  and 
other  causes  of  a  very  discouraging  nature.  The  horrors  of  war, 
and  the  number  of  bandits  who  are  constantly  going  about, 
literally  ^seeking  whom'  or  what  they  *may  devour,'  are  truly 
terrific;  and  the  desolation  and  misery  that  follow  are  very 
deplorable.  In  my  last  few  hurried  lines  I  gave  you  some 
account  of  a  marauding  party  of  Bambarras,  who  were  on  the 
north  side  of  the  river,  and  of  Habdurcheem,*  a  powerful  chief 
of  the  Foolah  tribe  and  of  the  Mahometan  creed,  from  the 
neighbourhood  of  Foota  Jallon  or  Teembo,  who  was  on  the 
south  side ;  both  not  far  distant  from  Macarthy's  Island.  The 
Bambarras  have  proceeded  a  considerable  distance  down  the 

*  Perhaps  Abdaiacheem,  or  "  The  Servant  of  the  Merciful." 


108 


WESTERN    COAST    OI'    AFRICA. 


north  bank  of  the  rivei-j  have  pillaged  and  destroyed  several 
small  towns,  and  have  taken  some  of  the  inhabitants  into 
slavery;  and  a  few  people  Lave  been  killed." 

Perhaps  one  more  instance  will  be  sufficient  to  show  that  the 
slave- wars  of  Africa  are  not  merely  the  events  of  a  by-gone  period. 
In  a  letter,  dated  ''St.  Mary's,  Gambia,  July  13th,  1841,''  I  wrote 
to  Dr.  Maddon,  who  had  been  sent  to  the  coast  on  a  commis- 
sion of  inquiry.  The  substance  of  that  communication  I  also 
forwarded  to  the  Wesleyan  Mission-House :  but  the  following 
extract  from  my  letter  was  published  in  the  Appendix  to  the 
Report  of  the  West-African  Committee:  "The  day  after  you 
sailed,  I  embarked  for  Macartliy's  Island ;  and,  while  there,  an 
alarm  was  given  on  Thursday  morning,  the  10th  ult.,  that  the 
Island  w^as  attacked.  The  soldiers  and  militia  were,  conse- 
quently, immediately  turned  out ;  the  former,  with  one  or  two 
field-pieces,  proceeding  to  the  supposed  place  of  attack;  the 
militia,  in  the  mean  time,  guarding  tlie  barracks  and  town. 
But  it  turned  out  as  I  expected;  namely,  some  warriors  had 
fallen  upon  two  or  three  small  towns  near  the  south-east  end  of 
Macartliy's  Island;  and  those  of  the  inhabitants  who  could 
escape  fled  to  Macarthy's  Island  for  safety  and  protection. 
This  is  only  one  instance,  out  of  a  great  many  that  have  come 
under  my  notice,  of  these  desperate  marauding  banditti.  It 
appears,  on  this  occasion,  it  was  some  Foota  Foulahs  and  Cabu 
Mandingoes,  who  came  down  and  fell  upon  a  town  called  Bar- 
sansang,  and  another  town  called  Brooko,  not  more  than  two  or 
three  miles  from  the  south-east  end  of  Macarthy's  Island ;  and 
report  says,  they  took  away  an  immense  number  of  cattle,  and 
about  two  hundred  slaves.  Some  few  of  these  will  probably  be 
redeemed  at  double  prices ;  and  the  rest  will  be  sent  down  to 
tbe  coast,  and  sold  to  these  horrible  persons  engaged  in  this 
nefarious  and  abominable  traffic." 

From  the  preceding  pages,  then,  it  is  evident  tliat  the  whole- 
sale method  of  seizure  is  by  far  the  most  frequent;  and  that 
without  this  plan  a  sufficient  number  of  victims  could  not  be 
procured  for  the  market.  Indeed,  having  resided  on  Macarthy's 
Island  for  several  years,  which  was  frequently  filled  for  a  time 
with  refugees  from  all  the  country  round  about;  and  having 
visited  the  kingdoms  of  Barra  and  Kombo,  on  the  north  and 
south  bank  of  the  Gambia,  near  the  Atlantic,  and  most  or 
nearly  all  the  chief  and  petty  states  from  thence  up  the  river  as 
far  as  Cantalicunda,  and  in  the  interior  of  the  continent  as  far 
as  Boollibany,  the  capital  of  Bondou;  and,  moreover,  having 
been  in  close  connexion  Math  those  unfortunate,  and  yet  fortu- 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  109 

nate,  Negroes,  the  liberated  Africans ;  I  had  many  opportunities 
of  learning  the  various  modes  in  which  they  were  made  slaves. 
And  from  what  I  have  seen  myself,  as  well  as  from  the  state- 
ments of  those  who  made  a  precipitous  flight  to  Macarthy's 
Island;  and  especially  from  the  testimony  of  the  liberated 
Africans  who  had  been  taken  from  various  parts  of  the  inte- 
rior, some  as  far  as  from  Houssa,  and  who  are  of  different 
nations  and  kingdoms,  speaking  distinct  languages ;  I  am  fully 
convinced  that  the  freqvieut  wars  and  marauding  excursions  are 
by  far  the  most  common  and  the  prevailing  way  of  obtaining 
slaves. 

I  will,  however,  offer  two  additional  illustrations  of  this  inland 
traffic,  derived  from  eye-witnesses  and  sufferers  from  this 
unhappy  state  of  Africa.  The  first  is  an  extract  from  a  narra- 
tive written  by  Joseph  Wright,  a  member  of  the  Wesleyan 
society  at  Sierra-Seone,  who  is  of  the  Aku  tribe.  The  narrative 
is  too  long  for  the  Avhole  to  be  inserted  here ;  but  the  reader 
may  find  it  in  the  Appendix  to  Dr.  Beecham's  admirable  work 
on  '^Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast.^^  It  appears  that  Joseph, 
with  his  family,  resided  in  a  large  and  populous  town,  which 
was  surrounded  by  a  strong  well-built  mud- wall ;  that  the  attack 
made  upon  them  was  by  a  party  of  their  own  nation ;  that  the 
inhabitants  nobly  defended  themselves,  until  they  were  "  almost 
destitute  of  food /^  and  that, 

III  this  hard  case  of  ours,  we  had  no  God  to  go  to  for  help ;  but  we  were  constantly 
sacrificing.  At  last  the  famine  overcame  us,  so  that  the  chosen  men  of  war  could 
not  forbear;  and  one  night,  in  about  seven  months  after  the  war  had  besieged  us, 
they  consulted  together  to  go  to  another  place,  in  order  to  buy  us  some  food,  to 
preserve  us  children  of  the  land.  And  so  they  did;  and  in  this  band  were  my 
father  and  mother.  They  went  to  get  us  some  food  too ;  for  they  pitied  us,  when 
they  saw  us  perishing  with  hunger.  Short  time  after,  they  were  gone,  with  all  the 
mighty  men  of  war.  May  be,  the  enemies  knew  this ;  so  they  got  ready  to  take 
the  city,  before  the  people  who  gone  for  food  should  come  back.  The  town 
had  become  very  poor,  for  want  of  people  to  fight ;  because  the  greater  part  of  the 
people  determined  to  go  to  seek  food. 

0  soiTowful,  sorrowful  morning !  Many  had  fled ;  and  many  of  the  aged  men 
had  put  an  end  to  their  lives.  Among  these  was  one  in  our  house, — my  father's 
near  and  very  dear  relation :  he  had  put  an  end  to  his  life  too.  The  enemy  had 
fully  taken  the  city :  we  came  out  into  the  street ;  and,  when  we  had  walked  about 
fifty  fathoms  from  our  house,  we  saw  the  city  on  fii-e,  and  before  us  were  the 
enemies ;  and  they  caught  us.  They  separated  me  from  aU  my  brethren,  except 
one  of  my  father's  children,  born  to  him  by  his  second  wife.  I  and  this  were 
caught  together  by  one  man.  By  the  time  we  left  the  house,  I  saw  my  father's 
mother  pass  the  other  gate.  She  and  I  had  no  hope  of  seeing  her  again  in  this  flesh ; 
doubtless  they  would  kill  her.  Many  were  killed.  There  were  two  cities  beside 
oiu-  own,  that  those  enemies  had  besieged.     The  enemies  satisfied  themselves  with 


110  WESTERN  COAST  OP  AFRICA. 

little  girls,  young  men,  and  young  women.  They  (lid  not  care  for  the  elderly  and 
old  people :  they  killed  them  without  mercy ;  and  then  the  father  knew  not  the 
son,  and  the  son  knew  not  the  father.  Abundant  heaps  of  dead  bodies  were  in  the 
streets,  and  there  was  none  to  burj'  them ;  suckling  babes  crying  at  the  point  of 
death,  and  there  was  none  to  take  them  up.  These  three  cities  were  consumed  in 
one  day ;  and  many  of  the  inhabitants  were  taken  as  slaves. 

I  was  with  them  (the  enemies)  in  the  camp  about  ten  days,  and  saw  many  won- 
derful instances,  all  of  which  I  cannot  now  mention.  I  saw  some  people  bound  in 
the  streets ;  and  I  saw  a  child  of  about  eighteen  months  old,  which  was  cast  out  of 
the  camp,  because  the  child  was  too  young,  that  nobody  would  buy  him  ;  and  that 
poor  orphan  was  there  crjang  at  the  point  of  death,  for  about  two  days,  and  none  to 
pity  or  take  him  up.  Another  time,  I  took  a  walk  about  in  the  camp,  when  I  saw 
ray  own  brother.  I  was  not  allowed  to  speak  to  him,  although  they  knew  hira  to 
be  my  own  brother. 

Few  days  after  this,  we  came  to  the  market,  where  many  hundreds  of  slaves. 
We  were  put  in  rows ;  and  in  about  five  hours  a  trade-man  came  and  bought 
me,  and  put  me  in  a  canoe  at  once,  and  we  were  sailing  all  that  night.  Next 
morning  we  came  to  another  slaves'  market,  and  there  we  remained  the  whole 
day ;  for  the  man  wanted  to  buy  more  slaves.  Early  in  the  morning  we  were 
brought  to  wliite  Portuguese  for  sale.  After  strict  examination,  the  white  man  put 
me  and  some  others  aside ;  after  that,  they  then  bargained  how  much  he  would 
take  for  each  one  of  us.  After  they  were  well  agreed,  the  wiiite  man  sent  us  to  the 
slave-fold.  The  articles  which  the  Portuguese  paid  for  slaves  were  tobacco,  rum, 
clothes,  powder,  guns,  cutlasses,  brass,  iron  rod,  and  jaki, — that  is  our  countrj'  money. 

The  other  ilhistration  which  I  shall  offer  is  the  case  of  two 
liberated  African  youths  of  IVfacarthy^s  Island^  one  of  whom  was 
my  servant  for  several  years.  Their  history  is  so  well  told  by  the 
Rev.  R.  M.  MacBrair^  that  I  shall  give  it  in  his  own  words  : — 

The  dreadful  evils  which  the  Slave-Trade  has  entailed  upon  Africa  may  be  far- 
ther illustrated  by  an  account  which  two  of  our  boys  gave  me  of  their  captm'e  and 
subsequent  sufferings.  They  were  natives  of  Brecam,  a  small  town  beyond  the 
country  of  Catabar ;  and  Joseph's  father  was  head-man,  or  chief,  of  the  place.  A 
spy  had  come  to  search  out  the  town ;  in  which  he  appears  to  have  found  few  men, 
l)ut  many  women  and  children.  One  night,  therefore,  after  the  usual  recreations  of 
music  and  dancing,  which  the  Negroes  keep  up  to  a  late  hour,  they  had  retii-ed  to 
their  respective  huts,  and  were  buried  in  balmy  sleep ;  when  suddenly  the  shout  of 
an  invading  troop  was  beard,  as  they  rushed  through  the  stockade,  and  set  tire  to 
the  thatched  dwellings  of  Brecam.  Aroused  by  the  ciy  and  the  din  of  arms,  each 
warrior  grasped  his  weapon,  and  rushed  forth  to  repel  the  assailants,  but  instantly 
received  the  shot  or  the  spear-thrust  of  a  watchful  foe.  Thus  Charles's  father  was 
numbered  amongst  the  slain ;  and,  as  the  women  and  childi-en  fled  out  of  their 
flaming  dwellings,  they  were  siurounded  and  captured.  The  man-hunters  in  this 
case  were  also  cannibals ;  (a  few  of  whom  live  in  the  interior  of  Central  Africa ;) 
and  they  afterwards  deliberated  upon  the  choice  of  new  victims.  Some  talked  of 
devouring  the  children ;  and  Charles  and  Joseph  hid  themselves  during  the  awful 
moment  behind  some  litter.  "  But  we  can  get  goods  for  them,"  was  the  sugges- 
tion of  a  warrior,  to  whose  lot  they  had  fallen ;  and  so  a  more  useless  victim  must 
be  selected.  This  they  found  in  Charles's  mother,  who  was  then  in  such  a  condi- 
tion as  rendered  her  little  fit  to  undergo  the  fatigues  of  a  long  journey.     The  child- 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  Ill 

ren  saw  a  man  perform  the  bloody  deed,  which  was  accompanied  with  such  revolt- 
ing brutalities  as  memoiy  would  fain  endeavour  to  hide  imder  the  cloak  of 
forgetfulness. 

A  long  road  now  lay  before  the  captives,  during  which  they  suffered  much  from 
toil  and  weariness.  The  children  were  sold  to  one  party  for  cloth,  to  another  for 
salt,  and  finally  to  a  Portuguese  slaver  for  tobacco.  They  formed  part  of  a  cargo 
of  eight  hundred  human  victims,  several  of  whom  speedily  died  on  the  passage, 
and  found  a  grave  in  the  ocean's  bed.  But,  as  they  proceeded  on  their  voyage,  the 
shot  of  a  cannon  was  heard  athwart  the  deep ;  for  a  British  cruiser  now  summoned 
the  slaver  to  "  haul  to."  The  latter  was  well  armed  and  manned ;  and,  being  of 
far  greater  force  than  the  little  cruiser,  prepared  for  a  desperate  resistance.  But 
after  the  engagement  had  commenced,  the  breechings  of  the  slaver's  guns  gave  way, 
(being  rotted  by  the  climate  of  Africa,)  and  she  therefore  became  defenceless.  Her 
captain,  furious  to  desperation,  though  he  had  received  several  severe  wounds,  upon 
seeing  his  vessel  about  to  be  boarded  by  the  British,  gave  orders  to  a  seaman  to 
fire  the  powder-magazine,  and  blow  her  up,  that  they  might  all  perish  together. 
The  latter  disobeyed,  and  the  EngUsh  took  possession  of  their  prize;  xipon  wliich 
the  poor  slaves,  who  had  been  in  a  state  of  indescribable  emotion  whilst  the  con- 
flict lasted,  now  set  up  a  loud  shout  of  joy  at  the  prospect  of  freedom. 

Some  time  afterwards,  a  man  came  one  day  to  our  mission-house  to  sell  some 
little  article  of  merchandise.  Upon  accidentally  seeing  him,  Charles  and  Joseph 
instantly  fell  upon  him  with  all  the  fury  of  their  tongues,  and  launched  out  the 
bitterest  invectives  in  their  native  language.  Being  interrogated  as  to  the  cause  of 
this  passion,  "  That  is  the  man,"  cried  Charles,  "  who  killed  and  ate  my  mother ; 
and  so  I  curse  him."  (The  Negroes  use  "cursing"  in  the  sense  of  scolding,  as 
well  as  of  malediction.)  It  was  indeed  the  self-same  individual ;  who,  shortly  after 
perpetrating  the  foul  deed  above  naiTated,  had  himself  been  siu-prised  by  a  superior 
foe,  had  been  sold  as  a  slave,  Uberated  on  the  high  seas  by  another  British  cruiser, 
and  actually  landed  on  Macarthy's  Island  before  the  children  who  had  been  the 
victims  of  his  barbarity.  Such  a  fact  speaks  volumes  (observes  Mr.  MacBrair). 
And  for  such  deeds  of  cruelty  as  these,  Em-opean  and  American  slave-dealers  have 
to  answer  at  the  bar  of  God,  since  it  is  they  who  incite  the  naturally-peaceful 
African  to  violence  and  murder  in  procuring  slaves.* 

Mungo  Park,  one  of  Africa's  best  and  most  faithful  historians, 
has  given  some  affecting  accounts  of  Slavery,  and  of  the  manner 
in  which  the  slaves  are  treated  on  their  mai'ch  down  to  the 
coast.  But  we  hasten  to  a  more  recent  date  for  a  specimen  of 
the  cruelties  practised  upon  these  unhappy  captives  on  their 
journey  to  the  slave-ship.  Major  Gray  in  1825  published  his 
"  Travels  in  Western  Africa ; "  from  which  the  following  is  an 
extract : — 

"  I  had  an  opportunity  of  witnessing  the  sufferings  to  which 
the  new-made  slaves  are  subjected  in  their  first  state  of  bondage. 
They  were  hurried  along,  the  men  tied  in  pairs  by  the  necks,  their 
hands  secured  behind  their  backs ;  the  women,  by  the  necks  only, 
with  their  hands  left  free ;  not,  however,  from  any  sense  of  feeling 

*  MacBrair's  "  Sketches  of  a  Missionary's  Travels,"  pp.  258 — 2G1. 


112  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

towards  them,  but  iu  order  to  enable  them  to  balance  the  immense 
loads  of  corn  or  rice  which  they  were  forced  to  carry  on  their  heads, 
besides  the  children,  who  were  unable  to  walk,  on  their  backs. 
Their  pace  was  little  short  of  running,  to  enable  them  to  keep 
up  with  the  horsemen,  who  drove  them  on  as  Smithfield  drovers 
do  fatigued  bullocks.  Many  of  the  women  were  old,  and  by  no 
means  able  to  endure  such  treatment.  One  in  particular  would 
not  have  failed  to  excite  the  tenderest  feelings  of  compassion  in 
the  breast  of  any,  save  a  savage  African :  she  was  at  least  sixty 
years  old,  in  the  most  miserable  state  of  emaciation  and  debility 
nearly  doubled  together,  and  with  difficulty  dragging  her  totter- 
ing limbs  along.  All  this  did  not  prevent  her  inhuman  captor 
from  making  her  carry  a  heavy  load  of  water;  while,  with  a 
rope  round  her  neck,  he  drove  her  before  his  horse ;  and,  when- 
ever she  showed  the  least  inclination  to  stop,  he  beat  her  in  the 
most  unmerciful  manner  with  a  stick." 

Of  a  subsequent  day's  toil  the  major  writes  :  "  The  sufferings 
of  the  poor  slaves  during  a  march  of  nearly  eight  hours,  partly 
under  an  excessively  hot  sun  and  east  wind,  heavily  laden  with 
water,  of  which  they  w^ere  allowed  to  drink  but  very  sparingly, 
and  travelling  bare-foot  on  a  hard  and  broken  soil,  covered  with 
long  dried  reeds  and  thorny  underwood,  may  be  more  easily 
conceived  than  described. 

"One  young  woman,  who  had  for  the  first  time  become  a 
mother  two  days  only  before  she  was  taken,  and  whose  child, 
being  thought  by  her  captor  too  j^oung  to  be  worth  saving,  was 
thrown  by  the  monster  into  the  burning  hut  from  which  the 
flames  had  just  obliged  the  mother  to  retreat,  suffered  so  much 
from  the  swollen  state  of  her  bosom,  that  her  moans  might  fre- 
quently be  heard  at  a  distance  of  some  hundred  yards,  when, 
refusing  to  go  on,  she  implored  her  fiend-like  captor  to  put  an 
end  to  her  existence :  but  that  would  have  been  too  great  a 
sacrifice  to  humanity;  and  a  few  blows  with  a  leathern  horse- 
fetter  soon  made  the  wretched  creature  move  again."* 

On  arriving  on  the  Coast,  the  captives  are  placed  in  the  slave- 
barracoons,  with  gyves  round  their  necks,  and  shackles  on  their 
feet,  and  are  fed  on  the  "  bread  and  water  of  affliction,"  till  the 
slave- vessel  arrives.  A  gentleman  resident  at  Senegal  in  1818 
stated,  to  his  correspondent  at  Paris,  "No  one  in  the  town  is 
ignorant  that  there  are  here  six  hundred  wretched  creatures 
shut  up  in  the  slave-yards,  waiting  for  embarkation.  The  delay 
which  has  occurred  causing  a  serious  expense,  they  receive  only 

*  Gray's  "  Travels  in  Africa,"  pp.  290,  292,  296. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE. 


113 


what  is  sufficient  to  keep  them  alive ;  and  they  are  made  to  go 
out  for  a  short  space  of  time,  morning  and  evening,  loaded  with 
irons."* 

Captain  Cook  mentions  a  distressing  case  which  occurred  in 
August,  1837,  and  which  came  under  his  own  observation.  He 
says,  "  Slaves  to  the  number  of  two  hundred  and  fifty,  or  there- 
abouts, male  and  female,  adults  and  children,  were  brought  in 
canoes  from  Senna,  a  Portuguese  settlement  at  some  distance  in 
the  interior  of  Africa,  to  be  sold  at  Quillimane,  there  being  at 
that  time  several  slavers  lying  in  the  river.  Those  unfortunate 
beings  were  consigned  to  a  person  holding  a  high  civil  appoint- 
ment under  the  Portuguese  Government  (the  collector  of  cus- 
toms). These  poor  creatures  were  from  a  part  of  the  country 
where  it  is  said  that  the  natives  make  bad  slaves ;  consequently, 
and  as  there  was  abundance  of  human  flesh  in  the  market,  they 
did  not  meet  with  a  ready  sale.  The  wretch  to  whom  they  were 
consigned  actually  refused  them  sustenance  of  any  kind.  Often 
have  I  been  compelled  to  witness  the  melancholy  spectacle  of 
from  twelve  to  twenty  of  my  fellow-creatures,  without  distinc- 
tion of  age  or  sex,  chained  together,  with  a  heavy  iron  chain 
round  the  neck,  wandering  about  the  town  in  quest  of  food  to 
satisfy  the  cravings  of  nature ;  picking  up  bones  and  garbage  of 
every  description  from  the  duug-heaps,  snails  from  the  fields, 
and  frogs  from  the  ditches;  and,  when  the  tide  receded,  col- 
lecting the  shell-fish  that  were  left  on  the  bank  of  the  river;  or 
sitting  round  a  fire,  roasting  and  eagerly  devouring'^the  sea- weed. 

"Again  and  again  have  I  seen  one  or  more  of  these  poor 
creatures,  when  unable  from  sickness  to  walk,  crawling  on  their 
hands  and  knees,  accompanying  the  gang  to  which  they  were 
chained,  when  they  went  in  search  of  their  daily  food ;  for  one 
could  not  move  without  the  whole."  f 

We  followed  Joseph  Wright  in  his  affecting  narrative  down 
to  the  "  slave-fold,"  as  he  calls  it.  He  then  goes  on  to  say,  "  I 
was  there  in  the  fold  for  about  two  months,  with  a  rope  on  my 
neck.  All  the  young  boys  have  ropes  on  their  necks  in  a  row ; 
and  all  the  men  with  chains  in  a  long  row,  for  about  fifty  per- 
sons in  row;  so  that  no  one  could  make  escape  without  the 
other.  At  once  the  town  took  fire,  and  about  fifty  slaves  were 
consumed;  because  the  entry  was  so  crowded  that  these  slaves 
could  not  get  out. — Next  day,  early  in  the  morning,  we  were  all 
brought  down  close  to  the  salt  water  for  to  be  put  in  canoes.  We 
all  were  heavy  and  sorrowful  in  heart,  because  we  were  going  to 

*  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton's  "  Slave-Trade,  and  its  Remedy."  f  Ibid. 

I 


]U 


AVESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


leave  our  lane!  for  another  which  we  never  knew;  and  not  only 
so,  but,  when  we  see  the  waves  of  the  salt  water  on  which  we 
were  just  to  enter,  it  discouraged  us  the  more;  for  we  had 
heard  that  the  Portuguese  were  going  to  eat  us  when  we  got  to 
their  countr3^  This  put  us  more  to  despair;  and,  when  they 
began  to  place  in  canoes  to  bring  ns  to  the  brig,  one  of  the 
canoes  sunk ;  and  half  of  the  slaves  died.  After  they  had  done 
loading  the  brig,  they  stowed  all  the  men  at  the  bottom  under 
the  deck ;  the  boys  and  women  were  left  on  the  deck.  The 
brig  sailed  in  the  evening.'^* 

The  Rev.  W.  Allen,  Wesleyan  Missionary  on  the  Gold-Coast, 
has  furnished  the  Christian  public,  through  one  of  the  Society^s 
publications,  with  a  lively  description  of  Whydah  and  Badagry, 
two  slave-dealing  ports  in  the  Bight  of  Benin,  where  this  inhu- 
man traffic  is  pursued  on  a  very  large  scale.  After  stating  the 
geographical  position  of  Whydah,  the  size  of  the  town,  its  popu- 
lation, &c.,  and  noticing  its  beautiful  scenery,  he  observes  : — 

The  two  principal  establishments  in  this  place  are,  Mr.  De  Souza's,  and  Mr. 
Tangronie's,  two  slave-dealers :  the  latter  died  early  in  the  year  1843.  Mr.  De 
Sonza's  premises  occupy  at  least  three  acres  of  ground,  surrounded  by  a  substantial 
s^vish  wall,  two  feet  thick  and  twelve  feet  high.  Inside  this  wall  are  his  slave- 
barracoons.  His  house  stands  in  fi'ont  of  his  premises ;  and,  being  coloured  M'hite, 
is  visible  from  the  sea.  Mr.  Tangronie's  premises  are  similar,  only  not  quite  so 
extensive.  These  two  large  slave-establishments  are  separated  from  each  other  by 
a  street  running  in  a  direct  line  between  them.  Mr.  De  Souza's  house  is  elegantly 
furnished ;  and  such  a  display  of  silver  I  never  beheld  in  any  house  in  Europe. 
There  are  other  slave-dealers'  premises  on  the  same  principle,  but  not  quite  so 
extensive  as  these.  I  cannot  attempt  to  describe  my  distressed  feelings  while 
walking  along  the  streets,  generally  formed  by  the  dreary  walls  which  surrounr)  the 
barracoons,  knowing  that  hundreds  of  poor  innocent  creatures  were  there  deposited, 
all  in  ii-ons,  to  be  shipped  oft'  at  the  first  opportunity.  The  thought  was  almost 
more  than  I  could  bear.  While  I  was  at  Angway,  a  slave-port  fifty  miles  to  the 
windward,  a  large  slave-brig  passed  down,  called  in  at  Whydah,  and  in  three  hours 
took  on  board  eleven  hundred  and  seventy  slaves,  and  sailed  off  with  them.  It  is 
distressing  to  be  made  acquainted  with  the  treatment  of  these  poor  creatures. 
When  the  Portuguese  and  Spaniards  buy  the  slaves  from  the  interior,  they  put  their 
feet  in  irons  to  secure  them,  deposit  them  in  their  barracoons ;  and,  before  they 
ship  them  off,  they  brand  them,  with  a  red-hot  iron  between  the  shoulders,  with 
the  initials  of  the  individual  to  whom  they  belong.  When  a  slave-vessel  comes  in 
to  Whydah,  and  none  of  Her  Majesty's  ships  of  war  are  in  sight,  these  poor  crea- 
tures are  marched  down  to  the  beach,  stowed  away  under  the  athwarts  of  the 
canoe,  and  taken  to  the  vessel.  Owing  to  the  surf  running  high,  canoes  are  fre- 
quently swamped,  and  many  are  drowned  before  they  reach  the  vessel.  "  Slave  "  is 
painted  on  the  head-board  of  these  slave-canoes  in  large  letters.  The  canoes  and 
canoe -men  employed  on  the  Slave-Coast  for  shipping  slaves  ai'e  aU  procm-ed  from 
the  Gold-Coast.     Vessels,  under  a  false  national  flag,  call  in  at  some  of  the  ports  on 

*  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  pp.  3,55 — 357. 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  115 

the  Gold-Coast  to  sell  rum  and  roll- tobacco;  they  then  purchase  cauoes,  and 
engage  canoe-iuen  to  go  down  with  them  to  the  Slave-Coast  to  work  them ;  and 
many  are  never  allowed  to  return.  The  barbarous  manner  in  which  the  unfortu- 
nate slaves  are  stowed  away  on  board  the  slavers,  is  distressing.  In  small  crafts, 
where  you  would  suppose  it  was  not  possible  to  find  room  for  one  hundred  men, 
they  will  stow  away  five  hundred.  It  is  not  an  uncommon  thing  for  one-third  of 
them  to  die  on  board  from  suffocation. 

Whydah  forms  part  of  the  kingdom  of  Dahomi.  The  inhabitants  are  cruel  and 
barbarous :  this  need  not  be  wondered  at,  if  we  consider  the  examples  which  are 
set  them  by  these  slave-dealers.  While  I  was  there,  not  fewer  than  two  hundred 
Portuguese  and  Spaniards  were  engaged  in  this  inhuman  traffic,  besides  many  of 
the  influential  natives.* 

We  have  already  given  some  accouut  of  the  miseries  of  the 
Middle  Passage,  and  therefore  need  not  enter  into  a  recapitu- 
lation :  but  a  specimen  or  two  of  this  species  of  commerce 
on  the  other  side  of  the  Atlantic  may  be  here  adduced. 
Having  been  forcibly  torn  from  their  native  towns  in  the  inte- 
rior by  a  stronger  foe,  or  kidnapped  whilst  engaged  in  their 
fields  and  gardens,  or  suddenly  seized  upon  in  the  foot-path 
while  journeying  from  one  village  to  another,  these  poor  crea- 
tures are  lashed  together;  and,  after  a  fatiguing  and  tedious 
march  over  burning  sands  and  under  the  rays  of  the  scorching' 
sun,  in  some  cases  for  a  distance  of  upwards  of  five  hundred 
miles,  they  at  length  arrive  on  the  coast ;  and,  as  soon  as  the 
slave-ship  is  ready,  hundreds  of  these  innocent  Africans  are 
hurried  on  board  of  one  of  these  vessels  in  the  course  of  a  few 
hours,  and,  amid  the  sighs  and  sobs  and  tears  of  bitter  regret 
and  pain,  they  bid  adieu  to  their  native  land.  But  they  are 
now  safely  lodged  in  their  floating  prison;  and,  as  we  have 
already  seen,  are  crammed  together  like  herrings  in  a  barrel. 
In  addition  to  this,  they  are  surrounded  with  every  thing  nau- 
seous and  disgusting.  A  very  scanty  allowance  of  water  is 
afforded  them ;  and  horse-beans  are  allotted  as  their  food.  If 
they  manifest  any  external  signs  of  uneasiness  at  their  hard 
fate,  the  lash  is  applied  as  the  only  remedy  for  their  grief:  if 
they  refuse  to  eat,  they  are  compelled  by  instruments  of  torture 
to  SAvallow  their  victuals.  They  are  sometimes  requested  to 
dance  and  sing ;  and,  if  any  reluctance  is  exhibited,  the  cat-o^- 
nine-tails  is  employed  to  enforce  obedience.  Yes,  strange  as  it 
may  seem,  many  of  these  poor  creatures  may  saj"^,  in  the  lan- 
guage of  the  Israelites,  "They  that  carried  us  away  captive 
required  of  us  a  song ;  and  they  that  wasted  us  required  of  us 
mirth."  (Psalm  cxxxvii.  3.)  But,  labouring  under  a  fixed 
melancholy  at  the  loss  of  their  relatives,  friends,  and  country, 

*  "  \Yesleyan  Missionary  Notices,"  September,  1847. 

I  2 


116  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

they  can  neither  dance  nor  sing;  and  many  of  them,  instead  of 
complying  with  the  unfeeling  and  unreasonable  request,  attempt 
self-destruction;  and  some  actually  accomplish  it.  Suicide  is 
sometimes  effected  by  choking  and  strangling  themselves;  but 
more  frequently  by  jumping  overboard,  and  thus  seeking  rest  in 
a  watery  grave.  Pairs  of  them  have  been  known  mutually  to 
agree  to  this,  and  have  thrown  themselves  into  the  sea  locked  in 
each  other's  arms. 

In  some  cases  the  slaves  rise  in  a  mass  to  liberate  themselves ; 
and  then  force  is  opposed  to  force,  and  in  the  scuffle  many  of 
them  are  shot,  and  others  jump  overboard  and  are  drowned; 
and  some,  whilst  actually  drowning,  have  been  seen  to  wave 
their  hands  in  triumph,  exulting  that  they  had  escaped,  thus 
preferring  death  to  the  misery  of  their  situation. 

Wadstrom,  in  his  ''Essay  on  Colonization  in  Western 
Africa,"  published  in  1795,  mentions  one  or  two  instances  of 
this  kind.  The  annexed  sketch  represents  an  insurrection  on 
board  a  slaver,  and  is  copied  from  one  in  his  work,  the  original 
of  which,  he  informs  us,  was  furnished  to  him  at  Goree  in  1787. 
The  particulars  narrated  below  are  from  the  Report  of  the 
Directors  of  the  Sierra-Leone  Company:  "I  have  just  heard 
that  an  American  brig  has  been  cut  off  by  the  slaves,  seven 
or  eight  leagues  north  of  Cape  Sierra-Leone.  A  single  slave 
began  the  attack,  r\ished  into  the  cabin,  laid  open  the  captain's 
face  and  breast  with  an  axe,  and  severely  Avounded  a  passenger. 
As  the  seamen  made  no  resistance,  they  were  permitted  to  go 
off,  with  the  wounded,  in  the  boat.  The  captain  died.  The 
ship  was  re-taken  by  a  Liverpool  vessel,  after  an  encounter  in 
which  some  of  the  slaves  were  killed." 

The  following  is  an  account  of  a  similar  catastrophe  to  that 
which  the  sketch  represents :  ''  I  have  got  considerable  light 
into  the  historj^  of  Mahady,  the  famous  Mahometan  prophet, 
who  appeared  in  these  parts,  with  an  immense  concourse  of  fol- 
lowers, about  three  years  ago.  When  he  was  killed,  his  gene- 
rals contended  for  the  mastery ;  and  one  of  them,  being  taken 
by  his  antagonist,  was  immediately  sold  to  a  French  slave-ship^ 
lying  off  a  factory  near  Sierra-Leone.  There  he  behaved  with 
a  sullen  dignity,  and,  even  in  chains,  addressed  his  fellow-slaves 
in  his  wonted  tone  of  authority.  I  heard  this  from  a  slave- 
trader,  who  had  seen  him,  both  as  a  great  chief  or  general,  and 
as  a  prisoner  on  board  a  slave-ship.  The  slave-trader  and  the 
captive  chief  mutually  recognised  each  other.  On  the  same 
day,  when  the  slave-trader  was  on  board,  it  happened  that  the 
chief  was  permitted  to  walk  on  deck  without  his  fetters.     No 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  117 

sooner  had  the  captain  and  his  friends  sat  down  to  dinner,  than 
a  signal  was  given.  The  slaves  rose  to  a  man,  knocked  off  each 
other's  fetters,  and,  headed  by  the  chief,  attacked  the  barricade. 
But  they  failed.  The  guns  were  pointed  at  them ;  some  were 
killed,  many  leaped  into  the  sea,  and  the  insurrection  was 
quelled.  The  captain  inquiring  for  the  ringleader,  the  chief 
came  boldly  forward,  and  avowed  that  he  was  the  man;  that  he 
wished  to  give  liberty  to  all  the  slaves  on  board;  that  he 
regretted  his  defeat  on  their  account ;  but  that,  as  to  himself, 
he  was  well  satisfied  with  the  prospect  of  immediately  obtaining 
what  he  termed  his  own  liberty.  The  captain  hung  him  up 
instantly  to  the  yard-arm." 

Mr.  Wadstrom  mentions  another  case, — that  of  a  Boston 
slave-ship,  in  which  "the  slaves  rose,  and  cut  to  pieces  the 
second  mate  and  a  seaman  on  deck.  They  then  attacked  the 
cabin,  and  killed  the  captain  and  chief  mate.  The  rest  of  the 
crcAV  surrendered  on  condition  that  their  lives  should  be  spared, 
and  the  ship  given  to  them,  with  the  promise  that  they  would 
navigate  her  into  some  place  where  the  slaves  might  escape. 
In  steering  towards  a  neighbouring  river,  she  ran  aground ;  and 
they  came  in  contact  with  a  slave-trader  with  a  number  of 
armed  men.  An  obstinate  engagement  followed ;  but  the  slaves 
were  overpowered,  several  of  them  were  killed,  and  the  rest, 
being  eighteen,  were  sold  again  into  slavery."* 

But  we  have  a  more  recent  account  of  a  slave-ship  mutiny, 
furnished  by  the  Bio  Commissioners,  under  date  of  the  21st  of 
March,  1845 ;  and  given  in  the  evidence  of  James  Bandinel, 
Esq.,  before  a  select  Committee  of  the  House  of  Commons  on 
the  Slave-Trade,  during  the  session  of  1848.  It  is  as  follows: 
"The  'Kentucky^  had  taken  a  cargo  of  slaves  at  Inhambane. 
The  next  day,  after  the  vessel  crossed  the  bar  on  leaving 
Inhambane,  the  Negroes  rose  upon  the  officers  and  crew.  The 
majority  of  the  men,  all  of  whom  were  in  irons,  got  their  irons 
off,  broke  through  the  bulk-head,  and  likewise  into  the  fore- 
castle. Upon  this,  the  captain  armed  the  crew  -with  cutlasses, 
and  got  all  the  muskets  and  pistols,  and  loaded  them ;  and  the 
crew  were  firing  down  amongst  the  slaves  for  half  an  hour  or 
more.  In  the  mean  time  deponent  was  nailing  the  hatches 
down,  shot  no  musket  or  pistol ;  and  there  was  no  occasion,  as 
the  Brazilian  sailors  seemed  to  like  the  sport.  In  about  half  an 
hour  they  were  subdued,  and  became  quiet  again.  The  slaves 
were  then  brought  on  deck,  eight  or  ten  at  a  time,  and  ironed 


*  Wadstrom's  "Essay  on  Colonization,"  part  ii.  pp.  86,  87. 


118  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

afresh;  they  were  all  re-ironed  that  afternoon,  and  put  below, 
excepting  about  seven,  who  remained  on  deck.  There  were  but 
eight  or  ten  more  or  less  Avounded.  On  the  next  day  they  were 
brought  upon  deck,  two  or  three  dozen  at  a  time,  all  being  well 
ironed,  and  tried  by  Captain  Fonseca  and  officers ;  and,  within 
two  or  three  days  afterwards,  forty-six  men  and  one  woman  were 
hung  and  shot,  and  thrown  overboard.  They  were  ironed  or 
chained  two  together;  and,  when  hung,  a  rope  was  put  round 
their  necks,  and  they  were  drawn  up  to  the  yard-arm  clear  of 
the  sail.  This  did  not  kill  them ;  but  only  choked  or  strangled 
them :  they  were  then  shot  in  the  breast,  and  the  bodies  thrown 
overboard.  If  only  one  of  two  that  were  ironed  together  was  to 
be  hung,  a  rope  was  put  round  his  neck,  and  he  was  drawn  up 
clear  of  the  deck,  beside  of  the  bulwarks,  and  his  leg  laid  across 
the  rail,  and  chopped  off,  to  save  the  irons,  and  release  him  from 
his  companion,  who  at  the  same  time  lifted  up  his  leg  till  the 
other's  was  chopped  off,  and  he  released.  The  bleeding  Negro 
ivas  then  drawn  up,  shot  in  the  breast,  and  thrown  overboard. 
The  legs  of  about  one  dozen  were  chopped  off  in  this  way.  When 
the  feet  fell  on  deck,  they  were  picked  up  by  the  Brazilian  creiv, 
and  thrown  overboard,  and  sometimes  at  the  body,  ivhile  it  still 
hung  living ;  and  all  kinds  of  sport  were  made  of  the  busi- 
ness." * 

The  preceding  are  but  a  fcAv  instances,  out  of  many  others,  of 
the  attempts  which  the  slaves  naturally  make  to  liberate  them- 
selves, but  in  which  they  rarely  succeed.  Indeed,  how  can  suc- 
cess be  expected,  when  they  are  ironed  and  doubly-ironed, 
chained  together  below  the  deck,  and  carefully  guarded  and 
watched  ?  Even  when  they  succeed  in  knocking  off  their  fet- 
ters, they  have  nothing  with  which  to  defend  their  naked  bodies 
against  the  cutlasses  and  fire-arms  of  their  merciless  foes.  But 
the  account  of  the  occurrences  on  board  the  "Kentucky"  pre- 
sents a  scene  of  such  barbarity,  a  picture  of  such  hideous 
atrocity  and  butcherj',  as  practised  by  the  captain  and  crew 
towards  the  slaves,  that  a  parallel,  if  sought  for,  can  only  be 
found  in  the  cannibalism  of  the  savages  of  New  Zealand  or 
Feejee. 

But  even  when  the  slaves  who  are  stoAved  away  on  board 
these  unhallowed  vessels  do  quietly  submit  to  their  hard  fate, 
such  is  the  impurity  of  the  atmosphere  arising  from  close  con- 
finement and  a  deficiency  of  fresh  air,  and  from  the  filth  and 

*  "  First  Report  of  the  Select  Committee  of  the  House  of  Commons  on  the 
Slavc-Trade,  1848,"  p.  253. 


THE    SLAVE-TKADE. 


119 


stench  cousequent  thereon,  that  they  nmy  be  said  barely  to 
exist  while  detained  in  these  floating  hospitals.  For  hospitals 
indeed  they  are,  with  this  difference, — they  are  places  where 
diseases  originate,  and  where  but  few  cures  take  place.  For 
Captain  Cook,  when  speaking  on  this  subject,  says,  "With  all 
this  probability,  or  rather  certainty,  of  disease,  I  never  knew 
but  one  slaver  that  carried  a  surgeon."  But,  supposing  every 
slaver  carried  a  surgeon  on  board,  that  would  only  prove  the 
necessity  that  existed  for  medical  treatment,  and  the  absolute 
certainty  that  diseases  do  originate  there,  and  that  they  require 
prompt  and  skilful  attention.  It  is  well  known  that  the 
Negroes  are  far  more  violently  aftected  by  sea-sickness  than 
Europeans ;  and  that  this  frequently  terminates  in  death,  espe- 
cially among  the  women.  Divers  diseases,  such  as  dysentery, 
ophthalmia,  scurvy,  the  small-pox,  and  other  putrid  and  fatal 
disorders,  frequently  occur;  and  are  so  rapid  in  their  progress, 
that,  when  the  inspector  goes  in  the  morning,  he  has  often  to 
pick  out  dead  slaves  out  of  the  wedged  row^s,  and  to  unchain 
their  dead  carcasses  from  the  bodies  of  their  -wretched  •  fellow- 
sufferers,  to  whom  they  had  been  fastened. 

Of  the  efl"ects  of  ophthalmia  the  Fifteenth  Report  of  the 
African  Institution  furnishes  a  terrible  instance,  which  took  place 
on  board  a  French  slaver,  the  "Le  Rodeur,"  in  1819.  This 
vessel  left  the  Bonny  with  one  hundred  and  sixty  Negroes  on 
board,  and  a  crew  of  twenty-two  men.  After  she  had  been 
about  fifteen  days  on  her  voyage,  it  was  discovered  that  many  of 
the  slaves  had  contracted  a  considerable  redness  of  the  eyes; 
and,  though  this  vessel  had  a  surgeon  on  board,  the  disease 
spread  so  rapidly,  that  the  crew  were  seized  with  it.  "  Twelve 
of  them  lost  their  sight  entirely,  among  whom  was  the  surgeon ; 
five  became  blind  of  one  eye,  one  of  them  being  the  captain ; 
and  four  were  partially  injured."  The  vessel,  however,  reached 
Guadaloupe  on  June  21st,  1819;  and,  three  days  after  her 
arrival,  the  only  man  who  during  the  voyage  had  withstood  the 
influence  of  the  contagion  was  seized  with  the  same  malady. 
Of  the  Negroes,  thii-ty-niue  had  become  perfectly  blind,  twelve 
had  lost  one  eye,  and  fourteen  were  affected  Avitli  blemishes 
more  or  less  considerable. 

It  was  stated  that  the  captain  caused  several  of  the  Negroes 
who  Avere  prevented  in  the  attempt  to  throw  themselves  over- 
board, to  be  shot  and  hung,  in  the  hope  that  the  example  might 
deter  the  rest  from  similar  conduct.  It  was  further  said  that 
upwards  of  thirty  of  the  slaves  who  became  blind  were  thrown 
into  the  sea  and  drowned ;  upon  the  principle  that,  had  they 


120  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

been  landed  at  Guadaloupe,  no  one  Avould  have  bought  them ; 
while,  by  throwing  them  overboard,  the  expense  of  maintaining 
them  was  avoided ;  and  a  ground  was  laid  for  a  claim  on  the 
underwriters  by  whom  the  cargo  had  been  insured,  who  are  said 
to  have  allowed  the  claim,  and  made  good  the  value  of  the  slaves 
thus  destroyed. 

But  the  supplement  must  not  be  omitted.  At  the  time  when 
only  one  of  the  crew  on  board  the  "  Rodeur"  could  see  to  steer 
that  vessel,  they  fell  in  with  a  Spanish  slave-ship,  the  "  St. 
Leon.^^  A  contagion  had  seized  the  eyes  of  all  on  board  of  her ; 
so  that  there  was  not  an  individual,  sailor  or  slave,  who  could 
see.  They  implored  help  from  the  "Rodeur;"  but,  alas!  it 
was  in  vain ;  they  were  unable  to  render  them  any  assistance ; 
and  the  "  St.  Leon"  passed  on,  and,  being  totally  at  the  mere}'- 
of  the  wind  and  the  waves,  without  an  helmsman  to  steer,  or 
any  one  to  work  the  ship,  she  was  never  more  heard  of ! 

But  we  cannot  linger  here.  The  wretched  cargo,  in  ordinary 
cases,  has  now  crossed  the  vast  Atlantic,  and  the  slaves  are  being 
landed  in  the  colonies  of  the  far  West.  From  the  horrors  of 
the  Middle  Passage  the  slaves  often  arrive  in  a  sickly,  disordered 
state,  with  wounds  or  eruptions ;  and  the  captain  now  acts  the 
part  of  an  English  horse-jockey,  in  improving  their  appearance, 
and  concealing  their  defects,  and  thus  preparing  his  cattle  for 
the  market.  For  this  purpose,  astringent  washes,  mercurial 
ointments,  and  repelling  drugs  are  applied,  that  their  Avounds 
and  diseases  may  be  hid.  These  preparations  being  completed, 
they  are  led  to  the  market  like  cattle,  examined,  handled, 
selected,  separated,  and  sold :  except  in  those  cases  where  the 
Negroes  are  branded — not  like  sheep,  who  have  the  farmer's 
initial  marked  with  tar  upon  their  wool,  but — ivlth  the  red-hot 
iron  upon  the  hare  flesh.  As  these  marks  show  that  they 
belonged  to,  and  were  shipped  on  account  of,  different  indivi- 
duals, they  are  at  once  transferred  to  their  owners. 

A  letter  from  the  Havannah,  in  1838,  contains  the  following 
account :  "  In  the  cool  of  the  evening  we  made  a  visit  to  the 
bazaar.  A  newly-imported  cargo  of  two  hundred  and  twenty 
human  beings  was  here  exposed  for  sale.  They  were  crouched 
down  upon  their  forms  around  a  large  room.  During  a  visit  of 
more  than  an  hour  that  we  were  there,  not  a  word  was  uttered 
by  one  of  them.  On  entering  the  room  the  eyes  of  all  were 
turned  towards  us,  as  if  to  read  in  our  countenances  their  fate. 
They  were  all  nearly  naked,  being  but  slightly  clad  in  a  light 
check  shirt,  upon  which  was  a  mark  upon  the  breast.  With  a 
few  exceptions  they  were  but  skin  and   bone.     Too  weak   to 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  121 

support  their  languid  forms,  thej  were  reclining  on  the  floor, 
their  backs  resting  against  the  vvaD.  When  a  purchaser  came, 
they  were  motioned  to  stand,  which  order  they  obeyed,  though 
with  apparent  pain.  A  few  were  old  and  grey ;  but  the  greater 
proportion  were  children,  of  from  ten  to  tliirteen  or  fifteen  years 
of  age.  When  they  stood,  their  legs  looked  as  thin  as  reeds, 
and  hardly  capable  of  supporting  the  skeletons  of  their  Avasted 
forms.  The  keeper  informed  us,  they  were  of  several  distinct 
tribes,  and  that  they  did  not  understand  one  another ;  and  this 
was  apparent,  also,  from  the  formation  of  the  head.  While  we 
were  there,  five  little  boys  and  girls  were  selected  and  bought 
to  go  into  the  interior.  No  regard  is  paid  to  relationship ;  and, 
once  separated,  they  never  meet  again.^'* 

The  population  of  Brazil  in  South  America  is  estimated  at 
upwards  of  five  millions ;  and  of  these  more  than  two  millions 
are  slaves.  Notwithstanding,  that  country  took  part  with 
other  nations  in  the  Abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade,  made  it 
illegal  in  1831,  and  even  declared  it  punishable  as  piracy;  yet 
an  active  Slave-Trade  is  still  carried  on  between  it  and  the 
African  coast ;  and  the  number  of  Negroes  landed  at  five  of  the 
principal  ports  of  Brazil  is  upwards  of  seventy  thousand 
annually.  So  eager,  indeed,  is  the  demand  for  slaves,  that  it  is 
believed  that,  were  ten  thousand  Africans  to  be  brought  into 
that  province  every  month,  they  would  be  all  bought  up.  The 
slaves,  when  landed,  are  generally  taken  to  depots  along  the 
coast,  until  recruited  after  their  voyage.  If  not  sold  at  the 
depot,  a  case  which  often  happens,  they  are  marched  openly  in 
gangs  into  the  interior,  and  distributed  over  the  country,  and 
are  employed  in  the  mines  or  on  the  plantations.  The  follow- 
ing extract  from  a  letter  written  on  board  of  a  British 
vessel,  and  dated  January  9th,  1843,  will  give  an  idea  of  the 
conduct  of  the  Brazilian  government  with  refei'ence  to  the 
Slave-Trade,  and  of  the  way  in  which  the  Negroes  are  disposed 
of  on  landing  in  Brazil : — 

"We  arrived  off  Santos  on  November  12th,  and  received 
information  that  a  slave-vessel  was  daily  expected  from  the  east 
coast.  The  vessel  arrived ;  but,  having  gained  intelligence  from 
the  Portuguese  on  shore  that  our  boats  were  at  the  mouth  of 
the  river,  she  landed  her  cargo  a  few  miles  lower  down,  and 
thus  escaped  being  captured.  The  commander  of  the  English 
cruiser  wrote  to  the  governor  of  Mozambique,  who,  not  being 
friendly  to  the  Slave-Trade,  fined  the  vessel  severely  for  a  breach 


*  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton  on  the  '•  Slave-Trade,  and  its  Remedy." 


122  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

of  the  custom-laws  j  which  was  reported  to  the  Portuguese 
government  at  home;  and  an  order  Avas  despatched  for  his 
supersession^  it  having  been  found  that  he  Avas  too  strict,  and 
that,  in  consequence,  the  colonial  treasury  was  impoverished. 
A  duty  is  paid  upon  each  slave  of  seven  dollars ;  and  the  autho- 
rities, instead  of  suppressing  the  abominable  traffic,  encourage  it 
by  every  means  in  their  power. 

"The  ship  in  question  sailed  from  Quillimane  with  eight 
hundred  and  fifty  slaves,  all  children,  and  landed  six  hundred 
and  tAventy,  having  lost  tAvo  hundred  and  thirty  on  the  passage. 
The  cost  of  slaA^es  at  Quillimane  is  about  thirty-tAvo  milreis 
each ;  (about  £i  sterling ;)  and  the  price  obtained  for  them  on 
landing  Avas  six  hundred  milreis,  {£75  sterling,)  ready  mone}^, 
leaving  a  profit,  after  a  deduction  of  eighteen  milreis  for  their 
subsistence  on  shore  previous  to  being  sold,  of  five  hundred  and 
fifty  miireis  on  each  slave,  to  pay  the  expense  of  their  transit, 
and  to  reimburse  the  vile  Avrctches  employed  in  the  nefarious 
traffic,  and  also  to  enable  them  to  fee  the  authorities,  in  order 
to  hoodwink  them.  In  a  conversation  I  had  with  the  English 
consul,  Mr.  Whittaker,  he  said  that  the  authorities  are  all  deter- 
mined to  encourage  the  traffic,  alleging  that  no  act  can  become 
law  by  the  Portuguese  constitution  unless  it  be  beneficial  to  the 
country  generally ;  and  that,  as  the  importation  of  Negroes  is 
beneficial,  and  desired  by  a  majority  of  the  people,  the  treaty 
entered  into  by  the  mother  country  is  not  binding  upon 
them."* 

It  appears  from  authentic  documents  that  the  slaves  on  the 
plantations  and  in  the  mines  of  Brazil  are,  on  the  Avhole,  better 
treated  than  those  in  the  planting  states  of  America;  that  they 
have  more  holidays  in  the  course  of  the  year ;  that  the  laAV  com- 
pels the  master  to  manumit  the  slave  for  the  price  at  which  he 
was  first  purchased,  or  for  his  present  value,  if  it  be  greater 
than  prime  cost;  and  that  instances  of  manumission  are  far 
from  uncommon. 

But,  with  the  exception  of  these  meliorating  circumstances,  Slaver}'  in  Brazil 
is  as  miserable  a  state  of  bondage  as  could  well  be  pictured.  "  If  we  be  the  most 
merciful,"  says  the  author  of  a  Brazihan  pamphlet  on  Slavery,  "  what  must  the 
rest  be  ?  On  the  great  sugar  estates  in  the  north  of  Brazil,  it  would  horrify  you  to 
witness  the  misery  of  the  slaves,  whose  bodies,  covered  with  wounds,  sufficiently 
indicate  the  treatment  of  which  they  are  continually  the  victims. 

"  In  the  province  of  Maranham  and  Piauhy,  as  novenas,  that  is,  '  whippings  for 
nine  successive  days,'  is  an  ordinary  punishment.     The  culprit  is  fastened  to  a  cart, 


*  Chambers's  "  Miscellany." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE,  123 

and  there  receives  two  or  three  hundred  lashes ;  the  mangled  flesh  is  then  cut,  and 
Cayenne  pepper  and  salt  are  put  into  the  wounds,  to  prevent,  as  they  suppose, 
gangrene  and  coiTuption.  I  know  a  man  named  Joao.  Alvarenga,  in  Piauhy,  who, 
when  he  wished  to  get  rid  of  a  slave,  ordered  him  a  novena,  and  then  exposed  him 
in  a  sack  to  the  burning  sun,  where  the  unhappy  victim  was  farther  tortured  to 
death.  The  punishment  of  the  tomiguette,  hand  and  neck-stocks,  thumb-screws, 
irons,  stocks,  and  many  other  instruments  of  torture,  are  common  on  our  planta- 
tions ;  and  even  in  our  cities  they  are  not  rare.  The  art  of  torturing  is  far 
advanced  amongst  us.  To  expose  a  slave  for  a  whole  night  tied  to  a  stake  over  an 
ants'  nest,  as  is  customary  in  some  provinces,  or  on  a  cross  to  the  stinging  of  mus- 
quitoes,  as  in  Rio  Grande  de  Sul,  are  refinements  of  barbarity  peculiar  to  Brazil." 

As  in  other  slave-using  countries,  so  in  Brazil,  the  cruel  treatment  which  the 
slaves  experience  drive  many  of  them  to  the  most  desperate  means  of  escaping  it. 
"  Suicide,"  says  the  Rev.  Dr.  Walsh,  "  is  the  daily  practice  in  Brazil.  Respectable 
persons  have  told  me  they  frequently  encountered  black  bodies,  when  they  went  to 
bathe.  I  have  seen  them  myself,  left  by  the  tide  on  the  strand,  and  some  weltering 
just  under  our  windows.  The  wretched  slave  often  inflicts  death  on  himself  in  an 
extraordinary  manner.  They  have  a  method  of  buiying  their  tongue  in  the  throat, 
in  such  a  way  as  to  produce  suffocation.  A  friend  of  mine  was  passing  when  a 
slave  was  tied  up  and  flogged.  After  a  few  lashes  he  hung  down  his  head,  appa- 
rently lifeless ;  and,  when  taken  down,  he  was  actually  dead,  and  his  tongue  found 
wedged  in  the  cBsophagus  so  completely  as  to  cover  the  trachea.  Negresses  are 
known  to  be  very  fond  mothers ;  yet  this  very  affection  often  impels  them  to  com- 
mit infanticide.  Many  of  them,  particularly  the  Minas  slaves,  have  the  strongest 
repugnance  to  have  children,  or,  as  they  say,  to  bring  slaves  into  the  world."  * 

Instances  of  runaway  or  straj^ed  Negroes  are  of  frequent 
occurrence,  when  advertisements  are  published,  offering  a 
reward,  for  their  apprehension.  If  recovered,  they  are  severely 
punished. 

Advertisements  are  also  to  be  seen  of  sales  of  Negroes,  such  as  the  following, 
which  occurs  in  the  Rio  Janeiro  paper,  the  Journal  de  Commerce,  July  21st,  1840 : 
"  For  sale,  in  the  Rua  de  Cano,  No.  119,  with  or  without  her  infant  of  four  months, 
a  Negress.  She  has  good  milk,  is  very  healthy,  and  very  kind  and  tender  to  chil- 
dren. She  has  neither  vices  nor  defects  ;  can  sew,  wash,  starch,  and  cook,  all  in 
perfection,  which  will  be  guaranteed  by  the  Publisher.  The  motive  for  selling  her 
is  her  being  disol)edient  to  her  Senhora."  f 

Where  is  there  a  Eriton  that  can  read  this  cold-blooded  piece 
of  barbarous  inhumanity,  this  daring  insult  to  our  common 
nature,  without  feelings  of  the  utmost  repugnance  and  the 
deepest  indignation  ?     Or,  as  Cowper  expresses  it, 

"  What  man,  seeing  this, 
And  having  human  feelings,  does  not  blush 
And  hang  his  head,  to  think  himself  a  man  .-'" 

A  mother  offered  for  sale,  "  ivith  or  without  her  infant  of  four 
*  Chambers's  "  Miscellany."  t  Idem. 


124  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

months  !  "  No  wonder  that  the  Negresses  "  have  the  strongest 
repugnance  to  have  children,  or,  as  they  say,  to  bring  slaves  into 
the  world.'^  AVhat  English  grazier  would  thus  separate  the 
young  of  his  sheep-fold,  or  any  of  his  other  cattle,  from  their 
dams  at  a  corresponding  tender  age  ?  "  She  lias  good  milk  ! " 
Whose  face,  male  or  female,  does  not  exhibit  a  crimson  blush  of 
shame  at  this  short  sentence  ?  "  Is  very  healthy,  and  very  kind 
and  tender  to  children :  she  has  neither  vices  nor  defects,"  ^c. : 
and  yet  this  healthy,  kind,  and  tender-hearted  mother,  groaning 
under  the  cruel  usage  of  her  task-master,  must  suffer  an  addi- 
tional pang,  by  having  her  infant  torn  from  her  bosom  !  O  ! 
there  is  something,  in  the  system  of  Slavery  and  the  Slave- 
Trade,  so  contrary  to  the  principles  of  justice  and  humanity, 
something  so  unearthly,  so  diabolical  and  infernal,  that  it  makes 
one^s  blood  to  chill  and  one's  pulse  to  stand  still  with  horror. 
Who  does  not  pity  poor  Africa,  and  the  millions  of  Africans 
who  are  toiling  in  other  lands,  for  another's  gain  ? 

Abundantly  has  Africa  multiplied,  but  only  to  furnish  fresh 
victims  to  the  fraud  and  avarice  of  other  nations.  Brazil  alone,  as 
we  have  already  stated,  receives  an  annual  importation  of  upwards 
of  seventy  thousand  Negroes  :  and  Sir  Fowell  Buxton  has  most 
clearly  proved,  that  Africa  has  been  annually  robbed  by  the 
abominable  Slave-Traders,  Christian  and  Mahometan,  of  upv.^ards 
of  two  hundred  thousand  of  her  children ;  that  this  immense 
number  of  Africans  are  periodically  torn  from  the  land  of  their 
birth  and  of  liberty,  and  sent  into  a  state  of  cruel  captivity.  To 
this  amount  may  be  added  fully  125  per  cent,  as  the  average  of 
lives  destroyed,  first,  by  the  wholesale  murders  which  take  place 
in  the  primary  seizure  of  these  unhappy  creatures  ;  secondly,  by 
the  mortality  which  rages  amongst  them  on  their  march  down  to 
the  coast,  and  during  their  detention,  often  in  a  state  of  starva- 
tion, in  the  slave-barracoons ;  and  thirdly,  by  the  multiplied 
horrors  of  the  Middle  Passage ;  thus  making  the  total  loss  to 
Africa  of  not  less  than  five  hundred  thousand  per  annum.  In 
the  preceding  calculation  we  have  not  included  the  20  per  cent, 
or  the  one-fifth  of  the  number  imported,  that  perish  in  the 
seasoning,  after  they  are  landed  in  a  foreign  country ;  nor  the 
seven  or  eight  thousand  that  are  annually  captured  by  the 
British  cruisers,  and  that  are  conveyed  back  again  to  their 
father-land,  and  many  of  whom  die  on  their  homeward  passage, 
and  not  a  few  after  they  are  landed  on  the  British  settlements 
on  the  coast.  So  that  Africa  loses  far  more  than  America  or 
other  slave-holding  countries  gain. 

Take  the  folloM'ing  simple  calculation  from  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton's 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  125 

affecting  record  of  the  Slave-Trade  : — "  Of  1000  victims  to  the 
Slave-Trade, 

One-half  \ierish  in  the  seizure,  march,  and  detention, — that  is    500 

Of  the  SOO  emharked,  one-fourth,  or  25  per  cent  die  on  the  passage  125 

Of  the  remaining  375  landed,  one-fifth,  or  20  per  cent,  perish  in  the 

seasoning 75 

Total  loss...  700 


So  that  300  Negroes  only,  or  three-tenths  of  the  whole  number 
of  victims,  remain  alive  at  the  end  of  a  year  after  their  deport- 
ation." 

From  these  statements  it  is  plain,  that  the  whole  wastage,  or 
tare,  of  the  traffic  is  seven-tenths  :  that  is  to  say,  for  every  ten 
Negroes  whom  Africa  parts  with,  America  receives  only  three ; 
the  other  seven  die.  If  we  apply,  therefore,  as  we  may  fairly  do, 
this  mode  of  calculation  to  the  actual  numbers,  we  shall  find  that 
if  500,000  Negroes  are  collected  in  the  interior  of  Africa,  in  the 
collecting  of  these  one-half  will  die  before  the  time  of  their 
embarkation,  leaving  only  250,000  to  be  shipped ;  of  these  one- 
fourth  will  die  in  the  passage  across  the  Atlantic,  leaving  only 
187,500  to  be  landed ;  and  of  these  one-fifth  will  die  in  the 
process  of  seasoning ;  leaving  only  available  to  the  planter  or 
slave-holder  150,000.  So  that  350,000  Africans  annually  perish 
at  the  shrine  of  this  goddess  of  European  cupidity,  avarice,  and 
cruelty ;  besides  the  150,000  who  are  every  year  left  to  toil  and 
bleed  and  groan  under  the  heavy  lash  of  these  modern  Pharaohs, 
whose  hearts  Satan  himself  must  have  hardened,  or  they  would 
long  ere  this  have  let  the  people  go  free. 

Nor  does  the  awful  amount  of  mortality  stop  here,  frightful  as 
it  is  :  for,  through  the  haste  with  which  the  embarkation  is 
generally  conducted,  the  poor  slaves  being  stowed  away  under 
the  athwarts  of  the  canoe,  on  their  way  to  the  slave-ship,  in 
consequence  of  the  surf  running  high,  some  of  the  canoes  and 
boats  are  frequently  swamped  amidst  the  breakers,  and  many 
slaves  are  thus  lost.  This  was  the  case  when  Joseph  Wright 
was  being  shipped;  for  he  says,  ''When  they  begin  to  place  in 
canoes,  to  bring  us  to  the  brig,  one  of  the  canoes  sank,  and  half 
of  the  slaves  died."  Many  slave-vessels,  as  well  as  others,  are 
wrecked  at  sea:  and  hundreds  and  thousands  have  in  this 
way  found  a  grave  in  the  ocean's  bed.  Many  are  also  cast  into 
the  sea,  when  a  man-of-war  is  in  sight,  to  lighten  the  ship,  and 
so  increase  its  speed,  and  prevent  capture.  And  even  when  the 
elements  are  not  unfavourable  to  the  slaver's  course,  and  there 


126  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

is  no  British  cruiser  to  intercept  her  progress^  "  death  thins  the 
cargoes  in  various  modes  :  suicide  destroys  many ;  and  many 
are  thrown  overboard  at  the  close  of  the  voyage ;  for^  as  a  duty 
of  ten  (or  seven)  dollars  is  set  by  the  Brazilian  Government 
upon  each  slave  upon  lauding,  such  as  seem  unlikely  to  survive, 
or  to  bring  a  price  sufficiently  high  to  cover  this  custom-house 
tax,  are  purposely  drowned  before  entering  port.  Those  only 
escape  these  wholesale  murders  who  Avill  probably  recover  health 
and  flesh  when  removed  to  the  fattening-pens  of  the  slave- 
farmer, — a  man  who  contracts  to  feed  up  the  skeletons  to  a 
marketable  appearance."  *  The  Paris  petition  of  February, 
1825,  states,  "  that  it  is  established,  by  authentic  documents, 
that  the  slave-captains  throw  into  the  sea,  every  year,  about 
three  thousand  Negroes,  men,  Avomen,  and  children ;  of  whom 
more  than  half  are  thus  sacrificed,  whilst  yet  alive,  either  to 
escape  from  the  visits  of  cruisers,  or  because,  worn  down  by 
their  sufl'erings,  they  could  not  be  sold  to  advantage."  t 

If  to  these  items  of  mortality  we  add  those  who  are  slaugh- 
tered when  a  mutiny  occurs  on  board,  and  the  numbers  thrown 
overboard  when  a  storm  arises,  to  prevent  a  worse  catastrophe ; 
and  the  great  number  of  deaths  which  take  place  after  capture, 
when  the  slaves  fall  into  British  hands,  on  their  way  to  the 
place  of  adjudication,  and  even  after  they  are  landed  at  the 
British  settlements ;  the  amount  will  probably  be  not  less  than 
370,000  of  those  who  actually  and  annually  perish  in  this  the 
worst  of  all  plagues. 

It  is  not  easy  to  arrive  at  a  correct  estimate  of  the  amount  of 
the  Slave  Trade,  as  carried  on  by  various  nations,  during  any 
given  year  or  number  of  years.  All  that  can  be  done  is  to  form 
a  calculation,  approaching  as  nearly  as  possible  to  the  actual 
quantity,  taking  our  data  from  well-authenticated  records  and 
unquestionable  facts.  This  task  we  have  endeavoured  to  per- 
form. What  an  accumulation  of  guilt,  then,  rests  upon  those 
nations  which  have  for  so  many  years  been  engaged  in  this 
atrocious  and  execrable  trade !  and  what  an  awful  amount  of 
misery  and  mortality  has  Africa  endured  since  her  sons  first 
began  to  be  kidnapped  from  her  fertile  shores  !  If  we  calculate 
the  annual  loss  to  Africa  at  500,000,  and  multiply  this  number 
by  the  ages  through  which  the  injury  has  been  protracted,  the 
amount  appals  and  rends  the  heart. 

"  From  age  to  age"  this  cruelty  "may  be  traced  upon  its  own 

*  Rankin's  "  Sierra-Leone,"  vol.  ii.  p.  72. 

t  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton's  "  Slave-Trade,  and  its  Remedy." 


THE    SLAVE-TRADE.  127 

sun-burnt  continent;"  for  "which  of  the  sands  of  her  deserts 
has  not  been  steeped  in  tears,  wrung  out  by  the  pang  of  separa- 
tion from  kindred  and  country?  What  wind  has  passed  over 
her  plains  without  catching  up  the  sighs  of  bleeding  or  broken 
hearts  ?  And  in  what  part  of  the  world  have  not  her  children 
been  wasted  by  labours,  and  degraded  by  oppressions?"*  It  is 
calculated  that  Napoleon  in  the  course  of  his  career  occasioned 
the  sacrifice  of  three  millions  of  the  human  race :  but  this  is 
a  mere  trifle  compared  with  the  awful  scourge  which  the  male- 
volent and  inveterate  Slave-Trade  has  inflicted,  and  is  at  this 
day  inflicting,  upon  unhappy  Africa;  for  from  the  preceding 
statements  it  appears  that  upwards  of  one  thousand  victims  are 
daily  required  to  feed  this  terrible  consumer  of  mankind.  This 
is  not,  therefore,  an  occasional  war  between  one  nation  and 
another  upon  some  great  national  principle  :  it  is  the  every-day 
business  and  profession  of  hundreds  of  armed  bandits,  who,  like 
the  dreaded  locusts,  drive  or  carry  off  every  thing  before  them. 
This  is  indeed  "  the  terror  by  night,"  and  "  the  arrow  that  flieth 
by  day."  It  is  emphatically  the  "  pestilence  that  walketh  in  dark- 
ness," and  "  the  destruction  that  wasteth  at  noon-day."  (Psalm 
xci.  5,  6.)  For,  in  the  language  of  Bryan  Edwards,  "  the  whole 
or  the  greater  part  of  that  immense  continent  is  a  field  of  war- 
fare and  desolation ;  a  wilderness,  in  which  the  inhabitants  are 
wolves  to  each  other."  But,  O  !  "  tell  it  not  in  Gath,  publish 
it  not  in  the  streets  of  Askelon,"  that  the  untutored  Africans 
are  urged  on  to  those  deeds  of  bloodshed  and  cruelty  by  the 
civilized  white  villains  of  other  countries  ! 

As  there  is  considerable  difficulty  in  ascertaining  the  exact 
number  of  slaves  forced  from  Africa  during  any  one  given  year, 
so  it  is  next  to  impossible  to  arrive  at  any  correct  conclusion-  as 
to  the  sum  total  of  Negroes  that  Africa  has  lost  since  the  com- 
mencement of  this  ungodly  traffic.  But  a  hundred  yean^  ago 
the  amount  was  supposed  to  be  100,000  annually ;  that  is,  this 
number  was  at  that  period  landed  in  slave-holding  states.  Con- 
sequently, so  far  back  as  that,  upwards  of  another  100,000  must 
have  been  sacrificed  in  the  seizure,  on  the  march,  during  their 
detention  on  the  coast,  and  on  board  those  floating  lazar-houses, 
the  slave-ships  :  and  up  to  the  close  of  the  last  century  it  has 
been  calculated  that  Africa  must  have  been  defrauded  of  a 
population  equal  in  numbers  to  that  of  the  British  islands,  or 
nearly  30,000,000  !  If  we  add  the  half  million  which  Africa  is 
now  annually  losing,  and   has   been  losing  yeariy  for  a  long 

*  Rev.  Richard  Watson's  Works,  vol.  ii.  p.  93. 


128  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

time  past,  the  amount  will  be  nearly  twice  the  population  of 
Great  Britain,  or  one-third  of  the  inhabitants  of  Africa  itself, 
and  not  less  than  one- fourteenth  part  of  the  population  of  the 
whole  globe  !  AYhat  mind  can  grasp  the  idea?  or  what  imagina- 
tion can  conceive  one-half  of  the  horrible  murders,  the  countless 
miseries,  the  heart-rending  atrocities,  and  the  wholesale  devasta- 
tions, which  have  been  committed  in  the  enslaving  of  such  a 
number  of  human  beings  ?  Surely  we  may  say,  in  the  language 
of  holy  writ,  "  This  is  a  people  robbed  and  spoiled ;  they  are  all 
of  them  snared  in  holes,  and  they  are  hid  in  prison-houses :  they 
are  for  a  prey,  and  none  delivereth  ;  for  a  spoil,  and  none  saith, 
Restore/'  (Isaiah  xlii.  22.) 

It  has  been  well  and  truly  said,  "  This  is  no  picture  of  infernal 
torments,  devised  by  a  wild  mythology ;  no  fabulous  tale, 
invented  to  warn  mankind  against  the  malignity  of  unbridled 
power;  no  antiquated  history  of  obsolete  and  now  impossible 
facts.  It  is  a  true  report,  a  faithful  diary,  of  actual  life.  Even 
now,  at  every  moment  of  that  happy  existence  Avith  which  nature 
and  Providence  have  blessed  this  happy  land,  all  the  fearful 
scenes  are  acting.  At  this  very  moment  the  savage  bandits  are 
raking  peaceful  villages  with  fire  and  sword,  and  seizing  or 
slaughtering  their  affrighted  prey.  At  this  moment  savage 
captors  are  driving  their  chained  gangs  to  the  coast.  Even  now 
the  slavers  are  packing  the  human  cargo  in  narroAver  space  than 
bales  of  goods  would  require  :  while  others  are  borne  across  the 
Atlantic,  others  kept  in  hulks  off  the  Brazilian  shore.  At  this 
and  every  hour  the  cane-fields  are  tilled  by  scourged  gangs, 
debarred  all  intercourse  with  women,  and  by  systematic  ill-usage 
consumed  in  the  shortest  time,  and  unceasingly  replaced  by 
fresh  victims.  And,  the  truth  cannot  be  disguised,  all  this 
follows,  '  as  the  night  the  day.'  "  * 

And  must  this  tale  of  horrors  be  continued?  When  will  the 
justice,  the  benevolence,  and  the  religion  of  Christendom  put  an 
end  to  this  infamous  traffic  ?  But  we  leave  the  subject  for  the 
present.  Some  further  observations  on  the  Slave-Trade  will  be 
found  in  subsequent  parts  of  this  work :  and  at  the  close  a  few- 
suggestions  will  be  offered  as  to  the  best  mode  of  destroying 
this  gigantic  evil. 

*  Lord  Denman's  "  Second  Letter  to  Lord  Brougham  on  the  final  Extinction 
of  the  Slave-Trade,"  1849,  p.  31. 


CHAPTER  VII. 

WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

The  Circumnavigation  of  Africa — Early  Discoveries  of  the  Western  Coast — Hanno 
and  Eudoxus — Strange  Report  of  the  former — Since  found  to  be  substantially 
correct — The  Decline  of  maritime  Discovery — Invention  of  the  Mariner's 
Compass — Discovery  of  the  Canary  Islands  by  the  Spaniards — The  Portu- 
guese lead  the  Way  in  maritime  Enterprise — Discovery  of  the  Madeira  Islands 
in  1418 — Cape  Bojador  passed  in  1433 — Prince  Henry's  Instructions  to  his 
Navigators — His  Wishes  gratified  by  Gonzales  in  1442 — Presentation  of  the 
Negroes  to  the  Pope — His  Bull  in  favour  of  the  Portuguese — The  Portuguese 
enter  the  Tropics — Cape-Verd  —  Senegal  and  Gambia  —  The  Gold-Coast — 
Commercial  Prospects — John  II.  sends  an  Expedition — A  Portuguese  Colony 
formed  on  the  Gold-Coast — John  assumes  the  Title  of  "  Lord  of  Guinea" — 
Emanuel  succeeds  John — The  renowned  Vasco  de  Gama — Portuguese  Forts 
and  Slave-Factories  established  on  different  Parts  of  the  Coast — Objects  of  the 
Portuguese  in  exploring  the  Coast — Gold  and  Slaves  the  principal  Attractions 
— Commencement  of  the  European  Slave-Trade — Mode  of  taking  Slaves — Gon- 
zales and  Nunez  Tristan  both  killed  in  kidna]ipiug  Slaves — Increase  of  the 
Portuguese  Slave-Trade — The  Spaniards  imbibe  a  Taste  for  Man-stealing — - 
Portuguese  engage  in  the  "  Carrying  Trade"— Catholic  Missionaries  sent  to  the 
Coast  in  1490  —  Well  received — Wholesale  Method  of  baptizing — Rapid 
Progress  of  the  Catholic  Religion — Its  early  Decline — Total  Extinction. 

Long  before  the  discovery  of  the  New  World  by  Columbus, 
or  the  rounding  of  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope  by  Vasco  de  Gama, 
other  voyages  were  undertaken  with  a  view  to  the  exploration  of 
certain  parts  of  the  unknown  coasts  of  Africa.  In  a  pi'eceding 
chapter  we  have  placed  upon  record  two  accounts  of  the  circum- 
navigation of  Africa,  at  a  very  early  period.  The  first  of  these 
voyages  Avas  undertaken  by  the  Phenicians  in  the  service  of 
Necho,  king  of  Egypt,  about  2,450  years  ago ;  and  the  second 
and  most  memorable  was  performed  along  the  Western  Coast  of 
Africa  by  I  Ian  no,  about  570  years  before  the  Christian  era. 
The  Carthaginians  fitted  out  this  expedition  v.itli  a  view  partly 
to  colonization,  and  partly  to  discovery.  The  armament  con- 
sisted of  sixty  large  vessels,  on  board  of  which  were  embarked 
persons  of  both  sexes,  to  the  number  of  thirty  thousand. 

The  narrative  handed  down  to  us  of  Hanno's  voyage  begins 
at  the  passage  of  the  Straits  of  Gibraltar,  or  the  Pillars  of 
Hercules.  After  two  days'  sail  thence,  they  founded,  in  the 
midst  of  an  extensive  plain,  the  city  of  Thymiaterium.  In  two 
days  more,  thej'  came  to  a  cape,  shaded  with  trees,  called  Solo- 
cis,  a  promontory  of  Libya,  on  which  they  erected  a  temple  to 

K 


130  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Neptune.  Tlic}^  sailed  round  a  bay,  thickly  bordered  with  plan- 
tations of  reeds,  where  numerous  elephants  and  other  wild 
animals  were  feeding.  Passing  along  for  many  days,  they  came 
to  a  gulf,  in  which  were  several  large  islands.  Here  a  remark- 
able phenomenon  arrested  their  attention.  During  the  day 
profound  silence  reigned,  and  nothing  appeared  but  a  vast  world 
of  wood.  But  when  night  arrived,  the  whole  shore  blazed  with 
fire,  and  echoed  with  tumultuous  shouts,  as  well  as  with  the 
sound  of  cymbals,  trumpets,  and  musical  instruments  of  every 
description.  The  Carthaginians,  appalled,  passed  hastily  along 
these  shores,  and  came  to  another  region,  which  struck  them 
with  no  less  surprise.  Here  the  land  appeared  all  on  fire; 
torrents  of  flame  rushed  into  the  sea ;  and  if  they  attempted  to 
land,  the  soil  was  too  hot  for  the  foot  to  tread  upon.  One 
object  particularly  struck  them,  which,  at  night,  appeared  a 
greater  fire  mingling  Avith  the  stars ;  but,  in  the  day-time, 
proved  to  be  a  mountain  of  prodigious  height,  to  which  they 
gave  the  appellation  of  "  the  chariot  of  the  gods." 

After  sailing  three  days,  they  lost  sight  of  these  fiery  torrents, 
and  came  to  another  bay,  containing  an  island,  which  presented 
a  new  phenomenon.  The  inhabitants  were  of  the  human  form ; 
but,  shagged  and  covered  with  hair,  they  suggested  the  idea  of 
those  grotesque  deities  by  which  superstition  supposed  the 
woods  to  be  peopled.  To  these  monsters  they  gave  the  name 
of  Gorilla.  The  males  evaded  all  pursuit :  they  climbed  pre- 
cipices, and  threw  stones  on  their  pursuers.  But  three  females 
were  caught,  and  their  skins  carried  to  Carthage.  Here  the 
narrative  winds  up  by  saying,  that  the  farther  progress  of  the 
expedition  was  arrested  by  the  want  of  provisions. 

Such  are  the  leading  features  of  this  celebrated  voyage,  than 
which  none  has  afi'orded,  in  modern  times,  more  ample  room  for 
the  speculation  of  the  learned.  Many  of  the  circumstances 
which  wore  at  first  a  marvellous  aspect,  have  been  found  to 
correspond  with  the  observations  of  modern  travellers.  The 
fires  and  nocturnal  symphonies  represent  the  habits  prevalent 
on  all  the  Negro  states, — repose  during  the  day;  music  and 
dancing  prolonged  through  the  night.  The  flames  which  seemed 
to  sweep  over  an  expanse  of  territory,  might  be  explained  by  the 
practice,  equally  general,  of  setting  fire  at  a  certain  season  of 
the  year  to  the  grass  and  shrubs ;  and  the  Gorilla  were  evi- 
dently the  remarkable  species  of  ape,  to  which  we  give  the 
name   of    ourang   outang.*      Extreme    difference  of    opinion, 

*  Murray's  "  Narrative  of  Discovery  and  Adventure  in  Africa,"  vol.  i.  pp. 
17—20. 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION.  131 

however,  prevails  as  to  tlie  extent  of  coast  actually  explored  by 
this  expedition :  M.  Gosselin  contending  that  Hanno's  voyage 
terminated  on  the  frontier  of  the  coast  of  Morocco,  a  little 
beyond  the  river  Nun,  in  latitude  29"  N.,  and  only  about  7° 
below  Gibraltar;  while  Heeren  is  of  opinion  that  the  expe- 
dition reached  to  the  mouth  of  the  Gambia,  in  latitude  13°  N. ; 
and  Major  Rennell  believes  that  Hanno  went  still  further  to 
the  south,  that  he  passed  Sierra-Leone,  and  that  the  island 
and  bay  of  the  Gorilla;  were  Sherbro  Island  and  Sound.  The 
first  theory  supposes  a  run  along  the  western  coast  of  above 
six  hundred  miles ;  the  second,  of  about  two  thousand  two  hun- 
dred ;  and  the  last,  of  nearly  three  thousand  miles,  from  the 
commencement  of  the  voyage. 

The  next  remarkable  voyage  along  the  Western  Coast  of 
Africa  of  which  we  have  any  account,  was  that  of  Eudoxus, 
about  440  years  subsequent  to  that  of  Hanno,  or  130  years 
before  the  birth  of  Christ.  We  have  already  mentioned  this 
spirited  and  enterprising  navigator;  and  though  there  appears 
to  be  some  doubt  as  to  whether  he  actually  rounded  the  Cape 
of  Storms,  yet  that  he  passed  the  Straits  with  the  prow  of  his 
vessel  turned  towards  India,  and  that  he  sailed  a  considerable 
distance  along  the  shores  of  Africa,  is  pretty  evident. 

Soon  after  this  period,  the  spirit  of  discovery  and  maritime 
enterprise  declined,  and  lay  dormant  for  many  centuries.  The 
first  fresh  impulse  which  it  received  was  about  the  year  a.d. 
1302,  when  the  invaluable  invention  of  the  mariner's  compass 
was  made  by  Flavio  Gioia,  a  citizen  of  Ormalfi,  in  the  kingdom 
of  Naples,  which  "  opened  to  man  the  dominion  of  the  sea,  and 
put  him  in  full  possession  of  the  earth."  But  "near  half  a 
century  elapsed  from  the  time  of  Gioia's  discovery,  before  navi- 
gators ventured  into  any  seas  which  they  had  not  been  accus- 
tomed to  frequent.''  Hence  Dr.  Robertson  remarks,  "  The  first 
appearance  of  a  bolder  spirit  may  be  dated  from  the  voyages  of 
the  Spaniards  to  the  Canary  or  Fortunate  Islands.  By  what 
accident  they  were  led  to  the  discovery  of  these  small  isles, 
which  lie  nearly  five  hundred  miles  from  the  Spanish  coast,  and 
above  one  hundred  and  fifty  miles  from  the  coast  of  Africa, 
contemporary  writers  have  not  explained.  But  about  the 
middle  of  the  fourteenth  century,  the  people  of  all  the  different 
kingdoms  into  which  Spain  was  then  divided,  were  accustomed 
to  make  piratical  excursions  thither,  in  order  to  plunder  the 
inhabitants,  or  to  carry  them  off  as  slaves."  It  does  not 
appear,  however,  that  this  event  had  any  important  influence 
on  the  progress  of  discovery,  though  we  find  that  "  Clement  Yl., 

K   2 


132  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

in  virtue  of  the  right  claimed  by  the  holy  see  to  dispose  of  all 
countries  possessed  by  infidels,  erected  these  isles  into  a  king- 
dom in  the  year  1344;"  and  it  was  long  held  as  "  a  fief  of  the 
crown  of  Castile." 

But,  soon  after  this,  the  spirit  of  enterprise,  which  had  been 
asleep  for  ages,  awoke,  and  burst  forth  with  fresh  and  almost 
unparalleled  energy.  "  The  glory  of  leading  the  way  in  the 
new  career  was  reserved  for  Portugal,  one  of  the  smallest  and 
least  powerful  of  the  European  kingdoms.  Various  circum- 
stances prompted  the  Portuguese  to  exert  their  activity  in  this 
new  direction,  and  enabled  them  to  accomplish  undertakings 
apparently  superior  to  the  natural  force  of  their  monarchy."  * 
These  undertakings  are  eloquently  illustrated  and  described  by 
the  great  historian.  Dr.  Robertson,  in  the  introduction  to  his 
"  History  of  America."  It  appears  that  one  of  the  first  attempts 
towards  obtaining  a  knowledge  of  Africa  was  made  by  the 
Portuguese  in  1412.  Notwithstanding  their  vicinity  to  that 
continent,  they  had  never  ventured  beyond  Cape  Nun,  which 
had  received  its  name  from  a  supposed  impossibility  of  passing 
it.  This  year,  however,  or  soon  after,  they  proceeded  one 
hundred  and  sixty  miles  beyond  it,  to  Cape  Bojador,  which, 
stretching  a  considerable  way  into  the  Atlantic  Ocean  with 
rocky  cliffs,  appeared  so  dreadful  to  the  navigators,  that  they 
returned  to  Lisbon  without  any  attempt  to  pass  it ;  ''  more 
satisfied,"  says  the  historian  of  America,  "  with  having  advanced 
so  far,  than  ashamed  of  having  ventured  no  farther."  In  a 
subsequent  attempt  to  double  this  formidable  Cape,  they  were 
driven  out  to  sea  by  a  sudden  squall,  which  was  followed  by  a 
violent  storm ;  and  when  they  all  expected  to  perish,  they  dis- 
covered Porto-Santo,  one  of  the  least  of  the  Madeira  Islands. 
This  was  in  1418  ;  and  in  the  following  year  they  discovered 
Madeira  itself.  Prince  Henry,  in  1420,  settled  a  colony  here ; 
and  not  only  furnished  it  with  plants  and  domestic  animals,  but 
procured  slips  of  the  vine  from  Cyprus,  and  plants  of  the  sugar- 
cane from  Sicily.  "  These  throve  so  prosperously,  that  the 
sugar  and  wine  of  Madeira  quickly  became  articles  of  some 
consequence  in  the  commerce  of  Portugal." 

But  the  information  obtained  respecting  the  Western  Coast 
of  Africa  was  still  very  limited.  Cape  Bojador  continued  to  be 
the  boundary  of  the  continental  discoveries  of  the  Portuguese, 
till  1433,  when  that  passage  was  effected  by  Gilianez,  which 
caused  a  surprise  and  admiration  almost  equal  to  what  were 

*  Dr.  Robetson's  "  History  of  America." 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION.  133 

afterwards  excited  by  the  discovery  of  America.  As  yet,  how- 
ever, nothing  had  been  brought  home  besides  plants ;  but  two 
years  afterwards  "  Gonzales  Baldeza  penetrated  about  two  de- 
grees farther,  and  collected  a  valuable  cargo  of  seal-skins,  with 
which  he  returned  to  Henry.  The  prince  had  always  urged 
his  navigators  to  bring  home  some  of  the  natives,  that  he  might 
have  them  baptized,  educated,  and  sent  back ;  so  that  the  Por- 
tuguese might  afterwards  be  able  to  open  a  commerce  with 
them  in  their  own  country.  In  1442,  twenty-four  years  after 
the  first  expedition  had  sailed  on  this  pursuit,  the  prince's 
wishes  were  gratified.  Gonzales,  returning  after  a  voyage  of 
two  years,  brought  with  him  ten  slaves  and  some  gold-dust. 
Henr}^  held  out  to  his  followers  the  gold,  as  the  fruit  to  be 
gathered  by  all  who  would  assist  in  these  discoveries  ;  and  he 
presented  the  Negroes  to  the  Pope,  and  entreated  his  holiness  to 
make  over  to  him  a  title  to  all  the  countries  he  should  discover, 
as  an  encouragement  to  those  who  should  persevere  in  the  enter- 
prise, for  the  propagation  of  the  Christian  faith.  Upon  this 
invitation.  Pope  Martin  V.  in  the  same  year  issued  a  Bull,  b}^ 
which  he  granted  to  the  Portuguese  nation  an  exclusive  right 
to  the  possession  and  dominion  of  ail  the  countries  which  they 
might  discover  from  Cape  Bojador  to  the  continent  of  India."* 
In  1443  Nunez  Tristan  passed  Cape  Blanco,  and  discovered 
the  Island  of  Arguim.  They  had  now  penetrated  within  the 
Tropics  ;  and  a  rapid  progress  having  been  made  along  the  shores 
of  the  Sahara,  the  Portuguese  navigators  were  not  long  in 
reaching  the  fertile  regions  watered  by  the  Senegal  and  the 
Gambia.  In  1446  Diniz  Fernandez  discovered  Cape  Verd,  and 
in  the  following  year  Lancelot  entered  the  Senegal.  The 
Cape  de  Verd  Islands  and  the  Azores  were  successively  dis- 
covered about  the  year  1449;  and  in  1471  the  voyagers  pro- 
ceeded as  far  south  as  the  Gold-Coast,  and  were  surprised  to 
find  that  the  Torrid  Zone,  contrary  to  the  opinion  of  the 
ancients,  who  imagined  it  to  be  burnt  up  with  heat,  was  not 
only  habitable,  but  fertile  and  prosperous.  "  While  the  Portu- 
guese proceeded  along  the  coast  of  Africa,  from  Cape  Nun  to 
the  river  Senegal,  they  found  all  that  extensive  tract  to  be 
sandy,  barren,  and  thinly  inhabited  by  a  wretched  people,  pro- 
fessing the  Mahoraedan  religion,  and  subject  to  the  vast  empire 
of  Morocco.  But  to  the  south  of  that  river,  the  power  aud  reli- 
gion of  the  Mahomedans  were  unknown.  The  country  was 
divided  into  small  independent   principalities ;    the  population 

*  Banjjinei.'s  "Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves." 


134  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFlllCA, 

was  considerable;  the  soil  fertile ;  and  the  Portuguese  soon  dis- 
covered that  it  produced  ivory,  rich  gums,  gold,  and  other  valu- 
able commodities.  By  the  acquisition  of  these,  commerce 
was  enlarged,  and  became  more  adventurous.  Men,  animated 
and  rendered  active  by  the  certain  prospect  of  gain,  pursued 
discovery  with  greater  eagerness  than  when  they  were  excited 
only  by  curiosity  and  hope.^^ 

In  1484  a  powerful  fleet  was  fitted  out  by  John  II.,  which, 
after  discovering  the  kingdoms  of  Benin  and  Congo,  advanced 
about  fifteen  hundred  miles  beyond  the  Line ;  and  the  Portu- 
guese, for  the  first  time,  "  beheld  a  new  heaven,  and  observed 
the  stars  of  another  hemisphere.  John  was  not  only  solicitous 
to  discover,  but  attentive  to  secure  the  possession  of,  those  coun- 
tries. He  built  forts  on  the  coast  of  Guinea ;  he  sent  out 
colonies  to  settle  there ;  he  established  a  commercial  intercourse 
with  the  more  powerful  kingdoms;  he  endeavoured  to  render 
such  as  were  feeble  or  divided  tributary  to  the  crown  of  Portu- 
gal. Some  of  the  petty  princes  voluntarily  acknowledged  them- 
selves his  vassals :  others  were  compelled  to  do  so  by  force  of 
arms.  A  regular  and  well-digested  system  was  formed  with 
respect  to  this  new  object  of  policy,  and,  by  firmly  adhering  to 
it,  the  Portuguese  power  and  commerce  in  Africa  were  estab- 
lished upon  a  solid  foundation."  * 

About  this  time,  (1485,)  the  king  of  Portugal,  upon  the 
strength  of  these  discoveries,  formally  assumed  the  title  of  "  Lord 
of  Guinea ;"  since  borne  by  his  descendants.  King  John  conti- 
nued his  enterprises  up  to  1497,  when  he  died,  and  was  suc- 
ceeded by  Emanuel,  who  inherited  John's  passionate  desire  for 
discovery,  and  trade  in  the  East :  and  in  that  year  the  whole 
line  of  coast  was  explored,  by  the  renounced  Vasco  de  Gama, 
who  passed  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope,  and  the  southern  extremity 
of  the  Afi'ican  continent,  visited  Cape  Natal,  Mozambique,  and 
Melinda,  whence  he  stretched  across  to  India.  The  Portuguese 
had  now  completed  the  circumnavigation  of  Africa ;  and  at  the 
close  of  the  century,  had  built  several  other  forts  besides  that 
at  Elmina,  and  established  slave- factories  at  Arguim,  and  on 
the  banks  of  the  rivers  Senegal,  Nunez,  Benin,  and  Congo; 
and  carried  on  a  considerable  commercial  trade  in  the  interior, 
even  up  to  Timbuctoo. 

The  objects  of  the  Portuguese  in  these  maritime  enterprises 
appear  to  have  been  threefold, — legitimate  commerce, — trade 
in  slaves, — and  the  propagation  of  the  Roman  Catholic  religion. 


*  Dr.  Robertson's  "  History  of  Amciica." 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTIOX.  135 

We  have  already  noticed  that  Prince  Henry  had  urged  upon  his 
navigators  to  bring  home  some  of  the  natives,  in  order  that  he 
might  have  them  baptized  and  educated,  and  then  sent  back  to 
the  Portuguese  settlements.  And  in  1481,  when  John  II.  suc- 
ceeded to  the  throne,  finding  that  his  subjects,  in  some  cases, 
discontinued  the  Slave-Trade,  and,  in  others,  disposed  of  their 
Negroes  in  Africa  for  gold,  he  encouraged  them  by  all  means  in 
his  power  to  continue  to  trade  in  slaves,  and  to  import  them 
into  Europe,  "  in  order,"  said  he,  "  that  the  slaves  may  be 
taught  the  worship  of  the  true  God  before  they  die."  *  But 
the  laudable  purpose  of  Henry  and  of  John  II.  were  soon  mixed 
up  with  baser  objects ;  for,  on  arriving  at  the  Gold-Coast,  the 
Portuguese  were  dazzled  by  the  importance  and  splendour  of 
the  commodity,  the  commerce  of  which  gave  the  name  to  that 
region  which  it  still  retains.  The  fort  which  they  built  on  that 
part  of  the  coast  was  called  Elmina,  (or  "  the  mine,")  and 
became  the  centre  and  capital  of  their  possessions  in  this  conti- 
nent. So  far  back  as  1443,  private  merchants  formed  them- 
selves into  an  Association  for  the  avowed  purpose  of  carrying  on 
jointly  the  gold-and  Slave-Trade  :  and  in  the  same  year  Nunez 
Ti'istan,  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Arguim,  in  latitude  20°  30' 
North,  met  with  some  native  boats,  captured  them,  and  brought 
back  their  crews,  amounting  to  fourteen  persons,  and  made 
slaves  of  them.  From  this  period  may  be  dated  the  beginning 
of  the  African  Slave-Trade  in  Europe ;  and  it  is  melancholy  to 
reflect  upon  the  rapidity  with  which  it  increased.  In  1444, 
almost  as  soon  as  the  Association  was  formed,  its  leaders  set  sail 
and  captured  two  hundred  slaves.  Part  of  these  were  liberated 
again  on  ransom  in  Africa,  and  part  were  brought  to  Portugal, 
and  there  sold.f  Gold  and  slaves,  but  chiefly  the  latter,  were 
still  the  two  main  objects  for  which  the  Portuguese  traded  with 
Africa;  and  the  articles  which  they  carried  there  for  barter, 
were  cloths  and  stufl's  of  Portuguese  manufacture. 

In  1454  Cadamosto  undertook  a  voyage  to  the  Gambia,  at 
the  request  of  Prince  Henry,  who  had  heard  of  the  wealth  on 
the  banks  of  that  noble  river.  Cadamosto  learned  that  the  Por- 
tuguese had  been  in  the  habit  of  landing  by  night,  taking  the 
villages  by  surprise,  attacking  them,  and  carrying  ofl"  the  inha- 
bitants ;  and  thus,  sailing  along  the  coast,  had  committed 
ravages,  and  caused  horrors,  wherever  they  went.  Such  were 
the  deeds  which  had  already  become  common  with  the  slave- 

*  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  p.  22.  From  Kerr's 
"  Voyages  and  Travels."  f  Ibid.  p.  16. 


136  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

traders  of  Portugal.  But  that  the  native  Africans  were  hostile 
to  those  plundering  expeditions  of  the  Portuguese,  and  resisted 
them  with  all  their  might,  we  have  proof  at  this  early  period : 
for  in  1445,  in  another  voyage  made  by  Gonzales,  when  he 
attacked  the  unoffending  natives  with  the  view  of  obtaining 
more  slaves,  he  was  himself  killed  in  the  affray  which  ensued. 
Thus  terminated  the  career  of  the  man  who  a  year  or  two  pre- 
viously was  the  first  Avho  had  forced  the  Africans  from  their 
native  land,  and  had  conveyed  them  to  Europe.  In  the  follow- 
ing year,  Nunez  Tristan,  who  had  embarked  in  the  same  unhal- 
lowed enterprise,  met  with  a  similar  fate.  In  ascending  the 
Rio  Nunez,  such  was  the  eagerness  of  the  Portuguese  to  obtain 
slaves,  that  they  again  attacked  the  natives ;  and  in  the  scuffle 
Nunez  Tristan  lost  his  life,  leaving  his  name  to  the  river  on 
which  he  died.^= 

But  this  nefarious  traffic,  having  once  begun,  continued 
rapidly  to  increase ;  and  as  early  as  1460,  the  Portuguese  estab- 
lishment and  Slave-Factory  on  the  island  of  Arguim  were  in  full 
operation  ;  the  Portuguese  having  enticed  the  Arabs  to  bring 
down 'from  the  interior  Negroes  and  gold,  in  exchange  for  Por- 
tuguese goods.  It  appears  from  Mr.  Bandinel,  who  quotes 
from  Cadamosto,  that  "from  seven  hundred  to  eight  hundred 
head  of  slaves  "  were  yearly  imported  fi-om  Africa  into  Portugal 
about  this  period. 

The  Spaniards,  also,  had  now  imbibed  a  taste  for  man-steal- 
ing ;  though  they  indulged  in  it  only  to  a  very  limited  extent, 
until  the  discovery  of  the  New  World,  at  the  close  of  the  cen- 
tury. Then  it  was  that  the  wholesale  trade  commenced  :  for  it 
is  well  known  that  Negro  Slavery  in  the  West  Indies,  both  in  its 
cause  and  guilty  agency,  stands  in  close  alliance  with  the  horrid 
extermination  of  the  poor  American  Indians ;  both  being  deeds, 
the  infamy  of  which  belongs  principally,  if  not  solely,  to  the 
Spaniards.  In  the  mean  time,  the  Portuguese  traffic  in  slaves 
continued  to  increase;  and  after  supplying  Portugal  itself 
with  as  many  slaves  as  that  country  would  take,  the  traders 
commenced  the  practice  of  transporting  their  victims  from 
Africa  as  slaves  to  other  countries;  and  this  was  called  "the 
Carrying  Trade."  f 

But  thoiigh  the  trade  in  gold  and  slaves  was  the  principal 
object  which  the  Portuguese  had  in  view  in  exploring  the 
Western  Coast  of  Africa,  they  did  not  omit  to  introduce  and 
inculcate  the  principles  of  their  religion.     This,  indeed,  was  a 

*  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  p.  17.  f  Ibid.  ji.  24. 


GENERAL   DESCRIPTION.  137 

part  of  the  Portuguese  policy,  whenever  they  eifected  the  con- 
quest of  any  country ;  as  it  was  also  the  practice  of  the  Spaniards 
on  taking  possession  of  Hispaniola,  and  other  of  the  West- 
Indian  islands.  Hence,  on  the  return  of  Diego  Camru  from 
Portugal  about  the  year  1486,  with  some  Congo  princes,  whom 
he  had  taken  with  him  to  Lisbon  about  fifteen  months  pre- 
viously, he  was  received  with  great  kindness  by  the  Congo  king, 
who  promised  to  embrace  Christianity,  and  sent  several  of  his 
nobles  back  with  Diego  to  Europe  to  be  instructed  in  its  princi- 
ples. They  remained  two  years,  and  were  treated  with  great 
respect;  and  when  they  were  considered  ripe  for  baptism,  John 
II.  stood  godfather  to  the  principal  envoy,  and  his  cliief  cour- 
tiers to  the  others. 

In  1490  the  Congo  nobles  were  conveyed  back  to  their  native 
country  under  charge  of  an  ambassador,  and  a  body  of  mis- 
sionaries. The  Portuguese,  on  their  arrival,  were  received  by 
the  king  in  full  pomp.  The  native  troops  approached  in  three 
lines,  making  so  prodigious  a  noise  with  horns,  kettledrums, 
and  other  instruments,  and  raising  shouts  so  tremendous,  as  to 
surpass  all  that  the  Europeans  had  ever  witnessed  in  Cathohc 
processions  and  invocation  to  the  saints.  The  king  hmiself  Avas 
seated  in  the  midst  of  a  large  park,  upon  an  ivory  chair  raised 
on  a  platform.  He  gave  full  permission  to  erect  a  church ;  he 
and  all  his  nobles  were  baptized ;  and  free  scope  was  allowed  to 
the  exertions  of  the  Catholic  missionaries ;  so  that  a  hundred 
thousand  of  the  subjects  of  Congo  were  baptized  in  one  day, 
and  called  Christians,  but  without  any  idea  of  the  duties  and 
obligations  which  that  sacred  name  imposes.  The  wholesale  man- 
ner in  which  the  Spanish  Catholic  friars  performed  the  rite  of 
baptism  upon  the  aborigines  of  the  New  World,  may  be  infer- 
red from  the  following  quotation  from  Heylin,  who,  after  men- 
tioning the  case  of  a  person  of  note  wlio  resolutely  refused  to  be 
baptized,  says,  '^  The  rest  were  driven  into  the  font,  like  so 
many  horses  to  the  watering-place,  and  received  into  the  church 
of  Christ  without  any  instruction  :  insomuch  that  one  old  friar 
(as  himself  confessed  to  Charles  V.)  had  christened  700,000  of 
them ;  and  another  of  that  rank,  300,000 ;  never  acquainting 
them  with  any  of  the  articles  of  the  Christian  faith,  or  points  of 
religious  conversation.^^* 

Nothing  could  be  more  auspicious  than  the  first  establish- 
ment of  the  Roman  Catholic  faith  in  Congo.  But  when,  after 
these  ceremonial  preliminaries,  the   missionaries  proceeded  to 

*  Heylin's  "  Cosinographie,"  p.  1017. 


138 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


enforce  upon  their  sable  disciples  the  necessity  of  some  moral 
restrictions  in  the  matter  of  polj'gamy,  the  aged  monarch  consi- 
dered this  too  great  a  privation  to  be  endured ;  and  he^  with  all 
his  nobles,  plunged  again  into  the  abyss  of  Pagan  superstition. 
His  eldest  son,  however,  Alphonso,  the  youthful  heir-apparent, 
saw  nothing  so  dreadful  in  the  sacrifice ;  and  he  alone  remained 
firm.  The  old  king  dying  soon  after,  this  zealous  convert 
became  entitled  to  reign ;  and  though  he  met  with  considerable 
opposition  from  his  brother,  Panso  Aquitimo,  the  nobles,  and 
almost  the  whole  nation,  who  raised  the  standard  of  revolt  in 
support  of  polygamy  and  Paganism,  yet,  being  firmly  seated  on 
his  throne,  he  continued  a  steadfast  adherent  to  the  Portuguese, 
and  a  great  friend  to  the  missionaries.  Having  thus  acquired  a 
settlement  in  Congo,  and  being  re-inforced  by  successive  bodies 
of  their  brethren,  who  were  sent  out  by  the  court  of  Rome,  the 
missionaries  spread  the  Catholic  faith  over  the  neighbouring 
countries,  and  penetrated  into  the  interior,  as  yet  unexplored  by 
Europeans,  also  along  the  coast,  and  into  the  island  of  Fernando 
Po,  where  the  work  of  conversion  went  forward,  and  a  church 
was  built.  In  fact,  almost  every  where  their  career  was  similar; 
the  people  gave  them  the  most  cordial  reception,  flocked  in 
crowds  to  witness,  and  to  share  in,  the  pomp  of  their  cei'emo- 
nies,  accepted  with  thankfulness  their  sacred  gifts,  and  received 
by  thousands  the  rite  of  baptism.  They  were  not,  however,  on 
this  account,  prepared  to  renounce  their  ancient  habits  and 
superstitions  :  it  was  a  mere  nominal  Christianity  which  existed 
from  first  to  last.  We  do  not  possess  any  record  of  the  exact 
period  when  the  Portuguese  missionaries  were  expelled,  or 
abandoned  their  work  at  Congo ;  but  we  know  that  from  the  year 
1490  down  to  168.2,  there  continued  to  be  sent  out  friars, 
monks,  priests,  bishops,  and  fathers  :  *  so  that  in  Congo,  and  the 
districts  soutli  of  that  kingdom,  for  more  than  two  centuries, 
at  least  the  profession  of  Christianity  was  retained,  though  in 
a  form  which  was  very  little  better  than  Paganism  itself :  for 
many  years  past,  however,  not  the  least  vestige  of  this  "holy 
catholic  faith"  has  been  found  on  the  banks  of  the  Zaire,  or  in 
other  parts  of  the  coast  of  Guinea. 

*  Murray's  "  Narrative  of  Discovery  and  Adventure  in  Africa,"  vol.  i.  i)p.  68, 
116.  See  also  Wadstrom's  "  Essay  on  the  Colonization  of  Western  Africa,"  p.  125. 


CHAPTER  VIII. 

WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

The  English  embark  in  the  African  Trade — John  II.  of  Portugal  remonstrates  against 
tliis  to  Eflward  IV.,  King  of  England — His  Wishes  for  some  time  complied 
with — Englisli  Traders  visit  the  Coast— Success  of  Lok's  Voyage  in  1554 — 
The  French  embark  in  the  Trade — The  English,  though  much  annoyed  by  the 
Portuguese,  still  persevere — Captain  Hawkins  and  the  Slave-Trade — The  Eng- 
hsh,  French,  and  Dutch  engage  in  lawful  Commerce — Queen  Elizabeth  grants 
a  Patent  to  some  Exeter  Merchants  to  carry  on  the  Trade  of  the  Senegal  and 
the  Gambia — French  Vessels  touch  at  both  these  Rivers — The  Dutch  actively 
engaged  in  the  African  Trade — James  I.  grants  a  Charter  to  some  Merchants 
in  London,  for  the  Purpose  of  "  Adventuring  in  the  Golden  Trade  " — George 
Thompson  reaches  Tenda  in  the  Upper  Gambia — Jobson  sent  by  the  Company 
in  the  same  Direction — The  French  found  an  Establishment  at  the  Senegal — 
The  English,  French,  Dutch,  Portuguese,  and  Spaniards,  all  engaged  in  the 
Slave-Trade — The  Company  of  Royal  Adventurers  of  England  trading  to 
Africa  founded — Opposition  to  the  Trade  from  the  Dutch — War  with  Hol- 
land-— New  Company  incorporated  under  the  Name  of  "  The  Royal  African 
Company  of  England  " — The  British  Trade  in  Africa  placed  upon  a  better 
Basis  —  Several  Forts  built  —  The  African  Trade  mixed  up  with  the  West 
Indies — The  French  sell  their  Establishment  at  Senegal  to  the  French  West- 
India  Company,  with  an  exclusive  Right  to  trade  from  Cape  Blanco  to  the 
Cape  of  Good  Hope — The  Spanish  Papal  Bull — The  French  and  English  com- 
mit the  same  Blunder — The  Slave-Trade — The  Spirit  of  African  Discovery 
revived  in  1720 — Stibbs  sails  up  the  Gambia,  and  passes  the  Falls  of  Barra- 
conda — Brue  ascends  the  Senegal  as  far  as  Gallam — Conflicting  Accounts  of 
the  Niger — The  English  Company  contracts  with  Spain  to  su])i)ly  her  Colonies 
with  Slaves — This  proved  to  be  a  losing  Concern — The  Company  cede  to  the 
Crown  all  their  Possessions- — The  European  Forts  and  Settlements  on  the 
Western  Coast  of  Africa — A  new  Era  in  the  Annals  of  Africa — Formation  of 
"The  Afiican  Association" — Modern  Travellers — The  Niger — Tribute  to 
Mungo  Park. 

Although  the  Portuguese  bore  away  the  pahn  of  maritime 
enterprise  in  Africa  from  all  other  nations,  there  were  not  want- 
ing some  who  followed  close  in  their  wake, — the  adventurers  of 
France  and  England  especially.  But  the  latter,  though  early 
thirsting  for  enterprise  in  Africa,  were  diverted  for  a  length  of 
time  from  even  sending  a  single  ship  there,  by  the  monstrous 
Bull  granted  in  I^IS  by  the  Pope  to  the  Portuguese.  For  no 
sooner  had  the  Portuguese  monarch  assumed  the  title  of  "  Lord 
of  Guinea,"  than  he  claimed  a  right  of  prohibiting  the  other 
European  powers  from  landing,  or  engaging  in  traffic,  on  any 
pai't  of  the  African  continent.     And  as  this  exorbitant  preten- 


140 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA, 


sioii  was  sanctioned  b}^  the  authority  of  the  court  of  Rome,  he 
hesitated  not  to  maintain  it  by  force  of  arms ;  and  for  some 
time  it  appears  to  have  been  tacitly  recognised. 

In  1481,  a  movement  was  made  in  England  for  the  purpose 
of  obtaining  a  share  in  the  African  trade.  John  Tintam  and 
William  Fabian  are  stated  to  have  been  employed  in  equipping 
a  fleet  for  the  coast  of  Guinea,  at  the  command  of  the  duke  of 
Medina  Sidonia.  Alarmed  at  this  intelligence,  the  king  of 
Portugal,  John  II.,  immediately  despatched  an  envoy  to 
Edward  IV.,  to  represent  to  the  English  court  his  sovereign 
claims  as  lord  of  Guinea;  and  to  urge  the  request  that, 
throughout  the  English  dominions,  no  man  should  be  allowed 
"to  arm  or  set  forth  ships  to  Guinea ;^^  and  that  His  Majesty 
would  "dissolve  a  certain  fleet ^'  equipped  for  that  purpose. 
The  demand  was  complied  with;  and  down  to  the  close  of  the 
sixteenth  century,  the  merchants  of  London  imported  from 
Lisbon  the  rich  productions  of  the  East.* 

But  the  shrewd,  business-like,  spirited,  and  enterprising  men 
of  our  own  countiy  were  not  for  ever  to  be  excluded  from  "a 
share  in  the  African  trade  ;^^  nor  did  they  wait  to  the  close  of 
the  sixteenth  century,  before  they  embarked  in  what  was  con- 
ceived to  be  the  legitimate  right  of  all  honest  and  honourable 
traders.  So  early  as  1551  and  1553,  a  Captain  Windham  had 
made  two  successful  voyages  to  the  coast  of  Barbary ;  and  in 
relation  to  the  latter  he  observes,  "  Here,  by  the  way,  it  is  to  be 
observed,  that  the  Portugals  were  much  off'ended  with  this  our 
new  trade  into  Barbary  :  and,  both  in  our  voyage  the  year 
before,  and  also  in  this,  gave  out  in  England,  through  their 
merchants,  that  if  they  took  us  in  these  parts,  the}^  would  use 
us  as  their  mortal  enemies.'^  But,  nothing  daunted  by  this 
threat,  and  in  defiance  of  the  extravagant  claims  of  the  Portu- 
guese monarch,  in  the  following  year  Windham  undertook  a 
third  voyage,  in  which  he  reached  Guinea.  Slaves,  however, 
were  not  his  object.  He  proceeded  first  to  Rio  Sestos,  where 
they  might  with  great  advantage  have  loaded  the  ship  with  pep- 
per. "  But  setting  lightly  by  that  commodity  in  comparison  of 
the  pure  gold  they  thirsted  for,  he  coursed  on  to  the  Golden 
Coast,  obtained  one  hundred  and  fifty  pounds'  weiglit  of  the 
gold  of  the  country,  and  returned. ^^  In  1554,  John  Lok  made 
a  voyage  to  Guinea.  He  also  proceeded  to  liio  Sestos,  and 
thence    to  the  Gold-Coa-t,  and    brought   home   four   hundred 


*  Conder's  "Modern  Traveller,"  vol.  xx.  p.  25.     See  also  note  in  Bandinel's 
"  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  p.  32. 


GENERAL    PKSCinpTlON.  14l 

pounds'  weight  of  gold,  thirty-six  butts  of  Guiiie;i  pepper,  and 
two  hundred  and  fifty  elephants'  teeth.  The  natives  are 
described  by  him  as  being  "  very  wary  in  bargaining,  but  yet 
honest."  * 

Several  other  voyages,  of  both  Englishmen  and  Frenchmen, 
are  mentioned  by  Hakluyt  as  having  been  undertaken  about 
this  time  to  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa,  for  the  sole  purpose  of 
legitimate  trade  in  the  rich  productions  of  that  country.  In 
1555  and  1556,  William  Towerson  made  two  voyages  to  Guinea. 
In  the  first  of  these,  while  engaged  in  trade  with  the  natives 
near  Elmina,  he  was  attacked  by  the  Portuguese :  he  escaped, 
however,  to  his  boats,  and,  passing  farther,  completed  his  cargo 
of  gold-dust  and  elephants'  teeth  ;  though,  he  observes,  "  the 
Portuguese  brigandines  followed  us  from  place  to  place,  to  give 
warning  to  the  people  of  the  country  that  they  should  not  deal 
with  us."  In  the  latter  voyage,  Towerson  met  with  five  French 
vessels  trading  on  the  African  coast,  with  whom  he  joined  com- 
pany, for  their  mutual  protection  against  the  attacks  of  the  Por- 
tuguese. They  soon  after  met  with  a  Portuguese  squadron, 
which  attacked  them.  The  French,  however,  did  not  assist 
Towerson  as  he  had  expected,  and  they  therefore  parted  com- 
pany. Soon  after,  Towerson  met  with  another  French  vessel, 
which,  seeing  his  shattered  condition,  attacked  him.  But  he 
fought  her  ofi*,  and  returned  in  safety ;  though  it  appears  that, 
owing  to  the  above  circumstances,  this  voyage  was  not  so 
successful  in  the  acquisition  of  gold  as  he  had  expected. t 

John  Bull,  having  once  embarked  in  a  trade  so  lucrative  as  to 
be  able,  as  v.'e  have  seen  in  the  case  of  Lok's  one  voyage,  to 
bring  home  from  the  Gold-Coast  several  hundred  weight  of  that 
precious  metal,  amounting  to  upwards  of  =£20,000  in  value, 
besides  the  thirty-six  butts  of  Guinea  pepper  and  a  considerable 
quantity  of  ivory, — was  not  to  be  beaten  ofi^  by  the  menacing 
attitude  of  the  Portuguese  on  the  Coast,  or  of  their  squadron  at 
sea.  Much  less  was  he  to  be  frightened  into  an  abandonment 
of  the  traffic  by  the  great  blundering  Bull  granted  by  the  Pope 
to  Henry  of  Portugal  in  1442.  British  navigators,  therefore, 
continued  to  visit  the  Coast  for  the  purpose  of  commerce,  having 
as  yet  abstained  from  mixing  themselves  up  in  any  way  with  the 
Slave-Trade. f     At  length,  however,  in  1562,  the  importation  of 

*  Bandinel's  "Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  pp.  33,  34.     From  Hakluyt. 

t  Idem,  p.  35. 

%  The  reader  may  form  some  idea  of  the  strong  temptation  to  embark  in  the 
African  Trade  from  an  extract  of  a  letter  from  a  merchant  at  Morocco,  to  his  friend 
in  London,  in  1594.     It  is  as  follows  :  "  That  you  may  not  think  me  to  slumber  in 


142  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

slaves  from  Africa  was  first  practised  by  our  own  countrymen ; 
and  the  name  which  is  consigned  to  everlasting  disgrace  for 
commencing  this  nefarious  traffic  on  the  part  of  the  English,  is 
that  of  Captain  Hawkins.  But  the  particulars  of  this  expedition 
we  have  given  in  a  preceding  chapter :  we  will,  therefore,  here 
only  call  attention  to  this  remarkable  fact, — that  the  two 
Europeans  who  first  embarked  in  this  unlawful,  unprincipled, 
and  abominable  traffic,  namely,  Gonzales  of  Portugal  and  Cap- 
tain Hawkins  of  England,  both  lost  their  lives,  almost  at  the 
very  commencement  of  this  barbarous  Trade.  Whether  the 
fate  of  Hawkins  had  an  influence  in  deterring  our  countrymen 
from  this  ungodly  enterprise,  or  whether  they  were  held  back 
by  a  higher  principle  of  justice  and  humanity,  I  know  not ;  but 
thus  much  is  certain,  that  the  English  did  not  engage  in  the 
Slave-Trade  for  many  years  after  this,  though  they  frequently 
visited  the  Coast  of  Africa. 

"  In  1580,  Henry  of  Portugal  died  without  heirs ;  and  on  his 
death  Spain  took  possession  of  Portugal,  and  of  its  various 
dependencies  in  Africa,  Asia,  and  America.^'  A  new  turn  was, 
therefore,  now  given  to  the  African  trade.  "  Philip  II.,  who 
possessed  the  throne  of  Spain,  was  fully  occupied  in  Europe ; 
and  what  attention  he  could  give  to  colonial  matters,  was 
devoted  to  the  Spanish  possessions  in  America.  Africa  was, 
therefore,  neglected ;  and  the  English,  French,  Dutch,  and  even 
Courlanders,  rushed  in,  and  within  a  few  years  possessed  them- 
selves, with  comparative  ease,  of  that  trade  which  Portugal  had 
laboured  so  hard  and  spent  so  many  years  in  acquiring."  * 

It  was  about  this  period  that  the  English  Government  mani- 
fested an  interest  in  the  trade  to  Africa;  and  the  formation  of 
establishments  on  the  banks  of  its  central  and  principal  rivers 
was  commenced.  In  1588,  Queen  Ehzabeth  granted  a  patent 
to  certain  rich  merchants  of  Exeter,  to  carry  on  the  trade  of  the 
Senegal  and  the  Gambia.  The  Portuguese  appear  to  have  been 
by  this  time  entirely  driven  from  the  Senegal,  since  the  English 
navigators_,  in  1591,  heard  of  only  one  individual  of  that  nation 
residing  on  its  banks.  But  on  the  Gambia  they  were  estab- 
lished in  great  numbers  ;  and  they  appeared  to  view  the  arrival 
of  the  English  with  great  jealousy.     Some  French  vessels  from 

this  action,  wherein  you  would  be  truly  and  perfectly  resolved,  you  shall  under- 
stand, that,  not  ten  days  past,  here  came  a  Cahaia  of  the  Andoluzes  home  fi-om 
Gago,  and  another  principal  Moor,  whom  the  king  sent  tliither  at  first  with  Alcaide 
Ilamode ;  and  they  hrought  with  them  thirty  mules  laden  with  gold." — Hakluyt. 
*  Bandinel's  "Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  pp.  3",  38.  From  Barbot, 
Koch,  and  Hakluyt. 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION.  143 

Dieppe,  about  this  time,  touched  partly  at  the  Senegal,  and 
partly  at  the  Gambia.* 

Shortly  after  this,  the  Dutch  were  actively  engaged  in  the 
African  trade.  In  1617,  they  purchased  the  Island  of  Goree; 
and,  following  up  the  traces  of  the  Portuguese,  soon  supplanted 
them,  taking  possession  of  all  their  factories  and  forts,  in  addi- 
tion to  which  they  constructed  some  new  ones.  Their  capital, 
Elmina,  itself  soon  fell  into  the  hands  of  these  bold  and  success- 
ful rivals,  who  had  now  risen  to  the  first  rank  as  a  naval  people. 
But  the  Dutch  did  not  remain  long  undisputed  masters  of  the 
seas.  The  glorious  and  splendid  results  which  had  arisen  from 
the  discovery  of  the  East  and  AVest  Indies,  caused  the  ocean  to 
be  generally  viewed  as  the  grand  theatre  where  wealth  and  glory 
were  to  be  gained.  The  French  and  English  nations,  whose 
turn  it  was  to  take  the  lead  in  European  affairs,  pressed  eagerly 
forward  in  this  career,  endeavouring  to  surpass  at  once  their 
predecessors  and  each  other. 

In  1618,  James  I.  granted  a  charter  to  a  Company  of  mer- 
chants in  London,  for  the  purpose  of  "  adventuring  in  the 
Golden  Trade."  George  Thompson,  a  Barbary  merchant,  to 
whom  was  intrusted  this  adventure,  ascended  the  Gambia  as  far 
as  Tenda, — a  point  much  beyond  that  which  any  European  had 
before  reached.  Forts,  as  well  as  factories,  were  erected  at  several 
places  on  the  Gambia.  Flattering  reports  had  reached  Europe 
of  the  magnitude  of  the  gold-trade  carried  on  at  Timbuctoo, 
and  along  the  Niger.  According  to  all  the  geographical  sys- 
tems of  that  age,  the  great  river  Niger  was  understood  to  empty 
itself  into  the  Atlantic  either  by  the  Senegal  or  the  Gambia ; 
and  therefore,  by  ascending  either  of  these  rivers,  it  seemed 
possible  to  reach  Timbuctoo,  and  thus  to  arrive,  at  length,  at 
the  great  fountain  of  wealth, — the  gold  country.  Two  years 
after,  Richard  Jobson  was  sent  by  the  Company  in  the  same 
direction.  He  reached  the  same  point  as  Thompson  had  done, 
but  did  not  push  his  discoveries  farther.  Both  of  these  expedi- 
tions were  attended  with  considerable  annoyance,  and  even  loss 
of  life,  from  the  rude  and  brutal  attacks  of  the  Portuguese,  who 
were  still  numerous  in  the  upper  parts  of  the  Gambia.  Thomp- 
son had  left  most  of  his  crew  at  Kassan,  and  pushed  on  in  open 
boats ;  and  soon  after  his  departure,  the  Portuguese,  seized  with 
bitter  jealousy  at  this  expedition  made  by  a  foreign  and  rival 
power,  furiously  attacked  the  party  left  at  Kassan,  and  suc- 
ceeded in  effecting  a  general  massacre  of  the  English.     Jobson^s 

*  MuaaAY's  "  Narrative  of  Discovery  and  Adventure  in  Africa,"  vol.  i.  p.  210. 


141  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

men  were  more  fortunate  than  those  of  Thompson,  bemg  unmo- 
lested by  the  Portuguese,  though  not  without  some  appi^ehen- 
sions  to  tlie  contrary.  But  they  suffered  from  another  cause  : 
for  on  Jobson's  return  to  Kassan,  he  found  the  chmate  had 
done  its  usual  work ;  the  master  and  great  part  of  the  crew  of 
the  vessel  had  died ;  only  about  four  remained  in  a  estate  fit  for 
labour.  He  therefore  immediately  sailed  down  the  river,  and 
returned  to  Europe ;  nor  does  he  appear  to  have  again  visited 
the  African  continent. 

About  this  time,  (1626,)  there  flourished  at  Rouen  a  Company 
of  French  merchants  trading  to  Africa,  whose  director-general 
resided  at  Senegal.  This  Company  shortly  afterwards  supplied 
the  West-Indian  colonies  with  slaves.  In  1631,  the  second 
British  chartered  Company  for  trading  to  Africa  was  formed ; 
Charles  I.  having  granted  a  charter  to  Sir  B.  Young,  Sir  K. 
Digby,  and  others.  Edwards  states,  that  the  merchants  imder 
this  charter  supplied  the  British  settlements  in  the  West  Indies 
with  Negroes  for  working  the  estates.  Within  a  few  years  after 
this,  many  African  settlements  were  formed,  with  the  view  of 
securing  a  supply  of  slaves  for  the  West-India  colonies ;  and 
the  English,  French,  Dutch,  and  Portuguese  imported  Negroes 
from  Africa  to  their  various  possessions  in  those  islands.  The 
Spaniards  did  the  same  to  a  very  large  extent ;  and  not  only  so, 
but  they  had  recourse  to  other  nations  to  help  them  with  a  sup- 
ply of  Negroes  for  their  colonies.  In  the  year  1662,  under 
Charles  II.,  another  chartered  Company  Vvas  formed,  entitled, 
"The  Company  of  Royal  Adventurers  of  England,  trading  to 
Africa."  This  was  the  third  British  Company  that  was  formed  : 
and  the  king's  brother,  then  duke  of  York,  afterwards  James 
II.,  being  a  member  of  the  Company,  it  received  tlie  above 
designation.  This  third  step  was  taken  with  a  view  to  the  pro- 
tection of  the  trade  from  the  aggressions  of  the  Dutch;  who, 
having  deprived  the  PortuguesQ  of  all  their  forts  and  settlements 
on  the  Gold-Coast,  attempted,  in  their  turn,  to  monopolize  the 
entire  commerce  of  Western  Africa.  They  had,  in  fact,  "  made 
it  their  business,"  as  Mr.  Bandinel  observes,  "  to  ruin  the 
British  trade  in  Africa;  and,  step  after  step,  sometimes  by 
fraud,  and  sometimes  by  force,  they  effected,  to  a  great  degree, 
their  object, — destroying  our  siiips,  and  taking  our  forts." 
Although  the  English  had  long  had  a  fort  at  Cormantine,  and 
had  also  established  factories  at  other  places  on  the  Gold-Coast, 
and  thus  enjoyed  as  good  a  right  to  participate  in  the  trade  as 
themselves,  yet  the  restless  and  envious  Dutch  violently  opposed 
them ;  and  the  loss  inflicted  on  the  second  English  Company, 


GKNKUAL    DESCRIPTION.  145 

previously  to  the  formation  of  the  third  "  Company  of  Royal 
Adventnrers  of  England  trading  to  Africa,"  was  stated  to  be 
£300,000;  'Svhich/'  says  Mr.  Bandinel,  "if  not  exaggerated, 
shows  the  power  and  wealth  of  which  the  Company  had  been 
in  possession." 

The  British  Government,  having  failed  in  obtaining  redress 
from  the  Dutch  Government  for  the  wrongs  which  the  Dutch 
had  committed  against  the  British  trade  in  Africa,  declared  war 
against  Holland,  in  the  year  1664.  The  war  was  carried  on 
with  various  success ;  but  as  the  resources  of  the  Company  were 
exhausted,  they  surrendered  their  charter  to  the  crown,  and  a 
new  Company  was  incorporated  in  the  year  1672,  under  the 
name  of  "The  Royal  African  Company  of  England,"  with  ample 
powers  and  privileges,  for  the  purpose  of  prosecuting  and  pro- 
tecting the  trade  between  Africa  and  England.  That  Company, 
acting  with  much  energy,  restored  the  trade,  enlarged  Cape- 
Coast  Castle,  built  one  fort  at  Accra,  another  at  Dix-Cove,  a 
third  at  Winnebah,  a  fourth  at  Succondee,  and  a  fifth  at  Com- 
menda;  and  rebuilt  a  sixth  at  Annamaboo.  Three  of  these 
forts  were  only  at  about  musket-shot  distance  from  the  Dutch 
forts.  The  Company  likewise  purchased  Fredericksberg,  or 
Fort-Royal,  from  the  Danes.  By  these  exertions  the  English 
interest  was  put  on  an  equal  footing  with  that  of  the  Dutch  ; 
and  large  quantities  of  dye-stuff,  ivory,  wax,  and  gold,  were 
imported  into  England,  and  the  British  colonies  in  the  West 
Indies  were  supplied  with  slaves.  But  it  appears  that  at  this 
time  the  Dutch  trade  in  slaves  was  ten  times  greater  than  that 
of  the  English.* 

The  African  trade,  it  will  be  seen,  was  now  essentially  mixed 
up  with  that  of  the  West  Indies ;  and  nearly  all  the  European 
states  were  soon  engaged  in  the  Slave-Trade.  France  took  a 
prominent  part  in  this  traffic ;  and  in  1664  the  French  African 
Company  sold  their  estabhshment  at  Senegal,  and  all  their 
trade,  to  the  French  West  India  Company,  which  obtained 
from  the  king  of  France  an  exclusive  right  to  trade  from  Cape 
Blanco  to  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope  for  forty  years.  This  Com- 
pany not  only  supplied  the  French  colonies  with  slaves,  but 
they  entered  on  the  trade  of  carrying  them  to  the  Spanish 
colonies.  The  Spaniards  had  arrogated  the  Western  World 
entirely  to  themselves  :  hence,  immediately  on  the  discovery  of 
the  West  Indies,  profiting  by  the  example  of  Portugal,  they 

*  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  pp.  52,  53.  See  also  Dr 
Beecham's  "  Asliantce  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  pp.  35 — 37. 

L 


146  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

obtained,  in  1493,  the  issue  of  a  Papal  Bull,  which  granted  to 
the  crown  of  Spain  all  continents  and  islands  which  her  subjects 
might  discover  to  the  westward  of  one  hundred  miles  west  of 
the  Azores.  But  it  will  be  seen,  from  the  preceding  transfer  on 
the  part  of  France  to  the  French  West  India  Company  of  an 
"  exclusive  right  to  trade  from  Cape  Blanco  to  the  Cape  of  Good 
Hope,"  that  the  Spaniards  and  Portuguese  were  not  the  only 
Europeans  who  had  put  forth  such  pretensions,  and  committed 
such  flagrant  abuses  of  a  legitimate  commerce. 

Nor  can  we  clear  our  own  countrj^men  from  the  odium  of  a 
participation  in  the  same  blunder  :  for,  to  the  Company  that 
was  established  in  1672,  by  Charles  IL,  the  said  Charles  was 
graciously  pleased  to  give  and  grant  "  all  and  singular  the  lands, 
countries,  havens,  roads,  rivers,  and  other  places  in  Africa,  from 
Sallee  in  South  Barbary,  to  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope,  for  and 
during  the  term  of  one  thousand  years;  with  the  sole,  entire, 
and  only  trade  and  traffic  into  and  from  the  said  countries  and 
places."  Who  does  not  see  the  absurdity  of  such  gifts,  grants, 
and  transfers'?  Mr.  Wadstrom  observes,  with  regard  to  this 
regal  cession,  "  May  it  not  be  doubted,  whether  Swift  himself, 
that  great  master  of  irony,  ever  penned  any  thing  so  consum- 
mately ridiculous,  to  say  nothing  of  its  other  qualities?"  One 
of  its  salient  points  is,  that  "  Charles  gave  and  granted  to  him- 
self a  participation  of  the  above  extraordinary  privileges  ;  for  he 
and  his  brother,  afterwards  James  IL,  were  subscribers  to  this 
same  Company,  and  were  both .  largely  concerned  in  the  Slave- 
Trade."  * 

These  lofty  claims  on  the  part  of  different  nations  led  to  a 
variety  of  disputes  among  the  European  powers,  both  in  the 
New  World,  and  on  the  African  coast.  In  1678,  the  French 
took  the  Dutch  settlement  of  Arguim ;  and  the  trade  being 
thrown  open  to  all  subjects  of  France,  the  French  trade  for  a 
while  got  the  ascendancy  in  that  quarter,  engrossing  the  whole 
line  of  Western  Africa.  Ten  years  after  this,  (1688,)  the 
Declaration  of  Rights  in  England  took  away,  virtually,  the 
exclusive  privileges  of  the  African  Company;  and  the  British 
African  trade  thenceforward  became  legally  open  to  all  British 
subjects.  English  capitalists  now  embarked  in  the  trade  gene- 
rally ;  the  English  African  Company,  which  still  existed,  entered 
into  an  agreement  with  the  Spanish  Government,  to  supply  the 
Spanish  West  Indies  with  some  Negroes  from  Jamaica;  and 
about  this  time  there  were  landed  in  the  British  colonies,  partly 
by  the  Company,  and  partly  by  British  traders,  about  25,000 

*  Wadstrom,  "On  the  Colonization  of  Western  Africa,"  p.  193. 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION. 


147 


Negroes  a  year.*  But  it  appears  that  the  direct  supply  of 
slaves  from  Africa  to  the  Spanish  colonies  was  at  that  time 
engrossed  by  the  French;  and  it  was  not  until  1713,  when  the 
Spanish  Government  made  over  to  the  English  Guinea  Com- 
pany, by  a  formal  royal  contract,  the  privilege  of  supplying  the 
Spanish  colonies  with  slaves  from  Africa,  that  the  English  took 
a  part  in  what  was  called  the  "  Carrying  Trade."  t 

About  the  year  1720,  the  spirit  of  African  discovery  again 
revived  in  England.  The  Duke  of  Chandos,  then  director  of  the 
Eoyal  African  Company,  concerned  at  the  declining  state  of 
their  affairs,  entertained  the  idea  of  retrieving  them  by  opening 
a  path  into  the  golden  regions  still  reported  to  exist  in  the 
interior  of  Africa.  The  Gambia  was  again  the  starting-point. 
Accordingly,  in  1723,  Captain  Stibbs  was  furnished  with  the 
usual  means  to  navigate  that  river  as  high  as  possible.  On  the 
7th  of  October  he  arrived  at  James  Island,  about  thirty  miles 
from  the  Atlantic,  where  the  English  had  a  fort  and  factory. 
He  here  discovered  that  Mr.  Glynn,  whom  he  expected  to  find 
governor,  had  been  dead  six  months ;  and  that  Mr.  Willy, 
who  succeeded  him,  happened  to  be  then  visiting  the  factory  of 
Joar,  more  than  a  hundred  miles  distant.  Stibbs  immediately 
wrote  to  him  fd^  assistance  in  the  expedition,  but  received  a 
very  cold  reply ;  and  he  was  much  surprised  when,  a  few  days 
after,  a  boat  brought  down  the  dead  body  of  the  governor,  who 
had  fallen  a  victim  to  the  fever  of  the  climate,  which  in  this 
case  had  affected  the  brain,  and  accounts,  in  some  degree,  for 
the  want  of  interest  he  had  felt  in  the  expedition.  A  Mr. 
Orfeur  succeeded  Willy  in  the  government  at  James  Fort,  who 
exerted  himself  very  actively  to  forward  the  objects  of  the  expe- 
dition. Stibbs  had  a  crew  assigned  him  of  nineteen  Avhite  men ; 
of  whom  one,  indeed,  "  though  as  black  as  coal,"  yet  being  a 
Christian,  considered  himself  a  white  man,  and  served  as  inter- 
preter. He  had  likewise  about  thirty  Africans,  with  three 
female  cooks;  and  he  afterwards  took  on  board  a  balafeu,  or 
native  musician,  to  enliven  the  spirits  of  the  party.  Stibbs  set 
out  on  December  26th,  and  the  voyage  proceeded  for  some  time 
very  agreeably.  The  English  were  every  where  well  received ; 
and  at  one  place  even  a  saphie,  or  "  charm,"  was  laid  upon  the 
bank,  for  the  purpose  of  attracting  them  on  shore.  The  captain 
had  endeavoured  to  conceal  his  object,  but  in  vain :  he  found 

*  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  p.  56.  From  Edwards's 
"  British  West  Indies,"  and  the  "  Report  of  the  Privy  Council  on  Trade  with 
Africa,  1789." 

t  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  pp.  jG,  57. 

L    2 


148  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

himself  repeatedly  pointed  out  as  the  person  who  was  come  to 
bring  down  the  gold.  The  native  crew,  however,  predicted  the 
most  fearful  disaster,  if  he  should  attempt  to  proceed  above  the 
Falls  of  Barracouda.  As  the  boats  approached  that  fatal  bound- 
ary, the  Africans  came  in  a  body,  and  stated  their  firm  determi- 
nation on  no  account  to  ascend  any  farther.  No  one,  they  said, 
had  ever  gone  beyond  Barracouda  :  Barracouda  was  the  end  of 
the  world ;  or,  if  there  existed  any  thing  beyond,  it  was  a 
frightful  and  barbarous  region,  where  life  would  be  in  continual 
danger.  A  long  palaver  and  a  bottle  of  Stibbs^s  very  best 
brandy  were  necessary,  ere  they  would  agree  to  accompany  him 
beyond  this  dreaded  boundary  of  the  habitable  universe. 

Stibbs  now  proceeded  to  pass  the  Falls  of  Barracouda,  which 
were  not  found  so  formidable  as  rumour  had  represented. 
They  were  narrows  rather  than  Falls,  the  channel  being  con- 
fined by  rocky  ledges  and  fragments,  between  which  there  was 
only  one  passage,  where  the  canoe  rubbed  against  the  rock  on 
each  side.  On  passing  this  obstacle,  it  soon  appeared,  not  only 
that  the  world  extended  beyond  Barraconda,  but  that  all  the 
evils  predicted  from  the  hostility  of  the  natives  were  wholly 
chimerical.  They  were  found  to  be  a  harmless,  good-humoured 
people,  who,  M'herever  the  crew  landed,  met  them  with  presents 
of  fowls  and  provisions.  The  adventurers  now,  however,  found 
themselves  in  the  region  of  crocodiles,  river-horses,  baboons, 
and  elephants.  The  last-mentioned  were  seen  in  bands,  cross- 
ing from  one  side  of  the  water  to  the  other.  The  river-horses, 
too,  were  very  numerous,  and  sometimes  came  in  collision  with 
the  boat;  through  which  this  huge  animal,  incensed  at  the 
obstacle,  was  apt  to  strike  a  hole  with  his  great  teeth,  so  as  to 
endanger  its  safety.  What  was  still  worse,  the  severest  exer- 
tion now  became  necessary  in  order  to  pass  the  flats  and  quick- 
sands, which  multiplied  in  proportion  as  the  party  ascended, 
and  over  which  the  boats,  in  some  instances,  could  only  be 
dragged  by  main  force.  Stibbs,  however,  persevered  until 
February  22d,  when  he  found  himself  about  sixty  miles  above 
Barraconda,  and  then  was  obliged  to  stop  a  little  short  of  Tenda. 
He  therefore  immediately  returned,  and  proceeded  down  the 
river  with  all  possible  expedition.* 

While  the  English  sought  to  ascend  the  Gambia,  the  Senegal 
was  the  Niger  of  the  French, — the  stream  by  which  they  hoped 
to  penetrate  upwards  to  Timbuctoo  and  the  regions  of  gold. 
From  a  very  early  period  they  had  founded  the  settlement  of 

*  Murray's  "  Nan-ative  of  Discovery  and  Adventure  in  Afi'ica,"  vol.  i.  pp. 
236—241. 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION. 


149 


St.  Louis,  at  the  mouth  of  that  river,  which  has  ever  since  con- 
tinued to  be  the  capital  of  the  French  possessions  in  Africa. 
In  1697,  M.  Brue  was  appointed  director-general  of  the  Com- 
pany's affairs  at  the  Senegal,  and  was  the  person  who  effected 
most  for  their  prosperity,  and  made  the  greatest  efforts  to  pene- 
trate into  the  interior.  In  that  year  he  embarked  on  a  visit  to 
the  siratik,  or  king,  of  the  Foulahs,  whose  territory  lay  about 
four  hundred  miles  up  the  Senegal.  The  principal  object  of 
this  journey  was  to  settle  some  disputes  that  had  arisen  between 
him  and  the  French  traders  at  the  mouth  of  the  Senegal.  In 
ascending  that  river,  Brue  was  struck  by  the  magnificent  forests, 
and  the  profuse  and  luxuriant  verdure  with  which  they  were 
clothed ;  while  it  was  amusing  to  observe  the  numberless  varie- 
ties of  the  monkey  tribe,  which  were  constantly  leaping  from 
bough  to  bough.  Elephants,  too,  as  on  the  Upper  Gambia, 
were  seen  marching  in  bands  of  forty  or  fifty ;  and  large  herds 
of  cattle  were  feeding  on  the  rich  meadov/s,  though,  during  the 
season  of  inundation,  they  withdrew  to  the  more  elevated  spots. 

Brue  reached  the  fort  of  Ghiorel  without  any  difficulty,  and 
then  set  out  for  Gumel,  the  residence  of  the  siratik,  about  ten 
leagues  in  the  interior.  He  was  kindly  received,  and  even 
obtained  permission  to  erect  forts, — a  privilege  of  which  African 
princes  are  usually  and,  indeed,  naturally  jealous.  Having 
accomplished  the  object  of  his  visit,  and  established  a  factory  at 
Ghiorel,  the  director  did  not  attempt  to  penetrate  higher,  but 
immediately  sailed  down  to  Fort  St.  Louis, 

In  the  following  year,  however,  the  same  gentleman  took 
another  voyage,  in  which  he  aimed,  not  merely  at  the  limited 
objects  above  stated,  but  sought  to  ascend  the  Senegal  as  high 
as  possible,  and  to  open  a  commercial  intercourse  with  the  inte- 
rior. In  this  journey  he  reached  as  far  as  Gallamj  and,  on 
arriving  at  Dramanet,  a  thriving  toAvn  in  that  kingdom,  which 
was  inhabited  by  several  rich  native  merchants,  who  traded  as 
far  as  Tirabuctoo,  Brue  considered  it  the  most  convenient  place 
for  a  fort.  He  accordingly  erected  one,  which  was  called  St. 
Joseph,  and  continued  long  to  be  the  principal  seat  of  French 
commerce  on  the  Upper  Senegal.  Brue  then  went  up  to  Felu, 
where  a  large  rock,  crossing  the  river,  forms  a  cataract,  which  it 
is  almost  impossible  for  vessels  to  pass.  Quitting  his  boats,  he 
proposed  to  ascend  to  the  Falls  of  Govinca,  about  forty  leagues 
higher;  but  the  water  was  getting  so  low,  that,  fearing  lest  the 
navigation  downward  should  be  interrupted,  he  returned  to  St. 
Louis.  In  the  course  of  this  voyage  Brue  made  many  inquiries 
respecting  the  countries  bej'ond  Gallam,  and  particularly  con- 
cerning the  Niger.     He  received  flattering  accounts  of  the  rich 


150  WESTERN    COAST    OE    AFRICA. 

gold  miues  of  Bambouk,  Bambarra,  and  Timbuctoo ;  of  caravans 
Avhich  came  to  the  latter  place  from  Barbary,  and  even  of  masted 
vessels  which  were  seen  on  the  waters  beyond  the  Lake  Dibbie : 
but^  as  to  the  course  of  the  Niger,  which  was  the  grand  object 
of  his  research;  the  statements  were  conflicting,  and  therefore 
no  satisfactory  knowledge  on  this  point  was  gained ;  though  the 
popular  opinion,  in  that  country,  as  well  as  through  Europe  in 
general,  long  continued  to  regard  the  Gambia  and  Senegal  as 
branches  of  the  Niger.* 

We  have  referred,  in  a  preceding  page,  to  the  English 
Guinea  Conapany  supplying  the  Spanish  colonies  with  African 
Negroes ;  and,  for  the  sake  of  chronological  order  in  these  brief 
remarks  on  the  English  trade  and  expeditions  to  Africa,  we 
return  to  this  subject  for  a  moment.  "  The  contract  was  dated 
the  13th  of  March,  1713,  and  was  signed  by  the  king  of  Spain 
himself.  It  purported  that  the  engagements  in  it  were  to  last 
thirty  years  from  its  date;  and  that  the  contract  which  His 
Majesty  had  made  with  the  French  Guinea  Company  for  sup- 
plying his  colonies  with  slaves  having  expired,  he  now  made 
over  a  similar  contract  to  the  English  Guinea  Company,  who 
were  to  bind  themselves  to  supply  his  colonies  with  144,000 
slaves  within  the  thirty  years,  being  at  the  rate  of  4,800  slaves  a 
year.  They  were  to  advance  him  200,000  crowns  for  the  privi- 
lege of  importing  these  slaves,  and  to  pay  a  duty  of  thirty-three 
and  a  half  crowns  for  each  slave ;  and  they  were,  moreover,  to 
give  the  king  of  Spain  and  the  king  of  England  each  one 
quarter  share  of  the  profits  of  their  trade."  t 

This  contract,  it  appears,  was  a  losing  concern  from  the  first ; 
for  though  the  Company  had  the  privilege  of  importing  into  any 
of  the  Spanish  dominions  in  America,  for  the  first  twenty-five 
years,  as  many  slaves  as  they  could  sell,  in  addition  to  the  num- 
ber of  slaves  stipulated  for,  and  also  the  pri\dlege  of  sending 
every  year  to  the  Spanish  West  Indies  a  ship  of  five  hundred 
tons^  burden,  with  an  assortment  of  general  goods  for  sale ;  yet 
they  were  obliged  to  come  to  Parliament  for  assistance  to  keep 
up  their  forts  and  factories.  The  various  grants  of  money 
which  they  obtained  from  Government,  from  the  year  1729  to 
1749,  amounted  in  the  whole  to  £80,000.  But  still  their  afl'airs 
deteriorated ;  and,  notwithstanding  the  aids  already  given,  they 
were  indebted,  about  this  time,  to  sundry  creditors  in  the  sum 
of  upwards  of  £100,000 :  they  therefore  surrendered  their  char- 
ter to  the  Government ;  and  their  forts,  castles,  and  other  pos- 

*  Murray's  "  Narrative  of  Discovery  and  Adventure  in  \frica,"  vol.  i.  pp. 
15.5—174. 

f  Raxdinei.'s  "  Account  of  tlic  Trade  in  Slaves,"  p.  58. 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION.  151 

sessions  were  transferred  to  a  new  Company,  which  was  estab- 
lished by  Act  of  Parharaent,  and  in  which  each  member  traded 
individually  on  his  own  capital.  But  this  Company,  declining 
by  degrees  in  influence,  in  power,  and  in  projects  of  ambition, 
ceded  in  1765  to  the  crown  all  its  forts  and  settlements  in 
Africa;  and  the  African  trade  was  now  more  than  heretofore 
free  and  open  to  all  His  Majesty's  subjects.* 

From  the  preceding  rapid  sketch  of  the  discoveries  made  on 
the  Western  Coast  of  Africa,  and  the  various  expeditions  and 
trading  companies  which  were  formed,  and  which  engaged  in 
the  African  trade,  it  will  be  seen  that  though  these  Companies 
were  protected  by  patents  and  exclusive  privileges,  and  though 
some  of  them  were  honoured  with  the  enrolment  amongst  them 
of  members  of  the  royal  family,  yet  they  did  not  flourish,  and 
therefore,  from  time  to  time,  returned  into  the  hands  of  the 
crown  the  powers  and  privileges  granted  to  them.  It  will  also 
be  perceived,  that,  from  the  time  this  Coast  was  first  discovered, 
its  rich  productions,  gold  especially,  became  the  subject  of  much 
contention  among  the  maritime  powers  of  Europe;  and  that  its 
settlements  and  fortresses,  during  nearly  three  hundred  years, 
frequently  changed  hands,  and  were  either  ceded  to  the  diff'er- 
ent  nations  of  Europe  by  treaty,  or  were  forcibly  seized  by 
them,  and  retained  as  lawful  possessions. 

It  would  answer  no  good  purpose  to  go  into  detail  here ;  but 
we  may  just  mention  that,  at  the  present  time  and  for  some 
years  past,  the  settlements  on  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa  are 
and  have  been  in  possession  of  the  following  nations  : — 

The  English  have  two  principal  settlements  on  the  Gam- 
bia; namely,  at  Bathurst,  on  the  island  of  St.  Mary's,  a 
few  miles  from  the  mouth  of  the  river;  and  at  Macarthy's 
Island,  about  two  hundred  and  fifty  miles  farther  up.  They 
also  possess  the  sovereignty  of  the  whole  of  that  great  stream  of 
water,  and  have  trading-places  and  stores  at  difi'erent  points, 
and  on  both  banks  of  the  river,  from  Jillifree  as  far  as  Cantali- 
cunda,  not  far  distant  from  the  Falls  of  Barraconda.  James 
Fort,  on  the  small  island  opposite  Jilhfree,  was  destroyed  by 
the  French  in  1688,  and  has  never  since  been  restored.  At  the 
Isles  de  Los,  the  English  have  also  mercantile  establishments. 
These  islands,  which  are  "five  in  number,  are  situate  about 
sixty  miles  to  the  northward  of  Sierra-Leone,  and  five  or  six 
miles  from  the  Coast ;  and  were  ceded  to  Great  Britain  by  the 
chief,  Dalla  Mahomedu,  to  whom  an  annual  payment  is  made 

*  Bandinel's  "  Account  of  the  Trade  in  Slaves,"  pp.  oS— 64. 


15.3  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

for  them.  Factory  Island,  the  second  in  extent,  is  four  and  a 
half  miles  long,  by  half  a  mile  broad.  They  are,  however,  very 
valuable  for  the  trade  which  is  from  thera  carried  on  with  the 
rivers  of  the  adjacent  continent,  consisting  in  the  exchange  of 
British  goods  for  hides,  ivory,  gold-dust,  &c.^^*  Sierra-Leone, 
and  the  Banana  Islands  contiguous  thereto,  also  belong  to  the 
English.  There  are  likewise  several  British  factories  established 
on  the  various  rivers  between  the  Gambia  and  Sierra-Leone. 
Further  south  we  come  to  the  Gold-Coast :  and  here  the 
English  have  the  principal  sway.  Cape-Coast  Castle,  Annama- 
boo,  Accra,  and  Dix-Cove,  are  all  British  settlements ;  besides 
which  there  are  several  other  minor  forts  and  trading  factories. 

The  French  have  the  sole  control  of  the  Senegal,  and  have 
two  principal  establishments  on  that  river;  namely,  St.  Louis, 
at  the  entrance  of  the  river ;  and  Fort  St.  Joseph,  in  the  king- 
dom of  Gallam.  They  possess,  also,  the  island  of  Goree,  on  the 
south  side  of  Cape  Verd ;  and  a  small  trading  port  at  Albrada, 
about  thirty  miles  up  the  Gambia,  which  they  persist  in  holding 
in  defiance  of  the  Treaty  of  1783.  They  have,  likewise,  the 
principal  trade  in  gum  at  Portindic,  though  it  would  appear 
that  by  this  treaty  the  right  was  conceded  to  the  English  to 
trade  with  the  Moors  in  the  same  ai'ticle  at  that  place. 

The  Dutch  still  hold  the  fort  and  castle  of  Elmina,  which 
they  took  from  the  Portuguese  in  1637.  It  is  their  principal 
settlement  in  this  part  of  Africa,  and  is  only  a  few  miles  from 
the  English  fort  at  Cape- Coast  Castle.  They  have  also  several 
other  forts  along  the  coast ;  but  none  of  them  are  now  garri- 
soned, except  Elmina  and  Axim. 

The  Danes  have  a  respectable  fort  near  Accra,  called  Chris- 
tianberg  Castle,  which  is  their  chief  establishment,  though  they 
have  several  others  on  the  coast  of  Guinea. 

The  Portuguese  and  Spaniards  are  found  in  different  parts 
of  the  coast;  but  their  possessions  are  merely  nominal,  the 
subjects  of  these  two  states  being  principally  engaged  in  the 
unnatural  traffic  in  human  beings.  In  this  iniquitous  trade 
they  were  the  first  to  embark ;  and  it  but  too  plainly  appears 
that  they  are  determined  to  carry  the  disgrace  of  being  the  last 
to  leave  it  off. 

The  year  1788  constituted  a  new  era  in  the  annals  of  African 
discovery.  Hitherto  motives  of  mercenary  interest  alone  had 
guided  the  spirit  of  enterprise ;  but  in  that  year  "  The  African 
Association"  was  formed,  consisting  of  men  eminent  for  rank 

*  Martin's  "  Ihilish  Colonics,"  vol.  iv.  p.  559. 


GENERAL    DESCRIPTION.  153 

and  wealth,  and  still  more  distinguished  by  their  zeal  in  the 
cause  of  science  and  humanity.  The  object  of  this  Association 
was  to  promote  the  discovery  of  the  interior  of  Africa,  with  a 
view  to  the  advancement  of  geographical  knowledge.  They 
subscribed  the  necessary  funds,  and  sought  out  individuals  duly 
qualified  to  undertake  such  distant  and  adventurous  missions. 
Several  noblemen  were  connected  with  this  Association  ;  and 
Ledyard,  Lucas,  Houghton,  Park,  and  a  host  of  other  spirited 
and  enterprising  travellers,  were  successively  employed ;  each 
of  whom  contributed  more  or  less  information  concerning  the 
interior  of  Africa,  the  geographical  divisions  of  some  of  its  king- 
doms, its  natural  scenery  and  productions,  with  some  account 
of  the  native  tribes.  It  was  then  proved  to  a  demonstration, 
that  neither  the  Senegal  nor  the  Gambia  had  any  connexion 
with  the  far-famed  Niger.  The  course  of  that  mighty  stream 
for  a  considerable  distance  had  been  discovered  by  Park,  who, 
unfortunately,  in  his  second  journey,  lost  his  life  in  its  waters ; 
but  its  termination  was  still  wrapt  in  mystery,  until  a  very 
recent  period,  when  this  long-prosecuted  discovery  was  accom- 
plished by  the  energetic  and  heroic  Landers. 

The  results  of  the  investigations  made  by  several  or  nearly 
all  of  the  above  enterprising  travellers  have  long  been  before 
the  public,  and  are  still  perused  with  almost  unabated  interest. 
The  writer  of  these  pages,  however,  cannot  pass  by  one  name 
without  a  word.  I  refer  to  Mungo  Park.  This  intrepid  tra- 
veller having  taken  the  route  of  the  Gambia  in  both  his  journeys 
into  the  interior,  the  names  of  Jillifree,  "a  town  on  the  northern 
bank  of  the  river  Gambia,  in  the  kingdom  of  Barra;^^  of  Vin- 
tain,  "a  town  situated  about  two  miles  up  a  creek  on  the 
southern  side  of  thie  river;"  and  of  Kayaye  and  Pisania,  and 
other  towns  and  places  mentioned  by  Park,  on  the  Gambia, — 
are  all  as  familiar  to  me  as  the  principal  towns  or  counties  in 
England  are  to  a  commercial  traveller,  since  I  have  had  the 
gratification  of  sailing  up  and  down  that  splendid  stream  very 
many  times.  I  am  also  well  acquainted  with  "  Madina,  the 
capital  of  Woolli ; "  with  Kanipe,  and  Tambacunda,  and  other 
places  inland  mentioned  by  Park,  as  far  as  Boollibanny,  "the 
capital  of  Bondou;"  and  I  feel  it  but  an  act  of  justice  to  the 
memory  of  that  great  African  traveller  and  writer  to  say,  that 
his  descriptions  of  the  towns  and  places,  the  kings  and  king- 
doms, the  native  tribes  and  their  customs,  are  admirably  correct; 
so  much  so,  that  I  believe  a  more  faithful  representation  of  a 
country  was  never  given,  than  that  which  is  to  be  found  in  the 
travels  of  the  well-known  Scotchman,  Mungo  Park. 


CHAPTEU  IX. 

WESTERN  AFRICA.— SIERRA-LEONE. 

Limits  of  Western  Africa — Windward  and  Leeward  Coasts — Low  Land — Various 
Rivers — Despotic  Power  of  the  Chiefs — Humiliating  Reflections — First  Pro- 
testant Missionary — Origin  of  the  Colony  of  Sierra-Leone — Dr.  Smeathman 
and  Granville  Sharp — The  American  Revolution — Four  hundred  Blacks, 
with  sixty  Whites,  sail  for  Sierra-Leone — Sickness  and  MortaUty  amongst 
the  Settlers — Granville  Sharp's  Liherality — The  Town  destroyed  by  a  neigh- 
bouring Chief — Mr.  Falconbridge  sent  out — Granville-Town — "  The  Sierra- 
Leone  Company"  chartered — A  Re-inforcement  of  Settlers  from  Nova-Scotia 
— Upwards  of  one  hundred  Europeans  sent  out — Sickness  and  Death — The 
Colony  attacked  and  destroyed  by  the  French — Reflections  on  this  Disaster — 
The  spirited  Conduct  and  Exertions  of  the  Company — Nova-Scotian  Male- 
contents — -The  Arrival  of  the  Maroons — An  Attack  on  the  Colony  by  the 
Timmanees — The  Assailants  repulsed — Transfer  of  the  Colony  to  the  Crown — 
The  African  Institution — State  of  the  Colony  in  1807. 

The  precise  limits  of  Western  Africa  are  not  very  accurately 
defined ;  but  what  is  generally  understood  as  constituting  the 
western  portion  of  this  continent,  is  nearly  the  whole  of  the 
line  of  coast  within  the  Tropics,  commencing  at  about  Cape 
Blanco,  and  forming  a  wide  sweep  around  the  Gulf  of  Guinea  to 
Angola,  one  of  the  kingdoms  near  the  southern  extremity  of  the 
country  of  Congo ;  thus  extending  upwards  of  3,000  miles  along 
the  Atlantic,  with  an  average  breadth  of  300  miles.  A  con- 
siderable part  of  this  line  of  coast,  as  we  have  shown  in  the 
preceding  chapter,  has  long  been  occupied  by  a  chain  of  Euro- 
pean forts,  erected  at  different  times  with  a  view  to  the  com- 
merce in  gold,  palm-oil,  and  ivory,  but,  above  all,  in  slaves ;  for 
though  this  last  object  has  for  some  time  been  finally  abandoned 
by  Great  Britain,  France,  and  some  other  nations,  yet  it  is  a 
well-known  fact,  that  the  trade  in  African  Negroes  may  still  be 
called  the  staple  of  the  Portuguese,  Spaniards,  and  Brazilians. 

It  would,  perhaps,  be  right  and  proper  to  devote  this  chapter 
to  a  description  of  the  physical,  social,  and  moral  condition  of 
Africa ;  but,  fearing  to  enlarge  this  volume  to  an  undue  size,  I 
am  reluctantly  compelled  to  omit  any  lengthy  remarks  here  on 
these  subjects.  I  yield,  however,  to  this  necessity  the  more 
readily,  because,  in  other  parts  of  the  work,  each  of  these 
points  is  more  or  less  touched  upon ;  and  in  the  thu'teenth 
chapter  more  particularly,  the  reader  will  find  some  accouut  of 


SlERllA-LEONE.  155 

the  degraded  moral  condition  of  this  part  of  the  Heathen  world. 
A  word  or  two  I  must  allow  myself  in  passing. 

Western  Africa  is  divided  into  the  Windward  and  Leeward 
Coasts.  The  Windward  Coast  includes  the  s]mce  in  which  the 
Slave-Trade  is  most  rife^  and  takes  its  name  from  the  direction 
of  the  trade- winds,  which  constantly  blow  from  certain  quarters. 
It  comprehends  Senegambia  and  Guinea  ;  extending  from  Sene- 
gal, in  latitude  16°  N.,  to  Cape  Palmas,  in  latitude  4°  26'  S. 
This  part  of  Africa  is  again  di^dded  into  what  are  called  the 
Grain,  the  Ivory,  the  Gold,  and  the  Slave  Coasts ;  the  names  of 
which  sufficiently  indicate  the  distinguishing  peculiarities  of 
their  respective  localities.  Almost  the  whole  of  the  sea-coast, 
for  some  hundred  leagues  to  the  north  and  south  of  Sierra- 
Leone,  is  very  low.  From  the  Gambia  to  the  Bullom  shore,  it 
is  remarkably  flat ;  so  much  so,  as  to  present  to  the  approaching 
voyager  a  singular  prospect  of  palm  and  other  trees,  in  long 
lines,  apparently  growing  out  of  the  water;  their  foliage  and 
lofty  stems  being  in  full  view,  often  for  many  hours,  whilst  the 
land  beneath  remains  unseen,  until  within  a  very  short  distance 
of  it.  Sierra- Leone,  however,  forms  an  exception  and  a  bold 
relief  to  the  monotony  of  the  low  land.  This  interesting 
peninsula  presents  heaped-up  mountains  of  prodigious  heights, 
which  rise  like  pyramids  in  the  desert,  and  the  tops  of  which 
are  frequently  wrapped  in  clouds  and  mist. 

This  low  and  flat  country  is,  however,  backed  by  ranges  of 
lofty  mountains,  which  in  some  places  approach  the  sea,  and,  as 
at  Cape  Verd,  project  in  bold  headlands.  The  well-known 
Mountains  of  the  Moon  are  of  an  amazing  height ;  some  of  the 
peaks  being  not  less  than  13,000  feet  in  elevation.  It  is  only, 
therefore,  about  the  estuaries  of  the  great  rivers,  and  along 
their  banks,  that  the  country  can  be  said  to  be  an  unbroken 
flat.  In  other  places  it  consists  of  gentle  undulations  and 
rising  eminences,  giving  considerable  beauty  to  the  landscape. 
The  principal  rivers  are  the  Senegal,  Gambia,  Rio  Grande,  Eio 
Nunez,  Sierra-Leone  or  Rokel,  Mesurado,  Nun,  or  Niger,  and 
Congo.  These  rivers  penetrate  into  the  interior  by  a  great 
variety  of  windings,  and  divide  into  innumerable  branches  and 
creeks,  which  communicate  with  each  other,  and  with  the 
branches  of  neighbouring  rivers,  so  as  to  render  the  inland 
navigation  very  extensive  and  intricate. 

Along  this  vast  line  of  coast,  that  is,  between  the  Tropic  of 
Cancer  and  that  of  Capricorn,  and  for  some  hundreds  of  miles 
inland,  the  territory  is  in  the  possession  of  a  number  of  petty 
states  and  kingdoms,  maiiv  of  which  compose  aristocratic  rcpub- 


156  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AiailCA. 

lies,  turbulent,  restless,  and  licentious.  But  the  greater  part 
of  Western  Africa  may  be  said  to  be  under  the  dominion  of  the 
most  savage  despotism,  the  power  of  the  chieftains  being  con- 
sidered as  absolute.  They  exercise  their  authority  most  despotic- 
ally. With  them  human  life  is  of  little  or  no  value.  Their  law- 
is  strength,  and  their  strength  men ;  and  the  passions  and 
caprices  of  these  chiefs  being  unchecked  by  any  counteracting 
influence,  the  very  name  of  Africa  is  associated  with  aU  that  is 
shocking  and  revolting  to  the  feelings  of  humanity,  and  its 
history  might  well  be  written  in  characters  of  blood. 

Two  humiliating  reflections  involuntarily  press  themselves 
upon  our  attention  here.  The  first  is,  that,  dark  and  degraded  as 
Africa  is  by  nature,  and  by  a  deep-rooted  superstition,  it  has  been 
rendei'ed  more  dark  and  gloomy,  more  miserable  and  wretched, 
by  coming  in  contact  with  Europeans,  who  originated  the  Slave- 
Trade,  that  fruitful  parent  of  almost  every  other  evil.  The 
other  humiliating  thought  is  this, — that  though  Africa  itself  is 
one  of  the  fairest,  most  beautiful,  and  most  fruitful  portions  of 
the  globe,  containing  forests  of  the  most  valuable  timber,  which 
cover  thousands  of  miles,  and  enriched  with  districts  impreg- 
nated with  the  precious  metals ;  though  its  vast  continent  has 
been  circumnavigated  by  ships  of  Europe  for  three  centuries 
and  a  half;  and  though  Great  Britain  and  other  maritime 
states  of  Europe  have  for  more  than  two  centuries  held  com- 
mercial intercourse  with  the  Western  Coast,  and  have  derived 
considerable  adv^antage  from  Africa;  notwithstanding,  until 
comparatively  a  late  period,  little  or  nothing  has  been  done  to 
communicate  to  its  teeming  millions  the  blessings  of  the  gospel. 

The  first  Protestant  attempt  of  which  we  have  any  record 
took  place  in  the  year  1751.  This  was  made  by  a  minister  of 
the  Church  of  England,  who  had  spent  five  years  in  America 
as  a  missionary  under  the  direction  of  the  Society  for  the  Pro- 
pagation of  the  Gospel  in  Foreign  Parts.  This  gentleman 
proceeded  to  the  Gold-Coast  in  that  year,  in  order  "  to  make 
a  trial  with  the  natives,  and  see  what  hopes  there  would  be  of 
introducing  among  them  the  Christian  religion."  *  It  appears 
that  during  the  four  years  of  his  stay,  he  officiated  as  chaplain 
at  Cape-Coast  Castle,  but  was  much  discouraged  in  his  endea- 
vours to  introduce  a  purer  faith  among  the  natives.  His  health 
having  failed,  he  returned  to  England  in  the  year  1756.  But, 
previously  to  his  return  home,  he  sent  to  this  country  three 
native  boys  for  education  ;  one  of  whom  went  to  the  University 

*  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  p.  257.  From  "  An  Account  of 
two  Missiouaiy  Voyages,"  &c.     "  By  Thomas  Thompson,  A.M.    London,  1758." 


SIEllRA-LEONE.  Ii57 

of  Oxford,  was  subsequently  ordained,  and  returned  to  exercise 
his  ministry  in  his  native  land.  For  half  a  century  this  African 
minister  was  chaplain  at  Cape-Coast  Castle ;  but  he  "  does  not 
appear  to  have  been  instrumental  in  turning  any  of  his  country- 
men to  Christianity.  Nor  will  this  excite  surprise,  when  it  is 
known,  that  on  his  death-bed  he  gave  evidence  that  he  had  at 
least  as  much  confidence  in  the  influence  of  the  fetish  as  in  the 
power  of  Christianity."  After  his  decease,  other  English  chap- 
lains were  sent,  who  speedily  sank  under  the  influence  of  the 
climate,  having  "  successively  died  soon  after  their  arrival  at 
Cape-Coast  Castle."  * 

The  next — indeed,  it  may  be  called  the  first  vigorous  and 
united. — efl'ort  that  was  made  to  benefit  Africa,  was  commenced 
towards  the  close  of  the  last  century,  in  the  formation  of  the 
colony  of  Sierra-Leone  : — an  undertaking  which  originated  in 
the  most  benevolent  motives,  and  was  long  conducted  under 
highly  distinguished  patronage.  Sierra-Leone  was  discovered 
by  the  Portuguese  in  1463,  who  were  the  first  Europeans  that 
formed  settlements  on  the  river  of  that  name.  They  were 
afterwards  folloAved  by  other  European  nations  ;  and,  according 
to  Golberry,  the  river  Mitembo  was  included  at  one  time  within 
the  limits  of  the  French  ''Government  of  the  Senegal,"  It 
first  became  known  to  the  English  in  156.2,  when  the  noto- 
rious Sir  J.  Hav/kins  landed  there,  made  unsparing  use  of 
fire  and  sword,  and,  after  perpetrating  every  atrocitj^,  succeeded 
in  capturing  some  hundreds  of  the  natives,  put  them  on  board 
his  vessels,  and  afterwards  sold  them  in  the  West  Indies  for  his 
own  advantage. 

But  this  locality  was  afterwards  selected  for  a  widely  difli'erent 
purpose, — to  check  and  put  down  the  Slave-Trade,  and  to 
introduce  and  difi'use  the  principles  of  our  holy  religion,  with  its 
attendant  blessing  of  civilization,  and  thus  to  benefit  the  whole 
continent  of  Africa.  The  idea  of  establishing  a  free  Negro 
settlement  at  Sierra-Leone  was  first  suggested  by  Dr.  Smeatli- 
man,  in  his  letter  to  Dr.  Knowles,  dated  July  21st,  1783. f  It 
appears  that  he  conceived  this  noble  design  in  Africa  itself, 
where  he  had  resided  several  years.  Contemporary,  however, 
with  Dr.  Smeathman^s  suggestion,  this  subject  had  occupied  the 
thoughts  and  the  pen  of  that  eminent  philanthropist,  Granville 
Sharp;  who,  on  the  1st  of  August  of  the  same  year,  (1783,) 
sketched   the  outline  of  a  plan  "  in  his  private  memorandum  for 

*  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  pp.  258,  259. 
f  Wadstrom's  "  Essay  on  the  Colonization   of  Western  Africa,"  part  ii,  p.  3. 
See  also  Appendix  to  that  work,  pp.  197 — 207. 


158  WESTERN    COAST    OF    ArillCA. 

a  settlement  on  the  coast  of  Africa,"  which,  lie  observes  in  the 
first  paragraph,  "  will  deserve  all  encouragement,  if  the  settlers 
are  absolutely  prohibited  from  holding  any  kind  of  property  in 
the  persons  of  men  as  slaves,  and  from  selling  either  man, 
woman,  or  child/'  An  enlarged  account  of  this  plan  was  found 
among  Mr.  Sharp^s  papers ;  and  it  was  probably  the  foundation 
of  all  the  regulations  by  which  the  colony  was  governed  at  its 
commencement.* 

There  appear  to  have  been  two  principal  causes  or  cii'cum- 
stances  which  led  to  the  formation,  at  that  time,  of  the  colony 
at  Sierra-Leone.  While  Great  Britain  was  engaged  in  the 
American  war,  a  vast  number  of  Negroes  forsook  their  masters, 
and  joined  the  British  forces.  These  served  with  fidelity,  until 
hostilities  were  brought  to  a  termination  in  1783.  But  when 
the  troops  were  about  to  be  disbanded,  it  became  a  matter  of 
considerable  difficulty  how  to  dispose  of  these  Blacks,  consist- 
ently with  the  principles  of  justice,  humanity,  and  honour.  To 
abandon  them  in  the  United  States,  was  to  expose  them  to  the 
resentment  of  their  ancient  masters,  against  whom  they  had 
fought,  and  to  reward  them  with  slavery  for  their  attachment  to 
our  cause.  To  prevent  these  evils  from  taking  place,  great 
numbers  of  them  were  carried  to  the  Bahama  islands  and  Nova- 
Scotia  with  the  white  loyalists,  where  they  Avere  declared  free. 
But  many  of  them,  being  incorporated  with  the  British  regi- 
ments, were  carried  to  Great  Britain,  and  especially  to  London. 
On  being  dismissed,  the  English  soldiers  repaired  to  their 
respective  abodes,  but  the  Blacks  were  left  in  a  forlorn  condi- 
tion, without  a  home,  and  without  a  friend,  in  a  foreign  land. 
These  men  became,  therefore,  objects  of  genuine  compassion : 
they  were  entitled  to  ample  protection  and  a  generous  requital. 

In  the  mean  time  this  project  was  taken  up  by  Granville 
Sharp,  as  affording  the  best  remedy  for  an  inconvenience  that 
had  grown  out  of  his  own  benevolent  exertions  on  behalf  of  the 
enslaved  Africans.  After  the  memorable  decision  of  Lord 
Mansfield  in  favour  of  the  Negro  Somerset,  in  June,  1772, — the 
particulars  of  which  we  have  already  stated, — great  numbers  of 
Blacks,  who  had  been  brought  to  England,  and  turned  adrift  by 
their  masters, — many  of  them  unaccustomed  to  any  useful  han- 
dicraft or  calling ;  and,  like  the  disbanded  Negroes  from  Ame- 
rica, without  a  home,  or  a  parish,  where  they  could  claim 
parochial  relief,  shivering  from  the  influence  of  our  chilly 
climate, — fell  by  degrees  into  great  distress,  and  were  conspicu- 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sliarp,''  vol.  ii.  ))p.  11  — 15. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  159 

Oils  in  the  streets  of  the  metropoHs  as  common  beggars.  As 
Mr.  Sharp  was  their  known  patron  and  friend,  they  flocked  to 
him  for  protection  and  support ;  and  he  frequently  and  gene- 
rously relieved  them  out  of  his  own  purse :  but  their  numbers 
being  great,— at  one  time,  it  is  stated,  '^  about  four  hundred,'^ — 
he  found  he  could  not  relieve  them  daily  consistently  with  his 
engagements  to  others.  A  number  of  humane  gentlemen, 
therefore,  formed  a  "  Committee  for  Relieving  the  Black  Poor :'' 
and  with  this  Committee  Mr.  Sharp  and  Dr.  Smeathman  zeal- 
ously co-operated.  In  1786  the  latter  published  his  "Plan  of  a 
Settlement  to  be  made  near  Sierra-Leone,  on  the  Grain-Coast 
of  Africa ;  intended  more  particularly  for  the  service  and  happy 
Establishment  of  Blacks  and  People  of  Colour,  to  be  shipped  as 
free  Men,  under  the  Direction  of  the  Committee  for  Relieving 
the  Black  Poor,  and  under  the  Protection  of  the  British 
Government."  The  "  substance  "  of  this  plan  the  reader  may 
find  in  the  Appendix  to  Wadstrom's  "  Essay  on  Colonization." 

The  Blacks  of  London  having  heard  of  this  proposed  settle- 
ment, many  of  them  waited  on  Mr.  Sharp,  "to  consult  with 
him  about  the  proposal.     Sometimes  they  came,"  he  says,  "  in 
large  bodies  together.     Upon  inquiring  among  themselves,   I 
found  that  several  of  them  had  been  on  the  spot."  *     To  the 
"  plan "  already  mentioned   the    "  Committee   for    the    Black 
Poor"  annexed  a  hand-bill,  inviting  all  persons  of  the  above 
description,  who  were  willing  to  become  colonists,  to  apply  to 
Dr.  Smeathman,  to  whom  had  been  intrusted  the  formation  of 
the  settlement.     In  consequence  of  this  measure,  several  hun- 
dred Blacks,  with  some  few  Whites,  expressed  their  willingness 
to  embark  in  the  expedition.    Application  was  also  now  made  to 
the  Ministers  of  England  for  assistance :  the  Government  had  long 
regarded  the  number  of  Negro  mendicants  as  a  nuisance,  and 
therefore  readily  consented  to  lend  a  helping  hand  to  the  pro- 
ject. Accordingly  "  a  small  weekly  allowance  was  made  from  the 
Treasury  for  the  subsistence  of  the  settlers ;  and  navy  transports 
were    hired    to    carry  them    out."  f      l^^t    the    sickness    and 
lamented  death  of  Dr.  Smeathman,  at  this  important  juncture, 
suspended  the  execution  of  the  plan  for  a  short  time ;  and  Mr. 
Sharp  stood  involved  in  all  the  expenses  which  had  attended  its 
outset.      In   this   situation   of  aftairs,   the  Government  again 
interfered;    provision    was    made    both   for    transporting   the 
intending   settlers,   and   for   supplying   them   with  necessaries 
during  the  first  six  or  eight  months  of  their  residence  in  Africa ; 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  ii.  p.  5.  t  ^^'«'«>  P-  1*^- 


160  WESTERN    COAST   OF    AFRICA. 

and  the  little  fleet  at  length  sailed,  under  convoy  of  the  "  Nau- 
tilus" sloop  of  war,  on  the  8th  of  April,  1787  ;  having  on  board 
somewhat  more  than  four  hundred  Negroes,  to  which  were 
added  about  sixty  Europeans,  chiefly  Avomeu.  It  appears  that 
seven  hundred  black  poor  had  ofi'ered  themselves  to  go  to  the 
proposed  settlement ;  but  from  the  delay  which  occurred  in  the 
Channel,  and  from  a  feeling  of  jealousy  which  prevailed  among 
them,  that  Government  intended  to  send  them  to  Botany  Bay, 
as  the  transports  for  that  expedition  were  then  waiting  at  Ports- 
mouth, where  the  ships  for  Sierra-Leone  were  ordered  also, 
many  of  them  deserted,  so  that  only  four  hundred  Negroes 
embarked  in  the  first  instance. 

On  leaving  England  they  were  placed  under  the  direction  of 
Captain  Thompson  of  the  navy,  commander  of  the  "Nautilus" 
sloop  of  war,  Avho  on  his  arrival  at  Sierra-Leoue  procured  for 
His  Britannic  Majesty  a  fine  tract  of  mountainous  country,  to 
be  appropriated  to  their  use.  This  land  was  first  purchased  of 
King  Tom,  a  neighbouring  Chief;  and  the  bargain  was  after- 
wards confirmed  by  Naimbanna,  the  king  of  the  countrj^  who 
resided  at  the  small  island  of  Robanna.  But  the  commence- 
ment of  the  settlement  was  inauspicious.  During  a  long  deten- 
tion of  these  poor  people  in  the  Channel,  and  during  their 
passage  to  Sierra-Leone,  they  were  in  an  extremely  unhealthy 
state,  in  most  instances  produced  by  disorders  brought  on  board 
with  them,  and  aggravated  by  intemperance.  In  consequence 
of  the  delay  that  had  occurred,  the}^  had  landed  in  the  rainy 
season,  when  no  sufficient  order  or  regularity  could  be  estab- 
lished among  them ;  and,  being  exposed  to  the  weather,  a  great 
portion  of  them  very  soon  perished.  In  the  course  of  the  first 
year  their  numbers  were  reduced  nearly  one-half;  many  having 
died  before  they  reached  the  coast,  and  a  great  number  a 
short  time  after  their  landing.  Some  few,  also,  had  deserted. 
The  remainder,  however,  were  still  sufficient  for  building  a 
small  town :  and  Captain  Thompson  fixed  upon  a  beautiful 
eminence  on  the  southern  bank  of  the  river  for  the  site  of  the 
new  township.  About  three  hundred  and  sixty  town-lots,  of 
one  acre  each,  were  marked  out  in  streets ;  and  the  lots  were 
drawn  and  appropriated  on  June  12th,  1787.* 

Mr.  Sharp  had  heard  of  the  safe  arrival  of  the  settlers  at  the 
Madeira  Islands  from  the  Rev.  Mr.  Eraser,  who  had  accom- 
panied the  expedition  as  chaplain;  and  subsequently  he  was 
informed  of  their  reaching  the  coast.     On  the  31st  of  October, 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  ii.  pp.  20,  90. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  IGl 

1787,  he  Avrote  to  Dr.  J.  Sharp  as  follows:  "I  have  had  but 
melancholy  accounts  of  my  poor  little,  ill-thriven,  swarthy 
daughter,  the  unfortunate  colony  of  Sierra-Leone.  They  have, 
however,  purchased  twenty  miles  square  of  the  finest  and  most 
beautiful  country,  they  all  allow,  that  was  ever  seen.  The  hills 
are  not  steeper  than  Shooter's-Hill ;  and  fine  streams  of  fresh 
water  run  down  the  hill  on  each  side  of  the  new  township  ;  and 
in  the  front  is  a  noble  bay,  where  the  river  is  about  three 
leagues  wide.  The  woods  and  groves  are  beautiful  beyond 
description,  and  the  soil  very  fine  :  so  that  a  little  good  manage- 
ment may,  with  God's  blessing,  still  produce  a  thriving  settle- 
ment." * 

A  code  of  laws,  or  rather  "  Temporary  Regulations,"  had 
been  drawn  up  by  Mr.  Sharp,  for  the  new  settlement;  and  not 
being  objected  to  by  the  Government,  and  having  been 
approved  of  and  adopted  by  the  settlers  before  they  sailed,  these 
rules  were  of  considerable  use,  and  would  have  been  of  still 
greater  benefit,  had  they  been  more  strictly  adhered  to  and 
maintained.  But  it  could  scarcely  have  been  expected,  that  a 
colony  composed  of  disbanded  soldiers,  and  Whites  of  indiffer- 
ent character,  many  of  them  females  of  loose  morals,  would 
speedily  become  a  prosperous  settlement.  Making  every  allow- 
ance, therefore,  for  the  unfavourable  season  of  the  year  at  which 
the  party  arrived  on  the  coast,  and  the  misery  they  had  endured 
on  board  the  ship,  some  of  them  having  been  there  above  three 
months ;  "  the  greatest  blame  of  all,"  as  Mr.  Sharp  observed, 
"  is  to  be  charged  on  the  intemperance  of  the  people  them- 
selves ;  for  the  most  of  them  (both  Whites  and  Blacks)  became 
so  besotted  during  the  voyage,  that  they  were  totally  unfit  for 
business  when  they  landed,  and  could  hardly  be  prevailed  on  to 
assist  in  erecting  their  own  huts.  Thus  unhappily  the  allow- 
ance of  I'um,  granted  to  them  by  the  Government  wdth  the 
most  benevolent  intention,  really  proved  their  greatest  bane. 
There  were,  of  course,  many  honourable  exceptions;  and  Gran- 
ville Sharp  received  several  interesting  letters  from  the  settlers ; 
and  though  some  of  them  were  of  a  discouraging  nature,  yet 
they  were  all  expressive  of  their  gratitude  to  him  as  "  their  con- 
stant and  generous  friend." 

It  appears,  however,  that  when  His  Majesty's  sloop  "  Nauti- 
lus" left  the  settlement  on  September  16th,  1787,  there 
remained,  in  all,  two  hundred  and  seventy-six  persons. 
Amongst  the  many  who  had  died  during  the  rains,  were  Mr. 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  ii.  pp.  83,  84. 
M 


TG2  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Irwin,  the  agent-conductor;  Mr.  Gesau,  the  town-major  and 
engineer;  and  Mr.  Richards,  the  gardener.  These  deaths, 
with  the  desertion  of  many  others,  occasioned  great  discourage- 
ment to  those  that  remained.  Another  misfortune  to  the  settle- 
ment was  the  sickness  of  the  Rev.  Mr.  Fraser,  the  chaplain, 
whose  continued  ill  state  of  health  obliged  him  to  return  to 
England  in  March,  1788.  The  number  of  settlers  at  that  time 
was  only  one  hundred  and  thirty  in  all :  but  this  great  reduc- 
tion was  not  so  much  attributed  to  sickness,  as  to  emigration. 
For  the  people,  having  little  or  nothing  to  live  upon,  and  no 
one  to  look  up  to  as  their  leader  and  guide,  dispersed  in  various 
ways.  Mr.  Sharp,  being  apprehensive  of  an  entire  desertion, 
hastened  to  rescue  the  colony  from  total  wreck,  by  sending  out, 
principally  at  his  own  expense,  the  brig  "Myro,"  laden  with 
various  articles  of  considerable  present  use  in  meeting  the 
urgent  necessities  of  the  settlers.  In  the  same  vessel  sailed 
thirty -nine  passengers,  both  white  and  black,  to  augment  the 
number  of  the  colonists.  "Among  these  were  several  very 
intelligent  men,  two  of  them  surgeons  of  respectable  abilities, 
Mr.  Lacitus  and  Mr.  Peale ;  and  also  Mr.  Irwin,  son  of  the  late 
agent-conductor."  The  timely  arrival  of  the  "Myro"  with 
provisions,  and  a  re-inforcement  of  hands,  preserved  the  infant 
colony,  and  renovated  the  hopes  of  the  distressed  wanderers,  the 
greater  part  of  whom,  finding  that  they  could  not  subsist  so  well 
in  any  other  place,  now  gladly  returned  to  the  settlement. 

The  settlers  were,  however,  soon  doomed  to  another  sad 
disaster;  for,  towards  the  end  of  1789,  while  the  colony  was 
again  in  a  state  of  advance,  they  received  a  formal  notice  from 
the  great  council  of  a  neighbouring  chief,  that  he  had  resolved  on 
burning  their  town,  in  retaliation  for  a  similar  injury  done  to 
his  own  capital  by  the  marines  and  crew  of  an  English  ship  of 
war ;  *  and  that  he  allowed  them  three  days  for  the  removal  of 
their  goods.  They  had  no  resources;  they  fled  from  their 
homes,  and  abandoned  their  plantations ;  and  the  judicial  sen- 
tence was  carried  into  execution  at  the  appointed  time.  This 
attack  was  an  overwhelming  blow  to  the  colony,  and  threatened 
it  once  more  with  entire  annihilation.  But  the  philanthropic 
zeal  which  prevailed  in  Britain  for  the  colonization  of  Africa 
suffered  no  abatement ;  and  the  same  provident  care  which  had 
sent  the  "Myro'^  to  the  aid  of  Sierra-Leone  in  its  utmost  need, 
had  also  secured  the  means  of  aftbrding  it  further  protection  by 

*  This  is  fully  explained  in  the  Report  for  1793.  The  misunderstanding  ori- 
ginated with  an  American  slave-captain,  whose  cause  some  British  sailors  and 
marines  aftei-wards  espoused. 


SIERRA-LEONE. 


163 


the  estabiishment  of  a  company  in  England,  called  "the  St. 
George's  Bay  Company,"  united  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  for- 
ward the  benevolent  designs  of  its  founder :  and  a  memorial 
was  now  addressed  to  His  Majesty,  praying  that  he  would  be 
graciously  pleased  to  grant  to  it  his  royal  charter  of  incorpora- 
tion. Accordingly,  in  September,  1790,  the  Company's  agent, 
Mr.  Falconbridge,  set  sail,  with  a  commission  to  examine  and 
report  the  state  of  the  colony,  and  to  afford,  temporary  relief  to 
the  distress  that  had  arisen,  until  the  grant  of  the  charter 
should  enable  the  Directors  to  take  more  effective  measures  for 
the  prosperity  of  the  settlement. 

Mr.  Falconbridge  arrived  about  twelve  months  after  the  dis- 
persion of  the  settlers ;  and,  collecting  as  many  of  the  fugitives 
as  he  could  any  where  discover,  he  brought  them  to  a  new  set- 
tlement above  Foura  Bay,  about  two  miles  further  than  the 
former  site  was  from  the  town  of  the  chief  who  had  invaded 
them.  Here  they  took  possession  of  some  deserted  houses ;  and 
about  four  acres  of  land  were  cleared,  and  planted  with  yams 
and  cassada,  and  sown  with  Enghsh  seeds.  This  little  body  of 
settlers  was  supplied  by  Mr.  Falconbridge  with  muskets,  ammu- 
nition, and  articles  of  cutlery,  which  they  might  barter  for 
necessaries;  and  he  reported  them  at  his  departure  from  the 
coast  as  likely,  with  very  little  labour,  to  maintain  themselves  in 
the  same  manner  as  before  their  dispersion.  They  at  that  time 
amounted  in  all  to  sixty-four.  The  males,  though  disorderly 
and  turbulent,  appeared  to  be  warmly  attached  to  the  Company, 
and  resolutely  bent  on  defending  themselves.  The  new  settle- 
ment received  the  name  of  Granville-Town,  in  honour  of  their 
original  protector  and  friend  :  and  the  affairs  of  the  settlement, 
though  small,  now  began  to  assume  a  more  promising  aspect. 

Before  the  close  of  the  session  of  1791,  the  British  legislature 
gave  its  sanction  to  the  movement,  and  incorporated  the  sub- 
scribers under  the  denomination  of  "The  Sierra-Leone  Com- 
pany." As  soon  as  this  Act  was  passed,  they  held  their  first 
meeting  in  London,  on  the  19th  of  October,  1791,  and  chose 
their  Directors  for  the  ensuing  year.  Among  these  we  find  the 
celebrated  names  of  Wilberforce,  Thornton,  Clarkson,  Granville 
Sharp,  and  others,  who  have  immortalized  themselves  by 
espousing  the  cause  of  insulted  humanity.  A  capital  of 
£250,000  was  now  raised  for  carrying  on  the  undertaking ;  and 
it  became  necessary  to  increase  the  number  of  settlers.  While 
the  Directors  were  discussing  measures  for  that  purpose,  an 
opportunity  offered  which  appeared  to  meet  their  wishes  for 
strengthening  the  colony  by  an  additional  body  of  free  Negroes, 

M   2 


164  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

acquainted  with  the  English  language,  and  accustomed  to  the 
labour  of  hot  climates.  It  has  been  already  observed,  that  at 
the  conclusion  of  the  American  war  a  body  of  Negroes,  who 
had  been  induced  to  enlist  in  the  British  army  by  the  king^s 
proclamation  of  freedom  to  all  slaves  who  should  join  the  royal 
standard,  were,  on  the  termination  of  hostilities,  carried  to 
Nova-Scotia,  where  the  greater  part  of  them  remained,  though 
some  of  them  founc^  their  way  to  England,  and  were  sent  out  to 
Sierra-Leone  with  the  first  settlers. 

During  this  year,  (1791,)  a  Negro  named  Peters  arrived  in 
London  as  a  delegate  from  many  of  his  countrymen  of  the 
above  description,  who,  in  consequence  of  finding  the  climate 
of  Nova-Scotia  unfavourable  to  their  health,  and  on  account  of 
the  withholding  of  some  grants  of  land  which  had  been  pro- 
mised to  them,  were  desirous  of  joining  the  new  colony  at 
Sierra-Leone.  The  Directors  immediately  applied  to  Govern- 
ment, to  know  if  it  would  defray  the  expenses  of  the  passage  of 
these  Negroes ;  and,  being  favourably  answered,  they  availed 
themselves  of  the  oflFer  of  Lieutenant  Clarkson,  of  His  Majesty's 
navv,  (a  brother  of  the  zealous  historian  of  the  Abolition  of  the 
Slave-Trade,)  to  bring  the  new  colonists  over  to  Sierra-Leone. 
Lieutenant  Clarkson  set  sail  on  August  19th,  1791 ;  and,  on 
his  arrival  at  Nova- Scotia,  found,  to  his  surprise,  that  the  num- 
ber of  black  people  who  were  desirous  to  embark  for  Sierra- 
Leone  far  exceeded  the  account  given  by  their  delegate.  Not 
fewer  than  eleven  hundred  and  ninety-six  were  brought  on 
board.  It  was  obvious  that  the  accession  of  so  large  a  body  of 
people  could  not  fail  to  produce  the  most  important  conse- 
quences to  the  infant  settlement :  their  numerous  wants  would 
demand  instant  supply :  the  Directors,  therefore,  turned  their 
immediate  attention  to  this  subject.  The  first  vessel  sent  out 
by  the  Company  from  England,  reached  Sierra-Leone  in  Febru- 
ary, 1792,  and  was  soon  followed  by  two  others,  carrying  out  in 
all  rather  more  than  one  hundred  Europeans.  In  the  succeed- 
ing month  the  Nova- Scotia  fleet  arrived,  consisting  of  sixteen 
vessels,  from  which  were  landed  eleven  hundred  and  thirty-one 
Blacks ;  sixty-five  having  died  during  the  passage. 

The  colony  being  thus  recruited  with  this  large  addition  of 
labourers,  and  the  native  princes  being  perfectly  satisfied  with  the 
intention  of  the  settlers,  the  new  town,  which,  in  consequence 
of  instructions  from  the  Directors,  was  named  Free-Tcwn,  began 
to  rise  rapidly ;  and  a  public  wharf  and  warehouse  were  likewise 
commenced.  A  fever,  however,  which  the  Negroes  had  brought 
with  tiiem,  aggravated  by  the  rainy  season  which  followed  soon 


SIERRA-LEONE.  165 

after  their  arrival,  carried  off  a  considerable  number :  and  to  the 
latter  cause  of  mortality  half  of  the  European  settlers  fell  vic- 
tims. But  the  sickly  season  having  passed,  things  went  on 
prosperously.  The  site  of  Free-Town  was  unquestionably  the  best 
that  could  be  selected  in  the  vicinity ;  and  it  was  soon  found 
that  both  the  soil  and  climate  were  admirably  adapted  for  all 
the  productions  of  the  tropical  region.  But  in  September,  1794, 
the  colony  was  surprised  by  the  arrival  of  a  French  squadron, 
who,  notwithstanding  the  declaration  of  the  French  Convention, 
barbarously  plundered  and  destroyed  the  colonial  town,  and 
thus  caused  a  pecuniary  loss  to  the  Company  amounting  to 
upwards  of  c€50,000.  The  particulars  of  this  base  and  bar- 
barous outrage  have  appeared  in  print  in  several  publications. 
The  following  is  an  extract  of  a  letter  from  Mr.  Afzelius,  who 
was  a  botanist  belonging  to  the  colony,  and  an  eye-witness  of 
the  facts  which  he  details.  His  letter  is  dated  Sierra-Leone, 
November  15th,  1794,  and  was  addressed  to  the  Swedish 
ambassador  in  London : — 

The  English  colony  (says  he)  at  Sierra-Leone  had,  like  all  other  new  colonies, 
in  the  beginning,  great  difficulties  to  overcome.  But  before  the  end  of  two  years 
from  its  first  institution,  order  and  industry  had  begun  to  show  their  effects  in  an 
increasing  prosperity.  A  new  town  had  been  laid  out,  with  regular  streets,  and  a 
little  garden  belonging  to  each  house.  The  woods  had  been  cut  down,  to  the  dis- 
tance of  about  three  miles  all  round  the  town.  By  this  means  the  climate  had 
become  healthier,  and  sickness  had  diminished.  The  fame  of  our  colony  had  spread 
not  only  along  the  whole  Western  Coast  of  Africa,  but  also  to  parts  far  distant 
from  the  coast ;  and  we  have  had  embassies  from  kings  and  princes,  several  hun- 
dred miles  distant,  with  the  view  of  acquiring  a  better  knowledge  of  us,  and  of 
obtaining  our  friendship.  They  began  to  send  their  children  to  us,  with  full  con- 
fidence, to  be  brought  up  in  the  Chiistian  religion.  In  short,  we  were  externally 
respected  and  internally  happy.  But  the  French  have  been  here,  and  have  ruined 
us.  They  arrived  on  the  28th  of  September  last,  early  in  the  morning,  with  a  fleet 
consisting  of  one  large  ship,  two  frigates,  two  armed  brigs,  and  one  cutter,  together 
with  two  large  armed  merchant-ships,  taken  by  them  at  the  Isles  de  Los, — an  Eng- 
lish slave-factory  at  the  north  of  oiu-  colony,  and  which  they  have  also  destroyed 
and  bm-nt. 

So  well  had  they  concealed  their  nation,  that  we  took  them  for  English.  They 
had  Enghsh-built  vessels,  which  were  rigged  in  the  English  way.  They  showed 
the  English  flag,  and  had  their  sailors — at  least,  those  whom  we  saw — dressed 
like  English.  In  short,  we  did  not  perceive  our  mistake,  until  we  observed  them 
pointing  their  guns.  We  had  not  strength  sufficient  to  resist ;  and  therefore  our 
governor  gave  orders,  that  as  soon  as  they  should  begin  to  fire,  the  British  flag 
should  be  struck,  and  a  flag  of  truce  hoisted.  Accordingly  this  was  done;  but 
still  they  continued  firing,  and  did  much  damage  both  within  and  without  the 
town.  They  killed  two  people,  and  wounded  three  or  four.  But  as  we  did  not 
understand  the  meaning  of  this  i)roceeding,  we  asked  them  for  an  explanation  :  and 
they  answered  us,  that  we  should  display  the  flag  of  liberty,  as  a  proof  of  our  sub- 
mission. We  assured  them  that  it  should  already  have  been  done  if  we  had  had 
any,  which  terminated  the  hostilities  from  the  ships. 


16G  WESTERN    COAST    OV    AFRICA. 

In  the  mean  time,  most  of  the  inhabitants  had  fled  from  the  town,  having  taken 
with  them  as  much  of  their  property  as  they  conveniently  could  in  such  a  hurry. 
I  was  with  the  governor,  together  with  a  number  of  others.  But  as  soon  as  I  was 
certain  that  they  were  enemies,  I  went  towards  my  own  house,  with  a  view  to  save 
as  much  as  possible  of  my  property  and  natm-al  collections ;  but  was  received  in 
such  a  manner,  that  I  could  not  venture  to  proceed.  My  house  was  situated  near 
the  shore,  and  unfortunately  just  opposite  the  frigate  which  fired.  I  saw  the  balls 
passing  through  my  house,  and  heard  them  whizzing  about  my  ears.  I  saw  that  I 
should  lose  all  my  property ;  but  life  was  dearer  to  me,  and  I  hastened  to  the 
woods.  In  the  afternoon  the  enemy  landed,  finding  the  town  almost  destitute  of 
people,  but  rich  in  provisions,  clothing,  and  other  stores.  They  began  immediately 
to  break  open  the  houses,  and  to  plunder :  what  they  did  not  want,  they  destroyed, 
burnt,  or  threw  into  the  river.  They  killed  all  the  cattle  and  animals  they  found 
in  the  fields,  streets,  yards,  or  elsewhere,  not  sparing  even  asses,  dogs,  and  cats. 
These  proceedings  they  continued  the  whole  succeeding  week,  tiU  they  had  entirely 
ruined  our  beautifid  and  prospering  colony ;  and  when  they  found  nothing  more 
worth  plundering,  they  set  fire  to  the  pubhc  buildings,  and  all  the  houses  belonging 
to  the  Europeans,  and  consequently  to  mine  among  the  rest.  About  twenty-four 
houses,  great  and  small,  were  thus  destroyed;  and  nine  or  ten  houses  of  the 
colonists  were  also  burnt  by  mistake. 

In  the  mean  time,  the  enemy  was  not  less  active  on  the  water.  They  took  about 
ten  or  twelve  prizes,  including  the  Company's  vessels ;  most  of  these  they  unloaded 
and  burnt.  They  took  also  two  of  our  armed  vessels ;  one  of  which  v/sls  a  large 
ship,  laden  mth  pro^dsions,  and  which  had  been  long  expected ;  but  she  unfortu- 
nately arrived  a  few  days  too  soon,  and  was  taken  with  her  whole  cargo.  We 
expected  at  least  to  receive  our  private  letters  ;  but  even  this  was  refused,  and  they 
were  thrown  overboard.  At  last,  after  inflicting  on  us  every  hardship  we  could 
suffer,  only  sparing  our  lives  and  the  houses  of  the  colonists,  they  sailed  on  the 
13th  of  October  last  at  noon,  proceeding  downwards  to  the  Gold-Coast;  and  left  us 
in  the  most  dreadful  situation,  without  provisions,  clothes,  houses,  or  fru-niture. 
Most  of  us  must  have  perished,  had  not  our  friends  in  the  neighbourhood,  both 
natives  and  Europeans,  who  were  so  happy  as  to  escape  the  enemy,  kindly  sent  us 
what  they  could  spare.  Since  that  time  most  of  us  have  either  been,  or  still  are, 
very  sick,  and  many  have  died  for  want  of  proper  food  and  medicine.  The  worst, 
however,  is  now  past.  At  least,  we  are  not  in  any  want  of  provision,  although  of 
the  coarsest  kind ;  but  we  are  destitute  of  the  most  necessary  articles  and  utensils 
for  the  house,  the  table,  and  the  kitchen. 

The  report  of  the  governor  and  council  at  Sierra-Leone,  to 
the  Directors  in  London,  with  other  private  letters, — one  of 
them  dhted" Ruins  of  Free-Town,  October  8th,  1794,'' — corrobo- 
rate every  material  fact  contained  in  the  foregoing  extract,  and 
furnish  some  additional  particulars  of  the  same  outrageous 
character.  "  The  books  of  the  Company's  library,"  we  are  told, 
"  were  scattered  about  and  defaced ;  and  if  they  bore  any  resem- 
blance to  Bibles,  they  were  torn  in  pieces  and  trampled  upon. 
The  dweUing-house  of  the  botanist  (Mr.  Afzelius)  was  pillaged, 
aud  his  collections  destroyed.  In  the  accountant's  office,  all 
was  demolished,  in  the  search  for  money :  the  copying  and 
printiug-presses  also  were  destroyed  :  all  the  telescopes,  baro- 


SIERRA-LEONE.  167 

meters  and  thermometers,  and  an  electrical  machine,  were 
broken  to  pieces,"  Nor  did  these  desperadoes  stop  here ;  for 
"  the  apothecary's  shop  and  medicines  were  also  destroyed : " 
and  on  the  same  day  "  the  church  was  pillaged,  the  books  torn, 
and  the  pulpit  and  clock  broken  to  pieces."  In  a  few  days 
subsequent  to  this,  "the  conflagration  of  all  the  buildings  which 
had  escaped  the  former  fire  commenced  :"  and  now  "the  church, 
a  range  of  shops,"  and  in  fact  every  thing  else  which  could  be 
met  with  belonging  to  the  Compan}',  shared  the  same  fate. 

"On  the  9th  of  October,  the  Company's  largest  ship,  the 
'Harpy,'  arrived  off  Cape  Sierra-Leone  from  England,  having 
several  passengers  on  board,  and  goods  to  the  amount  of 
■£10,000.  The  demolition  of  the  Company's  houses  having 
been  discovered,  she  put  out  again  to  sea,  and  she  appeared  for 
a  time  to  gain  on  the  vessel  which  was  sent  in  chase  of  her; 
but,  the  wind  dying  away,  she  was  overtaken,  and  immediately 
struck.  No  part  of  the  cargo  of  this  ship  was  landed  in  the 
colony,  nor  would  the  commodore  suffer  the  despatches  and 
papers  brought  by  her  to  be  delivered,  a  few  newspapers  excepted. 
The  English  passengers  were  completely  plundered  of  their  pro- 
perty ;  the  Company's  chaplain,  who  went  out  with  her,  was 
deprived  of  all  his  private  papers ;  and  three  natives,  who  had 
been  making  a  voyage  to  England,  lost  all  the  presents  which 
they  were  carrying  back  with  them,  not  excepting  a  part  of 
their  clothes,  which  they  were  obliged  to  exchange  for  others  of 
an  inferior  sort."  * 

On  the  ^8th  of  October,  as  already  mentioned,  the  French 
commodore  set  sail  to  the  southward  with  all  his  fleet,  to  w^hich 
the  "  Harpy  "  was  now  added.  He  had,  however,  sent  on  shore 
about  two  or  three  weeks'  supply  of  provisions  for  the  Europeans 
in  the  colony ;  but  paid  no  attention  to  the  governor's  solicita- 
tion for  any  thing  else.  The  distress  caused  by  this  barbarous 
invasion  is  more  easily  conceived  than  described ;  and  the  pre- 
ceding narrative  furnishes  room  for  many  painful  reflections. 
The  miseries  of  war  are  dreadful,  even  when  the  contest  is  con- 
ducted on  what  are  called  "principles  of  honour:"  but  when 
treachery  wields  the  sword,  or  points  the  cannon,  it  levels  the 
civilized  warrior  with  the  lowest  state  of  barbarian  degradation. 

France  promised  fair,  having  at  the  commencement  of  the 
war  obtained  full  explanation  of  the  designs  of  the  Sierra-Leone 
Company  in  the  formation  of  the  colony ;  and  the  French  Con- 

*  "  Substance  of  the  Report  of  the  Court  of  Directors  of  the  Sierra-Leone  Com- 
pany, (ieliveri'd  to  the  General  Court  of  I'rojirirtors,  rel)ruary  2Gth,  1795." 


1G8  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

vention  directed  one  of  its  agents  to  request  a  list  of  the  ships 
employed  by  them,  assuring  them  of  the  good  wishes  of  the 
French  Government  to  so  noble  an  undertaking,  and  that  nei- 
ther their  ships  nor  the  colony  should  be  injured  by  the  repub- 
lican arms.  That  promise  once  made  to  the  Directors  had 
lulled  both  them  and  the  colonists  into  a  state  of  such  profound 
security,  that  they  could  not  foresee  any  possible  attack,  and 
were  totally  unprepared  for  it  in  the  way  of  defence.  But  the 
preceding  narrative  furnishes  a  brief  history  of  an  outrage  almost 
without  a  parallel  in  the  records  of  civilized  ages.  "  So  well 
had  they  concealed  their  nation,"  with  English-built  vessels, 
manned  by  English-dressed  sailors,  with  the  English  colours 
flying,  that  the  fleet  was  actually  taken  for  the  English,  until 
"  some  men  in  one  of  the  frigates  were  seen  pointing  a  gun  into 
the  piazza  of  the  governor's  house ;  and  the  shot  began  flying 
over  the  town  in  a  few  minutes  after."  Though  the  British 
"colours  were  immediately  struck"  in  the  colony,  "and  a  flag 
of  truce  was  held  out,"  yet  "the  firing  still  continued,  and 
several  grape  and  musket-shot  fell  into  the  piazza."  On  asking 
for  an  explanation  of  this  continued  firing,  the  colonists  were 
told  that  they  "  should  display  the  flag  of  liberty  as  a  proof  of 
their  submission."  The  Sierra-Leone  colony,  as  the  French 
well  knew,  was  established  in  order  to  efl'ect  the  abolition  of  the 
Slave-Trade,  to  enlighten  the  Africans,  and  to  render  them 
virtuous  and  rational,  free  and  happy :  but  these  powerful 
patrons  of  the  "rights  of  men,"  who  knew  the  benevolent 
design,  acted  contrary  to  their  own  acknowledged  fundamental 
doctrines,  in  destroying  a  colony  based  on  similar  principles. 
It  was  thus  that  the  French  executed  their  purpose  of  spreading 
"  light  and  liberty "  through  the  world,  when  they,  under  cir- 
cumstances of  the  most  wanton  cruelty,  destroyed  the  "beautiful 
and  prospering  colony "  at  Sierra-Leone, — a  colony  which  pre- 
viously was  "  externally  respected  and  internally  happy," 
"  rich  in  provisions,  clothing,  and  other  stores,"  but '  was  now 
"  entirely  ruined  "  by  the  depredations  of  this  fleet  of  French 
pirates. 

A  few  weeks  after  the  departure  of  the  French  squadron, 
intelligence  was  received  of  its  having  captured  two  of  the 
Company's  small  trading-vessels  on  their  passage  down  the  coast. 
The  crews  of  these  vessels  were  immediately  put  on  shore,  with- 
out food  or  shelter.  As  many  of  these  as  were  able  made  their 
way  to  Sierra-Leone,  and  their  numbers  increased  the  common 
distress.  Soon  after  this  excitement  was  over,  a  general  sick- 
ness  broke   out   amongst   the    Europeans,   which   was    greatly 


SIERRA-LEONl!.  169 

aggravated  by  the  loss  of  medicines,  as  well  as  by  the  want  of 
proper  provisions. 

It  is  difficult  to  find  any  thing  in  the  shape  of  an  apology  for 
the  conduct  of  the  French  in  this  distressing  and  painful  affair ; 
though  the  Directors,  in  publishing  their  report  of  the  whole 
matter,  very  liberally  admit  a  doubt  whether  the  attack  on 
Sierra-Leone  was  in  any  manner  sanctioned  by  the  Govern- 
ment then  existing  in  France.  They  express  themselves  as 
having  reason  to  believe  that  the  squadron  was  equipped  on  the 
speculation  of  certain  private  individuals,  some  of  them  Slave- 
Traders,  and  acting  as  owners  of  privateers.  One  thing  is 
certain,  and  is  Avorthy  of  special  record, — that  whilst  the  Slave- 
Traders  in  the  neighbourhood  did  all  in  their  power  to  add  to 
the  hardships  of  the  colony  at  that  time,  the  native  chiefs,  on 
the  contrary,  were  unanimous  in  rendering  it  every  assistance. 

Some  good  effects  resulted  from  this  calamitous  visitation. 
It  had  a  most  salutary  influence  on  the  Nova-Scotian  malecon- 
tents;  so  that  harmony  was  for  a  time  completely  restored 
among  the  colonists.  The  French  squadron,  too,  which  had 
been  fitted  out  against  the  English  slave-factories  on  the  coast, 
by  interrupting  the  traffic  in  slaA^es,  increased  the  influence  of 
the  colony,  and  promoted  its  commercial  views. 

The  misfortune  was  also  met  with  firmness  by  the  Directors, 
who  immediately  dispatched  two  small  vessels  with  an  assort- 
ment of  necessaries.  Being  supported  by  the  rectitude  of  their 
own  intentions,  and  the  hope  that  Divine  Providence  would  still 
favour  their  undertaking,  they  did  not  give  way  to  despair. 
They  resolved  to  render  the  distressed  adventurers  all  the  assist- 
ance in  their  power :  and,  with  this,  entreated  them  to 

"  Ply  all  the  sinews  of  industrious  toil, 
Glean  up  the  refuse  of  a  generous  soil, 
Rebuild  the  town  that  smoked  upon  the  plain. 
And  hope  the  sun  would  gild  its  spires  again." 

By  the  spirited  exertions  of  the  Company,  their  affairs  were 
soon  retrieved  from  these  complicated  disasters ;  and  the  ensuing 
four  years  after  the  French  invasion  may  be  considered  as  the 
most  prosperous  period  of  the  colony  prior  to  its  transfer  to  the 
crown. 

"  In  the  year  1798,  Free-Town  contained  about  three  hundred 
houses,  laid  out  with  great  regularity,  besides  many  public 
buildings.  Three  wharves  had  been  erected.  The  government- 
house  was  completed  on  an  eminence  that  commanded  the  town 
and  the  harbour,  and  was  protected  by  a  palisade  and  six  pieces 


170  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 

of  cannon.  The  inhabitants  of  the  colony  were  about  twelve 
hundred;  the  heads  of  families  being  about  three  hundred.  Of 
these,  about  one-half  were  supported  by  their  farms;  many 
were  mechanics ;  and  the  rest  followed  various  occupations,  as 
retail  shopkeepers,  fishermen,  seamen,  &c.  The  town  was  also 
become  a  place  of  considerable  resort  for  the  neighbouring 
natives,  of  whom  from  one  to  two  hundred  daily  visited  the 
settlement,  for  the  purpose  of  exchanging  African  produce  for 
British  manufactures.  Some  came  in  canoes,  from  a  distance 
of  eighty  to  one  hundred  miles.^^  * 

In  the  following  year,  (1799,)  symptoms  of  an  insurrectionary 
spirit,  more  especially  on  the  part  of  the  Nova-Scotians,  which 
had  onl^  been  slumbering,  induced  the  Directors  to  apply  to 
the  British  Government  for  a  Charter  to  increase  the  powers  of 
the  governor  and  council,  who  hitherto  had  been  unarmed  with 
anj^  legal  sanction  to  enforce  their  authority.  The  Charter  was 
granted  in  1800,  creating  the  settlement  an  independent  colony, 
and  placing  the  criminal  jurisdiction  in  the  hands  of  the 
governor.  Before,  however,  it  could  reach  Sierra-Leone,  the 
conspirators,  finding  that  no  time  was  to  be  lost  in  executing 
their  scheme,  which  had  for  its  object  the  complete  overthrow 
of  the  Company's  authority,  broke  out  into  open  rebellion. 
Affairs  were  in  the  most  critical  state,  the  insurgents  out- 
numbering the  loyal  settlers,  and  no  alternative  seemed  left  to 
the  governor  but  to  hazard  an  attack  upon  the  rebels,  when  a 
most  providential  occurrence  rescued  the  colony  once  more  from 
impending  destruction.  A  large  ship,  the  "Asia"  transport, 
appeared  in  the  river,  having  on  board  about  five  hundred  and 
fifty  Maroons  (including  Avomen  and  children)  from  Nova- 
Scotia,  together  with  a  detachment  of  forty-five  soldiers  under 
two  officers  of  His  Majesty's  24th  regiment.  The  rebellion  was 
now  speedily  suppressed,  although  the  insurgents  at  first  treated 
with  contempt  the  offer  of  an  accommodation,  and  obstinately 
maintained  their  hostile  position,  till  they  found  themselves 
attacked.  They  were  routed  at  the  first  onset,  two  of  their 
immber  being  left  dead  on  the  spot.  Thirty-five  prisoners  were 
brought  in,  of  whom  three  were  selected  for  trial,  and  were 
executed ;  the  rest  were  expelled  the  colony.  "  Seven,  who  had 
taken  a  principal  part  in  exciting  the  disturbance,  were  sent  to 
Goree,  and  twenty-five  were  transported  to  the  Bullom  shore ; 
but,  after  a  few  years,  they  were  permitted  to  return  to  the 
colony." 

*  "  Memoirs  o(  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  ii.  p.  58. 


SIERRA-LEONE. 


171 


It  was  the  wish  of  the  governor  and  council  to  procure  for  the 
Maroon  settlers  the  island  of  Bananas,  about  thirty  miles  south 
of  Free-Town;    but   their   intention   was   frustrated,   through 
alarms  raised  in  the  minds  of  the  natives  by  the  Slave-Traders. 
It  was  therefore  determined  upon  to  grant  lands  to  the  Maroons 
on  the  same  side  of  the  river  as  the  Company's  settlement  was 
on.      Town-lots   were    accordingly   marked   out   for    them   in 
Granville-Town,  in  November,  1800 ;  and  farms  were  allotted 
to  them  near  that  place.     They  built  a  neat  town  for  them- 
selves, and  began  to  cultivate  their  farms  with  spirit.     A  parha- 
mentary  grant  indemnified  the  Company  for  part  of  the  heavy 
expenditure  and  loss  they  had  incurred ;  and  a  farther  sum  of 
^£7,000  was  voted  towards  building  a  fort.     A  firmer  system  of 
order  was  beginning  to  prevail,  when  a  sudden  blow  was  again 
aimed  at  the  very  existence  of  the  settlement  by  some  native 
chiefs,  without  any  previous  intimation  or  ground  of  complaint. 
On  the  18th  of  November,  1801,  about  day-break,  a  body  of 
natives  of  tlie  Timmanee  country,  headed  by  ten  of  the  Nova- 
Scotian  insurgents,  who  had  effected  their  escape,   made   an 
assault  on  the  paHsades  of  the  governor's  house.     After  some 
loss  on  both  sides,  the  assailants  were  repulsed,  and  were  pur- 
sued till  they  had  withdrawn  from  the  vicinity.     In  March, 
1802,  a  truce  was  concluded  with  them;  and  some  additional 
troops  having  arrived  from  Goree,  the  peace  of  the  colony  was 
restored.     There  was  reason,  however,  to  apprehend  that  the 
chiefs  who  had  made  this  unforeseen  attack,  were  still  busy  in 
exciting  among  their  countrymen  a  jealousy  of  the  growing 
power  of  the  Sierra-Leone  settlement ;  and  the  Directors  were 
induced  to  present  a  memorial  to  the  British  legislature,  ear- 
nestly invoking  more  efficient  protection. 

Notwithstanding  the  truce  which  had  been  concluded  with 
the  native  chiefs,  the  colony  was  attacked,  in  the  following 
month,  by  a  force  amounting  to  more  than  four  hundred  men, 
among  M'hom  were  eleven  of  the  rebels  who  had  been  banished 
from  the  settlement.  The  attack  was  sudden  and  vigorous; 
and  although  the  assailants  were  again  repulsed  wdth  severe 
loss,  the  spirits  of  the  settlers  were  so  greatly  damped,  that  they 
abandoned  their  farms,  and  the  idea  of  evacuating  the  colony 
became  general.  The  affairs  of  the  Company  were  the  more 
embarrassed  in  consequence  of  the  suspension  of  the  annual 
grants  from  Government,  pending  a  parliamentary  inquiry  which 
was  instituted  in  1803.  In  the  Report  of  the  Committee,  made 
in  the  following  year,  it  was  stated  to  be  their  opinion,  upon  a 
full  consideration  of  the  difficulties  which  continued  to  embar- 


173  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

rass  the  Company,  and  the  interest  which  the  British  Govern- 
ment were  found  to  take  in  the  settlement,  that  the  great 
object  for  which  the  colony  was  undertaken  might  be  more 
effectually  accomplished,  by  a  transfer  of  the  civil  and  military 
authority  of  the  settlement  to  the  crown ;  and  that  it  would  be 
expedient  to  invite  the  proprietors  to  make  a  surrender  of  their 
rights  to  His  Majesty.  In  pursuance  of  this  recommendation, 
not  unacceptable  to  the  Company,  a  Bill  for  transferring  the 
colony  to  the  crown  was  brought  into  Parliament,  which 
received  the  royal  assent  on  the  8th  of  August,  1807;  and  on 
the  1st  of  January,  1808,  the  possession  of  the  settlement  was 
surrendered  to  the  crown,  and  the  Company  withdrew  from  its 
arduous  and  beneficent  enterprise.* 

The  reader  will  have  perceived  that  the  obstacles  which  had 
thwarted  the  plans  of  the  chartered  Company  in  this  noble 
enterprise,  were  neither  few  nor  small.  They  may  be  summed 
up,  however,  in  few  words  : — the  unfavourable  character  of  the 
Nova-Scotians,  who  joined  the  first  settlers ;  the  want  of  suffi- 
cient power  in  the  hands  of  the  local  government ;  the  inade- 
quacy of  its  force  to  restrain  the  aggressions  of  the  neighbour- 
ing natives ;  the  war  with  France  ;  and  the  enmity  of  the  Slave- 
Traders  to  the  principles  on  which  the  colony  -was  founded,  and 
which  to  this  day  make  it  an  eye-sore  to  all  who  are  interested 
in  the  traffic  in  human  beings.  But  though  the  Company  did 
not  succeed  to  the  utmost  of  their  wishes,  it  would  be  unjust  to 
say  that  they  had  laboured  in  vain.  On  the  transfer  of  the 
colony  of  Sierra-Leone  to  the  British  Government,  the  Com- 
pany's Directors  published  the  following  statement,  which  satis- 
factorily demonstrated  the  success  of  the  Company  in  the  attain- 
ment of  its  most  important  objects,  and  was  calculated  to  con- 
vince every  proprietor  that  his  money  had  been  expended  to  a 
noble  purpose : — 

However  great  may  have  been  the  Company's  loss  in  a  pecuniary  view,  the 
Directors  are  unwilling  to  admit  that  there  has  been  a  total  failure  in  their  main 
objects,  or  that  their  capital  has  been  expended  without  effect.  It  must  afford 
satisfaction  to  reflect,  that  the  Company  should  both  have  conceived  and  attempted 
to  execute  those  plans  of  beneficence  which  led  to  the  institution  of  the  colony  j 
and  that  they  should  have  continued  to  pursue  them  for  so  many  years,  in  the  face 
of  opposition,  disappointment,  and  loss  ;  in  spite  of  severe  calamities,  arising  from 
European  as  well  as  African  wars,  and  much  turbulence  on  the  part  of  the  colo- 
nists. The  proprietors  have  the  farther  satisfaction  of  knowing,  that  the  Company 
have  contributed  to  the  abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade,  by  exposing  its  real  nature 
before  the  view  of  a  hesitating  legislature,  and  detecting  the  artifices  and  misrepre- 
sentations by  which  the  persons  engaged  in  it  laboured  to  delude  the  public. 

*  "  Memoirs  of  Granville  Sharp,"  vol.  ii.  pp.  59 — 77. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  173 

The  Company  have  communicated  the  benefits  flowing  from  a  knowledge  of  let- 
ters, and  from  Christian  instruction,  to  hundreds  of  Negroes  on  the  coast  of  Africa  ; 
and,  by  a  careful  education  in  this  country,  they  have  elevated  the  character  of 
several  of  the  children  of  African  chiefs,  and  directed  their  minds  to  objects  of  the 
very  first  importance  to  their  countrymen.  They  have  ascertained  that  the  cultiva- 
tion of  any  valuable  article  of  tropical  export  may  be  carried  on  in  Africa ;  that 
Africans,  in  a  state  of  freedom,  are  susceptible  of  the  same  motives  to  industry  and 
laborious  exertion  which  influence  the  natives  of  Europe ;  and  that  some  African 
chiefs  are  sufficiently  enlightened  to  comprehend,  and  sufficiently  patriotic  to  encou- 
rage, schemes  of  improvement.  They  have  demonstrated  that  Negroes  may  be 
governed  by  the  same  mild  laws  which  are  found  consistent  with  the  maintenance 
of  rational  liberty  even  in  this  kingdom ;  and  that  they  may  be  safely  and  advan- 
tageously intrusted  with  the  administration  of  these  laws,  not  only  as  jurors,  but 
even  as  judicial  assessors.  They  have,  in  some  measure,  retrieved  the  credit  of  the 
British — it  may  be  added,  of  the  Christian — name,  on  the  continent  of  Africa ;  and 
have  convinced  its  inhabitants  that  there  are  Englishmen  who  are  actuated  by  very 
different  motives  from  those  of  self-interest,  and  who  desire  nothing  so  much  as 
their  improvement  and  happiness.  To  conclude :  they  have  established,  in  a  cen- 
tral part  of  Aft-ica,  a  colony  which  appears  to  be  now  provided  with  adequate 
means  both  of  defence  and  subsistence ;  which,  by  the  blessing  of  Providence,  may 
become  an  emporium  of  commerce,  a  school  of  industry,  and  a  soiu"ce  of  know- 
ledge, civilisation,  and  religious  improvement  to  the  inhabitants  of  that  continent ; 
and  wliich  may  hereafter  repay  to  Great  Britain  the  benefits  she  shall  have  commu- 
nicated, by  opening  a  continually-increasing  market  for  those  manufactures  which 
are  now  no  longer  secure  of  their  accustomed  vent  on  the  continent  of  Europe. 

The  Directors  are  persuaded  that  they  only  express  the  general  feeling  of  the 
proprietary,  when  they  say,  that  they  cannot  prevail  upon  themselves  to  consider 
these  eflfects  as  an  insignificant  retiu'n  for  any  pecuniary  sacrifices  which  have  been 
incurred  for  their  attainment. 

It  was  with  sentiments  and  feelings  of  this  description,  that 
the  Sierra-Leone  Company  withdrew  its  official  connexion  from 
that  interesting  colony ;  bearing  with  it  the  grateful  conscious- 
ness, that  it  had  humanely  and  vigorously  seconded  the  merito- 
rious efforts  of  its  celebrated  founder.  It  is  a  pleasing  feature 
in  the  history  of  this  settlement,  that  the  same  year  which  ter- 
minated the  Sierra-Leone  Company,  witnessed  the  formation  of 
the  "African  Institution, "  which  was  composed  of  a  large  body 
of  the  most  virtuous  and  respectable  persons  in  this  country, 
whose  objects  were  somewhat  similar  to  those  of  the  former 
Company;  namely,  the  improvement  and  civilisation  of  the 
African  continent.  It  is  also  worthy  of  further  remark,  that  in 
the  course  of  the  year  1807,  peace  had  been  fully  established  by 
a  treaty  with  the  native  chiefs ;  and  that  at  the  time  of  the  sur- 
render of  the  territory  to  Government,  the  colony  "  had  attained 
to  a  situation  of  comparative  strength  and  prosperity.  The 
fortifications  had  been  so  far  advanced,  as  to  communicate  to  it 
a  sense  of  complete  security.  Its  internal  order  had  gone  on 
improving ;  the  confidence  of  the  natives  had  been  restored ; 


174  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

and  the  number  of  native  children  sent  to  Sierra-Leone  for 
education,  continued  to  increase.  The  colonists  were  building 
good  houses,  and  showed  other  marks  of  growing  prosperity. 
Cultivation  was  reviving.  The  colony  Avas  also  improving  in 
healthiness.  During  the  first  half  of  the  last  year,  the  propor- 
tion of  births  to  deaths  was  as  twenty-three  to  fourteen.  None 
of  the  troops  had  died  in  that  time ;  and,  of  the  Company's  ser- 
vants, only  one  had  died  since  the  1st  of  January,  1806."  * 

The  population,  in  the  year  1807,  amounted  to  one  thousand 
eight  hundred  and  seventy-one  persons;  and  it  will  be  seen 
from  the  preceding  quotation,  that  though  the  Company  was  a 
failure,  as  far  as  mercantile  profit  was  concerned,  yet  the  other 
and  more  important  objects  which  it  had  in  view  were  satis- 
factorily promoted.  Schools,  places  of  worship,  agriculture,  and 
the  habits  of  civilized  life  were  introduced ;  so  that  the  Sierra- 
Leone  Company  may  be  regarded  as  having  fixed  the  basis,  and 
laid  the  foundation,  for  the  civilization  of  Africa. 

The  following  is  the  succession  of  governors  of  Sierra-Leone 
from  the  commencement  of  the  settlement : — J.  Clarkson,  Esq., 
superintendent,  March,  1793.  W.  Dawes,  Esq.,  December, 
1792.  Z.  Macaulay,  Esq.,  2^ro  temp.,  April,  1794.  W.  Dawes, 
Esq.,  returns,  1795.  Z.  Macaulay,  Esq.,  governor,  1796.  T. 
Ludlam,  Esq.,  pro  temp.,  1799.  W.  Dawes,  Esq.,  January,  1801. 
Captain  W.  Day,  E.N.,  February,  1803.  J.  Ludlam,  Esq., 
August,  1803.     T.  P.  Thompson,  Esq.,  July,  1808. 

*  "Last  Report  of  the  Directors  of  the  Sierra-Leoue  Company,"  1808,  p.  11. 


.i'  'H 


CHAPTER  X. 

SIERRA-LEONE. 

Situation  of  the  Colony — The  Principles  on  ■which  it  was  founded — View  and 
Description  of  Siei-ra-Leone  in  1796 — The  African  Institution — Capture  of 
Slave-Vessels— Disposal  of  the  captured  Negroes — State  of  the  Colony  in 
1816-1818 — Number  of  Villages  erected — Major  Gray's  Statement  respect- 
ing the  Colony  in  1821 — Continuance  of  the  Slave-Trade — Reports  of  the 
Colony  in  1821-1823 — -Letter  from  Sir  Charles  Macarthy — Sierra-Leone 
Gazette — Great  Mortality  in  1823 — Lamented  Death  of  Sir  Charles  Macarthy 
in  1824 — Successive  Governors — Mortality — Commission  of  Inquiry  into  the 
State  of  Sierra-Leone — Hostility  to  the  Colony — The  Expenditure  reduced — 
Some  Statistics  in  1833 — Population  in  1838  and  in  1846 — The  Settlers — 
Maroons  and  liberated  Africans — Miserable  Condition  of  the  latter  on  being 
landed — Dr.  Fergusson's  "  Letter  on  the  Character  of  the  liberated  Africans  " 
— Extract  from  "  Letters  from  Sierra-Leone,  by  a  Lady  " — Moral  Means — A 
Tribute  to  the  Church  Missionary  Society. 

The  peninsula  of  Sierra-Leone  is  situated  in  8°  30'  N.  lat., 
and  in  about  13^°  W.  long.  The  etymology  of  the  name  is 
somewhat  disputed ;  some  contending  that  it  imports  "  the 
Mountains  of  Lions/^  from  the  presumption  that  these  monarchs 
of  the  forest  were  plentiful  in  that  locality ;  whilst  others  have 
doubted  this  fact^  and  are  of  opinion  that  the  name  "  Sierra- 
Leone^^  was  given  by  the  first  discoverers  to  the  "mountains/' 
on  account  of  the  "  tremendous  roaring  of  the  thunder,"  which 
frequently  echoes  along  the  sides  of  the  hills  and  on  the  tops  of 
the  mountains,  and  the  effect  of  which  is  felt  in  the  valleys, 
and  even  on  board  the  ships. 

Free-Town,  the  capital,  is  situated  on  the  south  side  of  the 
river,  on  a  gentle  rising  ground  at  the  foot  of  a  hill,  at  the  dis- 
tance of  about  five  miles  from  Cape  Sierra-Leone.  Its  name 
sufiiciently  indicates  the  principles  on  which  the  colony  was 
established ;  but  as  a  further  illustration  of  this,  Ave  find,  in  the 
third  edition  of  the  "Temporary  Regulations,^^  published  in 
1788,  one  of  its  fundamental  laws  thus  laid  down  :  "  As  soon  as 
a  slave  shall  set  his  foot  within  the  bounds  of  the  new  settle- 
ment, he  shall  be  deemed  a  free  man,  and  be  equally  entitled, 
with  the  rest  of  the  inhabitants,  to  the  protection  of  the  laws, 
and  to  all  the  natural  rights  of  humanity."  Another  regulation 
was,  "  That  the  common  council  of  the  settlement  be  assembled 
according  to  the  ancient  established  rules  of  country  courts, 
namely,   '  twice    every  year,    and    more   often,   if   need   be.' " 


176 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


Another  important  rule,  referring  to  ecclesiastics,  was,  "  That 
no  clergyman,  who  receives  a  salary  as  such,  within  the  bounds 
of  the  settlement,  shall  enter  into  trade."  When  the  transfer  of 
the  colony  to  the  crown  took  place  in  1807,  the  Act  strictly  for- 
bade the  trafl&c  in  slaves  within  the  settlement,  and  continued 
to  the  colonists  the  full  enjoyment  of  all  the  rights  which  they 
had  possessed  under  the  authority  of  the  Company. 

It  has  been  already  stated,  that  the  year  which  terminated 
the  Sierra-Leone  Company,  gave  birth  to  a  kindred  company 
of  benevolent  gentlemen,  who  formed  what  was  called  "  the 
African  Institution  /'  and,  as  Great  Britain  abolished  the  Slave- 
Trade  the  very  same  year,  Sierra-Leone  was  now  selected  by  the 
Government  as  a  fit  place  for  locating  those  slaves  who  should 
be  forcibly  rescued  from  the  pestilential  confinement  of  the 
slave-ship  by  British  cruisers.  Accordingly,  soon  after  the  Act 
for  abolishing  the  Slave-Trade  was  passed  in  England,  a  Court 
of  Vice- Admiralty  was  established  at  Sierra-Leone,  for  the  pur- 
pose of  giving  full  effect,  in  the  colony,  to  the  provisions  of  the 
Act ;  and  it  is  still  maintained  for  the  same  object, — an  object 
which  reflects  more  honour  on  the  British  name  than  the  subju- 
gation of  nations,  or  the  conquest  of  empires. 

Few  colonies  have  had  more  difficulties  to  contend  with,  or 
have  been  more  misrepresented,  than  Sierra-Leone.  In  the 
advocacy  of  its  friends  it  is  easy  to  detect  the  bias  of  party  pre- 
judice ;  and  in  the  attacks  of  its  foes,  the  rancour  of  interested 
hostility.  But  into  this  violent  controversy  it  is  not  my  busi- 
ness to  enter :  my  limits  compel  brevity.  Suffice  it  to  say  that 
Sierra-Leone  has  been  represented,  both  by  French  and  English 
writers,  as  displaying  a  scene  of  surpassing  beauty.  "  Europe," 
says  Golberry,  "  may  present  prospects  more  rich  and  brilliant  ; 
but  in  no  part  of  the  world  can  there  be  found  a  site  so 
delightful  as  the  Bay  of  Sierra-Leone."  And  Rankin  observes, 
"  No  site  for  a  town  more  lovely  could  have  been  selected,  had 
charms  to  the  eye  been  the  sole  guide."  On  the  other  hand,  it 
has  been  described  as  "  the  worst  place  that  possibly  could  have 
been  chosen,  whether  considered  in  a  political,  or  in  a  commer- 
cial, or  in  an  agricultural  point  of  view ; "  as  "  a  pestiferous 
charnel-house,"  and  "a  detestable  place,  having  no  one  good 
quality  to  recommend  it."  Avoiding  both  these  extremes,  it 
may  with  truth  be  said  that  the  view  of  Sierra-Leone  from  the 
sea  is  interesting,  and  somewhat  picturesque.  The  reader  may 
form  some  idea  of  it  from  the  accompanying  engraving,  which 
gives  a  tolerably  correct  view  of  Free-ToAvn  as  it  now  is.  Dr. 
Winterbottom,  in  the  interesting  work  which  he  pviblished  in 


SIERRA-LEOXE.  177 

1803,  gives  also  a  very  correct  sketch  of  this  colony,  as  it  then 
was;  or  rather  as  it  veas  in  1796,  when  Dr.  Winterbottora  left 
the  coast.  The  town  and  colony  have,  of  course,  very  much 
improved  since  that  period ;  but  the  landscape  and  the  position 
of  Free-Town  are  much  the  same.  He  says,  "The  land 
forming  the  peninsula  of  Sierra-Leone,  when  viewed  from  the 
sea,  or  from  the  opposite  shore,  called  BuUom,  appears  like  a 
number  of  hills  heaped  upon  each  other  in  a  very  irregular  man- 
ner. On  a  nearer  approach  the  face  of  the  country  assumes  a 
more  beautiful  aspect.  The  rugged  appearance  of  these  moun- 
tains is  softened  by  the  lively  verdure  with  which  they  are  con- 
stantly crowned;  their  majestic  forms,  irregularly  advancing 
and  receding,  occasion  huge  masses  of  light  and  shade  to  be 
projected  from  their  sides,  which  add  a  degree  of  picturesque 
grandeur  to  the  scene.  The  most  craggy  and  inaccessible  parts 
of  the  mountains  are  covered  with  forests  of  immense  growth, 
which  yield 

'  A  boundless  deep  immensity  of  shade. 
Here  lofty  trees,  to  ancient  song  unknown, 
The  noble  sons  of  potent  heat  and  floods 
Prone  rushing  from  the  clouds,  rear  high  to  heaven 
Their  thorny  stems,  and  broad  around  them  throw 
Meridian  gloom.' 

The  lower  grounds  which  are  cultivated,  present  a  considerable 
degree  of  verdure  through  the  whole  year,  which,  contrasted 
with  the  darker  hues  of  the  more  distant  hills,  forms  a  spectacle 
highly  grateful  to  the  eye."* 

In  speaking  of  the  capital,  the  same  writer  observes,  "  Free- 
Town  is  situated  on  the  south  side  of  the  river  Sierra-Leone, 
about  six  miles  from  its  mouth,  upon  a  piece  of  ground  which 
rises  abruptly  from  the  water's  edge  to  the  height  of  at  least 
fifty  feet,  and  then  proceeds  with  a  gentle  and  gradual  ascent 
for  about  three  quarters  of  a  mile,  till  it  reaches  the  foot  of  a 
chain  of  mountains  running  nearly  in  an  E.S.E.  and  W.N.W. 
direction.  The  town  is  bounded  on  the  N.W.  by  St.  George's 
Bay,  on  the  E.  by  another  small  bay  called  Susan's  Bay,  and 
on  the  S.  are  the  mountains  already  mentioned.  It  extends 
about  one-third  of  a  mile  in  length,  and  nearly  the  same  in 
breadth,  and  contains  about  seventy  or  eighty  acres.  The 
number  of  houses  amounts  to  between  three  and  four  hundred ; 
and  they  are  disposed  in  regular  streets,  of  which  nine  run  in  a 
straight  line  towards  the  mountains,  in  a  north-west  and  south- 

*  Dr.  Winterbottom's  "  Account  of  the  Native  Africans  in  the  Neighbourhood 
of  Sierra-Leone,"  vol.  i.  pp.  16,  17. 


178  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

east  direction.  These  streets  are  intersected,  at  right  angles,  by 
three  cross  streets,  which  run  parallel  to  the  shore.  They  are 
all  eighty  feet  in  breadth,  except  the  parallel  street  nearest  the 
water,  which  is  double  the  breadth  of  the  others. 

"  Each  house  stands  separate,  and  has  a  small  garden  attached 
to  it ;  forty-eight  feet,  by  seventy-six,  being  the  space  allotted 
for  each  family  to  build  upon.  Before  the  town  was  destroyed  by 
the  French,  the  principal  public  buildings  were  placed  in  the 
widest  street,  which  was  terminated  by  the  governor's  house, 
situated  upon  a  point  of  land  at  the  north-western  extremity 
of  Free-Town.  All  these,  however,  together  with  every  other 
building  which  had  the  appearance  of  superior  neatness,  were 
unfeehngly  devoted  to  the  flames,  in  October,  1794,  by  the 
French.  The  dwelling-houses  of  the  Nova-Scotian  settlers, 
which  constitute  the  chief  part  of  the  town,  consisted,  during 
the  first  two  years,  almost  entirely  of  thatched  buildings;  but 
since  that  period  they  have  procured  for  themselves  more  com- 
fortable habitations.  They  at  present  consist  chiefly  of  wooden 
buildings,  about  thirty  feet  in  length,  and  fifteen  in  breadth, 
divided  into  rooms  by  partitions,  and  raised  two  or  three  feet 
from  the  ground.  The  floors,  also,  instead  of  being  formed  of 
earth,  are  now  boarded ;  and  the  roofs  of  many  of  them  are 
covered  with  shingles,  or  thin  pieces  of  wood,  about  six  inches 
in  breadth,  and  three  feet  in  length,  placed  over  each  other 
like  the  tiles  of  a  house.  In  general  there  are  no  chimneys  in 
these  houses  ;  the  fire  for  culinary  purposes  being  made  in  the 
open  air,  or  in  a  detached  building.  The  present  residence  of 
the  governor  of  Sierra-Leone  is  a  handsome  wooden  building 
of  one  story,  surrounded  by  a  spacious  piazza.  It  is  situated 
upon  a  small  round  hill,  elevated  about  an  hundred  and  fifty 
feet  above  the  level  of  the  water,  and  placed  between  the  town 
and  the  foot  of  the  mountains.  From  this  eminence,  called 
Thornton-Hill,  the  eye  takes-in  a  most  extensive  prospect,  and 
dwells  with  pleasure  upon  the  surrounding  picturesque  scenery, 
in  Avhich  the  milder  beauties  of  nature  are  agreeably  blended 
with  those  of  a  more  solemn  and  sublime  appearance."  * 

We  may  remark,  that  the  town  being  situated  upon  a  gentle 
slope  renders  it  dry,  and  its  elevation  exposes  it  to  the  regular 
sea  and  laud  breezes.  The  situation  is  also  well  adapted  for 
trade,  being  placed  upon  the  banks  of  a  river  accessible  at  all 
times  to  vessels  of  the  greatest  burden,  which  may  lie  in  safety 
close  to  the  shore.     Near  it  are  various  bays  which  ofl^er  every 

*  Dr.  Winterbottom's  "  Account  of  the  Native  Africans  in  the  Neighbourhood 
of  Sierra-Leone,"  vol.  i.  pp.  275 — 277. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  179 

convenience  for  repairing  of  vessels,  or  for  the  construction  of 
docks.  It  is,  moreover,  well  supplied  with  excellent  water, 
which  may  be  procured  in  any  quantity  with  great  facility.  It 
has,  however,  one  drawback, — the  want  of  an  inland  naviga- 
tion ;  the  Sierra-Leone  river,  and  those  contiguous  to  it,  being 
comparatively  of  small  magnitude.  With  this  exception,  the 
situation  seems  admirably  adapted  for  all  the  purposes  its  bene- 
volent friends  contemplated;  and  it  may  be  justly  questioned 
whether  a  more  eligible  site  could  have  been  selected  on  the 
whole  coast  south  of  the  Senegal. 

The  reader  will  bear  in  mind  that  the  preceding  account  of 
Free-Town  with  its  "  wooden  buildings "  refers  to  the  year 
1796,  only  two  years  after  its  almost  entire  destruction  by  the 
French  squadron,  which  sufficiently  accounts  for  the  want  of 
stone  edifices.  Soon  after  this  the  town  began  again  rapidly  to 
rise  :  but  as  we  have  already  traced  its  history  up  to  1807,  we 
pass  on  to  that  and  subsequent  periods. 

The  African  Institution  was  formed  at  that  memorable  epoch 
when,  by  parliamentary  enactments,  the  African  Slave-Trade 
ceased  to  be  the  crime  and  the  reproach  of  Britain  ;  and  it  was 
principally  composed  of  persons  who  had  distinguished  them- 
selves by  their  indefatigable  exertions  to  procure  the  abolition 
of  that  abominable  traffic.  Its  objects  were,  to  watch  over  the 
execution  of  this  Act  of  the  legislature  for  the  protection  of  the 
natives  of  Africa ;  to  seize  every  favourable  opportunity  for 
exciting  in  surrounding  nations  a  proper  interest  in  the  subject ; 
and  to  promote,  by  every  means  in  its  power,  the  diffusion  of 
light  and  knowledge  in  regions  which  had  hitherto  been  kept  in 
darkness  and  ignorance  by  the  operation  of  a  system  disgraceful 
to  the  Christian  name,  and  derogatory  to  the  character  of  civil- 
ized man.  It  was  proposed  to  make  the  natives  acquainted 
with  the  comforts  of  social  order,  and  with  the  useful  mechanical 
arts  ;  to  point  out  the  manner  in  which  they  might  avail  them- 
selves of  the  natural  products  of  their  country,  by  substituting  an 
innocent  for  a  guilty  traffic ;  and,  above  all,  to  prepare  the  way 
for  that  greatest  of  blessings,  a  knowledge  of  the  Christian 
religion. 

Such  being  the  great  objects  with  which  the  Institution  set 
out,  Sierra-Leone  very  naturally  and  immediately  fell  under  its 
fostering  care  ;  and  the  African  Institution  ever  after  watched 
over  that  colony  with  a  paternal  solicitude. 

The  first  of  a  series  of  resolutions  which  were  adopted  at  the 
formation  of  the  Institution,  on  the  14th  of  April,  1807,  will  be 
sufficient  to  show  the  benevolent   intentions  of  the  fouudei's 

N  2 


180 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


of  that  society  with  regard  to  Sierra-Leone: — "1.  That  this 
meeting   is  deeply  impressed  with   a   sense  of  the   enormous 
wrongs  which  the  natives  of  Africa  have  suflfered  in  their  inter- 
course with  Europe ;  and,  from  a  desire  to  repair  those  wrongs, 
as  well  as  from  general  feelings  of  benevolence,  is  anxious  to 
adopt  such  measures  as  are  best  calculated  to  promote  their 
civilisation  and  happiness."     The  first  measure  adopted  by  the 
Committee  of  the  Institution  was  to  open  a  correspondence  with 
such  persons  in  Africa  as  were  likely  to  be  useful  in  promoting 
the    Society ^s   views.      They   accordingly   communicated    with 
gentlemen  in  different  parts  of  the  coast ;  but  to  the  governor 
of  Sierra-Leone   they  wrote   more   at   large,   as    Sierra-Leone 
appeared  to  them  the  place  where  their  efforts  for  the  improve- 
ment of  Africa  might  most  advantageously  commence.     And 
though  they  had  explicitly  stated  in  the  "  Rules  and  Regula- 
tions," that  it  was-  the   Society's  fixed    determination    not   to 
undertake  any  religious  missions,  nor  to  engage  in  commercial 
speculations ;  yet  they  were  disposed  to  assist  in  the  diffusion 
of  light  and  knowledge ;  and  they  requested  full  information 
respecting  the   natural   productions  of  the    country,  its    agri- 
cultural and  commercial  facilities,  and  the  moral,  intellectual, 
and  political  condition  of  its  inhabitants.     They  further  pro- 
posed to  appropriate  a  part  of  the  Society's  funds  in  the  erection 
and  support  of  a  school  at  Sierra-Leone,  in  which,  in  addition 
to  the  usual  branches  of  elementary  knowledge,  such  as  reading 
and  writing,  they  should  furnish  instruction  in  agriculture  and 
other  useful  arts.     But  as  the  great  object  of  the  Institution 
was  to  watch  over  the  execution  of  the  Act  of  the  legislature  for 
the  protection  of  the  natives  of  Africa,  they  directed  the  atten- 
tion of  the  governor  of  Sierra-Leone  especially  to  this  subject. 

One  of  the  principal  difficulties  against  which  the  Sierra- 
Leone  Company  had  had  to  contend,  Avas  the  accursed  Slave- 
Trade.  It  had  almost  depopulated  the  neighbourhood  of  Sierra- 
Leone,  and  English  Slave-Traders  were  permitted  to  the  last  to 
frequent  that  locality,  and  to  trade  even  in  the  river  itself.  But 
no  sooner  had  the  Act  passed  prohibiting  the  subjects  of  Britain 
from  engaging  in  that  detestable  traffic,  and  empowering  the 
Admiralty  to  treat  all  such  as  pirates,  than  the  eyes  of  the 
native  chiefs  were  fully  opened  as  to  the  real  object  and  forma- 
tion of  the  colony.  Previously  to  this  the  Africans  might  well 
conceive,  as  they  generalh^  did,  that  a  white  man  or  trader 
visiting  the  coast  could  have  no  other  design  in  courting  his 
acquaintance  than  to  make  a  slave  of  him  :  but  now  that  the 
British   cruisers  were  employed   in  capturing   slave-ships,   and 


SIERRA-LEONE. 


181 


actual!}^  brought  them  to  Sierra-Leone  with  the  hving  cargo  on 
board,  when  the  chains  of  the  slaves  were  immediately  knocked 
off,  and  meat,  drink,  and  clothing  given  to  them  ;  now,  when 
the  natives  beheld  hundreds  of  their  fellow-countrymen  rescued 
from  the  horrors  of  the  slave-ship  and  from  slavery  itself,  and 
enjoying  the  liberty  of  British  subjects  ;  they  had  living,  unmis- 
takeable  proofs  of  the  good  faith  and  genuine  philanthropy  of  the 
English ;  and  notwithstanding  "  the  enormous  wrongs "  which 
the  Africans  had  suffered  in  their  intercourse  with  European 
nations,  and  with  Great  Britain  amongst  the  rest,  they  were 
now  fully  convinced  that  there  were  Englishmen  who  abhorred 
the  Slave-Trade,  and  who,  far  from  kidnapping  the  merchant  or 
labourer  who  should  put  himself  in  their  power,  v»'ere  desirous 
of  nothing  but  his  improvement  and  happiness.* 

The  first  slave-ship  that  was  captured  and  condemned  at 
Sierra-Leone,  as  far  as  I  have  been  able  to  ascertain,  was  the 
schooner  "  Marie  Paul.^^  The  seizure  took  place  on  November 
10th,  1808.  The  number  of  slaves  is  not  specified  in  the 
Eeturns ;  but  they  were  all  liberated,  and  the  ship  and  cargo 
were  condemned ;  and  against  this  there  was  "  no  appeal." 
During  the  same  month,  two  other  slavers  were  captured  and 
condemned  at  the  same  place;  and  again  there  was  "no 
appeal."  f 

On  the  slave-ship  being  taken  into  Sierra-Leone,  the  unhappy 
captives  were  set  on  shore :  such  as  seemed  fit  for  military 
service  were  conveyed  to  the  barracks ;  others  were  apprenticed 
to  the  settlers,  or  those  who  wished  to  engage  them ;  and  the 
rest  were  employed  for  a  given  time  under  the  direction  of  the 

*  To  show,  however,  that  some  of  the  natives  were  a  Uttle  sceptical  upon  the 
subject,  still  doubting  the  fact  of  this  friendly  feeUng  on  the  part  of  all  the  vessels 
which  came  even  from  England,  I  extract  the  following  anecdote  from  the 
"Meniou-s  of  Granville  Sharp."  The  biographer  received  it  fi-oni  a  respectable 
nobleman,  the  eariy  part  of  whose  hfe  was  passed  in  His  late  Majesty's  service  in 
the  nav}' ;  and  he  gives  it  in  that  nobleman's  own  words,  as  follows  :— 

"  The  late  Admu-al  Matthew  Buckle  commanded  a  small  squadi-on  on  the  coast 
of  Africa,  and  had  a  broad  pendant  on  board  the  '  Assistance,'  of  fifty  guns.  One 
day,  while  at  anchor  on  the  coast,  a  Negro  came  oif  with  his  canoe,  loaded  with 
fruits,  and  all  that  he  had  that  was  valuable.  The  commodore  being  on  the 
quarter-deck,  the  Negro  accosted  him  with,  '  What  ship  this  ? '  The  other  replied, 
in  the  jargon  of  the  country,  '  King  George  ship,  man-of-war  ship.'  The  Negro 
replied,  doubting,  '  No,  you  Bristol  ship.'  The  commodore  repeated  what  he  had 
said  ;  but  the  Negro  felt  his  fears  increase,  and,  exclaiming,  '  Dom  your  heart,  you 

Bristol  ship,' leaped  overboard,  leaving  his  canoe  to  its  fate I  need  scarcely 

add,"  said  the  nan-ator,  "  that  tlie  canoe  was  humanely  towed  on  shore,  where  the 
owner  was  most  Ukely  to  tind  it." 

t  "  Eighth  Report  of  the  African  Institution,"  p.  69. 


182  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

local  government,  to  inure  them  to  habits  of  industry^  and  to 
teach  them  the  arts  of  civilized  life ;  after  which  they  obtained 
assignments  of  ground,  by  the  cultivation  of  which  they  might 
earn  their  own  subsistence.  It  was  soon  proved  to  a  demonstra- 
tion that  the  free  Negroes  are  capable  of  being  governed  by  mild 
laws,  and  require  neither  whips  nor  chains  to  enforce  their  sub- 
mission to  civil  authority.  From  these  importations,  and  other 
causes,  the  population  rapidly  increased.  In  1811,  Sierra- 
Leone  and  its  environs  contained  not  less  than  4,000  persons  ; 
and  in  1815,  the  census  included  10,000  souls. 

The  preceding  mode  of  disposing  of  the  captured  Negroes 
was  appointed  by  an  Order  in  Council  of  the  parent  Govern- 
ment, under  the  provisions  of  the  Abolition  Act :  and  in  the 
official  Return  communicated  to  the  Secretary  of  State,  it 
appears  that,  up  to  July  9th,  1814,  Negroes  to  the  following 
amount  were  received  into  the  colony  of  Sierra-Leone,  and 
disposed  of  in  the  ways  here  stated  : — 

Settled  in  the  colony,  namely,  as  free  labourers,  carpenters, 
sawyers,  masons,  blacksmiths,  &c. ;  living  in  the  mountains 
on  their  farms ;  the  girls  at  school ;  the  women  married  in 

the  Royal  African  Corps,  &c 2,757 

Entered  into  His  Majesty's  land  service,  men  and  boys  1,861 

AVomen  married  to  soldiers  at  the  recruiting  depot 65 

Left  the  colony,  being  chiefly  natives  of  the  surrounding  Tim- 

mannee,  Mandingo,  Bidlom,  and  Loosoo  countries 419 

Apprentices  whose  indentm-es  are  in  force  at  the  present  time     ...  347 

Entered  into  His  Majesty's  navy 107 

Apprenticed  out  of  the  colony 68 

Living  as  servants  at  Goree 12 

At  the  Lancasterian  school  in  England    3 

Stolen  from  the  colony ;   two  to  the  Havannah,  and  one  to  the 

Kroo  country  3 

Died,  chiefly  of  the  scurs'v  and  di'opsy,  caught  on  board 283 

Total    5,925* 

Letters  received  from  Sierra-Leone,  dated  February,  1816, 
give  a  favourable  account  of  the  progress  of  the  colony.  The 
conduct  of  the  settlers  is  said  to  differ  very  little  from  that  of 
the  generality  of  Enghsh  villagers.  They  are  chiefly  engaged 
in  trading  speculations.  The  captured  Negroes,  on  the  other 
hand,  subsist  solely  by  agriculture :  Sierra-Leone  is  supplied 
with  fruit  and  vegetables  almost  exclusively  from  their  planta- 
tions. Many  intermarriages  between  the  Nova-Scotian  and 
Maroon  settlers  had  taken  place,  which,  it  was  thought,  would 

*  "  Ninth  Report  of  the  African  Institution,"  p.  63. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  183 

result  in  the  improvement  of  both.  All  the  settlers  are  now 
married  in  the  manner  prescribed  by  the  church;  and  the 
institution  of  marriage  gains  ground  even  among  the  captured 
Negroes. 

In  the  Eleventh  Keport  of  the  African  Institution,  there  is  an 
interesting  communication  from  Dr.  Hogan,  the  Chief  Justice 
of  Sierra-Leone,  dated  October,  1816,  in  which  he  makes  the 
following  judicious  remarks  : — 

I  have  always  thought,  that  in  the  infancy  of  such  a  settlement,  the  certainty  of 
its  striking  a  deep  root  was  tlie  most  important  point,  and  ought  to  be  the  main 
consideration.  The  little  vicissitudes  of  occasional  blight  or  partial  bloom,  if  they 
do  not  materially  affect  the  vitality  of  the  trunk,  are  scarcely  ever  worthy  of  the 
attention  of  a  statesman,  who  wishes  to  legislate  for  a  lengthened  series  of  genera- 
tions, and  to  provide  for  the  interests  of  a  remote  posterity.  I  compassionate  the 
weakness,  therefore,  that  can  dwell  with  emphasis  upon  the  minute  fractions  of 
good  or  of  evil  which  may  have  resulted  from  any  particular  system  of  measures  at 
such  a  period  of  prematurity.  For  my  own  part,  I  am  perfectly  satisfied  to  find  a 
solid  foundation  of  British  pre-eminence,  and  of  African  civilization,  laid  here 
within  the  short  space  of  one  quarter  of  a  century.  A  population  of  ten  thousand 
free  men  collected  upon  one  spot  so  favourably  situated,  and  guided  and  governed 
with  a  view  to  such  noble  and  ennobling  objects,  forms  too  grand  a  stride  in  the 
moral  march  of  human  affairs,  not  to  fix  the  attention  of  an  enlightened  observer, 
and  cast  into  the  shade  every  lesser  consideration.  Wlien  it  is  remembered  besides, 
that  the  numbers  now  actually  in  a  coiu-se  of  intellectual  cultivation  in  the  various 
schools  and '  public  institutions  in  this  colony  exceed  one  thousand,  you  wiU  do 
justice  to  the  feeling  that  leads  me  to  the  indulgence  of  prospective,  rather  than  of 
retrospective,  views,  to  a  calm  and  encouraging  anticipation  of  the  future,  in  pre- 
ference to  a  captious  discussion  of  the  past ;  to  a  settled,  firm,  and  immovable  con- 
viction, that  the  good  or  the  e\'il  management  of  former  times  can  have  no  other 
effect,  in  the  revival  of  contentious  questions  respecting  it,  than  to  create  chsunion 
between  the  otherwise  concurrent  advocates  of  the  common  cause.  I  take  this 
colony,  therefoi-e,  as  it  is ;  and,  looking  steadily  to  the  great  objects  which  it  was 
from  its  first  settlement  intended  to  promote,  am  well  content. 

There  is,  no  doubt,  much,  very  much,  to  deplore,  on  the  score  of  reUgion,  on  the 
score  of  morals,  on  the  score  of  manners,  or  of  the  social  tact,  as  derived  from  both 
religion  and  morals ;  on  the  score  of  depraved,  biit  inveterate,  habits,  and  of  hnger- 
ing  barbarism,  and  tardy  improvement :  yet  I  distinctly  perceive  all  the  principal 
elements  of  social  order  and  effectual  civilization  in  existence  and  vigour,  requiring 
only  the  care  of  a  skilfid  hand  to  mould  them  into  form,  and  to  collect  from  them, 
in  that  state,  the  early  fruits  of  a  successful  and  rapid  cultivation. 

In  the  "  Sierra-Leone  Gazette"  of  January  3d,  1818,  it  is 
stated,  "  This  day  ten  years  this  colony  was  transferred  from 
the  Sierra-Leone  Company  to  His  Majesty's  Government ;  and 
by  a  return  published  in  the  then  '  Gazette,^  the  total  number 
of  births  in  the  year  1807  were  fifty-seven ;  deaths,  thirty-six ; 
and  marriages,  fourteen.  We  hope  to  be  enabled  to  give  in  our 
next  the  return  for  the  year  1817:  and  as  an  evident  proof  of 
the  better  state  of  morality  in  the  colony,  Ave  are  bold  to  say. 


184  WESTEEN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

the  marriages  frequently  exceed  in  one  week  the  number  of  one 
year  at  that  time/' 

An  extract  of  a  letter  from  His  Excellency  the  Governor  of 
Sierra-Leone,  Sir  Charles  Macarthy,  dated  !March  6th,  1818, 
will  throw  further  light  on  the  gradually-improving  state  of 
the  colony  :  — ^'  I  shall  avail  myself  of  au  early  opportunity  to 
forward  the  return  of  the  schools.  The  number  of  scholars  of 
both  sexes  in  the  country  towns  has  increased ;  and  the  grand 
total  of  men,  women,  boys,  and  girls,  now  attending  schools  on 
the  peninsula,  does  not  fall  short  of  two  thousand.  The  inha- 
bitants of  the  colony  have  so  very  frequently  experienced  the 
interest  the  friends  of  Africa  take  in  their  prosperity,  that  I 
feel  it  a  most  pleasing  part  of  my  duty  to  be  enabled  to  prove, 
by  incontrovertible  documents,  the  very  great  improvement  in 
the  commercial  importance  of  this  colony.  The  enclosed  returns 
prove  that  during  the  year  1817  the  amount  of  merchandise 
imported  into  the  colony  exceeds  that  of  the  year  1816  by 
^39,286;  and  the  number  of  vessels,  fourteen."  * 

The  exports  also  were  rapidly  increasing,  particularly  in  the 
articles  of  timber  and  rice  :  and  the  arrival  of  condemned  slavers, 
with  their  living  cargoes,  continued  to  swell  the  population. 
According  to  the  Parliamentary  Returns  at  this  time,  it  appears 
that  the  number  of  slave-ships  captured  and  condemned  at 
Sierra- Leone,  from  1808  to  1819,  was  seventy-three,  and  that 
11,280  slaves  were  rescued  from  these  floating  dungeons,  and 
entitled  to  the  privileges  of  British  subjects.  During  this 
period,  several  villages  were  formed  throughout  the  peninsula : 
— that  of  Leicester,  in  1809;  Regent,  in  1812;  Gloucester,  in 
1816;  Leopold  and  Kissey,  in  1817;  Charlotte  and  Bathurst, 
in  1818;  Kent,  York,  Wellington,  and  Waterloo,  in  1819. 
These  villages  are  generally  situate  in  different  parts  of  the 
mountains,  but  all  connected  by  good  roads  with  each  other 
and  with  Free-Town,  the  capital,  from  which  they  are  distant 
from  three  to  seven  miles ;  excepting  York  and  Kent,  which  are 
sixteen  miles  from  Free-Town,  and  are  situate  in  what  is  called 
the  sea-district. 

About  this  time,  the  colony  was  divided  into  parishes,  accord- 
ing to  a  plan  formed  by  Governor  Macarthy ;  and  it  was  the 
intention  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society  to  provide  an 
efficient  minister  for  each ;  but  the  sickness  and  mortality  which 
prevailed  reduced  their  number  of  labourers  so  rapidly,  that 
this  design  w^as  not  accomplished. 

*  "Twelfth  Report  of  the  African  Institution,"  p.  Ul. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  185 

In  1820,  tlie  population  of  Sierra-Leone  was  12,521 ;  and 
the  progress  made  in  civilizing  those  unfortunate  persons  who 
had  been  rescued  from  Slavery  and  all  its  horrors,  was  matter  of 
admiration  to  all  who  had  the  opportunity  of  witnessing  it. 

Major  Gray,  who  visited  Sierra-Leone  in  1821,  thus  speaks  of 
the  colony  and  of  its  capabilities  in  respect  of  cultivation  : — 

His  Excellency  Sir  Charles  Macarthy,  who  had  just  amved  from  England,  was 
then  about  visiting  some  of  the  Uberated  Negro  establishments  in  the  country  towns, 
accomjianied  by  all  the  civil  and  miUtary  staff  of  the  colony.  I  felt  too  much  con- 
cern in  the  welfare  of  those  truly  interesting  objects  not  to  make  one  of  the  party, 
and  therefore  had  an  opportunity  of  witnessing  the  wonderful  improvement  that 
had  taken  place  in  every  town  since  I  had  before  seen  them.  Indeed,  some,  hav- 
ing all  the  appearance  and  regularity  of  the  neatest  village  in  England,  with  church, 
school,  and  commodious  residences  for  the  missionaries  and  teachers,  had  not  in 
1817  been  more  than  thought  of.  Descending  some  of  the  hills,  I  was  surprised 
on  perceiving  neat  and  well  laid-out  villages  in  places  where,  but  four  years  before, 
nothing  was  to  be  seen  except  almost  impenetrable  thickets.  But,  arriving  in 
those  villages,  the  beauty  and  interesting  nature  of  such  objects  were  much  enhanced 
by  the  clean,  orderly,  and  respectable  appearance  of  the  cottages  and  their  inhabit- 
ants, particularly  the  young  people  and  chikh-en,  who,  at  all  the  towns,  assembled 
to  welcome  with  rejieated  cheers  the  return  of  their  governor  and  daddy,  ("  father,") 
as  they  invariably  styled  His  Excellency,  who  expressed  himself  highly  pleased  at 
their  improvement  during  his  absence ;  in  which  short  period  large  pieces  of  ground 
had  been  cleared  and  cultivated  in  the  vicinity  of  all  the  towns,  and  every  produc- 
tion of  the  cUmate  raised  in  sutHcient  abundance  to  supply  the  inhabitants,  and 
furnish  the  market  at  Free-Town. 

His  Excellency  visited  the  schools  at  the  different  towns,  and  witnessed  the  im- 
provement which  all  the  students  had  made,  but  particidarly  those  of  the  high-school 
atRegent's-Town,  whose  progress  in  arithmetic,  geography,  and  history  evinced  a  capa- 
city far  superior  to  that  which  is  in  general  attributed  to  the  Negro,  and  proves  that 
they  may  be  rendered  useful  members  of  society,  particularly  so  in  exploring  the 
interior  of  the  country,  having  previously  received  the  education  calculated  to  that 
peculiar  semce. 

From  the  change  wliich  has  taken  place  in  those  villages  since  I  saw  them  in 
1817,  I  am  satisfied  that  a  little  time  is  alone  necessary  to  enable  the  colony  of 
Sierra-Leone  to  vie  with  many  of  the  West-India  islands  in  all  the  productions  of 
tropical  climates,  but  particularly  in  coffee,  wliich  has  been  already  raised  there, 
and  proved,  by  its  being  in  demand  in  the  Enghsh  market,  to  be  of  as  good  quality, 
if  not  superior  to  that  imported  from  our  other  colonies.  That  the  soil  on  the 
mountains  is  well  adapted  to  the  growth  of  that  valuable  berry,  has  been  too  well 
proved  by  the  flourishing  state  of  some  of  the  plantations  in  the  immediate  vicinity 
of  Free-Town,  to  need  any  comment.  Arrow-root  has  also  been  cultivated  with 
advantage  on  some  of  the  farms  belonging  to  private  individuals  ;  and  there  can  be 
no  doubt  of  the  capability  of  the  soil  to  produce  the  sugar-cane,  as  some  is  already 
grown  there ;  but  whether  it  is  of  as  good  a  description  as  that  of  the  West  Indies, 
I  cannot  pretend  to  say,  as  the  experiment  had  never  been  tried  at  Sierra-Leone,  at 
least  to  my  knowledge.  The  cultivation  of  all  these,  with  the  cotton,  indigo,  and 
ginger,  could  here  be  carried  on  under  advantages  which  our  West-India  islands  do 
not  enjoy  ;  namely,  the  labom'  of  free  people,  who  would  relieve  the  mother  country 
from  the  apprehensions  which  ai'e  at  present  entertained  for  the  safety  of  pro- 


186  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

perty  in  some  of  these  islands,  liy  revolt  and  insurrection  among  the  slaves,  and 
from  the  deplorable  consequences  of  such  a  state  of  civil  confusion.  These  people 
would,  by  receiving  the  benefits  arising  from  their  industry,  be  excited  to  exertions 
that  must  prove  beneficial  to  all  concerned  in  the  trade,  and  conducive  to  the 
prosperity  of  the  colony  itself. 

Free-Town,  the  capital  of  the  peninsula,  is  of  considerable  extent,  and  is  beauti- 
fully situate  on  an  inclined  plane,  at  the  foot  of  some  hills,  on  which  stand  the  fort 
and  other  public  buildings  that  overlook  it  and  the  roads;  whence  there  is  a 
delightful  prospect  of  the  town,  rising  in  the  form  of  an  amphitheatre  from  the 
water's  edge,  above  which  it  is  elevated  aljout  seventy  feet.  It  is  regularly  laid  out 
into  fine  streets,  intersected  by  others  parallel  with  the  river  and  at  right  angles. 
The  houses  which,  a  few  years  since,  were  for  the  most  part  bviilt  of  timber,  many 
of  them  of  the  worst  description,  and  thatched  v\'ith  leaves  or  grass,  are  now 
replaced  by  commodious  and  substantial  stone  buildings,  which  both  contribute  to 
the  health  and  comfort  of  the  inhabitants,  and  add  to  the  beauty  of  the  place ;  which 
is  rendered  peculiarly  picturesque  by  the  number  of  cocoa-nut,  orange,  lime,  and 
banana  trees,  scattered  over  the  whole  town,  and  affording,  in  addition  to  the  pine- 
apple and  youava,  that  grow  wild  in  the  woods,  an  abundant  supply  of  fruit.  The 
Madeira  and  Teneriffe  vines  floiu"ish  uncommonly  well  in  the  gardens  of  some  pri- 
vate individuals,  and  yield  in  the  season  a  large  crop  of  grapes.  Nearly  all  our 
garden  vegetables  are  raised  there ;  and  what  with  yams,  cassada,  and  pompions, 
there  is  seldom  any  want  of  one  or  other  of  those  agreeable  and  almost  necessary 
requisites  for  the  table.  There  are  good  meat,  poultn',  and  fish-markets  ;  and  almost 
every  article  of  house-keeping  can  be  procured  at  the  shops  of  the  British  merchants.* 

But  notwithstanding  the  frequent  re-captures  made  by  our 
gallant  officers  and  crews  of  those  unfortunate  beings  who  had 
been  torn  away  from  their  native  land^  the  Slave-Trade  con- 
tinued. The  very  fact  of  those  captures  was  proof  of  this. 
Information  was  received  fi'om  time  to  time  of  the  horrid  crimes 
perpetrated  in  Africa,  and  on  the  high  seas,  by  miscreants  who 
made  it  their  business  to  buy  and  sell  their  fellow-creatures, 
and  of  the  alarming  increase  of  this  abominable  traffic,  espe- 
cially under  the  flags  of  France,  Spain,  Portugal,  and  the 
Netherlands.  In  the  months  of  February,  March,  and  April  of 
the  year  1822,  eleven  slavers  were  taken  to  Sierra-Leone  by  His 
Majesty^s  cruisers,  with  nearly  fifteen  hundred  slaves  on  board. 
Three  of  these  vessels  were  under  French  colours,  three  under 
Spanish,  and  five  under  Portuguese.  In  the  months  of  July 
and  August  of  the  preceding  year.  His  Majesty's  ship,  "  Myr- 
midon," cruised  in  the  Bight  of  Biafra ;  and  in  the  course  of  a 
fcAv  weeks  sixteen  slave-vessels  were  boarded  and  examined  by 
her,  but  of  this  number  only  one  came  within  the  provisions  of 
the  public  conventions.  This  was  the  schooner  "  Adelaide,"  a 
Portuguese.  She  was  taken  to  Sierra-Leone,  and  condemned 
in  the   Mixed  Court.     About  the  same  time  six  slavers  were 


*  Major  William  Gray's  "  Travels  in  ^Yestel•n  Africa,"  pp.  332 — 336. 


SIEKRA-LEONE. 


18; 


boarded  at  Wliydali  and  Badagry :  but  as  they  had  no  slaves  on 
board,  the  vessels  could  not  be  taken. 

In  the  Reports  of  the  African  Institution  for  the  years  1821, 
1823,  and  1823,  and  in  other  public  documents,  we  find  the  state 
of  Sierra-Leone  described  as  progressing  favourably,  both  in  a 
commercial  and  in  a  moral  point  of  view.  There  was  a  growing 
intercourse  of  the  colony  with  the  interior,  almost  to  the  banks 
of  the  Niger.  Caravans  of  native  merchants  brought  their  gold, 
ivory,  and  other  articles  from  Foota,  Jallon,  and  places  beyond  it, 
which  they  bartered  in  the  colony  for  British  merchandise ;  and 
merchants  of  Sierra-Leone  had  occasionally  received  from  £500 
to  .€1,000  worth  of  gold  in  a  single  day,  in  exchange  for  their 
goods.  In  other  respects,  also,  the  colony  was  evidently  improv- 
ing. Crime  had  diminished,  cultivation  had  extended,  substan- 
tial erections  had  multiphed,  churches  were  either  built  or  in 
the  course  of  being  built  in  every  village,  education  had  been 
more  widely  diff'used,  and  the  influence  of  Christianity  more 
generally  prevailed  among  the  inhabitants.  A  few  extracts 
from  published  letters  of  unquestionable  authority  will  serve  to 
illustrate  these  assertions. 

The  excellent  governor.  Sir  Charles  Macarthy,  in  a  letter 
addressed  to  Earl  Bathurst,  dated  "  Sierra-Leone,  January  14th, 
1822,"  observes  :— 

I  have  the  honour  of  availing  myself  of  the  return  to  England  of  a  merchant 
brig  (the  "  Bedford  ")  with  African  timber,  to  report  my  arrival  here  on  the  28th 
of  November  last ;  and  I  have  great  pleasure  in  stating,  that  I  found  the  European 
inhabitants  and  others  very  healthy,  after  experiencing  what  is  termed  rather  a 
severe  season,  particularly  upon  new  comers.  I  have  employed  as  great  a  propor- 
tion of  my  time  as  I  could  spare  from  my  other  duties  in  visiting  the  towns  and 
villages  on  the  peninsula,  inhabited  by  liberated  Negroes,  and  discharged  soldiers 
from  the  2d  and  4th  West-India  Kegiments,  and  the  Royal  African  Corps  :  and  it 
affords  me  the  highest  gratification  to  say,  that  I  have  found  these  people  happy, 
contented,  and  industrious ;  more  particidarly  the  former  class,  (liberated  Africans,) 
who  at  diiferent  periods  were  landed  here  from  the  holds  of  slave-ships ;  and  under 
the  zealous  care  of  the  chief  superintendent,  Mr.  Retfel,  and  of  the  superintendents 
I  appointed  from  tlie  Church  Missionary  Society,  have,  during  my  absence,  con- 
tinued improving  in  religion,  morals,  and  agricidture.* 

The  following  remarks  on  the  state  of  Free-Town  are  from 
the  "  Sierra-Leone  Gazette  "  in  1822  :— 

We  have  not  resided  a  long  time  on  this  coast  oiu-selves,  yet  we  can  remember 
when  the  inhabitants  of  Free-Town  comprised  the  whole  popvdation  of  the  colony, 
and  when  the  hills  surrounding  us  seemed  to  be  its  boundaries ;  when  a  journey  to 
the  Hogbrook,  where  Regent's-Town  now  stands,  was  deemed  a  task  of  consider- 
al)le  difficulty,  and  was  never  attempted  unless  in  large  parties.     At  a  more  recent 

*  "  Sixteenth  Report  of  the  African  Inslitution,"  p.  327. 


188 


WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 


date,  the  erection  of  a  stone  house,  such  as  we  now  see  on  almost  every  lot,  was 
only  attempted  by  the  Government ;  the  great  majority  of  the  inhabitants  residing; 
in  miserable  hovels,  their  manners  and  customs  apparently  as  rude  as  their  habita- 
tions. Such  was  the  picture  then  afforded  to  the  newly-arrived  stranger.  His 
feelings  would,  of  com'se,  be  commensurate  to  the  scene  before  him.  What  dif- 
ferent sensations  must  now  pervade  the  breast  of  an  incU^^dual  coming  among  us  ! 
On  our  wharves,  the  busy  stir  of  commerce  meets  his  ear ;  and,  in  every  branch  of 
society,  he  finds  persons  whose  manners  and  intellectual  acquirements  will  bear 
comparison  with  the  relative  ranks  in  any  part  of  the  world.  But  it  is  in  our 
liberated  Afiican  towns,  that  the  richest  enjoyment  awaits  the  arrival  of  the  philan- 
thropist. There  he  may  contemplate  with  dehght  the  happy  fruits  of  that  system, 
the  primary  feature  of  which  is  religious  instruction  ;  and  with,  and  proceeding 
from,  that  instruction,  the  inculcation  of  moral  and  industrious  habits,  the  supe- 
rioi'ity  of  the  mountain-roads,  the  cleanliness  and  respectable  appearance  of  the 
villages  :  but,  above  all,  the  immense  forests  cleared  away,  and  the  soil  covered 
with  the  various  productions  of  the  climate,  fully  attest  the  unremitting  industrj"  of 
these  interesting  people  ;  while  the  buildings  erected  in  the  respective  villages,  solely 
by  the  Negroes  themselves,  mark  their  capability  and  improvement  as  artificers. 

Some  of  the  liberated  Africans^  from  the  cliflferent  villages, 
now  sat  as  jurors  at  the  Quarter-Sessions  in  Free-Town,  to  the 
entire  satisfaction  of  those  concerned  :  and  a  very  strong  proof 
of  the  moral  improvement  of  the  colony  was  made  manifest 
during  the  Sessions  of  1822.  The  Rev.  Mr.  Johnson,  in  Sep- 
tember of  that  year,  whites  thus :  "  At  the  Quarter-Sessions, 
the  Chief  Justice  observed,  when  addressing  the  inquest,  that, 
ten  years  ago,  when  the  population  of  the  colony  was  only  four 
thousand,  there  were  forty  cases  on  the  calendar  for  trial :  and 
now  that  the  population  was  upwards  of  sixteen  thousand,  there 
were  only  six  cases  on  the  calendar.  He  congratulated  the 
magistrates  and  grand  jury  on  the  moral  improvement  of  the 
colony.  There  was  not  a  single  case  from  any  of  the  villages 
under  the  superintendence  of  a  missionary  or  schoolmaster. 
When  the  Chief  Justice  found  that  this  was  the  fact,  he  dis- 
missed us  and  our  constables  in  a  very  civil  manner,  as  having 
no  business  to  attend  at  the  Quarter- Sessions;  and  we  departed 
well  pleased,"  We  have,  then,  in  the  preceding  extracts,  the 
concurrent  testimony  of  His  Excellency  the  Governor,  the  Chief 
Justice,  the  editor  of  the  "  Sierra-Leone  Gazette,"  and  others, 
all  bearing  witness  to  the  same  fact,~the  moral  improvement  of 
Sierra-Leone. 

The  mortality  at  Sierra-Leone  during  the  year  1823  was 
unusually  great,  owing  to  the  yellow  fever,  or  black  vomit,  which 
prevailed  on  the  coast :  and  this  was  previous  to  the  setting  in 
of  the  rains,  or  what  is  termed  "the  sickly  season."  Not  less 
than  seventy-seven  Europeans  died  between  December  and  the 
12th   of  June.     Among   these   were   three   medical   men,  the 


SIERRA-LEONE.  189 

chaplain^  and  three  members  of  the  council,  including  the  Chief 
Justice.  Several  other  officers  of  the  colony,  both  civil  and 
military,  as  well  as  missionaries,  fell  victims  to  the  disease.  The 
Governor  himself  was  absent  at  the  Gambia  and  at  Cape-Coast, 
and  did  not  return  till  July  11th;  when  he  immediately  made 
the  best  arrangements  in  his  power  to  supply  the  vacancies 
occasioned  by  disease  and  death,  and  resumed  that  kind  and 
vigilant  attention  to  all  parts  of  the  colony  which  had  so  much 
endeared  him  to  the  various  classes  of  its  inhabitants.  In  a 
letter  dated  Free-Town,  September  13th,  18,23,  addressed  to  the 
Church  Missionar}'^  Society,  after  giving  some  explanations 
which  tended  to  diminish  in  some  degree  the  alarming  character 
of  the  preceding  number  of  deaths,  Sir  Charles  pleads  earnestly 
for  further  aid  in  his  benevolent  exertions  to  benefit  the  regions 
under  his  care.  He  observes,  "  I  shall,  as  long  as  I  have  my 
health,  and  His  Majesty  may  require  my  presence  on  the  coast, 
promote,  to  the  utmost  of  my  power,  the  religious  instruction  of 
this  part  of  his  dominions ;  and  more  particularly  so,  of  the 
liberated  Africans,  who,  from  the  forlorn  condition  in  which 
they  are  landed,  more  peculiarly  call  for  assistance.  Here,  as 
every  where,  assistance  and  means  are  required  :  otherwise  all 
must  end  in  unavailing  wishes.  I  shall  end  this  letter  by  again 
expressing  my  sincere  thanks  for  the  aid  which  I  have  obtained 
from  the  Society,  and  leave  it  to  the  liberality  of  your  own  feel- 
ings to  be  thoroughly  convinced  that,  in  regretting  the  want  of 
a  sufficient  number  of  zealous  missionaries,  I  am  thus  bearing 
the  strongest  and  most  positive  testimony  of  the  value  which 
I  set  upon  the  labours  of  those  whom  I  have  had.^'  *  The  plea 
for  more  labourers  was  also  earnestly  urged  by  the  Rev.  M. 
Nylander,  one  of  the  surviving  clergymen,  who  says,  "Africa 
now  stretches  forth  both  her  arms  to  the  Society,  praying, 
'  Come  over,  and  help  us  !  Send  us  help,  or  we  perish  for  lack  of 
knowledge  \' " 

The  year  1824  commenced  with  a  great  loss  to  the  colony  in 
the  lamented  death  of  the  Avorthy  governor.  Sir  C.  Macarthy. 
He  was  killed  in  a  battle  against  an  overwhelming  force  of  the 
Ashantees,  fought  on  the  Gold-Coast,  and  under  the  greatest 
disadvantages.  On  the  21st  of  January,  Sir  Charles  was 
severely  wounded,  and  taken  prisoner,  and  was  immediately  put 
to  death  by  the  enemy.  The  following  official  notification  of 
this  melancholy  event  appealed  in  the  "  Sierra-Leone  Gazette" 
of  the  17th  of  April  of  the  same  year  : — 


•  Missionai-y  Kegister,"  January,  1824,  pp.  5, 


6. 


190  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

The  members  of  His  Majesty's  Council  have  tlae  melancholy  duty  of  announcing 
to  the  civil  and  miUtary  officers,  and  to  tlie  inhabitants  of  the  colony  at  large,  the 
heart-rending  and  afflicting  intelligence  of  the  death  of  His  Excellency  Brigadier- 
General  Sir  Charles  Macarthy,  their  revered  Governor  and  Commander-in-Chief,  who 
was  killed  in  an  action  ^dth  the  Ashantees  on  the  21st  of  Januarj'  last.  In  making 
this  communication  known  to  the  pubHc,  the  council  are  aware  of  their  inabiUty  to 
do  that  justice  to  their  own  feehngs,  and  those  of  their  fellow-colonists,  (who  have 
for  so  many  years  enjoyed  the  benefit  of  His  Excellency's  paternal  care  and  govern- 
ment,) which  such  a  distressing  calamity  would  call  forth.  His  Excellency's 
administration  of  the  government  of  this  colony,  during  the  most  arduous  and 
important  period  of  its  establishment,  has  been  marked  throughout  by  the  distin- 
guished approbation  of  his  beloved  sovereign ;  and  is  visible  in  the  increased  and 
increasing  welfare  and  prosperity  of  its  inhabitants.  Under  his  auspices,  it  has 
arisen  to  a  state  of  importance  and  respectabihty,  which  places  it  among  the  most 
improving  of  His  Majesty's  colonial  possessions ;  and  has  eminently  proved  the 
wisdom  of  His  Excellency's  measures. 

The  unwearied  attention  which  he  devoted  to  his  government,  and  the  fostering 
care  which  he  extended  to  those  placed  under  his  command,  have  so  sensibly 
endeared  him  to  every  class  of  the  inhabitants  of  this  colony,  that  time  alone  can 
soften  their  grief  or  mitigate  their  sorrows.  It  may,  indeed,  be  truly  said,  that,  in 
him,  his  country  has  lost  a  brave  and  highly-talented  officer;  while  Africa  and 
Afric's  sons  are  doomed  to  momn  the  death  of  one  who  has  ever  shown  himself 
their  warmest  friend  and  benefactor.* 

It  appears  that  out  of  eleven  officers  of  the  Regulars  and 
Militia  who  belonged  to  His  Excellency's  division,  in  the  above 
engagement,  seven  were  killed.  One  of  these  Avas  the  Honour- 
able T,  S.  Buckle,  a  member  of  the  council;  and  another  Avas 
J.  W.  Wetherall,  Esq.,  private  secretary  to  the  governor,  who 
fell  gallantly  fighting  by  the  side  of  His  Excellency  in  the  same 
action. 

Major- General  Charles  Turner  succeeded  the  lamented  Sir  C. 
Macarthy,  as  Captain-General  and  Governor-in-Chief  of  the 
colony  of  Sierra-Leone  and  its  dependencies ;  and  as  the  result 
of  his  energetic  administration  and  indefatigable  exertions,  it 
was  stated  that  never  at  any  period,  since  the  first  establishment 
of  the  colony,  was  the  prospect  so  bright  and  cheering.  But 
he  soon  fell  a  victim  to  the  combined  influence  of  the  climate, 
and  of  excessive  personal  exertions  in  prosecuting  his  plans  of 
African  improvement.  He  died  in  the  cause  of  justice  and 
humanity  at  six  o'clock  in  the  morning  of  the  7th  of  March, 
1826;  soon  after  which  a  gazette  extraordinarj'^  was  issued  by 
the  council,  announcing  the  painful  intelligence  to  the  public. 

The  reforms  proposed  by  that  able  and  zealous  functionary 
were  resumed  and  carried  forward  by  his  successor.  Sir  Neil 
Campbell,  powerfully  seconded  by  Lieutenant-Colonel  Denham. 

*  "  Missionary  Register,"  June,  162  5,  {).  276. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  191 

But  in  addition  to  the  annual  sickly  season^  which  generally- 
carried  off  several  Europeans,  particularly  new  comers,  the  coast 
was  again  visited  in  1829  with  an  epidemic,  similar  to  that  of 
1823,  which  greatly  reduced  the  number  of  the  Europeans  at 
Sierra-Leone,  not  sparing  even  the  oldest  settlers.  From  Feb- 
ruary, 1825,  to  1832,  four  governors — General  Turner,  Sir  Neil 
Campbell,  Colonel  Denham,  the  distinguished  traveller,  and 
Colonel  Lumley — sank  under  the  pressure  of  the  climate ;  and 
Major  Eicketts  was  obliged  to  return  to  England  on  account 
of  ill  health. 

These  circumstances,  in  connexion  with  the  heavy  expendi- 
ture incurred,  had  often  led  to  the  consideration  whether  Sierra- 
Leone  ought  not  to  be  entirely  relinquished.  In  1825  a  Com- 
mission of  Inquiry  into  the  State  of  Sierra-Leone  and  its 
Dependencies  was  appointed  by  Government;  and  the  atten- 
tion of  the  pubUc  was  at  that  time  more  than  usually  turned  to 
that  quarter.  This  colony,  in  common  with  all  similar  estab- 
lishments, has,  indeed,  had  to  struggle  with  dangers  and  diffi- 
culties from  its  very  commencement ;  and,  from  peculiar  cir- 
cumstances, it  has  not  only  had  more  than  its  full  share  of 
natural  obstacles  to  contend  against,  but  it  has  had  to  encoun- 
ter, throughout  the  whole  course  of  its  existence,  a  bitter  and 
unsparing  hostility,  ever  aiming  to  bring  into  discredit  the 
humane  and  liberal  principles  which  gave  it  birth. 

Had  the  colony  of  SieiTa-Leone  been  founded  \yith  a  view  to  commercial  advan- 
tages merely,  it  would  probably  have  been  permitted  to  proceed  with  as  little  oppo- 
sition as  any  other  of  om'  foreign  establishments  ;  but,  imfortunately  for  its  tranquil 
progress,  the  founders  of  it  professed  to  have  higher  purposes  in  prospect.  They 
professed  to  hate  the  Slave-Trade  and  Slavery.  They  professed  to  believe,  that  the 
oppressed  and  degraded  African  was  a  human  being,  a  member  of  the  same  great 
family  with  themselves,  and  a  fellow-heir  of  the  same  blessings  of  redemption. 
They  professed  to  beUeve  that  he  was  capable  of  being  elevated  from  the  brutal 
conflition  to  which  he  had  been  reduced,  and  of  exhibiting  to  the  world  the  same 
mental  and  moral  endowments  which  were  to  be  found  in  his  enslavers.  And  they 
not  only  professed  to  beUeve  all  these  otfensive  doctrines,  but  they  had  the  courage, 
in  the  face  of  slander  and  contumely,  to  attempt  to  act  upon  them.  They  aimed, 
both  by  exertions  and  by  sacrifices,  to  promote  the  civilization  and  moral  improve- 
ment of  the  African  race. 

Such  an  attempt  to  counteract  the  evils  of  the  Slave-Trade,  and  to  repair,  in 
any  measure,  the  disastrous  effects  it  had  produced  on  the  character  and  well-being 
of  this  unfortunate  part  of  our  species,  we  might  have  hoped,  would,  at  least,  have 
been  treated  with  indulgence,  if  not  with  respect,  however  unfortunate  may  have 
been  its  issue.  So  far  from  it,  it  appears  to  have  been  this  very  circumstance  of  its 
philantliropic  motive  which  has  served  to  embitter  hostility,  to  sharpen  every  arrow 
of  detraction,  and  to  give  increased  weight  to  every  maUgnant  suggestion,  and  to 
every  false  representation  respecting  this  colony.  And  even  at  this  moment,  after 
so  many  sinister  predictions  of  its  enemies  have  been  falsified ;  after  it  has  sur- 


192  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

mouuted  its  early  dangers  and  difficulties,  aggravated  by  a  bitterness  of  enmity 
peculiar  to  itself;  after  it  has  gone  on  for  years,  notwithstanding  very  great  mis- 
management, increasing  in  prosperity,  while  not  a  slave  breathes  on  its  soil,  and 
while  it  has  been  made  the  instrument  of  imparting  to  thousands  of  Africans, 
raised  from  the  lowest  depths  of  misery  and  debasement,  the  blessings  of  British 
freedom,  and  of  Christian  light ; — there  are  still  to  be  found  men  whose  delight 
seems  to  consist  in  reiterating,  with  fresh  exaggerations,  the  often-refuted  calum- 
nies against  it,  and  in  labom-ing  not  only  to  bring  it  into  discredit  with  the  public, 
but  to  sweep  it,  if  it  were  possible,  from  the  face  of  the  earth.* 

The  first  part  of  the  Report  of  the  Commissioners  of  Inquiry 
into  the  State  of  Sierra-Leone  and  its  Dependencies  was  printed 
in  May,  1827,  by  order  of  the  House  of  Commons ;  and  the 
second  part  soon  after.  These  Reports,  together  with  some 
other  erroneous  statements  respecting  the  colony,  which  ap- 
peared about  the  same  time,  called  forth  a  work  from  Mr. 
Kenneth  Macaulay,  entitled,  ''The  Colony  of  Sierra-Leone 
vindicated;"  and  the  controversy  was  warm  and  protracted: 
but  it  would  answer  no  good  purpose  to  go  into  its  details  here. 
It  was  considered,  that  to  abandon  this  colon}"  would  leave  full 
scope  for  the  contraband  Slave-Trade,  and  would  frustrate  all 
hopes  of  establishing  a  centre  whence  civilization  might  here- 
after spread  throughout  Africa.  The  European  troops,  however, 
were  withdrawn,  and  their  places  supplied  by  Negroes,  having 
European  officers ;  and  the  expenditure  of  the  colony  was  consi- 
derably reduced ;  so  much,  indeed,  that,  for  the  five  years  end- 
ing 1824,  the  expenditure  was  ^75,000  per  annum,  and  for  the 
succeeding  five  years  it  was  diminished  to  nearly  half  that 
sum,  or  to  .€40,000,  of  which  about  .€17,000  was  for  liberated 
Africans. 

In  1833,  the  population  of  Sierra-Leone  was  29,764;  and  in 
two  years  afterwards  it  amounted  to  35,000 ;  of  whom  about  200 
were  Europeans,  consisting  of  civil  and  military  officers,  mer- 
chants, traders,  chaplains,  missionaries,  and  schoolmasters. 

The  number  of  vessels  with  merchandise  which  entered  Sierra- 
Leone  in  1833  was  sixty-three  :  of  these,  two  were  foreign  ves- 
sels, eleven  were  from  British  colonies,  and  the  other  fifty  were 
from  Great  Britain.  The  amount  of  exports  Avas  €57,164;  the 
greater  part  of  which  was  received  in  Britain,  and  consisted 
principally  of  timber,  corn,  wood,  palm-oil,  ivory,  rice,  hides, 
copal-gum,  ginger,  arrow-root,  coftee,  &c. ;  there  being  very 
little  gold  exported  that  year.f 

The  population,  in  1838,  was  about  40,000 ;  and,  owing  chiefly 

*  "  Anti-Slavery  Reporter,"  vol.  iii.  pp.  157,  158.    (April,  1830.) 
t  See  Martin's  "  British  Colonies,"  vol.  iv.  j)p.  G03,  604. 


SIERRA-LEONE.  193 

to  tiie  great  number  of  slavers  that  were  captured  about  this 
time  and  subsequently,  Free-Town  itself,  in  1846,  contained 
15,000  inhabitants;  and  the  colony,  embracing  a  circuit  of 
thirty  miles,  numbered  not  less  than  50,000  souls. 

In  order  to  form  a  correct  estimate  of  the  moral  condition  of 
Sierra-Leone,  and  of  what  has  been  there  effected,  we  ought,  in 
all  fairness,  to  look  at  the  character  of  its  inhabitants,  as  they 
have  from  time  to  time  been  introduced  into  the  colony.  With- 
out treading  over  the  same  ground  again,  this  may  be  done  in 
few  words.  The  oldest  residents,  it  will  be  recollected,  are 
black  and  coloured  Nova-Scotians,  Avho  emigrated  thither  up- 
wards of  fifty  years  ago.  The  appellation  of  "settlers"  is 
applied  to  this  part  of  the  community ;  and  much  has  been  said 
for  and  against  them.  Great  blame  has  also  been  attached  to 
the  Sierra-Leone  Company,  for  not  adhering  to  its  original  pro- 
mise, in  granting  to  them  such  quantities  of  land  as  they  had 
stipulated  for ;  and  it  cannot  be  denied  that  there  was  a  breach 
of  faith  on  the  part  of  the  Sierra-Leone  Company  in  this  parti- 
cular, though  perhaps  it  was  unavoidable.  But  the  Nova- 
Scotians  were  so  disappointed  and  disgusted,  when  they  found 
that  only  one-fifth  of  the  land  promised  could  be  granted  to 
them,  that  they  began  to  entertain  a  feeling  of  distrust  towards 
the  Company,  and  to  show  a  want  of  due  respect  towards  its 
resident  agents.  This  was  the  first  grievance  ;  and  the  evil 
efi'ects  of  this  disappointment  may  be  traced  even  to  this 
day. 

After  the  lapse  of  some  seven  years,  an  accession  was  made 
to  the  colony  in  point  of  numbers,  but  by  no  means  in  respect 
of  moral  strength,  by  the  advent  of  a  body  of  Maroons.  The 
Maroons  had  been  for  many  years  the  only  bodj'  of  free  Blacks 
in  the  island  of  Jamaica,  v/here  they  spent  the  greater  part  of 
their  time  in  hunting  wild  beasts  in  the  woods,  or  in  chasing 
and  ferreting  out  runaway  slaves ;  for  which  latter  purpose  they 
were  held  in  great  repute,  and  were  always  in  preference 
resorted  to,  on  such  occasions,  by  slave-owners.  At  the  close 
of  the  Maroon  war  in  that  island,  they  were  sent  to  Nova- 
Scotia,  and  subsequently  to  Sierra-Leone,  where,  immediately 
on  their  arrival,  arms  were  put  into  their  hands,  and  they  were 
commissioned  to  use  them  in  reducing  the  "settlerg"  to  obe- 
dience. By  this  act  they  regained  favour  with  the  English; 
but  it  was  at  the  expense  of  an  amount  of  hatred  and  reproach 
from  the  old  colonists  which  lasted  fur  many  years. 

The  Abohtion  of  the  Slave-Trade  by  Great  Britain,  in  1807, 
introduced,  in  the  body  of  the  liberated  Africans,  a  third  and 

o 


194 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


the  principal  element  into  the  population  of  the  colony;  and 
the  great  mass  of  the  inhabitants  of  Free-Town,  and  of  the  rest 
of  the  peninsula,  amounting,  as  Ave  have  stated,  to  fifty  thou- 
sand souls,  are  re-captured  Negroes,  not  consisting  of  Blacks  of 
one  nation  only,  but  of  many  tribes,  who  were  landed  there  at 
different  times,  in  a  condition  the  most  degraded,  having  been 
redeemed  from  the  blood-thirsty  grasp  of  Slaver}^,  and  of  those 
"men-stealers"  who 

"  Drive  a  loathsome  traffic,  gauge  and  span 
And  buy  the  muscles  and  the  hones  of  man." 

The  condition  of  a  body  of  captured  slaves,  on  their  arrival  at 
Sierra-Leone,  when  just  released  from  these  floating,  gasping 
tombs,  or  coffin-like  prisons,  the  slave-ships,  is  the  most  misera- 
ble and  wretched  that  can  well  be  conceived.  An  eye-witness 
of  a  scene  of  this  description  thus  writes  : — 

One  fine  day  in  May,  the  signal-gun  told  of  the  approach  of  a  vessel,  which  the 
lookers-out  on  the  signal-hill  announced,  hy  the  usual  mode  of  hoisting  a  coloured 
hall  to  the  top  of  a  staff,  to  be  a  schooner  or  brig  from  the  south.  A  sharp-built 
schooner,  with  crowded  canvass,  glanced  up  the  estuary  Uke  lightning.  Her  nature 
was  obvious :  she  was  a  prize.  A  painful  interest  prompted  me  to  visit,  as  speedily 
as  possible,  this  prison-ship.  A  friend  offered  the  advantage  of  his  company  to  a 
scene  which  has  sometimes  so  completely  overwhelmed  a  novice,  as  to  render  the 
support  of  a  friend  advantageous. 

The  Timmannee  crew  of  the  official  l)oat  swiftly  shot  us  along-side.  The  craft 
showed  Spanish  colours,  ami  was  named  La  Pantica.  We  easily  leaped  on  board, 
as  she  lay  low  in  the  water.  The  first  hasty  glance  around  caused  a  sudden  sick- 
ness and  faintness,  followed  by  an  indignation  more  intense  than  discreet.  Before 
us,  lying  in  a  heap,  huddled  together  at  the  foot  of  the  foremast,  on  the  bare  and 
filthy  deck,  lay  several  human  beings  in  the  last  stage  of  emaciation, — dying.  The 
ship,  fore  and  aft,  was  thronged  with  men,  women,  and  children,  all  entirely  naked, 
and  disgusting  with  disease.  The  stench  was  nearly  insupportable,  cleanhness 
being  impossible.  I  stepped  to  the  hatchway ;  it  was  secured  by  iron  bars  and 
cross-bars,  and  pressed  against  them  were  the  heads  of  slaves  below.  It  appeared 
that  the  crowd  on  deck  formed  one-third  only  of  the  cargo,  two-thirds  Ijeing 
stowed  in  a  sitting  posture  below,  between-decks, — the  men  forward,  the  women 
aft.  Two  hundred  and  seventy-four  were  at  this  moment  in  the  little  schooner. 
When  captured,  three  hundred  and  fifteen  had  been  found  on  board :  forty  had 
died  during  the  voyage  from  Old  Calabar,  where  she  had  been  captured  by  His 
Majesty's  ship,  "  Fair  Rosamond ;"  and  one  had  drowned  himself  on  arrival,  proba- 
bly in  fear  of  being  "yammed"  by  the  Enghsh I  attempted  to  descend,  in 

order  to  see  the  accommodation.  The  height  between  the  floor  and  ceiling  was 
about  twenty-two  inches.  The  agony  of  the  position  of  the  crouching  slaves  may 
be  imagined,  especially  that  of  the  men,  whose  heads  and  necks  are  bent  down  by 
the  boarding  above  them.  Once  so  fixed,  relief  by  motion  or  change  of  posture  is 
unattainal)le.  The  body  frequently  stiffens  into  a  premature  curve;  and  in  the 
streets  of  Free-Town  I  have  seen  liberated  slaves  in  everj'  conceivable  state  of  dis- 
tortion.    One   I  remember,   who  trailed  along  his  body,  with  his   back   to    the 


SIERRA-LEONE.  195 

ground,  liy  means  of  liis  hands  and  ankles.     Many  can  never  resume  Uie  upright 
posture.* 

A  communication  from  Sierra-Leone  of  more  recent  date 
confirms  the  preceding  horrible  picture.  It  is  from  the  pen  of 
the  Rev.  C.  S.  Frey : — "April  16th,  1845.  In  going  from 
Kissey  to  Free-Town,  I  met  with  a  scene  of  misery  which  made 
such  an  impression  on  my  mind  that  I  shall  scarcely  forget  it. 
About  four  hundred  emancipated  Africans,  old  and  young,  of 
both  sexes,  were  proceeding  toward  Kissey  Hospital.  They  had 
just  come  from  the  slave-vessel,  and  were  in  a  most  heart- 
rending condition.  Some,  not  being  able  to  walk,  were  car- 
ried ;  while  others  supported  themselves  with  sticks,  looking, 
from  the  starvation  they  had  endured  on  board,  more  like 
human  skeletons  than  living  beings.  I  have  since  been 
informed  that,  within  a  short  time,  a  hundred  of  them  died.^f 

Such  are  the  wretched  materials  out  of  which  the  colony  of 
Sierra-Leone  has  been  principally  constructed :  nor  does  the 
preceding  description,  horrifying  as  it  is,  convey  an  adequate 
impression  of  the  disadvantages  under  which  these  poor  crea- 
tures labour.  They  arrive  not  only  debilitated  and  diseased  in 
body,  without  even  a  rag  to  cover  them,  but  desponding  and 
dejected  in  mind,  wholly  ignorant  of  the  English  language,  and 
without  power  or  inclination  for  exertion.  Is  it,  then,  to  be 
wondered  at  that,  in  such  circumstances,  the  faculties  of  the 
soul  should  be  so  cramped  and  benumbed  by  cruelties  inflicted  on 
the  body,  as  almost  involuntarily  to  suggest  to  the  mind  of  the 
beholder  an  idea,  that  the  mass  of  miserable  beings  before  him 
are  but  little  elevated  above  the  brute  creation  ?  And  yet, 
with  regard  to  these  wretched  beings,  what  is  the  fact,  as  stated 
in  the  preceding  pages,  and  more  especially  as  existing  at  the 
present  time  ?  Why,  the  change  passed  upon  them  is  like  a 
resurrection  from  the  dead ;  a  translation  from  chains  and  dark- 
ness to  hght  and  liberty;  from  a  depth  of  wretchedness  of 
which  those  whose  eyes  have  not  witnessed  it  can  form  no  ade- 
quate conception,  to  a  state  of  comparative  ease  and  enjoyment, 
of  comfort  and  happiness  ;  and  from  barbarism  and  degradation 
the  most  complete,  to  civilization  and  Christian  improvement. 
In  one  word,  there  are  scores,  nay,  hundreds,  of  those  poor 
creatures  who  brought  nothing  with  them  into  the  colony  but 
their  unnerved  and  tottering  limbs,  their  naked  and  emaciated 
bodies,  with  their  depressed  and  abject   spirits,  who  are  now, 

*  Kankin's  "Visit  to  Siena-Leone  m  1834,"  vol.  ii.  pp.  118 — 123. 
t  "  Missionary  Register,"  1846,  p.  151. 

o  2 


196 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


both  in  a  literal  and  spiritual  sense,  "  clothed,  and  in  their  right 
mind;" — thousands  of  them,  who  are  industrious,  intelligent, 
and  pious,  useful  members  of  civil  and  religious  society. 

Owing  to  the  frequent  accessions  of  these  ignorant  and 
debased  Heathens  from  the  interior,  the  morals  of  the  people  in 
some  parts  of  the  colony  are  very  low ;  but  it  may  with  truth  be 
said,  that  the  majority  of  emancipated  slaves  cheerfully  submit 
to  all  the  ordinary  restraints  of  British  law,  and  that  many  of 
them  even  take  part  in  the  administration  of  those  laws  which 
yield  them  protection,  and  in  the  maintenance  of  the  peace  and 
good  order  of  the  colony. 

It  would  be  interesting,  did  the  limits  of  this  work  permit  it, 
to  trace  the  gradual  progress  of  the  liberated  Africans  from  the 
depths  of  misery  to  which  allusion  has  been  made,  until  we  find 
them,  after  a  few  years,  well  clad,  well  housed,  quiet,  orderly, 
respectable  members  of  society,  and  some  of  them  in  independ- 
ent circumstances.  This  pleasing  task  has,  lioweA^er,  been  in 
part  ficcomplished  by  the  late  Dr.  Fergusson,  of  Sierra-Leone,  in 
a  Letter  addressed  to  Sir  T.  F.  Buxton,  in  1839;  the  substance 
of  which  Sir  Fowell  has  embodied  in  his  stirring  work  on  "  The 
Slave-Trade  and  its  Pi,emedy."  As  I  have  the  printed  letter 
before  me,  I  will  avail  myself  of  it  to  make  the  following 
extracts.  It  may  be  here  remarked,  that  Dr.  Fergusson,  whom 
I  had  the  pleasure  of  knowing  personally,  was  a  gentleman  of 
great  intelligence;  and,  from  his  intimate  knowledge  of  the 
peninsula,  acquired  during  his  long  residence  at  Sierra-Leone, 
where  he  was  for  many  years  at  the  head  of  the  medical  depart- 
ment, and  occasionally  held  the  highest  official  civil  office  in  the 
colony,  he  was  well  qualified  to  write  upon  the  subject.  Speak- 
ing of  the  liberated  Africans  as  a  class,  and  of  the  position  in 
society  which  they  occupied  at  that  time,  he  observes, — 

1.  Those  raost  recently  arrived  are  to  be  found  occupying  mud-houses,  and  small 
patches  of  ground,  in  the  neighbourhood  of  one  or  other  of  the  villages :  (the  vil- 
lages are  about  twenty  in  number,  placed  in  ditferent  parts  of  the  colony,  grouped 
into  three  classes  or  districts ;  namely,  mountain,  river,  and  sea  districts.)  The 
majority  remain  in  their  locations  as  agriculturists  ;  but  several  go  to  reside  in  tlie 
neighbourhood  of  Free-Town,  looking  out  for  Avork,  as  labourers,  farm-servants, 
servants  to  carry  wood  and  water,  grooms,  house-seiTants,  &c. ;  others  cultivate 
vegetables,  rear  poultry  and  pigs,  and  supply  eggs  for  the  Sierra-Leone  market. 
Great  numbers  are  found  offering  for  sale  in  the  public  market,  and  elsewhere,  a 
vast  quantity  of  cooked  edible  substances, — rice,  corn,  and  cassada  cakes,  heterogene- 
ous compounds  of  rice  and  corn-flour,  yams,  cassada,  palm-oil,  pepper,  pieces  of 
beef,  mucilaginous  vegetables,  &c.,  &c.,  under  names  quite  unintelUgible  to  a 
stranger,  such  as  aagedee,  ahalla,  akalaray,  cabona,  Sic,  &c.,  cries  which  are 
shouted  along  the  streets  of  Free-Town  from  morn  till  night.  These,  the  lowest 
grade  of  liberated  Africans,  are  a  harmless  and  well-disposed  people ;  there  is  no 


SIEllRA-LEONE.  197 

poverty  among  them,  nor  begging ;  their  habits  are  frugal  and  industi-ious  ;  their 
anxiety  to  possess  money  is  remarkable  ;  but  their  energies  are  allowed  to  run  riot 
and  be  wasted,  from  the  want  of  knowledge  requisite  to  direct  them  into  proper 
channels. 

2.  Persons  of  a  grade  higher  than  those  last  described  are  to  be  found  occupying 
frame-houses :  they  drive  a  petty  trade  in  the  market,  where  they  expose  for  sale 
nails,  fish-hooks,  door-hinges,  tape,  thread,  ribbon,  needles,  pins,  &c.  Many  of 
this  grade  also  look  out  for  the  arrival  of  canoes  from  the  country,  laden  with 
oranges,  kolas,  sheep,  bullocks,  fowls,  rice,  &c.,  purchase  the  whole  cargo  at  once  at 
the  water-side,  and  derive  considerable  profit  from  selling  such  articles  by  retail,  in 
the  market  and  over  the  town.  Many  of  this  grade  are  also  occupied  in  curing  and 
drying  fisli,  an  article  which  always  sells  well  in  tlie  market,  and  is  in  great  request 
by  people  at  a  distance  from  the  water-side,  and  in  the  interior  of  the  country.  A 
vast  number  of  this  grade  are  tailors,  straw-hat  makers,  shoemakers,  cobblers,  black- 
smiths, carpenters,  masons,  &c.  Respectable  men  of  this  grade  meet  with  ready 
mercantile  credits,  amounting  from  £20  to  £60  ;  and  the  class  is  very  numerous. 

3.  Persons  of  a  grade  higher  than  that  last  mentioned  are  found  occupying 
frame-houses,  reared  on  a  stone  foundation  of  from  six  to  ten  feet  in  height. 
These  houses  are  very  comfortable  ;  they  are  painted  outside  and  in ;  have  piazzas 
in  front  and  rear,  and  many  of  them  all  round ;  a  considerable  sprinkling  of  maho- 
gany furniture  of  European  workmanship  is  to  be  found  in  them  ;  several  books  are 
to  be  seen  lying  about,  chiefly  of  a  religious  character,  and  a  general  air  of  domestic 
comfort  pervades  the  whole,  which,  perhaps,  more  than  any  thing  else,  bears  evi- 
dence of  the  advanced  state  of  intelligence  at  which  they  have  arrived.  This  grade 
is  nearly  altogether  occupied  in  shop-keeping,  hawking,  and  other  mercantile  pur- 
suits. At  sales  of  prize  goods,  public  auctions,  and  every  other  place  affording  a 
probability  of  cheap  bargains,  they  are  to  be  seen  in  great  numbers ;  where  they 
club  together  in  numbers  of  from  three  to  six,  seven,  or  more,  to  purchase  large  lots 
or  unbroken  bales ;  and  the  scrupulous  honesty  with  which  the  subdivision  of  the 
goods  is  afterwards  made,  cannot  be  evidenced  more  thoroughly  than  in  this,  that, 
common  as  such  transactions  arc,  they  have  never  yet  been  known  to  have  become 
the  subject  of  controversy  or  litigation.  The  principal  streets  of  Free-Town,  as 
well  as  the  approaches  to  the  town,  are  lined  on  each  side  by  an  almost  continuous 
range  of  booths  and  stalls,  among  which  almost  every  article  of  merchandise  is 
offered  for  sale,  and  very  commonly  at  a  cheaper  rate  than  similar  articles  are  sold 
in  the  shops  of  the  merchants. 

Two  rates  of  profit  are  recognised  in  the  mercantile  transactions  of  the  European 
merchants ;  namely,  a  wholesale  and  a  retail  profit,  the  former  varying  from  thirty 
to  fifty  per  cent.,  the  latter  from  fifty  to  one  hundred  per  cent.  The  working  of 
the  retail  trade  in  the  hands  of  Eurojieans  requires  a  considerable  outlay  in  the 
shape  of  shop-rent,  shopkeepers',  clerks'  wages,  &c.  The  liberated  Africans  were 
not  slow  in  observing  nor  in  seizing  on  the  advantages  which  their  peculiar  position 
held  out  for  the  successful  prosecution  of  the  retail  trade. 

Clubl)ing  together,  as  before  observed,  and  holding  ready  money  in  their  hands, 
the  merchants  are  naturally  anxious  to  execute  for  them  considerable  orders,  on 
such  unexceptionable  terms  of  payment ;  while,  on  the  other  hand,  the  liberated 
Africans,  seeing  clearly  their  advantage,  insist  most  pertinaciously  on  the  lowest 
possible  per-centage  of  wholesale  profit. 

Having  thus  become  possessed  of  the  goods  at  the  lowest  possible  ready-money 
rate,  their  subsequent  transactions  are  not  clogged  witli  the  expense  of  shop-rents, 
shopkeepers'  and  clerks'  wages  and  subsistence,  &c.,  &c.,  expenses  unavoidable  to 
Europeans.     They  are  therefore  enabled  at  once  to  undersell  the  European  retail 


198 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 


luercliants,  and  to  secure  a  handsome  profit  to  themselves ;  a  consummation  the 
more  easily  attained,  aided  as  it  is  by  the  extreme  simplicity  and  abstemiousness  of 
their  mode  of  living,  which  contrast  so  favourably  for  them  with  the  expensive  and 
almost  necessary  luxuries  of  European  hfe.  Many  of  this  grade  possess  large 
canoes,  with  which  they  trade  in  the  upper  parts  of  the  river,  along  shore,  and  in 
the  neighbouring  rivers,  bringing  down  rice,  palm-oU,  camwood,  ivory,  hides,  &c., 
&c.,  in  exchange  for  British  manufactures.  They  are  all  in  easy  circumstances, 
readily  obtaining  mercantile  credits  from  dE60  to  £200.  Persons  of  this  and  the 
grade  next  to  be  mentioned,  evince  great  anxiety  to  become  possessed  of  houses 
and  lots  in  old  Free-Town.  These  lots  are  desirable,  because  of  their  proximity  to 
the  market-place  and  the  great  thoroughfares,  and  also  for  the  superior  advantages 
which  they  afford  for  the  establishment  of  their  darling  object,  "  a  retail  store." 
Property  of  this  description  has  of  late  years  become  much  enhanced  in  value,  and 
its  value  is  still  increasing,  solely  from  the  annually-increasing  numbers  and  pros- 
perity of  this  and  the  next  grade.  The  town-lots  originally  granted  to  the  Nova- 
Scotian  settlers  and  the  Maroons  are,  year  after  year,  being  offered  for  sale  by 
public  auction,  and  in  every  case  liberated  Africans  are  the  purchasers.  A  striking 
instance  of  their  desire  to  possess  property  of  this  description,  and  of  its  increasing 
value,  came  under  my  immediate  notice  a  few  months  ago. 

The  gentlemen  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society  having  been  for  some  time 
looking  about  in  quest  of  a  lot  on  which  to  erect  a  new  chapel,  a  lot  suitable 
for  the  purpose  was  at  length  offered  for  sale  by  public  auction ;  and  at  a  meeting 
of  the  Society's  Local  Committee,  it  was  resolved,  in  order  to  secure  the  purchase 
of  the  property  in  question,  to  offer  as  high  as  £ijO.  The  clergyman  delegated  for 
this  purpose,  at  my  recommendation,  resolved,  on  his  own  responsibility,  to  offer,  if 
necessary,  as  high  as  £70 ;  but,  to  the  surprise  and  mortification  of  us  all,  the  lot 
was  knocked  down  at  upwards  of  <£90,  and  a  liberated  African  was  the  purchaser. 
He  stated  very  kindly,  that  if  he  had  known  the  Society  were  desirous  of  purchas- 
ing the  lot,  he  would  not  have  opposed  them ;  he  nevertheless  manifested  no  desire 
of  transferring  to  them  the  purchase,  and  even  refused  an  advance  of  £10  on  his 
bargain. 

4.  Persons  of  the  highest  grade  of  liberated  Africans  occupy  comfortable  two- 
story  stone-houses,  enclosed  all  round  with  spacious  piazzas.  These  houses  are 
their  own  property,  and  are  built  from  the  proceeds  of  their  own  industry.  In 
several  of  them  are  to  be  seen  mahogany  chairs,  tables,  sofas,  and  four-post  bed- 
steads, pier-glasses,  floor-cloths,  and  other  articles  indicative  of  domestic  comfort 
and  accumulating  wealth. 

Persons  of  this  grade,  like  those  last  described,  are  almost  wholly  engaged  in 
mercantile  pursuits.  Their  transactions,  however,  are  of  greater  magnitude  and 
value,  and  their  business  is  carried  on  with  an  external  appearance  of  respectability 
commensurate  with  their  superior  pecuniary  means :  thus,  instead  of  exposing  their 
wares  for  sale  in  booths  or  stalls  by  the  way-side,  they  are  to  be  found  in  neatly- 
fitted-up  shops,  on  the  ground-floor  of  their  stone  dwelling-houses. 

Many  individual  members  of  this  grade  have  realized  very  considerable  sums  of 
money,  sums  which,  to  a  person  not  cognizant  of  the  fact,  would  appear  to  be 
incredible.  From  the  studied  manner  in  which  individuals  conceal  their  pecuniary 
circumstances  from  the  world,  it  is  ditficult  to  obtain  a  correct  knowledge  of  the 
wealth  of  the  class  generally.  The  devices  to  which  they  have  recourse  in  con- 
ducting a  bargain  are  often  exceedingly  ingenious,  and  to  be  reputed  rich  might 
materially  interfere  with  their  success  on  such  occasions.  Thus  nothing  is  more 
common  than  to  hear  a  plea  of  poverty  set  up,  and  most  pertinaciously  urged,  in 
extenuation  of  the  terms  of  a  purchase,  by  persons,  whose  outward  condition,  com- 


SIERRA-LEONE.  199 

fortaljle,  well-fimiished  houses,  and  large  mercantile  credits,  indicate  any  thing  but 
poverty. 

There  are  circumstances,  however,  the  knowledge  of  which  they  cannot  conceal, 
and  which  go  far  to  exhibit  pretty  cleai'ly  the  actual  state  of  matters ;  such  as, 
Firstly,  the  facility  with  which  they  raise  large  sums  of  "  cash  prompt "  at  public 
auctions.  Secondly,  the  winding-up  of  the  estates  of  deceased  persons.  (Peter 
Newland,  a  liberated  African,  died  a  short  while  before  I  left  the  colony;  and  his 
estate  realized,  in  houses,  merchandise,  and  cash,  upwards  of  £1,500.)  Thu-dly, 
the  extent  of  their  mercantile  credits.  I  am  well  acquainted  with  one  individual  of 
this  grade,  who  is  much  courted  and  caressed  by  every  European  merchant  in  the 
colony,  who  has  transactions  in  trade  with  all  of  them,  and  whose  name,  shortly 
before  my  departure  from  the  colony,  stood  on  the  debtor  side  of  the  books  of  one 
of  the  principal  merchants  to  the  amount  of  £1,900,  to  which  sum  it  had  been 
reduced  from  £3,000  during  the  preceding  two  months.  A  highly  respectable 
female  has  now,  and  has  had  for  several  years,  the  Government  contract  for  the 
supply  of  fresh  beef  to  the  troops  and  the  naval  squadron ;  and  I  have  not  heard 
that  on  a  single  occasion  there  has  been  cause  of  complaint  for  negligence  or  non- 
fulfilment  of  the  terms  of  contract.  Fourthly,  many  of  them,  at  the  present 
moment,  have  their  children  being  educated  in  England  at  their  own  expense. 
There  is  at  Sierra-Leone  a  very  fine  regiment  of  colonial  mihtia,  more  than  eight- 
tenths  of  which  are  liberated  Africans.  The  amount  of  property  which  they  have 
acquired  is  ample  guarantee  for  their  loyalty,  should  tliat  ever  be  called  in  question. 
They  turn  out  with  great  alacrity  and  cheerfulness  on  all  occasions  for  periodical 
drill.  But  perhaps  the  most  interesting  point  of  view  in  which  the  liberated 
Africans  are  to  be  seen,  and  that  which  will  render  their  moral  condition  most 
intelligible  to  those  at  a  distance,  is  when  they  sit  at  the  quai-ter-sessions  as  petty, 
grand,  and  special  jurors.  They  constitute  a  considerable  part  of  the  jury  at  every 
sessions,  and  I  have  repeatedly  heard  the  highest  legal  authority  in  the  colony 
express  his  satisfaction  with  their  decisions.* 

Dr.  Fergussou  remarks^  "  It  may  be  objected  to  some  of  these 
statements,  that  they  are  extreme  instances  of  the  flourishing 
condition  of  the  Hberated  Africans.  I  grant  they  are  so ;  but  as 
I  have  herein  undertaken  to  give  you  a  faithful  summary  of 
their  present  condition  and  status  in  society,  it  is  right  and  pro- 
per that  they  should  be  exhibited  to  you  in  all  their  phases. 
They  have  been  already  shown  to  you  in  the  depths  of  misery 
and  degradation.  Why  should  the  more  beautiful  and  interest- 
ing side  of  the  picture  be  concealed  ? "  The  same  gentleman, 
in  the  same  letter,  further  remarks,  "  Of  the  liberated  Africans, 
as  a  body,  it  may  with  great  truth  be  said  that  there  is  not  a 
more  quiet,  inoff'ensive,  contented,  good-humoured,  and  light- 
hearted  population  on  the  face  of  the  earth."  With  their  reli- 
gious spirit  he  professes  not  to  be  intimately  acquainted ;  but 
he  observes,  "  I  know  that  their  outward  observance  of  the  sab- 
bath  day  is   most  exemplary.      On  that  day  the  passion  for 

*  Fergusson's  "  Letter  on  the  Character  of  the  Liberated  Africans  at  Sierra- 
Leone,"  1839,  pp.  8—13. 


200  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

dancing,  singing,  and  other  noisy  amusements,  is  altogether 
laid  aside,  and  nearly  the  whole  body  of  the  people  are  to  be 
found  engaged  in  the  services  of  the  sanctuary,  at  one  or  other 
of  the  Protestant  churches  or  chapels  which  abound  in  the 
colony." 

The  most  recent  work  that  has  appeared  on  this  interesting 
colony,  and  which  touches  on  the  condition  of  the  liberated 
Africans,  is  one  published  during  the  last  year,  and  is  entitled, 
"Letters  from  Sierra-Leone,  by  a  Lady.  Edited  by  the  Hon. 
Mrs,  Norton."  The  amiable  and  intelligent  authoress  of  these 
"Letters,"  in  speaking  more  particularly  of  the  hberated 
Africans  as  domestic  servants  or  in  the  lower  grades  of  society, 
has  appropriately  headed  "  Letter  XXXI."  with  the  title,  "  First 
hasty  Impressions  regarding  the  Natives — Second  Considera- 
tions," &c. ;  and  observes  : — 

However  philanthropically  disposed  you  may  be  towards  the  Negro  on  taking  up 
your  residence  at  SieiTa-Leone,  so  soon  as  the  first  novelty  of  situation  wears  off, 
the  indolence,  stupidity,  and  want  of  tidiness  (to  say  nothing  of  graver  faults)  of 
the  only  ])ersons  you  have  to  depend  u}'on  as  domestic  sei^vants,  throw  you  into  a 
sort  of  actual  despair.  You  teach,  persuade,  remonstrate,  lecture,  by  tmrns :  your 
words  are  listened  to  with  a  good-humoured  apathy ;  but,  neither  your  rhetoric  nor 
example  effecting  the  slightest  improvement,  you  begin  to  doubt  whether  the  Negro 
be  gifted  \Tith  any  good  quality  or  mental  capacity  whatever,  and  feel  iiTCsistibly 
led  to  include  the  whole  race  in  a  most  sweeping  kind  of  condemnation. 

"  Use  lessens  marvel,"  it  is  said ;  and  as  time  wanes  by,  custom  rendering  you 
less  fastidious,  trifling  physical  discomforts  become  less  felt,  and  you  look  to  the 
causes  of  all  this  semi-barbarism  in  a  place  that  has  been  colonized  and  under  Bri- 
tish rule  for  upwards  of  half  a  century ;  and,  upon  duly  examining  and  weighing 
these  causes,  come  to  a  totally  opposite  conclusion  to  that  you  were  at  first  inclined 
to  adopt ;  the  disadvantages  under  which  the  Blacks  emancipated  here  have 
labom-ed,  striking  you  far  more  than  the  partial  advantages  they  have  enjoyed. 

As  a  people,  they  have  been  enslaved  and  oppressed  for  upwards  of  four  hun- 
dred years ;  and  even  this  sohtary  consideration  tells  us,  that  to  form  an  unbiassed 
judgment  of  the  liberated  Africans,  we  must  not  institute  comparisons  between 
them  and  the  lower  classes  of  our  own  free  England.  Brought  here  in  a  state  of 
utter  degradation  and  barbarism,  where  the  language,  laws,  manners,  and  customs 
are  totally  new  to  them,  where  Eiu-opean  society  is  by  far  too  Umited  to  aflFord  an 
example  of  civilization  as  it  exists  at  home,  and  where,  excepting  the  patient,  pious, 
and  indefatigable  missionary,  there  are  very  few  to  guide,  teach,  and  instruct  the 
minds  of  these  ignorant  Heathens ;  it  is  surprising  to  find  so  many  of  the  hberated 
Africans  advanced  to  the  degree  they  are ;  more  especially  as  ship-loads  of  Negroes, 
in  their  rudest  condition,  constantly  arriving  here,  are  the  means  of  keeping  up  and 
perpetuating  amongst  the  others  all  the  prejudices  and  practices  of  their  own 
savage  nations. 

Nothing  can  exceed  the  pains  taken  in  teaching  the  people  by  the  different  mis- 
sionaries, among  whose  ranks  mortahty  is  most  avrfully  frequent ;  but  yet  their 
numbers  are  not  adequate  to  insure  to  the  tvhole  of  the  vast  population  here  the 
benefit  of  instruction  in  the  thorough  manner  it  must  be  conveyed,  ere  we  can  look 
for  its  fruits  in  that  improvement  of  mind,  heart,  and  soul  which  a  right  knowledge 


SlEllRA-LEONE.  201 

of  our  holy  religion,  in  all  its  truth,  purity,  simplicity,  and  beauty,  is  calculated  to 
produce.  Still,  to  a  certain  degree,  they  have  seen  their  labours  rewarded ;  and  of 
their  dense  and  orderly  congregations  it  is  to  be  hoped  that  the  greater  part  are  not 
merely  Christians  in  outward  profession,  but  to  the  utmost  extent  of  their  abilities. 
Yet  many,  many  of  the  liberated  Africans  are  savages  in  every  sense  of  the  word, 
whilst  numerous  others,  who  were  either  never  at  school,  or  else  taken  away  ere 
they  had  made  the  least  progress,  apprenticed  out  in  early  childhood  to  the  rudest 
and  most  ignorant  of  their  country  people,  although  they  have  grov^^n  up  conform- 
ing externally  to  a  few  of  the  most  striking  usages  of  civilized  life,  in  every  other 
respect  are  as  barbarous  as  the  lowest  slaves  in  their  own  country.  But  when  we 
read  and  think  of  the  miserable  degradation  of  mind,  the  superstitious  and  honid 
practices  of  the  tribes  of  the  interior ;  and  then  look  at  the  quiet,  sober,  light, 
hearted  individuals  of  these  very  barbarous  tribes,  whether  pursuing  their  way  to 
market,  going  out  in  their  tiny  fishing-skitfs,  cultivating  their  little  farms,  waiting 
upon  you  at  table,  or  in  the  superior  occupations  of  tradesmen  and  mechanics,  we 
perceive  that  it  is  not  so  much  intellect  the  Negro  wants,  as  a  wider  field  for  exam- 
ple and  encouragement  from  others,  to  teach  him  to  exercise  the  sense  his  Creator 
has  given  him.* 

After  these  testimonies,  coupled  with  many  other  disin- 
terested and  important  ilhistrations  which  might  be  given  of  the 
capabilities  of  the  Negro,  it  is  to  be  hoped  we  shall  hear  no  more 
of  his  being  a  species  of  the  mere  animal  part  of  God's  creation. 
We  claim  for  him  a  place  among  ourselves,  however  low  and 
base  and  degraded  we  know  he  is, — a  true  fellow-child  of  tlie 
first  Adam,  but  the  redeemed  property  of  the  Second.  He 
belongs  to  the  same  family;  and  we  claim  him  on  the  ground 
that  he  possesses  the  faculty  of  speech,  and  a  mind  capable  of 
cultivation  and  improvement.  We  claim  him  as  our  brotlier, 
because,  in  thousands  of  instances,  he  has  listened  to  the  pro- 
clamation of  the  gospel,  felt  its  sanctifying  power,  has  exhibited 
in  his  conduct  its  lofty  principles,  and  has  died  triumphantly  in 
the  faith.  These  are  proofs  which  ought  to  cause  the  sceptic  to 
blush,  and  make  him  hasten  to  bury  that  petty  philosophy 
which  denies  to  the  Negro  the  dignity  of  man :  and  never  let  it 
rise  again  till  he  has  succeeded  in  instructing  some  monkey 
tribe  in  the  rudiments  of  religion;  till  he  has  taught  the  ouran- 
outang  "  how  to  live,"  and  "  how  to  die.'' 

In  the  preceding  pages  frequent  allusion  has  been  made  by 
different  writers  to  the  labours  of  "  colonial  chaplains,"  to  "  the 
different  missionaries"  and  "schoolmasters,"  to  "religious 
instruction,"  and  to  "  the  inculcation  of  moral  and  industrious 
habits  proceeding  from  that  instruction  :"  and  no  one,  it  is  pre- 
sumed, will  attempt  to  deny,  that,  but  for  the  use  of  these 
moral  means,  the  colony  would  never  have  attained  to  its  pre- 
sent state  of  civilization   and  respectability.     The   fair   writer 

*  "  Letters  from  Sierra- Leone.     By  a  Lady,"  pp.  251 — 253. 


202 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


already  quoted,  in  addition  to  the  extract  in  Avhich  she  respectfully 
mentions  the  "  patient,  pious,  and  indefatigable  missionary,"  &c., 
has  very  honourably  made  this  subject  prominent  in  the  preface 
to  her  work  ;  where  she  says  : — "  And  here  a  tribute  is  due  to 
the  missionaries  for  their  unwearying  zeal  for  the  benefit  of  the 
colony.  To  them  unquestionably  is  to  be  mainly  ascribed  the 
state  of  education  and  enlightenment  attained  by  the  black 
population  of  Sierra-Leone,  Avhich  is  higher  than  is  generally 
credited  in  this  country ;  and  has,  especially  of  late  years, — 
notwithstanding  the  continual  importations  of  fresh  bar- 
barians,— greatly  advanced."  The  gospel,  in  fact,  went  out 
with  the  very  first  settlers,  who  sailed  from  England  in  1787; 
a  pious  chaplain  having  accompanied  that  expedition.  And 
though  he  was  soon  obliged  to  return  on  account  of  ill- 
health,  the  Sierra-Leone  Company  discovered  a  laudable  zeal  to 
promote  the  gospel  of  Christ,  in  continuing  to  supply  the  settle- 
ment with  chaplains ;  and  not  only  so,  but  they  encouraged 
schoolmasters  and  others  who  were  willing  to  labour  among  the 
settlers,  or  to  go  as  missionaries  to  the  natives  of  the  surround- 
ing country. 

At  an  early  period  missionaries,  as  well  as  catechists  and 
schoolmasters,  were  sent  out  by  the  Church  Missionary  Society; 
and  they  have  continued  to  occupy  an  important  position  in  the 
colony  from  that  time  to  the  present.  Between  the  Church  and 
Wesleyan  missionaries  the  utmost  cordiality  appears  at  all  times 
to  have  existed ;  nor  does  the  history  of  the  mission  furnish  a 
single  example  to  the  contrary.  They  both  regarded  themselves 
as  engaged  in  one  and  the  same  work ;  and  neither  party  have 
suffered  themselves  to  be  drawn  aside  by  smaller  differences. 
It  has  been  the  writer's  privilege  to  be  personally  acquainted 
Avitli  several  of  the  Church  missionaries ;  and,  supposing  them 
to  be  fair  specimens  of  the  whole,  he  believes  that  a  more  pious, 
intelligent,  faithful,  and  useful  body  of  Christian  missionaries  are 
not  to  be  found  on  the  face  of  the  globe,  than  those  belonging 
to  the  Church  Missionary  Society,  who  have  been,  or  are  now, 
labouring  at  Sierra-Leone.  But  as  the  object  of  this  work  is  to 
give  a  brief  history  of  the  Wesleyan  missions  only,  with  the 
best  feelings  and  wishes  with  regard  to  other  kindred  Societies, 
we  shall  proceed,  in  the  next  chapter,  to  execute  what  is  pro- 
mised on  our  title-page. 


CHAPTER  XI. 

WESLEYAN  MISSIONS.— SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1792-1815.) 

Wesleyan  Missions  commenced  by  the  Rev.  John  Wesley  and  Dr.  Coke — 
America — Origin  of  the  Mission  at  Sierra-Leone— AppUcations  for  a  Mis- 
sionary— Failure  of  the  Foulah  Expedition  in  1796 — Reflections-  The  Appoint- 
ment of  two  Missionaries  on  the  proper  Plan — Sierra- Leone  still  without  a 
Missionary — George  Warren  appointed  by  the  Conference  in  1811 — His 
Reception  in  the  Colony — Usefulness — First  Death — Biographical  Sketch — 
The  little  Flock  again  without  a  Missionary — The  Appointment  of  Mr.  Davies 
in  1814 — State  of  the  Society  and  Schools — Death  of  Mrs.  Davies — Sketch 
of  her  Character. 

The  general  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  was  not  estab- 
lished till  the  year  1817 ;  but  missions  to  the  Heathen  were 
commenced  and  superintended  by  the  late  Rev.  John  Wesley 
and  Dr.  Coke,  long  before  any  reports  of  their  successes  were 
published,  or  societies  organized  for  their  regular  support.  So 
early,  indeed,  as  1769,  at  the  Wesleyan  Conference  held  in 
Leeds,  Mr.  Wesley  asked  the  question,  "  Who  will  go  to  help 
our  brethren  in  America?"*  Two  of  his  sons  in  the  gospel 
responded  to  the  call,  and  a  collection  was  then  made  by  the 
preachers,  amounting  to  j£50 ;  and  it  reflects  great  credit  on  our 
fathers  and  brethren  in  the  ministry  that  the  first  collection 
ever  made  in  the  Wesleyan  Connexion  towards  sending  the 
gospel  abroad  was  raised  among  themselves.  The  origin  of  the 
Wesleyan  missions  may  be  dated  from  this  period  ;  but  they  did 

*  In  the  year  1763,  several  persons,  members  of  Mr.  Wesley's  society,  emigrated 
from  England  and  Ireland,  and  settled  in  various  parts  of  America ;  and,  some  few 
years  after,  two  local  preachers  from  Ireland  began  to  minister  the  gospel  of  Christy 
the  one  at  New-York,  the  other  in  Frederic  county  in  Maryland,  and  had  the  happi- 
ness to  see  their  labours  accompanied  with  the  divine  blessing,  many  being  con- 
verted to  God,  and  liy  them  formed  into  societies.  About  this  time  Mr.  Webb,  a 
lieutenant  in  the  army,  preached  with  great  success  at  New-York  and  Philadelphia  ; 
and,  with  the  assistance  of  his  friends,  he  erected  a  chapel  in  the  former  place,  which 
was  the  first  belonging  to  the  Methodist  society  in  America.  Encouraged  by  this 
success,  and  by  an  earnest  desire  for  the  salvation  of  mankind,  he  wrote  to  Mr. 
Wesley,  earnestly  importuning  him  to  send  missionaries  to  that  continent.  It  was 
the  receipt  of  that  request  which  led  Mr.  Wesley  to  ask  tlie  question  in  the  text. 
(See  "Missionary  Magazine,"  1796,  p.  65.) 


204 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 


not  fairly  commence  till  the  year  1786,  when  Dr.  Coke  sailed 
with  three  missionaries  bound  for  Nova-Scotia ;  but  a  succes- 
sion of  violent  gales,  and  a  leak  in  the  vessel,  together  with  a 
scarcity  of  fresh  water,  compelled  the  captain  to  steer  for  the 
island  of  Antigua ;  and  thus  commenced  our  important  missions 
in  the  West  Indies.  Other  missionaries,  in  the  mean  time  and 
subsequently,  were  sent  to  America;  and  the  Methodist  Episco- 
pal church  on  that  great  continent  is  an  offspring  of  Wesleyan 
jNIethodism. 

The  primary  occasion  which  led  to  the  introduction  of 
Methodism  into  the  African  colony  of  Sierra-Leone  is  of  an 
interesting  character.  We  have,  in  a  preceding  chapter,  stated 
that  the  generality  of  the  first  settlers,  and  of  theNova-Scotians, 
who  were  conveyed  to  Sierra-Leone  in  1792,  were,  for  the  most 
part,  restless  and  discontented  :  there  were,  however,  exceptions 
to  this ;  and  many  of  the  Blacks  from  Nova-Scotia  had  heard 
the  gospel  in  America  from  the  missionaries  sent  out  by  Mr. 
Wesley,  and  were  savingly  converted  to  God.  When  they 
arrived  at  Sierra-Leone,  they  carried  the  savour  of  divine  grace 
with  them ;  and  being  attached  to  our  doctrine  and  discipline, 
and  finding  "  the  constitution  of  the  colony  congenial  to  their 
wishes,  granting  to  all  liberty  to  worship  God  agreeably  to  the 
dictates  of  their  consciences,  while  those  in  power  encouraged 
the  practice  of  every  moral  virtue,  they  established  the  worship 
of  God  among  themselves,  according  to  the  plan  of  the  Method- 
ists ;  at  the  same  time  earnesth'  inviting  others  to  join  them. 
Two  or  three,  at  this  time,  officiated  as  local  preachers,  and  a 
few  others  bore  the  office  of  class-leaders.  As  their  lives  were 
exemplar}-,  and  their  preaching  regular,  their  congregations 
soon  increased,  and  several  others  augmented  the  original  num- 
ber of  the  society;  and  in  process  of  time  a  preaching-house 
was  erected,  capable  of  containing  four  hundred  persons."  * 
In  the  Minutes  of  the  Conference  for  1792  we  find,  under  the 
head  of,  "  What  numbers  are  in  the  societies  ? "  the  answer  is, 
"  Sierra-Leone,  coloured  people,  223."  This  is  the  first  official 
record  of  Wesleyan  Methodism  in  connexion  with  the  continent 
of  Africa  which  I  have  discovered  ;  and  this  number  appears  in 
the  Minutes  up  to  1796. 

Thus  earlv,  and  thus  far,  did  God  vouchsafe  to  bless  the 
endeavours  of  this  simple-minded  people,  to  promote  his  glory, 
and  to  benefit  each  other ;  and  they  were  graciously  preserved 
through  succeeding  years  as  lights  in  a  benighted  land.     Dr. 

*  Coke's  "Narrative  of  a  Mission  1o  Sierra-Leone,"  pp.  18,  19. 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  205 

Coke,  by  whose  direction  and  energies,  principally,  the  Wes- 
leyan  missions  had  been  carried  on  since  the  death  of  Mr. 
Wesley,  took  a  deep  interest  in  the  colony  of  Sierra-Leone,  and 
in  the  welfare  of  that  little  band  of  Christian  soldiers  who  had 
thus  far  nobly  stood  their  ground,  strengthening  each  other's 
hands  in  the  Lord.  He  yearned  over  sonls,  particularly  those  of 
the  Heathen.  Africa  now  lay  near  his  heart ;  and  he  longed  to  do 
something  to  benefit  the  sable  sons  of  Ham.  The  doctor  says, 
"  We  received  many  letters  from  them,  beseeching  us  to  send  a 
missionary  to  the  colony  to  second  their  own  exertions,  and  to 
instruct  them  more  fully  in  the  way  of  righteousness."  Of 
these  requests  he  never  lost  sight;  but  being  at  that  time 
unable  to  procure  men  who  were  both  qualified  for  the  mission, 
and  willing  to  undertake  the  arduous  task,  and  being  desirous  of 
making  an  attempt  "beyond  the  confines  of  the  colony,"  he 
turned  his  attention  to  this  in  the  j'ear  1795.  With  this  vieAv 
he  gave  encouragement  and  assistance  to  sundry  "  mechanics 
who  were  members  of  our  society  in  England,  some  of  whom 
had  officiated  as  local  preachers,  to  accompany  Governor 
Macaulay  to  the  settlement,  in  order  to  form  a  Christian  colony, 
and  open  a  friendly  intercourse  with  the  natives  of  the  Foulah 
country,"  and  to  instruct  them  in  domestic  arts,  inculcate 
piety  by  their  example,  and  occasionally  preach  the  gospel  of 
Jesus  Christ.  Being  furnished  with  every  thing  necessary  for 
the  voyage,  and  for  their  subsequent  occupations,  they  sailed 
from  Portsmouth  on  February  17th,  1796,  and  arrived  at 
Sierra-Leone  on  March  18th.  "It  seems,  however,  that  they 
had  either  not  rightly  understood  the  engagement,  or  had  not 
fully  counted  the  cost ; "  as  will  appear  from  the  following  letter 
of  Mr.  Macaulay  to  Mr.  Wilberforce,  dated 

Free-Town,  Jpril  I9t/i,  179G. 

Mr.  Clark  *  will  probably  acquaint  you  with  the  failure  of  the  Methodist  mis- 
sion to  the  Foulah  country,  and  the  causes  of  it.  I  had  resolved  to  accompany  them 
to  the  place  of  their  destination,  in  order  to  negotiate  a  settlement  with  the  king  of 
the  country  for  them,  and  to  see  them  completely  established.  But  on  the  morn- 
ing which  had  been  named  for  our  departure,  there  came  a  delegation  from  the 
missionaries  to  say  that  they  could  not  proceed.  It  is  so  far  fortunate,  that  they 
have  retracted  before  we  set  out  on  our  journey,  as  their  receding  then  might  have 
displeased  the  natives,  and  shut  the  door  against  future  missions.  It  seems  as  if 
the  field  they  were  to  occupy,  which  is  a  veiy  extensive  and  important  one, 
was  reserved  by  Providence  for  some,  who,  with  more  courage,  can  encounter  diffi- 
culties and  bear  their  cross,  and  who  will  be  disposed,  with  Paul,  to  count  all  things 
but  loss ;  nay,  not  even  to  count  their  lives  dear  for  the  sake  of  Christ,  f 

*  The  chaplain  to  the  colony.  f  "Missionary  Magazine,"  1796,  p.  34. 


206  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Previous  to  the  embarkation  of  these  individuals,  no  impro- 
priety whatever  had  been  discovered  in  their  behaviour,  nothing 
that  could  indicate  in  the  least  degree  the  unhappy  result  which 
finally  defeated  the  undertaking.  It  appears  that  they  repaired 
to  the  ship  in  good  health,  in  high  spirits,  and  in  a  state  of  per- 
fect harmony  with  one  another;  but  during  the  voyage  they 
became  extremely  discontented,  quarrelling  among  themselves, 
and  two  of  them  were  continually  calling  each  other  ill  names.  On 
their  arrival  at  Sierra-Leone,  thc}^  behaved  in  such  a  manner  as 
excited  the  derision  and  contempt  of  all  who  had  an  opportunity 
of  observing  them.  Happily,  however,  the  dissensions  which 
prevailed  among  them  prevented  the  evil  from  being  carried 
into  the  country  which  they  intended  to  visit ;  so  that,  if  the 
natives  of  the  Foulah  country  were  not  to  be  enlightened  by 
the  gospel  at  this  time,  neither  were  they  to  be  corrupted  bj"" 
their  ill  example,  nor  disgusted  by  their  unholy  strife.  Some 
of  the  women  declared  they  would  proceed  no  further,  and 
reflected  on  their  husbands  for  conducting  them  to  a  foreign 
land  ;  and  the  men,  after  wavering  for  a  season,  joined  them  in 
their  revolt.  Thus  the  design  of  a  colony  was  completely  aban- 
doned, and  the  unworthy  adventurers  seized  the  earliest  oppor- 
tunity of  returning  to  England,  to  accuse  each  other  of  having 
defeated  the  undertaking,  and  to  endure  that  shame  and 
reproach  which  their  misconduct  so  justly  merited.  One  alone 
seems  to  have  been  actuated  by  a  proper  principle.  This  man 
held  fast  his  integrity,  and  at  the  close  of  a  letter  from  Sierra- 
Leone,  detailing  what  occurred  on  the  voyage,  he  observes  :  "  I 
was  truly  weighed  down  beyond  measure,  as  I  plainly  saw  that 
our  design,  and  that  of  the  subscribers,  would  be  frustrated. "" 
Such,  indeed,  was  the  case ;  but  "  it  is  only  an  act  of  justice  to 
the  Wesleyan  body  to  state,  that  though  the  colonists  belonged 
to  that  communion,  they  were  not  sent  out  by  the  Conference, 
but  by  a  Committee  in  London,  consisting  of  gentlemen  of 
various  denominations.'^  * 

Dr.  Coke,  we  know,  took  an  active  part  in  this  plan  for  the 
civilization  of  the  Foulah  tribes  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Sierra- 
Leone  ;  but  it  was  "  in  conjunction  with  others,"  as  the  pre- 
ceding extract  shows, — "  with  gentlemen  of  various  denomina- 
tions," among  whom  was  Mr.  Wilberforce,  who,  in  a  letter  to 
Dr.  Coke,  observes :  ''  I  cannot  help  taking  up  my  pen  for  a 
moment,  to  assure  you  of  the  satisfaction  it  affords  me  to  hear 
of  your  intention  to  plant  a  mission  in  the  neighbourhood  of 

*  "  Missionary  Records,"   JVestern  Africa,  p.  65. 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  207 

Sierra- Leone.  I  shall  certainly,  among  my  brother  Directors, 
recommend  and  enforce  our  duty,  and  the  utility  of  forwarding 
the  measure  in  the  best  way  we  are  able,  with  propriety,  in  our 
official  situations;  and  I  dare  say  we  could  procure  a  large 
subscription  towards  the  support  of  the  mission  in  our  individual 
capacities.  I  pray  that  it  may  please  God  to  bring  this  scheme 
into  accomplishment,  and  that  He  may  bless  your  labours  with 
success."  *  That  eminent  statesman  and  Christian  philanthro- 
pist, in  the  same  letter,  very  properly  remarked  :  "I  cannot 
help  adding,  that  much  must  depend  upon  the  qualifications 
and  dispositions  of  the  missionaries,  not  only  for  their  success 
among  the  natives,  (according  to  the  usual  proceedings  of  Divine 
Providence,)  but  also  for  the  funds  we  might  be  able  to  raise 
for  the  general  purpose  of  the  establishment."  On  this  subject 
there  can  be  but  one  opinion :  not  only  much,  but  every  thing, 
depends  upon  the  character  of  those  who  are  sent  to  evangelize 
others,  in  subordination  to  the  agency  of  the  Holy  Ghost;  and 
Dr.  Coke,  no  doubt,  was  as  fully  convinced  of  this  as  any  one : 
but  he  was  in  this  case  deceived  in  the  men  whom  he  had 
engaged ;  and  we  may  charitably  hope  that  the  persons  by 
whom  they  were  recommended  were  also  deceived.  The  one 
who  alone  appeared  to  have  been  actuated  by  a  proper  principle, 
and  whom  we  have  before  mentioned,  remarks  :  "  I  am  sorry  to 
say  that  most  of  the  persons  you  chose  for  the  propagation  of 
the  gospel  in  the  Foulah  country,  in  Africa,  have  manifested  to 
the  world  that  they  are  strangers  to  the  power  of  it  themselves. 
I  thought  that  their  discontent  while  on  board  might  have. arisen 
from  their  being  strangers  to  ships ;  but  I  soon  found  that  it 
arose  from  an  unrenewed  heart."  It  was  no  wonder,  therefore, 
that  the  mission  failed.  Motives  of  a  higher  order  than  those 
which  actuate  the  generality  of  mankind,  or  even  many  of  our 
great  philanthropists,  are  requisite  for  a  work  like  this;  an 
enterprise  in  which  none  can  successfully  engage,  but  men  in 
whose  hearts  a  flame  has  been  enkindled,  pure,  quenchless,  and 
divine. 

Other  colonizing  schemes  of  a  similar  character  have  been 
attempted  in  the  same  locality  and  elsewhere,  and  have  as  sig- 
nally failed ;  but  this  was  the  first  and  only  effort  of  the  kind 
attempted  by  Wesleyans,  and  that  not  in  their  official  capacity. 
This  fact  will  be  more  fully  established  by  the  concluding  para- 
graph in  a  "  Narrative  of  the  Methodist  Missions,"  contained  in 
the  "  Missionary  Magazine,"  published  in  Edinburgh  in  1796, 

*  Drew's  "  Life  of  Dr.  Coke,"  p.  265. 


208  -WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFHICA. 

from  which  we  have  already  quoted,  and  which  is  ahke  charac- 
terized by  its  candour,  and  its  accuracy  and  veracity  in  the 
perspicuous  and  concise  statement  of  important  facts.  The 
editor  says,  "We  understand  that  the  mission  to  the  Foulah 
country,  which  is  said  to  have  failed,  was  not  properly  a  Me- 
thodist mission,  as  the  families  that  went  out  with  jMr.  ISIacaulay, 
with  the  design  to  settle  on  the  borders  of  that  country,  were 
not  sent  by  the  Methodist  Conference.  We  therefore  insert 
this  note,  lest  any  of  our  readers,  by  attaching  the  common  idea 
to  the  phrase  'Methodist  mission,'  should  be  led  to  conclude, 
that  these  persons  must  have  been  missionaries  sent  out  by  that 
body  of  people,  for  the  express  purpose  of  preaching  to  the 
Heathen ;  whereas,  they  were  neither  so  sent,  nor  was  their 
mission  so  immediately  to  preach,  as  to  form  a  Christian 
colony.''  * 

Notwithstanding  this  just  and  satisfactory  explanation  of  the 
matter,  and  though  no  real  blame  could  be  attached  to  Dr. 
Coke,  much  less  to  the  Wesleyan  Conference,  yet  both  felt  that 
the  honour  of  Methodism  was  involved  in  the  failure  of  the 
expedition,  inasmuch  as  the  parties  sent  out  were  professed 
Methodists,  and  they  had  been  encouraged  and  assisted  in  the 
enterprise  by  one  of  its  most  distinguished  ministers.  Dr.  Coke 
especially  felt  this,  and  "his  soul  was  cast  down  within  him;" 
indeed,  "in  consequence  of  the  miscarriage  of  the  Foulah  mis- 
sion," his  biographer  speaks  of  his  "heart  bleeding  at  every 
pore."  But  the  annual  assembly  of  the  Wesleyan  ministers 
was  nigh  at  hand ;  and  in  the  Minutes  of  Conference  for  that 
year  (1796)  we  find  the  first  appointment  of  "  missionaries  for 
Africa,  namely,  "Archibald  Murdoch,  and  William  Patten," 
with  the  following  note  at  the  bottom  of  the  page :  "  Dr.  Coke 
laid  before  the  Conference  an  account  of  the  failure  of  the  colony 
intended  to  be  established  in  the  Foulah  country  in  Africa; 
and,  after  prayer  and  mature  consideration,  the  Confei'ence 
unanimously  judged,  that  a  trial  should  be  made,  in  that  part 
of  Africa,  on  the  proper  missionary  plan.  The  two  brethren 
above  mentioned,  having  voluntarily  offered  themselves  for  this 
important  work,  the  Conference  solemnly  appointed  them  for  it, 
and  earnestly  recommended  them  and  their  great  undertaking  to 
the  public  and  private  prayers  of  the  INIethodist  societ}'."  f 

Thus  one  good  resulted  at  once  from  the  evil ;  and  that  was 
the  immediate  appointment  of  two  brethren  "on  the  proper 
missionary  plan,"  who  were  commended  to  the  prayers  of  the 

*  "  Missionai'y  Magazine,"  p.  69.  f  "  Minutes  of  Conference,"  vol.  i.  p.  335. 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  209 

Methodist  society.  But  it  appears  that  neither  of  these  bre- 
thren sailed  for  Africa;  for,  in  the  following  year  they  were 
appointed  to  Ireland,  and  in  1798  Archibald  Murdoch  was 
sent  to  Tortola  in  the  West  Indies,  where  he  laboured  for 
several  years.  I  find  no  farther  record  on  the  Minutes  as  to 
the  appointment  of  missionaries  for  Africa,  or  as  to  the  number 
of  members  in  the  society,  until  1808;  when  it  is  stated, 
''  Sierra-Leo7ie,  A  preacher  is  to  be  sent,  as  soon  as  the  general 
superintendent  and  Committee  can  find  a  suitable  person."  * 

Dr.  Coke  having  occasionally  to  visit  the  religious  societies  ou 
the  continent  of  America,  the  superintendence  of  the  missions 
devolved  upon  a  Committee  appointed  in  1804.  This  Commit- 
tee consisted  of  the  preachers  resident  in  London,  and  of  nine 
other  gentlemen  ;  and  it  was  during  this  year  that  public  col- 
lections in  support  of  the  missions  were  appointed  hj  the  Con- 
ference throughout  the  Connexion. 

We  have  already  stated  that  among  the  members  of  society 
who  went  from  Nova -Scotia  to  Sierra-Leone,  two  or  three  offi- 
ciated as  local  preachers ;  these  brethren,  we  have  also  said, 
frequently  wrote  to  Dr.  Coke  and  others,  beseeching  them  to 
send  a  missionary.  The  following  letter  from  one  of  them, 
addressed  to  Dr.  Coke,  will  be  interesting ;  it  is  dated, 

Sierra-Leone,  Juhj  bth,  1806. 

Rev.  Sir, — I  wrote  to  you  more  than  two  years  ago ;  but  I  am  rather  doubtful 
wliether  you  received  my  letter,  as  I  did  not  receive  any  answer  thereto.  I  now 
make  bold  to  repeat  the  contents  of  that  letter  ;  and  inquire  whether  you  could  not 
send  us  a  pious  person,  who  could  assist  in  preaching  to  the  people,  and  taking  the 
charge  of  our  small  flock.  Dear  Sir,  you  know  money  will  not  procure  us  a  minis- 
ter ;  and  if  it  would,  we  have  none.  Therefore,  if  our  brethren  in  England  will  not 
pity  us,  and  take  our  case  into  their  serious  consideration,  none  will.  Our  congre- 
gation consists  of  about  forty  members,  who  appear  to  grow  in  grace,  and  in  the 
knowledge  of  our  blessed  Lord.  But  as  I  am  old,  and  my  assistant,  Mr.  Gordon,  is 
likewise  advanced  in  years ;  and  as  there  is  no  prospect  of  any  suitable  person  being 
raised  up  here,  that  could  attend  to  the  little  flock,  in  case  we  should  be  called 
hence ;  we  the  more  earnestly  desire  and  pray  that  God  may  send  us  a  person  of 
warm  zeal,  to  assist  in  carrying  on  his  blessed  work ;  and  that  our  brethren,  of 
whose  household  we  are,  may  remember  us  in  this  important  matter. 

Our  place  of  meeting  was  much  decayed,  and  we  have  been  obliged  to  build 
another,  which  is  now  finished ;  and  the  next  sabbath-day  it  will  be  opened  for 
Divine  service. 

MyseK,  and  all  the  members  of  our  society,  beg  to  be  remembered  in  your 
prayers. 

I  am,  &c., 

Joseph  Brown. f 

*  "  Minutes  of  Conference,"  vol.  iii.  p.  17. 
t  "Methodist  Magazine,"  vol.  xxx.  pp.  283,  284.  (1807.) 

P 


210  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

No  "  suitable  person  "  as  yet  having  offered  himself  for  this 
interesting  field  of  labour,  the  little  society  was  continued  under 
the  pastoral  care  of  the  two  or  three  local  preachers  on  the  spot ; 
but  tlie  great  Head  of  the  church  was  Avith  them,  and  their 
numbers  increased.  In  1808  one  of  the  coloured  brethren  wrote 
to  Dr.  Adam  Clarke,  giving  an  account  of  a  good  work  which 
had  commenced  among  the  Maroons,  and  stating  that  they  had 
"  begun  to  subscribe  two  cents  each  per  week,  for  the  further 
promotion  of  the  gospel  of  Christ.^^  The  writer  observes  :  "  The 
converted  Maroons  give  their  love  to  their  reverend  fathers  and 
brethren  in  Christ  Jesus,  and  hope  that  their  souls  are  in  health 
as  ours  are."  The  whole  number  of  members  in  the  society  at 
that  time  was  about  one  hundred.  Still  they  were  left  as  sheep 
without  any  regularly  constituted  shepherd.  The  prejudicial 
effects  of  the  climate  on  European  constitutions  was  the  great 
and  primary  cause  why  this  interesting  little  church  was  kept  so 
long  without  a  missionary ;  for  it  was  well  known  that,  though 
the  locality  of  Sierra-Leone  was  one  of  the  best  on  the  coast  as 
to  health,  it  was  nevertheless  an  unhealthy  atmosphere;  and 
therefore  the  man  who  went  thither  must  go  with  his  heart  full 
of  the  love  of  God,  and  with  yearning  pity  for  the  souls  of  his 
fellow-men,  "not  counting  his  life  dear  unto  him;"  and  the 
absence  of  these  qualifications  was  too  well  remembered  as  the 
cause  of  the  previous  failure,  to  permit  any  precipitancy  or 
indiscretion  in  the  selection  of  a  suitable  missionary  on  the  pre- 
sent occasion,  who  should  make  a  trial  in  that  part  of  Africa 
"  on  the  proper  missionary  plan." 

At  length  a  man  was  found  possessing  the  requisite  qualifica- 
tions for  the  undertaking.  Whilst  travelling  in  the  west  of 
Eugland  in  the  winter  of  1810,  Dr.  Coke  met  with  Mr.  George 
Warren,  who  was  at  that  time  an  itinerant  preacher  in  the 
Helstoue  circuit,  in  Cornwall.  Mr.  Warren  stated  that  "  for  a 
long  season  his  mind  had  been  deeply  impressed  with  a  persua- 
sion that  it  was  his  duty  to  visit  Africa;  that  even  then  he 
would  prefer  that  station  to  any  other ;  and  that  he  was  fully 
persuaded  these  impressions  came  from  God."  Accordingly,  in 
the  Minutes  of  the  Conference  for  1811,  we  find  George  Warren 
appointed  to  Sierra-Leone.  Three  pious  young  men  from  the 
Dewsbury  circuit  also  volunteered  their  services ;  and,  after 
being  examined  by  a  Committee  of  the  Leeds  District,  they 
were  accepted  as  assistants  or  schoolmasters.  Their  names  were 
Rayner,  Healey,  and  Hirst :  the  two  former  were  local  preachers. 
These  brethren,  with  the  Rev.  George  Warren,  sailed  from 
Liverpool,  September  21st,  1811,  amidst  the  prayers  and  best 


WKSLEYAX    MISSION'S    AT    SIERRA-LKONE.  211 

wishes  of  many  of  the  benevolent  and  pious  friends  of  Liverpool. 
Amongst  those  who  "  accompanied  them  unto  the  ship  "  was 
the  venerable  Dr.  Coke,  with  the  E.ev.  Messrs.  Entwisle, 
Gaulter,  and  Buckley :  the  three  latter  were  at  that  time 
stationed  in  the  Liverpool  circuit,  and  all  four  have  long  since 
been  gathered  to  their  fathers.  The  brig  "  Traveller,"  on  board 
of  which  these  brethren  sailed,  was  commanded  by  a  pious 
Quaker,  of  the  name  of  Paul  Cuffee,  a  free  man  of  colour ;  and 
the  ship  was  wholly  manned  by  American  sailors  of  the  same 
description  and  complexion,  all  of  whom  were  reported  to  be 
men  who  feared  God. 

On  the  3d  of  October  they  were  in  44°  N.  lat.,  and  19°  51' 
W.  long.,  when  they  had  a  narrow  and  providential  escape  from 
a  French  privateer.  At  length  they  reached  the  colony  in 
safet}^  and  landed  at  Sierra-Leone  about  five  o'clock  in  the 
afternoon  on  the  12th  of  November.  They  were  kindly  received 
by  the  Rev.  Mr.  Nylander,  the  chaplain  of  the  colony,  as  also  b}'^ 
the  governor,  and  other  friends,  "who  showed  them  no  small 
kindness."  But  by  none  were  tliey  more  cordially  welcomed 
than  by  "the  little  flock"  to  whom  they  were  sent.  One  of  the 
local  preachers,  whose  heart  seemed  to  overflow  with  joy,  after 
recovering  a  little  from  the  transport  of  his  amazement  and  gra- 
titude, exclaimed,  with  a  degree  of  rapturous  pathos  which  no 
art  can  imitate,  "  This  is  what  we  have  been  praying  for  so  long, 
and  now  the  Lord  has  answered  our  prayers  !  " 

On  the  15th  of  November,  1811,  Mr.  Warren  commenced  his 
missionary  labours,  by  preaching  to  a  crowded  congregation  in 
the  chapel  which  these  pious  Blacks  had  erected  some  years 
before.  On  the  following  day  he  met  the  stewards  and  leaders 
of  the  whole  society,  and  was  much  pleased  with  their  attention 
to  discipline,  which  they  had  carefull}'  maintained :  the  num- 
ber of  members  in  the  society  was  also,  to  his  agreeable  surprise, 
one  hundred  and  ten.  The  sacrament  of  the  Lord's  supper  was 
now  administered  by  the  missionary,  which  was  a  fresh  cause  of 
thankfulness ;  though  it  was  arranged  that  it  should  not  be 
celebrated  at  the  same  time  that  the  ordinance  was  administered 
at  the  church. 

Mr.  Warren  had  not  long  continued  to  preach,  before  he  had 
the  happiness  to  perceive  some  fruit  to  his  labour,  in  the  con- 
version of  sinners  to  God ;  and  the  chapel,  though  capable  of 
accommodating  four  hundred  persons,  was  soon  too  small  to 
hold  the  congregation.  The  other  brethren  were  co-workers 
with  the  missionary  in  a  variety  of  ways,  but  particularly  in  the 
schools.     In  a  few  months  death  removed  Mr.  Warren,   after 

p  2 


212  WESTERN    COAST    OT"    AFlil(;A. 

a  short  illness,  to  liis  eternal  rest.  The  sudden  removal  of 
this  faithful  and  laborious  missionary  was  severely  felt,  not  only 
by  the  societ\%  but  by  the  inhabitants  generally. 

George  Warren,  from  a  child,  knew  the  holy  sci'iptures, 
and  experienced  them  to  be  the  power  of  God  unto  salvation. 
He  also  began  early  to  make  known  to  mankind  the  things  of 
God,  an  employment  in  which  he  never  grew  weary.  He 
entered  the  Wesley  an  ministry  in  1807,  and  was  stationed  to 
the  Cardiff  circuit :  he  subsequently  travelled  in  the  Kington, 
St.  Austle,  and  Helstone  circuits,  where  he  laboured  with  credit 
to  himself,  and  profit  to  others.  It  was  in  the  latter  place  that 
Dr.  Coke  met  with  him  at  the  close  of  1810;  and  knowing  that, 
at  the  time,  Africa  was  without  any  missionary,  and  that  it  was 
with  extreme  difficulty  one  could  be  procured,  though  the  neces- 
sity for  one  was  so  urgent,  Mr.  Warren  nobly  offered  to  go, 
being  rather  encouraged  than  intimidated  by  the  difficulty 
and  dangers  of  the  mission.  Western  Africa  had  long  been 
impressed  upon  his  mind ;  but,  his  parents  objecting,  he  had 
paused  for  a  time.  Mr.  Warren  then  wrote  to  them,  beseech- 
ing them,  by  the  blood  of  souls,  not  to  hinder  him  from  going. 
After  a  desperate  struggle,  one  of  them  gave  consent,  and  soon 
after  the  mother  died  :  then  his  way  was  open,  and,  with  a 
glad  heart  and  free,  he  embarked  for  Sierra-Leone  in  Western 
Africa.  He  not  only  went  willingly,  but  "preferred  that  sta- 
tion to  any  other;"  nor  was  he  disappointed  after  his  arrivrd 
in  Africa,  though  very  different  from  an  English  appointment. 
In  a  letter  to  Cornwall  he  wrote  :  "  I  bless  God  I  do  not  at  all 
regret  the  sacrifices  which  I  have  made ;  nor  have  I  ever  been 
more  satisfied  in  my  own  mind,  with  respect  to  being  in  the 
way  of  Providence,  than  I  now  am."  But  Infinite  Wisdom 
saw  fit  to  take  him  to  Himself:  his  race,  therefore,  was  soon 
run.  He  entered  into  the  joy  of  his  Lord  on  the  23d  of 
July,  1812,  after  a  residence  of  little  more  than  eight  months. 
Mr.  Warren  was  the  first  Wesleyan  missionary  who  preached 
the  gospel  in  Western  Africa,  and  he  was  the  first  that  died 
there;  but  he  neither  lived  in  vain,  nor  died  in  vain  ;  and,  both 
by  his  life  and  by  his  death,  "he,  being  dead,  yet  speaketh." 

]\Ir.  Rayner,  one  of  the  schoolmasters,  about  this  time 
returned  to  Europe,  and  was  sent  out  in  1813  as  a  missionary 
to  the  West  Indies,  where  he  laboured  faithfully  for  several 
years,  and  died  in  the  v.ork. 

xVfter  the  death  of  Mr.  Warren,  a  considerable  time  elapsed 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERK A-LEON E.  213 

before  iiuotlier  could  be  procured  to  fill  his  place;  aud^  during 
this  iuterim,  the  prospects  of  the  Httle  society  were  rather 
gloomy,  in  consequence  of  the  derangement  which  his  death 
occasioned,  and  the  return  to  England  of  Mr.  Rayner  on 
account  of  ill  health.  But  the  other  two  European  school- 
masters, though  they  were  "perplexed/'  were  "not  in  despair:" 
they  did  all  they  could  to  serve  laoth  the  school  and  the  society ; 
and  God  continued  to  favour  them  in  their  little  assembhes,  as 
will  be  seen  from  the  following  extract  of  a  letter  from  these 
two  brethren,  addressed  to  the  late  Rev.  Robert  Smith,  the 
secretary  to  the  missionary  Committee  : — 

Sierra-Leone,  August  3d,  1813. 
In  meeting  the  society,  we  were  mucli  delighted  to  find  many  of  them  rejoicing 
in  the  light  of  God's  countenance.  We  may  safely  say  of  them,  that  their  souls 
are  in  a  more  prosperous  state  than  our  fears  suggested.  Blessed  be  God,  the 
glory  has  not  departed  from  us.  We  feel  him  many  times  in  the  midst  of  our 
little  assemblies,  especially  in  the  band-meetings.  In  these  and  in  the  love-feasts, 
the  Spirit  is  frequently  poured  out  in  such  abimdance,  that  the  people  are  at  a  loss 
how  to  express  themselves  ;  their  joy  is  indeed  unspeakable. 

The  congregations  are  in  general  very  good,  and  our  society  consists  of  ninety- 
one  members,  beside  four  or  five  whom  we  consider  on  trial. 

John  Healey, 
Thomas  Hirst.* 

It  is  generally  known,  by  the  friends  of  missions,  that,  during 
the  year  1814,  the  Wesley  an  connexion  and  the  cause  of  mis- 
sions met  with  a  severe  loss  in  the  death  of  Dr.  Coke,  while  on 
his  voyage  to  establish  a  mission  in  Asia.  In  the  "annual 
Report  of  the  State  of  the  Missions"  from  "  February  1st,  1814, 
to  February  1st,  1815,"  printed  at  the  Conference-Office,  there 
is  an  address  "  to  the  generous  subscribers  who  have  contributed 
towards  the  support  of  the  missions,"  in  which  there  is  the  fol- 
lowing allusion  to  this  event : — "  Our  missions  being  supported 
by  your  generous  subscriptions  and  donations,  we  think  it  right 
to  furnish  you,  annually,  with  a  report  of  our  success,  and  of 
the  expenditure  of  your  money.  The  former  Reports  were 
drawn  up  by  the  Rev.  Dr.  Coke,  whose  sudden  death  we  deeply 
lament;  but  the  task  now  devolves  on  the  secretaries  of  the 
missions  appointed  by  the  last  Conference."  t     In  this  Report, 

*  Methodist  Magazine,  vol.  xxxvii.  p.  79.   (1814.) 

•f-  They  were  the  llev.  Jonathan  Edmondson  and  the  Rev.  James  Buckley,  who 
were  stationed  in  the  two  London  Circuits.  The  departure  of  Dr.  Coke  for  the 
East,  and  his  lamented  death,  led  eventually  to  a  more  complete  and  etficient 
organization  of  the  missionary  operations  of  the  connexion.  At  the  above  period 
there  were  several  of  the  Methodist  societies  and  congregations,  in  diflFerent  parts 
of  the  kingdom,  who  had  formed  themselves  into  Missionary  Societies,  for  the  pur- 


2U 


WESTERN     COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


under  the  liead  of  "  Sierra- Leoue  m  Africa/'  the  state  of  that 
mission  is  thus  referred  to  : — 

Every  event  of  Divine  ProAddence,  however  painful  to  our  feelings,  is  designed  to 
answer  some  good  end ;  and  yet  we  are  so  short-sighted,  and  so  foohshly  prone  to 
prefer  our  own  will  to  the  will  of  God,  that  we  do  not  always  see  his  gracious 
intentions,  or  bow  down  to  him  with  pious  submission.  This  remark  applies,  in 
too  many  instances,  even  to  the  flock  of  Christ,  especially  when  they  lose  valuable 
pastors.  Perhaps  our  brethren  in  Sierra-Leone  felt  something  of  this,  when  the 
Lord  took  from  them  our  beloved  brother  WaiTen.  Ever  since  his  lamented  death, 
we  have  been  anxiously  looking  out  for  a  suitable  person  to  supply  his  place ;  and, 
at  length,  our  \\-ishes  have  been  accomplished.  Brother  Davies,  the  Welsh  mis- 
sionary, from  London,  has  undertaken  the  pastoral  care  of  that  little  flock.  May 
the  Chief  Shepherd  support  him,  and  crown  his  labours  with  great  success ! 

There  is  a  discrepancy  in  tlie  Minutes  of  Conference  for 
1814;  the  name  of  WilHam  Davies  being  found  on  the  Stations 
for  Sierra-Leone^  at  the  same  time  that  he  was  appointed  for 
London,  and  was  labouring  there  as  a  Welsh  preacher.  The  pro- 
bability is,  that  in  the  original  Minutes  for  that  year  he  Avas 
appointed  to  London  only,  and  that  Sierra-Leone  stood  as  it 
did  in  the  preceding  year,  "  One  wanted;"  and  that  the  mistake 
occurred  in  the  reprinting  of  the  fourth  volume  of  the  Minutes 
several  years  afterwards. 

Mr.  Davies,  with  his  wife,  sailed  from  Plymouth  on  the  23d 
of  December,  1814,  in  the  ship  "Wilding,"  Captain  Gibson, 
under  a  convoy,  which,  having  to  touch  at  Cork,  detained  them 
for  a  short  time.     There  were  seven  persons  on  board  connected 

l)ose  of  raising  pecuniary'  supplies  for  the  support  of  the  Wesleyan  missions.  But, 
at  the  Conference  of  1817,  a  "  plan"  was  drawn  up  and  printed,  to  combine  these 
various  exertions  of  the  societies  and  congregations  of  the  Wesleyan  Jlethodists 
into  one  Society,  under  the  denomination  of  "  the  General  Wesleyan-Methodist 
Missionary  Society;"  and  a  meeting  of  the  Society  was  appointed  to  be  held 
annually  in  London,  in  the  month  of  May.  The  Rev.  George  Marsden  and  the 
Rev.  Richard  Watson  were  elected  as  joint-secretaries.  The  Conference  of  that 
year  had  directed  the  executive  Committee  to  make  such  additional  arrangements 
as  might  be  deemed  necessary  for  perfecting  the  plan,  and  carrying  it  into  full 
effect.  This  was  accordingly  done,  and  was  presented  to  the  following  Conference, 
when  it  was  printed  in  the  Minutes,  under  the  title  of,  "  Laws  and  Regulations  of 
the  General  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary  Society."  It  was  also  published  in 
what  was  called  the  "First  Report"  of  the  Society,  in  1818,  at  which  time  the 
general  treasurers  were,  Thomas  Thompson,  Esq.,  Hull,  and  the  Rev.  George 
Marsden,  London ;  and  the  general  secretaries  were  the  Rev.  Jabez  Bunting,  A.M., 
the  Rev.  Joseph  Taylor,  and  the  Rev.  Richard  Watson.  Mr.  Taylor  was  the 
"  resident  secretary;"  the  other  two  were  doing  the  full  work  of  a  circuit.  The 
General  Committee  consisted  of  fifty  members,  one-half  of  whom  were  laymen. 
The  above  "  Laws  and  Regulations,"  &c.,  are  printed  every  year  in  the  annual 
Reports  of  the  Society. 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  215 

with  the  Church  Missionary  Society,  some  of  whom  were  mis- 
sionaries; and  the  cheerful,  social,  and  Christian  spirit  of  the 
whole  party  contributed  much  to  each  other's  comfort.  The 
wind  being  favourable,  they  finally  put  to  sea  on  the  5th  of 
January,  and  arrived  safely  at  Sierra-Leone  on  the  13th  of 
February,  1815,  after  a  pleasant  voyage  from  the  Cove  of  Cork. 

Mr.  Davies  soon  met  with  the  brethren  Healey  and  Hirst, 
and  the  coloured  friends,  who  greatly  rejoiced  because  God  had 
answered  their  prayers  in  sending  them  a  missionary.  He  com- 
menced his  labours  the  following  day,  by  preaching  from  Isaiah 
xlv.  22,  and  after  the  service  met  the  leaders  and  members, 
when  he  read  to  them  the  letter,  with  the  regulations,  of  the 
Committee  in  London,  which  afforded  them  great  satisfaction. 
Many  in  the  society  were  truly  alive  to  God,  and  the  school- 
masters had  been  usefully  employed,  several  of  the  boys  having 
proceeded  in  arithmetic  as  far  as  the  rule  of  three,  and  being 
able  to  read  and  write  tolerably  well. 

At  the  close  of  March,  it  was  found  that  there  Avere  one  hun- 
dred members  in  society,  and  nine  on  trial.  Mrs.  Davies  was 
also  actively  engaged  in  meeting  a  class  of  females,  and  was 
made  a  blessing  to  the  souls  under  her  care.  The  well-known 
and  highly-respected  Governor  Macarthy  caused  a  large  school- 
room to  be  built  on  the  mission-premises,  where  upwards  of 
two  hundred  children  were  daily  collected ;  and  in  this  depart- 
ment the  wife  of  the  missionary  found  delightful  work. 

The  rains  had  closed  in  October;  and  though  the  captain  of 
the  "Wilding"  died  a  few  days  after  his  arrival  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  and  several  other  Europeans,  during  the  sickly  season, 
had  fallen  victims  to  the  climate,  one  of  whom  had  resided  in 
Africa  many  years,  yet  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Davies  were  mercifully 
preserved.  Mr.  Davies,  it  is  true,  was  occasionally  "  a  little 
feverish,"  at  other  times  "  rather  faint  in  body ;"  but  Mrs. 
Davies  enjoyed  good  health  during  the  whole  of  the  worst  sea- 
son of  the  year,  and  in  November  "  was  going  on  charmingly 
well  with  the  school."  But  the  cold  hand  of  death  was  not  far 
distant :  she  was  taken  ill  on  the  8th  of  December,  and  her 
husband  was  seized  with  fever  on  the  same  day;  he  was  in 
one  end  of  the  house,  and  she  in  the  other.  Medical  aid 
was  immediately  resorted  to,  and  the  greatest  attention 
was  paid  to  both  of  them;  but  the  strength  of  Mrs.  Davies 
diminished  daily,  and  at  the  end  of  a  week  "  the  weary  wheels 
of  life  stood  still."  On  the  morning  of  the  day  of  her  death, 
Mr.  Davies  "  crawled  to  see  her,"  and  was  much  affected  at  the 
change;  but,  in  answer  to  the  question,  "Is  Jesus  precious?" 


216  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

she,  with  a  faint  voice,  and  pressing  his  hand,  said,  "  Yes,  yes,'' 
and  spoke  no  more  till  she  joined  the  assembly  of  the  first-born 
above.  The  next  day,  at  four  o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  her 
remains  were  conveyed  to  the  silent  tomb,  accompanied  by  His 
Excellency  tlie  Governor,  the  chief  gentlemen  of  the  colony, 
and  almost  all  the  inhabitants,  and  amid  the  tears  of  the  school- 
children ;  Mr.  Da^des  being  at  the  time  confined  to  his  bed  in 
solitary  sadness,  mourning  his  loss. 

Mrs.  Davies  was  a  woman  of  a  cheerful  disposition,  amiable 
temper,  tried  piety,  and  superior  accomplishments.  She  was 
fond  of  reading,  and,  having  a  strong  memory,  could  recite  the 
history  of  almost  every  book  she  had  read.  She  was  calculated 
for  great  usefulness,  and  nobly  co-operated  with  her  husband 
in  advancing  the  kingdom  of  the  Redeemer.  Her  character, 
talents,  and  unwearied  zeal  rendered  her  a  valuable  auxiliary  to 
the  mission  at  Sierra-Leone.  She  was  mighty  in  prayer,  paid 
laudable  attention  to  the  members  of  her  class,  and  before  her 
death  had  a  school  of  one  hundred  and  fifty  girls  under  her 
care,  to  whom  she  was  much  attached.  But  in  the  midst  of  her 
usefulness  she  "  was  cut  down  like  a  flower,"  and  her  death  was 
a  great  loss,  not  only  to  her  husband,  the  society,  and  the 
school,  but  to  the  colony.  This  was  stated  by  His  Excellency 
Sir  Charles  Macarthy,  when  waited  upon  some  time  after  by 
Mr.  Davies,  to  ask  for  a  stone  to  put  on  his  dear  wife's  grave. 
Sir  Charles  replied,  "  By  all  means :  any  thing  that  is  in  the 
department  is  at  your  service  for  the  sake  of  Mrs.  Davies. 
There  is  not  a  man  in  the  whole  place,  yourself  excepted,  that 
feels  more  at  the  loss  of  that  amiable  woman  than  myself.  Her 
loss  is  the  public's  loss." 

She  died  on  the  15th  of  December,  1815,  in  the  thirtieth 
year  of  her  age,  and  after  a  residence  in  Africa  of  ten  months 
and  two  days.  Mrs.  Davies  was  the  first  wife,  or,  perhaps  with 
equal  propriety  it  may  be  said,  she  was  the  first  Wesleyan 
female  missionary,  that  fell  in  Western  Africa ;  and  this  was  the 
second  loss  by  death  which  that  mission  had  sustained.  But,  in 
reference  to  herself,  "  to  die  was  gain  ;"  and  it  was  therefore  an 
appropriate  quotation  at  the  close  of  the  inscription  on  the 
tomb-stone,  "Not  lost,  but  gone  before." 


CHAPTER  XII. 

WESLEYAN  MISSIONS.— SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1815—1821.) 

A  Conversion — State  of  the  Society  in  1816 — Christian  Spirit  and  Conduct  of 
the  Colonial  Chaplain — Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Brown — Sickness  of  the  Mis- 
sionaries— Death  of  Mrs.  Brown — Sketch — Mr.  Davies  returns  to  England — 
Letter  from  Mr.  Brown — An  African  Fever — Appointment  of  Messrs.  Baker 
and  Gillison — State  of  the  Mission  in  1819 — Mr.  Brown's  Return  Home — 
Death  of  Mr.  Gillison — Letter  from  Mr.  Baker — Revival  of  Religion — The 
Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Iluddlestone  and  Mr.  Lane — Numbers  in  the  Society 
in  1821. 

As  soon  as  Mr.  Davies  was  able  to  be  removed,  he  "  locked 
up  the  house/'  and  went  "  to  reside  for  a  while  with  his  beloved 
friend,  the  Rev.  L.  Butscher,"  the  colonial  chaplain,  ''in  order 
to  change  the  scene,  and  forget  the  stroke.'^ 

On  Christmas-Day  he  resumed  his  labours,  and  at  four 
o'clock  in  the  morning  preached  on  the  birth  of  Christ.  On 
the  4th  of  February,  1816,  the  power  of  God  was  graciously 
manifested  at  a  prayer-meeting  held  in  the  school- room;  and 
one  poor  native,  of  the  name  of  Prince  Edward,  who  had  for 
some  time  been  in  a  state  of  spiritual  bondage,  was,  by  faith  in 
the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  brought  into  Christian  liberty.  This 
was  while  Mr.  Davies  was  engaged  in  prayer.  A  voice  of 
rejoicing  broke  out  at  the  furthest  end  of  the  room,  and  the 
man  went  and  lifted  Mr.  Davies  off  a  little  platform  where  he 
was  kneeling,  took  him  up  in  his  arras,  and  cried  aloud,  "  I 
found  Him  !  I  found  Him  !  "  On  being  asked  what  he  had 
found,  he  answered,  still  holding  Mr.  Davies  in  his  arms,  "  I 
found  Christ.  I  feel  his  pardoning  peace.  His  Spirit  says, 
'  Go  in  peace  ;  all  thy  sins  are  forgiven  thee  ! '  "  Thus  was  this 
poor  sable  sinner,  whose  name  was  Prince,  that  day  numbered 
with  the  princes  of  God's  Israel,  and  "he  went  on  his  way 
rejoicing." 

At  the  close  of  March,  the  number  in  the  society  was  one 
hundred  and  twenty-nine,  eleven  having  found  peace  with  God 
since  Mr.  Davies  had  been  with  them ;  and  several  had  left  the 
church  militant  to  join  their  friends  on  the  other  side  Jordan  ; 
among  whom  was  Mrs.  Butscher,  the  wife  of  the  chaplain,  who 
was  a  member  of  our  society. 


218  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

In  April  Mr.  Davies  visited  some  of  tlie  country  places ;  and 
on  one  occasion  His  Excellency  Governor  Macarthy  accompa- 
nied him  to  Kissey-Town,  and  told  the  people  that  the  mission- 
ary had  come  to  preach  to  them  the  word  of  God :  accordingly, 
they  assembled  together  under  a  shed.  Mr.  Davies  read 
praj^ers,  and  the  kind  governor  officiated  as  clerk^  repeating  the 
responses  on  his  knees,  on  the  mud  floor,  which  had  a  very 
good  effect  on  the  people.  The  excellent  chaplain,  the 
Rev.  L,  Butscher,  also  frequently  accompanied  him  on  these 
errands  of  love  and  mercy  on  week-day  mornings.  "  And  O 
how  delightful  it  is,"  writes  ]\Ir.  Davies,  "  when  going,  before 
day-break,  through  the  streets  of  Free-Town,  to  hear  the  sound 
of  praise  and  prayer  around  the  family  altar  !  Every  professor 
is  sure  to  hold  family  worship  before  he  crosses  the  threshold  of 
his  door.^' 

On  one  occasion,  after  Mr.  Butscher  and  Mr.  Davies  had 
preached  at  one  of  the  villages  in  the  morning,  the  head  man  of 
the  town  gathered  all  the  greegrees  in  which  they  had  been 
trusting,  and  by  noon  he  had  a  bag  full  of  them,  made  of  lea- 
ther, horn,  or  paper,  with  Arabic  words  upon  them  rendered 
sacred  by  their  priests.  He  commanded  9ome  of  the  people  to 
bring  shavings,  sticks,  straw,  &c.  :  he  then  emptied  the  bag, 
and  set  fire  to  the  whole,  and  they  Avere  burnt.  One  of  the 
inhabitants  complained  sadly,  saying,  "  What  me  do  now  for 
greegree  to  keep  me?"  when  an  aged  man  answered,  "Hold 
your  tongue,  you  !  We  be  tink  these  ting  keep  we  from  the  big 
fire,  and  he  no  can  keep  himself  from  burning  before  my  eye. 
Me  be  fool  no  longer.  Me  seek  white  man  God  :  me  seek 
Massa  Jesus  to  save  me." 

Monthly  missionary  prayer-meetings  were  commenced  about 
this  time;  and  they  were  held  regularly  once  in  the  Baptist 
chapel,  once  in  Lady  Huntingdon's  chapel,  and  twice  in  the 
Wesleyan  chapel,  there  being  no  lamps  in  the  church.  The 
worthy  chaplain  heartily  co-operated  in  these  "Evangelical- 
Alliance  "  means  of  grace.  Indeed,  he  was  a  frequent  hearer  in 
the  Wesleyan  chapel  on  Sunday  evenings ;  and  it  was  stated  by 
the  missionary,  that  he,  on  some  occasions,  gave  a  warm  exhor- 
tation after  the  sermon,  or  concluded  with  prayer.  "  We  are 
brethren  indeed,"  writes  Mr.  Davies.  "When  I  administer 
the  sacrament  in  our  chapel,  I  give  the  bread,  and  he  the  wine ; 
and  once  in  the  quarter,  all  our  people  go  to  church,  and  he 
gives  the  bread,  and  I  the  wine." 

Mr.  Davies,  after  the  death  of  his  beloved  wife,  paid  as  much 
attention  as  possible  to  the  state  of  the  school,  and  was  pleased 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIEURA-LEONE.  219 

at  the  regular  daily  atteudauce  of  the  childreu,  and  at  the  evi- 
dent improvement  they  Avere  making-.  It  Avas  a  delightful  sight 
to  see  the  re-captured  Negroes  rescued  from  the  hold  of  slave- 
vessels^  clothed,  and  learning  to  read  the  word  of  God,  and 
other  useful  things.  His  Excellency  often  visited  the  school, 
and  was  present  one  day  in  the  month  of  April  that  year,  when 
Mr.  Davies  and  Mr.  Butscher  baptized  one  hundred  and  five  of 
these  kidnapped  children.  "  All  were  dressed  in  clean  clothes, 
and  had  labels  hanging  before  them,  with  their  new  names  ;'^ 
and  the  missionary  adds,  "  O  may  they  all  have  a  new  name 
from  above  ! " 

Mr.  Davies  having  more  than  he  could  attend  to,  and  addi- 
tional openings  continually  presenting  themselves,  he  appealed 
to  the  Committee  for  help.  Accordingly,  in  the  Minutes  of  the 
Conference  for  1816,  the  name  of  Samuel  Brown  was  added  to 
that  of  William  Davies,  for  Sierra-Leone.  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Brown 
sailed  in  October,  and  aiTived  in  December.  They  were  met  on 
the  beach  by  Mr.  Davies,  who  was  thankful  for  this  seasonable 
supply  of  coadjutors.  It  was  during  this  year  (1816)  that 
the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee  commenced  the  publi- 
cation of  the  Monthly  "  Missionary  Notices,^^  containing 
abstracts  of  letters  and  other  communications  from  the  foreign 
stations,  &c. 

The  following  letter  from  Mr.  Brown,  addressed  to  the  Com- 
mittee, announces  his  arrival  and  reception,  and  gives  an  inter- 
esting viCAv  of  the  state  and  prospects  of  the  mission.  It  is 
dated, 

Free-Town,  Sierra-Leone,  February  ith,  1817. 

Through  the  tender  mercy  of  God,  we  arrived  here  in  health  and  safety  on  the 
evening  of  the  26th  of  Decemher. 

On  the  first  day  of  our  arrival,  I  waited  upon  Ills  Excellency,  Charles  Macarthy, 
and  showed  him  my  credentials.  He  welcomed  us  to  the  colony,  and  behaved  in 
a  very  affable,  fiiendly  manner :  he  is  very  much  respected  as  a  humane,  fatherly 
man. 

I  think  this  colony,  in  the  space  of  fifty  or  one  hundred  years,  will  be  of  great 
importance  to  England.  Many  of  the  re-captured  Negroes  are  taught  to  read, 
A\Tite,  and  some  useful  trade.  They  afterwards  form  connexions,  marry,  and  live  as 
orderly  as  in  many  of  our  English  villages.  I  have  visited  two  of  tliese  native 
towns,  Congo-Town  and  Portuguese-Town.  In  the  latter  we  have  established  a 
meeting.  When  we  first  went,  we  found  them  beating  their  rice,  and  doing  other 
kinds  of  work,  on  the  Lord's-day.  We  told  them  we  were  come  to  preach  to  them  ; 
but  if  they  worked  on  Sundays,  we  could  not.  They  instantly  attended  to  the 
advice  given ;  and  now  when  we  go,  they  are  prepared,  like  the  people  whom 
Cornelius  had  gathered  into  his  house,  to  hear  what  God  will  say  by  his  servants. 
Two  of  them  are  awakened  to  a  sense  of  their  sin  and  danger,  and  are  anxious  to 
be  baptized,  and  united  with  us  in  church-fellowship.     This  people  said,  "  Other 


220  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 

towns  had  lioase  for  God,"  and  regretted  that  they  had  none,  but  expressed  a 
determination  to  have  one  soon.  Congo-Town  is  three  miles  from  Free-Town  ;  but, 
as  they  do  not  hke  its  present  situation,  they  have  bought  five  acres  of  land,  for  ^5, 
a  mile  and  a-half  from  Free-Town,  where  they  were  for  removing  in  the  space  of  a 
fortnight.  They  assign  two  reasons  for  changing  their  situation :  First.  That  they 
may  hear  the  gospel,  or,  as  they  generally  term  it,  "  God  palaver."  Their  other 
reason  is,  that  they  may  be  near  the  sea,  and  have  an  opportunity  of  supplying  their 
families  with  fish.  After  partaking  of  a  fowl,  some  cassada,  and  rice,  which  they 
cheerfully  boiled  for  us,  I  gave  them  an  exhortation,  sang  and  prayed  with  them. 
They  have  pressingly  invited  me  to  preach  regularly  for  them,  when  they  are  settled 
in  their  new  situation.  Though  the  Africans  are  generally  inclined  to  their  "  coun- 
try fashions,"  which  are  very  immoral  and  base  ;  yet,  when  they  are  converted, 
tlie  traces  of  true  godliness  are  very  apparent  through  the  medium  of  their 
simplicity.* 

About  the  same  time  Mr.  Davies,  who  was  actively  engaged 
in  different  parts  of  the  colony,  having  preached  three  times 
on  the  sabbath  at  Leopold^  and  feeling  his  mind  rather  low, 
went  to  Regent^s-ToAvn  to  see  his  friend  Johnson.  After 
taking  a  cup  of  tea,  they  went  to  the  church,  and  Mr.  Davies 
preached,,  "  Avhen  the  tears  were  seen  flowing  over  many  a  sable 
face."  There  was  one  person  in  particular,  of  the  name  of 
Tamba,  who  was  in  great  distress,  and  cried  aloud.  He 
remained  in  the  church  after  the  others  Avere  gone,  and  seemed 
resolved  not  to  rest  till  he  obtained  peace  v<ith  God.  Mr. 
Johnson,  the  church  missionary  at  the  station,  met  him  the 
next  morning,  looking  very  cheerful;  when  he  said  to  him, 
"  Well,  Tamba,  how  are  you  this  morning  ?  How  do  you  feel 
your  heart  this  morning?"  Taraba  answered,  "My  heart  dis 
morning,  massa.  My  heart  no  live  here  now."  "  Well,  Tamba, 
wher^  does  your  heart  live?"  "O,  massa,  heart  live  top 
now." 

At  the  end  of  March  there  were  in  the  society  in  Free-Town 
115  members,  with  24  on  trial.  The  experience  of  the  members 
was  spoken  of  as  being  "  scriptural  and  rational."  Two,  also, 
were  admitted  on  trial  in  Portuguese-Town;  and  soon  after 
this  a  school  was  opened  at  the  same  place.  Early  in  July, 
Mr.  Brown  wrote  to  the  Committee,  expressing  his  thankfulness 
that  both  himself  and  his  wife  had,  he  hoped,  passed  through 
the  seasoning  sickness,  and  were  then  in  good  health ;  but  in 
two  or  three  weeks  after  this,  both  the  missionaries,  with  Mrs. 
Brown,  were  attacked  with  violent  fever,  and  were  all  ill  at  the 
same  time.  Mr.  Davies  was  the  first  that  recovered,  at  least  so 
far  as  to  be  able  to  render  some  assistance  to  ]Mr,  and  Mrs. 

*  "Missionary  Notices"  for  April,  1817,  p.  127. 


WESLEYAN     MISSION'S    AT    SJ  EIlllA-LEONE.  221 

Brown  in  their  ti-ying  circumstances  ;  but  she  soon  fell  a  vic- 
tim to  the  disorder,  nature  becoming  exhausted  with  the 
repeated  attacks  she  had  endured.  She  continued  sensible  to 
the  last,  though  for  a  few  hours  before  she  departed,  through 
weakness,  she  was  unable  to  speak.  She  expired  about  half- 
past  eleven  o'clock  on  the  evening  of  the  ninth  day  after  the 
attack.  This  was  the  third  loss  this  mission  had  sustained  by 
death. 

Mrs.  Brown  was  a  most  affectionate  wife  and  sincere  Chris- 
tian. She  had  had  the  charge  of  a  class  of  eighteen  members ; 
and  from  her  engagements  in  the  school  for  female  Negro 
children  much  usefulness  was  anticipated  ;  but  "  here  we  have 
no  continuing  city."  She  was  present  at  the  funeral  of  the 
Rev.  L.  Butschei',  the  colonial  chaplain,  who  had  died  a  few 
weeks  previously;  and  this  event  had  impressed  her  with  the 
probability  of  her  own  approaching  end,  and  tended  to  quicken 
her  pace  in  the  road  that  leadeth  to  everlasting  life.  "  In  her 
last  illness,"  writes  one  who  witnessed  it,  "  it  was  delightful  to 
behold  her  gaining  fresh  spiritual  strength;  her  soul  stayed 
simply  on  Jesus,  and  deriving  consolation  from  his  all-sufhciency 
and  willingness  to  save."  She  had  a  short  struggle  with  the 
enemy  about  two  days  before  she  died,  but  afterwards  obtained 
deliverance ;  and,  "  with  tears  trickling  down  her  face,"  she 
exclaimed,  "  Glory  be  to  God,  the  enemy  is  chained  ! "  After- 
wards, on  being  asked  how  she  was,  she  answered,  "Very 
happv,  very  comfortable."  She  departed  this  life  in  the  full 
assurance  of  faith,  on  the  28th  of  July,  1817,  after  a  residence 
in  the  colony  of  seven  months  and  two  days.  The  body  was 
interred  in  the  same  grave  with  that  of  Mrs.  Davies ;  but  their 
disembodied  spirits  have  long  been  "  v>'ith  the  Lord,"  and 
they  now  "  rest  from  their  labours,  and  their  works  do  follow 
them." 

Mr.  Brown  was  very  ill  at  the  time  of  his  wife's  death,  but  in 
a  few  days  was  out  of  danger;  and,  though  he  felt  the  shock 
most  severely,  he  bore  it  with  Christian  fortitude,  and  resumed 
his  labours  as  soon  as  possible. 

Mr.  Davies,  on  account  of  repeated  attacks  of  fever,  returned 
to  England  early  in  1818;  but  the  great  Head  of  the  church 
continued  to  bless  the  labours  of  Mr.  Brown,  and  the  mission 
prospered.  The  following  letter  from  this  devoted  missionary, 
addressed  to  the  late  Rev.  Joseph  Benson,  will  show  the  state  of 
the  mission  at  that  period  : — 


222  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Sierra-Leoxe,  May  2Qfh,  1818. 
My  dear  and  honoured  Father, — You  have,  I  doubt  not,  of  late  received 
infonnation,  through  various  means,  relative  to  this  mission.     But,  being  desirous 
of  adding  some  further  particulars  to  it,  I  venture,  with  some  reluctance,  again  to 
present  tlie  subject  before  you. 

At  our  last  quarter's  visitation  of  the  classes,  we  had  one  hundred  and  fifty  per- 
sons in  society,  and  forty-foiu-  on  trial,  against  whose  moral  character  I  found  no 
material  objection.  About  ninety  are  Nova-Scotian  settlers,  or  their  children ; 
twenty,  Maroons ;  forty,  re-captured  Negroes ;  and  the  probationers  are  chiefly  of 
the  last  description.  That  the  piety  of  African  believers  is  equally  bright,  vigorous, 
and  stable,  with  that  of  Eiu-opeans  in  general,  is  what  I  cannot  think  or  say ;  as  a 
religion  but  partially  enhghtened  is  always  weak  and  precarious.  But,  though  they 
have  not  the  advantage  of  taking-in  all  those  rays  of  gospel-truth,  by  which  they 
might  have  been  exalted  in  their  experience  and  practice ;  yet  the  day-star  from  on 
high  hath  visited  them,  and  given  many  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  the  glory  of 
God  in  the  person  of  Jesus  Christ.  It  is  true  that  many  have  but  an  imperfect 
view  of  divine  things,  yet  I  may  with  confidence  assert  that  they  are  recei\'ing  an 
increase  of  Ught,  growing  in  grace,  and  in  the  knowledge  of  Jesus  Christ. 

That  we  have  brighter  prospects  of  usefulness,  and  more  pleasing  scenes  of 
labour  opening  before  us  than  we  have  had,  I  am  pretty  confident.  Our  congrega- 
tion in  Free-Town  on  Sundays  is  generally  greater  than  our  chapel  there  can  well 
contain.  And  the  congregations  at  Soldiers'-Town  and  Portuguese-Town  are 
encouraging ;  usually  at  the  former  from  fifty  to  a  hundred  attend,  and  at  the  latter 
from  thirty  to  eighty.  Our  little  congregation  at  the  west  end  of  Free-Town,  in  the 
old  school-house,  is  broken  up,  as  the  temporary  place  has  fallen  into  ruins ;  but 
the  Maroons  are  building  a  stone  chapel  at  tliis  end  of  the  town,  which,  in  the 
space  of  twelve  months,  will,  I  doul)t  not,  l)e  finished,  and  will  add  strength  to  our 
mission,  as  well  as  increase  our  labours.  They  are  a  \"igorous  and  persevering  peo- 
ple ;  and  tlieir  erection  and  settlement  of  their  chapel  on  the  Conference  plan, 
(which,  I  trust,  will  be  done,)  will  provoke  to  holy  jealousy  the  Nova-Scotians  in 
carrying  on  with  spirit  the  buikUng  tliey  have  begun  at  the  east  end  of  Free-Town. 
The  dimensions  of  the  former  are  sixty  feet  by  thirty ;  and  of  tlie  latter,  sixty-five 
feet  by  forty ;  each  of  them  are  raised  abovit  two  or  three  feet  above  the  surface  of 
the  ground. 

I  verily  think  the  school  we  have  had  here  woidd  be  a  great  blessing,  were  it 
re-established.  The  colonial  school  is  situated  at  the  extremity  of  the  east  end  of 
Free-Town ;  while  at  the  west  end  scores  of  childi-en  are  brought  up  in  ignorance, 
and  attend  no  school. 

But  my  hands  are  full,  and  more  than  full ;  so  that  my  honoured  fathers  will  see, 
I  hope,  a  necessity  of  sending  a  married  missionary  to  take  the  superintendency, 
and  bear  the  burden  of  domestic  affairs.  You  \vill  excuse  me  when  I  say  that  it 
is  by  no  means  proper  that  an  indi\idual  missionary  should  be  on  any  station,  espe- 
cially a  young  man.  I  think,  Rev.  Sir,  when  you  have  weighed  the  statements  that 
are  given,  you  will  see  with  me  that  the  season  is  arrived  for  the  permanent  estab- 
lishment of  oiir  mission ;  that  the  present  is  a  critical  period,  and  that  the  work 
should  be  in  the  hands  of  an  experienced,  holy,  and  prudent  minister.  I  might  fur- 
ther lu-ge  this  subject  by  teUing  you  /  alone  have  had  all  the  weight  of  our  mission 
here  upon  me  ever  since  my  arrival  in  Africa ;  that  the  ckcumstances  in  which  it  is 
now  placed  call  aloud  for  men  of  piety,  prudence,  and  talent,  to  come  over  and 
help  us. 

As  regards  my  own  experience,  1)y  the  Divine  mercy  I  can  say,  I  am  raised  above 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  223 

an  inordinate  love  of  life,  and  a  slavish  fear  of  death  ;  my  desires  are  expressed  in 
one  of  our  hymns  :— 

"  If  in  this  feehle  flesh  I  may 

Awhile  show  forth  thy  praise, 
Jesus,  support  the  tottering  clay, 
And  lengthen  out  my  days." 

Though  all  God's  waves  and  billows  have  gone  over  me,  though  1  have  none 
with  whom  to  communicate ;  yet  I  have  converse  with  my  heavenly  Father,  and 
happiness  in  the  exercise  of  my  ministry ;  so  that  my  time  does  not  hang  heavy 
upon  my  hands  ;  my  wound  also  is  bound  up,  closed,  mollified  with  ointment,  and 
healed. 

I  shall  not  soon  forget  your  great  kindness  to  us  while  in  London,  and  the  suit- 
ableness of  the  address  delivered  to  our  dear  brethren  Fox,  Osborne,  Newstead,  and 
iiiyself,  in  Lambeth  chapel ;  your  kindness  in  presenting  me  with  a  volume  of  your 
sermons,  one  of  which,  No.  XL,  proved  a  cordial  to  my  drooping  spirits  a  few  weeks 
after  the  death  of  Mrs.  Brown,  and  my  own  severe  sickness.* 

During  this  season,  Mr.  Brown  suffered  severely  from  the 
country  fever,  having  had  repeated  attacks;  and  he  felt  the 
force  of  that  passage,  "Woe  to  him  that  is  alone  when  he 
falleth ;  for  he  hath  not  another  to  help  him  up.^'  Still  God 
was  with  him  :  his  European  brethren  of  the  Church  Missionary 
Society  were  very  kind ;  the  governor  also  called  to  see  him,  and 
offered  him  any  thing  in  his  house ;  and  he  adds  :  "  I  have  proved 
more  than  ever  the  love  of  the  people  towards  me,  in  their  anxiety 
for  my  recovery.  They  have  offered  many  prayers  for  me,  paid 
me  many  visits,  and  done  me  many  kind  offices."  But,  "O,  who 
can  describe  the  painfulness  of  a  burning  African  fever,  which 
drinks  up  the  spirits,  yea,  absorbs  the  very  moisture,  destroys 
the  powers  of  reason,  and  is  attended  with  a  head-ache,  thirst, 
and  violent  strainings  to  vomit  ?  These  things  I  fully  expe- 
rienced, and  never  expected  more  to  cumber  this  world."  But 
he  was  mercifully  preserved  through  the  rains,  which  proved 
fatal  to  several  Europeans  that  year ;  and,  as  soon  as  he  was 
able,  he  resumed  his  beloved  employment,  "  the  Lord  working 
with  him,  and  confirming  the  word  with  signs  following." 

Two  single  men,  Messrs.  Baker  and  Gillison,  were  appointed, 
and  sent  out  at  the  end  of  the  year,  to  succeed  Mr.  Brown, 
who,  from  having  been  repeatedly  and  dangerously  ill,  and  from 
the  loss  of  his  excellent  wife,  it  was  thought,  needed  a  change. 
These  brethren  sailed  from  Gravesend  on  the  16th  of  December, 
and  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone  on  the  morning  of  February  14th, 
1819.  It  was  the  sabbath-day;  and  Mr.  Brown  was  soon  on 
board  to  give  them  a  hearty  welcome.  "  From  the  ship," 
observes  Mr.  Brown,   "  we  went  to  the  chapel,  when,  after  I 

*  "The  Methodist  Magazine,"  1818,  p.  793. 


224  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

had  read  prayers,  Mr.  Baker  preached  for  us,  and  in  the  even- 
ing jMr.  Gillison.  It  is  truly  pleasing  to  myself  and  our 
members  to  receive  an  increase  of  missionary  labour  to  this 
part  of  the  world ;  and,  what  is  infinitely  more,  I  am  certain  it 
is  pleasing  to  God,  and  well-timed.  O  that  their  health  and 
life  may  be  spared ;  that  they,  from  an  enriched  and  over- 
flowing heart,  may  ever  bless  their  hearers  out  of  Zion  in  the 
name  of  the  Lord  ! " 

By  these  brethren  Mr.  Brown  received  the  following  com- 
munication from  the  General  Secretaries  : — 

A    RESOLUTION    OF    THE    MISSIONARY    COMMITTEE. 

November  187i,  1818. 
That  in  future  the  missionaries  sent  to  SieiTa-Leone  shall  not  be  required  to 
remain  on  that  station  more  than  three  years,  unless  they  shall  themselves  be 
willing  to  continue  longer ;  and  that  missionaries  so  removed  from  Sierra-Leone  be 
sent  for  the  remainder  of  their  missionary  service  to  some  other  foreign  station  less 
unfavourable  to  health  than  West  Africa. 

By  the  Stations  filled  up  and  altered  at  the  same  meeting,  John  Baker  and  John 
Gillison,  single  men,  were  appointed  to  Sierra-Leone ;  and  you  vrere,  in  considera- 
tion of  your  late  affliction  and  indisposition,  appointed  to  St.  Vincent's,  in  the  West 
Indies,  one  of  our  old  and  1)est  stations,  and  where  your  health,  we  hope,  will  be 
completely  restored. 

(Signed,)     Jabez  Bunting, 
Joseph  Taylor, 
December  Ith,  1818.  Richard  Watson. 

At  the  same  time,  he  received  the  following  note,  dated  a  few 
days  after,  from  the  "Resident  Secretary  :^^ — 

77,  Hatton-Garden,  December  \2th,  1818. 
I  HAVE  cUstinctly  to  state  that  your  being  removed  from  Sierra-Leone  is  merely 
in  consequence  of  your  late  atHiction,  and  from  a  wish  to  save  your  life.     The 
Committee  have  the  fullest  confidence  in  you,  and  the  greatest  satisfaction  with 
you  and  your  labours. 

Yours  truly, 

(Signed,)     Joseph  Taylor. 

For  some  months  previous  to  the  arrival  of  these  new  mis- 
sionaries, a  gradual  revival  of  the  work  of  God  had  been  going 
on,  and  from  twenty  to  thirty  undoubted  conversions  had  taken 
place.  ]\Ir.  Brown,  in  referring  to  this,  and  to  one  or  two 
remarkable  instances  of  the  grace  of  God,  in  a  letter  dated 
February  27th,  1819,  remarks:  "I  have  sown  in  tears,  but 
now  we  reap  in  joy.  Thank  God,  this  is  an  ample  recompence 
for  every  sigh,  every  tear,  every  shaking  ague,  every  burning 
fever,  every  bereavement,  every  restless  and  sleepless  night  I 
have  had  to  endure  since  I  came  to  Africa.  This  makes  me 
very  reluctant  to  leave.     I  feel  I  love  their  precious  souls ;  the 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  225 

affections  of  my  heart  are  iiiterwoveu  with  theirs ;  and  I  know 
they  love  me.  This^  in  union  with  a  joyous  sense  of  my 
acceptance  with  God,  makes  me  wilhng  to  spend  and  be  spent 
for  the  welfare  of  the  church,  and  the  honour  of  my  adorable 
Redeemer;  to  count  nothing  dear  to  me,  so  that  I  may  finish 
my  course  with  joy,  and  be  received  to  that  eternal  rest  which 
remains  for  the  people  of  God.^^ 

Shortly  after  this,  Mr.  Brown  returned  to  England,  when  he 
furnished  the  Committee  with  the  following  interesting  report 
of  the  mission,  giving  the  etymology  of  several  of  the  villages, 
"with  some  other  important  facts  :  * — 

We  have  five  different  places  at  which  we  regularly  preach;  two  in  Free-Town, 
and  three  in  country  villages  entirely  inhabited  l)y  re-captured  Negroes. 

At  the  east  end  of  Free-Town  stands  our  principal  meeting-house,  which  is  a 
boarded  building,  with  a  grass-thatched  roof,  fitted  up  with  benches,  excepting  one 
pew  which  joins  the  pulpit.  It  may,  when  crowded,  contain  from  three  to  four 
hundred  hearers.  We  have  freehold  land  sufficient  on  which  to  build  both  a  com- 
modious chapel  and  a  preacher's  house.  The  foundations  of  a  chapel,  sixty-five 
feet  by  forty,  are  laid,  and  stones  prepared,  which  cost  £100,  collected  by  Mr. 
Davies.     In  addition  to  this,  we  have  since  collected  upwards  of  £100. 

We  preach  in  this  meeting-house  twice  on  Sunday,  give  a  lecture  to  children  on 
Monday  evenings,  preach  on  Wednesday  evenings,  and  hold  prayer-meetings  every 
morning,  and  on  two  evenings  in  the  com^se  of  the  week.  The  congregation  on 
Sunday  is  usually  larger  than  the  place  can  accommodate.  It  consists  of  Negroes 
from  Nova-Scotia,  Maroons,  and  re-captured  Negroes.  My  mind  has  often  been  much 
pained,  that  the  bounds  of  our  decayed  wooden  meeting-house  could  not  seat  all  wlio 
anxiously  came  to  hear  the  word  of  life.  Many  were  obliged  to  sit  dowTi  on  the 
outside,  in  the  scorching  heat  of  the  sun.  This  meeting-house  is  at  the  head  of 
our  mission  :  here  our  re-captured  people  from  the  villages  attend  on  sabbath  morn- 
ings ;  and,  influenced  by  the  cleanly  habits  of  the  Nova-Scotians  and  Maroons,  make 
a  decent  appearance,  which  does  credit  to  the  religion  they  profess.     Here  they  are 

*  On  the  eve  of  his  embarkation  for  England,  Mr.  Brown  received,  amongst 
other  letters,  the  following  pohte  and  Christian  note  from  His  Excellency,  the  late 
Sir  Charles  Macarthy  :  — 

"  Government-House,  Sierra-Leone,  April  Tld,  1819. 
"  Dear  Sir, — In  returning  to  you  my  sincere  thanks  for  the  Annual  Report  of 
your  missions,  I  feel  great  pleasure  in  assuring  you  of  my  most  sincere  good  wishes 
for  your  welfare,  in  whatever  part  of  the  glol)e  you  may  be  employed. 

"  I  enclose  herewith  a  letter  to  the  respectable  members  of  your  Committee,  to 
whom  I  express,  in  very  inadequate  terms,  my  opinion  of  your  zeal  and  exertions  in 
the  good  cause.  I  accept  with  gratitude  your  prayers  for  my  welfare  and  the 
prosperity  of  our  colony. 

"  Believe  me,  with  the  highest  esteem, 
"  Dear  Sir, 

"  Your  faithful,  obedient  servant, 

"  C.  Macarthy. 
"  To  the  Rev.  Samuel  Brown,  isfc.  <!^"e." 

Q 


226 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


brouglit    more  intimately  into   acquaintance  with   our    society,  and  have  further 
opportunity  of  improvement. 

Among  my  most  pleasant  lahours  I  may  rank  the  lectures  which  I  gave  twice  a 
week  to  children,  apprentices,  and  servants  of  all  descriptions ;  part  of  them  I  met 
at  the  mission-house  on  Sundays,  and  the  rest  and  greater  part  on  Monday  even- 
ings. The  number  on  Sundays  was  from  twelve  to  twenty,  and  on  Monday  evenings 
from  sixty  to  one  huntlred. 

The  west  end  of  Free-Town  is  chiefly  inhabited  by  the  Maroons  and  re-captured 
Negroes.  With  a  design  to  awaken  a  spirit  of  piety,  in  the  dry  season  of  1818,  I 
preached  on  Sunday  morning,  alternately  in  the  streets  at  the  east  and  west  end 
of  the  town,  and  visited  most  of  the  inhabitants  from  house  to  house.  Some  good 
arose  from  this  to  my  own  mind,  and  to  the  souls  of  several  of  my  hearers.  Seve- 
ral re-captured  families  became  our  constant  hearers,  and  are  now  members  of  our 
society.  In  the  hut  of  one  at  this  end  of  the  town  we  preach  twice  a  week,  and 
hold  a  prayer-meeting.  The  brethren  now  on  the  Station  have  formed  a  promising 
class  at  the  same  place. 

Congo-Town  is  so  called  from  its  inhabitants  chiefly  consisting  of  re-captured 
Negroes  from  the  river  Congo.  Its  population,  taking-in  the  scattered  huts  in  the 
neighl)ourhood,  may  be  averaged  at  from  three  to  four  hundred  adults,  exclusive 
of  children.  About  the  middle  of  1818,  I  took  them  wholly  under  my  care ;  and, 
by  the  help  of  the  leaders,  visited  them  three  times  a  week.  They  are  all  re- 
captured Negroes,  and,  in  general,  married.  From  an  earnest  desire  to  have  their 
children  taught  to  read,  that  they  might  have  an  opportunity  of  hearing  the  gospel, 
they  commenced  a  subscription  to  build  a  chapel.  It  is  now  nearly  completed,  and 
will  serve  the  double  purpose  of  a  school  and  preaching-room.  Here  we  have 
twenty-seven  members,  under  difi^erent  degrees  of  concern  for  their  salvation.  We 
have  appointed  Moses  Brown,  whom  I  taught  to  read  and  write,  as  schoolmaster, 
under  the  immediate  care  of  the  brethren.  We  are  fully  satisfied  as  to  his  suitable- 
ness for  the  work.  He  lived  with  me  two  years,  and,  on  the  whole,  behaved  him- 
self to  my  satisfaction.  The  congregation  is  usually  from  forty  to  eighty,  and  the 
prospects  are  very  encouraging. 

Soldiers'-Town  is  the  first  of  our  country  villages,  for  the  fruit  it  has  yielded  to 
our  mission.  It  received  its  name  from  being  the  residence  of  the  re-captured 
Negro  soldiers  who  are  now  in  the  African  corps.  Its  population  may  be  averaged 
at  six  hundred  adults,  besides  children.  On  February  13th,  1817,  I  commenced 
my  labours  in  it ;  and  took  my  stand  in  the  open  air,  on  an  elevated  place,  and, 
assisted  by  some  of  our  members  from  Free-Town,  began  the  service.  At  first 
about  twenty  attended,  chiefly  females ;  afterwards  the  nural)er  increased  to  fifty  or 
sixty.  I  continued  my  out-door  preaching  fourteen  weeks ;  when,  on  July  6th,  I 
opened  a  wattled  meeting-house,  which  cost  us  about  XIO,  and  woidd  accommodate 
a  hundred  and  fifty  hearers.  I  now,  by  the  assistance  of  some  of  the  leaders, 
visited  them  three  times  each  week,  twice  on  Sundays,  and  on  Thursday  evenings. 
The  congregation  was  usually  from  fifty  to  one  hundred,  about  two-thirds  women, 
and  very  attentive.  Some  became  impressed  by  the  truths  which  they  heard,  and 
showed  a  reformation  in  their  lives.  The  concern  of  many  wore  away ;  but  their 
places  were  more  than  filled  up  by  the  addition  of  others.  I  found  it  very  ditficult, 
at  first,  to  make  myself  understood ;  and  was  obliged  to  accommodate  myself  to 
their  capacities  and  knowledge  of  the  English  language.  The  state  in  which  I 
found  them,  unmarried,  unbaptized,  sunk  in  superstition,  fornication,  and  every 
vice,  suggested  the  necessity  of  keeping  them  on  trial  from  six  to  eighteen  months, 
until  their  knowledge  was  enlarged,  and  their  conduct  proved  their  sincerity.  In 
the  latter  end  of  November,  1817,  several  who  had  been  for  some  time  in  deep  con- 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    STERHA-LEONE.  227 

cern  for  their  salvation,  made  a  clear  and  satisfactory'  profession  of  faith  in  Christ. 
One  whose  name  is  John  Crown  came  to  the  mission-house,  and  said  he  was  come 
to  tell  me  what  God  had  done  for  his  soul ;  that  when  I  baptized  his  child,  (which 
had  taken  place  about  fom-  M'eeks,)  con\dction  seized  his  mind ;  that  he  had  prayed 
in  the  bush,  in  his  house,  or  wherever  lie  might  be,  for  the  Lord  Jesus  to  forgive 
his  sins ;  that  every  thing  bad  that  he  had  done  came  to  his  recollection ;  that  his 
trouble  was  so  great,  that  he  could  neither  eat  nor  sleep  ;  that  his  wife  and  former 
companions  frequently  questioned  him  as  to  what  burdened  his  mind,  and  urged 
him  to  eat.  and  not  give  way  to  trouble ;  that  when  he  had  been  at  prayer  in  a 
retired  place  in  the  bush,  and  was  returning  home,  he  felt  a  sudden  change  pass 
upon  his  mind,  his  trouble  went  away,  and  gladness  filled  his  heart ;  that  this  good 
thing  which  he  felt  was  sweet ;  that  in  his  own  country  he  had  eaten  honey,  and 
in  white  man's,  (Sierra-Leone  is  so  called  by  the  re-captured  Negroes,)  sugar ;  but 
this,  putting  his  hand  to  his  breast,  is  sweeter  than  all ;  that  since  his  mother  bore 
him,  he  never  felt  the  same ;  that  if  the  governor  had  given  him  plenty  of  shops 
full  of  cloth,  his  heart  could  not  feel  as  glad  as  it  did.  "  0,"  said  he,  "  I  thank  God 
for  this  good  thing ;  that  ever  he  brought  me  into  this  country,  and  that  he  may 
ever  keep  this  good  thing  in  my  heart."  This  man  has  been  very  useful  to  the 
society,  which  consists  of  about  thirty  members,  and  the  same  number  on  trial. 
The  conversion  of  many  of  them  is  clear  and  satisfactory.  At  the  present  time  we 
have  a  new  wattled  meeting-house,  (the  first,  after  standing  two  years,  having  sunk 
into  decay,)  built  chiefly  by  their  own  exertions.  It  is  generally  filled  with  a  con- 
gregation of  from  fifty  to  a  hundred  and  fifty.  The  brethren.  Baker  and  Gillison, 
have  joined  me  in  expressing  the  pleasxu'e  which  it  always  affords  to  visit  this 
society  ;  the  hearts  of  the  members  abound  with  love  and  gratitude  to  God,  and  to 
their  ministers. 

Portuguese-Town  takes  its  name  from  the  majority  of  the  inhabitants  having 
1)een  rescued  from  the  Portuguese.  In  the  beginning  of  February,  1817,  I  first 
visited  this  town,  and  by  ringing  a  small  bell  collected  the  inhabitants ;  to  whom, 
imder  the  side  of  one  of  their  huts  in  the  open  air,  I  published  the  truths  of  the 
gospel.  The  hearers  were  attentive,  and  my  congregation  was  usually  from  thirty 
to  sixty.  On  the  30th  of  April  I  opened  a  wattled  meeting-house  in  the  village, 
and  by  the  help  of  the  leaders  held  meetings  three  times  a  week.  Two  females 
appeared  concerned  for  their  salvation,  whom  I  put  under  the  care  of  an  experi- 
enced Cliristian.  On  May  5th,  1817,  I  commenced  a  day-school.  Twenty-nine 
attended,  and  seemed  anxious  to  learn  to  read.  This  school  was  continued 
but  for  a  short  time  :  sickness  and  death  caused  a  suspension,  and,  finally,  a  disso- 
lution, of  it.  After  continuing  my  ministry  under  many  discouraging  circumstances, 
we  had  at  length  the  pleasure  of  seeing  some  fruit  of  our  labour.  A  man  and  his 
wife  became  experimentally  acquainted  with  the  Savioirr.  The  work  spread,  and 
four  other  persons  professed  to  experience  the  same  blessing.  The  society  at  this 
time  consists  of  fifteen  members,  and  some  on  trial.* 

The  total  number  of  members  in  the  society  in  the  wliolc 
circuit  at  this  time  was  two  hundred  and  fifty,  being  an  increase 
of  one  hundred  during  the  year.  Several  greegree-vci&w  were 
amongst  those  who  were  converted  to  the  faith,  and  who  had 
cast   far   from   them   all   their   charms    and   tools  of  enchant- 


*  "  Report  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary  Society,"  1819,  pp.  30- 

n    9 


228 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AERICA. 


merit :  so  tliat,  in  tlic  language  of  the  ins,>ired  historian,  it  may 
be  said,  "  Many  of  them  also  which  used  curious  arts  brought 
their  books  together,  and  burned  them  before  all  men :  and 
they  counted  the  price  of  them,  and  found  it  fifty  thousand 
pieces  of  silver.  So  mightily  grew  the  word  of  God  and 
prevailed."  (Acts  xix.  19,  20.) 

At  the  Wesley  an  Conference  of  1819,  Mr.  Brown  was 
appointed  to  Nevis,  in  the  West  Indies,*  where  he  laboured  for 
several  years  :  since  which  period  he  has  been  usefully  engaged 
in  the  ministr}^  at  home. 

In  the  mean  time  the  brethren  Baker  and  Gillison  had 
entered  upon  their  work.  The  former  writes : — "  I  never  felt 
happier  in  my  life  :  I  would  not  exchange  my  present  station 
for  a  crown.  It  is  my  determination,  and  that,  I  believe,  of  my 
colleague  also,  that,  through  Divine  assistance,  we  will  lay  our- 
selves out  in  every  possible  way  to  advance  the  cause  of  Christ 
in  this  iuission."  They  did  so;  but  death  again  speedily  made 
a  breach  in  this  little  party,  and  that  passage  was  literal!}'- 
fulfilled,  "Then  shall  two  be  in  the  field;  the  one  shall  be 
taken,  and  the  other  left."  (^Nlatt.  xxiv.  40.)  Mr.  Gillison  had 
not  been  in  Africa  quite  six  months,  when  he  was  carried  off  by 
the  fever  peculiar  to  that  climate,  after  an  illness  of  eleven  days, 
much  lamented  by  his  colleague  and  the  people. 

John  Gillison  was  converted  to  God  when  very  young,  at 
Bourne,  in  the  Grantham  circuit,  where  he  laboured  for  several 
years  with  great  acceptance  as  a  local  preacher.  He  was  a 
young  man  of  deep  pietj^  and  respectable  talents,  an  affectionate 
colleague,  and  an  acceptable  preacher,  and  bid  fair  to  be  a  veiy 
useful  missionary.  He  had  laboured  one  year  in  the  ministry 
in  England,  and  cheerfully  accompanied  Mr.  Baker  to  this  post 
of  danger,  where  God  crowned  his  efforts  with  considerable 
success.  On  the  evening  of  July  29th,  he  buried  a  corpse,  and 
another  the  next  morning  :  in  the  afternoon  he  preached  at 
Congo-Town;  and  soon  after  his  return  home  in  the  evening  he 
went  to  bed  rather  poorly.  During  the  night  he  was  seized  with 
fever,  which  never  left  him.  Mr.  Baker  was  also  ill  at  the  same 
time ;  but  after  some  days  he  was  assisted  into  his  colleague's 
room,  though  in  a  very  weak  state.  Mr,  Baker  writes  : — "  When 
I  came,  he  requested  to  be  helped  up  in  bed,  and  we  seemed  like 
two  dear  friends  meeting,  who  had  long  been  separated.  I 
immediately  asked,  *Is  Jesus  precious  to  you?'     He  distinctly 

*  The  appointment  was  changed  from  St.  Vincent's  to  Nevis. 


WESLEVAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIEUKA-LEONE.  229 

answered,  '  Yes,  glory  be  to  God  for  it,  he  is ! ' ''  The  next 
morning  Mr.  Baker  saw  him  again,  and  found  him  happy  in 
God,  and  prepared  for  his  will ;  and,  in  all  the  intervals  of 
delirium  which  afterwards  occurred,  he  continued  to  express 
himself  in  the  same  manner,  till,  on  August  10th,  he  exchanged 
mortality  for  the  joy  of  his  Lord.  He  died  in  the  twenty-second 
year  of  his  age,  and  the  second  of  his  ministry. 

"  That  lil'e  is  long,  which  answers  life's  great  end." 

As  soon  as  Mr.  Baker^s  extreme  Aveakness  would  permit,  he 
took  up  his  pen  to  communicate  to  the  Committee  the  melan- 
choly intelligence  of  the  death  of  his  worthy  colleague  :  he  was 
himself,  even  then,  in  a  delicate  state  of  health,  having  had  a 
relapse  of  the  fever,  occasioned  hj  his  preaching  Mr.  Gilhson's 
funeral  sermon,  which  quite  overpowered  him.  As  health 
gradually  returned,  he  engaged  in  the  work  of  the  mission;  but 
was  frequently  laid  aside  during  the  rainy  season,  and  fears 
were  entertained  for  his  life.     In  November  he  writes : — 

I  can  assure  my  dear  fathers,  notwithstanding  these  trying  dispensations  of  Pro- 
vidence, I  feel  happy  in  my  work,  and  am  satisfied  I  am  in  my  providential  place. 
The  Lord  makes  me  happy  by  the  continual  manifestations  of  his  favour,  and  many 
of  these  dear  people  make  me  happy  by  their  unblamable  life  and  conversation. 
GI017  be  to  God,  unworthy  as  I  am  of  such  an  honour,  he  is  pleased  to  make  me 
useful !  Here  in  town  I  have  some  time  since  had  to  cut  off  some  whose  Uves  were 
inconsistent  with  their  profession,  and  who,  I  beUeve,  have  been  a  stumbhng-block 
to  others ;  but  lately  the  Lord  has  been  reviving  his  work  in  the  society,  aud 
gathering  in  some  from  the  Heathen.  He  was  pleased  to  bless  to  many  souls  the 
last  two  or  three  sermons  I  preached  before  my  late  sickness.  0  for  more  strength 
to  preach  His  word !  I  bless  God  I  can  say,  I  only  wish  for  life  to  spend  in  pub- 
lishing the  sinners'  Friend.  He  is  my  all  and  in  all, — "  In  toil  my  rest,  my  ease  in 
pain." 

My  late  dear  colleague  and  myself  laid  it  down  as  a  rule,  ft-om  the  first,  never  to 
flinch  from  any  point  of  discipline,  or  suffer  those,  in  any  place,  who  we  had 
reason  to  fear  were  deceiving  themselves,  to  go  to  hell  quietly :  this  made  us  use 
the  plainest  and  most  faithful  dealing  we  could  with  such  characters ;  and  now, 
thanl^  God,  the  incorrigible  have  been  all,  or  we  trust  nearly  all,  discovered.  The 
members  have  for  some  time  past  been  growing  in  grace.  Many  flock  to  hear  the 
word  of  God ;  and  it  grieves  me  to  see  the  want  of  room  to  accommodate  them. 
I  am  certain  the  chapel,  though  much  the  largest  in  town,  is  not  half  large  enough 
to  contain  the  people  who  wish  to  attend.  The  place  is  crowded  to  suffocation. 
I  am  obliged,  as  soon  as  I  get  home  after  every  sermon,  to  change  every  tiling  1 
have  on,  even  to  my  coat. 

I  wrote  to  you  some  time  ago  of  our  having  formed  a  class  at  the  west  end  of 
Free-Town,  which,  thank  God,  is  now  one  of  our  promising  societies.  After  they 
had  been  on  trial,  I  told  them  they  must  all  get  married,  if  they  wished  to  remain 
with  us.  They  were  quite  willing,  and  I  took  down  the  names  of  eleven  couple. 
Two  or  three  of  the  women  had  ungodly  men,  to  whom  some  of  them  said,  "  Sup- 
pose you  no  marry  me,  I  leave  you ;  this  time  I  want  for  seek  God,  and  live  Chris- 


230  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

tian  fashion."  The  men  have  all  consented.  These  things  arc  i)leasing,  and  to  me 
very  encouraging. 

The  governor  is  going  in  a  few  days  to  the  river  Gamhia,  to  form  a  settlement 
higher  up,  perhaps  two  hundred  miles  or  more  from  St.  Marj's.  Should  this  suc- 
ceed, there  would  certainly  he  a  fine  opening  for  the  exertions  of  a  faithful  mission- 
ary. Tliis  station  will  he  ahout  14°  north  latitude,  and  consequently  much  healthier 
than  Sierra-Leone.  I  tind,  according  to  Park,  this  part  of  the  river  is  near  a  chain 
of  mountains ;  and  if  the  people  there,  as  in  some  places  in  the  interior,  hve  much 
ahove  the  level  of  the  river,  the  station  will  he  healthier  still. 

Protected  l)y  the  countenance  of  the  British  Government,  the  missionaries  might 
proceed  much  further  up,  if  needful ;  and,  I  have  no  douht,  would  he  useful.  I 
must  say,  that  I  always  think,  if  a  minister  of  the  gospel  is  faithful,  God  will,  in 
some  way  or  other,  make  him  useful ;  and  though  the  first  missionaiy  to  that  place 
might  not  hve  to  see  fruit  of  his  labour,  yet  it  would  doubtless  appear  after  many 
days.  In  reference  to  the  healthiness  of  such  a  station,  there  can  be  no  doubt  of 
its  being  healthier  than  this.  It  is  a  weU-known  fact,  that  they  have  not  so  much 
rain  on  the  Gambia  as  we  have  here ;  and  the  cause  of  the  sickliness  at  St.  Mary's  is 
more  owing  to  the  very  low  situation  of  the  island  on  which  our  present  settlement 
is  found,  which  in  the  rains  is  in  a  state  of  inundation  from  the  rise  of  that  great 
river,  and  from  a  bad  morass  on  the  island,  so  low  as  not  to  admit  of  draining,  and 
which  makes  the  air  passing  over  it  bad.  The  rains  begin  as  far  south  as  the  Line, 
and  go  as  far  as  Senegal,  17°  north  latitude.* 

In  the  annual  Missionary  Report  for  1820,  the  number  in 
society  were  as  follows:  Free-Town,  172;  Congo-Town,  10; 
Soldiers'-Town,  17;  Portuguese-Town,  28;  West-End,  34; 
total,  261 ;  being  an  increase  of  eleven  on  the  preceding  year. 
But  before  the  close  of  that  year  a  great  revival  of  religion  took 
place,  "  and  the  Lord  added  to  the  church  daily  such  as  should 
be  saved/^  Mr.  Baker,  under  date  of  November  1st,  1820,  in 
giving  some  particulars  of  this,  observes  : — 

I  scarcely  know  where  to  begin;  but  the  best  of  all  is,  God  is  truly  with  us. 
We  have  the  greatest  outpouring  of  the  Spirit  I  have  ever  yet  witnessed. 

And  when  I  consider  the  meanness  of  the  instmment  made  use  of,  I  sometimes 
tremble  lest  it  should  not  be  real.  But  I  can  never  look  closely  at  the  work  with- 
out discovering  the  finger  of  God  plainly  engaged  in  it.  He  himself  has  done  it, 
and  that  in  his  own  way.  May  he  grant  me  ever  to  feel  as  I  do  now  !  for  my 
spirit  truly  says,  "  Not  unto  us,  Lord ;  not  unto  us ;  but  to  thy  name  be  all  the 
glory."  The  work  has  been  gradual :  I  can  trace  its  beginning  up  to  the  com- 
mencement of  the  year.  But  within  the  last  three  months  it  has  increased 
rapidly ;  and  stUl  goes  on,  and  increases  Uke  the  noise  in  the  camp  of  the  Philis- 
tines. All  my  sleepless  nights,  all  my  burning  fevers,  all  my  severe  conflicts,  and 
all  my  agonizing  pains, — all,  all  put  together,  and  heaped  up,  seem  no  more  than 
dust  in  the  balance,  when  compared  with  this  great  work.  Here  is  not  only 
double,  but  tenfold,  for  all  my  hire.  I  have  no  talents  to  attract  attention ;  but  I 
go  on  as  God  helps  me,  pi-eaching  with  all  my  might  a  present  and  a  full  salvation 
by  faith  in  Christ.  I  do  verily  believe,  that  preacliing  a  present  salvation,  and 
insisting  upon  the  direct  witness  of  the  Spirit,  is  the  glory  of  the  gospel.     I  thauk 


*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  ii.  pp.  232,  233. 


WESLEYAN    MISSIONS    AT    SIERRA-LEONE.  231 

God  my  views  of  this  subject  are  enlarged ;  and  especially  since  this  work  began. 
It  brings  to  my  remembrance  the  days  of  our  venerable  Founder,  and  makes  his 
name  to  sound  more  sweetly  in  my  ears.  Those  who  have  lately  been  brought  in, 
manifest  that  they  have  not  believed  a  cunningly  devised  fable.  They  bear  the 
consequent  friuts  of  living  faith  ;  and  I  do  not  hesitate  to  say,  of  nearly  all  of  those 
who  have  been  added,  I  no  more  doubt  of  their  conversion  than  my  own.  We 
have  had  twenty-five,  twenty-seven,  and  twenty-nine  of  a  week  brought  into 
liberty.  At  our  last  Quarterly-Meeting,  I  found  we  were  three  hundred  and 
thirty ;  since  then  we  have  not  added  less  than  fifty.  Poor  Congo-Town,  where  I 
have  so  long  laboured,  and  seemed  to  be  spending  my  strength  for  nought ;  even 
there,  the  Lord  is  gloriously  making  bare  his  holy  arm.  We  had,  at  the  last 
Quarterly-Meeting,  only  fourteen  in  that  place  ;  now  we  have  fifty-six  ;  forty-seven 
of  wliom  can  rejoice  in  a  sin-pardoning  God.  Our  chapel  stands  just  where  it 
should  do,  and  is  filled. 

In  town,  also,  this  work  has  been  great ;  we  have  had  many  added  to  our  num- 
bers. I  am  quite  worn  down  with  labour ;  and  am  a  standing  miracle  to  all  who 
know  my  work,  and  what  I  have  suffered.  But  I  thank  God  I  do  it  cheerfidly ; 
and  if  I  may  but  hold  out  till  my  colleagues  come,  then,  if  the  will  of  God  beteo, 
let  me  || 

"  My  body  with  my  charge  lay  down,  ^\ 

And  cease  at  once  to  work  and  live."  \f\ 

This  work  has  really  produced  a  general  reformation ;  and  the  grog  shop-keepers 
are  mad  against  us,  as  their  craft  is  not  only  in  danger,  but  has  very  considerably 
suifered.  Some  of  the  greatest  rebels,  who  were  like  the  man  among  the  tombs, 
are  now  sitting  at  the  feet  of  Christ,  clothed,  and  in  their  right  mind.  I  bless  God 
I  ever  came  to  Africa.  May  the  Lord  help  me  to  go  on  insisting  on  a  present  and 
full  salvation  !  * 

On  the  8th  of  November,  just  one  week  after  the  above  letter 
was  written,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Huddlestone  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone, 
and  were  much  pleased  with  the  kind  and  warm  reception  they 
received,  as  well  as  with  the  state  of  the  mission :  they  were 
soon  joined  by  Mr.  Lane,  who  sailed  for  that  station  in  January, 
1821 ;  and  now  Mr.  Baker  was  at  liberty  to  visit  the  river 
Gambia,  to  commence  a  new  mission,  to  which  he  had  been 
appointed  by  the  preceding  Conference.  The  nvimbers  in  the 
society  at  Sierra-Leone  in  1821  were  470;  being  an  increase  of 
upwards  of  two  hundred  on  the  preceding  year. 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  iii.  pp.  40,  41. 


CHAPTER  XIII. 

NATIVE  SUPERSTITION  AND  CRUELTY. 

Source  and  Termination  of  the  River  Gambia — Influence  of  the  Tide — Scenery — 
Birds  and  Animals,  &c. — The  native  Tribes — Jollofs — Mandingoes — Foulahs 
— And  JoUars — ^W^estern  Africa — The  moral  Degradation  of  the  Natives — 
Slave-Trade  and  Slaverj' — Polygamy — Degradation  of  the  female  Character 
— Afiican  Superstitions — Greegrees — Various  Objects  in  Nature  regarded  with 
superstitious  Dread — The  three  worst  Features  of  Superstition  are  Witchcraftj 
a  System  of  Demonology  or  Devil-Worship,  and  human  Sacrifices — A  Refer- 
ence to  Romans  i.  21 — 32. 

The  Gambia  is  one  of  the  finest  rivers  in  Africa.  It  is  sup- 
posed to  take  its  rise  in  a  group  of  mountains  a  short  distance 
to  the  north-east  of  Teemboo,  in  Foota  Jallon,  and  not  many- 
days'  journey  from  the  famous  Niger.  After  running  in  a 
serpentine  course  for  upwards  of  one  thousand  miles,  it  empties 
itself  into  the  Atlantic  in  13°  30'  north  latitude,  and  in  16°  42' 
west  longitude.  It  is  about  fourteen  miles  wide  at  its  mouth, 
and  is  navigable  for  upwards  of  five  hundred  miles  by  vessels 
of  considerable  burden ;  and  small  vessels  might  sail  much 
farther,  particularly  in  the  rainy  season. 

This  noble  river  contains  many  islands ;  the  principal  of 
which  are  St.  Mary^s,  Elephant-Isle,  Deer-Island,  Paboon  or 
Dean's  Island,  and  Macarthy's  Island.  On  two  of  these,  that  is, 
the  first  and  the  last,  the  English  have  formed  settlements,  which 
Avill  be  noticed  in  the  following  chapter.  In  the  dry  season  the 
influence  of  the  tide  is  felt  as  far  as  Cantalicunda,  and  the  falls  of 
Barracouda,  the  highest  trading-ports  on  the  river,  supposed  to 
be  two  hundred  and  fifty  leagues,  or  seven  hundred  and  fifty 
miles,  from  the  sea-coast.  A  number  of  other  small  rivers  and 
creeks  empty  themselves  into  the  Gambia ;  and  it  is  to  be 
lamented  that  these  have  not  as  yet  been  properly  surveyed,  as 
it  is  not  improbable  that  some  of  them  would  be  found  to  com- 
municate with  other  rivers  north  and  south  of  the  Gambia,  and 
thus  an  extensive  inland  navigation  would  follow,  which  would 
increase  the  trade  by  affording  a  more  ready  and  friendly  inter- 
course with  the  natives. 

For  about  one  hundred  and  fifty  miles  the  banks  of  the  river 
are  covered  with  thick  mangroves,  which,  being  alwaj'^s  green, 
tend  to  reheve  the  eye  from  the  oppressive  glare  of  the  scorching 
sun  :  the  Avater  here  also  becomes  fresh,  and   is  used  for  all 


THE    GAMBIA.  233 

culinary  purposes^  and  as  the  common  beverage  of  man  and 
beast.  In  advancing  higher  up  the  river,  the  scenery  varies, 
the  country  becomes  more  hilly,  and  the  trees  assume  a  more 
variegated  appearance,  being  rich  in  foliage,  and  splendid  in 
their  blossoms.  The  beautiful  palm,  monkey-bread,  and  stately 
mahogany  trees,  are  conspicuous ;  and  in  many  places  the  coun- 
try wears  the  appearance  of  one  extensive  and  majestic  forest, 
and  not  unfrequently  the  scenery  is  highly  picturesque.  Birds 
of  the  most  beautiful  plumage  are  numerous ;  paroquets,  par- 
tridges, pigeons,  guinea-birds,  and  water-fowl  are  also  abundant. 
But  your  right  to  advance  on  the  river  is  often  disputed  by 
large  monkeys  of  the  baboon  species,  residing  in  vast  families 
at  a  distance  from  each  other  on  the  trees  near  the  river. 
Sometimes  they  become  outrageous ;  climbing  the  trees  nearest 
to  the  intruders,  chattering  in  the  most  menacing  tones,  break- 
ing off  sticks,  and  throwing  them  with  all  their  might,  bending 
the  extreme  branches,  and  shaking  them  towards  their  enemies, 
plainly  intimating  what  they  would  do  if  the  water  did  not  pre- 
vent them.  These  strange  exhibitions,  with  the  amusing  antics  of 
those  of  a  smaller  size,  and  of  a  more  harmless  kind,  which  are 
frequently  seen  with  the  squirrels,  sporting  on  the  branches  of 
the  trees  ;  together  with  the  songsters  of  the  grove,  and  the  harsh 
crow-like  sound  of  the  graceful  crown -birds,  (Balearic  cranes,) 
flying  over-head  in  great  numbers ;  the  huge  alligator  basking 
fast  asleep  on  the  mud  and  sand  of  the  banks  of  the  river,  till 
awoke  by  the  report  of  a  gun  with  a  few  shot,  wliich  only  bound 
from  his  back  like  peas  falling  on  a  pavement,  when  he  instantly 
shakes  his  tail  and  slides  into  the  water  unhurt ;  the  beautiful 
horned  deer  and  striped  antelopes,  w^hich  are  seen  in  herds 
quietly  grazing  in  the  meadow^s;  with  ever  and  anon  a  small 
canoe  crossing  the  river,  with  a  single  native  at  its  stern,  or  one 
of  larger  dimensions,  at  a  point  or  turn  of  the  river,  or  perhaps 
coming  down  a  creek,  and  containing  from  ten  to  twenty  Negroes, 
who  propel  it  forward  at  a  rapid  rate  vv^ith  their  short  paddles, 
which  they  ply  with  great  dexterity,  cheerfully  and  musically 
singing  some  song  made  on  the  occasion,  and  beating  time  to 
the  tune  with  the  strokes  of  their  paddles  : — all  tend  greatly  to 
relieve  the  tedium  of  a  six  or  ten  days^  voyage  up  the  Gambia. 

When*  on  board  a  small  cutter,  or  open  boat,  lying  at  anchor 
in  the  middle  of  the  day,  without  a  breath  of  air,  and  waiting 
for  the  tide,  it  is  no  small  treat  to  be  rowed  ashore  to  some 
village,  or  up  one  of  the  narrow  creeks,  or  "  natural  canals,"  as 
they  have  been  called,  where  the  thick  foliage  from  these  ever- 
lasting greens  proves  a  most  welcome  screen  from  the  vertical 


234  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

rays  of  the  sun,  and  presents  an  appearance  of  real  rural  beauty. 
But  take  care  you  do  not  bathe,  lest  you  should  come  out  of  the 
water  minus  an  arm  or  a  leg,  or  perhaps  be  divided  and  subdi- 
vided, or  consumed  altogether,  by  one  or  more  of  the  numerous 
alligators  which  infest  those  creeks. 

By  night  the  hippopotamus  is  heard  snorting,  and  plunging 
from  the  banks  on  which  it  grazes  into  the  river ;  sometimes  so 
near  your  canoe  or  boat  as  to  place  it  in  danger  of  being 
swamped  by  the  motion  of  the  water,  should  it  be  a  small  one. 
This  animal  in  bulk  is  only  second  to  the  elephant.  The  head  is 
of  an  enormous  size,  and  the  mouth,  when  open,  is  about  two  feet 
wide ;  the  legs  are  short  and  thick,  and  the  eyes  and  ears  small. 
The  hair  on  the  body  is  very  thin ;  but  the  skin  is  very  thick 
and  strong,  and  the  tusks,  which  are  from  twelve  to  upwards  of 
twenty  inches  long,  furnish  the  best  ivory.  Though  possessing 
amazing  strength  of  body,  this  animal  is  naturally  of  a  mild  dis- 
position, and  is  orAj  formidable  when  provoked.  When  wounded, 
or  when  their  young  are  injured  either  by  accident  or  design, 
they  will  rise  and  attack  boats  and  canoes  with  great  fury, 
and  will  sink  them  by  biting  large  pieces  out  of  the  sides,  or 
strildng  holes  in  the  bottom,  or  by  placing  their  huge  bodies  in 
such  a  position  as  to  upset  them  in  an  instant ;  and  not  unfre- 
quently  the  people  are  drowned.  One  or  two  accidents  of  this 
kind  occurred  in  the  Upper  Gambia  during  my  residence  in 
Africa.  It  need  scarcely  be  said  that  the  hippopotami  are 
amphibious;  but  they  are  so  cautious  that  it  is  during  the  night 
principally  that  they  leave  the  river  in  order  to  pasture,  when, 
consuming  large  quantities  of  millet,  rice,  and  other  eatables, 
they  do  much  damage  to  the  cultivated  fields  and  plantations. 
But  though  rarely  out  of  the  water  by  day,  I  have  frequently 
seen  their  small  pointed  ears,  with  a  little  of  the  head,  when 
rising  towards  the  surface  in  order  to  take-in  fresh  air.  In  this 
manner  they  may  be  seen  in  herds,  as  many  as  a  dozen  of  them 
together. 

This  part  of  the  continent,  in  fact,  abounds  with  specimens  of 
natural  history  in  almost  all  its  branches, — with  shells  and  fish, 
plants  and  flowers,  insects  and  reptiles,  birds  and  wild  animals ; 
to  say  nothing  of  its  minerals,  some  districts  being  interlaced 
with  inexhaustible  veins  of  the  precious  metals.  The  natu- 
ralist and  geologist  would  therefore  find  full  employment  for 
their  scientific  researches  from  one  year's  end  to  another. 

If  the  writer  had  the  ability  to  enlarge  upon  this  subject,  the 
nature  and  limits  of  this  book  would  forbid  it ;  suflice  it  to  say, 
that,  as  to  fish,  the  Gambia  abounds  in  these  of  various  kinds, 


THE    GAMBIA. 


235 


from  the  sprat  to  the  dolphin  and  shark  of  sixteen  feet  in 
length.  Here,  too,  is  to  be  seen  the  little,  exquisitely,  beauti- 
fully plumaged  humming-bird,  smaller  than  the  linnet,  or,  as  a 
fair  authoress  expresses  it,  "  scarcely  larger  than  an  humble- 
bee  ; "  with  the  towering  eagle,  the  gigantic  stork,  and  that  king 
of  the  feathered  tribe,  that  swiftest  of  all  running  creatures,  the 
ostrich.  On  the  Gambia,  likewise,  or  in  its  neighbourhood, 
the  traveller  may  find  the  small  red  monkey,  not  much  larger 
than  a  rat,  with  almost  every  other  species  of  apes  up  to  the 
orang-outang  and  chimpanzee :  here,  too,  are  to  be  found  the 
prowling  wolf,  the  screaming  hysena,  the  snarling  leopard,  and 
the  roaring  lion ;  the  lizard  and  the  crocodile ;  the  leech,  so 
numerous  in  the  creeks,  and  so  useful  to  man  in  sickness,  the 
venomous  snake,  the  boa-constrictor  and  serpent  of  from  twenty- 
five  to  thirty  feet  long.*  And  here,  too,  the  European  may  be 
teased  and  bitten  by  the  tiny,  but  troublesome,  mosquito ;  and 
he  may  be  gratified  and  excited  by  a  sight  of  the  sagacious  and 
majestic  elephant.  The  ostrich  is  exclusively  indigenous  to 
Africa,  and  even  the  problematical  unicorn  is  still  said  to  exist 
in  the  interior.  The  shrubs  and  earth  swarm  with  termites, 
ants,  spiders,  and  caterpillars,  while  passing  armies  of  locusts 
frequently  obscure  the  sun  like  clouds.  The  most  beautiful 
insects  abound,  and  the  force  of  vegetation  is  extraordinary ; 
the  earth  renders  back  the  seed  to  the  cultivator  increased  at 
least  a  hundred-fold,  and  the  climate  and  soil  produce  plants, 
flowers,  and  fruits  of  various  kinds. 

*  The  following  extract  from  an  American  paper,  which  appeared  a  few  months 
ago,  will  confirm  this  statement : — 

"Another  monster  snake. — The  good  ship 'Allen,'  Captam  Williams,  recently 
arrived  at  Salem,  Massachusetts,  from  the  coast  of  Africa,  having  on  board  a  Uving 
monster  serpent  of  the  constrictor  kind,  which  verifies  all  the  stories  we  have  heard 
of  their  crushing  and  swallowing  a  horse  in  a  single  meal ;  it  is  much  larger  than 
any  ever  before  taken,  its  length  being  thirty  feet.  Of  course,  the  arrival  of  such  a 
monster  set  all  our  showmen  into  a  wonderful  fever.  Van  Amburgh,  and  June, 
and  Titus,  despatched  an  agent  for  them,  via  New-Haven ;  one  of  the  firm  of 
Raymond  and  Baring  proceeded  by  way  of  Worcester ;  and  Barnum  sent  his  major- 
domo,  Hitchcock,  by  the  steamer  '  Bay  State.'  The  Yankee  proprietor  of  the  snake, 
seeing  such  an  excitement,  and  feeling  that  it  will  be  difticidt  to  run  an  opposi- 
tion, has  taken  his  ground ;  and  a  telegraphic  despatch  to  Van  Amburgh  and  Co. 
announces  that  he  will  take  no  less  than  ten  thousand  dollars  for  it,  and  in  case  of 
not  finding  a  customer  he  will  turn  showman,  and  exhibit  himself.  The  agent 
offered  seven  thousand  dollars  for  it ;  but  Mr.  Hitchcock  immediately  bid  five  hundred 
dollars  more,  and  so  the  matter  stands.  Captain  Williams  positively  avers  that  it 
took  one  hundred  and  twenty-six  Negroes  seven  hours  to  secure  this  monster.  They 
did  it  by  means  of  a  heavy  rope  net  made  for  the  purpose,  and  thrown  over  him 
Mhen  coiled  up.     What  a  sarpinf !" — Neic-York  True  Sun. 


236  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFKICA. 

But  as  we  have  to  do  rather  with  the  human  and  rational  part 
of  the  creation  in  this  brief  history  of  missions,  it  will  be  neces- 
sary to  say  something  of  the  people  amongst  whom  the  mission- 
aries have  laboured. 

The  aborigines  inhabiting  the  banks  of  the  Gambia,  and  the 
countries  bordering  on  that  river,  though  distributed  into  many 
distinct  governments  and  independent  states  or  nations,  may  be 
fairly  divided  into  four  great  classes  or  tribes;  namely,  the 
Jollofs,  the  Mandingoes,  the  Foulahs,  and  the  Jollars. 

The  Jollofs  are  of  the  middle  size,  proportionably  built,  of 
jet  black,  with  woolly  hair,  their  lips  and  noses  not  so  promi- 
nent as  most  of  the  other  Negro  tribes.  The  countenance  is 
open  and  intelligent,  with  fine  eyes  and  beautiful  white  teeth, 
which  are  kept  in  a  pure  state  by  frequent  washing,  or  rather 
constant  rubbing  Avith  a  small  twig  of  the  tamarind-tree,  which 
they  substitute  for  a  tooth-brush,  and  which  answers  as  well  as, 
or  even  better  than,  the  European  instrument  used  for  the  same 
purpose.  The  Jollofs  are  warlike,  brave,  and  generous,  ardently 
attached  to  each  other,  and  proverbial  for  gratitude  and  fidelity. 
At  the  same  time,  they  are  very  superstitious,  and  are  much 
afraid  of  ghosts  and  evil  spirits,  against  whose  dreaded  influence 
they  have  many  imaginary  means  of  defence.  They  live  princi- 
pally in  the  country  which  lies  between  the  Gambia  and  the 
Senegal.  The  language  is  harsh  and  guttural,  and  frequently 
coarse  and  vulgar.  These  people  are  a  mixture  of  Pagans  and 
Mohammedans;  and  some  of  those  who  have  come  into  immediate 
contact  with  the  French  colonists  in  the  Senegal  and  Goree  are 
tinctured  with  the  forms  of  Popery,  though  few  of  them  have 
learned  any  of  the  doctrines  or  precepts  of  pure  Christianity. 

The  Mandingoes  are  the  most  numerous  and  warlike  tribe  in 
this  part  of  Africa.  They  are  called  Mandingoes,  as  having  ori- 
ginally migrated  from  Manding,  an  elevated  region  about  seven 
hundred  miles  eastward  from  the  coast;  and  are  now  spread  into 
various  independent  states  and  nations,  down  the  banks  of  the 
Gambia  to  the  kingdoms  of  Barra  and  Combo  on  the  sea-coast ; 
whilst  they  are  to  be  found  in  considerable  numbers  as  far  south 
as  Sierra-Leone.  The  physical  characteristics  of  the  Mandin- 
goes have  already  been  described ;  and  Mungo  Park  has  given 
a  faithful  record  of  the  habits  and  manners  of  this  people. 

The  pure  Mandingo  language  is  mellow  and  harmonious,  and, 
with  few  exceptions,  is  universally  understood  from  the  Senegal 
and  Gambia  to  the  Joliba  or  Niger. 

In  speaking  of  the  Foulahs,  it  will  be  necessary  to  notice  the 
diflerent  tribes ;  a  distinction  which  it  is  the  more  needful  to 


THE    GAMBIA.  237 

make,  as  they  have  frequently  been  spoken  of  as  one  and  tlie 
same  class  of  people.  There  are,  properly  speaking,  at  least 
three  tribes,  called  in  Africa  Teucolors,  Loubies,  and  Foulahs ; 
and  to  these  may  be  added  the  Fallatalis  of  Central  Africa,  who 
are  of  the  same  race :  the  latter  are  frequently  spoken  of  by 
Lander  as  being  superior  to  other  native  tribes,  in  personal 
appearance,  dress,  industry,  moral  virtue,  and  intelligence. 

The  Teucolors  resemble  the  Mandingoes  in  appearance,  cha- 
racter, and  prowess.  They  have  established  themselves  in  several 
powerful  kingdoms,  the  chief  of  which  are  Foota-Torro,  on  the 
north  of  the  Senegal ;  that  of  Bondou,  between  the  Senegal  and 
Gambia ;  and  Foota- Jallon,  about  four  degrees  north-east  of 
Sierra-Leone.  The  colour  of  their  skin  varies  a  little,  some 
being  quite  black,  and  others  of  a  fairer  complexion.  They  are 
properly  a  settled  people,  though  they  have  a  few  scattered 
villages  amongst  the  Mandingoes.  The  Teucolors  are  generally 
strict  Mahomedans. 

The  Loubies  are  a  degenerate  race,  stunted  in  growth,  and 
haggard  in  appearance.  They  are  generally  quite  black,  though 
in  features  they  much  resemble  the  Foulahs,  and  they  also 
speak  the  Foulah  tongue.  They  possess  neither  towns  nor 
cattle,  but  are  the  gipsies  of  Western  Africa,  living  by  the 
manufacture  of  wooden  bowls  and  other  utensils,  which  they 
sell  to  the  Mandingoes. 

The  physical  characteristics  of  the  Foulahs  (the  third  class  or 
tribe)  we  have  briefly  given  in  the  first  chapter  of  this  work. 
They  are  in  features  and  complexion,  manners  and  habits,  obvi- 
ously distinguished  from  the  rest  of  the  aborigines  of  Western 
Africa.  Their  features  have  a  close  resemblance  to  the  Euro- 
pean, with  a  fairer  skin  than  the  Negroes  in  general,  some  of 
them  approaching  to  the  Mulatto  colour.  They  have  a  tradi- 
tion, that  they  descended  from  a  white  man,*  and,  when  talking 
of  different  nations,  always  rank  themselves  among  the  white 
people.  They  have  no  lands  of  their  own,  but  are  much  attached 
to  a  pastoral  life ;  and  have  introduced  themselves  into  many  of 
the  kingdoms  as  herdsmen  and  husbandmen,  paying  a  tribute 
to  the  sovereign  of  the  country  for  the  lands  which  they  hold. 
They  breed  much  cattle,  and  are  dexterous  in  the  management 
of  them.  The  whole  herd  belonging  to  the  respective  towns 
feed  during  the  day  in  the  neighbouring  savannas,  and,  after 
the  removal  of  the  crops,  in  the  rich  grounds.    They  are  attended 


*  See  an  interesting  article  on  this  subject  in  the  "  Wesleyan-Methodist  Maga- 
zine," for  the  year  1834,  pp.  29—33. 


238  wi!:sTEUN  coast  of  afuica. 

by  herdsmen,  who  prevent  their  entering  the  corn,  or  escaping 
to  the  woods.  As  they  make  no  claim  to  a  right  in  the  soil,  but 
live  by  the  sufferance  of  the  Mandingoes  and  Jollofs,  in  whose 
countries  they  find  pasturage  for  their  cattle  for  the  time  being, 
and  have  no  certain  dwelling-place,  they  are  called  "wander- 
ing Foulahs,^'  removing  their  families  and  cattle  from  place  to 
place  as  occasion  may  require.  Being  thus  dependent,  the 
Foulahs  suffer  much  at  times.  They  have  not  only  to  pay  a 
large  tribute  for  the  privilege  of  pasturing  their  cattle  on  the 
lands  which  they  cultivate,  but  the  king  will  sometimes  come 
down  upon  them,  and  take  away  nearly  all  they  have.  Being 
also  a  timid  people,  and  unaccustomed  to  fight,  they  are  fre- 
quently plundered  by  marauding  parties,  who  go  about  day  and 
night  scouring  the  country.  Thus  the  Foulahs,  though  the 
most  industrious,  are  the  most  grievously  oppressed. 

The  JoLLARs  (or  Feloops)  are  small  and  short  in  stature,  but 
are  strong  and  nimble  runners.  Their  colour  is  a  deep  black, 
with  rather  a  rough  skin  •  but  their  features  are  tolerably  regu- 
lar, except  when  distorted  by  the  fantastic  figures  which  they 
imprint  on  their  faces.  They  wear  very  little  clothing,  merely  a 
small  apron  or  pagne  loosely  fastened  round  the  loins.  They  are 
not  numerous,  and  reside  chiefly  to  the  south  of  the  Gambia,  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  the  Casamaza.  The  Jollars  are  nearly  the  zero 
of  the  thermometer  of  African  civilization  in  this  part  of  the 
continent.  They  are  a  wild  and  unsociable  race  of  people,  of  a 
gloomy  disposition,  and  are  supposed  never  to  forgive  an  injury : 
they  are  even  said  to  transmit  their  quarrels  as  deadly  feuds  to 
their  posterity,  insomuch  that  a  son  considers  it  incumbent  on 
him,  from  a  just  sense  of  filial  obligation,  to  become  the  avenger 
of  his  deceased  father^s  wrongs.  The  Jollars  are  Pagans,  and 
pay  homage  to  no  being  but  the  devil ;  and  him  they  worship, 
to  him  they  offer  sacrifice  and  consecrate  a  house,  thinking,  if 
they  secure  his  friendship,  they  shall  be  safe. 

In  addition  to  the  preceding  four  great  classes  of  Africans, 
there  are  many  other  nations  betAveen  the  Senegal,  Sierra- 
Leone,  and  the  Gold-Coast.  But,  however  numerous  the  native 
tribes  of  Western  Africa,  in  a  faithful  description  of  one  tribe 
we  have  a  fair  picture  of  the  whole ;  for,  whether  Mahometan  or 
Pagan,  the  Africans  are  all  ignorant,  guilty,  and  depraved, 
"earthly,  sensual,  and  devilish,"  "sitting  in  darkness  and  in 
the  region  of  the  shadow  of  death,"  "having  no  hope,  and 
without  God  in  the  world." 

The  moral  degradation  of  both  Mohammedans  and  Pagans  in 
Western  Africa  is  shown  in  many  striking  features,  and  fully 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  239 

corroborates  the  declaration  of  the  Psalmist,  "  The  dark  places 
of  the  earth  are  full  of  the  habitations  of  cruelty/' 

Of  the  Slave-Trade  we  have  before  spoken,  with  its  attendant 
horrors  of  war,  rapine,  and  death.  The  fire,  blood,  and  desola- 
tion which  marked  the  track  of  those  invading  and  marauding 
bandits  engaged  in  the  seizure,  will  never  be  forgotten  by  the 
tens  of  thousands  on  the  other  side  the  Atlantic,  who  were  the 
victims  on  those  occasions,  and  who  are  now  watering  with  their 
sweat  and  tears  the  soil  which  enriches  their  oppressors.  The 
Slave-Trade  renders  Africa  a  perpetual  scene  of  bloodshed ;  for 
one  tribe  is  continually  making  war  upon  another,  for  the  sake 
of  the  prisoners  obtained  in  the  contest.  It  fosters  a  state  of 
barbarism,  excluding  every  thing  which  can  soften,  or  enlighten, 
or  civilize,  or  elevate  the  people  of  that  vast  continent.  It 
loosens  all  the  ties  of  nature,  debases  the  morals  of  the  people, 
creates  endless  insecurity,  banishes  commerce,  knowledge,  and 
social  improvement,  and  constitutes  one  of  the  principal  obsta- 
cles to  the  progress  of  Ciiristianity. 

But  even  the  Slave-Trade,  with  all  its  accumulated  horrors,  is 
only  one  among  the  many  evils  with  which  Africa  is  afflicted, 
though  confessedly  one  of  the  greatest.  We  have,  in  a  preced- 
ing chapter,  distinguished  between  the  Slave-Trade  and  Slavery; 
and  it  is  necessary  here  to  state,  that  this  distinction  belongs  to 
Africa  as  well  as  to  the  New  World.  Without,  therefore,  at  all 
blinking  the  fact,  that  the  Slave-Trade,  as  still  carried  on  by 
several  European  nations,  adds  fifty  per  cent,  to  the  misery  of 
Africa,  it  must  at  the  same  time  be  admitted,  that  Africa  is  a 
land  of  slaves,  and  that  Slavery  existed  in  Africa  long  before  the 
Slave-Trade  commenced,  and  will  probably  continue  long  after 
that  iniquitous  system  is  abolished.  At  all  events,  it  does  exist, 
separate  and  independent  of  the  Slave-Trade,  and  that  to  a  con- 
siderable extent.  According  to  the  computation  of  Mungo 
Park,  and  other  celebrated  authorities,  not  less  than  three- 
fourths  of  the  entire  population  of  Africa  are  in  a  state  of 
Slavery.  What,  then,  must  be  the  condition  of  society  in  a 
vast  continent  like  Africa,  when  so  many  millions  are  held  in 
abject  bondage  ?  It  is  true  that,  in  some  countries,  the  system 
is  comparatively  light,  among  the  domestic  slaves  especially; 
but  with  regard  to  others,  it  is  not  so :  the  slave  is  treated  with 
unkindness  and  severity,  according  to  the  caprice  of  his  master ; 
and  cruelties  the  most  barbarous  are  frequently  practised  upon 
these  unfortunate  beings.  In  some  nations  the  master  may 
kill  his  slave  without  exposing  himself  to  the  smallest  amount  of 
punishment,  whilst,  on  special  occasions,  numbers  are  slain  in 


240  WESTERN    COAST    Ol'    AFRICA. 

sacrifice.  Where  life  may  be  thus  taken  away  with  impunity, 
what  security  can  there  be  against  the  commission  of  other 
enormities  ?  It  is  well  known  that  in  some  of  the  great  as  well 
as  the  smaller  kingdoms  of  Africa,  the  female  part  of  the  slave 
population  are  commonly  and  systematically  let  out  for  the  hire 
of  prostitution,  and  are  liable  to  the  grossest  abuses  to  which 
their  savage  masters  may  choose  to  subject  them. 

But  even  taking  the  mildest  form  of  this  great  evil  as  it  exists 
in  Africa,  the  slaves  on  tliat  continent,  like  those  of  all  other 
slave-holding  nations,  have  no  property  in  themselves.  Their 
bones,  their  blood,  their  sinews,  their  hands  and  feet,  are  not 
their  own !  They  live,  and  breathe,  and  move,  not  for  them- 
selves, but  for  others  !  Nor  is  this  all :  they  have  no  property 
in  their  children ;  they  are  fed  and  nursed  and  bred  for  others, 
and  not  for  themselves  !  And,  African  Slavery  being  hereditary, 
the  system  is  perpetuated.  To  this  natural  cause  we  may  add, 
that  famine,  insolvency,  and  crime  are  so  many  sources  which 
supply  this  unrighteous  system  with  victims.  It  would  be  easy 
to  furnish  a  long  catalogue  of  evils  in  connexion  with  the  means 
by  which  Slavery  is  replenished,  and  replenished  to  such  a 
degree,  that  the  practice  may  be  said  to  be  almost  universal. 

Pohjgamy  is  another  dark  feature  in  the  moral  and  social 
condition  of  Africa.  No  sooner  has  the  African  taken  to  him- 
self one  wife,  than  he  is  ambitious  to  have  a  second,  a  third,  &c. 
With  the  Mohammedans  there  is  imposed  some  limitation  as  to 
the  number :  in  the  Koran  the  followers  of  the  false  prophet 
are  usually  restricted  to  five ;  and  in  those  countries  where  the 
dictates  of  Mohammed  are  implicitly  obeyed,  this  number  is  not 
exceeded.  But  among  the  Pagan  kingdoms  of  Western  Africa, 
potygamy  prevails  to  an  extent  still  more  fearful.  Every  man 
of  free  condition,  as  soon  as  his  circumstances  will  allow  it,  has 
a  plurality  of  Avives.  Some  private  individuals  have  six,  eight, 
or  even  ten  wdves,  and  as  many  concubines;  while  the  higher 
classes  and  the  native  chiefs  take  wives  almost  without  number. 
I  have  seen  some  of  the  Mandingo  kings  surrounded  by  a  host 
of  females,  all  said  to  belong  to  one  of  these  sable  monarchs ; 
and  it  is  stated,  that  in  Ashanti  the  law  allows  the  king  to  have 
three  thousand,  three  hundred,  and  thirty-three  wives ;  but  in 
w^hat  consists  the  charm  of  this  mystic  number,  which  is  care- 
fully kept  up,  does  not  appear. 

The  result  of  this  state  of  African  society  may  be  easily 
inferred.  One  inevitable  consequence  is,  to  make  one  passion 
almost  the  sole  end  of  life;  and  this  evil  propensity  of  a  depraved 
nature  is  not  only  thus  indulged  and  sustained  by  the  system 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  241 

under  consideration,  but  among  the  Mohammedans  it  is  sup- 
ported and  sanctioned  by  religion. 

The  domestic  arrangements,  in  places  where  this  fearful  evil 
prevails,  are  formed  on  different  principles  from  those  which 
regulate  an  English  or  civilized  family.  In  Africa  the  husband 
lives  separate  from  his  wives,  who  dwell  in  different  huts  or 
sheds,  built  contiguous  to  each  other,  in  the  form  of  a  square ; 
and  these  are  enclosed  with  a  wattled  cane  fence.  This  enclosure 
contains  one  family ;  that  is,  one  husband  and  one  father ;  but 
that  husband  has  many  wives,  and  the  wives  have  many  chil- 
dren. Favovu-itism  prevails,  jealousy  is  aroused,  and  revenge 
unsheaths  the  sword  which  deals  forth  destruction.  Polygamy 
is  the  fruitful  source  of  jealousy  and  distrust :  it  contracts  the 
parental  and  filial  affections,  weakens  and  disjoints  the  ties  of 
kindred,  and  degrades  the  female  character  almost  to  a  level 
with  the  brute  creation.  Before  marriage,  and  in  the  affairs  of 
courtship,  the  wishes  of  the  female  are  but  little  consulted,  the 
daughter  being  the  property  of  the  parents  :  the  business  is 
chiefly  settled  between  the  suitor  and  them ;  and  in  all  cases  the 
parent  receives  a  sum  for  his  daughter,  instead  of  giving  a  for- 
tune with  her,  as  is  the  practice  in  European  countries.  In 
marriage,  therefore,  the  African  female  is  literally  sold, — sold, 
like  an  article  of  merchandise,  to  the  best  purchaser.  Nor  is 
her  condition  in  the  least  degree  improved  after  her  marriage : 
she  has  only  changed  proprietors ;  that  is,  from  being  the  pro- 
perty of  her  parents,  she  has  become  the  property  of  her  hus- 
band. In  our  beloved  country,  woman  is  what  she  ought  to  be^ 
man's  companion,  the  nurse  of  his  children,  and  the  mistress  of 
his  home;  but  in  Western  Africa,  the  men  look  upon  their 
wives,  not  as  their  companions,  but  more  like  hired  servants, 
and  employ  them  as  such.  Hence  the  weightiest  duties  gene- 
rally devolve  upon  the  Avife,  who  may  be  seen  transacting  busi- 
ness in  the  market,  cultivating  the  plantations,  or,  with  a  child 
upon  her  back,  "  grinding  at  the  mill ; "  and,  instead  of  the 
husband  maintaining  the  wife,  as  in  duty  bound  in  all  Christian 
countries,  in  many  parts  of  Africa  the  woman  supports  the 
man  :  for  if  an  African  can  obtain  six  or  ten  wives,  the  fruit  of 
their  united  labours  is  sufficient  to  enable  him  to  lead  a  life  of 
indolent  ease  and  licentious  enjoyment.  Thus  the  females 
have  assigned  to  them  the  merest  drudgery  and  the  hardest 
labour,  and  are  treated  more  like  beasts  of  burden  than 
women,  and  are  looked  upon  by  their  husbands  more  in 
the  capacity  of  slaves,  or  creatures  of  convenience,  than  as 
bosom  friends. 


242  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

In  countries  where  polygamy  prevails,  it  might  be  presumed,  that  either  there  is 
a  great  disparity  between  the  sexes,  or  that  all  do  not  marry.  According  to  Bos- 
man,  the  number  of  women  among  the  natives  on  the  coast,  in  his  day,  was  much 
greater  than  that  of  the  men ;  but  it  is  supposed  that  the  proportion  of  women  to 
men  in  Ashantee  is  not  two  to  one ;  and  it  is  the  fact,  that  the  majority  of  the  males 
live  without  wives.  Sometimes  a  caboceer  will  give  his  daughter  to  a  confidential 
slave ;  but  ceUbacy  is  the  condition  of  far  the  greater  proportion  of  the  slave  popu- 
lation, which  principally  constitutes  the  military  force  of  Ashantee.  From  this 
unequal  state  of  things,  the  grossest  irregularities  nativrally  follow.  In  despite 
of  the  penalties  with  which  incontinence  is  visited,  the  violation  of  the  man'iage- 
contract  is  notoriously  common ;  and  prostitution  is  openly  countenanced.  In 
some  instances,  females  are  provided  by  the  state,  and  are  set  apart  to  their  office 
by  pul)lic  formalities  and  religious  ceremonies.  As  many  as  two  himrlred  and  fifty 
females  of  this  description  have  been  seen  together  on  state  occasions  at  the  court 
of  Dahomy.  But  scarcely  any  single  circumstance  tends  to  show  so  clearly  the 
demoralization  of  Negro  society,  as  the  fact  that  wealthy  females  on  their  death-bed 
regard  it  as  one  of  the  most  meritorious  acts  which  they  can  perform,  to  bequeath 
to  the  public  a  few  female  slaves.  AMiat  must  be  the  moral  condition  of  a  people, 
where  the  state  lends  its  authority  to  legahze  crime,  and  the  sanctions  of  religion 
are  employed  to  invest  \nce  with  the  attributes  of  virtue  !  * 

Such  are  some  of  the  evils  and  pernicious  tendencies  of  this 
crying  sin  of  polj'gamy,  and  such  is  the  condition  of  women  in 
Africa.  In  the  language  of  another  excellent  author,  "  it  must 
suffice  to  say,  that  almost  all  that  is  foul  and  black  in  the 
history  of  female  depravity  in  other  parts  of  the  world,  is  daily 
poisoning  and  darkening  the  moral  atmosphere  in  which  woman 
lives  and  moves  in  Africa.  If  such,  then,  be  woman,  what  must 
be  man  ?  what,  the  children  whom  she  bears  ?  Depraved  her- 
self, woman  in  Africa  fosters  whatever  is  evil  in  man,  and  instils 
into  the  minds  of  her  offspring  the  same  vicious  principles  which 
characterize  herself."  f 

Another  feature  in  the  moral  degradation  of  Africa  is  to  be 
found  in  the  prevalence  of  its  superstitions.  This  is  an  item  of  no 
small  magnitude ;  sufficient,  indeed,  of  itself,  to  fill  a  volume, 
which  might  be  "  written  within  and  without "  in  "  lamenta- 
tions, and  mourning,  and  woe."  It  is  true  that  some  of  the 
superstitions  of  that  great  continent  are  comparatively  innocent 
and  harmless,  and  sometimes  not  a  little  amusing:  but  they 
have  generally  an  immoral  tendency,  and  are,  therefore,  injuri- 
ous in  their  effects ;  whilst,  in  other  cases,  they  assume  a  graver 
aspect,  and  are  still  more  demoralizing  and  debasing  to  the 
intellect  and  to  the  heart,  until  they  reach  such  a  point  of  cruelty 
and  brutal  wretchedness  and  depravity,  that  the  bare  narration 
of  the  terrible  facts  makes  the  heart  sicken. 

*  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  pp.  129,  130. 
t  East's  "  Western  Africa,"  p.  60. 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  213 

Nearly  every  writer  on  Western  Africa,  in  describing  the 
manners  and  habits  of  the  people,  makes  frequent  mention  of 
their  superstitious  regard  for  greegrees.  The  word  greegree  is 
probably  a  corruption  of  a  Persian  word,  which  signifies  ''  a 
charm  "  or  "  incantation/^  Hence  it  has  received  divers  names 
from  different  writers, — saphie,  amulet,  charm,  fetish,  and  gree- 
gree. The  latter  term  is  more  generally  in  use  in  the  Sene- 
Gambia,  and  from  thence  to  Sierra-Leone.  The  greegree  is 
nothing  more  than  a  scrap  of  Arabic,  being  in  most  cases  a 
short  select  sentence  from  the  Koran,  written  by  one  of  the 
priests.  This  is  enclosed  in  a  piece  of  red  cloth,  or  stained 
leather,  which  is  neatly  sewed  up,  so  as  to  be  worn  on  the  per- 
son as  an  ornament.  They  are  either  of  a  square,  triangular, 
round,  or  oblong  form,  and  promise  to  the  wearer  perfect  immu- 
nity from  danger,  such  as  drowning,  fire-arms,  wild  beasts,  &c. 
They  are  generally  worn  round  the  neck  and  arms,  sometimes 
as  a  girdle  round  the  waist,  and  even  round  the  legs;  and  I 
have  frequently  seen  the  Mandingoes  so  armed  at  all  points 
with  these  greegrees,  that  it  was  with  difficulty  they  could  get 
upon  horseback.  They  are  used  for  an  almost  endless  variety 
of  purposes :  for  instance,  in  addition  to  the  above,  some  are 
obtained  to  cure  disease,  others  to  ward  off  sickness ;  traders 
purchase  them  to  insure  success  in  business,  and  have  them 
attached  over  their  store- doors,  or  shops,  to  prevent  fire ; 
and  they  are  sometimes  hung  upon  orange  and  other  trees 
to  prevent  the  fruit  from  being  stolen.  They  are  to  be 
seen,  in  fact,  in  all  directions,  and  are  worn  by  young  chil- 
dren, as  well  as  by  persons  of  riper  years,  and  even  down  to 
the  white-bearded  and  grey-headed  old  man;  from  the  slave 
in  chains  to  the  king;  men  and  women  wear  them,  pagans 
and  bushreens,  chiefs  and  warriors.  They  are  also  fre- 
quently tied  round  the  necks  of  horses,  sheep,  and  goats ; 
and  the  infant  babe  has  not  been  in  the  world  raaii}^ 
hours  before  a  small  greegree  is  fastened  round  the  neck  or 
loins.  The  Mohammedan  scribes  derive  a  considerable  revenue 
from  the  sale  of  these  greegrees,  the  price  varying  according  to 
the  supposed  intrinsic  value  or  nature  of  the  charm  ;  and  not 
unfrequently  ten  and  twenty  dollars  and  upwards  are  given  to 
obtain  one  of  these  sapldes  or  greegrees,  so  much  dependence  do 
they  place  on  them.  Tatta  Fodey,  a  celebrated  slatee,  or  native 
trader,  residing  at  Subakunda  in  the  kingdom  of  Woolli  in  the 
Upper  Gambia,  has  frequently  given  a  horse  for  one  of  these 
charms ;  and  the  Alkaid  of  Jillifree,  about  thirty  miles  from  the 
entrance  of  the  Gambia,  on  one  occasion,  travelled  to  Jume  in 

R  2 


244  WESTERN    COAST    OV    AFRICA. 

the  kingdom  of  Boiidou  to  a  popular  Marraboo  priest  named 
Kabba,  to  obtain  a  particular  kind  of  greeyree.  This  was  not 
less  than  five  hundred  miles'  journey ;  and  he  gave  to  the  bush- 
reen,  in  payment  for  the  said  charm,  a  female  slave,  about 
fourteen  or  fifteen  years  of  age.  In  other  cases,  as  will  be 
seen  hereafter,  two  slaves  and  more  are  given  in  this  locality ; 
and  on  the  Gold-Coast  prices  still  more  enormous  are  some- 
times paid  for  these  charms  manufactured  by  the  followers 
of  the  false  prophet,  even  to  the  amount  or  value  of  thirty- 
seven  slaves  ! 

"  The  origin  of  amulets,''  observes  Dr.  Winterbottom,  "  is  lost 
in  deep  antiquity.  The  Jews  had  their  phylacteries  ;  the  Greeks 
their  apotropaia,  phylacteria,  amynteria,  p)eriapta,  periammata ; 
and  the  Romans  had  their  phylacteria,  ajnuleta,  and  prabia.  The 
bulla  aurea  worn  by  the  Roman  youth,  and  used  as  an  insigne  of 
triumph,  and  which  often  contained  herbs  supposed  capable  of 

resisting  the  effects  of  envy,  were  of  the  same  nature In 

Europe  at  the  present  day  the  superstitious  practice  of  wear- 
ing amulets  still  prevails,  and  great  faith  is  reposed  in  them, 
when  hung  round  the  necks  of  children,  to  protect  them  from 
disease.  Anodyne  necklaces  are  worn  to  prevent  convulsions  in 
teething,  as  a  cure  for  worms,  hooping-cough,  &c. ;  and  it  is 
only  lately  that  such  modes  of  cure  have  been  banished  from 
our  Dispensatories,  many  instances  of  which  may  be  seen  in  the 
writings  of  the  excellent  INIr.  Boyle.  It  is  not  improbable 
that  the  necklace  which  at  present  forms  so  ornamental  a 
part  of  female  dress,  owes  its  origin  to  these  superstitious  prac- 
tices."* 

John  of  Gaddesden,  the  physician  to  Edward  II.,  1320,  our 
earliest  English  medical  author,  had  a  great  taste  for  an  amulet, 
and  an  anodyne  necklace.  In  his  Rosa  Anglica  he  gives  this 
admirable  recipe  for  the  small-pox :  "  Immediately  after  the 
eruption,  cause  the  whole  body  of  your  patient  to  be  wrapped  in 
scarlet  cloth,  or  in  any  other  red  cloth,  and  command  every 
thing  about  the  bed  to  be  made  red :  this  is  an  excellent  cure. 
It  was  in  this  manner  I  treated  the  son  of  the  noble  king  of  Eng- 
land, when  he  had  the  small-pox  ;  and  I  cured  him  without 
leaving  any  marks."  f  So  much  for  quackery  in  England  in 
the  fourteenth  century,  in  the  use  of  red  cloth  as  a  cure  for 
small-pox ;  and  though  this  mode  of  cure  has  long  since  been 
exploded,  there  are  still  to  be  found  in  some  parts  of  our  country 

*  Dr.  Winterbottom  on  Sierra-Leone,  vol.  i.  pp.  257,  258. 
f  Duncan's  "  Essays  and  Miscellanea." 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  245 

some  relics  of  Paganism,  which  have  a  striking  resemblance  to 
some  of  the  lesser  evils  of  superstition  as  practised  in  Africa. 
Red  cloth  especially  is  a  favourite  article  and  colour  with  the 
Africans;  and  in  small  patches  of  this,  many  of  the  greegrees 
are  carefully  wrapped  up.*  The  preceding  may  be  considered 
as  the  first  stage  or  lowest  grade  of  superstition  on  that 
continent. 

Nowhere  does  superstition  exert  her  baneful  influence  more 
powerfully  than  in  Africa,  where  all  classes  of  people  are  deeply 
afi'ected  by  it.  It  is  interwoven  with  almost  every  act  of  life ; 
and  nearly  every  object  in  nature  is  formed  into  a  species  of 
greegree,  or  is  looked  upon  by  them  as  a  kind  of  subordinate 
deity.  They  conceive  of  the  Divine  Being  as  too  high  and 
exalted  in  his  nature,  and  at  too  great  a  distance  from  them- 
selves, to  concern  himself  with  the  afi'airs  of  men,  and  that  he 
has  consequently  committed  the  government  of  the  world  to 
these  inferior  deities  and  spirits  which  they  worship.  In 
addition,  therefore,  to  the  written  greegrees  furnished  by  the 
Mohammedan  priests,  as  already  described,  the  articles  of  which 
African  charms  consist  are  exceedingly  numerous  :  a  tree,  a 
stick,  a  stone,  a  piece  of  rag  or  string,  or  a  feather,  and 
many  other  trifles  equally  insignificant,  often  make  a  gree- 
gree.     The  head  of   a  snake,  a  lock  of   a  white  man^s  hair, 

*  In  the  "Boston  Herald"  newspaper,  in  the  early  part  of  the  present  year, 
(1850,)  I  find  the  following  :— 

"  Superstition  in  Lincolnshire. — At  the  magistrates'  office,  Spilshy,  William 
Martin,  of  Bratoft,  was  charged  with  imposing  on  Tobias  Davison,  by  giraig  him  a 
pretended  charm,  to  cm-e  his  wife  of  a  certain  complaint,  and  receiving  for  the  same 
the  sum  of  10s.  Martin  is  an  old  man,  eighty-five  years  of  age,  and  has  long 
enjoyed  the  reputation  of  being  '  a  wise  man.'  Davison  stated,  that  about  eight 
weeks  ago  he  went  to  the  prisoner's  house,  and  told  him  that  his  wife  was  ill,  and 
he  was  to  come  and  see  if  he  could  cure  her.  He  told  the  prisoner  that  he  had 
only  10s. ;  and  he  said,  '  Well,  I  cannot  help  it,  if  you  have  no  more.'  He  took  the 
money,  and  went  to  another  part  of  the  room,  and  shortly  after  came  again  and 
gave  him  a  paper  parcel,  which,  he  said,  was  to  be  suspended  round  his  wife's  neck, 
and  it  would  do  her  good.  His  wife  wore  it  some  time,  according  to  prisoner's 
dhection,  but  did  not  receive  any  benefit.  The  bench  ordered  the  parcel  to  be 
opened,  when  in  several  folds  of  the  paper  were  found  some  pieces  of  sticks  and  a 
piece  of  writing-paper,  on  which  was  written  the  word  Abracadabra,  the  twelve 
signs  of  the  zodiac,  some  fractional  numbers,  and  the  following  lines  : — 

'  By  St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul, 
God  is  the  maker  of  us  all ; 
What  he  gave  to  me  I  give  to  thee, 
And  that  is  nought  to  nobody.' 

Ordered  lo  be  committed  for  fourteen  days,  to  pay  all  expenses,  and  the  cost  of 
maintenance  in  prison.'' 


246  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

or  a  handful  of  soil  from  a  grave,  are  carefully  preserved  as 
greegrees.  The  sun,  moon,  and  stars,  the  dry  land  and  sea, 
the  rivers,  creeks,  and  lakes,  the  wind  and  weather,  thunder 
and  lightning,  rocks  and  mountains,  the  deep  glen  and  "  the 
wide  waste,"  animals,  reptiles,  and  insects,  and  almost  every 
thing  that  can  be  mentioned,  form  an  object  of  superstitious 
dread  or  veneration  to  the  inhabitants  of  Western  Africa. 
And  in  addition  to  the  various  deities  furnished  by  the  animate 
and  inanimate  creation,  artificial  representations  are  adored. 
Hence  some  of  the  images,  to  which  religious  offerings  are 
presented,  are  made  of  wood,  rudely  carved,  so  as  to  resemble 
the  human  form.  These  are  generally  from  twelve  to  eighteen 
inches  in  length,  and  are  called  "  the  household  gods,"  being 
placed  in  a  corner  of  the  room  within  the  house,  and  covered  by 
a  curtain. 

One  of  the  Wesleyau  missionaries  residing  at  York,  in  the 
colony  of  Sierra-Leone,  on  one  occasion  went  out  to  visit  the 
};eople,  and  called  on  a  widow,  to  invite  her  to  Christian  service. 
He  writes :  "  She  had  in  her  room  four  gods  :  one  for  herself, 
one  for  her  late  husband,  and  one  for  each  of  her  two  children. 
She  had  been  rubbing  eggiddi  (a  rich  kind  of  food,  made  of 
Indian  corn,  beaten  fine  in  a  mortar,  and  mixed  with  palm- 
oil)  on  their  mouths;  but  they  ate  not.  I  endeavoured  to 
show  her  the  folly  of  such  practices ;  but  she  was  joined  to  her 
idols!" 

Thunder  is  an  object  of  worship  with  many,  and  they  have 
an  idol  which  is  called  "  the  god  of  thunder."  When  they 
worship,  they  call  a  party  of  their  friends  together,  with  drum- 
beaters  and  dancers ;  they  then  kill  a  fowl,  and  present  the 
blood  to  the  god,  and  sometimes  they  pour  out  a  libation  of 
palm-oil  before  him.  On  one  occasion,  a  man  and  his  wife, 
at  Sierra-Leone,  were  killed  by  lightning;  and  their  bodies 
were  allowed  to  remain  on  the  ground  three  days,  because  the 
people  were  afraid  to  touch  them,  lest  they  should  offend  their 
imaginary  god. 

There  is  also  the  god  of  iron  :  to  this  deity  the  ofl^eriug  is  a  dog; 
whose  blood  is  sprinked  on  the  god,  and  the  carcass  hung  over  him 
to  drain.  It  is  afterwards  boiled;  and,  with  vegetables  and  other 
animals,  is  eaten  by  the  whole  party.  This  feast  is  kept  up  by 
a  repetition  of  dog  sacrifices  for  six  or  seven  days.  Goats,  sheep, 
and  oxen  are  also  presented  as  oflFerings  to  these  subordinate 
deities,  as  well  as  fruit,  boiled  eggs,  &c. 

"  IVe  know  that  an  idol  is  nothing  in  the  world,  and  that 
there  is   none  other  God  but  one."    (1  Cor.  viii.  4.)     But,  in 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  247 

Western  Africa,  tliough  the  worshipping  of  idols,  as  practised 
in  the  East,  does  not  in  that  form  so  generally  prevail,  yet  it 
will  be  admitted,  from  the  preceding  brief  statement,  that 
"  there  be  gods  many  and  lords  many,"  and  that  "  they  have 
become  vain  in  their  imaginations,  and  their  foolish  hearts  are 
darkened." 

But  the  three  worst  features  of  superstition  that  have  come 
under  my  own  observation  in  Africa,  are  a  species  of  witch- 
craft; a  system  of  dkmonology,  or  devil-worship;  and  human 

SACRIFICES. 

The  natives  generally  believe  in  the  power  of  ivitchcraft ;  and 
this  produces  continued  excitement  and  alarm,  injurious  at 
once  to  the  peace  of  the  community,  and  to  the  mental  tran- 
quillity of  individuals.  If  an  African  is  taken  ill,  he  imagines 
that  his  neighbour,  or  some  one  else,  has  been  using  enchant- 
ments against  him.  Many  instances  of  this  kind  have  come 
under  my  own  notice.  A  liberated  African  of  the  Pappa  tribe, 
residing  at  Soldiers'-Town,  on  the  island  of  St.  Mary's,  had  a 
brother  who  died  rather  suddenly  at  Macarthy's  Island.  This 
man  attributed  his  brother's  sickness  and  death  to  a  female  of 
the  same  tribe,  who,  he  said,  had  bewitched  and  killed  him. 
The  woman  soon  afterwards  returned  to  St.  Mary's.  Bent  on 
having  his  revenge,  one  evening,  just  before  sun-set,  seeing  her 
walking  down  a  narrow  path  or  street  at  the  outskirts  of  the 
town,  he  rushed  from  behind  the  fence,  and,  though  the  poor 
woman  had  a  child  upon  her  back,  and  was  leading  another  by 
the  hand,  this  infatuated  man  stabbed  her  in  the  neck  and  face 
with  a  long  knife,  and  almost  severed  the  head  from  the  body. 
She  was  so  dreadfully  wounded  and  mutilated  that  she  instantly 
expired.  This  occurred  in  February,  1843,  not  many  yards 
from  my  residence.  Hearing  the  noise,  I  hastened  to  the  spot, 
and  found  the  poor  creature  weltering  in  her  blood.  The  super- 
stitious assassin  fled  into  the  bush,  dug  a  deep  hole  in  the  sand, 
and  covered  himself  with  small  branches  of  trees  and  other 
brush-wood ;  and,  being  armed  with  a  gun  and  other  weapons, 
bade  defiance  to  any  body  that  dared  to  seize  him.  He  was, 
however,  at  length  captured  by  the  natives,  and  unfortunately 
shot  by  the  party  in  self-defence.  This  poor  wretch  I  also  saw 
a  few  minutes  before  life  was  extinct.  Thus  were  two  lives 
sacrificed  at  the  shrine  of  this  Pagan  altar. 

Another  item  in  the  catalogue  of  the  superstitions  of  Africa 
is  to  be  found  in  a  system  of  demonology,  or  devil-worship,  which 
prevails  among  nearly  all  the  Pagan  trilics  of  Western  Africa. 
All  the  Africans,  as  already  intimated,  acknowledge  a  Supreme 


248  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Being,  the  Creator  of  the  universe ;  and  the  notion  of  a  future 
state  universally  prevails :  but  their  ideas  of  that  future  state 
are  exceedingly  vague  and  confused.  They  also  believe  in  tlie 
existence  of  the  devil ;  but,  supposing  that  the  Almighty  is 
endowed  with  too  much  benevolence  to  do  harm  to  mankind, 
they  think  it  unnecessary  to  offer  him  any  homage.  It  is 
therefore  from  the  devil,  demons,  and  evil  spirits  only,  that 
they  apprehend  danger ;  and  they  endeavour  to  deprecate  their 
wrath  by  sacrifices  and  offerings.  This  is  done  in  various  ways 
on  different  parts  of  the  coast. 

Beelzebub,  "the  prince  of  the  devils,"  is  supposed  to  walk 
at  large ;  but  those  of  an  inferior  order  have  a  locality  ascribed 
to  them,  and  are  said  to  inhabit  different  places,  such  as  the 
sources  of  large  rivers,  the  deepest  recesses  of  a  forest,  rocks  and 
mountains  of  a  pecaliar  construction,  immensely  large  trees, 
which  are  rendered  venerable  by  age,  and  some  particular  parts 
of  rivers  and  creeks,  with  many  other  places  whicli  have  a 
strange  and  uncommon  appearance,  or  such  as  are  calculated  to 
inspire  the  spectator  with  awe. 

Lander,  in  descending  a  branch  of  the  Niger  near  the 
Atlantic,  speaks  of  one  of  the  latter : — 

These  meditations,  and  a  train  of  others  about  home  and  friends,  to  which  they 
naturally  led,  occupied  my  mind,  as  our  canoe  passed  through  the  narrow  creeks, 
sometimes  winding  under  avenues  of  mangrove-trees,  and  at  others  expanding  into 
small  lakes  occasioned  by  the  overflowing  of  the  river.  The  captain  of  the  canoe, 
a  tall,  sturdy  fellow,  was  standing  up,  chrecting  its  course,  occasionally  hallooing,  as 
we  came  to  a  turn  in  the  creek,  to  the  felish ;  and  where  an  echo  was  returned, 
half  a  glass  of  rum  and  a  piece  of  yam  and  fish  were  thrown  into  the  water.  I 
had  never  seen  this  done  before  ;  and  on  asking  Boy  the  reason  why  he  was  throw- 
ing away  the  provisions  thus,  he  asked,  "Did  you  not  hear  the  fetish  ?"  The 
captain  of  the  canoe  replied,  "  Yes."  "  That  is  for  the  fetish,"  said  Boy  :  "  if  we 
do  not  feed  him,  and  do  good  for  him,  he  will  kill  us,  or  make  us  poor  and  sick." 
I  could  not  help  smiling  at  the  ignorance  of  the  poor  creatures ;  but  such  is  their 
firm  belief.* 

A  similar  custom  prevails  in  the  Gambia.  About  seventy 
miles  from  the  entrance  of  that  river  there  is  a  sharp  elbow- 
turn  from  left  to  right :  the  left  bank  is  rather  hilly,  and  is 
covered  with  trees  :  this  is  called  "  Devil^s  Point."  The  river 
is  here  about  two  miles  wide;  and,  in  passing  this  place,  the 
natives  are  in  the  habit  of  consigning  to  the  deep  some  small 
portions  of  the  ship^s  cargo,  or  eatables,  in  honour  of  his  satanic 
majesty,  and  to  insure  a  safe  passage  up  and  down  the  river. 
The  first  Lime  I  sailed  up  this  splendid  stream,  I  was  requested 

*  Lander's  "  Journal,"  vol.  iii.  p.  242. 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  249 

to  give  something  to  the  devil  at  this  place,  which,  of  course,  I 
declined;  but  it  is  still  practised  by  the  superstitious  natives 
and  sailors ;  for  the  prince  of  darkness  is  said  to  have  a  resi- 
dence under  that  point  of  land,  and  to  stretch  out  his  long 
arms  beneath  the  water,  in  order  to  receive  the  offerings  pre- 
sented by  his  worshippers. 

In  the  neighbourhood  of  Sierra-Leone,  the  same  custom 
prevails.  In  a  creek  of  the  river  near  Bashia,  there  is  a  rock, 
to  which  the  natives  offer  sacrifices,  supposing  it  to  be  the 
residence  of  an  evil  spirit,  and  asserting  that  the  rock  sometimes 
moves,  and  that  it  would  be  death  for  any  one  to  put  his 
foot  upon  it.  In  other  cases,  as  with  the  Jollars  already  men- 
tioned,  there  are  huts  or  sheds  erected,  and  dedicated  to 
the  devil,  where  offerings  of  palm -wine  and  other  trifles  are 
presented. 

In  the  Bassa  country,  the  town  is  not  complete  Avhich  has 
not  a  devil-house,  where  the  people  daily  offer  sacrifices,  and 
dedicate  a  part  of  their  food  to  the  devil.  They  profess  to 
believe  that  there  is  a  good  and  merciful  Deity,  who  can  and 
will  do  them  good,  and  not  evil;  but  that  the  devil  is  all- 
powerful,  and  that  it  is  necessary  to  appease  his  wrath.  "  Every 
town  has  its  peculiar  devil." 

Rankin,  in  speaking  of  the  Timmanees,  and  of  one  of  these 
temples,  says :  "  The  devil-house,  whose  shelter  I  was  not 
permitted  to  seek,  w^as  erected  over  a  small  relic  of  the  nest  of 
the  warlike  ant,  now  abandoned.  These  booga-boogs  being 
regarded  as  imps,  the  servants  of  Satan,  secure  this  honour  for 
the  corpse  of  their  abode.  On  the  apex  of  the  nest  lay  a  small 
piece  of  broken  white  earthenware ;  an  article  sufficiently 
uncommon  so  far  from  the  English  settlement  to  be  considered 
worthy  of  Satan's  acceptance." 

In  a  visit  which  I  paid  to  Madina,  the  capital  of  Woolli  on 
the  Upper  Gambia,  in  1837,  I  witnessed  a  still  more  awful 
instance  of  this  species  of  devil-worship.  The  chief  of  that 
kingdom  had  recently  been  waging  war,  or  rather  committing 
ravages,  upon  the  territories  of  a  neighbourir)g  chief  of  the  name 
of  Kemmingtan,  and  had  taken  away  a  great  number  of  slaves. 
These  were  distributed  in  various  ways  ;  but  a  few  of  the  juve- 
niles Avere  in  the  capital :  among  these  was  a  little  interesting 
Foulah  boy  of  about  six  years  of  age,  whom  I  saw  in  the  king's 
yard,  and,  hearing  that  his  father  was  killed  in  the  attack  which 
had  captured  the  child,  with  many  others,  I  ventured  to  ask 
His  sable  Majesty  if  he  would  place  him  under  my  care,  and  I 
would  take  him  to  the  mission-house  at  Macarthv^s  Island,  and 


250  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

have  him  educated,  &c.  To  this  the  king  objected ;  and,  point- 
ing to  a  long  spear  attached  to  his  royal  residence,  he  said, 
"  That  boy  is  dedicated  to  that  greegree ;"  in  other  words,  this 
innocent  and  unoffending  child  was  by  some  cruel  means  to  be 
put  to  death,  and  thus  presented  as  an  offering  to  the  devil,  to 
insure  success  in  another  meditated  attack  upon  Kemmingtan. 
I  would  fain  have  rescued  this  poor  little  fatherless  boy  from 
the  unmerciful  grasp  of  these  wild  barbarians,  by  giving  a  hand- 
some present  for  his  redemption ;  but  even  had  I  succeeded, 
another  would  doubtless  have  immediately  been  substituted  in 
his  stead. 

A  short  time  previous  to  this,  Kemmingtan  consulted  one  of 
the  head  Mohammedan  scribes  to  obtain  a  greegree,  for  the 
purpose  of  keeping  war  from  his  country ;  or,  in  case  of  an 
attack,  that  he  might  be  successful  in  repelling  the  assailants. 
The  bushreen  demanded  two  slaves  and  five  horses  for  his  trou- 
ble :  and  a  young  female  was  selected,  of  about  twelve  years  of 
age ;  and  two  holes  were  dug  in  the  earth  near  Kemmingtan's 
fort,  about  two  feet  in  depth.  In  these  holes  the  feet  of  the 
female  were  fixed ;  and,  notwithstanding  the  bitter  lamentations 
of  the  mother,  and  the  loud  screams  of  the  unfortunate  sufferer, 
men  were  employed  in  building  a  wall  of  clay  round  the  body, 
till  it  was  ultimately  worked  over  the  head,  and  thus  the  poor 
creature  was  smothered  to  death.  This  awful  monument  of 
Mohammedan  and  Pagan  superstition  and  wickedness  was  seen 
standing  some  time  after  the  horrid  crime  was  perpetrated. 

At  Badagry,  the  devil  is  publicly  worshipped ;  and  Mr.  Mar- 
tin, one  of  our  missionaries  there,  has  seen  a  man  in  the  streets 
take  up  his  own  child,  and  offer  it  up  to  the  devil  for  the  sake 
of  his  "  blessing." 

The  Dahomians  on  the  Gold-Coast,  though  by  their  warlike 
character  they  are  the  terror  of  the  surrounding  country,  yet 
are  very  superstitious,  and  are  even  alarmed  at  travelling 
alone  by  night,  lest  the  devil,  who,  they  believe,  assumes  various 
characters,  and  frequently  flies  about  in  the  shape  of  a  small 
snake,  should  touch  them.  And  as  this  evil  being  is  supposed 
to  be  ever  at  hand  for  the  purpose  of  mischief,  they  are  in  a 
state  of  constant  alarm  and  apprehension. 

Among  the  Fantees  and  Ashantees,  the  devil  is  not  wor- 
shipped. 

On  the  contrary,  he  is  annually  driven  away  on  the  Gold-Coast,  with  great  form 
and  ceremony.  This  custom  is  observed  at  Cape-Coast-Town,  about  the  end  of 
August.  Preparation  is  made  for  the  ceremony  in  the  course  of  the  day ;  as  the 
hour  of  eight  o'clock  in  the  evening  draws  nigh,  the  people  are  seen  collecting  in 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  251 

groups  in  the  streets,  armed  with  sticks,  muskets,  and  otlier  weapons ;  at  the 
instant  when  the  eight-o'clock  gun  is  fired  from  the  castle,  a  tremendous  shouting, 
accompanied  with  the  firing  of  muskets,  breaks  forth  from  all  parts  of  the  town ; 
and  the  peojile  rush  into  their  houses,  and  beat  about  with  their  sticks  in  every 
corner,  shouting  and  hallooing  with  all  their  strength.  This  sudden  outburst  of  all 
kinds  of  noises  often  alarms  Europeans  who  have  recently  arrived,  inducing  them  to 
suppose  that  an  enemy  has  attacked  the  place.  When  it  is  imagined  that  the  devil 
is  excluded  from  all  the  houses,  a  simultaneous  rush  is  then  made  out  of  the  town, 
and  the  people  in  a  body  pursue  the  invisible  enemy,  with  lighted  flambeaux, 
shouts,  and  the  firing  of  muskets,  until  it  is  concluded  that  he  is  completely  routed 
and  put  to  flight.  After  this  achievement,  they  return ;  and,  in  some  of  the  towns, 
the  women  proceed  to  wash  and  purify  their  wooden  and  earthen  vessels,  to 
prevent  the  de\il  from  returning  to  their  houses.* 

But  of  all  African  superstitions^  the  most  dreadful  and  appal- 
ling is  that  of  human  sacrifices. 

Only  a  few  instances  of  this  horrible  species  of  the  degrada- 
tion of  Africa  have  come  under  my  own  observation;  but  in 
AshauteCj  Dahomy,  Benin,  and  among  other  countries  where 
the  Mohammedan  religion  and  the  Mohammedan  power  do  not 
prevail,  this  iniquitous,  revolting,  and  diabolical  practice  is  car- 
ried to  a  fearful  extent.  Hundreds,  nay,  thousands  of  human 
beings,  men,  women,  and  children,  are  deliberately  murdered  in 
cool  blood. 

The  occasions  on  which  these  sacrifices  are  offered  are  nume- 
rous. "We  have  already  mentioned  two  cases  where  this  horrible 
custom  was  observed  by  two  chiefs  in  the  vicinity  of  the  Gambia, 
at  the  commencement  of  war ;  and  it  is  stated  that  human 
victims  were  daily  sacrificed  by  the  king  of  Ashantee  at  the 
commencement  of  the  w^ar  with  the  British  in  1823-4.  In  that 
battle,  it  has  been  already  stated,  the  late  Sir  Charles  Macarthy 
was  unfortunately  killed.  Mr.  Williams,  Sir  Charles's  secre- 
tary, was  also  stunned  by  a  ball,  and  fell ;  but  his  life  was 
spared.  Two  other  Europeans  were  killed  at  the  same  time, 
and  on  the  same  spot;  and  on  Mr.  Williams  recovering  a  little 
from  the  wound  he  had  received,  and  looking  round,  he  "  wit- 
nessed the  appalling  sight  of  the  headless  trunks  of  Governor 
Macarthy,  Mr.  Buckle,  and  Mr.  Wetherell.  He  remained  for 
some  time  a  prisoner  in  the  Ashantee  camp ;  during  the  whole 
of  which  period,  he  was  regularly  locked  up  at  night  in  tlie 
same  place  with  the  heads  of  his  unfortunate  companions, 
which,  by  some  peculiar  process,  were  kept  in  a  state  of  perfect 
preservation;  Sir  Charles's  head  presented  nearly  the  same 
appearance  as  when  alive."     But,  not  content  with  decapitating 

*  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  p.  184. 


252  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

the  unfortunate  victims,  the  body  of  Sir  Charles  was  cut  up, 
and  "it  is  stated  that  his  heart  was  actually  eaten  by  the  princi- 
pal Ashantee  chiefs,  in  order  that  they  might,  as  they  imagined, 
imbibe  his  bravery ;  and  his  flesh,  having  been  dried,  was  then 
divided,  together  with  his  bones,  among  the  men  of  consequence 
in  the  army,  who  kept  their  respective  shares  about  their  per- 
sons, as  charms  to  inspire  them  with  courage."*  Such  was  the 
conduct  of  these  savage  conquerors,  previous  to  and  during  this 
dreadful  campaign. 

On  tlie  achievement  of  a  victory,  and  at  the  death  of  distin- 
guished personages,  these  human  sacrifices  often  take  place  on  a 
larger  scale.  At  the  conclusion  of  tlie  Gaman  war,  for 
instance,  itself  full  of  horrors  and  bloodshed,  two  thousand 
wretched  victims,  selected  from  the  prisoners  taken  in  the  con- 
test, "  were  slaughtered  over  the  royal  death-stool,  in  honour  of 
the  shades  of  departed  kings  and  heroes." 

The  exquisite  torture  to  which  the  unhappy  victims  are  fre- 
quently subject  previous  to  death,  is  another  terrible  feature  in 
this  barbarous  and  diabolical  practice ;  and  the  term,  ''  living 
sacrifice,"  may,  in  a  certain  sense,  be  applied  to  those  unfortu- 
nate suff"erers.     One  or  two  instances  will  suffice. 

Bowdich,  who  visited  Coomassie,  the  capital  of  Ashantee,  in 
1817,  says.  While  waiting  in  the  street  for  leave  to  attend  the 
king,  "  our  attention  was  forced  to  a  most  inhuman  spectacle, 
which  they  paraded  before  us  for  some  minutes  :  it  was  a  man 
whom  they  were  tormenting  previous  to  sacrifice.  His  hands 
were  pinioned  behind  him,  a  knife  was  passed  through  his 
cheeks,  to  which  his  lips  were  noosed  like  the  figure  of  8 ;  one 
ear  was  cut  off,  and  carried  before  him ;  the  other  hung  to  his 
head  by  a  small  bit  of  skin ;  there  were  several  gashes  in  his 
back,  and  a  knife  was  thrust  under  each  shoulder-blade ;  he  was 
led  with  a  cord  passed  through  his  nose,  by  men  disfigured  with 
immense  caps  of  shaggy  black  skins,  and  drums  beat  before 

him."t 

In  addition  to  this  "inhuman  spectacle,"  let  the  reader 
attentively  peruse  the  following  affecting  record  from  a  Wesleyan 
missionary,  who  was  also  an  eye-witness  of  what  he  describes 
at  the  same  place,  and  what  occurred  very  recently  : — 

Sad  are  the  scenes  -which  sometimes  transpire  in  Kumasi,  showing  the  brutal- 
izing effects  of  Heathenism  upon  the  heart  of  those  who  are  brought  under  its 
influence. 

*  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  pp.  75,  76. 

t  Buxton  on  the  Slave  Trade,  p.  233.     From  Bowdich,  p.  33. 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  253 

In  the  "  customs"  which  are  held  in  honour  of  any  deceased  chieftain,  great 
numbers  of  slaves  are  generally  beheaded.  This  is  done  under  the  belief  that  the 
spirit  of  the  in(U\dduals  so  sacrificed  will  attend  upon  their  deceased  masters  in 
another  world,  and  will  there  wait  upon  them,  as  they  had  been  accustomed  while 
here. 

In  the  selection  of  the  \-ictims,  no  regard  is  paid  to  age  or  sex,  but  male  and 
female  are  slaughtered. 

Should  it  be  the  case  that  a  female,  with  an  infant  at  the  breast,  is  condemned 
to  die,  the  child  is  not  spared;  but  as  soon  as  sentence  of  death  is  pronounced 
upon  the  mother,  her  infant  is  regarded  as  an  abomination.  Hence,  when  the 
mother  is  led  to  the  place  of  execution,  and  falls  in  the  streets  a  headless  coi-pse, 
her  child  falls  with  her.  The  body  of  the  mother  may  remain  all  day  in  the 
street,  exposed  to  the  gaze  of  every  passer-by ;  and  by  her  side  may  remain  her 
helpless  hving  infant,  exposed,  too,  not  only  to  the  heedless  foot  of  the  multitude, 
but  suffering  intensely  from  the  eifects  of  the  direct  rays  of  a  tropical  sun.  Seldom 
does  any  eye  pity :  no  one  would  ever  think  of  taking  away  that  child,  and  thus  of 
saving  its  life :  it  remains  in  the  street  until  evening,  and  then,  as  the  individual, 
whose  business  it  is  to  drag  away  the  bodies  of  these  victims,  takes  away  the 
mother,  he  at  the  same  time  takes  away  the  child ;  not  to  pity  and  to  save  it,  but 
to  cast  both  mother  and  infant  together  into  the  dell  where  these  wretched  victims 
are  thrown,  and  there  both  remain  to  putrefy,  or  to  be  devoured  by  swine,  or 
carnivorous  birds. 

During  the  time  of  my  residence  in  Kumasi,  several  infants  perished  in  this 
miserable  manner.  Never  shall  I  forget  the  effects  produced  upon  my  own  mind, 
when,  on  one  occasion,  a  person  connected  with  the  mission  family  came  in  from 
the  town  in  great  distress,  and,  vrith  a  countenance  expressive  of  fear  and  pity,  as 
well  as  of  horror,  stated  that  he  had  just  passed  a  spot  where  lay  a  victim  and  her 
infant :  the  mother  had  been  sacrificed  two  hours  before,  and  her  infant,  pressed 
by  hunger,  had  crept  to  her  bleeding  neck,  and  was  literally  feeding  upon  the  blood 
of  her  who  gave  it  birth !  I  shuddered  as  I  listened  to  the  narration,  and  at  once 
determined,  if  possible,  to  save  that  child.  Bidding  the  narrator  accompany  me,  I 
hastened  to  the  spot;  but  it  was  too  late:  a  by-stander,  observing  my  approach, 
and  suspecting  my  errand,  had  placed  his  foot  upon  the  neck  of  the  infant !  It 
was  dead,  and  there  it  lay  :  side  by  side  were  these  two  unoffending  persons,  victims 
of  a  sanguinaiT  superstition,  pleading  in  death,  in  langiiage  which  could  not  be  mis- 
understood by  a  Christian  heart,  the  necessity  existing  for  teachers. 

With  a  sad  heart  I  returned  to  the  mission-house,  to  weep  over  and  pray  for  the 
people  of  my  charge ;  a  whole  nation  with  but  one  missionary !  Many  were  the 
earnest  prayers  which  this  and  similar  scenes  prompted,  that  messengers  of  mercy 
might  be  sent  to  guide  the  feet  of  these  wanderers  into  the  way  of  peace.* 

"  Scenes  "  like  these  arc  "  sad  "  indeed  ;  but  the  repetition 
of  them  in  Ashantee  causes  thera  to  be  so  faraihar  with  the 
inhabitants  of  that  sanguinary  nation,  whose  "  feet  are  swift  to 
shed  blood/'  that  they  ''  glory  in  their  shame." 

The  Rev.  Thomas  B.  Freeman,  in  his  first  journey  to  Ashantee, 
was  detained  some  time  at  Fomunah ;  and  under  date  of  Tues- 
day, February  19th,  1839,  he  writes  thus: — 

*  Rev.  George  Chapman. 


254  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Last  night  a  sister  of  Korinchi  died,  after  a  long  sickness.  Her  death  was 
announced  by  the  firing  of  muskets,  and  the  "  mourners  going  about  the  streets." 
When  an  Ashanti  of  any  distinction  dies,  several  of  the  deceased's  slaves  are  sacri- 
ficed. This  horri1)le  custom  originates  in  some  shadowy  ideas  of  a  future  state  of 
existence ;  in  which  they  imagine  that  those  who  have  departed  hence  stand  in 
need  of  food,  clothing,  &c.,  as  in  the  present  world ;  and  that,  as  a  vast  number  of 
concubines,  slaves,  &c.,  are  the  chief  marks  of  superiority  among  them  here,  so  it 
must  also  be  in  a  futiu-e  state.  Accordingly,  as  I  walked  out  in  the  morning,  I 
saw  the  mangled  corpse  of  a  poor  female  slave,  who  had  been  beheaded  during  the 
night,  Ij'ing  in  the  pubUc  street.  It  was  partially  covered  with  a  common  mat ;  and 
as  this  covering  is  unusual,  I  concluded  that  it  was  thrown  over  in  order  to  hide  it 
from  my  view.  In  the  course  of  the  day  I  saw  groups  of  the  natives  dancing  round 
this  victim  of  superstitious  cruelty  with  numerous  frantic  gestures,  and  who  seemed 
to  be  in  the  very  zenith  of  their  happiness. 

A  few  clays  subsequently  Mr.  Freeman  writes  : — 

To-day  another  human  victim  was  sacrificed,  on  account  of  the  death  of  a  person 
of  rank.  As  I  was  going  out  of  the  town  in  the  cool  of  the  evening,  I  saw  the 
poor  creature  lying  on  the  ground.  The  head  was  severed  from  the  body,  and 
lying  at  a  short  cUstance  from  it ;  several  large  turkey-buzzards  were  feasting  on  the 

wounds,  and  rolhng  the  head  in  the  dust While  the  body  was  lying  in  the 

public  street,  many  of  the  people  were  looking  on,  with  the  greatest  indifference ; 
indeed,  they  are  so  famihar  mth  these  aw^ul  and  bloody  scenes,  that  they  think  as 
little  of  them,  yea,  not  so  much,  as  they  would  of  seeing  a  dead  sheep,  monkey,  or 


On  arriving  at  Coomassie  Mr.  Freeman  again  witnessed  these 
scenes  of  darkness  and  of  blood.  The  king  had  lost  one  of  his 
relations  by  death,  and  in  consequence  four  human  victims  were 
immediately  sacrificed,  and  their  mangled  bodies  were  lying  in 
the  streets,  where  a  number  of  large  hawks  and  turkey-buzzards 
were  hovering  over  them. 

Throughout  the  day,  (wTites  Mr.  Freeman,)  I  heard  the  horrid  sound  of  the 
death-drum,  and  was  told  in  the  evening  that  about  twenty -five  human  victims  had 
been  sacrificed,  some  in  the  town,  and  some  in  the  surrounding  villages ;  the  heads 
of  those  killed  in  the  villages  being  brought  into  the  town  in  baskets.  I  fear  there 
will  be  more  of  this  awful  work  to-morrow. 

In  two  days  forty  human  beings  were  immolated  on  this 
Pagan  altar,  and  their  headless  and  naked  bodies  left  in  the 
streets  until  they  began  to  decompose ;  and  such  was  the  callous 
state  of  mind  of  the  people,  that  many  were  seen  walking  about 
and  among  the  putrefying  bodies,  smoking  their  pipes  witli 
amazing  indifference. 

In  a  second  Adsit  which  Mr.  Freeman  paid  to  the  capital  of 
Ashantee  in  the  latter  end  of  1841,  he  once  more  beheld  the  hor- 

*  Freeman's  "  Journal  of  a  Mission  to  Ashanti,"  pp.  24,  28,  29. 


NATIVE    SUPERSTITION    AND    CRUELTY.  255 

rid  effects  of  this  superstitious  custom.     Under  date  of  Decem- 
ber 1 7th,  he  writes  : — 

In  the  afternoon  I  heard  that  a  chief  had  died,  and  that  three  human  sacrifices 
had  been  made  in  the  town :  the  mangled  victims  were  left  in  the  streets  as  usual. 
0  God,  have  mercy  upon  this  beaighted  people !  I  saw  a  lad  near  my  lodgings, 
who  is  one  of  the  king's  executioners.  He  had  decapitated  a  poor  victim  that 
morning.  He  appeared  to  he  from  sixteen  to  eighteen  years  of  age.  I  asked  him 
how  many  persons  he  had  executed :  he  answered,  "  Eighty."  0  awful  fact !  eighty 
immortal  spirits  hurried  into  the  eternal  world,  by  the  hands  of  a  boy  under  eigh- 
teen years  of  age,  and  he  only  one  of  a  large  number  engaged  in  the  same  dreadful 
employment !  * 

On  a  subsequent  occasion  the  same  excellent  missionary,  on 
walking  into  the  town,  saw  two  criminals  seated  on  a  block  of 
wood,  in  a  street  near  the  king's  residence,  each  accompanied  by 
an  executioner.  In  this  case  he  witnessed  a  barbarous  and  hor- 
rid spectacle,  similar  to  that  mentioned  by  Bowdich :  "  Two 
knives  were  forced  through  the  cheeks  of  each  criminal,  one  on 
each  side,  which  deprived  them  of  speech.^'  This  brutal  prac- 
tice, we  are  told,  is  adopted  to  prevent  them  from  cursing  the 
king,  or  swearing  the  death  of  any  person  or  persons  whom 
they  might  be  disposed  to  mark  out  for  destruction. 

The  Rev.  George  Chapman,  writing  from  Coomassie,  under 
date  of  January  2d,  1844',  says  : — 

The  scenes  I  have  been  called  to  witness,  during  my  short  residence  here, 
have  in  many  instances  been  of  the  most  soul-harrowing  description  ;  nor  could  I 
have  thought  it  possible  that  hinuan  life  should  be  so  little  cared  for,  or  common 
humanity  be  so  foreign  to  the  mind,  as  is  the  case  in  Kumasi.  I  do  not  exaggerate 
when  I  say  that,  during  the  past  four  months,  at  least  eight  hundred  persons  have 
fallen  by  the  sacrificial  knife,  not  one  of  whose  dishonoiu-ed  remains  has  been  laid 
in  the  grave.  On  several  occasions  I  have  seen  the  headless  trunks  of  these  poor 
victims  lying  in  heaps  of  from  fifteen  to  twenty,  the  swine  and  turkey-buzzards 
either  greedily  preying  upon  them,  or  standing  by  literally  gorged  with  the  flesh  of 
one's  fellow-men.  Often  has  my  heart  sickened  at  these  most  revolting  spectacles, 
and  I  have  returned  home  to  weep  over  and  pray  for  a  people  so  deeply  sunk  in 
error,  and  so  far  from  the  way  of  peace.  Often  is  the  language  of  that  beautiful 
hymn  commencing,  "  Saviour,  whom  our  hearts  adore,"  the  language  of  my  heart. 
Great  indeed  will  be  the  change  when  Kumasi,  now  mourning  with  the  blood  of 
thousands,  if  not  "  millions,  slain,"  shall  "  sound  the  mystery  of  redeeming  love."  O 
may  this  happy  consummation  be  hastened !  May  Ashanti  soon  "  stretch  out  her 
hands  unto  God !"  Surely  the  Claristian  church,  even  in  these  days  of  "  rebuke  and 
blasphemy,"  will  continue  to  make  special  intercession  for  a  part  of  the  human 
family  so  deeply  degraded,  and  so  greatly  needing  the  kind  interference  and  help  of 
those  who  themselves  have  tasted  that  the  Lord  is  gracious. f 


*  Freeman's  "  Journal  of  a  Mission  to  Ashanti,"  p.  128. 
t  "  Wesleyan  Missionary  Report,"  1844. 


.ZOb  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

The  Rev.  Henry  Wharton,  another  Wesleyan  missionary 
who  was  stationed  in  Ashantee  in  1846-7,  wrote  as  follows : — 

The  annual  Yam  Custom  has  passed  off  with  its  usual  debasing  ceremonies. 
On  the  first  sabbath  after  its  commencement,  a  fat  freeman— as  is  customary — 
was  sacrificed  near  the  gate  of  the  king's  palace,  and  afterwards  cut  up  by  the 
executioners,  who  danced  about  the  town  with  pieces  of  the  victim's  flesh  between 
their  teeth.  They  were  all  horribly  disfigured,  and  most  of  them  had  the  jaw  and 
other  bones  of  sacrificed  human  beings  strung  around  their  necks.  During  the 
day  the  greatest  excitement  prevailed.  In  the  afternoon  another  man  was  immo- 
lated at  the  sacred  town  of  Bantama  ;  after  which,  the  skulls  of  vanquished  kings 
and  warriors,  including  that  of  Sir  Charles  Macarthy,  were  displayed  in  procession 
through  the  town. 

One  of  those  horrifying  tragedies  which,  alas !  are  but  too  frequently  acted  at 
the  celebration  of  the  above  festival,  was  exhibited  on  the  present  occasion.  The 
facts  are  briefly  these  : — Previous  to  the  Yam  Custom  of  1845,  the  principal  chief 
of  Morpon  (a  large  provincial  town)  was  cruelly  put  to  death  by  liis  own  people, 
through  some  jealous  feeling  arising  among  them.  Four  spear-knives  were  thrust 
through  his  cheeks,  two  on  either  side ;  his  limbs  were  amputated,  and  the 
remaining  fleshy  parts  of  his  body  cut  off"  and  shown  to  him  with  a  view  to  aggra- 
vate his  sufferings.  After  several  hours  of  the  greatest  possible  torture,  he  was 
despatched  by  decapitation.  On  the  arrival  of  the  Yam  Custom  of  1845,  the 
people  who  were  guilty  of  this  diabolical  act  purposely  absented  themselves,  in 
opposition  to  the  desire  and  expectation  of  His  Majesty  Quako  Duah.  Their  con- 
tempt was,  however,  for  the  time  passed  over  in  silence.  About  two  months 
previous  to  the  arrival  of  the  Yam  Custom  of  the  present  year.  His  Majesty,  fearing 
that  the  delinquents  would  again  think  proper  to  keep  away  from  the  approaching 
festival,  contrary  to  the  constitutional  usages  of  the  country,  sent  one  of  his  lin- 
guists to  them,  requesting  their  attendance ;  to  secure  which,  some  inducement  was 
held  out  which  had  the  desired  effect.  On  their  arrival  in  Kumasi,  several  days 
were  allowed  to  elapse  in  silence.  At  the  close  of  that  period  the  king  summoned 
his  principal  chiefs  and  captains  to  attend  at  the  palace,  for  the  purpose  of  looking 
into  the  Morpon  "  palaver."  After  several  hours'  investigation  of  the  case,  the  peo- 
ple of  Morpon  were  pronounced  "Guilty;"  and  the  king  issued  orders  for  their 
immediate  arrest  and  imprisonment.  The  scene  which  then  transpired  cannot 
easily  be  described.  A  body  of  men,  consisting  of  several  hundreds,  rushed  from 
the  palace  to  the  quarters  of  the  people  in  question,  who  were  violently  seized,  and  so 
unmercifully  beaten  with  sticks,  that  the  blood  flowed  copiously  from  their  persons. 
Men,  women,  and  children  were  hurried  through  the  streets  to  the  place  of 
imprisonment.  Every  article  of  which  they  were  possessed  was  taken  from  them, 
not  excepting  the  loose  drapery  of  native  cloth  which  they  wore.  Three  men  were 
beaten  to  death,  and  about  twelve  more  were  decapitated,  principally  chiefs  and 
linguists.  The  women,  children,  and  a  number  of  men,  who  were  deemed  inno- 
cent, were  subsequently  liberated.* 

More  terrible  still  are  the  scenes  which  take  place  on  the 
death  of  some  powerful  chief  or  king.  On  these  occasions 
whole  hecatombs  of  human  beings  are  sacrificed,  and  the  streets 
are  made  to  stream  with  gore.    At  the  death  of  Adahunzan,  one 

*  "Wesleyan  Missionary  Report,"  1847. 


NATIVE    !^UPEUSTITIOX    AND    CRUELTY.  257 

of  the  kings  of  Dahomj^,  two  hundred  and  eighty  of  his  wives 
fell  as  victims  to  the  sauguinary  superstition  of  the  counti'y. 

When  Osai  Quaraiiia  died,  the  funeral  custom  was  repeated  every  week  for  three 
months,  two  hundred  slaves  being  sacrificed,  and  twenty-five  barrels  of  powder 
being  fired  on  each  occasion ;  but  when  the  king's  brother  died,  during  the  inva- 
sion of  Fantee,  the  king  devoted  three  thousand  victims,  two  thousand  of  whom 
were  Fantee  prisoners,  and  nearly  one  thousand  more  were  furnished  by  various 
towns ;  maldng  in  the  whole  about  four  thousand  human  beings  who  perished  at  the 
grave  of  this  royal  personage.* 

Such  is  the  fearful  extent  to  which  these  deeds  of  blood  are 
perpetrated,  under  the  dictation  of  a  debasing  superstition.  Nor 
is  this  all;  for  the  graves  of  the  departed  must  in  some  instances 
be  annually  "  watered  "  with  human  blood.  And  "  when  the 
king  dies,  Ashantee  is,  in  fact,  one  vast  Aceldama ;  for  all  the 
'customs^  which  have  been  made  for  deceased  subjects  during 
his  reign,  must  be  repeated  by  their  families,  simultaneously 
with  the  'custom^  which  is  celebrated,  in  all  the  excess  of 
extravagance  and  barbarity,  for  the  departed  monarch  himself."  f 

Other  cases  might  be  mentioned  in  which  human  beings  were 
inhumanly  tortured  and  put  to  death,  sometimes  at  the  mere 
caprice  of  some  cruel  tyrant,  or  to  gratify  his  notions  of  brutal 
grandeur.  The  following  fact  furnishes  a  frightful  corrobora- 
tion of  this  statement : — 

After  a  great  victory  achieved  by  the  army  of  the  king  of  Dahoray,  the  otficers 
and  sokbers  having  been  hberally  rewarded  by  the  distribution  of  cowries  and 
cloth,  the  skulls  of  the  vanquished  enemy  were  ordered  to  be  applied  to  the  deco- 
ration of  the  royal  walls.  The  operators  accordingly  proceeded  with  their  work, 
till  the  skulls  were  all  expended,  when  it  appeared  that  there  were  not  a  sufficient 
number  for  the  completion  of  the  task.  On  the  defective  part  of  the  walls  being 
measured,  and  a  calculation  made,  it  was  found  that  one  hundred  and  twenty-seven 
more  heads  were  required,  to  finish  this  barbarous  embellishment.  The  prisons, 
therefore,  where  the  wretched  captives  had  been  confined,  were  thrown  open,  and 
the  requisite  number  of  devoted  victims  dragged  forth  to  be  slaughtered  in  cold 
blood,  for  this  hellish  purpose.  And  this  act  of  barbarity  is  said  to  have  been 
applauded  by  all  present !  % 

Mr.  Freeman  witnessed  this  horrible  spectacle  in  1843,  in 
a  visit  which  he  paid  to  Abomi,  the  capital  of  Dahomy. 

In  the  preceding  pages  a  tale  of  licentious  wickedness,  deep- 
rooted  superstition,  and  awful  depravity  has  been  told ;  and  it 
would  be  easy  to  extend  the  recital  to  a  much  greater  length ; 
and  even  to  add  others  of  a  more  horrifying  and  diabolical  cha- 
racter ;  for  almost  every  crime  which  has  polluted  other  parts  of 
the  Heathen  world  is  chargeable  on  Africa.     But  it  is  hoped 

*  Beecham's  "Ashantee,"  p.  237.  f  Idem. 

%  Dalzel's  "  History  of  Dahomi,"  p.  190  (1735). 

S 


258  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

that  enough  has  been  said  to  give  a  tolerable  idea  of  the  demo- 
ralized and  degraded  state  of  millions  of  the  human  race  on  that 
vast  continent.  It  may  be  truly  said,  in  reference  to  Africa, 
that  "the  whole  head  is  sick,  and  the  whole  heart  is  faint." 
But  we  cannot  further  enlarge.  If  the  reader  desires  a  more 
detailed  account  of  the  moral  and  social  condition  of  that  people, 
I  would  refer  him  to  Beecham^s  "Ashantee  and  the  Gold- 
Coast,"  East's  "  Western  Africa,"  and  to  the  works  of  Mungo 
Park,  Bosman,  Meredith,  Bowdich,  Gray,  Dupuis,  and 
the  Landers.  And  those  who  wish  to  see  at  a  glance,  and 
in  few  words,  what  many  parts  of  this  great  continent  is,  I 
would  respectfully  direct  to  Romans  i.  21 — 32.  In  the  deeply- 
affecting  account  there  given  by  the  apostle  of  the  Heathen 
world  in  his  day,  the  reader  will  find  a  correct  portrait  of  the 
present  state  of  Western  Africa. 

It  is,  however,  gratifying  to  know  that  "the  gospel  of  Christ'^ 
is  now,  as  it  Avas  in  the  days  of  the  apostle,  "  the  power  of  God 
unto  salvation  to  every  one  that  believeth ; "  and  therefore,  after 
giving  in  the  following  chapter  some  account  of  the  British  set- 
tlements on  the  Gambia,  we  shall  proceed,  in  chronological 
order,  with  a  brief  history  of  the  missions,  in  which  this  truth 
will  be  clearly  demonstrated. 


CHAPTER  XIV. 

THE  GAMBIA  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1821—1824.) 

Discovery  of  the  Gambia — Long  been  an  English  River — Fort  James — British 
Settlement  at  St.  Marj^'s — Commencement  of  the  Wesleyan  Missions — Messrs. 
Baker  and  Morgan — First  Impressions — Tentabar — Mandanaree  and  St. 
Mary's — Erection  of  Mission-Premises  at  Mandanaree — The  Missionaries  visit 
St.  Mary's  once  a  Week — First-Frnit — Sickness  of  the  Missionaries — Rainy 
Season — Mr.  Baker  removed  to  the  West  Indies — Mr.  Bell  appointed — His 
Sickness  and  Death — Sketch  of  his  Character — Mr.  Lane  sent  from  Sierra- 
Leone — The  Missionaries  visit  Mandanaree — St.  Mary's — Letters  from  the 
Brethren — Sickness  of  Mr.  Lane — His  Removal  to  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Lane's 
Death — His  Character — Death  of  Mr.  Huddlestone — Sketch — Mrs.  Huddle- 
stone's  Return  to  England — State  of  the  Mission  at  Sierra-Leone — Messrs. 
Piggott  and  Harte  appointed — Their  Arrival  and  Reception — Number  of  Mem- 
bers in  the  Society. 

The  Gambia  is  almost  entirely  an  English  river,  and  has 
been  so  for  nearly  the  last  two  hundred  years ;  the  attempts  to 
form  settlements  upon  it  having  for  that  period  been  principally 
confined  to  our  own  nation.  It  first  became  known  as  a  river 
of  some  magnitude  about  the  middle  of  the  fifteenth  century. 
Prince  Henry  of  Portugal,  having  heard  of  this  river,  "  coupled 
with  the  wonderful  accounts  of  tlio  wealth  of  its  banks, 
employed  Cadamosto,  in  1454,  to  undertake  a  voyage  of  disco- 
very thither.'^  The  Portuguese,  therefore,  as  at  Sierra-Leone, 
were  the  first  European  settlers  at  the  Gambia.  The  great 
object  at  this  period,  and  previously,  as  stated  in  a  preceding 
chapter,  was  to  obtain  slaves  ;  and  the  ravages  committed  were 
so  great,  that  Prince  Henry,  who  was  eager  for  the  trade,  but 
wished  it  to  be  carried  on  with  as  much  humanity  as  was  com- 
patible with  success,  thought  it  necessary  to  make  stringent 
regulations  to  prevent  those  excesses.*  Subsequently  forts 
were  erected,  and  factories  established,  in  different  parts  of  the 
river;  and  the  trade  chiefly  consisted  in  "Negroes  and  gold,  in 
exchange  for  Portuguese  goods."  At  TancroAvall,  about  forty 
miles  from  the  Atlantic,  they  had  a  considerable  establishment, 
"and  built  their  houses  in  a  difterent  style  from  the  Mandingoes." 

*  Bandinel,  p.  18.     From  Cadamosto  in  Ramusio. 

s  2 


260  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

In  the  upper  river  they  had  several  otlier  factories  and  trading- 
posts;  so  that,  for  a  lengthened  period,  the  Portuguese  pos- 
sessed nearly  the  exclusive  commerce  of  this  important  stream. 
In  Jobson's  voyage  up  the  Gambia,  in  1621,  he  met  with  "the 
Tenda  merchants  at  Setico,"  a  town  about  four  miles  from  tlie 
river,  and  the  largest  he  had  seen  in  the  country.  This 
"  formed  the  highest  point  to  which  the  Portuguese  had  carried 
up  their  trade ;  "  and  at  this  place  "  a  considerable  commerce 
was  carried  on  in  slaves,  salt,  and  gold."  Soon  after  this  the 
English  obtained  a  footing  in  the  Gambia ;  and,  notwithstand- 
ing "  the  jealousy  of  the  Portuguese  and  IMulatto  inhabitants," 
they  succeeded  in  a  short  time  in  establishing  a  trade  with  the 
natives,  and  formed  several  small  factories  and  trading-posts  on 
the  right  and  left  bank  of  the  river,  as  far  as  Fattatenda. 

James  Island  was  one  of  the  first  and  most  important  of  the 
English  settlements.  Here  a  strong  fort  was  built,  and  a  small 
garrison  kept.  This  island  is  about  thirty  miles  from  the  mouth 
of  the  Gambia  :  it  is  very  small,  being  only  about  two  hundred 
yards  long  and  fifty  broad,  and  is  situated  in  the  middle  of  the 
stream,  which  is  here  from  three  to  four  miles  wide.  But  the 
French,  on  capturing  it  in  1688,  destroyed  the  works.  It  was 
resumed  by  the  African  Company  at  the  commencement  of  the 
last  century ;  and  Francis  IMoore,  who  was  for  several  years 
factor  or  superintendent  for  the  Company  at  the  different 
trading  stations  on  the  Gambia,  published  a  work,  in  1735, 
containing  some  interesting  information  on  the.  subject  of  the 
trade,  and  the  natives  of  the  surrounding  country.  But  though, 
according  to  Moore's  statement,  "  a  salute "  was  generally 
"  fired  by  order  of  the  governor  "  of  James  Island  on  the  arrival 
of  vessels  from  England,  it  appears  the  fort  was  never  entirely 
restored  to  its  original  state. 

Jillifi'ee  stands  opposite  to  Fort  James,  on  the  northern  bank 
of  the  river,  in  the  kingdom  of  Barra,  and  is  surrounded  by  a 
fertile  district.  It  has  long  been  a  noted  place  for  trade,  and  is 
rendered  somewhat  remarkable  as  being  the  landing-place  of 
Mungo  Park  in  both  his  journeys  into  the  interior.  The  first 
was  on  the  21st  of  June,  1795;  and  the  second,  on  the  9tli  of 
April,  1805.  The  French  have  a  small  factory  called  Albradar, 
about  a  mile  and  a  half  below  Jillifree,  of  which  more  will  be 
said  hereafter. 

During  the  Aruerican  and  continental  wars,  at  the  close  of 
the  last  and  the  beginning  of  the  present  century,  the  Senegal 
and  Gorec  alternately  belonged  to  the  French  and  English ;  and 
the  commerce  of  the   Gambia  was  carried  on  for  some  years 


THE    GAMi5IA    AND    Sli;illiA-Li;ONii:.  261 

during  the  latter  period  exclusively  by  the  English  traders  from 
Goree,  though  Fort  James  Avas  still  maintained  and  defended  by 
a  few  British  traders  and  soldiers.  But  on  the  final  restoration 
of  Senegal  and  Goree  to  the  French,  in  1816,  exclusive  posses- 
sion of  the  Gambia  was  re-assured  to  the  English  by  the  treaty 
of  Paris,  on  the  same  footing  as  that  of  1783.*  The  English 
immediately  turned  their  attention  to  the  formation  of  a  new 
and  larger  settlement  in  the  Gambia,  for  the  protection  and 
extension  of  legitimate  commerce,  as  well  as  for  the  suppression 
of  the  iniquitous  traffic  in  slaves.  The  place  selected  was  the 
island  of  St.  Mary^s,  about  ten  miles  from  the  Atlantic,  or  the 
cape  of  the  same  name. 

St.  Mary's  is  a  small  island  on  the  south  side  of  the 
Gambia,  about  sixteen  miles  in  circumference,  and  is  sepa- 
rated from  the  main-land  by  a  narrow  creek,  called  Sarra 
Creek,  or,  more  generally,  "the  Oyster  Creek,''  from  the  quan- 
tity and  good  quality  of  oysters,  which  grow  spontaneously  upon 
the  mangroves  as  they  hang  in  the  water.f  It  was  purchased 
by  the  British  Government  of  the  king  of  Combo.  The  island 
is  low,  and  in  some  parts  swampy;  but  this  locality  was 
chosen  on  account  of  the  advantages  which  it  afforded,  both 
for  trade  and  for  commanding  the  river  by  a  garrison,  as  well  as 
for  the  harbour,  Avhich  furnished  good  anchorage  for  vessels  of 
almost  any  burden.  Hither,  therefore,  the  English  merchants 
and  traders  from  Goree  at  once  repaired,  and  commenced  build- 
ing temporary  residences,  until  more  substantial  ones  could  be 
erected.  "The  troops  arrived  there  in  March,  1816,  in  number 
about  fifty,  besides  a  few  natives,  commanded  by  Captain 
Grant."  These  fifty  soldiers  were  Europeans,  eight  of  whom 
died  during  the  first  rains.  In  November  of  the  same  year, 
"  the  town  consisted  of  the  commandant's  house  and  a  few 
huts  ;"  and  at  that  time  they  were  busily  employed  in  intrench- 

*  The  following  is  the  article  of  the  treaty  of  1783: — "Art.  X.  The  Most 
Christian  king,  on  his  part,  guai'antees  to  the  king  of  Great  Britain  the  possession 
of  Fort  James  and  of  the  river  Gambia."  (See  Martin's  "  British  Colonies,"  vol. 
iv.  p.  562.) 

t  This  is  the  case  in  the  West  Indies,  and  some  other  warm  climates :  but  about 
two  hundred  years  ago  it  appears  that  some  attention  was  paid  to  this  mode  of 
growing  oysters.  Hence  an  old  historian,  in  speaking  of  Sclavonia  and  lllyricum,  and 
the  islands  contiguous  thereto,  says,  "  Near  to  this  last  island  (Languste)  is  good 
fishing  for  sprats ; "  and  it  is  reported  of  the  natives,  that  they  possess  "  an  ai't 
in  making  their  trees  to  bring  forth  oysters,  by  bending  down  the  boughs,  and 
staying  them  under  the  water  with  stones ;  so  as  in  two  years  there  are  so  many 
oysters  fastened  to  them  as  is  strange  to  see,  and  in  the  third  year  they  arc  very 
good."  (See  IIeylyn's  "  Cosmographie,"  1057,  p.  55G.) 


262 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


ing  themselves,  as  they  feared  an  attack  from  the  natives,  who 
were  displeased,  it  was  said,  at  the  English  coming  "  to  prevent 
the  smuggling  of  slaves."  They  were,  however,  unmolested, 
and  jiroceeded  with  the  settlement.  The  town,  which  is  situated 
on  the  north-eastern  extremity  of  the  island,  was  called 
Eathurst,  in  honour  of  the  noble  lord  who  was  colonial  secretary 
when  the  buildings  commenced.  Major  Gray,  who  called  at  St. 
Mary's  on  his  expedition  into  the  interior  in  January,  1818,  thus 
speaks  of  it :  "  The  settlement,  although  in  its  infant  state,  has 
made  a  most  rapid  progress  in  improvement.  Many  fine  sub- 
stantial government-buildings  have  been  latelj^  erected,  and  the 
British  merchants  resident  there  have  vied  with  each  other  in 
the  elegant  and  convenient  arrangement  of  their  dwelling- 
houses  and  stores,  all  which  are  built  with  stone  or  brick,  and 
roofed  with  slates  or  shingles."  At  the  commencement  of  the 
following  yeat  the  inhabitants  amounted  to  eight  hundred,  and 
they  were  increasing ;  and  already  the  prospect  of  a  fair  and 
profitable  trade  was  most  encouraging ;  the  wood  was  partly 
cleared  away,  and  the  place  promised  to  be  as  healthy  as  any 
part  of  the  coast. 

From  the  Sierra-Leone  Gazette  we  learn  that,  in  ten  vessels, 
there  were  consigned  to  London  during  the  year  1819,  from 
Bathurst,  the  under- mentioned  exports,  on  which  were  payable, 
in  Great  Britain,  the  duties  specified  : — 


EXPORTS. 

DUTY. 

Tons.    cwt.  qr. 

lb. 

£.          S. 

d. 

Wax 

....U2       li       1 

6 

9,463  15 

7 

Ivory    . . 

....     3     12       1 

12 

217  10 

0 

Gum 

1        1        1 

26 

12  18 

0 

Gold 

130or.  IWw;/. 

\2gr. 

Hides    . , 

53,619    , 

1,340     9 

6 

Total  duties,  11,034  13     1 

In  1820  the  population  was  upwards  of  one  thousand,  beside 
the  garrison ;  and  Captain  Grant  formed  a  school,  and  read 
prayers  on  the  forenoon  of  the  sabbath-day.  A  strong  desire 
having  been  expressed  to  have  a  chaplain,  a  short  time  after 
this,  the  Rev.  llobert  Hughes  was  sent,  who  arrived  at  Bathurst, 
by  way  of  Sierra-Leone,  in  March,  1821.  This  gentleman 
usually  "  preached  on  the  sabbath  morning,  and  expounded  in 
the  afternoon;  and  also  on  Tuesday  and  Thursday  evenings." 

On  the  establishment  of  this  British  settlement  at  St.  Mary's, 
the  few  soldiers  at  Fort  James  were  removed,  and  the  island, 
principally  on  account  of  its  inadequate  size,  was  abandoned ; 
and  Fort  James  is  now  a  heap  of  ruins.     It  was  about  this  time 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


263 


that  the  "  French,  for  the  purpose  of  securing  a  footing  in  the 
river,  dispatched  an  agent  from  Goree  to  establish  a  trading- 
post,  or  comptoir,  as  they  call  it,  at  Albradar,  under  pretence 
of  their  having  formerly  had  a  comptoir  at  that  place."  *  The 
result  of  this  intrusion  on  the  part  of  the  French  proved  very 
injurious  to  the  English  traders  on  the  Gambia,  as  well  as  to 
the  general  prosperity  of  the  new  colony ;  and  it  cannot  but  be 
deeply  regretted  that  this  infant  and  rising  settlement,  formed 
as  it  was  on  the  same  humane  and  philanthropic  principles  as 
the  colony  of  Sierra-Leone,  should  have  been  retarded  in  its 
progress  by  this  unjustifiable  conduct  of  the  French. 

It  was  well  known  that,  in  the  year  1820,  the  French  Slave- 
Trade  had  swelled  to  a  more  enormous  extent  than  at  any 
former  period,  the  number  of  slave-ships  on  the  Coast  being 
almost  incredible.  But,  not  content  with  reviving  the  traffic  on 
the  Senegal,  the  French  slave-traders  actually  entered  the  Gam- 
bia. The  following  extract  from  the  "  Fifteenth  Report  of  the 
African  Institution,"  published  iu  1821,  will  more  fidly  exhibit 
this  :— 

As  a  further  proof  that  the  statement  of  the  cessation  of  the  French  Slave-Trade 
at  Senegal  and  its  neighbourhood  is  not  correct,  it  may  be  added,  that  when 
Governor  Macarthy  visited  Bathurst,  in  the  river  Gambia,  in  the  month  of  August 
last,  on  his  way  to  Europe,  he  learnt,  on  undoubted  authority,  that  the  Slave-Trade 
was  at  that  time  carried  on  with  great  activity  by  various  merchants,  both  of  Sene- 
gal and  Goree.  These  persons  were  pointed  out  to  him ;  and  it  was  added,  that 
they  had  estabbshed  agents  for  this  purpose  at  a  small  village  called  Albrada,  in 
the  river  Gambia,  about  forty  miles  above  its  mouth. 

xUbrada  was  formerly  a  French  factory  dependent  on  Goree.  By  the  treaty  of 
1783,  it  will  be  seen  that  France  relinquished  all  right  to  its  occupation.  Indeed, 
by  the  terms  of  that  treaty,  which  has  not  since  undergone  any  modification,  it 
clearly  appears  that  the  river  Gambia  was  as  effectually  and  unreservedly  ceded  to 
Great  Britain,  as  the  river  Senegal  was  to  France :  and  as  France  would  fairly 
object  to  our  attempting  to  re-estabhsh  ourselves  on  any  part  of  the  Senegal,  or 
even  to  navigate  that  river  at  all ;  so  are  we  entitled  to  maintain  the  same  exclu- 
sive right  of  occupation  and  navigation  in  respect  to  the  Gambia. 

Since  the  British  establishment  of  Bathurst  was  formed  on  the  island  of  St. 
Mary's,  near  the  mouth  of  the  river,  no  French  vessel  has  been  allowed  to  enter  or 
leave  the  river  without  undergoing  an  examination.  Notwithstanding  this  restric- 
tion, however,  a  very  considerable  Slave-Trade  is  carried  on  by  the  French  factors 
of  Albrada  throughout  the  whole  length  of  the  river  Gambia ;  for,  although  the 
autliorities  at  Bathuj-st  do  not  permit  any  vessel  with  slaves  on  board  to  pass  that 
settlement,  yet  they  are  carried  in  canoes  to  the  left  bank  of  the  river,  and  thenCe 
conveyed  by  land  to  Cacho  or  Cuzamens,  whence  they  are  shipped  for  the  West 
Indies.  By  these  means  the  whole  of  that  noble  river,  which  would  otherwise  be 
entirely  free  from  this  traffic,  is,  from  one  end  to  the  other  of  its  navigable  course, 

*   Martin's  "  British  Colonics,"  vol.  iv.  p.  .'J63. 


284 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


exceeding  one  thousand  miles,  made  the  scene  of  the  atrocities  of  the  Slave-Trade : 
and  thus  not  only  is  the  progress  of  civilization  and  improvement  in  that  fertile 
region  retarded,  and  the  natives  prevented  from  pursuing  a  course  of  peaceful 
iudustiy  and  heneficial  intercourse,  but  wars  are  excited  among  them,  and  the  sur- 
rounding districts  are  involved  in  depredation  and  hlood.  Such  being  the  case,  it 
appears  to  be  highly  expedient  that  the  British  Government  should  claim  the  strict 
execution  of  the  provisions  of  the  treaty  of  1783.  This  measure  is  pressed  on  us, 
under  existing  circumstances,  by  the  highest  moral  considerations ;  and  Great 
Britain,  therefore,  seems  bound  to  vindicate  her  exclusive  right  to  the  navigation  of 
this  river,  were  it  only  to  deliver  our  sulFering  fellow-creatures,  in  that  quarter  of 
the  globe,  from  the  violence  and  cupicbty  of  the  slave-traders.  This  subject,  the 
Du-ectors  believe,  is  now  under  discussion  between  the  two  Governments. 

The  subject  was  discussed  between  the  two  Governments ; 
for  representations  setting  forth  the  injurious  effects  of  Albradar 
on  the  trade  of  St.  Mary's,  as  well  as  its  being  a  market  for  the 
slave-dealers,  were  forwarded  by  memorial  to  the  secretary  of 
state,  from  the  English  merchants  at  the  Gambia.  But,  "  un- 
fortunately," as  Mr,  Montgomery  Martin,  in  his  "  History  of 
the  British  Colonies,"  says,  '•  this  was  not  resisted  at  the  time 
by  the  English  commandant.  Colonel  Grant,  for  want  of  suffi- 
cient information  on  the  nature  of  the  treaties;  and  every 
attempt  made  since  to  dislodge  them  by  fair  means,  has  failed 
of  success.  It  is  but  justice  to  our  Government  to  add,  that  the 
most  persevering  remonstrances  have  been  addressed  in  vain  to 
the  French  Government  on  this  subject." 

The  French,  therefore,  retain  the  possession  of  Albradar  to 
this  day,  in  defiance  of  the  treaty,  and  despite  the  repeated 
remonstrances  of  the  English  Government,  as  well  as  to  the 
great  annoyance  and  injury  of  the  fair  traders  at  the  British 
settlements,  whom  I  have  frequently  heard  bitterly  complain  of 
this  encroachment  on  the  part  of  the  French.  And  well  they 
might ;  for,  independent  of  tlie  French  Slave-Trade,  as  cariied 
on  in  that  factory,  as  well  as  in  the  upper  river,  for  many  years, 
which  gave  tliem  a  pecuniary  advantage  over  the  honest  and 
honourable  English  trader,  there  were  certain  colonial  duties 
levied  on  various  articles  of  merchandise  at  St.  Mary's,  to  which 
the  French  at  the  small  factory  of  Albradar  were  not  subject ; 
and,  as  a  natural  consequence,  the  English  merchants  and 
traders  could  not  compete  vvith  them,  even  in  a  fair  and  legiti- 
mate commerce. 

But,  notwithstanding  these  vexatious  annoyances  and  draw- 
backs, the  British  settlement  gradually  advanced ;  and,  as  we 
shall  see  presently,  an  additional  one  was  in  a  few  years  formed 
in  the  upper  river.  At  Bathurst,  the  article  of  bees'-wax  soon 
amounted    to   two  hundred  tons   annuallv ;    and  in  the  years 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERKA-LEONE. 


265 


1823  and  1823  the  article  of  gold  had  increased  so  much,  that, 
in  each  of  these  years,  from  tliree  to  four  thousand  ounces  of 
that  precious  metal  were  exported.  The  trade  also  increased  in 
ivory,  hides,  and  other  useful  commodities;  and  several  ship- 
loads of  fine  timber  of  the  mahogany  kind  were  sent  to  London, 
and  met  with  a  ready  market.  The  population  of  St.  Mary's  in 
1823  was  1,845  :  forty-five  of  these  were  Europeans,  of  whom 
eight  were  females.  There  were  one  hundred  and  thirty-five 
Mulattoes,  male  and  female,  adults  and  children.  Tlic  others 
were  principally  Blacks,  with  the  exception  of  a  few  strangers. 
In  1826  the  population  was  about  tlie  same,  there  being  a  little 
increase  of  Blacks,  but  a  decrease  of  Europeans.  In  1833  there 
were  thirty-six  Whites,  five  being  females  ;  seventy-five  Mulat- 
toes ;  and  the  rest  Blacks  :  making  a  total  of  2,740.  This  did 
not  include  the  garrison,  which  consisted  of  about  one  hundred 
and  fifty  of  the  Royal  African  Corps.* 

The  Gambia  had  been  recommended  to  the  Wesleyau  Mis- 
sionary Committee  in  London,  as  an  eligible  situation  for  a  new 
mission,  by  the  excellent  and  benevolent  Sir  Charles  Macarthy, 
the  friend  and  patron  of  all  Protestant  missions  on  the  Coast ; 
and,  at  the  Conference  of  1820,  Messrs.  J.  Baker  and  Morgan 
were  appointed. f 

Mr.  Morgan  landed  at  St.  Mary's,  direct  from  England,  on 
the  8th  of  February,  1821 ;  and,  having  a  note  of  introduction 
to  Mr.  Dodd,  he  was  kindly  received  by  that  gentleman.  ''The 
morning  after  my  arrival,"  writes  Mr.  Morgan,  "Mr.  Dodd 
accompanied  me  to  the  government-house,  and  introduced  me 
to  the  commandant,  Captain  Stepney,  who  very  kindly  expressed 
his  approbation  of  the  object  of  my  mission,  and  promised  to  do 
any  thing  he  could  for  its  furtherance."  He  was  also  intro- 
duced to  all  the  respectable  merchants  in  the  colony,  and  on 
"  the  following  sabbath  preached,  at  the  government-house,  to 
the  Europeans,  the  soldiers  from  the  barracks,  and  to  a  great 
number  of  re-captured  slaves."  But  "the  brutal  Mretchedncss 
of  the  natives  surpassed  all  his  previous  conception  of  human 


*  These  were  Blacks  from  the  West  Indies,  and  re-captured  Negroes,  with 
European  officers ;  the  roortality  among  the  white  troops  heing  so  great,  that  the 
idea  of  keeping  up  a  sulKcient  supply  of  white  soldiers  was  found  impracticable. 
It  is  stated  that,  during  the  years  1825  and  1826,  there  were  sent  to  the  Gambia, 
at  three  separate  periods,  three  hundred  and  ninety-seven  English  troops,  and  that 
out  of  that  number  "  in  nineteen  months  two  hundred  and  seventy-nine  perished." 

t  W.  Walker's  name  stands  in  the  Minutes  with  that  of  John  Baker ;  but  he 
Mas  sent  by  the  Committee  to  the  aborigines  of  New  South  Wales;  and  Mr.  John 
Morgan  was  sent  to  the  Ganiliia  in  his  stead. 


266 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA, 


misery  and  degradation.  He  was  even  tempted  to  think  tliem 
inferior  to  the  human  species,  and  incapable  of  benefiting  by 
his  labours.  Having  walked  about  among  them  for  several 
days,  striving  in  vain  to  make  those  who  professed  to  under- 
stand English,  understand  the  object  of  his  coming  among 
them,  he  turned  a  wistful  eye  to  the  vessel  from  which  he  had 
landed,  and  wished  in  his  heart  that,  consistently  with  his  duty 
to  those  who  sent  him,  he  could  immediately  return  in  her 
to  England."  Such  were  Mr.  Morgan's  first  impressions,  as 
expressed  by  himself.  But,  on  the  arrival  of  his  colleague,  Mr. 
Baker,  about  a  month  after  this,  his  "  doubts  of  success  were 
soon  removed." 

Mr.  John  Baker,  it  will  be  recollected,  had  laboured  with 
great  zeal  and  success  among  the  same  class  of  people  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  for  two  or  three  years ;  and  "  no  sooner  did  Mr.  Baker 
begin  to  preach  to  them  in  their  own  dialect,  with  which  his 
services  at  Sierra-Leone  had  rendered  him  familiar,  than  an 
awakening  to  a  consciousness  of  guilt  and  danger  took  place, 
and  several  began  to  inquire,  '  What  must  I  do  to  be  saved  ? ' 
A  little  societ}^  of  these  inquirers  after  salvation  was  soon 
formed ;  several  of  w  hom  were  free  emigrants  from  Sierra- 
Leone,  and  had  profited  by  Mr.  Baker's  ministry  at  that 
place." 

Tentabar,  some  distance  up  the  south  bank  of  the  river,  had 
been  pointed  out  as  a  suitable  place  to  commence  a  mission ; 
and  a  small  trading-vessel  sailing  up  the  river  presented  an 
opportunity  for  the  missionaries  to  proceed  to  the  place  of  their 
appointment.  But  Mr.  Baker,  having  an  attack  of  fever,  and 
being  previously  emaciated  by  labour  and  sickness  on  the  Coast, 
was  unable  then  to  undertake  the  journey.  It  was  therefore 
determined  that  Mr.  Morgan  should  go  alone,  to  see  the  king, 
obtain  his  permission  to  settle  on  his  land,  look  out  for  an 
eligible  situation,  &c.  On  his  arrival,  and  making  known  his 
object,  the  king  readily  granted  him  permission  to  settle  in  any 
part  of  his  kingdom ;  but  significantly  added,  "  I  advise  you  to 
buihl  your  house  as  near  the  river  as  you  can ;  then,  if  any  of 
my  people  should  attempt  to  injure  you,  you  can  jump  into  a 
canoe,  and  get  out  of  the  way  of  them."  This  Avas  as  much  as 
to  say,  "  I  cannot  engage  to  protect  you."  Other  circumstances 
combined  to  make  an  impression  on  the  mind  of  JNIr.  Morgan, 
that  Tentabar  Avas  not  suitable  for  a  missionary  establishment ; 
and  he  returned  to  St.  INIary's,  to  consult  with  his  colleague, 
who  concurred  in  his  opinion ;  and  they  then  resolved  to  look 
out  for  a  settlement  in  the  kingdom  of  Combo,  from  whence 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERKA-LEONE.  267 

they  might  be  able  to  visit  the  people  at  St.  Mary^s,  already 
benefited  by  their  labours. 

A  present  to  an  African  king  is  an  invariable  custom^  pre- 
vious to  an  interview ;  and  having  ascertained  that  scarlet  clotli 
was  in  high  estimation  among  the  native  chiefs,  they  bought  a 
large  piece  of  a  merchant  on  the  Coast,  and  a  small  horse,  for  a 
present  to  the  king  of  Combo.  On  May  3d,  1821,  covered  with 
the  scarlet  clotli,  from  head  to  tail,  they  led  the  horse  away  to 
the  king,  who  Avas  much  pleased  with  their  blazing  present. 
He  readily  granted  them  permission  to  dwell  on  his  land  ;  not, 
of  course,  from  respect  to  their  religion,  (for  of  that  he  kneiv 
nothing,)  but  from  a  hope  that  white  men  living  in  his  country 
would  promote  trade.  Having  spent  the  night  in  the  best 
lodgings  the  king  could  afford  them,  they  set  out  in  the  morn- 
ing, guided  by  one  of  the  king's  slaves,  to  look  for  an  eligi- 
ble locality.  They  soon  found  that  the  people  regarded  them  as 
unAvelcome  neighbours,  as  from  place  to  place  they  expressed 
determined  opposition  to  their  settling  near  them.  In  vain  the 
missionaries  tried  to  convince  them  that  their  object  was  only  to 
do  them  good.  ''  We  have  heard,"  they  said,  "  of  white  men 
before,  and  know  that  you  want  to  steal  our  children,  and  make 
slaves  of  them.  If  the  king  settles  you  here,  we  will  all  leave." 
At  night  the  missionaries  reached  a  place  called  Mandanaree, 
fatigued  and  famishing  with  thirst.  They  found  in  the  town  an 
old  Negro,  known  in  the  British  settlement,  who  granted  them 
permission  to  lie  down  at  the  door  of  his  hut  for  the  night ;  but 
he  had  nothing  but  a  little  dirty  water  to  give  them  to  drink. 
Having  made  their  bed  of  palm-leaves,  they  lay  down ;  but, 
from  the  stinging  of  musquitoes,  and  from  the  noise  of  Avild 
beasts,  though  fatigued,  they  had  but  little  sleep.  Their  situa- 
tion was  now  peculiarly  trying.  The  rainy  season  was  just  at 
hand,  and  they  were  without  home  or  shelter,  in  the  midst  of 
rude  and  unfriendly  savages.  But,  finding  the  neighbourhood 
of  Mandanaree  an  eligible  place,  situated  on  the  south  bank  of 
the  Gambia,  and  not  more  than  eight  miles  from  Bathurst,  they 
fixed  upon  an  elevated  spot,  and  determined  to  locate  amongst 
this  people.  In  the  mean  time,  they  took  lodgings  in  the 
miserable  hut  of  the  old  Negro ;  and,  having  obtained  their 
tools  from  St.  Mary's,  proceeded  to  cut  down  trees  for  the 
erection  of  their  house,  which  they  completed  with  the  help 
of  a  few  natives,  after  several  weeks'  hard  labour.  During  the 
erection  of  the  building,  and  subsequently,  the  brethren  alter- 
nately visited  St.  Mary's  once  a  week,  and  sometimes  both 
went  together. 


268 


WESTEKN    COAST    OP    AFillCA. 


lu  a  letter  to  the  Missionary  Conimittee,  dated  Maadanaree, 
May  26th,  1821,  Mr.  Baker  thus  writes :  "  In  preaching,  we 
can  do  nothing  here  till  we  have  learned  the  language.  In  the 
mean  time,  we  go  to  St.  Mary^s  every  Saturday  afternoon  in  a 
canoe,  and  return  on  Monday  morning:  we  meet  our  little 
class  early  on  Sunday  morning,  attend  the  chaplain^s  preaching 
at  ten  a.m.,  preach  at  two  p.m.  to  about  one  hundred  people, 
and  in  the  evening  at  six,  to  frequently  more  than  double  that 
number.  Our  intermediate  time  on  the  sabbath  is  devoted  to 
visiting  the  poor  people ;  and  on  Monday  we  have  an  oppor- 
tunity to  procure  anything  we  want  for  ourselves  or  the  settle- 
ment. This  at  present  is  all  our  preaching,  and  must  be,  till 
the  language  is  our  own ;  and  we  hope  by  the  end  of  the  rains 
to  have  made  considerable  progress."*  Speaking  of  the  people 
at  Mandanaree,  Mr.  Baker,  in  the  same  letter,  says :  "  Their 
character  is  bad  enough.  As  masters,  they  are  proud,  insolent, 
and  cruel.  As  servants,  they  are  fawning,  hypocritical,  and 
extremely  dishonest.  It  seems  as  though  Mohammedanism  had 
made  them  almost,  if  not  altogether,  the  worst  of  men;  and 
the  generality  of  them  think  themselves  authorized  to  cheat 
and  steal  from  Avhite  people  at  every  opportunity.  In  this 
kingdom,  however,  liberty  of  conscience  is  allowed.  Tlie  king 
himself  is  a  Pagan ;  and  so  are  the  greater  part,  if  not  all,  of 
the  people  of  this  town ;  yet  their  Paganism  is  mixed  up  with 
the  worst  Mohammedan  superstitions."  A  yearly  tribute  of 
twenty  dollars  was  to  be  paid  for  the  land;  and  Mr.  Baker 
further  remarks :  "  We  are  at  present  busily  engaged  in 
cutting  down  the  bush,  and  building  a  temporary  house  of 
rind-trees,  split  for  posts,  and  bamboos,  woven  for  the  sides,  and 
plastered ;  which,  should  our  mission,  under  God's  blessing, 
succeed,  will  be  our  school-house.  We  can  both  say  with  the 
apostle,  '  We  labour  with  our  hands.'  " 

Mr,  Morgan  about  this  time  writes  : — "  The  following  Satur- 
day, (May  12th,)  I  went  to  St.  Mary's,  to  preach  on  the 
sabbath.  In  the  evening,  soon  after  I  arrived  at  my  lodgings, 
a  poor  woman  visited  me,  who  had  met  in  class  a  few  times,  and 
said  to  me,  '  O,  massa,  my  heart  trouble  me  too  much.  I  see 
myself  lost  sinner.'  I  exhorted  her  to  believe  in  Christ,  and 
explained  the  nature  of  justification  by  faith.  She  left  me  with 
her  sins  as  a  burden  too  intolerable  to  be  borne.  The  next 
morning  I  met  her  in  the  class,  and  was  delighted  to  hear  her 
express  her  religious  joys.     She  said  that,  after  she  left  me  the 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  iii.  p.  151. 


THE    GAMBIA    A\D    SIERRA-LEONE.  269 

preceding  night,  '  mc  went  into  tlie  bush,  and  put  me  knee 
down  on  the  ground,  and  I  praj^,  I  pray,  till  all  my  trouble  go 
away,  and  my  heart  be  full  of  joy.  Me  glad  too  much,  and  I 
praise  my  Massa  Jesus ;  and  then  I  pray  for  my  poor  husband, 
that  my  Massa  Jesus  w  ould  save  him/  "  * 

Here  we  have  recorded  the  "first-fruit"  of  this  mission,  the 
conversion  of  one  soul,  with  its  invariable  characteristic,  a  con- 
cern for  others,  especially  those  near  to  it :  "  And  then  I  pray 
for  my  poor  husband,  tliat  my  Massa  Jesus  would  save  him  !"t 
On  the  following  sabbath,  Mr.  Morgan  was  again  at  St.  Mary^s, 
"  met  the  class,  and  was  happy  to  find  a  good  spirit  among  the 
people.     I  preached  to  them  twice." 

On  the  14th  of  June,  he  says,  "  We  left  our  lodgings,  and 
became  inhabitants  of  our  own  building  :  the  change  was  much 
for  the  best,  although  our  new  building  is  far  from  a  com- 
modious one."  From  the  elevation  of  the  spot  which  they  had 
chosen,  the  missionaries  indulged  a  hope  that  their  settlement 
would  have  proved  comparatively  healthy ;  but  in  this  they 
were  disappointed.  In  addition  to  this,  the  "  hard  labour"  and 
fatigue,  in  "  felling  trees "  and  "labouring  with  their  hands" 
in  the  erection  of  the  mission-premises,  soon  proved  too  much 
for  Mr.  Baker^s  previously-impaired  constitution ;  and  before 
the  rains  commenced,  "  every  two  or  three  days  he  was  attacked 
with  fever."  INIr.  Morgan  had  but  recently  arrived,  fresh  from 
the  balmy  air  of  England;  and  being  "blessed  with  a  strong 
constitution,"  the  climate  on  him  for  some  time  "  produced  no 
sensible  effect."  He  laboured  on  under  the  warm  rays  of  a 
vertical  sun,  and  retired  every  evening,  "much  fatigued;"  but 
this  he  "  considered  an  advantage ;  for,  having  very  uncom- 
fortable lodgings,  if  not  fatigued,  he  could  not  sleep  at  all." 
But  even  this  "strong  man"  soon  "bowed  down"  under  the 
withering  effects  of  the  climate,  and  was  attacked  with  the 
country  fever.  This  was  on  July  14th  :  his  colleague  was  at 
the  same  time  ill  in  bed,  but  recommended  him  to  hasten  to 
St.  Mary's  for  medical  advice.  Mr.  Morgan  writes  :  "  Assisted 
by  two  men,  I  Avalked  to  the  canoe,  and  at  evening  reached 
St  Mary's."  The  first  night,  he  lodged  at  Mr.  Grant's,  and 
then  with  difficulty  was  placed  in  the  military  hospital,  where 
he  remained  nearly  two  months.  This  was  the  worst  part  of 
the  rainy  season,  when  every  European  is  more  or  less  attacked 


*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  iii.  p.  2G0. 

t  Some  account  of  the  consistent  life  and  happy  death  of  this  first  convert  will 
be  given  hereafter. 


270  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

with  fever,  which  often  proves  fatal,  especially  to  new-comers. 
It  did  so  this  year  to  several;  and,  among  the  rest,  the 
worthy  chaplain,  and  his  excellent  wife,  were  both  cut  off 
in  the  midst  of  their  plans  of  usefulness.  Mr.  Hughes,  the 
chaplain,  as  we  have  previously  stated,  arrived  in  March,  and 
died  on  the  24th  of  August ;  and  Mrs.  Hughes,  on  the  28th ; 
leaving  two  very  young  children,  and  one  son  about  fourteen 
years  of  age,  who  had  remained  in  England,  to  mourn  their 
loss. 

The  two  Wesleyan  missionaries  were,  however,  mercifully 
preserved,  though  both  of  them  suffered  much ;  and  there  can 
be  no  doubt  that  their  sickness  was  superinduced  and  aggra- 
vated in  a  great  measure  by  over  and  incautious  exertion.  But 
as  Mr.  Baker  was  an  invalid  on  his  arrival  at  St.  Mary's,  it  was 
not  intended  that  he  should  remain  longer  than  was  neces- 
sary to  commence  the  mission ;  and  in  the  end  of  the  year 
Mr.  W.  Bell  was  sent  to  supply  his  place,  and  "  Mr.  Baker  was 
removed  to  the  West  Indies  to  save  his  life."  After  labouring 
for  a  short  time  in  the  West  Indies,  and  in  British  America, 
the  state  of  his  health  obliged  him  to  return  home.  In  Eng- 
land his  health  became  established,  and  he  laboured  in  several 
important  circuits  with  great  diligence  and  acceptance  for  many 
years.* 

Mr.  Bell  arrived  at  the  Gambia  on  the  28th  of  January,  1822, 
"  in  good  health ; "  and  Mr.  Morgan  was  delighted  with  the 
prospect  of  having  in  him  an  efficient  colleague,  as  he  con- 
sidered him  "  a  good  subject  for  the  climate,''  but  hoped  he 
would  "  be  cautioned,  by  his  indiscretion,  against  too  much 
exertion."  His  knowledge  of  agriculture  also  rendered  him  an 
additional  acquisition  to  the  mission.  But,  alas  !  how  short- 
sighted is  man  !  And  how  little  do  missionaries  abroad,  or 
even  medical  men  at  home,  know  as  to  who  will  be  able  to 
stand  against  the  pestilential  atmosphere  of  Western  Africa ! 
Though  Mr.  Bell  had  arrived  "  in  good  health,"  and  at  the  most 
healthy  season  of  the  year,  and  appeared  to  be  "  a  good  subject 


*  This  excellent  minister  died  at  Brighton,  November  17tli,  1845.  A  brief, 
but  faitliful,  record  of  him  is  printed  in  the  Minutes  of  Conference  for  1846.  But 
as  it  is  announced  in  the  title-page  of  this  work  that  a  sketch  of  those  missionaries 
only  who  died  in  Africa  is  to  be  here  given,  I  am  reluctantly  compelled  to  omit 
any  further  remarks  respecting  this  devoted  missionary,  except  to  say,  that  in  the 
above  memoir  it  is  correctly  stated,  that  in  Africa  "  he  labom-ed  with  great  zeal, 
fidelity,  and  success,"  and  that  in  England  he  "  retained  liis  missionary  ardour  to 
the  last."  I  may  also  be  permitted  to  add,  that  many  African  children,  1  doubt 
not,  will  be  "  the  crown  of  his  rejoicing  in  the  day  of  the  Lord." 


THE    GAMBIA     AND    STERRA-LEONE.  271 

for  the  climate;"  and  tliougli  lie,  doubtless,  profited  by  Mr. 
Morgan's  past  indiscretion,  and  by  his  brotherly  advice  in  other 
respects,  yet  the  great  Head  of  the  church,  whose  "thoughts 
are  not  as  our  thoughts,^'  "numbered  his  days;"  and  those 
were  "  few ;"  for  he  lived  only  forty-six  days  from  the  period  of 
his  landing  in  Africa  till  he  was  safely  landed  "  in  a  nobler 
clime." 

William  Bell  was  a  native  of  the  neighbourhood  of  Louth,  in 
Lincolnshire,  where  he  acted  in  the  capacity  of  a  local  preacher 
for  several  years,  with  general  acceptance.  His  piety  was  steady 
and  consistent,  and  was  tested  and  exemplified  under  peculiarly 
trying  circumstances.  Soon  after  his  arrival  in  Africa,  he  was 
assailed  by  a  violent  fever,  which  continued  for  several  weeks. 
When  free  from  the  delirium  caused  by  his  disorder,  he 
expressed  himself  to  his  colleague  as  having  "  no  doubt  of  his 
acceptance  through  Christ;"  and  one  of  the  brethren,  who 
wrote  of  this  bereavement,  says,  "  Though  his  race  was  short, 
his  prize  was  secured,  and  his  exit  peaceful ; "  and  so  satisfied 
was  he  with  the  closing  scene  that  he  adds,  "  May  my  end  be 
like  his!"  Much  more  we  are  unable  to  give:  but,  from  his 
being  the  first  missionary  who  fell  in  the  Gambia  at  an  early 
stage  of  the  mission,  and  after  so  short  a  residence,  the  touching 
lines  of  the  Bard  of  Sheffield,  written  on  the  melancholy  death 
of  another  Wesleyan  missionary,  in  a  different  part  of  the  same 
great  field,  are  not  inapplicable  to  this  excellent  young  man  : — 

"  How  did  the  love  of  Christ — that,  like  a  chain, 

Drew  Christ  himself  to  Bethlehem  from  his  throne, 
And  bound  Him  to  the  cross — thy  heart  constrain, 

Thy  willing  heart,  to  make  that  true  love  known  ! 
But  not  to  build,  was  thine  appointed  part. 

Temple  where  temple  never  stood  before  ; 
Yet  was  it  well  the  thought  was  in  thy  heart, — 

Thou  know'st  it  now, — thy  Lord  required  no  more." 

Mr.  Bell  died  at  St.  Mary's,  on  the  15th  of  March,  1822, 
aged  twenty-seven  years. 

Mr.  Morgan  was  now  alone,  and  not  in  a  very  good  state  of 
health ;  but  the  news  of  Mr.  Bell's  death  having  reached  Sierra- 
Leone  before  Mr.  Baker  found  an  opportunity  of  sailing  from 
thence  to  the  West  Indies,  the  brethren  Baker  and  Huddlestone 
thought  it  advisable  that  Mr.  Lane  should  at  once  proceed 
to  the  assistance  of  Mr,  Morgan  until  further  help  came  from 
England.     Mr.  Lane  therefore  arrived  at  the  Gambia  on  the 


272  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

11th  of  May,  and  found  Mr.  Morgan  was  "  very  unwell,"  and 
some  weeks  after  this  he  was  "  still  feeble."  But  cheered  with 
the  presence  and  hearty  co-operation  of  a  colleague,  he  was 
"not  weary  in  well-doing;"  and,  in  company  with  Mr.  Lane, 
soon  after  his  arrival,  he  proceeded  to  Mandanaree;  but  their 
prospects  there  were  not  cheering,  owing  to  their  being  ignorant 
of  the  Mandingo  language ;  and  the  choice  of  the  place,  from 
there  "being  very  little  water,  and  that  very  bad,"  was  con- 
sidered "an  unhappy  one."  St.  Mary's,  in  the  mean  time, 
occupied  a  considerable  share  of  their  attention.  The  popula- 
tion, at  this  period,  amounted  to  upwards  of  two  thousand ;  and 
though  the  greater  part  of  these  were  Jollofs  and  Mandingoes, 
there  were  some  discharged  (Black)  soldiers,  and  a  few  liberated 
Africans,  who  partially  understood  the  English  language,  and  to 
whom  the  missionaries  could  preach  so  as  to  be  tolerably 
understood.  In  a  letter,  dated  St.  Mary's,  June  25th,  1822, 
Mr.  Lane  writes  : — "  Our  labours  here  are  not  great  at  present : 
we  preach  twice  on  the  sabbath,  and  meet  a  class,  and  hold 
a  prayer-meeting  in  the  week :  we  have  also  a  small  day- 
school  at  our  lodgings ;  but  this  is  attended  with  inconvenience, 
through  not  having  a  house  of  our  own  for  that  purpose."  In 
a  joint  letter  from  Messrs.  Morgan  and  Lane,  dated  August 
15th,  they  write :  "  We  have  taken  a  house  in  JoUof-Town,  at 
four  dollars  per  month,  where  we  preach  twice  on  the  sabbath, 
and  once  in  the  week.  At  this  place  we  keep  a  day-school  for 
children,  and  take  the  care  of  it  a  week  each  alternately.  We  also 
preach  at  Soldiers' -Town  twice  on  the  sabbath,  and  once  in  the 
week ;  and  on  Sunday  mornings  we  meet  the  class  at  this 
place." 

The  rains  having  again  set  in,  the  brethren  confined  their 
labours  principally  to  St.  Mary's,  having  here  two  preaching- 
places,  with  a  small  week-day  school,  and  an  infant  society. 
But,  though  their  "  labours  were  not  great,"  yet,  owing  to 
repeated  attacks  of  sickness,  they  met  with  considerable  inter- 
ruptions. Mr.  Lane  was  ill  with  fever  from  the  7tli  of  September 
to  the  16th  of  October  :  he  had  been  to  Cape  St.  Mary's  for  a 
week,  but  "  returned  no  better  than  when  he  went; "  and  towards 
the  close  of  the  rains,  by  the  advice  of  his  medical  attendant  and 
friends,  he  sailed  for  Sierra-Leone,  intending  to  return  as  soon 
as  his  health  would  permit. 

Mr.  Morgan  was  therefore  once  more  left  alone;  but  some 
good  had  been  achieved  at  St.  IMary's ;  enough,  as  Mr.  Morgan 
expressed  it,  "  to  compensate  for  the  time,  money,  health,  and 
life,  which   have    been    already  expended."     Nor  was   he  dis- 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  273 

couraged  by  the  aflflictions  and  difficulties  with  which  he  was 
surrounded.  About  this  time  he  writes:  "Our  prospects  of 
eflfecting  much  at  present  are  certainly  not  cheering:  yet  I 
think  I  can  look  through  the  cloud  which  at  present  surrounds 
us,  and  behold  distant  prospects  of  success." 

Mr.    Lane    arrived   safe    at    Sierra-Leone,    and   found    Mr. 
Huddlestone  in  tolerable  health  and  spirits.     These  two  breth- 
ren, it  should  be  remembered,  had  laboured  harmoniously  toge- 
ther for  a  considerable  time  previous  to  Mr.  Lane  being  sent 
to  the  Gambia,  and  God  had  blessed  their  labours ;  but  during 
the  former  part  of  the  year  some  misunderstanding  arose  in  the 
society  at  Free-Town,  between  the  settlers  and  Maroons,  which 
led  to  a  division :    a  local  preacher  having  headed  the  party, 
they  took  one   of  the   chapels,  and   called   themselves  West- 
African  Methodists.     This  necessarily  led  to  a  reduction  of  the 
number  of  members,  though  it  would  appear  the  missionaries 
continued  to  supply  the  chapel.     Matters  were,  however,  now 
in  a  more  settled  state  ;  and  Mr.  Lane,  under  date  of  December 
16th,  writes :  "To-day  I  have  called  upon  some  of  our  members 
and  friends.     I  am  disposed  to  think  that  the  providence  of 
God  has  brought  me  back  to  Sierra-Leone,  as  also  that  by  its 
direction  I  went  to  the  Gambia :  therefore  I  am  thankful  for 
both."     Mr.  Lane  at  the  same  time  expressed  himself  as  being 
"  happy  in  finding  our  humble  society  in  a  prosperous  state,  and 
most  of  the  pious  Maroons  in  fellowship  with  us.     The  word 
of  the  Lord  is  blessed  to  those  who  hear ;  a  serious  deportment 
and  fixed  attention  are  conspicuous  in  the  congregations ;  and, 
above  all,  souls  are  brought  to  a  saving  knowledge  of  God  and 
of  Jesus  Christ."  As  far  as  his  strength  would  permit,  Mr.  Lane 
again  co-operated  with  Mr.   Huddlestone  in  carrying  on  that 
interesting  mission,  and  preaching  he  designated  as  his  "most 
delightful  employment."     But  he  never  fully  recovered  from  his 
serious  illness  at  the  Gambia,  and  was  consequently  unable  to 
return  thither.     On  the  27th  of  March  he  had  another  severe 
attack  of  fever.     It  was  hoped,  with  the  Divine  blessing  upon 
the   prompt   and   able  treatment  of  "  Dr.   Shower,  the  oldest 
physician  in  tiie  colony,"  that  in  a  few  days  he  would  recover ; 
but  it  was  otherwise  ordered.     Mr.  Huddlestone,  shortly  after 
this,  writes  :  "  Our  beloved  brother  is  now  '  as  water  spilt  upon 
the  ground,  which   cannot   be   gathered   up    again;'    and  his 
liberated  spirit  has  fled  to  the  realms  of  light  and  immortality. 
How  mysterious  a  providence  !    How  happy  a  visitation  to  him  ! 
how  painful  to  us  !  " 


274  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

George  Lane  was  a  native  of  Bath,  and  was  a  young  man 
of  considerable  promise.  He  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone  as  a 
Wesleyan  missionary  early  in  1821,  where  he  laboured  with 
diligence  and  fidelity,  with  occasional  interruptions,  arising  from 
sickness ;  nor  did  he  labour  in  vain,  either  there  or  at  the 
Gambia.  At  Sierra-Leone,  especially,  he  witnessed  some  graci- 
ous manifestations  of  the  Divine  presence  and  power,  particu- 
larly whilst  preaching  to  the  re-captured  Negroes,  and  in  the 
quarterly  love-feasts.  He  was  a  kind  and  an  affectionate  col- 
league, a  faithful  and  successful  missionary;  in  life  highly 
respected,  and  at  his  death  greatly  lamented.  This  was  mani- 
fested by  the  "numerous  assembly"  who  attended  the  funeral. 
The  members  of  the  society  especially,  writes  Mr.  Huddlestone, 
"mingled  their  tears  with  ours;"  and  the  colonial  chaplain,  the 
Rev.  S.  Flood,  kindly  read  the  funeral  service  over  the  corpse, 
which  was  conveyed  to  the  Wesleyan  chapel  for  that  purpose. 
It  was  afterwards  removed  to  the  colonial  burial-ground,  and 
Mr.  Huddlestone  "  committed  him  to  the  grave."  Mr.  Lane 
died  at  Free-Town,  Sierra-Leone,  in  great  peace,  April  16th, 
1823,  in  the  twenty-eighth  year  of  his  age,  and  in  the  third  of 
his  ministry. 

The  loss  of  Mr.  Lane  was  severely  felt  by  INIr.  and  INIrs. 
Huddlestone,  as  well  as  by  the  society  and  other  friends ;  but, 
painful  as  it  was,  it  was  shortly  followed  by  another  mysterious 
dispensation  of  Providence.  Scarcely  had  three  months  passed 
away,  when  he  who  had  committed  his  "respected  and  much- 
loved  brother  to  the  grave,"  was  himself  called  to  "walk 
through  the  valley  of  the  shadow  of  death ; "  and  the  mission, 
by  this  rapid  succession  of  deaths,  was  left  destitute ;  with  four 
chapels  and  their  congregations  without  a  missionary  ! 

John  Huddlestone,  it  will  be  recollected,  took  charge  of 
this  station  on  Mr.  Baker's  removal  to  the  Gardbia  early  in 
1821.  He  was  a  sincere  and  upright  Christian,  and  a  laborious 
and  enterprising  missionary,  being  anxious  to  carry  the  gospel 
into  the  regions  beyond  the  limits  of  the  colony.  He  had  a 
good  constitution,  having  passed  the  first  rains  in  comparative 
health,  though  about  thirty  Europeans,  that  season,  went  to 
their  long  home.  Indeed,  he  continued  to  labour,  with  but  slight 
interruptions  from  ill  health,  till  within  a  few  weeks  of  his 
death.  In  the  month  of  April,  1823,  he  wrote :  "My  dear  ^dfe 
and  myself  are  both  well,  and  know  not  how  to  be  sufficiently 
thankful  for  this  blessing,  much  less  for  all  the  goodness  of  the 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  275 

Lord  our  God."  But  though  he  had  withstood  the  country 
fever  for  nearly  three  years  without  his  health  being  materially 
affected,  the  yellow  fever  was  too  much  for  him  :  few,  indeed, 
who  are  attacked  with  that  malignant  and  dreadful  disease  ever 
recover ;  and  during  this  year  it  prevailed  along  the  coast,  and 
proved  fatal  to  many  Europeans  at  Sierra-Leone.  Mr.  Huddle- 
stone  had  been  ill  the  latter  end  of  June  and  the  beginning  of 
July;  but,  on  the  14th  of  that  month,  the  fever  returned  with 
greater  violence ;  and  it  soon  became  evident  from  the  colour  of 
the  skin,  that  his  complaint  was  the  dreadful  disease  just  men- 
tioned. Mrs.  Huddlestone  writes:  "He  had  much  bodily 
suffering;  but  patience  had  its  perfect  Avork  in  him.  He  was 
resigned  to  the  will  of  God,  and,  at  every  interval  of  ease,  he 
cried,  '  O  how  good  the  Lord  is !  How  gently  he  deals  with 
me!  Praise  him  for  his  mercies!'"  Two  days  before  his 
decease  he  was  informed  that  there  was  very  little  hope  of  his 
recovery.  "  He  then  said,  he  had  not  a  doubt  of  his  acceptance 
with  God,  through  the  blood  of  his  Saviour ;  that  his  prospect 
of  heaven  was  glorious.  '  Yes,'  added  he,  '  I  shall  be  carried 
by  angels  into  glory.'  "  He  charged  his  wife  "  to  tell  the  Com- 
mittee that  he  had  exerted  every  nerve  in  the  cause  of  the 
mission,  and  that  he  was  dying  happy  in  the  faith."  This  event 
took  place  on  the  20th  of  July,  1823,  in  the  twenty- seventh  year 
of  his  age. 

Mrs.  Huddlestone,  soon  after  this  painful  bereavement,  left 
the  colony,  and  arrived  safe  and  in  good  health  in  England. 
She  furnished  the  Missionary  Committee  with  the  particulars 
of  her  husband's  sickness  and  lamented  death,  the  substance  ot 
which  is  embodied  in  the  preceding  brief  sketch.  From  the 
members  of  the  society,  also,  the  Committee  received  a  pleasing 
testimony  to  the  character  and  usefulness  of  the  excellent  men 
who  had  laid  down  their  lives  in  the  work  of  God,  and  a  press- 
ing entreaty  to  have  ministers  sent  out  to  them.  The  Maroon 
chapel  at  Free-Town  was  then  occupied,  and  would  contain  six 
hundred  persons ;  and  the  new  chapel  at  Portuguese-Town,  to 
which  His  Excellency  the  Governor  Sir  Charles  Macarthy  had 
kindly  presented  two  donations,  was  finished,  and  the  mission 
was  in  a  rising  and  promising  state  when  these  painful  visita- 
tions of  death  took  place.  The  leaders,  in  the  mean  time,  held 
services  on  the  sabbath  in  each  of  the  chapels ;  and  in  the 
Maroon  chapel  prayers  were  regularly  read  every  Sunday 
morning,  and  occasionally  one  or  two  of  the  leaders  gave 
exhortations. 

T  2 


276  WESTERN    COAST    OV    AFRICA. 

But  the  society  was  not  long  left  destitute  of  pastoral  care 
and  the  ministry  of  the  word  of  life.  Two  heroic  men,  who 
"  counted  not  their  lives  dear  to  them  "  in  comparison  of  the 
salvation  of  their  fellow-creatures,  gave  the  preference  to  this 
post  of  danger.  These  were  Messrs.  Piggott  and  Harte,  who, 
after  a  voyage  of  five  weeks,  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone,  March 
19tli,  1824.  Soon  after  their  arrival  Mr.  Piggott  wrote : 
"  Never  could  two  missionaries  be  more  joyfully  received  :  the 
news  of  our  arrival  soon  spread;  and  to  see  the  poor  Blacks 
running  from  one  house  to  another  to  inform  their  brethren  and 
sisters,  lifting  up  their  eyes  and  hands  towards  heaven,  thanking 
and  praising  God,  was  such  a  scene  as  we  never  witnessed  befoi'e ; 
and  we  could  not  for  a  moment  regret  having  left  home  to 
preach  salvation  to  those  of  whom  it  may  be  said,  '  The  fields 
are  white  already  to  harvest.'"  On  the  following  day  INIr. 
Piggott  "  examined  the  class-papers,  and  met  the  leaders ;  and 
was  happy  in  finding  that  the  society  had  been  wonderfulh' 
preserved."  The  number  of  members  in  the  societ}'  at  that 
time  was  eighty-one,  with  several  on  trial;  and,  owing  to  the 
prejudicial  effects  of  the  climate  on  European  constitutions,  the 
stay  of  missionaries  was  limited  to  two  years. 


CHAPTER  XV. 

THE  GAMBIA  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1824—1827.) 

The  two  Stations  blended  for  the  Sake  of  chronological  Order — The  Gambia — 
Mandanaree — St.  Mary's — Mr.  Morgan  visits  the  upper  River,  with  the 
Commandant — Formation  of  a  new  Settlement — Named  after  Sir  Charles 
Macarthy — Its  Situation,  &c.— Mr.  Morgan's  Return  to  St.  Mary's — Extracts 
from  his  Journal — Missionary  Fruit — Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Hawkins — Mr. 
Morgan  visits  Macarthy's  Island — Excessive  Heat — Extracts  from  his  Journal 
— Attacked  with  Fever — Retiu-ns  to  St.  Mary's — The  Mission-House  and 
Chapel  finished — Communication  from  Mr.  Morgan  and  Mr.  Hawkins — Sick- 
ness of  the  Missionaries — Sierra-Leone — Death  of  Mr.  Harte — Sketch — 
Communications  fi'om  Mr.  Piggott  at  Sierra-Leone — The  Gambia — Return 
of  Mr.  Morgan  to  England — Reflection  on  the  Result  of  Missionary  Labour  at 
the  Gambia — Communication  from  Mr.  Hawkins — Mr.  Piggott — Sierra- 
Leone — The  Appointment  of  Messrs.  Dawson,  Courties,  and  May — Arrival 
of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dawson  at  Sierra-Leone — Death  of  Mrs.  Dawson — Joint 
Letters  from  Messrs.  Piggott  and  Dawson — The  Gambia — The  Arrival  of 
Messrs.  Courties  and  May  at  Sierra-Leone — The  Gift  of  Tongues — Negro 
Patois — The  Day  of  Pentecost — Great  Diversity  of  Nations  at  Sierra-Leone — 
Prevalence  of  the  English  Language — The  Holy  Spirit  graciously  vouchsafed, 
producing  Fruit — Mr.  Piggott's  Return  to  Eagland — Mr.  Dawson  proceeds  to 
the  Gambia  to  succeed  Mr.  Hawkins,  who  also  returns  to  England — Both 
these  Brethren  had  remained  beyond  the  prescribed  Terra  of  Service — Mr. 
Piggott  remains  in  England — Mr.  Hawkins  goes  to  the  West  Indies. 

In  giving  a  connected  view  of  the  rise  and  progress  of  the 
Wesleyan  missions  in  this  interesting  part  of  the  great  moral 
field,  with  a  brief  notice  of  the  deaths  which  so  frequently 
occurred,  it  will  be  necessary  now  to  blend  the  two  stations  at 
Sierra-Leone  and  the  Gambia  together,  and,  for  the  sake  of 
keeping  up  a  chronological  account,  frequently  to  pass  from 
one  to  the  other. 

Mr.  Morgan,  it  will  be  remembered,  was  left  alone  at  the 
Gambia  at  the  close  of  1822.  The  mission  at  Mandanaree  had 
been  suspended  on  account  of  the  state  of  his  health ;  and  when 
he  recovered,  the  work  at  St.  Mary's  fully  occupied  his  atten- 
tion. Here  the  little  society  had  increased  from  twelve  to 
twenty-four ;  and  as  there  was  little  or  no  fruit  at  Mandanaree, 
as  the  water  was  very  bad,  and  as  other  openings  more  favour- 
able presented  themselves  in  the  upper  river,  this  place  was 
ultimately  abandoned.     Mr.  Morgan  took  up  his  residence  at 


278  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

St.  Mary's,  where,  in  addition  to  the  day-school  for  children, 
he  opened  an  evening  school  for  adults,  which,  with  preaching 
on  different  parts  of  the  island,  gave  him  full  employment. 

At  the  heginning  of  March,  1823,  Major  Grant,  the  com- 
mandant at  St.  Mary's,  sailed  up  the  river  for  the  purpose  of 
selecting  a  suitable  place  for  a  new  and  additional  mercantile 
settlement,  and  at  the  same  time  visiting  the  different  chiefs 
near  the  river,  to  promote  a  good  feeling  and  understanding 
between  them  and  the  traders.  INIr.  Morgan  accompanied  him 
in  this  expedition,  with  a  view  to  the  extension  of  the  Wesleyan 
mission.  Each  of  the  kings  whom  the  major  visited  expressed  a 
great  desire  that  the  most  advantageous  place  for  the  new  settle- 
ment might  be  found  in  his  own  dominions.  Some  endeavoured 
to  persuade  the  commandant,  that  the  people  beyond  them  were 
so  vile  and  malignant  that  strangers  could  not  go  near  them, 
without  danger  of  being  shot  with  poisoned  arrows  from  the 
thicket.  Having,  however,  proceeded  without  molestation  as 
far  as  Cantalicunda,  near  the  falls  of  Barracunda,  a  distance  of 
from  five  to  six  hundred  miles  from  the  Atlantic,  they  returned 
and  fixed  upon  Lemon  Island,  in  the  king  of  Kattaba's  domi- 
nions ;  this  being  about  mid^vay  between  Cantahcunda  and  St. 
Mary's.  In  their  way  up,  on  passing  this  place,  they  found  the 
king  of  Kattaba  in  his  camp,  embroiled  in  war  with  a  young 
prince  called  Kemmingtan,  who  was  endeavouring  to  establish  a 
kingdom  for  himself  in  Kattaba's  land,  for  which  he  sought 
to  justify  himself  on  the  ground  of  a  family  feud.  King 
Kattaba's  father  had  slain  Kemmiugtan's  father  by  cutting 
off  his  head,  which  the  son  considered  it  his  duty  to  avenge 
by  exact  retaliation,  or,  if  he  could  not,  it  must  descend  as 
a  duty  to  the  next  generation.*  INIajor  Grant  tried  to  put  a 
stop  to  this  war ;  but  Kemmingtan  refused  to  see  him,  alleging, 
as  an  excuse,  that  he  had  no  yreegree  that  would  insure  his 
safety  so  near  the  river.  Lemon  Island,  or  Janjamberry,  which 
was  the  native  name,  being  considered  the  most  eligible  situa- 
tion which  the  major  had  seen  for  the  establishment  of  the  new 
settlement,  and  the  king  of  Kattaba  being  much  straitened  by 
the  war,  a  bargain  for  the  land  was  easily  struck. t  The  union- 
jack  was  at  once  raised  on  it;  and  from  respect  to  the  excellent 
governor  at  Sierra-Leone,  who  had  manifested  great  interest  in 
the  welfare  of  the  Gambia,  it  was  named  Macarthy's  Island.     A 

*  We  have  already  mentioned  this  desperate  chief,  and  shall  have  occasion  to  do 
so  again,  probably  more  than  once. 

t  An  annual  custom  being  aftcnvards  paid  to  the  king. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


279 


mud-walled  fort,  seventy-four  feet  in  length,  ten  feet  high,  and 
three  feet  in  thickness  all  round,  with  a  bastion  at  each  corner, 
was  speedily  erected,  which  was  called  Fort  George,  in  honour 
of  His  Majesty  George  the  Fourth ;  and  a  Black  sergeant,  with 
thirteen  Black  soldiers,  were  left  to  occupy  and  protect  it.  With 
the  concurrence  of  the  major,  Mr.  Morgan  fixed  on  a  lot  of  land 
for  his  missionary  establishment,  on  which  stood  the  largest  and 
most  beautiful  raahogany-tree  he  ever  saw,  under  the  grateful 
shade  of  which  he  intended  to  build  his  house,  and  commence 
his  mission.  Duty,  however,  required  his  return  to  St.  Mary  s, 
from  which  he  had  been  absent  several  weeks ;  and,  after  a  long 
and  toilsome  passage  of  ten  days  from  Macarthy's  Island,  he 
landed  safely  at  St.  Mary's,  having  "left  the  major  and  Mr. 
C.  Grant  directing  the  building  of  a  fort  for  the  garrison,  as  the 
commencement  of  a  place  which,  it  is  expected,  will  be  of  con- 
siderable importance  in  a  few  years,  in  a  commercial  point  of 
view."  Mr.  Morgan  added :  "  And  I  pray,  with  great  hope, 
that  it  may  prove  a  centre  from  Avhicli  the  Sun  of  righteousness 
shall  diff'use  its  rays  through  the  dark  shades  of  Mohammedan 
error  and  superstition." 

Macarthy's  Island  is  about  two  hundred  and  fifty  miles  up 
the  Gambia.  It  is  situated  nearly  in  the  middle  of  the  river, 
the  main  branch  being  on  the  north  side,  opposite  to  Yani,  the 
territories  of  the  king  of  Kattaba.  This  branch  of  the  river  is 
about  two  hundred  yards  wide.  The  island  is  a  rich  tract  of 
laud,  in  the  form  of  an  ellipse  or  oval,  and  contains  about 
nine  square  miles.  Its  elevation  is  not  sufficient  to  prevent 
partial  inundation  in  the  rainy  season ;  but,  though  the  heat  is 
more  intense  than  at  St.  Mary's,  it  is  supposed  to  be  more 
healthful.  The  town  called  Fort  George,  which  consisted 
entirely  for  some  time  of  native  houses,  is  at  about  an  equal  dis- 
tance between  the  two  extremities  of  the  island,  and  is  near  the 
water's  edge  on  the  northern  bank  of  the  river.  There  was  also 
a  small  Mandingo  town  about  half  a  mile  distant;  but  the 
inhabitants  were  all  Mohammedans. 

The  day  after  Mr.  Morgan  arrived  at  St.  Mary's,  Avhich  was 
April  14tli,  he  says  :  "  I  attended  my  school,  and  was  sorry  to 
find  that  the  boys  had  sustained  great  loss  in  my  absence,  not- 
withstanding a  young  man  had  given  them  instruction  every 
day,"  The  congregation  had  also  necessarily  suffered  during 
his  absence;  but  he  was  glad  to  find  that  the  greater  part  of 
the  members  had  been  diligent  in  the  means  of  grace.  The 
following  extracts  from  Mr.  Morgan's  journal  will  uot  be  unin- 
teresting here ; — 


280  AVESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

April  27tli,  1823. — I  preached  in  Jaloof-Town  in  the  morning,  and  in  the  after- 
noon at  Soldier-Town,  to  small  congregations.  In  the  evening  I  went  again  to 
preach  in  Jaloof-Town,  Mhere  my  mind  was  greatly  pained  to  see  so  few  attending 
to  hear  the  word  of  God,  while  the  people  were  sauntering  ahout  by  hundreds  in 
the  streets  and  walks.  When  I  came  to  the  meeting-house,  I  found  no  one  pre- 
sent but  my  little  society ;  upon  which  I  determined  to  take  my  people  into  the 
street,  and  preach  there ;  and  by  this  means  I  collected  together  about  a  hundred 
persons. 

May  1st. — After  school  I  preached  at  Soldier-Town.  Tliis  last  week  we  have 
been  favoured  with  a  strong  breeze  from  the  sea,  which  has  rendered  the  air  plea- 
santly cool.  May  the  Lord's  name  be  praised,  I  still  enjoy  good  health,  which 
long  affliction  has  taught  me  to  appreciate  more  highly  than  in  any  former  period 
of  ray  life.  I  think  I  never  felt  better,  nor  ever  more  thankful  for  this  inestimable 
blessing.  May  the  Lord  help  me  to  show  forth  his  praise  by  labouring  more  dili- 
gently in  his  service !     In  the  evening  I  preached  in  Jaloof-Town. 

5th. — This  morning  I  met  the  society.  Several  seemed  deeply  impressed  with  a 
sense  of  their  depravity,  and  we  had  a  solemn  meeting.  After  preaching  in  Jaloof- 
Town  in  the  morning,  and  in  Soldier-Town  in  the  afternoon,  in  the  evening  I 
preached  again  in  the  street,  and  to  a  large  congregation. 

10th. — My  heart  is  deeply  impressed  with  a  sense  of  the  goodness  and  mercy  of 
God  towards  me.  He  continues  to  bless  me  with  health ;  and  I  recollect  no  period 
of  my  Ufe  in  which  I  was  more  happy  than  the  present.  I  feel  delight  in  my  work, 
and  am  able  to  prosecute  it  with  great  hope  of  success.  This  evening,  after  school, 
I  preached  in  Jaloof-Town. 

12th,  Sunday. — This  morning  I  met  the  society  as  usual;  all  present.  I  preached 
in  the  morning  and  afternoon  in  the  meeting-houses ;  and  in  the  evening  stood  in 
the  street  near  the  dwelling  of  some  Greots,  a  most  degraded  set  of  people,  who  get 
their  living  by  dancing,  di-umming,  and  singing  at  festivals,  &c.  They  are  almost 
always  in  Uquor,  and  in  their  mode  of  living  come  nearer  the  brute  than  any  people 
I  have  seen.  I  was  led  to  hope  that  the  novelty  of  my  preaching  at  their  doors 
would  attract  their  attention ;  but  in  this  I  was  disappointed,  as  not  one  of  them 
appeared,  though  several  of  them  understand  a  little  English.  I  had  none  to  hear 
me  but  my  own  people,  for  the  novelty  begins  to  wear  off ;  but  if  I  am  spared,  I 
will  preach  at  one  place  more  next  Sunday  evening,  that  every  part  of  the  town 
may  have  an  opportunity  of  hearing. 

26th. — My  congregations  in  the  house  to-day  were  much  lai'ger  than  usual.  In 
the  evening  I  took  my  stand  at  a  place  where  many  could  hear  me  in  their  houses. 

27th. — This  evening,  in  Soldier-Town,  I  was  much  encouraged  by  the  attention 
and  increase  of  my  congregations. 

July  3d. — After  school  I  preached  in  Soldier-Town,  and  was  followed  home  by 
a  young  Jaloof  man,  whom  I  have  long  observed  to  be  very  attentive,  and  who 
gave  me  the  happiness  to  hear  a  detailed  account  of  his  conversion.  One  good 
mark  of  his  sincerity  is,  that  he  manifests  a  great  concern  for  the  salvation  of  his 
countrj'rnen,  and  embraces  every  opportunity  to  caution  and  instnict  them  ;  telling 
them  what  God  has  done  for  him. 

This  is  tridy  the  day  of  small  things  here ;  but  I  thank  God,  that  in  my  little 
sphere  I  am  often  encouraged  by  a  hope  of  increase ;  and  my  society,  tliough  small, 
contains  several  instances  of  the  converting  grace  of  God. 

My  school,  though  small,  is  encouraging.  It  consists  of  about  twenty-five  boys, 
with  seven  adults,  who  attend  in  the  evenings  and  on  the  Sunday  mornings ;  and  it 
often  tends  to  support  my  mind  when  walking  to  the  meeting,  and  cast  down  by 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEURA-LEONE.  281 

the  anticipation  of  a  small  congregation,  to  be  accompanied  by  such  a  number  of 
the  chilflren  of  harlots,  drankai'ds,  sabbath-breakers,  and  thieves ;  and  nearly  half 
of  them  with  their  Bibles  in  their  hands,  to  read  after  me  the  word  of  God. 

13th,  Sunday. — This  morning  I  met  the  society,  preached,  and  baptized  a  young 
man.  I  preached  again  twee  in  the  following  parts  of  the  day,  and  afterwards  had 
much  conversation  with  a  man-aboo.  He  affords  me  but  little  ground  to  hope  that 
he  has  been  benefited  by  former  discourses  which  we  have  had  together,  as  he  is 
totally  ignorant  of  his  natural  depravity ;  and  till  he  is  convicted  and  condemned  in 
his  own  conscience,  I  can  entertain  very  little  hope  of  doing  him  good,  though  I 
think  it  might  be  an  easy  thing  to  make  a  convert  of  him  to  a  profession  of  Chris- 
tianity, This,  however,  would  be  of  no  advantage  either  to  him  or  to  the  church. 
He  talked  candidly ;  praised  the  moral  precepts  of  the  Koran ;  and  stated  some  dif- 
ficulties which  he  felt  in  acknowledging  the  truth  of  the  Bible,  but  which  were  all 
founded  on  the  prejudices  of  habit  and  education.  He  told  me,  that  the  principal 
thing  which  led  him  to  think  that  the  Christian  religion  might  be  from  God,  was 
the  disposition  of  Christians  to  do  good  to  others.  He  had  observed  that  I 
instructed  the  children  gratuitously,  without  respect  to  persons,  and  freely  gave 
advice  to  any  who  asked  for  it.  He  was  also  certain  that  if  the  Mohammedans  had 
the  power  which  the  Christians  have  in  this  island,  they  would  put  us  all  to  death, 
whereas  he  saw  that  the  maiTaboos  were  permitted  to  live  among  us  without 
molestation.  He  also  adverted  to  our  abolition  of  the  Slave-Trade  as  a  proof  of  the 
superiority  of  the  spirit  of  Christianity  to  Mohammedanism. 

20th,  Sunday. — I  met  the  society,  who  seemed  in  a  good  spirit.  The  congrega- 
tions, through  the  day,  much  as  usual.  It  affords  me  much  pleasure  to  see  that 
several  of  them  enjoy  religion,  by  their  voluntarily  assembUng  together  for  devo- 
tional exercises, 

August  4th. — I  visited  the  sick,  and  felt  much  pleasure  with  one  poor  woman 
who  lay  in  the  most  excruciating  pain.  Her  husband,  an  in-eligious  man,  seemed 
to  murmur  at  Divine  Providence  ;  saying,  "  Me  no  sabby,"  (know,)  "  massah,  what 
for  that  poor  woman  get  that  bad  sick  :  too  much  pain  catch  her  this  time,  me  no 
sal)by  what  for."  The  poor  woman  immediately  rebuked  him,  though  almost  inca- 
pable of  moving  on  her  bed ;  saying,  "  Ah,  no  talkey  so  !  no  let  poor  sinner  say  he 
no  sabby  what  for  sick  catch  him  :  we  been  do  wicked  enough." 

10th.— I  desire  to  be  unfeignedly  thankful  to  Almighty  God,  that  I  enjoy  good 
health  thus  far  through  the  rains  ;  and  that,  while  the  greater  part  of  the  Europeans 
on  the  island,  and  many  natives,  are  sick,  nothing  has  hitherto  prevented  my 
attending  to  preaching  and  to  the  school. 

Sept.  3d. — After  school  I  preached  in  Solcher-Town.  My  man-aboo  still  perse- 
veres in  learning  to  read  English. 

7th. — I  spent  the  evening  in  conversing  with  my  mairaboo  on  things  relating  to 
his  soul.  I  talked  to  him  of  experimental  religion,  and  endeavoured  to  show  him 
the  depravity  of  his  nature,  and  the  necessity  of  regeneration.  Two  young  men  of 
his  country  were  present,  who  belong  to  the  society,  and  have  lately  obtained  justi- 
fying faith ;  and  they  confirmed  to  him  what  I  said  from  their  own  experience,  at 
which  he  expressed  great  astonishment.  After  having  pointed  out  the  justice  and 
hohness  of  God,  and  man's  corruption  and  disobedience,  I  was  led  to  hope  that  he 
saw  something  of  the  sinfulness  of  his  nature,  and  of  his  need  of  a  Saviour,  as  he 
appeared  much  concerned,  and  said,  he  had  always  thought  well  of  himself,  seeing 
he  had  been  taught  to  read  when  a  child,  and  had  abstained  from  strong  drink ; 
but  now  he  feared  he  should  go  to  hell.  He  says,  he  sees  that  every  thing  I  tell 
him  is  true,  but  he  knows  not  what  to  do  ;  and  tliis,  I  beUeve,  is  the  case ;  but  I 


283  WESTERN    COAST    Or    AFRICA. 

fear  his  heart  is  not  sufficiently  impressed  with  a  sense  of  its  importance,  to  stand 
the  trial  to  which  he  wll  he  exposed  as  soon  as  the  marraboos  take  alarm  ;  when, 
if  it  he  in  their  power,  they  will  injure  him ;  and  he  ^vill  have  need  to  take  care 
of  being  poisoned.  His  father,  too,  is  now  absent ;  and,  on  his  return,  ^vill  undoubt- 
edly disiuherit  him,  unless  he  abandons  my  house. 

23d. — This  day  I  was  visited  in  my  school  by  a  strange  marraboo,  who  is  consi- 
dered as  a  sort  of  metropolitan  in  this  place.  He  appears  to  be  the  most  learned 
among  them,  as  he  can  read  my  Arabic  Bible  ;  and  he  was  desirous  of  disputing 
with  me  in  favour  of  Mohammedanism  ;  but  his  arguments  were  much  the  same  as 
those  of  the  rest  who  visit  and  hinder  me  almost  every  day,  and  are  not  worth 
repeating. 

Oct.  4th. — I  went  to  my  garden,  which  I  have  made  on  the  lot  of  land  enclosed 
for  the  mission-house ;  and  was  sorry  to  find  that  all  my  labour  has  been  in  vain 
for  this  year,  as  the  grasshoppers  have  fallen  by  tens  of  thousands  on  my  young 
vegetables,  and  destroyed  them  all. 

7th. — In  the  evening,  after  school,  I  went  into  several  yards,  and  invited  the 
slaves  to  attend  the  preaching,  through  the  medium  of  an  interpreter,  in  the  Jaloof 
language.  Many  promised  to  come  ;  and  about  si\  o'clock  my  house  was  thronged 
to  such  an  extent,  that  I  went  through  the  service  trembling  lest  the  floor  should 
give  way,  and  let  us  down  into  the  warehouse  below.  Mj  interpreter  executed  his 
office  with  much  ability.  Heretofore  I  have  been  afraid  to  trust  even  to  the  best 
that  I  could  get ;  but  this  young  man  is  a  Jaloof,  and  knows  his  language  well ; 
and  has,  besides,  a  much  better  knowledge  of  English  than  most  of  his  countrymen, 
having,  within  this  last  year,  since  I  have  kept  school,  been  taught  to  read  in  the 
Bible,  so  as  to  get  through  a  plain  chapter  with  Uttle  difficulty.  His  crowning 
qualification,  however,  is,  that  God  has  graciously  given  him  to  experience  in  his 
soul  the  blessedness  of  that  truth  which  he  assists  in  declaring  to  others.  My 
marraboo  was  present,  with  many  of  his  tribe ;  and  I  conversed  a  long  while  with 
him  after  the  service,  as  he  expressed  himself  nuich  interested  in  what  he  had 
heard.  My  interpreter,  and  another  of  his  countrymen  who  has  lately  been 
brought  in  some  measiu-e  under  the  influence  of  the  gospel,  delivered  what  I  said 
in  Jaloof;  and  they  related  to  him  their  experience,  at  which  he  expressed  much 
wonder.  He  said,  he  had  been  taught  to  read  the  Alcoran  from  a  child,  and  had 
abstained  from  strong  di-ink ;  but  had  never  heard  of  experimental  rehgion,  or  that 
a  marraboo  had  ever  known  his  sins  forgiven  him  in  this  life.  I  asked  him  if  he 
knew  any  thing  of  original  sin.  He  replied,  that  he  knew  all  men  were  polluted 
by  Adam's  fall ;  and  that,  on  account  of  his  depravity  and  disobedience,  he  was 
driven  from  God's  presence.  I  then,  in  hope  of  showing  him  the  necessity  of  a 
Saviour,  asked  him  by  what  means  he  expected  a  reconciUation  to  be  effected 
between  God  and  man,  and  the  latter  made  fit  to  be  re-admitted  into  the  Divine 
presence.  He  replied,  that  they  expect  all  their  actual  sins  to  be  freely  jiardoned 
when  they  beUeve  Mohammed  ;  and  from  the  pollution  of  the  original  offence,  they 
look  to  be  deUvered  by  external  washing  with  water,  which,  as  oft  as  they  pray, 
they  apply  to  such  parts  of  the  body  as  they  think  were  most  active  or  instrumental 
in  the  transgression.  Thus  they  wash  the  legs  and  feet  which  bore  the  ofl-enders 
to  the  tree,  the  eyes  which  saw  the  forbidden  fruit,  the  hands  and  arms  which 
gathered  it,  the  nose  which  smelt  it,  and  the  mouth  which  ate  it ;  and  lest  Adam 
and  Eve  should  have  had  occasion  to  stoop  to  get  under  the  tree,  they  wash  the 
knees.  I  asked  him,  if  he  thought  the  heart  had  nothing  to  do  in  it.  He  replied, 
that  the  heart  certainly  desired  it ;  but,  having  no  vv.iy  of  washing  that  part,  they 
vested  content  with  doing  what  is  in  their  power. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  283 

I  am  not  certain  whether  what  I  have  said  to  him  has  had  any  good  effect  or 
not ;  but  time  will  determine  :  and  I  have  great  reason  to  believe  that  it  has  not 
been  altogether  in  vain  in  other  respects.  Our  conversations  have  generally  taken 
place  in  the  evening  in  my  house,  when  two  Jaloof  youths  were  present,  who  are 
learning  to  read,  and  who  can  neither  talk  nor  understand  English.  As  I  have 
frequently  talked  to  the  marraboo  in  Jaloof,  through  the  medium  of  the  interpreter, 
they  have  had  the  advantage  of  hearing  our  dialogue,  and  I  have  often  observed 
them  very  attentive.  One  of  them  came  to  me  privately,  a  few  days  ago,  and 
begged  me  to  teach  him  how  he  must  pray  to  God.  I  think  they  are  both  under 
sei'ious  impressions,  and  they  are  on  trial  for  admission  into  the  society.* 

Thus  did  this  excellent  missionary  continue  to  labour  during 
the  whole  of  this  rainy  season,  with  scarce  any  interruption.  It 
may  with  truth  be  said,  he  was  "  instant  in  season,  out  of  sea- 
son," teaching  and  preaching  both  in-doors  and  out,  visiting  the 
sick  and  the  dying,  and  holding  long  conversations  with  the 
deluded  followers  of  the  false  prophet.  "  To  the  weak  became  he 
as  weak,  that  he  might  gain  the  weak :  he  was  made  all  things 
to  all  men,  that  he  might  by  all  means  save  some."  (1  Cor.  ix. 
22.)  Nor  did  he  labour  in  vain,  as  the  preceding  extracts  show. 
The  "Jollof  young  man,"  who  followed  him  home,  and  gave 
him  a  detailed  account  of  his  conversion,  and  whom  he  employed 
as  his  interpreter,  some  time  after  became  a  local  preacher, 
and,  eventually,  an  assistant  missionary. 

Mr.  Morgan  having  strongly  solicited  an  additional  mis- 
sionary for  St.  Mary's,  that  he  might  proceed  to  the  new  settle- 
ment at  Macarthy's  Island,  which  presented  a  promising  open- 
ing for  a  new  mission,  the  Missionary  Committee  towards  the 
close  of  the  year  appointed  Mr.  Hawkins  to  the  Gambia ;  who 
was  solemnly  ordained,  and  set  apart  for  this  important  work,  at 
the  Wesleyan  chapel,  Deptford,  on  the  10th  of  February,  1824. 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Hawkins  left  Loudon  on  the  3d  of  March,  to 
embark  at  Gravesend ;  but  they  did  not  arrive  in  Africa  till 
about  the  middle  of  the  following  month.  Mr.  Morgan,  under 
date  of  April  14th,  writes :  "  This  morning  arrived  the  brig 
'  Asoph,'  having  on  board  brother  and  sister  Hawkins.  This  to 
me  is  a  cause  of  much  thankfulness,  as  I  was  beginning  to 
despair  of  going  up  the  river  this  year."  The  next  day  Mr. 
Morgan  was  engaged  in  seeking  a  suitable  house  for  his  new 
friends,  but  could  find  none;  so,  after  a  few  days'  hospitable 
entertainment  at  Mr.  C,  Grant's,  they  took  up  their  abode  in 
the  "  hired  house  "  which  Mr.  Morgan  had  occupied,  until  the 
mission-house,  which  was  in  course  of  erection,  should  be 
finished.      Mr.    Hawkins   was    the    first    married    missionary 

*  "Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  iv.  pp.  247 — 219,  261. 


284  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

appointed  to  this  station.  He  immediately  entered  upon  his 
work :  Mrs.  Hawkins  soon  raised  a  female  school,  and  felt  a 
pleasure  in  imparting  to  these  "  black  lambs "  the  usual 
branches  of  an  elementary  education. 

On  the  22d  of  this  month,  Mr.  Morgan  embarked  on  board 
the  brig  "  Asoph "  for  Macarthy's  Island,  and  arrived  there  on 
the  28th,  nothing  particular  having  occurred  on  the  passage, 
except  the  excessive  heat.  On  leaving  St.  Mary's,  the  thermo- 
meter stood  at  80°;  but  after  one  or  two  days'  sailj  from  eleven 
A.M.  to  five  P.M.,  it  was  never  below  91°  in  the  cabin,  and  on 
the  deck,  under  an  awning,  it  was  118°. 

The  following  extracts  from  Mr.  Morgan's  journal  will 
exhibit  the  difficulties  and  toils  connected  with  the  formation 
of  a  new  mission,  in  an  uncivilized  and  barbarous  country,  like 
the  interior  of  Africa : — 

April  29th. — This  morning  I  went  ashore,  and  took  up  my  residence  in  an  empty 
hut,  the  property  of  Mr.  Grant,  -rtlio  is  trading  here,  and  is  hrother  to  our  excel- 
lent friend  at  St.  Mary's. 

May  1st. — I  desu-e  to  be  unfeignedly  thankful  to  Almighty  God  that  I  have 
health  in  the  most  unfavourable  circumstances ;  being,  ■svith  two  school-boys,  and 
my  baggage,  huddled  up  in  a  small  circular  hut,  which  can  scarcely  be  called  a 
shed,  and  so  surrounded  by  huts  as  to  be  inaccessible  to  the  breeze. 

2d,  Sunday. — This  morning  I  held  service  in  a  small  house  near  the  Barracks. 
The  soldiers,  about  thirteen,  who  are  stationed  in  the  Barracks,  under  the  command 
of  a  sergeant,  were  marched  to  the  place.  Several  discharged  soldiers,  who  are 
settled  on  the  island,  (all  black,)  attended  with  the  ship's  company  in  which  I 
came,  two  traders  and  some  natives,  so  that  I  had  a  tolerably  good  congregation 
for  a  commencement.  I  preached  again  in  the  evening.  The  heat  through  the 
day  was  almost  intolerable.  This  morning,  before  the  sun  rose,  the  thermometer 
stood  at  80° ;  at  two  p.m.,  110° ;  in  the  sun,  125° ;  near  the  ground,  128°. 

3d. — This  morning  I  preached  again  to  the  soldiers ;  my  congregation  small,  as 
it  was  in  the  evening ;  but  yet  I  see  among  the  old  soldiers  recently  discharged  a 
degree  of  attention  which  I  did  not  expect ;  for,  when  enrolled  at  St.  Marj''s,  tliey 
never  attended  divine  service  except  when  compelled,  which  was  once  on  the 
sabbath.  Now  they  voluntarily  attend  twice.  On  the  first  sabbath,  several  of 
them  were  working  about  their  houses.  I  spoke  to  them  of  the  evil  of  violating 
the  Lord's  day,  and  they  desisted. 

10th. — This  afternoon  the  king  of  Cahtabah  visited  the  island ;  he  told  us  that 
he  was  now  about  to  take  a  decisive  step  in  the  war.  His  troops  were  encamped 
opposite  the  fort  on  the  mainland.  He  came  to  beg  rum,  tobacco,  gunpowder, 
or  any  thing  and  every  thing  he  could  get  from  Mr.  Grant.  I  conversed  with  him 
a  considerable  time  on  my  intention  to  settle  on  the  island,  and  asked  if  he  had  any 
sons  whom  he  wshed  to  have  instructed :  he  said  he  had  two,  and  woiUd  give 
them  to  me  if  I  came  among  them.  In  the  evening  he  commenced  his  march 
against  Kimmingtang,  who  is  waiting  his  approach  on  high  ground  at  Cullareen. 
The  king's  people  have  long  been  kept  waiting  for  a  day  wiiich  they  superstitiously 
liope  may  prove  favourable  to  them ;  and  it  seems  that  the  marraboos  of  the  king 
of  Cahtabah  and  those  of  his  allies  are  at  variance  in  their  divinations,  and  both  are 
inclined  to  respect  their  own  oracles.     The  king's    marraboos  say,  that  if  they 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  285 

march,  it  vAW  be  fatal  to  them.  But  the  king  of  Wooley's  marraboos  declare  that 
by  marching  ^tliey  will  insure  success :  this  has  also  occasioned  a  delay,  and  1 
behave  they  pi'oceeded  on  this  day  rather  from  necessity  than  choice,  as  they  had 
consumed  all  their  rice  and  corn,  and  appeared  half-starved. 

13th. — This  morning  the  king's  warriors  returned,  having  advanced  far  enough 
to  get  a  sight  of  the  enemy.  Their  courage  then  failed  them,  and  they  returned  : 
the  king  of  Wooley's  people  went  home,  and  by  the  way  were  routed  by  a  detach- 
ment of  Kimmingtaug's  army,  whom  they  immediately  offered  to  join ;  but  he 
refused  their  service. 

16th. — This  morning  and  evening  I  held  service  again  :  the  congregation  as  usual. 

The  heat  to-day  has  been  almost  intolerable  :  at  nine  a.m.  thermometer  96°,  at 
two  P.M.  106°.  I  was  almost  led  to  fear  that  I  should  not  be  able  to  live  here  ; 
but  while  men  actuated  by  the  love  of  gold  expose  themselves  to  such  inclemencies, 
I  trust  that  the  love  of  souls  will  not  be  less  influential  on  me. 

17th. — This  afternoon  the  heat  is  very  oppressive.  Thermometer,  in  the  after- 
noon, 110°  in  the  house  ;  in  the  sun,  140°.     I  had  a  slight  attack  of  fever.* 

On  the  20th,  the  first  tornado  for  the  year  commenced,  which 
"raised  the  dust  in  such  clouds/'  says  Mr.  Morgan,  "that  it 
almost  suffocated  us  before  the  rain  came  on."  The  following 
morning,  he  writes  :  "  Through  the  Lord's  mercy,  I  am  better, 
but  rather  weak.  I  expect  no  fever  till  to-morrow,  as  the  fever 
of  this  country  is  generally  intermittent."  The  next  day  he 
held  a  long  conversation  with  some  marraboos  from  the  east, 
and  with  the  chief  of  Yannimaroo ;  and  "  the  heat  beiug  into- 
lerable in  my  hut,"  he  writes,  "  for  want  of  the  breeze,  I  went 
with  my  four  school-boys  under  the  shade  of  a  tree,  to  teach 
them ;  but  a  fresh  breeze  blowing  over  the  land,  brought  such 
a  current  of  heat,  that  I  returned  to  my  cabin  again." 

The  rains  had  commenced  before  he  had  done  much  in  the 
way  of  erecting  a  suitable  residence ;  and  being  ill  with  fever, 
and  having  no  medical  aid  at  hand,  a  favourable  opportunity, 
too,  presenting  itself  of  proceeding  to  St.  Mary's,  where  he 
was  desirous  of  spending  some  time  with  Mr.  Hawkins,  Mr. 
Morgan  was  kindly  taken  on  board  Mr.  Chown's  cutter,  and 
sailed  with  him  for  St.  Mary's,  at  the  latter  end  of  this  month. 
"The  first  tornado  at  St.  Mary's  took  place  on  the  same 
day  that  he  reached  there."  The  mission  premises  at  that 
station  were  now  nearly  completed;  and  on  the  8th  of  June 
Mr.  Morgan  writes :  "  This  evening  I  preached  in  our  new 
house,  that  is,  in  the  under  part  of  the  new  house,  into  which 
we  are  about  to  remove.  The  congregation  was  comparatively 
large."  The  following  evening  was  the  missionary  prayer- 
meeting  ;  and  the  brethren  were  pleased  and  profited  by  hearing 
some  of  the  members  of  the  society  engage  in  prayer.     "  They 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  iv.  pp.  357,  358. 


286  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

evidently  prayed  both  with  the  heart  and  the  understanding." 
Three  members  had  been  added  to  the  female  class  during  Mr. 
Morgan's  absence. 

On  the  15th  of  the  same  month,  Mr.  Morgan  says  : — "  This 
morning  I  went  to  Cape-Town  with  Mr.  Thompson,  one  of  the 
Quakers,  to  receive  some  instruction  in  ploughing,  he  having  a 
plough  there  at  Avork.  He  kindly  gave  me  such  instructions  as, 
I  trust,  will  enable  me  to  introduce  the  same  excellent  system 
of  cultivation  further  in  the  interior."  * 

The  mission-house,  a  good  substantial  stone  building,  about 
forty  feet  by  twenty  in  the  clear,  with  shingled  roof,  being  now 
finished,  Mr.  Morgan  writes  : — 

We  are  now  got  into  our  new  house,  in  which  we  are  tolerably  comfortable,  both 
as  it  respects  an  habitation  and  a  place  for  worship.  We  have  both  under  the 
same  roof;  the  under-part  being  a  very  convenient  and  sufficiently  commodious 
place  for  our  meetings  and  the  school.  Res])ecting  our  prospects  here,  I  have  the 
happiness  to  inform  you,  that  the  hopes  I  have  often  expressed  of  seeing  successful 
days  in  St.  Mary's  I  am  still  encouraged  to  indiUge.  Several  of  the  natives,  I  trust, 
are  not  far  from  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  Our  school  still  affords  us  encourage- 
ment, and  now  proceeds  with  increased  energy.  Sister  Hawkins  has  also  a  school 
of  twenty  black  girls,  f 

*  About  this  time  a  philanthropic  attempt  was  made  to  benefit  the  Negro  race, 
principally  by  the  Society  of  Friends,  in  which  the  late  Mrs.  Kilham  took  a  promi- 
nent part.  Early  in  1822,  Mr.  W.  Singleton  was  sent  out  on  a  visit  to  Africa,  by 
the  Committee  of  a  Society  "  for  Promoting  African  Instruction."  He  visited 
Sierra-Leone  and  the  Gambia  ;  and  at  the  latter  place,  accompanied  by  Mr.  Morgan 
and  two  or  three  other  Eiu-opeans,  he  paid  a  visit  to  the  king  of  Combo,  and  some 
other  places  on  the  river.  The  object  of  this  Society,  in  addition  to  school- 
instruction,  was  to  couple  with  that  a  correct  knowledge  of  agricultiu-e  ;  and  some 
attention  was  paid  to  the  native  languages.  Mrs.  Kilham  had  taken  under  her  care 
two  Africans,  whom  she  met  in  London ;  and  during  the  following  year  the  same 
Committee  sent  out  other  "  Friends."  "  The  little  company  of  settlers,  consisting 
of  Hannah  Kilham,  Richard  Smith,  John  Thompson,  and  his  sister  Ann  Thompson, 
and  the  two  natives,  embarked  at  Gravesend,  on  board  the  '  James,'  bound  for  St. 
Mary's,  in  the  Gambia,  on  the  26th  of  tenth  mouth,  1823."  On  the  8th  of  Decem- 
ber, this  little  band  arrived  safely  at  St.  Mary's ;  and  shortly  after  they  proceeded 
to  Baccow,  or  Cape-Town,  the  proposed  place  of  their  settlement.  But  in  this 
case,  as  in  many  others,  the  great  barrier  to  success  was  the  climate.  The  two 
females  were  the  only  persons  who  lived  to  return  to  England ;  John  Thompson 
having  died  on  his  passage  home,  and  Richard  Smith  on  the  Coast.  Mr.  Smith 
was  visited  during  his  illness  by  Mr.  Morgan  and  Mr.  Hawkins ;  and  the  former 
was  with  him  when  he  expired,  on  July  30th,  1824. 

Mrs.  Kilham  continued  to  visit  the  Coast  of  Africa  for  several  years  after  this, 
and  her  "labours  were  not  in  vain  in  the  Lord;"  but  she  died  at  sea,  while  on  her 
passage  from  Liberia  to  Sierra-Leone,  on  the  31st  of  March,  1832  ;  and  "her  grave 
is  the  boundless  deep."  (See  "  Memoirs  of  Hannah  Kilham,"  pp.  170,  474.) 

t  "  Report  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary  Society  for  1824,"  p.  43. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  287 

Mr.  Hawkins  about  the  same  time  wrote  : — ' 

I  have  reason  to  lilcss  God  that  I  ever  came  to  St.  Mary's.  I  am  engaged  in 
the  work  in  which  my  heart  dehghts,  and  it  is  most  encouraging  to  see  so  many 
attend  our  services,  since  we  opened  the  new  preaching-place,  which  is  under  the 
house  in  wliich  we  live.  My  work  is  to  meet  the  class  on  the  Sunday  mornings  at 
nine  o'clock,  preach  at  half-past  ten,  attend  the  prayer-meetings  at  three,  and 
preach  at  six  in  the  evening ;  again  on  Tuesdays  at  seven  in  the  evening,  on  Wed- 
nesdays at  the  same  hour,  and  also  on  Fridays ;  which  makes  five  sermons  in  the 
week ;  in  addition  to  which,  I  attend  the  day-school,  in  wliich  there  are  upwards  of 
thirty  boys.  Mrs.  Hawkins  meets  the  women's  class  at  nine  on  Sunday  morning ; 
and  she  has  a  girls'  school,  in  which  she  has  about  twenty  children,  who  are  taught 
to  read  and  sew.  Thus  we  endeavour  to  make  ourselves  useful;  but  the  igno- 
rance and  sin  which  abound  on  the  island  are  great ;  and  the  natives  are  in  a 
most  deplorable  state,  sunk  into  the  lowest  depths  of  iniquity.* 

Soon  after  this,  both  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Hawkins  were  attacked 
with  fever ;  and,  it  l)eing  their  first  season,  they  "  were  neai^ 
death,  from  which  they  recovered  very  slowly."  Mr.  Morgan 
was  therefore  in  his  proper  place  at  St.  Mary^s,  rendering  all 
the  assistance  he  possibly  could  to  his  colleague  and  his  wife  in 
their  affliction,  and  attending  to  the  duties  of  the  mission  as  far 
as  his  own  constitution,  Avhich  had  received  a  shock,  would  per- 
mit. The  mission  family  at  St.  Mary^s  were,  however,  though 
much  afflicted,  happily  preserved  in  life  during  the  year,  and 
"  kindly  for  each  other  cared." 

But  the  year  did  not  close  at  Sierra-Leone,  before  the  society 
were  called  to  lament  the  loss  of  another  valuable  labourer, 
in  the  death  of  Mr.  Harte,  who  died  on  the  37th  of  December, 
1824,  after  nine  days'  illness. 

Henry  T.  Harte,  it  will  perhaps  be  recollected,  arrived  at 
Sierra-Leone  with  Mr.  Piggott,  on  the  19th  of  March,  1824, 
where  he  was  received  as  an  angel  of  God  by  the  afflicted 
societies,  who  had  been  deprived  by  death  of  both  their  former 
pastors.  He  laboured  most  cordially  and  zealously  with  Mr. 
Piggott,  and  the  rains  had  passed  without  materially  affecting 
his  health ;  he  not  having,  it  would  appear,  an  attack  of  what 
is  called  "the  country-fever,"  until  the  18th  of  December. 
Medical  aid  was  promptly  resorted  to,  and  the  members  of  the 
society  were  particularly  kind  and  attentive  during  his  illness. 
Mr.  Piggott,  who  communicated  the  intelligence  of  his  death  to 
the  Missionary  Committee,  speaking  of  the  affection  of  the 
people  for  their  afflicted  pastor,  says :  "  I  am  persuaded,  if 
prayers,  or  any  thing  they  could  do,  would  have  prevailed  with 

*  "  Report  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary  Society  for  1824,"  p.  43. 


288  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

God  to  spare  his  life,  that  he  would  have  been  with  us  now." 
But  neither  medical  skill,  nor  the  prayers  of  the  people,  could 
save  him.  After  two  or  three  days,  there  was  hope  of  his  reco- 
very :  "  the  fever  had  left  him,  and  he  began  to  take  bark,  and 
ate  a  little  light  food : "  but  a  relapse  followed  this  temporary 
improvement,  with  double  violence,  and  he  soon  became  deli- 
rious, and  so  continued  for  near  two  days.  Early  on  the  morn- 
ing of  the  day  of  his  death,  he  prayed  with  the  friends  that  sat 
up  with  him,  and  said  to  one  of  them,  "  Thank  God,  my  salva- 
tion is  at  hand  !  Now,  Lord,  I  am  ready  to  come  ! "  He  then 
grew  much  weaker ;  and  about  twenty  minutes  past  two  in  the 
afternoon,  without  either  sigh  or  groan,  his  happy  spirit  took  its 
flight  from  this  vale  of  tears  to  the  place  "  where  the  inhabit- 
ants shall  no  more  say,  I  am  sick ; "  "  leaving  me,"  adds  Mr. 
Piggott,  "and  a  great  number  of  friends,  to  lament  his  loss." 
Mr.  Harte  was  pre-eminently  a  man  of  prayer  and  praise.  He 
evinced  great  deadness  to  the  world,  and  much  heavenly- 
mindedness.  He  was  a  devoted  young  man,  and  an  excellent 
missionary ;  and  preferred  Sierra-Leone  to  any  other  station ; 
where,  after  nine  months'  and  eight  days'  residence,  he  "  died 
in  the  Lord,"  in  the  twenty-seventh  year  of  his  age.  He  was 
buried  the  day  following,  in  the  same  grave  as  Mr.  Warren,  the 
first  Wesleyan  missionary  who  fell  in  this  honourable  field  of 
labour.  "  An  immense  multitude  "  attended  the  funeral ;  and 
as  it  was  with  Stephen,  so  it  was  here :  "  Devout  men  carried 
him  to  his  burial,  and  made  great  lamentation  over  him." 

Mr.  Piggott,  who  communicated  the  substance  of  the  preced- 
ing particulars,  deeply  felt  the  loss  of  his  faithful  colleague; 
and,  finding  the  funeral  service  "  too  much  for  his  feelings,"  he 
was  kindly  assisted  by  the  Rev.  G.  R,  Nylander,  one  of  the 
Church  missionaries.  Turning  from  the  mournful  subject,  he 
requested  an  interest  in  the  prayers  of  the  Committee,  that  the 
painful  visitation  might  be  sanctified,  and  earnestly  requested 
that,  as  soon  as  possible,  additional  help  might  be  sent  out  to 
him,  though  he  could  not  expect  it  till  the  close  of  the  next 
rains.     He  then  adds  : — 

I  thauk  God,  with  respect  to  myself,  1  am  as  well  as  can  be  expected,  consider- 
ing the  multiplicity  of  my  engagements,  and  the  painful  loss  I  have  sustained.  I 
should  he  inclined  to  despair;  but  when  I  consider  that  the  friends  in  England  are 
praying  for  poor  Africa,  that  wide  field  which  is  already  white  unto  the  harvest,  but 
where  indeed  the  labourers  are  few,  I  take  courage,  and  go  forward ;  esjjecially 
when  I  consider  that  I  have  not  already  laboured  in  vain,  nor  spent  my  strength 
for  nought,  which  will  appear  evident  from  the  following  statement. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  289 

On  our  an-ival,  we  found  a  society  of  eighty-one  members ;  but  this  quarter  we 
have  one  hundred,  making  an  increase  of  nineteen.  Our  congregations  are  very 
encouraging,  especially  at  Free-Town,  where  we  have  several  Europeans  also  for  our 
constant  hearers ;  and  I  have  not  the  least  doubt,  had  we  the  chapel  finished,  we 
should  have  several  m-ore.  We  preach  at  West-End,  Congou-Town,  and  Portuguese- 
Town  as  usual.  At  the  latter  place  we  are  suffering  for  want  of  room,  the  chapel 
not  being  finished.  At  Free-Town  we  have  a  Sunday-school  of  about  one  hundred 
and  forty  children.  A  few  small  presents  for  the  male  children,  to  encourage 
them,  would  be  very  acceptable.  At  Congou-Town  we  have  opened  a  Sunday- 
school.* 

On  the  12tli  of  April,  Mr.  Piggott  again  wrote  from  Sierra- 
Leone  as  follows :  "  The  Ijord  has  been  very  gracious  to  us  in 
Africa   during   the   past    quarter,   notwithstanding    ray   lonely 
situation  since  the  death  of  my  dear  brother  Harte,  and  the 
consequent  increase  of  my  labour  and  care.     He  has  fulfilled 
His  promise  in  granting  me  strength  proportioned  to  my  day. 
O  that  I  could  more  fully  rely  upon  the  word  of  His  grace,  and 
wait  with  patience  the  fulfilment  of  all  His  promises !     In  the 
last  quarter  the  Lord  has  added  to  our  little  flock  about  nine 
persons,  principally  new  converts,  who  promise  to  be  ornaments 
to  their  profession.     Their  convictions  apparently  were  deep, 
and   their   experience   is    sound.     Our   congregations   at   each 
place  are  somewhat  encouraging,  which  enkindles  in  my  mind 
the  hope  of  seeing  better  days."     Thus  did  the  great  Head  of 
the  church  fulfil  his  promise,  "Lo,  I  am  with  you  alway,  even 
unto  the  end."    Though  he  buried  his  workmen,  he  still  carried 
on   his  work ;    and  while   the  missionary  on  this  station  was 
thankful  for  past  and  present  success,  he  was  confiding  in  the 
promises  of  his  almighty  and  omnipresent  Saviour,  and   still 
"  hoping  to  see  better  days."     Mr.  and  Mrs.  Hawkins,  whom 
we  left  at  the  Gambia,  in  a  debilitated  state,  had  by  this  time 
recovered ;  but  it  Avas  not  so  with  ]Mr.  Morgan.  He  had  now  been 
in  Africa  upwards  of  four  years ;  and  during  the  first  and  last 
season  he  had  suffered  severel}^  from  the  influence  of  the  climate 
in  repeated  attacks  of  fever,  and  from  his  exposure  to  the  exces- 
sive heat  of  the  sun  by  day,  and  the  heavy  dews  by  night,  in 
travelling  up  and  down  the  river,  together  with  the  want  of  a 
suitable  residence,  proper  food,  and  medicine.     His  naturally 
good  constitution  was  fast  giving  way,  and,  instead  of  proceed- 
ing again  to  Macarthy's  Island,  he  was  obliged  to  return  to 
England.     He  sailed  from  St.  Mary's  for  his  native  country  on 
the  27th  of  March,  1825,  leaving  as  the  fruit  of  his  labours,  in 
conjunction  with  those  of  his  brethren,   "  a   small    church   of 

*  *'  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  iv.  p.  438. 
U 


k 
290  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

uativeSj  about  thirty  in   number,  one  of  whom  Imcl  begun  to 
preach  the  gospel/^ 

By  a  mind  unenhghtened  by  God^s  Holy  Spirit,  these  results 
would  probably  be  considered  a  small  return  for  upwards  of 
four  years^  mental  and  physical  labour  and  toil,  by  several  mis- 
sionaries, with  the  consumption  of  a  considerable  sum  of  money, 
the  loss  of  health,  and  even  of  life ;  one,  if  not  two,  European 
missionaries  having  been  sacrificed,  in  the  formation  of  this 
"  small  church  of  natives."  But,  by  those  who  reflect  upon  the 
value  of  the  soul,  the  price  given  for  its  redemption,  its  capabili- 
ties of  enjoying  endless  bliss,  and  of  enduring  everlasting  woe,  a 
diff'erent  conclusion  would  be  arrived  at.  And  when  it  is  consi- 
dered that  those  thirty  persons,  who  Avere  formed  into  a  Chris- 
tian church,  were  not  mere  nominal  members,  but  that  the 
greater  part  of  them  had  experienced  a  real  change  of  heart, 
and  were  "new  creatures  in  Christ  Jesus;"  that,  though  few  in 
number,  they  were  of  various  nations  and  dialects;  that  they 
had  been  raised  from  the  deepest  ignorance,  depravity,  and 
superstition,  to  a  state  of  Christian  communion  with  each 
other,  and  of  holy  intercourse  and  fellowship  with  God;  and 
that  "one"  out  of  the  "thirty  had  begun  to  preach  tlie  gos- 
pel ; "  who  does  not  see  that  the  "  return  "  was  not  "  small,"  but 
that  the  fruit  was,  literally  as  well  as  spiritually,  at  the  very  least, 
not  less  than  "thirty-fold?"  It  was  a  sufficient  recompence  for 
the  past,  and  it  furnished  a  guarantee  and  pledge  for  the  future. 
"  For  as  the  rain  cometh  down,  and  the  snow  from  heaven,  and 
returneth  not  thither,  but  watereth  the  earth,  and  maketh  it 
bring  forth  and  bud,  that  it  may  give  seed  to  the  sower,  and 
bread  to  the  eater :  so  shall  my  word  be  that  goeth  forth  out  of 
my  mouth :  it  shall  not  return  unto  me  void,  but  it  shall  accom- 
plish that  which  I  please,  and  it  shall  prosper  in  the  thing 
whereto  I  sent  it."  (Isai.  Iv.  10,  11.) 

Mr.  Morgan  arrived  safe  in  England,  whence,  after  a  short 
residence  for  recruiting  his  health,  he  intended  to  return  to 
Africa ;  but,  a  considerable  time  having  elapsed  before  he  fully 
recovered,  the  Committee  thought  it  not  right  to  send  him 
again,  and  he  was  appointed  to  an  English  circuit ;  and  he  has 
since  that  period  been  usefully  employed  in  the  ministry  at 
home. 

There  being  now  but  one  missionary  at  the  Gambia,  Mac- 
arthy's  Island  remained  for  some  time  before  it  was  again 
visited  by  any  Wesley  an  missionary.  Meanwdiile,  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Hawkins  were  actively  and  usefully  employed  at  St.  Mary's. 
The  school  continued  to  prosper,  there  being  thirty-eight  boys. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  291 

besides  the  girls.  The  class  was  divided,  and  the  time  of  meet- 
ing altered  from  the  Sunday  morning  to  the  week  evenings; 
Mr.  Hawkins  meeting  the  men,  and  Mrs.  Hawkins  the  women. 
The  members  were  reported  as  advancing  in  their  Christian 
course,  the  Sunday-morning  prayer-meeting  was  well  attended, 
and  here  six  of  the  young  men  engaged  in  prayer.  The  congre- 
gations were  improving  in  cleanliness,  in  order,  and  in  number, 
the  chapel  being  quite  full,  particularly  when  the  service  was  in 
Jollof.  In  speaking"  of  themselves,  Mr.  Hawkins,  under  date  of 
May  17th,  1825,  writes:  "In  my  last  I  stated  that  we  enjoyed 
tolerably  good  health,  which  I  am  happy  to  say  is  the  case  at  the 
present ;  and  I  trust  the  Lord  will  grant  us  a  continuance  of 
the  same  blessing  through  the  approaching  unhealthy  season. 
I  understand  the  rains  are  set  in  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  that 
some  heavy  tornadoes  have  been  felt  there ;  but  at  Bathurst  we 
have  not  yet  had  much  rain.  It  appears  to  be  the  general 
opinion,  that  this  is  likely  to  be  a  bad  season  here ;  but,  if  it 
should  please  the  Lord  to  afflict  us  again,  I  trust  He  will  grant 
lis  patience  and  resignation  to  His  will.  We  beg  an  interest  in 
your  prayers,  that  God  may  spare  our  lives,  and  make  us  more 
useful.  We  trust  we  can  say  that  we  are  growing  in  grace,  are 
happy  in  our  work,  and  blest  with  the  smile  and  approbation  of 
God."  No  death  occurred  this  year  at  either  of  the  stations ; 
and  in  February,  1826,  Mr.  Piggott  communicated  some  parti- 
culars of  a  visit  which  he  had  paid  to  the  Bullam  shore,  opposite 
to  Sierra-Leone,  and  gave  an  interesting  account  of  an  inter- 
view which  he  had  with  the  venerable  old  king,  who  was 
upwards  of  one  hundred  and  nine  years  of  age.  This  African 
chief  had  been  to  England  twenty  years  previously,  and  now 
expressed  a  strong  desire  to  have  a  mission  with  a  school  estab- 
lished in  his  kingdom.  The  Tiramanee  country  also  was  opened 
to  receive  missionaries. 

Mr.  Piggott  at  Sierra-Leone  and  Mr.  Hawkins  at  the  Gam- 
bia having  completed  their  term  of  service,  which,  it  will  be 
recollected,  owing  to  the  great  mortality,  was  reduced  to  two 
years  on  the  coast, — the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee  in 
London,  anxious  to  preserve  as  much  as  possible  the  lives  of 
their  valuable  agents,  sent  out  three  brethren  during  this  year ; 
namely,  Messrs.  Dawson,  Courties,  and  May.  Mr.  Dawson 
was  a  married  man,  and  was  intended  to  succeed  Mr.  Hawkins 
at  the  Gambia  :  but  as  there  was  no  vessel  at  that  time  going  to 
the  Gambia,  and  there  being  one  just  leaving  for  Sierra-Leone, 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dawson  embarked  on  board  the  "  Princess  Char- 
lotte," on  the  4th  of  April,  1826,  and  arrived  safe  at  Sierra- 

TJ  2 


292 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


Leone  on  Friday,  May  26tli,  about  four  o'clock  in  tlie  afternoon, 
intending  to  proceed  to  the  Gambia  by  one  of  the  first  monthly 
packets,  which  at  that  time  regularly  sailed  between  the  two 
settlements.  But  they  had  not  been  there  long  before  Mr. 
Dawson  was  seized  with  the  country  fever,  and  was  for  some 
time  dangerously  ill.  He  Avas  not  recovered  when  Mrs.  Dawson 
was  attacked  with  every  symptom  of  the  same  disease. 
Though  medical  aid  was  promptly  rendered,  it  was  without  suc- 
cess ;  and  on  "Tuesday,  August  1st,  twenty  minutes  before  five 
in  the  morning,  without  either  struggle  or  groan,  she  breathed 
her  last.'"  A  short  account  of  this  excellent  woman  appeared  in 
the  "  Obituary  "  department  of  the  "  Wesleyau  Magazine  "  for 
June  of  the  following  year. 

Mrs.  Dawson  was  a  woman  of  deep  personal  piety,  having 
"  for  some  time  loved  the  Lord  her  God  with  all  her  heart,  and 
soul,  and  mind,  and  strength."  Though  her  residence  in 
Sierra-Leone  was  short,  it  was  sufficient  to  convince  those  who 
knew  her,  that  she  was  an  "  Israelite  indeed,  in  whom  was  no 
guile;"  and  she  bid  fair  to  be  a  bright  luminary  in  that  part  of 
the  Heathen  world.  But  "God  moves  in  a  mysterious  way:" 
her  sun  went  down  at  noon-day ;  but  there  was  light  in  "  the 
valley  of  the  shadow  of  death."  She  did  not  regret  going  to 
Africa,  but  exclaimed,  "  The  best  of  all  is,  God  is  with  me ! " 
"She  was  willing  to  live,  if  the  Lord  thought  good;  nor  less 
willing  to  die."  The  latter  was  chosen  by  her  heavenly  Father; 
and  she  died  in  the  full  triumph  of  faith,  on  the  morning  of 
August  1st,  in  the  twenty-seventh  year  of  her  age,  after  a 
residence  in  the  colony  of  only  two  months  and  five  days. 

After  the  loss  of  his  excellent  wife  Mr.  Dawson  remained  for 
some  time  with  Mr.  Piggott,  assisting  him  in  the  Sierra-Leone 
mission ;  and  in  a  joint  letter  from  these  brethren  written  about 
this  time,  the  society  there  was  said  to  be  in  a  state  of  great 
peace  and  unity,  and  at  one  of  the  chapels  prayer-meetings 
were  held  every  morning  at  five  o'clock.  A  few  followers  of  the 
false  prophet  had  renounced  Mohammedanism,  had  embraced 
Christianity,  joined  the  societj'-,  and  become  consistent,  humble, 
and  sincere  Christians. 

At  the  Gambia,  the  cause  was  gradually,  though  not  rapidly, 
advancing,  the  school  was  promising,  and  among  the  adults  "  a 
few  had  been  brought  to  God  in  truth." 

From  the  very  commencement  of  these  missions  the  members 
of  the  society  had  been  taught  that  it  was  a  duty  and  a  privi- 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  293 

lege  to  contribute  towards  their  support ;  and  this  they  cheer- 
fully did  as  far  as  their  poverty  would  permit.  In  addition  to  what 
was  raised  in  the  societies  in  the  way  of  class  and  ticket  money, 
annual  subscriptions  were  solicited  by  the  missionaries  from  the 
Eui'opean  residents,  or  others  who  were  favourably  disposed  to 
the  missions.  This  plan  had  been  adopted  for  four  years,  with 
pleasing  success,  as  the  annual  Eeport  will  show ;  and  though 
the  Gambia  had  the  precedence  in  this  good  work,  the  example 
was  speedily  followed  at  Sierra-Leone.  During  the  year  the 
annual  subscriptions  at  Sierra-Leone  were  £S,  and  at  St.  Mary's 
they  amounted  to  £20.  4^, 

On  the  20th  of  October  the  brethren  Courties  and  May 
embarked  at  Gravesend  on  board  the  "Cato,"  bound  for  Sierra- 
Leone  ;  but,  owing  to  contrary  winds,  they  did  not  get  clear  of 
the  English  Channel  until  the  2d  of  November ;  on  the  10th 
they  passed  the  Madeira  islands,  and  on  the  28th  "dropped 
anchor  in  Free-Town  harbour."  Mr.  May  had  suffered  severel}'^ 
from  sea-sickness  most  of  the  voyage ;  and  Mr.  Courties,  on  the 
da}^  they  made  the  land,  was  attacked  with  a  violent  headache, 
accompanied  with  vomiting,  which  excited  some  alarm  lest  it 
should  prove  to  be  the  "  country  fever ;"  but  such  was  not  the 
case,  and  he  was  so  far  recovered  as  to  be  able  to  go  on  shore  a 
few  hours  after  they  came  to  an  anchor.  On  arriving  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  they  found  Mr.  Piggott  recovering  from  a  severe  attack 
of  fever,  which  was  the  first  he  had  experienced.  Mr.  Dawson 
at  this  time  was  tolerably  well;  and  they  were  both  cheered 
and  encouraged  by  the  presence  and  timely  arrival  of  these  new 
brethren,  to  Avhom  they  gave  a  cordial  welcome.*  Their  recep- 
tion by  the  native  converts,  though  more  simple  in  the 
manner  of  expressing  it,  was  not  less  affectionate  and  encou- 
raging. One  of  the  brethren,  in  writing  to  a  friend  in  Eng- 
land, under  date  of  December  17th,  1826,  and  referring  to  this, 
says,  "  The  simplicity  and  affectionate  manner  of  their  receiv- 
ing us  was  very  striking  indeed.  Some  said,  '  Tank  God,  new 
massas  go  for  come  !     God  bring  em  over  de  great  water  safely : 

*  Since  writing  tlie  above,  I  have  received  a  letter  from  the  Rev.  W.  Piggott, 
from  which  it  appears,  that  the  "  Cato  "  came  into  the  harbour  of  Sien-a-Leone 
early  that  morning,  unknown  to  the  missionary  on  the  spot ;  and  Mr.  May,  accom- 
panied by  a  friend,  had  found  his  way  to  the  mission-house.  Mr.  Dawson,  being 
the  first  to  hear  the  news,  hastened  to  Mr.  Piggott's  bed-room  door,  and  awoke 
him,  by  knocking  and  shouting,  "  A  missionarj' !  A  missionary  is  come  !  "  "  My 
door  was  soon  open,"  writes  Mr.  Piggott ;  "when  Mr.  M'Cormack  introduced  Mr. 
May,  who  said  he  had  left  Mr.  Courties  on  board,  he  Ijeing  rather  poorly.  After 
breakfast  Messrs.  Dawson  and  Mav  took  boat  to  fetch  Mr.  Courties." 


294 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


dat  very  good/  One  of  our  friends  belonging  to  Portugnese- 
Town  told  me,  that  his  heart  was  '  too  glad/  that  is,  very  glad, 
at  our  safe  arrival;  and  then,  in  all  his  native  simplicity,  asked 
how  my  'friend  do?^  that  is,  all  my  relations  and  Christian 
friends.  When  I  told  him  that  they  were  all  well  when  I  left, 
he  replied,  '  Dat  good,  dat  very  good ;  my  heart  too  much 
glad.^ ''  The  same  missionary  observes  :  "  I  often  wish  that  I 
possessed  the  gift  of  tongues :  then  I  should  be  able  to  address 
them  in  their  own  language,  and  tell  them  of  the  wonderful 
works  of  God." 

This  harmless  wish  to  possess  "  the  gift  of  tongues  "  has,  no 
doubt,  been  as  innocently  indulged  in  by  many  a  missionary  in 
modern  times,  especially  in  those  countries  where,  on  his  first 
arrival,  he  finds  himself  as  helpless  as  a  man  sent  to  the  quarry 
without  a  hammer,  or  to  the  forest  without  an  axe ;  for  there 
he  is  speechless  until  he  has  acquired  a  knowledge  of  the  lan- 
guage. And  the  acquisition  of  this  in  most  cases  requiring  at 
least  twelve  months,  this  is  no  small  trial  of  faith  and  patience ; 
for  though  his  heart  is  burning  with  love  to  the  perishing  souls 
around  him,  he  must  remain  the  greater  part  of  this  time 
entirely  useless,  not  being  able  to  hold  one  intelligible  conversa- 
tion with  the  natives,  on  the  subject  of  their  everlasting  welfare. 
But  the  inhabitants  in  the  British  settlements  on  the  Western 
Coast  of  Africa  being  generally  of  the  same  class  of  people  as 
those  in  the  West  Indies,  who  soon  acquire  a  kind  of  jargon 
which  they  call  English,*  and  which,  strange  as  it  may  sound 
to  an  English  ear,  is  soon  understood ;  the  missionary  in 
Western  Africa  is  not  so  circumstanced  as  some  of  the  brethren 
in  the  East  Indies,  and  other  parts  of  the  Pagan  world ;  for  he 
may  at  once  commence  his  ministry  among  them ;  and  though 
this  murdering  of  the  queen's  English  cannot  be  commended 
in  the  pulpit,  yet  in  common  conversation  on  matters  of  business, 
as  also  in  some  of  the  society  meetings,  it  may  be  tolerated,  at 
least  for  some  time,  for  the  sake  of  benefiting  those  newly- 
imported  liberated  Africans,  whose  kno^vledge  of  the  English 
language  is  necessarily  so  imperfect,  that  this  Negro  patois  is 
the  only  means  of  holding  communication  with  them.t 

*  "  The  frequency  of  Europeans  on  the  coast  has  introduced  among  the  natives 
a  kind  of  lingua  Franca  sufficient  for  the  purposes  of  trade ;  though  it  is  not 
uncommon  to  meet  with  individuals  among  them  who  can  speak  Enghsh,  French, 
Dutch,  or  Portuguese  with  tolerahle  fluency." — Dr.  Winterbottom. 

t  The  following  extract  from  the  work  of  a  fair  authoress  on  Sierra-Ijcone, 
recently  pubhshed,  will  illustrate  this  : — 

"  Not  long  after  coming  to  this  country,  we  happened  lo  get  some  green  peas, 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  295 

•  On  the  (lay  of  Pentecost,  "there  were  dvveUing  at  Jerusalem 
Jews,  devout  men,  out  of  every  nation  under  heaven,"  that  is, 
of  every  nation  where  any  Jews  were  scattered  at  this  time 
throughout  the  world  :  "  Parthians,  and  Medes,  and  Elamites, 
and  the  dw^ellers  in  Mesopotamia,  and  in  Judea,  and  Cappadocia, 
in  Pontus,  and  Asia,  Phrygia,  and  Pamphylia,  in  Egypt,  and  in 
the  parts  of  Libya  about  Cyrene,  and  strangers  of  Rome,  Jews 
and  proselytes,  Cretes  and  Arabians  :"  and  yet  all  these  heard 
the  apostles  speak  "  the  wonderful  works  of  God  "  in  their  own 
language,  "  the  tongue  wherein  they  were  born,"  and  which 
the  apostles  never  understood  before,  (Acts  ii.)  But  numerous  as 
were  those  different  nations  and  languages,  the  colony  of  Sierra- 
Leone  presents  a  greater  diversity  of  "  nations  and  tongues  and 
people ;"  for,  besides  the  English,  French,  Portuguese,  and 
other  European  languages,  there  are  many  African  languages 
spoken,  by  natives  of  various  nations  contiguous  to  the  settle- 
ment, who  have  freely  emigrated  thither  from  that  locality,  and 
from  different  parts  of  the  coast ;  of  many  distinct  tribes,  of  vari- 
egated costumes  and  manners  ;  such  as  the  Jollof,  Mandiugo, 
Eoulah,  Tiramanee,  Serrawoolli,  Kroomen,  and  others,  besides 
the  great  mass  of  re-captured  Negroes,  brought  thither  from 
different  parts  of  the  interior  of  the  continent,  and  who  have 
nearly  as  many  dialects  as  there  are  days  in  the  month  or 
weeks  in  the  year ;  so  that,  for  each  one  of  these  to  hear  in  his 
own  tongue  "the  wonderful  works  of  God,"  would  require 
another  Pentecost,  equal,  if  not  superior,  to  that  which  took 
place  at  Jerusalem  in  the  days  of  the  apostles.  But  this  is  not 
to  be  expected,  nor  is  it  necessary ;    for  though  the  smallest 

which  I  gave  out  to  the  cook  to  have  plauily  boiled  for  dinner.  Fancy  ray  surprise, 
when  dinner-time  came,  to  find  the  anticipated  dish  metamorphosed  into  a  very 
thin  soupe-maigre,  and  sent  up  in  a  tureen  !  We'were  nmch  amused  at  the  man's 
mistake,  and  I  found  it  rather  difficult  to  make  him  comprehend  that  we  did  not 
like  soup  made  without  meat  or  stock  of  any  kind.  He  was  a  new-comer,  and, 
having  evidently  not  understood  my  directions,  thought  it  better  to  follow  his  own 
approved  fashion,  than  condescend  to  say,  '  No  been  savey  ivhat  missis  say.' 

"  I  remember  my  wise  reflections  on  hearing  a  European  lady  talk  '  country 
fashion  '  to  a  black  servant  one  day  very  shortly  after  my  arrival,  and  my  mental 
resolve  that  /  would  never  profane  my  mother  tongue  by  adopting  so  extraordinary 
a  mode  of  speech.  Nay,  I  was  even  so  uncharitable  in  my  ignorance  as  to  think  it 
slightly  bordered  on  affectation,  patronizing  and  using  this  most  inelegant  and 
unintelligible  language ;  and  was  quite  as  ridiculous  as  if  an  Englishwoman  were  to 
deem  it  incumbent  upon  her,  when  visiting  Scotland  or  Ireland,  to  learn  to  speak 
in  the  broad  dialect  and  harsh  accent  of  either  of  those  countries.  But  neces- 
sity has  gradually  taught  me  to  think  very  differently,  and  I  now  give  my  house- 
hold orders  with  perfect  fluency,  in  a  patois  that  woidd  certainly  puzzle  liolh  a 
linguist  and  grammarian." — "  Letters  from  Sicrra-Leonc,  by  a  Lady,"  p.  11 1. 


296 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFKICA. 


class  of  voluntary  residents  at  Sierra-Leone  are  Europeans, 
principally  from  Great  Britain,  the  English  language  is  becom- 
ing increasingly  prevalent;  and  though,  from  the  continued 
importation  of  liberated  Africans,  the  miserable  jargon  called 
"  English  "  will  not  speedily  die  away,  yet,  from  the  intercourse 
the  natives  have  with  the  English,  and  others  who  have  been 
educated  in  England,  and  especially  from  the  numerous  day- 
schools  which  are  in  operation  in  different  parts  of  the  penin- 
sula, our  own  pure  mother  tongue  is  now,  and  will  be,  the 
great  instrument  of  communicating  instruction  to  the  tens  of 
thousands  in  the  colony  of  Sierra-Leone,  and  ultimately  to 
"  the  regions  beyond/' 

But  though  "the  gift  of  tongues"  is  not  absolutely  needed 
in  prosecuting  missionary  labour,  in  this  or  in  any  other  part  of 
the  Heathen  world,  the  gift  of  the  Holy  Ghost  is  needed ;  and 
this  is  earnestly  sought  by  every  mission  aiy,  and  is  graciously 
vouchsafed  in  answer  to  fervent  and  believing  prayer.  Though  not 
sent  in  that  abundant  and  miraculous  manner  in  which  it  was 
communicated  on  the  day  of  Pentecost,  thank  God,  on  all  our 
mission-stations  in  Western  Africa  it  has  been  vouchsafed  : 
many  a  baptismal  and  heavenly  flame  of  holy  fire  has  descended 
upon  the  congregations  in  that  torrid  zone,  and  man)''  a  gra- 
cious and  teeming  shower  of  spiritual  rain  has  come  down  in 
that  tropical  clime  on  those  hallowed  assemblies ;  and  the  moral 
soil,  the  fallow  ground  of  man's  hard  heart,  has  been  broken, 
softened,  and  watered,  the  seed  has  been  deposited,  and, 
being  again  watered  by  the  Holy  Spirit,  it  has  sprung  up  and 
produced  fruit,  "  in  some  thirty,  some  sixty,  and  in  some  an 
hundred  fold." 

But,  to  return  from  this  short  digression,  to  the  thread  of  the 
narrative  of  these  missions :  A  few  months  after  the  arrival  of 
Messrs.  Courties  and  Mav  at  Sierra-Leone,  Mr.  Piffgott 
returned  to  England,  and  Mr.  Dawson  proceeded  to  liis  proper 
appointment  at  the  Gambia,  to  succeed  Mr.  Havvkins.  These 
two  brethren  had  more  than  filled  their  term  of  service;  but 
Mr.  Piggott  having  passed  two  years  at  Sierra-Leone  without 
having  the  fever,  though  he  "  sensibly  felt  the  kindness  of  the 
Committee  in  offering  to  remove  him  to  another  station,"  he  at 
the  same  time  said,  "  I  am  happy  in  this  land  of  darkness, 
especially  since  the  arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dawson,  and  an 
assurance  that  I  have  an  interest  in  your  prayers.  I  do  not, 
therefore,  ask  a  removal  to  another  station.  No.  I  knosv  of 
no  one  that  I  could  make  choice  of  in  preference  to  this  ;  but 
I    ask   for   help."      In    the  same    communication,    (June  7th, 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  297 

1826 J  lie  thought  it  might  be  necessary,  after  some  time 
longer,  to  return  to  his  native  country  to  recruit  his  strength ; 
for  though  he  had  his  health,  he  felt  much  debilitated. 
We  have,  in  a  preceding  page,  stated  that  at  the  close  of 
the  rains  of  that  year  he  had  a  severe  attack  of  fever,  which 
M  as  the  first  he  had  during  his  residence  in  the  colony ; 
and  as  his  health  and  strength  had  now  failed  him,  and  the 
station  was  re-inforced  with  two  missionaries,  his  way  was 
open  to  return  to  England,  which  he  did  by  way  of  the  Gambia, 
having  accompanied  Mr.  Dawson  to  that  station,  which  place 
they  reached  on  the  12th  of  February  of  the  following  year ; 
and  on  Monday,  May  7th,  he  left  the  Gambia  with  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Hawkins  for  England,  and  after  a  quick  passage  they 
arrived  in  safety  at  Portsmouth,  on  the  7th  of  June.  At  the 
Conference  of  1827,  Mr.  Piggott  was  appointed  to  Bury  St. 
Edmund's,  and  his  ministry  since  that  period  has  been  confined 
to  England.  Mr.  Hawkins,  at  the  preceding  Conference,  had 
been  appointed  to  Antigua;  but  Mr.  Dawson  being  detained  at 
Sierra-Leone  by  ill  health,  and  subsequently  by  the  sickness 
and  death  of  his  wife,  Mr.  Hawkins  nobly  stood  his  ground 
another  year  at  the  Gambia,  and  did  not  leave  till  Mr. 
Dawson  arrived ;  soon  after  which  he,  with  his  excellent  wife, 
safely  arrived  with  Mr.  Piggott  in  England.  Mr.  Hawkins  at 
the  same  Conference  received  an  appointment  to  the  Waltham- 
Abbey  circuit ;  but  before  the  Methodistical  year  closed,  he 
sailed  for  Antigua,  and  has  ever  since  that  period  been  labour- 
ing as  a  Wesleyan  missionary  in  the  West  Indies. 


CHAPTER  XVI. 

THE  GAMBIA  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1827—1830.) 

State  of  the  Mission  at  botli  Stations — Extract  of  Letters — Appointment  of 
Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  to  Sierra-Leone,  and  Mr.  Marshall  to  St.  Mary's — 
Their  Departure — Remarks — Their  Anival  and  Reception — Death  of  Mr.  May 
— Letter  from  Mr.  Peck — Sketch  of  Mr.  May's  Life — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Mar- 
shall's Arrival  at  the  Gambia — Extracts— Captiu-e  of  Slave-Vessels — lUness  of 
Mr.  Corn-ties — Sails  for  England  in  a  very  vreak  State — Dies  at  Sea — Charac- 
ter of  Mr.  Corn-ties — Letter  from  Mr.  Marshall  at  the  Gambia — And  from 
Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  at  Sierra-Leone — The  Perusal  of  such  Letters  truly 
refreshing — In  the  Midst  of  Life  we  are  in  Death — Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck 
both  cut  down  as  Flowers  of  the  Field — Letter  from  Messrs.  Betts  and 
Davey  of  the  Chiu-ch  Missionary  Society,  announcing  the  Deaths  of  Messrs. 
Munro  and  Peck — Sketches  of  their  Characters — The  Impression  produced 
among  the  Friends  of  Missions  in  England  on  hearing  of  this  great  Amount  of 
Mortality — The  dpng  Fears,  Hope,  and  Faith  of  Mr.  Peck  on  the  Subject  of 
this  Mission — The  previous  Statement  of  the  Committee,  that  they  had  never 
wanted  a  Man  when  needed,  still  substantially  coiTect — Mr.  Keightley  embarks 
for  this  Mission — Arrival  at  Sien-a-Leone — Extract  from  his  first  Letter — l\Ir. 
and  Mrs.  Marshall  at  the  Gambia — State  of  this  Mission — Death  of  Mr. 
Marshall — Sketch — Death  of  ^Irs.  Marshall  two  Days  after  she  arrived  in 
Bristol — Sketch  of  her  Character — The  Orphan  Boy  and  black  Nurse — 
Reilections. 

During  the  year  1827^  the  brethren  were  preserved  iu  tole- 
rable health,  and  the  work  of  God  was  gradually  progressing  at 
both  the  stations.  In  a  private  letter  addressed  to  a  friend 
near  Manchester  by  Mr.  May,  dated  Free-Town,  Sierra-Leone, 
March  5th,  1827,  which  is  now  before  me,  he  says:  "I  feel 
thankful  in  being  able  to  inform  you  that  both  myself  and 
colleague  are  at  present  quite  Avell,  and  feel  happy  in  our  minis- 
terial M'ork.  I  meet  a  class  in  Portuguese-Town  on  Sunday 
morning  at  six  o'clock,  consisting  of  twenty  members,  all  black 
people ;  I  think,  the  most  loving  people  that  ever  I  met  Avith. 
We  have  in  the  colony  ten  classes,  comprising  about  ninety-five 
members.  I  had  a  profitable  season  in  holding  a  love-feast  at 
Congo-Town  on  February  18tli:  I  felt  both  pleased  and  sur- 
prised at  their  artless  experience.  Our  house  is  close  to  the 
sea-side,  which,  I  believe,  makes  it  a  little  more  healthy  than  it 
otherwise  would  be ;  for  the  climate,  upon  the  whole,  is  very 
unhealthy,  and  many  Europeans  have  died  of  the  icvcr  since 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  299 

my  arrival  in  tlie  colony."  At  the  Gambia  the  missionarj'- 
writes :  "  Our  congregations  are  large,  particularly  on  sabbath 
mornings,  when  I  preach  in  English.  The  principal  part  of  the 
merchants  regularly  attend,  and  also  their  domestics.  Our 
school  affords  great  encouragement,  increasing  in  numbers 
every  week;  and  the  boys  are  very  attentive.  The  merchants 
look  upon  our  school  as  one  of  the  greatest  blessings  bestowed 
npon  St.  Mary's ;  and  I  have  no  doubt  but  it  will  tend  to  ren- 
der the  scholars  useful  in  various  ways."  Thus  wrote  Mr. 
Hawkins  from  Bathurst,  before  he  left  the  Gambia. 

Mr.  Dawson,  in  a  letter  from  St.  Mary's,  dated  Bathurst, 
December  31st,  1827,  says :  "  In  reporting  this  station,  I  feel 
happy  in  stating  that  some  good  has  been  done  the  last  quar- 
ter :  to  God  be  all  the  praise  !  Some  of  the  members  are 
making  themselves  useful  to  their  fellow-men ;  they  are  exhort- 
ing them  to  '  flee  from  the  wrath  to  come.'  This  has  been  a 
means  of  increasing  my  evening  congregation ;  and  I  hope  our 
number  in  society  will  abundantly  augment."  The  number  of 
communicants  at  this  time  at  the  Gambia  was  forty-three,  and 
the  school  was  still  increasing  ;  and  Mr.  Dawson  added :  "  We 
will  not  '  despise  the  day  of  small  things.'  The  oak  must  first 
be  an  acorn ;  and  there  may  be  some  gospel  messengers  in  this 
school,  although  in  embryo." 

The  work  of  God  was  still  extending  its  influence  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  especially  among  the  re-captured  Negroes,  as  will  be 
seen  from  the  following  extract  of  a  letter  from  Messrs.  Courties 
and  May,  dated  Sierra-Leone,  January  8th,  1828  : — 

It  aflfords  us  pleasure  to  be  able  to  inform  you  that  a  gradual  revival  of  religion 
appears  to  be  going  on  amongst  us.  Our  labours  are  blessed  to  the  conversion  of 
some,  and  the  awakening  of  others. 

At  our  quarterly  renewal  of  tickets,  we  added  eighteen  new  members ;  most  of 
whom  have  not  only  discovered  their  need  of  salvation,  but  have  also  exi)erienced 
that  God  is  good,  and  ready  to  forgive,  and  plenteous  in  mercy  to  all  them  that 
call  upon  Him. 

We  also  admitted  upon  trial  twenty-seven  persons,  who  wish  to  cast  in  their  lot 
amongst  us.  Several  of  these  were  members  when  Mr.  Baker  laboiu-ed  on  this 
station,  but,  for  some  cause  or  other,  went  back  into  the  world ;  from  whence,  as 
poor  prodigals,  they  now  wish  again  to  return. 

Our  love-feasts  have  of  late  been  truly  jdeasing  and  profitable  ;  for,  notwithstanding 
the  manner  in  which  the  recaptured  Negroes  relate  their  experience  in  broken 
accents,  it  is  very  easy  to  understand  them,  and  to  perceive  the  correspondence 
there  is  between  their  relations  and  the  word  of  God. 

Thank  God,  there  is  the  shout  of  a  King  in  our  camp ;  and  to  this  King  of 
saints  we  gladly  give  the  glory  of  all  the  good  that  is  done. 

New  memlxn-s  are  added ;  backsliders  arc  returning  to  be  healed ;  and  many 
who  have  been  in  society,  some  for  two,  others  for  three,  years,  but  had  not  expe- 


300  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

rienced  the  clear  knowledge  of  salvation  by  the  remission  of  their  sins,  have  been 
stirred  up  to  seek  this  privilege,  and  some  of  them  have  found  the  invaluable 
blessing. 

The  last  night  of  the  year  we  observed  as  a  watch-night.  The  congregation, 
although  at  such  a  late  hour,  was  both  large  and  attentive.  0  that  the  year  upon 
which  we  have  now  entered  may  be  marked  with  abundant  blessings  upon  our 
Zion !  * 

The  year  upon  which  these  brethren  had  now  entered  ivas 
"marked  with  abundant  blessings  upon  their  Zion;"  but  there 
was  also  in  connexion  with  that,  towards  its  close,  and  soon  after- 
wards, some  painful  afflictions  and  bereavements,  as  will  be  seen 
in  due  course.  In  the  mean  time  the  missionaries  were  happy 
in  God,  and  helpers  of  each  other's  joy.  They  had  in  company 
visited  the  BuUam  shore,  and  were  anxious  to  commence  a  mis- 
sion there,  only  they  were  afraid  of  tlie  expense ;  but  they 
found  full  employment  in  the  colony  :  the  "  gradual  revival " 
referred  to  in  the  preceding  letter  continued;  the  number  of 
members  at  the  Christmas  quarter-day  had  increased  from  ninety- 
five  to  one  hundred  and  fourteen,  with  twenty-seven  on  trial ; 
and  at  one  of  the  love-feasts  not  less  than  fifty  spoke  of  what 
God  had  done  for  their  souls. 

On  the  30th  of  June,  the  brethren  Courties  and  May  again 
wrote  to  the  Committee : — 

With  respect  to  the  work  on  this  station,  it  has  been,  and  still  continues  to  be, 
attended  with  a  slow  but  gradual  revival.  Our  numbers  continue  to  increase,  and 
the  members,  in  general,  are  regular  in  their  attendance  at  the  classes,  and  the 
other  means  of  grace  ;  and  of  some  of  them,  we  believe,  it  may  be  said,  that  they 
are  growing  in  grace,  and  in  the  knowledge  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Clarist. 

Our  number  of  members  this  quarter  is  one  hundred  and  forty-six,  making  an 
increase  of  seventeen  members,  besides  ten  on  trial. 

The  preaching-house  which  we  have  recently  fitted  up  at  Soldiers'-Town,  is  well 
attended,  and  appears  likely  to  be  very  useful.  It  is  occupied  for  preaching  twice 
on  the  sabbath,  and  on  Thursday  evening ;  every  moniing  in  the  week  for  a  prayer- 
meeting  ;  and  also  on  Monday  evening  for  the  same  purpose. 

In  all  our  chapels  prayer-meetings  are  held  between  five  -and  six  o'clock  in  the 
morning,  and  on  one  evening  in  the  week  ;  which,  with  preaching  twice  on  the 
sabbath,  and  one  evening  in  the  week,  keeps  them  all  well  occupied. 

But  we  do  not  rest  here  ;  we  are  not  content  with  seeing  our  members  regular 
in  their  attendance  upon  the  outward  ordinances,  or  means  of  giace.  We  lu-ge 
them  not  to  rest  in  these,  but  earnestly  to  seek,  in  the  use  of  them,  that  true 
experimental  religion,  the  love  of  God  and  man,  which  alone  can  constitute  them 
happy  here,  and  prepare  them  for  the  happiness  of  the  saints  in  eternity  ;  and 
of  many  of  them  we  do  not  hesitate  to  say,  that  they  are  in  the  actual  possession  of 
this  true  religion.  May  the  Lord  help  them  to  hold  fast  whereunto  they  have 
attained,  and  improve  therein  yet  more  and  more,  till  taken  to  sit  down  with 
Abraham,  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven  !  f 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  v.  pp.  459,  460.  f  I'^id.  vol.  vi.  p.  7. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  301 

There  were  at  this  time  upwards  of  eighty  schohars  in  the 
day-scliools,  a  few  of  whom  were  beginning  to  read  the  New 
Testament ;  and  some  of  the  parents  cheerfully  contributed  to- 
wards the  education  of  their  children  one  penny  per  week  for  each. 

In  the  Annual  Missionary  Report  for  1828,  Messrs.  Munro 
and  Peck  were  appointed  to  Sierra-Leone,  and  Mr.  Eichard 
Marshall  to  the  Gambia.  The  announcement  of  these  appoint- 
ments is  accompanied  with  a  note,  as  follows :  "  Messrs.  Cour- 
ties,  May,  and  Dawson  are  returning  home,  having  completed 
their  engagements  on  those  stations,  and  wall  receive  appoint- 
ments from  the  President  of  the  Conference.^'  These  excellent 
men,  therefore,  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Marshall,  left  London  early 
in  October  of  the  same  year,  to  proceed  to  their  respective 
appointments;  and  in  announcing  their  departure,  the  Com- 
mittee remark :  "  In  noticing  the  sailing  of  these  brethren  for 
stations  generally  considered  to  be  unfavourable  to  the  health  of 
Europeans,  we  cannot  but  record,  with  unfeigned  gratitude  to 
God,  the  special  protection  which  has  been  vouchsafed  to  our 
brethren  who  have  been  sent  to  those  stations  during  the  past 
five  years  ;  so  that,  though  they  have  not  all  been  Avholly  with- 
out attacks  of  fever  incident  to  the  climate,  their  lives,  with  but 
one  exception,  have  been  preserved  through,  and  even  beyond, 
the  time  prescribed  for  their  service  there ;  and  they  are 
returned,  or  returning,  with  hopes  of  long  usefulness  in  other 
parts  of  the  work."  The  Committee  proceed :  "  We  are 
happy  to  state,  that  though  we  never  send  any  missionary  to 
these  places  who  does  not  voluntarily  engage  himself  in  the 
Avork,  and  notwithstanding  the  hazard  which  is  supposed  to  be 
attached  to  a  residence  there,  we  have  never  yet  been  without 
men,  when  wanted,  to  encounter  all  the  perils  of  the  climate, 
for  the  sake  of  those  who  need  theii'  spiritual  assistance." 
The  Committee  further  add :  "  We  earnestly  recommend  our 
valued  brethren  and  sister  to  the  prayers  of  our  friends,  for 
their  protection  by  sea  and  land,  and  for  the  prosperity  of  the 
work  of  God  by  their  means."  There  can  be  no  doubt  that 
this  recommendation  was  responded  to,  and  that  many  prayers 
Avere  devoutly  offered  up  for  this  little  band  of  missionaries,  and 
that  those  prayers  were  graciously  ansAvered,  so  far  as  that  jour- 
neying mercies,  both  "  by  sea  and  land,"  Avere  vouchsafed  to 
them,  they  having  arrived  in  safety  at  their  destination ;  and 
Mr.  Dawson  at  the  Gambia  Avas  permitted  to  return  to  Eng- 
land, and  "received  an  appointment"  to  an  English  circuit. 
But  it  Avas  not  so  with  the  other  tAvo  brethren  at  Sierra-Leone : 
they  both  fell  victims  to  the  climate  just  as  their  term  of  service. 


303  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

though  short,  had  expired ;  and  the  reader  will  scarcely  be  pre- 
pared for  the  still  further  painful  announcement,  that  the  two 
missionaries  now  on  their  way  to  succeed  their  brethren  at 
Sierra-Leone,  both  sank  into  an  early  and  untimely  grave, 
leaving  the  station  without  a  missionary,  aud  the  sheep  without 
a  shepherd  !  Nor  does  the  mournful  tale  end  here ;  for  to 
these  must  be  added  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Marshall,  who  also  both 
died.  Thus  were  the  whole  six  numbered  with  the  dead  in  the 
short  space  of  two  years !  But  much  as  we  may  sympathize 
and  feel  at  this  great  amount  of  mortality,  and  the  severe  loss 
occasioned  thereby  to  the  mission,  and  the  grief  it  gave  to 
friends  at  home,  we  cannot  stop  to  philosophize  upon  the  sub- 
ject.    Divine  Providence  is 

"  A  vast  unfathomable  sea 

Where  all  our  thoughts  are  drown'd." 

But  the  day  of  explanation  will  come,  when  the  Great  Supreme 

"  Will  throw  full  daylight  on  earth's  darkest  scene, 
And  justify  the  ways  of  God  to  man." 

Till  then  it  becomes  us  to  submit,  and  to  labour  on.  We  shall 
therefore  proceed  to  give  some  account  of  the  labours  of  these 
self-denying  missionaries,  and  to  place  upon  record  their  peace- 
ful, happy,  and  triumphant  deaths,  in  the  order  in  which  they 
occurred. 

On  Thursday,  the  9th  of  October,  1828,  "  at  eight  o'clock  in 
the  morning "  the  brethren  Munro  and  Peck  "  left  the  happy 
shores  of  England,"  and  embarked  at  Gravesend  on  board  the 
"  Ocean."  "  At  nine  the  ship  was  in  motion,  and  at  one 
o'clock  Mr.  Munro  began  to  be  sea-sick."  They  anchored 
once  or  twice  in  the  Downs,  and  on  the  14th  lost  sight  of  land. 
On  the  17th  they  were  in  "the  Bay  of  Biscay,  with  a  brisk 
wind ;"  and  Mr.  Munro,  who  had  been  sea-sick  from  the  first 
day  of  their  embarking,  was  now  "  very  sick  indeed."  Mr, 
Peck,  though  not  sick,  "  felt  very  giddy."  He  says,  "  I  heard 
much  of  the  roughness  of  this  Bay,  and  to  be  sure  it  is  rough 
enough ;  the  ship  rolls  and  pitches  so  much  that  we  can  scarcely 
walk  about."  On  the  27th,  they  Avere  both  quite  well,  and  at 
"  half-past  three  in  the  afternoon  came  in  sight  of  Madeira." 
On  the  2d  of  November,  Mr.  Peck  read  prayers  and  preached 
on  deck,  Mr.  Munro  being  again  sick.  Two  days  after  this, 
they  were  "  off  Cape  Verd."  The  next  day  JNIr.  Peck  writes : 
*' Wednesda}^,  5th.  The  warmest  5th  of  November  I  ever  knew. 
We  passed  the  Gambia  at  a  hundred  miles'  distance."     Shortly 


THE    GAIMBIA    AND    SIERRA -LEONE.  303 

after  this  they  were  becahned  for  several  days.  On  the  14th 
they  were  anxiously  looking  out  for  land,  as  they  knew  they 
were  not  far  from  Sierra-Leone.  The  next  day,  writes  Mr. 
Peck,  "  I  rose  at  half-past  five,  and  found  that  the  Sierra-Leone 
mountains  and  a  considerable  length  of  coast  were  in  sight. 
This  is  the  first  sight  of  land  we  have  had  of  Africa ;  and  I  felt 
much  affected  on  the  consideration  of  this  as  the  scene  of  my 
future  labours.  O  how  can  I  perform  the  duties  which  will 
now  devolve  upon  me  ?  O  for  help  from  heaven,  without  which 
I  can  do  nothing  !  Still  I  trust  that,  by  the  grace  of  God,  I 
shall  be  enabled  so  to  act,  that  in  me  and  by  me  God  may  be 
glorified."  They  w^ere  then  at  anchor  ten  or  twelve  miles  from 
Free-Town.  At  one  they  got  under  weigh,  and  moved  slowly 
towards  the  harbour.  At  six  o'clock  "  a  pilot  came  on  board," 
The  brethren  immediately  entered  into  conversation  with  him, 
and,  to  their  surprise  and  grief,  found  that  Mr.  May  had  died 
about  six  weeks  previously.  This  was  painful  news ;  but,  though 
they  were  anxious  to  get  on  sliore,  the  vessel  w^as  obliged  to 
anchor  at  eleven  o'clock  at  night  about  four  miles  off.  A  small 
vessel  with  two  hundred  and  eighteen  slaves  on  board  was  taken 
into  the  harbour  that  evening. 

Sunday,  16th,  "  Early  this  morning  they  left  the  ship  in  the 
pilot's  boat,  and  with  no  small  joy  set  their  feet  on  the  shores  of 
Africa  about  half-past  eight  o'clock."  On  reaching  the  mission- 
house  they  found  Mr.  Courties  tolerably  well.  Mr.  Munro 
preached  in  the  morning,  and  Mr.  Peck  in  the  evening.  The 
latter,  speaking  of  this,  and  of  their  reception,  says  :  "  I  shall 
never  forget  my  feelings  when  I  stood  up  for  the  first  time 
before  a  black  and  coloured  congregation.  The  news  of  our  arrival 
soon  spread,  and  we  had  large  numbers  of  visiters,  all  coloured 
people,  to  see  and  welcome  us.  Mr.  Courties  asked  two  of 
them  to  pray  with  us,  which  they  did ;  and  the  simplicity  and 
earnestness  with  which  they  prayed  would  have  aftected  hearts 
harder  than  ours.  "We  could  not  understand  all  they  said ;  but 
what  we  could  understand  was  to  me  most  delightful :  '  O  Lord 
Jesus,  bless  all  we  two  new  ministers !  Dou  did  save  Shadrach, 
Meshach,  and  Abednego  in  the  fire;  and  dou  have  saved  dem 
trou  de  big  Avater :  bless  dem.  Lord ;  save  dere  lives ;  Lord, 
make  dem  useful :  bless  dere  daddies  and  mammies,  dere  bro- 
der  and  sisses,  and  all  dere  friends  dem  left  behind  !  Bless  all 
de  big  Society  dat  send  them  !  De  big  Society  pray  for  Africa : 
now.  Lord,  Africa  pray  for  dem  !  Lord,  bless  we  y  make  we 
heart  soft ;  make  we  love  Jesus  more ;  keep  we  from  sin ;  keep 
we  from  stealing,  from  bad  language ;  make  we  love  to  pray  ! 


304  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Bless  Kroo-Town,  Congo-Town,  Portuguese-Town,  Soldiers'- 
Town,  Grassfield !  Lord,  bless  we  ministers,  bless  we  leaders, 
bless  we  exliorters ;  make  we  all  love  Jesus  more,  make  we  all 
have  more  faith,  and  fill  all  we  souls  wid  God  !     Amen  ! '  " 

The  very  act  of  copying  this  simple,  but  beautiful  and  com- 
prehensive, prayer,  has  warmed  the  writer's  heart;  for  he  has 
been  carried  in  imagination  to  the  very  spot  where,  ofttimes,  he 
has  listened  with  thrilling  delight  to  prayers  of  a  similar  kind, 
from  the  same  class  of  people.  "  God  bless  de  good  people  in 
England  !  "  "Amen  !  "  would  shout  a  hundred  voices.  "And 
Lord  spare  we  minister's  life  !  "  Another  chorus  of  "  Amen, 
Jesus !  Amen,  amen,  amen  !  "  And  surely  this  simple  and 
unadorned  manner  of  expressing  themselves,  this  "Negro 
patois,"  would  be  as  acceptable  to  "  high  Heaven  that  heard " 
those  broken  accents,  coming,  as  they  did,  from  the  heart,  as 
the  prayer  of  the  most  accomplished  scholar.  We  know  it  is 
so ;  for  "  God  is  no  respecter  of  persons :  but  in  every  nation 
he  that  feareth  him,  and  worketh  righteousness,  is  accepted 
with  him."  (Acts  x.  34,  35.) 

On  the  following  Sunday,  November  23d,  the  brethren  were 
fully  employed.  Mr.  Peck  "  went  to  Portuguese-Town  to  meet 
his  class  "  early  in  the  morning  ;  at  "  ten  he  preached  in  the 
Maroon  chapel,  Free-Town  ;  at  two,  went  to  the  love-feast ;  a 
good  time  :"  and  he  adds,  "  O  how  I  should  like  my  English 
friends  to  hear  them  speak  !  The  tears  run  down  their  sable 
cheeks  Avhile  they  tell  of  the  love  of  Christ.  Fifty-seven  spoke. 
At  night  I  preached  at  Soldiers'-Town." 

Shortly  after  this,  Mr.  Peck  wrote  to  his  friends  at  Lough- 
borough ;  and  as  this  letter  contains  several  points  of  great 
interest  bearing  on  the  mission,  and  the  missionary  spirit  of  the 
writer,  I  have  great  pleasure  in  transcribing  the  whole  of  it, 
though  it  be  long.     It  is  as  follows  : — 

Wesleyan  Mission-House,  Free-Town,  Sierra-Leone,  December  %th,  1828. 

To  all  my  dear  friends,  "  grace,  mercy,  and  peace." 

IIa\ing,  by  the  blessing  of  God,  arrived  in  health  and  safety  at  the  scene  of  my 
future  labours,  I  proceed  to  state  a  few  particulars,  for  the  information  of  those 
who  feel  interested  in  my  welfare 

On  the  morning  of  Saturday,  November  15th,  we  came  in  sight  of  Sierra-Leone; 
and  on  the  following  morning,  Sunday,  November  IGth,  at  half-past  eight  o'clock, 
we,  with  grateful  hearts,  set  our  feet  on  the  shores  of  Africa.  The  Lord  be  praised 
for  all  his  mercies  bestowed  on  us  while  on  the  bosom  of  the  ocean !  We  were 
much  affected  on  hearing  from  the  pilot,  before  we  landed,  of  the  death  of  Mr. 
May.  It  was  a  sudden  and  a  trying  stroke  to  us,  to  hear  that  he  had  been,  onjthe 
whole,  in  good  health,  and  was  called  to  his  eternal  home  while  actually  engaged  in 
preparations  for  his  return  to  England.     However,  he  has  left  a  glorious  testimony 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  305 

Usebirnl :  he  died  triumphantly,  and  is  doubtless  joining  the  blood- washed  throng,  in 
singing  the  praises  of  redeeming  love  in  the  heaven  of  eternal  repose.  Who  would 
shrink  from  such  a  death  in  such  a  cause  ?  I  am  much  pleased  with  the  appear- 
ance of  the  countiy :  it  has  a  peculiar,  and  to  me  a  delightful,  appearance.  The 
new  and  beautiful  prospects,  with  the  charming  and  curious  notes  of  numerous 
birds,  together  with  the  new  and  interesting  situation  in  which  I  was  placed,  pro- 
duced on  my  mind  indescribable  feelings :  they  were  a  mixture  of  joy,  gratitude, 
and  love ;  of  fear,  lest  I  should  unfaithfully  perform  the  important  duties  on  which 
I  was  about  to  enter ;  and  of  dependence  on  Ilim  who  alone  can  give  Ills  people 
strength.  With  these  feelings,  I  landed  on  the  interesting  shores  of  injured  Africa. 
I  suppose,  on  the  spot  where  1  landed,  there  formerly  stood  a  slave-factory.  On 
our  way  to  the  mission-house,  a  friend  met  and  recognised  us,  and  conducted  us  to 
our  future  home.  The  news  of  our  aiTival  was  soon  circulated,  and  numbers  of  the 
members  very  soon  came  to  see  us.  In  the  course  of  the  day  I  suppose  we  had 
one  hundred  and  forty  people  to  see  and  welcome  us.  The  joy  and  gratitude  they 
expressed  on  account  of  our  safe  arrival  was  a  source  of  most  delightful  feelings  to 
me :  many  of  them  wept  as  soon  as  they  saw  us ;  and  almost  every  individual  said, 
"  Tank  God,  tank  God."  It  was  indeed  pleasing  and  encouraging  to  witness  their 
atfection,  gratitude,  and  sympathy,  and  to  hear  their  simple  yet  truly  Christian -hke 
expressions ;  such  as  these,  "  We  heart  bin  sorry  too  much,"  (i-eferring  to  Mr. 
May's  death,)  "  but  now  God  send  we  two  new  ministers  to-day ;  him  no  let  de 
big  water  be  too  much  sauce  to  swallow  'em  up ;  we  tit  to  be  tankful ;  tank  God, 
tank  God."  They  then  inquired  what  friends  we  had  left  in  England ;  and,  when 
they  learned  this,  I  heard  them  talking  to  one  another,  and  saying,  "  'Em  leff  'em 
daddy,  lefF  'em  mammy,  lefF  'em  brodder  and  sisses,  leff  'em  class  and  all  fi-iends ; " 
and  then  they  would  utter  a  deep  sigh  or  groan,  seem  for  a  while  lost  in  astonish- 
ment, and  end  with,  "  Tank  God." 

The  settlers  (a  party  of  nonconformist  Methodists,  who  oppose  us  in  every  possi- 
ble way)  had  been  tormenting  the  poor  people  by  saying,  "  Yom-  white  ministers  all 
die ;  the  Society  in  England  will  send  ycu  no  more ;  you  had  better  join  us."  When 
we  came,  brother  Courties  said  to  some,  "  What  will  the  settlers  say  now  ?"  They 
said,  "0,  'em  hearts  '11  burn  too  much;"  (that  is,  they  will  be  very  angry  or 
vexed  ;)  "  tank  God,  him  will  send  we  ministers  plenty,  plenty."  Now,  is  it  possi- 
ble that  this  insinuation  w'ill  ever  be  the  fact .'  for  it  is  urged  in  England  as  well  as 
Africa.  Is  it  possible  that  missionary  zeal  should  so  far  decline,  that  this  station 
should  ever  want  a  man  .'  I  hope  not,  I  believe  not :  I  would  not  hesitate  to  give 
more  than  my  own  poor  life  for  this  colony.  Mr.  Wilberforce  calls  it  "  the  morning- 
star  of  Africa,"  and  so  I  conceive  it  is.  It  is  as  the  dawn  of  a  bright  and  glorious 
gospel-day  to  this  vast,  this  injured  continent.  It  is  as  a  bright  rising  sun,  from 
which  will  emanate  rays  of  salvation  in  every  direction.  Bear  us  up  by  faith  and 
prayer.  We  see  extensive  openings,  which  have  not  yet  been  entered  :  we  intend, 
if  our  lives  and  health  be  spared,  to  tiy  to  send  the  gospel  in  directions  in  which  it 
has  not  hitherto  been  known.  May  the  Lord  help  and  bless  us !  If  any  inquire 
whether  I  do  not  repent  leaving  home,  tell  them  that  though  I  cannot  cease  to  love 
most  affectionately  my  dear  Loughborough  friends,  yet  I  do  not,  in  the  least  degree, 
lament  having  left  them  to  come  to  this  place.  I  am  convinced  it  is  the  will  of 
God  concerning  me ;  and  I  cannot  repine,  even  though  circumstances  were  unplea- 
sant ;  how  much  less  when  every  thmg  is  better  than  I  expected  !  We  have  many 
comforts  and  privileges  which  I  did  not  expect  to  find  in  Afiica.  Oiu-  house  is 
pleasantly  situated  on  the  banks  of  the  river,  which  is  seven  miles  broad ;  we  have 
a  full  view  of  the  open  sea  on  one  side,  and  of  the  mountains  on  the  other;  we  get 

X 


306  WESTERN  COAST  OP  AFRICA. 

plenty  of  gTOd,  sweet  provisions,  as  yams,  rice,  beef,  and  mutton ;  (these  are  better 
than  I  expected,  though,  of  course,  not  equal  to  English ;)  very  good  large  oranges, 
eight  a  penny ;  beautiful  pine-apples  for  nothing,  or,  if  we  had  to  buy  them,  one 
penny  each ;  good  cucumbers,  radishes,  and  lettuce  in  abundance :  for  all  these 
things  I  am  thankful ;  but  "  the  best  of  all  is,  God  is  with  us."  In  my  own  soul  I 
am  happy ;  God  is  with  me,  Christ  is  precious,  my  cup  often  overflows  with  grati- 
tude and  love :  I  have  these  gracious  visits,  and  delightful  feelings,  more  frequently 
than  ever.  The  Lord  be  praised  for  his  benefits !  But,  better  than  all,  the  work 
revives  ;  souls  are  saved  ;  the  gates  of  hell  begin  to  tremble  ;  and  though  iniquity 
does  abound,  yet  the  Lord  is  mightily  working.  To  him  be  glory  and  dominion  for 
ever  and  ever  !  There  is  every  prospect  of  a  revival  of  the  work :  a  spirit  of  prayer 
and  expectation  is  very  widely  diffused  through  the  members.  It  appears  now  only 
to  want  a  few  decisive  steps  and  strong  exertions  on  our  part,  with  the  assistance  of 
faith  and  prayer  from  our  friends,  and  great  and  glorious  effects  will  result.  By 
the  help  and  blessing  of  our  heavenly  Father,  we  are  determined  to  use  our  utmost 
endeavours ;  and  I  say  again  to  my  friends,  "  Bear  us  up  by  faith  and  prayer,  and 
the  powers  of  hell  shall  be  compelled  to  fly,  like  chaff  before  the  wind."  In  God 
alone  we  trust :  to  him  be  all  the  gloi-y.  I  believe  you  do  not  forget  us  at  the  mis- 
sionary prayer-meeting.  Last  week,  just  at  the  time  of  the  missionary  prayer- 
meetings  at  Greenwich  and  Loughborough,  brother  Munro  was  preaching,  and  a 
man  found  peace,  and  praised  God  so  stoutly,  that  brother  Munro  was  obliged  to 
desist.  At  the  same  time,  another  man  was  in  deep  distress,  and  rolled  about  the 
floor,  so  as  to  upset  foiu"  or  five  of  the  forms.  Their  gestures  and  actions  while 
under  convictions  are  surpi-ising;  but  I  must  defer  a  particular  account  of  these 
things  to  a  future  communication.  I  was  preaching  last  night  at  Soldiers'-Town, 
and  there  were  five  persons  in  deep  distress.  We  have  been  here  just  three  weeks, 
and  in  that  time  about  twelve  persons  have  found  peace;  or,  to  use  their  own 
expressions  on  such  occasions,  have  opened  glory  to  God. 

I  must  conclude  this  by  a  few  particulars,  which  I  think  will  be  interesting  to  all 
who  love  the  cause  of  missions.  We  have  six  chapels, — three  stone  ones,  and  three 
of  wood  and  long  grass ;  about  one  hundred  and  sixty  members,  black  and 
coloured ;  fourteen  leaders ;  seventeen  classes.  The  leaders  attend  literally  to  Mr. 
Wesley's  rule,  to  see  their  members  weekly.  If  a  member  is  absent,  they  always 
go  to  see  what  is  the  cause ;  and  it  is  astonishing  with  what  assiduity  they  seek 
after  fresh  members.  At  even'  chapel  they  hold  a  prayer-meeting  every  morning 
at  five  o'clock.  We  have  six  local  preachers.  I  heard  one  of  them  preach  from, 
"  Ye  must  be  born  again ; "  and  a  very  decent  sermon  he  made,  too.  He  very  ear- 
nestly enforced  the  necessity  of  regeneration,  and  said,  "  It  does  not  say,  '  Ye 
should  be  born  again,'  nor,  '  You  'd  better  be  born  again,'  nor,  '  You  may  be  bom 
again ;'  but,  '  Ye  must ;'  that  is,  '  If  ye  don't,  ye  must  go  to  hell.'"  My  labour  is, 
— on  Sunday  morning,  at  six  o'clock,  I  meet  my  class  two  miles  from  home  ;  at  ten  I 
preach,  sometimes  at  the  chapel  in  town,  and  sometimes  two  miles  off;  at  two  go 
to  the  Sunday-school ;  (we  are  the  only  teachers  for  about  fifty  children ;)  and  at  six, 
preach  again.  On  Monday  I  meet  the  children  who  are  learning  to  sing ;  on  Tues- 
day, Wednesday,  and  Friday  evenings  I  preach,  and  on  Saturday  afternoon  meet  the 
leaders.  Brother  Mnnro's  labours  are  very  similar,  only  he  does  not  go  out  to  meet 
a  class  on  Sunday  morning :  he  meets  one  on  Monday  afternoon.  We  have  also 
two  day-schools  to  keep  in  order  by  occasional  visits :  indeed,  the  whole  manage- 
ment of  them  belongs  to  us,  as  we  are  ordered  to  receive  £30  a  year  from  the 
Society  of  Friends,  for  the  support  of  these  schools. 

We  have  this  day  received  a  letter  from  the  Gambia,  stating  that  Mr.  and  Mrs. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


307 


Marshall  have  arrived  in  safety.  May  their  lives  be  spared,  and  their  labours  suc- 
cessful !  To  every  one  of  my  dear  Loughborough  friends  I  give  my  most  aifectionate 
regard.  May  all  your  kindness  to  your  unworthy  fellow-traveller  to  a  better  country 
be  returned  to  your  own  souls !  May  every  spiritual  blessing  be  richly  imparted  to 
you !  May  the  Spirit  of  God  be  poured  out  upon  you,  and  the  work  of  God  revive 
throughout  the  whole  society !  and  when  I  hear  of  your  affairs,  may  it  be  that  you 
stand  fast  in  one  spirit,  with  one  mind,  striving  together  for  the  faith  of  the  gospel ! 
Believe  me  to  reiTiain, 

Yours,  in  the  strongest  bonds  of  Christian  affection, 

William  Rowland  Peck.* 

The  interesting  facts  detailed  in  this  letter  speak  for  them- 
selves, and  need  no  comment  from  me,  except  the  lamented 
death  of  Mr.  May,  which  is  there  again  referred  to,  and  which 
is  entitled  to  further  notice ;  and  this  may  be  the  proper  time 
and  place  for  the  brief  sketch  of  his  life.  From  private  papers 
and  unpublished  letters  with  which  I  have  been  kindly  furnished, 
as  well  as  from  other  sources,  I  am  able  to  record  the  following 
particulars  respecting  this  excellent  man  : — 

John  May  was  born  in  the  year  1799,  and  was  educated  and 
brought  up  at  the  Foundling  Hospital,  London.  At  the  age  of 
fourteen  he  was  bound  an  apprentice  to  Mr.  Thomas  Andrew, 
calico-printer  at  Harpur-Hey,  near  Manchester ;  and  at  the  age 
of  twenty,  he  went  to  reside  with  a  Wesleyan  family  at  Blackley, 
in  the  Manchester  First  Circuit.  Here  he  was  brought  under 
the  ministry  of  the  Wesleyan  Methodists  ;  and  the  first  sermon 
Avhich  he  heard  was  from  the  Rev.  James  B.  Holro3^d,  on  the 
ascension  of  Christ.  This  produced  an  impression  Avhich  led  to 
a  consciousness  of  his  guilt  and  depravity,  and  which  showed 
him  the  necessity  of  a  change  of  heart.  He  sought  this  for 
some  time  Avith  deep  penitence  and  prayer ;  and  one  evening,  as 
he  was  returning  from  a  prayer-meeting,  he  resolved  in  his  own 
mind,  that  if  there  Avas  such  a  blessing  to  be  obtained,  he  would 
have  it  before  he  retired  to  rest.  He  wrestled  and  prayed  till 
after  midnight ;  he  then  rose  from  his  knees  almost  exhausted, 
and,  opening  the  New  Testament,  began  to  read  John  xvii. ; 
and,  while  reading  the  third  verse,  "  And  this  is  life  eternal, 
that  they  might  know  thee  the  only  true  God,  and  Jesus  Christ, 
whom  thou  hast  sent,"  he  felt  the  guilt  of  sin  removed,  and 
"  the  love  of  God  shed  abroad  in  his  heart  by  the  Holy  Ghost 
given  unto  him."  Before  retiring  to  rest,  he  prayed  that,  if  the 
work  was  real,  he  might  have  the  same  joyous  feelings  when  he 
awoke  in  the  morning,  and  be  directed  to  some  portion  of  scrip- 

*  "  Memoirs  of  the  late  Rev.  Rowland  Peck,"  pp.  86-93. 
X  2 


308  "WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

ture  wliicli  would  confirm  it.  Accordingly,  the  first  thing  in 
the  morning,  he  opened  his  Bible,  and  it  was  at  Isaiah  xii. ; 
and  that  memorable  verse,  vvhich  has  increased  the  joy  and 
gladdened  the  heart  of  many  a  believing  penitent,  presented 
itself  before  him  :  "  And  in  that  day  thou  shalt  say,  O  Lord,  I 
will  praise  thee :  though  thou  wast  angry  with  me,  thine  anger 
is  turned  away,  and  thou  comfortedst  me."  This  did  indeed 
confirm  him  ;  for  he  felt  that,  "  being  justified  by  faith,  he  had 
peace  with  God  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ;"  and  therefore 
could  and  did  say,  "O  Lord,  I  will  praise  thee!"  Having 
tasted  that  the  Lord  is  gracious,  he  was  concerned  for  the 
spiritual  welfare  of  others.  He  took  an  active  part  in  the 
Sunday-school  at  Blackley,  attended  the  prayer-meetings,  and 
visited  the  sick  in  their  abodes  of  wretchedness,  frequently 
relieving  them  as  far  as  his  circumstances  would  permit;  and 
in  this  labour  of  love,  instances  were  known  in  which  he  had 
caused  the  heart  of  the  widow  and  the  fatherless  to  rejoice. 
But  while  punctually  attentive  to  all  the  outward  means  of  grace, 
and  to  those  acts  of  Christian  benevolence,  he  did  not  neglect 
the  more  private  duties  of  religion,  such  as  reading  the  scrip- 
tures, meditation,  and  private  prayer.  For  this  purpose,  it  was 
his  custom  to  rise  at  four  or  five  o'clock  in  the  morning ;  and  in 
the  evening,  God's  book  was  his  "  companion  still."  His  piety 
was  deep  and  unaffected,  and  his  zeal  ardent  and  constant. 

In  the  year  1822  he  laboured  under  a  severe  bodily  affliction, 
a  cancer  on  his  tongue,  which  had  been  of  some  years'  standing ; 
but  this  he  bore  with  great  patience  and  resignation  to  the 
Divine  Avill :  and  soon  after  his  recovery,  he  devoted  himself 
afresh  to  the  cause  of  God,  in  attending  the  prayer-meetings, 
and  in  exhorting  the  poor  in  the  villages  around  him  to  "  repent 
and  be  converted."  In  1824  he  was  admitted  as  a  local 
preacher;  and  his  labours  were  very  acceptable  and  useful, 
"  especially  in  his  own  neighbourhood,  where  he  preached  fre- 
quently, both  on  week-nights  and  on  Sunday  mornings,  to 
crowded  congregations."  In  1826  he  was  recommended  as  a 
candidate  for  the  missionary  work,  by  the  Rev.  George  Marsden ; 
and  soon  after  the  Conference,  in  company  with  Mr.  Courties,  he 
sailed  for  Sierra- Leone.  His  arrival  and  reception,  with  the 
commencement  of  his  labours,  and  several  communications  in 
conjunction  with  his  colleague,  are  already  before  the  reader  in 
this  chapter ;  and  some  of  them  have  been  before  the  public  for 
many  years.  One  of  the  first  things  which  Mr.  May  did,  after 
his  arrival  at  Sierra-Leone,  finding  that  the  colony  was  so 
sickly,  was  "to  set  his  house  in  order."     This  he  had  done  in  a 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  3C9 

spiritual  point  of  view,  long  before  lie  embarked  in  the  mission 
work,  and  now  he  thought  it  prudent  to  attend  to  the  secular 
part  of  it.  Accordingly,  in  a  private  letter  to  a  friend  at  Black- 
ley,  having  referred  to  several  Europeans  who  had  died  siiice 
his  arrival,  within  a  few  months,  he  says,  "  I  think  it  quite 
necessary  to  make  some  temporal  arrangements,  as  well  as 
spiritual  provision,  in  case  1,  among  the  rest,  should  be 
cut  off  by  death;  and  as  I  am  a  fatherless  child,  and  have  no 
friends  in  England  so  dear  to  me  as  those  at  Blackley,  and, 
amongst  these,  none  more  so  than  yourself,  I  have  made 
arrangements  with  my  colleague,  after  he  has  secured  to  the 
Missionary  Committee  a  certain  amount  with  Avhich  he  is 
acquainted,*  to  transmit  the  remainder  of  my  money, 
books,  &c.,  to  you ;  and  should  it  be  that  my  body  be  laid 
in  Africa,  I  should  like  you  to  consider  the  books  which  may 
in  such  case  be  transmitted  to  you  as  your  own,  being  a  tes- 
timony of  my  brotherly  affection  towards  jou;  and  also  to 
devote  towards  the  removal  of  the  debt  on  your  chapel,  any 
money  which  may  be  transmitted  to  you,  as  a  token  of  the 
regard  which  I  feel  towards  the  welfare  of  the  Methodist  Soci- 
ety at  Blackley, — the  place  where  I  got  my  first  good  and  found 
my  first  love.'"' 

This  arrangement  would  have  been  carried  into  effect,  but, 
unfortunately,  as  will  be  seen  hereafter,  what  little  amount  of 
property  Mr.  May  had  nt  his  death  was  afterwards  lost  at  sea. 
In  a  subsequent  letter,  addressed  to  the  same  friend  at  the 
beginning  of  1828,  Mr.  May  speaks  of  the  pleasure  which  it 
afforded  him  to  hear  that  the  work  of  God  was  prospering  at 
Blackley,  a  place  which  "  lay  near  his  heart.^'  And  then, 
speaking  of  himself,  he  says,  "  Thank  God,  I  have  found  that 
which  1  long  desired,  and  sometimes  thought  I  felt,  but  did  not 
possess.  I  mean  the  perfect  love  of  God,  sanctification,  a 
clean  heart,  or,  as  it  is  termed  in  your  letter,  '  purity.^ "  In 
the  same  communication,  he  expressed  his  thankfulness  for  the 
preservation  of  his  life  thus  far,  and  for  "  the  abundant  bless- 
ings upon  Zion." 

*  The  "  certain  amount "  was  most  probably  this : — Most  of  the  young  men 
have  accounts  against  them  with  the  Committee ;  besides  which,  every  missionan', 
till  his  probation  is  over,  is  considered  as  owing  the  Committee  a  proportion  of  his 
outfit  of  books  and  clothing.  In  case  of  death,  the  effects  are  generally  sold,  from 
which  a  certain  amount  is  deducted,  to  be  paid  to  the  Committee.  In  other  cases, 
the  effects  are  sent  to  England ;  but  even  then  a  certain  amount  is  due  to  the 
Committee,  varying  according  to  the  term  of  service.  In  this  case,  £40  was  the 
required  sum  to  be  returned  for  tlie  outfit  of  books  and  clothes,  and  the  remainder 
would  be  given  up  to  his  friends. 


310  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

About  the  middle  of  the  year,  he  was  actively  employed  in 
the  work  of  the  mission ;  and,  in  a  letter  to  the  secretaries,  says, 
"  Our  numbers  continue  to  increase ;  and  of  some  of  them  we 
believe  it  may  be  said,  that  they  are  growing  in  grace."  The 
rains  had  now  set  in ;  and  towards  the  close,  this  humble, 
zealous,  and  useful  servant  of  his  Divine  Master  was  called 
to  his  reward.  He  died  at  Sierra-Leone,  on  the  4th  of 
October,  1828,  a  few  weeks  prior  to  his  intended  embarkation 
for  his  native  country.  The  particulars  of  his  sickness  and 
death  we  are  unable  to  furnish ;  but  we  are  told  that  "  he  died 
triumphantly,"  and  "left  a  glorious  testimony  behind,"  that 
death  to  him  was  eternal  gain. 

Thus  lived  and  thus  died  John  May,  a  special  subject  of  the 
particular  providence  of  God.  In  him  was  literally  fulfilled 
the  promise,  "  When  my  father  and  my  mother  forsake  me, 
then  the  Lord  will  take  me  up."  (Psalm  xxvii.  10.)  Cast  upon 
the  wide  world  by  his  unnatural  parents,  when  but  an  infant  of 
a  few  days  old,  "  the  Lord  did  take  him  up,"  and 

"  To  all  his  weak  complaints  and  cries 
His  mercy  lent  an  ear." 

Though  "fatherless"  and  friendless,  yet,  "when  in  the  slippery 
paths  of  youth,"  he  was  soundly  converted  to  God,  soon  after 
began  to  show  unto  men  the  way  of  salvation,  was  ordained  as  a 
Wesleyan  missionary,  and  in  the  "  burning  clime  and  tainted 
air"  of  Western  Africa  he  lived  and  preached  the  gospel  for 
nearly  two  years ;  and  then  his  heavenly  Father  said,  "  It  is 
enough  :  come  up  hither;"  and  he  entered  into  the  joy  of  his 
Lord  in  the  twenty-ninth  year  of  his  age.  Of  John  May  we 
can  say  with  truth,  "  He  was  a  faithful  man,  and  feared  God 
above  many." 

Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  were  now  harmoniously  and  zeal- 
ously engaged  in  their  Avork,  their  labours  being  very  similar. 
On  the  14th  of  December,  being  the  sabbath,  the  latter  of  them 
writes  : — "  God  has  graciously  preserved  my  life  and  health 
another  week  in  this  colony.  I  went  at  six  in  the  moruing  to 
meet  two  classes  at  Portuguese-Town ;  thirty-five  members 
present  out  of  thirty-six.  I  heard  brother  Munro  preach  in  the 
morning ;  afternoon,  I  preached  at  West-End,  and  met  three 
classes  ;  at  night,  preached  at  the  Maroon  chapel.  One  woman 
found  peace,  and  loudly  praised  God,  while  we  were  singing  the 
last  hymn."  The  day  following,  Mr.  Peck  writes :  "  Rather 
unwell  in  body  to-day,  but  my  mind  sweetly  composed.    I  thank 


THB    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  311 

my  God  I  die  daily,  and  live  above  the  fear  of  death ;  I  feel 
truly  resigned  to  the  will  of  my  heavenly  Father.  Not  knowing 
how  soon  my  change  will  come,  I  begin  this  day  to  make  my  v»i\\." 

Mr.  and  JNIrs.  Marshall  had  an  agreeable  passage,  and  arrived 
safe  at  the  Gambia  on  the  18th  of  November,  two  days  after 
Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  reached  Sierra-Leone.  On  the  day 
of  landing,  Mr.  Marshall  writes  in  his  private  journal :  "  With 
gratitude  to  God,  I  record  his  goodness  in  bringing  us  in  health 
and  safety  to  the  scene  of  my  future  labours.  We  were  five 
weeks  and  one  day  on  the  voyage,  during  which  we  received 
comforts  we  never  expected  on  board  a  ship.  I  preached  four 
times  to  the  passengers,  and  as  many  of  the  sailors  as  could 
attend ;  and  held  family  w  orship  daily.  I  have  great  reason  to 
be  thankful  to  God  for  what  he  has  done  for  my  own  soul  on  the 
voyage.  I  had  many  baptisms  from  on  high.  While  entering 
the  harbour,  I  was  led  to  reflect,  '  How  many  Europeans  have 
been  called  to  the  eternal  world  !  Perhaps  I  may  never  leave 
this  place.  My  wife  or  myself  may  have  severe  affliction  of 
body  or  mind  ! '  I  thought,  '  I  have  not  come  here  to  do  my 
own  will,  but  the  will  of  my  heavenly  Father.  In  health  or  sick- 
ness, in  life  or  death,  let  me  have  his  favour,  and  all  will  be  well.^' 

Thus  did  these  excellent  men  at  both  stations  enter  upon 
their  works  of  faith  and  labour  of  love;  and  God  was  with  them, 
and  confirmed  the  word  preached  with  signs  following.  This 
will  appear  from  the  subjoined  spirited  and  encouraging  com- 
munication from  Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck,  dated  Free-Town, 
January  13th,  1829  :— 

We  rejoice  in  being  enabled  to  state  tliat  our  health  continues  unimpaired,  and 
that  we  are  as  strong  to  labour  as  when  we  left  England.  For  this  care  and  pro- 
tection of  our  heavenly  Father  we  believe  the  Committee  will  unite  with  us  in 
offering  sincere  and  ardent  praise.  We  feel  perfectly  at  home  among  the  people ; 
and  our  work,  though  arduous,  is  pleasant  and  profitable  to  our  own  souls,  while 
our  gracious  God  condescends  to  acknowledge  and  to  bless  our  unworthy  labours, 
in  the  awakening  and  conversion  of  others.  Already  we  have  been  aljundantly 
encouraged,  and  constrained  to  bless  the  guiding  Providence  which  has  cast  our  lot 
in  this  pleasant  land,  where  the  fields  are  already  white  to  harvest,  and  where  he 
that  reapeth  receiveth  wages  and  gathereth  fruit  unto  life  eternal.  We  have 
indeed  seen  the  truth  of  that  saying  of  holy  writ,  "  One  soweth  and  another 
reapeth ; "  for  our  dear  brethren  have  gone  forth,  breaking  up  the  fallow  ground, 
bearing  precious  seed,  and  watering  it  with  prayers  and  tears ;  and  some  even  with 
tiieir  dying  breath  have  rejoiced  in  hope  ;  and  now  the  fruit  is  apparent :  though  the 
labourers  are  removed  or  laid  aside  by  affliction,  the  work  of  the  Lord  still  goes 
forward ;  and  many  precious  souls  are  gathered  into  the  fold  of  Christ,  and  find 
pasture  in  his  chiu-ch. 

We  have  at  present  six  places  of  worship ;  three  of  which  are  stone  chajjels, 
and  three  are  grass-houses.  In  Free-Town  we  have  the  Maroon  chapel,  which  is 
alwavs  well  attended,  and  sometimes  crowded.     Of  the  Maroons,  three  are  leaders. 


312  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

and  twenty-five  mem])ers ;  the  others  are  re-captured  Negroes  ;  and  make  altogether, 
in  Free-Town,  four  classes  with  thirty-five  members,  l)esides  several  on  trial.  A  very 
considerable  movement  has  lately  taken  place  among  the  Maroons ;  six  or  eight 
have  been  awakened  and  converted,  and  in  the  presence  of  large  congregations 
have  declared  what  God  has  done  for  their  souls,  glorifying  his  holy  name,  and 
caUing  upon  others  to  seek  and  serve  him.  This  has  produced  the  happiest  eflTects, 
and  many  are  beginning  to  inquire  the  way  to  Zion.  At  Portuguese-Town,  the 
chapel  will  contain  about  one  hundred  and  fifty  persons,  and  is  well  attended. 
Our  members  here  are  all  re-captured  ISegroes.  There  are  two  classes,  thirty-four 
members ;  making  an  increase  of  seven  during  the  last  quarter.  They  are  a 
zealous,  praying,  and  loving  society,  forward  to  ever)'  good  word  and  work.  We 
have  here  a  day-school  under  a  native  schoolmaster,  who  is  a  member  of  the 
society.  About  forty  boys  and  twenty  girls  are  instructed  here,  and  have  already 
made  considerable  progress.  In  the  African  villages,  the  season  of  Christmas  is 
kept  with  dancing,  intoxication,  and  almost  every  species  of  noise  and  disorder;  but 
in  Portuguese-Town  nothing  of  the  kind  was  to  be  seen ;  all  was  quiet,  save  where 
the  songs  of  Zion  were  heard ;  for,  at  a  love-feast  held  there  on  Christmas-day,  six 
souls  were  enabled  to  praise  God  with  joj'ful  voices.  On  the  same  day,  twenty-one 
adults,  who  had  for  some  time  met  in  class  in  the  various  villages,  and  had  given 
satisfactorj'  proof  of  their  sincerity,  were  baptized.  At  Congo-Town  we  have  a 
chapel  capable  of  containing  nearly  two  hundred  persons.  We  have  here  three  leaders 
and  thirty-five  members,  making  an  increase  of  six  during  the  quarter,  besides  five 
who  are  on  trial.  We  have  here  also  a  day-school,  kept  by  one  of  our  members, 
in  which  forty-fom-  boys  and  twenty-three  girls  receive  instruction.  At  West-End 
we  have  a  grass-house  which  will  contain  about  eighty  persons.  There  are  three 
leaders  and  twenty-four  members,  making  an  increase  this  quarter  of  five,  besides 
four  on  trial.  The  congregations  fill  the  place,  and  great  good  is  likely  to  result 
from  our  labours  here.  At  Grassfield  we  have  a  house  situated  in  the  midst  of  a 
populous  village.  We  have  here  three  classes  and  forty-three  members,  being  an 
increase  of  nine  during  the  last  quai-ter,  besides  four  on  trial.  Several  young  men 
of  great  promise  have  been  raised  up  in  this  place,  who  are  likely  to  prove  a  bless- 
ing to  the  cause.  At  Soldier-Town  we  have  a  grass-house.  Here  the  work  of  the 
Lord  is  in  great  prosperity.  ^Xe  have  one  leader,  (a  superannuated  soldier,  lately 
belonging  to  the  Royal  African  corps,)  who,  about  two  years  ago,  began  a  class 
here.  He  has  now  twenty-two  members,  and  six  on  trial.  The  chapel  will  con- 
tain about  eighty  persons.  We  preach  here  on  sabbath  and  Thursday  evenings ; 
and  there  are  generally  more  persons  present  than  the  place  vriU  contain.  Thus 
in  all  our  societies  the  work  of  the  Lord  is  in  progress.  We  have  a  delightful 
prospect  before  us.  We  already  behold  the  drops  before  the  shower,  and  are 
expecting  a  large  eftusion  of  the  Holy  Spirit  in  answer  to  the  united  prayers  of  our 
Christian  friends  in  every  part  of  the  world.  Our  people  are  a  praying  people. 
Every  morning  at  five  o'clock  a  prayer-meeting  is  held  in  each  of  our  six  chapels, 
and  their  praises  ring  through  the  towns  before  tlie  break  of  day.  The  work  of 
God  must  prosper  among  such  a  people,  and  we  are  persuaded  that  it  wiU.  We 
labour  not  only  in  hope,  hut  our  eyes  already  see  Zion  in  prosperity.  Still,  though 
thankful  for  what  has  been  accomplished  in  this  colony,  we  are  not,  cannot  be 
satisfied  till  the  gospel  of  the  blessed  God  is  made  known  to  all  the  trihes  of  this 
vast  continent, — yea,  till  the  whole  earth  shall  he  filled  with  the  glory  of  God.* 

Two  days  after  this  letter  was  written,  a  brig  under  Spanish 
colours  was   taken  into   Sierra-Leone,  ^uth  four  hundred  and 


"  Mi&sionai7  Notices,"  vol.  vi.  pp.  138,  139. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEKRA-LEONE. 


S13 


fifty  slaves  ou  board.  One  of  the  missionaries  wrote  :  "  She  lias 
fourteen  guns,  and,  when  attacked,  made  a  vigorous  resistance. 
The  Euglish  vessel  had  but  one  gun ;  but  with  that  she  silenced 
her  opponent,  and  gained  possession  of  her ;  yet  not  until  the 
captain  of  the  slaver  and  nine  men,  besides  twenty-four  slaves, 
were  killed/^  On  the  morning  of  the  6th  of  the  month  no  less 
than  five  of  these  rakish  craft,  which  had  been  captured  by  our 
brave  countrymen,  were  taken  into  the  harbour  of  Sierra- 
Leone,  having  on  board  more  than  a  thousand  slaves.  In  one 
of  the  vessels  were  "  two  hundred  and  fifty  children,  many  of 
them  not  more  than  four  or  five  years  old,  and  few  of  them 
above  tea  or  eleven."  Three  of  these  slavers  had  Brazilian 
colours,  one  Portuguese,  and  one  French. 

Mr.  Courties  had  been  waiting  for  some  time  for  a  passage  to 
England ;  for,  though  tolerably  well  on  the  arrival  of  the  brethren, 
he  was  much  debilitated,  and  soon  after  had  another,  and  then 
another,  attack  of  fever.  He  was  removed  to  a  difterent  part 
of  the  colony  for  a  change  of  situation ;  but  he  continued  very 
ill.  On  the  31st  of  this  month  Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  were 
engaged  in  preparing  his  boxes,  &c.,  as,  from  his  excessive 
weakness,  he  was  incapable  of  either  doing  it  himself,  or  giving 
any  directions.  The  day  following,  February  1st,  Mr.  Courties 
embarked  on  board  the  "  Potton,"  bound  for  England.  He 
was  so  weak  as  to  be  obliged  to  be  carried  to  the  boat,  and  was 
utterly  incapable  of  using  the  slightest  exertion.  The  brethren 
felt  much  at  seeing  their  friend  and  brother  embark  in  such  a 
weak  state  of  body  ;  but  the  colonial  doctor  was  of  opinion  that 
the  sea  air  would  efiect  a  great  improvement  in  a  fevv'  days ;  and 
Mr.  Peck  writes  :  "  We  leave  him  in  the  hands  of  his  great  and 
gracious  Master.  May  he  be  restored  and  preserved ;  be 
blessed,  and  made  a  blessing  !  I  accompanied  him  to  the  ship, 
put  him  to  bed,  and  left  him  at  eight  o'clock ;  perhaps  to  meet 
him  no  more  till  we  meet  in  another  world. '^  Such  indeed  was 
the  issue ;  for  this  excellent  missionary,  who  had  embarked  in  a 
state  of  great  weakness,  died  on  board  in  a  few  days.  The 
vessel  was  afterwards  wrecked;  but  the  crew  and  the  other 
passengers  were  saved.  With  Isaiah  we  may  therefore  say, 
"Verily  thou  art  a  God  that  hidest  thyself;"  and  with  the 
Psalmist,  "  Thy  w  ay  is  in  the  sea,  and  thy  path  in  the  great 
waters,  and  thy  footsteps  are  not  known.'' 

John  Courties  was  a  plain,  pious,  and  excellent  man,  much 
devoted  to  God  and  to  his  work.  He  was  made  very  useful  as 
H  local  preacher,  both  in  Falmouth  and  in  Spitalfields  circuit ; 


314  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

and  on  his  arrival  in  Africa^  he  was  deeply  affected  at  the  moral 
degradation  of  the  sable  sons  of  Ham,  and  longed  for  their 
conversion  to  Christ.  In  a  letter  addressed  to  a  friend,  soon 
after  his  arrival,  he  says :  "  Ou  our  landing,  O  what  a  scene 
burst  upon  my  astonished  view  !  ]Men,  women,  and  children 
nearly  naked ;  houses  and  furniture  different  from  any  thing  I 
had  ever  seen  before.  But  what  affected  me  most  was,  their 
spiritual  and  eternal  interest.  O,  my  dear  brother,  it  may 
indeed  be  said  of  this  colony,  '  Darkness  hath  covered  the  earth, 
and  gross  darkness  the  minds  of  the  people.^     Ten  missionaries 

could  find  plenty  of  employment  here,  instead  of  two 

Could  you  but  see  and  consider  the  Avretchedness  of  what  is 
called  '  the  re-captured  Negroes,'  I  am  sure  your  heart  would 

bleed  for  them A  few  days  ago  I  bathed  with  tears  the 

graves  of  the  brethren  Warren,  Gillison,  Lane,  Huddlestone, 
and  Harte,  all  at  different  times  employed  in  the  same  work, 
and  occupying  the  same  house,  as  my  dear  brother  May  and  I 
now  do." 

Mr.  Courties  possessed  talents  of  a  respectable  order,  his 
knowledge  of  the  INIethodist  doctrines  was  correct,  and  his  zeal 
for  the  salvation  of  men  was  ardent  and  constant.  His  "  dear 
brother  ]May,"  in  a  private  letter  now^  before  me,  speaking  of  him, 
says,  "  Brother  Courties  I  find  an  agreeable  colleague  ;  truly 
pious,  and  very  faithful  in  warning  sinners."  God  owned  the 
efforts  of  his  servant,  both  in  the  conversion  of  souls  and  in 
building  up  believers ;  and  after  labouring  w  ith  great  fidelity 
and  success  for  upwards  of  two  years  in  Sierra-Leone,  whilst  on 
his  way  to  England  he  was  called  to  his  eternal  home.  He 
died  at  sea  on  the  4th  of  February,  1829,  and  his  body  was 
committed  to  the  deep.  Though  no  friend  was  near  to  bathe 
his  grave  with  tears,  yet  there  "  his  flesh  shall  rest  in  hope,"  until 
"the  sea  shall  give  up  the  dead;"  and  then  the  body  of  John 
Courties  shall  "  be  fashioned  like  unto  Christ^s  glorious  body, 
according  to  the  working  whereby  he  is  able  even  to  subdue  all 
things  unto  himself."  * 

*  The  vessel,  as  we  have  abeady  stated,  was  afterwards  wrecked,  and  Mr.  May's 
effects  were  lost,  as  were  also  those  of  Mr.  Courties,  and  indeed  every  thing  else, 
except  the  ship-letters  and  a  few  small  parcels.  The  following  letter  addressed  to 
the  friend  to  whom  Mr.  May  had  bequeathed  his  books,  &c.,  will  explain  this.  It 
was  written  by  the  late  Rev.  John  James,  who  was  at  that  time  one  of  the  mission- 
ary secretaries : — 

"  London,  July  \.<tf,  1829,  77,  Hatton-Garden. 

"  Sir, — According  to  my  promise,  1  now  write  to  inform  you,  that  Mr.  Cour- 
ties,  of  Sierra-Leone,  died  three  days  after  his  embarkation  for  this  countn,- ;  and 
six  days  after  his  death  the  vessel  and  all  she  contained  went  to  the  l)ottom  of  the 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEREA-LEONE.  315 

The  brethren  on  the  Coast  did  not  hear  of  the  lamented 
death  of  Mr,  Courties  till  some  months  after ;  and  were  in  the 
mean  time  devoting  their  energies  to  the  glorious  cause,  in 
which  they  had  embarked  their  little  all.  Mr.  Marshall,  at  the 
Gambia,  under  date  of  February  13th,  1839,  writes  : — 

With  respect  to  the  cause  of  God  in  the  souls  of  the  people,  we  have  reason  to 
be  thankful  for  what  he  is  doing.  The  society,  especially  the  male  part,  appear  to 
be  truly  pious ;  and  our  class-meetings  are  well  attended.  In  the  discharge  of 
private  and  family  duties,  they  are  truly  exemplary.  I  am  not  aware  that  any  who 
are  heads  of  families  neglect  family  prayer,  and,  when  able,  the  reading  of  God's 
word.  When  I  contemplate  the  ditficulty  under  which  they  labour  in  receiving 
rehgious  instruction  in  a  language  of  which  they  are  comparatively  ignorant,  and, 
on  the  other  hand,  the  work  wrought  in  them,  I  can  only  account  for  it  thus : 
"  The  good  that  is  done  in  the  earth,  the  Lord  doeth  it."  The  public  ordinances 
are  well  attended ;  some  are  inquiring  the  way  to  Zion ;  and  we  have,  since  our 
arrival,  received  nine  or  ten  on  trial.  Some  of  these  are  truly  converted  to  God ; 
and  among  them  I  am  happy  to  number  our  schoolmaster,  who  is  decidedly  pious, 
and  is  now  endeavom-ing  to  impart  to  the  children  what  he  himself  has  received. 
In  consequence  of  this,  we  have  been  obhged  to  divide  our  Bathurst  class,  and 
Mrs.  Marshall  has  taken  charge  of  the  females. 

In  order  to  the  permanent  establishment  of  this  mission,  and  the  extensive 
spread  of  the  gospel  by  it,  two  things  appear  important  :  the  raising  up  of  suitable 
native  preachers,  not  subject  to  loss  of  health,  like  Europeans ;  and  the  translation 
of  the  scriptures,  and  other  pious  books,  into  their  own  language.  These  desirable 
ends  the  Lord  appears  to  be  bringing  about.  In  our  small  society  we  have  six  per- 
sons, who  have  begun  to  call  their  fellow-sinners  to  repentance  in  their  native 
tongue  ;  and  with  the  assistance  of  some  natives  I  have  translated  the  first  part  of 
the  Conference  Catechism  into  Jollof.* 

On  the  2d  of  March,  the  following  joint  letter  from  Messrs. 
Muuro  and  Peck,  at  Sierra-Leone,  was  sent  to  the  Missionary 
Committee : — 

We  are  still,  by  the  good  providence  of  God,  preserved  in  perfect  health,  and  are 
favoured  with  such  a  sense  of  the  Divine  Presence  and  blessing,  both  in  our  pubUc 
and  private  duties,  as  enables  us  to  go  on  our  way  rejoicing.  We  feel  an  increas- 
ing conviction  of  the  inefficiency  of  all  human  efforts,  separate  from  Divine  influ- 
ence ;  and  of  the  absolute  necessity  of  humble  dependence  on  the  Giver  of  every 
good  and  perfect  gift,  without  whose  help  and  blessing  even  Paul  may  plant  and 
Apollos  water  in  vain.  Our  gracious  God  has  not  sent  us  a  warfare  at  our  own 
charge,  nor  left  us  to  labour  in  this  part  of  Ilis  vineyard  without  some  token  of  His 
presence,  and  some  manifestation  of  His  power,  to  make  even  our  feeble  labours 
effectual  in  the  awakening  and  conversion  of  the  souls  of  men.     Our  toils  have  been 

deep,  the  crew  and  passengers  only  just  escaping  with  their  lives.  Whatever, 
therefore,  of  the  late  Mr.  May's  property  was  committed  to  Mr.  Courties  is  for 
ever  lost.  This  dispensation  of  Providence  is  enveloped  in  great  mystciy :  we 
deeply  lament  it,  but  feel  it  is  o\ir  duty  to  submit. 

"I  am  yours  truly, 

"  John  James." 
*  "  Missionai7  Notices,"  vol.  vi.  p.  139. 


316  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

rendered  pleasant,  and  our  absence  from  the  land  of  our  nativitj',  and  from  friends 
whom  we  love,  has  been  almost  forgotten,  when  our  souls  have  been  drawn  out  in 
prayer,  that  this  wilderness  might  become  as  Eden,  and  this  desert  as  the  garden 
of  the  Lord ;  and  when,  in  answer  to  prayer,  we  have  seen  the  plants  of  the  Lord's 
right-hand  planting  springing  up,  and  bearing  fruit  to  His  honour  and  glor\'; — when 
we  have  seen  Ethiopia  stretching  out  her  hands  unto  God  ; — when  we  have  heard 
the  cry,  "What  must  I  do  to  be  saved?"  and  the  joyful  song,  "0  Lord,  I  will 
praise  thee :  for  though  thou  wast  angry  with  me,  thine  anger  is  turned  away,  and 
thou  comfortedst  me  ;" — when  we  have  seen  multitudes  flocking  to  the  house  of  the 
Lord,  and  eagerly  hstening  to  the  word  of  life ; — when  people  of  various  nations 
have  been  led  to  renounce  all  the  refuges  of  lies  in  which  they  have  trusted,  to  cast 
their  greegrees  and  idols  to  the  moles  and  to  the  bats,  and  rely  on  Christ  alone  for 
salvation.  The  details  of  this  glorious  work  are  interesting.  They  would  take  up 
more  of  your  time  than  could  be  conveniently  spared.  However,  we  beg  leave  to 
mention  two  or  three  particulai's.  In  Portuguese-Town,  which  is  inhabited  exclu- 
sively by  re-captured  Africans,  are  several  ilohammedans,  one  of  whom  has  long 
been  accounted  their  principal  man,  and  the  leader  of  their  devotions  in  their 
assemblies.  According  to  their  phrase,  "  Him  sabby  book  too  (very)  much." 
Possessing  an  inquiring  mind,  he  often  conversed  vrith  some  of  our  leaders,  who  are 
his  countrymen  ;  and  arguments  for  and  against  the  religion  of  Mahomed  were 
frequently  adduced.  It  was  urged  by  our  leaders,  "  Momadoo,  (Mahomed,)  he  only 
steal  some  worde  fro  Mosee,  and  some  worde  fro  Jesu  Christee,  and  put  'em  in  a 
book.  And  he  no  stand  fast  and  die  for  de  truth  all  the  same  as  Jesu  Christee ; 
but  -when  'em  want  to  kill  him,  him  run  away  to  Mecca.  Momadoo  no  be  Saviour, 
him  no  can  take  away  you  sin  ;  him  no  can  make  you  feel  peace  in  your  heart ;  but 
suppose  you  believe  in  Christee,  him  be  great  Saviour,  him  can  do  all  dis  for  you." 
His  faith  in  the  false  prophet  has  been  gradually  shaken,  he  has  lately  begun  to 
desire  instruction,  and  has  been  repeatedly  visited  by  our  friends,  who  have  con- 
versed and  prayed  with  him  in  simplicity  and  sincerity.  They  told  him  of  what 
themselves  felt  of  the  inward  power  and  joy  of  their  religion,  and  argued  that  a 
rehgion  which  makes  a  man's  heart  feel  first  the  greatest  depth  of  sorrow,  and  then 
the  highest  enjoyment  arising  from  a  sure  confidence  of  the  mercy  of  God,  must  be 
from  God,  and  consequently  true.  His  mind  has  been  gradually  opened ;  he 
expressed  a  desire  to  meet  in  class,  and  is  now  earnestly  seeking  an  assurance  of 
pardon,  and  walking  in  all  humility  and  patience  before  his  former  companions,  who 
are  very  inveterate  against  him,  and  declare  that  his  head  is  spoiled,  and  that  he 
will  soon  go  into  the  bush  (that  is,  that  he  is  deranged).* 

It  is  truly  refreshing  to  peruse  such  beautiful,  well-written, 
and  interesting  communications  as  these,  containing  as  they  do 
facts  of  such  vast  importance,  exhibiting  the  progress  of  the 
mission,  and  the  Divine  adaptation  of  the  gospel  to  meet  the 
moral  wants  of  the  various  Pagan  and  degraded  tribes  of  Western 
Africa.  We  read  in  these  epistles,  not  only  of  accessions  to  the 
church  in  the  way  of  numerical  strength,  but  of  real  conversions 
from  sin  to  God.  The  cry  extorted,  "  What  must  I  do  to  be 
saved?"  is  followed  with  the  joyful  song,  "O  Lord,  I  will 
praise  thee  !  "     And  this  takes  place_not  with  one  or  two  indi- 


*  ".Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  vi.  pp.  109,  110. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  317 

viduals,  but  people  of  various  nations  are  led  to  renounce  all  the 
refuges  of  lies  in  which  they  had  trusted,  to  cast  their  greegrees 
and  idols  to  the  moles  and  to  the  bats,  and  to  rely  on  Christ  alone 
for  salvation.  Among  these  vv'as  the  principal  or  leading  man  of 
the  Mohammedan  creed,  who,  though  superior  in  point  of  intelli- 
gence to  the  poor  re-captured  Negro,  was  fairly  beaten  in  argu- 
ment by  these  illiterate  creatures,  who  had  proved  that  Christ 
was  infinitely  better  than  IMohammed,  in  that  he  had  imparted 
to  them  a  sweet  sense  of  sins  forgiven,  and  that  this  "  great 
Saviour,  him  can  do  all  dis  for  you."  Such  a  telling  fact,  com- 
ing fi-om  these  simple  people,  and  accompanied  by  the  Holy 
Spirit  of  God,  was  enough  to  shake  the  faith  of  this  man  in  the 
false  prophet,  which  it  gradually  did,  and  he  was  led  earnestly 
to  seek  for  an  assurance  of  pardon.  And  the  genuineness  of 
these  conversions  was  seen  not  only  by  the  new  converts  eagerly 
listening  to  the  public  ministry  of  the  word  of  life,  but  by  their 
exemplary  discharge  of  private  and  family  duties ;  none  who 
were  heads  of  families  neglecting  family  prayer,  and,  when  able, 
in  connexion  therewith,  the  reading  of  God's  word.  Nor  was 
this  all;  for  in  the  small  society  at  the  Gambia  six  persons  had 
begun  in  their  native  tongue  to  call  their  fellow-sinners  to 
repentance ;  and  at  Sierra-Leone  the  same  number  were  regu- 
larly employed  as  local  preachers. 

Thus  did  Jehovah  carry  on  his  work,  through  the  instru- 
mentality of  his  servants.  But,  alas !  "  in  the  midst  of  life " 
and  usefulness  "  we  are  in  death."  This  has  often  been  the 
case  on  some  of  our  mission-stations ;  but  in  none  more  so  than 
in  Western  Africa.  And  we  have  again  to  dwell  upon  the 
mournful  subject  of  mortality.  The  latter  of  the  preceding 
letters,  it  is  believed,  was  the  last  official  communication  which 
the  writers  made  to  England ;  for  the  hands  which  wrote  it,  in 
a  few  months  after  this,  "  forgot  their  cunning ;"  and  these  two 
promising  young  men  were  both  cut  down  as  flowers  of  the 
field,  and  numbered  with  the  dead,  their  noble  spirits  and  pre- 
cious souls  being  received  into  the  paradise  of  God. 

The  particulars  of  their  sickness  and  death  were  communi- 
cated to  London  by  two  of  the  brethren  of  the  Church  Mission- 
ary Society,  who  had  very  kindly  visited  them  in  their  illness, 
and  witnessed  their  last  moments.  The  letter,  immediately  on 
its  arrival,  was  published  in  the  Wesleyan  "  Missionary 
Notices,"  and  was  prefaced  with  the  following  observations  by 
the  general  secretaries  of  our  missions  : — 

We  have  just  received  the  distressing  intelligence  that  our  valuable  missionaries, 
Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck,  have  fallen  a  sacrifice  to  the  dreadful  epidemic  fever. 


318  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

which  has  for  some  time  heen  raging  with  fatal  violence  in  this  colony.  In  their 
last  hours  they  received  the  most  kind  and  brotherly  attention  from  the  missionaries 
of  the  Church  Missionary  Society,  to  whom  we  feel  greatly  indebted  for  this  exem- 
plification of  that  true  Christian  charity  which,  on  various  occasions,  has  eminently 
distinguished  the  missionary  character  in  every  part  of  the  widely-extended  stations 
of  missionary  occupation. 

The  great  loss  thus  occasioned  to  the  Society  and  congregations  by  the  decease 
of  their  laborious  and  beloved  pastors,  will,  we  trust,  be  regarded  by  other  devoted 
young  men,  of  true  missionary  zeal,  voluntarily  offering  themselves  as  the  self- 
denying  and  fearless  successors  of  those  who  have  fallen  in  the  great  and  sacred 
work  of  ministering  the  word  of  salvation  to  the  poor  benighted  Africans. 

The  following  extract  of  a  letter  from  the  missionaries  of  the  Church  Missionary 
Society  will  afford  evidence,  that  our  dear  brethren  found  that  peace  in  death  which 
they  had  preached  to  others  : — 

Extract  of  a  Letter  from  the  Rev.  Messrs.  Betts  and  Davey,  Missionaries  of  the 
Church  Missionary  Society,  dated  Free-Town,  July  22d,  1829. 

It  is  with  feelings  more  easily  conceived  than  described,  that  we  are  called 
upon  to  address  you  under  the  mournful  circumstances  which  we  are  about  to 
narrate. 

You  probably  are  aware  that  an  epidemic  fever  has  for  a  considerable  time 
raged  in  Free-Town,  by  which  a  large  number,  both  of  Europeans  and  of  natives, 
have  been  cut  off.  It  will  grieve  your  minds,  we  are  sure,  as  it  has  done  ours,  to 
know  that  your  Society  has  been  deprived  of  the  valuable  services  of  your  repre- 
sentatives in  this  colony. 

We  suppose  you  have  heard  that  the  late  Rev.  W.  R.  Peck  had  the  usual 
fever  of  this  colony,  early  in  the  month  of  May  last,  from  which  he  recovered,  and 
was  enabled  again  to  resume  his  labours  for  a  short  time.  We  have  now  to  com- 
municate that  he  was  seized  with  the  epidemic  fever  about  the  27th  of  June,  and 
that  he  continued  to  suffer  under  it  until  the  afternoon  of  the  3d  of  July,  when  his 
happy  spirit  took  its  flight  to  the  mansions  of  bhss.  He  was  visited,  during  his 
illness,  by  both  of  us,  and  evinced  a  calm  resignation  to  the  will  of  his  heavenlv 
Father  in  the  approach  of  death,  though  it  was  evident  he  keenly  felt  for  the  cause 
in  which  he  was  embarked,  and  for  the  prosperity  of  your  mission  in  this  colony,  in 
particular.  Of  him  it  may  truly  be  said,  that  he  was  a  devoted  and  a  zealous  mis- 
sionary. 

The  Rev.  W.  Munro  had  enjoyed  almost  unintennipted  health  from  the  time  of 
his  arrival,  up  to  the  time  when  he  was  attacked  by  that  disease  which  terminated 
fatally.  He  had  been  incessant  in  his  attentions  to  his  afflicted  brother  Peck,  up 
to  the  time  of  his  decease ;  at  which  period  it  was  conceived  better  for  him  to 
remove  fi'om  his  residence  to  that  of  one  of  those  who  now  address  you,  (the  Rev. 
W.  K.  Betts,)  that  he  might  there  enjoy  that  rest  of  body,  and  composure  of  mind, 
which  he  so  much  needed.  With  tins  advice  he  complied ;  but  the  same  evening 
the  symptoms  of  fever  appeared.  Medical  aid  was  immediately  called  in,  and 
promptly  rendered  by  Dr.  Boyle,  the  colonial  surgeon^  whose  unwearied  attentions 
to  both  your  servants,  during  their  illness,  deserve  the  highest  commendations. 
While  we  regret,  however,  that  his  skill  in  this  case,  as  in  the  other,  proved 
ineffectual,  it  is  a  consolation  to  our  minds,  and  will,  no  doubt,  be  an  alleviation  to 
your  sorrow,  to  know  that  our  departed  brother  Munro  appeared  to  have  his  soul 
firmly  stayed  on  the  merits  of  the  Redeemer ;  and  though  he  at  times  experienced 
aberration  of  mind,  yet  he  never  betrayed  any  fear  of  death,  or  doubt  of  his  interest 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEttRA-LEONE.  319 

in  the  Saviour.  He  was  removed  from  a  suffering,  to  (we  doubt  notj  a  glorified, 
state,  on  the  morning  of  the  8th  instant.  His  end  was  peace,  and  his  works  shall 
follow  him.* 

An  interesting  Memoir  of  Mr.  Peck,  the  first  of  these  bre- 
thren who  died,  was  written  and  published  by  his  father,  in 
1830,  which  has  reached  a  third  edition :  and  I  have  great 
pleasure  in  recommending  this  little  work  to  the  friends  of 
missions  generally,  especially  to  young  people, — being  per- 
suaded it  Mould  fan  the  flame  of  missionary  zeal,  and  thus 
help  forward  the  good  cause.  But,  notwithstanding  an  account 
of  the  character,  life,  and  death  of  this  amiable  and  excellent 
young  man  have  been  before  the  public  for  some  years,  from 
which  we  have  already  quoted,  he  is  entitled  to  some  further 
notice  in  this  place. 

William  Rowland  Peck  was  born  at  Loughborough,  on 
the  29th  of  December,  1805  ;  and  was  baptized  by  Dr.  Coke, 
on  February  28th,  1806.  In  his  eighteenth  year  he  was  savingly 
converted  to  God,  and  became  a  zealous  and  laborious  teacher 
in  the  sabbath-school,  and  made  himself  useful  in  a  variety  of 
ways.  Soon  after  this,  he  began  to  keep  a  journal  of  his 
Christian  experience ;  from  which  it  appears  that  he  first 
became  impressed  with  the  importance  of  the  missionary  enter- 
prise by  reading  Campbell's  Travels  in  South  Africa.  In  his 
nineteenth  year  he  attended  a  missionary  meeting  at  Leicester ; 
and  he  writes :  "  The  condition  of  the  Heathen  world  often 
fills  my  soul  with  longing  desires  to  be  with  them  :  my  soul  is 
on  fire  for  their  salvation."  During  the  same  year,  the  mis- 
sionary meeting  at  Loughborough  was  an  interesting  one.  Mr. 
Peck  called  it  "  a  high  day ;"  and  further  added  :  ''  Such  times 
as  these  fill  me  with  zeal  for  the  conversion  of  sinners.  O  my 
sold  yearns  over  them  !  O  that  I  might  now  go  and  tell  them,, 
'  Jesus  died  ! '  O  how  I  long  to  be  traversing  the  dreary  plains^ 
of  Africa !  Danger  seems  only  to  animate  me.  The  more  I 
hear  of  the  dangers  and  difficulties  of  a  missionary  life  in  Africa, 
the  more  anxious  am  I  to  go."  In  his  twentieth  year  he  began 
to  preach  ;  and  though  he  went  to  the  house  with  much  fear 
and  trembling,  the  Lord  was  with  him,  and  he  "had  much 
liberty."  Though  naturally  diffident  and  modest,  yet,  by  pay- 
ing considerable  attention  to  the  composition  of  his  sermons, 
and  by  fervent  and  believing  pra3^er  casting  himself  upon  the 
fidelity  of  God,  "  Lo,  I  am  Avith  you,"  he  generalh^  realized  the 


*  "Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  vi.  p.  153. 


320  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

Divine  presence  and  aid  in  addressing  a  public  assembly.  He 
soon  Ijccame  a  very  acceptable  and  useful  local  preacher.  Hav- 
ing offered  himself  as  a  candidate  for  the  missionary  work,  he 
passed  the  usual  examinations  with  credit  in  his  own  circuit,  in 
the  district-meeting,  and  before  the  Missionary  Committee  in 
London.  About  this  time  he  wrote  in  his  journal  his  views  of 
the  missionary  work,  aud  his  replies  to  the  objections  which 
some  had  made  as  to  the  motives  by  which  he  was  influenced. 
With  regard  to  the  latter  he  says  : — 

I  Ijelieve  that  I  am  influenced  by  no  improper  motive.     For, 

1.  If  I  consulted  ease,  I  could  enjoy  it  at  home  ;  and  do  not,  cannot,  expect  it 
there. 

2.  If  I  sought  or  desired  fame,  I  am  conscious  that  I  could  obtain  it  at  home, 
in  a  way  much  more  agreeable  to  human  nature. 

3.  If  my  views  were  mercenary,  I  have  a  good  prospect  for  Ufe  at  home,  which 
I  must  relinquish,  if  I  engage  in  this  work. 

Some  persons  have  attributed  unworthy  motives,  and  urged  objections ;  as, 

1.  "It  is  only  a  youthful  feeling,  wliich  will  soon  die  away."  To  which  I 
answer.  Whether  it  will  soon  die  away,  I  cannot  tell ;  I  only  know  that  it  now 
burns,  and  with  constantly  increasing  vigour ;  and  I  am  persuaded  it  will  never 
die,  while  there  is  a  spark  of  the  life  and  love  of  God  in  my  soul. 

2.  It  has  been  attributed  to  a  love  of  travelling,  and  a  desire  to  see  foreign  lands. 
I  answer,  I  do  not  recollect  that  I  ever  felt  a  love  and  desire  of  this  kind,  uncon- 
nected with  a  love  for  souls,  and  a  desire  to  proclaim  Christ  crucified,  the  only  hope 
of  a  ruined  world. 

3.  It  has  been  said,  I  have  entered  on  it  thoughtlessly,  and  have  not  counted 
the  cost.  I  answer,  I  have  not  entered  on  this  important  step  thoughtlessly :  of 
this  I  am  confident.  AVith  respect  to  the  latter,  I  answer,  I  have  counted  the  cost 
thus  :  the  loss  of  ease  and  pleasm-e,  and  of  my  worldly  prospects ;  the  loss  of  the 
delightful  Christian  privileges  I  now  enjoy,  and  of  all  the  enjoyments  of  civilized 
life  ;  and,  more  than  all,  the  loss  of  dear  relatives  and  friends  and  companions. 

I  say,  I  have  counted  on  the  loss  of  those  who  arc  dear  to  me  as  my  own 

life ;  and  this  connected  with  a  persuasion  that  I  shall  never  more  behold  their 
faces  in  the  flesh,  but  a  hope  that  I  shall  one  day  meet  them  again  on  the  blissful 

plains  of  everlasting  felicity I  have  counted  not  only  on  the  loss  of  these 

things,  but,  in  exchange,  I  expect  toils  and  labour,  pain  and  hardships,  of  various 
kinds,  and  from  various  sources,  and  a  possibility  of  persecution  and  violent  death. 
Thus  I  have  counted ;  and  on  these  things  I  cannot  look  with  indifference.  I  do 
not,  cannot,  review  them,  even  at  a  cUstance,  with  the  feelings  of  a  Stoic  :  the  bare 
idea  of  some  of  these  circumstances  makes  my  heart  to  melt,  and  my  eyes  overflow ; 
but  "  the  love  of  Christ  constraineth  me." 

Such  were  the  views  and  feelings  of  this  young  missionary  on 
embarking  in  this  glorious  cause ;  and  "  dangers  only  seemed 
to  animate  him,"  Early  on  Tuesday  morning,  September  9th, 
1828,  "  he,  without  shedding  a  tear,  quitted  his  father's  house 
for  ever."  He  was  accompanied  by  some  of  his  relations  to 
Leicester,  where  he  took  coach  for  London,    After  his  departure 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


321 


a  scrap  of  paper  was  found   in  the   room  which  he  had  just 

quitted,  with  the  following  lines  : — 

"  The  sultn'  climes  of  Africa  I  '11  choose ; 
There  will  I  toil,  and  sinners'  bonds  unloose  ; 
There  will  I  live,  and  draw  my  latest  breath, 
And  in  my  Jesu's  service  meet  a  stingless  death." 

But  though  Mr.  Peck  left  his  father^s  house  "  without  shed- 
ding a  tear,"  this  did  not  arise  from  indifference,  or  want  of 
feehng;  for,  in  counting  the  cost,  he  had  reckoned  "  on  the  loss 
of  those  who  are  dear  to  me  as  my  own  life;'^  and  to  himself, 
as  well  as  to  the  few  who  witnessed  it,  the  moment  of  his 
departure,  when  he  took  coach  at  Leicester,  "  was  one  of  bitter 
and  tearful  anguish."  Divine  grace  alone  sustained  him  in  this 
hour,  and  enabled  him  to  make,  freely  and  voluntarily,  this 
painful  sacrifice.  Besides,  long  before  this,  he  had  written  in 
his  journal  as  follows  : — "  Three  days  since,  a  good,  well- 
meaning,  but  certainly  injudicious,  person,  by  some  means, 
heard  of  my  intention  to  go  out  on  the  foreign  service,  and 
came  direct  to  our  house,  and  told  ni}'  dear  mother,  in  a  most 
abrupt  manner,  the  whole  affair.  This  was  certainly  ill-judged. 
I  had  asked  and  received  proper  advice  in  that  particular,  and 
he  ought  first  to  have  mentioned  it  to  me.  The  consequence 
is,  my  mother  is  much  distressed,  and  will  now,  through  his 
injudicious  conduct,  sufl'er  much  and  unnecessarily  for  a  consi- 
derable time.  She  has  not  yet  mentioned  it  to  me;  but  I 
hourly  expect  and  dread  it.  O  my  God,  give  me  strength  to 
be  resolute,  and  give  her  grace  to  bear  it ! " 

The  particulars  of  what  passed  between  the  mother  and  the 
son  on  this  trying  occasion,  are  worthy  of  being  placed  upon 
record.  The  mother  "kept  all  these  things,  and  pondered 
them  in  her  heart,"  for  several  months,  before  she  could  sum- 
mon courage  to  speak  to  her  son  upon  the  subject.  At  length, 
seeing  the  way  was  opening,  and  the  time  of  his  departure  was 
drawing  nigh,  with  a  heart  almost  broken  with  anguish  at  the 
loss  of  such  a  son,  though  in  so  good  a  cause,  she  said,  "  Row- 
land, if  you  go  to  Western  Africa,  you  will  be  the  death  of  me." 
What  did  the  much-loved  son  say  in  reply  ?  Why,  though  he 
loved  his  mother,  and  had  "  dreaded  this  hour,"  yet  God  had 
answered  his  prayer,  and  "  gave  him  strength  to  be  resolute ; " 
and,  looking  at  his  mother,  with  tearful  and  filial  affection,  he 
said,  "  Mother,  if  you  do  not  consent  to  my  going  to  Western 
Africa,  you  will  be  the  death  of  me."  In  a  short  time  after 
this,  and  after  much  prayer,  the  mother  resigned  him  to  the 
work,  "  saying,  she  saw  it  was  of  the  Lord,  and  she  would  not 

Y 


323 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


resist  His  will."  His  dear  parents  were  both  present  at  liis 
ordination  in  London,  or  rather  Greenwicli,  where  he  again 
stated,  "  I  arn  not  only  Avilling  to  go  to  Africa,  but  I  long  to 
go."  *  His  biographer  writes  :  "  I  will  not  revert  to  the  final 
parting :  grace  was  given  when  grace  was  needed."  The  son^s 
prayer,  that  he  might  have  "  strength  to  be  resolute,  and  his 
mother  grace  to  bear  it,"  was  graciously  and  fully  answered ; 
for  when  the  painful  tidings  of  his  death  reached  Loughborough, 
the  mother  Avas  even  more  resigned  than  the  father  was ;  and 
in  a  few  years  afterwards  she  died,  and  "her  end  was  most 
peaceful  and  happy." 

We  have  already  accompanied,  in  imagination  at  least,  this 
promising  young  missionary  to  Africa.  We  have  seen  him  land 
at  Sierra-Leone,  witnessed  his  hearty  reception  by  the  people, 
heard  him  preach  "the  glorious  gospel  of  the  blessed  God," 
listened  to  his  joyous  expressions  of  gratitude  to  God  for  thus 
permitting  him  to  labour  in  the  work  on  which  his  heart  was 
fixed.  We  have  read  his  interesting  communications,  beheld 
the  work  of  the  Lord  revive  through  his  instrumentality ;  and 
now  we  must  see  him  die;  and  in  death  we  shall  see  "the 
ruling  principle," — his  great  love  to  the  work  in  which  his  soul 
delighted.  The  Church  missionaries,  who  communicated  some 
account  of  his  death,  stated  that,  "  during  his  illness,  he  evinced 
a  calm  resignation  to  the  will  of  his  heavenly  Father  in  the 
approach  of  death,  though  it  was  evident  he  keenly  felt  for  the 
cause  in  which  he  was  embarked,  and  for  the  prosperity  of  the 
missions."  And  one  of  them  subsequently  communicated  some 
further  particulars,  from  which  it  appears  that  his  death  was 
more  than  peaceful, — it  was  triumphant. 

"  His  dying  hour  brought  glory  to  his  God." 


*  In  a  letter  recently  received  from  his  father  at  Loughborough,  this  longing 
desire  is  exhibited  in  a  strong  light.  Having  some  doubt  or  fear  in  his  mind,  that 
he  should  not  pass  the  examining  Committee  in  London,  he  had  said  to  some  per- 
sonal friends,  "  If  the  Committee  will  not  accept  me,  I  will  ask  my  father  for  my 
worldly  portion,  and  go  to  Africa  at  my  own  expense :  if  my  father  refuse  me,  I 
will  beg  my  way  to  the  sea-shore,  and  work  my  passage  over."  "  This,"  adds  Mr. 
Peck,  "  w'as  doubtless  extravagant ;  but  it  shows  the  earnest  desire  of  his  heart  to 
precch  to  the  poor  Africans  the  unsearchable  riches  of  Christ."  In  the  same  letter 
Mr.  Peck  mentions,  that,  in  his  son's  Will,  his  last  words  were,  "  My  earnest  desire 
is,  that  my  dear  friends  will  always  stand  by  the  holy  missionary  cause  ;  and  espe- 
cially that  they  will  never  cease  to  pity  poor  Africa."  The  last  three  words  were 
placed  as  a  motto  on  the  tablet  put  up  to  his  memory  in  the  Wesleyan  chapel, 
Loughborough  ;  and  the  father  adds,  "  And  they  often  quicken  me  in  speaking  and 
giving  and  labouring  in  the  cause." 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


3.23 


He  was  sensible  to  the  last  day,  except  occasionally,  wlieu  for 
•a  little  time  he  wandered  and  was  delirious.  He  never  ex- 
pressed any  thing  like  regret  at  having  come  to  Africa.  The 
day  before  he  died,  he  said,  "  Nothing  grieves  me  so  much  as 
the  thought  that  my  death  will  cause  the  hands  of  our  friends 
ill  England  to  hang  down.  My  parents,  too,  will  feel  it  much." 
Towards  the  closing  scene,  when  he  could  not  speak,  and  those 
about  him  thought  his  voice  would  be  no  more  heard,  he  broke 
forth  into  an  attempt  to  sing, — 

"  Happy,  if  with  my  latest  breath 
I  may  hut  gasp  His  name,"  &c., 

and  lifted  up  his  dying  hands  to  heaven,  in  token  of  joy  and 
victory.  He  expired  July  3d,  1829,  in  the  twenty-fourth  year 
of  his  age.  He  was  a  little-bodied  man,  but  possessed  a  mis- 
sionary soul  of  no  common  order. 

William  Munro  was  converted  to  God  when  very  young. 
He  resided  at  Greenwich,  in  the  Deptford  circuit,  where  his 
labours  as  a  local  preacher  were  both  useful  and  acceptable. 
His  call  to  the  ministry  was  clear  and  satisfactory ;  but  he  felt 
it  his  duty  to  preach  the  gospel  to  the  Heathen,  and,  preferring 
the  post  of  danger  to  any  other,  he  requested  to  be  sent 
to  Sierra-Leone.  He  and  Mr.  Peck  were  solemnly  ordained 
to  the  missionary  work  in  the  Wesleyan  chapel,  Green- 
wich, on  "Wednesday  evening,  September  17th,  1828;  and, 
soon  after,  they  sailed  together  in  the  ship  "  Ocean,"  Captain 
Major,  bound  for  the  shores  of  Africa.  He  was  a  young  man 
of  good  understanding,  deep  piety,  amiable  manners,  and  great 
diligence.  His  ministerial  gifts  were  very  promising;  and,  had 
he  lived,  he  would  soon  have  become  a  most  able  minister  of 
the  New  Testament.  He  and  his  colleague,  being  possessed  of 
genial  and  kindred  spirits,  soon  formed  a  warm  attachment 
for  each  other,  which  continued  to  the  last.  He  was  incessant 
in  his  attentions  to  his  afflicted  brother  Peck,  and  in  his  journal 
daily  marked  the  progress  of  that  disease  which  removed  him  to 
a  better  world.  During  the  height  of  the  fever,  he  "rubbed  his 
forehead,  bathed  it  with  vinegar,  and  kissed  him."  On  the 
morning  of  the  day  on  which  Mr.  Peck  died,  Mr.  Munro  wrote 
in  his  journal,  "My  dear  brother  has  passed  a  restless  night, 
but  without  much  pain.  Dr.  Boyle  has  just  left ;  says  he  is  in 
the  last  stage.  O  my  God,  have  mercy  !  O,  what  shall  I  say  to 
this?  Spare  him  yet  a  little  longer!  But  why  do  I  repine? 
Thou  wilt  do  all  things  well." 

Y   2 


32i  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Up  to  this  time  IVIr.  Munro  had  enjoyed  almost  uninter- 
rupted health,  and  had  laboured  faithfully  and  successfully  in 
-the  cause  of  God;  but  he  deeply  felt  the  loss  of  his  colleague; 
and  though  removed  to  the  residence  of  one  of  the  missionaries 
belonging  to  the  Church  Missionary  Society,  that  he  might 
enjoy  that  rest  of  body  and  composure  of  mind  which  he  so 
much  needed,  he  was  seized  with  the  same  fever,  that  very 
evening,  which  had  deprived  him  of  his  faithful  friend  and 
brother ;  and  in  fiv^e  short  days  his  valuable  life  was  terminated. 
He  died,  having  his  soul  firmly  stayed  on  the  merits  of  the 
Redeemer,  July  8th,  1829. 

The  premature  death  of  this  excellent,  affectionate,  pious,  and 
intelligent  young  man  and  devoted  missionary,  was  deeply 
lamented  both  at  home  and  abroad.  He  was  buried  by  the  side 
of  his  companion  and  friend  Mr.  Peck,  ]\Ir.  INIay  being  laid  on 
the  opposite  side.  "A  large  African  plum-tree  grows  over  the 
graves,  and  the  dear  missionaries  rest  under  its  shade.^^ 

The  sudden  removal  by  death  of  these  two  excellent  and 
pious  young  men, — who  were  so  admirably  qualified  for  the  work 
in  which  they  had  engaged,* — coming  as  it  did  so  soon  after 
the  lamented  deaths  of  their  predecessors,  INIessrs.  May  and 
Courties,  produced  in  the  minds  of  the  friends  of  missions  in 
England  an  unusual  degree  of  sympathy,  and  deep  feeling  of 
regret  at  the  great  loss  of  life  occasioned  in  carrying  on  these 
interesting  missions.  Some,  indeed,  who  were  well-wishers  and 
liberal  contributors  to  the  cause,  Avent  so  far  as  to  question  the 
propriety  of  sending  European  missionaries  to  so  sickly  and 
deathly  a  place.  But  not  one  of  those  who  had  sickened  and  died 
there,  ever  expressed  the  smallest  regret  at  the  sacrifice  they  had 
made,  and  several  had  written  to  the  effect,  that,  "  while  men 
actuated  by  a  love  of  gold  expose  themselves  to  such  a  climate, 
surely  the  love  of  souls  ought  not  to  be  less  influential  on  us." 
The  subject  of  the  preceding  brief  sketch  had  said  to  his  suffer- 
ing colleague,  onl}^  two  days  before  he  died,  "  Suppose  the  Lord 
should  take  us  both  away  before  we  return  to  England,  what  a 
glorious  meeting  we  should  have  in  heaven ! "  "  O  yes,"  he  said, 
"it  will  be  a  glorious  meeting  indeed;  we  shall  often  talk  of 

*  Without  intending  the  shghtest  disparagement  to  any  of  their  predecessors,  it 
may  with  truth  be  said  that  Messrs.  Munro  and  Peck  were  greatly  beloved  by  the 
people  of  their  charge ;  and  it  is  a  fact  that,  though  their  sojourn  in  the  colony 
was  so  short,  during  that  time  some  of  the  seceders  or  nonconformist  Methodists 
returned  to  the  bosom  of  the  society,  and  remained  there  till  they  themselves  were 
removed  bv  death  to  a  better  world. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  325 

Sierra-Leone ;  but  tlie  poor  people  at  home  would  be  much  dis- 
tressed. However,  God  will  do  all  things  well ;  all  will  be  riglit.^' 
By  the  "people  athome^^  being  "much  distressed,"  Mr.  Peck  did 
not  simply  mean  his  own  relations  and  friends,  but  the  friends 
of  missions  generally,  as  is  evident  from  what  he  said  the  day 
before  his  death.  Besides,  he  had  previously  touched  upon  this 
subject,  in  the  letter  addressed  to  his  friends  at  Loughborough, 
which  is  found  in  a  preceding  part  of  this  chapter.  Some  of 
the  nonconformist  Methodists  had  said  to  some  of  the  members 
of  our  ov.'n  society,  "  Your  white  ministers  all  die :  the  society 
in  England  will  send  j^ou  no  more:  you  had  better  join  us;" 
and  Mr.  Peck  in  his  letter  asks,  "  Now,  is  it  possible  that  this 
insinuation  will  ever  be  the  fact  ?  for  it  is  urged  in  England  as 
well  as  in  Africa.  Is  it  possible  that  missionary  zeal  should  so 
far  decline,  that  this  station  should  ever  want  a  man  ?  I  hope 
not,  I  believe  not :  I  would  not  hesitate  to  give  more  than  my 
own  poor  life  for  this  colony." 

The  fears  expressed  by  this  dying  youth,  that  the  announce- 
ment of  both  their  deaths  would  occasion  much  distress  at 
home,  were  well  grounded ;  but  it  did  not  operate  to  such  an 
extent  as  to  lead  to  the  abandonment  of  the  mission ;  and  he 
was  quite  correct  in  hoping  and  believing,  that  that  station  would 
never  want  a  man  to  fill  up  the  ranks  of  those  who  had  fallen. 
An  encouraging  affirmation,  the  reader  will  recollect,  had  been 
made  by  the  Missionary  Secretaries,  on  the  departure  of  Messrs. 
Munro  and  Peck  to  succeed  Messrs.  Courties  and  May,  who 
were  at  that  time  shortly  expected  in  England.  The  Committee 
had  said,  "  We  are  happy  to  state,  that,  though  we  never  send 
any  missionary  to  these  places  who  does  not  voluntarily  engage 
himself  in  the  work,  and  notwithstanding  the  hazard  which  is 
supposed  to  be  attached  to  a  residence  there,  we  have  never  yet 
been  without  men,  when  wanted,  to  encounter  all  the  perils  of 
the  climate,  for  the  sake  of  those  who  need  their  spiritual 
instruction."  This  statement,  it  should  be  remembered,  was 
made  about  twelve  months  before,  during  which  period  four 
missionaries  had  fallen  victims  to  the  pestilential  atmosphere 
of  Africa;  so  that  it  was  now  no  longer  a  supposed  hazard  to  em- 
bark in  this  mission,  but  the  men  who  went  there  must  go  with 
their  lives  in  their  hands ;  willing  to  live  or  to  die,  as  their  Divine 
Master  thought  fit.  The  Committee  were  still  substantially  correct; 
for,  when  the  time  of  need  came,  then  came  the  promised  help. 
Christian  heroism  aud  devoted  zeal  furnished  a  supply ;  *  and 

*  A  supply  of  one,  though  two  were  really  needed ;  but  only  one  suitable  person 
having  offered  at  that  lime,  only  one  was  sent. 


326  WESTERN    COxVST    OF    AFRICA. 

Divine  Providence  had  so  ordered  it,  that  a  personal  friend  of 
Mr.  Peck  was  now  ready  and  Aviliing  to  succeed  him  at  this 
very  station ;  and  John  Keightley,  of  Loughborough,  sailed  in 
the  month  of  December  of  the  same  year  for  Sierra-Leone. 

Mr.  Keightley,  after  a  very  pleasant  voyage,  arrived  at 
Sierra-Leone  on  the  27th  of  January,  1830;  and  on  the  23d  of 
the  following  mouth  communicated  some  interesting  particulars 
respecting  the  state  of  the  mission.  Though  the  societies  had 
been  deprived  of  their  pastors  for  about  six  months,  "  all  the 
places  of  worship  had  been  kept  open,  and  divine  service  regu- 
larly performed  in  all  of  them  since  the  death  of  the  mission- 
aries.^' He  had,  on  the  preceding  sabbath,  administered  the 
sacrament  of  the  Lord's  supper  to  about  two  hundred  persons  at 
the  Maroon  chapel ;  and  he  added,  "  O  that  the  friends  and  sup- 
porters of  missions  had  seen  these  devout  worshippers  com- 
memorate the  Lord's  death  !  It  would  have  gladdened  their 
hearts,  and  have  constrained  them  to  say,  *  Blessed  are  the  eyes 
that  see  what  we  see  ! "' 

During  the  year  1829  the  lives  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Marshall  at 
the  Gambia  had  been  mercifully  preserved  through  the  rainy 
season,  though  they  had  suffered  severely  from  repeated  attacks 
of  fever ;  and  at  its  close,  being  much  debilitated,  they  went  to 
reside  for  a  short  time  at  the  Govei'nment  convalescent-house  at 
Cape  St.  Mary's.  This  house  is  built  on  an  elevated  rock  on 
the  shore  of  the  Atlantic,  and  is  about  half  a  mile  from  the 
mouth  of  the  Gambia :  the  air  is,  therefore,  comparatively  cool 
and  refreshing,  and  they  both  derived  some  advantage  from 
their  new  situation.  This,  however,  was  but  temporary,  and 
thej'  subsequently  took  a  short  sea-voyage,  and  went  to  Goree, 
where  Mr.  Marshall  preached  witii  encouraging  prospects  of 
success.  On  the  23d  of  January,  1830,  Mr.  Marshall  returned 
to  St.  Mary's,  fully  restored  to  health ;  and  he  writes :  "  Mrs. 
Marshall  and  myself  are  both  able  to  attend  to  our  regular 
work ;  she  to  her  little  school,  and  I  to  preaching,  &c." 

The  amount  of  annual  subscriptions  to  the  mission-fund,  at 
the  Gambia,  was  that  year  £53.  At  Sierra-Leone  I  find  no 
return,  which  was  probably  owing  to  the  deaths  of  the  mission- 
aries. The  numbers  in  the  society  were, —  Sierra-Leone,  two  hun- 
dred and  fifty-seven ;  St.  Mary's,  forty-five.  Interesting  commu- 
nications from  Mr.  Marshall  were  published  in  the  "  Missionary 
Notices"  for  March  and  July,  1830.  The  latter  of  these  is 
dated  February  26th,  1830,  in  which  he  gives  some  account  of 
two  natives  of  the  Jollof  tribe,  who  Avere  very  acceptable  local 
preachers,  and  whom  he  wished  to  employ  as  assistant  mission- 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEllRA-LEONE.  327 

aries,  which  they  subsequently  became.  But  before  instructions 
to  that  effect  were  received  from  the  General  Committee,  Mr. 
Marshall  was  called  away  by  death,  and  the  station  was  left  for 
some  time  without  a  missionary. 

RiCHiVRD  Marshall  was  a  native  of  West-Thirston,  North- 
umberland, and  was  born  December  28th,  1804.  He  was 
favoured  with  pious  parents,  and  very  early  became  a  subject  of 
religious  impressions.  His  convictions  of  sin  were  afterwards 
more  deep  and  powerful ;  and,  in  his  nineteenth  year,  his  godly 
sorrow  was  turned  into  spiritual  joy,  and  he  could  say,  "  Jesus 
loved  me,  and  gave  himself  for  me."  From  that  time  he 
"  enjoyed  sweet  communion  with  the  Lord."  This  great  change 
took  place  at  Newcastle,  at  which  time  he  was  residing  with 
an  elder  brother.  From  his  conversion  until  his  death,  Mr. 
Marshall  invariably  manifested  his  love  to  God,  by  a  burn- 
ing zeal  for  the  salvation  of  man.  Possessing  an  excellent  gift 
in  addressing  the  throne  of  grace,  he  was  soon  noticed  by  his 
brethren,  who  pressed  him  to  give  a  word  of  exhortation,  which, 
after  some  hesitation,  he  did.  Soon  after  this  he  began  to 
preach;  and  those  who  heard  him  were  fully  convinced  that 
God  designed  him  to  be  useful  as  a  public  teacher.  He  was 
employed  for  some  time  as  a  hired  local  preacher  in  some  of  the 
destitute  parts  of  his  native  county,  Wark  being  the  place  of  his 
abode.  He  went  to  most  of  the  villages  within  fifteen  miles  of 
that  place,  and  estabUshed  regular  preaching  at  twelve  or  four- 
teen of  them,  which  he  visited  once  a  fortnight.  To  fulfil  his 
appointments  lie  had  frequently  to  walk  thirty  miles,  on  roads 
which  were  almost  impassable,  and  preach  three  times  on  the 
sabbath,  with  but  poor  accommodations  at  the  end  of  the  day. 
But  in  the  midst  of  these  toils  he  literally  rejoiced.  In  some  of 
the  places  he  formed  small  societies,  several  being  awakened 
under  his  ministry ;  and,  after  labouring  here  ten  mouths,  he 
left  nearly  fifty  persons  in  religious  fellowship. 

From  the  first,  he  had  considered  himself  as  especially  called 
to  labour  in  the  mission-field  ;  and  though  his  family  felt  reluc- 
tant to  part  with  him,  and  were  opposed  to  his  going  to  Western 
Africa,  he  was  constrained  to  offer  himself  to  the  Missionary 
Committee  for  any  part  of  the  Heathen  world,  not  excepting 
even  Western  Africa.  He  was  accordingly  appointed,  in  the 
autumn  of  1828,  to  labour  at  St.  Mary^s,  on  the  River  Gambia. 
On  taking  leave  of  his  friends  at  Newcastle,  Mr.  Marshall 
writes :  "  This  evening  I  was  called  to  that  which  I  have  long 
(headed,  the  parting  with  all  that  is  dear  on  earth.     But  how 


328  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

true  is  the  word  of  tlie  Lord,  '  As  thy  days,  so  shall  thy  strength 
be  !'  While  I  was  taking  leave  of  my  parents,  brethren,  sisters, 
friends,  I  felt  power  to  commit  them  all  to  my  heavenly  Father, 
in  good  hope  of  meeting  them  at  his  right  hand  at  last/^  After 
remaining  in  London  a  short  time,  he,  with  Mrs.  Marshall, 
embarked  on  board  the  "  Redman,^^  bound  for  the  Gambia. 

His  views  and  feelings  on  his  arrival  we  have  previously 
recorded.  He  was  eminently  qualified  for  the  work  to  which 
he  was  appointed,  being  intelligent,  prudent,  and  laborious : 
nor  was  he  less  pious :  he  not  only  possessed  the  gift  of  prayer, 
but  lived  in  the  spirit  of  prayer  and  devotedness  to  God,  He 
continued  to  labour,  often  in  great  bodily  Aveakness,  till  the 
middle  of  the  second  rainy  season,  when,  after  five  days'  illness, 
he  was  taken  to  his  eternal  reward.  He  died  August  19th, 
1830,  in  the  twenty-sixth  year  of  his  age,  and  after  a  residence 
in  Africa  of  twenty-one  months  and  one  day.* 

At  the  time  of  his  death.  IMrs.  INIarshall  was  confined  with 
the  same  fever,  together  with  their  infant  son.  At  the  urgent 
recommendation  of  her  medical  attendant,  she  embraced  the 
only  opportunity  which  offered  for  sailing  to  England,  and  left 
the  Gambia  two  days  after  her  dear  husband's  decease,  accom- 
panied by  a  faithful  Negro  servant-girl,  named  Sally.  She 
arrived  at  Bristol  on  the  1st  of  October,  in  a  state  of  great 
bodily  weakness,  and  much  mental  suffering.  Nothing  in  the 
course  of  the  day  appeared  to  indicate  immediate  danger;  but, 
during  the  evening,  she  was  seized  with  strong  convulsions,  and 
the  next  morning  was  delivered  of  a  dead  child.  The  convul- 
sions continued,  Avithout  intermission,  until  the  evening,  when 
her  sufferings  terminated  in  death,  and  her  spirit  joined  its 
mate  in  the  skies,  to  be  parted  no  more. 

Mrs.  Marshall's  maiden  name  was  Liddell.  She  was  a 
native  of  Newcastle,  and  was  united  in  matrimony  to  Mr. 
Marshall  a  short  time  before  they  sailed  for  Western  Africa. 
A  few  days  after  they  reached  London,  Mrs.  Marshall's  mother, 
whom  they  had  left  at  Newcastle  in  the  enjoyment  of  good 
health,  sickened,  and  "  died  in  the  Lord."  As  might  be 
expected,  this  proved  a  severe  shock  to  Mrs.  Marshall ;  but  she 

*  An  interesting  memoir  of  this  excellent  missionary,  with  some  account  of 
Mrs.  Marshall,  was  published  in  the  Wesleyan  Magazine  for  1833.  It  was  written 
by  the  Rev.  J.  E.  Coulson  ;  and  \  am  indebted  to  that  interesting  piece  of  biography 
for  some  of  the  facts  embodied  in  the  preceding  and  following  sketches  of  their 
characters. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  329 

found  the  grace  of  God  all-sufficient,  and  was  enabled  to  bow 
with  submission  to  his  righteous  will.  Mrs.  Marshall  had  fre- 
quently spoken  in  the  most  joyous  manner  of  the  opportunities 
she  should  have  in  Africa  of  instructing  the  Heathen  females 
and  children  in  that  religion  which  is  profitable  for  the  life  that 
now  is,  and  for  that  which  is  to  come.  Immediately  on  their 
arrival  at  the  Gambia,  she  took  charge  of  the  female  class  at 
Bathurst,  and  was  no  less  useful  among  the  female  children  in 
the  day-school,  to  whom  she  paid  the  closest  attention,  with 
very  satisfactory  results.  In  reference  to  the  mission,  she  had 
a  spirit  equal  to  that  of  her  husband,  and  was  well  qualified  to 
soothe,  and  encourage,  and  stimulate  him  in  the  toils  of  his 
station.  But,  alas  !  her  own  health  and  spirits  sank  beneath 
the  weight  of  personal  and  domestic  affliction ;  and  the  loss  of 
her  beloved  husband,  at  a  time  when  she  was  herself  sufi'eriug 
from  the  same  disease,  together  with  the  peculiarity  of  her 
situation,  greatly  tended  to  increase  her  afl^iiction  ;  and  she  died 
at  the  house  of  Mr.  Shewring,  in  Bristol,  on  the  2d  of  October, 
1830,  about  forty-eight  hours  after  she  landed  on  the  shores  of 
her  native  country,  leaving  her  little  orphan  son  Richard  and 
his  African  nurse  as  "  strangers  in  a  strange  land." 

It  has  been  well  said  by  Mr.  Marshall's  biographer,  "  Events 
such  as  these  are  truly  affecting,  and  stagger  human  reason. 
Here  was  a  pair  every  way  qualified,  apparently,  for  the  work 
in  which  they  were  engaged ;  labouring  with  acceptance  and 
usefulness;  determined  to  spend  all  their  days  and  strength  to 
the  glory  of  God.  But,  suddenly,  they  are  cut  ofi"  with  a  stroke, 
and  the  world  is  bereft  of  their  labours  for  ever.  We  will  not 
repine.  Already  have  they  gained  a  glorious  distinction.  Their 
names  are  recorded  on  high,  their  memories  shall  be  enshrined 
in  many  bosoms :  and  the  ultimate  benefit  of  their  labours  iu 
Africa  no  one  can  calculate.'' 


CHAPTER  XVII, 

THE  GAMBIA  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 
(1830—1833.) 

A  Review  of  the  six  Deaths  recorded  in  the  preceding  Chapter— Mr.  Keightley 
now  the  only  Wesleyan  Missionary  in  Western  x\frica — Extract  from  his 
Letter— Mr.  Moister  a])pointed  to  the  Gambia — Touching  Incident— Mr. 
Moister's  Arrival  and  Reception  at  St.  Mary's — The  first  Sabbath — Mr. 
Moister  visits  Macarthy's  Island — Tlie  Conversion  of  a  Mohammedan  at 
Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Ritchie — Extract  of  a  Letter  from  Mr.  Moister  at  the 
Gambia — Termination  of  the  Barra  AVar — Mr.  Moister's  second  Voyage  up  the 
River — Takes  with  him  a  native  Teacher — Commencement  of  the  Macarthy's 
Island  Mission — Mr.  Keightley's  Return  to  England— The  Appointment  of  Mr. 
Maer  to  Sierra-Leone — Extracts  of  Letters  from  both  Stations — Mr.  Ritchie's 
Return  to  Europe  —  Mr.  Clarke  appointed  —  Mr.  Moister's  third  Visit  to 
Macarthy's  Island — Pleasing  Prospect  of  that  Mission. 

In  the  preceding  chapter  we  have  given  some  account  of  the 
short  but  useful  Hves,  and  of  the  peaceful  and  triumphant 
deaths,  of  no  less  than  six  valuable  European  agents  of  the 
Wesleyan  Missionary  Society ;  tiiat  is,  five  missionaries,  and  the 
wife  of  one  of  those  who  fell  in  this  field.  All  these  had  died 
within  the  brief  space  of  two  years;  but,  though  dead,  they 
are  not  lost : — no, 

"  In  a  milder  clime  tliey  dwell — 
Region  of  eternal  day," 

and  though  twenty  years  have  elapsed  since  these  moral  heroes 
"  fought  the  good  fight,  and  finished  their  course,"  they  are  not 
forgotten ;  their  names  are  not  only  "  recorded  on  high,"  but 
their  memories  have  been  embalmed  in  the  affectionate  remem- 
brance of  scores  in  Africa,  as  \^'cll  as  of  many  surviving  rela- 
tions and  friends  in  England.  On  "  the  resurrection  morn"  we 
shall  meet  again;  and  then  no  fathers  or  mothers  will  ever 
regret  having  given  their  sons  or  daughters  to  such  a  glorious 
cause ;  and  then  what  now  appears  to  us  dark  and  mysterious 
will  be  clear  as  the  noon-day ;  for 

"  God  is  his  own  Interpreter, 
And  he  will  make  it  plain." 

Mr.  Keightley  was  now  the  only  Wesleyan  missionary  on  the 
West  Coast  of  Africa ;  and  many  prayers  were  devoutly  offered 
up,  that  his  hfe  might  be  spared,  and  that  the  Almighty  would 


THE    GAMBTA   AND    SIERRA- LEONE.  331 

continue  to  raise  up  and  send  forth  more  labourers  into  these 
fields  that  were  already  white  to  the  harvest.  "We  cannot  but 
record  the  goodness  of  God,  not  only  in  the  preservation  of 
the  life  of  his  servant,  but  in  that,  during  the  whole  of  the  rains 
of  that  year,  he  had  enjoyed  comparative  health.  This  will  be 
seen  from  the  following  extract  of  a  letter  from  Mr.  Keightley 
himself,  addressed  to  the  Missionary  secretaries,  and  dated 
Eree-Town,  Sierra-Leone,  November  4th,  1830  : — "  Your  letters 
have  laid  me  under  the  greatest  obligations.  Accept  my  thanks 
for  your  sympathies  and  prayers.  I  feel  thankful  to  God  that 
the  sickly  season  is  past.  I  have  been  indisposed  several  times, 
but  have  not  been  prevented  from  attending  to  my  regular 
duties  more  than  three  or  four  days ;  and  at  present  I  am  quite 
well.  We  have  removed  to  a  good  house,  in  one  of  the  most 
healthy  situations  in  Free-Town.  During  the  last  six  months  we 
have  been  blessed  with  many  seasons  of  refreshing  from  the 
presence  of  the  Lord ;  and  while  we  have  had  occasion  to 
mourn  over  some,  we  have  had  occasion  to  rejoice  on  account  of 
others.^^  Mr.  Keightley  also  speaks  of  an  improvement  in  the 
children  of  the  school,  and  of  his  gratification  with  the  zealous 
conduct  of  the  class-leaders ;  but  laments  the  want  of  a  colleague, 
and  hopes  one  would  soon  arrive.  This  reasonable  and  just 
request  was  complied  with  as  soon  as  was  practicable ;  but  as 
the  Gambia  was  without  a  missionary,  the  attention  of  the 
Committee  was  naturally  directed  to  that  station  first ;  and, 
towards  the  close  of  the  year,  Mr.  Moister  was  appointed  as 
Mr.  Marshall's  successor  at  St.  Mary's.  The  circumstances 
which  led  to  this  very  suitable  appointment  are  interesting. 
The  melancholy  death  of  Mrs.  Marshall,  so  soon  after  slie 
landed  in  Bristol,  having  been  a  widow  only  about  six  weeks, 
when  she  was  called  by  a  mysterious  Providence  to  leave  her 
fatherless  child  and  his  African  nurse  "as  strangers  in  a  strange 
land,"  and  to  join  her  husband  in  the  skies,  will  be  fresh  in  the 
recollection  of  the  reader.  Immediately  after  Mrs.  Marshall's 
decease,  the  female  attendant  proceeded  with  the  infant  sou  to 
Newcastle-upon-Tyne,  to  Mr.  Andrew  Marshall,  brother  of  the 
deceased  missionary.  But  on  the  way  thither,  the  servant 
was  directed  to  call  at  the  Mission-House  in  London,  which 
she  accordingly  did;  and  Mr.  Moister  has  himself  touchingly 
described  this  in  his  "  Missionary  Incidents  for  juvenile  Readers," 
published  in  the  "  Wesleyan  Juvenile  Offering  fur  April,  1849  :" 
"  It  was  on  a  cold  morning  in  the  month  of  October,  1830,  that 
a  Negro  girl  presented  herself  at  the  door  of  the  old  Mission- 
House  in  liatton- Garden,  London,  carrying  in  her  arms  a  poor. 


332  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

sickl3'-looking  white  child.  This  little  infant  was  the  orphan 
son  of  the  late  Rev.  Richard  Marshall,  who  died  at  St.  Mary's, 
on  the  River  Gambia,  in  Western  Africa,  after  five  da^'s'  illness, 
in  the  month  of  August,  the  same  year.''  After  describing  the 
death  of  Mrs.  jMarshall,  which  we  have  already  stated,  and  that 
"Nancy*  was  faithful  to  her  precious  charge,  and  carefully 
conveyed  little  Richard  to  London,  as  stated  above,"  Mr. 
jNIoister  proceeds :  "  At  the  time  of  this  affecting  occurrence, 
I  had  been  in  London  for  several  weeks,  in  company  with 
many  other  young  men,  and  we  were  all  awaiting  our  designa-' 
tion  to  the  foreign  work.  We  all  felt  much  interested  in  the 
little  missionary  orphan  boy,  and  were  delighted  to  observe  the 
mutual  attachment  which  existed  between  him  and  his  nurse. 
Nancy  seemed  very  fond  of  little  Richard ;  and  while  she  care- 
fully folded  him  in  her  sable  arms,  and  bedewed  him  with  her 
tears,  she  would  tell  of  her  country,  and  of  her  master  and 
mistress,  in  a  manner  the  most  affecting.  It  was  known  that 
a  missionary  would  be  required  immediately  to  succeed  the  late 
Mr.  Marshall,  at  the  Gambia  station  in  Western  Africa;  and, 
after  making  it  a  matter  of  sincere  prayer  to  Almighty  God, 
and  consulting  with  my  friends,  I  felt  it  upon  my  heart  to  say, 
with  the  prophet,  'Here  am  I,  send  me;'  and  I  was  at  once 
appointed  to  Africa." 

Since  writing  this  I  have  received  a  letter  from  a  member 
of  the  late  Mr.  Marshall's  family  at  Newcastle,  from  which  it 
appears,  that  as  soon  as  the  mournful  tidings  reached  them, 
Mr.  Andrew  Marshall  immediateh'  Avrote,  expressing  his  wish 
to  take  the  child  and  adopt  him  as  his  own.  And  as  a  female 
servant  had  accompanied  one  of  the  preachers'  families  from 
Newcastle  to  London,  and  was  at  that  time  about  returning, 
she  took  charge  of  the  African  nurse  and  child,  and  they 
arrived  safe  at  Newcastle.  The  writer  of  this  letter  men- 
tions some  particulars  corroborative  of  Mr.  Moister's  statement : 
"  Sally,  the  nurse,  stayed  with  us  nine  weeks.  We  all  felt 
deeply  interested  in  her,  and  parted  with  her  very  reluctantly. 
When  she  first  came,  she  seemed  suspicious  of  every  one,  and 
could  not  bear  Richard  out  of  her  sight :  her  affection  for  him 
was  astonishing.  After  a  week  or  two,  she  seemed  convinced 
that  we  were  real  friends,  and  began  by  degrees  to  tell  us  of  her 
country,  which  she  called  Ebou ;  that  she  had  one  little  brother ; 
that  her  mother  died,  and  her  father  sold  her  to  a  black  slave- 
dealer,  with  all  the  horrors  of  being  driven  through  the  coun- 

*  Her  name  was  Sally. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEB.RA-LEONE.  333 

try,  put  on  board  of  ship,  their  capture  by  one  of  His  Majesty's 
ships,  &c.  Frequently  she  would  sigh  deeply,  and  exclaim, 
'  Poor  Sally  no  fader,  no  moder,  no  country  !  Ricket  (Richard) 
got  good  kind  fader  and  moder,  and  plenty  sister  and  friend  : 
me  no  afraid  to  leave  poor  little  Ricket  now/  It  was  truly 
affecting  to  hear  her  thus  soliloquize,  while  she  pressed  her  poor 
little  emaciated  charge  to  her  sable  bosom,  and  bedewed  him 
with  her  tears.  Even  at  this  distance  of  time,  I  cannot  refer  to 
it  without  tears ;  and  it  may  perhaps  furnish  an  illustration  of 
the  character  of  that  interesting,  but  deeply-injured,  race/'* 

But  to  return :  Mr.  Moister,  having  been  united  in  marriage 
to  one  who  was  willing  to  share  with  him  in  the  toils  of  mis- 
sionary life,  embarked,  with  Mrs.  Moister,  at  London-Bridge, 
on  board  a  steam -boat  for  Gravesend,  on  the  12tli  of  February, 
1831  ;  and  soon  after  they  went  on  board  the  brig  "Amelia;'' 
and,  being  favoured  with  a  safe  and  pleasant  passage,  they 
arrived  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  10th  of  March.  They  were 
received  with  devout  gratitude  by  the  society  and  congregation, 
who  had  been  kept  united  since  the  death  of  Mr.  Marshall. 
Many  of  the  natives  who  were  connected  with  the  mission, 
having  heard  that  a  missionary  and  his  wife  were  on  board  the 
vessel  just  arrived  from  England,  hastened  to  the  beach,  to  give 
them  a  cordial  welcome ;  and  such  was  the  anxiety  and  grati- 
tude of  these  poor  people,  that  several  of  them  plunged  into 
the  water  to  meet  the  boat  as  it  approached  the  land,  and 
triumphantly  carried  their  welcome  visitors  on  shore  in  their 
arms.  This  was  done  to  express  joy  at  their  arrival,  as  well  as 
to  save  them  from  being  wet  with  the  surge,  which  was  dashing 
with  violence  against  the  sandy  beach.  On  landing  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Moister  were  met  by  a  large  concourse  of  people,  many 
of  whom  had  received  the  gospel  at  the  hands  of  former  mis- 
sionaries; and  Mr.  Moister  adds:  "  They  wept  for  joy.  They 
kissed  our  hands  again  and  again,  and,  bedewing  them  with 
tears,  exclaimed,  '  Tank  God,  tank  God  !  Mr.  Marshall  die, 
but  God  send  us  nuder  minister.'  "  Mr.  Moister  at  once  com- 
menced his  labours,  with  pleasing  prospects  of  success.  He 
speaks  of  the  first  sabbath  spent  in  Africa  as  a  day  never  to  be 

*  The  author  inay  add,  that  he  perfectly  recollects  the  affecting  particulars 
described  hy  Mr.  Moister,  being  hhnself  at  that  time  "  one  of  the  young  men  at  the 
Mission-House  in  Hatton-Garden  ; "  and,  as  will  be  seen  presently,  he  succeeded 
Mr.  Moister  at  the  Gambia,  where  he  again  saw  and  recognised  the  faithful  and 
aflfectionate  African  nurse  ;  and  having  known  her  and  her  excellent  husband  some 
years,  lie  afterwards  had  the  melancholy  pleasure  of  witnessing  her  peaceful  and 
happy  death. 


334  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

forgotten.  "  At  morning  dawn  the  native  prayer-meeting  was 
held,  and  many  thanks  were  offered  to  Almighty  God  for  our 
safe  arrival.  In  the  forenoon  I  read  prayers,  and  opened  my 
commission  by  preaching  from  that  delightful  text,  '  This  is  a 
faithful  saying,  and  w^orthy  of  all  acceptation,  that  Christ  Jesus 
came  into  the  world  to  save  sinners.^  (1  Tim.  i.  15.)  The  people 
heard  with  marked  attention,  and  the  whole  appearance  of  the 
congregation  was  truly  pleasing.  It  was  an  interesting  proof 
that  the  labours  of  my  revered  predecessors  had  not  been  in 
vain,  though  some  of  them  had  been  called  hence  at  an  early 
period  after  their  arrival.  The  Negroes  who  had  been  brought 
to  a  knowledge  of  the  truth,  both  male  and  female,  together 
with  their  children,  appeared  in  the  house  of  God  neatly 
clothed,  and  in  their  general  aspect  they  presented  a  striking 
contrast  to  their  sable  brethren  who  still  remained  in  Hea- 
then darkness.  They  sang  the  praises  of  God  delightfully. 
Another  service  in  the  evening,  conducted  partly  in  the  lan- 
guage of  the  natives,  and  partly  in  English,  closed  this  blessed 
day." 

Mr.  INIoister  had  not  been  long  in  Africa  before  he  paid  a 
visit  to  Macarthy^s  Island,  which,  owing  to  the  sickness  of  the 
missionaries,  and  want  of  help,  had  not  been  visited  by  any 
European  missionary  since  Mr.  Morgan  left  the  Gambia.  But 
Mr.  Moister  being  now  in  excellent  health  and  spirits,  and, 
moreover,  some  valuable  local  helps  having  been  raised  up  on 
the  station  at  St.  Mary^s,  two  of  whom,  namely,  Pierre  Sallah 
and  John  Cupidon,  Avere  employed  as  native  assistant  mission- 
aries, he  was  enabled  to  leave  the  station  for  some  time  in  their 
charge,  whilst  he,  in  the  genuine  spirit  of  a  missionary,  endea- 
voured to  introduce  the  gospel  into  "the  regions  beyond." 
Having  regulated  the  affairs  of  the  society,  renewed  the  quar- 
terly-tickets, administered  the  sacrament  of  the  Lord's  supper, 
and  given  directions  to  the  native  teachers  how  to  proceed 
during  his  absence,  he  embarked  on  board  a  small  merchant 
sloop  on  the  14th  of  May,  bound  for  the  upper  river.  On  the 
evening  of  the  19th  they  came  in  sight  of  Macarthy's  Island. 
"  Its  appearance,"  writes  INIr.  Moister,  "  was  beautiful,  the  sun 
was  setting  behind  the  opposite  hills,  and  the  natives  were 
retiring  from  cultivating  their  farms,  &c.  After  coming  to 
anchor,  we  went  on  shore,  and  had  a  comfortable  niglit's  rest  in 
a  native  hut."  The  next  day  Mr.  Moister  met  with  Lieutenant 
W.  Shaw,  the  commandant,  the  only  white  man  on  the  island, 
who  kindly  invited  him  to  his  hut,  to  share  with  him  in  all  his 
little  comforts ;  with  which  he  gladly  complied,  and  during  his 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    STERRA-LEONE.  335' 

stay  was  treated  by  the  commandant  with  every  mark  of  Chris- 
tian respect.  The  22d  was  the  sabbatli ;  and  "  when  the  hour 
of  divine  service  arrived,  the  bugle  was  sounded,  the  sergeant 
marched  the  troops  in  beautiful  order  to  the  appointed  place, 
most  of  the  inhabitants  of  the  town  gathered  together,  and  I 
read  prayers,  and  then  preached  from  Isaiah  iii.  10,  11.  Many 
of  the  hearers  appeared  aftected,  and  I  hope  that  a  lasting 
impression  was  made  upon  several  minds.  In  the  evening  we 
assembled  together  again,  when  we  experienced  a  similar 
blessing." 

The  object  of  this  visit  being  so  far  accomplished,  after  a  stay 
of  two  weeks  Mr.  Moister  prepared  to  return  to  his  station  at 
St.  Mary's ;  and  on  taking  his  departure  many  of  the  natives 
flocked  to  the  river-side,  and  begged  him  to  come  again,  or  to 
send  them  a  teacher,  when  he  promised  to  do  his  utmost  for 
their  welfare.  After  a  pleasant  run  down  the  river,  he  arrived 
safe  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  10th  of  June. 

Mr.  Keightley,  at  Sierra-Leone,  continued  to  prosecute  his 
work  in  the  enjoyment  of  tolerable  health  ;  nor  did  he  labour  in 
vain,  as  will  appear  from  the  following  extract  of  a  letter,  dated 
July  13th  :  "A  Mohammedan  at  Portuguese-Town  has  been, 
we  hope,  truly  converted  to  God.  About  eleven  months  ago,  I 
was  requested  to  baptize  this  Mohammedan's  child ;  his  wife 
being  a  member  of  our  society,  I  consented.  While  addressing 
the  parents,  before  the  child  was  baptized,  the  father  began  to. 
tremble,  and  it  was  evident  he  felt  the  power  of  God.  I  have 
watched  this  man  from  the  above  period,  with  peculiar  anxiety,, 
and  have  always  been  pleased  wdth  him  at  the  different  times 
when  he  came  for  instruction.  At  first  he  seemed  surprised 
that  he  felt  so  much,  and  said,  '  Me  pray  to  Momed  past  seven 
years,  and  me  see  noting,  me  feel  noting;  me  pray  to  Jesus 
Christ,  my  heart  feel.'  His  anxiety  to  be  really  converted 
always  pleased  me.  After  seeking  the  Lord  with  a  broken  and 
contrite  heart  for  several  months,  he  has  found  '  peace  with 
God  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.'  I  doubt  not  this  man  is 
a  true  convert :  there  is  every  evidence  we  could  expect  or- 
desire."* 

Mr.  Ritchie  had  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone  some  time  previous; 

*  The  Sierra-Leone  "  Watchman  "  states  :  "  This  man  maintained  his  Christian 
character  imblemished,  and  was  appointed  to  tlie  office  of  class-leader  in  1838  ; 
and  in  1839,  being  a  fisherman,  he  was  out  at  sea  one  day,  and  the  boat  was  upset 
by  a  strong  gust  of  wind,  and  he  and  another  were  drowned  ;  but  when  struggling 
with  the  waves,  and  seeing  there  was  no  hope  of  his  being  saved,  he  said  to  his- 
comrades,  who  for  the  most  part  were  Christian  men,  '  I  am  going  to  glory.'  " 


336  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

to  the  date  of  this  letter  ;*  and  thus  far  the  rain}'^  season  had 
been  health}^,  and  both  the  missionaries  were  quite  welh 
Under  date  of  October  3d,  Mr.  Keightley  again  wrote  to  the 
committee,  when  he  reported  that  his  colleague  had  been 
visited  with  an  attack  of  the  country  fever,  which  confined  him 
to  his  bed  for  a  week,  and  prevented  him  from  attending  to  his 
regular  duties  for  about  a  month.  Dr.  Fergusson,  acting  colo- 
nial surgeon,  and  Mr.  Graham,  of  the  Church  mission,  were 
very  attentive  to  Mr.  Ritchie  during  his  sickness,  and  they  both 
generously  refused  to  receive  any  remuneration  for  their  pro- 
fessional and  successful  treatment.  The  work  of  God  was 
prospering,  and  the  appearances  were  very  encouraging. 

At  the  Gambia  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Moister  also  had  been  graci- 
ously preserved  through  the  rains,  though  not  without  repeated 
attacks  of  fever ;  but  on  the  25th  of  October  Mr.  Moister 
addressed  a  letter  to  the  general  secretaries,  in  which  he  men- 
tions with  gratitude  to  God  their  full  restoration  to  health,  and 
that  they  Avere  now  looking  forward  with  pleasing  expectation 
for  some  months  of  more  healthy  and  salubrious  weather.  The 
following  extract  from  this  letter  will  show  the  state  of  the  mis- 
sion, as  also  the  disturbed  condition  of  the  adjoining  country, 
which  necessarily  retarded,  for  a  time,  the  great  work  in  which 
he  was  engaged  : — 

We  have  lately  had  many  things  to  experience  which  have  tended  to  retard  the 
progress  of  the  work  of  God  on  this  station  ;  one  of  the  most  important  of  which 
is,  war  with  the  neighbom'ing  native  tribes,  the  Manchngoes.  They  have  long 
used  various  projects  to  accomplish  the  entire  destruction  of  this  settlement ;  and 
if  their  designs  had  not  been  frustrated,  such  is  their  number  and  strength,  that  we 
must  all  have  become  the  victims  of  their  cruelty.  At  the  commencement  of  this 
war,  they  made  a  bold  attack  upon  the  people  residing  at  a  small  fort  on  the  other 
side  of  the  river,  adjoining  the  kingdom  of  Barra.  Mihtary  force  was  soon  carried 
over  from  St.  Mary's,  and  a  sharp  engagement  for  a  short  time  ensued ;  but  the 
strength  of  the  enemy,  and  the  inconvenience  arising  from  the  standing  corn  and 
grass,  &c.,  induced  our  troops  to  retire  till  their  number  was  increased  and  a  more 
favourable  season  presented  itself.  In  that  engagement  about  ten  men  were  slain 
who  went  to  fight  in  defence  of  this  place,  one  of  whom  was  the  captain  of  an 
English  vessel.  Because  he  was  a  white  man,  they  cut  oif  his  head,  raised  it  upon 
a  pole  as  a  monument  of  their  achievements,  and  burned  his  body  to  ashes.  Since 
that  time  vessels  of  war  and  a  military  force  have  been  called  in  from  Senegal  and 
Sierra-Leone.  It  is  supposed. that  many  hundreds  of  the  Mandingoes  have  already 
been  slain,  and  a  decisive  engagement  is  soon  to  take  place.  And  though  we  have 
nothing  to  do  with  wars  and  tumults,  yet  it  affects  us  so  far  as  it  puts  the  people 
amongst  whom  we  labour  into  a  state  of  consternation  and  dismay.  Many  of  our 
members  have  to  take  up  arms  in  defence  of  the  place  as  a  militia.     But  still  we 

*  The  precise  time  of  Mr.  Ritchie's  sailing  for  Africa,  or  his  arrival  there,  I  have 
not  been  able  to  ascertain. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  337 

have  reason  to  rejoice,  in  the  midst  of  all  our  tribulation,  that  there  does  not 
appear  to  he  any  declension  in  the  personal  piety  of  the  professors  of  religion.  We 
experience  the  presence  of  tlie  Lord  when  we  meet  together  in  his  sanctuary. 

You  will  perceive  from  the  account  which  I  send,  that  our  society  is  still  increas- 
ing, and  that  the  number  of  members  is  sixty-one,  being  an  increase  of  upwards  of 
twenty  since  om-  arrival.  We  have  formed  one  new  class,  and  hope  soon  to  be 
under  the  necessity  of  forming  a  second. 

We  are  anxious  for  these  tumults  to  cease,  tliat  we  may  have  an  ojjportunity  of 
extending  our  labours.  We  are  not  without  hopes  that  much  good  will  be  etfected 
in  this  part  of  the  missionary  field.  May  the  Lord  hasten  the  glorious  period, 
when  the  darkest  habitations  of  cruelty  shall  be  visited  by  the  light  of  his  gospel ; 
when  the  empire  of  Satan  shall  be  destroyed,  and  the  savage  tribes  on  the  banks  of 
the  Gambia  be  induced  to  beat  their  swords  into  ploughshares,  and  their  spears 
into  pruning-hooks,  and  learn  war  no  more.* 

Two  serious  engagements  took  plcice  after  this,  in  which  many 
lives  were  lost  on  both  sides :  the  English,  however,  succeeded 
in  re-taking  the  small  fort  at  Barra-Point,  the  v/arlike  natives 
were  subdued  by  the  force  of  British  arms,  and  peace  was  at 
length  restored.  Soon  after  the  ratification  of  peace  between 
the  kingdom  of  Barra  and  the  British  colony,  Mr.  Moister 
began  to  prepare  for  his  second  voyage  up  the  I'iver.  On  this 
occasion  he  took  with  him  one  of  the  native  teachers,  with 
books,  slates,  &c.,  for  the  commencement  of  a  school  in  con- 
nexion with  the  permanent  establishment  of  the  mission.  They 
left  St.  Mary's  on  the  8th  of  March,  1832,  and  arrived  at 
Macarthy's  Island  on  the  morning  of  the  16th,  when  thej  were 
cordially  welcomed  by  the  natives,  Avho  flocked  around  them,  to 
testify  their  joy  at  their  arrival.  Mr.  Moister  immediately  pur- 
chased a  piece  of  land  in  a  suitable  situation,  and  a  small  place 
of  worship  was  speedily  erected.  It  was  a  humble  sanctuary, 
built  of  cane  wattled-work,  and  thatched  with  grass,  with  small 
apartments  at  the  end  for  the  native  teacher  and  his  wife. 
But,  humble  as  it  was,  when  tliey  collected  the  people  together 
for  Divine  worship,  they  realized  the  presence  and  blessing  of 
the  great  Head  of  the  church.  Having  thus  prepared  a  place, 
collected  some  of  the  children,  commenced  the  school,  intro- 
duced Mr.  Cupidon  as  their  teacher,  and  commended  him  and 
his  work  to  God,  Mr.  Moister  returned  to  St.  Mary's,  which 
place  he  reached  on  the  24th  of  the  same  month.  He  received 
a  communication  from  IMr.  Cupidon  shortly  after,  in  which  he 
stated,  that  he  had  preached  several  times,  that  the  congrega- 
tions were  good,  and  the  people  seemed  afi'ected  with  the  word 
preached. 

Mr.  Keightley,  at  Sierra-Leone,  having  completed  his  terra 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  vii.  pp.  78,  79. 
Z 


338  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

of  service,  about  this  time  returned  to  England.  He  arrived  at 
Plymouth  in  Majj  1832,  after  a  somewhat  dangerous  passage. 
Having  remained  in  England  for  some  time,  he  was  appointed 
to  the  West  Indies,  where  he  laboured  for  several  years;  and 
since  the  year  1843,  he  has  been  engaged  in  the  ministry  at 
home. 

At  the  Conference  of  1832,  Mr.  Edward  Maer  was  appointed 
to  Sierra-Leone,  and  was  cordially  welcomed  by  Mr.  Ritchie 
and  the  society  there. 

The  following  extracts  from  the  letters  of  ]Mr.  Moister  at  the 
Gambia,  and  Mr.  Ritchie  at  Sierra-Leone,  will  show  the  state  of 
the  work  of  God  at  both  stations  at  the  close  of  this  year. 

Mr.  Moister's  communication  is  dated,  "  St.  Mary's,  on  the 
River  Gambia,  December  3 1st,  1832  :" — 

At  the  close  of  another  year,  I  wish  to  lay  before  you  a  few  remarks  illustrative 
of  the  general  state  of  the  work  of  God  on  the  Gambia  stations. 

At  St.  Mary's,  during  the  past  year,  we  have  been  graciously  \'isited  by  the  great 
Head  of  the  church.  Though  we  have  had  deep  affliction  to  pass  through,  the 
Lord  has  been  with  us ;  and  we  have  found  the  religion  which  we  teach  to  others, 
to  comfort  our  minds,  and  support  us  under  every  trial  and  difficulty  to  which  we 
have  been  exposed.  The  cause  of  God  has  hkewise  been  making  gradual  progress ; 
the  moral  state  of  the  people  amongst  whom  we  labour  is  evidently  much  im- 
proved ;  the  house  of  God  is  generally  crowded  to  excess ;  and  there  is  a  spirit  of 
religious  inquiry  amongst  the  people,  which,  to  me,  indicates  the  approach  of  a 
glorious  har^'est.  During  the  year  we  have  added  about  twenty-four  new  members 
to  society,  many  of  whom,  I  trust,  have  experienced  a  true  change  of  heart;  and 
all  appear  determined,  by  the  grace  of  God,  to  save  their  souls.  Some  of  the 
members  have  been  called  away  by  death,  and  in  their  latest  moments  expressed 
themselves  as  having  "  all  trouble  removed  from  their  hearts,"  by  the  love  of  God 
shed  abroad  therein.  The  school  sustained  considerable  loss  from  the  unhealthi- 
ness  of  the  last  rainy  season  ;  some  of  the  boys  have  died,  and  others  have  not  been 
able  to  attend  on  account  of  sickness ;  but  now,  thank  God,  it  is  beginning  to 
resume  its  usual  appearance.  The  general  sickness  has  abated,  and  the  number  of 
scholars  is  increasing. 

At  our  new  station,  on  Macarthy's  Island,  brother  Cupidon,  our  assistant- 
missionary,  continues  to  labour  with  considerable  success  in  preaching  the  gospel 
to  his  fellow-countrymen.  About  fifteen  members  have  been  received  into  the 
society,  and  about  the  same  number  of  boys  and  girls  are  daily  instructed  in  the 
first  principles  of  the  Christian  religion,  and  in  the  rudiments  of  reading  and 
needlework.  However  trivial  these  circumstances  may  appear  in  the  eyes  of  some, 
to  us,  who  daily  witness  the  superstitious  habits  of  degraded  Africans,  they  are 
encouraging.  And  when  we  consider  that,  during  the  two  years  that  we  have  been 
labouring  at  the  Gambia,  the  nundjer  in  society  has  been  more  than  doubled,  not- 
withstanding all  the  hinderances  resulting  from  war,  sickness,  and  death,  we  feel 
truly  grateful  to  the  God  of  missions,  who  hath  thus  blessed  our  feeble  labours. 
May  we  manifest  our  gratitude  by  zeal  in  His  cause,  and  renewed  devotedness  to 
His  service  ! 

I  feel  great  pleasure  iu  informing  you  of  the  diligence  and  improvement  of  the 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  339 

two  native  young  men  under  my  care.  Brother  Sallah,  who  continues  to  assist  me 
in  the  school  and  other  missionary  work  at  St.  Mary's,  is  going  on  well.  He  is 
making  considerable  progress  in  arithmetic,  as  well  as  in  other  necessary  studies : 
he  is  every  day  improving  in  his  knowledge  of  the  English  language,  and  the  great 
truths  of  Christianity.  In  reading,  he  has  gone  through  Wesley's  "  Notes  on  the 
New  Testament,"  and  several  volumes  of  the  Works ;  besides  a  number  of  other 
books,  and  the  holy  scriptures,  which  we  daily  read  together.  He  is  very  atten- 
tive, and  in  every  respect  gives  me  a  satisfaction  and  pleasiu^e  which  I  cannot 
express  in  too  high  terms.  The  same  remarks  will  apply  to  brother  Cupidon,  as 
far  as  my  knowledge  of  him  extends ;  but  as  he  has  been  labouring  for  some  time 
at  otir  new  station  at  Macarthy's  Island,  I  have  not  had  much  opportunity  of  super- 
intending his  studies ;  but,  from  our  constant  correspondence,  I  have  every  reason 
to  augur  well.* 

Mr.  Eitchie's  letter  is  dated,  "  Sierra-Leone,  January  3d, 
1833,"  and  is  as  follows  : — • 

During  the  last  quarter  we  have  witnessed  many  signal  manifestations  of  the 
divine  goodness  in  the  conversion  of  sinners.  A  good  work  is  still  going  on  chiefly^ 
among  the  Maroons  and  liberated  Africans;  of  the  former,  since  Christmas,  1831, 
about  forty,  most  of  them  young  people,  profess  to  have  found  peace  with  God 
through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  at  present  appear  to  be  earnest  in  working  out 
their  salvation.  Since  the  above  time,  I  have  not  had  to  dismiss  one  Maroon  from 
the  society.  We  have  prayer-meetings  in  all  our  chapels  at  five  o'clock  every 
morning ;  but  some  of  the  penitents  have  been  found  there  at  midnight,  and  con- 
tinued there  until  mid-day,  wrestling  with  God  in  prayer.  This  has  not  been  the 
case  merely  with  the  ignorant;  a  few  of  the  most  intelligent  and  respectable 
coloured  people  in  the  colony  have  been  brought  in  the  same  way  to  enjoy  the 
glorious  liberty  of  the  sons  of  God.  You  will  see  that  we  have  an  increase  of  103 
members  during  the  last  year ;  we  leave  on  trial  63  ;  om-  funds  increase  in  propor- 
tion.    In  society,  419. 

The  Africans  have  a  high  opinion  both  of  the  good  intentions  of  the  missionaries, 
and  the  disciphne  which  they  enforce.  We  have  repeated  applications  from  dif- 
ferent parts  of  the  colony,  and  the  poor  people  are  very  importunate  with  us  to 
come  and  afford  them  spiritual  instruction.  We  earnestly  entreat  you  to  send 
forth  more  labourers  into  this  field;  it  is,  indeed,  essential  to  the  well-being  of  the 
present  society  that  another  missionary  should  be  sent  to  assist  brother  Maer, 
previous  to  my  return ;  for,  however  much  he  may  be  disposed  to  labour,  as  I  have 
done,  it  wovdd  be  unsafe  to  do  so  during  the  rainy  season :  we  pray  you  to  take 
this  into  consideration. 

The  schools  at  Portuguese-Town  and  Congou-Town  are  in  a  prosperous  state  ; 
the  children  are  making  progress  in  useful  learning ;  about  thirty  of  them  can  read 
in  the  New  Testament.f 

A  few  months  after  this,  Mr.  Ritchie,  having  completed  his 
term  of  service,  returned  home ;  when,  after  a  short  residence 
in  England,  he  was  appointed  to  the  West  Indies,  where  he  has 
been  labouring  ever  since.     Mr.  Isaac  Clarke,  towards  the  close 


*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  vii.  pp.  308,  309. 

t  "  Report  of  the  Weslevan-Methodist  Missionary  Society  for  1 833,"  pp.  57,  58. 

z  2 


340  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

of  the  year,  was  sent  out  to  the  assistance  of  INIr.  Maer.  In 
the  month  of  February  of  this  year,  (1833,)  INIr.  Moister  paid  a 
third  visit  to  ]Macarthy's  Island,  in  the  upper  Gambia,  and  was 
delighted  with  the  amount  of  good  already  effected  by  the  sim- 
ple teaching  of  a  converted  native.  On  this  occasion  several  of 
the  natives,  who  had  renounced  their  Heathen  practices,  and 
who  had  been  prepared  by  a  course  of  religious  instruction,  pre- 
sented themselves  for  baptism.  Several  of  the  Negro  children, 
also,  had  learned  to  read  easy  lessons  in  the  New-Testament 
scriptures ;  and  the  work  had  so  far  prospered,  under  the  Divine 
blessing,  that  a  small  Christian  church  was  now  formed,  and 
an  interesting  school  established.  Mr.  Moister  returned  to  St. 
]\Iary^s,  in  a  feeble  state  of  health,  but  cheered  and  encouraged 
by  what  he  had  seen  and  heard  and  felt.* 

*  Since  the  preceding  chapter  was  written,  the  author  has  been  favoured 
■with  a  copy  of  an  interesting  Uttle  work,  by  the  Rev.  William  Moister,  his 
predecessor  at  the  Gambia.  It  is  entitled,  "  Memorials  of  Missionary  Labours 
in  Western  Africa  and  the  W^est  Indies."  Mr.  Moister  informs  me,  that  he 
was  not  aware  of  my  intended  publication ;  nor  had  I  the  slightest  idea  of  his. 
But  the  reader  of  both  volumes  will  see,  that  though  the  works  are  somewhat 
dissimilar,  yet,  on  several  important  subjects  connected  with  the  Gambia,  and 
the  Gambia  missions,  the  same  facts  have  been  stated  by  both  of  us ;  so  that  "  in 
the  mouth  of  two  witnesses,"  perfectly  unknown  to  each  other,  have  these  state- 
ments and  facts  been  "  established." 


CHAPTER  XVIII. 

THE  GAMBIA  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1833—1835.) 

The  Writer  takes  Part  in  these  Missions — This  was  an  eventful  Year  in  the  great 
Mortality  amongst  the  Ministers  at  Home — Two  of  the  General  Secretaries 
cut  Olf  in  the  Prime  of  Life — The  Author's  Appointment  to  St.  Mary's — 
Arrival  there  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  who  were  ajjpointed  to  Macarthy's 
Island — Dr.  Lindoe  and  the  Southampton  Committee-^Plan  of  an  Institution 
for  benefiting  the  Foulah  Tribe — Extract  from  the  General  Report  of  the  Wes- 
leyan  Missionary  Society— Copy  of  the  first  Annual  Report  of  the  Southamp- 
ton Committee — The  Extension  of  the  Mission  at  Sierra-Leone — Revival  of 
Religion  at  St.  Mary's,  Macarthy's  Island,  and  Sierra-Leone — Extract  from 
the  Annual  Report — Extract  of  a  Letter  from  Mr.  Dove  at  Macarthy's  Island 
— Prosperous  State  of  the  Mission  at  St.  Mary's — ^The  Necessity  for  a  new 
Chapel — Letters — The  Author  appointed  Acting  Colonial  and  Garrison  Chap- 
lain— Extracts  from  his  private  Joiu-nal— Letter  from  Mr.  Dove — E.xtracts  of 
Letters  from  the  Author — Permission  to  erect  a  new  Chapel — More  Help 
needed — Death  of  Mr.  Clarke  at  Sierra-Leone — The  Appointment  of  Mr. 
Crosby — The  Foundation-Stone  of  the  new  Chapel  laid  at  St.  Mary's — 
Extracts  from  the  Author's  Journal — An  Attack  on  the  Mission — Defended 
by  an  European — Christmas-Day  and  Watclinight — Triumphant  Death  of  a 
Member  of  the  Society — Funeral  Sermon — Another  heavy  Day's  Work — 
Souls  converted — Substance  of  a  Letter  to  the  Committee — A  Penitent 
"smiting  upon  his  Breast" — Mai'riage  of  liberated  Africans — Arrival  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Wilkinson — ^Trip  to  Cape  de  Verde — The  Portuguese — Return  to 
St.  Mary's — Extracts  from  Journal — Personal  and  domestic  Affliction — Open- 
ing of  the  new  Chapel — Farewell  Sermon — The  Author  sails  for  England. 

We  have  now  arrived  at  the  period  when  the  writer  was 
called  to  take  part  in  these  interesting  missions ;  and  without 
troubling  the  reader  with  any  unnecessary  details  on  the  subject 
of  his  own  call  to  this  important  work,  with  "  the  parting  scene/' 
or  the  particulars  of  "  the  voyage,"  he  ma}^  perhaps  be  permitted 
to  make  a  remark  or  two. 

The  Methodistic  year,  from  the  Conference  of  1832  to  1833, 
was  one  of  the  most  eventful  in  the  history  of  Methodism ;  not 
so  much  on  the  ground  of  the  mortality  abroad,  as  of  that  at 
home.  No  death,  in  fact,  had  occurred  in  Western  Africa  since 
August,  1830;  and  during  the  year  1832  only  three  brethren  in 
the  whole  of  the  mission-field  had  been  called  to  their  reward. 
But  Avhilst  the  missionaries,  with  these  exceptions, 

"  Through  burning  cUmes  had  pass'd  unhurt," 

it  was  otherwise  with  many  of  the  Lord's   servants  at  home. 
Previous  to  and  during  the  sittings  of  the  Liverpool  Conference, 


342 


AVESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


as  well  as  subsequently,  the  cholera  made  dreadful  ravages 
amongst  almost  all  classes  of  society :  several  of  the  Wesleyau 
ministers  "were  its  victims ;  and  during  that  year  no  less  than 
thirty-three  of  our  esteemed  and  beloved  brethren  were  called 
to  lay  down  their  charge  together  with  their  life.  This  unpre- 
cedented number  of  deaths  included  some  of  the  best  and  most 
distinguished  ministers  in  om'  beloved  Connexion :  two  of  them, 
being  connected  with  the  Mission-House,  deserve  a  passing 
notice  in  this  place. 

The  Rev.  John  James  died  suddenly,  on  the  6th  of  Novem- 
ber, 1832;  and  that  "bright  luminary  of  the  church  and  of 
his  circle,^^  the  Rev.  Richard  Watson,  ''  set  in  death,  to  rise  in 
eternal  glory,  January  8th,  1833."  Thus  were  two  of  the 
general  secretaries  cut  off  in  the  prime  of  life,  and  in  the  midst 
of  their  usefulness,  in  about  two  months.  The  Rev.  John 
Beecham  was,  therefore,  the  only  resident  secretary  up  to  the 
following  Conference,  Avhen  Dr.  Bunting  was  appointed  as  the 
senior  secretary,  in  the  place  of  ]\Ir.  Watson ;  which  honourable 
and  responsible  situation  he  has  filled  ever  since.* 

It  has  already  been  intimated,  that  the  writer  was  one  of  the 
young  men  examined  by  the  Missionar}'  Committee  in  the  old 
Mission-House,  towards  the  close  of  1830.  On  that  occasion 
the  Rev.  Messrs.  Bunting  and  Watson  vfere  both  present,  with 
several  other  venerable  ministers,  who  have  also,  since  that 
period,  been  gathered  to  their  fathers.  The  writer  distinctly 
recollects  the  position  Mr.  Watson  occupied  in  that  meeting, 
and  the  deep  interest  he  took  in  the  examination  of  each  candi- 
date. Some  few  months  after  this,  the  Avriter  was  called  into 
the  home-work;  and  was  thus  engaged  in  the  early  part  of 
1833,  when  he  received  a  letter  from  Dr.  Beecham,  in  answer 
to  one  he  had  written  as  to  the  probability  of  there  being  any 
opening  in  the  West  Indies  during  the  spring  or  summer  of 
that  year ;  for,  though  not  without  some  fruit  of  his  labours  at 
home,  his  heart  was  abroad,  and  he  longed  to  set  his  feet  on 


*  This  was  not  the  first  time  Dr.  Bunting  had  sustained  this  ofHce.  It  will  be 
recollected  that,  in  a  preceding  chapter,  we  have  stated,  he  was  one  of  the  general 
secretaries  in  1818,  and  was  at  that  period  the  senior  secretary;  which  honourable 
post  he  held  for  several  years,  when  the  late  lamented  and  illustrious  Mr.  Watson 
was  one  of  his  colleagues.  He  also  took  a  prominent  part  at  the  first  public  meet- 
ing, in  the  town  of  Leeds,  in  1813,  at  the  formation  of  the  MethocUst  Missionary 
Society  for  the  Leeds  district ;  and  it  may  be  safely  affirmed,  that  no  man,  dead  or 
living,  has  contributed  so  much  to  extend  and  consolidate  the  Wesleyan  missions, 
in  every  part  of  the  globe,  as  the  present  venerable  and  senior  secretary,  Dr. 
Bunting. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SlERRA-LEONE.  343 

mission  soil.  Tiie  contents  of  that  letter  stated,  that,  owing;  to 
the  position  of  the  great  question  of  Negro  emancipation, 
there  was  no  probability  of  sending  out  any  additional  men  to 
the  West  Indies  till  that  important  subject  was  settled;  but 
that  they  were  wanting  a  man  for  another  place.  "  We  were 
on  the  point  of  sending  out  Mr.  Dove,'^  writes  Mr.  Beecham, 
"  to  succeed  Mr.  Moister  at  St.  Mary^s  on  the  Gambia,  Western 
Africa ;  but,  having  now  determined  to  commence  another  mis- 
sion on  the  Gambia,  about  three  hundred  miles  higher  up,  for 
the  benefit  of  the  Foulahs,  Mr.  Dove  will  go  thither;  and  we 
therefore  shall  have  to  send  another  to  the  old  station  of  St. 
Mary^s.^^  After  stating,  that  Mr.  Dove  would  sail  about  the 
middle  of  March,  and  that,  if  I  "  felt  free  to  go,^'  I  might  sail 
Avith  him,  Mr.  Beecham  closes  the  letter  by  saying,  "After 
prayer  and  consideration  on  the  subject,  let  me  have  your 
answer.  Perhaps  in  a  few  days  you  will  be  able  to  determine. 
May  God  direct  you  aright ! " 

This  letter  was  dated  "  Hatton-Garden,  February  11th, 
1833,^^  and  was  received  on  the  12th;  and  the  ejaculatory 
prayer  with  which  it  closed  was  ever  and  anon  most  fervently 
offered  up,  as  I  travelled  by  coach  the  same  day  from  Evesham 
to  Birmingham,  and  from  tlience  to  Smethwick,  in  the  West 
Bromwich  circuit,  to  consult  with  my  friends  upon  the  subject. 
Most  anxious  was  I  that  "  God  might  direct  me  aright."  I 
had,  previous  to  this,  had  a  predilection  for  the  West  Indies ; 
but  having  offered  myself  unreservedly  for  any  part  of  the  mis- 
sion field,  I  could  not  but  view  this  as  the  call  of  God;  and 
therefore,  in  a  few  days,  and  after  much  prayer  and  considera- 
tion, I  wrote  to  say  that  "  I  felt  quite  free  to  go."  In  this,  as 
in  many  other  respects,  I  believe  God  did  direct  my  path. 
Having  been  united  in  marriage  on  the  4th  of  March,  1833,  we 
left  Smethwick  on  the  6th  for  London ;  on  the  15th  Mr.  Dove 
and  myself  were  solemnly  ordained  in  the  Wesleyan  chapel, 
Walworth;  and  on  the  1st  of  April,  at  half-past  nine  in  the 
morning,  we  went  on  board  the  brig  "  Jack  "  at  Gravesend,  and 
weighed  anchor.  Some  of  our  dear  friends  who  had  "accom- 
panied us  to  the  ship,"  sailed  with  us  a  short  distance  down  the 
river,  then  hailed  a  boat,  and  we  parted.  That  delightful  pro- 
mise was  our  stay  and  support :  "  Lo,  /  am  with  you  alway, 
even  unto  the  end."  Our  brig  being  almost  new,  and  a  capital 
sailing  vessel,  w^e  made  rapid  progress,  frequently  going  at  seven, 
eight,  nine,  and  nine  and  a  half  knots  an  hour;  and,  after  an 
agreeable  passage  of  only  three  weeks  and  one  day,  we  landed  at 
Bathurst,  St.  Mary's,  on  Tuesday,  the  23d  of  April,  1833. 


344  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

From  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Moister  and  the  society  we  met  with  a 
cordial  reception^  and  the  next  day  Avere  introduced  to  His 
Excellency  the  Lieutenant-Governor,  and  most  of  the  principal 
merchants  in  the  colony.  Mr.  Moister  was  pleasingly  surprised 
at  the  arrival  of  a  missionary  for  Macarthy's  Island,  in  which 
he  had  taken  so  lively  an  interest,  and  from  which  he  had  but 
recently  returned,  charmed  with  the  result  of  the  labours  of  the 
native  teacher,  who  had  been  there  about  twelve  months.  The 
origin  and  cause  of  this  appointment  will  be  seen  hereafter. 

The  writer,  having  been  sent  to  succeed  Mr.  Moister  at  St. 
Mary's,  immediately  entered  upon  his  work ;  and  his  prede- 
cessor, being  in  a  debilitated  state  of  health,  began  to  prepare 
for  his  return  to  England.  He  left  the  Gambia  in  the  brig 
"  Columbine,"  towards  the  end  of  June,  followed  by  the  prayers 
and  best  wishes  of  the  people;  and  at  the  Conference  of  1833 
Avas  appointed  to  the  Ipswich  circuit ;  soon  after  which  he  was 
sent  to  the  West  Indies,  where  he  laboured  up  to  1848.  Having 
been  two  years  engaged  in  the  ministry  at  home,  at  the  Con- 
ference of  1850  he  was  appointed  to  the  honourable  and  import- 
ant situation  of  "  General  Superintendent  of  the  Missions 
in  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope  District,  in  place  of  the  liev.  Thomas 
L.  Hodgson,  who  was  disabled  by  severe  affliction,'"'  which  soon 
afterwards  terminated  in  death. 

jNlr.  Dove  embraced  an  early  opportunity  of  paying  a  visit  to 
Macarthy's  Island ;  but  as  the  rains  were  rapidly  approaching, 
and  there  was  no  suitable  residence  there,  Mrs.  Dove  remained 
at  St.  Mary's  till  he  returned,  which  Avas  on  the  3d  of  July. 
He  spent  the  rainy  season  partly  with  me  at  St.  Mary's,  and 
partly  at  Goree ;  and  at  the  close  proceeded  with  Mrs.  Dove  to 
take  up  his  abode  at  Macarthy's  Island,  accompanied  by  the 
native  teacher,  Pierre  Sallah. 

There  was  a  peculiarity  about  this  mission  which,  perhaps, 
requires  a  little  explanation.  The  reader  will  recollect  that,  in 
Mr.  Eeecham's  letter  to  me,  it  was  stated  that  Mr.  Dove  was 
appointed  to  Macarthy's  Island  station,  "  for  the  benefit  of  the 
Foulahs."  The  following  are  the  circumstances  which  led  to 
this  arrangement.  The  Rev.  John  jMorgan,  in  his  first  voyage 
up  the  Gambia,  on  reaching  Cantalicuuda,  became  acquainted 
with  the  "pastoral  Foulahs,"  whom  we  have  already  described 
as  having  no  lands  of  their  own,  and,  moreover,  as  being  much 
oppressed  by  the  Mandingoes.  From  these  and  other  causes  he 
became  peculiarly  interested  in  their  welfare.  Being  stationed 
at  Southampton  in  the  year  1831,  he  formed  an  acquaintance 
with  Dr.  Lindoe  of  that  town,  a  pious  and  benevolent  member 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  345 

of  the  Established  Church,  v/ho  had  long  felt  great  interest  in 
the  same  tribe,  from  what  he  had  previously  heard  and  read  of 
them.  The  result  was,  a  small  but  influential  society  was 
formed,  of  ministers  and  laymen,  both  of  the  Church  of  Eng- 
land and  from  among  the  dissenters,  for  the  purpose  of  ame- 
liorating their  temporal  and  spiritual  condition.  The  following 
"Plan,^'  printed  at  Southampton  in  Januaiy,  1833,  which 
contains  the  names  of  the  gentlemen  forming  the  committee, 
will  give  the  reader  a  tolerable  idea  of  the  object  contemplated 
in  this  mission  : — 

PLAN    OF    AN    INSTITUTION    FOR    BENEFITING  THE   FOULAH    TRIBE,  AND,  THROUGH 
THEIR    INSTRUMENTALITY,    THE    INTERIOR    OF    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

Several  friends  of  the  African  race,  whose  minds  have  long  been  deeply  affected 
with  the  knowledge  of  the  wretched  circumstances  of  that  benighted  and  unhappy 
people,  from  a  sense  of  the  obligations  under  which  all  are  laid  by  their  Christian 
privileges,  and  also  from  a  recollection  of  the  many  injuries  to  which  the  African 
tribes  have  been  subjected  from  British  avarice,  are  impressed  with  a  conviction 
of  duty  to  promote,  by  every  possible  means,  the  protection  and  welfare  of  this 
people  ;  conscious,  that  the  only  effectual  way  to  erase  from  their  minds  impressions 
of  the  past  injustice  and  cruelty  of  our  countrymen,  is  to  establish  amongst  them 
the  Christian  religion,  with  the  consequent  blessings  of  civilization  and  commerce. 

The  comparative  fruitlessness  of  the  benevolent  efforts  hitherto  made  to  stop  the 
liorrible  traffic  in  human  beings,  which  is  still  depopulating  the  coasts  of  Africa  to 
an  appalhng  extent,  has  been  observed  with  grief;  a  committee  has  been,  therefore, 
formed  for  the  accomplishment  of  the  great  objects  above-mentioned;  and  they  are 
happy  in  being  now  able  to  recommend  to  all  who  sympathize  with  them,  a  plan 
especially  calculated  to  benelit  the  interesting  tribe  of  the  Foulahs,  in  which  every 
Christian  may  cordially  unite.  The  object  is,  to  obtain  a  tract  of  land  in  the 
interior  of  the  country,  and  to  prociu-e  the  protection  of  the  British  Government, 
so  that  the  settlement  may  be  a  place  of  refuge  for  the  oppressed,  in  which  the 
Foulahs  may,  by  their  own  industry,  live  beyond  the  reach  of  their  oppressors,  and 
enjoy  the  instructions  of  Christian  teachers,  whom  it  is  proposed  to  send  amongst 
them,  to  preach  the  gospel  and  establish  schools. 

The  plan  was  projected  by  a  missionary  when  in  Africa,  with  especial  reference 
to  the  Foulah  tribe,  whom  he  strongly  recommends  to  the  attention  of  the  Christian 
philanthropist,  as  having,  among  the  other  tribes,  the  first  claims  for  commiseration, 
being  the  most  hopeful  subjects  to  receive  benefit,  and  the  most  likely  to  commu- 
nicate it  to  others.  The  following  are  some  of  the  most  interesting  particulars  in 
reference  to  this  people  : — 

1.  Of  all  the  inhabitants  of  Western  Africa,  the  Foulahs  are  the  most  oppressed: 
they  have  no  land  of  their  ov,n ;  and,  living  by  the  sufferance  of  others,  exorbitant 
demands  are  exacted  from  the  fruits  of  their  industry,  as  a  remuneration  for  the 
soil. 

2.  Being  a  defenceless  people,  and  unaccustomed  to  war,  they  are  frequently  the 
victims  of  the  powerful,  who  make  an  easy  prey  both  of  their  persons  and  property; 
but,  though  they  are  obliged  by  their  oppressors  to  contribute  more  to  supply  the 
slave-market  than  any  others,  they  are  not  known  to  have  any  dealings  in  that 
abominable  traffic. 

3.  Thcv  are  distinguished  from  all  tho  other  tribe?  bv  their  industrious  habits. 


346  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

4.  Tliey  are  generally  free  from  Mohammedan  superstition,  which,  wherever  it 
prevails,  has  ])roved  a  strong  barrier  to  the  progress  of  Christian  instruction. 

5.  They  highly  esteem  Europeans,  on  account  of  a  tradition  among  them,  that 
their  tribe  has  descended  from  a  white  man ;  the  truth  of  which,  the  European 
form  of  their  features,  and  the  lightness  of  their  complexion,  preser\'ed  by  inter- 
marrying only  among  themselves,  tend  to  confirm. 

From  a  knowledge  of  the  distressed  circumstances  of  the  Foulahs,  and  from 
conversation  with  some  of  them  on  this  subject,  it  is  beheved  that  many  of  them 
would  gladly  avail  themselves  of  the  plan  proposed,  as  the  following  reply  of  a 
head-man  of  one  of  their  towns  to  the  missionary  who  proposed  it,  confirms  :  "  We 
feel  it  hard  to  believe,"  said  he,  "  that  the  white  people  have  so  much  care  for  us, 
though  we  belong  to  them  ;  but,  if  it  should  be  done,  we  should  soon  be  the  richest 
people  in  the  world,  except  the  Whites." 

\Mien  Jlr.  Morgan,  the  Wesleyan  missionaiy  just  referred  to,  was  in  Western 
Africa,  he  was  offered  six  hundred  acres  of  land  on  Macarthy's  Island,  expressly  for 
the  above  purpose  ;  and  the  committee  cannot  but  hope,  that  the  same  grant  may 
now  be  made  by  Government ;  which  being  in  the  immediate  neighbourhood  of 
the  land  proposed  to  be  purchased  of  the  natives,  the  settlement  will  thus  be 
happily  placed  under  the  protection  of  the  British  Government.  The  Wesleyan 
Missionary  Society,  having  several  native  teachers,  already  prepared  and  engaged 
in  the  same  work,  on  the  same  territory,  that  Society  is  thought  to  be  the  most 
suitable  to  undertake  the  part  of  religious  instruction.  The  Wesleyan  Missionary 
Society  has  engaged  to  send  out  a  missionary  and  his  wife,  and  to  place  two  native 
teachers  under  his  superintendence  on  Macarthy's  Island;  and  to  build  on  it  a 
house  and  school-rooms :  provided  that  the  committee  can  raise  £350  per  annum, 
for  five  years,  and  £150  for  building  the  house  and  school-rooms.  It  is  calculated 
that  the  proposed  establishment  would  be  able  to  support  itself  after  that  time ; 
and  that  during  this  period  it  would  send  forth  many  native  teachers ;  thus  con- 
veying the  knowledge  of  the  Saviour  to  the  Heathen  tribes  of  Africa, — "  the  greatest 
blessing  we  have  received,  the  most  precious  boon  we  can  bestow."  And,  surely, 
we  have  good  reason  to  hope  for  success,  since  Biitaiu  was  once  as  ignorant  and  as 
barbarous  as  Africa.  The  change  which  has  taken  place  has  been  produced  by 
Christianity,  which  was  brought  to  our  shores  by  men  equally  devoid  of  miraculous 
powers  with  ourselves.  How  weighty,  then,  are  our  obligations  to  communicate 
the  good  we  have  so  mercifully  received  ! 

Such  is  a  general  outline  of  the  proposed  plan,  which,  as  it  comprehends  various 
objects,  the  committee  submits,  with  full  confidence,  to  the  consideration  of  the 
friends  of  Africa  among  all  Christian  denominations ;  earnestly  hoping  that  the 
cause  will  receive  that  assistance  from  the  religious  public  to  which  they  believe  it 
is  entitled.  Mr.  John  Morgan,  late  missionary  in  Western  Africa,  has  kindly 
engaged  to  collect  for  this  important  object. 

Southampton,  January  \^th,  1833. 

Distinct  funds  will  be  kept  for  the  general  purposes  of  the  institution  ;  also  for 
schools,  the  mission,  and  the  purchase  of  land. 

Subscriptions  and  donations  received  at  Messrs.  Barnetts,  Hoare,  and  Co.,  62, 
Lombard-street,  London  ;  Messrs.  Maddisons,  Bankers,  Southamjiton  ;  and  by  every 
member  of  the  committee. 

The  subscribers'  names,  with  a  statement  of  accounts  and  facts  relative  to  the 
institution,  will  appear  in  an  Annual  Report. 

The  vhole  sum  will  be  applied  to  the  object,  as  all  expenses  of  collecting, 
printing,  &c.,  will  be  defrayed  by  a  member  of  the  committee ;  and  at  the  expira- 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  347 

tion  of  the  five  j^ears,  the  balance  will  be  expended  for  the  benefit  of  the  Foulah 
tribe,  or  placed  in  the  hands  of  trustees. 

Committee. — Rev.  William  Bettridge,  Rev.  James  Crabb,  Rev.  W.  D.  Goy,  Mr. 
John  Morgan,  late  missionary  in  Western  Africa,  Rev.  B.  H.  Draper,  Thomas 
Maskew,  Esq.,  James  Sharp,  Esq.,  Mr.  G.  Laishley,  Robert  Lindoe,  M.D. 

Secretaries. — Robert  Lindoe,  M.D.,  Rev.  B.  H.  Draper. 

Dr.  Lindoe  liberally  subscribed  c€110  per  annum  for  five 
years ;  and  by  means  of  printing  and  circulating  a  great  number 
of  prospectuses  of  the  undertaking,  a  highly  respectable  list  of 
subscribers  and  contributions  was  obtained. 

In  the  Annual  Report  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society 
for  that  year,  are  the  following  remarks  on  this  subject ; — 

The  committee  have  the  pleasure  to  announce  the  intended  enlargement  of  their 
mission  to  Macarthy's  Island.  The  peaceful  and  industrious  habits  of  the  Foulahs, 
a  numerous  scattered  people  of  Western  Africa,  their  exemption  to  a  great  extent 
from  the  influence  of  Mohammedanism,  and  their  favourable  regard  of  Europeans, 
marked  them  out  as  fit  objects  of  the  missionary  zeal  of  Dr.  Coke  ;  and  a  number 
of  benevolent  persons  have  now  become  so  far  interested  in  their  welfare,  as  to 
engage  to  raise,  for  five  years,  an  annual  sum  sufficient  to  meet  the  whole  expense 
of  a  mission  to  this  people.  They  have  already  generously  advanced  £350  for  the 
first  year,  with  £150  additional,  to  be  expended  in  building  premises;  and,  in  pro- 
motion of  this  Christian  enterprise,  His  Majesty's  Government  has  most  liberally 
granted  six  hundred  acres  of  land  in  Macarthy's  Island,  which  is  to  be  the  head  of 
the  mission.  Mr.  Dove  has  been  appointed  to  the  important  service.  The  two 
native  assistants,  John  Cupidon  and  Pierre  Sallah,  are  placed  under  his  direction ; 
and  the  brethren  are  to  itinerate  among  the  Foulah  towns  within  their  reach  on 
each  bank  of  the  Gambia,  preaching  the  gospel,  and  establishing  schools,  wherever 
opportunity  offers.  The  Committee  commend  the  undertaking  to  the  prayers  of  the 
friends  of  missions,  that  God  may  make  it  the  means  of  the  extensive  diffusion  of 
the  blessings  of  Christianity  throughout  that  part  of  Western  Africa.* 

It  will  be  readily  inferred,  from  the  preceding  statement,  that 
the  missionary,  and  the  two  assistants,  sent  to  this  station  witli 
especial  reference  to  the  Eoulahs,  though  supported  by  the 
Southampton  Committee,  were  nevertheless  altogether  under  the 
direction  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee,  and  to  them 
all  official  communications  were  made.  Mr.  Dove  immediately 
commenced  the  erection  of  suitable  mission-premises,  in  which 
he  was  assisted  by  liberal  contributions  from  most  of  the  Euro- 
peans at  St.  Mary's,  and  other  respectable  persons  in  the 
colony,  as  well  as  by  a  further  grant  from  the  friends  at 
Southampton.  An  interesting  letter  from  Mr.  Dove,  detailing 
the  particulars  of  his  first  voyage  up  the  Gambia,  and  visit  to 
Macarthy's  Island,  with  the  pleasing  prospect  of  success,  was 
published  in  the  "  Missionary  Notices  "  for  October  of  the  same 

*  "  Report  of  the  Wesleyaii-Methodist  ]\Iissionary  Society  for  1S32-33,"  pp. 
58,  59. 


348  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA, 

year;  and  on  the  1st  of  January,  1834,  the  Southampton  Com- 
mittee published  their  first  Annual  Report,  of  which  the  follow- 
ing is  a  copy  : — 

THE    FIRST     ANNUAL     REPORT     OF     THE     COMMITTEE     OF     THE     INSTITUTION    FOR 
BENEFITING    THE    FOULAH    TRIBE,    AND,    THROUGH    THEM,    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

The  committee,  deeplj'  impressed  with  the  vast  importance  of  their  plan,  present 
their  Report  to  the  public,  with  an  earnest  hope  for  their  continued  patronage. 

The  committee  desire  to  press  the  question  on  the  friends  of  this  charity,  which 
includes  in  it  the  eternal  welfare  of  millions  of  our  race, — Whether  a  committee  might 
not  be  formed  in  London  with  which  the  Associations  in  the  country  might  communi- 
cate ?  They  cannot  liut  feel,  that  the  liberal  grant  of  His  Majesty's  Government  of  six 
hundred  acres  of  land  on  Macarthy's  Island,  gives  at  once  weight  and  importance  to 
this  new  missionary  station  :  and  they  feel  much  anxiety  for  its  improvement,  by 
effectual  cultivation,  as  well  as  for  ability  to  rent  a  large  tract  of  ground,  for  the 
civilization  of  the  Foulahs,  to  send  agriculturists,  &c. ;  and  also  to  circulate  the 
holy  scriptures  where  they  have  been  as  yet  unknown. 

According  to  agreement,  the  sums  of  £obO  and  £1^0  were  immediately  advanced 
to  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society.  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  the  first  missionaries, 
arrived  at  St.  Mary's,  April  23d,  1833.  In  addition  to  the  sums  already  specified, 
.£150  has  been  remitted,  that  the  mission-premises  may  be  substantially  built; 
this,  with  the  liberal  offer  of  £70,  by  some  gentlemen  at  St.  Mary's,  is  thought  will 
be  sufficient  for  that  work.  Two  pious  natives  are  already  on  the  spot,  who  are 
engaged  in  teaching,  &c. 

As  Macarthy's  Island  is  situated  about  three  huncked  miles  from  St.  Mary's,  on 
the  noble  river  Gambia,  it  will  probably  become  a  consideraljle  place  of  trade,  and 
of  great  importance  as  a  central  mission- station  ;  and  there  is  little  doubt  but  that  other 
societies  will  assist  in  the  work  of  civilizing  and  evangelizing  that  degraded  countrj'. 

The  committee  have  received  many  letters  from  persons  of  high  estimation, 
expressive  of  the  great  interest  they  feel  in  the  success  of  this  plan.  C.  Grant, 
Esq.,  of  St.  Mary's,  Gambia,  has  been  nineteen  years  on  the  coast  of  Africa,  and  has 
travelled  into  the  interior ;  and,  from  his  character  and  opportunity  for  observation, 
his  opinion  of  the  plan  must  be  considered  of  no  small  value.  In  a  letter  received 
from  that  gentleman,  he  expresses  his  readiness  to  co-operate  in  the  plan ;  stating 
the  fact,  that  some  lumdreds  of  liberated  Africans  have  been  located  on  the  river 
Gambia  ;  and  many  more  are  expected.  And  he  adds,  "  There  are  no  propositions 
for  the  imjjrovement  of  Africa,  which  have  yet  come  under  my  notice,  that  I  could 
so  readily  sujjport,  or  with  such  confidence  of  ultimate  success." 

The  llev.  J.  Horton,  curate  of  St.  George's,  Borough,  formerly  chaplain  to  the 
forces  in  the  Gambia,  writes  : — "  After  living  ten  years  on  the  coast  of  Africa,  I 
beg  to  state,  that  I  have  never  seen  or  heard  of  a  plan,  so  likely  to  succeed,  under 
the  Divine  blessing,  in  promoting  the  Christian  religion  in  Africa,  as  that  to  which 
your  prospectus  has  reference." 

The  Society  of  Friends  have  ever  proved  their  concern  for  the  welfare  of  Africa : 
some  years  since,  they  formed  a  committee  to  carry  into  execution  a  plan  for 
"  African  Instruction  ; "  particularly  under  the  care  of  H.  Kilham  and  William 
Singleton.  The  committee  look  forward  with  hope  for  their  support  in  the  present 
undertaking.  Mrs.  Fry,  a  character  well  known  and  justly  valued,  gives  her  senti- 
ments in  the  following  words : — "  I  am  glad  to  take  this  opportunity  of  expressing 
the  interest  I  take  in  the  mission  to  the  Foulah  tribe,  and  how  earnestly  I  desire 
that  such  a  blessing  may  attend  the  labours  of  those  that  are  sent  amongst  them. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  349 

that  they  may  be  the  means  of  spreading  the  '  glad  tidings '  of  the  gospel  into 
injured  and  benighted  Africa.  It  appears  to  me,  that  there  are  several  objects  of 
the  mission  in  which  the  Society  of  Friends  can  most  freely  nnite ;  and  considering 
that  at  present  they  have  not  any  regular  missionary  stations  of  their  own,  sup- 
ported by  the  Friends  in  England,  I  trust  that  they  will  feel  it  a  duty,  according  to 
ability,  liberally  to  support  this  undertaking  in  the  expenses  attending  translating 
the  holy  scriptures,  distributing  copies  of  them,  educating  the  children,  and 
in  obtaining  suitable  implements  for  cultivating  the  land,  and  building  the  needful 
houses,  school-rooms,  &c.  I  quite  hope  and  desire,  as  soon  as  I  properly  can,  to 
give  my  mite  to  this  interesting  object  -.  which  I  trust  all  Christians  of  every 
denomination  will  think  it  right  to  promote  in  such  a  way  as  they  may  think  best." 

Mr.  T.  Clarkson  observes,  in  a  letter  written  under  the  painful  circumstance  of 
approaching  blindness : — "  The  spot  is,  1  know,  favourable  for  the  undertaking ; 
and  the  Foulahs  are  the  very  people  you  describe.  Your  plan  should,  I  think,  be  a 
little  more  explicitly  detailed  ;  I  see,  however,  enough  of  it  myself,  to  know  that  it 
is  worthy  of  attention  and  encouragement." 

It  may  be  observed,  that  the  plan  must  have  time  to  unfold  itself,  as,  indeed,  it 
shall  please  Providence  to  open  the  way.  The  committee  conclude,  by  commend- 
ing the  cause  of  Africa  to  the  providence  of  God ;  and  by  reminding  the  reader 
that  Britain  received  the  Bible  by  the  hands  of  foreigners.  They  close  with  the 
words  of  one  of  their  earliest  friends  : — "  May  the  blessing  of  the  great  Head  of  the 
church  rest  on  this  attempt  to  communicate  His  '  saving  health '  to  regions  over 
which  the  prince  of  darkness  has  hitherto  exercised  an  uncontrolled  dominion." 

Southampton,  January  Isf,  1834. 

Committee. — Rev.  William  Bettridge,  Rev.  James  Crabb,  Rev.  W.  D.  Goy,  Mr. 
John  Morgan,  late  missionary  in  Western  Africa,  Rev.  B.  H.  Draper,  James  Sharp, 
Esq.,  Mr.  G.  Laishley,  Mr.  Bienvenu,  Robert  Lindoe,  M.D. 

Secretaries. — Robert  Lindoe,  M.D.,  Rev.  B.  H.  Draper. 

Subscriptions  and  donations  received  at  Messrs.  Barnetts,  Hoare,  and  Co.,  62, 
Lombard- Street,  London  ;  ^lessrs.  Maddisons,  Bankers,  Southampton  ;  and  by  every 
member  of  the  committee. 

The  whole  sum  will  be  applied  to  the  object,  as  all  expenses  of  collecting,  print- 
ing, &c.,  will  be  defrayed  by  a  member  of  the  committee  ;  and  at  the  expiration  of 
the  five  years,  the  balance  will  be  expended  for  the  benefit  of  the  Foulah  tribe,  or 
placed  in  the  hands  of  trustees. 

Receipts  and  Payments,  for  the  year  18.33. 


£.  s.  d. 
Annual  Subscriptions  for  five 

years   256  18  0 

Donations  and  Collections  ...453  2  0 


710     0     0 


£.     s.    d. 

Cash  to  the  Wesleyan  Mis- 
sionary Society    3.")0     0     0 

Ditto,  for  building  mission- 
premises  and  school-room  .150     0     0 

Ditto.  Ditto 150     0     0 

Balance  due  by  the  Treasurer, 

December  31st,  1833 GO     0     0 


710     0     0 


Examined,  and  find  a  balance  due  by  the  Treasurers,  £60  ;   also  £60   paid  in 
advance,  for  the  four  following  years. 

R.  LINDOE,  M.D. 
B.  II.  DRAPER. 


350 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


This  Report  was  followed  by  an  Appendix,  containing 
extracts  from  the  "Missionary  Notices/'  and  a  large  list  of 
subscribers. 

At  Sierra-Leone  the  work  of  God,  under  the  ministry  of 
Messrs.  Maer  and  Clarke,  was  graciously  reviving :  the  mission 
was  considerably  extended  ;  the  populous  towns  of  Wellington, 
Wilberforce,  Lumley,  and  Murray,  were  now  taken  into  the 
sphere  of  missionary  labour;  and  the  Society  of  Friends  at  this 
time  afforded  considerable  pecuniary  assistance  in  the  school 
department. 

The  writer  has  no  wish  unduly  to  exhibit  himself  in  a  nar- 
rative of  these  missions ;  but  truth  and  justice  demand  that  facts 
should  be  stated ;  and,  in  doing  this,  he  will  necessarily  be  led 
occasionally  to  use  the  first  personal  pronoun  in  the  statement 
of  these  facts,  and  in  giving  a  faithful  record  of  the  obstacles, 
difficulties,  progress,  and  prosperity  of  the  mission ;  more  parti- 
cularly of  that  at  the  Gambia.  This  will  sometimes  be  done  by 
quotation  from  statements  already  before  the  public,  and  some- 
times by  extracts  from  unpublished  letters  and  other  documents. 

On  the  departure  of  Mr.  Dove  from  St.  Mary's  for  Macar- 
thy's  Island  in  October,  1833,  it  will  be  recollected  that  he  took 
with  him  the  other  native  teacher,  according  to  the  arrange- 
ment made  by  the  parent  committee  with  the  benevolent 
friends  at  Southampton.  I  Avas  therefore  left  at  St.  INIary's 
without  any  local  help,  except  one  or  two  natives,  who  acted 
occasionally  as  local  preachers.  The  mission-chapel,  which  also 
answered  for  a  school-room,  was  the  ground-floor  of  the  mission- 
house,  which  was  thirty-six  feet  by  seventeen  in  the  clear.  The 
week-day  school,  with  preaching,  visiting,  &c.,  furnished  me 
with  full  employment;  and  though  I  and  my  dear  wife  were 
frequently  laid  aside  by  repeated  attacks  of  fever,  during  the 
rains,  as  well  as  for  some  time  after,  we  were  cheered  and 
encouraged  by  what  we  saw  and  felt  of  the  Divine  Presence  and 
blessing.  The  congregation  so  increased,  as  well  as  the  mem- 
bers of  the  society,  that,  towards  the  close  of  the  year,  an  appli- 
cation was  made  to  the  committee  in  London  for  permission  to 
erect  a  proper  chapel  as  a  place  for  Divine  worship,  which,  after 
some  unavoidable  delav,  was  at  length  acceded  to.  In  this 
case,  we  witnessed  the  truth  of  that  saying  of  holy  writ,  "  One 
soweth,  and  another  reapeth."  My  dear  brethren  who  had 
preceded  me  had  gone  forth,  breaking  up  the  fallow  ground, 
bearing  the  precious  seed,  watering  it  with  their  prayers  and 
tears,  and  some  of  them  with  their  lives ;  and  now  the  fruit  of 
their  united  labours  was  appearing  in  "some  thirty,  some  sixty. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE,  351 

and  in  some  an  hundred-fold."  This  applied  not  only  to  St. 
Mary's  and  Macarthy's  Island,  but  also  to  Sierra-Leone;  as 
the  Annual  Report  for  1834  will  show : — 

MISSIONS    IN    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

Sierra-Leone,  Messrs.  Maer  and  Clarke,  and  one  native  assistant  missionary, 
recently  appointed. 

St.  Mari/'if,  on  the  River  Gambia,  Mr.  Fox. 

Macarthi/s  Island  {Foulah  Mission),  Mr.  Dove ;  John  Cupidon  and  Pierre  Sallah, 
assistant  missionaries.     Four  salaried  school  teachers. 

The  stations  occupied  hy  the  Society  on  the  coast  of  Western  Africa  have  lost  no 
portion  of  their  interest  or  importance  since  the  piihlication  of  the  last  Report.  On  the 
contrary,  every  one  of  them  presents  the  aspect  of  growing  stability  and  usefulness. 

In  Sierra-Leone  great  spiritual  prosperity  has  been  vouchsafed  during  the  past 
year.  The  Society  has  increased  from  about  four  hundred  to  four  hundred  and 
seventy-one,  besides  forty-three  yet  on  trial.  Various  instances  of  sound  conver- 
sion to  God  are  stated,  among  the  liberated  Africans,  and  others ;  and  many  more 
have  been  awakened  from  the  sleep  of  sin,  and  appear  to  be  earnestly  seeking 
salvation.  There  are  two  hundi-ed  and  sixteen  children  in  the  schools,  whose 
attendance  is  good ;  and  who  generally  display  considerable  quickness  in  learning, 
and  are  making  a  satisfactory  improvement.  That  at  Portuguese-Town  is  especially 
prosperous ;  and  the  committee  have  gladly  sanctioned  the  extension  of  its  useful- 
ness, in  the  female  department,  by  becoming  responsible  for  an  additional  salary  to 
the  schoolmistress,  who  undertakes  to  instruct  about  thirty  girls  in  needlework  twa 
hours  in  every  day.  FeeUng  it  to  be  a  delightful  as  well  as  important  part  of 
their  duty,  to  encourage,  in  all  their  stations  among  the  Heathen,  the  multiplication 
of  such  benevolent  establishments,  they  have  also  directed  the  commencement  of  a 
new  school  at  Wilberforce  ;  happy  thus  to  erect  an  humble,  but  useful,  testimonial 
to  the  virtues  and  the  services  of  that  revered  and  illustrious  individual,  whom  the 
world  laments,  in  Africa,  the  country  for  which  he  so  long  cared,  and  in  the  very 
town  which  bears  his  name.  An  earnest  desire  has  been  expressed  that  more 
schools  should  be  established  in  the  colony ;  and  the  governor  has  kindly  promised 
land  for  the  erection  of  buildings,  which  may  answer  the  double  purpose  of  schools,, 
and  of  places  for  religious  worship  and  general  instruction.  The  committee  have 
it  in  their  hearts  to  pay  all  practicable  attention  to  this  object ;  and  cannot  omit  to 
offer  their  best  acknowledgments  to  those  Christian  ladies  connected  with  the 
Society  of  Friends,  and  others,  who  have  already  aided  them  in  this  department  of 
their  African  work  by  very  liberal  contributions.  The  general  labours  of  this- 
mission,  also,  call  for  additional  assistance.  The  town  of  Wellington,  left  for  a 
time  without  spiritual  help,  has  been  again  occupied  by  the  brethren,  after  nume- 
rous solicitations.  It  has  a  population  of  three  thousand ;  and  some  first-fruits- 
have  already  been  gathered  into  the  Christian  church.  On  the  other  side  of  Free- 
Town  are,  Wilberforce,  Murray,  Shilling,  and  two  other  places,  which  require 
ministerial  and  pastoral  attention.  To  meet  these  calls  two  more  missionaries  are 
requested ;  and,  that  they  may  not  be  wholly  neglected,  the  committee  have  lately 
authorized  the  employment  of  a  converted  African,  well  recommended,  as  an  assist- 
ant missionary,  till  some  more  adequate  provision  can  be  made  for  the  wants  of 
these  interesting  stations.  Africa  herself  has  surely  a  claim,  which  cannot  be  dis- 
puted or  resisted,  to  a  large  portion  of  that  holy  sympathy  and  active  zeal  which 
have  been  cheerfully  bestowed  on  her  children  and  their  descendants,  in  the  land 
of  their  expatriation  and  bondage.     To  her,  on  behalf  of  those  who  now  inhabit 


353  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

her  long-desolated  shores,  England  owes  this  compensation  ;  and  should  embrace, 
with  no  reluctant  heart  or  niggard  hand,  every  opportunity  which  occurs  of  begin- 
ning to  discharge  a  debt  so  just,  and  now,  alas !  chargeable  with  arrears  of  so  long 
standing,  and  of  such  vast  amount. 

From  St.  ]\Iary's,  on  the  River  Gambia,  the  accounts  are  highly  encouraging. 
Mr.  Fox  states,  in  a  letter  dated  January  21st,  1834,  the  following  particulars  : — 

"  God  has  been  pleased  to  visit  us  with  showers  of  gracious  influence ;  and  the 
fruit  appears  in  the  blessed  change  which  has  taken  place  in  habitations  where,  a 
short  time  ago,  dwelt  nothing  but  wretchedness.  Now,  from  many  a  happy  hut, 
where  the  family  altar  has  been  but  newly  erected,  ascends  the  voice  of  prayer  and 
the  song  of  praise.  All  our  meetings  ai-e  crowded  to  excess,  even  at  iive  o'clock  in 
the  morning.  Our  old  members  are  *  alive  to  God,'  and  are  constrained  to  say, 
'  We  never  saw  it  on  this  fashion.'  The  chapel  will  not  hold  much  more  than 
half  the  regular  congregation.  Since  my  arrival  I  have  formed  five  new  classes. 
The  members  attend  these,  as  well  as  the  other  means  of  grace,  with  the  greatest 
punctuality.  Our  number  of  members  now  at  St.  Mary's  is  two  hundred  and  four. 
[This  is  an  increase,  since  the  last  Report  was  published,  of  more  than  one  hun- 
dred and  forty.]  Some  of  the  worst  characters  in  the  town,  and  one  or  two  who 
were  the  votaries  of  Mohammedan  delusion,  have  given  themselves  to  God.  They 
now 

'  Loudly  in  strange  Hosannas  join. 

And  blasphemies  are  turn'd  to  praise.' 

With  such  an  increase  of  members,  it  is  naturally  to  be  expected  that  our  finances 
should  increase  in  proportion.  Such  is  the  case :  the  local  income  during  the 
past  quarter  has  nearly  doubled  that  of  any  preceding  one.  We  have  built  a  small 
chapel  at  Soldiers'-Town,  without  any  expense  to  the  committee.  I  have' com- 
menced preaching  at  Goderich  Village,  quite  at  the  extremity  of  the  island,  where 
a  considerable  number  of  liberated  Africans  are  located ;  and  also  at  Fort  BuUen, 
Bermck-Town,  inhabited  by  discharged  soldiers  and  others,  who  know  a  little  Eng- 
lish, and  are  thankful  for  the  gospel.  As  ray  visits  to  the  other  side  required  that 
I  should  have  a  boat  at  my  own  command,  though  several  of  the  merchants  kindly 
otfered  me  the  occasional  use  of  one  of  theirs,  a  very  good  one,  called  '  the  Mis- 
sion-Boat,' has  been  completed  by  subscriptions,  and  by  the  gratuitous  labour  of 
some  of  our  members  at  their  hours  of  leisure.  Our  school  has  an  addition  of 
more  than  twenty  boys,  some  of  whom  are  making  pleasing  progress  in  reading, 
writing,  and  arithmetic.  We  have  also  an  adult  school  on  Sundays  of  about  forty 
persons,  who  are  anxious  to  learn  the  word  of  God." 

The  station  at  Macarthy's  Island  has  been  finally  selected,  according  to  the 
intention  stated  in  the  Report  of  last  year,  as  the  centre  and  head-quarters  of  the 
new  mission  to  the  Foulalis,  to  many  of  whose  towns  and  villages,  on  each  bank  of 
(he  river,  it  aflfords  great  facilities  of  access,  for  the  purpose  of  preaching  the  gospel 
to  that  interesting  race,  and  of  establishing  schools.  Mr.  Dove  has  received  the 
kindest  encouragement,  in  reference  to  this  enterprise,  from  the  governor,  and  from 
other  persons  of  influence.  Two  native  assistant  missionaries  are  appointed  to 
labour  under  his  direction  ;  and  his  preliminary  visits  to  a  number  of  Mandingo 
and  Foulah  towns  were  received  by  the  people  in  a  manner  which  encourages  the 
hope  that,  in  the  mercy  of  God,  "  a  great  and  effectual  door  "  is  about  to  be  opened 
in  those  regions.  The  committee  again  earnestly  commend  this  undertaking  to  the 
prayers  of  the  Society  and  of  the  Christian  public.  They  have  been  chiefly  induced 
to  embark  in  it  by  the  munificence  of  a  gentleman,  whose  Ijenevolent  zeal  they,  in 
this  case,  appreciate  the  more  higldy,  because  he,  and  his  generous  coadjutors  in 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  353 

the  effort,  are  not  connected  Ijy  religious  denomination  with  the  Wesleyan  body. 
Dr.  Lindoe,  of  Southampton,  aided  by  other  friends  in  various  places,  to  whom  he 
has  successfully  made  application,  has  contributed  a  donation  of  £150  for  the 
estabhshment  of  the  mission  ;  and  has  advanced  already  two  sums,  of  £350  each, 
for  its  support  during  the  first  and  second  years  of  its  existence,  guaranteeing  a  like 
sum  annually,  for  each  of  the  three  succeeding  years.  And,  learning  from  Mr. 
Dove's  statements  to  the  committee,  that  the  expense  of  building  suitable  mission- 
premises  at  Macarthy's  Island  will  exceed  the  sum  before  transmitted,  and  that 
raised  by  European  residents  at  St.  Mary's,  by  the  amount  of  £150,  Dr.  Lindoe 
immediately  forwarded  to  the  Society's  treasurers  an  order  for  the  whole  of  the 
estimated  deficiency ;  so  that,  in  the  accounts  appended  to  this  Keport,  the  sum  of 
£1,000  \vill  be  entered  as  derived  from  this  source  during  the  year  lately  closed. 
From  such  noble  and  disinterested  benevolence  the  committee  cannot  withhold  this 
public  tribute  of  their  admiration  and  gratitude.* 

About  tliis  time^  Mr.  Dove  wrote  from  Macartliy^s  Islaud  as 
follows : — 

We  have  truly  a  most  dehghtful  prospect  of  doing  good ;  for  here  are  souls, 
immortal  souls,  all  atliirst  for  the  water  of  life.  During  the  quarter  we  have  had 
a  most  blessed  revival.  I  have  married  thirty  couples,  who  would  no  longer  live 
in  a  state  of  concubinage ;  baptized  ninety-two  adults,  and  several  children ;  and 
likewise  admitted  seventy-eight  persons  on  trial,  many  of  whom,  I  am  happy  to  say, 
have  experienced  a  knowledge  of  salvation  by  the  remission  of  their  sins,  and  are 
ornaments  to  their  profession.  We  have  lately  commenced  preaching  at  Broco,  a 
Foulah  town,  and  at  Jamela,  a  Mandingo  town.  My  assistant  brethren  are  zealous 
for  the  Lord  of  hosts ;  and  I  am  fully  persuaded  that,  as  soon  as  the  people  in  the 
interior  can  understand  us  more  perfectly,  we  shall  have  an  abundant  harvest  of 
immortal  souls.  We  have  only  a  few  of  the  Fovdahs  on  Macarthy's  Island  at 
present ;  but  think,  as  soon  as  the  land  is  measured,  many  of  them  will  be  glad  to 
make  a  town  (as  it  is  called)  on  the  island,  which  will  gladden  our  hearts. 

Thus  was  God  with  his  servants  at  each  of  these  stations ; 
and  the  work  which  was  begun  continued,  quarter  after  quarter, 
to  prosper.  The  following  communication  from  the  author  will 
show  that  this  good  work  had  been  in  existence,  at  St.  Mary's, 
some  months  previous  to  the  preceding  date  in  the  General 
Report,  and  that  it  continued  and  was  still  going  on  months 
after.  The  letter,  with  extracts  from  my  journal,  was  dated, 
"  St.  Mary's,  April  21st,  1834  :"— 

A  few  days  ago,  I  returned  from  a  visit  to  Macarthy's  Island.  Macarthy's 
Island  and  its  immediate  neighbourhood  certainly  present  a  fine  field  for  missionary 
labour,  and  I  have  no  doubt  that  much  good  will  result  from  placiug  a  missionary 
there. 

As  it  regards  ray  own  station,  St.  Mary's,  I  am  happy  still  to  report  good  tidings. 
"  The  Lord  of  hosts  is  still  with  us,"  and  our  Zion  is  in  great  prospei'ity.  During 
the  past  quarter,  more  than  fifty  have  again  been  added  to  us ;  and  almost  every 
day  I  have  people  coming  to  the  mission-house,  begging  me  to  allow  them  to  meet 

*  "Keport  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary  Society  for  1834,"  pp.  50 — 53. 

A    A 


354  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

in  class.  To  these  I  speak  on  the  n<iture  of  class-meeting,  and  on  the  serious 
importance  of  becoming  professors  of  Christianity,  bidding  them  "  count  the  cost." 
I  then  allow  them  to  meet  three  or  four  times  before  I  enter  their  names,  and  keep 
them  two  quarters  on  trial  before  1  consider  them  as  full  members.  To-morrow  it 
will  be  twelve  months  since  we  landed  here;  and  since  that  period  two  hundied 
persons  have  enrolled  their  names  on  our  class-books,  and  are  members  of  the 
church  of  Christ  on  earth ;  most  of  whom,  I  believe,  bid  fair  to  enter  the  church 
triumphant  in  glory.  "  This  is  indeed  the  Lord's  doing,  and  it  is  marvellous  in  our 
eyes."  I  have  had  the  high  honour  of  being  in  a  few  revivals  in  England;  I  have 
witnessed  and  experienced  many  an  outpouring  of  the  Spirit's  hallowing  and  saving 
influence,  and  have  seen  many  hard  hearts  softened,  and  mourning  sinners  cheered. 
Those  were  indeed  happy  days ;  and  I  can  add, 

"  How  sweet  their  memory  still !  " 

But  I  would  not  change  them  for  those  I  now  enjoy. 

The  following  are  extracts  from  my  journal : — 

Sunday,  August  4th,  1833. — Much  rain  fell  this  morning;  but  we  had  a  full 
chapel,  and  a  good  feeling  among  the  people. 

7th. — Last  evening  the  hghtning  struck  a  small  house  very  near  to  us ;  some 
injury  was  done  to  it,  but  no  person  was  hurt.  We  have  this  evening  had  a  most 
blessed  meeting ;  the  power  of  God  was  felt. 

Sunday,  llth. — A  very  full  chapel,  while  I  was  preaching  on  the  Christian 
minister's  embassy,  "  Now  then  we  are  ambassadors  for  Christ,"  &c.  A  good  con- 
gregation also  in  the  evening ;  and  I  felt  it  good  while  speaking  from,  "  Happy  art 
thou,  0  Israel,"  &c. 

12th. — I  went  to  a  prayer-meeting  in  one  of  the  native  houses.  After  prayer- 
meeting,  I  had  a  long  conversation  with  a  Mohammedan  priest. 

17th. — As  there  is  a  want  of  rain  this  year  to  produce  the  necessary  crops,  I 
have  to-day  received  a  request  from  His  Excellency  the  governor,  that  our  congre- 
gation should,  on  the  morrow,  "  present  an  humble  petition  to  Almighty  God,  to 
avert  the  dreaded  evils  of  famine  and  scarcity,  which  it  is  to  be  feared  this  island 
will  be  visited  with." 

26th. — The  natives  caught  two  sharks ;  in  one  of  them  was  the  arm  of  a  boy 
who  was  bathing  on  Saturday,  and  by  this  great  fish  was  killed.  The  body  was 
rescued  from  the  shark ;  but  before  he  reached  the  hospital,  life  became  extinct. 
This  evening  I  attended  a  prayer-meeting  in  one  of  the  houses,  and  gave  an  exhort- 
ation ;  many  could  not  obtain  admittance. 

28th. — -The  Rev.  C.  L.  F.  Haensel,  Church  missionary,  on  his  way  to  Sierra- 
Leone,  is  with  us  during  the  stay  of  the  vessel  here.  He  preached  to  the  people 
this  evening. 

Sunday,  October  27th. — This  morning  I  had  another  attack  of  fever,  which  pre- 
vented me  from  preaching. 

29th. — Alas  !  how  very  soon  sickness  can  blast  om-  hopes,  and  lay  our  prospects 
in  the  dust !  Yesterday  I  was  much  better  than  on  Sunday ;  to-day  I  have  no 
pulse,  and  can  scarcely  breathe. 

31st. — Mr.  Grant  has  sat  up  with  me  again  all  night.  May  God  reward  him  ! 
To-day  I  am  something  better. 

Novemljcr  4th. — My  dear  wife  and  I  feel  ourselves  pretty  well  again,  and  have 
this  morning  afresh  commenced  the  school.  0  may  our  health  be  preserved,  and 
our  hves  spared,  that  we  may  be  instrumental  in  conducting  these  lambs  to  the 
heavenlv  fold  ! 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERUA-LEONE.  355 

14th. — Many  could  not  obtain  entrance  to  the  chapel  at  five  o'clock  this 
morning. 

Sunday,  December  8th. — I  preached  to  a  crowded  congregation.  During  the 
sermon  one  person  was  made  happy  in  the  peace  of  God.  After  the  sermon  I  bap- 
tized fifteen  adults  and  two  infants.  In  the  afternoon  1  went  to  Berwick-Town, 
Fort  BuUen,  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  river,  and  preached  to  a  number  of  soldiers, 
discharged  soldiers,  and  others,  who,  I  am  happy  to  say,  feel  thankful  for  the  sound 
of  the  gospel.  They  begged  I  would  come  every  Sunday ;  but  this  I  could  not  pro- 
mise. I  told  them  I  would  visit  them  as  often  as  I  could.  I  reached  St.  Mary's 
again  just  in  time  for  the  evening  service. 

9th.- — I  formed  three  new  classes. 

Sunday,  15th. — -To-day  1  have  read  prayers,  as  usual,  and  preached  three  times. 
I  baptized  twenty-three  people,  and  met  one  class  for  the  renewal  of  their  society- 
tickets. 

Sunday,  22d. — Preached  three  times,  and  baptized  twenty-six  adults. 

25th,  Christmas-day. — I  was  unwell  this  morning ;  but  the  Lord  has  helped  me. 
We  commenced  the  prayer-meeting  at  five  o'clock ;  at  half-past  ten  I  preached  ;  at 
two  o'clock  held  our  love-feast,  when  the  chapel  would  not  hold  all  the  members 
of  society.  Many  gave  very  interesting  accounts  of  their  conviction  of  sin,  their 
conversion  to  God,  and  tlieir  present  religious  experience.  In  the  evening  opened 
the  new  chapel  at  Soldier-Town. 

26th. — This  evening  the  moon  was  totally  echpsed ;  which  occasioned  great  con- 
sternation in  the  minds  of  the  natives.  A  large  number  who  that  evening  were,  as 
usual,  dancing  and  beating  the  drum,  ran  home  affrighted. 

31st. — I  held  a  watch-night,  when  the  four  brethren  preached, — two  in  Enghsh, 
and  two  in  Jaloof.  I  afterwards  addressed  them  ;  at  the  close  of  which,  I  beUeve, 
we  all  gave  ourselves  afresh  to  God. 

January  1st,  1834. — My  heart  glowed  with  gratitude  to  God  this  day,  while  sur- 
vejdng  the  providential  series  of  mercies  which  I  have  received  from  my  heavenly 
Father  during  the  past  year.     God  has  indeed  been  mindful  of  me  and  mine,  and, 

"  Through  hidden  dangers,  toils,  and  deaths. 
Has  gently  clear'd  our  way." 

We  have  been  sick  and  afflicted,  tempted  and  tried ;  but  never,  no,  never,  forsaken 
by  Him  who  said,  "  Lo,  I  am  with  you  alway : "  and  those  beautiful  lines  came 
from  our  lips  with  an  application  never  before  experienced  : — 

"  Oft  from  the  margin  of  the  grave 

Thou,  Lord,  hast  Ufted  up  my  head ; 
Sudden,  I  found  Thee  near  to  save, — 
The  fever  own'd  thy  touch,  and  fled." 

The  blessed  God  has  not  only  preserved  us  in  a  land  of  sickness  and  death,  but  has 
been  pleased  to  crown  our  feeble  efi"orts,  in  the  edification  of  believers,  and  in  the 
conversion  of  many  sinners.  My  own  soul,  too,  is  very  happy  in  God,  and  in  that 
sacred  work  in  which  I  ana  engaged ;  and  although  I  very  often  feel  my  insufficiency 
both  with  regard  to  gifts  and  graces,  I  am  encouraged,  nay,  determined,  to 

"  Labour  on  at  His  command. 

And  offer  all  my  woi-ks  to  Him." 

Sunday,  5th. — I  preached  three  times,  and  baptized  a  number  of  adults. 
Sunday,  Tith. — 1  had  liberty  of  spirit  in  preacliing  this  morning,  as  also  this 

2  A  2 


356 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


evening ;    after  which  I  read  and  explained  our  Rules  to  the  members  of  the 
society. 

Sunday,  26th. — I  preached  three  times,  and  baptized  forty-three  persons.  What 
more  shall  I  say  about  the  new  chapel  ?  Need  I  say  any  more  than  again  to  state 
that  the  present  one  will  not  hold  even  the  members  of  society  ?  Consequently,  it  is 
with  difficulty  that  I  can  meet  the  society,  to  address  them  on  their  various  duties, 
or  administer  the  appointed  memorials  of  the  Saviour's  death.  Surely,  when  I  hear 
from  you,  it  will  be  in  the  affirmative  ;  saying,  "  You  may  begin  to  build  as  soon  as 
practicable,"  or  words  to  that  effect.  I  have  received  a  letter  from  the  secretary  of 
the  Bible  Society,  and  expect  some  Bibles  soon.* 

There  could  be  no  mistake  about  the  necessity  for  a  new  and 
much  larger  chapel^  when  the  one  at  that  time  occupied  as  such 
could  not  contain  all  who  came  to  the  morning  prayer-meeting, 
which  was  held  every  morning  at  five  o'clock ;  and  when  there 
was  not  sufficient  room,  on  other  occasions,  to  administer  the 
sacrament  of  the  Lord's  supper  to  the  members  of  the  society. 
I  therefore  renewed  my  application  to  the  committee,  as  the 
first  of  the  following  letters  will  show ;  and  was  at  length  suc- 
cessful, as  stated  by  the  secretaries  in  their  preface  to  my  com- 
munications ;  which,  though  rather  long,  yet,  bearing  as  they 
do  so  directly  upon  the  whole  of  that  mission,  I  insert : — 

MISSIONS    IN    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

To  the  communications  from  Mr.  Fox,  respecting  the  mission  on  the  River 
Gambia,  which  were  inserted  in  our  last  Number,  we  have  now  the  pleasure  of 
adding  two  other  interesting  letters,  of  subsequent  date.  In  the  first,  Mr.  Fox 
renews  his  former  earnest  application  for  leave  to  build  a  new  chapel  at  St.  Mary's, 
to  which  the  committee  have  acceded ;  and  concludes  by  some  very  touching  and 
Christian  observations,  suggested  by  the  approach  of  the  annual  sickly  season  of 
that  climate,  which,  we  are  sure,  will  obtain  for  him  the  sympathy  and  the  prayers  of 
all  our  readers.  The  second  of  the  letters,  now  printed,  reports  the  continued  pros- 
perity of  the  society  at  St.  Mary's,  the  completion  and  opening  of  small  chapels  at 
Soldier-Town  and  Melville-Town,  the  prospects  of  soon  erecting  a  place  of  Christian 
worship  and  school  at  Berwick-Town,  and  the  necessity  of  an  assistant  missionaiy, 
in  order  to  supply,  regularly  and  suitably,  these  new  and  promising  stations.  To 
the  latter  part  of  this  letter,  which  describes  the  case  of  William  Joaf,  a  native 
preacher,  and  a  slave,  and  of  other  persons  similarly  circumstanced,  we  earnestly 
invite  the  attention  of  British  philanthropists.  The  persons  here  mentioned  as 
slaves  are  connected,  we  believe,  with  French  masters,  who  have  removed  into  the 
British  settlements  from  the  neighbouring  dependencies  of  France,  on  the  coast  of 
Western  Africa,  and  who  are  still  strangely  recognised,  it  seems,  as  owners  of  the 
human  beings  whom  they  have  thus  imported,  together  with  themselves,  into  one  of 
our  colonies.  We  are  aware  that  the  removal  of  this  anomaly  may  not  be  unat- 
tended with  some  practical  difficulties  ;  but  they  are  such  as  ought  to  be  sur- 
mounted, for.  the  honour  of  our  country's  character  and  consistency ;  and  we  are 
confident  that  the  case  will  receive  serious  consideration  in  the  proper  quarter. 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  vii.  pp.  528 — 530. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


357 


River  Gambia. — Extract  of  a  Letter  from  Mr.  Fox,  dated  St.  Mary's, 
June  Zath,  1834. 

I  CAN  assure  you  that  the  statements  which  I  have  sent  you  from  time  to  time, 
respecting  the  absolute  necessity  of  a  new  chapel  at  St.  Mary's,  have  not  been  too 
highly  coloured.  I  am  fully  aware  that  yoiur  "  object  is  to  increase  the  number  of 
missionaries,  rather  than  expend  money  in  buildings."  But  suffer  me  to  ask  how 
a  missionary  is  to  proceed  with  his  work  in  a  climate  like  this,  without  a  commodi- 
ous place  of  worship  ?  The  rains  have  again  commenced ;  hut  the  chapel  and  both 
piazzas  are  not  capable  of  sheltering  the  congregation  from  its  teeming  showers, 
nor  from  the  intense  heat  of  the  sun.  Besides,  our  chapel,  being  under  our  resi- 
dence, is  necessarily  low ;  and,  being  crowded  to  the  extreme,  it  is  exceedingly 
close  and  warm  ;  so  that  I  have  been  obhged  to  change  my  linen  in  the  course  of 
one  sabbath  three,  four,  and  five  times.  As  to  the  amount  I  can  hope  to  raise 
here,  I  am  afraid  to  say  more  than  I  did,  that  is,  one  huncked  pounds.  You  are 
aware  that  our  society  consists  of  natives,  who  are  willing  to  help  to  the  utmost  of 
their  power  ;  but  that  utmost  is  very  limited. 

Our  health  at  this  time  is  pretty  good ;  and  has  been  so  for  some  time  past, 
excepting  occasional  attacks  of  temporary  indisposition.  The  sickly  season  is,  how  - 
ever,  approaching ;  and  it  is  probable  tiiat  we  shall  again  have  fever,  but  I  hope 
not  so  seriously  as  last  season.  I  do  not  feel  alarmed  upon  the  subject ;  because  I 
know  I  am  where  my  heavenly  Father  wishes  me  to  be.  Neitlier  am  I  of  a  very 
nervous  or  low-spirited  habit ;  but  I  sincerely  think  that  if  I  should  have  another 
attack  of  fever  as  severe  as  the  last,  then  not  far  from  the  spot  where  I  am  now 
writing,  it  will  be  read  over  my  poor  body,  "  Earth  to  earth,  ashes  to  ashes,  dust  to 
dust;"  and,  whoever  the  individual  may  be  who  shall  perform  that  service,  he  may 
confidently  read  also,  "  In  sure  and  certain  hope  of  the  resurrection  to  eternal  life, 
through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ."  Yes,  that  is  my  rock,  my  foundation,  my  hope, 
my  only  plea, — "  For  me  the  Saviour  died."  Tlirough  the  precious  blood  of  the 
atonement  I  hope  to  "  scale  the  mount,"  and  "  so  be  for  ever  with  the  Lord." 
Yet,  I  trust  that  this  will  not  be  the  case  at  present.  Prayer,  we  know,  is  preva- 
lent. Our  heavenly  Father,  we  know  also,  has  an  eye  to  pity,  an  ear  to  listen,  a 
heart  to  feel,  and  an  arm  to  save,  those  who  call  upon  Him,  both  with  a  temporal 
and  spiritual  salvation.  Dear  fathers,  brethren,  and  Christian  friends,  pray  for  us. 
We  ask  you  to  do  so,  though  we  know  that  you  do  it  already ;  but  continue  to  pray 
for  us.  Pray  that  our  health  may  be  preserved,  and  our  Uves  spared ;  and  that  we 
may  be  the  instruments  of  winning  many  souls  to  Christ.  May  the  Almighty,  in 
his  infinite  mercy,  grant  it !     Amen. 

From  the  Same,  dated  St.  Mary's,  July  24.th. 

With  regard  to  the  cause  of  Clirist,  every  successive  period  which  presents 
itself  of  addi'essing  you,  furnishes  me  with  adcUtional  matter  of  an  encouraging 
kind  to  communicate,  and  brings  afresh  from  my  exulting  soul  the  emphatic  lan- 
guage of  the  Psalmist,  "  The  Lord  of  hosts  is  with  us ;  the  God  of  Jacob  is  O'or 
refuge."  During  the  past  quarter,  (as  you  will  learn  from  my  journal,  wliich 
accompanies  this,)  the  Almighty  has  again  visited  us  on  this  station  with  many  a 
refreshing  shower  of  his  hallowing  and  saving  influence :  and  the  result  is,  that 
sLxty-one  more  persons  have  begged  to  be  admitted  into  our  society,  and  are  taken 
on  trial.  The  finances  are,  I  am  happy  to  say,  increasing  also  in  equal  proportion 
to  the  number  in  society ;  and,  I  expect,  this  year  will  realize  upwards  of  fifty 
pounds  sterling.  The  school  is,  I  hope,  doing  better  of  late,  having  received  some 
Bibles  from  the   British  and  Foreign  Biljle  Society,  and  a  few  elementary  books 


358  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

from  our  friends ;    but  it  is  still  very  indiiferently  supplied.     1  have   not  as  yet 
received  any  answer  or  books  from  the  School-Society. 

The  small  chapel,  about  which  I  ■wTote  to  you  at  Soldier-Town,  soon  became  too 
small ;  and  I  have  been  under  the  pleasing  necessity  of  enlarging  it ;  or,  rather, 
have  pulled  the  old  one  down,  and  erected  one  more  than  twice  the  size,  which  is 
now  forty  feet  by  twenty-five.  It  is  huilt  with  wood  and  cane,  but  is  well  plastered 
inside  and  out,  and  has  a  shingled  roof,  a  neat  pulpit,  and  is  well  siippUed  with 
benches.  It  was  re-opened,  or  rather  opened,  on  Thursday  evening,  the  12th  idt., 
when  it  was  well  filled,  and  a  Divine  influence  felt,  while  I  preached  from,  "  The 
Lord  hath  done  great  things  for  us,  whereof  we  are  glad."  (Psalm  cxxvi.  3.) 
Towards  meeting  the  expense  of  this  new  and  commodious  native  chapel,  the  people 
have  a  second  time  come  forward  veiy  liberally.  Some  have  given  labour,  some 
money,  and  others  materials.  I  find,  however,  I  shall  be  under  the  necessity  of  charging 
the  committee  ^vith  about  twenty-six  pounds,  which  sum,  I  trust,  they  will  cheerfully 
meet,  for  a  chapel  of  the  ahove  dimensions,  and  particularly  as  it  was  erected  the 
first  time  without  any  expense  to  the  parent  society. 

I  have  also  erected  a  small  chapel  at  Melville-Town,  almost  at  the  other  end  of 
the  island.  We  have  here  a  small  town  or  village  of  liberated  Africans,  to  whom 
we  have  preached  for  a  considerable  time,  and  a  small  society.  The  chapel  is 
erected  in  such  a  situation  that  the  people  at  Goderich  (where  we  formerly 
preached)  can  come  to  it,  and  it  will  not  be  quite  so  far  for  the  preacher  to  walk 
on  his  retuni.  This  small  place  of  worship  is  built  after  the  same  manner  as  the 
one  at  Soldier-Town ;  and  here,  also,  the  people  have  done  what  they  could : 
though  not  able  to  give  much  pecuniary  aid,  they  have  assisted  by  giving  some  of 
their  labour,  by  going  into  the  bush  or  wood,  cutting  wood,  and  burning  lime,  &c., 
frequently  saying,  "  This  house  no  belong  to  no  person ;  he  belong  to  God."  It 
was  opened  on  Sunday  afternoon,  the  29th  ult.,  when  I  addressed  the  people  from, 
"  I  was  glad  when  they  said  unto  me.  Let  us  go  into  the  house  of  the  Lord." 
(Psalm  cxxii.  1.)  I  find,  however,  that,  notwithstanding  the  people  have  done  a 
considerable  portion  of  the  work  gratis,  I  shall  be  under  the  necessity  of  charging 
to  the  committee  equally  as  much  for  this  (though  a  smaller  chapel)  as  for  Soldier- 
Town,  and  hope  they  will  not  think  me  extravagant.  I  can  assure  you  I  have  con- 
tributed not  a  little  to  the  above  places,  not  only  in  a  pecuniary  way,  but  in  super- 
intentUng  the  whole  myself,  and  have  frequently  been  with  the  men  from  morning 
until  evening.  I  did  the  same  with  respect  to  the  heavy  repairs  lately  done  to 
the  mission-house  and  premises,  which,  no  doubt,  saved  a  few  pounds.  You  will 
perceive  that  the  above  extraordinary  expenses  are  the  occasion  of  my  drawing  upon 
the  treasurers  rather  oftener  than  usual. 

I  am  happy  to  say,  that  our  infant  cause  at  Bei-wick-Town,  Fort  BuUen,  on  the 
opposite  side  of  the  river,  promises  well.  We  give  them  preaching  every  sabbath, 
and  have  now  a  small  society.  The  people  there  have  built  a  round  house,  in  which 
we  preach,  and  shall  continue  to  do  so  during  the  rains.  The  governor  has,  how- 
ever, kindly  promised  to  go  over  with  me,  and  give  the  society  a  grant  of  land  on 
which  to  erect  a  small  chapel,  or  what  I  may  propose.  I  feel  deeply  interested 
about  this  place,  and  if  we  can  erect  a  small  native  chapel,  and  commence  a  school, 
as  there  are  a  number  of  children  on  the  spot,  and  a  Mandingo  town  at  a  short 
distance,  we  shall  veiy  probably  have  a  number  of  the  Mandingo  childi-en,  and  by  that 
means  get  a  footing  among  that  wai'like,  superstitious,  and  vvidely-extended  race  of 
human  beings.  It  would,  ere  long,  aflford  a  proper  station  for  an  adcUtional 
missionary,  and  thus,  in  the  course  of  time,  the  moral  soil  on  both  banks  of  this 
immense  and  splendid  river  will  be  cultivated,  and  every  tribe  taught  to  "  bow  the 
knee  to  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ." 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  359 

I  have  another  suhject  of  importance  to  hring  before  you,  in  reference  to  an 
assistant  missionary  being  stationed  here.  You  are  aware  that  I  have  no  assistant, 
and  our  society  has  vastly  increased;  we  have  also  four  preaching-places,  and 
an  increasing  school,  and  more  work,  if  I  could  attend  to  it.  I  attended  wholly  to 
the  school  myself  till  I  could  do  it  no  longer ;  consequently  I  engaged  an  assistant 
teacher  at  the  commencement  of  the  year.  This  assistant  teacher  I  -wish  to  keep, 
with  your  permission,  even  if  I  have  an  assistant  missionary  stationed  here,  that  I 
may  place  one  of  them  on  the  other  side  of  the  river,  at  the  close  of  the  rains. 
Soldier-Town  chapel  would  be  a  very  good  place  for  the  residence  of  an  assistant 
missionary,  as  it  is  pretty  near  to  the  mission-house,  and  amidst  a  numerous  popu- 
lation, a  good  number  of  whom  are  members  of  society.  A  tolerable  house  (such 
as  a  respectable  native  has)  might  be  erected  for  about  seventy  or  eighty  dollars, 
with  what  I  can  get  done  gratis ;  the  one  on  the  mission  premises  is  in  a  very 
dilapidated  state,  besides  being  much  too  small. 

You  are  doubtless  aware  that  I  have  one  local  preacher  here,  and  you  will  recollect 
that  I  wrote  to  you  some  time  ago  about  three  or  four  more  who  had  then  begun  to 
preach.  I  am  happy  to  be  able  to  report  well  of  them  all ;  they  seem  to  vie  with 
each  other,  which  shall  make  the  most  progress.  WiUiam  JutF,  (or  Joaf,)  the  local 
preacher,  might  be  immediately  employed  as  an  assistant  missionary,  were  it  not  that 
he  is  a  slave.  I  have  now  five  more  who  are  acting  as  occasional  preachers ;  but  four 
of  these  are  slaves  also.  This  is  another  subject  which  I  have  long  wished  to  bring 
before  you.  I  had,  some  time  ago,  a  conversation  with  the  governor  upon  it,  who 
very  generously  acknowledged,  "  They  are  not  slaves,  strictly  speaking,  while  on 
this  island ;  but  immediately  when  they  leave,  they  are,  and  may  be  taken."  He 
(the  governor)  wished  them  to  continue  with  their  masters,  but  at  the  same  time 
said  he  should  feel  a  pleasure  in  doing  what  he  could  to  get  the  freedom  of  any 
who  wished  it,  at  a  moderate  price.  Several  in  the  colony  have  pvu"chased  their 
own  freedom,  (assisted  by  some  friend  who  has  advanced  a  part  of  the  money,)  but 
it  has  taken  them  some  years  to  do  so ;  and  how  can  it  be  otherwise,  when  at  the 
end  of  every  week  the  poor  slave  has  to  divide  his  wages,  and  one  half  goes  to 
his  master  or  mistress,  and  the  other  half  to  support  himself  and  family  ? 

William  JufF  is  a  married  man,  and  has  three  or  four  childi-en,  but  is  not  more 
than  thirty  years  of  age :  he  is  by  trade  a  caiiienter,  and  is  considered  a  very  good 
workman  ;  if  he  were  free,  he  would  do  well,  in  a  temporal  point  of  view,  but  would 
much  prefer  being  employed  as  an  assistant  missionary ;  he  has  been  a  member  of 
society  upwards  of  nine  years,  and  has  acted  in  the  capacity  of  a  local  preacher 
upwards  of  five.  His  piety  is  unquestionable,  and  his  talents  as  a  native  preacher 
are  acceptable :  and,  if  wholly  set  apart  to  the  work,  I  have  no  doubt  but  he  would 
make  considerable  improvement.  I  have  already  found  him  a  great  acquisition  to 
me,  as  he  has  frequently  preached  and  conducted  the  meetings  when  I  have  been 
sick.  If  he  could  be  set  free,  and  it  meet  with  yom'  approbation,  he  might  be 
immediately  employed  as  an  assistant. 

Two  out  of  the  other  four,  who  are  slaves,  I  could  recommend  in  a  short  time, 
were  it  not  that  they  are  tied  in  the  same  way ;  how  are  they  to  get  free,  is  a 
question  I  wish  most  earnestly  to  propose.  They  are  in  a  British  colony ;  conse- 
quently virtually  they  are  free ;  but  actually  they  are  slaves.  Will  Government 
break  their  chains  .'  If  not,  who  will  ?  They  cannot  themselves.  The  Christian 
pubhc  have  lately  given,  and  are  still  giving,  us  additional  proofs  of  their  unbounded 
liberality  in  reference  to  the  West  Indies ;  where  then  shall  I  look  to  find  a  friend 
for  these  five  poor  slaves  ? — poor  as  regards  this  world,  but  rich  in  faith ;  labouring 
under  an  earthly  bondage,  but  happy  in  the  enjoyment  of  a  spiritual  freedom. 


360  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

The  frieiuts  in  Ireland  have  already  given  us  a  demonstrative  proof  of  their  love 
of  freedom,  in  the  redemption  of  Pien-e  Sallah ;  and  shall  England  be  behind  the 
sister-country  in  such  charitable  and  praiseworthy  acts  ?  If  one  cannot  be  found 
to  accomplish  the  vrhole,  methinks  Jive  can  and  will ;  so  that  each  will  have  the 
pleasiu-e  and  honour  of  redeeming  a  brother. 

Should  the  committee  find  it  impracticable  to  exert  themselves  on  behalf  of  the 
whole  five,  I  hope  they  wiU  do  what  they  can  for  the  three  I  particularly  mention, 
that  is,  William  JufF,  Amado  Gum,  and  John  Gum.  The  first,  if  free,  might,  as 
above  stated,  be  immediately  employed ;  and  the  other  two  in  a  short  time,  after 
being  duly  recommended. 

St.  Mary's,  I  am  aware,  is  not  one  of  the  fii-st  in  importance  amidst  the  nume- 
rous and  increasing  stations  which  call  for  your  time  and  attention,  neither  is  it  one 
of  the  last ;  it  has  akeady  risen,  is  rising,  and  will  rise ;  and  I  am  of  opinion,  that 
the  time  is  not  far  distant  when  it  will  support  itself,  or  nearly  so.  An  additional 
missionary  would,  of  course,  increase  the  expense  of  the  mission,  and  the  employ- 
ment of  two  or  three  native  teachers  would  still  add  to  that  expense  ;  but  then  this 
will  greatly  facilitate  the  dissemination  of  gospel  light  and  truth  among  the  various 
and  degraded  tribes  on  each  bank  of  this  immense  river. 

"  The  harvest  is  indeed  plenteous,  but  the  labourers  are  few."  We  pray  the 
Lord  of  the  harvest,  and  we  pray  you  as  his  agents,  to  "  send  forth  more  labourers 
into  the  vineyard :  "  and  then— 

"  Soon  the  reaping-time  shall  come, 
And  angels  shout  the  harvest-home." 

As  it  respects  the  new  chapel,  I  am  expecting  to  hear  from  you  every  day,  and 
hope  to  commence  at  the  close  of  the  rains.* 

My  work  during  the  rains  of  this  year  was  considerably 
increased,  on  account  of  my  being  appointed  acting  colonial  and 
garrison  chaplain,  in  the  absence  of  the  government  chaplain, 
who  had  returned  to  England  for  the  benefit  of  his  health. f 

A  few  extracts  from  my  private  journal  may  not  be  out  of 
place  here : — 

Monday,  June  30th,  quarter-day. — My  pen  cannot  describe 
the  gratitude  I  feel  to  my  heavenly  Father,  for  his  continued 
goodness  to  us.  During  the  past  quarter  we  have  enjoyed  tole- 
rable health,  much  of  the  Divine  presence  in  our  own  souls,  and 
many  a  refreshing  season  in  the  house  of  God.  During  the  last 
three  months,  sixty-one  have  been  admitted  on  trial.  Last 
June  we  had  eighty-four  in  the  society,  and  we  have  now  three 
hundred  and  twenty-two ;  and  the  finances  have  increased  in 
proportion.  "  My  soul  doth  magnify  the  Lord,  and  my  spirit 
hath  rejoiced  in  God  my  Saviour.^^  Keep  us,  O  keep  us  in  the 
dust;  and, 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  vii.  pp.  545 — 548. 

t  One-half  of  the  salary  was  allowed  to  the  chaplain  dming  his  absence,  and,  by 
a  new  regulation,  only  one-fourth  to  the  person  officiating  for  him ;  but,  of  course, 
the  mission  derived  the  benefit  of  tliis,  and  not  the  inissionarv. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  361 

"  When  we  reach  yon  blissful  station, 
Then  we  '11  give  thee  nobler  praise  !  " 

SundaVj  July  6th. — I  met  a  class  for  tickets  at  six  a.m.  ;  at 
ten,  read  prayers  and  preached;  immediately  after,  performed 
duty  at  the  church.*  In  the  afternoon  I  sailed  across  the  river 
to  Berwick-Town,  and  after  preaching  met  the  class,  and  returned 
home  in  time  for  the  evening  service.  One  soul  was  made  happy 
in  God  at  the  prayer-meeting. 

9th. — I  had  liberty  while  preaching  from  Luke  xviii.  13 : 
"  God  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner ! ''  and  afterwards  married 
one  couple. 

15tli. — I  rose  at  four  a.m.  ;  at  five  commenced  the  prayer- 
meeting,  when  we  had  a  refreshing  season. 

August  12th. — The  sickly  season  has  now  set  in,  and  many 
are  ill  with  fever.     I  have  to-day  visited  several. 

13th. — A  vessel  arrived  from  Macarthy^s  Island  late  last 
evening,  with  the  painful  news  of  the  death  of  Lieutenant 
Nichols,  the  commandant,  who  died  on  the  passage  to  St. 
Mary's,  being  ill  when  he  embarked. 

14th. — I  had  a  long  conversation  with  a  Mohammedan  priest, 
who,  amongst  other  questions,  wanted  to  know  who  was  the 
mother  of  Moses. 

15th, — This  morning  I  buried  a  European.  In  the  evening 
there  was  a  gracious  influence  at  the  prayer-meeting.  Tliough 
a  little  unwell,  my  soul  felt  it  good  to  be  there. 

23d. — I  received  letters  from  the  brethren  at  Sierra-Leone. 
Several  Europeans  have  died  there  this  season,  among  whom  is 
the  governor.  Others  are  very  ill ;  and  the  brethren  Maer  and 
Clarke  not  Avell. 

Sunday,  24th. — I  rose  this  morning  very  unwell.  At  half- 
past  seven  I  went  to  the  barracks,  and  read  prayers  to  the  sol- 
diers ;  at  ten  I  did  the  same  in  the  mission  chapel ;  and  after- 
wards preached,  and  had  a  most  precious  time  whilst  doing  so, 
from  Gen.  xlv.  3  :-  "And  Joseph  said  unto  his  brethren,  I  am 
Joseph.  Doth  my  father  yet  live?"  How  mysterious  are  the 
ways  of  Providence  !  But  O  how  wise  and  benevolent  in  the 
end  ! 

"  BUnd  unbeUef  is  sure  to  err, 
And  scan  his  work  in  vain  : 
God  is  his  own  interpreter, 
And  he  will  make  it  plain." 

At  half-past  eleven  I  performed  duty  at  the  church,  and  at  six 

*  That  is,  iu  tlie  court-liouse, — tliere  being  no  church  erected. 


363  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

P.M.  in  our  own  chapel.  I  was  still  very  poorly ;  but  my  local 
preacher  was  worse ;  so  that  I  was  compelled  to  preach.  And, 
"  As  thy  day,  so  shall  thy  strength  be/'  was  literally  verified  in 
my  case.  The  blessed  God  felt  for  my  weakness,  and  came  to 
my  help  ;  and  there  was  a  mighty  influence  whilst  I  was  giving 
out  that  beautiful  hymn : — 

"  Give  me  the  faith  which  can  remove 

And  sink  the  mountain  to  a  plain,"  &c. ; 

and  during  the  whole  of  the  service  many  could  say,  "  Master, 
it  is  good  for  us  to  be  here.''  Though  the  rain  came  down  in 
torrents,  many  could  not  find  room  in  our  little  sanctuary.  The 
island  is  now  nearly  covered  with  water. 

30th. — I  went  to  Barra-Point,  in  company  with  His  Excel- 
lency the  governor,  to  see  the  king  of  Barra,  in  reference  to  a 
rumour  that  Kemmingtan,  in  the  upper  river,  is  meditating  an 
attack  on  Macarthy's  Island. 

The  following  extract  of  a  letter  from  Mr.  Dove  will  furnish 
the  reader  with  the  probable  origin  and  cause  of  this  rumour,  as 
well  as  some  information  respecting  the  progress  of  that  mis- 
sion. Mr.  Dove's  letter  is  dated,  "  Macarthy's  Island,  August 
25th,  1834:"— 

I  feel  unfeignedly  thankful  to  the  God  of  all  grace,  mercy,  and  love,  that  I  am 
again  permitted  to  address  you  from  this  land  of  sickness  and  death  ;  for,  since  my 
last  communication,  I  have  heen  called  to  pass  through  deep  waters  of  affliction, 
arising  from  a  severe  attack  of  the  fever,  which  at  this  season  of  the  year  is  so  pre- 
valent in  this  part  of  Western  Afi-ica.  I  however  experienced  the  Saviour's  pre- 
sence, and  found  the  consolations  of  religion  to  be  neither  few  nor  small ;  and  with 
the  Psalmist  can  I  say,  "  It  is  good  that  I  have  heen  afflicted." 

"  Oft  from  the  margin  of  the  grave 

Thou,  Lord,  hast  lifted  up  my  head ; 
Sudden,  I  found  thee  near  to  save. 
The  fever  own'd  thy  touch,  and  fled." 

Through  the  infinite  mercy  of  our  heavenly  Father,  I  am  now  fully  restored,  and 
feel  happy  in  the  great  and  glorious  work  in  which  I  am  employed.  At  the  present 
moment,  I  seem  to  enter  into  the  very  spirit  of  the  sentiment,  expressed  by  the 
great  apostle ;  namely,  "  Unto  me  who  am  less  than  the  least  of  all  saints,  is  this 
grace  given,  that  I  should  preach  among  the  Gentiles  "  (the  sable  sons  and  daughters 
of  Ham)  "  the  imsearchable  riches  of  Christ." 

At  the  last  quarterly  visitation  of  the  classes,  I  M'as  highly  gratified  to  witness 
the  simple  and  artless  manner  in  which  our  members  in  general  expressed  them- 
selves. Some  very  distinctly  and  satisfactorily  stated  how  God  had  pardoned  all 
their  sins,  for  the  sake  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  made  them  happy  in  his  love ; 
and  others  seemed  resolutely  determined  not  to  rest  satisfied,  till  they  "  found  Ilim 
of  whom  Moses  in  the  law  and  the  prophets  did  write."  May  the  Lord  fulfil  their 
desires,  and  strengthen  their  resolutions,  for  his  mercy's  sake !  Thanks  be  to  the 
Lord,  we  have  not  been  suffered  either  to  run  or  to  labour  in  vain.     M'ith  inex- 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIEURA-LEONE.  363 

pressible  pleasure  I  have  to  report  that  the  miniber  of  members  at  Macarthy's 
Island  is  one  hundred  and  two,  and  six  are  on  trial.  May  they  all  "  war  a  good 
warfare ! "  We  think  that  the  time  is  now  come  to  form  a  class  at  one  of  the 
Foulah  towns.  I  purpose  very  soon  (God  being  my  helper)  gathering  those  into 
the  fold,  who  are  sincere  in  their  inquiries  after  truth,  and  who  express  a  desire  to 
flee  from  the  wrath  to  come.  Our  school  at  the  Foulah  town,  (Broco,)  though  in 
its  infancy,  is  going  on  well ;  the  children  are  making  progress  in  their  learning. 
This  very  circumstance  has  impressed  upon  the  minds  of  the  Foulalis  the  import- 
ance and  excellency  of  our  mission.  Indeed,  some  of  the  old  men  wash  they  coidd 
be  children  again,  that  they  might  learn  to  read  the  book  of  God. 

I  have  a  Foulah  for  an  interpreter,  who  has  a  tolerable  knowledge  of  English. 
For  this  instance  of  the  goodness  and  providence  of  God,  I  here  record  my  devout 
thanks ;  for  were  I  to  search  all  the  towns  on  the  banks  of  the  Gambia,  I  believe 
that  I  should  not  find  another  Foulah  capable  of  interpreting. 

The  brethren  Cupidon  and  Sallah  preach  once  in  the  week,  in  the  JoUolf  lan- 
guage, to  their  own  country  people.  We  have  a  pious  and  intelligent  young  man 
from  among  the  liberated  Africans,  belonging  to  the  Accow  tribe,  who  has  a  class  of 
his  own  people,  or  tribe,  to  whom  he  speaks  in  the  Accow  language.  We  have 
regular  service  in  the  two  Foulah  towns  at  Broco,  every  Lord's  day ;  but  we  are 
sometimes  put  to  some  inconvenience  for  the  want  of  places  of  worship,  especially 
as  the  rains  are  now  set  in.  Large  tabba  trees  have  hitherto  served  as  a  covert 
from  the  scorching  rays  of  a  vertical  sun,  and  from  the  rains,  and  from  the  tempest. 
If  the  committee  can  allow  us  the  sum  of  five  pounds,  we  could,  with  the  help  of 
the  Foulahs  and  others,  erect  a  spacious  house  for  the  Lord  of  hosts,  between  the 
two  towns.  It  would  be  built  in  the  native  form  of  wood  and  cane,  and  covered 
with  grass,  which  would  be  far  better  than  holding  oiu-  meetings  and  schools  under 
the  above-mentioned  trees. 

I  have  every  reason  to  think,  that  the  system  of  Mohammedanism  is  rapidly  on 
the  decline,  and  must,  ere  long,  fall  before  the  light  and  force  of  truth.  I  have  dis- 
tributed several  copies  of  the  Arabic  scriptures,  which  were  kindly  furnished  by  the 
committee  of  the  British  and  Foreign  Bible  Society.  Incalculable  good  is  likely  to 
result  therefrom ;  for  the  people  who  can  read  appear  very  anxious  to  obtain  a  copy. 
I  believe  that  some  of  the  Bibles,  Testaments,  and  the  Book  of  Psalms,  have  been 
carried  hundreds  of  miles  into  the  interior  of  the  country.  A  short  time  ago  I  pre- 
sented Mr.  Grant's  tradesman  ^^^th  an  Arabic  Bible ;  soon  after  he  reached  the  port 
of  Cantaliconda,  (about  three  hundred  miles  above  Macarthy's  Island,)  a  marraboo 
was  so  pleased  with  the  Bible,  that  he  even  offered  at  once  to  give  him  three  bul- 
locks for  the  book  of  God.     Surely  such  accounts  appear  to  augur  well. 

Of  late  I  have  had  many  interviews  with  bushereens  and  marraboos,  (priests  of 
Mohamed,)  and  some  have,  with  no  small  degree  of  candour,  said,  that  the  white 
man's  religion  nmst  prevail,  and  finally  overthrow  their  system.  One  man,  a  mar- 
raboo, said,  that  "  white  man  had  God  in  his  heart,  and  that  make  him  happy  too 
much."  I  very  frequently  ask  them  the  state  of  their  minds  ;  but,  notwithstanding 
their  apparent  sanctity,  their  external  ablutions,  their  prostration  to  the  earth,  and 
prayers  (so  called)  twice  every  day,  together  with  a  repetition  of  the  Alcoran,  and 
the  use  of  their  beads,  greegrees,  charms,  &c.,  &c.,  there  is  in  them  not  only  a  desti- 
tution of  that  religion  which  takes  its  seat  in  the  heart,  but,  alas !  alas !  they  are 
(as  is  too  evident)  "  earthly,  sensual,  devilish." 

Another  man  declared  that  he  could  not  derive  comfort  or  satisfaction  in  his 
worship  at  the  mosque ;  and  no  marvel,  for  there  is  no  looking  to  the  world's 
Redeemer,  "  the  Lamb  of  God  which  taketh  away  the  sin  of  the  world  ! "     Another 


364  WESTERN  COAST  OF  ArRICA. 

marraboo,  after  witnessing  the  holy  fervour  and  zeal  of  some  of  our  people,  was 
greatly  amazed,  and  exclaimed,  in  the  Mandingo  language,  "  What  does  all  this 
mean  ?     There  is  but  one  God,  and  Mohamed  is  His  prophet ! " 

I  pray  that  the  gospel  of  God  our  Sa^•iour  may  speedily  supersede  the  domina- 
tion of  the  false  prophet :  then  the  wilderness  \N-ill  become  a  fruitful  field,  and  the 
desert  hke  Eden,  the  garden  of  the  Lord.  The  neighbouring  kings  and  chiefs  have 
an  extraordinary  propensity  for  war ;  they  seem  to  be  intiuenced  by  the  love  of 
riches,  (slaves,)  the  love  of  honour,  and  the  love  of  power. 

We  have  just  been  sadly  annoyed  by  Kimmington,  a  most  desperate  chief:  he  has 
even  threatened  to  invade  ^lacarthy's  Island ;  and  on  Tuesday  last,  the  19th,  an 
alarm  was  given,  which  put  the  whole  settlement  into  a  state  of  great  consternation 
and  confusion.  It  was  reported  that  Kimmington  and  his  people  were  in  the  bush 
near  the  island ;  the  bugles  were  immediately  sounded  at  the  fort,  the  government 
bell  was  rung,  the  cannons  were  loaded,  the  people  hastened  from  their  farms,  some 
of  the  poor  women  were  weeping  aloud,  and  others  were  busily  engaged  in  earning 
their  children,  boxes,  &c.,  to  the  fort  for  protection.  Such  another  sight  I  hope  I 
shall  never  be  called  to  witness.  My  dear  wife  and  I  retired  in  secret  before  God, 
and  were  enabled  to  cast  on  him  our  every  care,  knowing  that  "  the  hairs  of  our 
heads  are  all  numbered,"  and  that  nothing  could  happen  to  us  M-ithout  the  know- 
ledge of  our  heavenly  Father.  Soon,  however,  we  were  informed  that  Kimming- 
ton's  son,  and  a  few  horsemen,  were  on  the  side  of  the  port,  opposite  to  the  island, 
and  that  their  object  was  not  to  make  war,  but  to  promote  peace. 

A  short  time  ago,  a  vessel  and  her  cargo  were  seized  by  the  above-mentioned 
chief,  which  belonged  to  an  English  merchant ;  in  consequence  of  wliich  the  trade 
has,  in  a  great  measure,  been  suspended,  as  the  merchants  are  afraid  to  proceed  in 
their  vessels  above  Macarthy's  Island.  This  circumstance  has  subjected  the  natives 
to  very  great  inconvenience,  they  being  under  the  necessity  of  coming  in  their 
canoes  a  distance,  sometimes,  of  at  least  two  or  three  hundred  miles.  The  kings  of 
Jemera,  Barbarra,  and  Woolley,  have  in  consequence  lost  their  customs ;  they  have, 
therefore,  given  Kimmington  distinctly  to  understand  that,  unless  he  makes  restitu- 
tion or  friendsliip  with  the  white  people,  so  that  they  may  proceed  up  the  River 
Gambia  as  before,  they  will  break  up  his  town,  and  take  his  country  from  him;  and 
now  he  begins  to  tremble  for  consequences.  His  message  to  the  Commander  was 
as  follows  : — "  I  do  n't  wish  to  injiu-e  or  hurt  white  man,  Foulah  man,  nor  Mandingo 
man."  He  also  stated,  that  he  thought  the  vessel  belonged  to  a  black  man ;  and 
then  began  to  express  his  regret  for  what  he  had  done.  I  trust,  however,  that  this 
painfid  circumstance  will  be  over-ruled  for  good,  and  that  the  knowledge  of  the 
Lord  may  cover  the  earth  as  the  waters  cover  the  sea.     Amen,  and  Amen.* 

To  the  preceding  communication  from  Macarthy's  Island^  I 
add  the  two  following  letters  from  St.  Mary's,  Avith  the  intro- 
duction by  the  general  secretaries  : — 

MISSIONS    IN    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

In  our  last  Number  we  printed  a  very  encouraging  letter  from  Mr.  Dove,  respect- 
ing the  new  mission  estabhshed  at  Macarthy's  Island.  Equally  gratifying  are  the 
following  extracts  from  the  letters  of  Mr.  Fox,  who  diligently  and  usefully  occupies 
tlie  station  of  St.  Mary's,  on  the  same  river,  the  Gambia.  To  Admiral  WaiTen  our 
Society  owes  its  cordial  thanks  for  the  public  testimony  which,  it  ^vill  be  seen,  he 

*  "  Missionarj-  Notices,"  vol.  viii.  pp.  60 — 62. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  365 

was  pleased  to  bear,  on  a  recent  occasion,  to  the  character  and  labours  of  our  mis- 
sionaries, and  for  his  benevolent  otter  of  assistance  in  favour  of  Amadi  Gum's 
liberation,  as  contained  in  his  obliging  note  to  Mr.  Fox. 

Extract  of  a  Letter  from  Mr.  Fox,  dated  St.  Mary^s,  River  Gamliia, 
September  6th,  1834. 

There  is  work  enough  in  this  neighbourhood  to  employ  three  native  assistants 
and  an  additional  missionaiy,  could  we  obtain  them. 

I  am  myself  fully  employed,  and  many  an  evening  have  I  retired  to  rest  when  I 
have  been  so  fatigued  that  I  have  absolutely  preferred  the  boarded  floor  to  my  bed : 
the  follo^^^ng  day  and  days  have,  of  coiuse,  found  me  worse.  The  following  is  my 
work  every  sabbath,  (if  at  all  able  to  attend  to  it,)  that  is, — at  five  o'clock  a.m., 
prayer-meeting  in  the  chapel ;  at  half-past  seven,  I  read  prayers  to  the  soldiers  in 
the  barracks ;  at  ten,  read  prayers  and  preach  in  our  owm  chapel,  when  the  heat, 
from  the  lowness  of  the  chapel,  and  the  crowded  congregation,  is  almost  insuffer- 
able ;  at  half-past  eleven,  perform  duty  at  the  church ;  at  two  p.m.,  sail  to  Berwick- 
Town,  Fort  Bullen,  preach  and  meet  the  class,  (or  go  to  Melville,)  and  at  six 
o'clock  in  the  evening  again  preach  here ;  at  the  close  of  which  I  either  hold  a 
prayer-meeting,  meet  the  society,  or  administer  the  sacrament  of  the  Lord's  supper. 
My  week-days  also  are  fully  employed :  every  morning  at  five  o'clock  we  have  a 
prayer-meeting  in  the  chapel,  (these  I  cannot  always  attend,  from  indisposition,) 
and  at  half-past  sLx  the  school  commences.  I  have  also  a  considerable  number  of 
baptisms,  marriages,  sick  to  visit,  and  funerals  to  attend ;  and  either  prayer-meeting 
or  preaching  every  evening  in  the  week. 

You  will  please  to  observe,  I  do  not  complain  of  this, — though  I  am  sometimes 
fearful  as  to  the  consequences.  No ;  I  trust  I  can  say,  it  is  "  my  meat  and  my 
drink  ;"  and  with  humility  I  adopt  the  language  of  the  poet : — 

"  For  this  alone  I  live  below. 
The  power  of  godliness  to  show. 

The  wonders  wrought  by  Jesu's  name ; 
0  that  I  might  but  faithful  prove, 
Witness  to  all  Thy  pardoning  love, 

And  point  them  to  the'  atoning  Lamb  ! " 

From  the  Same,  dated  St.  Mari/'s,  November  lOth,  1834. 

I  BEG  leave  most  respectfully  to  acknowledge  the  receipt  of  your  kind  communi- 
cations, bearing  date  the  10th  and  15th  of  September;  and  which  arrived  here  on 
the  2'2d  of  the  following  month. 

They  were  put  into  my  hands  at  a  period  when  the  affectionate  language  they 
breathe,  and  the  kind  admonitions  they  contain  relative  to  my  health,  were  pecu- 
liarly acceptable  to  us.  Three  days  before,  we  had  committed  to  the  "  silent 
tomb  "  a  lovely  and  promising  infant,  aged  only  six  days,  after  but  a  few  hours'  sick- 
ness ;  and  under  circumstances  which  led  us  to  reflect  upon  death  in  one  of  its 
most  afflicting  forms.  Our  sorrow  could  only  be  alleviated  by  the  consideration, 
that  the  Judge  of  all  the  earth  doeth  right ;  that  "all  things  work  together  for  good 
to  them  that  love  God;"  that  "what  we  know  not  now,  we  shall  know  hereafter." 
This,  however,  we  already  know,  that  the  spirit  of  our  dear  child  is  gone  to  that 
Saviour,  in  whose  heavenly  kingdom  we  expect  to  meet  again.  And,  thank  God, 
ere  long  the  "  king  of  teiTors'  "  own  funeral  will  take  place  ;  for  in  that  day  "  there 
shall  be  no  more  death." 


366  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

As  to  the  present  state  of  our  health,  you  will  be  both  gratified  and  grieved.  You 
will  he  glad  to  hear,  that,  notwithstanihng  the  work  I  have  had,  and  stiU  have,  to 
perform,  I  am  in  moderate  health.  Surely  an  especial  Providence  has  watched  over 
me  during  the  present  sickly  and  deathly  season.  While  scores  of  the  natives  have 
gone  the  way  of  all  flesh,  and  out  of  about  fifty  Europeans  no  less  than  ten  or 
twelve  have  been  carried  to  the  house  appointed  for  all  living,  I  have  scarcely  been 
prevented  from  attending  to  my  numerous  and  important  duties  more  than  once  or 
twice.  This  calls  aloud  for  gratitude  to  Him  who  hath  said,  in  reference  to  his 
ministers  more  particularly,  "  But  the  very  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  numbered." 

You  will,  however,  be  sorry  to  hear,  that  my  dear  wife's  health  is  exceedingly 
delicate  and  precarious  ;  yet,  she  is  much  better  than  she  was  a  few  days  ago,  but 
stUl  very  weak  ;  and  I  have  scarcely  been  able  to  leave  her  bed-side. 

The  doctor  recommended  her  going  home  by  the  vessel  which  brings  you  this 
letter ;  and  I  have  endeavoured  to  persuade  her  to  do  so,  but  cannot  prevail ;  she 
vrishes  to  stay  as  long  as  I  do,  or  be  1)imed  in  African  soil  by  the  side  of  our  dear 
infant. 

For  want  of  assistance  I  cannot  possibly  leave  the  island  for  a  single  day,  though 
Captain  Quin,  commander  of  His  Majesty's  ship,  "  Britomart,"  has  very  kindly  and 
repeatedly  invited  us  to  go  with  him  to  sea,  two  or  three  weeks,  for  the  benefit  of 
our  health,  where  we  should  have  good  metUcal  ad\ice,  and  every  comfort  we  could 
expect. 

I  shall  have  your  sjniipathies,  I  know  ;  and,  I  trust,  your  prayers  also,  that  I  may 
have  strength  according  to  my  day,  and  realize  the  fulfilment  of  those  well-known 
lines : — 

"  When  my  sorrows  most  increase, 
Let  thine  utmost  joys  be  given ;" 

or  with  pious  Job  exclaim,  "  Though  Thou  slay  me,  yet  will  I  trust  in  Thee." 

The  welcome  intelUgence,  that  ^500  had  been  granted  towards  the  erection  of 
the  new  chapel,  was  received  with  heart-felt  gratitude.  I  immediately  commenced 
purchasing  materials,  a  considerable  quantity  of  which  are  now  on  the  spot.  His 
Excellency,  the  governor,  has  kindly  promised  to  lay  the  foundation-stone,  which, 
I  hope,  will  take  place  in  a  few  days :  and  I  trust,  the  Almighty  will  grant  his 
blessing  with  this  important  undertaking,  and  spare  me  to  see  "  the  top-stone 
brought  on  with  shouting,  Grace,  grace  unto  it ! " 

About  five  or  six  weeks  ago  arrived  from  the  Leeward  the  "  Isis  "  frigate,  with 
Admiral  Warren,  commander-in-chief  of  His  Majesty's  fleet  on  this  coast,  during 
the  last  three  years,  on  board,  who  came  here  to  meet  his  successor.  Admiral 
Campbell,  in  the  "  ThaUa"  frigate,  from  England.  The  "  Isis  "  lay  at  anchor  about 
a  fortnight  before  the  other  admiral  arrived,  during  which  period  I  had  the  pleasure 
of  visiting  Admiral  Warren,  by  his  obliging  invitation,  two  or  three  times,  and  of 
meeting  the  Rev.  W.  V.  Henneh,  chaplain  to  His  Majesty's  ship.  From  both  these 
gentlemen  I  received  great  kindness.  The  admiral  cordially  congi-atulated  me  on 
the  increase  of  our  congregation,  the  addition  to  the  society,  and  the  good  that  he 
l)elieved  was  doing.  He  expressed  his  pleasxire  that  we  had  a  missionary  at 
Macarthy's  Island ;  and  that  the  two  native  assistants  answered  so  well.  I  informed 
Mm  they  did  ;  and  that  I  had  two  or  three  others  whom  I  wished  to  propose.  On 
"his  leaving  the  Gambia  for  England,  a  respectful  Address  was  presented  to  him  by 
the  merchants  and  traders  of  the  settlement ;  and,  in  his  answer  to  that  Address, 
he  expressed  his  views  of  the  good  resulting  from  the  labours  of  your  missionaries. 

The  following  is  the  part  referred  to  : — 

"  The  success  of  the  missionaries  with  the  natives  reflects  the  highest  credit  on 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  367 

the  able  gentlemen  who  have  been  and  are  now  employed  at  St.  Mary's,  and  at 
Macarthy's  Island,  a  distance  of  between  two  and  three  hiuuked  miles  up  the  river; 
and  far  exceeds  what  the  most  sanguine  could  have  expected  in  so  short  a  time. 

"  Indeed,  gentlemen,  with  the  fostering  hand  of  Government,  a  gradual  increase 
of  liberated  Africans,  and  the  continued  exertions  of  the  Missionai7  Society,  I 
really  look  forward  to  see  realized,  in  a  great  measure,  those  beneficial  plans  for  the 
good  of  Africa  which  have,  in  all  other  places,  been  so  long  and  so  often  essayed  in 
vain." 

When  Admh-al  Wan-en's  answer  to  the  merchants  and  traders  was  received,  the 
"  Isis  "  was  lying  out  at  anchor  three  or  four  miles  from  Bathurst,  preparing  to  get 
under  weigh.  The  respectful  mention  he  had  publicly  made  of  your  missions  and 
missionaries,  I  thought,  deserved  an  acknowledgment ;  and  I  wrote  the  following 
hasty  lines : — 

"  Mission- House,  Bathurst,  River  Gambia,  October  Wth,  1834. 
"  Sir, — I  CANNOT  suffer  the  '  Isis '  to  leave  the  Gambia  without  tendering  to 
you,  in  the  name  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee  in  London,  and  also  on 
])ehalf  of  niy  fellow-labourer,  the  Rev.  Thomas  Dove,  of  Macarthy's  Island,  our 
most  sincere  thanks  for  the  very  liberal  views  you  entertain,  and  have  expressed, 
towards  the  Society  with  which  I  have  the  honour  to  be  connected. 

"  Most  fervently  praying,  that  every  personal,  domestic,  and  spiritual  blessing 
may  always  attend  you, 

"  I  remain,"  &c. 

"  To  Rear-Admiral  Warren,  Commander-in-Chief  of  His  Majesty's  Fleet 
on  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa,  i^c,  (Sy-e." 

I  also  sent  him,  as  a  small  present,  a  walking-staff  made  by  Amadi  Gum,  who  is 
an  excellent  workman,  and  of  whom  Admiral  WajTcn  had  heard  some  accoimt ; 
when  he  sent  me  back  by  the  pilot  the  following  very  gratifying  note  : — 

"  His  Majesty's  Ship  '  Isis,'  October  12th,  1834. 
"  My  dear  sir, — ^I  accept,  with  the  greatest  pleasure,  the  proof  of  Amadi 
Gum's  ingenuity  and  gratitude  ;  and  should  you,  ultimately,  find  any  difficulty  in 
procuring  this  deserving  man  his  freedom,  you  may  consider,  that  I  have  always- 
twenty  pounds  at  yom*  service  to  effect  it. 

"  I  always  am,  dear  sir, 

"  Yours  faitlifully, 

"  Frederick  Warren." 
"  To  the  Rev.  William  For." 

Amadi  Gum's  very  eyes  glowed  with  fire  when  I  communicated  to  him  the  intel- 
ligence of  Admiral  Warren's  benevolent  offer.  He  exclaimed,  "Thank  God;  thank 
God !     I  hope  the  Lord  will  help  you  to  get  my  freedom  ! " 

You  will  not,  I  hope,  forget  my  proposal  for  Berwick-Town,  Fort  Bullen ;  that 
infant  society  deserve  encouragement ;  they  have  again  asked  for  a  school,  and  will 
do  all  they  can  towards  a  chapel. 

My  present  state  of  health,  all  things  considered,  is  tolerable,  and  I  am  perfectly 
willing  to  remain  on  this  station  a  third  year,  with  your  permission.  I  must,  how- 
ever, beg  of  you  to  send  out,  as  soon  as  possible  after  Christmas,  an  additional  mis- 
sionary for  this  station,  besides  allowing  me  to  employ  two  or  three  native  assist- 
ants ;  and  you  may  depend  upon  it  we  shall  all  be  at  it,  and  always  at  it.* 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  viii.  pp.  74 — 76. 


368  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

It  will  be  seen,  from  the  last  of  these  letters,  that  the  writer 
had  now  obtained  permission  to  build  a  new  chapel,  with  a 
liberal  grant  from  the  parent  committee.  This  welcome  news 
reached  the  Gambia  on  the  22d  of  October,  and  he  therefore 
began  the  work  immediately,  begging  and  giving  and  labouring 
with  all  his  might ;  and  though  he  was  occasionally  laid  aside 
with  attacks  of  fever  during  the  rains,  as  well  as  afterwards, 
yet,  upon  the  whole,  his  health  was  tolerable.  He  is  persuaded 
that  nothing  but  the  special  providence  and  goodness  of  God 
could  have  preserved  his  life  during  the  excessive,  though  happy, 
toil  of  the  greater  part  of  that  and  some  of  the  following  j^ear. 
More  help  was  needed  :  it  was  kindly  promised,  and  in  due 
time  it  arrived. 

This  was  also  the  case  at  Sierra-Leone ;  but  before  further 
lielp  arrived  there,  death  had  thinned  the  small  band  of  mis- 
sionarjr  labourers ;  for  "  one  was  taken,  and  the  other  left.^' 
Mr.  Clarke  was  called  to  "gather  up  his  feet^^  at  the  close  of 
the  rains,  and  just  as  the  healthy  season  had  set  in,  after  a 
residence  in  the  colony  of  only  about  twelve  months.  One  of 
the  missionaries  belonging  to  the  Church  missions  was  also 
called  hence,  to  be  no  more  seen ;  and  four  of  them  had 
returned  to  Europe  invalided.  Mr.  Maer  had  suffered  severely, 
but  was  mercifully  preserved,  and  was  "  in  labours  more  abun- 
dant." 

Isaac  Clarke,  whose  term  of  public  service  was  so  short  in 
this  mission,  was  a  young  man  of  sincere  piety ;  and,  while 
health  and  strength  lasted,  was  happy  and  useful  in  his  Mas- 
ter's work.  It  appears  that  he  never  fully  recovered  from  his 
seasoning-fever,  though  he  was  removed  from  one  place  to  ano- 
ther for  a  change  of  air.  His  lungs  were  affected  before  he  left 
England ;  and  therefore,  though  the  climate,  no  doubt,  accele- 
rated the  disease,  his  death  could  not  be  wholly  attributed  to 
that.  He  gradualh^  grew  weaker  and  weaker  in  body ;  but 
"  his  soul  was  happy  in  God,"  "  quite  happy."  These  were 
some  of  the  last  expressions  he  uttered ;  and  he  died  in  peace, 
on  the  4th  of  November,  1834.  As  he  was  much  esteemed  in 
life,  so  was  he  greatly  lamented  and  honoured  in  death ;  his 
funeral  being  attended  by  at  least  six  hundred  persons. 
"The  brethren,  Maj',  Peck,  Munro,  and  Clarke,  he  side  by 
side." 

Mr.  Crosby  had  sailed  for  Sierra-Leone  before  the  news  of 
Mr.  Clarke's  death  had  reached  London ;  so  that  another  mis- 


THE    GAMBIA    AXD    SIERRA-LEONE.  369 

sionary  was  now  very  much  needed ;  and,  as  soon  as  practicable, 
a  third  was  sent. 

On  the  3d  of  December,  1834,  the  foundation-stone  of  the 
new  chapel  at  Bathurst,  St.  Mary's,  was  laid  by  His  Excellency 
the  Lieutenant-Governor,  in  the  presence  of  most  of  the  Eu- 
ropean residents,  several  naval  and  military  officers,  and  a  large 
number  of  the  natives.  The  following  "historical  sketch," 
written  on  parchment,  was  placed,  with  some  small  pieces  of 
British  coin,  in  a  cavity  of  the  foundation-stone,  and  was  read 
by  the  Lieutenant-Governor  in  the  open  air  before  it  was 
deposited  : — 

AN    HISTORICAL    SKETCH    OF    WESLEY    CHAPEL,    ON    THE     ISLAND    OF    ST.    MARY's, 
WESTERN    AFRICA,    COMMENCED    DECEMBER,    1834. 

If  there  be  a  God, — and  that  there  is  all  nature  cries  aloud,  and  even  our  own 
existence  clearly  demonstrates,— then  it  is  the  bounden  duty  of  every  rational  and 
intelligent  creature  to  love  and  serve  and  glorify  Him.  But  although  the  Divine 
existence  may  be  inferred  from  the  varied  and  beautiful  works  of  natm-e,  had  there 
been  no  further  revelation  respecting  the  self-existent,  independent,  infinite,  and 
eternal  Spirit,  we  should  probably  have  long  remained  ignorant  respecting  his 
natural  and  moral  perfections,  the  requisitions  of  the  gospel,  the  immortality  of  the 
soul,  and  the  awful  realities  of  an  eternal  world. 

Great  Britain,  though  not  one  of  the  first  portions  of  the  globe  that  were  favoured 
with  this  revelation,  was  nevertheless,  at  an  early  period,  visited  by  the  heralds  of 
salvation  ;  whose  converts  and  co-adjutors  in  the  ministry  increased,  many  of  whom, 
alas !  were  burnt  at  the  stake,  and  swam  through  rivers  of  blood  to  defend  the 
truth.  Happily,  however,  for  the  honour  of  Britain,  and  the  happiness  and  welfare 
of  its  inhabitants,  persecution  has  of  late  years  subsided,  and  England  has  not  been 
more  conspicuous  for  arts  and  sciences,  her  men  of  genius  and  literature,  than  for 
her  humane  and  benevolent  institutions,  her  attachment  to  the  Christian  religion, 
(the  religion  of  the  Bible,)  and  for  an  host  of  able  divines,  well  qualified  to  advo- 
cate its  cause  at  home,  and  most  zealous  in  disseminating  far  and  wide  "  the  glori- 
ous gospel  of  the  blessed  God." 

Among  the  modern  reformers  may  be  reckoned  the  Rev.  Messrs.  Wesley  and 
Whitefield ;  the  former  of  whom  was  the  founder  of  Methodism,  and  also  of  the 
foreign  missions  bearing  that  name,  which  have  now  spread  into  the  four  quarters 
of  the  globe. 

The  first  Wesleyan  missionary  arrived  on  this  island  in  1821,  who  soon  com- 
menced his  ministerial  duties ;  and  though  he  met  with  difficulties,  he  also  met 
with  that  respect  from  the  local  authorities,  and  that  success  in  his  work,  which 
encouraged  him  to  labour  on.  In  the  year  1825  a  mission-house  was  erected,  and 
the  whole  of  tlie  ground-floor,  thirty-seven  feet  by  seventeen,  appropriated  to  the 
doul)le  purpose  of  holding  divine  service  and  also  of  keeping  a  week-day  school. 

In  the  latter  part  of  1833  this  station  was  visited,  by  the  great  Head  of  the 
church,  with  a  gracious  outpouring  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  The  above-mentioned 
room  became  much  too  small  to  contain  the  congregation ;  the  society  in  a  few 
months  was  doubled,  and  in  little  more  than  twelve  months  increased  fourfold,  so 
that  the  original  chapel  could  not  admit  even  all  the  members  of  society,  which 
had  increased  from  seventy-five  to  three  hundred :  the  population  being  about  two 
thousand  seven  hundred,  out  of  which  there  were  about  fifty  Europeans.     This  led 

B    B 


370 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


to  an  application  to  the  Wesleyan  Missionary'  Committee  in  London,  for  leave  (and 
the  principal  part  of  the  means)  to  erect  a  new  and  much  larger  chapel,  stating  to 
them  its  size,  (fifty-four  feet  by  thirty-eight,)  probable  cost,  and  the  probable  sum 
that  could  be  raised  on  the  island  towards  its  erection.  After  some  months'  una- 
voidable delay,  the  welcome  intelligence  was  received  from  the  secretaries  of  the 
Wesleyan  Missionaiy  Committee  that  ^500  were  granted  toward  the  expense ;  and 
the  missionary  to  whom  that  letter  was  addressed  (Rev.  W.  Fox)  was  authorized 
to  l)egin  to  build  immediately.  This  letter  arrived  on  the  22d  of  October,  1834  ; 
the  following  day  a  commencement  was  made  by  clearing  the  site  of  land  adjoining 
the  mission-house,  purchasing  materials,  &c. 

Charles  Grant,  Esq.,  was  engaged  to  erect  this  chapel,  the  doors,  windows,  and 
interior  part  excepted,  which  the  missionary  engaged  to  superintend ;  and  this 
foundation-stone  was  laid  on  Wednesday,  December  3d,  1834,  by  His  Excellency 
Lieutenant-Governor  George  Kendall,  Esq.,  Representative  of  His  Britannic  Majesty 
King  William  IV.  May  the  blessing  of  God,  the  Father,  Son,  and  Holy  Ghost,  rest 
upon  this  place  ;  and  may  the  present  inhabitants  of  St.  Marj-'s,  and  generations  yet 
unborn,  have  to  bless  God  to  all  eternity,  for  the  erection  of  this  chapel !  Amen, 
and  amen. 

While  the  smith  was  soldering  up  a  square  tin  and  leaden 
box  containing  this  document,  previous  to  its  being  put  in  the 
stone,  the  540Lh  Hymn  was  sung,  to  the  well-known  tune 
of  the  "Old  Hundred/'  after  which  His  Excellency  pro- 
ceeded to  lay  the  stone,  assisted  by  sevei'al  other  gentlemen. 
He  then  gave  a  short,  but  very  appropriate,  address.  The  writer 
also  gave  a  brief  exhortation ;  and  then  was  sung  the  620th 
Hymn  : — 

"  Behold  the  sure  foundation-stone 
Which  God  in  Sion  lays,"  &c. ; 

and  thus  closed  the  commencement  of  this  important  under- 
taking. 

A  few  extracts  from  my  unpublished  journal  and  letters  may 
be  introduced  here. 

December  6th,  1834. — The  past  two  days  here  have  been 
partly  occupied  in  soliciting  subscriptions  for  the  new  chapel,  in 
which  I  have  succeeded  very  well.  I  met  with  only  one  refusal : 
this  was  from  a  gentleman  of  deistical  principles,  who,  with  his 
declining  to  give  any  thing,  made  some  rather  severe  remarks 
upon  the  mission,  calling  the  gracious  work  of  God,  and  the 
blessed  revival  which  was  still  going  on,  a  mere  farce.  This 
called  forth  a  reply  from  another  European  gentleman,  who  was 
present.  Though  not,  it  is  to  be  feared,  a  converted  man,  yet 
he  was  a  well-wisher  to  the  cause,  and  nobly  defended  the 
mission  from  this  unexpected  and  ungracious  attack.  After 
speaking  for  some  time  on  the  propriety  and  iitility  of  our 
missions  generally,  and  the  good  that  had  resulted  from  mis- 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEOXE. 


371 


sionary  labour  in  this  colony,  he  referred  to  the  present  farce, 
ns  the  sceptic  called  it,  and,  pointing  to  several  well-known 
characters  in  the  town, — who  had  frequently  been  brought 
before  the  magistrates  for  debt,  breaches  of  the  peace,  &c.,  but 
who  had  not  been  seen  in  the  Court-House  for  many  months, 
and  were  novr  orderly  and  industrious,  civil  and  obliging  in 
their  manners,  well  clothed  in  their  persons,  and  regular  attend- 
ants on  the  means  of  grace, — he  asked,  with  some  warmth,  if 
all  that  was  "  a  mere  farce."  "  If  their  hearts  are  not  changed," 
continued  he,  "  it  is  evident  that  a  great  moral  change  has  been 
effected  in  their  lives ;  and  this  is  a  fact  known  to  the  whole 
colony." 

Sunda}--,  14tli. — -i^t  six  a.m.  I  gave  tickets  to  two  large  classes ; 
at  half-past  seven  at  the  barracks ;  at  ten  I  read  prayers,  and 
preached  with  considerable  liberty ;  at  tlie  close  I  baptized 
several  adults.  Immediately  afterwards  I  performed  duty  at 
the  church.  At  two  p.m.  I  sailed  to  Berwick-Town,  preached 
and  renewed  the  tickets ;  returned  home  a  little  before  six ; 
when  I  again  preached,  and  at  the  close  held  a  prayer-meeting. 
17th. — I  felt  much  blessed  this  evening,  while  preaching  from 
Heb.  xiii.  8,  "  Jesus  Christ,  the  same  yesterday,  and  to-day,  and 
for  ever."  I  had  been  engaged  all  day  with  the  new  chapel,  and 
went  into  the  pulpit  without  a  text;  (not  the  more  excellent 
way;)  but  on  opening  the  Bible,  the  passage  just  quoted  pre- 
sented itself;  and  it  was  good  to  be  there.  At  the  close,  I  met 
my  class,  when  we  had  another  refreshing  season. 

Christmas-Day. — I  rose  this  morning  at  four;  and  com- 
menced the  prayer-meeting  a  little  before  five.  Many  could 
not  get  into  the  chapel.  At  half-past  seven  I  went  to  the 
barracks ;  at  ten  I  read  prayers,  and  preached  from  the  "  faithful 
saying;"  (1  Tim.  i.  15;)  then  performed  duty  at  the  church. 
At  half-past  two  I  attended  the  prayer-meeting  at  Soldiers'- 
Town ;  and  in  the  evening  preached  from  the  emphatic  answer 
of  the  blind  man  who  had  received  his  sight.   (John  ix.  25.) 

29th. — Quarter-day.  The  leaders  and  local  preachers  dined 
at  the  mission-house;  and  we  then  proceeded  to  business. 
Another  year  of  prosperity,  both  temporal  and  spiritual.  To 
God  be  all  the  praise  ! 

January  1st,  1835. — Last  evening  I  held  a  watch-night  ser- 
vice. Scores  could  not  get  into  the  chapel.  The  subjects  selected 
by  the  local  brethren  were  appropriate.  I  closed  the  service, 
which  was  a  solemn  and  profitable  season.  To-day  I  have  been 
to  Berwick-Town,  to  commit  to  the  silent  tomb  the  mortal 
remains  of  Mary  Lusack,  one  of  the  oldest  members  on  this 

2   B  2 


372  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

station,  who  died  triumphantly  happy  in  God,  between  eleven 
and  twelve  o'clock  last  evening.  About  the  same  period  I  was 
addressing  the  congregation  on  the  subject  of  death ;  adding, 
"  While  I  am  speaking,  and  you  are  hearing,  it  is  highly  pro- 
bable that  some  of  God's  people  are  saying,  '  O  the  pain,  the 
bliss  of  dying  ! ' "  Though  the  sea  was  rough,  many  of  the 
natives  went  over  in  their  canoes ;  and  about  twenty  accom- 
panied me  in  the  mission-boat.  It  was  an  affecting  scene. 
Some  of  her  last  words  were,  "The  Master  is  come,  and  calleth 
for  me."  * 

Sunday,  4th. — I  commenced  the  service  this  morning,  by 
giving  out  that  beautiful  hymn, — 

"  When  all  thy  mercies,  0  my  God, 
My  rising  soul  surveys,"  &c. 

I  then  improved  the  death  of  Mary  Lusack,  from,  "  I  am 
now  ready  to  be  offered,  and  the  time  of  my  departure  is  at 
hand,'^  &c.  It  was  a  gracious  season ;  and  many  in  the  con- 
gregation, by  their  countenances  and  tears,  said, 

"  0  may  I  triumph  so, 

^^^len  all  my  warfare  's  past ! " 

After  performing  colonial  duty,  I  proceeded  to  Berwick-Town. 
On  arriving  at  the  house  of  the  deceased,  where  we  preached,  I 
was  struck  with  the  sadness  which  appeared  in  the  countenances 
of  all  present ;  most  of  whom  (that  is,  the  females)  had  tlieir 
heads  dressed  with  black  or  blue  baft,  as  a  token  of  respect  to 
their  departed  friend.  I  endeavoured  to  impress  upon  their 
disconsolate  minds  the  encouraging  words  of  the  Saviour  to  his 
disciples,  "  Let  not  your  heart  be  troubled  :  ye  believe  in  God, 
believe  also  in  me.  In  my  Father's  house  ai'e  many  mansions," 
&c.  (John  xiv.  1 — 3.)  I  afterwards  met  the  class,  and  then 
embarked  in  the  mission-boat  for  St.  Mary's ;  but,  owing  to  a 
contrary  tide,  I  did  not  reach  that  place  till  a  few  minutes  after 
six.  However,  I  again  preached,  and  at  the  close  held  a  short 
prayer-meeting. 

17th. — I  received  a  letter  from  the  Rev.  John  Beecham,  with 
the  welcome  intelligence  that  an  additional  missionary  is  coming 
out  immediately  for  this  station. 

*  This  is  the  person  mentioned  in  a  preceding  chapter,  who  was  brought  to  a 
knowledge  of  the  truth  under  the  ministry  of  the  Rev.  John  Morgan,  at  an  early 
stage  of  the  mission.  I  afterwards  furnished  a  short  account  of  this  good  woman 
for  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Magazine,  which  appeared  in  1837,  p.  233. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  373 

Sunday,  25th. — Another  heavy  day^s  work.  I  conducted  six 
services.     Tired  in  the  work,  but  not  tired  of  it. 

29th. — "We  had  a  gracious  season  at  the  five-o^clock  prayer- 
meeting  this  morning ;  two  persons  found  peace  with  God,  in 
addition  to  three  the  other  evening.     Praise  ye  the  Lord  ! 

On  the  30th  of  this  month  I  addressed  a  letter  to  the  com- 
mittee, containing  an  account  of  the  financial  and  spiritual  state 
of  the  circuit.  The  following  is  an  abstract  of  that  communi- 
cation : — Some  account  of  personal  and  domestic  affliction  ;  but 
the  prosperity  of  the  cause  of  God  was  a  sufficient  recompence 
for  all  our  aches  and  pains.  We  had  had  to  mourn  over  some, 
but  rejoiced  over  others  ;  had  united  in  marriage  several  couples, 
and  baptized  nearly  two  hundred.  The  financial  receipts  were 
upwards  of  £60,  in  addition  to  the  annual  list  of  subscriptions, 
amounting  to  £40.  25.  7d.,  with  upwards  of  c€lOO  towards  the 
new  chapel,  the  walls  of  which  were  now  about  fifteen  feet  high, 
&c.  Five  members  of  the  society  had  "  died  in  the  Lord " 
during  the  year,  ten  had  removed,  eleven  had  been  excluded. 
The  number  of  members  were, — Bathurst,  261  ;  Melville,  26 ; 
Berwick-Town,  27  :  total,  314 ;  being  an  increase  of  130  during 
the  year,  besides  upwards  of  twenty  on  trial.  In  the  school, 
boys*  95 ;  girls,  31  :  total,  123. 

February  6th. — We  had  a  delightful  prayer- meeting  this 
evening.  One  of  the  soldiers  from  the  barracks  literally  "  smote 
upon  his  breast,"  and  cried  aloud  for  mercy.  I  went  to  him  at 
the  close  of  tlie  meeting,  and  pointed  him  to  "  the  Lamb  of  God 
which  taketh  away  the  sins  of  the  world."  He  did  not  then 
find  relief  for  his  burdened  soul,  but  returned  to  his  quarters  in 
deep  distress,  assisted  by  his  sergeant  and  another  soldier. 

Sunday,  8th. — My  work  to-day  was  much  as  usual,  except 
that  I  went  to  Melville  in  the  afternoon,  instead  of  to  Berwick. 
19th. — To-day  I  united  in  marriage  thirty  couples  of  liberated 
Africans,  the  female  part  of  whom  had  only  recently  been 
rescued  from  the  slave-ship,  by  His  Majesty^s  cruisers.  There 
may  be  an  evil  in  this  wholesale  system  of  marrying ;  but  when 
there  are  two  evils,  prudence  dictates  that  we  choose  the  least ; 
and  believing  this  to  be  the  least  of  the  two,  I  perfectly  con- 
curred Avith  the  governor  in  the  propriety  of  thus  uniting  them 
in  matrimony.  The  courtship,  though  of  short  duration,  was 
mutual :  the  man  having  "  popped  the  question,"  as  in  other 
lands,  he  almost  immediately  received  an  answer  in  the  affirma- 
tive from  the  female;  and  so  they  were  married,  and  duly  and 
properly  registered ;  and  it  is  to  be  hoped  that  all  the  parties 
w  ill  attend  to  the  vows  they  have  now  made.    At  all  events,  I  did 


374  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA, 

my  duty^  though  it  was  with  some  difficulty  that  I  maintained 
my  accustomed  gravity  during  a  part  of  the  service. 

23d. — This  evening  the  brig  "  Emerald"  arrived  from  London, 
with  the  promised  additional  help ;  that  is,  Mr.  and  jNIrs.  Wil- 
kinson, to  whom  we  gave  a  right  hearty  welcome.  May  they 
be  made  an  abundant  blessing  to  the  swarthy  tribes  of  Ham  in 
this  interesting  part  of  the  mission-field  ! 

A  very  favourable  opportunity  having  offered  for  taking  a 
short  trip  to  sea,  a  few  weeks  after  the  arrival  of  Mr.  Wilkinson, 
I  gladly  embraced  it,  for  the  sake  of  my  dear  wife,  avIio  con- 
tinued in  a  very  delicate  state  of  health ;  and  I  also  needed  a 
little  rest  or  cliange.  The  vessel  in  which  we  embarked  was  an 
English  brig,  going  to  one  or  more  of  the  Cape-de-Verd  Islands, 
and  expecting  to  be  absent  about  three  weeks.  We  sailed  on 
the  morning  of  March  21st,  and  on  the  evening  of  the  24th 
anchored  off  the  Isle  of  Mayo.  We  found  the  inhabitants  in  a 
state  of  great  excitement,  from  an  insurrection  which  had  taken 
place  at  St.  Jago,  by  some  troops  recently  arrived  there  from 
Lisbon,  who  were  partisans  in  the  great  political  stir  which  at 
that  time  existed  in  Portugal.  These  troops,  hasdng  possession 
of  the  garrison,  hoisted  the  flag  of  their  own  party,  drove  the 
inhabitants  into  the  interior  of  the  island,  put  the  governor  into 
irons,  and  then  plundered  the  town.  The  inhabitants  of  Mayo 
were  daily  expecting  these  insurrectionists  to  pay  them  a  visit : 
in  fact,  when  they  first  saw  our  brig  and  flag,  they  were  appre- 
hensive that  we  had  hoisted  false  colours,  and  that  we  were  from 
St.  Jago.  Finding,  however,  that  we  were  true  Britons,  the 
governor  immediately  chartered  our  vessel  to  the  Gambia,  with 
despatches  to  our  governor  for  assistance,  in  case  of  an  attack 
made  upon  them.  We  therefore  only  remained  at  Mayo 
twenty-four  hours,  when  Ave  were  again  under  weigh  for  the 
Gambia. 

During  our  short  stay  at  Mayo,  I  visited  the  Catholic  church, 
Avhich  stands  upon  an  elevated  site  of  ground  at  the  north  side 
of  the  town.  It  is  unproportionably  built,  being  about  sixty- 
five  feet  in  length,  and  about  twenty  feet  wide.  It  Avas  under- 
going repairs,  but  at  noon-day  had  a  burning  lamp.  I  saw  the 
priest,  so  called,  avIio  was  a  black  man,  dressed  exceedingly 
shabby,  Avho  appeared  almost  as  ignorant  on  the  subject  of 
practical  Christianity  as  the  stones  of  which  his  church  was 
built.  The  toAvn  is  small,  irregularly  built,  and  the  houses  very 
meagre,  excepting  the  governor's,  and  one  or  tAvo  others;  and 
these  not  half  so  respectable  as  the  store-house  at  the  Gambia. 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERHA-LEONE.  375 

The  manners  and  habits  of  these  Portuguese  were  to  me  filthy  in 
the  extreme;  one  room  answering  for  bed-chamber,  sitting- 
room,  and  dining-room.  The  fort  was  in  a  shattered  condition, 
with  very  few  guns,  some  of  which  were  of  no  use  whatever ; 
and  the  few  soldiers  who  were  on  the  island  appeared  to  be 
under  a  very  loose  kind  of  discipline :  so  that,  though  nature 
has  tolerably  well  fortified  this  little  island,  it  being  from  two  to 
three  hundred  feet  above  the  level  of  the  sea,  and  withal  very 
rocky,  yet  a  small  force  would  soon  succeed  in  taking  it.  Of 
this  the  inhabitants  seem  sensible ;  for  many  of  them,  we  were 
told,  have  their  money  and  other  valuable  articles  either  buried 
or  packed  up,  so  that  they  may  start  into  the  interior  at  the 
approach  of  a  foe. 

We  arrived  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  evening  of  the  28th,  thank- 
ful to  God  for  his  preserving  care  over  us,  though  little  or 
nothing  benefited  by  the  voyage,  having  been  absent  only  one 
week. 

April  17th,  Good -Friday. — We  had  service  morning  and 
evening,  and  both  times  upwards  of  one  hundred  and  fifcy  were 
obliged  to  stand  without.  Most  of  the  congregation  were 
dressed  in  black.  Mr.  Wilkinson  preached  in  the  morning, 
and  I  in  the  evening.     The  presence  of  the  Lord  was  with  us. 

Easter-Monday. — Yesterday  was  to  me,  and  I  hope  to  many, 
a  good  day.  In  the  morning  I  preached  from,  "  He  is  not 
here :  for  he  is  risen,  as  he  said.  Come,  see  the  place  where 
the  Lord  lay."  (Matt,  xxviii.  6.)  In  the  afternoon  I  preached 
at  Melville,  on,  "  Jesus  saith  unto  her,  Woman,  why  weepest 
thou?"  &c.  (John  XX.  15.)  Many  could  not  get  in.  I  after- 
wards received  several  on  trial. 

29th. — My  colleague  and  myself  have  to-day  been  to  Ber- 
wick-Town, accompanied  by  the  governor  and  the  engineer. 
His  Excellency  has  granted  to  the  mission  two  lots  of  land  in 
an  excellent  situation,  which  were  measured  and  marked  off. 

May  4th. — I  have  to-day  drawn  up  a  memorial  to  the 
governor,  on  behalf  of  six  of  the  members  of  the  society,  who 
are  slaves.  They  have  long  had  their  freedom  promised  to 
them,  but  it  has  never  been  granted.  They  have  made  several 
applications  to  be  allowed  to  purchase  it ;  but  in  this  also  they 
have  failed.  At  their  request,  therefore,  I  have  interceded  on 
their  behalf. 

6th. — My  illness  has  settled  into  dysentery.  Yesterday  and 
to-day  I  was  very  ill ;  but  my  soul  is  in  a  happy  frame. 

Sunday,    10th. — Mr.   Wilkinson    not    returning   from   Fort 


'6 


AVESTERN    COAST    OT    AFRICA. 


Bullen  in  time  for  the  eveniug  service,  I  preached,  though  very 
unwell. 

Sunday,  17th. — Another  idle  sabbath.  But  it  is  the  Lord. 
He  can  bring  low,  and  as  quickly  raise  up  again.  My  disease, 
however,  has  assumed  the  chronic  form ;  so  that  it  is  now  calo- 
mel, calomel,  calomel !  Time  and  patience,  however,  with  God's 
blessing,  will,  ere  long,  I  hope,  find  me  restored. 

25th. — Ten  days  ago  I  wrote  to  the  committee  at  consider- 
able length,  on  several  subjects  connected  with  the  mission : 
one  of  these  was  the  propriety  of  my  remaining  another  year, 
though  the  usual  time  allotted  to  the  brethren  on  this  sickly 
coast  has  already  more  than  expired ;  but  for  several  reasons  I 
was  exceedingly  anxious  to  remain  some  time  longer,  and  wrote 
thus  :  "  I  cannot  as  yet  see  my  way  open  to  return  ;  and  I  think 
the  departure  out  of  the  missionary  field  ought  to  be  as  plain 
and  clear  as  the  path  tliat  led  me  into  it."  I  therefore  requested 
to  be  re-appointed  at  the  ensuing  Conference;  but  stated 
that,  in  case  of  a  complete  failure  of  health  during  the  rains,  I 
should  feel  it  right  to  embrace  the  first  opportunity  of  having 
an  immediate  change ;  and,  in  that  case,  I  would  gladly  return 
here  again.  The  necessity  for  this  has  already  appeared  in  my 
own  health,  but  more  especially  in  the  continued  and  increased 
illness  of  my  dear  wife,  who,  to  all  appearance,  cannot  stand  up 
against  another  sickly  season,  as  she  continues  so  weak  and 
debilitated  even  now,  and  is  suftering  severely  :  in  fact,  she  has 
never  recovered  from  the  effects  of  the  last  season.  I  have 
therefore  been  compelled  to  write  to-day  again,  stating  that  as 
soon  as  the  chapel  is  finished,  I  shall  feel  it  my  duty  to  return 
for  a  short  time. 

28th. — Yesterda}'  we  had  an  eclipse  of  the  sun.  I  am  to-day 
better,  though  far  from  being  Avell;  and  have  resolved  to  take 
no  more  calomel.  Most  of  the  day  I  have  been  in  the  new 
chapel,  fixing  the  lamp- chains,  giving  directions  for  the 
pews,  &c. 

June  2d. — During  the  past  night  I  have  suffered  more 
from  sickness  than  I  ever  did  before,  with  violent  cramp 
in  my  limbs,  which  continued  till  five  o'clock  this  morning.  I 
am  therefore  to-day  confined  to  bed,  and  am  thankful  to  m}'- 
heavenly  Father  that  the  sickness  and  pain  have  abated.  Never 
shall  I  forget  the  past  night :  it  may  well  be  said  that,  after 
severe  fatigue  or  pain,  rest  is  sweet.  I  never  realized  this  so 
fully  as  to-day ;  and  I  thank  God  I  have  a  good  hope  of  that 
sweet,  that  heavenly  and  eternal,  "  rest  which  remains  for  the 
people  ()[  God,"  Avhcre 


THE    GAMBIA    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  377 

"  Infinite  day  excludes  the  night, 
And  pleasures  banish  pain." 

Sunday,  7th. — I  was  sufficiently  recovered  to  go  to  Barra- 
Pointj  where  I  preached.  In  the  evening  I  addressed  the 
people  here. 

July  4th. — I  have  been  much  engaged  of  late  with  the 
new  chapel;  more  especially  this  week.  I  have  had  most 
of  my  meals  there,  and  have  had  the  carpenters  at  work  almost 
night  and  day.  To-morrow  it  is  to  be  dedicated  to  the  service 
and  worship  of  the  most  high  God.     May  it  be  a  good  day  ! 

Sunday,  5th. — This  morning,  long  before  the  time  of  service 
arrived,  crowds  of  people  assembled  round  the  chapel  door ;  and 
at  half-past  ten  it  was  crammed  quite  full,  and  scores,  if  not 
hundreds,  had  to  stand  without.  Many  of  the  Europeans  and 
persons  of  colour  were  present.  I  preached  in  the  forenoon, 
and  Mr.  Wilkinson  in  the  evening.  The  collections  amounted 
to  £2S  currency ;  and  the  Divine  Presence  was  graciously  felt, 
I  am  truly  thankful  that  I  have  been  spared  to  see  completed 
so  comfortable  and  respectable  a  place  of  worship.  May  it  be 
the  birth-place  for  many  hundreds  of  souls  ! 

28th. — Expecting  to  sail  in  a  day  or  two,  I  this  evening 
preached  from  2  Cor.  xiii.  11.  I  had  been  unwell  all  night  and 
during  the  day  with  fever;  but  it  being  announced  that  I 
should  preach,  if  at  all  able,  and  feeling  somewhat  better  just 
before  the  bell  began  to  ring  for  divine  service,  I  rose,  and  pre- 
pared for  the  pulpit.  Many  wept,  and  some  cried  aloud.  This 
dear  people  have  for  some  days  past  shown  their  real  affection 
for  us  in  bringing  us,  as  presents,  ducks,  fowls,  &c.,  each  pre- 
sent being  accompanied  with  a  prayer  to  God  for  our  safety  on 
the  voyage,  a  speedy  restoration  to  health,  a  happy  meeting 
Avith  our  friends,  and  a  strong  hope  that  we  shall  come  back 
again.  Two  days  after  this  we  bade  them  adieu,  and  sailed  for 
our  native  country ;  and  I  fulfilled  the  promise  I  had  made  to 
them  of  returning ;  but  as  some  further  particulars  of  our 
departure  from  the  Gambia,  with  my  speedy  return,  and  the 
reasons  for  so  doing,  will  be  found  in  a  subsequent  page,  I  shall 
close  this  chapter,  and  proceed,  in  the  next,  to  the  origin  and 
commencement  of  the  mission  at  Cape-Coast-Castle. 


CHAPTER  XIX. 

THE  GOLD-COAST,  GAMBIA,  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1835—1837.) 

The  Discovery  of  the  Coast  of  Guinea — Situation  and  Description  of  Cape-Coast— 
Europeans — Native  Population — Prospect  of  the  Castle,  &c.,  from  the  Sea — 
Trade — Origin  and  Commencement  of  the  Mission — Death  of  the  Rev.  Joseph 
R.  Dunwell — The  Committee  "  perplexed,  but  not  disheartened  " — Resolved  to 
send  two  Missionaries — State  of  the  Mission  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Sanders 
sails  for  that  Station — The  Author  and  Mr.  MacBrair  embark  for  the  Gambia 
— The  Latter  sent  as  a  Translator  of  the  Scriptures — Our  Arrival  and  Recep- 
tion— Communication  from  the  xVuthor — Mr.  MacBrair  proceeds  to  his  Sta- 
tion at  Macarthy's  Island— Opposition  to  the  Mission — Extracts  from  Mr. 
MacBrair's  Journal — Outrage  on  the  Mission  at  Macarthy's  Island — The 
Assistant's  House  demolished  by  a  lawless  Gang — The  Author  requested  to  go 
thither  with  all  Speed — Mr.  MacBrair  returns  to  St.  Mary's — Finally  sails  for 
England — The  Writer  now  at  Macarthy's  Island — -Extracts  from  his  unpub- 
lished Journal — The  rainy  Season— Personal  Affliction — Is  appointed  to 
Macarthy's  Island — Goes  down  to  St.  Mary's  to  settle  his  Accounts  with  that 
Station — The  Anival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  "Wrigley  at  Cape-Coast — And  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Patterson  at  Sierra-Leone — The  Author  retm-ns  to  Macaiihy's  Island 
■ — Close  of  the  Year — Statistics  of  the  Mission  at  each  Station. 

The  coast  of  Guinea,  including  the  Ivoiy,  Gold,  and  Slave 
Coast,  was  discovered  and  explored  by  the  Portuguese  about  the 
latter  end  of  the  fifteenth  century;  soon  after  Avhich  several 
European  forts  were  erected  in  various  parts.  We  have  in  a 
preceding  chapter  given  some  account  of  these  forts,  with  a 
brief  description  of  the  native  tribes,  and  the  sanguinary  and 
war-like  character  of  the  Ashantees,  as  also  of  the  awful  and 
degraded  superstition  of  the  iidiabitants  of  that  and  other 
neighbouring  kingdoms. 

Cape-Coast-Castle,  which  has  long  been  the  chief  British 
establishment  in  this  part  of  Africa,  is  situated  in  5°  6'  north 
latitude,  and  1°  10'  west  longitude.  The  fort  stands  upon  a 
rock  about  twenty  feet  above  the  level  of  the  sea,  and  has  appro- 
priate accommodation  and  extensive  magazines.  Behind  the 
castle  is  the  town  of  Cape-Coast,  which  contains  some  comfort- 
able houses,  and  has  a  square  or  parade  in  front  of  the  castle-gate. 
The  resident  European  merchants  are  twelve,  and  the  native 
population  is  about  five  thousand.  There  are  four  magistrates, 
besides  the  president  of  council.  The  number  of  stone  houses 
belonging  to  the  Europeans,  or  natives  connected  with  them,  is 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  379 

about  eighteen,  and  tliey  are  supposed  to  be  worth  from  ii  1,000 
to  £2,000  sterling  each.  The  natives  live  in  very  comfortable 
*'  swish  "  houses,  made  of  mud,  Avhich  become  hard  and  dura- 
ble, and  last  so  long  as  the  roof  resists  the  rains.* 

The  castle  is  an  irregular  figure  of  four  sides,  with  four  bas- 
tions at  each  angle  ;  the  whole  mounting  about  eighty  pieces  of 
cannon.  Two-thirds  of  the  walls  of  the  fortress  are  washed  by 
the  heavy  sea  which  invariably  runs  along  this  line  of  coast,  and 
it  is  well  protected  on  the  land  side.  Within  the  castle  is  an 
extensive  hne  of  spacious  buildings,  three  stories  high,  running 
north  and  south,  dividing  the  fort  into  nearly  two  equal  parts, 
and  containing  the  government-house,  &c.  A  nearly  similar 
structure  runs  east,  forming  a  triangular  space  of  considerable 
extent. 

The  cape,  on  which  the  castle  stands,  is  an  angular  promon- 
tory, bounded  by  the  sea  on  the  south  and  east  sides.  It  was 
originally  settled  by  the  Portuguese;  but  the  Dutch  dispos- 
sessed them  in  a  few  years,  and  took  great  pains  to  strengthen 
the  fortifications.  Admiral  Holmes  captured  it,  and  demolished 
the  citadel,  in  1661 ;  since  which  time  it  has  remained  in  the 
possession  of  Great  Britain,  having  been  confirmed  by  the 
treaty  of  Breda.  When  the  Dutch  admiral,  De  Buyter, 
destroyed  all  the  English  factories  along  the  coast  in  1665,  this 
place  withstood  his  utmost  endeavours,  although  he  attacked 
it  with  thirteen  men-of-war.  The  Company,  who  obtained  a 
charter  in  1673,  subsequently  added  greatly  to  its  strength  by 
building  some  bastions,  though  the  fort  is  considered  to  be  too 
near  the  town,  and  commanded  by  some  of  the  houses. f 

It  appears  from  Smollett's  "  History  of  England,^'  that  the 
French,  in  1757,  made  an  attempt  to  capture  Cape-Coast-Castle, 
but  signally  failed ;  for  though  the  squadron  consisted  of  two 
ships  of  the  line,  and  a  large  frigate,  the  governor,  Mr.  Bell,  on 
hearing  of  the  approach  of  these  vessels,  under  the  command 
of  M.  de  Kersin,  though  ill-prepared  for  them  in  the  way 
of  ammunition,  or  soldiers  to  work  the  "few  crazy  guns,'' 
immediately  provided  gunpowder  and  about  fifty  Europeans 
from  some  vessels  on  the  coast,  mounted  a  few  spare  cannon 
upon  a  temporary  battery,  and  with  twelve  hundred  armed 
Negroes,  under  the  command  of  their  chief,  received  the  French 
squadron,  and  poured  such  a  steady  and  well-directed  fire  for 
two  hours  into  M.  Kersin's  fleet,  that  the  latter  thought  it  most 

*  Dr.  Madden's  Report,  in  the  Appendix  to  the  "  Report  of  the  Select  Com- 
mittee of  the  House  of  Commons,  on  the  West  Coast  of  Africa,  in  1842." 
t  Martin's  "  British  Colonies,"  vol.  iv.  p.  565. 


380  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

prudent  to  make  sail  for  the  West  Indies,  without  inflicting  any 
great  damage  on  the  castle.* 

The  troops  are  commanded  by  a  European.  They  are  natives 
of  the  place,  enlisted  by  the  colonial  authorities,  are  well 
behaved,  and  for  order  and  discipline  are  said  to  be  equal  to  any 
of  our  West-Indian  regiments.  During  the  visit  of  the  late  Niger 
Expedition  to  this  place  in  1841,  the  fort  only  mounted  about 
twenty-four  guns.  Mr.  Simpson,  one  of  the  civilians  who 
accompanied  that  expedition,  speaks  thus  of  the  prospect  of 
Cape-Coast-Castle,  as  they  approached  it  from  the  sea : — 

The  view,  in  our  vessel's  track  to  this  place,  was  of  the  most  highly  picturesque 
description,  uniting  in  it  the  sublime  as  well  as  the  beautiful.  The  surf  was  break- 
ing impetuously  upon  the  beach  and  the  base  of  the  fort,  in  tremendous  waves 
upon  waves.  Cape-Coast-Castle  fort,  occupying  a  considerable  surface,  and  being 
entirely  white,  reflected  the  splendour  of  a  setting  sun.  Nature  thus,  in  her  stern 
and  beautiful  aspects,  spoke  to  the  hearts  of  us  voyagers,  with  perils  impending 
over  us,  and  far  separated  from  the  scenes  of  our  more  peaceful  days,  in  language 
which  I  could  have  more  easily  expressed,  had  it  been  less  deep  and  touching.  I 
felt  myself  for  a  moment  but  a  speck  in  a  great  creation  or  system  of  things,  for 
whom  it  was  a  delusion  to  think  the  Almighty  could  care.  But  it  was  only  for  a 
moment  I  could  thus  think,  and  do  dishonour  to  the  majesty  of  Him  whose 
universal  parentage  lasts  throughout  the  duration  of  the  creatures  He  has  made, 
exhausting  not  His  love,  wearying  not  His  power,  in  whose  ignorance  even  a 
sparrow  falls  not  to  the  ground. 

Behind  the  castle,  on  rising  ground,  a  small  fort  is  erected,  hanng  a  telegraph 
on  its  summit ;  and  at  night  the  castle  and  the  fort  exhibited  a  strong  light, — a 
very  beautiful  object  of  view. 

A  considerable  trade  is  carried  on  at  this  place,  which  is  said 
to  have  increased  of  late  years.  The  principal  commodities 
imported  into  England  from  this  part  of  the  coast,  are  gold- 
dust,  ivory,  palm-oil,  dye-woods,  and,  latterly,  ground-nuts, 
with  some  minor  articles  of  trade.  There  are  several  other 
British  forts  and  settlements  in  the  immediate  vicinity,  and 
at  some  distance  from  Cape-Coast-Castle;  where,  as  well  as  in 
other  places,  we  have  now  missions  established,  which  will  be 
noticed  in  due  course. 

The  Wesleyan  mission  at  the  Gold-Coast  was  undertaken 
at  the  close  of  the  year  1834,  and  actually  commenced  in 
1835.  The  Rev.  Joseph  R.  Dunwell  arrived  at  Cape-Coast- 
Castle  early  in  the  month  of  January  of  that  year,  when  he  met 
with  a  hearty  welcome  from  the  governor  and  authorities,  and  a 
little  band  of  the  natives  whom  God  had  prepared  for  the  recep- 
tion of  his  holy  word.  The  missions  on  the  Gold-Coast  have 
now  assumed  so  important  a  character,  and  the  particulars  con- 

*  Martin's  "  British  Colonies,"  vol.  iv.  p.  566. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIEK  RA.-LEONE.  381 

nected  with  their  origin  and  formation  are  so  interesting,  that  I 
shall  here  transcribe,  from  Dr.  Beecham's  admirable  work  on 
"Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  the  circumstances  which  led 
to  the  commeuceinent  of  this  good  work : — 

It  was  in  the  autumn  of  the  year  1834  (writes  Dr.  Beecham)that  the  committee 
of  the  Wesleyan  iMissionary  Society  were  induced  to  send  a  missionary  on  a  visit  of 
observation  to  the  Gold-Coast.  A  few  native  youths,  who  had  learned  to  read  the 
English  translation  of  the  Bible  in  the  excellent  Government-school  at  Cape-Coast 
Castle,  became  so  interested  by  the  contents  of  the  sacred  volume,  that  they  agreed 
to  meet  at  regular  times  for  the  purpose  of  reading  it  together,  and  of  inquiring 
carefully  into  the  nature  and  claims  of  the  Christian  religion.  The  name  which 
this  association  assumed  was  that  of  "  A  Meeting  or  Society  for  Promoting  Christian 
Knowledge;"  and  they  adopted  for  their  guidance  the  following  rule,  which  is 
copied  literally  from  the  Minutes  of  their  proceedings  :  "  That,  as  the  word  of  God 
is  the  best  rule  a  Christian  ought  to  observe,  it  is  herein  avoided  framing  other 
ndes  to  enforce  good  conduct ;  but  that  the  scriptures  must  be  carefully  studied, 
through  which,  by  the  help  of  the  Holy  Spirit  and  faith  in  Christ  Jesus,  our  minds 
will  be  enlightened,  and  find  the  way  to  eternal  salvation." 

The  formation  of  this  most  interesting  society  or  meeting  took  place  on  the  1st 
of  October,  1831  ;  and  in  the  year  1833,  Mr.  William  De  Graft,  one  of  the  first 
who  began  to  read  the  scriptures  privately  in  the  spirit  of  prayer  and  inquiry, 
received  at  Dix  Cove,  where  he  was  then  residing,  a  request  from  his  young  friends 
at  Cape-Coast  Town  that  he  would  engage  some  suitable  person,  who  might  be 
proceeding  to  England,  to  purchase  for  their  use  a  number  of  copies  of  the  New 
Testament.  Shortly  after,  the  late  excellent  Captain  Potter,  master  of  a  merchant- 
vessel  from  the  port  of  Bristol,  arrived  at  Dix  Cove ;  to  whom  William  De  Graft 
applied  as  one  likely  to  execute  with  promptness  and  care  the  commission  for  the 
purchase  of  the  scriptures.  lie  was  surprised  at  receiving  such  an  application  from 
a  native  young  man,  and  became  so  greatly  interested  by  the  information  which 
his  questions  elicited,  that  he  was  led  to  ask  whether  the  instructions  of  a  mis- 
sionary would  not  be  highly  appreciated  by  those  native  inquirers  ^fter  the  true 
religion.  De  Graft  replied  in  the  affirmative,  but  appeared  doubtful  whether  so 
high  a  privilege  was  attainable.  Captain  Potter  next  proceeded  to  Cape-Coast, 
where  he  saw  the  members  of  the  meeting ;  and,  having  consulted  President 
Maclean,  he  returned  to  England,  resolved  to  exert  himself,  in  order  that,  on  his 
next  voyage,  he  might,  together  with  copies  of  the  scriptures,  take  out  a  Christian 
minister  who  should  "  preach  the  word"  to  those  who  were  akeady  united  in 
seeking  "  the  way  to  eternal  salvation,"  and  proclaim  the  gospel  of  Christ  to  other 
portions  of  the  Heathenish  native  population  of  the  Gold-Coast. 

Immediately  after  his  arrival  at  Bristol,  Captain  Potter  communicated  to  the 
Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee  in  London  his  views  as  to  the  promising  opening 
for  missionary  exertion  in  that  part  of  Africa,  and  generously  offered  to  take  a 
missionary  with  him  on  his  next  voyage,  who  might  make  personal  observation 
and  inquiry  upon  the  spot ;  and,  should  he  conclude  that  the  prospect  was  not 
such  as  to  warrant  his  continuance  for  the  purpose  of  commencing  a  mission. 
Captain  Potter  engaged  that  he  would  bring  him  back  to  England  without  any 
expense  to  the  Missionary  Society.  This  noble  offer  met  with  acceptance  on  the 
part  of  the  Missionary  Committee ;  and  the  Rev.  Joseph  Dunwell  was  selected  for 
tlie  interesting  service. 

This  devoted   missionary  embarked  with  Captain  Potter  at  Bristol,  on  the  17th 


382  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

of  October,  1834.  The  entries  in  his  private  journal  sufficiently  indicate  the  views? 
with  which  he  entered  upou  his  arduous  undertaking.  Impressed  with  the  respon- 
sibility which  attached  to  him,  and  fearing  lest  the  important  mission  might  fail 
through  his  incapacity,  he  studied  daily,  on  his  voyage,  the  lives  of  eminent 
missionaries,  especially  those  of  Brainerd  and  Martyn,  in  order  that  he  might  catch 
a  larger  measure  of  their  spirit,  and  propose  to  himself  as  an  example  the  zeal  and 
self-denial  by  which  they  were  characterized.  On  the  6th  of  December  the  ship 
came  within  sight  of  land  near  Cape  Palmas ;  and  a  few  extracts  from  the  journal 
of  Mr.  Dunwell,  illustrative  of  the  character  and  manners  of  the  natives,  at  the 
several  places  where  they  touched,  as  well  as  of  bis  own  feelings  while  contem- 
plating their  moral  state,  will  be  read  with  interest : — - 

"  December  7th,  1834. — At  daylight  we  were  seen  by  the  natives  ;  and  in  half 
an  hour  upwards  of  fifty  men  were  on  deck,  the  first  of  whom  recognised  Captain 
Potter,  and  appeared  glad  to  see  him.  I  observed  immediately  that  they  were 
most  rapacious  beggars.  We  shortly  weighed  anchor,  it  being  Sunday,  in  order  to 
secure  greater  quietness  and  tranquillity ;  but  although  we  had  a  good  breeze,  a 
great  number  of  canoes  came  off  to  us  in  the  course  of  the  day.  These  people  are 
the  most  athletic  and  well-proportioned  men  I  ever  saw,  and  have  most  animated 
countenances.  They  seem  exceedingly  fond  of  Englishmen,  and  say  they  woidd  be 
glad  if  I  would  stay  and  hve  with  them,  as  there  is  no  'white  man'  at  Sesters, 
Garraway,  or  Cape  Palmas ;  all  which  places  we  passed  to-day.  The  inhabitants 
appear  numerous ;  but  Christ  has  not  been  named  among  them.  What  Christian 
can  witness  their  numbers,  and  their  degradation,  without  deep  feeling  ?  I  noticed 
that  nearly  all  we  saw  could  speak  broken  English.  The  country  appears  almost 
like  a  paradise,  though  everything  springs  spontaneously.  At  dusk  we  anchored 
off  Cape-Town,  (an  American  settlement,)  which  1  intend  to  visit  to-morrow,  God- 
willing. 

"  Monday,  8th. — At  day-break  I  saw  many  canoes  coming  off.  Numbers  of 
people  were  soon  upon  deck,  with  rice,  fowls,  and  ivory,  which  they  exchanged  for 
articles  of  English  manufacture.  About  nine  o'clock,  the  king,  whose  name  is 
Freeman,  came,  with  several  attendants.  He  was  dressed  in  a  coat  and  trowsers  of 
coarse  blue  cloth,  and  wore  a  three-cornered  hat,  with  a  red  cockade.  A  coloured 
silk  umbrella  covered  him  from  the  rays  of  the  sun.  Upon  entering  the  cabin,  his 
attendants  presented  the  treaty  lately  made  between  the  Americans  and  himself, 
respecting  the  colony,  (which  is  about  twenty  miles  square,)  in  behalf  of  the  Colo- 
nization Society.  Having  received  a  note  from  Dr.  Hall,  the  governor,  Captain 
Potter  accompanied  me  on  shore,  and  we  were  politely  received  by  the  doctor  and 
his  secretary,  Mr.  Thompson. 

"  While  I  was  there,  I  was  introduced  to  a  man  who  told  me  that  he  was  a 
member  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Society,  and  that  there  are  sixteen  persons  who 
meet  together  in  Christian  fellowship  on  a  Sunday  morning.  The  governor  expects 
a  missionary  shortly.  He  expressed  a  strong  wish  that  our  committee  should  send 
one;  indeed,  1  think  there  is  a  good  opening  for  missionary  labour,  as  there  is 
already  a  Christian  society  which  stands  in  need  of  a  shepherd,  and  there  is  a  great 
number  of  the  aborigines  of  the  country  in  the  town  adjoining  the  settlement. 

"  Before  we  returned  on  board,  we  visited  the  king  at  his  hut,  where  chairs 
were  placed  for  us,  and  we  were  welcomed  with  much  cordiality.  No  sooner  were 
we  seated,  than  a  great  number  of  natives  assembled  round  us,  in  a  state  of  perfect 
nudity ;  and  when  we  took  our  departure  for  the  boat,  we  were  escorted  by  scores 
of  them  to  the  shore.  Mr.  Thompson,  the  governor's  secretary,  told  me  that  the 
people  were  astonished  at  me,  and  said  among  themselves,  that  1  was  a  '  god-man,' 
come  to  talk  '  great  palaver.' 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  383 

*'  Tuesday,  December  9th.^ — To-day  we  have  been  visited  by  three  kings,  who 
all  appear  to  be  great  men  in  their  way.  They  have  many  under  their  control. 
Kavally  seems  to  be  next  in  importance  to  Cape  Palmas.  The  news  of  a  '  god- 
man  *  (as  they  term  me)  having  come,  appears  to  have  gone  like  lightning  down 
the  coast.  Cape-Coast  seems  to  be  much  envied,  as  these  people  also  desire  to 
have  a  missionary.  "We  asked  one  of  their  chiefs  last  night  if  he  would  wish  me 
to  come  and  live  with  him ;  and,  to  express  his  meaning,  he  laid  himself  down,  and 
extended  his  arms  at  full  length,  and  said, '  You  be  my  father,  my  brother.'  Several 
chiefs  have  brought  their  sons  to  me,  and  wished  me  to  take  them,  and  teach  them 
'  sensen.' 

"  One  native  came  to  know  when  Christmas  was,  and  why  we  called  it  so. 
When  I  told  him,  he  seemed  utterly  astonished,  and  said,  '  That  be  great  palaver 
indeed;'  and,  striking  his  head,  he  added,  'Will  keep  that  there  good  sensen.' 
Another  came,  and  wrote  on  a  slate,  '  You  come.'  Upon  examination,  I  found  he 
could  write  his  name,  and  read  the  alphabet ;  another  could  read  words  of  one  and 
two  syllables.  The  quickness  with  which  they  learn  is  amazing.  How  great  the 
harvest ! — and  the  labourers,  not  few,  but  really  none  ! 

"  I  cannot  doubt :  I  do  believe  that  I  am  in  the  way  of  Providence,  in  coming 
with  this  vessel.  If  I  Uve,  I  shall  have  an  opportunity  of  visiting  several  hundreds 
of  miles  of  this  coast ;  and  what  I  have  seen  of  it  I  admire,  and  should  not  mind 
settling  anywhere. 

"  December  1 1th. — When  I  arose  in  the  morning,  I  foimd  that  we  were  opposite 
the  land  of  Drewin.  The  country  still  assumes  the  same  appearance :  but,  to  my 
surprise,  I  learned  that  few  ships  touch  here,  as  the  people  are  savage,  and  speak 
another  language.  Not  many  years  ago.  Captain  Thomas  Feebin,  of  the  ship 
'  Union,'  from  Bristol,  stopped  here  for  the  purposes  of  trade ;  but,  for  some  reason 
or  other,  the  natives  murdered  the  captain  and  the  whole  of  the  crew.  They  ran- 
sacked and  plundered  the  vessel ;  and  shortly  after.  Captain  Potter  passed,  and 
caught  some  of  the  natives  on  the  wreck ;  but  he  was  obliged  to  abandon  it,  in 
order  to  save  his  own  life,  and  those  of  his  crew.  In  the  evening,  as  we  passed 
along,  we  came  in  sight  of  a  village  named  Kutro.  Here  the  natives  kindled  a  fire 
on  the  beach,  as  a  signal  for  us  to  anchor ;  but  as  we  did  not  stop,  two  canoes 
came  off,  with  some  plantains,  bananas,  and  fowls,  which  we  bought.  These 
natives  had  a  very  difterent  appearance  from  those  we  saw  last,  having  nothing 
round  their  waists  but  a  mere  strap  of  cloth,  instead  of  the  Manchester  cloths  I 
observed  round  the  others  ;  and  they  were  afraid  to  come  on  deck,  and  seemed 
distrustfid  of  all  of  us  in  the  extreme. 

"  Friday,  12th. — Early  this  morning,  we  were  opposite  Pikanani  Lahii,  or  Long- 
Jack's  Place.  Here  the  inhabitants  appear  exceedingly  ignorant  of  religion  or 
letters.  If  possible,  they  are  worse  beggars  than  I  have  seen  before,  as  nothing 
seems  to  satisfy  them.  About  one  o'clock  we  arrived  at  Cape  Lahu,  and  anchored. 
As  usual,  we  had  the  decks  soon  filled  with  natives  ;  among  these  were  kings,  chiefs, 
and  counsellors,  who  all  appeared  exceedingly  kind  and  familiar.  They  are  athletic 
and  well-proportioned ;  and  their  costume  is  nothing  but  a  belt  round  their  waist. 
Some  wear  their  hair  in  large  tufts,  others  curled,  plaited,  and  braided. 

"  Saturday,  Decemljer  13th. — At  five  o'clock  this  morning,  or  soon  after,  I  could 
perceive  the  canoes  making  to  the  vessel.  In  a  short  time  the  decks  were  covered 
from  end  to  end.  To-day  I  eml)raced  the  opportunity  of  making  some  inquiries 
about  this  people  and  the  place,  as  it  is  acknowledged  to  be  one  of  great  import- 
ance. The  town  appears  to  be  divided  into  two  districts,  governed  by  two  kings, 
namely,  Peter  and  Antonio,  both  of  whom  I  saw.  Of  the  extent  of  these  places  I 
cannot  speak  positively ;  but  the  number  of  inhabitants  certainly  amounts  to  many 


384  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

thousands.  The  people  appear  to  be  possessed  of  gold ;  and  I  saw  vast  quantities 
of  ivory.  The  country  is  low,  but  very  fertile  and  pleasant,  producing  spon- 
taneously every  kind  of  vegetation  necessary  for  its  inhabitants.  1  very  much 
wished  to  \isit  this  people  in  their  town,  as  they  gave  me  several  pressing  invita- 
tions. King  Peter  told  me  he  would  build  me  a  house,  if  I  would  go  ;  and  one  of 
his  sons  made  me  a  present  of  half  an  ackie  of  gold,  patted  me  on  the  face,  and 
said,  '  Me  like  you  face ;  black  man  do.'  My  friend,  Captain  Potter,  told  me,  that 
if  they  got  me  there,  most  likely  they  would  keep  me  several  days,  till  they  had  all 
seen  me.  I  felt  a  longing  desire  for  the  salvation  of  these  people,  and  could  have 
freely  stayed  with  them,  and  given  myself  up  into  their  hands,  and  spent  my 
strength  and  life  amongst  them,  for  the  glory  of  God. 

"  December  15th. — I  arose  early  this  morning,  and  found  we  were  opposite 
Pikanani  Bassam.  Here  is  a  large  population,  exceedingly  ignorant,  and,  at  this 
time,  engaged  in  war  with  W'hat  are  called  the  Bush-men.  This  is  also  the  case 
with  two  large  towns  which  we  have  passed,  namely.  Jack  Lahii,  and  Jack  Jaques ; 
so  that  we  considered  it  best  not  to  call  here.  In  the  evening  we  came  to  anchor 
at  Grand  Bassam,  one  of  the  prettiest-looking  places  I  ever  saw.  The  town  stands 
about  six  miles  up  a  noble  river  of  the  same  name.  It  is  a  place  of  considerable 
importance.  Old  Kwosia,  the  king,  is  the  greatest  man  we  have  seen.  He  pos- 
sesses much  wealth,  and  has  a  great  number  of  wives.  His  influence  is  such,  that 
nothing  is  done  without  his  consent  and  approbation.  We  had  not  been  here  an 
hour,  before  he  came  on  board.  I  was  struck  with  his  appearance ;  for  although 
he  is  low  in  stature,  there  is  something  noble  and  dignified  in  his  person.  He  is  a 
complete  man  of  business,  and  carries  a  large  box  of  gold  at  his  side,  of  no  little 
value ;  yet  he  wears  a  mean  cloth  round  his  waist,  and  assists  occasionally  in  row- 
ing his  canoe.  If  we  have  an  opportunity  of  visiting  his  town,  it  is  our  intention 
so  to  do  ;  and  I  believe  I  shall  be  the  first  Christian  missionary  that  ever  set  foot 
in  this  place. 

"  December  16th. — About  nine  o'clock  this  morning,  the  king  sent  messengers 
to  say  that  he  could  not  visit  us  for  ten  days,  as  one  of  his  wives,  and  a  brother, 
had  died  last  night.  Upon  inquiry,  the  messengers  told  us  that  they  had  been 
bewitched,  and  that  two  persons  would  be  sacrificed,  as  vfcll  as  a  thousand  guns 
fired  at  the  same  time. 

"December  17th.— The  roar  of  the  guns,  fired  on  account  of  the  death  of  the 
king's  wife,  although  at  seven  miles'  distance,  was  like  that  of  distant  thunder.  In 
the  evening  we  took  the  boat,  in  order  to  ascertain  whether  we  could  land  on  the 
beach  ;  but  as  we  found  that  it  was  nearly  perpendicular,  and  the  swell  very  great, 
we  did  not  attempt  it ;  so  I  fear  that  our  intended  visit  to  Grand  Bassam  will  be 
frustrated. 

"  December  20th. — Another  day  has  been  on  my  part  wholly  unemployed.  I 
cannot  read  for  the  continual  noise  on  deck,  much  less  think  closely.  The  Africans 
are  indeed  a  noisy  jjcople  ;  but  this  is  not  all :  they  are  ignorant  in  the  extreme. 
To-day,  while  conversing  with  one  of  them,  I  introduced  religion ;  but,  alas !  he 
was  as  ignorant  as  a  brute ;  he  neither  knew  who  made  him,  nor  any  thing  else. 
All  I  could  get  from  him  was,  '  Great  devil  talk  angry : '  signifying,  that  when  it 
thundered,  the  devil  was  angry. 

"  December  23d. — This  day  we  got  under  weigh,  and  came  to  a  poor,  small  town, 
called  Half  Assinee.  This  place  seems  to  have  sprung  up  from  one  of  the  same 
name,  destroyed  by  the  king  of  Apollonia ;  who  is  a  dreadful  tyrant,  carrying 
terror  and  destruction  wherever  he  comes.  Although  the  people  at  this  place  are 
poor  in  comparison  with  some  of  their  neighbours,  yet  they  are  industrious.  One 
young  man  who  came  on  board,  and  calls  himself  '  Tom  Coffee,'  says  he  has  been 


THE    GOLD-COASr^    GA.MBIA,    AND    SfKRK A-LEOXE.  38") 

at  Liverpool,  and  went  to  clmrcli.  He  ai)peareJ  nuicli  surprised  at  what  lie  saw 
and  heard." 

Leaving  this  place,  they  called  at  Dix  Cove  and  Connnenda,  both  which  towns 
have  since  become  mission-stations  ;  and  on  the  29th  of  December  the  vessel 
anchored  off  the  Dutch  fort  of  Elmiua.  At  this  place,  within  sight  of  Cape-Coast 
Castle,  Mr.  Dunwell  wrote  in  his  journal  as  follows  :  "  What  my  feelings  have  been 
this  day,  I  cannot  describe.  The  place  of  my  future  residence  is  in  view :  it  may 
prove  the  spot  where  I  shall  finish  my  earthly  existence ;  and  there  the  name  of 
Jesus  Christ  may  be  honoured  or  dishonoured  by  me.  But,  in  the  strength  of 
grace,  I  trust  that,  whether  my  days  may  be  many  or  soon  numbered,  they  will  be 
spent  in  the  service  of  God.  All  things  appear  to  me  to  sink  into  nothingness, 
compared  with  the  great  work  of  my  Divine  Lord  and  Master." 

While  at  anchor  off  Elmina,  Mr.  Dunwell  wrote  a  letter  to  President  Maclean,  at 
Cape-Coast  Castle,  respectfully  informing  him  of  his  arrival  on  the  coast,  and 
stating  the  objects  contemplated  by  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee,  in  sending 
him  as  a  missionary  to  that  part  of  Africa.  On  his  arrival,  a  day  or  two  afterwards, 
at  Cape-Coast  Castle,  he  met  with  a  kind  reception  from  the  president,  who  invited 
him  to  remain  at  the  castle  until  he  could  provide  himself  with  a  suitable  residence  ; 
and  expressed  his  opinion,  that  there  was  a  very  favourable  opening  among  the 
natives  for  missionary  exertions.* 

Mr.  Dunwell  immediately  commenced  liis  labours  among  the 
people,  who  received  him  with  devout  gratitude ;  and  the  Lord 
blessed  him  with  considerable  success.  A  society  of  from  forty 
to  fifty  members  on  trial  was  speedily  formed ;  and  the  aspects 
of  the  new  mission  were  of  the  most  cheering  character.  An 
interesting  letter  from  this  devoted  missionary,  dated  Cape- 
Coast,  April  1st,  1835,  was  published  in  the  "Wesleyan  Mis- 
sionary Notices/^  in  the  month  of  October  of  the  same  year. 
This  letter  contained  extracts  from  his  journal,  from  which  it 
appears  he  had  visited  several  places  in  the  neighbourhood  of 
his  station,  among  which  was  Annamaboo,  where  he  was  well 
received,  and  kindly  entertained  at  the  house  of  Mr.  Barnes,  a 
respectable  merchant  of  that  place.  He  also  spoke  of  other 
places  which  he  was  anxious  to  visit,  where  the  doors  were  wide 
open  to  receive  the  message  of  salvation.  The  mission  thus 
early  assumed  a  most  promising  appearance.  The  large  room  in 
which  public  service  had  been  held  at  Cape-Coast  Town  proved 
too  small,  and  it  was  in  contemplation  to  erect,  as  soon  as  possi- 
ble, a  suitable  chapel.  But,  in  the  midst  of  the  anticipations 
which  this  hopeful  state  of  things  inspired,  Mr.  Dunwell  was 
attacked  by  fever,  under  which  he  sank  in  a  few  days ;  and  left 
the  societies,  which  he  had  been  instrumental  in  forming,  as 
sheep  without  a  shepherd.  This  afflictive  dispensation  produced 
the  deepest  feeling  among  all  who  took  any  interest  in  the  mis- 
sion.    On  the  following  morning  a  native  wrote,  "  Sad  news  in 


*  Dr.  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  pp.  259 — 272. 
C    C 


386  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

the  town !     The  shepherd  is  away !     The  poor  missionary  is 
reported  dead ! " 

Joseph  R.  Dun  well,  the  first  Wesleyan  missionary  on  the 
Gold- Coast,  was  a  young  man  of  deep  piety,  amiable  manners, 
and  consistent  conduct.    In  him  were  manifested,  in  an  eminent 
degree,  zeal  for  the  cause  of  Christ,  and  a  yearning  pity  for  the 
souls  of  the  Heathen.     In  a  letter,  addressed  to  a  friend,  which 
was  found  in  his  room  after  his  decease,  he  expressed  his  readi- 
ness to  lay  down  his  life  in  Africa;   and  remarked,   that  it 
grieved  him  most  of  all,  that  his  utmost  exertions  were  so  inade- 
quate to  meet  the  spiritual  wants  of  the  multitudes  to  whom  he 
had  access.     The  last  entries  in  his  own  journal,  and  the  notices 
furnished  by  Mr.  Joseph  Smith,  the  native  master  of  the  school 
at  the  Castle,  show  with  what  feelings  this  useful  missionary 
met  his  death,  far  from  his  father's  home,  uncheered  by  the  pre- 
sence of  mother,  or  sister,  or  other  relative,  and  attended  only 
by  those  to  whom  his  generous  qualities  had  endeared  him  in 
the  land  of  strangers.     On  Sunday,  the  14th  of  June,  having 
mentioned  that  he  had   preached  twice,  although   unwell,  he 
added,  "  After  the  evening  service  I  had  a  most  violent  head- 
ache,   with   some   fever   and   sickness,  which  continued   till  I 
retired  to  rest.     There   appeared   every  symptom   of  what   is 
called  the  '  seasoning,'  which  so  frequently  proves  fatal :  still  I 
cannot  describe  the  peace  of  mind  I  feel.     I  feel  that  I  am  a 
most  worthless  sinner,  and  have  no  hope,  no  plea,  but,  '  Jesus 
died  for  me.'"     The  day  after,  it  appears,  he  used  his  pen  for 
the  last   time,  and  Avrote,  "  I  passed  an   exceedingly  restless 
night,  having  great  pain  of  body ;  so  that  I  rested  very  little. 
Yet,  O  the  composure  of  mind !     I  believe  I  can  say,  '  In  life  or 
in  death,  I  am  the  Lord's.'"     On  the  24th  he  sent  for  Mr. 
Smith,  who  found  him  much  worse   than   he  expected:  they 
prayed  together,  and  Mr.  Dunwell  repeated  the  fourth  verse  of 
the  twenty-third  psalm :  "  Though  I  walk  through  the  valley  of 
the  shadow  of  death,  I  will  fear  no  evil :    for  Thou   art  with 
me ;  Thy  rod  and  Thy  staff  they  comfort  me."     On  Mr.  Smith 
leaving  to  attend  the  school,  he  said  to  him,  with  tears,  "Brother 
Smith,  we  have  passed  many  agreeable  evenings  in  conversing 
on  instructive  subjects ;  but  I  have  to  tell  you  I  shall  soon  be 
absent  from  you,  and  be  present  with  the  Lord.     I  am  going 
home,  and  shall  be  no  more  seen ;  but  watch  over  the  flock,  and 
strengthen  them  in  the  Lord  when  I  am  gone."     He  expired 
between  eight  and  nine  o'clock  in  the  evening  of  June  24th, 
1835,  and  was  interred  the  following  afternoon.     Great  num- 
bers of  the    natives,   with  most   of  the  European   gentlemen, 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  387 

attended  his  funeral ;  and  the  governor  having  read  the  funeral 
service,  the  members  of  the  society  then  sang  that  beautiful  and 
appropriate  hymn, — 

"  Hark  !  a  voice  divides  the  sky  ! 

Happy  are  the  faithful  dead  ! "  &c. 

Thus  lived  and  thus  died  the  Rev.  Joseph  R.  Dunwell.  His 
sun  went  down  almost  as  soon  as  it  began  to  shine;  yet  no 
words  of  disappointment  or  regret  escaped  his  lips,  on  account 
of  his  liaving  so  early  sacrificed  his  life  in  the  missionary  enter- 
prise ;  but  a  quenchless  zeal  for  the  cause  of  his  Divine  Master 
sustained  him  to  the  last ;  and  all  the  solicitude  he  manifested 
was  for  the  infant  church  formed  by  his  instrumentality. 

The  loss  of  Mr.  Dunwell  was  severely  felt  by  the  society,  and 
deeply  regretted  by  all  who  knew  him,  both  at  home  and  abroad. 
The  day  after  the  funeral,  the  bereaved  society  met,  to  take  into 
consideration  the  circumstances  in  which  they  were  placed  by 
the  afflictive  dispensation  which  had  overtaken  them.  The 
result  was,  they  resolved  to  continue  together  until  further 
assistance  arrived;  saying,  "Though  the  missionary  is  dead, 
God  lives;"  and  having  "  commended  one  another  in  prayer  to 
God,  they  separated  at  ten  o^clock."  The  committee  at  home, 
in  announcing  Mr.  DunwelFs  death,  stated,  "We  are  painfully 
affected  by  this  dispensation,  but  not  disheartened;  'cast  down, 
but  not  destroyed.^  Our  great  Master  '  buries  his  workmen, 
but  carries  on  his  work.'  To  Western  Africa  the  people  of 
England  owe  a  debt,  which  must  be  paid  at  all  hazards ;  and 
God  w  ill  3^et  bless  our  persevering  efforts  to  discharge,  in  some 
measure,  the  solemn  obligations  of  humanity  and  religion." 
The  society  at  Cape-Coast  having  presented  a  request  (through 
Messrs.  Jackson  and  Barr,  two  gentlemen  on  the  Coast,  who 
had  kindly  undertaken  the  administration  of  ]Mr.  Dunwell's 
affairs)  to  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee,  for  another 
missionary,  "the  committee,  unable  to  reconcile  to  their  con- 
viction of  duty  the  abandonment  of  a  work  wdiich  had  been  so 
auspiciously  begun,  resolved  to  more  than  meet  the  application, 
by  sending  two  missionaries,  on  the  principle  that  the  interests 
of  a  mission  in  such  a  climate  as  that  of  Western  Africa  ought 
not  to  be  left  to  the  care  of  only  one  individual.  It  was  further 
agreed,  that  the  two  missionaries  to  be  sent  should  be  married 
men,  in  order  that  their  wives  might  attend  to  the  improvement 
of  the  native  females."  * 

*  Dr.  Beecham's  "  Ashantee  and  the  Gold-Coast,"  p.  278. 

2  c  2 


388 


WKSTERX    COAST    Or    ATRTCA. 


The  cominuuication  of  the  intentions  of  the  committee  was 
received  Avith  unbounded  satisfaction  by  the  members  at  Cape- 
Coast,  who  continued  to  hold  their  religious  meetings  with 
regularity,  and  were  exerting  themselves  to  raise  subscriptions 
for  the  erection  of  a  suitable  chapel.  As  soon  as  practicable, 
Mr.  and  ]Mrs.  Wrigley  were  sent ;  and  they  were  soon  followed 
by  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Harrop.  In  due  course,  further  particulars  of 
this  mission  will  be  given  ;  but,  in  the  mean  time,  we  return  to 
the  other  stations. 

At  Sierra-Leone,  ]Messrs.  Maer  and  Crosby  were  united  in 
effort  and  in  heart,  and  the  God  of  missions  was  with  them 
during  this  Avhole  year.  The  table  inserted  in  ]\Ir.  Maer's 
quarterly  report  at  that  time,  will  show  that  the  converted 
Negroes  were  not  generally  backward  in  supporting,  according 
to  their  limited  means,  the  cause  of  God  and  his  gospel.  The 
following  is  an  extract  from  Mr.  Maer's  communication,  dated 
"  Free-Towu,  July  23d,  1835  :"— 

It  affords  me  much  satisfaction  to  be  able  to  state,  that  the  Lord  has  been  with 
us,  and  made  us  instrumental  of  good  diu-iug  the  past  quarter.  Our  society  is  on 
the  increase.  We  have  now  six  hundred  and  fifty-two  members,  and  three  huudred 
and  forty-two  on  trial;  making  nine  hundred  and  ninety-four  under  class-iustruction. 

There  has  also  been  a  corresponding  increase  in  the  contributions  returned  from 
the  classes.  At  the  close  of  the  quarter,  ending  in  March,  I  stated  that  the  returns 
exceeded  those  of  any  preceding  quarter,  by  £5 ;  and  I  have  now  to  state,  that  the 
returns  for  the  quarter,  ending  June  30th,  exceed  those  of  March  by  £b.  12*.  -id., 
being  dE38.  14«.  7d.,  which  averages  li^d.  per  member.  But,  what  is  still  more 
delightful,  many  have  of  late  obtained  the  pardouing  mercy  of  God.  From  ilarch 
31st  to  June  30th  one  hundred  and  thirty  persons  have  professed  to  receive  the 
knowledge  of  salvation  by  the  remission  of  sins.  Among  this  number  there  are 
many  young  persons  belonging  to  om-  schools  in  Free-Town  and  Portuguese-Town. 

The  present  state  of  the  society  here  is  as  follows : — 


Members 
Places. 
Free-Town. 

Maroon  chapel    80 

Bathurst-street  chapel  102 
l-benezer  chapel    ....     30 

Portuguese-Town 108 

Congo-Town   56 

New-Town,  West 141 

Soidiers'-Town   46 

Wellington    and    New- 
lands  8.5 

Wilberforce 3 

Lumley 1 


1 

Total 

Cash  re- 

Average 

,  On 

in 

turned  this 

per 

trial. 

class. 

quarter. 

Jlember. 

£.  $.    d. 

d. 

22 

102 

5    9    9 

W\ 

40 

142 

5  11     9 

13 

11 

41 

2    5    5 

18 

46 

154 

6  19    0 

15J  ; 

15 

71 

2    8    2 

lOi 

59 

200 

8    7  11 

14i 

38 

84 

4  13    3 

24i 

83 

168 

2  17    5 

i 
8       1 

18 

21 

0     1  11 

1 

10 
342 

11 
994 

0    0    0 

38  14    7 

Remarks. 

Congregation  larger. 

Here  is  some  increase. 

Appearances  very  flattering. 

Rising  a  little. 

A  little  increase. 

A  great  increase. 

Many  persons  converted  here  this 
quarter. 

The  chapel  enlarged,  and  the  so- 
ciety improving. 

Prospects  brightening. 

Here  much  good  would,  I  believe, 
be  done  but  for  the  distance. 


V,'e  have  completed  and  opened  the  new  Ebenezer  chapel,  which  is  properly  set- 
tled on  the  Wesleyan  plan.     The  piece  of  ground  on  wiiich  it  is  built,  granted  to 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    G.\.\1I5IA,    AND    ^^  I  ICilR  A-LEDM^  JiSO 

US  by  the  Colonial  Government  for  that  jjurpose,  contains  two  thousand  one  hun- 
dred and  eighty-four  square  yards.  It  is  well  attended  ;  and  there  is  a  prospect  of 
the  society  increashig  in  this  place.  Many  have  lately  joined  the  society  there, 
several  of  whom  have  found  peace  with  God.  We  have  begun  to  enlarge  the  new 
chapel  in  New-Town  West,  by  lengthening  it  to  sixty  feet,  but  cannot  finish  it  dur- 
ing the  rains.  The  congregation  is  very  large.  I  am  very  sorry  that  our  chapel  in 
Congo-Town  is  not  yet  completed.  The  walls  are  up,  but  the  rains  prevent  the 
workmen  from  proceedhig  for  the  present ;  and  besides  this,  we  are  so  embarrassed 
that  it  will  be  impossible  for  us  to  complete  the  work  without  some  assistance  from 
the  funds  of  our  Society,  I  think  to  the  amount  of  £l(j  or  £18.  The  building  is 
now  forty-one  feet  by  twenty-six.  The  people  meet  for  worship  at  present  in  an 
unfinished  dweUing-house. 

Our  schools  are  prospering.  We  have  at  present  five  hundred  and  forty-six  boys, 
and  three  hundred  and  eighty-four  girls,  making  a  total  of  nine  hundred  and  thirty 
children  in  our  week-day  schools ;  besides  which,  we  have  about  one  hundred  and 
fifty  in  our  Sunday-schools.  We  have  also  early  morning  schools  for  the  monitors, 
and  for  tlie  most  promising  of  the  boys.* 

A  short  time  after  this,  the  lease  of  the  Maroon  chapel  to  the 
Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  expired ;  and  as  the  missionaries 
and  trustees  could  not  come  to  terms  about  its  renewal,  there 
was  no  alternative  but  to  give  up  the  chapel  to  them.  Mr. 
Maer  took  for  his  text,  one  Sunday  evening,  "Behold,  your 
house  is  left  unto  you  desolate."  (Matt,  xxiii.  38.)  When  he 
had  finished  his  sermon,  he  requested  Mr.  Crosby  to  pray,  put 
the  Bible  under  his  arm,  walked  out  of  the  chapel,  and  never 
Avent  into  it  to  preach  again.  The  writer«of  this  fact,  in  the 
Sierra- Leone  "  Watchman,"  some  years  after  this,  says,  "  Truly 
their  house  of  prayer  has  ever  since  been  desolate,  and  at  the 
present  time  shows  a  lamentable  scene  of  spiritual  destitution. 
Efforts  have  since  been  made  to  prove  to  them,  that  it  would  be 
for  their  spiritual  benefit  to  give  up  their  place  of  worship  to  the 
Wesleyan  Missionary  Society ;  but  there  is  one  or  two  who  love 
the  pre-eminence,  and  who  will  not  consent  to  this ;  and  thus 
they  keep  the  people  in  a  state  of  suffering  from  a  famine  of 
the  word  of  God."  Some  of  the  Maroons,  however,  obeyed  the 
Divine  command  :  "  Come  out  of  her,  my  people,  that  ye  be  not 
partakers  of  her  sins,  and  that  ye  receive  not  of  her  plagues.^' 
(Rev.  xviii.  4.) 

On  the  16th  of  October,  jSIr.  W^.  Sanders  embarked  for 
Sierra-Leone  ;  and  on  the  12th  of  November,  the  writer,  with 
Mr.  MacBrair,  sailed  for  the  Gambia.  Mr.  MacBrair  was 
appointed  to  Macarthy^s  Island,  with  especial  reference  to  the 
translation  of  the  scriptures  into  one  or  more  of  the  native  lan- 
guages, for  the  direct  benefit  of  the  Foulahs,  on  whose  behalf 


*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  viu.  p.  170. 


390  AVESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

that  mission  was  established.  He  received  written  instructions 
upon  the  subject  on  the  eve  of  our  embarkation,  a  copy  of  which 
Avas  printed  in  the  Annual  Report  for  the  following  year.  Hav- 
ing passed  some  time  as  a  missionary  in  Egypt  and  Malta,  and 
possessing  a  competent  knowledge  of  Arabic,  with  other  attain- 
ments, he  was  a  competent  person  for  the  important  under- 
taking ;  and  though  weak  and  delicate  in  appearance,  he  pos- 
sessed a  good  share  of  moral  courage,  and  nobly  responded  to 
the  call  of  the  committee,  though  but  recently  returned  from 
Northern  Africa.  After  a  somewhat  tempestuous  voyage,  we 
landed  at  St.  Mary^s  in  the  middle  of  December. 

Mr.  MacBrair,  in  his  "  Sketches  of  a  Missionary's  Travels,^' 
which  he  published  a  few  years  afterwards,  thus  speaks  of  our 
arrival : — "  As  our  vessel  dropped  anchor  in  the  roads  of  St. 
Mary's,  we  saw  a  number  of  friends  collecting  upon  the  beach ; 
who,  having  heard  by  the  {)ilot-boat  of  our  being  on  board,  came 
to  receive  us,  and  give  us  a  cordial  welcome  to  Africa.  The 
pious  Negroes  pressed  round  to  shake  hands  with  their  minis- 
ters, especially  with  brother  Fox,  whose  return  imparted  no 
small  degree  of  satisfaction.  Some  of  them  could  scarcely  con- 
tain their  emotions,  but  stood  a  long  time  iii  the  house,  gazing 
upon  their  much-loved  pastor ;  and,  during  the  whole  of  next 
day,  they  were  coming  from  all  the  country  round  about,  to 
inquire  after  his  welfare.  One  poor  Negro  came  in  haste,  say- 
ing, 'Me  hear  in  the  bush'  (a  place  for  cutting  timber,  several 
miles  off,  on  the  other  side  of  the  river)  '  that  you  been  come ; 
and  me  run,  run,  run,  and  me  neber  (never)  stop  till  me  come 
to  look  you.'  I  was  therefore  at  once  satisfied,  that  Negro 
hearts  are  susceptible  of  the  liveliest  emotions  of  gratitude  ;  and 
they  thus  appeared  to  me  in  very  advantageous  contrast  with 
the  hard-hearted  Egyptians." 

The  following  communication,  which  appeared  in  the  "  Mis- 
sionary Notices"  a  few  months  after  this,  will  explain  the  cir- 
cumstances of  the  writer's  return,  without  any  further  remarks 
from  himself;  from  which  it  will  appear  that  he  had  only  been 
in  England  about  fifty  days,  before  he  was  again  on  board  the 
vessel,  and  bound  for  Africa.  The  paragraph  written  by  the 
secretaries  is  included,  not  because  of  its  complimentary  terras 
to  himself,  but  in  truth  and  justice  to  them.  They  neither 
desired  nor  expected  that  I  should  return  so  soon,  and  under 
such  peculiar  circumstances.  I  intended  it,  and  on  arriving  in 
England  earnestly  requested  it. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  391 


MISSIONS    IN    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

Our  valuable  and  successful  missionary,  Mr.  Fox,  was  some  months  ago  com- 
pelled, by  the  failure  of  Mrs.  Fox's  health,  and  the  peril  in  which  her  life  was 
placed,  to  visit  England.  He  felt,  however,  so  strongly  the  necessitous  circum- 
stances of  the  mission  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  River  Gambia,  thus  left  with  only  one 
Em-opean  missionary,  that  he  very  soon,  not  merely  consented,  but  nobly  requested, 
to  return  for  a  time  to  his  beloved  station  and  flock  :  though  Mrs.  Fox's  continued 
weakness  made  it  impracticable  that  she  should  accompany  him  again  to  Africa. 
The  following  extracts  contain  some  interesting  notices  of  Mr.  Fox's  two  voyages, 
and  of  the  ardour  and  diligence  which  have  marked  the  resumption  of  his  self- 
denying  labours,  as  well  as  of  the  prospects  of  extended  usefulness  by  which  he  and 
his  colleagues  are  encouraged  among  the  Mandingoes  of  that  vicinity. 

River  Gambia,  St.  Mary's. — Extractn  from  the  Journal  of  the  Rev.   TV.  Far, 
from  July  30th,  1835,  to  February  Uth,  1836. 

July  30th,  1835. — About  one  o'clock  we  went  on  board  the  brig  "  Dapper," 
accompanied  by  Mr.  Grant  and  several  other  friends.  Many  of  our  members  of 
society  and  leaders  followed  us  to  the  beach,  and  two  of  the  local  preachers  went 
with  us  in  the  mission-boat  to  the  vessel,  to  whom  I  had  again  to  say,  "  Finally, 
brethren,  farewell ; "  though  I  hope  it  will  not  be  absolutely  final.  I  have  promised 
the  society  that  I  will  come  back,  if  at  all  possible ;  and  I  have  a  strong  impression 
on  my  mind  that  my  way  will  be  made  plain  to  do  so.  The  emancipation  of  the 
slaves  on  the  island,  the  employment  of  the  two  additional  native  assistants  pro- 
posed to  the  committee,  the  erection  of  mission-premises  at  Berwick-Town,  Fort 
Bullen,  and  the  commencement  of  a  mission  at  Cape  St.  Mary's,  or  higher  up  the 
river,  are  all  subjects  in  which  I  am  deeply  interested. 

31st. — -We  were  obliged  to  come  to  anchor  last  evening,  but  got  under  weigh 
early  this  morning.  The  pilot  is  now  leaving  us,  and  we  are  bearing  up  to  the 
windward  of  the  Cape  de  Verd  Islands.  Farewell  to  the  isle  of  St.  Mary's  !  Mayest 
thou  abundantly  prosper  in  a  commercial,  civil,  and  religious  point  of  view  !  My 
pen  cannot  describe  my  feelings  at  leaving  thee,  and  the  dear  people  amongst  whom 
I  have  been  labouring  during  the  past  two  years.  I  have  suffered  much,  and  so 
has  my  dear  wife ;  we  have  also  left  behind  us  a  lovely  babe,  who  was  "  subdued 
by  sickness  in  a  day ; "  and  more  than  once  have  we  both  been  on  the  margin  of 
the  grave,  and  expected  to  "  gather  up  our  feet ;"  but,  by  the  good  providence  of 
God,  we  have  been  preserved.  The  success  with  which  it  hath  pleased  Almighty 
God  to  crown  our  efforts  to  do  good,  and  that  in  so  short  a  time,  affords  us  pleas- 
ing reflections,  and  will  do  so  to  our  latest  hours.  The  glory  we  would  give  to 
God.     Again  I  say,  "  Farewell ; "  but  not  for  ever ! 

Sunday,  August  30th. — This  morning  we  came  to  anchor  at  Fayal,  one  of  the 
Azores.  The  town  is  situated  on  the  east  side  of  the  island,  in  a  bay,  and  presents 
a  very  imposing  aspect,  rising,  in  a  semicircle,  some  hundred  feet  above  the  level  of 
the  sea.  Most  of  the  island  appears  to  be  well  cultivated.  Here  I  went  ashore  with 
the  captain  and  some  of  the  passengers.  Finding  a  medical  gentleman,  I  took  him 
on  board  to  see  Mrs.  Fox ;  he  afterwards  sent  her  some  medicine,  but  is  of  opinion 
that  her  native  air  alone  will  restore  her.  Here  is  a  beautiful  town  and  island,  in  a 
salubrious  cHmate,  with  a  population  of  twenty-five  thousand  souls,  many  of  them 
respectable  and  intelligent ;  but  no  Protestant  minister,  no  missionaiy  of  the  Cross  ! 
Most  of  them  appear  to  have  embraced  the  absurdities  and  superstitions  of  Popery. 
I  visited  the  church  this  morning,  and  could  not  but  wish  that  the  tenor  of  their 


392  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

lives  and  conduct  might  correspond  with  their  apparent  devotion.  0  when  shall 
"Ethiopia  stretch  out  her  hand  unto  God.^" 

31st. — Having  obtained  some  water  and  fresh  provisions,  we  got  under  weigh 
to-day  about  noon. 

Sept.  3d. — During  the  past  three  days  we  have  suffered  from  rough  weather :  the 
waves  found  their  way  into  our  cabin  and  most  of  our  berths ;  we  have,  conse- 
quently, had  verv'  little  rest  by  nigbt  or  day. 

4th. — This  morning  I  again  visited  a  man  in  the  forecastle,  who  lias  been  sick 
with  fever  and  dysenteiy  ever  since  we  left  the  Gambia.  While  I  was  speaking  to 
him  about  his  soul,  and  the  love  of  God,  the  tears  started  in  his  eyes ;  and  I  have  a 
hope  that  God  will  save  him. 

19th.- — Yesterday,  about  one  o'clock,  we  landed  at  Dover,  having  been  just  fifty 
days  on  our  voyage.  Grateful,  indeed,  we  felt  to  the  God  of  providence  for  having 
conveyed  us  in  safety  across  the  treacherous  deep.  This  morning,  between  six  and 
seven,  we  reached  London. 

Nov.  9th. — A  day  of  pai-ting  much  dreaded,  and  never  to  be  forgotten :  this 
morning,  at  six  o'clock,  I  bade  adieu  to  ray  dear  wife,  affectionate  mother,  and 
many  other  relations  and  friends.  It  was,  indeed,  an  hour  of  trial ;  my  faith  in 
God,  and  love  for  my  dear  wife,  were  put  to  the  test.  The  sweetest  and  dearest 
of  ties  was,  for  a  time,  to  be  torn  asunder ;  and,  with  streaming  eyes  and  a  throb- 
bing heart,  I  proceeded  to  Birmingham,  and  this  evening  reached  London.  My  two 
brothers  having  accompanied  me  to  town,  contributed,  in  some  small  degree,  to 
sweeten  the  bitter  cup,  and  to  beguile  the  dreariness  of  a  twelve-hours'  journey,  on 
a  very  cold  and  bleak  day ;  but  were  it  not  for  something  more  cheering  and 
supporting  which  I  derived  from  the  unfailing  "  Spring  of  all  my  joys,"  I  must  have 
given  way  to  frail  human  nature,  and  said,  "  I  cannot,  I  will  not  go."  But  He  who 
says  "  Go,"  is  going  with  me,  and  has  promised  to  be  with  me  even  to  the  end.  I 
feel  thankful  to  God  that  my  dear  wife  reached  home  in  safety ;  for  her  sutFerings, 
since  we  left  the  Gambia,  fully  convince  me,  that  had  she  remained  there  a  little 
longer,  it  would  have  been  too  late : — thus  hath  her  life  been  preserved.  The 
voyage  to  England  has  considerably  improved  my  own  health,  so  that  1  shall  be  the 
better  prepared  to  endure,  for  a  time,  the  fatigues  and  prejudicial  effects  of  a  West- 
African  climate.  Although  the  sacrifice  1  make  merits  nothing,  yet  I  feel  as  if  I 
had  a  peculiar  and  special  claim  upon  the  kind  care  and  providence  of  God ;  and 
hope  in  a  future  world,  if  not  in  this,  to  realize  the  fulfilment  of  that  delightful 
promise,  "  And  every  one  that  hath  forsaken  houses,  or  brethren,  or  sisters,  or 
father,  or  mother,  or  wife,  or  children,  or  lands,  for  my  name's  sake,  shall  receive  a 
hundred-fold,  and  shall  inherit  everlasting  life."  (Matt.  xix.  29.)  If  the  naturalist 
and  the  merchant  can  leave  their  native  land,  with  all  its  comforts,  and  their 
beloved  families,  with  all  their  endearments,  for  the  unfriendly  shores  of  Western 
Africa,  their  object  being  the  advancement  of  science,  or  the  acquisition  of  fame  or 
wealth  ;  why  should  it  be  thought  a  thing  so  very  marvellous,  that  a  Wesleyan  mis- 
sionary should  make  the  same  sacrifice,  with  an  object  far  more  noble  and  sublime .' 
To  accomplish  this,  he  is  willing  to  go  to  "  the  farthest  verge  of  the  green  earth,"  or 
to  the  very  worst  portion  of  this  terraqueous  globe ; — in  search  of  what .'  not  gold 
and  silver,  or  precious  stones ;  not  the  fading  laurel  of  fame  ;  not  merely  to  ascer- 
tain the  manners,  customs,  and  peculiarities  of  nations,  nor  to  extend  British  com- 
merce ; — he  goes  and  "  dives  into  that  mine  from  which,  we  are  often  told,  no 
valuable  ore  or  precious  stone  can  be  extracted ;  and  he  hopes  to  bring  up,  not 
merely  the  gem  of  one  inmioi-fal  spirit,  flashing  with  the  light  of  intellect,  and 
glowiivr  with  tlic  lines  of  Christian  graces;  but  he  expects,  nay,  f'ldly  believes,  that 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  3&3 

he  will  find,  and  rescue  from  obscurity,  many  a  gem  that  will  deck  the  Saviour's 
crown,  many  a  precious  and  immortal  soul  for  whom  Ilis  precious  blood  was  shed." 
Into  this  mine  he  eaters,  held  up  Ijy  the  power  of  prayer,  and  cheered  by  the  pro- 
spect of  future  glory ;  for,  should  he  fall  in  the  enterprise,  should  the  ropes  break, 
or  should  Providence  see  fit  to  call  him  home,  he  doubts  not  that,  through  the 
mercy  of  the  Saviour's  great  atonemtmt,  he  will  receive  a  crown  of  life, — -a  mission- 
ary's crown, — if  a  martyr's,  all  the  richer. 

11th. — To-day,  at  two  p.m.,  I  went  down  to  Gravesend  with  ray  missionary  com- 
panion, the  Rev.  R.  M.  MacBrair,  and  joined  the  vessel,  expecting  to  sail  early  in 
the  morning. 

Dec.  15th.^ — This  afternoon  we  landed  at  Bathm-st,  St.  ]\Iary's,  after  rather  a 
long  and  somewhat  tempestuous  voyage ;  and  found  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wilkinson  in 
tolerable  health.  The  leaders,  local  preachers,  members,  and  friends  flocked  around 
us,  and  gave  evident  proofs  that  they  were  glad  at  our  arrival.  In  the  evening  I 
attended  the  prayer-meeting. 

Sunday,  20th.- — This  morning,  at  six  o'clock,  I  met  a  large  class.  At  half-past 
ten  I  read  prayers,  and  Mr.  MacBrair  preached.  At  two  p.m.  I  sailed  to  Berv^dck- 
Town,  Fort  Bulleu ;  preached,  and  examined  the  society  individually ;  and,  in  the 
evening,  preached  again  at  St.  Mary's. 

31st. — This  evening  I  held  a  watch-night  service,  which  we  all  found  very  pro- 
fitable.    May  the  next  year  be  one  ot  great  prosperity ! 

Jan.  2d,  1836.— Yesterday  I  left  St.  Mary's  for  Berwick-Town,  Fort  Bulleu,  to 
commence  the  assistant's  house,  and  was  under  the  necessity  of  staying  all  night. 
In  the  evening  I  held  divine  service  under  a  tree,  as  the  moon  shone  vei-y  brightly : 
forty  or  fifty  were  present ;  and  after  I  had  spoken  to  them,  two  or  three  prayed.  I 
felt  quite  refreshed  in  body  and  mind  by  having  engaged  in  this  religious  solemnity. 
I  retired  to  rest  last  evening  on  a  native  bed,  of  the  meanest  order  ;  it  was  composed 
of  a  species  of  cane-sticks,  crossed  over  each  other,  about  eight  or  ten  inches  from 
the  ground ;  on  it  was  placed  a  thin  gi-ass  mat,  and  a  dirty  sheet,  and  a  bag  filled 
with  something  (keadfully  hard  for  my  pillow.  The  door  of  the  hut  being  shut, 
the  only  avenue,  through  which  either  light  or  air  could  have  access,  was  a  small 
hole,  just  at  my  left  cheek,  about  two  inches  and  a  half  in  circumference,  broken  by 
accident.  Through  this  I  hailed  with  pleasure  the  light  of  day ;  and  at  six  o'clock 
I  rose,  and  repaired  with  the  men  to  the  place  where  we  were  building.  This 
afternoon  I  arrived  at  Bathurst,  rather  fatigued. 

Sunday,  17th. — This  morning  I  preached  at  Berwick-Town,  Fort  Bidlen,  and 
afterwards  met  the  class.  There  being  little  or  no  breeze,  I  was  several  hours  in 
returning  to  St.  Mary's,  where  I  preached  in  the  evening. 

22d. — Last  evening,  about  eight  o'clock,  Mr.  Wilkinson  and  I  left  St.  Mary's  for 
Jillifree,  in  Jlr.  Grant's  cutter,  which  was  going  to  Macarthy's  Island.  Owing  to  a 
light  breeze  we  made  very  little  progress  during  the  night ;  and  the  tide  being 
against  us,  we  this  morning  came  to  anchor  three  or  four  miles  distant  from  the 
place  of  our  destination,  and  went  ashore  and  walked  thither.  We  landed  at  an 
exceedingly  awkward  and  muddy  place ;  and,  but  for  great  care,  must  have  sunk  in 
it.  Immediately  behind  the  mangroves  which  adorn  the  banks  of  the  river,  are 
large  trees,  shrubs,  and  flowers,  of  various  descriptions ;  in  which  monkeys  pre- 
sented themselves  to  our  view  as  we  walked  along  the  path,  which  was  exceedingly 
narrow  and  serfientine.  On  reaching  Jillifree  we  waited  upon  the  alcaid,  when 
several  of  the  old  men  were  immediately  in  attendance.  Most  of  them  knowing 
Mr.  Grant,  salutations  and  mutual  good  wishes  passed  between  them.  About  one 
P.M.  Mr.  Grant  left  us,  to  proceed  up  the  river.     In  the  afternoon,  as  wc  were  pre- 


394'  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

paring  to  go  into  the  town,  the  alcaid  called  upon  us.  I  spoke  to  him,  by  an  inter- 
preter, on  the  object  of  our  visiting  Jillifree ;  stating  that  we  were  ministers  of  the 
gospel,  and  wished  to  teach  the  ]\Iandingoes  the  important  truths  of  our  holy  reli- 
gion. I  requested  him  to  tell  the  people  in  the  town  that,  at  five  o'clock,  we  would 
speak  to  them  all,  and  hoped  he  would  collect  them  together.  I  gave  him  a  small 
present,  and  a  copy  of  the  New  Testament  in  Arabic,  with  which  he  was  much 
pleased,  and,  I  beheve,  could  read  it  tolerably  well.  Accordingly,  at  five  o'clock 
we  proceeded  to  the  spot  assigned  for  us,  where  we  found  collected  together  a  good 
number,  of  both  sexes,  several  of  whom  had  their  spears,  cutlasses,  and  fire-arms. 
We  commenced  by  giving  out  the  first  two  verses  of  the  hymn  on  the  eighty-third 
page:— 

"  Shepherd  of  souls,  with  pitj'ing  eye 

The  thousands  of  our  Israel  see ; 
To  thee  on  their  behalf  we  cry. 

Ourselves  but  newly  found  in  Thee. 

"  See  where  o'er  desert  wastes  they  err, 
And  neither  food  nor  feeder  have, 
Nor  fold  nor  place  of  refuge  near  ; 

For  uo  man  cares  their  souls  to  save." 

I  preached,  or  rather  spoke,  to  them  in  as  familiar  a  strain  as  I  possibly  coidd,  on 
the  nature  and  design  of  the  gospel,  and  the  commission  given  to  its  ministers  to 
go  into  all  the  world  and  preach  it  to  every  creatm-e.  They  listened  with  consi- 
derable attention  ;  and  several  of  them  frequently  bowed  their  heads  with  a  smile, 
as  in  assent  to  what  I  said,  and  then  exclaimed,  Bettiata  !  bettiata  !  ("  Very  good ! 
very  good !  ")  Mr.  Wilkinson  afterwards  prayed.  The  alcaid  and  several  of  the  old 
men  said,  that  what  I  had  spoken  was  very  good,  and  that  they  should  be  very  glad 
for  Christians  to  come  and  sit  down  amongst  them.  Having  spoken  to  them  about 
a  school,  the  boys  and  girls  were  enraptured,  following  us  to  our  residence,  and 
saying,  Alcoran  bettiata  !  alcoran  bettiata .' — meaning,  they  should  be  very  glad  to 
learn  to  read  and  write.  An  adult  followed  us,  to  ask  if  he  might  come  when  we 
commenced  a  school ;  to  which  we,  of  course,  replied  in  the  aftu-mative.  Jillifree 
is  a  small  Mandingo  town  on  the  north  bank  of  the  river,  the  name  of  which  is 
familiar  to  every  one  who  has  read  Mimgo  Park's  Travels ;  as  here  that  celebrated 
traveller  landed  on  his  arrival  from  England  to  explore  the  interior  of  this  interest- 
ing continent,  and  was  detained  some  mouths  by  sickness  pecuhar  to  the  climate. 
It  is  situated  on  a  rising  plain,  five  or  six  hundred  yards  from  the  river,  is  well 
stockaded  with  strong,  tall  mangrove  timber,  and  has  fo>ir  entrances.  The  houses 
are  built  of  mud,  covered  with  grass,  and  are  tolerably  substantial  and  comfortable. 
It  contains  a  population  of  about  one  thousand  souls,  and  is  about  a  mile  from 
Albrada,  where  the  French  have  a  small  settlement,  through  which  we  passed  yes- 
terday, containing  about  the  same  number  of  inhabitants.  Several  other  Mandingo 
towns  are  within  a  few  miles.  The  distance  from  St.  Mary's  to  Jillifree  is  about 
eighteen  miles.  The  house  in  which  we  are  staying  is  a  stone  building  belonging 
to  Messrs.  Chown  and  Messervey,  of  St.  Mary's, — the  only  stone  house  here ;  it  is 
situated  between  the  town  and  the  river,  contiguous  to  both ;  and  is  surrounded  by 
shrubs,  flowers,  and  evergreens  of  various  descriptions ;  the  guava,  banana,  paupi, 
lime,  and  orange  are  among  the  number  of  fruit-trees  which  are  in  great  abundance, 
the  fruit  of  which  comes  to  a  high  degree  of  perfection  spontaneously,  the  natives 
paying  little  or  no  attention  to  pruning  and  manuring  them.  The  river  is  directly 
in  front  of  the  house,  and  a  number  of  fine  tail  palm-trees  adorn  its  banks.     The 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  395 

rippling  of  the  tide,  tlie  warbling  of  birds  of  the  most  beautiful  plumage,  and  the 
rural  scenery  around  it,  but,  above  all,  the  demoralized  state  of  its  inhabitants, 
produced  feelings  of  peculiar  emotion.  The  late  venerated  Rev.  R.  Watson  once 
exclaimed,  "  0,  when  shall  the  glorious  gospel  of  the  blessed  God  dawn  upon  all 
lands ;  when  shall  it  wipe  away  all  tears ;  when  shall  floods  clap  their  hands,  and 
forests  wave  instinct  with  imiversal  gladness,  and  hills  rejoice,  and  valleys  sing,  and 
the  Gentile  of  every  lip  and  name  glorify  God  for  his  mer<;y .'  When  shall  it 
dawni  ?"  said  that  eloquent  and  able  minister  of  the  New  Testament,  "  When  shall 
it  dawn  ? "  Thank  God,  the  voice  of  the  heralds  of  the  universal  Savioiu--King  has 
been  heard  this  evening  in  a  Mandingo  town  !  "  Prepare  ye  the  way  of  the  Lord, 
make  straight  in  the  desert  an  highway  for  our  God.  Every  valley  shall  be  exalted, 
and  eveiy  mountain  and  hiU  shall  be  made  low,  and  the  crooked  shall  be  made 
straight,  and  the  rough  places  plain,  and  the  glory  of  the  Lord  shall  be  revealed, 
and  all  flesh  shall  see  it  together ;  for  the  mouth  of  the  Lord  hath  spoken  it." 

23d. — I  rose  this  morning  very  little  refreshed  by  my  night's  rest,  in  consequence 
of  a  vast  number  of  rats  rmming  up  and  down  the  steps,  ringing  the  bells,  knocking 
at  om*  door,  and  rushing  into  our  bed-room ;  glad  I  was  when  the  light  of  day  dis- 
persed them ;  we  then  arose,  and  were  anxious  about  the  arrival  of  the  mission- 
boat,  which  was  to  be  sent  up  after  us,  on  the  arrival  of  Mr.  W.  Juff  from  the 
Sien-a  country,  some  thirty  miles  north  of  St.  Mary's,  as  he  had  not  arrived  when 
we  left  on  Thursday.  The  alcaid  again  called  upon  us  this  morning,  and  after- 
wards sent  us  a  present, — a  small  basket  of  oranges.  A  venerable-looking  old 
man  came  also,  saying  he  was  sick  jesterday,  and  not  able  to  attend  the  meeting 
we  held ;  but  he  had  heard  of  it,  and  was  very  glad ;  adding,  that  he  had  two  chil- 
dren he  wished  to  send  to  school  when  we  commenced.  Although  I  am  not  very  san- 
guine as  to  immediate  success  in  the  conversion  of  the  Mandingoes,  brought  up,  as 
they  are,  in  the  absurdities  of  Mohammedanism,  yet  their  appearing  willing  to  send 
their  children  to  a  Christian  school  argues  something  in  favour  of  our  object ;  for 
that  will  be  laying  the  foundation-stone  for  the  superstructure  of  our  holy  religion, 
and,  at  the  same  time,  worldng  as  a  mighty  moral  lever,  in  throwing  down  to  the 
ground  the  iron  pillars  of  jMohammedan  superstition  and  delusion ;  and  I  trust 
these  followers  of  the  false  prophet  will,  ere  long,  forsake  their  bhnd  guide,  and 
follow  the  Lamb  whithersoever  he  goeth.  I  have  to-day  distributed  several  copies 
of  Arabic  scriptures,  and  more  I  could  have  distributed  to  advantage  if  I  bad  had 
them  with  me.  I  have  promised  to  take  more  when  I  go  again.  The  mission- 
boat  not  having  anived,  and  hearing  that  a  French  schooner  will  leave  Allirada 
during  the  night,  we  this  afternoon  took  up  our  beds  and  walked  thither ;  but,  to 
our  surprise,  when  we  reached  the  port,  the  schooner  was  under  weigh,  about  a 
mile  and  a  half  distant,  having  sailed  sooner  than  she  expected.  We  immediately 
obtained  a  small  boat,  put  a  few  of  our  things  into  it,  and  followed  her ;  but  hav- 
ing rowed  three  miles  we  were  obhged  to  return ;  the  breeze  had  freshened,  and 
the  schooner  was  beyond  our  reach.  On  again  reaching  Albrada,  we  met,  on  the 
beach,  one  of  the  French  gentlemen  whom  we  had  seen  yesterday.  Knowing  we 
were  friends  of  Mr.  Grant,  he  kindly  invited  us  to  take  up  our  abode  with  him  for 
the  night,  for  which  we  felt  thankful ;  for  we  had  no  where  else  to  go  but  to  Jilli- 
free,  and  sleep  with  the  rats ;  but  we  were  very  anxious  about  our  appointments  to- 
morrow, and  hoped  something  would  occur,  so  that  we  might  reach  St.  j\Iary's  by 
ten  o'clock  in  the  forenoon,  though  it  was  near  nine  p.m.,  and  we  knew  of  no 
conveyance  but  a  small  schooner,  which  does  not  leave  here  till  the  afternoon  of 
to-mon-ow.  Fortunately,  we  had  not  been  in  the  house  long  when,  to  our  great 
joy,  the  mission-boat  arrived ;  and  though  we  were  both  much  fatigued,  and  a  good 


596 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


night's  rest  would  have  been  very  acceptable,  being  anxious  to  attend^  to  our 
important  duties  to-morrow,  we  cheerfully  declined  the  gentleman's  kind  otfer  of 
accommodation  for  the  night,  and  embarked  for  St.  Mary's,  which  place  we  reached 
about  six  o'clock  in  the  morning.  Though  somewhat  sleepy  and  fatigued,  (having 
on  Thursday  night  slept  aljout  three  hours  on  some  boxes,  on  Friday  night  with  the 
rats,  and  last  night  two  hours  on  the  beach,  and  the  remaining  part  in  the  boat  on 
the  river,)  the  Lord  helped  me  in  preaching  his  holy  word.  Blessed  be  the  name 
of  the  Lord  ! 

29th. — This  evening  I  met  with  Jagger,  the  goldsmith,  a  respectable  native,  and 
an  excellent  mechanic,  but  a  superstitious  Mohammedan.  A  large  tree  in  one  corner 
of  his  yard  is  much  in  his  way,  and  he  wishes  it  cut  down ;  but  dares  not  do  so, 
lest  he  himself  should  immediately  die.  This  is  one  of  the  many  superstitions  prac- 
tised by  the  followers  of  the  false  prophet ;  though  not  near  so  bad  as  that  of  an 
infatuated  mother  who,  a  short  time  ago,  flung  her  infant  babe  into  the  river, 
because  it  did  not  walk  quite  so  soon  as  the  generality  of  children ; — supposing 
it  possessed  by  an  evil  spirit.  The  child  was  afterwards  found  dead,  an  inquest 
was  held,  and  the  wretched  mother  is  now  in  jail,  to  be  tried  at  the  ensuing 
sessions. 

Sunday,  31st. — I  read  prayers  and  j)reached  this  moniing  from  Phil.  i.  21 ;  in 
the  afternoon  I  rode  to  Melville  ;  and  coming  home  I  buried  a  soldier  who  had  died 
of  small-pox,  which  is  very  prevalent.  In  the  evening  I  preached  again  at  Bathurst, 
from,  "  For  we  must  aU  appear  before  the  judgment-seat  of  Christ."  While  I  was 
tlwelling  on  tlie  awful  realities  of  the  judgment-day,  there  was  a  death-like  still- 
ness, until  it  was  broken  by  the  piercing  cries  of  two  penitents.  I  have  seldom 
felt  such  an  influence  as  this  evening,  and  hope  it  is  a  token  for  good. 

Feb.  5th. —  Being  anxious  to  see  the  king  of  Barra,  relative  to  a  school  at  Jillifree, 
&c.,  we  left  St.  Marj''s  yesterday,  and  arrived  at  Ben-inding,  the  royal  town,  to-day. 
Unfoi-tunately,  His  Majesty  had  this  morning  started  for  Jillifree,  to  witness  the  rite 
of  circumcision  about  to  be  performed  upon  a  number  of  his  juvenile  subjects ;  so 
that  our  journey  is  partly  lost.  Walking  round  the  town,  after  we  had  taken  a 
little  refreshment,  one  or  two  Mandingoes,  who  were  partly  intoxicated,  got  up  a 
palaver,  supposing  we  were  come  as  spies  to  make  war.  They  were  told  by  several 
of  the  old  men,  that  we  were  not  merchants  or  officers,  but  ministers  of  the  gospel, 
and  were  for  peace,  and  not  for  war.  But  they  could  not  silence  the  drunken  fellows, 
so  they  carried  them  away.  The  looks  and  gestures  of  one  indicated  any  thing  but 
what  Avas  favourable  towards  us,  which,  together  with  his  having  a  long  knife  in  his 
hand,  caused  an  old  woman  to  catch  hold  of  me  and  Mr.  Wilkinson,  saying,  Tohaba, 
na  !  na  !  "  W^hite  man,  come  I  come  !  "  The  old  men  and  others  begged  us  to 
take  no  notice  of  the  palaver  the  drunken  man  had  made,  assuring  us  it  would  not 
have  happened  if  the  king  had  been  here,  and  that  the  king  would  punish  him  for 
it  when  he  came.  Leaving  a  few  presents  and  an  Arabic  Bible  for  His  Majesty, 
with  our  respectful  compliments,  we  departed,  intending  to  visit  them  again  the 
first  opportunity.  Berrinding  is  about  seven  miles  from  Berwick-Town,  Fort 
Bullen.  \Ve  passed  two  other  small  towns  in  going  to  it,  one  of  them  not  more 
than  a  mile  from  Berwick. 

Sunday,  7th. — In  going  to  Berwick-Town,  Fort  Bullen,  to-day,  the  mission-boat 
capsized,  and  I  had  to  swim  ashore ;  fortunately  we  were  not  far  from  it,  and  I 
reached  it  without  much  dilRculty,  although  I  was  under  water  some  time,  the  sea 
being  very  rough. 

1.3th. — I  have  been  to  Fort  Btdlen  during  the  last  three  days ;  I  left  there  this 
afternoon,  a  little  after  two  o'clock,  and  did  not  reacli  St.  Mary's  till  past  ten  this 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GA.MUfA,    AND    S[  ERRA-LICONE.  397 

evening;  thus  I  have  been  eight  hours  on  the  water,  owing  to  a  foul  breeze,  and 
contrary  tide. 

14th. — My  good  night's  rest  has  not  taken  the  pain  out  of  my  bones,  occasioned 
by  lying  on  a  native  bed  during  the  preceding  three  nights.  This  afternoon  1 
buried  two  more  soldiers,  who  died  of  small  pox.* 

In  about  three  weeks  after  our  arrival,  Mr.  MacBrair  pro- 
ceeded to  his  appoiuted  station  at  Macarthy's  Island;  having 
been  well  occupied,  during  his  short  residence  at  St.  Mary's,  in 
collecting  all  the  information  he  could  respecting  the  Foulah 
and  Mandingo  languages.  He  soon  found  that  the  latter  is  the 
most  extensively  in  use,  and  that  it  was  also  spoken  by  the 
generality  of  the  Foulahs,  though  they  have  a  distinct  dialect  of 
their  own.  He  therefore  decided  to  commence  with  the  Man- 
dingo,  in  which  his  time  was  principally  taken  up,  though  he 
rendered  valuable  aid  to  the  mission  in  the  way  of  preach- 
ing, &c. 

About  this  time,  and  subsequently,  we  were  considerably 
annoyed  by  some  of  the  colonial  authorities,  and  one  or  two 
others,  particularly  at  Macarthy's  Island ;  and  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Dove  having  been  on  the  Coast  three  years,  during  which  they 
had  both  experienced  repeated  attacks  of  fever,  and  were  called 
to  suffer  in  other  ways,  they  left  Macarthy's  Island  towards  the 
close  of  April,  and  in  the  following  month  sailed  from  St.  Mary's 
for  England.  I  had  engaged  to  supply  his  place  until  a  suc- 
cessor arrived ;  but,  as  will  be  seen,  was  appointed  to  Macarthy's 
at  the  ensuing  Conference.  In  the  mean  time,  I  was  partly  at 
St.  Mary's,  and  partly  at  the  upper  station.  The  following 
extract  from  jMr.  MacBrair's  journal  will  give  the  reader  some 
idea  of  the  inconveniences  to  which  missionaries  are  subject  in 
this  part  of  the  world,  from  the  oppressive  heat  of  the  climate, 
want  of  domestic  comforts,  &c.  : — 

May  10th.- — The  weather  is  now  becoming  exceedingly  oppressive,  as  the  sun  is 
vertical,  and  the  thermometer  rises  to  102°  or  104°  Fahrenheit,  where  it  continues 
during  the  whole  day.  Though  the  ah-  used  sometimes  to  be  nearly  of  this  tempe- 
rature, yet  it  then  lasted  only  a  few  hours  out  of  the  twenty-four.  Besides,  as 
Mungo  Park  justly  remarks,  the  hermattan  or  hot  winds  are  somewhat  bracing  to 
the  constitution ;  so  that  the  same  degree  of  heat  in  March  and  May  produces  very 
different  effects  upon  the  bodily  frame.  The  easterly  blasts  cease  in  April ;  but  the 
sea-breeze  seldom  reaches  IMacarthy's  Island,  and  then  only  after  having  lost  all  its 
refreshing  qualities.  Truly  "  the  grasshopper  is  a  burden  : "  for  the  least  exertion  is 
excessively  irksome,  and  a  constant  languor  weighs  down  the  spirits.  The  broken 
and  restless  slumbers  of  night  alford  little  refreshment,  whilst  the  exhausting  heat 
of  the  day  prevents  repose.  Besides,  the  prickly  heat  covers  my  body  with  a  dis- 
tressing itchiness ;  and  as  it  has  especially  attacked  my  hands  and  arms,  it  renders 


*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  viii   [jp.  322 — 32G. 


398 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


■writing  by  no  means  an  agreeable  employment.  To  add  to  my  misfortunes,  I  am 
at  present  left  alone  at  this  station,  and  have  therefore  various  little  duties  to  per- 
form which  did  not  before  devolve  upon  me.  I  have  also  to  superintend  household 
matters,  vfhich  is  an  incessant  trouble,  with  such  untutored  servants  as  those  whom 
we  are  constrained  to  employ.  It  is  seldom  that  any  thing  like  a  regularly  trained 
domestic  can  be  met  with  in  this  country :  so  that  we  usually  engage  young  lads, 
whom  we  are  obliged  to  instruct  in  their  routine  of  duties.  But  as  youth  is  natu- 
rally thoughtless  and  playful,  and  as  the  Africans  make  little  account  of  noticing 
time  within  a  range  of  two  or  three  hours,  it  is  very  difficult  to  obtain  any  regu- 
larity about  the  house,  unless  by  an  ever-watchful  superintendence.  For  instance : 
I  have  sometimes  continued  at  my  studies  long  after  the  usual  dinner-hoiu" ;  but 
upon  going  to  ascertain  how  matters  were  getting  on  in  the  kitchen,  I  have  found 
neither  dinner,  fire,  nor  cook.  After  some  search,  the  latter  has  been  discovered 
fast  asleep  in  a  corner,  or  sporting  by  the  river's  side,  in  complete  ignorance  of  his 
being  behind  the  ordinary  time  ;  for  they  have  no  clocks  or  watches.  But  the 
greatest  hardship  is,  that  I  am  all  alone.  As  to  the  provisions  which  I  have  at 
this  time  to  cook,  they  are  not  very  abundant ;  for  a  foreign  stock  will  not  keep  in 
this  weather,  and  we  are  thrown  principally  upon  native  resoiu-ces.  We  can  now 
seldom  get  beef ;  and  when  we  do,  it  is  unfit  to  eat,  as  it  must  be  dressed  imme- 
diately after  being  killed.  Neither  myself  nor  my  boys  understand  baking  bread, 
so  that,  though  we  sometimes  make  the  experiment,  it  but  rarely  succeeds.  A  few 
hard  biscuits  from  a  sea-store  remain ;  but  they  have  become  maggotty,  and  I  am 
no  cannibal.  Of  fish,  potatoes,  and  butter,  we  have  none ;  and  at  the  present  time 
no  rice  can  be  bought  on  the  island,  though  I  have  begged  a  little,  and  a  cargo  is 
expected  up  the  river  in  a  few  days.  My  garden  supplies  me  ■with  cabbages,  which 
grow  here  most  luxuriantly,  and  of  which  I  have  a  good  stock :  the  village  or  our 
own  yard  furnishes  poultry  and  eggs  ;  and  my  goats  yield  their  milk  and  an  occa- 
sional kid.  A  Negro  also  sometimes  goes  and  shoots  a  partridge  or  gviinea-fowl, 
which  is  an  agreeable  variety  from  the  constant  routine  of  poultry  and  cabbage  or 
rice,  both  for  breakfast  and  dinner.  When  the  appetite  has  almost  failed  from 
bodily  exhaustion,  it  is  hard  work  to  lack  a  morsel  of  bread ;  a  want  of  which  none 
can  be  sensible  till  they  prove  it  by  painful  experience.* 

A  few  da3^s  after  this,  Mr.  INIacBrair  writes  :  "  As  to  study,  it 
is  now  alnaost  out  of  the  question ;  for  the  lassitude  caused  by 
the  enervating  weather,  and  the  bodily  irritability  produced  by 
the  prickly  heat,  quite  distract  me,  and  render  me  incapable  of 
any  connected  thought ;  so  that  I  see  the  propriety  of  a  trans- 
lator only  wintering  in  this  climate,  since  the  summer  will  be 
pretty  nearly  so  much  lost  time."  In  the  previous  extract, 
bread  was  lacking;  but  now  the  climate  has  produced  such 
debility,  that  Mr.  MacBrair  writes  :  "  Even  to  eat  is  a  very  hard 
task."  It  is  difficult  to  say  which  is  the  most  painful, — "to 
lack  a  morsel  of  bread,"  or,  when  it  is  set  before  you,  to  be 
unable  to  eat  it ;  both  are  bad  enough,  and  both  have  to  be 
endured  not  unfrequently  by  modern  missionaries. 

At  the  latter  part  of  this  month,  the  writer  received  a  letter. 


*  MacBrair's  "  Sketches  of  a  Missionary's  Travels,"  pp.  264 — 266. 


THB    GOLD-COAST,    GAIMBIA,    AND    SIERKA-LEONE.  399 

with  other  documents,  from  Mr.  MacBrair,  by  a  special  messen- 
ger, detailing  some  further  opposition  to  the  mission,  and  re- 
questing that  I  woukl  liasten  up  thither.  The  assistant's  house 
had  been  demohshed  by  a  mob,  headed  by  a  European.  Mr. 
MacBrair  writes,  at  the  close  of  his  letter,  "  Please  send  the 
boat  and  l^ovs  quickly  back,  and  furnish  Pierre  Sallah  with 
some  provisions  for  the  way.  Send  me  some  rice,  as  none  can 
be  bought  here.  The  free  people  are  in  a  dreadful  perturbation ; 
and  whilst  John's  house  was  being  demolished,  amidst  the  yells 
of  a  lawless  gang,  it  was  also  amidst  many  tears  and  sighs  of 
our  people,  who  exerted  themselves  to  the  utmost  to  save  some 
of  the  furniture." 

In  consequence  of  these  melancholy  tidings,  I  wrote  the 
following  note  to  the  governor : — 

^IissioN-HousE,  Friday  morning,  May  21th,  1836. 
Sir, — I  herewith  forward  to  your  Excellency  a  communication  from  Macarthy's 
Island,  with  the  particulars  of  which  I  have  been  made  acquainted. 

As  yoiu:  Excellency  has  already  been  informed,  that  the  affairs  of  that  mission 
have  been  transferred  to  me,  I  beg  to  state,  that  I  purpose  leaving  this  island,  for 
Macarthy's  Island,  early  this  afternoon.  I  am  under  the  necessity,  from  the  late 
outrageous  occurrence  that  has  unhappily  taken  place,  of  respectfully  soliciting 
from  your  Excellency  that  protection  of  person  and  mission-property  to  which,  as  a 
British  subject,  I  am  legally  entitled.  Your  Excellency's  answer  to  this  request 
will  oblige 

Your  obedient,  humble  servant, 

William  Fox,  Wesleyan  Missionary. 
To  His  Excellency  Lieutenant-Governor  Kendall. 

About  sis  V.M.,  just  as  I  was  going  on  board,  I  received  the 
following  reply : — 

Bathurst,  Gambia,  May  21th,  1836. 
Rev.  Sir,-^I  have  the  honour  to  acknowledge  the  receipt  of  your  letter  of  this 
date ;  and  have  taken  care  to  write  so  strongly  to  the  commander  of  Macarthy's. 
Island,  that  I  have  no  doubt  you  will  receive  every  protection  you  can  desire. 
I  have  the  honour  to  be, 

Rev.  Sir, 
Your  most  obedient,  humble  servant, 

G.  Rendall,  Lieutenant-Governor^ 
To  the  Rev.  William  Fox,  &^c.,  Bathurst. 

The  bearer  of  the  governor's  letter  brought  me  one  for  Mr. 
MacBrair,  with  some  despatches  for  the  commandant ;  and  it  is 
but  justice  to  say  that  he  desired  his  compliments,  expressed  his 
regret  at  what  had  taken  place,  but  hoped  I  should  find  matters 
not  so  bad  as  represented,  and  that  there  would  soon  be  an 
amicable  arrangement. 

I  was  now  on  ray  way,  and  arrived   at   Macarthy's  on  the 


400  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

evening  of  the  31st.  Two  days  after,  Mr.  MacBrair,  Mitli  the 
assistant,  John  Cupidon,  and  his  wife,  sailed  for  St.  Mary's,  in 
order  to  obtain  that  redress  for  such  outrageous  pi'oceedings, 
which  had  been  denied  them  on  the  spot :  but  very  little  was 
done  for  us  at  St.  Mary^s ;  and  we  were  called  for  some  time 
to  endure  a  series  of  opposition  and  persecution.  The  writer 
has  neither  disposition  nor  space  in  this  work  to  recount  all,  or 
one-half,  of  these  vexatious  and  unmerited  annoyances ;  nor  is  it 
necessary,  as  some  account  of  them  has  for  some  years  been 
before  the  public  in  Mr.  MacBrair's  "  Sketches ;"  and  a  better 
spirit  toward  the  a  ission  and  the  missionai'ies  has  long  since 
existed  at  the  Gambia. 

Mr.  MacBrair  having  accomplished  the  principal  part  of  the 
object  of  his  mission,  and  the  rains  having  now  fairly  set  in,  he 
sailed  for  England  early  in  the  month  of  August.  That  he 
should  have  accomplished  this  in  less  than  nine  months,  amidst 
many  interruptions,  provocations,  and  bodily  indisposition, 
proves  that  he  possessed  a  peculiar  fitness  and  aptitude  for  the 
work,  and  that  not  a  moment  was  lost  which  could  be  properly 
secured  for  the  main  object  for  which  he  was  sent  ont. 

Dr.  Lindoe  and  the  friends  at  Southampton  had  generously 
offered  to  raise,  in  addition  to  their  annual  contributions 
towards  the  support  of  the  Foulah  mission,  the  sum  of  .£1,000 
for  the  purpose  of  meeting,  in  part,  the  expenses  which  must 
necessarily  be  incurred  in  prosecuting  the  work  of  translation ; 
and  in  a  short  time  after  Mr.  MacBrair's  return  to  England,  his 
translations  of  some  portions  of  the  New  Testament  into  the 
Mandingo  language,  were  submitted  to  the  committee  of  the 
British  and  Foreign  Bible  Society,  who  kindly  engaged  to 
print,  at  their  own  expense,  the  translation  of  the  Gospel 
according  to  St.  Matthew.  A  Grammar  of  the  Mandingo  lan- 
guage, with  Vocabularies,  was  also  printed  by  the  Wesleyan 
Missionary  Society  about  the  same  time. 

The  author  was  now  (June,  1833)  residing  at  Macarthy's 
Island.  He  had  paid  a  visit  to  this  station  two  months  pre- 
viously, when  Messrs.  Dove  and  MacBrair  were  both  there. 
On  that  occasion  certificates  of  the  two  lots  of  ground  on  which 
the  mission-premises  stand  Avere  obtained  from  the  lieutenant- 
governor,  who  happened  to  be  there  at  that  time ;  and  in  a  few 
days  the  six  hundred  acres  of  land  granted  to  the  Foulah  mis- 
sion by  the  parent  Government  were  at  length  measured  off; 
four  hundred  and  forty  towards  the  north-west  end  of  the 
island,  and  the  other  one  hundred  and  sixty  acres  in  the  oppo- 
site direction. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  401 

Saturday,  June  11th. — I  have  been  much  engaged  all  the 
'week  with  the  repairs  and  enlargement  of  the  mission-house, 
which  could  not  be  finished  before  Mr.  Dove  left, 

13th. — Yesterda}^,  after  divine  service  at  this  place,  I  went  to 
Broco,  about  two  miles  beyond  the  south-east  extremity  of  the 
island.  I  had  a  long  conference  with  the  Foulahs,  who  are 
exceedingly  afraid  of  the  Mandingoes ;  but  they  say,  at  the 
close  of  the  rains,  they  will  come  and  settle  on  Macarthy's 
Island. 

25th. — During  the  week  I  have  taken  a  short  tour  on  the 
north  bank  of  the  river.  I  rode  down  to  Kayaye,  and  from 
thence  proceeded  the  next  day  to  the  residence  of  the  king  of 
Kattaba,  about  eighteen  miles  inland.  His  sable  Majesty  I 
had  seen  before.  He  is  a  most  importunate  beggar,  and  com- 
plains that  he  has  only  seven  wives !  I  passed  a  number  of 
Mandingo  and  Foulah  towns :  the  latter,  owing  to  the  rains 
setting  in,  were  removing  their  cattle  from  the  banks  of  the 
river  to  higher  ground.  I  returned  home  on  Thursday  even- 
ing, having  rode  during  the  day  about  thirty-five  miles.  In 
removing  the  rubbish,  &c.,  connected  with  the  mission-premises 
within  the  last  feAV  days,  several  reptiles  have  been  caught  and 
killed,  among  which  were  three  venomous  snakes,  from  five  to 
six  feet  in  length. 

Sunday,  26th. — To-day  I  preached  twice  here ;  and  in  the 
afternoon  I  went  to  Fattota,  and  gave  tickets  to  a  large  class. 

28th. — Being  called  upon  to  inter  a  corpse  this  forenoon,  I 
was  surprised  and  grieved  to  find  upon  the  burying-ground  a 
number  of  liberated  Africans  under  Government  busily  em- 
ployed in  making  farms.  I  immediately  wrote  to  the  com- 
mandant upon  the  subject,  suggesting  the  propriety  of  a  certain 
portion  of  land  being  marked  out  and  fenced  round,  to  prevent 
the  ploughshare  from  disturbing  the  ashes  of  the  dead.  Three 
days  after  this,  I  received  an  answer  from  the  commandant,  per- 
fectly concurring  in  my  suggestion ;  but  as  he  does  not  approve 
of  the  present  place,  it  being  too  near  the  town,  he  will,  on  the 
first  opportunity,  submit  the  matter  to  His  Excellency  the 
lieutenant-governor  at  St.  Mary's. 

July  13th. — I  have  been  very  unwell,  but  am  now  bet- 
ter. Having  reason  to  fear  that  some  of  the  members  in  the 
society  are  living  without  the  vitality  of  religion,  I  this 
evening  preached  from  Matt.  xxv.  8  :  "  Our  lamps  are  gone 
out." 

22d. — I  have  to-day  been  to  Broco,  and  distributed  several 
copies  of   the   Arabic   scriptures   to   the   marraboos.      In    the 

D    D 


402  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

town  farthest  from  the  river-side,  I  saw  three  Mandingo  men 
in  irons.  At  first  I  supposed  they  had  committed  some  crime, 
for  which  they  were  to  be  punished ;  but,  upon  inquiry,  I  found 
they  had  been  captured  in  a  recent  disturbance  in  the  upper 
river,  and  that  they  were  kept  in  bondage  till  their  frifends 
came  and  redeemed  them.  I  offered  the  alcaid  a  few  dollars  if 
he  would  break  off  their  chains,  and  let  them  go ;  but  to  this 
he  objected;  and  I  afterwards  found  that  he  expects  sixty 
dollars  for  one  man,  one  hundred  for  another,  and  for  the  third 
a  young  female  slave  and  sixteen  bullocks  !  I  left,  pitying  the 
poor  captives,  and  praying  for  their  heathen  and  demoralized 
countrymen.  How  vain  to  talk  about  civilization  independent 
of  Christianity  !     And  how  true  it  is,  that 

"  He  is  a  free  man  whom  the  truth  makes  free, 
And  all  ai"e  slaves  besides  !  " 

Sunday,  August  7tli. — I  have  been  very  unwell  all  the  week : 
I  did  not  rise  this  morning  till  between  nine  and  ten,  and  was 
then  quite  feverish.  However,  I  preached,  and  the  Lord  gra- 
ciously assisted  me.  The  people  appear  more  attentive :  some 
wept,  and  the  congregation  improves  a  little.  From  the  pulpit 
I  went  to  bed,  and  John  Cupidon  preached  in  the  evening. 

Sunda}^,  14th. — This  evening,  after  the  service,  I  held  a  short 
prayer-meeting.  One  of  the  Negroes,  who  prayed  with  great 
fervour,  among  other  things,  addressed  the  throne  of  grace  as 
follows  : — "  Jesus,  save  all  we  soul ;  suppose  man  lose  one  eye, 
he  can  see  with  the  other;  suppose  man  lose  one  hand,  he  can 
work  with  the  other;  but  suppose  man  lose  him  soul,  he  lose 
him  all ;"  and  then,  with  great  energy  and  pathos,  exclaimed, 
"  Jesus,  save  all  we  soul  to-night !  save  all  we  soul  to-night !  " 
to  which  the  people  responded  with  a  loud  Amen  ! 

17th. — We  are  now  in  the  midst  of  the  rains,  vast  quantities 
of  which  have  fallen  to-day.  The  mission-house  leaks  so  exten- 
sively, in  consequence  of  the  flat  roof,  that  I  have  been  obliged 
to  put  on  a  thatched  one,  as  there  was  no  place  where  I  could 
sleep  without  having  a  shower-bath  in  bed.  I  have  been  recom- 
mended to  go  down  to  St.  Mary's,  but  cannot  consistently  leave 
this  station  at  present ;  though  I  have  lately  suffered  severely, 
and  am  still  very  unwell.  At  the  request  of  the  commandant,  I 
to-day  accompanied  him  to  the  spot  proposed  for  the  interment 
of  the  dead.  It  is  about  eighty  yards  square,  on  a  green  plain, 
about  three  quarters  of  a  mile  due  west  from  the  mission-house, 
near  to  the  larger  tract  of  the  six  hundred  acres  of  land. 
Whilst  riding  round,  I  could  not  resist  the  thought,  that  per- 


'«A' 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


403 


haps  here  I  may  sleep  till  the  resurrection  of  the  just ;  but  I 
felt  quite  composed.  In  the  evening  I  discoursed  from  the 
encouraging  words  of  the  Saviour  recorded  in  John  xiv.  1,  2. 

22d. — Yesterday  was  a  good  day  to  me,  and,  I  hope,  to  the 
people.  My  subject  in  the  evening  was,  "  This  do  in  remem- 
brance of  me ;"  after  which  I  administered  the  sacrament  of  the 
Lord's  supper.  Having  now  discharged  the  Avork -people  con- 
nected with  the  mission-house  and  premises,  I  hope  to  pay  a 
little  more  attention  to  reading,  visiting,  &c.  This  afternoon  I 
went  to  Laming,  a  small  Mandingo  town,  about  a  mile  from  the 
opposite  bank  of  the  river. 

27th. — I  have  had  fever  for  two  or  three  days.  Last  evening 
the  king  of  Kattaba  arrived  here,  and  this  morning  paid  me  a 
visit,  accompanied  by  ten  or  a  dozen  of  his  courtiers.  I  was 
very  unwell ;  and  the  noise  these  wild  fellows  made  was  almost 
unbearable.  They  were  highly  amused  at  sitting  down  upon 
chairs ;  but  I  not  having  sufficient  for  the  whole,  the  others  readily 
squatted  themselves  upon  the  floor.  After  the  usual  compli- 
ments had  passed.  His  Majesty  begged  a  little  tobacco,  to  help 
him  on  his  journey  up  the  river.  An  attack  has  recently  been 
made  upon  one  of  his  towns  by  a  marauding  party,  who  killed 
one  woman,  and  carried  off  twenty-five  of  his  subjects  as 
slaves. 

I  spoke  to  him  upon  the  subject  of  a  mission  being  com- 
menced upon  his  territories,  and  about  a  large  tract  of  land  for 
the  Foulahs.  The  latter,  he  said,  required  consideration ;  but 
as  to  the  former,  he  began  to  count  his  fingers,  saying,  Kil'mg, 
fula,  sabba,  nani,  lulu,  woro,  worongioolu,  set/,  kononta,  tang ; 
adding,  emphatically,  "  Ten  missionaries  might  come,  if  they 
pleased." 

29th. — Yesterday  was  an  idle  sabbath,  or,  rather,  a  suffering 
and  sick  day.  I  again  took  powerful  medicine,  which,  with 
what  I  had  taken  before,  operated  smartly,  attended  with 
vomiting.  In  the  evening  I  obtained  an  intermission  of  fever, 
and  I  hope  the  quinine  will  now  have  effect.  But  as  I  have 
no  wife,  colleague,  doctor,  or  nurse,  in  this  monotonous  wilder- 
ness, an  attack  of  illness  is  "  not  joyous,"  and  my  spirits  do 
sometimes  flag  a  little.  But,  praise  the  Lord,  I  have  abundant 
cause  for  gratitude ;  for  though  in  this  attack  of  fever  I  have 
had  several  sleepless  nights,  I  have  enjoyed  much  of  the  Di\dne 
Presence  when  my  servant  boys  have  been  fast  asleep,  and  the 
cat  and  dog,  with  a  burning  candle  and  a  "  cup  of  cold  water," 
have  been  my  only  visible  companions.  Thank  God,  "the  Invi- 
sible "  has  "  appeared  in  sight,"  my  pillow  has  been  wet  with 

2  D  2 


404 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFUICA. 


tears  of  joy  and  gratitude,  and  I  have  literally  realized  the 
sweetness  of  those  well-known  lines, — 

"  When  my  sorrows  most  increase, 
Then  thine  utmost  joys  are  given  ; 
Jesus  comes  with  my  distress, 
And  agony  is  heaven  !  " 

My  friends  at  West  Bromwich  are,  I  trust,  doing  what  they 
kindly  promised,  that  is,  "  holding  on  the  ropes,"  and,  if  it 
be  the  will  of  God,  I  shall  see  them  again  :  however,  I  wish  not 
to  be  too  sanguine  :  the  cost  was  counted,  and  in  that  cost  life 
was  included  :  it  is  in  God's  hands,  let  him  do  what  seemeth 
him  good. 

"  My  life,  while  Thou  preservest  that  life, 

Thy  sacrifice  shall  he  ; 
And  death,  when  death  shall  l)e  my  lot, 

Shall  join  my  soul  to  Thee." 

31st. — Thank  the  Lord,  I  am  improving  rapidly.  To-day  I 
buried  one  of  the  school-boys,  whom  I  had  previously  visited; 
and  have  a  good  hope  in  his  death. 

September  3d. — I  am  to-day  preparing  for  the  pulpit,  in 
which  I  feel  a  sacred  pleasure.  I  have  lately  given  away  a 
number  of  the  Arabic  scriptures  to  the  Tilobonkoes,  (an  indus- 
trious tribe,  to  the  east  of  Bondou,)  who  come  here  in  search  of 
employment.  They  are  strict  Mohammedans.  It  has  been  very 
wet  to-day,  and  the  mission-house,  notwithstanding  the  grass 
roof,  leaks  considerably.  In  two  or  three  weeks  I  hope  the 
rains  will  be  over,  though  the  effects  are  likely  to  last  for  some 
weeks  longer.  The  river  is  now  very  much  swollen,  and  in 
many  places  overflows  its  banks  :  it  has  done  so  opposite  the 
mission-house,  and  the  water  has  almost  reached  the  gate  lead- 
ing into  the  yard. 

12th. — Yesterday,  though  poorly,  I  preached  twice  here,  and 
in  the  afternoon  rode  to  Fattota,  and  gave  tickets  to  upwards  of 
thirty  members.  To-day  I  have  written  several  letters  :  one  to 
Mr.  Maer,  at  Sierra-Leone;  one  to  Mr.  Wilkinson  and  the 
assistants  at  St.  Mary's  ;  and  two  or  three  on  business.  I  have 
also  had  near  a  score  of  applications  from  the  Tilobonkoes  for 
portions  of  the  Arabic  scriptures. 

14th. — Though  I  had  taken  a  considerable  quantity  of  medi- 
cine, the  fever  returned  yesterday  afternoon,  and  I  have  had  a 
very  severe  night.  Hoping  to  arrest  it  before  it  came  to  its 
height,  I  again  took  "  five  and  fifteen,"  bathed  my  feet  in  hot 
w;iter,  drank  some  hot  tea,  and  put  additional  clothing  upon  the 
bcrl,  which  brought  on  a  profuse  perspiration ;  but  that,  unfor- 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SlERllA-LEONE.  40j 

tunately,  was  followed  by  a  dry  skin,  a  quick,  strong  pulse,  and 
an  almost  insupportable  head-ache,  with  considerable  vomiting. 
Towards  morning  it  somewhat  abated ;  but  has  left  me  to-day 
amazingly  weak,  so  that  I  can  scarcely  move  or  speak.  I  have, 
during  the  day,  taken  twenty  grains  of  quinine,  which  I  sincerely 
pray  may  prevent  another  attack. 

22d. — I  am,  praise  the  Lord !  much  better,  and  have  been 
doing  a  little  in  theology  and  the  Mandingo  language.  This 
evening  we  had  another  strong  tornado,  with  heavy  rain.  I  am 
informed  by  several  persons,  that  more  rain  has  fallen  this 
season  than  for  several  years  past;  so  that  large  crops  are 
expected  ;  and,  from  appearances,  these  will  be  realized. 

October  4th. — I  am  still  unwell.  This  evening  I  met  the 
last  two  classes  for  tickets,  and  found  my  soul  truly  blessed 
while  encouraging  the  people  of  God.  Praise  the  Lord,  we 
have  an  increase  of  eleven  during  the  quarter,  and  a  prospect  of 
seeing  better  days ! 

To-day  an  intelligent-looking  Moor  called  upon  me,  who 
arrived  on  the  island  a  day  or  two  ago,  from  Medina,  as  he 
states,  the  burial-place  of  Mahomet,  having  travelled  across  this 
extensive  continent.  He  appeared  much  interested  when  I 
reached  the  chart,  and  named  some  of  the  countries  through 
which  he  had  passed,  particularly  when  I  pointed  to  Mecca,  the 
birth-place  of  the  false  prophet,  of  whom  he  appears  to  be  a 
rigid  follower.  He  states  that  it  is  eleven  months  since  he  left 
Medina,  and  that  two  friends  who  came  with  him  were  mur- 
dered somewhere  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Abyssinia,  and  that 
he  walked  ten  days  without  stopping  at  any  place,  to  escape  the 
savage  tribe.  When  questioned  as  to  the  object  he  had  in  view 
in  coming  so  far,  his  answer  was,  he  merely  came  "to  take  a 
walk  \"  He  wished  to  see  the  Gambia,  Goree,  the  Senegal,  &c. 
I  gave  him  a  copy  of  the  New  Testament  in  Arabic,  Avliich  he 
appeared  to  read  with  ease.  His  statement  may  possibly  be 
correct,  in  having  crossed  the  continent ;  for  we  have  an  old 
marraboo  on  this  island  who  has  actuail}^  done  so  twice,  having 
gone  from  this  place  to  Mecca  and  Medina,  and  back  again. 

7th. — I  had  a  little  fever  this  morning,  and  am  obliged  to 
have  recourse  to  quinine,  with  other  medicine,  to  keep  off 
another  severe  attack.  Yesterday  we  had  a  good  quantity  of 
rain,  and  no  appearance  at  present  of  its  closing.  To-day  I 
have  engaged,  as  an  assistant  in  the  Mandingo  language,  the 
person  Mr.  MacBrair  employed  :  he  is  a  proper  Mandingo,  and 
has  been  educated  in  England.  I  have  almost  finisliod  a  large 
vocabulary,   soon   after  which    I  purpose  translating  the   First 


406  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Conference  Catechism.  May  the  Lord  help  me,  preserve  my 
health,  and  prosper  this  mission  ! 

11th. — I  have  fever,  more  or  less,  every  day,  and  seldom 
enjoy  a  night^s  rest.  This  morning  I  again  took  medicine. 
The  thermometer  to-day  is  89°,  though  we  have  had  a  north- 
west breeze  most  of  the  day ;  so  that  it  has  not  been  so  oppres- 
sive as  yesterday. 

Sunday,  16th.  —  To-day  I  preached  twice,  with  tolerable 
liberty.     In  the  afternoon  I  attended  the  school. 

21st. — This  morning  we  had  two  or  three  arrivals  from  St. 
Mary's,  one  of  which  brought  me  the  "  Watchman,"  with  the 
Conference  news,  and  a  letter  from  my  dear  wife.  Though 
poorly,  I  have  had  a  rich  feast  all  day  in  perusing  the  very 
delightful  reports  of  the  first  Conference  held  in  Birmingham. 
"  God  bless  the  preachers  and  the  people ! ''  I  could  not  help 
exclaiming  aloud  repeatedly,  as  I  read,  and  wept  for  joy,  to  see 
the  harmony  and  unanimity  of  the  former,  and  the  liberality 
and  Christian  kindness  of  the  latter. 

25th. — Since  Sunday  afternoon  I  have  been  very  ill:  the 
most  severe  bilious  fever  I  have  experienced  this  season.  On 
Saturday  I  was  ill  with  ague,  and  was  imprudent  enough  to  go 
out  in  the  heat  of  the  day  to  bury  a  corpse,  though  I  could 
scarce  sit  on  the  pony.  On  returning,  I  went  to  bed,  and  for 
several  hours  suffered  severely.  On  Sunday  morning,  feehng 
a  little  better,  I  preached ;  and  this,  I  fear,  greatly  aggravated 
the  paroxysm.  In  the  afternoon  I  was  obliged  to  go  to  bed; 
and  am  just  now  up,  and  only  able  to  crawl  about.  Yesterday 
I  had  the  doctor ;  who  has  been  again  to-day.  Though  very  ill 
on  Sunday  night,  I  Avas  very  happy;  the  former  part  of  the 
night  especially :  while  meditating  upon  death,  and  the  glories 
of  the  heavenly  world,  my  soul  exulted  with  joy,  and  my  eyes 
overflowed  with  tears  of  gratitude.  Glory  be  to  God  !  He 
does  not  leave  nor  forsake  a  helpless  worm  that  trusts  in  him. 

29th. — Yesterday  and  to-day  the  king  of  Kattaba  called  upon 
me,  with  whom  I  had  a  long  conversation  upon  the  evils  of 
rum-drinking,  polygamy,  &c.  I  also  again  introduced  the  sub- 
ject of  a  large  tract  of  land  for  the  Foulahs,  the  six  hundred 
acres  not  being  near  sufficient.  He  appeared  willing,  provided 
the  other  leading  men  were ;  but  added,  he  must  have  the  usual 
customs  from  them  in  the  way  of  bullocks,  &c.  This  led  to 
some  further  conversation ;  and  I  have  promised  to  pay  him  a 
visit,  and  look  at  some  part  of  his  dominions,  visit  the  Foulah 
towns,  &c. 

jS'ovember  5th.— My  fever  has  continued  without  a  regular 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  407 

intermission  until  this   morning,  having  been  in  the  furnace 
three  days ;  and  I  am  now  exceedingly  Aveak. 

8th. — On  Saturday  evening  the  ague  re-commenced,  and 
continued  all  night.  On  Sunday  morning  I  was  put  into  a 
vrarm  bath,  but  to  no  purpose  :  the  fever  continued,  with  very 
great  debility,  all  day  and  night  of  Sunday ;  and  how  it  would 
terminate,  was  uncertain.  I  was  certainly  very  ill,  and  was 
anxious  to  say  a  few  words  to  my  dear  wife ;  but  I  could  not 
write,  and  there  was  no  one  to  whom  I  could  speak  upon  the 
subject.  Thank  God,  I  felt  quite  happy  when  at  the  worst ! 
On  Monday  morning  there  was  a  change  for  the  better,  and  I 
am  still  improving,  and  thankful  to  God  that  he  has  once  more 
raised  me  "  from  the  margin  of  the  grave.^^  O  may  I  afresh 
dedicate  all  I  have  and  am  to  his  service  ! 

10th. — I  hope  I  am  gaining  strength,  though  still  very  weak. 
It  appears  that  I  am  appointed  to  this  station  by  the  late  Con- 
ference; so  that  it  will  be  necessar}^  to  go  down  to  St.  Mary's 
to  close  my  accounts  with  that  station.  I  am  also  wanting  some 
building  materials;  besides  which,  the  doctor  recommends  a 
change :  and  perhaps  it  may  do  me  good. 

15th. — I  believe  I  am  improving,  though  still  troubled  with  a 
little  ague.  I  am  now  again  very  busy  with  the  repairs  and 
improvements  of  the  mission-premises  here,  and  building  a 
small  chapel  and  house  at  Fattota  for  one  of  the  assistants,  &c. 

16th. — During  the  night,  I  had  considerable  fever.  This 
morning  I  heard  from  Mr.  Wilkinson,  who  has  had  a  serious 
attack  of  illness.  Though  very  poorly,  I  preached  in  the 
evening. 

18th — Having  made  every  arrangement  I  possibly  could,  and 
given  directions  to  the  assistants,  in  reference  to  their  appoint- 
ments, &c.,  I  yesterday  embarked  on  board  the  "  Angola."  We 
are  now  at  anchor  at  Yanimaroo,  taking  in  corn  and  hides.  I 
am  happy  to  hear  we  make  no  more  stoppages  till  we  reach  the 
end  of  our  journey.     I  had  no  rest  all  night. 

Sunday,  20th. — Another  sleepless  night ;  and  so  violent  was 
the  pain  in  my  head,  and  face,  and  teeth,  which  involuntarily 
chattered  together  with  cold,  that  I  knew  not  what  to  do.  I 
almost  wept  with  the  jumping  and  excruciating  pain.  I  am 
to-day  more  free  from  it,  but  unable  to  do  any  thing  in  the  way 
of  holding  divine  service.  The  Lord  grant  me  grace  and 
patience  to  suffer,  as  well  as  to  do,  all  his  righteous  will ! 

22d. — This  morning,  about  four  o'clock,  we  came  to  anchor 
at  St.  Mary's.  Having  a  fresh  breeze,  I  was  able  to  lie  in  the 
cabin  last  night ;    but  I  obtained  no  sleep.     Soon   after  five 


408  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

o'clock  I  went  ashore ;  and  before  I  reached  the  mission-house, 
my  heart  was  warmed  at  hearing  the  people  singing  the  praises 
of  God  at  the  early  prayer-meeting.  I  went  into  the  chapel, 
and  joined  with  them  in  prayer  and  praise.  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Wilkinson,  I  found,  were  rapidly  recovering  from  their  recent 
attacks  of  sickness.  We  were  glad  to  see  each  other,  and 
mingled  our  joys  and  sorrows  together.  Though  we  had  each 
suffered  in  various  ways,  we  found  abundant  cause  for  thank- 
fulness to  a  kind  and  gracious  Providence. 

The  mission  at  Cape-Coast  had  been  partially  suspended  by 
the  lamented  death  of  Mr.  Dunwell,  which  we  have  recorded  in 
a  preceding  page.  But  on  September  15th  of  this  year,  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Wrigley  arrived  there ;  and  though  the  society  had 
been  without  a  missionar}^  for  nearly  fifteen  months,  it  was 
found  their  numbers  had  increased,  and  the  influence  of  Chris- 
tianity was  felt  to  a  considerable  distance  inland.  Mr.  Wrigley 
commenced  his  varied  labours  with  zeal ;  and  a  suitable  place 
of  worship  having  become  indispensably  necessary,  he  under- 
took, without  delay,  the  erection  of  a  commodious  building, 
including  a  chapel  and  school-rooms;  and  under  his  ministry 
the  society  continued  to  prosper. 

At  Sierra-Leone  the  brethren  Maer,  Crosby,  and  Sanders, 
had  been  preserved  through  the  sickly  season,  though  not  with- 
out repeated  attacks  of  the  country  fever ;  and  on  the  10th  of 
October,  their  hands  were  strengthened,  and  their  hearts  encou- 
raged, by  the  arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Patterson.  Interesting 
communications  about  this  time,  from  Messrs.  Maer  and  Crosby 
at  Sierra-Leone,  and  from  ]\Ir.  Wilkinson  at  the  Gambia,  the 
reader  will  find  in  the  eighth  volume  of  the  "Missionary 
Notices,"  pages  416,  417. 

Having  closed  my  financial  accounts  with  the  St.  Mary's  cir- 
cuit, and  transferred  the  affairs  of  that  mission  to  my  respected 
brother  and  colleague,  Mr.  Wilkinson,  I  prepared  to  return  to 
my  own  station.  Though  my  sojourn  at  St.  Mary's  was  some- 
what less  than  a  fortnight,  I  had,  during  that  period,  though 
far  from  being  well,  preached  several  times,  had  paid  a  visit  to 
Fort  BuUen,  and  the  Mandingo  town  in  the  kingdom  of  Barra, 
had  written  several  letters  to  the  governor  for  a  discharged  soldier 
respecting  two  of  his  children,  who  were  held  in  Slavery  by  a 
coloured  lady  of  Goree,  one  of  whom,  being  then  on  the  island 
with  the  said  lady,  the  father  happily  obtained;  and  last, 
thougli  not  least,  I  witnessed  the  peaceful  and  happy  death 
of    Sally   Doughlas,    wife   of   James    Doughlas,    "the   faithful 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  409 

Negro  servant''  who  accompanied  the  late  Mrs.  Marshall  to 
England,  and  who  took  charge  of  "  the  little  orphan  boy "  to 
NcAvcastle,  the  affecting  particulars  of  which  are  already  before 
the  reader. 

Having  completed  some  other  matters  of  business,  on  the  5th 
of  December  I  embarked  on  board  the  schooner  "Fame," 
bound  for  Macarthy's  Island.  I  had  been  confined  to  my  bed 
with  ague  most  of  the  day,  and  was  half-disposed  to  yield  to  the 
kind  solicitations  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wilkinson  to  remain  a  little 
longer ;  but  having  every  thing  on  board,  and  feeling  somewhat 
better  just  as  the  vessel  was  about  to  get  under  weigh,  I  rose 
from  bed,  and,  accompanied  by  Mr.  Wilkinson  and  some  others 
to  the  beach,  I  went  on  board,  and  immediately  turned  into  bed 
in  my  little  cabin,  where  T  continued  till  late  the  following  day, 
having  taken  four  doses  of  quinine  during  that  time. 

On  the  morning  of  the  12th  we  arrived  at  Macarthy's  Island; 
nothing  particular  having  occurred  on  the  passage,  except  that 
on  the  preceding  day  we  passed  a  small  vessel  which  had  been 
attacked  and  swamped  by  a  hippopotamus,  and  I  found  that 
another  small  craft,  which  had  brought  me  some  lime  for  the 
mission-house,  had  come  in  contact  with  one  or  more  of  these 
river-horses,  though  happily  without  doing  any  damage.  I  was 
now  much  better  than  when  I  left  St.  Mary's ;  but  the  country 
was  in  a  very  disturbed  state,  owing  to  some  marauding  bandits 
going  a!bout  seeking  for  prey,  in  the  shape  of  men,  women,  and 
children,  cattle,  or  what  they  could  lay  hold  of. 

In  the  mean  time  I  was  employed  with  looking  after  the 
masons,  carpenters,  and  other  people  at  work  on  the  mission - 
premises  at  George-Town,  and  with  the  new  chapel  and  house 
at  Fattota.  I  also  engaged  a  number  of  liberated  Africans  on 
the  six  hundred  acres  of  land,  in  clearing  it  of  brushwood,  &c.^ 
This,  with  the  spiritual  affairs  of  the  mission,  and  frequent  con- 
ferences which  I  had  with  the  Foulahs,  and  other  duties,  fully 
occupied  my  time. 

Under  date  of  "  Sunday,  January  1st,  1837,"  the  following 
entry  was  made  in  my  journal : — "  Last  evening  we  had  a  most 
blessed  watch-night  service.  Both  the  assistants  and  the  local 
preacher  gave  appropriate  exhortations,  and  the  Almighty  gra- 
ciously assisted  them  and  myself,  and  was  eminently  present 
with  the  people,  while,  in  the  house  of  our  God,  we  closed  ano- 
ther year.  O  may  this  next  be  a  very  happy,  holy,  and  useful  one ! 
To-day  I  preached  twice  here,  and  in  the  afternoon  went  to 
Fattota,  and  met  the  society  for  tickets.  One  of  the  members 
came  dressed  in  the  native  style ;  and,  when  interrogated  upon 


410  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

the  subject^  he  said,  '  Massa,  sun  warm  too  much  to-day/  The 
heat  was  certainly  A^ery  intense,  but,  besides  the  propriety  of  the 
thing,  I  told  him  I  thought  he  would  not  suffer  so  much  from 
the  sun  with  his  trousers  on,  as  he  did  with  them  off.  Mr. 
Cupidon  has  been  preaching  at  Broco  to-day,  and  there  are  again 
'rumours  of  war/  The  WooUi  people,  assisted  by  the  Bam- 
barras,  are  intending  to  attack  some  part  of  Kemmingtan's 
dominions/' 

We  shall  close  this  chapter  with  the  following  statistics  of  the 
missions  at  each  station  at  the  commencement  of  1837 : — 
Sierra-Leone,  members,  1,124;  school-children,  930.  St.  Ma?-y's, 
members,  368;  school-children,  152,  Macarthy's  Island,  mem- 
bers, 167;  school-children,  68.     Cajae-Coa*/,  members,  150. 

One-fourth  of  the  number  at  Cape-Coast  were  on  trial, 
besides  which  there  are  about  fifty  at  Annamaboo.  There 
were  no  returns  for  the  schools;  but  "Mrs.  Wrigley  had 
formed  three  classes  of  native  females,  who  gladly  listened  to 
her  instructions,"  and  she  had  also  under  her  care  a  school  for 
children,  "  who  were  learning  to  read  very  fast,  and  advancing 
in  other  branches  of  female  education." 


CHAPTER  XX. 

THE  GOLD-COAST,  GAMBIA,  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1837,  1838.) 

The  Year  1837  one  of  unprecedented  Mortality — Eight  Deaths  in  nine  Months — ■ 
The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Harrop  at  Cape-Coast — Their  Sickness  and 
Death — Death  of  Mrs.  Wrigley — The  Shock  to  Mr.  Wrigley — Extracts  from 
his  Letter  upon  the  Subject — Brief  Sketches  of  Mrs.  Harrop,  Mr.  Harrop, 
and  Mrs.  Wrigley — Mr.  Wrigley  now  the  only  Missionary  at  Cape-Coast — His 
Appeal  for  more  Help — Sierra-Leone — Death  of  Messrs.  Maer,  Crosby,  and 
Patterson  of  the  Yellow  Fever — Sketches  of  their  Character — The  Announce- 
ment of  these  Deaths  in  the  "  Missionary  Notices " — Remarks  thereon — 
Macarthy's  Island — The  Providence  of  God — The  Author's  various  Employ- 
ments— Visits  St.  Mary's — A  Soldier  hanged — Hope  in  his  Death — The 
Author  retvu-ns  to  Macarthy's  Island — Letters  on  the  Subject  of  the  Epidemic, 
&c. — Wild  Beasts  on  the  Continent — Death  of  a  Mandingo  Man  and  Boy  by 
a  Leopard — Further  Accounts  of  the  Epidemic  at  St.  Mary's — The  Author  hears 
of  the  Death  of  Mr.  WDkinson — Resolves  to  go  down — PecuUar  Circumstances 
of  the  Case — Incidents  on  the  Passage — Death  of  Governor  Rendall — Safe 
Arrival  at  St.  Mary's^Sketch  of  Mr.  Wilkinson — His  funeral  Sermon — Some 
Remarks  ou  the  Effects  of  the  Yellow  Fever — One  Half  of  the  Europeans  at 
St.  Mary's  cut  down  in  a  few  Weeks — The  Gold-Coast — Mr.  Wrigley — His 
lamented  Death— Mr.  Sanders  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  the  Author  at  the  Gambia, 
now  the  only  two  W^esleyan  Missionaries  on  the  Coast — The  Arrival  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Dove,  with  Mr.  Badger,  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow, 
with  Mr.  Wall,  at  the  Gambia,  and  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Freeman  at  Cape-Coast — 
Statistics  of  the  Missions — Mr.  Sanders  retiu^ns  to  England — The  present 
Appointments,  vdth  an  Extract  from  the  Annual  Report  ou  the  Subject  of  the 
Mortality  during  the  Year,  &c. 

The  year  upon  which  we  have  now  entered  Avas  an  eventful 
one  in  the  history  of  these  missions.  At  its  commencement 
some  untoward  events,  ever  to  be  lamented,  unhappily  occurred 
in  the  mission  family  at  Sierra-Leone,  by  which  some  of  the 
brethren  were  greatly  at  variance;  and  this  state  of  things 
continued  for  some  months  ;  but  the  year  was  marked  by  much 
of  the  Divine  Presence  and  blessing  upon  the  labours  of  his  ser- 
vants on  all  the  stations  on  the  Coast,  at  each  of  which  there 
was  an  augmentation  to  their  numbers,  consisting  of  several 
hundreds  of  members.  But  it  was  a  painful  and  an  unprece- 
dented year  in  the  mortality  of  the  missionaries  ;  and  it  becomes 
once  more  our  painful  task  to  record  the  ravages  of  death.     No 


412  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFKICA. 

fewer  than  six  missionaries^  and  two  wives  of  missionaries, — in 
all,  eiglit  agents  of  the  society, — were  removed  from  the  church 
below  to  the  church  above,  in  the  course  of  about  nine  months ! 
These  afflictive  and  mysterious  dispensations  of  Providence  we 
shall,  as  heretofore,  register  in  due  order ;  and,  in  so  doing,  we 
shall  have  to  commence  at  the  Gold-Coast.  That  mission  was 
strengthened  by  the  arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Harrop,  who 
landed  there  in  the  middle  of  January.  But  they  had  scarcely 
entered  upon  their  labours,  when,  owing  to  the  injurious 
exposure  of  themselves  to  the  effects  of  the  sun  and  damps, 
they  were  almost  immediately  attacked  by  fever,  which  proved 
fatal  to  both ;  and  Mrs.  Wrigley  sank  under  the  fatigue  Avhich 
she  experienced,  while  attending,  with  affectionate  anxiety,  by 
night  and  by  day,  to  the  wants  and  sufferings  of  her  newly- 
arrived  friends.  At  this  painful  visitation,  the  grief  of  the 
societies  was  almost  unbounded,  and  the  wound  Mr.  Wrigley 
received  was  very  severe.  Mr.  Freeman,  who  referred  to  this 
subject  in  one  of  the  "  Quarterly  Papers "  some  time  after, 
says :  "  Perhaps  no  language  could  be  more  applicable  to  his 
feelings,  than  that  of  Dr.  Young,  while  lamenting  the  loss  of  his 
companion  in  life,  and  her  amiable  children : — 

'  Insatiate  archer  !  could  not  one  sutRce  ? 
Thy  shaft  flew  thrice,  and  thrice  my  peace  was  slain, 
And  thrice  ere  thrice  yon  moon  renew'd  her  horn  !' " 

The  shock  which  Mr.  Wrigley  received  from  this  complicated 
bereavement  was  the  more  severely  felt,  as  he  himself  was  only 
just  recovering  from  a  severe  bilious  fever.  But  we  shall  best 
understand  the  views  and  feelings  of  this  afflicted  and  bereaved 
missionary,  from  himself,  by  inserting  the  substance  of  a  letter 
addressed  to  the  general  secretaries,  a  copy  of  which  now  lies 
before  me,  and  which  gives  the  particulars  of  the  melancholy 
events  just  alluded  to.  The  whole  letter  is  painfully  interesting, 
and  is  alike  creditable  to  the  head  and  the  heart  of  him  who, 
alas!  was  himself  called,  in  a  few  short  mouths,  to  join  "in  a 
nobler  cKme "  those  whose  loss  he  so  deeply  deplored  in  this. 
The  letter  is  dated  "Western  Africa,  Cape-Coast,  February 
20th,  1837,"  and  commences  as  follows  : — 

Rev.  and  dear  Sirs, — With  feeUngs  of  unutterable  sorrow,  I  have  to  announce 
the  heart-rending  fact,  that  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Harrop  and  my  beloved  partner  are  no 
more !  0,  my  God,  teach  me  resignation  to  that  M'hich  my  human  reason  would 
say  is  utterly  unaccountable  and  inexplicably  mysterious ;  to  acknowledge  thine 
hand,  to  revere  thy  sovereign  will,  and  to  submit  to  thy  righteous  dispensations  ! 
Such  a  stroke  confounds  all  my  reasonings,  and  levels  me  with  the  dust. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    STERRA-LEONE.  413 

After  stating  that  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Harrop  arrived  on  Sunday, 
the  15th  ultimo,  and  that  they  went  in  company  to  the  after- 
noon service,  where  they  had  a  crowded  congregation,  and  that 
Mr.  Harrop  was  both  surprised  and  gratified  with  the  sight, 
Mr.  Wrigley  says  : — 

But,  ah !  how  vain  are  all  oiir  earthly  hopes,  and  how  mysterious  are  His  ways 
whose  judgments  are  a  great  deep !  The  arrival  of  our  friends,  so  highly  calcu- 
lated to  cheer  and  encourage  us  in  oiu"  arduous  work,  was  hut  the  prelude  to  the 
experience  of  the  severest  afflictions. 

Mr.  Wrigley  was  himself  attacked  with  illness  the  following 
day,  and  was  confined  to  his  bed  for  some  time ;  but  adds  : — 

The  arrival  of  our  friends  at  such  a  time  I  was  led  to  view  as  a  most  providen- 
tial event,  inasmuch  as  the  work  would  be  carried  on  without  interruption.  It  was 
otherwise  determined.  On  Sunday,  the  29th  ultimo,  precisely  a  fortnight  from 
their  arrival,  oiu*  two  friends  commenced  with  the  seasoning-fever,  though  in  so 
mild  a  manner  as  to  lead  us  to  indulge  the  hope  of  speedy  recovery. 

This  pleasing  hope  was  not  realized ;  for  though  the  best 
medical  help,  with  the  best  nurses  the  place  aflForded,  was  imme- 
diately obtained,  they  became  worse.     Mr.  Wrigley  Avrites : — 

Had  not  Mrs.  Harrop  been  labouring  under  the  influence  of  other  diseases  of  an 
opposite  nature,  I  doubt  not  she  would  have  got  over  it.  Her  fits,  however, 
increased  in  violence  every  succeeding  day,  until  Saturday,  during  the  whole  of 
which  day  she  was  in  strong  convulsions ;  in  which,  with  great  struggling,  she 
ceased  to  breathe,  about  two  o'clock  in  the  morning  of  the  sabbath,  February  5th. 
It  was  an  awful  scene  :  never  shall  I  forget  it.  My  soul  was  in  a  state  of  the 
utmost  agitation  :  Mrs.  Harrop  struggling  with  her  last  enemy,  her  husband  in  an 
adjoining  room  in  a  state  of  deliiium,  and  my  own  beloved  partner  in  another 
room  eveiy  thing  but  insensible  to  all  around  her.  Every  thing  was  done  for  Mr. 
Harrop  that  the  skill  of  our  medical  attendant  could  devise,  or  the  activity  of  his 
attendants  accomplish ;  but  it  was  all  in  vain.  He  continued  much  in  the  same 
way  as  above  stated,  with  some  lucid  intervals,  until  Wednesday  morning,  twenty- 
five  minutes  to  seven  o'clock,  when  he  silently,  and  vrithout  a  groan,  ceased  to  be 
an  inhabitant  of  this  vale  of  tears. 

As  for  my  dear  wife,  never  was  shock  greater  to  my  mind  than  that  which  I 
experienced  when,  on  a  sudden  and  totally  unexpected  change,  there  was  mani- 
fested every  symptom  of  speedy  dissolution  :  this  occun-ed  on  Wednesday  morning, 
at  six  o'clock.  For  five  hours  I  had  been  engaged  previously  in  bathing  her  head 
incessantly  with  limes  and  cold  water,  with  pleasing  hopes  of  a  speedy  and  favour- 
able change.  The  fever  was  at  its  height ;  she  wandered  a  little,  but  was  remark- 
ably still ;  and  it  was  not  until  half  an  hour  previous  to  her  end,  that  I  entertained 
the  least  idea  of  such  an  event.  She  died,  with  the  composure  of  one  taking  rest 
in  sleep,  at  half-past  six  o'clock,  a  few  minutes  before  Mr.  Harrop  breathed 
his  last. 

This  was  too  much  for  my  feelings  to  bear :  my  mind,  already  enfeebled  by 
weakness  and  loss  of  rest,  was  completely  prostrated.  I  could  no  longer  contain 
myself,  and  I  was  reduced  to  a  state  of  complete  frenzy  for  the  space  of  half  an 


414  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

hour,  while  all  around  me  were  bathed  in  tears,  expecting  that  their  last  hope  in 
my  spared  life  was  about  to  be  extinguished.  I  was  at  last  forcibly  carried  away 
from  the  side  of  my  beloved  partner's  remains,  and  removed  to  the  house  of 
W.  Hutton,  Esq. 

Scenes  like  this  are  truly  affecting,  sufficient  to  excite  our 
tenderest  sympathies,  fervent  prayers,  and  liberal  contributions 
in  the  cause  of  missions.  Nor  is  the  preceding  a  peculiar  case  ; 
for  we  shall  have  to  record  others  of  a  similar  kind,  ere  we  close 
the  catalogue  of  deaths  in  this  deathly  clime.  Mr.  Wrigley,  in 
speaking  of  his  own  affliction,  previously  and  subsequently  to 
the  above  bereavement,  says,  he  "  was  determined,  even  at  the 
sacrifice  of  life,  to  attend  on  his  suffering  companions,  and  ren- 
der them  all  the  assistance  he  could;"  which,  he  adds,  "now 
indeed  affords  me  a  mournful  satisfaction ;  while,  at  the  same 
time,  I  am  amazed  that,  after  the  loss  of  rest  for  at  least  six 
nights  out  of  seven,  I  am  now  able  to  record  such  tragical 
events."  "  Tragical,"  indeed,  they  were  ;  but  "  what  we  know 
not  now,  we  shall  know  hereafter." 

It  remains  that  we  give  a  brief  and  separate  sketch  of  these 
three,  who  "  counted  not  their  lives  dear  unto  them,"  so  that 
they  might  contribute,  in  some  small  degree,  to  the  extension 
of  the  Redeemer's  kingdom  in  Heathen  lands. 

Mrs.  Harrop,  the  first  of  those  who  fell  on  this  occasion, 
was  a  native  of  Eckington,  a  village  in  Derbyshire,  and  was 
born  in  the  year  1807.  Her  maiden  name  was  Barber.  In  the 
sixteenth  year  of  her  age  she  was  deeply  convinced  of  sin, 
sought  and  found  mercy  through  faith  in  our  Lord  Jesus 
Christ,  and  immediately  united  herself  with  the  people  of  God. 
On  writing  to  a  friend  in  1827,  after  adverting  to  the  goodness 
of  God  in  bringing  them  both  to  a  knowledge  of  Himself  in 
youth,  she  observes  :  "  It  is  our  privilege  and  our  duty  to  rise 
higher."  And  again  :  "  I  feel  assured  that  we  cannot  be  per- 
fectly happy  until  every  desire,  ever}'-  passion,  of  the  soul  is 
brought  into  subjection  to  the  will  of  God."  Some  time  after 
this,  she  kept  a  diary,  a  remnant  of  which  is  noAv  before  me ; 
from  which  it  appears  that  holiness  was  her  grand  pursuit. 
Under  date  of  "January  1st,  1835,"  she  wrote:  "Goodness 
and  mercy  have  followed  me  all  my  days.  I  can  see  the  hand 
of  God  in  every  circumstance  of  my  life.  The  past  has  been  a 
year  of  deeper  enjoyment  than  any  preceding  one.  I  have 
to-day  publicly  and  solemnly  renewed  my  covenant-engagement 
to  be  the  Lord's.  O  my  God,  strengthen  me,  that  every  power 
of  body  and  soul  may  from  this  day  be  consecrated  to  thee. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  415 

that  I  may  count  all  things  as  loss  for  the  excellency  of  the 
knowledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord  !  Amen  and  amen  ! "  Miss 
Barber,  however,  did  not  content  herself  with  receiving  good ; 
but,  according  to  her  power  and  opportunities,  she  endeavoured 
to  do  good  to  others.  She  was  faithful  and  diligent  as  a 
sabbath-school  teacher,  tract-distributer,  missionary-collector, 
and  visitor  of  the  sick.  Soon  after  this,  a  more  extended  sphere 
of  usefulness  presented  itself,  and  she  was  united  in  marriage  to 
the  Rev.  Peter  Harrop,  and  with  him  embarked  for  the  Gold- 
Coast,  where,  after  a  stormy  and  lengthened  passage,  they 
arrived  in  safety.  This  Mrs.  Harrop  recorded  in  her  diary 
with  gratitude  to  God.  A  week  after,  she  again  writes :  "  I 
can  truly  say,  my  soul  is  in  some  degree  quickened  since  we 
came  here.  Last  night  I  had  the  privilege  of  attending  the 
class-meeting  of  the  leaders  here,  and  found  it  a  very  profitable 
season.  We  sensibly  felt  the  Lord  in  the  midst,  to  strengthen 
and  refresh  our  souls.  O  may  He  eminently  own  and  bless  our 
coming  among  this  people  !" 

These,  it  is  believed,  were  the  last  words  which  she  penned. 
In  another  week  she  was  attacked  with  fever,  and  in  one  more 
she  breathed  her  last.  Mr.  Wrigley  writes  :  "During  her  afflic- 
tion, Mrs.  Harrop  appeared  to  have  strong  confidence  in  God, 
and  assurance  of  her  interest  in  the  Saviour.  Her  consolations 
occasionally  abounded,  and  she  rejoiced  in  the  prospect  of  a 
speedy  admittance  into  the  mansions  of  glory.  She  did  on  one 
occasion  say,  '  I  did  not  think  I  was  come  to  Africa  to  die ; ' 
but  this  was  the  only  expression  of  the  kind  she  was  known  to 
utter :  generally,  in  the  midst  of  her  severest  paroxysms  of  suf- 
fering, her  language  was  that  of  resignation  to  the  Divine  will, 
and  of  praise  for  the  mercies  by  which  her  past  life  had  been 
marked,  and  the  consolations  by  which  she  was  supported." 
The  day  previous  to  her  death  she  said,  "  I  shall  be  in  heaven 
to-morrow."  These  were  the  last  sensible  words  she  uttered. 
She  died  on  Sunday  morning,  February  5th,  1837,  after  a  resi- 
dence in  Africa  of  only  three  weeks.  Her  remains  were  inter- 
red the  same  day  on  which  she  died,  attended  by  the  society 
and  others,  in  the  ground  appropriated  for  that  purpose. 

Peter  Harrop  was  a  native  of  Hadfield  in  the  Glossop  circuit, 
and  was  appointed  to  the  Gold-Coast  mission  by  the  Conference 
of  1836,  but  did  not  sail  till  the  17th  of  November ;  and,  owing 
to  an  unusually  long  passage,  he  did  not  arrive  there  till  the 
middle  of  the  following  January.  He  was  a  young  man  of  con- 
siderable native  energy  and  promise ;  but  almost  before  he  had 


416  WESTERN    COxVST    OF    AFRICA. 

thrust  his  sickle  into  the  harvest  ripening  before  him,  he  was 
called  away  to  be  no  more  seen  till  the  resurrection  of  the  just. 
He  had  no  apprehension  that  his  affliction  would  be  unto 
death  ;  but  he  was  not  unprepared  for  it :  he  expressed  himself 
as  happy  in  God ;  and  many  of  his  last  hours  were  occupied  in 
giving  utterance  to  the  feelings  of  his  heart,  which  overflowed 
with  gratitude  for  all  the  goodness  which  God  had  showed  to 
him.  "  Every  thing  was  done  that  the  skill  of  the  medical 
attendant  could  devise,  or  the  activity  of  his  attendants  accom- 
plish ;  but  it  was  all  in  vain.^'  His  Master  had  come  and 
called  for  him.  He  died  on  the  8th  of  February,  1837,  in  the 
thirtieth  year  of  his  age.  During  the  latter  part  of  his  illness 
he  was  delirious,  so  that  he  was  not  aware  that  his  dear  wife 
had  "  first  obtained  the  prize,^'  till  their  spirits  mingled  toge- 
ther in  the  skies  three  days  after ;  and  that  Mrs.  Wrigley  had 
only  just  preceded  him,  as  though  it  Avere  to  carry  the  news  to 
his  wife,  that  her  husband  was  coming  !  O  how  soon  did  these 
three  meet  again  ! 

"  And  what  a  joyful  meeting  there, 
In  robes  of  white  array'd  ! 
Palms  in  their  hands  they  now  all  bear, 
And  crowns  upon  their  head  I  " 

Mrs.  Wrigley,  who  also  expired  on  the  8th  of  February, 
only  "  a  few  minutes  before  Mr.  Harrop  breathed  his  last,'^  was 
a  woman  of  sincere  affection  and  genuine  piety,  and,  by  her 
attainments  and  Christian  spirit,  was  admirably^]adapted  for 
usefulness.  She  arrived  at  Cape-Coast  with  her  excellent  hus- 
band in  the  middle  of  September  of  the  preceding  year ;  and, 
deeply  affected  with  the  moral  degradation  of  the  female  sex, 
she  almost  immediately  collected  a  number  of  them  together,  to 
whom  she  gave  religious  instruction,  in  addition  to  a  school  of 
female  children,  which  she  had  under  her  care,  and  in  which 
she  took  great  delight.  Previous  to  her  illness,  referring  to  the 
Lord's  goodness,  in  the  partial  restoration  of  her  husband,  she 
said,  "  Now  that  the  Lord  has  given  you  unto  me  again,  vre 
will  give  ourselves  afresh  unto  him,  and  be  more  than  ever 
devoted  to  his  service."  In  this  state  of  mind  she  entered  on 
her  affliction,  which  had  been  superinduced  by  her  unfailing 
and  incessant  attentions  to  her  husband,  and  her  generous  and 
kind  assistance  to  her  newly-arrived  brother  and  sister;  for, 
notwithstanding  the  loss  of  rest  which  she  had  sustained  on 
account  of  Mr.  Wrigley's  illness,  "  during  the  Tuesday  evening 
she  arose  four  times  to  attend  to  the  wants  of  Mrs.  Harrop." 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  417 

Soon  after  tliis  she  was  attacked  M'ith  the  seasoning  fever. 
Durmg  the  progress  of  the  disease,  she  was  not  in  that  joyous 
state  which  generally  characterized  lier  experience  ;  and  on  one 
occasion  she  said,  "  I  beheve  I  shall  die,  and  I  do  not  feel  my 
confidence  in  God  so  strong  as  I  used  to  do ;  and  a  sense  of  my 
many  short-comings  and  unprofitableness  presses  down  my 
mind,  and  makes  me  feel  lovv."  Her  dear  husband  encouraged 
her  to  look  to  God,  and  she  soon  found  comfort.  On  the  day 
previous  to  her  death,  she  wandered  much ;  but  it  was  evident, 
even  in  her  wanderings,  that  the  work  of  God  and  his  high 
praises  occupied  her  mind.  At  one  time  she  repeated  those 
words  :  "  They  that  make  the  sacrifice  shall  gain  the  prize ;'' 
and  at  other  times  Avould  praise  the  Lord  aloud.  "  She  died 
with  the  composure  of  one  taking  rest  in  sleep,  at  half-past  six 
o'clock  "  in  the  morning. 

As  Mr.  Harrop  and  Mrs.  Wrigley  died  within  a  few  minutes 
of  each  other,  they  were  interred  at  the  same  time.  The  atten- 
tion and  sympathy  of  nearly  the  whole  town  were  excited  by 
such  an  unusual  and  unexpected  event ;  a  large  concourse  of 
people  attended  the  funeral,  many  of  whom  bore  visible  marks 
of  real  sorrow.  "  It  was  truly  affecting,''  writes  Mr.  Wrigley, 
"  to  behold  the  school-children,  weeping  at  the  grave  of  their 
beloved  mistress.  They  were  much  attached  to  her ;"  and  he 
then  adds  :  "  Blessed  indeed  are  the  dead  that  die  in  the  Lord. 
Haste,  happy  day,  that  shall  usher  me  into  the  heavenly  society, 
and  to  the  sight  of  her  whose  precious  memory  is  engraven  on 
my  bleeding  heart !  " 

"These  all  died  in  faith."  It  was  in  their  hearts  to  labour 
for  God ;  but  he  saw  it  best  to  take  them  to  an  early  reward, 
and  to  leave  the  work  to  others. 

Mr.  Wrigley  was  now  the  only  surviving  missionary  on  this 
station ;  and  nothing  but  the  consolations  of  religion  could  have 
sustained  him,  under  an  accumulation  of  losses  so  sudden  and 
severe.  But  "by  degrees,"  he  writes,  "I  have  begun  to 
resume  a  measure  of  restoration  from  a  state  which,  if  continued, 
would  soon  have  lodged  me  in  the  cold  embraces  of  the  tomb. 
Life,  indeed,  in  my  present  circiimstances,  has  no  charms ;  nor 
could  I  support  myself  beneath  the  weight  of  such  a  stroke, 
were  it  not  for  the  hope  of  ere  long  joining  the  glorified  spirit 
of  my  devoted  partner,  and,  in  the  mean  time,  of  following  up 
those  victories  of  the  cross  of  our  Emmanuel  which  together  we 
have  been  enabled  to  achieve  to  his  glory,  since  we  arrived  on 
these  inhospitable  shores."      In  the  same  letter  Mr.  Wrigley 

E    E 


418  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

says,  "I  am  keeping  the  school  together  as  well  as  I  can,  until 
you  send  further  help :  surely  others  will  be  found  to  occupy 
the  places  of  those  who  are  gone.  There  is  indeed  a  large  har- 
vest of  souls  waiting  to  be  gathered  in  here;  but  every  thing 
outwardly  seems  opposed  to  its  accomplishment :  nevertheless, 
I  will  not  despair,  I  will  yet  hope  to  see  better  days  in  Cape- 
Coast."  After  requesting  a  quantity  of  elementary  and  other 
books  for  the  schools,  which  were  much  wanted,  and  speaking 
of  several  openings  which  presented  themselves  where  they 
might  establish  others,  biit  that  he  could  "  not  stir  for  want  of 
books,"  he  once  more  renews  his  application  for  help,  as  follows  : 
"  I  have  also  again  to  urge  the  immediate  re-inforcement  of  the 
mission :  what  is  one  single  individual  among  so  many  ?  I  hope, 
notwithstanding  the  sad  news  which  these  sheets  will  communi- 
cate, that  others  will  be  found  to  fill  up  the  ranks,  and,  in  the 
spirit  of  one  now  slumbering  alongside  Harriet  Newell,  in  the 
Isle  of  France, — Sargent, — 'come  to  this  hell,  if  it  be  even  to  die 
here.'"  In  due  course  others  were  found,  who  freely  and 
nobly  offered  themselves  to  be  "  baptized  for  the  dead  "  in  this 
part  of  the  world. 

But  we  must  leave  Mr.  Wrigley  for  the  present,  and 
proceed  to  Sierra-Leone,  there  also  to  record  three  deaths, 
which  took  place  during  the  three  succeeding  months.  These 
were  Messrs.  INIaer,  Crosby,  and  Patterson,  Avho  all  died  of  the 
yellow  fever  which  was  just  then  raging  in  the  colony,  and 
which  soon  extended  along  a  considerable  line  of  the  coast, 
carrying  off  a  great  number  of  Europeans  at  most  of  the 
settlements.  But  as  we  shall  have  occasion  to  speak  of  this 
again  ere  long,  we  proceed  to  our  melancholy  task  of  giving 
biographical  sketches  of  those  missionaries  who  had  already 
fallen. 

Edward  Maer,  who  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone  in  the  latter 
part  of  1832,  and  who  had  therefore  been  in  Africa  upwards  of 
four  years,  was  a  zealous,  devoted,  and  successful  missionary. 
He  was  appointed  to  this  station  at  his  own  special  request. 
The  origin  and  manner  of  his  offer  is  interesting.  A  respected 
brother  minister,  now  in  England,  but  who  has  spent  several 
years  in  the  mission  work,  has  kindly  furnished  me  with  the 
following  particulars  on  this  subject.  He  says,  "  I  v/ish  I  could 
depict  to  you  the  spirit  evinced,  as  well  as  give  you  correctly  the 
language  employed,  by  Edward  Maer,  when  he  offered  himself 
for  Western  Africa.  It  was  in  October,  1831,  that  we  stood  side 
by  side  for  examination  before  the  Missionary  Committee.     We 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  419 

had  been  associated  together  for  a  few  days  previously.  I 
admired  the  man.  In  my  view,  he  was  just  what  a  missionary 
ought  to  be.  When  asked,  in  the  course  of  examination,  whe- 
ther he  had  a  preference  for  any  particular  part  of  the  world, 
he  replied,  with  deep  feeling,  and  in  a  spirit  of  moral  heroism, 
that  Western  Africa  was  laid  upon  his  heart.  He  had  been 
reading  some  recent  communications  from  the  Church  mission- 
aries in  that  part :  they  were  mourning  the  loss  of  brethren 
whom  that  deadly  chme  had  swept  away,  and  whose  places  had 
not  only  remained  vacant,  but  were  likely  to  remain  so,  no  can- 
didates offering  for  that  hazardous  post.  The  surviving  bre- 
thren strongly  appealed  as  to  whether  Western  Africa  were  not 
included  in  the  Saviour's  commission,  and  whether  none  were 
wilhng  to  hazard  their  lives  there  in  obedience  to  that  commis- 
sion. Maer  felt  the  full  force  of  that  appeal,  and  not  only 
willingly  offered,  but  urged  that  he  might  be  appointed  to  that 
sphere  of  labour.  He  was  appointed  accordingly."  From 
extracts  of  letters  from  Mr.  Maer,  already  before  the  reader  in 
this  volume,  it  will  be  seen  that  his  missionary  zeal  did  not  flag 
when  he  reached  the  warm  shores  of  Western  Africa,  but  that 
he  laboured  on,  year  after  year,  and  was  rendered  eminently 
useful  in  the  extension  and  consolidation  of  that  important  mis- 
sion. Having  made  arrangements  to  visit  his  native  country, 
with  the  full  intention  of  returning  to  Africa  at  an  early  opportu- 
nity, he  embarked  for  that  purpose  on  Good-Friday,  March 
34th.  The  estimation  in  which  he  was  held  was  indicated  b}'' 
the  fact,  that  a  great  number  of  the  natives  accompanied  him  to 
the  ship,  and  took  leave  of  him  with  many  tears.  On  the  day 
after  his  embarkation  he  complained  of  being  indisposed,  yet 
spoke  of  preaching  to  the  crew  on  the  following  day.  But  his 
labours  were  at  an  end :  the  disease  proceeded  with  such  rapid- 
ity, that  he  exchanged  mortality  for  life  early  on  the  Monday 
morning,  March  27th,  1837,  in  the  thirty-fourth  year  of  his 
age,  and  the  fifth  of  his  ministry.     He  was  buried  at  sea. 

Benjamin  Crosby  was  a  man  of  more  than  ordinary  piety 
and  devotedness  to  God.  He  was  born  at  Beckingham,  in  the 
Newark  circuit,  in  the  year  1807;  and  lived  for  some  time 
during  his  )^outli  in  the  employ  of  the  late  Daniel  Webb,  Esq., 
of  the  same  place.  When  about  twenty-two  years  of  age,  he 
was  awakened  to  a  sense  of  his  lost  condition  as  a  sinner,  under 
the  ministry  of  the  late  P^ev.  John  Smith,  at  Bassingham,  and, 
soon  after,  at  a  prayer-meeting,  found  peace  with  God.  He 
afterwards  removed  to  Auborne,  in  the  Lincoln  circuit,  where 

2  E  2 


420  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

lie  began  to  preacli ;  and  having  acted  for  some  time  as  a  local 
preacher^  with  great  zeal  and  success,  constrained  by  the  love 
of  Christ  and  a  yearning  pity  for  souls,  he  offered  himself  for 
the  work  of  the  ministry  in  Heathen  lands.    "  At  the  quarterly- 
meeting  which  recommended  him,  he  was  spoken  of  as  a  most 
diligent  and  conscientious  farm-servant,  as  a  man  mighty  in 
prayer,  and  as  full  of  zeal  for  the  glory  of  God  and  the  salvation 
of  souls. ^^     About  this  time  he  was  received  as  an  inmate  in  the 
family  of  Mr.  Thomas  Bainbridge,  of  Lincoln,  who  has  kindly 
furnished  the  writer  with  the  following  interesting  particulars. 
Mr.  Bainbridge   says,    "  While  under   my   roof,  he  anxiously 
improved  himself  in  writing,  arithmetic,  and  English.     He  had 
received  little  early  instruction,  and  was  very  desirous  to  supply 
this   deficiency,  especially  in   regard  to  his  knowledge  of  the 
vernacular  language.     His  experience  of  the  things  of  God  was 
deep   and  clear.      His  practice  was  to   rise  for   prayer   about 
midnight :  at  these  times  he  often  had  seasons  of  special  mani- 
festation,  and   overwhelmings  of    Divine    power.     He   walked 
closely  with  God,   enjoying    rich  and    holy  communion.     His 
inward    devotion   sustained   his    energy   in   public.      Whether 
praying   or  preaching,  he   poured  forth  the  fulness  of  a  soul 
inflamed    with  Divine    love.      His    preaching    was    generally 
attended  with  manifest  good.     Like  his  friend,  John  Hunt,  he 
had  drunk  deeply  into  the  spirit  of  the  late  John  Smith.     His 
appeals  to  the  consciences  of  sinners  were  like  thunder,  while 
with   tenderness    and   pathos  he  directed  the  penitent  to  the 
cross,  holding  forth  the  freeness  and  sufficiency  of  Christ  to 
save  all  that  believe.     In  my  then  large  establishment,  I  felt  it 
a  privilege  to  have  a  man  of  so  much  piety,  prayer,  and  con- 
sistency under  my  roof.     The  tone  of  his  piety  was  felt  by  all, 
yet  he  was  beloved  by  all." 

Having  remained  with  Mr.  Bainbridge  about  three  months, 
who  had  previously  "  known  him  as  a  most  devoted  and  upright 
Christian,  and  a  zealous  and  useful  local  preacher,"  he  was 
called  out  as  a  supply  in  the  Horucastle  circuit,  where  he 
remained  until  he  was  sent  for  by  the  Missionary  Committee, 
and  then  proceeded  to  Sierra-Leone.  We  have,  in  the  preceding 
chapter,  more  than  once  referred  to  the  labours  of  Mr.  Crosby 
in  that  colony  :  further  communications  from  him  while  there 
may  be  found  in  the  eighth  volume  of  the  "  Missionary  Notices," 
pages  168,  257,  462.  All  the  energies  of  his  body  and  mind  were 
thrown  into  the  great  work  of  saving  souls  from  sin  and  death. 
His  spirit  was  stirred  within  him  when  he  saw  the  people  in 
various  parts  of  the  colony  wholly  given  up  to  idolatry.     The 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  421 

fervour  of  his  zeal  was  manifest  in  the  excessive  labours  which 
he  undertook,  by  frequent  travelling  and  preaching,  and  visit- 
ing from  house  to  house.  In  one  of  the  last  communications 
which  he  addressed  to  the  committee,  a  short  time  previous 
to  his  death,  he  gave  some  extracts  from  his  journal,  that 
they  might  "learn  how  he  spent  his  time,  and  also  see  the 
necessity  of  sending  men  to  this  colony  that  both  can  and 
will  labour  for  the  salvation  of  immortal  souls  j  men  who 
will  '  scorn  their  feeble  flesh  to  spare,^  and  not  even  count  their 
lives  dear  unto  them  for  the  name  of  Jesus."  In  this  spirit 
Mr.  Crosby  lived  and  laboured ;  nor  could  any  persuasion 
induce  him  to  relax  his  successful  efforts  for  the  salvation  of 
those  around  him,  whilst  any  physical  strength  remained.  On 
Wednesday,  April  19th,  he  attended  to  his  ordinary  duties,  and 
preached  in  the  evening  with  his  usual  energy  ;  but  before 
morning  he  was  seized  with  the  prevailing  epidemic,  which 
baffled  the  skill  of  the  physician,  and  which  rendered  him  almost 
incapable  of  conversation.  To  the  question,  however,  "  Have 
you  a  bright  prospect  beyond  the  grave?"  he  distinctly,  and 
with  emphasis,  replied,  "  I  have."  He  died  in  peace  on  the 
24th  of  April,  1837,  in  the  twenty-ninth  year  of  his  age,  and 
the  third  of  his  missionary  labours,  deeply  lamented  by  his 
brethren,  and  many  scores  to  whom  his  ministry  had  proved 
"  the  savour  of  life  unto  life." 

James  Patterson,  the  third  missionary  who  fell  a  victim  to 
the  yellow  fever  on  this  station,  during  this  unusually  unhealthy 
season,  was  brought  to  a  saving  knowledge  of  the  truth  at 
Lynn,  in  Norfolk,  in  the  eighteenth  year  of  his  age ;  and  from 
that  period  felt  an  ardent  desire  to  make  known  the  blessings 
of  salvation  to  the  benighted  Heathen.  After  labouring  as  a 
local  preacher  in  the  Lynn  and  Great  Q,ueen-street  circuits  for 
several  years,  he  was  appointed  by  the  Missionary  Committee 
in  1836  to  Sierra-Leone.  He,  together  with  Mrs.  Patterson, 
sailed  for  that  place  on  the  Gth  of  September,  on  board  the 
"William  and  Alfred,"  and,  after  a  pleasant  voyage  of  five 
weeks  and  two  days,  arrived  at  their  destination  in  good  health. 
But  they  were  not  permitted  long  to  labour  in  this  interesting 
part  of  the  mission  field.  Mrs.  Patterson  escaped  the  malignant 
disease  which  broke  out  soon  after  their  arrival;  but  not  so  her 
dear  husband.  Mr.  Patterson,  on  the  14th  day  of  May  follow- 
ing, Avas  seized  with  it,  and  at  the  end  of  a  week  he  sank  under 
its  incurable  violence.  During  his  short  iUness,  his  mind  was 
kept  in  perfect  peace.     When  he  had  lost  the  power  of  speech, 


422  WESTEllN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

he  was  asked  to  raise  liis  hand  if  he  experienced  a  foretaste  of 
future  glory ;  immediately  he  lifted  up  his  hands,  and,  without 
a  struggle  or  a  groan,  fell  asleep  in  Jesus,  on  the  21st  of  May, 
1837,  in  the  twenty-fifth  year  of  his  age,  and  after  a  residence 
in  the  colony  of  little  more  than  seven  months.  Soon  after 
this,  Mrs.  Patterson  returned  to  England. 

An  account  of  these  afSictive  and  sad  scenes  of  mortality 
arrived  in  England  in  rapid  succession;  and  they  were 
announced  in  the  "Missionary  Notices"  for  August,  under  the 
head  of  "  Death  of  Missionaries  in  Western  Africa."  After 
speaking  of  each  missionary  separately,  in  suitable  terms,  and 
with  the  deepest  sorrow  regretting  their  loss,  the  article  closes 
as  follows : — 

These  afflictive  events  are  painfully  trj'ing  to  the  faith  and  hope  of  the  church  ; 
but  they  are  not  to  be  regarded  as  forbidcUng  further  attempts  for  the  conversion 
of  the  inhabitants  of  that  fatal  clime.  Many  hundreds  of  immortal  souls  have 
been  brought  to  a  knowledge  of  salvation,  and  to  the  enjoyment  of  eternal  life,  by 
means  of  the  missions  in  which  these  and  other  precious  lives  have  been  sacrificed ; 
a  result  which  Christian  faith  discovers  to  be  worth  all  the  risk  and  loss ;  and  even 
had  the  success  been  less  evident,  while  the  apostolic  spirit  remains  in  the  church, 
men  will  be  raised  up  who  will  "  count  not  their  lives  dear  to  themselves,"  "  that 
they  may  preach  among  the  Gentiles  the  imsearchable  riches  of  Christ."  But 
whilst  we  give  expression  to  these  sentiments,  which  ai'C  drawn  from  us  by  the 
afflictive  events  now  recorded,  we  most  earnestly  call  on  all  the  friends  of  missions 
— on  the  Vihole  church — to  unite  with  us  in  earnest  prayer  to  Him,  in  wdiose  hands 
are  life  and  death,  to  throw  the  shield  of  his  protection  around  our  missionaries, 
and  to  spare  and  long  continue  their  useful  lives.  Nor  will  they  forget  to  implore 
consolation  and  support  for  the  surviving  missionaries  in  "Western  Africa,  and  for 
the  immediate  connexions  of  our  lamented  friends  in  this  country,  from  among 
whom  they  went  out ;  and  to  pray  that  the  bereaved  chiu-ches  at  Sierra-Leone, 
and  at  Cape-Coast,  may  be  kept  and  edified,  and  ultimately  provided  with  pastors 
equal  in  zeal  and  love  to  those  whose  loss  we  now  deplore. 

When  this  excellent  and  very  appropriate  paragraph  was 
penned,  neither  the  committee  nor  the  general  secretaries  had 
heard  of  the  last  death  we  have  narrated,  nor  of  one  or  two 
others  that  took  place  shortly  afterwards,  and  which  it  will  be 
our  painful  duty  to  place  upon  record.  But  it  Avill  be  a  relief 
to  the  reader,  and  undoubtedly  one  to  the  writer,  too,  if  he  will 
accompany  me  to  Macarthy's  Island,  during  a  short  interval, 
from  these  mournful  stories. 

It  may  be  recollected,  that  we  closed  the  last  chapter  at 
jMacarthy's  Island,  on  the  first  day  of  tlie  new  year,  Avliere  the 
writer  tlien  was.  The  "rumours  of  war"  then  mentioned  soon 
broke   out  into  a  series  of  plundering   expeditions,   the   chief 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  423 

object  being  to  obtain  slaves.  A  brief  account  of  those  disturb- 
ances, which  took  place  at  this  time  and  subsequently,  in  the 
immediate  neighbourhood  of  Macarthy's  Island,  we  have  given 
in  the  sixth  chapter  of  this  work,  while  describing  the  crying 
evils  of  the  Slave-Trade.  The  writer  was  an  eye-witness  to 
some  of  the  desolations  perpetrated  by  these  marauding  bandits. 
In  the  first  of  those  communications,  dated  March  13th,  1837, 
the  reader  will  find,  that  in  his  visit  to  Jamalli,  on  the  north 
side  of  the  river,  he  beheld  the  ruins  of  two  towns  that  had 
been  destroyed,  whilst  from  a  third  the  inhabitants  had  all  fled, 
and  not  a  soul  was  to  be  seen.  This  was  on  the  25th  of 
January ;  and  the  following  fact  connected  with  that  visit  will 
illustrate  the  goodness  and  providence  of  God,  and  also  exhibit" 
in  a  striking  light  the  constant  alarm  and  dread  in  which  the 
inhabitants  on  this  continent  are  kept,  by  the  frequency  of 
these  plundering  expeditions  : — 

Here  I  cannot  but  record  the  goodness  of  God  in  preserving  me  and  my 
assistant,  John  Cupidon,  from  sudden  death.  On  the  way  to  these  places,  we  met 
several  Foulahs,  who  were  gathering  in  the  produce  of  the  last  rains,  and  carrying  it 
to  Macarthy's  Island  for  safety ;  but  on  seeing  or  hearing  our  horses,  they  imme- 
diately ran  into  the  bush,  and  hid  tlicmselves,  supposing  we  were  the  war  people 
coming  upon  them  again.  Finding  this  to  be  the  case  several  times,  Cupidon  and 
the  last  Foulah  man  whom  we  met,  and  who,  on  seeing  us,  knew  us,  were  both  of 
opinion  that  it  was  dangerous  to  proceed,  as  there  were  only  a  few  people  collecting- 
in  the  harvest,  and  if  they  saw  us  or  our  horses,  would  probably  shoot  us  before 
they  could  know,  or  we  could  tell  them,  who  we  were.  Cupidon  had  stated  this  to 
me  before,  so  that  I  now  judged  it  prudent  to  ask  the  Foulah  to  accompany  us, 
that  when  his  town's-people  saw  him  with  us,  they  might  have  no  cause  to  fear. 
The  man  very  readily  returned  with  us ;  and  we  proceeded  very  cautiously  till  we 
reached  the  town,  when,  after  looking  about  a  little,  we  sat  down  under  a  bentang, 
when,  lo !  just  behind  us  were  three  or  four  Foulahs,  in  the  corn  and  cotton  field, 
who  seeing  our  horses,  and  supposing  we  were  come  for  more  plunder,  one  of 
them  was  just  in  the  act  of  aiming  at  either  me  or  Cupidon  with  his  gun; 
though  I  suppose  it  was  at  me,  as  I  was  nearest  to  him,  and  with  my  back  that  way. 
Just  at  this  crisis,  he  ^leurcl  the  man  who  had  kindly  accompanied  us  speaking,  and, 
knowing  his  voice,*  withdrew  his  aim,  and  called  out,  Jumali  be  je  ?  "  Who  is 
there  ?"  The  man  immediately  replied,  Tobaba  fodey  bcjong:  "  The  white  minister 
is  here."  I  turned  round  and  saw  these  Foulahs  coming  from  behind  a  large  taba- 
tree,  not  many  yards  from  us  ;  and  one  of  them  was  then  in  the  act  of  priming  his 
gun !  This  was  a  narrow  escape  ;  and  with  gratitude  to  the  Father  of  all  my 
mercies,  I  felt  the  full  force  of  that  precious  text,  applicable  to  all  God's  chddren, 
but  which  was  addressed  originally  to  missionaries,  "  But  even  the  very  hairs  of 
your  head  are  all  nund)ered."  (Luke  xii.  7.) 

The  effects  of  the  late  rains  had,  however,  now  subsided,  and 
this  vi'as  what  is  called  the  best  part  of  the  dry  season ;  and  the 

*  I  had  hold  of  my  pony's  bridle,  and  this  man  was  giving  it  a  part  of  a  water- 
melon, and,  as  he  was  stooping,  the  horse  prevented  him  from  being  ^een. 


424  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

author,  being  once  more  in  the  possession  of  health,  endeavoured 
to  shoAv  his  gratitude  to  God  for  that  precious  boon,  by  devoting 
the  best  energies  of  his  body  and  soul  to  his  glorious  cause. 
The  peculiarity  of  the  Foulah  mission,  having  more  of  temporal 
and  secular  matters  connected  with  it  than  our  missions  in 
general,  demanded,  in  fact,  more  strength  than  he  could  exert. 
For,  in  addition  to  the  ministerial  office  which  he  sustained  at 
Macarthy's  Island,  with  frequent  preaching,  pastoral  duties, 
marrying,  baptizing,  visiting  the  sick  and  dying,  and  burying 
the  dead,  (there  being  no  other  missionary  or  chaplain  on  the 
island,)  he  had  to  direct  and  superintend  a  number  of  mecha- 
nics, being  architect  and  builder  too;  besides  which,  he  had,  on 
the  six  hundred  acres  of  land,  fifty,  sixty,  and  sometimes 
seventy,  day-labourers,  and  at  one  time  a  hundred  and  three, 
preparing  it  for  cultivation,  with  about  as  many  head  of  cattle : 
he  was  also  frequently  called  to  settle  disputes  between  the 
natives,  and  had  to  act  as  an  arbitrator,  or  a  kind  of  magistrate ; 
and  no  small  time  was  occupied  in  dispensing  medicine  to  per- 
sons who  applied  for  it,  either  for  themselves  or  for  their 
friends.  He  had,  likewise,  frequent  and  long  conversations 
with  many  of  the  Foulahs  who  paid  a  temporary  visit  to  the 
island,  upon  the  subject  of  their  locating  themselves  on  the 
mission-ground ;  and  he  made  several  visits  to  the  main-land, 
both  on  the  north  and  south  sides  of  the  river,  having  inter- 
views Avitli  the  native  kings,  and  other  leading  men,  and  espe- 
cially with  the  "wandering  Foulahs,"  with  the  same  object  in 
view.  He  also  took  two  or  three  journeys  into  the  interior. 
Early  in  this  year  he  proceeded  to  Madina,  the  capital  of 
Woolli;  and  the  following  year  he  went  as  far  as  Boollibany, 
the  royal  residence  of  the  almamy  of  Bondou.  In  this  way  his 
time  was  occupied  for  several  years,  with  not  unfrequent  inter- 
ruptions from  sickness,  and  occasional  and  necessary  visits 
Avliich  he  paid  to  St.  Mary's,  on  the  death  of  his  brethren,  or  on 
other  matters  of  important  business. 

From  this  brief  abstract  it  will  be  seen,  that,  in  addition  to 
the  combination  of  offices  which  he  sustained,  he  Avas  a  kind  of 
ambassador-general  to  most  of  the  petty  chiefs  and  kings  for 
some  hundreds  of  miles,  east,  west,  north,  and  south  of  Macar- 
thy's Island,  But  wherever  he  went,  he  did  not  forget  the  first 
and  great  object  of  his  mission, — "  man  ruined  by  tlie  fall,  and 
his  redemption  by  Christ;"  and  endeavoured,  as  much  as  in 
him  lay,  to  "  preach  the  gospel  to  every  creature." 

His  unpublished  journal,  letters,  and  other  documents,  Avould 
furnish  some  interesting  particulars,   on  most   of  the  subjects 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERKA-LEONE.  425 

alluded  to;  but  he  finds  this  volume  has  already  reached  a 
size  beyond  which  he  did  not  anticipate  it  would  extend ;  and 
he  must  therefore  for  the  future  greatly  abridge,  or  entirely  pass 
over,  many  parts  of  his  own  personal  narrative,  and  confine 
himself  to  a  few  prominent  features  of  the  mission.  Some 
account,  however,  of  his  journey  to  Bondou  will  probably  be 
given  in  its  proper  place. 

Early  in  the  month  of  June,  1837,  he  accompanied  John 
Cupidon  to  St.  Mary's,  to  attend  the  sessions,  in  order  to  obtain 
at  least  restitution  for  mission-property,  so  wantonly  destroyed 
upwards  of  twelve  mouths  ago ;  but  the  defendant  being  absent 
from  the  colony,  nothing  was  done  for  us  at  that  time.  One  of 
the  soldiers  from  J\Iacarthy's  Island  was  at  this  period  found 
guilty  of  murder,  and  was  condemned  to  be  hanged.  This 
being  the  first  case  of  the  kind  since  the  formation  of  the  settle- 
ment, it  occasioned  considerable  excitement  in  the  colon}',  espe- 
cially among  the  natives.  Some  of  our  pious  members  visited 
the  condemned  criminal  in  the  jail,  as  did  Mr.  "Wilkinson  and 
myself.  For  some  time  he  appeared  quite  unconcerned  at  his 
awful  situation,  but  at  length  saw  and  felt  it  most  deeply,  and 
earnestly  requested  us  to  repeat  our  visits.  On  Sunday  morn- 
ing, the  18th,  before  going  to  Barra,  I  saw  him,  and  in  the 
afternoon  preached  in  the  jail-yard,  to  all  the  prisoners,  and  a 
arge  congregation  of  natives,  the  sheriff  and  several  other 
Europeans  being  present.  My  text  w  as  Romans  vi.  23  :  "  The 
wages  of  sin  is  death.''  After  describing  the  nature  of  sin,  with 
some  of  its  effects,  I  more  particularly  referred  to  the  unhapp}^ 
man  who  was  about  to  suffer  temporal  death  for  the  heinous 
sin  of  murder ;  which  sentence,  awful  as  it  was,  was  just  and 
consistent,  both  with  the  laws  of  God  and  man :  but  this  was 
not  all;  death  eternal,  or  everlasting  misery,  will  be  the  portion 
of  every  unpardoned  sinner.  The  unhappy  culprit  was  beyond 
the  reach  of  human  forgiveness ;  the  sentence  passed  upon  his 
body  could  not  be  reversed :  he  must  die,  and  that  in  a  few 
hours.  After  dwelling  upon  the  awfulness  of  his  situation,  I 
referred  to  the  latter  part  of  the  text :  "  The  gift  of  God  is  eter- 
nal life  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord."  The  poor  condemned 
man's  situation,  and  the  position  which  he  occupied  during  the 
sermon,  were  peculiar ;  for  he  was  inside  the  jail,  looking  at, 
and  listening  to,  the  preacher  from  a  window  of  iron  bars, 
Avhich  was  about  twelve  feet  from  the  ground,  and,  being  very 
near,  he  forcibly  reminded  me  of  the  dying  thief  upon  the  cross. 
Towards  the  close,  turning  to  this  "  other  malefactor,"  I  offered 
him,  in  the  name  of  Jesus,  the  "  gift  of  God," — a   free    and 


426  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

full  pardon  here,  with  "eternal  life^'  hereafter.  It  was  an 
affecting  time.  During  the  service  that  awfully  solemn  hymn 
was  sung : — 

"  Terrible  thought !  shall  I  alone, 
Who  may  be  saved,  shall  I, 
Of  all,  alas  !  whom  I  haA'e  known, 
Through  sin  for  ever  die  ? " 

I  felt  considerable  liberty  in  warning  the  multitude,  and  in 
exhorting  the  poor  sinner  to  look  to  Calvary,  and,  during 
the  last  prayer,  he  shouted  out,  "  Glory  to  God !  Glory  to 
God!" 

In  the  evening,  after  preaching  at  the  chapel,  I  went  again  to 
the  jail,  and  also  the  next  morning  at  break  of  day ;  when  I 
found  the  prisoner  had  been  on  his  knees  most  of  the  night,  but 
was  from  the  preceding  afternoon  quite  resigned  to  die.  A  few 
minutes  before  eight  o'clock  Mr.  Wilkinson  and  myself  accom- 
panied him  to  the  scaffold,  and  there  again  prayed  with  and  for 
him.  The  military,  militia,  and  many  of  the  inhabitants  had 
assembled  in  front  of  the  jail.  It  was  an  awful  scene :  in  a  few 
minutes  the  drop  fell,  and  a  deathless  spirit  was  launched  into 
eternity.  We  had  hope,  however,  in  his  death ;  and  on  return- 
ing to  the  mission-house,  that  passage  was  the  subject  of  medi- 
tation, "  Wherefore  He  is  able  also  to  save  them  to  the  utter- 
most that  come  unto  God  by  Him,  seeing  He  ever  livetli  to 
make  intercession  for  them."   (Heb.  vii.  25.) 

A  few  days  after  this,  the  author  returned  to  his  station,  and 
the  following  letters,  besides  some  account  of  the  mission,  will 
give  the  reader  an  idea  of  the  epidemic  before  alluded  to,  Avhich 
had  just  then  reached  as  far  north  as  the  Gambia.  They 
appeared  in  the  "  Missionary  Notices  "  towards  the  close  of  the 
year,  with  a  short  preface,  as  usual : — 

MISSIONS    IN    WESTERN    AFRICA. 

The  following  letters  from  Western  Africa  wiU  call  forth  the  sympathy  and 
prayers  of  our  readers,  on  behalf  of  those  who  have  been  called  to  labour  in  the 
work  and  cause  of  Christ  amidst  suiTounding  pestilence  and  death.  We  regret  to 
add  that  there  is  too  much  reason  to  believe  that  the  excellent  writer  of  the  second 
of  these  letters,  the  Rev.  H.  Wilkinson,  has  fallen  a  victim  to  the  prevailing 
epidemic.  The  details  of  this  sad  bereavement  have  not  yet  reached  us,  but  may 
possibly  amve  in  time  for  our  Postscript. 

Macarthy's  Island. — Extract  of  a  Letter  from  the  Rev.  JVilUam  Fox, 
dated  August  \Oth  and  Voth,  1837. 

1  WROTE  to  you  last  from  St.  ?.Iary's,  on  the  24th  of  June,  and,  amongst  other 
subjects,  gave  you  some  account  of  the  serious  sickness  with  which  we  were  threat- 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  427 

ened.  Dr.  Tebbs  died  a  few  days  after  the  above-mentioned  date,  and  I  believe 
two  or  three  more  European  sailors  from  the  "  Curlew  "  have  died  since  ;  l)ut  I  am 
hajjpy  to  say  that  the  malignant  epidemic  has  considerably,  if  not  altogether,  sub- 
sided, at  least,  for  the  ])resent.  I  say  for  the  present,  because  it  is  generally 
supposed  that  it  will,  in  a  short  time,  and  in  a  still  worse  type,  be  conveyed  to  the 
Gambia  by  or  through  the  atmospliere.  This  is  inferred  from  the  fact  that  an 
epidemic  somewhat  similar  has  broken  out  on  the  coast  about  once  in  six  or  seven 
years  for  many  years  past ;  and  on  those  occasions,  both  at  Sierra-Leone,  the 
Gambia,  Goree,  and  other  places,  the  mortality  amongst  Europeans  has  been  very 
great.  From  Sierra-Leone  we  have  had  no  direct  communication  for  some  time. 
A  vessel  left  there  about  the  30th  of  June,  bound  for  England,  which  was  wrecked 
somewhere  about  Cape  Roxo ;  and  I  understand  some  of  the  sailors  have  reached 
St.  Mary's,  who  state  that  the  mortality  there  is  still  very  great,  so  much  so,  that 
in  Free-Town  there  is  scarcely  a  white  person  to  be  seen.  This  statement  may  be 
somewhat  exaggerated  ;  but  that  it  has  been,  and  still  is,  very  serious  there,  there 
can  be  but  little  doubt.  However,  it  may  take  a  different  course  to  that  of  north, 
or,  by  the  breath  of  Omnipotence,  may  be  blown  into  nonentity ;  but  at  present 
this  is  only  known  to  Him  to  whom  all  contingencies  are  perfectly  famihar,  and 
who,  we  know,  "  is  too  wise  to  err,  and  too  good  to  be  unkind." 

Our  doctor  here  has  gone  out  in  the  "  Curlew  "  man-of-war,  (which  lost  its 
doctor,  two  or  three  other  officers,  and  many  of  its  crew,)  till  they  meet  with  the 
admiral,  or  by  some  means  obtain  a  surgeon  ;  so  that  we  are  at  present,  and  shall 
probably  be  so  for  some  months  yet,  without  medical  aid  on  this  island.  xV  medi- 
cal gentleman  from  a  man-of-war,  which  happened  to  be  at  St.  Mary's,  from  the 
West  Indies,  is  acting  as  colonial  doctor  there,  and  will  probably  be  appointed. 

I  have  recently  been  ill  for  a  few  days  with  rather  a  smart  bilious  fever  ;  but  am 
now,  thank  the  Lord,  in  the  possession  of  good  health. 

I  have  nothing  particular  to  report  in  reference  to  the  cause  of  God  here.  I 
would  that  I  could  see  better  days.  I  have  some  good  seasons  in  "  preaching 
Christ  to  the  people  ; "  our  Sunday-morning  congregations  are  generally  very  good  > 
and  on  other  occasions  I  am  sometimes  led  to  sing, — 

"  The  little  cloud  increases  still. 
The  heavens  are  big  with  rain." 

But  we  have  scarcely  as  yet  obtained  the  "  rill,"  much  less  the  "  stream,"  or  the 
"  torrent."  May  the  blessed  God  undertake  his  own  cause,  and,  in  this  distant 
part  of  the  moral  wilderness,  send  us  prosperity  ! 

The  enlargement  and  improvement  of  the  mission-house  and  premises  are  at 
length  finished ;  and  heartily  glad  I  am,  I  can  assure  you.  Besides  these,  and  the 
house  and  chapel  at  Fattota,  I  have  built  for  John  Cupidon  a  respectable  native 
house,  contiguous  to  the  mission-house,  which,  with  the  expenses  of  the  mission- 
gronnd,  and  near  one  huncbed  head  of  cattle,  will  account  for  the  heavy  amount  for 
which  I  have  drawn  on  the  treasurers  of  late.  I  have  now  employed,  on  the  six 
hundred  acres,  about  seventy  people,  on  the  best  parts  of  which  they  are  growing 
rice,  corn,  and  ground-nuts,  also  a  small  portion  of  Indian  corn,  millet,  indigo,  and 
cotton.  All  promise  very  Avell,  excepting  the  rice,  which  I  fear  is  the  fault  of  the 
seed,  as  the  rains  are  now  regularly  set  in.  I  have,  however,  obtained  some  fresh, 
and  I  hope  to  obtain  a  moderate  quantity  of  this  useful  article  of  chet.  On  the 
larger  portion  of  the  mission-ground  there  is  a  sort  of  creek  or  lake,  which,  during 
the  rains,  and  for  some  time  afterwards,  is  rpiitc  unfordable.  I  am  therefore  build- 
ing a  substantial  wooden  bridge  across   this,  in  a  parallel  with  a  direct  or  straight 


428  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

road,  which  I  have  already  made  thus  far.  This  bridge,  being  about  two  hundred 
feet  long,  will  cost  a  few  dollars,  or  rather  a  few  pounds ;  but  it  is  essential  and 
absolutely  necessary  ;  and  I  have  no  doubt,  when  finished,  will  last  many  years.  A 
sketch  of  the  mission-house  and  premises,  with  the  particulars  of  what  has  been  done, 
I  will  forward  you  at  the  close  of  the  year,  if  spared.  I  may,  however,  by  this 
opportunity  just  observe,  that  the  house  is  now  substantial,  comfortable,  capacious, 
and  considerably  adds  to  the  respectability  of  the  place ;  and  that,  since  the  rains 
commenced,  I  have  been  rearing  young  fruit-trees,  and  transplanting  others  of  different 
kinds  from  the  island  and  main-land,  which  will  give  to  the  premises  a  nu-al  aspect, 
and,  in  the  course  of  a  few  years,  make  the  house  and  yard  much  cooler. 

A  chapel  will,  doubtless,  be  wanted  ere  long ;  indeed,  it  would  be  much  more 
comfortable  if  we  had  one  now.  On  our  present  premises  there  is  just  room 
enough ;  but  as  the  lot  adjoining  the  south-east  end  of  our  premises  is  offered  for 
sale,  I  would  strongly  recommend  its  being  purchased,  as  probably  another  oppor- 
tunity of  this  kind  may  not  occur  for  many  years,  if  ever,  as  the  front  lots,  in  parti- 
cular, are  becoming  valuable,  and  several  of  the  merchants  are  building  substantial 
stone  houses.  Two  hundred  dollars  are  asked  for  this  lot,  with  a  large  native 
house,  or  rather  store,  of  cane  and  grass,  which  is  worth  seventy  or  eighty  dollars. 
If  you  approve  of  this  lot  being  purchased,  [  possibly  may  exchange  it  for  the  one 
on  the  opposite  end  of  the  mission  premises,  which  is  a  corner  lot,  and  which 
would  answer  still  better  for  a  chapel ;  but  the  possibility  is,  that  the  lot  in  ques- 
tion may  be  sold  before  I  can  hear  from  you,  and  in  that  case  what  am  I  to  do  ? 
If  I  find  it  is  likely  to  get  into  other  hands,  I  shall  probably  venture  to  purchase 
it ;  and  if  you  do  not  approve  of  it,  I  must  try  to  sell  it  again.  I  have  really 
expended  so  much  money  on  this  station,  that  I  have  not  unfi'equently  been  very 
uneasy,  lest  you  should  disapprove  of  any  thing  I  may  have  done  for  the  benefit 
and  future  w'clfare  of  this  mission.  The  repairs  and  buildings  are  now  all  finished ; 
but,  as  mentioned  before,  I  am  still  proceeding  with  the  mission -ground,  which,  of 
course,  is  not  a  little  expensive.  In  all  that  I  have  done,  I  have  been  as  economical 
as  possible. 

P.S.  August  loth. — So  imcertain  is  health  in  this  cUme,  that  though  on  the 
10  th  inst.  I  was  well,  yet  a  few  hours  after  I  had  written  the  above,  I  was  attacked 
with  fever,  which  continued,  more  or  less,  for  three  days.  Yesterday  I  was  better, 
and  to-day  I  am,  thank  God,  better  still ;  and  I  liope,  in  another  day  or  two,  again 
to  be  in  the  jjossession  of  the  invaluable  blessing  of  good  health. 

On  the  11th  inst.,  I  received  letters  from  St.  Mary's,  and  am  sorry  to  say,  that 
either  the  epidemical  disease,  or  black  vomit,  had  not  so  totally  subsided  as  I  had 
been  led  to  expect,  or  that  it  has  broken  out  afresh.  Several  of  the  natives  have 
died  of  it,  and  two  or  three  more  European  residents,  one  of  whom  is  Mrs.  Grant, 
who  came  out  with  me  upwards  of  twenty  months  ago;  so  that  our  esteemed 
friend,  Mr.  C.  Grant,  is  left  a  widower  with  a  motherless  babe  at  St.  Mary's,  and 
several  other  children  in  England.  I  need  scarce  say,  that  your  missionaries  in 
Western  Africa  need  a  special  interest  in  your  prayers.  If  we  fall,  it  will  be  in  the 
field,  with  the  harness  on,  facing  the  enemy ;  for  we  shall  never  run  away  from  our 
post  till  Providence  opens  the  door. 

Extract  of  a  Letter  from  the  Rev.  Henry  Wilkinson,  dated  St.  Man/s,  Gambia, 
August  ISth,  1837. 

Notwithstanding  that  I  wrote  you  a  few  lines  on  the  7th  inst.,  I  embrace 
another  (unexpected)  opportunity  of  addressing  yon  again. 

I  am  truly  sorry  to  state,  that  the  epidemic  is  still   making  serious  ravages  on 


THE    GOLD  COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  429 

this  island.  Sickness  and  death  are  marching  around  us  in  their  ghastly  forms; 
Such  is  the  nature  of  the  disease,  that  it  baffles  the  power  of  medicine  and  medical 
skill.  Nearly  the  whole  of  the  persons  that  have  been  arrested  by  it  have  fallen 
victims.  Such  a  season  as  this  has  not  been  experienced  for  many  years  in  this 
part  of  Africa. 

In  reference  to  my  dear  wife  and  myself,  I  am  truly  thankful  to  God,  that  we 
have  hitherto  been  preserved  from  the  pestilence,  and  that  we  are  at  present  in 
tolerable  health,  and  able  to  attend  to  most  of  our  important  duties  :  indeed,  Mrs. 
Wilkinson  is,  upon  the  whole,  much  better  than  I  ever  expected  to  see  her  again  in 
Africa.  With  care,  and  our  heavenly  Father's  blessing,  I  hope  we  shall  be  pre- 
served to  labour  a  Uttle  longer  amongst  these  sable  tribes. 

As  it  regards  the  work  of  God  with  us,  our  congregations  continue  very  good, 
and  the  society  and  schools  are  in  a  good  state.  I  do  not  mean  to  say  that  we 
have  no  discoiu-agements  ;  for  it  often  becomes  our  painful  duty  to  enforce  discipline 
and  expel  disorderly  persons  from  the  society.  However,  blessed  be  God !  the 
society  in  general  are  alive  to  God,  and  are  ornaments  to  our  holy  religion.  We 
have  several  promising  young  men,  four  of  whom  I  have  lately  put  upon  the  Plan 
as  exhorters. 

I  must  mention  another  subject,  and  that  is,  that  the  chapels  at  Soldiers'-Town 
and  Melville-Town  are  in  a  state  of  great  dilapidation,  from  the  strong  tornadoes, 
and  very  heavy  and  incessant  rain,  which  we  have  had  for  several  weeks  past. 
Indeed,  this  has  hitherto  been  a  destructive  season  in  every  sense  of  the  word.  It 
will  be  absolutely  necessary,  as  soon  as  the  rains  are  past,  and  the  materials  can  be 
got,  to  repair  these  buildings.  I  suppose  they  may  be  put  in  order  for  about  thirty 
pounds ;  however,  I  will  assure  the  committee,  that  economy  shall  be  attended  to, 
and  that  nothing  -will  be  done  but  what  is  really  necessary.* 

"  The  excellent  writer  of  the  second  of  these  letters  "  did  fall 
"  a  victim  to  the  prevailing  epidemic,^^  and  that  in  a  few  days 
after  he  wrote  the  letter  we  have  just  given.  But  the  painful 
news  did  not  reach  Macarthy's  Island  for  some  two  or  three 
weeks  after.  In  the  mean  time,  the  author  was  fully  occupied 
with  the  affairs  of  his  own  important  station.  The  rainy  season 
had  commenced ;  and  the  oversight  of  the  farms,  cattle,  &c., 
with  preaching,  prayer-meetings,  and  pastoral  duties,  gave  him 
plenty  of  exercise,  both  mental  and  physical.  The  rains  were 
rather  heavy  just  at  this  time,  which  threatened  the  rice-ground 
with  a  failure.  Moreover,  the  monkeys  and  hippopotami  had 
repeatedly  (the  latter  during  the  night)  obtruded  themselves 
upon  the  mission -property,  and  did  considerable  damage.  The 
immense  forest  on  the  main  land  had  now  increased  its  foliage, 
and  the  wild  beasts  had  approached  near  to  the  water's  edge.f 

*  "Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  viii.  pp.  574 — 57G. 

•f-  A  short  time  previous  to  this,  as  the  author  was  returning  from  Fattatenda  on 
the  upper  river,  on  board  a  sm<all  vessel,  he  saw  two  elephants  apparently  just 
coming  to  drink,  at  a  little  fording-place ;  and  as  the  cutter  was  not  more  than 
thirty  or  forty  feet  from  the  water's  edge,  there  being  no  breeze,  and  the  ebb  tide 
nearly  run  out,  we  wei-e  going  very  ilowly,  so  that  I   liad  a  good  view  of  these 


430  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

The  lion's  roar  was  frequently  heard,  and  the  leopards  and 
wolves  were  exceedingly  numerous  ;  so  that  it  was  dangerous  to 
move  on  the  continent.  A  singular  accident,  attended  with  the 
loss  of  two  lives,  occurred  about  this  time.  On  the  other  side 
of  the  river,  nearly  opposite  to  the  mission-house,  at  a  fording- 
place,  where  there  is  a  man  stationed  to  look  after  the 
canoes  that  are  frequently  crossing  this  part  of  the  river,  there 
was  a  monkey  on  one  of  the  trees,  contiguous  to  the  hut  in 
which  the  man  resides ;  and  as  it  was  making  a  peculiar  kind  of 
noise,  a  boy  ran  to  see  what  was  the  matter.  When  he  arrived 
at  the  foot  of  the  tree  there  was  a  large  leopard,  fixing  his  eyes 
upon  the  monkey,  which  had  caused  the  noise ;  but  instead  of 
waiting  for  the  descent  of  the  monkey,  the  leopard  instantly 
seized  the  boy.  A  Mandingo  man,  hearing  the  screams  of  the 
child,  ran  to  his  assistance,  and  with  a  cutlass  rescued  the  lad ; 
but  the  fierce  animal  then  sprang  at  the  man,  and  tore  off  a 
part  of  the  top  of  his  head :  he,  however,  succeeded  in  driving 
a\vay  the  leopard ;  but  both  the  man  and  the  boy  were  dread- 
fully wounded.  They  were  taken  to  the  hospital,  and  died  in  a 
few  days  afterwards. 

Almost  every  arrival  from  St.  Mary's,  about  this  time, 
brought  the  intelligence  of  some  death  or  deaths  among  the 
Europeans;  and  on  the  12tli  of  September  we  heard  of  the 
death  of  Mr.  Wilkinson.  On  the  22d  of  the  same  month,  the 
w^riter  embarked  on  board  the  "  Bathurst,"  a  small  schooner, 
bound  for  St.  Mary's.  He  was  very  unwell  at  the  time,  and 
had  been  for  some  time  previously;  and  more  than  one  kind 
friend  advised  him  not  to  go  down  until  the  rains  had  com- 
pletely closed ;  for  though  Macarthy's  Island  was  an  inferior 
settlement  and  mission-station,  in  many  respects,  to  St.  Mary's, 
the  Europeans  there  being  often  deprived  of  those  domestic 
comforts,  and  even  necessaries,  wliicli  could  generally  be  mo-re 
rejidily  obtained  at  the  latter  place ;  and  though  the  heat  was 
more  intense  by  several  degrees,  and  at  this  time  there  was  no 
medical  aid  on  the  island ;  yet  there  was  this  important  fact 
connected  with  Macarthy's  Island, — the  dreadful  epidemic 
which  was  committing  such  awful  ravages  along  the  Coast  and 
also  at  St.  Alary's,  had  never  been  known  to  reach  so  far  inland 
as  Macarthy's  Island;  and  the  probability  was,  that  on  this 
occasion  it  would  not;  whereas,  by  going  to  St.  Mary's,  I  was 

noble  animals.  One  of  them  appeared  from  seven  to  eight  feet  in  height,  of  a  light 
grey  coloui';  the  other  was  much  smaller.  But  the  sailors  shouting,  "  Hurra, 
hurra ! "  caused  them  immediately  to  retire  into  the  hush,  when  one  or  two  more 
were  seen  by  some  of  the  crew,  who  had  run  up  the  rigging  of  the  vessel. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    ANU    SIERRA-LEONE.  431 

entering  into  the  midst  of  it.  The  writer  was  not  insensible  to 
this  fact,  and  to  the  kind  wishes  of  his  friends ;  and  thongh 
he  was  aware  that  Mrs,  Wilkinson,  who  was  dangerously  ill,  was 
not  without  a  friend,  he  felt  it  a  duty  wdiich  he  owed  to  his 
departed  colleague,  as  w^ell  as  to  the  mission,  to  hasten  thither, 
and  render  all  the  assistance  in  his  power  to  the  missionary's 
widow,  and  to  the  bereaved  flock,  who  had  been  deprived  of 
their  pastor. 

On  the  passage  down  we  heard,  by  letter,  of  the  death  of 
Governor  Kendall,  on  the  20th,  after  a  few  hours'  illness ;  and 
of  several  others.  On  another  occasion  we  met  a  small  boat; 
and,  in  answer  to  my  inquiries  to  the  captain,  who  spoke  broken 
English,  the  mournful  reply  was,  "  No  more  two  or  three  white 
men  live  at  St.  Mary's  this  time."  We  reached  that  station  in 
safety  on  the  evening  of  the  26th  -,  and  I  found  Mrs.  Wilkinson 
at  Mr.  Grant's,  in  a  very  weak  and  debilitated  state  ;  but  with 
the  prospect  of  recovery,  which  was  ultimately  realized. 

Henry  Wilkinson  was  an  amiable,  kind,  faithful,  and  affec- 
tionate friend ;  a  sincere,  pious,  and  upright  Christian ;  and  a 
prudent,  thoughtful,  diligent,  zealous,  and  devoted  missionary. 
He  had  laboured  on  this  station  for  two  years  and  six  months, 
with  great  pleasure  and  profit  to  himself,  and  with  much  benefit 
to  others ;  and  it  was  in  his  heart  to  have  continued  much 
longer. 

But  his  course  of  usefulness  was  interrupted,  and  finally 
terminated,  by  an  attack  of  the  fatal  epidemic  which  had 
carried  off  so  many  Europeans  at  St.  Mary's,  as  well  as  several 
of  the  brethren  and  others  at  Sierra-Leone.  The  letter  we  have 
given  in  a  preceding  page,  dated  "August  18th,"  was  probably 
the  last  which  he  ever  wrote.  On  the  following  Sunday, 
August  20th,  he  attended  to  his  duties  as  usual,  and  was  then 
in  the  enjoyment  of  good  health ;  and  in  a  letter  addressed  to 
the  author,  communicating  some  account  of  his  sickness  and 
death,  after  speaking  of  his  general  good  health  up  to  the  very 
day  he  was  seized  with  the  fatal  disease,  the  gentleman  who 
wrote  says :  "  And  I  further  think  he  never  laboured  with 
greater  satisfaction  or  better  success.  I  was  myself  in  the  cha- 
pel last  Sunday,  and  heard  him  preach  from  that  important 
passage  in  the  Psalms  :  '  So  teach  us  to  number  our  days,  that 
we  may  apply  our  hearts  unto  wisdom;'  and  I  think  I  never 
heard  him  preach  with  such  enlarged  views,  or  enforce  the  doc- 
trine of  the  text  Avith  greater  liberty  or  happier  effect."  On 
Monday  morning  he  was  still  as  well  as  usual,  and  during  the  day 


432  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

visited  the  sick,  and  interred  one  or  two  corpses ;  but  in  the 
evening  he  was  attacked  with  fever,  which  soon  proved  to  be  of 
the  worst  type.  The  day  following  he  was  still  worse.  The 
acting  colonial  doctor  was,  unfortunately,  himself  ill  at  the  time, 
and  subsequently  died  of  the  same  disease  ;  but  two  men-of-war 
coming  in  on  that  and  the  preceding  day,  both  the  surgeons 
from  those  vessels  very  kindly  and  promptly  attended  him ; 
but,  alas !  it  was  to  no  purpose ;  for  the  "  disease,"  to  use  his 
own  terms  a  few  days  previously,  "  was  such,  that  it  baffled  the 
power  of  medicine  and  medical  skill."  Neither  that,  nor  the 
kind,  unwearied,  and  affectionate  attentions  of  his  wife,  and 
other  friends,  nor  the  prayers  of  the  people,  were  of  any  avail : 
he  continued  to  grow  worse  until  late  on  Thursday  evening, 
August  24th,  1837,  when,  without  a  struggle  or  a  groan,  he 
breathed  his  last.  He  died  in  the  twenty-eighth  year  of  his 
age,  and  in  the  third  of  his  missionary  labours ;  aiid  was  buried 
the  following  morning  in  the  new  chapel,  near  the  pulpit  from 
which,  on  the  previous  sabbath,  he  had  given  out  the  hymn  on 
the  650th  page  of  the  Wesleyan  Hymn-Book,  entitled  "  Triumph 
over  Death,"  and  commencing  with, — 

"  And  must  this  body  die  ? 

This  well-wrought  frame  decay  ? 
And  must  these  active  limbs  of  mine 
Lie  mouldering  in  the  clay  ? " 

So  it  was ;  though  he  little  knew  how  soon  it  would  be  so : 
but  he  was  found  "  ready  "  to  "  enter  into  the  joy  of  his  Lord." 
The  writer  had  the  melancholy  pleasure  of  improving  his 
lamented  friend's  death,  from  the  same  pulpit,  on  Sunday, 
October  1st,  from  the  consoling  words  of  the  Saviour,  addressed 
to  the  sisters  of  Lazarus,  ''Thy  brother  shall  rise  again;" 
(John  xi.  23  j)  and  on  that  occasion  he  gave  out  the  same 
hymn,  illustrating  as  it  does  the  sublime  doctrine  of  the  resur- 
rection.    One  verse  may  be  introduced  here : — 

"  God,  my  Redeemer,  lives, 

And  ever  from  the  skies 
Looks  dow7i,  and  watches  all  my  dust, 

Till  He  sball  bid  it  rise." 

Glorious  truth  !     It  was  good  to  be  there. 

The  worst  part  of  this  unprecedentedly  sickly  season,  it  was 
hoped,  was  now  over,  as  only  one  or  two  deaths  of  the  malig- 
nant yellow  fever  had  occurred  up  to  this  period,  since  the 
author  arrived  at   St.   Marv's.     But  there  was  much   general 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  433 

sickness,  especially  among  the  Europeans,  all  of  ^liom  had  suf- 
fered more  or  less ;  and  many  had  almost  miraculously  escaped 
death,  as  in  the  case  of  IMrs.  Wilkinson.  The  writer  also, 
in  the  middle  of  October,  was  once  more  brought  to  the 
margin  of  the  grave ;  but  again  God  interposed,  and  "  the  fever 
owned  his  touch,  and  fled.^^  During  his  illness  he  was  anxious 
to  write  a  few  lines  to  his  dear  friends  in  England,  to  be  for- 
warded in  case  of  his  death  ;  but  he  could  not  hold  a  pen.  He 
was,  however,  very  happy,  even  when  burning  with  fever,  parched 
with  thirst,  and  tortured  with  pain ;  and  could  sing, — 

"  Yet,  when  melted  in  the  flame 
Of  love,  this  shall  he  all  ray  plea, — - 
I  the  chief  of  sinners  am. 
But  Jesus  died  for  me." 

In  the  two  letters  already  before  the  reader,  dated  August 
10th  and  18th,  the  one  from  myself,  and  the  other  from  the 
late  Mr.  Wilkinson,  some  idea  may  be  formed  of  the  mortality 
which  took  place  during  the  periodical  rains  of  this  year.  But 
though  the  Avorst  part  was  now  past,  several  more  deaths  of  the 
same  dreadful  type  occurred  after  this,  though  they  Avere  princi- 
pally among  the  shipping ;  and  the  colony  continued  in  a  very 
unliealthy  state  for  some  months  after  the  rains  ceased.  Sel- 
dom, indeed,  has  the  unsparing  and  impartial  stroke  of  death 
been  more  strikingly  manifest,  than  it  was  during  this  season  at 
St.  Mary's  on  the  Gambia.  The  cases  were  not  only  sudden, 
but  rapid  and  general  :  neither  age^  sex,  station,  profession,  nor 
character,  w  as  exempt.  One  of  the  earliest  victims  was  a  fine  tall 
officer  at  Fort  Bullen,  on  the  opposite  side  of  the  river ;  and  the 
first  intimation  of  his  illness  was  made  known  by  hoisting  a 
blanket  on  the  flag-staff.  Medical  attendance  was  immediately 
sent  over;  but  in  a  few  hours  the  English  ensign,  at  half-mast, 
told  us  it  was  too  late,  and  that  his  wife  was  a  widow.  This 
occurred  in  the  middle  of  June :  neither  the  sentinel  guarding 
the  barrack-gate,  nor  the  troops  inside,  Avith  loaded  cannon, 
could  keep  off  this  "  last  enemy  ;"  and  having  once  entered  the 
fortress,  he  left  not  until  it  was  announced,  "  The  commandant 
is  dead ! " 

On  the  same  day  the  surgeon  of  the  "  Curlew'^  man-of-war 
fell  a  victim  to  the  disease ;  and,  in  a  few  days  after,  the 
purser  and  master,  with  fourteen  of  the  ci'ew,  besides  several 
others  that  were  ill.  This  "common  foe"  had  now  entered  the 
town  of  Bathurst ;  and  the  merchant  in  his  counting-house,  the 
magistrate  on  the  bench,  the  tradesman  in  his  shop,  the  secre- 
tary and  civil  officer  at  his  desk,  and  the  military  on  parade, 

F    F 


434  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

became  diseased^  sickened,  and  died,  as  did  also  the  colonial 
doctor,  whilst  in  the  act  of  prescribing  for  others.  Nor  was  this 
all ;  for  the  highest  functionary  in  the  colony,  the  resident  at 
Government-house,  and  the  faithful,  zealous,  pious  missionary, 
whilst  going  about  doing  good,  fell  by  the  ruthless  grasp  of  this 
"  king  of  terrors." 

Many  of  these  cases  had  occurred  when  the  writer  was  at  St. 
Mary's,  in  June ;  and  several  of  the  sufferers  he  had  visited  in 
their  illness.  Dr.  Tebbs,  who  expired  on  the  29th  of  that  month, 
lie  had  repeatedly  seen,  and  witnessed  his  last  moments.  On 
that  occasion  there  were  seven  Europeans  in  the  room  ;  and,  in 
a  week  or  two  after,  the  writer  and  another  were  the  only  two 
that  were  spared  out  of  the  seven.  Immediately  after  attending 
the  funeral  of  the  colonial  surgeon,  I  had  to  embark  for 
Macarthy's  Island;  and  on  my  return,  in  September,  the  town 
presented  the  appearance  of  some  solemn  day  of  fasting  and 
liumiliation  before  God :  business  was,  indeed,  in  a  great 
measure  suspended  ;  and  if  the  black  captain's  statement  to 
me,  on  his  passage  down,  was  not  literally  true,  it  was  so  in 
part;  for  there  was  scarcely  a  white  man  to  be  seen.  The 
author  was  reminded  of  that  dreadful  scourge,  the  cholera, 
which  had  committed  such  ravages  in  some  of  the  populous 
English  towns  a  few  years  previously.  But  even  that  was  not  a 
parallel,  in  point  of  comparative  numbers,  to  the  yellow  fever  at 
the  Gambia  during  this  dying  season.  Not  less  than  one-half 
of  the  Europeans  then  residing  at  St.  Mary's,  were  in  a  few 
sliort  weeks  numbered  with  the  dead ;  exclusive  of  the  naval 
officers  and  crews  of  Her  Majesty's  ships,  and  of  other  Europeans 
and  Americans,  of  merchant-vessels,  besides  a  number  of  Mulat- 
toes,  and  a  great  number  of  the  natives.  The  fact,  that  during 
this  season  four  medical  men  died  at  St.  Mary's,  and  another 
on  his  passage  from  Sierra-Leone  to  this  place,  shortly  after, 
whilst  a  sixth,  who  was  intended  for  the  Gambia,  died  before 
his  embarkation  at  Sierra-Leone ;  will  exhibit,  in  a  striking 
light,  what  has  before  been  stated,  that  "  sickness  and  death 
were  marching  around  us  in  their  ghastly  forms,"  and  that 
"  such  was  the  nature  of  the  disease,  that  it  baffled  the  power  of 
medicine  and  medical  skill."  It  was  indeed  a  season  never  to 
be  forgotten  by  those  who  witnessed  it,  or  lived  to  survive  its 
effects. 

But  it  is  now  time  that  we  proceed  to  the  Gold-Coast. 
The  reader  will  doubtless  recollect  the  peculiar  circumstances  in 
which  we  left  Mr.  A¥rigley  there  in  the  early  part  of  the  year, — 
mourning  the  loss  of  his  beloved  wife,  and  his  other  two  com- 


THE    GOLD-COAST^    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


435 


panions  and  friends.  But  though  "  cast  down,  he  was  not 
destroyed."  '-'Faint,  yet  pursuing,'^  Avas  his  motto;  and  as  his 
physical  strength  returned,  he  appHed  himself  to  his  high  and 
important  duties  wdth  unwearied  diligence  and  zeal.  The  build- 
ing of  the  chapel  went  on  rapidly,  and  he  visited  several  places, 
which  soon  after  became  the  heads  of  circuits,  or  separate  sta- 
tions. Thus  did  he  labour  on  week  after  week,  and  month 
after  month,  until  the  last  month  but  one  in  the  year,  when  he 
was  seized  with  illness  as  he  was  returning  by  water  from  Anna- 
maboe,  and  in  a  few  days  "  ceased  at  once  to  work  and  live." 

George  O.  Wrigley  was  appointed  to  Cape-Coast  by  the 
Conference  in  1836,  and  immediately  sailed  with  Mrs.  Wrigley 
for  that  interesting  station.  He  arrived  there  on  the  15th  of 
September,  and  met  with  a  kind  reception  from  all  parties.  In 
speaking  of  this  in  a  letter  to  the  committee,  some  weeks  after, 
he  says :  "  It  is  impossible  for  me  to  describe  ray  feelings  on 
first  viewing,  about  four  o'clock  p.m.  on  the  day  above  stated, 
the  place  of  my  future  labours.  I  thought  of  my  predecessor, 
of  his  labours,  and  of  his  premature  end ;  nor  could  I  for  some 
time  restrain  those  painful  emotions  which  these  thoughts  excited. 
They  were  not,  however,  of  long  continuance ;  nor  have  I  since 
laboured  under  similar  feelings  for  a  single  moment."  He  at 
once  entered  upon  his  work  in  a  true  missionary  spirit,  preach- 
ing, visiting,  and  journeying  from  place  to  place,  embracing 
every  opportunity  of  usefulness,  and  crying,  "Behold,  behold  the 
Lamb  ! "  So  early  as  the  month  of  January  in  the  following 
year,  there  was  the  prospect  of  a  wide  and  effectual  door  being 
opened  for  the  preaching  of  the  gospel  in  Coomassie ;  one  of  the 
members  of  the  society  who  had  been  residing  there  having 
reported  to  INIr.  Wrigley,  that,  in  the  house  where  he  dwelt,  he 
had  several  times  had  the  sons  of  the  king  of  Ashantee  with 
him  at  prayers ;  and  that,  on  Christmas-day,  the  king  requested 
their  attendance  at  the  palace,  when  he,  in  conjunction  with 
one  or  two  others,  had  singing  and  prayer,  in  the  presence  of 
the  monarch. 

Towards  the  close  of  this  month,  Mr.  Wrigley  had  a  serious 
attack  of  illness,  which  was  followed  by  the  terrible  afflictions 
and  bereavements  already  before  the  reader.  Such  painful 
events  W'Ould  have  been  severely  felt  in  any  country ;  but  in  a 
distant  and  barbarous  land,  far  away  from  friends  and  relations, 
they  are  doubly  painful ;  and  by  our  now  deceased  friend  they 
were  felt  most  acutely.  But  in  the  letter  from  which  we 
made  several  painfully-interesting  extracts,  on  a  previous  page, 

2  F  2 


436  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

after  appealing  in  strong  terms  for  more  help,  liis  concluding 
words  are,  "I  hope,  in  reference  to  myself,  in  the  midst  of  my  dis- 
couragements, (and  I  have  them  from  a  variety  of  quarters,)  that 
I  can  say,  'Neither  death,  nor  life,  nor  angels,  nor  principalities, 
nor  powers,  nor  things  present,  nor  things  to  come,  nor  height, 
nor  depth,  nor  any  other  creature,  shall  be  able  to  separate  me 
from  the  love  of  God  which  is  in  Christ  Jesus,'  and  from  my 
work  in  this  section  of  the  mission-field,  until  my  appointed 
time."  In  this  spirit  did  Mr.  Wrigley  live  and  labour,  "  follow- 
ing up  those  victories  to  the  cross  of  our  Emmanuel ''  which  he, 
together  with  others,  had  already  "  achieved  to  His  glory,''  until 
his  appointed  time  came;  and  then  he  was  found  ready  for 
still  more  delightful  employment.  In  the  early  part  of  Novem- 
ber, he  was  seized  with  the  illness  Avhich  proved  fatal  to  him, 
but  was  graciously  supported  during  his  affliction;  and  he 
received  the  kindest  attentions  from  the  affectionate  people  to 
whom  he  had  ministered  with  so  much  success.  In  death,  as  in 
life,  he  reposed  with  unwavering  confidence  in  the  atonement  of 
Christ,  and  rejoiced  in  hope  of  the  glory  of  God.  He  died  at 
Cape-Coast  Town  on  the  16th  of  November,  1837 ;  and  his 
funeral  was  one  of  the  most  aff'ecting  scenes  which  had  for  a 
long  time  been  witnessed.  Mr.  Wrigley  was  a  devoted  and 
excellent  missionary ;  and  the  fruit  of  his  evangelical  labours  in 
Western  Africa  remain  to  this  day. 

We  have  now  completed  a  brief  record  of  eight  deaths  which, 
according  to  the  announcement  at  the  commencement  of  the 
chapter,  took  place  in  the  course  of  nine  months.  Four  of  these 
having  occurred  at  Cape-Coast,  that  rising  and  promising  soci- 
ety was  thus  deprived  of  all  its  European  agents.  It  will  also 
be  seen,  by  a  reference  to  the  printed  Minutes,  that  Mr.  Wil- 
liam Sanders  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  the  writer  at  the  Gambia, 
were  now  the  only  two  Wesleyan  missionaries  on  this  extensive 
line  of  coast.  Mr.  Sanders,  indeed,  had  been  toiling  alone  for 
about  six  months ;  but  it  was  not  like  the  fishermen  at  "  the 
lake  of  Gennesaret,"  who,  on  one  occasion  at  least,  are  said 
to  "  have  toiled  all  the  night,  and  taken  nothing."  No : 
''the  Galilean  Pilot"  Avas  with  him;  and  though  some  of  the 
"  nets"  had  beeu  broken  by  the  cold  hand  of  death,  seldom  has 
that  saying  been  more  remarkably  verified,  "  God  buries  his 
workmen,  but  carries  on  his  work  :"  for  there  was  during  this 
year  an  addition  to  the  society  at  Sierra-Leone  of  some  hun- 
dreds of  precious  souls,  including  those  on  trial;  and  the  income 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  437 

of  the  society  in  weekly  and  quarterly  subscriptions  amounted 
to  ^240. 

On  the  19th  of  November,  ]Mr.  Sanders  was  cheered  and 
encouraged  by  the  arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  and  Mr. 
Henry  Badger.  The  former,  it  will  be  remembered,  had 
laboured  at  Macarthy's  Island  for  about  three  years ;  but  Mr. 
Badger  was  a  new  missionary.  On  the  26th  of  the  same 
month,  the  writer  had  the  unspeakable  pleasure  of  giving  a  cor- 
dial welcome  to  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow,  and  Mr.  T.  Wall,  at  the 
Gambia  :  the  latter  was  appointed  to  St.  Mary^s,  and  the  for- 
mer to  Macarthy^s  Island.  After  a  few  days'  residence  at 
Bathurst,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow  and  myself,  with  a  number  of 
mechanics,  embarked  for  the  upper  station,  which  place  we 
reached  on  the  16tli  of  December.  On  the  3d  of  January, 
1838,  the  drooping  spirits  of  the  bereaved  societies  at  Cape- 
Coast  were  once  more  revived  by  the  arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Freeman,  on  which  occasion  the  members  came  from  various 
parts  to  welcome  their  new  friends. 

The  following  statistics  will  show  an  encouraging  increase  on 
all  the  stations,  more  particularly  at  Sierra-Leone  and  Cape- 
Coast  : — 

Sierra-Leone,  members  in  society,  1,337;  children  in  the 
schools,  1,134.  St.  Marifs,  members  in  society,  386 ;  children 
in  the  schools,  182.  MacartJnfs  Island,  members  in  society, 
173 ;  children  in  the  schools,  74.  Cape-Coast,  members  in 
society,  428;  children  in  the  schools,  105.  Total,  members  in 
society,  2,324;  children  in  the  schools,  1,495. 

This  table  exhibits  a  net  increase  of  members  on  the  preced- 
ing year  of  five  hundred  and  fifteen,  besides  several  hundreds 
who  had  been  received  on  trial  as  candidates  for  church  mem- 
bership; and  there  was,  likewise,  nearly  a  corresponding 
increase  in  the  schools. 

On  the  2d  of  March  Mr.  Sanders,  being  greatly  debilitated, 
left  Sierra-Leone  for  England,  followed  by  the  prayers  and 
affections  of  the  people.  He  arrived  at  Gravesend  on  the  21st 
of  May,  1838,  and  has  since  that  period  been  engaged  in  the 
ministry  at  home.  The  following  were  now  the  appointments 
for  this  part  of  the  mission-field;  they  are  taken  from  the 
Annual  Report  of  that  year : — * 

Sierra-Leone,  Mr.  Dove  and  Mr.  Badger. 

St.  Mary's,  Gambia,  Mr.  Wall ;  Mr.  Amadi  Gum,  assistant  missionary. 

*  They  were  at  that  time  correct,  except  that  W.  Juff,  one  of  tlie  assistants, 
was  at  St.  Mark's,  and  not  at  Macarthy's  Island. 


438  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Macartlu/s  Island,  Foulah  Mission,  Mr.  Fox,  Mr.  Swallow ;  Mr.  John  Cupidon, 
Mr.  Pierre  Sallah,  and  Mr.  AVilliam  Jiiff,  assistant  missionaries. 
Cape-Coast,  Mr.  Freeman. 

We  shall  close  this  chapter  with  the  appropriate  paragraph 
written  by  the  general  secretaries,  as  furnishing  a  kind  of 
recapitulation  of  the  deaths  recorded  in  the  preceding  pages, 
with  some  other  judicious  remarks  on  the  state  and  prospects  of 
the  work  in  this  interesting  part  of  the  great  missionary  field. 

It  is  with  emotions  of  no  ordinary  kind  that  the  committee  turn  to  this  part  of 
the  mission  field.  The  past  has  been  a  year  of  unprecedented  trial,  and  painful 
visitation.  During  the  prevalence  of  the  fatal  epidemic  which  has  been  permitted 
to  ravage  the  coast  of  Western  Africa,  Messrs.  Crosby  and  Patterson  died  at 
Sierra-Leone  ;  Mr.  Maer  died  in  the  ship  in  which  he  had  embarked,  on  his  return 
to  his  native  land ;  and  at  St.  Maiy's,  Mr.  ^¥ilkinson  was  removed  to  a  better 
world,  after  a  short  affliction.  Cape-Coast  has  been  the  scene  of  a  similar  mortal- 
ity, and  tidings  have  successively  been  received  of  the  death  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Harrop,  and  Jlrs.  ^\'rigley,  and  latterly  of  Mr.  Wrigley.  The  removal  of  so  many 
valuable  agents,  which,  to  short-sighted  mortals,  may  appear  untimely,  calls  for  the 
full  exercise  of  faith  and  resignation,  on  the  part  of  the  friends  of  the  Society. 
But  while  they  feel  the  painful  bereavements  which  have  been  experienced,  the 
alleviating  features  of  the  affecting  case  must  not  be  overlooked.  That  the  beloved 
bi-ethren  and  their  wives  were  all  permitted  delightfully  to  experience,  in  the  hour 
of  death,  the  consolations  and  enjoyments  of  that  religion,  to  the  spread  of  which, 
among  the  children  of  Africa,  they  had  devoted  themselves,  demands  the  most 
heartfelt  gratitude ;  and  that  the  various  stations  should,  at  the  same  time,  be 
blessed  with  great  spiritual  prosperity,  ought  to  be  regarded  as  an  indication  that, 
although  Almighty  God  has  been  pleased  to  remove  many  of  the  workmen,  it  is  his 
will  that  the  work  itself  in  Western  Africa  shall  be  prosecuted,  and  as  a  pledge 
that  it  shall  gloriously  succeed,  if  the  Society  continue  faithfully  to  provide  the 
appointed  instrumentaUty.  Additional  encouragement  is  derived  from  the  twofold 
consideration,  that  the  Society  has  not  yet  lacked  a  supply  of  missionaries  for  this 
part  of  the  world,  who  freely  and  nobly  offer  themselves  to  be  "  baptized  for  the 
dead;"  and  that  a  native  agency  is  rising  up,  which,  ere  long,  may  take  a  very 
important  part  in  the  work  of  diffusing  Christianity  through  that  benighted 
country,  | 


CHAPTER  XXI. 

THE  GOLD-COAST,  GAM15IA,  AND  SIERRA-LEONE,  WITH  A  JOURNEY 
TO  BONDOU. 

(1838.) 

Great  spiritual  Prosperity  of  the  Missions — Native  Agency — Triumphant  Deaths 
of  the  Missionaries  and  their  Wives — A  Supply  of  Labourers  still  found — The 
Gold-Coast — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Freeman — Death  of  the  latter — Sierra-Leone  and  the 
Gambia — Another  Robin  Hood  and  Saul  of  Tarsus  near  Macarthy's  Island — 
The  Author  pays  him  a  Visit — Tlie  fifth  and  last  Report  of  the  Southampton 
Committee — The  Author  sets  out  on  a  Journey  to  Bondou — Arrival  at  Eatta- 
tenda  in  the  upper  River — Some  Account  of  the  Port,  Trade,  and  Neigh- 
bourhood— Incidents  on  the  Way  to  ]\Iadina,  the  Capital  of  Woolli — Some 
Account  of  Madina  and  Barrakunda — Circumcision — Bambako,  the  Residence 
of  Slantamba,  the  King's  General — Albino  Negroes — Incidents  on  the  Way, 
and  Description  of  Kanipe,  Dirma,  Walufarra,  and  Tambakunda — The  Author 
sleeps  in  the  W^ilderness — Wild  Beasts — Arrival  at  Kotchair,  the  last  Town  of 
Woolli — Enters  Nouday,  the  frontier  Town  of  Bondou — Well  received — 
Julangal,  a  Town  of  SerrawooUies— Arrival  at  Jume,  a  modern  Athens — Inci- 
dents at  Jume,  and  on  the  Way  to  Weegi,  Gallordie,  and  Goodeerie — First 
Rain — Proceed  to  Fittinyibbi,  Dandudy,  and  Fettibooki — Country  more  open, 
populous,  and  better  cultivated — Arrival  at  the  Capital — The  Almamy  encamped 
at  a  short  Distance  from  the  royal  Residence — The  Author  pays  him  a  Visit — 
Is  introduced  into  the  Camp — Interview  and  Conversation  with  this  Chief  on 
the  Subject  of  Christian  Missions — Gives  to  the  Almamy  and  his  Warriors  a 
brief  Summary  of  the  Doctrines  and  Precepts  of  the  Gospel — Is  listened  to  with 
Attention — This  Smumaiy  well  received — The  Author  then  addresses  the 
Almamy  on  the  Impropriety  of  going  to  War — This  was  a  critical  Moment — 
In  the  Midst  of  a  Band  of  half  Savages,  all  armed  with  Weapons  of  Destruction 
— But  "  Lo,  I  am  with  you  "  was  present — Second  Interview  with  the  Almamy 
— Again  warned  him  of  his  Danger — The  Author's  Return  to  the  Capital — 
The  Almamy  and  Soldiers  immediately  followed — Interview  with  the  Almamy 
at  Boollibany — His  friendly  Conduct  to  the  Author,  who  bids  him  Farewell — 
Boundaries  of  Bondou  defined — Some  Account  of  Boollibany — The  Manners 
and  Customs  of  the  People — Their  Houses — Furniture — -Dress — Food — Religion 
— Government — Almamy  Saada — Their  Laws — Polygamy — Commerce  and 
Trade — Agriculture — ^lode  of  Cultivation — Scripture  Illustrations — The  rainy 
Season — Tornadoes — FertiUty  of  the  Soil — "  The  Pastures  are  clothed  with 
Flocks,  the  Valleys  are  covered  over  with  Corn  " — Mungo  Park — Their  Wars 
— Superstitions — Salutations — The  Author's  Return  to  Fattatenda — Incidents 
on  the  "Way — Arrival  at  the  Banks  of  the  Gambia — African  Travelling — Safe 
Anival  at  Macarthy's  Island — Meets  his  Class. 

The  extract  from  the  General  Ileport  viiih.  which  we  closed 
the  last  chapter,  in  addition  to  the  chastened  feelings  and 
appropriate  remarks  on  "the  removal  of  so  many  valuable 
agents/^  contains  also  several  important  and  encouraging  facts; 


440 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


aud  though  these  have  been  brought  out  and  illustrated  in  the 
preceding  pages,  we  may  be  allowed  a  passing  remark  or  two  in 
this  place.  In  the  quotation  reference  is  made  to  the  ''great 
spiritual  prosperity  "  of  the  missions.  It  is  consoling  to  know, 
that  "  the  glorious  gospel  of  the  blessed  God/^  like  its  immuta- 
ble Author,  is  "  the  same  yesterday,  and  to-day,  and  for  ever ; " 
the  same  in  all  ages  aud  places  :  and  perhaps  in  no  part  of  the 
world  has  its  divine  efncacy  been  more  gloriously  displayed  than 
on  the  continent  of  Africa.  It  has  there  proved  itself  to  be 
"  the  power  of  God  unto  salvation  "  to  hundreds  and  thousands 
of  the  sable  sons  of  Ham.  The  climate  on  the  western  coast  of 
that  vast  continent,  we  know,  both  from  experience  and  observa- 
tion, is  exceedingly  prejudicial  to  European  constitutions ;  and 
many  of  our  beloved  missionaries  and  their  wives  have  fallen 
under  its  withering  influence,  in  rapid  succession.  But  there  is 
nothing  in  the  climate, — nothing  in  that  death-dealing  atmo- 
sphere, even  during  the  worst  of  those  epidemical  outbreaks, — 
nothing  in  the  deeply  degraded  and  dove-tailed  superstitions  of 
its  inhabitants, — nothing  in  the  combined  powers  of  earth  and 
hell,  that  can  blight,  or  weaken,  or  withstand  the  effects  of  the 
gospel.  That  is  suited  to  all  climates,  and  to  all  conditions  of 
people  :  it  cannot,  it  is  true,  change  "  the  Ethiopian  skin,^'  but 
"the  purple  current "  flowing  from  the  cross  can  wash  the  black 
man's  black  heart  "white  as  snow  j"  and  that  it  should  have  so 
gloriously  triumphed,  during  that  awful  year  of  mortality,  when 
Almighty  God  was  pleased  to  remove  so  many  of  his  workmen, 
was  indeed  matter  for  devout  thankfulness.  The  climate  had 
cut  down  the  messengers  one  after  another,  but  the  message 
was  received  by  many  hearts ;  for  during  the  whole  of  that  year 
"  the  Lord  added  to  the  church  daily  such  as  should  be  saved." 

A  second  encouraging  feature,  which  affords  additional  evi- 
dence that  the  effects  of  the  gospel  are  every  where  the  same, 
was  found  in  the  fact,  that  a  native  agency  was  rising  up,  and 
usefully  employed.  At  this  period  of  the  history  of  these 
missions,  the  Gambia  had  the  largest  amount  of  co-operation  in 
the  way  of  native  assistant  missionaries;  but  even  at  Cape- 
Coast,  though  that  mission  was  in  its  infancy,  the  fruit  of  those 
who  had  fallen  in  the  field  was  seen  in  several  excellent  youths, 
who  began  to  take  an  active  part  in  the  mission  ;  and  at  Sierra- 
Leone  there  were,  at  the  period  now  under  review,  forty-six 
class-leaders,  and  about  thirty  local  preachers ;  and  several  of 
the  latter  were  soon  after  wholly  employed  as  native  teachers. 

Nor  must  we  omit  another  fact,  to  which  the  committee  very 
properly  referred, — "  that  the  beloved  brethren  aud  their  wives 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  441 

were  all  permitted  delightfully  to  experience,  in  the  hour  of 
death,  the  consolations  and  enjoyments  of  that  religion  to  the 
spread  of  which  among  the  children  of  Africa  they  had  devoted 
themselves.'^  How  abundantly  do  the  preceding  pages  testify 
to  this  !  They  died  far  away  from  their  native  land  and  friends ; 
but  they  died  in  the  faith;  and  that  not  only  peacefully  and 
safely,  but  in  most  instances  triumphantly.  He  who  had  said, 
"  Lo,  I  am  with  you  alway,  even  unto  the  end,'''  did  not  forsake 
them  when  their  heart  and  flesh  failed  them.     No  : 

"  Their  God  siistain'd  them  in  their  final  hour, 
Their  final  hour  brought  glory  to  their  God ! " 

For,  when  the  tongue  was  no  longer  faithful  to  its  office,  there 
was  the  speaking  eye  conveying  the  sentiment,  "  My  flesh  and 
my  heart  faileth ;  but  God  is  the  strength  of  my  heart,  and  my 
portion  for  ever."  And  even  when  the  eye  was  gently  closing 
in  death,  the  uplifted  hands  spoke,  with  more  than  vocal  energj'', 
of  "victory,  victory,  through  the  blood  of  the  Lamb!"  How 
encouraging  this  to  all  the  friends  of  missions !  And  what  a 
healing  balm,  especially  to  the  bleeding  hearts  of  those  parents 
and  relations  at  home,  who  had  given  their  children,  brothers, 
and  sisters  to  this  glorious  cause  ! 

Another  encouraging  fact  (the  last  we  shall  now  mention, 
and  which  has  already  been  referred  to  more  than  once)  was, 
"  that  the  society  had  not  yet  lacked  a  supply  of  missionaries  for 
this  part  of  the  world,  who  freely  and  nobly  ofi'ered  themselves 
to  be  '  baptized  for  the  dead.' "  "We  have  seen  in  the  preceding 
chapter,  that  most  of  the  vacancies  occasioned  by  the  great 
mortality  of  that  period  were  filled  up ;  and  that  other  mission- 
aries were  sent  out  during  the  year,  whose  arrival  we  shall  record 
in  due  course. 

Mr.  Freeman  had  not  heard  of  the  death  of  Mr.  Wrigley  until 
he  arrived  at  Cape-Coast;  and  when  he  entered  the  hallowed 
"  chamber  where  the  good  man  met  his  fate,"  and  wdiere  four  of 
the  servants  of  the  Lord  had  so  recently  breathed  their  last',  his 
mind  for  some  time  was  depressed ;  but  he  endeavoured  to  cast 
his  burden  upon  the  Lord,  and  at  once  entered  upon  his  work 
with  a  cheerfulness  of  spirit  that  was  truly  admirable.  The 
committee  entreated  for  him  and  his  wife,  and  for  the  other 
mission  families,  the  earnest  and  continued  prayers  of  their 
friends  to  "  Him  who  was  able  to  save  them  from  death."  But 
how  short-sighted  is  man,  and  how  unsearchable  are  the  ways  of 
God  !  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Freeman  had  scarcely  entered  upon  their 
labours,  when  the  latter  was  removed  to  an  early  rest ;  and  thus 


442  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

again  was  the  passage  verified,  "  The  one  shall  be  taken,  and 
the  other  left." 

Mrs.  Freeman  embarked  for  Cape-Coast  with  her  husband 
on  board  the  "  Osborne,"  on  the  4th  of  November,  1837 ;  but 
having  a  long  and  tedious  passage,  which  arose  principally  from 
their  being  "  becalmed  under  the  oppressive  heat  of  a  tropical 
sun  for  the  space  of  thirty  days,"  they  did  not  reach  their  desti- 
nation till  the  3d  of  January,  1838.  But  they  landed  iu  good 
health;  and  Mrs.  Freeman  immediately  set  about  the  female 
department  of  the  mission  work,  in  the  same  spirit  as  her  hus- 
band. But  while  thus  engaged  in  doing  good,  and  arranging 
plans  for  future  usefulness,  and  almost  at  the  very  time  that 
Mr.  Freeman  was  regarding  it  as  a  special  providence  that  his 
partner  had  accompanied  him,  he  was  called  to  part  with  "  the 
companion  of  his  toils;"  "the  desire  of  his  eyes  being  taken 
away  from  him  with  a  stroke."  Mrs.  Freeman  was  seized  with 
a  violent  inflammatory  complaint  which  terminated  her  life  in  a 
few  hours;  resigning  her  happy  spirit  into  the  hands  of  Him 
who  gave  it  on  the  20th  of  February,  1838,  after  a  residence  at 
Cape-Coast  of  forty-eight  days,  which  was  precisely  the  number 
of  days  Mr.  Wrigley  had  been  dead  when  Mr.  and  jMrs.  Freeman 
arrived.  The  death  of  this  valuable  woman  Avas  a  great  loss  to 
the  native  females,  as  well  as  to  her  husband ;  and  her  funeral 
furnished  evidence  of  the  respect  which  she  had  secured  for 
herself  from  all  classes  of  society. 

At  the  time  of  this  bereavement  JMr.  Freeman  was  ill  with 
the  seasoning  fever;  but  he  gradually  recovered  his  health; 
and  as  his  physical  strength  increased,  the  inner  man  being 
renewed,  he  devoted  himself  afresh  to  God  and  his  cause. 
Applications  being  made  to  him  for  teachers  and  missionaries 
from  twenty  to  eighty  miles  round,  he  was  distressed  that  he 
could  not  meet  all  the  demands.  In  his  first  letter  to  the  com- 
mittee he  had  stated  that  he  should  not  consider  his  work  done, 
until  he  had  unfurled  the  banner  of  the  cross  in  Coomassie,  the 
capital  of  Ashantee  ;  and  early  in  the  following  year  he  had  the 
honour,  privilege,  and  happiness  of  doing  this.  But  we  must 
for  the  present  leave  this  enterprising  missionary,  and  proceed 
to  the  other  stations. 

At  Sierra-Leone  the  new  brethren  were  delighted  with  the 
healthy  and  prosperous  state  of  the  mission,  and,  during  the 
first  quarter,  they  witnessed  an  increase  of  upwards  of  fifty, 
besides  a  considerable  number  who  were  admitted  on  trial.    The 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  443 

colony,  however,  was  still  sickl}^  and  the  mortality  among  the 
shipping  was  great.  In  the  vessel  which  conveyed  the  mission- 
aries to  Sierra-Leone,  there  were,  including  the  crew,  about 
forty  persons ;  but  in  less  than  five  weeks  eight  of  them  were 
dead.  This  was  the  case,  also,  at  the  Gambia;  but  the  brethren 
at  all  the  stations  for  some  time  continued  tolerably  well.  At 
the  commencement  of  the  year,  the  author  had  occasion  to  pay 
a  visit  to  St.  Mary^s,  when  he  embarked  for  the  second  time  in 
a  small  open  boat.  On  the  passage  down  we  had  sometimes  to 
anchor,  and  on  oue  occasion,  especially,  the  hippopotami  came 
playing  around  us  in  great  numbers,  and  so  near  as  to  endanger 
our  lives.  But  a  merciful  Providence  watched  over  us,  and  we 
reached  our  destination  in  safety.  This  uncomfortable  mode  of 
travelling,  however,  brought  on  a  very  severe  bilious  fever,  which 
confined  me  to  bed  for  some  days.  Having  recovered,  and 
accomplished  the  object  of  my  journey,  I  returned,  leaving  Mr. 
Wall  in  excellent  health,  and  happy  in  his  work. 

On  arriving  at  Macarthy^s  Island,  Tebruary  22d,  I  found  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Swallow  had  had  a  slight  attack  of  fever,  but  were  now 
much  better.  The  country  round  was  again  in  a  state  of  com- 
motion, arising  from  some  Bambarra  warriors,  on  the  north 
side  of  the  river,  and  a  Foulah  chieftain  of  Foota  Jallon,  on  the 
south  side,  who  was  a  kind  of  Robin  Hood,  as  a  civilian,  living 
by  plunder,  and  a  "Saul  of  Tarsus^'  in  religion,  being  a  most 
bigoted  follower  of  the  false  prophet  of  Mecca.  Several  towns 
and  villages  were  again  pillaged  and  destroyed,  and  many  of  the 
inhabitants  taken  into  Slavery.  Those  of  the  Foulahs  at  Broko 
and  Jamalli  who  could  escape,  hastened  to  Macarthy's  Island 
for  protection.  The  author,  hearing  that  the  Foota  Jallon  chief 
was  remaining  a  day  or  two  at  Broko,  paid  him  a  visit;  and  he 
was  afterwards  permitted  to  come  to  Macarthy's  Island,  bring- 
ing with  him  only  half  a  dozen  of  his  people.  This  was  on  the 
sabbath  day,  and  he  actually  came  to  chapel  in  the  forenoon  of 
that  day.  But  for  further  particulars  respecting  this  chieftain, 
as  well  as  the  disturbed  state  of  the  country,  I  must  refer  the 
reader  to  the  Annual  llepoi't  for  1838,  and  to  the  sixth  chapter 
of  this  work. 

The  term  of  five  years,  during  which  the  Southampton  Com- 
mittee had  engaged  to  make  provision  for  the  Foulah  mission, 
having  expired,  they  published  their  last  Report,  of  which  the 
following  is  a  copy,  Avith  the  exception  of  some  few  extracts 
from  the  authoi-'s  communications,  which  have  already  appeared 
in  difl'ercnt  })arts  of  this  ^vork. 


444)  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

THE  FIFTH  AND  LAST  ANNUAL  REPORT  OF  THE  SOUTHAMPTON  COMMITTEE  OF 
THE  INSTITUTION  FOR  BENEFITING  THE  FOULAH  TRIBES,  AND,  THROUGH 
THEM,  WESTERN  AFRICA;  WITH  A  BRIEF  ACCOUNT  OF  THE  PROCEEDINGS 
OF  THE  COMMITTEE  FOR  PROMOTING  THE  CIVILIZATION  OF  THE  CHRIS- 
TIAN   FOULAHS,    AND    OTHER    ABORIGINES. 

The  committee,  more  than  ever  impressed  with  the  wrongs  and  miseries  of 
Africa  and  with  her  just  claims  on  tlie  British  nation,  now  take  their  leave  of  those 
friends  who  have  supported  them  ;  and  this  they  do  vrith  feehngs  of  regi-et  and 
thankfidness ; — of  regret,  that  the  time  of  superintending  this  good  work  is  closed, 
according  to  their  primary  announcement ;- — of  thankfulness,  that  they  have  been 
instrumental  in  bringing  the  cause  of  the  Foulahs  before  the  pubUc  ;  in  building  a 
mission-house,  school-room,  and  chapel  on  Macarthy's  Island ;  in  gathering  a 
church  of  more  than  two  hundred  members,  among  whom  Di^-ine  worship  is  con- 
stantly maintained ;  and  in  proclaiming  to  thousands,  in  that  land  of  horrible  dark- 
ness, by  a  native  as  well  as  a  Eiu-opean  agency,  the  glad  tidings  of  a  Saviour. 
They  also  deem  it  to  be  a  ground  of  especial  gratitude,  that  the  four  Gospels  have 
been  translated  into  the  Mandingo  language,  and  that  one  of  them  has  been  printed 
at  the  expense  of  the  British  and  Foreign  Bible  Societj'.  This  boon  to  Africa  they 
consider  as  an  ample  compensation  for  all  the  exertions  employed  in  this  important 
undertaking. 

The  committee  rejoice  that  two  more  missionaries  have  been  sent  to  join  Mr. 
Fox  at  Macai-thy's  Island,  and  that  Christian  instruction  will  be  earned  on  with 
unabated  zeal  and  fideUty  by  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society ;  and  also  that  a 
native  of  Africa,  who  has  been  taught  the  art  of  printing  in  London,  is  about  to 
sail  for  the  Gambia,  with  a  printing-press  and  materials,  to  aid  in  the  propagation 
of  Divine  truth.* 

The  following  communications  from  Mr.  Fox,  at  Macarthy's  Island,  will,  we 
doubt  not,  interest  our  readers  : — 

"  I  visited  Jamalli,"  says  Mr.  Fox,  "  a  few  weeks  ago,  and  also  Laming,  another 
small  Mandingo  town;  at  the  former  forty,  and  at  the  latter  twelve,  huts  were 
destroyed  by  fire :  the  Foulah  town,  about  half  a  mile  eastward,  was  not  injured, 
though  without  inhabitants." 

The  author  tlien  referred  to  the  providential  escape  men- 
tioned in  the  preceding  chapter ;  after  which  he  says  : — 

"  I  embraced  this  opportunity  to  persuade  these  people  of  the  propriety  and 
benefit  of  forming  a  town  on  the  six  hundred  acres  on  Macarthy's  Island ;  and  I 
marked  out  proper  streets,  and  measured  a  number  of  lots.  I  am  happy  to  say, 
that  three  days  ago  two  famiUes  came  and  fixed  upon  their  lots ;  and  as  I  have  also 
there  a  hut  myself,  I  hope  this  example  will  be  speedily  followed. 

"  I  have  for  some  time  had  thirty  liberated  Africans  employed  on  the  mission- 
"Tound,  clearing  it  of  brush-wood,  ant-hiUs,  and  clumps  of  trees.  Should  a  few  of 
the  Foulahs' or  Teucolors  settle  on  it,  1  shall  allow  them  to  cultivate  as  much  as  they 
can.  I  have  purchased  nearly  one  hunth-ed  head  of  cattle,  and  intend  to  piu-chase 
more.     Thus,  I  hope,  a  considerable  number  of  Foulahs  may,  ere  long,  be  induced 

*  The  hvo  missionaries  here  mentioned  included  W.  Juff,  one  of  the  assistants ; 
but  he  continued  at  St.  Mary's ;  and  the  "  native  of  Africa,"  unfortunately,  died  in 
London, — ^but  it  is  pleasing  to  add,  that  he  died  happy  in  God.  His  name  was 
John  Dick. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  445 

to  take  up  their  abode  under  the  protection  of  the  British  flag ;  as  there  are  many 
on  the  upper  river  who  are  constantly  suffering  from  the  ravages  of  war,  plunder, 
and  oppressive  customs,  who  would  probably  be  thankful  for  a  place  of  refuge." 

Here  quotations  are  made  from  the  writer's  coramiinications 
respecting  the  disturbed  state  of  the  country  in  the  upper  river : 
his  having  rescued  a  poor  Fouhah  woman  from  slavery ;  also  a 
visit  which  he  paid  to  Madina,  the  capital  of  Woolli ;  with  some 
account  of  the  Foulahs ;  and  an  audience  with  the  king,  when 
he  witnessed  the  awful  superstition  of  a  little  boy  being  dedi- 
cated to  the  devil.  The  particulars  we  have  given  in  the  sixth 
and  thirteenth  chapters.     The  committee  then  proceed  : — • 

It  was  mentioned  in  oiu"  last  Report,  that  a  committee,  composed  of  gentlemen 
of  high  respectability  and  well-known  philanthropy,  had  been  formed  in  London 
for  promoting  the  civilization  of  the  Christian  Foulahs,  and  the  converted  aborigines 
of  Western  Africa.  They  have  had  several  meetings  to  deliberate  on  the  best  2)lans 
of  oi)eration,  and  for  the  selection  of  proper  agents.  They  have  also  purchased  a 
large  number  of  implements.  It  is  their  intention,  without  delay,  to  bring  the  six 
hundred  acres,  so  liberally  assigned  them,  into  cultivation ;  and  to  purchase  other 
land  as  it  may  be  deemed  advisable.  For  this  purpose  they  have  engaged  Mr.  W. 
Fisher,  whom  they  regard  as  a  suitable  person  to  superintend  the  concern  ;  since, 
besides  his  knowledge  of  agriculture,  he  is  said  to  possess  considerable  skill  in 
mechanism.  The  committee  have  likewise  reason  to  expect  that  Charles  Grant, 
Esq.,  and  a  few  gentlemen  in  Western  Africa,  will  hold  a  correspondence  with  their 
secretary  on  all  afl'airs  of  importance.  And  it  is  with  much  satisfaction  they 
announce,  that  the  plan  of  the  Society  has  received  the  approbation  of  Lord 
Glenelg,  Her  Majesty's  secretary  for  the  colonial  department. 

Thus  we  see  that  God  has  graciously  given  to  this  Christian  enterprise  an  encou- 
raging measure  of  success.  In  due  time  we  shall  reap  more  abundantly,  "  if  we 
faint  not."  "  Duty  is  ours,  irrespective  of  results."  "  We  pray,  '  Thy  kingdom 
come,'  and  this  is  our  duty ;  but  we  must  use  the  means  also,  that  the  kingdom  of 
grace  may  be  advanced ;  that  God  in  Christ  may  be  more  known,  believed  in, 
loved,  obeyed,  owned,  and  honoured,  by  ourselves  and  all  others."  "  There  is  as 
well  a  prayer  in  actions  as  in  desires,  or  any  other  way."  "  Let  each,  then, 
detached  from  the  mass  around  him,  as  he  will  be  distinct  from  it  in  death,  and  at 
judgment,  and  to  all  eternity,  consider  solemnly  within  himself, — '  Tlie  work  of 
sowing  is  mine.'  'Whatsoever  a  man  soweth,  that  shall  he  also  reap;'  for  He, 
whose  promise  cannot  fail,  has  declared,  '  My  word  shall  not  return  unto  me  void  ;' 
neither  can  His  promise  be  emljraced  in  vain."  * 

President. — Lieutenant-General  Orde. 

Treasurers. — R.  Howard,  Esq. ;  Robert  Lindoe,  M.D. 

Secretary. — J.  S.  Elliott,  Esq. 

Committee. — Heniy  Pownall,  Esq. ;  Thomas  Gurney,  Esq. ;  Thomas  Farmer,  Esq. ; 
John  S.  Elliott,  Esq. ;  R.  Howard,  Esq. ;  Rev.  Robert  Heath,  M.A. ;  Rev.  Jabez 
Bunting,  D.D. ;  Rev.  John  Beecham  ;  Rev.  Robert  Alder ;  Rev.  Ehjah  Hoole. 

Southampton,  January  20th,  1838. 

*  Sermon  by  the  Rev.  T.  Dale,  prefixed  to  the  Church  Missionary  Report 
for  1837. 


446 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


RECEIPTS. 

£ 

s. 

d. 

1833,   Subscriptions,    dona- 

tions, and 

collections    . . . 

710 

0 

0 

1834,  Ditto, 

ditto     . . . 

087 

18 

3 

1835,  Ditto, 

ditto     . . . 

710 

3 

0 

1836,  Ditto, 

ditto     . . . 

937 

1 

10 

1837,  Ditto, 

ditto     ... 

840 

19 

2 

£3,886     2     3 


At  tlie  close  of  a  long  list  of  annual  subscriptions  and  dona- 
tions, the  following  summaiy  of  its  finances  was  added  : — 

Statement  of  the  Income  and  Ej'penditure  of  Five  Years,  from  Jan.  Isf,  1833, 
to  Dec.  Zlst,  1837. 

PAYMENTS. 


For  mission,  school,  and 
teaching,  &c.,  £350  per 
annum  for  five  years,  as 
per  agreement  1750     0     0 

For  building  mission-pre- 
mises, school-room,  &c...  350     0     0 

For  purchase  of  land,  made 
over  to  the  New  Com- 
mittee in  London 225     0     0 

For  Bibles  and  portions  of 
the  holy  scriptm-es,  Ara- 
bic, French,  and  English.     30 

Loss  by  exchange,  Jersey 
and  Guernsey    3 

Boat  to  convey  cattle  across 
the  Gambia  25 

Towards  expenses  of  trans- 
lating the  holy  scriptiu-es 
into  one  or  more  native 
languages,  as  per  agi-ee- 
ment     1000 

Balance  paid  to  New  Com- 
mittee in  London 503 


0     0 


1     3 


0     0 


0     0 


1      0 


£3,886     2     3 


Note. — The  whole  sum  given,  without  de(hiction  for  expenses,  and  applied  to  the 
object,  according  to  the  comnuttee's  engagement. 

The  "new  committee"  referred  to,  consisted  principally  of 
those  who  had  composed  the  previous  one,  and  their  object  was 
to  promote  civilization  among  the  native  tribes,  by  follo^ving  the 
footsteps  of  the  missionary,  being  fully  persuaded,  that  the  gos- 
pel is  the  great  and  primary  instrument  in  raising  fallen  and 
degraded  man  in  every  part  of  the  world. 

The  writer  had  been  expecting  Mr.  Fisher,  mentioned  in  the 
preceding  Report,  for  some  months  past ;  but,  on  April  2d,  he 
received  letters  from  the  general  secretaries,  saying,  that  he 
was  detained  by  a  temporary  indisposition,  so  that  the  super- 
intendence of  the  civilization  department  still  devolved  upon  the 
missionary.     But  having  now  an  excellent  colleague,  his  labours 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  447 

\^'ere  not  so  abundant  as  tliey  liacl  been  heretofore ;  and,  having 
paid  one  hundred  and  three  labourers  their  three  months' 
Avages,*  for  working  on  the  mission-ground,  and  re-engaged  the 
greater  part  of  them,  with  overseers,  and  made  some  other 
arrangements,  he  prepared  for  his  journey  to  Bondou.  He 
was  anxious  to  start  earHer  in  the  season,  but  was  waiting  the 
arrival  of  Mr.  Fisher  to  take  charge  of  the  agricultural  part  of 
the  mission.  On  Wednesday,  April  4th,  1838,  he  therefore 
embarked  on  board  the  cutter  "Fox,"  bound  for  Fattatenda, 
Mr.  Swallow  having  accompanied  him  to  Fattota.  The  writer 
had  with  him,  on  this  journey,  our  valuable  assistant,  John 
Cupidon,  and  another  member  of  the  society,  who  was  by  birth 
a  Teucolor,  though  he  had  never  been  in  the  country ;  he  could, 
however,  speak  the  Foulah  language,  and,  having  some  know- 
ledge of  Divine  things,  was  also  of  service.  Having  an  unusually 
quick  passage,  we  arrived  at  Fattatenda  on  the  evening  of  the 
7th,  nothing  very  remarkable  having  occurred  on  the  way. 

Fattatenda  is  one  of  the  oldest  and  most  distant  ports  on  the 
Gambia,  and  has  been  frequently  mentioned,  incidentally,  at 
least,  in  the  former  part  of  this  work,  as  well  as  more  recently. 
TliC  advantages  of  this  noble  river  for  carrying  on  trade  with 
the  natives  in  the  interior  of  Africa,  was  well  known  to  our 
countrymen  upwards  of  two  centuries  ago;  since  which  period 
Fattatenda  has  been  one  of  the  most  important  trading-factories 
in  the  upper  river.  Several  of  the  European  merchants  residing 
at  St.  Mary's  have  stores  at  this  place,  built  in  the  native  style, 
with  a  considerable  assortment  of  British  merchandise,  which  is 
intrusted  to  native  traders.  These  are  situated  on  the  south 
bank  of  the  river.  The  inhabitants  here  are  but  few,  and  the 
principal  part  of  the  trade  comes  from  the  opposite  side ;  cara- 
vans frequently  coming  from  some  hundreds  of  miles  inland, 
bringing  hides,  ivory,  and  gold-dust,  and  sometimes  slaves ;  the 
latter  are  generally  conveyed  to  Bissao,  and  some  of  the  other 
rivers  near  the  coast,  south  of  the  Gambia.  Some  of  the  mer- 
chants, through  their  agents,  transact  business  on  board  their 
vessels,  which  are  lying  at  anchor  here  for  several  weeks  toge- 
ther, to  prevent,  in  part,  the  trouble  and  annoyance  which  is 
experienced  on  shore  from  those  who  come  to  trade,  who  not 
only  strike  a  very  hard  bargain  for  the  European  articles,  but 
also  incessantly  beg  and  expect  presents,  over  and  above 
the  regular  "customs"  or  presents  which  are  given  to  those 
who  purchase  a  certain   amount  of  merchandise ;    and   there 

*  At  the  rate  of  about  Id.  per  clay. 


448  WESTERN  COAST  OP  AFRICA. 

being  no  kind  of  protection,  the  disputes  frequently  run  Ingli, 
and  often  come  to  blows.*  But  this  is  sometimes  tbe  case,  even 
on  board :  it  was  so  last  year,  when  the  writer  was  at  this  place. 
E,um  appears  to  be  the  curse  of  these  people,  and  is  the  cause  of 
many  of  these  quarrels.  If  the  sonninkeas  (drinking  and  war 
people)  know  that  rum  is  on  board,  they  are  immediately  there ; 
nor  will  they  leave,  either  with  good  or  bad  words,  until  they 
have  obtained  some  of  this  liquid  fire :  the  consequence  is,  that 
many  of  the  traders  positively  refuse  to  bring  this  article  to 
Fattatenda,  except  in  small  quantities,  as  presents  to  the  king 
of  Woolli  and  Cabu ;  for  if  they  leave  St.  Mary^s  Vvith  it  on 
board,  they  will  do  their  best  to  dispose  of  it  before  they  reach 
this  place.  And  if  not  another  drop  was  ever  permitted  to  be 
imported  to  the  Gambia,  it  would  be  no  small  blessing  to  this 
part  of  the  continent.  Independent  of  this,  there  certainly 
needs  some  sort  of  protection  for  the  European  merchants  and 
native  traders.  Government  has  been  petitioned  upon  the  sub- 
ject, but  hitherto  to  no  purpose.  The  merchants  at  Bathurst 
are  so  divided  in  opinion  as  to  what  ought  to  be  the  kind  or 
amount  of  protection  afforded,  and  to  what  part  of  the  upper 
river  that  protection  should  extend,  and,  besides  this,  there  is  so 
little  unanimity  amongst  them  on  other  subjects,  that  one  or 
two  efforts  which  they  have  made  among  themselves  to  produce 
a  better  state  of  things,  have  entirely  failed. 

The  river  here  is  about  one  hundred  yards  across,  and  at  this 
season  from  two  to  three  fathoms  deep ;  but  the  banks  are  high, 
and  the  water-marks  of  the  last  rains  are  from  forty  to  fifty  feet 
above  its  present  level.  The  surrounding  country  is  rather 
mountainous,  and  in  some  places  rocky.  It  is  so  on  the  north 
side  of  the  river,  close  to  the  Avater's  edge,  where  the  rock  is 
upwards  of  one  hundred  feet  in  height,  and  where  a  small  fort 
might  be  erected  at  a  trifling  expense.  From  the  top  of  this  hill 
an  open  and  picturesque  country,  of  a  semicircular  form,  from 
east  to  south  and  south-Avest,  is  presented  to  view ;  and,  far  as 
the  eye  can  reach,  the  beautiful  Gambia  is  seen  in  its  upward 

*  On  one  occasion  a  native  trader  named  Jacko,  connected  with  one  of  the 
merchants  at  St.  Marj''s,  who  has  a  store  at  this  place,  was  so  pestered  with  these 
trouhlesome  fellows,  to  whom  he  had  made  several  presents,  but  who  still  demanded 
more,  that,  being  miable  to  bear  it  any  longer,  he  at  length  ran  out  to  the  yard, 
and  fetched  a  piece  of  tire-wood,  brought  it  into  the  store-room,  and  declared  he 
would  set  fire  to  the  powder-magazine,  and  blow  himself  and  them  all  to  atoms,  if 
they  did  not  instantly  leave  the  premises.  This  bold  threat,  which  I  believe  would 
have  been  put  into  execution,  had  the  desired  effect,  and  he  thus  rid  himself  of  their 
troublesome  importunity. 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  449 

course.     The  influence  of  the  tide  is  felt  beyond  this  place,  as 
will  be  seen  at  a  subsequent  period. 

Fattatenda  is  supposed  to  be  as  far  from  Macarthy's  Island 
as  that  is  from  St.  Mary's,  which,  according  to  some,  would 
make  it  six  hundred  miles  from  the  Atlantic.  But  the  distance 
is  by  no  means  so  great.  The  latitude,  notwithstanding  the  ser- 
pentine course  of  the  river,  is  about  the  same  at  Fattatenda  as  at 
its  mouth ;  but  the  longitude,  I  believe,  has  never  been  taken. 
Macarthy's  Island  is  said  to  be  one  hundred  and  seventy-five 
miles  east  from  St.  Mary's,  so  that  probably  the  direct  distance 
from  the  sea-coast  to  Fattatenda  is  about  three  hundred  miles  ; 
but,  taking  the  river  in  its  winding  course,  it  cannot  be  much 
less  than  four  hundred  and  fifty  miles  from  the  Atlantic,  though 
some  writers  think  it  is  not  so  far. 

In  proceeding   to   give   some   account  of  this  journey,  the ' 
writer  will  now  have  to  use  the  personal  pronoun,  when  giving 
extracts  from  his  journal ;  and  his  remarks  will  be  confined,  in 
general,  to  what  was  Avritten  at  the  time. 

Fattatenda,  Sunday,  April  8th. — We  arrived  here  last  evening ; 
and  being  anxious  to  do  something  to-day  for  my  Divine 
Master,  and  knowing  that  all  days  are  alike  to  these  ignorant 
and  degraded  people,  I  embraced  an  early  opportunity  of  hold- 
ing divine  service,  before  the  busy  hours  of  trading  commenced. 
I  took  my  stand  under  some  large  trees  on  the  south  bank  of 
the  river,  and  preached  to  about  twenty  Mandingoes,  from 
John  iii.  14,  15  :  "  And  as  Moses  lifted  up  the  serpent  in  the 
wilderness,  even  so  must  the  Sou  of  man  be  lifted  up  :  that 
whosoever  believeth  in  him  should  not  perish,  but  have  eternal 
life."  I  was  much  thanked  for  it  afterwards.  Mr.  Cupidon 
prayed  at  the  close  of  the  sermon ;  and  who  knows  but  that 
some  good  may  result  from  this  first  attempt  to  benefit  the 
sable  sons  of  Ham  in  the  Upper  Gambia? 

9th. — A  great  deal  of  trade  has  been  going  on  to-day,  and, 
as  usual,  a  little  confusion  and  palavering,  in  which  I  thought 
it  prudent  to  take  no  part.  I  had  a  conversation  with  an  old 
sonninke,  as  to  his  soul  and  a  future  M^orld ;  and  among  a 
number  of  shrewd  but  irrelevant  replies,  he  said  he  knew  more 
about  this  world  than  the  next,  but  that,  if  I  would  give  him  a 
dollar's   worth  of  tobacco,*   he  would  leave  ofi'  drinking,  and 

*  This  is  the  American  leaf  tobacco,  sent  out  in  hogsheads,  and  is  retailed  by 
■weight ;  but  small  quantities  are  sold  by  the  number  of  heads  or  leaves.  It  is  one 
of  the  staple  articles  of  trade,  and  is  purchased  by  the  natives  to  be  used  as  snuff. 
into  which  they  manufacture  it  themselves.     Very  few  use  it  in  any  other  way. 

G    G 


450  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

turn  to  God.  I  have  to-day  engaged  a  man  as  a  carrier ;  and 
the  harbour-master  goes  with  us  to  Madina,  where  I  hope  to 
obtain  a  guide  to  Bondou  from  the  king. 

10th. — This  morning  I  rose  long  before  day-break,  and,  as 
soon  as  it  was  light,  left  Fattatenda.  Although  I  had  endea- 
voured to  take  as  feAV  things  as  possible,  yet,  when  we  had 
packed  all  up,  making  three  large  bundles,  I  had  to  hire  another 
carrier :  the  Foulah  interpreter  carried  one  bundle,  and  the  hired 
servants  the  other  two ;  Cupidon  and  myself  having  a  few  small 
parcels  on  horseback.  The  wharfinger  arrived  early,  but  would 
not  conduct  us  to  the  king  of  Woolli,  unless  I  gave  him 
another  bunya  ("present").  Having  at  length  complied  with 
his  request,  we  set  off;  and  about  an  hour^s  ride — principally 
over  low  clayish  ground,  the  foot-path  being  very  irregular,  and 
much  rent  and  torn  up  from  the  excessive  heat — brought  us  to 
Bantondiug ;  having  left  Bajakunda,  through  which  I  passed 
last  year,  a  little  to  the  right.  Here  we  halted :  it  being  the 
residence  of  Walley  the  wharfinger,  and  the  next  town  being  at 
a  considerable  distance,  I  was  told  we  must  remain  here  till 
towards  evening,  the  people  pointing  to  the  place  where  the 
sun  would  be  when  we  should  start.  I  felt  a  little  disappointed 
at  so  sudden  a  resting-place,  but  knew  it  would  be  in  vain  to 
argue  the  matter  with  them,  as  they  themselves  seldom  or  never 
travel  any  distance  in  the  heat  of  the  day. 

Having  paid  ray  respects  to  the  alkaid,  he  presented  me  with 
a  couple  of  kolas,  and  soon  after  sent  us  a  small  goat  for  break- 
fast. Walley  also  presented  me  with  a  fowl,  which  he  brought 
me  to  kill,  as  the  Mohammedans  never  eat  anything  killed  by 
the  Pagans;  but  this  office  I  conferred  upon  some  one  else. 
About  eleven  o'clock  breakfast  was  ready,  which  consisted  of 
several  bowls  of  pounded  corn  made  into  a  sort  of  kouskous,  but 
not  near  so  well  seasoned  as  that  which  is  made  by  the  Jollofs. 
However,  I  made  a  tolerably  good  meal ;  after  which  a  portion 
of  scripture  was  read,  and  prayer  oflPered  up  to  God  for  the 
inhabitants  of  the  town  and  the  surrounding  country,  and  for 
the  Divine  protection  and  blessing  on  the  journey. 

Bantonding  is  a  small  town  of  Mandingoes,  who  are  princi- 
pally Pagans ;  and  a  few  hundred  yards  to  the  left  there  is  a 
Foulah  town  of  the  same  size;  probably  both  would  contain 
about  eight  hundred  souls  ;  deeply  sunk  in  ignorance,  depravity, 
and  superstition.  In  one  of  my  Avalks  through  the  town,  three 
good-looking  girls  came  and  presented  themselves  before  me, 
each  holding  in  her  hand  a  small  piece  of  straw,  which  they 
desired  me  to  take  from  the  one  whom  I  thought  to  be  the  most 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  451 

handsome.  Not  knowing  at  first  what  they  meant,  I  took  two 
of  the  straws,  at  which  the}^  had  a  hearty  laugh.  Soon  after  tliis, 
I  met  with  a  venerable-looking  Mohammedan,  who  said  he  was 
very  glad  to  see  me,  having  heard  of  me  a  long  time.  He 
asked  me  many  times  if  I  was  well ;  and,  Avhen  about  to  leave, 
the  old  man  prayed  that  God  and  the  prophets  might  preserve 
me :  during  the  prayer,  and  at  the  end  of  every  sentence,  the 
people  present  said,  "  Amiri !  amin  !  "  at  the  same  time  striking 
their  hands  against  their  foreheads.  When  the  prayer  was 
over,  the  old  marraboo  spit  on  his  hand,  and  drew  it  across  his 
face ;  and  thus  ended  this  ceremony. 

About  two  P.M.  there  was  a  chase  after  'an  elephant  by  the 
Foulahs  of  the  town  close  by,  which  they  succeeded  in  cap- 
turing ;  but  I  knew  nothing  of  the  affair  till  I  saw  a  number 
of  the  town's-people  briuging-in  large  pieces  of  the  flesh  of  this 
noble  animal,  which  they  say  is  very  good. 

The  sun  having  considerably  declined,  I  was  anxious  to  pro- 
ceed, and  sent  the  alkaid  a  small  present,  wishing  to  know  if  he 
was  ready,  as  he  had  informed  me  it  was  his  duty  to  conduct  me 
to  the  king.  But  an  old  sonninke  from  Madina  being  in  the 
town,  in  a  state  of  intoxication,  who  was  very  desirous  of  accom- 
panying us,  the  alkaid  wished  me  to  wait  till  he  was  gone  ;  but 
the  fellow  would  not  go  till  I  went;  and  for  some  time  I 
scarcely  knew  what  to  do,  but  at  length  agreed  to  wait  for  the 
alkaid.  As  the  evening  was  by  this  time  far  advanced,  it  was 
proposed  that  we  should  start  when  the  moon  arose;  but  I 
preferred  remaining  till  early  in  the  morning,  to  which  the 
alkaid  readily  agreed.  To  a  late  hour  the  inhabitants  were 
engaged  with  their  customary  dancing,  drum-beating,  &c. 

My  bed  consisted  of  a  thin  country  mat  placed  upon  the  warm 
ground,  my  Mandingo  frock  or  shirt  was  my  pillow,  and  a 
pagne  and  blanket  my  bedding ;  but  I  was  quite  warm  enough 
the  greater  part  of  the  night  without  either  of  them. 

11th. — At  half-past  four  a.m.  we  re-commenced  our  journey, 
the  old  sonninke  having  started  during  the  night.  At  eight 
o'clock  we  arrived  at  Subakunda,  a  Julor  town,  which  stands 
upon  an  eminence.  The  huts  are  built  with  mud,  covered  with 
tliatch;  and  two  small  portions  of  the  town  are  walled  round. 
The  water  is  fetched  from  a  valley  nearly  half  a  mile  distant, 
where  there  is  a  well  about  forty  feet  deep,  the  lower  part  of 
which  appears  to  have  been  cut  through  a  rock.  Many  of  the 
Foulahs  were  here,  giving  water  to  their  cattle,  and  others 
engaged  in  washing  their  clothes.  The  inhabitants  of  this  place 
are  Mandingoes,  though  called  Julors,  from  their  being  nearly 

9    r    9 

*•     tr     <v 


452 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


all  traders  in  gold,  which  they  obtain  from  Bambouk,  Bambarra, 
and  otlier  places  in  the  interior,  and  which  they  exchange  at 
Fattatenda  for  European  articles.  They  appear  to  be  .an  intel- 
ligent, warlike  race ;  but  are  nevertheless  very  superstitious, 
being  half  dressed  with  greeyrees.  They  were,  however,  very 
civil  to  me,  as  were  all  the  people  we  have  hitherto  seen  ; 
being  informed  that  I  was  a  minister  of  the  gospel,  and  had 
nothing  to  do  either  with  trade  or  with  war.  Here  we  had  to 
halt  again  till  evening.  The  few  things  which  we  are  carrying, 
consisting  of  clean  linen,  tobacco,  and  a  few  bafts  as  presents, 
with  some  beads  to  purchase  provisions,  and  a  considerable 
number  of  Arabic  scriptures  to  give  away,  are  still  too  heavy 
for  our  three  people ;  and  I  have  sent  back  to  Fattatenda  every 
thing  which  I  could  possibly  spare.  This  arrangement  will 
enable  the  carriers  to  walk  with  more  speed,  and  at  the  same 
time  prevent  the  appearance  of  our  having  merchandise,  as  the 
natives  naturally  suppose  every  thing  we  have  are  articles  of 
commerce. 

A  few  minutes  past  five  p.m.  avc  left  Subakunda,  accom- 
panied a  short  distance  by  Tatta  Fodey,  a  native  merchant  or 
slatee,  and  one  of  the  head-men  of  the  town ;  and,  a  little  before 
eight  o'clock,  arrived  at  Madina,  the  capital  of  Woolli,  the  Avhole 
of  the  way  being  through  an  immense  forest,  and  the  foot-path 
being  exceedingly  narrow  and  crooked.  I  was  again  taken  to 
the  yard  of  Sandi,  who  is  a  kind  of  secretary  of  state :  he  was, 
as  before,  the  worse  for  liquor,  as  were  several  others  who  came 
to  see  us.  Sandi  told  me  that,  as  soon  as  he  heard  that  I  was 
coming,  he  immediately  killed  a  goat, — that  was  my  present : 
he  was  then  anxious  to  know  what  I  had  brought  for  the  king 
and  himself.  Being  made  acquainted  with  the  articles  which 
I  intended  for  His  Majest\^,  he  said  he  thought  the  king  would 
not  accept  of  them,  especially  as  I  had  brought  no  rum ;  and 
he  was  also  of  opinion  that  he  would  not  allow  me  to  proceed 
to  Bondou,  as  there  was  some  palaver  between  him  and  the 
almamy,  but  which  would  be  settled  in  a  few  days,  and  then 
the  king  would  inform  me  whether  I  could  go  or  not. 
Althougli  I  knew  something  of  the  palaver  here  spoken  of, 
yet  I  did  not  believe  all  that  Sandi  said :  I  knew  that  he  was 
all  this  time  seeking  for  a  present  for  himself,  in  which  he  was 
greatly  assisted  by  those  around  him :  indeed,  he  told  me  that 
he  would  not  conduct  me  to  the  king  till  he  had  received 
what  he  considered  was  his  right.  I  offered  him  the  value  of 
two  dollars,  which  he  refused  ;  I  then  proposed  leaving  the 
matter  till  the  morning,  as  it  was  nov/  getting  late ;  with  which 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU, 


453 


he  readily  complied,  and  immediately  took  the  king's  present, 
Avhich  consisted  of  two  pieces  of  blue  baft  and  a  little  tobacco. 
John  Cupidon  accompanied  him,  and  brought  back  the  king's 
compliments;  and,  soon  after,  Ilis  Majesty  sent  me  some  koiis- 
kous  and  fowl  for  supper.  Between  eleven  and  twelve  we 
retired  to  rest,  my  bed  being  of  the  same  construction  as  that 
of  last  evening.  My  people  were  quite  discouraged;  saying,  if 
the  king  vrould  not  allow  us  to  pass  through  his  country  till 
the  palaver  was  settled,  we  had  better  return ;  to  which  I  would 
not  listen  for  a  moment.  Indeed,  I  was  persuaded  the  king 
would  allow  me  to  move  on  without  further  interruption ;  his 
fear,  I  conceived,  would  be  that  if  he  prevented  me  from 
having  an  interview  with  the  powerful  chief  of  Bondou,  it 
might  be  attended  with  disagreeable  consequences  to  himself. 
However,  on  retiring  to  rest,  I  did  not  fail  most  sincerely, 
by  prayer  and  supplication,  to  make  my  requests  known  unto 
God. 

12th. — We  rose  early;  and  thinking  that  Saudi  would  like 
tobacco  better  than  the  beads  which  we  presented  to  him  last 
evening,  we  gave  him  two  dollars'  worth  ;  but  he  received  it 
with  great  indifference :  nor  would  he  introduce  us  to  the  king, 
until  I  had  given  him  a  piece  of  baft.  This  appeared  to  satisfy 
him,  and  we  at  once  proceeded  to  the  royal  residence.  We 
found  the  old  king  lounging  upon  his  bed  inside  his  hut ;  and  I 
was,  as  on  the  former  occasion,  seated  beside  him :  the  rest  of 
the  company  squatted  upon  the  floor.  Being  told  that  I  was 
going  to  Bondou,  and  that  I  called  to  pay  ray  respects  to  him 
on  the  wa}^,  he  answered,  "  Very  good  :  you  can  go,  and  I  hope 
God  will  preserve  you."  He  then  asked,  what  was  the  object 
of  my  visit  to  Bondou ;  and  being  informed  that  it  was  upon 
the  same  business  about  which  I  came  to  see  him  last  year,  he 
again  answered,  "  A^ery  good."  I  then  asked,  if  he  was  still 
desirous  to  have  a  missionary  in  his  kingdom  ;  when  he  replied 
in  the  affirmative,  and  said  that  he  would  give  him  gi'ound, 
either  by  the  water-side,  or  farther  inland,  whichever  we  might 
prefer.  On  taking  my  leave,  the  king  said  I  might  proceed  on 
my  journey  as  soon  as  I  pleased. 

This  interview  with  His  sable  Majesty,  after  the  report  and 
annoyance  of  last  evening,  was  quite  refreshing,  and  I  was 
desirous  of  leaving  directly;  but  we  could  not  get  away  till 
evening,  and  were  nearly  the  whole  day  beset  with  a  number  of 
rapacious  beggars.  About  five  p.m.  we  proceeded  to  Barra- 
kunda,  a  large  marraboo  town,  about  a  mile  east  from  the  capi- 
tal, and  took  up  our  abode  with  the  alkaid.     By  this  time  I  was 


454  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

very  hungry,  having  eaten  but  little  the  last  two  days ;  and  just 
as  I  was  looking  out  for  a  fowl,  our  landlord  presented  me  with 
one ;  but  before  it  was  cooked,  I  was  glad  to  eat  a  handful  or 
two  of  ground-nuts.  My  bed  to-night  was  upon  the  bentuny, 
having  over  it  a  conical  roof,  as  I  thought  it  would  be  a  little 
more  free  from  lizards  and  other  reptiles,  which  abound  in  this 
place. 

Madina,  the  capital  of  the  kingdom  of  Woolli,  lies  due  north 
from  Fattatenda,  about  twenty-five  miles  distant.  It  is  a 
respectable  walled  town,  and  contains  about  twelve  hundred  inha- 
bitants, the  greater  part  of  whom  are  sonnmkeas.  The  wall  is 
about  eight  feet  high,  and  has  three  entrances  or  gates,  between 
each  of  which  the  ground  outside  is  excavated  several  feet  deep  : 
the  wells  are  all  inside.  The  name  of  the  present  king  is 
Mansa  Koi :  his  residence  and  dress  ordinarily  differ  but  little 
from  the  rest  of  the  natives.  He  is  rather  stout,  and  is  about 
sixty  years  of  age,  having  reigned  thirteen  years.  His  prede- 
cessor, whose  name  was  Faring,  reigned  upwards  of  twenty 
years ;  and  the  one  preceding  him  was  "  the  good  old  king" 
mentioned  by  Mungo  Park,  when  here  towards  the  end  of 
1795.  But  in  Park's  second  journey,  in  1805,  his  friend,  the 
former  king  of  Woolli,  had  died;  and  having  then  a  large 
escort,  the  new  king,  demanded  presents  in  proportion.  Two  or 
three  of  the  old  men  with  whom  I  conversed  have  a  distinct 
recollection  of  that  celebrated  traveller. 

In  1818,  Major  Gray  took  Madina  in  his  route,  in  proceeding 
to  the  interior ;  and  he  was  greatly  annoyed  at  the  insults,  and 
even  assaults,  committed  upon  some  of  his  men.  "  Such  a  bare- 
faced and  determined  set  of  thieves  they  never  met/'  Matters 
at  one  time  ran  so  high,  that  the  commander  "  ordered  the  men 
to  load  and  fall  in;"  and  on  another  occasion  "the  bugles 
sounded  to  arms;"  but  a  collision  was  happily  prevented;  and 
having  added  considerably  to  the  presents,  and  at  length 
obtained  guides,  they  left  "  that  nest  of  thieves." 

I  am  not  aware  that  any  European  has  visited  this  place  since 
Major  Gray,  which  is  now  twenty  years  ago.  The  appearance 
and  site  of  the  town  have  not,  during  that  time,  undergone  any 
material  alteration,  nor,  indeed,  for  nearly  the  last  half  century ; 
for  Mungo  Park,  in  his  first  visit  to  Madina,  describes  it  sub- 
stantially as  the  major  has  done,  and  as  it  is  also  described  by 
the  Avriter  of  this  work.  The  "  eight  hundred  to  a  thousand 
houses"  mentioned  by  Park,  is  probably  an  error  of  the  press  or 
of  the  pen. 

13th. — AYe  are  waiting  here   (Barrakunda)  for  Babukar,   a 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  455 

man  of  some  note,  who  resides  with  the  celebrated  Moham- 
medan priest  at  Jume,  the  second  or  third  town  in  Bondou. 
Happening  to  be  here,  and  being  strongly  recommended  to  me 
as  a  guide,  I  have  agreed  to  wait  till  he  returns  from  Fattatenda, 
which  is  expected  to  be  this  evening. 

We  are  here  rather  indifferently  supplied  with  provisions  : 
the  people  seem  very  poor,  which  is  generally  the  case  with 
those  towns  contiguous  to  the  capital.  There  are  a  few  sheep 
and  goats  running  about ;  but  the  price  they  ask  for  them  is 
very  high,  and  withal  we  have  not  the  articles  they  want  in 
exchange  for  them.  The  inhabitants  eat  pounded  corn,  made 
into  a  kind  of  pudding,  and  very  seldom  taste  animal  food. 
Our  landlord  lives  upon  this,  and  presents  us  with  the  same ; 
but  myself  and  two  others  of  our  company  cannot  touch  it : 
were  it  not  for  a  little  tea  and  sugar  which  I  have  with  me,  I 
should  be  uncomfortable  :  this,  with  half  a  partridge,  has  been  the 
whole  of  my  subsistence  to-day.  Well,  I  ought  not  to  com- 
plain ;  and  especially  on  such  a  day  as  this  :  it  is  Good-Friday ; 
and  I  have  not  forgotten,  that  on  this  day  "  for  me  the  Saviour 
died."  We  have  endeavoured  to  improve  it  ourselves  as  well  as 
we  could,  by  reading,  singing,  and  prayer ;  and  this  evening  I 
addressed  a  few  of  the  marraboos  upon  the  all-important  subject 
of  Christ  crucified.  One  of  them  sprang  from  his  seat,  and  went 
a  few  yards  from  me,  saying  to  one  of  his  fellows,  "  Mind,  he  is 
going  to  warn  us  now."  God  grant  they  may  take  warning 
before  it  be  too  late  ! 

14th. — During  the  night  some  strangers,  or  travellers,  called, 
and  asked  for  lodgings.  The  alkaid  was  some  time  before  he 
would  admit  them,  saying  that  his  yard  was  full  of  strangers. 
At  day-break  we  found  that  the  principal  man  was  a  messenger 
from  the  king  of  Salum,  (between  Goree  and  St.  Mary's,)  to 
the  almamy  of  Bondou,  and  that  he  was  returning  from  the 
latter  place,  with  a  couple  of  men  from  the  almamy.  About 
nine  a.m.  Babukar  arrived  from  Fattatenda;  so  that  I  was  in 
hopes  of  leaving  in  the  evening ;  but  was  disappointed,  as  he 
said  he  could  not  accompany  me  till  his  business  with  the  king 
was  settled,  which  he  would  get  done  as  soon  as  possible. 

This  town  is  much  larger  than  it  was  when  I  was  here  last 
year,  besides  having  a  good  clay  wall  built  all  round  it,  with  six 
or  seven  entrances.  The  wells  are  outside,  where  there  are  also 
a  few  more  scattered  huts.  The  ground,  for  some  distance 
round  Madina  and  this  place,  is  cultivated  during  the  rains 
with  corn  and  rice,  cotton  and  ground-nuts :  the  cotton  they 
convert  into  country  pagnes,  which  they  use,  or  exchange  for 


456  WESTERN  COAST  OP  AFRICA. 

European  goods :  they  also  dispose  of  tlie  ground-nuts,  and 
some  of  the  corn,  in  like  manner,  to  the  traders  at  Fattatenda. 
The  inhabitants  of  this  marraboo  town  are  much  more  indus- 
trious and  frugal  than  the  Pagans  of  Madina,  who  live  princi- 
pally by  begging  and  plunder. 

The  rite  of  circumcision  has  recently  been  performed  upon  a 
number  of  youths  from  this  and  the  neighbouring  town.  They 
are  located  under  the  shade  of  a  large  tree,  about  half  a  mile 
from  this  place,  Avith  their  mats  to  sleep  upon ;  and  their  pre- 
sent residence  is  enclosed  by  a  temporary  fence  of  wattled  straw 
or  grass.  They  have  two  or  three  attendants,  in  the  capacity 
of  surgeon  and  cooks ;  and  a  considerable  portion  of  their  time 
is  occupied  in  singing,  clapping  hands,  and  dancing.  I  am  told, 
there  are  sixty-nine  in  this  group,  some  few  having  left :  these 
are  remaining,  until  all  have  recovered.  Dr.  Winterbottom,  in 
his  account  of  Sierra-Leone,  has  some  interesting  remarks  on 
this  ancient  ceremony :  he  states,  that  circumcision  is  in  use 
among  the  females  in  some  parts  of  the  Coast,  though  not  in 
the  neighbourhood  of  that  colony ;  and  Mungo  Park  mentions 
the  fact,  that  "both  sexes,  whether  Bushreens  or  Kaffirs,  on 
attaining  the  age  of  puberty,  are  circumcised."  In  this  instance, 
however,  they  were  all  boys. 

We  have  again  to-day  been  but  scantily  supplied  with  food ; 
but  our  landlord  having  presented  us  with  a  sheep  this  even- 
ing, we  are  quite  in  good  spirits, 

Sunday,  15tli. — This  is  Easter-day;  and  I  have  been  much 
interested  and  blessed  in  reading  the  account  of  the  Saviour's 
resurrection,  as  given  by  the  four  evangelists.  After  breakfast  I 
I'ead  and  explained,  in  a  large  hut  full  of  people,  the  first  chapter 
of  Genesis.  In  praying  afterwards,  I  had  considerable  liberty ; 
the  people  were  very  attentive,  thanked  me  sincerely,  hoped 
God  would  bless  and  preserve  me  on  my  journey,  give  me  long 
life,  &c. 

Finding  that  our  expected  guide  will  probably  have  to  wait 
several  days  longer,  we  have  agreed  to  go  on  to  the  next  town 
this  evening,  as  he  will  most  likely  overtake  us  before  we  come 
to  Jume.  On  leaving,  I  presented  the  alkaid  with  my  blanket, 
as  it  was  an  article  he  very  much  wanted,  and  I  stood  in  no 
great  need  of  it.  Three  hours'  ride  brought  us  to  Bambako, 
having  travelled  south-east  by  east.  We  passed  one  Foulah 
town  about  mid-way :  the  path  was  varied,  principally  over  a 
hard  yellow  clay  soil,  mixed  with  small  quartz  pebbles,  and 
much  broken  into  deep  ruts  by  the  rains.  In  one  place  it  was 
so  steep  and  rocky,  that  I  had  to  dismount. 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  457 

Bambako  is  somewhat  celebrated  as  the  residence  of  Man- 
tamba,  the  king's  general,  or  head-warrior.  He  was  not  at 
home  when  we  arrived,  but  was  expected  during  the  evening. 
Major  Gray  reckons  this  place  to  be  thirteen  miles  from  Madina. 
I  thought  it  was  not  quite  so  far :  probably  mine  was  a  some- 
what nearer  route  than  that  whicli  he  took. 

16th. — We  rose  early,  and  left  a  small  present  with  our  land- 
lord for  Mantamba  ;*  but  Avhen  we  called  to  see  him,  he  was  in 
a  state  of  intoxication,  not  having  been  in  bed  all  night.  He 
nevertheless  received  us  cordially,  but  said  I  could  not  go  yet, 
as  he  had  not  given  me  any  thing ;  and  that,  if  I  Avished  to 
remain  a  month,  I  was  Avelcorae ;  and  much  more  to  the  same 
eflFect.  I  was  therefore  obliged  to  wait  the  day,  or  a  part  of  it 
at  least,  till  this  man  recovers  from  his  revelry :  so  I  returned  to 
my  lodgings.  In  about  an  hour  after  this  he  came,  to  give  me 
"  compliment,"  as  he  called  it,  bringing  Avith  him  a  griot,  with 
a  large  fiddle,  and  a  number  of  attendants.  He  immediately 
commenced  dancing,  and  put  his  body  and  features  into  all 
sorts  of  attitudes.  Soon  after  this,  he  came  a  second  time,  and 
wished  me  to  see  a  bullock,  which  he  had  ordered  to  be  killed 
as  a  present  for  me. 

Bambako  was  described  by  Major  Gray  as  "  a  very  miserable 
village,  not  containing  more  than  twenty  huts  of  the  poorest 
description."  It  has,  however,  since  that  period,  much  im- 
proved, being  now  a  walled  town,  with  some  good  native  houses 
and  stores,  and  contains  from  eight  hundred  to  one  thousand 
souls,  nearly  all  Pagans.  I  find  that  Tatta  Fodey  is  here  wait- 
ing for  Mantamba  to  go  to  Madina  about  the  palaver  with 
Bondou,  which  is  in  substance  this  :  Some  time  ago,  a  caravan 
was  robbed  between  Bondou  and  Fattatenda ;  and  the  almamy 
having  heard  that  some  of  the  Woolli  people  were  connected 
with  the  robbery,  he  demands  the  value  of  the  stolen  goods 
from  the  king  of  Woolli. 

In  this  town  I  saw  two  of  those  rarities  of  the  human  species, 
called  by  the  Mandingoes  "  Funnc,"  and  by  the  Spanish 
"  Albinos,"  or  white  Negroes.  I  had  seen  one  of  these  singular 
beings  at  Subakunda,  in  my  journey  to  Madina  last  year.  At 
St.  Mary's,  too,  a  member  of  our  society  and  her  husband  are 
both  very  dark ;  yet  she  has  had  two  or  three  children  who  were 

*  The  same  person  mentioned  by  Park,  in  his  second  journey,  among  others  io 
whom  he  gave  presents,  as  follows : — "  To  Mantamba,  the  king's  own  son,  amber, 
5  ;  coral,  5  :  10  bars."  He  was  then  a  young  man,  and  probably  resided  at 
Madina. 


458  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

perfectly  white  :  oue  of  those  I  also  saw ;  but  neither  of  them 
lived  long.  In  the  two  instances  at  Bambako,  they  are  both 
females ;  the  one  about  twenty-five  years  of  age,  and  the  other 
fifteen :  they  are  sisters,  and  their  parents  have  other  children 
quite  black.  They  appeared  sickly ;  but  I  was  told  that  they 
are  healthy  and  strong,  and  as  capable  of  work  as  any  of  the 
others,  which  I  very  much  question.  The  elder  I  saw  at  the 
well,  drawing  water,  and  she  was  remarkably  robust ;  but  they 
both  suffer  greatly  from  the  bite  of  sand-flies,  musquitoes,  &c. 
Mr.  Mollien,  when  at  Foota  Jallon,  speaks  of  "  a  young  Albi- 
no ^^  whom  he  saw,  and  was  informed  that  the  Blacks  marry 
these  women,  and  that  they  bear  children,  and  that,  when 
united  to  men  of  their  own  colour,  the  offspring  of  this  union 
are  as  white  as  themselves.  Here  I  was  informed  to  the  con- 
trary. They  associate,  it  is  true,  with  the  others  in  their  juve- 
nile sports ;  but  they  are  generally  diseased,  and  of  an  unsightly 
appearance ;  and  the  men  look  upon  them,  as  one  expressed 
himself  to  me,  as  "  a  wonderful  thing,"  or  something  out  of  the 
common  course  of  nature ;  adding,  very  significantly,  in  refer- 
ence to  the  two  in  this  town,  "  They  will  never  obtain  husbands 
as  long  as  they  live." 

A  little  before  six  p.m.  Mantamba  having  awoke  from  a  few 
hours'  sleep,  I  immediately  sent  John  Cupidon,  our  landlord, 
and  Bukana,  with  a  little  tobacco  as  a  present,  and  an  order  on 
Fattatenda  for  one  piece  of  blue  baft,  stating  that  I  wished  to 
proceed  on  ray  journey.  They  found  him  at  the  store-door,  seek- 
ing after  more  rum.  He  thanked  me  for  the  present ;  and  said 
I  might  go,  and  he  hoped  God  would  go  with  me,  and  preserve 
me,  but  that  he  should  come  and  see  me  before  I  started.  On 
hearing  the  latter  part  of  the  message,  and  fearing  that  if  he 
came  he  would  press  me  to  wait  till  morning,  I  instantly 
saddled  my  pony,  and  off  we  started ;  and  two  hours'  ride 
brought  us  to  Kanipe,  having  passed  two  small  Foulah  towns  on 
the  w'ay. 

17th. — Kanipe*  is  a  walled  town,  diagonally  formed  with  an 
outward  fence  of  stakes  and  prickly  bushes.  There  is  also  in 
the  interior  a  sort  of  citadel  or  fort,  within  w  liicli  the  alkaid  and 
a  few  others  reside.  There  is  one  well  inside  the  town,  and 
another  without.  I  was  desirous  of  leaving  the  place  this 
morning;  but  our  landlord  and  a  few  others  entreated  us  so 

*  Mentioned  by  Park  and  Gray,  both  of  whom  found  great  ditRculty  in  ol)taining 
water,  not  fi-om  its  scarcity,  l)ut  from  the  people  alleging  that  it  was  their  pro- 
perty, and  they  must  be  paid  for  it ! 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  459 

earnestly  to  tarry  a  short  time,  that  I  have  promised  to  wait  till 
evening. 

We  this  forenoon  obtained  a  good  breakfast  of  rice  and  fowl, 
and  afterwards  read  a  portion  of  holy  writ,  and  offered  up 
prayer  to  the  God  of  all  our  mercies.  Some  of  the  children  at 
this  place  had  never  seen  a  white  man  before,  and  the  mothers 
amused  themselves  and  frightened  their  offspring  by  bringing 
them  to  see  me,  when  the  infants  especially  began  to  scream 
out  most  lustily.  The  inhabitants  here  are  mostly  sonninkeas ; 
and  we  have  been  complimented  during  the  day  with  a  couple 
of  griots.  There  is  another  town  about  a  mile  and  a  half  dis- 
tant, in  the  neighbourhood  of  which  there  are  a  number  of  lads 
from  this  place,  who  have  recently  submitted  to  the  rite  of 
circumcision. 

Between  five  and  six  p.m.  we  proceeded  on  our  journey. 
After  travelling  about  two  miles  we  passed  a  village  called 
Sutuba,  and  four  miles  further  we  came  to  Dirma,  where  we 
halted  for  the  night.  Dirma  is  a  small  dirty  town,  with  a  loose 
stockade  fence,  and  the  people  are  a  mixture  of  Jollofs  and  Ten- 
colors  :  how  they  came  here  they  cannot  tell.  Here  we  were 
told  that  three  days  ago  a  man  with  his  family  (consisting  of  his 
wife,  one  son,  and  two  daughters)  left  this  place  for  the  next 
town  on  his  way  to  Bondou,  where  he  was  going  with  some 
cattle,  and  was  attacked  by  some  Foota  Torro  Foulahs;  and 
though  he  was  wounded  from  a  shot,  yet  he  and  his  son  suc- 
ceeded in  driving  them  off.  About  midnight  we  had  a  good 
supper  of  kouskous,  and,  as  usual,  then  spread  a  mat  upon 
nature's  carpet,  commended  ourselves  to  God,  and  went  to 
sleep. 

18th. — We  started  at  day-break  for  Walufarra :  this  place 
being  at  a  considerable  distance,  we  carried  water  Avitli  us. 
Nearly  four  hours'  ride  through  an  immense  wood,  east  south- 
east and  east,  brought  us  to  our  destination.  Walufarra  is  a 
small  miserable-looking  village,  seated  upon  a  patch  of  rising 
gi^ound.  Here  we  could  obtain  nothing  for  either  man  or  beast. 
The  cattle  had  been  removed  to  better  pasturage,  so  that  we 
could  obtain  no  milk ;  and  they  had  neither  fowls  nor  rice. 
There  were  a  few  goats ;  but  they  wanted  coral  or  amber  for 
them,  neither  of  which  had  we  in  our  possession.  The  bees  had 
got  into  the  water  at  the  well,  and  were  swimming  about  in 
such  numbers  that  the  poor  horses  could  not  obtain  a  drink ; 
and  the  small  quantity  of  that  precious  liquid  which  was  in  the 
town  was  so  unpleasant,  that  I  could  not  drink  it.  Thinking 
that  a  little  tea  and  sugar  would  make  it  more  palatable,  I  had 


460  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

a  small  quantity  boiled ;  but  even  then  I  was  foiled  and  dis- 
appointed ;  for  the  bees,  smelling  the  sugar,  beset  me  in  such 
multitudes,  from  all  quarters,  that  I  M^as  obliged  to  give  it  up. 
We  therefore  immediately  re-saddled,  and  pushed  on  to  the 
next  town,  Tambakunda,  having  kept  my  mouth  moist  by 
occasionally  plucking  a  cool  green  leaf  from  some  part  of  the 
thicket  through  which  we  passed.  Two  hours  and  a  half,  east 
north-east,  brought  us  to  this  place,  somewhat  fatigued,  hungry, 
and  thirsty.  Here  Ave  Avere  well  received,  and  Avere  told  that 
Ave  should  have  every  thing  we  needed  ;  but  it  was  nine  o'clock 
in  the  CA'ening  before  supper  was  readA^  HoAvever,  I  was 
thankful  for  it  then,  having  taken  nothing  all  day  save  one 
kola-nut.  The  distance  from  Dirma  to  this  place  I  consider  to 
be  about  tAventj^-tAvo  miles ;  but  Cupidon  thought  it  a  great  deal 
more. 

19th. — We  are  waiting  here  (Tambakunda)  for  the  arrival  of 
a  man  Avhom  I  sent  from  Dirma  to  Fattatenda,  for  a  fcAv  more 
goods,  as  I  fear  I  shall  have  little  or  nothing  Avorth  presenting 
to  the  almamy,  by  the  time  we  reach  Boollibany. 

Tambakunda  is  a  respectable  Availed  toAvn,  Avith  four 
entrances.  There  are  a  number  of  loop-holes  in  different  parts 
of  the  Avail,  and  at  the  door-Avays  there  is  a  sort  of  scaffolding  or 
platform,  with  additional  loop-holes  at  the  top,  Avhere  a  flanking 
fire  could  be  maintained.  The  people  here,  as  in  almost 
every  place  we  have  passed,  are  constantly  talking  about  the 
intense  heat  of  the  sun  in  Bondou;  saying,  Nying  tilo  aning 
Bondou  tilo  ma  kiling,  "The  sun  here  and  that  of  Bondou  are 
not  one.''  Many  of  the  inhabitants,  particularly  the  Avomen  and 
children,  Avho  have  never  seen  an  European  before,  gaze  upon 
me  in  astonishment,  Avith  their  hands  upHfted  to  their  mouths ; 
and  on  my  taking  a  Avalk,  or  moving  toAvards  them,  they  scam- 
per off  in  all  directions,  as  if  I  was  something  more  or  less  than 
human. 

The  man  from  Fattatenda  haAdng  returned,  we  presented  our 
landlord  and  the  alkaid  Avith  a  little  tobacco ;  and  at  twenty 
minutes  before  five  p.m.  avc  again  moAcd  on,  in  company  Avith  a 
small  cafila,  consisting  of  three  men  and  tAvo  asses,  Avho  are 
going  to  some  part  of  Bondou.  The  asses  started  very  badly  at 
first,  but  afterwards  Avent  on  at  a  tolerable  rate.  We  have 
found  the  Mandingo  language,  for  some  days  past,  somcAvhat 
different  from  what  it  is  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Macarthy's 
Island,  and  loAver  doAvn  the  Gambia,  some  of  the  Avords  haA'ing 
quite  a  different  meaning;  and  Cr.i)idon  himself,  Avho  is  a 
Jollof,  is  frequently  at  a  loss.     The  multiplicity  of  languages  is 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  461 

a  great  obstacle  in  learning  any  one  of  them  while  travelling  in 
this  way.  AV  e  are  now  nine  in  company  ;  and  in  the  course  of 
a  few  minutes  no  less  than  five  languages  are  spoken. 

The  next  town  being  at  a  considerable  distance,  we  again  car- 
ried water ;  and  having  travelled  four  hours,  which  was  considered 
little  more  than  half  way,  Ave  halted,  and  rested  in  the  depth  of 
the  forest,  close  to  the  road-side.  Having  each  taken  a  hearty 
draught  of  water  from  the  soofroo  (leathern  bag),  and  cora- 
niended  ourselves  to  God,  we  lay  down.  A  pugne  upon  the 
warm  ground  was  my  bed,  and  a  bag  coutaiqing  some  tobacco 
was  my  pillow.  We  had  no  fire  kindled ;  but  I  slept  tolerabh' 
well,  and  without  much  apprehension,  either  from  wicked  men 
or  wild  animals,  though  both  are  frequently  prowling  about  in 
this  wilderness.  Some  of  our  party  spent  a  sleepless  night ; 
but  whether  from  fear,  or  from  other  causes,  I  cannot  say.  A  leo- 
pard was  heard  during  our  repose,  in  addition  to  elephants  and 
lions,  and  a  variety  of  other  animals,  both  wild  and  tame,  with 
Avhich  this  locality  abounds.  I  was  told  of  one,  though  but 
rarely  seen,  which,  as  far  as  I  could  gather  from  the  description, 
appears  to  be  the  beautiful  zebra. 

20th. — A  little  after  three  o'clock  this  morning  the  moon 
arose,  and  we  again  pursued  our  onward  course,  aided  by 
nature's  .lantern,  a  very  useful  and  necessary  guide.  Being 
rather  sleepy,  I  commenced  singing, — 

"  In  darkest  shades  if  Tliou  appear, 
My  dawning  is  begun  : 
Thou  art  my  soul's  bright  morning-star, 
And  Tliou  my  rising  sun." 

This  disturbed  a  tribe  of  large  monkeys,  many  of  which  came 
very  near  to  us,  and  chattered  most  earnestly.  Three  hours' 
ride  brought  us  to  Kotchair,  (probably  the  Koojar  of  Park,)  where 
Ave  halted  under  a  tree  near  the  town ;  and  the  head-man,  whom 
they  here  call  "  king,"  presented  us  Avith  a  goat,  Avhich  Avas  very 
acceptable.  Kotchair  is  fortified  in  the  common  African  man- 
ner, by  a  surrounding  high  Avail  built  of  clay,  Avith  several  door- 
Avays  or  entrances,  Avhich  are  generally  closed  at  night.  It  is 
the  last  town  in  the  kingdom  of  Woolli ;  and  the  head-man 
1)ears  the  nan\e  of  chief  or  king  probably  from  its  being  a  con- 
siderable distance  from  the  seat  of  government. 

In  the  evening  we  came  to  Nouday,  the  frontier  town  of 
Bondou,  and  were  well  received  by  our  landlord.  This  place  is 
long  and  narrow,  Avith  large  yards  attached  to  each  residence ; 
but,  unlike  most  other  places  through  which  avc  have  passed,  it 


462 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


has  no  kind  of  fence  round  it.  The  inhabitants  are  Teucolors, 
and  were  busily  employed  in  bringing  in  large  herds  of  cattle. 
Here  I  obtained  as  much  milk  as  I  could  drink,  and  a  good 
supper  of  fowl  and  kouskous. 

21st. — About  four  miles  this  morning  east  by  north  brought  us 
to  Julangal,  a  large  Serrawoolli  town,  about  half  a  mile  long. 
There  are  a  few  of  the  pastoral  or  wandering  Foulahs  close  by, 
with  their  temporary  bee-hive-looking  habitations.  The  people 
here  make  the  earthen  jars,  and  here  also,  I  was  told,  there  is 
an  Albino  female ;  but  1  did  not  see  her. 

As  our  people  were  becoming  rather  fatigued,  we  tarried  here 
till  evening;  when  two  hours^  ride  due  east  brought  us  to  Jume, 
another  Serrawoolli  town,  somewhat  noted  as  being  the  resi- 
dence of  a  learned  marraboo  priest  named  Kabba,  who  has 
scholars  from  different  parts  of  the  country.  He  was  busy  with 
his  pupils,  but  immediately  came  to  give  us  a  hearty  welcome, 
and  soon  after  he  sent  me  three  fowls.  Here  our  guide  gave  a 
history  of  our  proceedings,  from  Kanipe,  where  he  met  with  us, 
to  this  place.  After  he  had  done,  the  priest  commenced  a 
prayer  for  us,  the  people,  with  their  hands  upon  their  foreheads, 
as  on  the  former  occasions,  saying  at  the  end  of  every  sentence, 
"  Amin,  amin !  " 

Sunday,  22d. — I  rose  this  morning  from  my  earthy  bed  a 
little  indisposed,  having  taken  a  slight  cold  the  previous  night 
while  sleeping  at  Nouday.  After  breakfast,  a  portion  of  scrip- 
ture was  read,  and  prayer  offered  up  to  Almighty  God,  on 
behalf  of  ourselves  and  of  the  demoralized  inhabitants  of  this 
place,  many  of  whom  were  present  in  our  large  hut.  The 
priest  was  busy  all  the  day,  so  that  I  had  not  an  opportunity  of 
speaking  to  him  till  the  evening;  when  I  presented  him  with  a 
handsomely-bound  Arabic  Testament,  and  held  a  lengthy  con- 
versation with  him,  on  the  subject  of  experimental  religion,  in 
the  presence  of  a  large  congregation ;  but  he  is,  like  the  Jewish 
rabbi,  an  utter  stranger  to  the  new  birth,  and,  like  that  master 
in  Israel,  said,  in  effect,  "  How  can  these  things  be?^^ 

23d. — We  rose  early,  and  went  to  the  priest,  to  procure  a 
guide,  which  he  had  promised  us  to  Boollibany,  the  capital  of 
Bondou;  but  he  was  not  ready,  so  that  we  waited  till  the 
afternoon.  Soon  after  the  interview  I  accompanied  this  Moham- 
medan scribe  to  see  his  brother,  who  was  sick ;  at  whose  request 
I  prayed,  and  was  truly  blessed  while  commending  him  and  all 
the  inhabitants  of  the  town  to  the  care  of  their  heavenly  Father. 
I  afterwards  sent  him  some  medicine. 

Jume  is  nearly  as  large  as  Julangal ;  but  the  people  are  not 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU. 


463 


SO  clean,  nor  do  they  appear  so  intelligent ;  yet  they  were 
equally  curious  to  see  me,  and  I  could  scarcely  move  without 
being  surrounded  by  numbers  of  them.  They  are  principally 
followers  of  the  false  prophet,  and  have  a  large  mosque,  which  I 
saw ;  but  I  was  not  permitted  to  enter  it.  This  place  is  one  of 
the  strongholds  of  the  Mohammedan  creed ;  and  I  was  forcibly 
reminded  of  St.  PauFs  discourse  at  "  Mars^  hill,"  when  he  stood 
and  said,  "  Ye  men  of  Athens,  I  perceive  that  in  all  things  ye 
are  too  superstitious.  For  as  I  passed  by,  and  beheld  your 
devotions,  I  found  an  altar  with  this  inscription,  TO  THE 
UNKNOWN  GOD,  Whom  therefore  ye  ignorantly  worship, 
him  declare  I  unto  you."  (Acts  xvii.  22,  23.)  This  also  I  have 
endeavoured  to  do  here. 

A  little  before  five  p.m.,  the  guide  being  ready,  I  immediately 
mounted,  and  Ave  were  in  the  act  of  starting ;  but  the  priest 
thought  proper  first  to  give  us  his  blessing,  which  he  did  by 
taking  hold  of  my  hands  while  on  horseback,  and  saying  some- 
thing which  I  did  not  understand  ;  but  the  people  around  us 
were  all  attention,  and  they  stood  looking  with  both  their  hands 
opened  as  if  they  expected  something  to  fall  from  the  clouds  at 
the  close  of  the  ceremony ;  and,  as  before,  they  all  said,  "  Amin, 
amin !"  We  now  proceeded,  upwards  of  one  hundred  of  the 
inhabitants,  men,  women,  and  children,  following  us,  sometimes 
completely  surrounding  my  horse,  wishing  me  to  shake  hands 
with  them.  I  did  so  until  I  was  tired;  and  was  ultimately 
obliged  to  gallop  off.  We  travelled  about  twelve  miles  east,  and 
came  to  two  straggling  villages,  at  one  of  which  we  halted ;  and, 
for  the  first  time  since  my  leaving  Fattatenda,  I  slept  inside  a 
hut,  as  the  last  day  or  two  the  north-east  breeze  has  been  rather 
cold  during  the  night. 

24th. — Nine  miles'  journeying  this  morning  brought  us  to 
Weegi,  having  passed  one  or  two  villages  on  the  way.  Here  we 
learnt,  with  some  degree  of  certainty,  that  the  almamy  is  pre- 
paring for  war, — with  whom  we  do  not  know ;  but  twenty  men 
left  this  place  yesterday  to  assist  on  the  occasion.  In  the  even- 
ing our  course  was  east-north-east  and  east-south-east  for  about 
ten  miles.  Our  landlord  here  received  us  rather  coolly.  At 
length  we  obtained  a  little  milk  for  some  beads  ;  but  the  people 
brought  such  miserable  drops  each  time,  that  the  whole  of  it 
was  scarcely  enough  for  a  cat. 

25th. — Being  much  better  to-day,  our  travelling  was  pleasant. 
We  crossed  several  beds  of  dark-coloured  stone,  through  a  diver- 
sified country  of  hill  and  dale,  vast  numbers  of  partridges  and 
guinea-fowls  being  seen  near  to  the  foot-path,  Avhich  was  some- 


464  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

times  covered  with  loose  brushwood ;  and  on  our  right  and  left 
were  trees  of  various  kinds,  those  of  the  acacia  species,  the 
tamarind,  and  monkey-bread  being  numerous  :  the  fruit  of  the 
latter  is  used  by  the  natives  as  an  astringent,  and  of  the  former 
for  the  opposite  purpose.  Twelve  miles  east-south-east  and  east 
brought  us  to  a  small  scattered  town  named  Gallordie,  having 
passed  two  or  three  others  on  the  way,  in  the  vicinity  of  which 
the  people  were  preparing  their  farms,  as  the  rainy  season  is 
approaching.  At  this  place  we  took  up  our  abode  for  a  short 
time  under  the  shade  of  a  large  tree,  where  a  Foulah  was  busily 
employed  in  making  small  boards  for  the  school-boys  to  write 
upon;  and  some  of  the  women  were  making  country  soap,  which 
is  manufactured  with  a  mixture  of  ground-nuts,  the  ashes  of 
burnt  trees,  water,  and  palm-oil.  These  four  articles  are  put 
into  an  earthen  pot,  and  exposed  to  the  sun  to  melt.  Whether 
the  sun  has  that  effect  upon  them  or  not,  I  am  unable  to  say ; 
but  I  saw  the  materials  so  placed,  and  the  water  was  then  warm. 

At  half-past  four  p.m.  we  left  Gallordie,  and  in  a  few  minutes 
came  into  a  deep  ravine  :  to  our  right  was  the  dry  bed  of  a  broad 
river,  and  for  a  mile  our  path  was  very  steep  and  rugged.  Ten 
miles  brought  us  to  Goodeerie,  the  residence  of  our  guide :  our 
course,  two-thirds  of  the  way,  was  east-south-east,  and  then  by 
a  sudden  turn  east-north-east.  On  the  new  moon  making  its 
appearance  this  evening,  the  Mohammedan  part  of  our  company 
did  not  fail  to  welcome  it,  by  instantly  turning  to  it  as  we  were 
journeying,  crossing  their  faces  with  their  hands,  and  using  some 
kind  of  prayer.  On  reaching  home,  our  guide  was  immediately 
welcomed  and  congratulated  by  numbers  of  his  friends  and 
neighbours,  among  whom  were  two  griots.  Between  ten  and 
eleven  we  obtained  a  good  supper  of  kouskous,  with  a  little  fowl, 
Avhich  was  very  acceptable;  we  having  had  nothing  last  evening, 
and  our  breakfast  this  morning  consisting  of  only  a  handful  or 
two  of  roasted  ground-nuts. 

26th. — Here  we  rest  to-day,  waiting  for  Sarjo,  our  guide, 
whose  father  acted  in  that  capacity  to  INIajor  Gray  some  twenty 
years  ago.  It  is  a  small  town  of  SerrawoolUes,  most  of  the 
inhabitants  being  engaged  in  trade.  The  well  which  we  passed 
last  evening  is  a  few  hundred  yards  distant,  near  to  which  there 
is  a  kind  of  watch-box,  made  of  mud  and  clay,  whei'e  the  hunter 
of  wild  animals  fixes  himself  during  the  night ;  and  when  these 
come  to  drink,  he  places  his  gun  through  one  of  the  loop-holes, 
and  the  animal  is  soon  in  his  possession. 

This  morning  a  caravan  of  Moors  arrived  here,  on  their  way 
to  Fattatenda.     They  are  from  Kaarta,  and  have  with  them  as  a 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  465 

guide  Bakarra,  a  nephew  of  the  king  of  that  place  ;  and  from 
the  almamy  they  obtained  another  to  the  banks  of  the  Gambia. 
Bakarra  is  an  iutelhgent  young  man,  and  appeared  anxious  that 
I  shoukl  pay  his  uncle  a  visit;  to  which  I  should  have  no  objec- 
tion, did  time  permit. 

27th. — We  had  a  little  rain  during  the  night ;  and  did  not 
start  till  past  eight  o'clock  this  morning.  We  passed  several 
Foulah  villages,  and  rested  at  a  scattered  town  named  Fittin- 
yibbe,  about  nine  miles  from  Goodeerie.  Here  we  purchased 
some  fowls  and  rice,  and  about  four  o^ clock  sat  down  to  a  good 
meal ;  immediately  after  which,  we  moved  on,  the  surface  of  the 
country  being  more  even  and  better  cultivated.  W^e  passed 
through  several  more  little  villages ;  and,  after  a  journey  of  about 
eight  miles,  we  came  to  Dandudy,  where  the  head-man  appeared 
afraid  to  receive  us  lest  we  should  be  expensive  to  him.  Here 
I  threw  myself  down  upon  a  mat  on  the  ground,  drank  a  hearty 
draught  of  water,  commended  myself  to  the  kind  care  of  my 
heavenly  Father,  and  went  to  sleep. 

28th. — We  rose  at  day-break,  and  again  pursued  our  way, 
east  north-east ;  some  parts  of  the  path  being  exceedingly  steep, 
and  others  the  reverse.  We  passed  several  pits  of  red  and 
white  clay,  two  towns,  and  halted  at  a  third,  named  Fettibooki. 
Here  the  hut  appropriated  to  our  use  was  occasionally  used  as  a 
pen  for  sheep  and  goats ;  and  our  landlord  very  unceremoniously 
brought  one  of  the  latter,  and  fastened  it  to  a  stake  while  some  of 
us  were  inside.  Having  tarried  here  for  a  few  hours,  given  the 
horses  provender,  and  partaken  of  an  humble  but  hearty  repast, 
we  reared  the  family-altar  in  our  mean  abode,  and  then  pushed 
on  for  about  ten  miles,  when  we  reached  the  much- wished- for 
Boollibany.  W^e  took  up  our  lodgings  with  an  uncle  of  our 
guide,  at  one  of  the  small  villages  contiguous  to  the  royal  town, 
as  we  were  informed  the  almamy  was  from  home,  and  that,  if 
we  lodged  in  the  capital,  we  should  probably  be  much  annoyed 
by  a  multitude  of  beggars. 

Sunday,  29th. — Boollibany.  This  has  been  a  singular 
sabbath-day ;  but  I  hope  I  have  discharged  my  duty  as  a  herald 
of  the  cross  of  Christ,  as  far  as  it  was  practicable.  The  almamy 
(or  imaum)  being  encamped  at  a  small  town  about  six  miles 
distant,  and  expecting  to  leave  to-morrow  on  some  plundering 
expedition,  I  was  reluctantly  compelled  to  pay  him  a  visit  to- 
day. Having  arrived  at  the  place,  south  south-east,  passing 
several  small  villages  on  the  way,  I  waited  about  an  hour  before 
he  made  his  appearance,  he  having,  in  the  mean  time,  sent  one 
of  his  priests  with  his  compliments.     On  being  introduced,  I 

H    H 


466  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

found  His  Majesty  with  about  two  liundred  and  fifty  of  his 
principal  counsellors^  warriors,  and  priests,  within  a  large  square 
yard  surrounded  by  a  wall,  a  temporary  tent  having  been  erected 
to  screen  them  from  the  heat  of  the  sun.  Being  seated  near  the 
sable  monarch,  upon  a  sheep-skin,  with  my  interpreter  by  my 
side,  I  made  known  to  him,  in  as  few  words  as  possible,  the 
nature  and  object  of  my  journey.  I  stated  to  him  that,  as  a 
minister  of  the  gospel  from  England,  stationed  at  the  Gambia,  I 
was  anxious  to  know  something  of  the  country,  people,  and  lan- 
guages contiguous  to  the  place  of  my  residence,  that,  as  soon  as 
possible,  I  might  commence  missions  among  them ;  that  I  had 
visited  the  kingdoms  of  Barra,  Nyani,  Woolli,  and  other  places, 
whose  kings  and  chiefs  were  favourably  disposed  toward  us ;  and 
that  I  had  now  paid  a  visit  to  Bondou  for  the  same  purpose. 

The  almamy  said  the  object  appeared  very  good ;  but  he,  with 
several  of  the  elders  around  him,  wished  to  know  what  it  was 
that  I  should  teach,  and  if  it  was  the  same  religion  as  Moham- 
medanism :  to  which  I  answered  in  the  negative ;  adding  that  I 
did  not  find  such  a  name  in  my  Bible.  This  led  to  a  number  of 
other  questions;  such  as,  "Do  you  face  the  east  when  you 
pray?  How  many  years  is  it  since  the  birth  of  Moses? 
And  how  long  is  it  since  Mohammed  wrote  the  Koran?"  &c. 
The  almamy  then  wished  me  to  state  to  them,  without  interrup- 
tion, the  substance  of  that  which  I  taught  or  preached.  Hold- 
ing a  beautiful  Arabic  Bible  in  my  hand,  I  commenced  by  say- 
ing, "The  contents  of  this  book  are" —  I  then  gave  an  out- 
line of  the  principles  of  our  holy  religion,  explaining  the  fall  of 
man, — the  universal  depravity  of  human  nature, — the  necessity 
of  a  change  of  heart, — God's  love  to  men  in  the  gift  of  his  Son, 
— repentance,  faith,  and  holiness, — future  rewards  and  punish- 
ments, &c.  The  doctrine  of  atonement  was  something  so  new 
and  strange  to  them,  that,  when  dwelling  upon  that  sub- 
ject, the  almamy  himself  interrupted  me  through  the  inter- 
preter, by  asking,  with  some  degree  of  astonishment,  Ako  di  ? 
Alia  ding  sa  ?  Wo  ma  tonyalamu  !  "  What  does  he  say  ?  God's 
Son  die  ?  That  cannot  be  true ! "  This  great  "  mystery  of 
godliness,  God  manifest  in  the  flesh,"  I  endeavoured  to  explain 
as  well  as  I  could,  and  assured  them  all  that  it  was  "  a  faithful 
saying,  and  worthy  of  all  acceptation;"  that  I  had  long  felt  its 
truth  in  my  own  heart,  which  made  me  happy;  and  that  God 
had  given  his  Son  to  bleed  and  die  for  the  black  man  as  well  as 
for  the  white,  he  being  no  respecter  of  persons.  I  felt  a  sacred 
pleasure  in  thus  exhibiting  to  these  desperadoes  the  vast  supe- 
riority of  the  Christian  religion  to  the  absurd  and  demoralizing 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU. 


467 


system  of  Mohammedanism.  The  almamy  then  wished  me  to 
tell  them  what  God  had  told  them  to  do,  and  what  not  to  do. 
This  gave  me  an  excellent  opportunity  of  dwelling  at  consider- 
able length  upon  the  Decalogue ;  which  I  did,  and  particularly 
upon  those  parts  of  it  that  I  knew^  to  be  very  applicable  to  those 
around  me,  relating  to  adultery,  murder,  theft,  sabbath-break- 
ing, &c.  When  I  had  concluded,  strange  to  say,  the  almamy 
answered,  that  what  I  had  said  was  all  very  good  and  true ;  but 
they  liked  their  own  rehgion  best.  I  told  them  that  they  were 
certainly  in  error  in  preferring  Mohammed  to  Christ,  and  that 
it  was  a  dangerous  error :  the  judgment-day  would  prove  the 
truth  of  all  I  had  said,  but  it  would  then  be  too  late.  The 
almamy,  in  summing  up  his  reply,  in  answer  to  the  object  of 
my  visit,  said,  they  were  all  glad  to  see  me,  they  loved  me  very 
much,  and  I  might  visit  any  part  of  Bondou  at  am^  time ;  and 
when  I  was  ready  to  commence  a  mission,  I  must  select  the 
place,  and  then  come  and  let  him  know.  " But,^^  said  he,  " we 
cannot  leave  our  religion  :  we  must  follow  Mohammed." 

It  was  deeply  affecting  to  me  to  look  upon  these  human 
beings,  professing  to  love  God,  yet  having  their  spears,  fire- 
arms, poisoned  arrows,  and  cutlasses  by  their  sides,  prepared  for 
battle  at  a  moment^s  notice,  and  every  day  receiving  additions 
to  their  force  :  nor  could  I  satisfy  my  conscience,  or  leave  the 
camp,  till  I  had  told  the  almamy  of  the  impropriety  and  sinful- 
ness of  such  proceedings,  and  urged  him,  by  all  that  was  dear, 
to  abandon  the  project. 

It  was  a  critical  moment.  I  was  in  the  midst  of  a  band  of 
half-savages,  all  armed,  the  almamy  himself  having  a  spear  at 
his  right  hand,  and  a  double-barrelled  gun  at  his  left ;  and  my 
excellent  assistant  was  fearful  that  if  I  said  any  thing  against 
their  going  to  war,  I  should  not  only  get  myself  into  difficulties, 
but  very  likely  be  at  once  taken  out  of  a  world  of  trouble  by 
being  instantly  shot,  or  by  some  other  means  be  put  to  death. 
But  it  seemed  as  if  I  heard  the  Saviour's  address  to  the  first 
missionaries,  "Be  not  afraid  of  them  that  kill  the  body,  and 
after  that  have  no  more  that  they  can  do  ;"  (Luke  xii.  4;)  and, 
"  Lo,  I  am  with  you  alway,  even  unto  the  end  of  the  world." 
(Matt,  xxviii.  20.)  Certainly  a  more  than  ordinary  degree  of 
moral  courage  was  imparted ;  and  I  said  to  the  interpreter, 
"  Be  sure  you  communicate  all  that  I  say  to  the  almamy ;  and  if 
I  fall  at  his  feet,  my  blood  will  be  the  seed  for  the  first  Chris- 
tian church  in  the  kingdom  of  Bondou."  It  was  the  sabbath 
day,  and  I  was  a  Wesleyan  missionary;  and  thourrh  for  away 
from  any  civilized  country,  I  was  resolved,  at  the  risk  of  life,^to 

9        TT       O 

(W       Xl       iW 


468  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

raise  my  voice  against  the  iniquity  and  horrors  of  such  plunder- 
ing expeditions,  the  sad  effects  of  which  I  had  more  than  once 
seen  with  my  own  eyes.  Here  were  two  hundred  and  fifty  war- 
riors, who  had  left  the  royal  town,  with  their  chief  at  their  head, 
deliberating  what  place  to  attack,  and  the  plan  to  be  adopted, 
and  only  waiting  the  arrival  of  more  strength,  which  was  daily 
pouring  in  from  all  parts  of  the  kingdom,  and  then  the  inha- 
bitants of  some  peaceful  village  or  populous  town,  would  be  sur- 
prised, seized,  and  taken  into  captivity,  or  murdered  on  the 
spot ! 

Having,  therefore,  finished  my  own  part  of  the  business,  and 
presented  the  almamy  with  a  couple  of  pieces  of  baft,  some 
tobacco,  and  a  very  handsome  morocco-bound  gilt-edged  Arabic 
Bible,  and  thanked  him  for  the  kind  reception  he  had  given  me, 
and  for  his  permission  to  commence  a  mission  in  his  territories, 
in  the  most  respectful  manner  I  said,  "  I  have  one  request  to 
make  before  I  leave,  which  is  this :  Having  heard  that  the 
almamy  was  prepai'ing  for  war,  he  will  very  much  oblige  me, 
and  I  hope  it  will  be  pleasing  to  God,  if  he  will  abandon  the 
idea,  and  return  to  his  palace,  and  live  in  peace." 

In  reply  to  my  request,  the  almamy  asked  why  I  did  not  wish 
them  to  go  to  war.  I  answered,  Because  it  was  inconsistent 
and  sinful,  to  say  nothing  of  the  misery  that  must  follow.  I 
had  just  read  and  explained  to  him  from  the  book  of  Moses, 
God^s  own  book,  the  Ten  Commandments;  one  of  which  is, 
"Thou  shalt  not  steal,"  and  another  is,  "Thou  shalt  not  kill;" 
but  he  was  about  to  do  both.  To  this  the  almamy  and  his 
counsellors  gave  a  half-sarcastic  smile,  and  said,  it  was  not  the 
good  people  they  should  kill,  it  was  those  only  who  did  not  pray 
to  God ;  and  for  doing  this  the  Almighty  Avould  be  well-pleased, 
and  would  reward  him ;  and  that  if  he  himself  fell  in  the  con- 
test, he  should  go  to  heaven,  and  his  happiness  there  would  be 
considerably  enhanced  in  consequence  !  I  hesitated  not  to  tell 
him  to  the  contrary,  and  asked  him  what  was  to  become  of 
those  poor  sinners  whom,  without  a  mementos  notice,  he  was 
about  to  be  the  means  or  instrument  of  hurrying  into  eternity. 
This  question,  however,  he  evaded;  and,  soon  after,  I  shook 
hands  with  him,  telling  him  that  I  should  probably  never  see 
him  more,  till  we  met  at  the  judgment-seat  of  Christ,  and 
begging  of  him  to  return  home.  I  then  left  the  camp,  and 
retired  to  my  quarters,  thanking  God  for  so  favourable  an 
opportunity  of  delivering  my  soul  on  these  subjects  before  this 
infatuated  monarch  and  his  deluded  subjects. 

It  was  now  between  two  and  three  o'clock  p.m.;  and  having 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  469 

taken  no  food  all  day,  and  there  being  nothing  to  be  had  in  this 
village,  I  sent  word  to  the  alniamy  that  I  wished  to  return  to 
Boollibany,  for  that  I  was  hungry.  He  immediately  sent  me 
a  calabash  of  honey,  which  was  not,  under  such  circumstances, 
to  be  despised.  Soon  after  this,  having  taken  a  fancy  to  a 
black  riband  which  I  had  round  my  neck,  he  sent  a  polite 
message  to  ask  if  I  had  any  more  like  it.  I  knew  what  this 
meant  very  well,  and  therefore  immediately  took  it  off  my  neck, 
carefully  folded  it  up,  and  sent  it  to  His  Majesty,  with  my 
compliments.  In  connexion  with  this  message  there  was  also  a 
request  from  the  almamy  to  have  another  interview  with  me ; 
and  I  was  again  ushered  into  the  midst  of  a  host  of  super- 
stitious and  marauding  banditti,  who  imagine  that  by  com- 
mitting deeds  the  most  barbarous  and  cruel,  they  are  doing  God 
service  !  Where  is  the  humanit}^,  to  say  nothing  of  the  morality 
or  spirituality,  of  the  Mohammedan  system  ?  May  God  make 
me  a  messenger  of  good  to  these  blind  followers  of  a  blind  and 
false  guide  ! 

In  this  second  interview  the  almamy  repeated  Avhat  he  had 
said  before,  in  reference  to  my  looking  at  his  ground,  and  select- 
ing a  suitable  spot  for  a  mission ;  and,  in  allusion  to  going  to 
war,  he  asked  me  if  the  English  did  not  sometimes  do  the  same. 
I  told  him,  it  was  many  years  since  they  had  any  serious 
engagement :  they  generally  endeavoured  to  avoid  war  as  long 
as  they  could ;  and  when  necessity  drove  them  to  it,  it  was  con- 
ducted on  very  different  principles  to  African  warfare.  Shortly 
after  this,  I  again  shook  hands  with  this  chief,  and  several  of 
his  head-men,  and  once  more  begged  of  them  to  abandon  their 
intended  expedition,  reminding  them  of  our  next  and  (as  I  then 
thought)  last  meeting, — at  the  bar  of  God. 

We  now  proposed  to  return  to  our  quarters  at  Boollibany, 
and  on  the  way  met  about  a  score  of  young  females,  carrying 
cooked  provisions  from  the  capital  to  the  camp.  Whether  what 
I  had  said  to  this  deluded  follower  of  the  false  prophet  had  really 
any  influence  or  eftect  upon  him,  in  deterring  liini  from  going 
to  war,  I  pretend  not  to  say ;  but,  to  the  surprise  of  myself  and 
many  others,*  in  about  an  hour  after  I  had  reached  my  lodg- 
ings, the  almamy,  with  the  whole  of  his  army,  came  galloping 


*  It  had  been  stated  to  me,  by  my  landlord  and  others,  that  the  almamy  having 
once  left  the  palace,  he  would  never  return  till  he  had  accomplished  his  object ; 
and  the  cooked  provision,  which  had  doubtless  been  ordered  to  be  sent,  was  evi- 
dence that,  at  least,  he  had  not  intended  returning  so  soon  as  he  did ;  and  1  heard 
nothing  more  of  that  meditated  expedition  afterwards. 


470  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

back  to  the  royal  town ;  soon  after  which  he  sent  me  his  com- 
pHments,  with  a  good  fat  sheep  for  my  supper. 

30th. ^ — I  went  to  pay  my  respects  to  the  almamy  this  morn- 
ing; but,  owing  to  some  repairs  which  are  going  on  in  his 
palace,  I  did  not  see  him,  I  have  had  a  few  applications  for 
presents  to-day  from  the  capital,  with  a  couple  of  griots  extol- 
ling the  greatness  and  liberality  of  white  people.  This  is  the 
first  day  that  I  have  felt  the  heat  in  Bondou  to  be  intense ;  and 
to-day  it  has  been  very  warm  :  but  having  unfortunately  broken 
my  thermometer  at  the  commencement  of  my  journey,  I  am 
unable  to  ascertain  the  precise  degree  of  intensity ;  but  am  of 
opinion  that,  in  the  shade,  it  cannot  be  less  than  106°. 

May  1st. — I  have  concluded  not  to  go  to  Fort  Joseph,  the 
French  settlement  at  Gallam,  on  the  banks  of  the  upper  Sene- 
gal ;  for,  though  it  is  not  more  than  one  day's  journey  from  this 
place,  I  learn  from  all  parties  that  the  road  is  rendered  very 
unsafe  by  the  marauding  Moors,  who  are  constantly  lying  in 
ambush  to  seize  upon  cattle,  or  any  other  property  they  can 
find.  This  I  had  heard  at  Fattatenda,  and  repeatedly  on  my 
journey;  and  it  appears  that,  two  or  three  weeks  ago,  they 
killed  a  poor  Foulah  man,  and  stole  all  his  cattle;  and^  the 
almamy  having  sent  for  an  explanation  of  this,  there  are  now 
here  two  or  three  of  these  tawny,  fierce-looking  felloAvs,  as  mes- 
sengers upon  the  subject.  The  affair,  I  am  told,  is  likely  to  be 
settled  amicably,  by  a  mutual  promise,  or  oath,  upon  the 
Koran,  that  the  tribe  of  Moors  contiguous  to  the  Senegal, 
and  the  Bondou  people,  shall  not  molest  each  other  in  passing 
to  and  fro. 

Intending  to  return  home  early  in  the  morning,  I  this  after- 
noon waited  on  the  almamy.  He  was  just  going  to  prayers ; 
so  that  I  had  to  wait  a  few  minutes  :  on  his  return,  he  beckoned 
me  to  come  to  him.  He  was  seated  upon  a  large,  rough,  white 
sheep-skin,  outside  his  residence,  in  an  open  space  adjoining  the 
mosque,  surrounded  by  some  scores  of  his  subjects,  counsellors, 
priests,  griots,  &c.  One  of  the  latter  was  employing  the  utmost 
stretch  of  his  voice  in  singing  his  pi*aises,  marching  up  and 
down  a  space  of  groiind  left  in  the  middle  of  the  crowd  for  that 
purpose.  I  was  again  seated  near  to  him ;  and  on  this  occasion 
he  brought  out  and  exhibited  the  handsome  Arabic  Bible  I  had 
given  him,  which  he  appeared  to  admire  very  much ;  but  said, 
he  could  not  read  it.  At  this  I  was  somewhat  surprised,  and 
still  more  so  to  find  that  none  of  his  priests  could.  A  Jollof, 
however,  who  happened  to  be  there  from  the  Senegal,  read  it 
with  ease ;  and  I  requested  the  almamy  to  allow  this  man  to 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  471 

read  a  portion  of  it  to  him  eveiy  day,  and  to  go  through  it  con- 
secutively. He  again  asked  me  why  he  must  not  go  to  war, 
and  if  the  Enghsh  people  did  not  frequently  do  so;  and  if  it 
was  true  that  when  the  white  people  from  the  Gambia  (a  year 
or  two  ago)  went  to  destroy  Kemmingtan's  town,  they  left  some 
of  their  guns  behind  them.  Though  I  had  little  doubt  upon 
the  latter  fact,  yet,  wishing  to  defend  my  countrymen  as  much 
as  possible  in  that  unfortunate  affair,  after  speaking  of  Kem- 
mingtan^s  piratical  conduct  in  seizing  a  British  vessel  laden  with 
merchandise,  and  appropriating  the  goods  to  his  own  use,  I  said 
I  had  heard,  that,  having  broken  the  walls  of  his  town,  they 
returned,  and,  as  I  was  informed,  left  one  or  two  pieces  of  brass 
cannon  behind  them.  At  the  close  of  this  interview,  the 
almamy  presented  me  with  a  calabash  of  excellent  honey ;  and 
having  promised  me  a  guide  to  conduct  me  through  the  greater 
part  of  his  dominions,  I  bade  him  farewell,  wishing  him  health 
and  peace. 

In  the  evening  we  had  rather  a  lengthened  conversation  with 
our  jiati,  ("  landlord,")  a  part  of  his  family,  and  a  few  neigh- 
bours, on  the  superiority  and  advantages  of  the  Christian  reli- 
gion to  that  of  Mohammedanism,  in  which  Cupidon  took  part ; 
and,  amongst  other  things  touching  on  the  outward  ceremonies 
of  the  latter  system,  he  asked  if  God  did  not  create  all  things, 
animals  as  well  as  man ;  to  which  they  immediately  replied  in 
the  affirmative.  "  Well,"  said  Cupidon,  "  and  then  did  not  the 
Almighty,  at  the  creation,  pronounce  all  that  he  had  made  to 
be  very  good  ?  "  To  which  it  was  again  said,  "  Yes."  "  Then," 
rejoined  my  assistant,  "by  whose  authority  did  Mohammed 
take  upon  himself  to  say,  that  swine's  flesh  is  not  good  or  fit 
food  for  man?"  It  was  then  said,  "The  kingdom  of  God  is 
not  meat  and  drink,  but  righteousness,  peace,  and  joy  in  the 
Holy  Ghost."  (Rom.  xiv.  17.)  We  conversed  till  our  landlord 
began  to  see  the  necessity  of  a  clean  heart ;  saying,  "  No  man 
can  go  to  heaven  till  God  changes  his  nature,  and  makes 
him  inwardly  as  well  as  outwardly  holy."  May  the  Lord  have 
mercy  upon  him,  and  the  thousands  more  by  whom  he  is  sur- 
rounded, who  are  deeply  sunk  in  ignorance,  superstition,  and 
barbarism  ! 

Bondou  is  bounded  on  the  north-west  by  Foota  Torro,  on  the 
north-east  by  Kajaaga,  on  the  east  by  Bambouk,  on  the  south- 
east and  south  by  Dentilla  and  Tenda,  and  on  the  '^vest  by 
W^oolli.  From  north  to  south  it  is  about  ninety  miles,  and 
nearly  as  many  from  east  to  west.     From  its  central  situation 


473  WESTERN    COAST    OF   APRICA. 

between  the  Gambia  and  Senegal  rivers,  it  is  a  place  of  great 
resort,  being  a  thoroughfare  for  travellers  and  traders  going 
from  the  Coast  into  the  interior.  The  surface  of  the  country, 
like  that  of  Woolli  and  Nyani,  is  very  generally  covered  with 
woods  ;  but  the  land  is  more  elevated,  and  in  some  places  moun- 
tainous. In  the  valleys  there  are  a  number  of  small  streams 
and  rivers,  and  the  soil  is  capable  of  almost  any  tropical  produc- 
tions. In  Park's  time,  the  capital  of  Bondou  was  Fatteconda ; 
but  for  many  years  Boollibany  has  had  that  honour.  This 
place  is  situated  almost  at  the  north-eastern  extremity  of  the 
kingdom,  contiguous  to  that  of  Kajaaga,  and  but  a  short  dis- 
tance from  the  original  residence  of  the  almamy. 

The  people  of  Bondou  are  a  mixture  of  Foulahs,  Teucolors, 
Mandingoes,  and  SerrawooUies ;  aud  in  the  capital  there  are  a 
few  JoUofs,  Moors,  and  Bambarras.  Judging  from  the  nume- 
I'ous  towns  and  villages  through  which  I  passed,  and  the  many 
foot-paths  or  roads  intersecting  each  other,  leading  to  and  from 
other  towns,  I  should  imagine  the  population  of  this  kingdom  to 
be  considerable.  The  prevailing  language  is  the  Foulah,  though 
the  Mandingo  and  Serrawoolh  are  also  used.  The  physical  cha- 
racteristics of  most  of  these  tribes  have  already  been  given ;  but 
the  following  brief  account  of  the  manners  and  habits  of  the 
people  of  Bondou,  which  were  mostly  noted  down  at  the  time, 
may  now  be  added  : — 

Boollibany,  the  capital,  is  a  large,  strong,  clay-walled  town, 
and  is  decidedly  the  best-fortified  place  that  I  have  seen  in 
Africa.  It  stands  in  an  extensive  plain  some  miles  in  circum- 
ference, having  behind  it,  on  the  east-north-east,  a  range  of 
rocky  hills,  about  a  quarter  of  a  mile  distant ;  and,  to  the  west, 
the  dry  bed  of  a  winding  stream.  It  is  surrounded  by  a  num- 
ber of  small  towns  or  villages,  one  of  which  has  a  mud  wall,  the 
others  having  no  fence  whatever.  The  walls  of  the  metropolis 
are  ten  feet  high,  built  with  short  turns,  or  in  a  zigzag  form, 
with  strong  bastions  inside,  from  three  to  four  feet  thick,  and 
about  double  that  width.  It  has  likewise  small  square  loop- 
holes in  all  directions,  and  the  entrances  or  gateways  are  sur- 
mounted, like  those  of  Tambakunda,  though  in  a  better  condi- 
tion, with  small  embattled  turrets,  about  nine  or  ten  feet  square  : 
these  also  are  pierced  with  loop-holes.  There  are  several  wells 
within  and  without  the  town,  the  latter  being  dug  out  of  the 
drj^  bed  of  the  stream ;  which,  during  the  rains,  becomes  a 
broad  river,  when  they  have  plenty  of  water. 

The  residence  of  the  almamy,  and  of  other  members  of  the 
fjunily,  lias  the  ;tp[)c:u'ancc  of  a  castle  or  citadel,  being  built  of 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  473 

strong  timbers,  and  substantial  clay  walls,  which,  crossing  each 
other  at  right  angles,  divide  it  into  several  small  courts  and 
apartments  :  the  way  into  them  is  consequently  very  intricate  to 
a  stranger.  Some  of  these  divisions  are  used  as  store-rooms  for 
ammunition,  fire-arms,  &c.  At  several  of  these  passages  and 
doorways  there  are  sentinels  placed,  to  prevent  intrusion.  The 
roof  is  flat,  being  covered  Avith  planks  of  runs,^  the  most  durable 
wood  in  Africa.  These  are  placed  close  togetber,  and  are  plas- 
tered over  with  a  kind  of  mortar.  It  has  a  parapet-wall,  upon 
w^hich  are  mounted  three  field-pieces.  The  height  of  this  build- 
ing is  about  seventeen  feet,  the  walls  being  of  an  immense  tbick- 
ness,  in  addition  to  strong  bastions  outside ;  and  the  Avhole  is 
enclosed  within  another  wall  of  the  same  kind. 

There  is  a  mosque,  which  is  also  built  of  clay,  but  is  covered 
with  grass  :  this  is  about  thirty  feet  long,  and  twenty-two  wide. 
It  is  in  a  separate  and  open  space,  adjoining  the  palace;  and 
here  public  prayers  are  performed  five  times  a-day,  wdth  the 
greatest  apparent  devotion.  The  almamy  and  a  few  of  the  head 
marraboos  only  being  permitted  to  go  inside,  the  remainder 
stand  without  in  two  or  three  rows,  with  their  faces  eastward. 
The  sound  of  the  people's  voices,  while  thus  engaged  within  this 
Mohammedan  temple,  from  its  protracted  and  mournful  tone, 
reminded  me  more  of  a  hospital  during  some  painful  opei'ation, 
than  of  a  congregation  of  persons  engaged  in  worshipping  God. 

The  habitations  of  the  otber  residents  of  Boollibany  arc 
mostly  composed  of  clay,  some  entirely  so ;  and  are  square,  with 
flat  roofs.  The  greater  part  of  them,  however,  are  round,  hav- 
ing the  walls  of  the  same  material;  but  are  covered  with  a 
conical  roof  of  long  dry  grass.  The  population  is  probably 
about  two  thousand  souls. 

The  houses  in  general  in  Bondou  are  built  of  mud  or  clay, 
with  the  exception  of  those  of  the  wandering  Foulahs,  who,  in 
the  course  of  an  hour  or  two,  will  construct  their  little  taber- 
nacles, composed  of  corn-stalks,  brushwood,  and  grass.  Many 
of  them,  however,  erect  their  little  hovels  of  the  bamboo-cane, 
like  some  of  the  Mandingoes  and  Jollofs ;  which,  being  well 
thatched  with  grass,  and  the  roof  overhanging  the  huts,  will 
stand  the  wind  and  weather  for  one  or  two  rainy  seasons.  Tlie 
best  dwellings  contain  two  separate  clay  walls,  one  enclosing  the 
sleeping  apartment,  and  the  other  built  at  the  distance  of  a  few 
feet  from  it,  so  as  to  include  a  narrow  ring  of  space,  which 

*  A  species  of  the  palm-tree,  much  used  for  building-purposes  at  the  British  and 

European  settlements  on  the  Coast. 


474  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA, 

serves  for  a  piazza,  or  sitting-room.  Some  of  the  huts  or  houses 
are  divided  inside  into  two  apartments  by  a  thin  clay  wall ;  and 
as  the  door  is  generally  very  low  and  narrow,  and  is  the  only 
means  by  which  light  is  admitted  and  smoke  is  emitted,  chim- 
neys and  Avindows  being  deemed  unnecessary,  the  interior  of 
their  dwellings  is  dark  and  gloomy.  This  mode  of  construct- 
ing their  dwelling-houses  may  be  said  to  be  the  general  prac- 
tice of  the  African  nations  on  this  part  of  the  continent ; 
and,  as  Park  avcU  observes,  though  Avith  some  few  exceptions, 
"  forms  alike  the  palace  of  the  king  and  the  hovel  of  the  slave.'' 

Their  household  furniture  is  equally  simple.  In  some  of  the 
best  clay-built  houses,  I  have  observed  that  they  have  their 
beds  made  of  the  same  material,  a  couple  of  feet  from  the 
ground,  upon  Avliich  they  place  a  thin  country  mat,  Avrap  them- 
selves up  in  a  country  pagne,  and  thus  retire  to  rest ;  but  the 
greater  part  of  tliem  have  a  hurdle  of  canes,  placed  upon 
upright  stakes  a  fcAV  inches  from  the  ground,  upon  Avhicli  is 
spread  a  mat,  a  bullock's  hide,  or  a  sheep-skin,  Avhich  forms 
their  bed.  A  large  earthen  jar  containing  Avater,  Avith  a  pot 
of  the  same  material,  or  of  iron,  to  cook  Avith,  and  a  fcAV 
calabashes,  Avith  one  or  tAvo  Ioav  stools,  and  a  mortar  and  pestle 
for  beating  their  corn  and  rice,  constitute  the  principal  of  their 
household  property. 

Their  dress  is  similar  to  that  of  the  Mandingoes  and  JoUofs 
bordering  on  the  coast,  and  is  composed  of  cotton  cloth  of 
their  OAvn  manufacture,  blue  and  Avhite  being  the  favourite 
colours.  That  of  the  men  consists  of  trousers,  or  rather  roomy 
draAvers,  descending  a  little  below  the  knee,  Avith  a  loose  frock 
or  shirt,  sandals  on  the  feet,  and  a  Avhite  cotton  cap  on  the 
head.  The  more  respectable  part  of  the  community  have  their 
wearing  apparel  made  of  India  bafts,  and  English  cotton  and 
muslins,  the  upper  garment  being  neatly  embroidered  round 
the  neck  and  doAvn  the  back  and  breasts  Avith  coloured  silks  or 
AA'orsteds. 

The  marraboos,  and  especially  those  advanced  in  years,  wear 
white  turbans,  with  red  or  blue  croAvns,  with  a  long  white 
robe  or  gOAvn,  not  unlike  a  surplice,  having  large  falling  sleeves, 
and  occasionally  a  hat  made  of  a  sort  of  rush  or  grass,  having 
a  low  round  crown,  Avith  a  very  broad  rim,  which  answers  as  a 
tolerable  substitute  for  an  umbrella  in  screening  them  at  mid- 
day from  the  excessive  heftt  of  the  sun. 

The  Avomen  are  extremely  neat  in  their  personal  appearance. 
Their  dress  consists  of  tAvo  small  country  paynes,  or  pieces  of 
cloth,  Avrapped  round  the  Avaist,  one  of  a\  hich  reaches  down  to 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  475 

the  ankles,  and  a  third  is  thrown  somewhat  gracefully  over  the 
bosom  and  shoulders.  They  also  wear  sandals ;  but  they  differ 
from  some  others  nearer  the  Atlantic  in  their  head-dress  :  the 
Jollofs,  for  instance,  being  fond  of  a  number  of  handkerchiefs 
of  various  colours,  which  they  tie  round  their  heads  in  the  form  of 
a  peak  or  sugar-loaf.  Instead  of  this,  the  females  of  Bondou,  like 
those  at  the  Upper  Gambia,  wear  a  sort  of  bandage,  or  narrow 
stripe  of  blue  cotton  cloth,  wrapped  round  the  forehead,  the 
greater  part  of  which  hangs  down  behind  the  neck,  something 
like  an  English  funeral  hat-band  or  hood.  Being  also  pas- 
sionately fond  of  beads,  they  decorate  their  heads,  necks,  wrists, 
and  ankles  with  these  trinkets  in  great  abundance  and  variety  ; 
and  even  round  their  waists  several  strings  of  beads  are  worn 
by  tlie  African  females  generally.  The  more  wealthy  part  have 
the  forehead  encircled  with  a  mixture  of  gold  and  silver  beads 
Avith  those  of  amber,  coral,  and  glass ;  and  a  pair  of  large  gold 
ear-rings,  reaching  almost  to  the  shoulders,  which  are  supported 
by  a  thin  string  of  red  leather  over  the  head,  completes  their 
dress. 

Their  food  is  simple,  but  wholesome  and  nourishing,  and 
consists  chiefly  of  rice  and  corn,  the  latter  being  of  a  small 
kind,  called  millet,  or  Guinea  corn ;  and  in  preparing  it  for 
use  they  employ  a  large  wooden  mortar.  When  separated  from 
the  husk,  and  beaten  into  meal,  it  is  made  into  a  kind  of 
pudding,  called  kouskous.  Their  art  of  cookery  is  confined  to 
boiling  or  stewing;  and  those  who  can  aftbrd  the  use  of 
animal  food  make  a  kind  of  soup,  which  is  poured  over  the  rice 
or  pounded  corn ;  and  this,  when  carefully  prepared,  is  a  very 
nice  dish.  They  eat  in  general  only  twice  a  day ;  that  is,  at 
about  ten  o'clock  in  the  morning,  and  about  sunset,  being  from 
six  to  half-past  six  o'clock.  When  the  meal  is  ready,  it  is 
placed  in  a  large  bowl,  and  the  natives  generally  squat  upon 
the  ground  all  round  it,  the  former  part  of  their  left  fingers 
being  placed  on  the  rim  of  the  bowl  to  keep  it  steady,  and  the 
other  hand  conveying  its  contents  to  the  mouth;  knives  and 
forks  being  out  of  the  question.  In  some  cases  a  wooden  spoon 
is  used ;  but  I  have  myself  often  partaken  of  a  hearty  meal  in 
the  native  style,  without  any  artificial  aids,  and  have  been 
thankful  for  it,  too.  In  the  preparation  of  kouskous,  the  Jollofs 
excel  all  the  other  nations  that  I  am  acquainted  with,  having 
a  peculiar  mode  of  cooking  it,  which  is  by  a  slow  process; 
and  being  generally  better  seasoned  by  them,  it  is,  after  a 
little  use,  quite  delicious ;  and  very  often,  after  a  severe  attack 
of  fever,  one  of  the  first  articles  of  food  that  I  could  relish  has 


476  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

been  a  small  dish  of  kousTcous,  nicely  prepared  with  a  little 
stewed  fowl  or  boiled  beef. 

Their  religion,  it  will  have  been  seen,  is  Mohammedan  :  this 
is  the  law  of  the  land,  and  by  many  its  precepts  are  most 
rigidly  attended  to.  There  are  mosques  of  one  kind  or  other 
in  every  town,  and  schools  for  the  instruction  of  the  young  in 
the  same  creed ;  but  there  are  many  hundreds  in  Bondou  who 
have  no  respect  for  such  an  empty  and  unsatisfying  system, 
and  who  are  merely  seen  praying  occasionally,  to  save  their 
little  property  from  plunder,  and  their  persons  from  slavery. 

The  government  is  monarchical,  the  chief  power  being 
invested  in  the  hands  of  the  almamy,  or  king.  It  is  also  here- 
ditary; but  not  un frequently  the  presumptive  heir  is  defeated 
and  overcome  by  some  more  powerful  member  of  the  royal 
family.  This  was  the  case  v/hen  Major  Gray  was  here,  twenty 
years  ago  ;  on  which  occasion  he  was  detained  in  Bondou,  owing 
to  the  jealousy  of  the  then  reigning  monarch,  from  the  20th 
of  June,  1818,  to  the  22d  of  May,  1819,  during  which  period 
he  was  unable  to  proceed  any  further.  While  thus  detained, 
Almamy  Amady  died,  "leaving  the  succession,  which,  con- 
sistent Avith  the  law  and  custom  of  the  country,  ought  to 
descend  to  the  eldest  male  branch  of  the  family,  to  be  disputed 
by  three  persons ;  one,  his  own  cousin,  Malick  Samba  Tomany, 
being  the  lawful  heir;  and  two  of  his  nephews,  Tomany  Moody 
and  Moosa  Yeoro ;  all  men  advanced  in  years,  and  each  pos- 
sessed of  considerable  influence  in  the  country.  Moosa  Yeoro, 
however,  was  at  tirst  unwilling  to  oppose  the  right  heir,  and 
would  have  certainly  declined  doing  so,  both  from  motives  of 
respect  for  the  person,  who  was  much  older  than  himself,  and 
want  of  confidence  in  his  own  popularity,  had  not  Tomany 
Moody  induced  him  to  it  by  proffers  of  his  support,  and  threats 
of  commencing  a  civil  war  in  case  of  his  refusal.  The  reason 
which  led  to  this  line  of  conduct  on  the  part  of  Tomany  Moody 
was  founded  on  a  circumstance  which  had  occurred  some  years 
before,  and  which  was  nothing  less  than  that  Tomany,  who  had 
always  been  a  haughty,  violent,  and  powerful  prince,  had,  in  a 
dispute  with  the  brother  of  Malick  Samba  Tomany,  caused  him 
to  be  murdered,  and  feared,  if  Malick  came  to  the  throne,  he 
would  revenge  himself  on  him  for  the  death  of  his  Ijrother,  if 
not  by  taking  his  life,  at  least  by  seizing  on  his  property,  and 
obhging  him  to  leave  the  country  which  he  was  in  hopes  of  one 
day  reigning  over  himself,  and  which  he  would  real!/  now  do 
through  Moosa  Yeoro,  who  would  only  be  a  mere^instrumcnt  in 
his  hands.     Thus  in  Africa,  as  in  all  other  parts  of  the  world. 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  477 

does  self  predominate,  and  lead  men  to  act  parts  little  creditable 
to  themselves^  or  profitable  to  the  cause  which  they  pretend  to 
support/^  * 

The  alraamy  expired  on  the  8th  of  January,  1819  ;  but,  the 
major  writes,  "  the  election  did  not  take  place  until  the  20tli  of 
the  month ;  and  although  the  opposing  parties  Avere  near  com- 
ing to  blows  on  the  occasion,  the  whole  affair  was  terminated  in 
a  more  peaceable  manner  than  is  generally  the  case  in  Afiica, 
where  the  interregnum  is  almost  always  taken  advantage  of  by 
the  evil-disposed,  to  commit  all  manner  of  crimes,  and  for  which 
they  cannot  be  punished,  as,  during  that  period,  the  laws  are 
not  in  force  in  consequence  of  the  non-existence  of  a  king,  with 
whom  they  also  are  considered  defunct/' 

The  present  almamy,  whose  name  is  Saada,  has  recently  been 
enthroned,  though  an  elder  member  of  the  family  was  the 
rightful  heir;  probably  Tomany  Moody.  Saada  is  the  eldest 
son  of  the  deceased  monarch  mentioned  by  Major  Gray,  and 
was  then  a  personage  of  some  importance,  judging  from  a  list  of 
the  presents  given  to  him  on  two  occasions  by  that  traveller,  as 
also  by  the  property  left  him  by  his  father,  and  the  respect  paid 
to  him  by  the  then  ministers  of  state ;  and  having  for  many 
years  acted  as  the  chief  captain  or  general  in  the  army,  he 
possessed  great  influence  in  the  kingdom,  and  on  the  death  of 
the  late  king  in  1837  Avas  elected  and  proclaimed  almost  with- 
out opposition.  He  is  about  forty-five  years  of  age,  of  the  mid- 
dle size,  well  built,  of  a  brown  complexion,  with  good,  though 
rather  large,  features,  a  fine  forehead,  and  a  pair  of  bright, 
intelligent  eyes. 

In  my  interviews  with  this  chief,  and  subsequently,  I  was 
forcibly  reminded  of  Napoleon ;  for  though  the  latter  was  a 
man  of  education,  mind,  and  manners,  and  the  former  a  compa- 
rative barbarian,  yet,  in  his  personal  appearance,  stature,  mus- 
cular strength,  features,  and  military  ardour,  the  present 
almamy  of  Bondou  is  not  unlike  that  celebrated  soldier. 

The  inhabitants  of  this  kingdom  being  in  general  professed 
followers  of  Mohammed,  and  the  Koran  forming  the  code  of 
their  civil  as  well  as  religious  conduct,  their  laws  are  somewhat 
stringent.  But  in  all  matters  of  grave  importance,  the  crimi- 
nals are  always  tried  by  a  public  palaver  or  assembly,  the 
almamy  being  at  the  head,  surrounded  by  the  aristocracy  of  the 
land,  his  ministers  and  chief  priests;  the  latter  bringing  the 
Koran  with  them  into  the  court,  which  is  read  and  interpreted 

*  Major  Gray's  "Travels,"  pp.  175,  176. 


478  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

before  sentence  is  pronounced^  against  which  there  is  no  appeal : 
indeed,  that  authority  is  generally  looked  upon  as  sacred  and 
decisive.  They  do  not,  however,  confine  themselves  to  the 
Koran  in  the  administration  of  justice,  as  will  be  seen  from 
some  of  the  following  particulars  : — 

1.  In  case  of  a  palaver  or  personal  quarrel,  where  the  parties 
come  to  blows,  the  case  is  investigated  before  the  proper  autho- 
rities; and  the  person  who  has  committed  the  assault  has  his 
house  and  yard  broken  up,  and  his  property  confiscated. 

2.  When  two  individuals  come  into  personal  collision,  and 
one  draws  his  knife  or  cutlass,  and  threatens  the  other  with 
death,  even  if  he  does  not  strike  his  opponent,  the  case  is  car- 
ried before  the  king,  a  council  is  held,  and  the  affair  is  consi- 
dered as  an  assault  of  so  serious  a  nature,  that  the  one  in  fault 
is  fined  five  head  of  cattle,  or  receives  one  hundred  lashes. 

3.  Manslaughter  requires  the  price  of  six  slaves,  one  half  of 
whom  go  to  the  family  of  the  deceased,  and  the  other  half  to 
the  crown. 

4.  Theft  is  punished  by  an  immediate  amputation  of  the 
right  hand  at  the  wrist ;  and  if  the  person  be  found  guilty  of 
the  same  crime  a  second  time,  he  is  put  to  death,  generally  by 
starvation.* 

5.  Adultery  is  punished,  on  the  part  of  the  male  person,  by 
the  confiscation  of  his  property;  and  if  he  have  little  or  no 
property,  he  is  severely  flogged.  The  female  too  often  escapes 
with  impunity,  if  she  be  not  rewarded  for  entrapping  a  victim. 

6.  Murder  and  high-treason  are  punished  with  instant  death 
by  strangulation. 

Bigamy  is,  of  course,  considered  no  crime  in  Bondou,  a  plu- 

*  Dr.  Winterbottora  tells  us  that  the  same  practice  prevails  at  Foota  Jallon ; 
and  it  would  appear  that  this  punishment  is  inflicted  very  impartially ;  for  he  says, 
"  One  of  the  Foota  king's  brothers,  who  was  a  great  thief,  had  his  right  hand  cut 
off  for  stealing."  The  author  was  informed  that  at  Jume,  through  which  he 
passed,  there  is  a  man  of  some  importance  who  had  suffered  in  the  same  way ;  but 
he  did  not  see  him. 

Muhgo  Park  has  rightly  observed,  "  The  Negroes  are  better  surgeons  than  phy- 
sicians ;"  and  he  has  given  some  specimens  of  their  successful  management  of 
fractures  and  dislocations,  of  cupping,  &c.  But  it  appears  that  the  amputation  of 
a  hmb  did  not  come  under  that  traveller's  observation.  In  dealing  with  the  thief 
according  to  the  law  under  notice,  the  author  was  informed  that  the  operator  has  a 
common  knife,  well  prepared,  and  that  the  task  is  speedily  accomplished ;  imme- 
diately after  which,  the  sufferer  undergoes  another  painful  operation,  in  order  to 
obtain  a  cure.  This  is,  putting  the  stump  of  the  dismembered  limb  into  a  pot  of 
shea  butter,  mixed  with  cow-dung,  which  is  nearly  boiling  hot :  it  is  then  carefully 
wrapped  in  soft  leaves,  and  requires  little  or  no  attention  afterwards. 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  479 

rality  of  wives  being  allowed  by  the  Koran;  and  polygamy, 
therefore,  extensively  prevails.  My  landlord  has,  at  the  present 
time,  three  female  companions  and  eleven  children.  Three  of 
the  latter  and  one  of  the  former  he  has  buried ;  and  one  wife  he 
has  discharged  because  she  and  the  others  could  not  agree.  He 
is  advanced  in  life,  but  is  still  a  fine,  tall,  good-looking  man, 
has  been  in  several  military  engagements,  and  bears  the  marks 
of  two  or  three  scars  upon  different  parts  of  his  body.  He  has 
it  in  contemplation  to  add  another  member  to  his  family ;  and 
when  I  spoke  to  him  upon  the  impropriety  of  his  having  a  plu- 
rality of  wives,  he  very  quietly  answered,  that  he  should  never 
have  more  than  four  at  one  time. 

The  commerce  and  trade  of  this  kingdom  are  consider- 
able, and  chiefly  carried  on  by  the  Man  dingoes  and  Serra- 
woollies,  who  have  settled  in  the  country.  The  latter  are 
natives  of  Kajaaga,  the  neighbouring  kingdom,  and  in  com- 
plexion and  features  somewhat  resemble  the  Jollofs.  They 
are  proverbially  a  trading  people,  and  in  that  capacity  visit 
Bambouk,  Kasson,  Kaarta,  and  Bambarra,  bartering  corn  and 
cotton  cloths  manufactured  in  the  country,  with  European  mer- 
chandise, such  as  fire-arms,  gunpowder,  India  bafts,  beads,  &c., 
for  gold,  ivory,  hides,  and  bees-wax ;  which  they  again 
exchange  for  European  articles  in  Bondou,  or  at  the  settlements 
on  the  Senegal  and  Gambia. 

The  Teucolors  and  Foulahs  are  principally  occupied  in  agri- 
cultural pursuits,  and  in  the  rearing  of  cattle.  The  proportion 
of  land  cultivated  is  small,  but  more  than  sufficient  to  supply 
the  inhabitants  abundantly  with  all  the  productions  of  the 
country ;  and,  in  addition  to  corn,  rice,  pumpions,  and  water- 
melons, with  a  variety  of  other  vegetables  and  fruits,  they  also 
grow  cotton  and  indigo  :  the  former  supplies  them  with  cloth- 
ing, and  with  the  latter  they  dye  their  cloth  of  an  excellent  blue 
colour. 

From  the  numerous  travelling  merchants  and  caravans  that 
visit  and  pass  through  Bondou,  the  alraamy  derives  a  consider- 
able revenue,  besides  a  tenth  of  all  agricultural  produce,  and 
the  constant  presents  which  are  made  to  him  in  the  shape  of 
peace-offerings,  or  by  persons  who  have  any  business  to  trans- 
act, or  favour  to  ask  from  him ;  there  being  nothing  done  with- 
out a  bunya  or  present.  By  this  means  the  kiug^s  household  is 
well  supplied  with  provisions,  as  also  with  slaves,  and  horses, 
fire-arms,  ammunition,  &c. 

The  mode  of  cultivation  is  the  same  in  Bondou  as  in  all  the 
other  kingdoms  in  Western  Africa ;  and  such  is  the  fertility  of 


480  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

the  soil,  that,  from  a  very  small  portion  of  labour,  they  reap, 
upon  a  moderate  calculation,  upwards  of  two  hundred  fold. 
The  greatest  fatigue  they  undergo  is  in  clearing  the  ground,  by 
cutting  down  the  small  trees,  which  is  done  a  short  time  before 
the  rains  are  expected.  These,  with  a  quantity  of  brush-wood, 
are  then  left  on  the  ground  for  some  time  to  dry ;  after  which 
they  are  set  on  fire,  together  Avith  the  corn-stalks  of  the  preced- 
ing year,  (the  ears  of  the  corn  only  being  cut  off  at  the  time  of 
harvest,)  and  a  quantity  of  long  dry  grass  which  grows  to  the 
height  of  eight  or  ten  feet ;  the  whole  making  a  tremendous 
blaze,  and  burning  with  great  violence  and  rapidity,  killing  a  vast 
quantity  of  vermin  and  reptiles,  and  driving  the  wild  animals 
still  farther  into  the  forest.  As  the  natives  take  no  pains  to 
remove  the  stumps  of  the  large  trees,  such  is  the  luxuriancy  of 
vegetation  in  this  country,  that  Job's  "  hope  of  a  tree,  if  it  be 
cut  down,"  is  abundantly  realized, — it  does  "  sprout  again,  and 
bring  forth  boughs  like  a  plant  -^  and  this  process  is  repeated 
more  or  less  every  year.  After  a  shower  or  two  of  rain,  the 
ashes  of  the  burnt  trees  and  stubble  form  a  kind  of  manure, 
and  the  corn-seed  is  put  into  a  hole,  and  covered  over  with  the 
foot,  and  requires  little  further  attention  till  it  is  ready  to  be 
gathered  in. 

The  rice-farms  are  in  low  swamp}?^  savannahs,  and  the  seed  is 
not  sown  till  a  cousiderable  quantity  of  rain  has  fallen;  and  the 
earth  is  thus  moistened  and  covered  by  a  partial  inundation, 
caused  by  the  heavy  rains  and  overflow  of  the  rivers.  It  is 
highly  probable  that  the  passage  in  the  Old  Testament  alludes 
to  the  sowing  of  rice,  where  it  is  said,  "  Cast  thy  bread  upon 
the  waters  :  for  thou  shalt  find  it  after  many  days ;"  (Eccles. 
xi.  1 ;)  for  in  some  instances  this  "  bread,"  or  rice,  is  literally 
"  cast  upon  the  waters,"  and  it  is  certainly  "  found  after  many 
days,"  with  a  very  large  per  centage  or  return. 

The  commencemeut  and  termination  of  the  rainy  season, 
which  lasts  about  four  months,  are  attended  with  tornadoes, 
accompanied  with  thunder  and  lightning.  The  former  gene- 
rally comes  from  the  east ;  and  the  violence  of  the  wind  conti- 
nues for  about  half  an  hour,  with  streams  of  forked  and  sheet 
lightning,  torrents  of  rain,  and  peals  of  thunder  fearfully  loud, 
crash  succeeding  crash  in  terrific  grandeur  and  majesty,  as  if  a 
thousand  heavy  pieces  of  artillery  had  exploded  together. 
When  these  terrible  thunder-storms,  and  amazing  force  of  the 
elements,  occur  after  sunset,  or  at  midnight,  they  furnish  to 
every  susceptible  mind  an  awful  impression  of  Deity,  the 
wielder  of  invisible  and  irresistible  power ;  and  forcibly  illustrate 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU. 


481 


the  words  of  the  Psalmist :  "  The  voice  of  thy  thunder  was  in 
the  heaven  :  the  hghtnings  Hghtened  the  world :  the  earth 
trembled  and  shook."  (Psalm  Ixxvii.  18.)  But  the  whole 
scene  during  these  tornadoes,  Avhether  they  take  place  in  the 
day-time  or  at  night,  may  be  considered  as  one  of  the  most 
awfully  sublime  in  nature ;  and  at  the  close  of  the  rains  espe- 
cially, when  the  trees  are  attired  in  their  finest  drapery,  loaded 
with  rich  ripe  fruit,  the  hills  and  valleys  smile  with  a  fresh 
supply  of  Heaven^s  bounty,  and  multitudes  of  cattle  are  grazing 
in  the  meadows,  and  the  forests  contain  domestic  animals  of 
great  variety  and  abundance, — then  the  physical  aspect  of  the 
country,  with  the  power  and  goodness  of  God,  is  well  portrayed 
by  David  in  Psalm  Ixv. :  "  They  also  that  dwell  in  the  utter- 
most parts  are  afraid  at  thy  tokens  :  thou  raakest  the  outgoings 
of  the  morning  and  evening  to  rejoice.  Thou  visitest  the  earth, 
and  w  aterest  it :  thou  greatly  enrichest  it  with  the  river  of  God, 
which  is  full  of  water :  thou  preparest  them  corn,  when  thou 
hast  so  provided  for  it.  Thou  waterest  the  ridges  thereof  abun- 
dantly :  thou  settlest  the  furrows  thereof:  thou  makest  it  soft 
with  showers :  thou  blessest  the  springing  thereof.  Thou 
crownest  the  year  with  thy  goodness ;  and  thy  paths  drop  fat- 
ness. They  drop  upon  the  pastures  of  the  wilderness  :  and  the 
little  hills  rejoice  on  every  side.  The  pastures  are  clothed  with 
flocks  ;  the  valleys  also  are  covered  over  with  corn  ;  they  shout 
for  joy,  they  also  sing."  (Verses  8 — 13.) 

"  It  was  not  possible  for  me,"  says  an  eminent  traveller,  "  to 
behold  the  fertility  of  the  soil,  the  vast  herds  of  cattle,  proper 
for  labour  or  for  food,  and  a  variety  of  other  circumstances 
favourable  to  colonization  and  agriculture,  and  reflect,  withal, 
on  the  means  which  presented  themselves  of  a  vast  inland  navi- 
gation, without  lamenting  that  a  country  so  abundantly  gifted 
and  honoured  by  nature  should  remain  in  its  present  savage 
and  neglected  state."  Thus  wrote  Mungo  Park  nearly  half  a 
century  ago ;  and  his  statement  is  still  correct  in  all  its  parti- 
culars, in  reference  to  this  part  of  the  continent. 

Their  ivars  are  frequent,  if  so  we  may  term  them ;  but  they 
generally  come  more  under  the  designation  of  predatory  excur- 
sions than  of  a  regular  campaign,  or  hard-fought  battle;  and  as 
the  almamy,  and,  in  fact,  all  Mohammedan  chiefs,  consider  they 
have  a  Divine  right  for  making  war  upon  the  Pagans,  these  plun- 
dering expeditions  are  constantly  taking  place,  more  particularly 
at  the  beginning  of  and  during  the  dry  season.  We  have 
already  more  than  once  described  this  cowardly  and  dishonour- 
able mode  of  attack,  witli  its  attendant  circumstances  of  bar- 

I  I 


482  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AnilCA. 

barity.  On  the  Monday  after  ray  return  from  the  almamy's 
camp,  mentioned  in  a  previous  page,  I  was  speaking  to  several 
of  the  people  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Boollibany,  as  I  had  done 
to  their  chief  on  the  preceding  day,  on  the  sinfulness  and 
impropriety  of  these  marauding  parties ;  when  one  of  the  old  men, 
who  was  a  griot,  exclaimed,  Tobaba  foday  ako  hello  amumbetti, 
berra,  jubi  ninsolu,  "  The  white  minister  says  war  is  not  good ; 
but  look  at  those  cattle,^^  pointing  to  about  four  hundred  cows 
and  oxen,  besides  some  scores  of  sheep  and  goats,  nearly  all  of 
which  were  the  result  of  one  of  these  so-called  wars.*  On  these 
occasions  the  cattle  are  for  the  most  part  immediately  bartered 
for  other  goods,  when  presents  are  made  by  the  almamy  to 
those  who  have  been  engaged  in  the  robbery,  which,  no  doubt, 
keeps  up  the  unhallowed  flame  that  caused  the  remark  just 
cited.  But  what  a  strange  piece  of  inconsistency  is  there  in 
connexion  with  this  item,  in  the  habits  of  the  people  of  Bon- 
dou !  A  Foulah  man  Avili  have  his  right-hand  chopped  off  by 
the  law  of  the  land,  if  he  steal  a  little  corn  or  rice  from  any 
one ;  but  he  may  go  to  his  next-door  neighbour,  and  take  his 
person,  wife,  and  children,  his  corn  and  cattle,  and  all  that  he 
lias ;  and  for  doing  this,  he  is  absolutely  rewarded  ! 

These  plundering  excursions,  especially  in  some  states  less 
powerful  than  Bondou,  often  produce  speedy  retaliation,  and 
issue  in  a  civil  war  in  the  same  kingdom;  in  others  they 
lead  to  and  end  in  a  war  between  two  petty  states  or  king- 
doms. Then  a  battle  is  fought  with  great  spirit  on  both  sides. 
These  may  more  properly  come  under  the  name  of  wars.  "  Some 
years  ago,"  says  Park,  "  the  king  of  Bondou  crossed  the  Feleme 
river  with  a  numerous  army,  and,  after  a  short  and  bloody  cam- 
paign, totally  defeated  the  forces  of  Samboo,  king  of  Bambouk, 
who  was  obliged  to  sue  for  peace,  and  surrender  to  him  all  the 
towns  along  the  eastern  bank  of  the  Feleme."  Bondou,  on  the 
other  hand,  has  often  been  attacked,  and  has  suftered  greatly  by 
its  more  powerful  neighbours.  Major  Gray  has  detailed  the 
particulars  of  a  war  in  which  this  kingdom  was  involved  for 
many  years  with  the  king  of  Kaarta,  which  arose  in  an  act  of 
aggression  on  the  part  of  Bondou,  and  which  must  have  been 
very  sanguinary,  as  the  ground,  for  a  considerable  distance 
round  Boollibany,  at  the  time  of  the  major's  visit  and  detention 
there,  was  thickly  strewed  with  the  whitened  bones  of  the  slain, 

*  In  addition  to  the  cattle,  many  human  beings  are  taken  prisoners  on  these 
occasions,  who  always  form  a  considerable  part  of  the  booty.  These  unfortunate 
creatures,  if  not  redeemed,  are  used  as  domestic  slaves,  or  sent  down  to  the  coast, 
to  be  purchased  by  the /air  European. 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  483 

whose  bodies  had  been  left  to  putrefy  on  the  spot  where  they 
fell,  or  to  be  devoured  by  birds  and  beasts  of  prey.  The 
Kaartan  army,  on  this  occasion,  succeeded  in  breaking  the  walls 
of  the  capital  of  Bondou,  and  they  laid  the  whole  town  in  waste, 
with  the  exception  of  the  alraamy's  palace,  which  was  so  reso- 
lutely defended  by  a  handful  of  men,  that  all  attempts  to  reduce 
it  proved  fruitless.  At  this  period  the  almamy,  and  his  army, 
were  on  their  way  to  Kaarta  ;  but  on  hearing  that  Modiba,  the 
king  of  that  country,  with  his  army,  had  actually  entered  Bon- 
dou, he  hastened  back,  and  succeeded  in  gaining  possession  of 
his  own  palace ;  soon  after  which  he  made  such  a  spirited  and 
determined  attack  on  the  Kaartans,  that  they  retreated  in  the 
utmost  confusion,  many  of  them  being  made  prisoners,  all  of 
whom,  on  this  occasion,  and  in  retaliation  for  similar  conduct  on 
the  part  of  Modiba  towards  every  male  his  army  had  taken, 
were  inhumanly  butchered.  This  affair  took  place  in  the  spring 
of  1817.*  The  following  year  another  terrible  battle  Avas  fought 
in  the  neighbourhood,  when  the  almamy  was  again  the  aggressor. 
He  was  assisted  on  that  occasion  by  a  strong  detachment  from 
Foota-Torro  and  Lower  Kajaaga,  and  a  considerable  body  under 
the  command  of  Hawaii  Demba,  a  prince  of  Kasson.  His  oppo- 
nent was  Samba  Congole,  a  chief  of  Upper  Kajaaga.  Samba's 
army,  in  addition  to  his  own  men,  consisted  of  some  of  the 
Gedumahs  and  Kassons,  and  four  hundred  horse,  which  he  had 
obtained  from  Modiba,  the  king  of  Kaarta,  in  all  amounting  to 
about  two  thousand  five  hundred  men.  The  almamy's  force  was 
supposed  to  be  double  that  number.  They  met  in  April,  1818, 
when  a  bloody  conflict  ensued,  which  ended  in  the  defeat  of  the 
almamy,  who  made  a  hasty  retreat  to  Foota-Torro,  leaving 
upwards  of  a  hundred  muskets  on  the  field.  The  Kaartan 
hoi'se  immediately  entered  Bondou,  where  they  again  laid  every 
thing  waste  that  came  in  their  way,  and,  making  some  pri- 
soners, returned  to  their  home.  The  almamy  did  all  he  could 
to  induce  the  chiefs  of  Foota-Torro  to  employ  all  their  force, 
and  oblige  Samba  to  quit  his  own  country,  and  retire  to 
Kaarta ;  but  they  were  too  well  aware  of  the  impracticability  of 
such  an  undertaking,  and  advised  him  rather  to  make  peace, 
which  was  accordingly  accomplished  during  the  major's  sojourn 
in  that  country.f 

From  what  has  been  adduced  it  will  be  seen  that  the  African 
chiefs,  when  engaged  in  a  regular  war,  not  unfrequently  assist 
each  other ;  and  thus  nation  rises  up  against  nation,  and  man 

*  Major  Gray's  "  Travels,"  pp.  202—205.  f  Il>'d-  P-  20G. 

2    I    2 


484  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

against  man.  It  is  impossible  to  say  how  many  of  these  deadly 
feuds,  bloody  campaigns,  and  marauding  expeditions  have  taken 
place  since  the  period  just  mentioned.  But  it  will  be  recol- 
lected that  the  present  Almamy  Saada  was  the  eldest  son  of 
Almamy  Amadi,  who  was  one  of  the  chief  actors  in  the  terri- 
ble scenes  described  by  Major  Gray,  and  who,  amongst  other 
barbarous  atrocities,  put  to  death  the  two  chief  messengers,  sent 
to  him  on  one  occasion  by  the  king  of  Kaarta.  Saada  having 
thus  been  born  in  the  camp,  and  trained  in  the  field,  being  at 
that  time  a  spirited  young  soldier,  and  having  had  twenty  years' 
practice  in  the  same  profession,  he  may  be  said  to  have  inhe- 
rited his  father's  propensity  for  a  military  life ;  and  being  sanc- 
tioned in  his  attacks,  upon  Pagan  towns  especially,  by  the 
authority  of  the  Koran,  he  may  be  emphatically  said  to  "delight 
in  war."  Previous  to  his  late  election  as  the  sovereign  of  Bon- 
dou,  he  for  many  years  occupied  a  position  similar  to  that  of 
"  Naaman,  captain  of  the  host  of  the  king  of  Syria,"  who  "  was 
a  great  man  with  his  master,  and  honourable,  because  by  him 
the  Lord  had  given  deliverance  unto  Syria."  (2  Kings  v.  1.) 
Being  "  also  a  mighty  man  in  valour,"  his  assistance  has  been 
frequently  solicited  by  others.  It  was  only  a  few  months  ago 
that  a  request  of  this  nature  was  made  to  him  by  the  Jollof 
chief  at  Salum,  in  the  neighbourhood  of  the  Lower  Gambia; 
and  he  went,  having  received  from  that  chief,  among  other 
things,  as  presents  for  his  services,  upwards  of  thirty  horses, 
besides  what  he  picked  up  on  the  way  when  he  returned  home. 
The  same  chief  has  again  requested  his  help,  which  he  has  pro- 
mised to  render,  on  condition  that  he  send  him  one  hundred 
horses  to  Bondou :  as  soon  as  they  arrive  in  his  kingdom,  he 
engages  to  start,  whether  it  be  in  the  wet  or  in  the  dry  season. 

The  horses  generally  on  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa  are 
rather  small,  but  spirited,  swift,  and  sure-footed,  though  none 
of  them  are  shod.  In  Bondou,  Foota-Torro,  and  some  of  the 
other  countries  eastward,  they  appear  to  be  a  mixture  of  the 
Arabian  with  the  original  African  ;  and  the  chiefs,  and  some  of 
the  sons  of  the  chiefs,  as  is  the  case  Avith  the  almamy  and  his 
family,  possess  very  fine  animals,  apparently  of  the  pure  Arabian 
breed. 

"  The  disposable  force  of  Bondou,  from  all  the  information  I 
could  collect,"  says  Major  Gray,  "does  not  exceed  from  five 
hundred  to  six  hundred  horse,  and  from  two  thousand  to  three 
thousand  foot.  When  the  almamy  finds  it  necessary  to  call  this 
army  into  the  field  for  the  protection  of  the  country,  or  with  the 
intention  of  invading  the  territories  of  some  of  his  neighbours, 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  485 

he  repairs,  with  his  own  immediate  followers,  to  some  village  at 
a  short  distance  from  the  capital,  and  then  beats  the  war-drum,* 
which  is  repeated  by  each  village,  and  in  this  manner  the  call  to 
arms  is  circulated  over  the  country."  It  is  for  the  latter  of 
these  objects,  that  the  present  council  of  war  has  been  held,  in 
the  camp  a  few  miles  distant  from  Boollibany,  and  which,  it 
will  be  recollected,  I  visited.  I  know,  from  personal  observa- 
tion, that  this  "  call  to  arms  "  was  responded  to  by  many  of  the 
towns  and  callages  in  the  kingdom.  But  as  these  matters  are 
always  conducted  with  great  secrecy,  I  could  not  learn  with 
absolute  certainty  their  intended  destination ;  but  a  large  Pagan 
town,  or  a  number  of  towns,  in  the  kingdom  of  Bambouk,  was 
supposed  to  be  their  object;  and  I  was  informed  that  three 
thousand  men  on  this  occasion  would  be  collected.  The  place 
being  finally  decided,  each  of  the  king^s  sons,  with  one  or  two 
favourites,  commands  a  detachment ;  and  away  they  go,  "  cast- 
ing firebrands,  arrows,  and  death."  The  circumstance  of  the 
almamy's  unexpected  return  to  the  capital  with  his  men  of  war, 
has  already  been  stated;  and  though  I  am  not  so  credulous 
as  to  suppose  tliat  what  I  said  to  him  in  the  camp  will  have 
the  effect  of  putting  a  stop  to  this  brutalizing  and  cowardly 
mode  of  warfare,  or  even  that  the  present  "gathering  toge- 
ther for  war "  will  have  been  entirely  frustrated  through 
my  humble  efforts,  yet  I  do  hope  that  all  I  said  to  those 
desperadoes  will  not  be  lost  or  fall  to  the  ground :  probably 
some  of  them  may  be  despatched  in  the  manner  we  have  just 
described,  and  return  loaded  with  the  spoils  of  victory;  but 
nothing  of  the  kind  took  place  while  I  remained  there,  nor  did 
I  hear  of  it  afterwards. 

The  national  superstitions  of  the  inhabitants  of  Bondou  are 
numerous,  and,  with  the  exception  of  human  sacrifices,  may  be 
said  to  embrace  every  item  which  we  have  described  in  a  pre- 
ceding chapter.  I  was  myself  frequently  asked  to  write  out  a 
greeyree,  a  very  profitable  trade  to  Kabba  of  Jume,  and  to  many 
of  the  priests  and  karonkeas,  or  "  leather- workers,"  and  to 
others  versed  in  the  "curious  arts;"  as  we  have  also  shown 
elsewhere. 

Salutations  among  the  Africans,  when  they  meet,  are  always 
observed.  Among  the  Mohammedan  nations  this  is  done  by  say- 
ing;, Saldm  alaikum !  "  Peace  be  between  us  ! "  which  is  returned 


*  This  is  composed  of  a  large  wooden  bowl,  nearly  three  feet  in  diameter,  covered 
with  three  skins  :  one  is  said  to  be  that  of  a  human  being,  another  a  hyaena's,  and 
the  outer  one  a  monkev's,  which  is  written  over  with  texts  from  the  Koran  ! 


486  M^ESTEIIN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

hy,  Alaikum  salama,  "Tliere  is  peace  between  us;'^  and  this  is 
probably  one  of  the  most  ancient  as  well  as  scriptural  modes  of 
salutation.  Among  the  Pagan  tribes  in  this  part  of  the  con- 
tinent, and  especially  with  the  Mandingoes  and  Foulahs,  it  is. 
Abbe  haeretto?  "Are  you  well,"  or  "at  peace?"  and  the  gene- 
ral answer  is,  Heare-dorung ,  "Well,  and  nought  but  peace." 
There  is  a  heartiness  and  cordiality  in  their  salutations,  repeated 
again  and  again,  which  is  very  striking. 

Wednesday,  May  2d. — Having  accomplished  the  object  of  my 
visit  to  Bondou,  and  the  guide  promised  by  the  almamy  last 
evening  being  ready,  we  rose  early  this  morning,  and  soon  after 
day-break  proceeded  on  our  return.  As  the  people  had  had  a 
few  days'  rest,  and,  withal,  had  little  or  nothing  to  carry,  we 
travelled  more  expeditiously,  our  first  stage  having  occupied 
upwards  of  five  hours ;  when,  after  a  short  sojourn,  we  proceeded 
forwards,  and  in  the  evening  reached  Fittinyibbi,  having  met 
during  the  day  ten  small  companies,  on  their  way  to  assist  at 
the  supposed  or  real  war.  The  next  morning  we  reached 
Goodeerie,  and  thus  moved  on  from  day  to  day,  the  inhabitants 
generally  in  the  towns  through  which  we  again  passed  greeting 
and  saluting  me,  as  just  described,  most  cordially  ;  and  hundreds 
of  times  I  had  to  give  the  Mohammedan  answer,  Alaikum 
salama,  or  that  which  is  in  general  use  among  the  Pagans,  and 
which  is  substantially  the  same,  Heare-dorung .  On  the  Friday 
evening  we  reached  Weegi ;  and  here  the  people  flocked  round 
me,  and  appeared  as  much  pleased  at  my  safe  return  thus  far, 
as  if  I  had  been  their  brother  or  some  near  relative.  Almost 
before  I  had  time  to  ask,  one  brought  me  some  water  to  drink, 
another  a  mat  to  sit  upon;  then  came  some  water  in  a  large 
bowl  to  wash  my  feet,  and  presently  afterwards  some  milk. 
I  had  experienced  this  civility  and  kindness  at  several  places  on 
my  way  to  Boollibany;  but  at  this  Serrawoolli  town,  on  this 
occasion,  it  was  done  with  so  much  warmth  and  apparent  ecstasy 
of  joy,  that  my  feelings  were  almost  overcome.  Our  good  old 
landlord  was  not  less  pleased  than  the  rest ;  and  to  insure  me  a 
safe  journey  the  remainder  of  the  way,  he  went  into  his  hut, 
and  brought  out  a  little  sand,  which  he  had  obtained  from  some 
far  distant  country,  saying  that  all  who  drank  the  water  con- 
taining a  portion  of  the  said  sand,  would  be  shielded  from  harm 
whilst  on  a  journey;  and  he  immediately  put  it  into  a  small 
calabash,  stirred  it  up,  and  drank  some  of  it  himself,  to  convince 
me  that  it  was  not  injurious.  I  preferred  waiting  a  little,  how- 
ever, till  the  sand  sank  to  the  bottom,  and  the  water  became 


JOURNEY    TO    BONDOU.  487 

more  clear;  not  forgetting  to  inform  him  that  I  trusted  in  a 
higlier?Power  to  bless  and  preserve  me. 

The  following  morning,  having  presented  our  host  with  a 
small  present,  and  received  his  blessing,  we  renewed  our  jour- 
nej^  travelhug  hard  and  fast,  taking  but  short  intervals  of  rest. 
We  had  a  little  rain  on  leaving  Boollibany,  and  during  the 
past  night  there  were  one  or  two  dry  tornadoes ;  so  that  the  wet 
season  is  nigh  at  hand.  On  the  evening  of  the  fourth  day,  we 
re-entered  the  wilderness,  between  Kotchair  and  Tambakunda, 
and  travelled  till  half-past  eleven,  guided  by  a  brilliant  moon, 
when  we  again  lay  down  by  the  road-side,  having  made  a  bed 
of  some  small  brushwood  and  branches  of  trees.  Soon  after 
four  o'clock  we  remounted ;  and,  having  made  a  hearty  break- 
fast at  the  latter  place,  we  pushed  on  to  Dirma,  which  we 
reached  late  in  the  evening,  all  quite  ftitigued.  The  next 
morning,  at  Kanipe,  we  beheld  about  thirty  immodest  young 
females,  fantastically  dressed,  with  a  man  beating  the  drum, 
dancing,  shouting,  and  clapping  their  hands,  congratulating  the 
boys  and  young  men  on  their  recovery  from  the  rite  of  circum- 
cision ! 

We  tarried  here  only  about  half  an  hour;  and,  leaving 
Madina  considerably  to  the  right,  took  the  nearest  route  to  the 
banks  of  the  Gambia,  which  from  this  place  is  a  south-west  course; 
and,  having  passed  three  small  towns,  Cupidon  and  myself 
reached  Fattatenda  about  noon  on  Tuesday,  the  8th,  thankful 
to  God  for  all  his  mercies.  The  three  men  on  foot,  however, 
did  not  arrive  till  the  evening. 

The  precise  latitude  and  longitude  of  Boollibany  I  pretend 
not  to  define ;  and  whilst  agreeing,  as  I  do,  with  James  McQueen, 
Esq.,  in  his  "  Geographical  Survey  of  Africa,"  when  speaking 
of  African  travelling,  "that  a  few  miles  each  day  is  the  very 
utmost  that  any  European  can  make  out  in  a  protracted  jour- 
ney," yet  I  am  satisfied  the  distances  I  have  given  from  one 
town  to  another  through  which  we  passed  in  reaching  the  capital 
of  Bondou,  are  tolerably,  if  not  absolutely,  correct.  The  real 
time  occupied  in  journeying  to  that  place,  exclusive  of  the 
detention  at  Barrakunda  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Medina,  one 
day's  rest  at  Jume,  and  another  at  Goodeerie,  was  ten  whole 
days,  that  is,  taking  the  morning  and  evening  of  the  day;  and  the 
number  of  miles  about  two  hundred,  being  just  twenty  per  day.  In 
returning,  it  Avill  be  seen,  I  was  only  six  days,  or  perhaps  it  should 
be  called  seven,  as  nearly  one  whole  night  was  occupied ;  but 
the  distance  vvas  about  twenty-five  miles  less,  as  I  had  no  occa- 
sion again  to  call  at  the  capital  of  Woolli,  which  was  nearly  that 


488  AVESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

distance  out  of  the  direct  route.  Reckoning  my  journey  back 
to  Fattatenda  at  six  and  a-half  days^  this  woukl  give  twenty- 
seven  miles  per  day ;  and  I  should  here  observe,  that  the  African 
horses  are  nimble  walkers,  and  in  these  journeys  are  taught  to 
go  at  a  kind  of  amble,  between  a  smart  walk  and  a  trot,  thus 
keeping  those  on  foot  in  the  same  pace,  who  were  frequently 
left  a  mile  or  two  behind  us  on  our  entering  a  town.  Including 
the  visit  I  paid  to  the  almamy^s  camp,  I  travelled,  on  this  occasion, 
on  horse-back,  nearly  four  hundred  miles,  which  occupied  seven- 
teen or  eighteen  days,  being  an  average  of  about  twenty-three 
miles  per  day.  But  as  this  was  not  a  "protracted  journey,^^ 
and  it  was  in  the  best  season  of  the  year,  that  rate  could  not 
be  kept  up  for  any  length  of  time,  especially  in  the  mountainous 
countries  and  during  the  rains ;  though  in  one  or  two  special 
instances,  and  by  a  great  effort,  I  have  travelled  just  twice  that 
distance  in  one  day. 

By  the  kindness  of  Mr.  Chown,  in  w  hose  vessel  I  had  sailed  to 
Fattatenda,  his  cutter,  the  "  Fox,"  arrived  again  at  this  place  on 
the  9th,  and  early  the  following  morning  we  got  under  weigh,  and 
proceeded  down  the  river ;  and  having  left  the  vessel  at  anchor, 
on  the  fourth  day,  waiting  for  the  tide,  Cupidon  and  mj^self 
went  ashore,  and  travelled  overland ;  and  on  the  afternoon  of 
the  same  day,  Monday,  ISIay  14th,  1838,  we  reached  Macarthy's 
Island,  having  been  absent  just  forty  days.  It  Avas  my  birth- 
day, (being  thirty-two,)  and  in  the  evening  I  met  my  class, 
Avlien  Ave  had  a  refreshing  season  from  the  presence  of  the 
Lord. 


CHAPTER  XXII. 

THE  GOLD-COAST,  GAMBIA,  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1838—1840.) 

The  Author's  Return  from  Bondou — A  Hint  to  Travellers  in  Africa — The  Commo- 
tions in  the  immediate  Neighbourhood  of  Macarthy's  Island — Happy  Contrast 
in  the  State  of  the  Mission — Afflictions  in  the  Mission  Family— Death  of  Mr. 
Wall  at  St.  Mary's — The  Author  proceeds  thither — Serious  Illness  of  Mr. 
Swallow — A  Trip  to  Goree — Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Moss  for  Macarthy's 
Island,  of  Mr.  Edwards  for  Sierra-Leone,  and  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson  for 
St.  Mary's — Mr.  Fleet's  Amval  at  Sierra-Leone — Death  of  Mrs.  Fleet  at  Sea — 
Terrible  Gales  in  the  English  Channel — Wreck  of  the  "  Columbine,"  with  the 
Loss  of  a  Missionary  and  his  Wife  bound  for  the  Gambia — Death  of  Mrs.  Moss 
at  Macarthy's  Island — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  Spencer,  the  Agriculturist — Printed 
Document  with  standing  Regulations  respecting  that  Mission — Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Swallow's  Departure  for  England— Extract  of  a  Letter  from  Dr.  Beecham  to 
the  Author,  on  the  Subject  of  his  Return  Home — Visits  Macarthy's  Island — 
On  his  Return,  finds  the  Inhabitants  of  St.  Mary's  in  a  State  of  partial  Insur- 
rection— Origin  and  Cause  of  this — Moral  Influence  of  the  Mission  saves  the 
Island  from  a  civil  War — The  Author  visits  the  Kings  of  BaiTa  and  Combo — 
Mr.  Spencer's  Illness — The  Writer's  Anxiety  about  that  Mission — Death  of 
Mr.  Fleet  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Freeman,  at  the  Gold-Coast,  visits  Coomassie, 
the  Capital  of  Ashantee — The  Author  embarks  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Spencer  for 
England — Arrival  at  Home — The  Liveri)ool  Conference- — Again  volunteers  for 
Western  Africa — Not  hastily,  but  from  a  Sense  of  Duty — Missionary  Meetings 
in  England — Difficulty  in  saying,  "  No  ! " — Letter  from  Dr.  Bunting — A  second 
Letter  from  the  Doctor,  with  the  painful  Intelligence  of  the  Death  of  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Parkinson  at  St.  Mary's — Meets  the  Committee  in  London — A  School- 
master, with  two  Missionaries,  appointed  to  the  Gambia — Biographical  Sketches 
of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson — Affecting  Incidents  connected  with  their  Death — 
Mr.  Jehu  sails  for  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Mycock  and  Mr.  Brooking 
depart  for  the  Gold-Coast — The  Author  and  Family  proceed  to  London — Dr. 
Bunting — The  Mission-Party  embark  at  Gravesend — Detention  at  Portsmouth 
— Safe  Anival  at  the  Gambia — Happy  Death  of  a  Negro — Centenary  Meetings 
— Death  of  Mrs.  Dove  and  Mr.  Jehu  at  Sierra-Leone — And  of  Mr.  James  at 
Macarthy's  Island — Mrs.  James's  Departure  for  England — The  Author's  severe 
personal  Afflictions  and  Bereavements. 

In  the  extracts  from  the  author's  journal,  detaihng  the  parti- 
culars of  his  journey  to  Bondou,  which  we  have  given  in  the 
preceding  chapter,  it  will  be  seen,  that  though  the  writer  had 
to  brave  fatigue,  and  occasionally  to  suffer  from  hunger  and 
thirst,  and  slept  principally  upon  nature's  carpet,  and  sometimes 
travelled  by  night,  on  which  occasions  he  threw  himself  down 


490  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

upon  a  few  small  branches  broken  from  the  trees,  far  distant 
from  any  human  dwelling, — yet  he  was  generally  well  received 
by  the  natives,  as  also  by  the  almamy  himself;*  and,  after  an 
absence  of  nearly  six  weeks  from  his  station,  he  arrived  at  home 
well  in  health,  happy  in  God,  and  was  cordially  welcomed  by 
his  colleague  and  other  friends,  some  of  whom,  he  really 
believes,  never  expected  to  see  him  again  in  the  flesh.  The 
I'esult  of  this  journey  into  the  interior  it  is  impossible  to  pre- 
dict ;  but,  if  followed  up  by  his  successors  in  the  glorious  enter- 
prise of  saving  souls,  he  would  fain  hope  that  "  the  bread '^  thus 
feebly  "  cast  upon  the  waters  "  may  be  '•'  found  after  many  days." 

If  the  writer  may  be  allowed  a  liiut  here  to  future  expeditions 
for  exploring  the  yet  unknown  regions  of  central  Africa,  he  would 
remark,  that  a  large  company,  and  bales  of  presents,  are  not  among 
the  best  methods  of  conducting  such  an  expedition  to  a  successful 
result.  Presents  it  is  necessary  to  make, — it  is  the  custom  of  the 
countr}^ ;  and  to  this  custom  all  travellers  must  more  or  less  sub- 
mit. But  one  European,  or  at  the  most  two,  possessing  the  requi- 
site quahfications, — and  to  those  of  a  scientific  nature  must  be 
added  a  good  share  of  common  sense,  with  prudence,  patience, 
fortitude,  and  moral  courage, — two  Europeans  of  this  descrip- 
tion, with  three  or  four  faithful  attendants,  are  quite  sufficient. 
The  less,  in  fact,  the  better, — as  numbers,  and  especially  per- 
sons of  a  different  colour,  always  attract  attention ;  and  as  thou- 
sands of  the  Africans  live  by  plunder,  the  sight  of  the  baggage 
is  too  powerful  a  temptation  for  them  to  resist.  To  avoid  the 
latter  inconvenience,  I  would  suggest  that  small  presents  be 
made  to  the  different  chiefs,  through  whose  dominions  the  tra- 
veller passes,  by  a  ivritten  order  on  an  agent  at  the  upper  Gam- 
bia or  Senegal  rivers ;  and  in  this  way  the  commander  of  a 
government  or  scientific  expedition  might  arrive  at  Timbuctoo, 
or  some  other  and  more  central  kingdom,  in  a  comparatively 
short  time,  and  at  a  moderate  expense ;  and  from  thence  might 
proceed,  partly  by  water  and  partly  by  land,  across  the  whole 
continent ;  an  undertaking  which  has  yet  to  be  accomplished  by 
some  enterprising  spirit  of  our  own  or  some  other  country. 

In  about  a  week  after  my  return  from  Bondou,  I  paid  another 
visit  to  the  king  of  Kattaba,  the  object  of  Avhich  was  to  ascer- 
tain the  mind  of  His  Majesty  and  his  ministers  as  to  the  sale 

*  It  should  be  stated  that,  during  his  joiu-ney,  he  distributed  a  quantity  of  the 
scriptures  in  Arabic,  and,  whenever  an  opportunity  presented  itself,  failed  not  to 
"preach  Christ  unto  the  people;"  in  return  for  which,  he  was  politely  thanked, 
received  many  blessings  from  the  people,  and  many  prayers  were  offered  for  his 
safetv. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERBA-LEONE.  491 

of  a  large  tract  of  land  contiguous  to  Macarthy's  Island,  for  the 
benefit  of  the  Foulahs,  as  the  six  hundred  acres  granted  by  the 
British  Government  Avere  not  sufficient,  either  in  the  wet  or  dry 
season,  for  the  pasturage  of  their  cattle.  I  had  a  long  conver- 
sation with  the  king  and  other  leading  men  in  the  country,  and 
have  little  doubt  that  land  to  almost  any  amount  might  be  pur- 
chased or  rented  on  behalf  of  these  oppressed  people  ;  but  wlio 
is  to  protect  them  from  the  marauding  banditti  ?  Naamang, 
the  king  of  Kattaba,  cannot ;  nor  can  the  British  Government 
beyond  their  own  territories :  and  loant  of  protection  is  the 
great  difficulty  in  this  Foulah  mission. 

In  the  early  part  of  July  we  had  another  specimen  of  the 
unsocial  and  disorganized  state  of  the  native  tribes  in  this  coun- 
try, and  of  the  pitiable  condition,  more  especially,  of  the  pas- 
toral Foulahs,  who  are  generally  the  greatest  sufferers  on  these 
occasions ;  which  affords  further  illustration  of  the  remark  just 
made  respecting  their  unprotected  condition. 

The  following  extract  from  a  letter  addressed  to  the  parent 
committee,  bears  upon  this  subject.  It  was  dated,  "  Macarthy^s 
Island,  August  9th,  1838  :"— 

The  disturbed  state  of  this  neighboixrhood  renders  it  next  to  impossible  to  do 
any  thing  for  the  poor  Foulahs  at  Broolco,  or  Jamalli,  as  they  are  every  few  weeks 
driven  from  their  habitations  by  one  marauding  band  or  another.  The  notorious 
Kemmingtan,  two  or  three  weeks  ago,  made  a  plundering  expetbtion  through 
Brooko,  and  some  miles  higher  up  the  same  bank  of  the  river,  carrying  almost 
every  thing  before  him.  The  poor  Foulahs,  of  course,  fled;  and  many  of  them, 
with  some  MancUugoes,  came  to  this  island  for  safety.  lie  was  followed  by  a  small 
party  of  Foulahs ;  but  he  was  too  strong  for  them,  though  he  lost  seven  or  eight  of 
his  men,  and  his  own  son  was  killed  by  a  shot  through  the  head.  He,  in  return, 
killed  many  of  those  who  attacked  him :  the  leader  of  the  party  he  spht  down  the 
middle,  and  fastened  his  body  to  the  ground  with  wooden  .pegs  ! 

I  understand  he  has  taken  with  him  an  amazing  quantity  of  cattle,  and  some 
slaves  ;  and  report  says,  that  he  intends  to  retm-n  shortly,  to  be  revenged  for  the 
death  of  his  son.  Some  of  the  merchants  here  at  the  time  had  their  fears  that  he 
would  attack  this  island ;  but  I  have  no  such  apprehension  :  he  is  certainly  very 
treacherous,  and  our  mud-built  fort  would  not  stand  much  battering. 

In  the  midst  of  these  "  wars  and  rumours  of  wars,"  and 
other  trials  arising  from  severe  personal  affliction,  the  illness 
of  the  wife  of  the  writer^s  colleague  caused  him  to  accompany 
her  to  St.  Mary^s  for  a  change  of  air ;  the  assistant  missionary 
also  was  absent  at  the  same  time  to  attend  the  sessions,  in  a 
vain  endeavour  to  obtain  compensation  for  the  demolition  of  his 
house  ;  instead  of  which  the  person  who  committed  the  outrage 
threatened  to  sue  him  for  (pretended)  defamation, — laying  the 
amount  of  damages  at  £1,000.     But,  after  all,  it  was  gratifying 


492  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

that  the  cause  of  God  was  gradually  advancing.  Our  place  of 
worship  was  well  filled^  and  wc  had  an  increase  of  members.  At 
a  love-feast  held  about  this  time,  it  was  truly  affecting  to  hear 
some  of  the  liberated  Africans,  with  tears  running  down  their 
black  furrowed  cheeks,  speak  of  the  demoralized,  ignorant,  and 
awful  state  in  which  their  parents  and  friends  are  placed,  in  the 
country  from  whence  they  had  been  so  cruelly  torn ;  but  how 
happy  and  thankful  they  were,  that  themselves,  by  a  gracious 
Providence,  had  been  brought  into  a  state  of  civil  freedom,  and 
to  the  enjoyment  of  that  spiritual  liberty  wherewith  Christ 
makes  his  people  free  !  What  a  contrast  this,  even  to  the 
condition  of  their  immediate  neighbours  ! 

On  the  19th  of  July,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow  returned,  both 
apparently  the  better  for  their  trip  ;  but  my  own  affliction  con- 
tinued for  some  time ;  nor  would  the  fever  yield  to  the  ordinary 
course  or  mode  of  treatment ;  so  that,  in  addition  to  being- 
well  physicked,  I  was  bled  in  the  arm,  blistered,  and  finally 
salivated.  At  the  end  of  the  follo\ying  month,  Mr.  Swallow 
was  attacked  Avith  fever,  which  assumed  a  peculiar  type,  pro- 
ducing a  kind  of  stupor  and  insensibility ;  and  for  some  time 
he  appeared  more  like  a  dead  man  than  a  living  one.  In  the 
midst  of  these  afflictions,  the  painful  news  of  Mr.  Wall's  death 
reached  us ;  and  as  soon  as  I  was  able,  and  INIr.  Swallow  was 
sufficiently  well  to  be  left  alone,  I  proceeded  to  St.  Mary's,  to 
administer  comfort  to  the  bereaved  flock,  and  attend  to  the 
effects  of  the  deceased  missionary. 

I  left  Macarthy's  Island  on  the  13th  of  September,  and 
arrived  at  the  lower  station  on  the  17th,  having  had  fever  more 
or  less  all  the  way  down.  Five  Europeans,  I  found,  had  died, 
and  one  or  two  others  were  not  expected  to  live.  I  was  also 
confined  to  my  bed  for  about  three  days,  at  the  expiration  of 
which  period  I  paid  a  ^isit  to  the  missionary's  grave,  and  then 
communicated  the  particulars  of  his  sickness  and  death  to  the 
committee  in  London,  and  to  his  friends.* 

Thomas  Wall  was  a  young  man  of  a  social  and  happy  dis- 
position, of  sincere  piety,  and  of  some  talents,  which,  had  he 
lived  to  cultivate  them,  would  "  have  gained  other  talents  beside 
them."  But  his  missionary  career  was  short,  and  his  sun  went 
down,  like  that  of  many  others  in  this  part  of  the  field,  almost 
before  it  had  reached  its  zenith :  it  only  set,  however,  to  rise 
with  brighter  lustre,  and  in  a  nobler  clime.      During  his  brief 

*  See  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  ix.  pp.  6,  7. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  493 

sojourn  of  about  eight  mouths  at  the  Gambia,  he  was  studious, 
diUgent,  affectionate,  and  faithful  in  his  pastoral  and  bther 
ministerial  duties,  and  was  a  very  acceptable  and  useful 
preacher.  With  one  or  two  slight  exceptions,  he  enjoyed 
excellent  health  and  spirits  from  the  time  of  his  arrival  up  to 
the  fatal  paroxysm  which  terminated  his  mortal  career :  he 
appeared  sanguine  about  getting  safe  through  the  "raius,'^  and 
hoped  to  labour  for  some  length  of  time  in  his  Master's  vine- 
yard. But  it  was  otherwise  determined  by  Him  "  who  cannot 
err.''  His  lamented  decease  took  place  on  the  24th  of  August, 
1838,  precisely  twelve  months  after  that  of  Mr.  Wilkinson,  who 
preceded  him  on  this  station ;  and,  like  his  excellent  predecessor, 
he  preached  on  the  Sunday  (August  19th)  previous  to  his  death, 
was  well  on  the  Monday,  but  the  following  day  complained  of 
indisposition.  On  Wednesday  he  sent  for  the  doctor ;  but 
even  at  that  early  period  he  appeared  to  be  suffering  more  from 
debility  than  fever ;  consequently,  stimulants  were  administered, 
but  with  little  or  no  good  results.  He  was  aware  of  his 
approaching  end,  and  frequently  engaged  in  prayer,  in  which 
he  was  joined  by  the  assistant  and  some  of  the  leaders  and  local 
preachers.  On  Thursday  he  was  no  better,  though  visited 
several  times  during  the  day  by  the  doctor,  and  other  Euro- 
peans ;  and  four  or  five  of  the  native  converts  were  with  him 
night  and  day.  During  that  evening,  he  was  gradually  sink- 
ing into  the  arms  of  death  ;  and  about  six  o'clock  on  Friday 
morning,  August  24th,  he  gently  breathed  his  last.  He  had 
expressed  a  wish  to  be  interred  in  the  burying- ground,  in 
preference  to  the  chapel;  and  he  was  there  buried.  He  also 
requested  a  friend  to  lock  the  mission-house  doors,  &c.,  till  the 
writer  came  down.  Some  of  his  last  words  were  addressed  to 
the  assistants  and  local  preachers,  who  were  around  his  bed  :  he 
caught  hold  of  the  hand  of  one  of  them,  whose  name  was 
Sack  M'Cumba,  and  said  with  considerable  energy,  "  Sack,  do 
all  you  can  to  save  sinners  !"  On  Sunday,  September  23d,  the 
writer  preached  his  funeral  sermon  from  Phil.  i.  21,  "  To  die  is 
gain." 

Towards  the  close  of  October,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow  came 
down  from  the  upper  station,  the  former  having  been  again 
dangerously  ill,  and  still  very  unwell ;  and  as  the  author  had 
continued  in  a  debilitated  state,  and  a  favourable  opportunity 
offered  of  taldng  a  trip  to  Goree,  we  embraced  it,  and  left  St. 
Mary's  on  the  30th  of  that  month.  Our  stay  was  short;  but 
the  sea-air  was  refreshing  to  us  all;  and  we  returned  to  the 


494  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

Gambia  on  the  9tli  of  November,  and  found  things  connected 
with  the  society  all  well.  Gorec  is  a  French  settlement,  about 
ninety  miles  to  the  north  of  the  Gambia.  It  is  a  small,  rocky 
island,  a  few  miles  from  the  mainland,  well  fortified,  and  contains 
a  population  of  about  seven  thousand  souls,  six  sevenths  of  whom 
are  slaves.  There  is  a  good-sized  Catholic  church  in  the  place ; 
but  the  morals  of  the  people  are  at  a  very  low  ebb. 

On  the  30th  of  November,  the  brig  "  Ocean"  arrived  from 
London,  bringing  Mr.  and  Mrs.  ISIoss  for  Macarthy's  Island, 
and  Mr.  Thomas  Edwards  for  Sierra-Leone.  The  latter  pro- 
ceeded for  his  destination  in  a  few  days,  and,  Mr.  Swallow 
continuing  ill,  the  writer  accompanied  JMr.  and  Mrs.  Moss  to 
jNIacarthj^^s  Island,  which  place  we  reached  on  the  12th  of 
December.  About  the  middle  of  this  month,  Mr.  and  INIrs. 
Parkinson  arrived  at  St.  Mary's,  to  succeed  Mr.  Wall;  and 
the  writer  having  introduced  Mr.  Moss  to  the  society  and 
friends  at  the  upper  station,  and  attended  to  some  other  matters 
connected  with  the  mission,  he  returned  to  St.  Mary's  on  the 
3d  of  January,  1839,  and  was  sorry  to  find  Mr.  Swallow  was 
little  or  no  better;  and,  being  strongly  recommended  by  his 
medical  attendant  and  others  to  return  to  England,  he  at  length 
consented. 

On  the  7th  of  January  ]\Ir.  Henry  Fleet  arrived  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  having  experienced  the  painful  loss  of  his  wife  at  sea,  a 
short  time  before  the  vessel  reached  the  coast.  They  had  embarked 
at  Gravesend  on  the  19th  of  November,  but  had  to  encounter 
severe  weather  in  the  Channel,  being  met  by  several  gales  from 
the  south-west.  They  contended  with  the  weather  till  they  had 
sufl^ered  some  damage,  and  had  dismissed  almost  all  hope  of 
safety.  But,  by  a  gracious  Providence,  they  were  enabled  to 
regain  shelter  oflF  Hyde,  in  the  Isle  of  Wight,  where  they 
experienced  the  kindest  and  most  hospitable  attentions  from 
the  friends  of  missions;  and  their  vessel  was  again  refitted  for 
their  voyage.  Mr.  Fleet  vvrote  from  that  place  on  the  eve  of 
their  re-embarkation ;  adding  that,  through  mercy,  Mrs.  Fleet 
and  himself  were  quite  well,  and  felt  happy  in  the  prospect 
before  them  of  being  actually  engaged  in  the  arduous,  yet  most 
glorious,  work  of  their  Redeemer.  But  sopn  after  they  put  to 
sea  again,  IMrs.  Fleet  was  taken  ill  with  the  typhus-fever,  pro- 
bably superinduced  by  a  slight  cold  which  she  had  taken  during 
the  previous  dreadful  storms  and  privations  in  the  English 
Channel.  She  never  recovered,  but  died  when  v.ithin  fifty 
miles  of  their  destined  port. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA^    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  495 

Of  Mrs.  Fleet's  personal  history  beyond  the  preceding,  tlie 
writer  is  unable  to  speak;  but  though  she  never  put  her  feet 
on  mission  soil,  it  is  evident  she  possessed  a  raissionaiy  spirit. 
It  was  in  her  heart  to  have  laboured  in  the  field :  God  saw  the 
will,  and  took  it  for  the  deed;  and  as  she  was  crossing  the 
"wide  blue  sea,"  and  approaching  near  to  the  inhospitable 
shoi'es  of  Western  Africa,  He  said,  "  It  is  enough :  come  up 
hither ! "  and  she  entered,  and  gained  that  blessed  port  above, 

"  Where  all  the  ship's  company  meet 

Who  sail'd  with  the  Saviour  beneath."  * 

The  effects  of  the  dreadful  gales  from  the  south-west  which 
occurred  at  this  time  were  generally  felt  on  the  English  coast; 
and  we  have  now  to  record  another  and  still  more  painful  dis- 
pensation of  Divine  Providence,  in  connexion  with  "  the  perils 
of  the  sea."  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Peard  had  embarked  for  St.  Mary's 
on  the  23d  of  November,  in  the  "  Columbine,"  a  small,  but 
comfortable  and  good-sailing,  brig,  a  regular  trader  to  the 
Gambia,  which  had  carried  out  several  missionaries  on  different 
occasions.  But  the  vessel  was  unable  to  bear  up  against  the 
terrible  hurricane  which  blew  along  the  coast  on  the  27th  and 
28th  of  that  month,  and  was  wrecked  on  the  morning  of  the 
latter  date,  on  the  Chesil  Beach,  off  Wyke,  near  Weymouth, 
where  she  was  dashed  to  atoms;  and  all  on  board,  including 
four  respectable  passengers,  besides  the  missionary  and  his  wife, 
found  a  w-atery  grave  ! 

On  this  melancholy  intelligence  reaching  London,  Dr.  Alder, 
one  of  the  general  secretaries,  immediately  set  off  for  Wey- 
mouth, in  order  to  ascertain  whether  the  bodies  of  Mr,  and 
Mrs.  Peard  had  been  washed  ashore ;  and,  if  so,  to  see  that  all 
proper  attention  should  be  paid  to  their  remains.     Though  nine 

*  The  author  cannot  withhold  a  painful  fact  which  has  come  to  his  knowledge, 
in  connexion  with  the  voyage  to  Sierra-Leone,  in  which  this  excellent  female  was 
the  greatest  siitl'erer.  The  sailors,  it  appears,  had  on  that  occasion  resolved  to 
renew  the  heathenish  practice  of  paying  respect  to  Neptune,  when  crossing  the 
tropical  line;  and  as  this  occurred  at  a  critical  time  of  Mrs.  Fleet's  illness,  it 
proved  very  injurious  to  lie'r  health,  from  the  excitement  into  which  she  was 
thrown,  through  fear  that  her  husband  would  be  compelled  by  the  rough  and 
unthinking  crew  to  pass  through  the  same  barbarous  ordeal.  Such  a  catastrophe 
cannot  but  be  deeply  lamented.  The  captain  of  the  vessel  has  long  since  been 
dead,  and  none  of  the  parties  were  known  to  the  writer ;  but  he  has  felt  it  his  duty 
to  place  it  upon  record,  in  the  hope  that  such  instances  of  folly  and  wickedness 
may  be  speedily  and  entirely  abolished  on  board  the  British  vessels ;  or,  at  all 
events,  that  those  who  are  intrusted  with  the  command  of  a  ship  will  take  care 
that  the  health  and  Uves  of  their  passengers  shall  not  1)C  endangered  by  such  an 
uiiseemlv  and  brutish  ceremonv. 


496  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

vessels,  with  their  crews  and  passengers,  were  lost  during  the 
same  gales,  and  near  the  same  place.  Dr.  Alder  succeeded  in 
identifying  the  body  of  Mr.  Peard,  which  had  been  buried  in 
the  same  grave  with  thirteen  others.  He  therefore  had  it 
removed,  and  the  next  day  it  was  respectably  interred  in  the 
burial-ground  connected  with  the  Wesleyan  chapel  at  Portland; 
and  in  a  few  days  afterwards  the  body  of  Mrs.  Peard  was  dis- 
covered, and  was  buried  in  the  same  place.  This  was  some  small 
relief  to  their  distressed  parents,  and  other  friends.  Mr.  Peard 
w^as  in  the  twenty-fourth  year  of  his  age  at  the  time  of  his  death, 
and  the  reader  will  find  a  brief  record  of  him  in  the  Minutes  of 
the  Conference  for  1839 ;  and  further  particulars  of  this  fatal 
shipwreck  are  given  in  a  letter  addressed  to  the  parents  of  INIr. 
and  Mrs.  Peard,  by  Dr.  Alder,  which  was  printed  in  the  "  Mis- 
sionary Notices  "  for  January  of  that  year.  That  their  death, 
though  a  painful  loss  to  their  friends  and  to  the  mission,  was  to 
them  a  glorious  gain,  there  can  be  no  doubt.  But  we  may  truly 
say,  "  How  unsearchable  are  thy  judgments,  O  Lord,  and  thy 
ways  are  past  finding  out !  " 

The  author  was  at  this  time  at  St.  Mary's,  closing  his 
accounts  with  that  station,  aiding  Mr.  Parkinson  in  the  mission, 
and  rendering  all  the  assistance  he  could  to  his  afflicted  col- 
league, Mr.  Swallow.  His  own  health  was  not  good;  and  on 
Sunday,  January  27th,  1839,  Mr.  Moss  arrived  from  Macar- 
thy's  Island  with  the  melancholy  tidings  that  his  dear  wife  had 
expired  on  the  22d. 

Mrs.  Moss's  maiden  name  was  Mallin.  She  was  a  native  of 
West  Bromwich,  and  was  in  early  life  truly  converted  to  God. 
She  was  united  in  marriage  to  Mr.  Moss  a  short  time  before 
they  sailed  for  the  Gambia,  and,  as  already  stated,  arrived  at  St. 
Mary's  on  the  30th  of  November,  1838 ;  soon  after  which  she 
proceeded  with  her  husband  to  Macarthy's  Island;  and  the 
author  left  them  there  at  the  end  of  December,  both  well  in 
health,  and  happy  in  their  work.  A  few  days  afterwards  Mrs. 
Moss  was  attacked  Avith  the  country  fever ;  but  no  danger  was 
apprehended,  either  by  the  doctor,  herself,  or  her  husband. 
But  the  "  king  of  terrors "  did  not  find  her  unprepared.  On 
the  day  on  which  she  exchanged  mortality  for  life,  in  reply  to 
questions  on  the  subject  of  experimental  religion,  she  gave 
the  most  satisfactory  testimony  that  "  all  was  well,"  and  more 
than  once  exclaimed,  "  God  is  mine,  and  I  am  his  ! "  Some  of 
her  last  words  were,  "  Christ  is  precious  ! "  "  Happy,  happy  ! " 
And    on    Tuesday   evening,    January   22 d,    1839,    she    gently 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAAIKIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  497 

breathed  her  last.  Mrs.  Moss  was  an  amiable,  modest,  and 
sincere  Christian,  holding  sweet  communion  with  God.  She 
loved  the  cause  of  missions ;  and  though  her  days  of  actual 
service  in  the  field  were  few,  she  had  expressed  herself  to  the 
writer  as  never  beiug  so  happy  in  her  life ;  and  in  reference  to 
the  future,  she  could  leave  it  with  God ;  adding,  "  Should  it 
please  Him  to  call  me  hence  in  this  distant  part  of  the  world,  I 
have  no  doubt  of  being  received  into  that  '  house  not  made  with 
hands,  eternal  in  the  heavens.' "  Her  last  words  gave  still  fur- 
ther evidence  that  she  is  "  for  ever  with  the  Lord.'' 

The  reader  will  probably  recollect  that  a  Mr.  Fisher  was 
expected,  about  twelve  months  previous  to  this,  to  take  charge 
of  the  agricultural  and  civilization  department  of  the  mission  at 
Macarthy's  Island ;  but  that  he  was  detained  by  a  "  temporary 
indisposition."  That  aifliction  having  proved  fatal,  some  time 
was  necessarily  occupied  in  selecting  another  suitable  person  in 
his  place ;  and  it  was  not  until  the  middle  of  February  of  the 
year  1839  that  Mr.  Spencer  the  agriculturist  arrived.  This  was 
a  great  relief  to  the  writei%  who  had  had  the  whole  of  the  secu- 
lar matters  of  that  peculiar  and  important  mission  devolving 
upon  him  up  to  that  period.  By  Mr.  Spencer,  and  the  brethren 
who  had  preceded  him,  the  author  received  several  communi- 
cations from  the  secretaries,  among  which  was  the  following- 
printed  document  from  the  new  civilization  committee,  with  the 
standing  Resolutions  annexed  : — 

CIVILIZATION    OF    THE    FOULAHS,  AND    OTHER    ABORIGINES,  OF   WESTERN   AFRICA. 

The  mission  at  ]\Iacarthy's  Island,  on  the  Gambia,  Western  Africa,  was  under- 
taken with  the  view  of  communicating  the  blessings  of  Christianity,  and  its 
attendant  civilization,  to  the  Foulah  tribes  and  the  aboriginal  population  generally. 
Affected  especially  by  the  oppressed  and  suffering  condition  of  the  pastoral  Foulahs, 
Dr.  Lindoe  and  his  friends  engaged  to  furnish  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society,  for 
the  term  of  five  years,  with  the  sum  of  ii350  per  annum  ;  towards  supporting  one 
European  missionary  and  two  native  teachers,  who  should  be  employed  in  instruct- 
ing and  promoting  the  welfare  of  these  interesting  people,  and  other  native  tribes 
among  whom  they  dwell.  It  was  also  proposed  to  connect  with  the  direct  and 
proper  work  of  the  mission,  such  efforts  as  circumstiinces  might  admit  for  improv- 
ing the  temporal  condition  of  those  who  might  be  brought  under  the  beneficial 
influence  of  Christian  instruction,  and  who  might  thercliy  l)e  disposed  to  devote 
themselves  to  the  settled  pursuits  of  civilized  life.  The  success  which  has  attended 
the  experiment,  calls  for  the  most  gratefid  acknowledgments.  Upwards  of  two 
hundred  natives  have  already  embraced  Christianity,  and  are  united  together  in 
church-fellowship  ;  the  Mandingo  language,  which  is  veiy  generally  used  in  that 
part  of  Western  Africa,  even  by  the  Foulahs,  although  they  have  a  language  of  their 
own,  has  been  reduced  to  grammatical  form,  and  a  grammar  and  elementary  books 
have  been  printed ;  the  Gospels  have  been  translated  into  that  language,  and  that  of 

K    K 


498  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRTCA. 

St.  Matthew  has  been  printed,  by  the  liberality  of  the  British  and  Foreign  Bible 
Society ;  a  good  school  is  in  successful  operation ;  and  the  missionaries  are  encou- 
raged to  persevere  in  their  labours,  by  the  increasing  desire  manifested  by  the  peo- 
ple to  obtain  instruction.  The  civilizing  department  of  the  work  has  been  the 
occasion  of  much  sohcitude.  Hopes  were  entertained  that  a  tract  of  country  would 
be  procured  on  the  main-land,  and  that  many  of  the  Foulahs  might  be  induced  to 
settle  uj)on  it  in  a  body ;  which  would  have  afforded  facihties  for  communicating 
instruction  to  them  in  a  more  efficient  manner,  and  on  a  larger  scale.  These  hopes 
have  not  as  yet  been  realized ;  but,  in  the  mean  time,  the  commencement  of  a 
Foulah  village,  called  Lindoe-Morgan,  has  been  made  at  Macarthy's  Island ;  many 
other  natives  have  had  land  allotted  to  them  there ;  and  the  necessary  implements 
of  husbandry  have  been  sent  for  their  use  from  this  countr)^ 

The  term  of  five  years,  during  which  the  Southampton  Committee  had  engaged 
to  make  provision  for  the  support  of  this  important  undertaking,  having  expired, 
and  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  having  now  taken  upon  itself  the  entire  future 
maintenance  of  the  mission  department  of  the  work,  Dr.  Lindoe  and  others  have 
resolved  to  form  themselves  into  a  new  committee  for  the  purpose  of  earning  out 
such  plans  as  may  appear  best  calculated  to  promote  ci\'ilization  among  the  natives. 
They  are  anxious  to  follow  the  footsteps  of  the  missionary ;  to  instruct  those  who 
have  been  rendered  docile  by  his  teaching  how  to  advance  by  useful  labour  the 
temporal  welfare  of  themselves  and  their  children ;  and  to  communicate,  by  the 
means  which  may  be  placed  at  their  disposal,  the  blessings  of  social,  civihzed  life, 
to  the  greatest  possible  extent.  The  following  ministers  and  gentlemen  have  agreed 
to  act  as  the  new  committee : — 

President,  Lieutenant-General  Orde. 

Treasurers,  Robert  Lindoe,  M.D.,  Robert  Howard. 

Secretary,  John  S.  Elliott. 

Committee,  Henry  Pownall,  Thomas  Gurney,  Thomas  Farmer,  Robert  Heath,  M.A., 
Jabez  Bunting,  D.D.,  John  Beecham,  Robert  Alder,  Elijah  Hoole. 

Corresponding  Member,  B.  II.  Drajier,  D.D.,  late  secretary  to  the  Southampton 
Committee. 

At  their  first  meeting,  the  committee  agreed  upon  certain  principles  or  rules  of 
action,  which  they  embodied  in  the  subjoined  resolutions : — 

1.  The  committee  do  not  commence  their  endeavours  to  promote  the  civilization 
of  the  Foulahs  and  other  aborigines  of  Western  Africa,  in  the  spirit  of  commercial 
speculation.  They  regard  the  enterprise  as  a  work  of  pure  philanthropy,  on  which 
they  enter  solely  with  a  view  to  the  benefit  of  the  natives ;  and  disclaim  all  inten- 
tion of  seeking  to  derive  from  it  any  personal  ijccuniaiy  advantage  whatever. 

2.  The  committee,  convinced  that  experience  has  now  clearly  shown  the  imprac- 
ticabUity  of  preparing  the  Heathen  for  the  reception  of  the  gospel  by  any  previous 
civilizing  process,  and  being  moreover  persuaded  that  the  gospel  itself  is  the  prin- 
cipal means  of  civilization ;  propose,  in  their  operations,  not  to  precede,  but  follow, 
the  missionary,  for  the  purpose  of  accelerating  the  advance  of  the  arts  of  civilized 
life  among  the  natives,  whose  minds  are  already  influenced  by  the  great  truths  of 
Christianity. 

3.  As  the  native  members,  upwards  of  two  hundred  in  number,  imder  the  care  of 
the  Wesleyan  missionaries  at  the  Foulah  mission-station,  reside  at  Macarthy's 
Island,  the  committee  propose,  in  the  first  instance,  to  afford  them  instruction,  and 
furnish  them  with  implements  to  enable  them  to  cultivate  the  six  hundred  acres  of 
land  granted  by  His  late  Majesty's  Government  for  the  use  of  the  Wesleyan  mission 
in  that  island. 

4.  To  prevent  abuse,  and  to  preserve  the  agents  who  may  be  employed  in  this 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIEllRA-LEONE.  499 

undertaking  from  the  temptation  of  seeking  to  advance  their  own  interests  to  the 
neglect  of  the  natives,  a  sufticient  salary  shall  be  paid  by  the  committee  to  all  the 
hired  agents ;  and  they  shall  not  be  left,  as  was  at  first  proposed,  to  obtain  part  of 
their  salary  from  the  produce  of  the  soil. 

5.  The  senior  missionaries  who  may  have  charge  of  the  Wesleyan  stations  at  St. 
Mary's  and  Macarthy's  Island,  with  Charles  Grant,  Esq.,  shall  be  requested  to  act 
as  a  local  sub-committee,  who  shall  correspond  with  the  committee  in  London,  and 
by  whose  counsel  and  advice  the  superintendent  of  the  civilization  department  shall 
be  expected  to  act.  If  considerable  ditference  of  opinion  shoidd  arise  on  any  question 
between  the  superintendent  and  the  local  sub-committee,  the  case  shall  be  referred 
home  to  the  committee  for  decision. 

6.  That  a  suitable  person  be  immediately  engaged  to  proceed  to  Macarthy's 
Island  for  the  piu-pose  of  making  the  necessaiy  arrangements  for  commencing 
operations  on  the  six  hundred  acres  of  land ;  and  that  the  committee  postpone  the 
consideration  of  the  question  respecting  the  number  of  agents  which  shall  be 
employed,  and  the  future  extension  of  their  plans,  until  his  report  shall  have 
been  received. 

The  committee  embraced  an  early  opportunity  of  submitting  a  sketch  of  their 
undertaking,  with  a  copy  of  these  resolutions,  to  the  Right  Honourable  Lord 
Gleuelg,  Her  Majesty's  principal  secretary  of  state  for  the  colonial  department ; 
with  which  his  lordship  was  pleased  to  express  his  entire  satisfaction,  at  the  same 
time  assuring  the  committee  that  he  would  instruct  the  lieutenant-governor  of  Iler 
Majesty's  settlements  at  Bathurst,  in  the  Gambia,  to  cause  every  facility  to  be 
afforded  to  the  establishment  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  at  Macarthy's 
Island,  with  a  view  to  give  effect  to  the  intentions  of  this  auxiliary  institution. 

In  pursuance  of  the  last  resolution,  the  committee  engaged  an  individual  of 
excellent  character,  whose  mechanical  skill,  combined  with  a  practical  knowledge 
of  agriculture  and  gardening,  eminently  fitted  him  for  the  task,  to  proceed  to 
Macarthy's  Island,  in  order  to  take  the  management  of  the  civilization  department, 
and  form  plans  for  a  more  extended  system  of  operation ;  but  they  regret  to  state 
that  his  departiu'e  has  been  prevented  by  a  severe  lingering  illness,  with  which  he 
was  attacked  when  on  the  very  eve  of  embarkation.  The  committee,  however, 
have  determined  to  send  out,  as  speedily  as  possible,  two  other  individuals,  one  an 
agriculturist  and  the  other  a  mechanist ;  being  persuaded,  from  recent  communica- 
tions, that  the  services  of  both  are  necessary  to  give  effect  to  the  existing  arrange- 
ments for  instructing  the  natives. 

A  proposal  has  also  been  made  to  the  committee  to  commence  an  Institution  at 
Macarthy's  Island,  for  the  purpose  more  especially  of  educating  the  sons  of  the 
native  kings  and  powerful  chiefs,  as  well  as  others.  The  plan  has  been  submitted 
to  competent  persons  well  acquainted  with  Western  Africa,  by  whom  it  has  been 
pronounced  as  admiral)ly  adapted  to  promote  the  instruction  and  improvement  of 
the  people ;  and  the  committee  are  prepared  to  make  the  experiment  of  com- 
mencing such  an  Institution,  on  a  limited  scale,  should  they  be  encouraged  to  do 
so  by  the  liberality  of  their  friends. 

Having  made  this  brief  statement  of  their  views  and  objects,  the  committee  confi- 
dently appeal  for  support  to  all  those  who  are  interested  in  the  welfare  of  Africa ; 
and  especially  to  those  who  have  already,  by  tlieir  contribution  to  the  Southampton 
Committee,  practically  manifested  their  approval  of  this  very  undertaking.  It  can- 
not be,  that  a  work  which  has  been  so  prosperously  begun,  shall  be  left  to  languish 
through  want  of  necessai-y  support.  Adequate  means  for  its  prosecution  will,  it  is 
trusted,   be   provided ;    and  the  missionary  and  civilization  establishment  on  the 

3  K  2 


500 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


Gambia,  under  the  Divine  blessing,  cannot  then  fail  to  be  of  the  greatest  good  to 
many  of  the  present  generation  of  the  sable  sons  and  daughters  of  Western  Africa, 
and  to  transmit  its  benefit  to  numbers  yet  unborn. 


Signed,  on  behalf  of  the  committee,  Robert  Lindoe,       ,   „, 

'  „  ,,  '       y  Ireasurers, 

Robert  Howard, 


^'      \  Tr 

John  S.  Elliott,  Secretary. 


Subscriptions  and  Donations  will  be  thankfully  received  by  Robert  Howard,  the 
Treasurer,  at  Tottenham;  at  the  bank  of  Messrs.  Smith,  Payne,  and  Smiths,  1, 
Lombard-street,  London ;  and  by  any  member  of  the  Committee. 

London,  July  Idth,  1838. 

From  the  preceding  the  reader  may  form  some  idea  of  what 
was  now  contemplated;  and  Mr.  Spencer,  who  had  also  written 
instructions,  having  arrived  at  St.  Mary's  with  the  necessary 
implements  for  cultivation,  &c.,  proceeded  in  a  few  days  to 
Macarthy's  Island,  accompanied  by  Mr.  Moss. 

On  the  25th  of  February,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow  embarked 
on  board  the  '^General  Brock"  for  England,  on  account  of  the 
protracted  and  peculiar  sickness  of  the  former.  He  had  with 
him  a  medical  certificate,  and  was  followed  by  the  sympathies 
and  prayers  of  all  his  brethren,  and  many  other  friends.  It 
was  gratifying  to  find  that  his  health  so  far  recovered,  that  he 
was  able  to  take  an  English  circuit  at  the  ensuing  Conference. 

By  a  reference  to  the  Minutes  of  the  Conference  for  1838, 
the  reader  will  find  a  note  under  the  appointments  for  Western 
Africa  ;  namely,  "  N.B.  AVilliam  Fox  is  returning  home  -j"  and 
in  a  letter  which  he  received  shortly  afterwards  from  Dr. 
Beecham,  one  of  the  general  secretaries,  this  was  communicated 
to  him  in  the  following  very  respectful  and  kind  manner : — 

You  would  learn  from  the  printed  Stations  that  we  had  determined  on  relieving 
you  by  senrling  an  additional  missionary  to  Macarthy's  Island,  to  enable  you  to 
return  home.  We  cannot  think  of  keeping  you  any  longer  at  your  post,  in  such 
painful  circumstances  as  you  have  latterly  been,  separated  from  your  wife  and 
child.*  We  earnestly  hope  you  will  come  home  safe  and  well,  and  that  many 
years  of  domestic  comfort  and  useful  public  labours  will  be  vouchsafed  to  you. 

It  is  almost  needless  to  add,  that,  from  his  dear  wife  and 
friends,  he  received  equal  or  still  more  pressing  letters  upon  the 
subject ;  and  that,  owing  to  the  note  in  the  Minutes  above  alluded 
to,  he  had  been  almost  daily  expected,  though  he  did  not  fail  to 
write,  stating  the  cause,  or  rather  combination  of  causes  and 
circumstances,  which  detained  him.  These  will  probably  have 
occurred  to  the  reader  in  perusing  the  preceding  pages.  Mr. 
Wall,  it  will  be  recollected,  was  removed  by  death  at  the  very 

*  A  son  and  only  child,  whom,  though  at  that  time  more  than  three  years  old,  his 
father  had  never  beheld. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  501 

time  that  the  Minutes  of  the  Coufereuce  were  going  through 
the  press ;  and  INIr.  Swallow's  peculiar  sickness,  which  obliged 
him  to  leave  the  Coast,  had  rendered  him,  for  some  months 
previous  to  that,  incapable  of  doing  much  work ;  and  Mr.  Moss 
had  scarcely  entered  upon  his  labours  at  Macarthy's  Island,  ere 
death  removed  his  excellent  wife,  which  wounded  him  so  deeply, 
that  he  instantly  came  down  to  St.  Mary's  for  a  change  of  air 
and  scene.  Besides,  there  had  been  no  one  till  now  to  take 
charge  of  the  civilization  department  at  the  upper  station. 

But  though  the  Gambia  mission  had  sustained  a  succession  of 
losses  at  this  period,  and  previously  in  the  death  of  Mr.  Wall 
and  Mrs.  Moss,  and  in  the  melancholy  and  fatal  shipwreck  of 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Peard,  as  also  in  the  removal  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Swallow ;  yet  as  the  station  at  St.  Mary's  had  now  a  married 
missionar}^  (Mr.  Parkinson,)  and  Mr.  Moss  had  returned  to  his 
station  with  his  health  and  spirits  recruited,  and  having  the 
benefit  of  the  society  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Spencer,  with  the  valu- 
able aid  of  the  former  as  a  local  preacher,  and  of  the  latter  in 
superintending  domestic  matters,  as  well  as  assisting  in  the 
female  day-school,  the  way  appeared  to  be  opened  for  my 
return;  and  in  a  few  days  after  Mr.  Swallow's  departure  for 
England,  I  proceeded  to  Macarthy's  Island,  Avith  the  remain- 
der of  the  implements,  tools,  &c.,  which  had  been  brought  out  by 
Mr.  Spencer.  I  arrived  there  on  the  13th  of  March ;  and  to 
my  regret  found  Mr.  Spencer  was  ill  with  the  country  fever. 
This  detained  me  longer  than  I  had  intended  to  remain ;  but, — 
having  improved  the  death  of  Mrs.  Moss,  closed  my  accounts 
with  that  station,  rendered  all  the  assistance  in  my  power  to  the 
mission  and  the  brethren  there,  (Mr.  Spencer  having  partly 
recovered  from  his  attack  of  fever,)  and  having  taken  my  farewell 
of  the  society,  many  of  whom  gave  practical  proofs  of  their 
Christian  affection, — I  returned  to  St.  INIary's,  which  place  I 
reached  on  Thursday,  April  18th. 

On  arriving  there  between  nine  and  ten  o'clock  in  the 
evening,  the  writer  was  met  on  the  beach  by  an  European 
gentleman,  who  said,  "  Mr.  Fox,  I  am  glad  you  are  here ;  you 
have  just  arrived  in  time  !  "  On  asking  what  was  the  matter, 
he  was  informed  that  the  town  was  in  a  state  of  insurrection, 
and  that  the  soldiers  and  militia  were  to  be  called  out  early  in 
the  morning,  as  some  liberated  Africans  and  discharged  soldiers 
had  taken  forcible  possession  of  a  small  vessel,  said  to  belong  to 
a  Mr.  H.;  and  though  a  warrant  had  been  issued,  and  the  Riot 
Act  read,  the  parties  had  refused  to  give  it  up.  Having  a  few 
letters  to  deliver  at  one  or  two  places,  where  he  heard  in  sub- 


502  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AIRICA. 

stance  the  same  statement,  he  hastened  to  the  mission-house, 
and  found  it  was  even  so ;  indeed  he  met,  on  the  way  there,  a 
mihtary  officer  Avith  a  small  guard  of  soldiers  patrolling  the 
streets,  and  the  excitement  was  general.  The  origin  and  cause 
of  this  disturbance  the  author  recorded  at  the  time;  but  as  he 
took  some  part  in  allaying  it,  and  happily  succeeded  in  pre- 
venting an  open  rupture, — to  avoid  even  the  appearance  of 
egotism,  he  prefers  giving  the  particulars  of  this  affair  in  the 
words  of  Mr.  Parkinson,  who  communicated  them  to  the  com- 
mittee in  the  following  document,  here  transcribed  from  the 
original  in  Mr.  Parkinson's  handwriting.     It  is  headed, — 

EXTRACTS    FROM    J.    PARKINSON's    JOURNAL. 

Thursday,  April  18th. — This  has  been  an  eventful  day.  Going  accidentally  into 
the  town,  I  met  Mr.  G.,  (a  magistrate,)  who  told  me  the  colony  was  in  a  state  of 
partial  insuiTection,  and  had  been  so  for  two  or  three  days.  At  this  I  was  much 
surprised,  as  I  had  neither  seen  nor  heard  any  thing  of  it,  and  our  evening  services 
were  attended  as  usual.  He  said  a  vessel  belonging  to  Mr.  C.  H.  had  been  forcibly 
taken  out  of  the  river  by  J.  G.,  an  Eboo,  assisted  by  an  armed  party  of  Eboos  and 
Calabars,  and  earned  round  into  a  creek  just  beyond  Half  Dye,  where  these  people 
resisted  the  civil  authorities,  sent  to  take  possession  of  her  under  a  magistrate's 
warrant  for  felony.  As  many  of  our  people  belong  to  these  nations,  I  was  afraid 
that  some  of  them  might  be  implicated ;  and  immediately  proceeded  to  the  place 
where  she  was  lying,  to  try  if  I  could  persuade  them  to  give  her  up,  and  retu-e 
peaceably  to  their  homes.  As  I  was  going,  I  met  a  party  of  men,  some  of  whom  I 
knew,  (although  they  were  not  members  of  society,)  going  quietly  enough  in  an 
opposite  direction  to  that  in  which  the  vessel  lay.  I  spoke  to  them,  and  they  told 
me  that  the  people  would  not  allow  any  one  to  go  near  her.  They  also  said  the 
vessel  did  not  belong  to  Mr.  H.,  but  to  J.  G. ;  that  Mr.  H.  had  taken  her  fraudu- 
lently from  him,  and  he  could  oljtain  no  justice  from  the  magistrates.  I  returned 
home,  and  hearing  that  the  people  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Soldiers'-Town  *  were 
in  a  high  state  of  excitement,  I  went  there,  and  found  three  magistrates,  Messrs.  I., 
P.,  and  G.,  and  the  queen's  advocate,  endeavouring  to  disperse  the  people,  and  per- 
suade them  to  resign  the  cutter.  This  they  refused  to  do,  unless  the  magistrates 
or  myself  took  possession  of  her  personally,  or  gave  security  that  she  should  not  be 
injured.  Whilst  we  were  speaking  to  them,  a  mob,  apparently  from  the  neigh- 
bourhood of  the  vessel,  rushed  down  upon  us,  and  woiUd,  I  doubt  not,  have  seri- 
ously injured  the  magistrates,  if  the  very  people,  whom  they  afterwards  took  up 
and  pimished  as  ringleaders,  had  not  formed  a  line  across  the  street  and  kept  them 
off.  For  myself  I  had  no  fear.  Having  gone  up  on  the  horse,  I  jumped  upon  him, 
and  rode  a  few  steps  into  the  mob,  and  they  never  attempted  to  injure  me.  The 
magistrates,  finding  they  could  not  prevail  upon  the  people  to  comply  with  their 
wishes,  returned  to  their  homes,  and  1  accompanied  them.  On  our  way  back,  they 
proposed  to  see  the  commandant,  and  request  him  to  call  out  the  military,  express- 
ing, at  the  same  time,  a  doubt  as  to  whether  they  would  act  against  the  people.f   I 

*  J.  G.  resides  in  Soldiers'-Town. 

t  Many  of  the  soldiers  in  the  barracks,  and  some  of  the  dischaiged  soldiers  who 
composed  the  militia,  being  of  the  same  nation  or  tribe  as  J.  G. 


THE    GOLD-COAST^    GAMBFA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  503 

suggested  the  propriety  of  complying  with  the  wishes  of  the  people,  by  a  magis- 
trate taking  the  vessel  personally.  This,  however,  the  queen's  advocate  said  would 
create  a  bad  precedent,  and  therefore  ought  not  to  be  done.  Of  course,  I  was  then 
silent.  Being  very  anxious  to  prevent  a  collision  between  these  poor  people  and 
the  military,  I  went  there  a  third  time,  when  I  was  again  told,  that  if  I  would  take 
possession  of  the  vessel,  it  should  be  given  to  me  then,  or  that  J.  G.  would  bring 
her  into  the  river  opposite  the  court-house  on  Satiu-day  morning  following,  when  the 
right  of  property  was  to  be  decided.  It  appears  that,  shortly  after  J.  G.  was 
arrested  for  feloniously  taking  the  vessel,  he  was  let  out  of  prison  on  bail,  and  the 
case  appointed  to  be  tried  on  the  Saturday  morning.  His  seizure  and  detention  of 
the  vessel  alone  compelled  them  to  try  the  right  of  property  to  her.  For,  previ- 
ously to  J.  G.'s  taking  her  by  force,  he  had  been  to  the  governor  to  complain  of 
Mr.  II.  depriving  him  of  his  property.  The  governor  told  him  to  go  to  a  magis- 
trate. He  went  to  Mr.  S.  Mr.  S.  referred  him  to  Mr.  I.,  the  clerk  of  the  courts. 
Mr.  I.  directed  him  to  obtain  a  summons  for  Mr.  II.,  and  carry  it  to  Mr.  S.  to  sign. 
This  J.  did,  when  Mr.  S.  refused  to  interfere.  Afterwards  J.  sought  the  advice  of 
Mr.  F.,  one  of  the  first  merchants  in  the  colony,  although  not  ai  magistrate,  who 
told  him  to  go  and  take  his  vessel.  And,  of  course,  J.  concluded  that,  if  he  had  a 
right  to  take  her,  he  had  a  right  to  keep  her,  until  the  court  decided  otherwise. 
In  the  evening  I  preached  at  Soldiers'-Town  chapel,  to  a  very  large  congregation. 
About  eleven  o'clock  the  brethren  Fox  and  Moss  arrived  here  from  Macarthy's  Island. 
I  gave  them  the  particulars  of  the  atfair,  when  brother  Fox  proposed  to  go  and  see 
the  people,  to  which  I  assented.  We  sent  a  servant  to  iiiform  them  that  we  were 
coming,  and  in  about  fifteen  minutes  J.  G.  and  two  more  came  to  the  mission- 
house  to  see  brother  Fox.  Brother  Fox  told  them  they  had  better  give  the  vessel  up, 
and  disperse  the  people,  or  it  would  lead  to  serious  consequences.*  Tliis  they 
promised  to  do.  And,  at  the  request  of  Lieutenant  S.,  who  called  at  the  mission- 
house  in  the  interim,  brother  Fox,  J.  G.,  and  myself,  went  to  the  commandant,  (the 
governor  being  at  Macarthy's  Island,)  to  tell  him  the  people  would  give  up  the 
vessel,  and  disperse.  The  commandant  thought  that  we  had  better  go  to  the  magis- 
trates early  in  the  morning,  and  tell  them,  as  he  was  acting  under  their  orders. 
We  retired  to  rest  soon  after  twelve  o'clock,  praising  God  for  his  varied  mercies  to 
us,  both  spiritually  and  temporally ;  that  he  had  not  only  preserved  us,  but  made 
us,  especially  brother  Fox,  instrumental  in  preventing  bloodshed ;  for  such,  I  am  cer- 
tain, must  have  been  the  case,  had  he  not  wisely  exercised  the  influence  he 
possesses  over  them. 

19th. — I  rose  soon  after  five,  and  accompanied  brother  Fox  to  see  if  the  people 
had  really  dispersed.  All  was  quiet,  and  not  a  soul  about.  We  called  upon  Mr. 
G.,  and  informed  him.  He  could  not  credit  the  statement,  and  said  we  were 
deceived.  He  seems  determined  to  have  the  people  severely  punished.  About 
eleven  o'clock  we  saw  the  military  and  civil  force  moving  in  the  direction  of  the 
vessel,  accompanied  by  three  magistrates,  Messrs.  I.,  B.,  and  P.  Brethren  Fox,  Moss, 
and  myself  procured  horses,  and  rode  up  with  them.  On  arriving  there,  not  a 
person  was  to  be  seen  about  her.     It  appeared  their  object  was  to  seize  the  vessel. 

*  The  reason  of  this  message  being  sent  was,  that  the  author  was  taking 
supi)er ;  so  that,  before  we  had  time  to  proceed  to  them,  they,  as  aljove  stated, 
came  to  us,  when  the  writer  promised  them  he  would  attend  the  comi-house,  and 
do  his  utmost  to  see  they  had  justice  done  to  them.  They  paid  a  deference  to  his 
advice,  no  doubt,  fiom  the  fact  of  his  being  the  senior  missionaiy,  and  Mr.  Parkinson 
being  a  comparative  stranger. 


504 


WESTERN    COAST    OV    AFRICA. 


However,  a  difficulty  arose.  She  was  in  the  bush  some  distance  up  the  creek,  and 
none  of  them  liked  to  venture  on  board,  not  even  the  directing  magistrate,  althougli 
he  was  hea\dly  armed.  A  consultation  amongst  them  was  held,  when  they  decided  to 
send  the  constable  in  the  first  boat,  and  directed  him  to  make  a  sign  if  he  found  any 
resistance.*  To  show  that  we  had  a  complete  assurance  of  their  dispersion,  bro- 
ther Fox  requested  permission  to  go  with  the  constable  in  the  first  boat,  I  did  the 
same,  aud  brother  Moss  came  without  it.  We  had  nearly  arrived  at  the  vessel,  when 
we  beheld  Mr.  I.,  aud  some  other  Europeans,  just  setting  off  from  the  bank  to 
accompany  us.  He  followed  very  cautiously.  Brother  Fox  and  myself  were  the  first 
to  jump  on  board  the  vessel.  All  was  still,  for  she  was  entirely  deserted.  In  a 
few  minutes  after  Mr.  I.  came ;  and,  as  soon  as  he  decently  could,  left  her,  express- 
ing his  thanks  to  us  for  our  conduct,  and  requesting  us  to  stay  until  she  was  out  of 
the  creek,  until,  in  fact,  there  was  no  danger.  We  did  so,  and  landed  in  al.out  an 
hour  and  a  half  at  Half  Dye. 

Our  servants  had  brought  us  the  horses,  and,  as  we  were  riding  leisurely  back,  we 
saw  the  soldiery  and  the  miUtia  parading  the  town  to  capture  what  they  termed 
the  ringleaders.  ^One  gentleman  requested  Mr.  Fox  to  show  him  the  residence  of 
one  of  them,  which  he  did ;  and  we  then  rode  round  with  them  to  the  houses  of 
some  of  the  others,  in  order  to  allay  any  excitement  that  might  be  produced  by 
their  foolish  and  unnecessary  conduct,  in  bringing  out  the  entire  military  and  civil 
force  of  the  colony,  to  arrest  about  a  dozen  men,  although,  so  far  as  we  could  per- 
ceive, there  was  no  attempt  made  to  resist  the  execution  of  the  warrant  by  the  civil 
power. 

20th. — I  attended  the  court-house  all  day,  along  with  my  l)rethren ;  and  so  mon- 
strous a  perversion  of  justice  I  never  saw.  The  owniership  of  the  vessel  was  first 
tried.  It  was  clearly  proved  she  belonged  to  J.  G. ;  Mr.  H.,  in  the  first  place, 
having  obtained  possession  of  her  by  fraud.  It  appears  he  hired  her  from  J.,  and 
then  sought  to  detain  her  on  the  ground  that  J.  owed  him  a  debt,  and  gave  him  a 
bill  of  sale  of  the  vessel  to  liquidate  it ;  although  I  heard  Mr.  P.  myself  on  the 
part  of  Mr.  H.  oifer  J.  G.  the  diiference  between  the  value  of  the  vessel  and  the 
debt,  after  J.  had  taken  her.  This  instrument,  which  was  drawn  up  by  a  Midatto 
named  T.  L.,  on  the  part  of  Mr.  H.,  was  meant  to  give  him  possession  of  a  vessel 
for  130  dollars  which  was  well  worth  600.  After  much  equivocation,  this  man  con- 
fessed that,  although  it  was  considered  now  by  Mr.  H.  a  l/oiid  Jide  bill  of  sale,  it 
could  hardly  be  termed  one  when  it  was  drawn  up.  And  one  of  the  signing  wit- 
nesses (a  European)  confessed  that  he  did  not  see  J.  G.  sign  it,  and  knew  not  what 
he  signed  himself. 

In  consequence  of  this  the  vessel  was  adjudged  to  J.  G.,  and  Mr.  I.  told  him, 
that  he  had  a  right  to  take  her  by  force. 

The  magistrates  afterwards  proceeded  to  try  and  punish  these  poor  men  for  doing 
that  which  Mr.  I.  said  J.  G.  had  a  right  to  do.  Originally  they  were  committed  for 
felony ;  but  afterwards  that  charge  was  abandoned,  and  they  were  punished  for  a 
misdemeanour.  1  was  the  first  witness  called  upon  to  prove  what  the  magistrates 
conceived  to  be  the  charge.  I  most  respectfully  declined  to  give  my  testimony,  as 
I  had  assisted  the  magistrates  with  my  influence  and  entreaty  as  much  as  I  could, 

*  The  magistrates  were  of  opinion,  that  probably  some  of  the  pai'ty  were  in  the 
hold  of  the  vessel,  and  that,  on  the  near  approach  of  any  one  to  take  possession  of 
it,  they  w^ould  instantly  rise  and  cut  them  down ;  or,  if  not  in  the  vessel,  that  they 
were  lying  in  ambush  close  by,  and,  from  then-  hiding-place,  would  fire  upon 
tlicni. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMI5IA,    AND    SIEBRA-LEONE.  505 

and  told  them  I  thought  tliey  had  not  acted  towards  us  with  tliat  delicacy  which 
they  might  have  done,  especially  as  I  saw  several  persons  present  whose  attendance 
had  heen  required  to  prove  the  charge.  They  were,  however,  peremptory,  and  I 
proceeded  to  give  my  evidence.  I  briefly  narrated  the  circumstances  detailed  on  a 
preceding  page ;  explicitly  declaring,  that  I  saw  none  of  the  men  under  examina- 
tion engaged  in  riotous  proceedings.  I  only  heard  some  of  them  remonstrating 
with  the  magistrates  about  J.  G.  giving  her  up  unreservedly  to  the  constable,  and 
saying  that  she  would  be  given  up  either  to  the  magistrates  or  to  myself,  because 
we  would  take  care  of  her ;  and  also  that,  so  far  from  these  men  attempting  to 
injure  the  magistrates,  they  kept  off  the  mob  when  it  rushed  down  upon  them,  and 
in  all  human  probability  saved  their  lives.  Other  evidence  to  the  same  effect  was 
given.  But,  in  despite  of  all  this,  some  of  the  people  were  fined  5  dollars  each, 
others,  2  dollars  ;  and  a  parcel  of  women,  who  were  merely  looking  on,  10s.  each ; 
and  J.  G.  and  four  or  five  more  remanded  until  the  Monday. 

22d. — I  again  went  to  the  court,  when  J.  G.,  and  the  others  who  had  been 
remanded,  were  brought  up.  After  adducing  e\'idence  of  a  similar  kind  to  that  on 
Saturday,  J.  G.  was  fined  £10  sterling  for  doing  that  which  Mr.  I.  told  him  on  the 
Satm'day  he  had  a  right  to  do,  namely,  taking  his  vessel  and  keeping  her,*  and  three 
or  four  others  were  imprisoned.  One  of  these  poor  fellows,  J.  C,  was  imprisoned 
for  a  fortnight,  simply  because  Mr.  I.  demanded  a  knife  from  Mm,  which  he 
refused  to  give  up.  The  poor  fellow  had  been  cutting  wood  in  the  bush  with  this 
knife,  which  he  had  by  his  side.  Hearing  the  disturbance,  he  came  to  see  what 
was  the  matter,  knew  nothing  about  the  Riot  Act  being  read,  and  had  no  con- 
nexion with  the  people  ;  and  under  these  circumstances,  naturally  thinking  that 
he  had  a  better  right  to  his  own  knife  than  Mr.  I.,  he  refused  to  give  it  up.f 
Had  it  not  been  for  the  presence  of  three  missionaries,  I  am  convinced  the  poor 
people  would  have  been  much  more  severely  handled.  As  it  was,  I  could  scarcely 
restrain  my  indignation  at  the  abominable  proceeding  of  these  men  passing  a  defi- 
nitive sentence  on  the  poor  people,  when  all  they  ought  to  have  done,  even  if  the 
crime  had  been  proved,  was  to  commit  them  to  the  sessions.  And  it  is  the 
opinion  of  many,  that,  had  they  done  so,  the  people  must  have  been  acquitted. 
"  Surely  there  is  a  God  that  judgeth  in  the  earth  !" 

In  the  publication  of  the  preceding  statement,  the  autlior  lias 
no  other  object  in  view  than  truth  and  justice :  he  totally  dis- 
claims any  feelings  of  acrimony  against  any  person,  or  number 
of  persons,  who  took  part  in  those  proceedings.  He  has  given 
the  facts  of  the  case  by  an  eye-witness ;  the  principal  part  of 
which  came  under  his  own  observation ;  and  he  thinks  them  too 
important  to  be  withheld  from  the  public.  His  chief  reason  for 
placing  the  whole  matter  upon  record,  is  to  show,  what  must 
have  already  appeared  to  the  reader's  mind,  that  Avherever  the 

*  Here  the  author  thinks  Mr.  Parkinson  is  a  little  in  en'or :  the  magistrate  stated 
that  J.  G.  had  a  right  to  take  possession  of  his  own  property,  as  it  proved  to  be  his ; 
but  that  he  acted  wrong  in  not  giving  up  the  vessel  to  the  jailer,  on  the  authority 
of  a  warrant ;  and  for  that  he  was  fined  £10.  But  was  there  no  mistake  or  blunder 
committed,  we  may  ask,  in  issiung  a  warrant  to  take  by  force,  from  a  man,  his  own 
property  of  which  he  had  regained  rightful  possession  ? 

t  This  he  stated  in  court,  and  could  not  be  contradicted. 


50G  WESTERN    COAST    Ol'    AFKICA. 

gospel  is  preached  aud  Christian  missions  are  established,  there  is, 
in  connexion  with  them,  a  powerful  moral  influence,  which  is  felt 
even  b}'^  the  masses  of  the  unconverted  part  of  the  native  tribes, 
and  which  is  superior  to  the  constable^s  staff",  the  magistrate's 
warrant,  the  reading  of  the  Riot  Act  by  the  queen^s  advocate, 
or  the  clangour  of  military  arms ;  and  that  Wesleyan  mission- 
aries are  quite  willing  to  exercise  that  influence  for  the  peace 
and  welfare  of  the  community,  even  when  they  have  reason  to 
fear  that  the  poor  Blacks  are  the  injured  party. 

The  Europeans  at  the  Gambia  on  this  occasion  witnessed 
these  two  facts,  and  the  magistrates  could  not  but  acknowledge 
them,  though  not  in  a  formal  manner.  One  of  them,  it  will  be 
seen  from  Mr.  Parkinson's  journal,  on  leaving  the  vessel, 
"  expressed  his  thanks  to  us  for  our  conduct,  and  requested  us 
to  stay  until  she  was  out  of  the  creek  j  until,  in  fact,  there  was 
no  danger."  And  another  magistiate,  who  thought  "the  mis- 
sionaries were  deceived  "  when  one  of  them  informed  him  that 
the  natives  had  dispersed,  was  heard  to  say  while  on  the  bench, 
or  at  the  close  of  the  proceedings,  "  That  Fox  possesses  amazing 
influence  with  these  darkies."  The  result  is  not  attributable  to 
the  missionaries,  but  to  the  Spirit  aud  presence  of  their  Divine 
Master.  But  we  all  felt  thankful  that  He  had  used  us  as 
his  instruments  in  preventing  bloodshed,  and  in  saving  the 
colony  from  a  civil  war,  which,  in  all  probability,  would  have 
ensued. 

A  few  days  after  this  aff'air  was  settled,  the  writer,  accom- 
panied by  Messrs.  Parkinson  and  Moss,  who  had  gone  with  him 
down  to  St.  Mary's,  paid  a  visit  to  the  king  of  Barra,  at 
Berrending,  about  two  hours'  ride  inland  from  the  opposite 
bank  of  the  river ;  and,  after  an  agreeable  interview  with  him 
and  several  of  the  old  men  of  the  capital,  Ave  proceeded  on 
horseback  to  Jillifree,  through  a  most  delightful  and  fertile 
champaign  country,  studded  with  beautiful  trees,  shrubs,  plants, 
and  flowers  of  various  descriptions.  Shortly  after,  a  similar 
journey  was  undertaken  to  the  king  of  Combo,  on  the  south  bank 
of  the  Gambia,  not  far  distant  from  St.  Mary's.  The  object  of 
these  visits  was  to  ascertain  the  intentions  of  the  chiefs,  and  whe- 
ther they  would  be  disposed  to  place  their  children  at  the  insti- 
tution, which  we  intended  to  erect  at  INIacarthy's  Island,  for  the 
education  of  the  sons  of  native  kings  and  chiefs.  We  found 
both  of  them  well-disposed  towards  the  project ;  and  on  a  subse- 
quent visit  which  the  writer  paid  to  the  kiug  of  Barra,  he  pro- 
mised that  as  soon  as  the  building  was  erected,  he  would  place 
some  of  his  children  under  our  care  to  be  educated;  and  on 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,   AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  507 

leaving,  the  missionary  was  presented  with  a  fine  young  bullock, 
as  a  token  of  friendship. 

In  about  three  weeks  after  the  author's  return  from  Macar- 
thy's  Island,  Mr.  Spencer,  the  superintendent  of  the  agricul- 
tural and  civilization  department,  came  down  to  St.  Mary's  in  a 
very  weak  state;  and  as  his  return  to  England  seemed  the  only 
way  of  saving  his  life,  the  writer  was  greatly  distressed ;  and  at 
one  time  had  almost  determined,  in  the  event  of  Mr.  Spencer's 
removal  from  the  island,  that  he  would  himself  remain  another 
year,  as  he  knew  the  return  of  the  agriculturist,  so  soon  after  his 
arrival,  Avould  be  an  additional  disappointment  to  the  praise- 
worthy exertions  and  princely  liberality  of  some  of  the  members 
of  the  committee  of  that  department  of  the  mission.  But  as  he 
Avas  now  only  waiting  for  a  favourable  opportunity  to  embark, 
and  as  it  was  desirable  that  he  should  have  an  interview  with 
the  committee  in  London  on  several  matters  connected  witli  the 
Gambia  mission,  his  own  health  also  requiring  a  change,  to  say 
nothing  of  the  claims  of  his  dear  wife,  and  as  yet  unknown 
child,  and  as  his  brethren  strongly  urged  him,  for  these  reasons, 
not  to  remain,  he  at  length  decided,  feeling  satisfied  that  it  was 
the  path  of  duty ;  and  at  the  end  of  May  he  engaged  a  passage 
for  himself  and  for  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Spencer  on  board  the 
"Fame;"  but  we  did  not  embark  till  about  a  fortnight  after- 
wards.* 

The  mission  at  Sierra-Leone  about  this  time  sustained  ano- 
ther loss  in  the  death  of  Mr.  Fleet. 

Henry  Fleet  died  at  Sierra-Leone  on  the  30th  of  May, 
1839,  just  one  Aveek  less  than  five  months  after  his  arrival 
there,  under  the  peculiar  and  painful  circumstances  which  we 
hare  already  narrated.  But  though  he  bowed  with  humility  to 
the  afflictive  dispensation  in  the  loss  of  his  wife,  it  appears  that 
he  never  rallied  after  that  melancholy  event :  the  loss  of  his 
beloved  partner  under  such  circumstances  was  more  than  his 
sensitive  mind  could  bear.  He  was  a  deeply  pious  and  devoted 
man,  and  had  anticipated  much  pleasure  in  preaching  to  the 
sable  sons  of  Ham  "the  unsearchable  riches  of  Christ:"  but 
after  a  few  short  months  he  was  seized  with  the  country  fever. 
His  last  illness  was  brief,  but  accompanied  with  much  consola- 

*  It  is  due  to  Mr.  Spencer  to  say,  that  he  would  gladly  have  remained  had  his 
health  permitted ;  that  he  had  two  medical  certificates,  recommending  his  return  to 
Em'ope  as  the  only  prohability  of  his  recovery ;  and  that  both  he  and  his  excellent 
wife  wept  with  grief,  at  being  oliliged  so  soon  lo  leave  the  honom"able  post  assigned 
to  them. 


508  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

tion.  His  coufideiice  never  failed  in  the  prospect  of  dissolu- 
tion ;  and  with  a  full  and  blessed  hope  of  eternal  happiness,  he 
entered  into  rest,  in  the  twenty-second  year  of  his  age. 

The  mission  at  the  Gold-Coast  had  been  gradually  rising 
under  the  energetic  exertions  of  Mr,  Freeman ;  and  it  was  in 
the  spring  of  1839  that  he  paid  his  first  enterprising  visit  to 
Coomassie,  the  capital  of  Ashantee,  the  interesting  particulars 
of  which  the  reader  may  find  in  the  "  Missionary  Notices '' 
for  January,  1840,  with  some  brief  historical  notes  by  Dr. 
Beecham. 

On  the  12th  of  June  the  author  embarked  on  board  the 
brigantine  "Fame,^^  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Spencer,  bound  for 
London,  accompanied  some  distance  by  Messrs.  Parkinson  and 
Moss,  several  other  friends,  and  many  of  our  people,  some  of 
whom  were  on  board  the  cutter  "Crown,"  which  had  been 
kindly  lent  for  the  occasion.  He  had  received  every  mark  of 
Christian  respect  and  affection  from  the  society,  both  at  Macar- 
thy's  Island  and  at  St.  Mary's,  with  many  expressions  of  desire 
for  his  return,  both  from  his  brethren  in  the  ministry,  the 
assistants,  and  members,  some  of  which  were  addressed  to  him 
in  writing.  On  this  subject  he  finds  it  recorded  in  his  journal 
as  follows  :  *'  My  time  and  talents  are  the  Lord's ;  and  if  He 
again  says,  '  Go,'  by  his  help  I  will  do  so.  Our  dear  little  boy 
will  be  an  obstacle ;  but  if  we  have  to  leave  him,  I  trust  that 
the  same  kind  providence  which  has  preserved  his  father  in  a 
sickly  clime,  will  also  preserve  the  son  in  a  more  favourable  one." 

We  anchored  that  evening  in  the  channel,  and  our  friends 
returned  in  the  "Crown;"  when  the  author  wrote,  "May  the 
God  of  missions  bless  and  preserve  them !  If  I  am  not  per- 
mitted to  see  them  again  in  the  flesh,  I  trust  I  shall  live  to 
hear  of  the  Gambia  mission  abundantly  prospering,  and  meet 
them  all  at  last  in  our  Father's  house  above." 

The  particulars  of  the  voyage  we  pass  over.  It  is  sufiicient  to 
say  that  we  arrived  at  Weymouth  on  the  evening  of  the  24tth  of 
July,  and  on  the  morning  of  the  26th  the  writer  reached  Lon- 
don, and  was  cordially  received  at  the  Mission-House  by  the 
Rev.  Elijah  Hoole,  the  other  secretaries  being  then  absent  at  the 
Conference.  Early  on  the  following  morning,  Saturday,  27th,  he 
arrived  at  Smethwick,*  where  his  reception  may  be  more  easily 
conceived  than  expressed.  Tears  of  joy  and  gratitude  ran  down 
many  cheeks ;  and  that  meeting  will  not  soon  be  forgotten.  Here 

*  Near  Bivniingliani,  though  in  the  West-Bromwich  circuit. 


THE    CxOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  509 

was  a  husband  and  a  father,  who  had  long  been  separated  from 
his  beloved  wife,  and  who  had  been  mercifully  preserved  in  a 
sickly  clime,  and  throughout  a  perilous  sea-voyage,  brought,  by 
the  good  providence  of  God,  to  behold  once  more,  in  peace  and 
safety,  in  his  own  native  land,  all  that  he  held  most  dear  on 
earth ;  and  the  emotions  of  his  heart  on  that  occasion  will  never 
be  erased  from  his  memory.  What  he  felt,  when,  after  the  first 
warm  greetings  from  his  wife,  he  gazed  upon  the  fine  bright  eye 
and  lovely  features  and  form  of  his  dear  child,  now  beheld  by 
him  for  the  first  time,  although  nearly  four  years  old,  can  only 
be  understood  by  those  who  have  been  placed  in  similar  circum- 
stances, and  can  never  be  adequately  described. 

On  the  author^s  return  and  safe  arrival  at  home,  he  found 
that  the  Stationing  Committee  had  kindly  appointed  him  to  a 
respectable  circuit  in  the  immediate  neighbourhood  of  Smeth- 
wick  ;  and  as  the  annual  Conference  commenced  its  sittings  on 
the  following  Wednesday,  he  proceeded  to  Liverpool  to  enjoy 
the  society  of  his  fathers  and  brethren  in  the  ministry,  and  to 
derive  instruction  and  profit  from  their  deliberations  and  prayers, 
their  addresses  and  pulpit  discourses. 

As  he  was  aware  that,  immediately  on  his  arrival  in  England, 
he  would  be  prevented  from  having  any  lengthened  interview 
with  the  general  secretaries  or  Missionary  Committee,  on  account 
of  the  Conference  being  close  at  hand,  or  actually  assembled,  he 
had,  during  the  voyage,  prepared  a  lengthy  statement  or  report 
of  the  Gambia  mission,  which  he  left  at  the  Mission-House  in 
Loudon. 

On  reaching  Liverpool,  the  writer  was  sorry  to  find  that  there 
was  no  additional  missionary  appointed  to  the  Gambia ;  in  fact, 
there  was  less  help  now  than  at  the  previous  Conference,  inde- 
pendent of  his  own  presence  there  during  the  year ;  and,  taking 
into  consideration  the  peculiar  circumstances  of  the  station  at 
Macarthy's  Island,  with  the  unexpected  return  of  the  agricul- 
turist, and  there  being  no  immediate  prospect  of  any  missionary 
of  a  few  years'  standing  being  sent  out,  he  once  more  volun- 
teered his  services  for  Western  Africa,  and  was  appointed 
accordingly. 

This  was  not  a  hasty  offer  :  it  had  occupied  his  serious  con- 
sideration, with  much  prayer  to  God,  for  some  time.  His 
friends  generally  did  not  think  with  him  upon  the  subject ;  but 
his  dear  wife  nobly  responding  to  it,  he  was  satisfied.  There 
was,  however,  one  difficulty — in  their  dear  child.  They  had 
buried  one  infant  on  the  banks  of  the  Gambia ;  and  to  take  the 
present  one  there,  who  had  been  born  in  England,  would  be 


510  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 

running  a  great  risk.  The  father  proposed  leaving  liim  behind ; 
but  the  mother  thought  she  could  not  consent  to  that.  This 
matter  was,  therefore,  left  for  a  time ;  but  in  either  case  it  was 
a  trial  of  our  faith  and  love  to  God. 

At  this  Conference  the  author,  with  a  number  of  other 
returned  missionaries,  was  publicly  recognised  and  received  as  a 
Wesleyan  minister ;  and  on  this  occasion  he  gave  expression  to 
his  views  and  feelings  upon  the  subject  of  missions :  that, 
though  it  required  much  self-denial,  it  was  a  glorious  cause  ;  that 
he  had  felt  it  to  be  so,  and  still  did  ;  that  when  the  great  Head  of 
the  church  said,  "  Go ! "  he  felt  it  his  duty  again  to  obey  that 
call,  and  to  take  up  his  cross,  however  unfriendly  the  clime,  or 
degraded  the  people ;  and  that  the  salvation  of  the  Heathen  is  an 
object  for  which  the  missionary  sacrifices,  and  is  willing  to  sacri- 
fice, every  thing  to  which  the  heart  clings  on  earth  :  and,  catching 
the  sentiment  of  an  American  author,  during  this  address,  I 
observed,  "  For  this  object  I  will  live,  for  this  I  will  die ;  nay, 
if  I  know  any  thing  of  a  missionary  spirit,  '  I  would  live  any 
where,  and  die  any  how/  that  the  precious  souls  of  the  Heathen 
might  be  converted  to  God." 

This  solemn  service  was  held  in  Pitt-street  chapel,  on  Sunday 
afternoon,  August  11th.  Several  other  brethren  gave  interest- 
ing and  affecting  narratives  of  their  missionary  toils  and 
triumphs ;  and  the  whole  service  was  not  the  least  interesting 
of  the  many  religious  and  devotional  meetings  that  were  held 
during  the  sittings  of  the  celebrated  Centenary  Conference  of 
1839. 

Shortly  after  the  close  of  the  Conference,  the  writer  proceeded 
to  London,  being  anxious  to  have  the  state  of  the  Gambia  mis- 
sion brought  before  the  executive  committee  as  soon  as  possible, 
in  order  that  he  might  re-embark,  and  thus  have  the  advantage 
of  the  whole  of  the  dry  season,  for  the  erection  of  some  contem- 
plated buildings.  Bvit  some  time  elapsed  before  this  could  be 
done  ;  and  in  the  mean  time  he  was  well  occupied  in  preaching 
and  attending  public  meetings.  In  this  respect  a  returned  mis- 
sionary differs  from  an  officer  in  the  navy  or  army :  on  his 
return  from  foreign  service,  the  latter,  if  he  does  not  retire,  has 
at  least  a  few  months'  relaxation  from  active  duties,  and  is  thus 
enabled  to  recruit  his  health  and  exhausted  strength. 

The  voyage  to  England,  with  a  rest  of  a  week  or  two  during 
the  Conference,  had  been  of  essential  benefit  to  the  writer;  but 
he  was  subject  to  ague,  and  had  several  attacks,  though  happily 
they  were  of  short  duration.  One  of  the  general  secretaries,  in 
one  of  his  letters  to  liira,  said,  "  You  must  not  let  the  people 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    StERRA-LEON  E.  511 

overwork  you.  Use  j'our  own  judgment,  and  learn  to  say, 
'  No ! '  "  Of  course,  this  referred  to  applications  that  were 
made  to  him,  in  addition  to  the  demands  upon  him  by  the 
Mission-House ;  and  it  was  said  in  kindness  to  him,  and 
from  a  due  consideration  for  his  health.  But  as  his  personal 
appearance  was  rather  health}^  and  flourishing,  he  had  some  diffi- 
culty in  persuading  the  people  that  he  was  not  well,  or  that  he 
had  ever  been  ill.  And,  even  to  this  day,  the  writer  is  repeatedly 
complimented  with,  "  The  climate  of  Western  Africa  seems  to 
have  agreed  very  well  with  you,  Mr.  Fox;"  and  by  others, 
"Did  you  ever  have  an  attack  of  the  African  fever?"  On 
arriving  at  some  places,  to  attend  a  missionary  meeting,  while 
in  the  vestry  for  a  few  minutes,  he  has  been  gazed  at  with  a 
mixture  of  astonishment,  almost  implying  a  doubt  as  to  whether 
he  had  actually  been  to  "the  white  man's  grave"  or  not,  simply 
because  his  "earthly  tabernacle"  had  not  been  "dissolved," 
or  reduced  to  a  mere  skeleton.  However,  those  friends  who 
honour  the  author  with  a  careful  perusal  of  this  book,  will  have 
sufficient  proof  (and  more  he  could  easily  give)  that  though  his 
constitution  may  be  considered  as  thoroughly  good,  yet  his 
bones  and  sinews  were  not  made  of  iron,  nor  his  muscles  and 
flesh  of  brass.  He  attributes  the  preservation  of  his  life,  in  that 
land  of  death,  as  much  to  moral  courage,  as  to  physical  strength; 
but  more  especially  to  God's  goodness,  and  the  prayers  of  His 
people  both  at  home  and  abroad. 

But  to  return  :  From  the  following  kind  letter,  addressed  to 
him  by  the  senior  secretary.  Dr.  Bunting,  the  reader  will 
have  a  tolerable  idea  of  what  is  expected  from  a  returned  mis- 
sionary during  a  short  sojourn  in  England;  that  is,  where  health 

and  strength  will  permit : — 

London,  October  22d,  1839. 

My  dear  Brother, — We  readily  agree  to  your  assisting  our  friends  at  West- 
Bromwich,  at  their  anniversary  on  Sunday  and  Monday,  November  3d  and  4th, 
according  to  your  and  their  request ;  of  which  you  will  be  pleased  to  inform  them 
forthwith. 

But,  in  consequence  of  various  circumstances,  we  are  so  extremely  pressed  for 
help  in  many  quarters,  that  we  are  obliged  to  give  you  rather  hard  work,  after 
your  service  at  West-Bromwich.  The  cause,  however,  is  glorious;  and  you  have 
given  proof  that  you  love  it.  As  a  returned  African  missionary,  you  can  materially 
aid  it ;  and  w^e  trust  that  grace  and  strength  will  be  given  you  for  the  work.  Our 
plan  for  you  is  as  follows  : — 

Tuesday,  November  5th,  Wednesday,  Gth. — Travel  from  West-Bromwich  to 
Portsmouth,  and,  if  possible,  get  there  in  time  to  go  over,  the  Wednesday  evening, 
to  the  meeting  at  Newport,  in  the  Isle  of  Wiglit. 

Thursday,  7th. — Meeting  at  Cowes,  Isle  of  Wight. 

Sunday,  10th.  ^ — Preparatory  sennons,  in  conjunction  with  the  Rev.  George 
Osborn,  at  Portsmouth  and  Portsea. 


512  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Monday,  11th. — District  anniversary  meeting  at  Ditto. 

Tuesday,  12tli. — Meeting  at  Gosport. 

Wednesday,  13th. — There  is  to  be  a  meeting  at  Farehani.  If  time  and  strength 
will  allow,  you  can  attend  it ;  if  not,  tliey  must  excuse  you.* 

Thursday,  14th,  Friday,  15th,  Saturday,  IGth. — Travel  to  Leeds. 

Sunday,  17th,  Monday,  18th,  Tuesday,  19th,  Wednesday,  20th.  —  Attend,  and 
assist  at,  the  Leeds  anniversary  for  the  Leeds  district. 

Soon  after  your  work  at  Leeds  shall  be  finished,  a  visit  to  town  may  possibly  he. 
desirable.     But   about  that  we   can  correspond  hereafter.     Only  do  not  engage 
yourself  anywhere  without  consulting  the  secretaries.     You  see  we  want  to  make 
the  most  and  best  use  of  you,  while  you  remain  in  England. 
With  Ivind  regards  to  Mrs.  Fox, 

I  am,  my  dear  Brother, 

Yours  very  affectionately, 

The  Rev.  William  Fox.  J.  Bunting. 

At  the  close  of  the  Leeds  district  anniversary,  the  author 
received  at  that  place  another  communication  from  Dr.  Bunting, 
requesting  him  to  proceed  "to  London  immediately  after  the 
meeting  at  Leighton,  on  the  28th  instant."  This  was  to 
"make  immediate  arrangements  respecting  the  Gambia  mis- 
sion." "Not  a  week  more  should  be  lost,"  the  Doctor  observes, 
"  especially  after  the  intelligence  just  received  of  the  lamented 
death  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson."  Having  attended  several 
meetings  between  the  20th  and  28th,  the  author  proceeded  on  the 
29th  to  town,  and  met  the  general  committee,  and  subsequently 
the  committee  for  the  civilization  department  of  the  mission  at 
Macarthy's  Island.  The  latter  now  fully  decided,  among  other 
things,  on  the  erection  of  an  Institution  for  the  education  of  the 
sons  of  the  native  kings  and  chiefs  in  the  neighbourhood  of  the 
Gambia,  the  venerable  Dr.  Lindoc  having  presented  the  muni- 
ficent sum  of  £1,000  for  that  and  other  objects  connected  Avith 
that  mission.  The  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee  also  autho- 
rized the  building  of  a  school-house  at  St.  Mary^s,  and  an 
European  schoolmaster  and  two  missionaries  were  appointed  to 
the  Gambia.  We  were  in  hopes  of  sailing  at  the  end  of  Decem- 
ber, our  passage  having  been  taken  on  board  the  "  Sea- Witch," 
but  were  detained  two  or  three  weeks  longer. 

"The  lamented  death  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson"  now 
demands  our  attention.  The  author  had  left  them  in  excellent 
health,  and  happy  in  their  work,  about  the  middle  of  June ; 
and  in  three  short  months  after  that,  they  were  both  removed 
to  a  better  world,  and  the  St.  Mary's  station  was  once  more  left 
without  a  missionary.  This  painful  intelligence  had  been  com- 
municated to  the  committee  by  Mr.  C.  Grant,  who  visited  them 

*  The  author  attended  that,  and  an  additional  one  the  next  day. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  513 

in  their  illness,  from  wlioin,  and  from  other  friends,  the  writer 
subsequently  gathered  some  of  the  following  affecting  particu- 
lars connected  with  their  last  days  on  earth.  He  is  also  indebted 
to  the  Rev.  William  Parkinson,  brother  of  the  deceased  mission- 
ary, for  some  account  of  both  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parkinson  previous 
to  their  union,  and  embarking  in  the  glorious  cause  in  which 
they  both  so  soon  fell. 

James  Parkinson  was  born  at  Liverpool,  on  the  17th  of 
August,  1809;  and,  being  blessed  with  parents  who  feared  God, 
he  had  the  advantage  of  an  early  religious  training.  His  mother 
died  when  he  was  comparatively  young ;  but  his  father  lived  to 
see  him  go  out  as  a  herald  of  the  Cross,  and  to  mourn  his 
early  removal ;  but  he  shortly  after  joined  him  in  the  rest 
remaining  for  the  people  of  God.  Mr.  Parkinson's  early  reli- 
gious associations  were  connected  with  the  established  church ; 
and,  by  his  previous  course  of  reading,  his  mind  was  strongly 
biassed  by  the  peculiarities  of  the  Calvinian  scheme  :  but  during 
the  years  1830  and  1831,  he  frequently  attended  the  ministry 
of  Dr.  Bunting,  who  was  then  stationed  in  Liverpool;  and 
under  his  rich  evangelical  and  powerful  "  handling  of  the  word 
of  life,"  and  by  reading  some  works  on  Wesleyan  theo- 
logy, he  became  a  decided  Arminian ;  and  shortly  afterwards 
joined  the  Methodist  society.  Having  "  given  himself  to  God, 
and  to  His  church  by  His  will,"  he  sought  for  opportunities  of 
usefulness ;  and  during  the  agitations  that  disturbed  the  socie- 
ties in  Liverpool  soon  after  he  became  a  Wesleyan,  though 
every  member  of  the  class  to  which  he  belonged  seceded,  he 
remained  faithful,  "  steadfast,  and  unmovable."  In  the  year 
1836  he  began  to  preach;  and  by  his  diligence  in  reading, 
meditation,  and  prayer,  he  soon  became  a  very  acceptable  and 
useful  local  preacher. 

In  March,  1838,  the  late  Rev.  Theophilus  Lessey  proposed 
him  to  the  quarterly  meeting  as  a  suitable  candidate  for  the 
ministry,  by  which  he  was  unanimously  recommended  to  the 
district  meeting,  and  to  the  Conference ;  and  the  same  year  he 
was  appointed  to  St.  Mary's  on  the  Gambia.  Though  he  was 
aware  of  the  unhealthy  climate  of  Western  Africa,  he  cheerfully 
received  the  appointment  as  from  God ;  adding,  "  Liverpool  has 
inflicted  deep  wrongs  upon  Africa :  it  is  right  that  her  sons 
should  make  reparation  by  carrying  to  that  injured  land  the 
glorious  gospel  of  the  blessed  God."  Animated  by  these  senti- 
ments, he  left  his  native  home  and  country  ;  and  on  the  22d  of 
October,  1838,    set   sail  for   his  destination ;   but,  having   an 

L    L 


514  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

unusually  long  voyage,  he  did  not  arrive  until  tlie  13th  of 
December. 

The  annual  Reports  for  1839  and  1840  contain  interesting 
letters  from  Mr.  Parkinson;  and  in  a  communication  to  his 
brother,  soon  after  his  arrival,  he  writes  :  "  With  my  work  as  a 
missionary  I  am  truly  delighted.  Never  have  I  felt  so  happy 
as  when  proclaiming  the  message  of  salvation  to  the  perishing 
Heathen.  Difficulties  there  are  connected  with  it ;  responsibi- 
lities too,  which  an  experienced  missionary  (much  more  one  so 
raw  as  I  am)  trembles  to  encounter.  But  still  it  is  a  glorious 
work;  and  the  highest  archangel  before  the  eternal  throne 
might  well  envy  the  lot  of  the  most  humble  missionary."  In 
all  his  other  letters  to  his  friends,  he  wrote  in  the  same  delight- 
ful strain ;  and  in  the  last  communication  to  his  brother,  writ- 
ten only  a  few  weeks  before  his  death,  he  says,  "  It  is  a  delight- 
ful work ;  and  I  hope  that,  in  eternity,  I  shall  bless  God  for 
sending  me  here." 

The  rains  had  well-nigh  passed  over,  without  materially 
affecting  the  health  of  either  Mr.  or  Mrs.  Parkinson;  but  at 
the  close  of  August,  they  were  both  unwell.  Mr.  Parkin- 
son, however,  preached  on  Sunday,  September  1st,  but  was  the 
next  day  confined  to  his  bed ;  and,  though  every  attention  was 
paid  to  him,  he  gradually  sank  under  the  influence  of  the  fever, 
until  the  following  sabbath,  September  8th,  1839,  when  he 
expired,  his  faith  reposing  upon  the  atonement  of  Christ. 

In  person,  Mr.  Parkinson  was  a  little  under  the  middle  size, 
rather  stout,  with  apparently  a  good  constitution.  Though  his 
connexion  with  Methodism  was  comparatively  of  recent  date, 
his  mind  was  well  stored  with  Christian  theology ;  he  loved  our 
doctrines  and  discipline,  and,  in  the  discharge  of  his  duties, 
faithfully  and  aflPectionately  administered  them.  He  Mas  a  good 
man,  a  zealous  and  useful  minister ;  and  his  death  was  a  great 
loss  to  the  Gambia  mission. 

Mrs.  Parkinson,  wife  of  our  deceased  brother,  died  four 
dfiys  after  her  dear  husband.  She  was  a  native  of  Scotland, 
and  was  born  in  Glasgow  about  the  year  1810.  When  little 
more  than  twenty  years  of  age,  she  removed  with  her  parents 
to  Liverpool ;  soon  after  which  she  united  herself  to  the  Wes- 
leyan  society,  and  became  a  diligent  and  useful  Sunday-school 
teacher  in  connexion  with  Brunswick  chapel.  In  this  interest- 
ing department  of  the  Lord^s  work  she  continued  until  her 
marriage  with  Mr.  Parkinson,  on  the  eve  of  their  embarkation 
for  Africa,  when  her  associates  presented  her  with  a  handsome 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  515 

writing-desk,  with  a  suitable  inscriptiou,  as  a  token  of  their 
regard.     On  their  arrival  in  Africa,  she  was  truly  a  help-meet 
to  her  husband,  heartily  co-operating  with  him  in  advancing 
the  Redeemer's  kingdom ;  and  in  the  schools  she  took  a  very 
lively  interest,  devoting  to   them  all  her  time  and  strength. 
She  was  eminently  a  woman  of  a  meek  and  quiet  spirit,  equa- 
bility of  temper,  unobtrusive  and  retiring  in  her  manners,  yet 
possessed  with  a  lively  zeal,  the  offspring  of  a  well-principled 
piety,  with  a  perseverance  in  doing  good  that  seemed  to  know 
no  fatigue.     The  writer  has  seldom  known  a  more  amiable  and 
excellent  female  than  the  late  Mrs.  Parkinson.     To  her  hus- 
band, as  well  as  to  the  cause  in  which  he  was  engaged,  she  was 
devotedly  attached ;  and  their  union,  though  brief,  was  a  happy 
one.     She  was  spared  the  pangs  of  separation ;  for  at  the  time 
of  her  husband^s  death,   she  was  herself  very  ill   in   another 
room ;   and  the  painful  fact  was  therefore  withheld  from  her. 
It  being  the  sabbath-day,  however,  when  he  died,  she  was  sur- 
prised at  hearing  a  noise,  like  some  people  at  work,  and  asked 
what  it  was.     The  fact  was,  some  carpenters  were  preparing 
her  husband's  coffin  in  the  immediate  vicinity  of  the  mission - 
house;  but  the  question  was  evaded,  and  the  friend  of  whom 
she  asked  Avliat  the  noise  was  took  care  instantly  to  remove  it ; 
so    that   he  was    buried    before   she   was   aware  of  his  death. 
On  Tuesday,   September  10th,   two  days  after  her  husband's 
death,  Mrs.  Parkinson  gave  birth  to  a  daughter,  and  on  several 
occasions  inquired  how  Mr.  Parkinson  was  going  on.     Fearing, 
even  now,  to  communicate  the  real  fact  to  her,  the  answer  w^as, 
"O,  he  is  doing  very  well  indeed,"  or  words  to  that  effect. 
But  the  most  affecting  part  of  the  story  remains.     On  Wed- 
nesday, September  11th,  she  was  able  to  sit  up  in  bed,  and  there 
was  the  appearance  of  her  ultimate  recovery.     Having  again 
asked  most  eagerly  how  her  husband  was,    and  receiving  an 
answer  similar  to  the  preceding,  she  said,  "  Then,  if  he  is  doing 
very  well,  and  is  so  much  better,  why  does  he  not  come  to  see 
me  and  the  dear  babe  ?  "     On  being  told  that,  "  though  doing 
well,  he  could  not  be  removed,"  she  became  almost  frantic,  and 
exclaimed,  "  Then,  if  he  cannot  come  to  see  me,  I  must  go  to 
him,  and  I  will ;"  and,  suiting  the  action  to  the  word,  she  was 
with  difficulty  kept  in  bed ;  nor  could  she  be  pacified  until  the 
gentleman,  at  her  request,  took  in  his  hand  a  cup  of  coffee,  with 
her  kind  love,  and  went  out  of  the  room,  to  that  at  the  opposite 
end  of  the  house,  where  she  supposed  her  husband  was  !     The 
sequel  is  now  soon  told.     The  next  day,  September  12th,  she 
gently  breathed  her  spirit  into  the  hands  of  the  God  that  gave 

2  L  2 


516  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

it,  and  joined  her  dear  partner  in  the  skies;  and  then  the 
mystery  was  unravelled,  and  the  declaration  of  David  emphatic- 
ally verified,  "  I  shall  go  to  him,  but  he  shall  not  return  to 
me."  Their  dear  infant  died  on  its  passage  to  England ;  and 
then  our  departed  sister  was  in  a  far  better  position  than 
"  ij07ider  great  and  good  Shunammite  woman,"  to  whom  the 
three-fold  question  was  asked,  "  Is  it  well  with  thee  ?  Is  it  well 
with  thy  husband?  Is  it  well  with  the  child?  And  she 
answered.  It  is  well."  (2  Kings  iv.  26.)  * 

Towards  the  close  of  October  Mr.  David  Jehu  sailed  for 
Sierra-Leone,  in  the  "  Captain  Cook,"  and  arrived  safe  at  his 
destination  on  the  23d  of  December.  INIr.  and  Mrs.  Mycock 
and  Mr.  Robert  Brooking  embarked  by  the  "  Osborne"  on  the 
20th  of  November,  for  Cape-Coast  Castle,  where  they  arrived 
on  the  13th  of  January,  1840,  heartily  welcomed  by  the  people 
and  Mr,  Freeman,  who  up  to  this  time  had  been  toiling  alone. 

On  Tuesday,  January  14th,  the  author,  with  his  little  family, 
once  more  left  Smethwick,  and  repaired  to  London;  and  the 
following  sabbath  afternoon,  an  interesting  valedictory  service 
was  held  in  the  Wilderness-row  chapel,  when  ]\Ir.  William 
James  and  Mr.  William  English,  appointed  to  accompany  the 
writer  to  the  Gambia,  together  with  himself,  were  affectionately 
and  appropriately  addressed  by  Dr.  Beecham ;  the  other  three 
secretaries  also  taking  part  in  the  service. 

During  our  short  stay  in  town,  we  were  very  comfortably 
entertained  at  the  house  of  Dr.  Beecham,  whose  family  felt  a 
deep  interest  in  our  welfare,  and  whose  kindness  on  that,  and 
on  all  other  occasions,  the  writer  feels  it  but  an  act  of  justice  to 
acknowledge;  and  he  does  so  with  sincere  feelings  of  respect 
and  gratitude. 

Late  on  Wednesday  evening,  January  22d,  we  received 
instructions  to  join  our  vessel  at  Gravesend  the  next  day  at 
one  o'clock.  This  was  a  somewhat  unexpected  call,  being  a 
day  or  two  earlier  than  we  had  anticipated ;  but  missionaries 
must  be  like  soldiers,  ready,  at  the  sound  of  the  trumpet,  to 

*  Some  of  my  readers  may  possibly  call  in  question  the  propriety  or  judicious- 
ness of  keeping  Mrs.  Parkinson  ignorant  of  the  death  of  her  husband  in  the  first 
instance,  and  subsequently  doing  so  by  a  species  of  deception.  All  that  the  writer 
has  to  say  is,  that  he  has  given  the  facts  of  the  case  as  they  actually  occurred ; 
having  received  them  from  the  European  gentleman  himself,  who  for  many  years 
was  a  firm  friend  to  our  missions,  and,  in  cases  of  sickness,  particularly  kind  and 
attentive ;  and  he  fully  believes,  that  the  course  he  adopted  on  the  above  distress- 
ing occasion  was  dictated  by  sincere  respect  for  the  departed  husband,  as  well  as 
by  real  kindness  to  his  afflicted  wife. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIEREA-LEONE.  517 

"  stand  to  their  arms/'  to  take  up  their  cross,  and  follow  their 
Lord. 

"  Who  bow  to  Christ's  command, 
Your  arms  and  hearts  prepare  : 
The  day  of  battle  is  at  hand : 
Go  forth  to  glorious  war  ! " 

The  writer,  therefore,  though  he  had  some  doubt  as  to  the 
real  necessity  for  the  hurry  and  bustle  which  this  sudden  call 
occasioned,  having  an  appointment  the  next  forenoon  of  some 
importance,  rose  early;  and,  having  finished  his  business  before 
day-break,  soon  after  breakfast  proceeded  with  his  companions 
to  Gravesend  in  the  steamer,  being  accompanied  thither  by 
Dr.  Beecham. 

We  had  breakfasted  with  Dr.  Bunting  the  day  before,  when 
we  had  been  benefited,  cheered,  and  encouraged  by  his  wise 
counsels  and  prayers ;  and  on  that  occasion  had  bade  him  fare- 
well. But  yet,  soon  after  leaving  the  house  of  the  kind  family 
where  we  had  been  entertained,  our  cabriolet-driver  suddenly 
pulled  up,  when,  on  looking  out,  we  saw  the  venerable  Doctor, 
who  had  hailed  him  to  stop,  in  the  act  of  running  to  catch  us ; 
and,  coming  up  to  the  conveyance,  almost  out  of  breath,  he  said 
he  "  was  anxious  to  have  "^another  look  at  us,  and  again  to  wish 
us  every  blessing.''  * 

On  arriving  at  Gravesend  about  the  middle  of  the  day,  on 
Thursday,  23d,  we  found,  as  the  writer  had  half  expected,  that 
the  brig  had  not  come  down  the  river :  we  therefore  had  to  wait 
till  the  Saturday  afternoon,  at  which  time  she  came;  and  on 
the  evening  of  that  day  we  went  on  board,  as  the  captain  and 
pilot  said  Ave  should  get  under  weigh  at  five  o'clock  in  the 
morning.  Having  erected  the  family  altar,  we  turned  into  our 
berths,  and  during  the  voyage  performed  divine  service  as  often 
as  we  could ;  but  for  some  days  all  our  little  band,  with  the 
other  passengers,  (except  the  writer,)  suffered  more  or  less  from 
sea-sickness ;  and  having  very  severe  weather  in  the  Channel, 
some  of  our  party  experienced  this  distressing  sensation  to  a 
great  extent.  In  putting  in  of?  Ryde  in  the  Isle  of  Wight,  we 
narrowly  escaped  shipwreck,   having   got  upon   a  sand-bank» 

*  Dr.  Bunting  "is  yet  alive;"  and  long  may  he  live!  For  that  reason,  the 
writer  is  prevented  from  sajing  more  than,  that,  in  all  his  intercourse  with  this 
venerable  and  venerated  man,  both  in  puljlic  and  in  private,  for  nearly  twenty  years, 
he  has  ever  found  him  to  be  the  wise,  the  good,  and  the  great,  but,  at  the  same-, 
time,  the  kind,  the  condescencUng,  the  affable,  and  the  falhoriy  man  ;  indeed,  the 
little  incident  recorded  in  the  text  is  sufficient  to  contradict  a  thousand  assertions  ta 
the  contrarv. 


518 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


This  was  between  nine  and  ten  o'clock  in  the  evening  of 
February  2d  :  it  was  then  very  dark,  and  blowing  hard  from 
the  south-west.  Several  guns  were  fired  for  assistance ;  but 
before  human  help  could  come  to  us,  a  gracious  Providence 
interposed,  and  our  ship  got  into  deep  water^  and  we  imme- 
diately anchored. 

Our  departure,  in  connexion  with  that  of  several  brethren  to 
other  parts  of  the  Heathen  world,  was  announced  in  a  sub- 
sequent Number  of  the  "Missionary  Notices,"  as  follows: — 

Western  Africa.— On  the  25th  of  January,  the  Kev.  Wilham  Fox  embarked, 
by  the  "  Sea  Witch,"  on  his  return  to  St.  Mary's,  on  the  River  Gambia,  after  a 
residence  of  a  few  months  in  this  country  for  the  establishment  of  his  health, 
which  had  suffered  by  his  labours  in  Western  Africa  since  the  year  1833.  He  is 
accompanied  by  Mrs.  Fox  and  child,  the  Rev.  William  and  Mrs.  James,  the  Rev. 
William  EngUsh,  Mr.  Walter  Crowly,  a  schoolmaster,  Kakouta  Sonko,  a  native 
youth,  the  son  of  the  late  king  of  Barra,  who  is  placed  under  the  care  of  Mr.  Fox, 
and  by  two  other  natives.  They  were  also  detained  at  Portsmouth  until  the  18th 
of  February ;  and  as  the  winds  have  since  been  favourable,  it  is  hoped  that,  before 
this  time,  they  have  reached  their  destination. 

During  our  detention  at  Portsmouth,  the  author  and  his  col- 
leagues preached  several  times  in  that  town  and  its  immediate 
neighbourhood,  and  also  attended  several  other  meetings ;  and 
the  friends  of  missions  there  "  showed  us  no  little  kindness ; " 
among  whom  must  be  mentioned,  with  feelings  of  gratitude,  the 
family  of  Mr.  J.  Keet,  and  the  late  venerable  Rev.  Jonathan 
Edmondson.  The  severe  gales  from  the  south-west  having  sub- 
sided, and  a  fine  easterly  wind  having  set  in,  we  prepared  for 
our  re-embarkation ;  on  the  eve  of  which  we  wrote  to  our  friends, 
the  author  closed  his  letter  to  the  committee  as  follows  :  "  And 
now.  Rev.  and  very  dear  Sirs,  fathers,  brethren,  and  Christian 
friends,  I  hasten  to  a  close ;  for 

'  The  soft  swelling  breezes  are  nigh. 

They  beckon  us  down  to  the  shore, 
And  swift  will  they  bear  us  away, 

From  the  land  we  may  never  see  more.' 

But  the  cause,  though  arduous,  is  honourable  and  glorious ;  and 
the  reward  will  be  crowns  of  glory.  God  grant  we  may  all  be 
faithful  till  death  ! "  The  postscript  announcing  our  departure 
was  dated  March  18th,  and,  three  days  previous  to  that,  we  had 
all  arrived  safe  at  the  Gambia,  thankful  to  "  the  God  that  rules 
on  high "  for  having  "  calmed  the  roaring  seas,"  and  given  to 
us,  after  our  re-embarkation,  a  speedy  passage  to  our  destined 
port. 

On  arriving  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  15tli  of  March,  we  were 


THE    GOLD-COASTj    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  519 

cordially  welcomed  by  the  people,  and  by  Mr.  Moss,  whom  we 
found  at  that  station  in  tolerable  health.  William  JufF,  one  of 
the  native  assistants,  had  expired  in  the  faith  and  hope  of  the 
gospel  on  the  1st  of  that  month,  after  a  severe  affliction  of  three 
months'  duration.  Mr.  Moss  improved  this  event  by  a  sermon 
addressed  to  a  very  crowded  congregation ;  and  the  reader  will 
find  a  brief  record  of  this  excellent  and  useful  native  teacher  in 
the  Minutes  of  the  Conference  for  that  year. 

Mr.  James  being  appointed  to  Macarthy^s  Island,  he,  with 
Mrs.  James,  proceeded  to  his  station  in  about  ten  days,  accom- 
panied by  Mr.  Moss;  and  the  writer  was  in  the  mean  time 
engaged  in  purchasing  materials  for  the  erection  of  the  new 
school-house,  having  already  some  carpenters  at  work.  Obtain- 
ing a  suitable  lot  of  land  adjoining  the  chapel,  we  commenced 
with  the  building  at  the  close  of  April. 

On  the  24tli  of  this  month  one  of  our  members  named  John 
Dunn  died  under  the  following  circumstances :  he  had  been  ill 
only  a  few  days,  and  on  the  day  of  his  death  there  was  nothing 
that  indicated  immediate  danger.  He  was,  however,  very 
happy ;  and  on  one  of  the  native  teachers  asking  him  if  he  had 
not  better  take  a  little  more  medicine,  he  said,  "  No,  he  did  not 
wish  for  any  more,  for  at  five  o'clock  he  was  going  home."  This 
was  about  the  middle  of  the  day;  two  hours  after  which  he 
got  up,  and  Avalked  in  his  yard  and  garden,  contemplating  the 
bright  heavens  above,  and  adoring  the  wisdom  and  goodness  of 
God.  He  said,  "he  loved  God  and  all  his  brothers  and  sisters, 
and  that  about  five  o'clock  he  was  going  to  glory."  Strange  to 
say,  he  went  into  his  little  thatched  cottage,  lay  down,  and  a 
little  before  the  barracks  clock  struck  five  that  afternoon,  he  fell 
asleep  in  Jesus  !  The  writer  felt  a  melancholy  pleasure,  early 
the  next  morning,  in  committing  his  body  to  the  grave  in  the 
presence  of  a  large  concourse  of  people,  when  we  sung  with 
peculiar  emotion  that  beautiful  hymn  commencing  with, 

"  Hark !  a  voice  divides  the  sliy, — 
Happy  are  the  faithful  dead,"  &c. 

Having  set  the  masons  and  carpenters  fairly  at  work  with  the 
new  school,  and  arranged  some  other  matters  connected  with 
the  mission,  on  the  21st  of  May,  the  author  proceeded  to  the 
upper  station.  He  remained  there  about  a  fortnight,  during 
which  period  the  foundation  for  the  Institution  was  laid,  and 
the  new  village  commenced;  and  as  the  rains  were  rapidly 
approaching,  in  fact,  had  begun,  more  in  the  way  of  building 
could  not  be  prudently  proceeded  with  till  they  ceased.     He 


520  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

returned  to  St.  Mary's  on  the  llth  of  June,  and  found  his  dear 
family  and  the  brethren  tolerably  well.  The  Europeans  as  well 
as  natives  subscribed  liberally  towards  the  erection  of  the  Insti- 
tution, as  well  as  for  the  school  at  St.  Mary's;  and  so  much 
progress  was  made  with  the  latter,  that  we  succeeded  in  getting 
the  roof  on  before  the  heavy  rains  fell,  though  it  was  not 
finished  for  some  months  afterwards.  Centenary  Meetings  were 
held  at  both  stations  during  the  months  of  May  and  June,  in 
which  the  members  took  a  very  lively  interest.  It  was  truly 
pleasing  to  witness  the  liberality  of  our  poor  people,  who  came 
forward  and  said,  "  Massa,  you  put  me  down  two  dollars,  two 
dollars  for  my  wife,  one  dollar  for  my  child,  and  one  dollar  for 
one  child  him  gone  to  heaven."  This  Avas  said  before  the  writer 
had  fully  explained  how  these  meetings  had  been  conducted  in 
England,  thus  proving  that  "  Methodism  as  it  is  "  is  the  same 
all  the  world  over.  Nearly  .€100  were  raised  at  the  two  stations ; 
and  we  could  and  did  adopt  the  dying  language  of  the  immortal 
Wesley,  "  The  best  of  all  is,  God  is  with  us  ! " 

Soon  after  the  author's  return  to  Africa,  he  was  again 
appointed  acting  colonial  chaplain ;  so  that  his  time  was  fully 
occupied.  But  the  rains  had  now  set  in,  and  the  effects  of 
these  periodical  torrents  soon  became  visible  on  the  health  of 
the  Europeans  generally,  several  of  Avhom,  especially  the  white 
sailors,  had  died.  This  was  also  the  case  at  Sierra-Leone ;  and 
one  of  the  first  victims  this  season  was  the  wife  of  Mr.  Dove ; 
and  it  is  now  the  writer's  melancholy  task  again  to  place  upon 
record  several  deaths  in  the  mission  families,  which  occurred 
during  this  unhealthy,  and  by  him  never-to-be-forgotten,  season. 

Mrs.  Dove  accompanied  her  husband  to  the  Gambia  early 
in  1833,  and  for  three  years  cheerfully  shared  with  him  in  all 
the  afflictions  and  toils  connected  with  the  Macarthy's  Island 
mission,  and  was  most  indefatigable  in  her  attentions  to  the 
instruction  of  the  young  females.  After  a  residence  in  Eng- 
land of  little  more  than  twelve  months,  she  a  second  time  nobly 
responded  to  the  call  of  God  and  his  church,  and  in  company 
with  Mr.  Dove  sailed  for  Sierra-Leone,  where  they,  with  Mr. 
Badger,  arrived  in  safety  on  the  19th  of  November,  1837.  Here 
she  was  no  less  diligent,  faithful,  and  successful  in  the  same 
department  of  the  work  of  God,  with  occasional  interruptions 
from  sickness,  up  to  the  period  which  terminated  her  valuable 
life.  Mrs.  Dove  was  a  pious  woman,  a  good  wife,  and  a  sincere 
friend;  and  was  highly  respected  by  all  who  knew  her.  She 
died  at  Sierra-Leone  of  the  country-fever  on  the  7th  of  June, 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIEKRA-LEONE.  521 

1840,  after  an  illness  of  five  days,  leaving  a  blessed  testimony 
behind  her  that  "to  die"  was  eternal  "gain." 

Soon  after  this  event  Mr.  Edwards,  who  had  been  preparing 
to  leave  the  colony,  returned  to  England  on  account  of  ill 
health;  and  shortly  after  the  Sierra-Leone  mission  met  with 
another  loss  in  the  death  of  Mr.  Jehu.  On  the  7th  of  July  the 
author  received  a  letter  from  Macarthy's  Island,  with  the 
melancholy  tidings  that  Mr.  James  had  expired  six  days  pre- 
viously. This  was  very  distressing  news,  Mr.  Moss  being  at 
that  time  at  Goree  for  the  benefit  of  his  health ;  so  that  that 
station  was  left  without  a  missionary ;  and  Mrs.  James,  a  young 
widow,  was  there  alone,  or  rather  now  on  her  way  down  to 
St.  Mary's. 

The  writer  has  been  kindly  furnished,  by  two  of  his  brethren 
in  the  ministry,  who  were  intimately  acquainted  with  Mr. 
James  "from  his  youth  up,"  with  interesting  memoirs  of  him, 
which  are  alike  creditable  to  the  heads  and  hearts  of  the 
writers ;  but  they  are  too  long  for  insertion.  The  substance 
of  them,  however,  he  Avill  endeavour  to  embody  in  the  following 
sketch,  with  some  additional  remarks  from  his  own  personal 
knowledge  of  him. 

William  James  was  born  in  Liverpool,  in  the  year  1815,  of 
pious  parents.  His  father  at  an  early  age  received  the  appoint- 
ment of  captain  in  the  merchant-service,  trading  to  the  Coast  of 
Africa,  where,  soon  after  William  was  born,  he  met  with  an 
accident,  which,  together  "  with  Africa's  cruel  climate,  shattered 
his  whole  system."  For  years  he  was  confined  to  his  house 
after  his  return  to  England,  but  murmured  not :  he  said,  "  It  is 
the  Lord,  let  him  do  what  seemeth  him  good."  At  length  he 
was  so  far  recovered,  as  to  be  able  to  take  a  situation  in  His 
Majesty's  customs. 

At  the  age  of  fourteen  his  son  was  articled  as  an  apprentice 
to  a  respectable  bookbinder  and  stationer  in  Liverpool;  and, 
two  years  after,  he  became  truly  converted  to  God.  This  happy 
change  took  place  in  Mount-Pleasant  chapel,  one  sabbath  even- 
ing. The  officiating  minister  was  the  late  Rev.  Joseph  Holling- 
worth,  who,  at  the  close  of  the  service,  conducted  a  prayer- 
meeting.  Pointed  and  powerful  were  his  appeals  to  the  uncon- 
verted :  the  word  reached  the  heart  of  young  James,  and  he 
found  liimself  at  the  communion-rail,  he  knew  not  how,  with 
his  father  by  his  side,  pleading  with  God  on  his  behalf.  That 
night  he  was  filled  with  joy  and  peace  in  believing ;  and  there  is 


r>22 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


good  reason  to  think  that  he  never  lost  his  sense  of  the  Divine 
favour,  but  continued  to  Avalk  in  the  comforts  of  the  Holy  Ghost, 
to  the  day  of  his  death.  In  five  months  after  William^s  con- 
version, his  father  passed  in  holy  triumph  from  earth  to  heaven. 

Mr.  James  now  devoted  himself  fully  to  God,  and  was 
desirous  of  being  useful  to  others.  He  soon  became  a  sabbath- 
school  teacher  and  prayer-leader,  and  subsequently  a  local 
preacher.  The  latter  office  was  not  undertaken  in  haste,  but 
at  the  request  of  others,  from  a  conviction  of  duty,  and  a  love  to 
souls.  At  the  March  quarterly-meeting  of  1839,  the  late  K-ev. 
John  Anderson  proposed  him  as  a  candidate  for  the  ministry, 
to  which  proposal  the  meeting  cordially  responded ;  and  having 
passed  the  district-meeting  with  great  credit,  he  was  accepted 
by  the  Conference. 

Mr.  James  was  at  first  intended  for  the  ministry  at  home ;  but 
this  was  in  deference  to  the  wishes  of  his  widowed  and  beloved 
mother,  who  was  greatly  afflicted.  But  his  heart  was  in  the  mis- 
sion work,  and  had  been  from  the  beginning ;  and  when,  a  few 
weeks  after  he  had  passed  the  quarterly-meeting,  God  was 
pleased  to  take  his  dear  mother  to  himself,  he,  without  a 
moment's  hesitation,  off'ered  himself  for  that  service  in  which  his 
soul  delighted,  and  for  Avhich  he  believed  his  way  to  be  provi- 
dentially, though  painfully,  opened ;  and  he  was,  soon  after  the 
Conference  of  1839,  appointed  by  the  Missionary  Committee  to 
Macarthy's  Island. 

It  was  at  this  place  that  I  last  saw  him,  on  the  5  th  of  June, 
1840,  only  three  weeks  before  his  death.  He  was  then  in 
excellent  health  and  spirits,  and  accompanied  me  to  the  river's 
bank  on  my  leaving  that  station  for  St.  Mary's,  where  we 
heartily  shook  hands,  after  which  he  stood  waving  his  hand  for 
some  time.  I  had  cautioned  him  against  undue  exposure,  or 
too  much  labour ;  but  being  alone,  and  breathing  as  he  did  the 
self-sacrificing  spirit  of  a  devoted  missionary,  who  "  scorns  his 
feeble  flesh  to  spare,"  he  was  intent  upon  doing  his  utmost  in 
spreading  the  common  Saviour's  fame. 

On  the  sabbath-day  previous  to  his  illness,  he  preached  three 
times,  travelled  six  or  seven  miles  in  the  hottest  part  of  the  day, 
and  afterwards  went  and  watched  the  dying  bed  of  a  native  till 
near  midnight.  The  following  morning  he  went  to  the  bury- 
ing-ground,  and  committed  that  same  individual  to  the  dust, 
returned  home  and  wrote  me  a  few  hasty  lines,  then  went  to 
bed,  and  in  eight  days  "  ceased  at  once  to  work  and  live  !  " 

Mr.  James  was  a  young  man  of  more  than  ordinary  promise. 
His  bright  genius,  noble  soul,  and  moral  fortitude,  gave  indica- 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  523 

tion  of  his  rising  to  considerable  eminence  as  a  minister  of  the 
Lord  Jesus.  He  was  a  most  amiable,  open-hearted,  kind,  and 
aifectionate  colleague.  Cheerful  and  happy  in  his  disposition, 
he  was  "the  friend  of  all,  the  enemy  of  none."  But  though 
lively  in  his  manner  and  demeanour,  and  extremely  buoyant  in 
spirit,  he  was  never  light  or  trifling.  His  character  was  distin- 
guished by  an  entire  transparency,  and  in  him  there  was  "  no 
guile."  His  appearance  in  the  pulpit  resembled  that  of 
"  Timothy  the  Young ;"  but  "  the  common  people  heard  him 
gladly,"  and,  his  sermons  being  well  arranged,  and  delivered 
with  great  propriety  of  tone  and  manner,  and  with  considerable 
power,  "  his  profiting  appeared  to  all.^'  The  late  venerable 
Jonathan  Edmondson,  who  heard  him  at  Portsea  during  our 
detention  there,  spoke  of  him  to  the  writer  as  a  young  man 
of  superior  endowments.  How  mysterious  that  a  man  of 
such  promising  talents,  sincere  piety,  and  ardent  zeal  should 
have  been  so  soon  removed  by  death  !  Mr.  James  died  at 
Macarthy's  Island,  happy  in  God,  July  1st,  1840,  aged  twenty- 
four  years,  after  a  residence  in  Africa  of  only  three  months  and 
a  half. 

David  Jehu,  whose  death  was  mentioned  in  a  preceding 
page,  expired  the  day  after  Mr.  James.  He  was  a  man  of  deep, 
uniform,  and  consistent  piety;  and  possessed  in  an  eminent 
degree  a  meek  and  quiet  spirit.  He  had  enjoyed  the  advan- 
tages of  the  Theological  Institution  for  a  year,  when  he  nobly- 
offered  himself  to  supply  a  vacancy  that  had  occurred  at  Sierra- 
Leone,  which  place  he  reached  on  the  23d  of  December,  1839. 
But  though  he  had  willingly  filled  up  a  breach  caused  by  "  the 
last  enemy,^^  and  thus  joined  the  surviving  brethren  in  the  front 
ranks  of  this  moral  field  of  battle,  he  was  not  permitted  long  to 
continue.  Having  laboured  for  about  six  months  with  dili- 
gence, zeal,  and  success,  he  was  attacked  with  the  African  fever, 
and  died,  not  only  in  great  peace,  but  "  in  the  full  triumph  of 
faith,"  on  the  2d  of  July,  1840,  in  the  thirtieth  year  of  his  age, 
and  the  first  of  his  missionary  labour. 

On  the  2d  of  August,  Mrs.  James  embarked  on  board  the 
brigantine  "  Maas  "  for  England.  His  Excellency  the  governor 
kindly  presented  her,  through  the  writer,  with  a  donation  of 
£20,  which  three  other  friends  made  up  to  £50,  as  an  expres- 
sion of  sympathy  with  her,  and  as  a  mark  of  respect  and  high 
regard  for  her  late  excellent  husband. 

On  the  14th  and  15th  of  the  same  month  the  author  wrote  to 


524  WESTEEN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

the  committee  at  some  length,  reporting  the  state  of  the  mis- 
sion, with  tlie  progress  made  in  the  new  buildings,  &c.  Up  to 
this  period  the  remaining  part  of  the  mission  family  at  St. 
Mary's  had  been  preserved  in  tolerable  health;  but  from  that  time 
a  series  of  personal  and  domestic  afflictions,  with  heart-rending 
bereavements,  together  with  other  trials,  followed  in  rapid  succes- 
sion upon  the  writer,  so  that,  though  nearly  ten  years  have  passed 
away  since  that  time,  he  almost  shudders  at  the  bare  narration 
of  those  painful  and  mysterious  dispensations  of  Divine  Provi- 
dence. But  though  that  same  Providence  has  graciously  smiled 
upon  him  again,  and  blessed  him  with  "wife  and  children 
dear,"  he  cannot  omit  placing  upon  record  some  account  of 
those  dark  and  bitter  days. 

Some  time  elapsed  after  his  bereavements  before  an  opportu- 
nity offered  of  writing  to  England ;  and  on  his  communication 
reaching  the  Mission-House,  there  was  only  time  to  insert  a 
postscript  in  the  "  Notices ; "  but  his  letter  was  published  in  the 
"  Watchman  "  of  the  same  date,  wdth  a  few  prefatory  remarks 
similar  to  the  following  announcement  by  the  general  secre- 
taries : — 

ST.    mart's,    GAMBIA. 

The  Rev.  William  Fox,  our  respected  missionary  in  Western  Africa,  has  been 
called  to  pass  through  very  severe  affliction.  On  the  30th  of  August,  he  was 
bereaved  of  his  only  son,  in  the  fifth  year  of  his  age,  after  two  days'  iUness :  and  in 
eight  days  afterwards  he  was  made  a  widower  by  the  death  of  his  very  amiable 
and  excellent  wife.  The  Society  sympathize  most  deeply  with  Mr.  Fox,  under  this 
heavy  affliction,  and  commend  him  to  the  kind  remembrances  and  earnest  prayers 
of  the  friends  of  missions ;  and  with  him  all  who  labour  "  in  the  kingdom  and 
patience  of  Jesus  Cluist." 

Mission-House,  St.  Mary's,  November  22)d,  1840. 

Rev.  and  very  dear  Sirs, — Having  finished  some  other  letters  and  docu- 
ments, I  now  sit  down  to  a  more  melancholy  task.  I  made  several  attempts  some 
time  ago ;  but  my  heart  was  too  full,  and  tears  flowed  too  fast ;  so  that  I  was 
obliged  to  postpone  the  effort  to  another,  and  then  to  some  other,  period,  till  I 
have  arrived  at  a  day,  or  a  day  and  a  half,  before  the  vessel  sails.  I  must  there- 
fore proceed  to  inform  you,  that,  on  the  30th  of  August,  my  dear  Uttle  boy  breathed 
his  last,  after  two  days'  illness ;  and,  in  eight  short  days  afterwards,  my  dear  and 
much-loved  wife  followed  him  to  the  paradise  of  God,  leaving  me  a  poor  widower, 
with  an  infant  motherless  babe,  only  four  days  old.  This  will  be  enough,  I  know, 
to  awaken  yom^  Christian  sympatliies,  and  probably  will  call  forth  an  ejaculatory 
prayer,  that  the  God  of  missions  may  be  my  "  help  in  the  time  of  need."  I  assure 
you,  my  dear  Sirs,  I  have  felt  this  stroke  to  be  almost  more  than  I  can  bear ;  and  I 
have  frequently  been  led  to  exclaim,  with  Job,  "  Have  pity  upon  me,  have  pity 
upon  me,  0  ye  my  friends :  for  the  hand  of  God  hath  touched  me  ! "  Well,  though 
my  heart  bleeds  afresh  while  I  write,  I  must  beg  leave,  on  tliis  moiunful  subject, 
to  particularize  a  Uttle. 

My  late  painful  bereavements  were  preceded  by  a  vciy  serious  and  protracted 
bilious  fever  on  myself.     You  may,  perhaps,  recollect  that,  in  my  letters  of  August 


THE    GOLD-COASTj    GAMBIA^    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  O^O 

15th,  I  complained  a  little.  I  was  that  very  evening  violently  attacked  with  vomit- 
ing and  burning  fever.  I  continued  for  three  or  four  days,  and  my  friends  were 
vei-y  fearful  as  to  the  consequeuces.  My  dearest  Ann,  and  another  kind  friend, 
thought  proper  to  call  in  additional  mcihcal  aid,  partly  unknown  lo  me ;  for  I  was 
too  ill  to  know  what  was  going  on,  though  I  was  remarkably  happy  and  composed. 
Having  been  bUstered  and  leeched,  and  well  physicked,  with  God's  blessing  attend- 
ing the  means,  I  began  to  recover,  though  it  was  but  slowly ;  yet  I  was  soon  able 
to  go  about  the  room  and  piazza  with  a  stick.  I  was  thus  far  recovered  when,  on 
the  28th  of  August,  our  dear  little  boy  was  taken  poorly ;  and  it  so  happened  that 
his  dear  mother  became  ill  on  the  same  day.  We  apprehended  nothing  serious  from 
our  dear  boy's  ■sickness  ;  indeed,  we  were  thankful  he  had  not  been  ill  before,  as  he 
had  enjoyed  uninterrupted  health  since  our  arrival.  He  was  a  little  worse  the  next 
day,  though  nothing  serious.  On  the  following  morning  he  was  much  better  ;  the 
doctor  saw  him,  and  pronounced  him  so  ;  and  the  little  dear,  as  I  approached  his 
bed,  eagerly  kissed  my  hand,  and,  in  answer  to  my  question  how  he  w"as,  spoke 
quite  cheerful  and  quick,  saying,  "  Better,  thank  you,  pa."  Scarcely  an  hour  had 
elapsed,  when  he  suddenly  became  convulsed.  I  had  the  doctor  as  soon  as  possi- 
ble ;  and  every  means  that  could  be  adopted  was  tried,  but  to  no  purpose :  he 
sometimes  partially  recovered,  and  then  fell  off  again.  He  thus  continued  till 
about  half-past  three  on  Sunday  afternoon,  August  30th,  when,  with  his  little  hand 
in  mine,  lying  on  the  sofa  by  his  dear  mother,  who  was  ill  in  bed,  he  escaped  the 
storms  of  this  life,  and  was  safe  lodged  in  a  better  world.  My  dear  wife  and 
myself  felt  this  stroke  veiy  severely.  She  had  thus  far  reared  him,  under  some- 
what peculiar  circumstances,— I  not  having  seen  him  till  he  was  nearly  foiu*  years 
of  age,  and  ha^'ing  now  only  had  his  society  on  earth  for  a  few  months.  But  we 
«ndeavoured  to  console  each  other,  knowing  that,  if  we  continued  faithfid,  "  we 
should  go  to  him,  though  he  should  not  return  to  us." 

My  dear  Ann  continued  poorly ;  and,  being  so  near  her  confinement,  I  felt 
€xceedingly  anxious  that  she  should  be  able  to  get  out  of  bed  and  gain  a  little 
strength  before  that  event  took  place.  But  the  Almighty's  ways  are  not  om*  ways  : 
she  continued  feverish  and  poorly  till  Wednesday  evening,  when  she  gave  birth  to 
a  lovely  little  girl,  whom  I  immediately  recognised  as  my  "  little  Ann,"  thanking 
God  for  his  kindness  and  present  help  to  the  dear  mother  in  the  time  of  need. 
This  was  aljout  half-past  three  on  Thursday  morning,  September  3d.  My  dearest 
wife  was  remarkably  well,  all  things  considered,  that  day  :  indeed,  she  said  it  was 
the  best  she  had  had,  but  probably  she  would  not  be  so  well  the  next  day.  It  so 
happened  that  she  was  not ;  and  early  on  the  foUovdng  morning,  which  was  Satur- 
day, she  was  taken  ill.  She  took  very  strong  medicine ;  but  the  disease  continued 
unabated  in  its  coiu-se  all  day  on  Saturday ;  and  on  Saturday  night  stronger  medi- 
cine was  given,  but  it  appeared  to  have  little  or  no  effect.  At  this  period  I  per- 
ceived a  little  stupor,  (which  I  thought  was  the  effect  of  the  medicine,  as  she  had 
taken  a  great  quantity ;  but  I  aftei-wards  learned  it  was  weakness,)  and  she  wan- 
dered a  little  on  that  day.  She  was  wandering  a  Uttle  on  the  Sunday  afternoon ; 
yet  it  was  quite  evident  that  her  heart  was  right  with  God,  as  she  was  continually 
repeating  some  portions  of  hymns,  and  on  one  occasion  appeared  as  if  she  was  con- 
versing with  the  children,  or  meeting  her  class,  as  she  was  heard  to  say,  "  Come  to 

Jesus,  come  to  Jesus ;  Jesus  is  the  sinner's  friend." On  the  Monday  morning 

I  plainly  saw  that  nature  was  exhausted,  though  I  had  given  her  port-wine,  with 
other  things,  during  the  night.  Two  or  three  kind  friends  sat  up  with  me,  and 
every  thing  was  done  that  medical  skill,  khidness,  and  affection  could  suggest ;  but 
it  was  evident  she  was  sinking  into  the  anus  of  death.     I  went  to  her  bed-side 


526  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

about  an  hour  before  sbe  died,  and,  thougb  she  could  not  speak,  I  believe  she  knew 
me ;  for  she  gently  tiu-ned  or  moved  her  lips  towards  me,  and  received  the  last 
salutation. 

0,  my  dear  Sirs,  my  heart  is  almost  too  full,  and  tears  will  flow  ;  but,  thank 
God,  they  are  not  the  tears  of  hopeless  grief.  No !  I  sorrow  not  as  those  without 
hope.  I  have  a  delightful  prospect  of,  ere  long,  meeting  with  my  dear  wife  and 
lovely  boy  in  a  nobler  clime.  About  an  hour  after  the  above  circumstance,  she 
"  who  had  done  me  good  and  not  evil  all  the  days  of  her  life,"  without  the  slight- 
est struggle  or  movement,  gently  breathed  her  spirit  into  the  hands  of  her  heavenly 
Father,  at  half-past  one  o'clock  on  Monday  afternoon.  I  felt  unutterable  things 
that  day  and  scores  of  times  since,  and  have  had  great  difficulty  to  write  this  letter. 
You  will,  I  know,  pardon  me  for  giving  you  so  minute  a  statement ;  it  has  cost  me 
some  painful  feelings,  but  will  probably  be  a  relief  to  me  afterwards.  My  dear 
Ann  was  interred  the  following  morning,  under  the  communiou-table  in  the  chapel. 
Our  dear  little  boy  is  lying  at  her  right  side,  and  a  dear  infant  that  we  lost  in  1834 
is  at  her  left  side ;  and  "  there  their  flesh  shall  rest  in  hope." 

His  Excellency  the  governor,  the  colonial  secretary,  civil  and  mihtary  oflicers, 
merchants,  and  many  other  respectable  people,  attended  the  funeral ;  and  I  believe 
I  may  say,  I  had  the  sympathy  and  condolence  of  nearly  the  whole  colony.  Even 
the  very  Pagans  and  Mohammedans,  as  I  passed  the  street,  would  look  serious,  and 
salute  me  with,  "  Ah,  massa ! "  or,  "  Poor  Mr.  Fox  get  plenty  trouble."  The 
governor  wrote  me  a  condoling  letter,  as  did  the  secretary  and  several  others,  some 
of  them  members  of  society,  both  here  and  from  Macarthy's  Island.  But  my  loss 
is  great.  I  would  not  attempt  to  augment  it,  or  to  "  charge  God  fooUshly."  No. 
There  is,  however,  a  peculiarity  in  it,  which  makes  it  hea\y.  I  am  called  to  part 
with  a  dear  little  boy,  a  blooming  and  much-loved  wife,  in  the  short  space  of  eight 
days  ;  and  am  left  in  charge  of  a  dear  helpless  Ijabe  four  days  old  ! 

The  lady  of  Mr.  Ingram  (colonial  secretary)  kindly  offered  to  take  charge  of  the 
dear  infant.  I  have  a  wet-nurse  for  it,  but  she  is  at  Mrs.  Ingram's  with  the  baby ; 
and  I  am  happy  to  say,  that,  under  the  superintendence  of  this  kind  lady,  it  is 
doing  well.  I  managed  to  baptize  it  some  weeks  ago  in  the  chapel,  before  the  con- 
gregation. Judge  what  I  felt,  while  standing  over  the  remains  of  its  dear  mother, 
brother,  and  infant  sister.  I  gave  a  short  exhortation,  as  well  as  I  could  for  weep- 
ing, and  baptized  the  only-surviving  child  of  my  dearest  wife,  naming  it  after  its 
departed  mother. 

I  have  always  been  very  fond  of  that  passage  :  "  And  we  know  that  all  things 
work  together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God;"  but,  I  assure  you,  these  late 
heavy  and  complicated  trials  have  almost  staggered  my  faith,  though  I  dare  not 
disbelieve  the  passage :  indeed,  I  received  a  gentle  reproof,  and  at  the  same  time 
derived  encouragement,  a  few  weeks  ago,  while  perusing  the  Rev.  J.  Crowther's 
Sermon  on  Divine  Providence,  and  especially  from  the  following  paragraph : — 
"  On  the  same  principle,  we  find  nothing  above  the  character  of  the  plainest  and 
most  obvious  truth  in  the  scriptural  assurance,  that  '  to  them  that  love  God,  all 
things  shall  work  together  for  good.'  It  has  sometimes  been  thought,  that  a  little 
ingenuity  was  requisite  to  show  the  perfect  truth  of  this  assertion  ;  but  any  one 
disposed  to  call  its  truth  in  question,  would  find  it  a  much  heavier  tax  upon  his 
ingenuity,  were  he  required  to  show  under  what  circumstances,  to  one  whose  heart 
is  perfect  towards  God,  the  contrary  can  be  possible,  or  how  any  thing  can  really 
harm  him  who  is  a  follower  of  that  which  is  good." 

On  Sunday  last  I  endeavoured  to  benefit  the  people,  as  well  as  get  my  own  faith 
strengthened  in  the  promises  and  providence  of  God,  by  preaching  from   Mark 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  527 

V.  36  :  "  Only  believe."  The  Lord  helped  me,  and  "  it  was  good  to  be  there."  1 
shall  have  your  sympathies  and  prayers,  I  know,  as  well  as  the  sympathy  and 
prayers  of  many  of  the  friends  of  missions. 

The  following  kind,  Christian  note  from  the  governor  really  did  me  good  : — 

"  My  dear  Mr.  Fox, — Be  assured  none  of  your  friends  will  more  sincerely 
sympathize  with  you  than  myself  in  these  sad  afflictions  and  severe  deprivations 
with  which,  for  purposes  concealed  from  our  penetration,  it  has  pleased  Almighty 
God  to  visit  you.  You  have,  however,  my  dear  Sir,  the  consolation  of  feeling  that 
you  have  served  Ilim  with  such  truth,  that  in  tliis  your  time  of  melancholy  trial, 
you  may  confidently  look  for  His  support,  while  He  receives  the  immortal  souls  of 
your  late  excellent  wife  and  sinless  child  into  His  care  and  blessedness.  Should  it 
not  be  intrusion,  I  should  be  anxious  to  show  the  respect  I  have  to  you,  and  the 
regard  I  have  as  well  to  both,  l)y  attending  the  sorrowful  duties  of  to-morrow 
morning. 

"  Sincerely  pra\ing  for  your  relief  in  these  afflictions,  ever  believe  me, 
"  My  dear  Mr.  Fox, 

"  Most  faithfully  yours, 

"  H.  V.  Huntley. 

"  Government-House,  September  1th,  1840." 

I  must  now,  my  dear  Sirs,  hasten  to  a  close,  casting  myself  afresh  upon  the 
"  Rock  of  Ages."  He  who  has  been  with  me,  has  promised  "  to  be  with  me 
alway." 

"  Credence  to  His  word  I  give ; 
My  Saviour  in  distresses  past 
Will  not  now  His  servant  leave. 
But  bring  me  through  at  last." 

With  my  kind  love  to  yourselves,  the  committee,  and  all  friends, 
I  am, 

Rev.  and  dear  Sirs, 
Your  afflicted,  bereaved,  and  tried,  but  willing  and  obedient,  servant, 

William  Fox,  Wedeyart  Missionary. 
To  the  General  Secretaries,  &fc.  &fc.  S^'c. 

Mrs.  Fox  was  the  third  child  and  eldest  daughter  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  James  Middleton,  of  Smethwick,  and  was  born  in 
that  locality  January  2d,  1808.  At  her  father's  house  the 
Wesleyan  ministers  have  for  many  years  found  a  hearty  wel- 
come, and  most  of  the  members  of  the  family  are  annual 
subscribers  to  our  missions.  She  was  brought  to  a  saving 
knowledge  of  the  truth  when  about  sixteen  years  of  age, 
through  the  instrumentality  of  the  late  Rev.  George  Smith,  who 
was  then  stationed  in  Birmingham,  and  immediately  joined  the 
Methodist  society  at  Nineveh,  there  being  at  that  time  no  Wes- 
leyan chapel  at  Smethwick.  The  genuineness  of  her  conversion 
was  evidenced  by  "  the  fruits  of  the  Spirit,"  and  by  making 
herself  useful  in  that  sphere  of  life  in  which  it  pleased  God  to 
call  her.      This  was  demonstrated  in  various  ways,  for  some 


528  WESTERN  COAST  OP  AFRICA. 

years  previous  to  our  union,  both  at  Nineveh  and  Smethwick, 
in  instructing  the  rising  generation  in  the  sahbath-schools,  deH- 
vering  tracts,  and  collecting  for  the  missions,  and  subsequently 
in  meeting  a  class  of  young  females,  both  in  England  and  in 
Africa.  Being  a  person  of  retired  habits,  she  undertook  the 
important  office  of  class-leader  with  diffidence  and  fear ;  but 
the  numerous  and  affectionate  letters  which  she  received  when 
abroad  from  those  dear  "  lambs  of  the  flock,"  were  not  only 
gratifying  to  her  feelings,  but  at  the  same  tiuie  afl'orded  evi- 
dence of  the  esteem  which  they  had  for  their  leader,  and  of  the 
benefit  which  they  had  derived  from  her  pious  instructions,  and 
her  exemplary  and  consistent  conduct.  Her  religious  experi- 
ence generally  evinced  a  calm,  unshaken  confidence  in  God, 
through  the  precious  blood  of  Christ,  and  hence  she  enjoyed  a 
SAveet  peace,  and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  with  a  glorious  hope  of 
immortality.  The  Bible,  our  excellent  Hymns  and  periodicals, 
and  a  few  biographical  works,  were  the  principal  books  which 
she  perused;  and  these  she  read  frequently  with  pleasure 
and  profit.  The  Life  of  Mrs.  Fletcher  of  Madeley,  and  of  Mrs. 
Judson'of  Burmah,  she  highly  prized.  She  was  a  lover  of  the 
means  of  grace,  and  almost  invariably  came  from  them  refreshed 
and  blessed.  Many  a  time  has  she  said  to  the  writer,  on  coming 
out  of  the  chapel,  "  There  appeared  to  be  a  very  gracious  feel- 
ing :"  a  proof  this,  that  she  felt  it  good  to  be  there.  Her  class 
of  girls  was  the  last  meeting  she  attended,  as  she  was  taken  ill 
the  next  day ;  and  deeply  did  they  deplore  her  death,  all  of 
whom,  with  many  other  members  of  the  society,  even  down  to 
the  school- children,  for  a  long  time  after  the  funeral,  wore 
marks  of  mourning,  out  of  sincere  respect  to  her  memory,  and 
that  of  our  dear  son. 

To  the  cause  of  missions  Mrs.  Fox  was  warmly  attached. 
She  gave  proof  of  this,  when,  after  a  few  weeks'  residence  in 
England  in  1835,  her  husband  felt  it  his  duty  to  return  alone  to 
the  Gambia,  as  she  was  unable  to  accompany  him ;  and  nothing 
but  supreme  love  to  God,  and  the  deep  interest  she  felt  in  that 
mission,  could  have  enabled  her  to  submit  to  the  painful  separa- 
tion, for  painful  it  was  to  us  both.  The  writer  having  remained 
in  Africa  much  longer  than  was  contemplated,  during  which  time 
many  deaths  occurred  in  the  mission  families,  she  was  necessarily 
the  subject  of  much  painful  anxiety  as  to  the  preservation  of  his 
life ;  and  when  he  returned  in  1839,  and  Divine  Providence 
seemed  to  point  out  again  the  Gambia  as  his  path  of  duty,  she 
cheerfully  responded  to  the  call,  and  frequently  spoke  of  going 
to  St.  Mary's  as  though  she  was  going  home,  from  her  previous 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  529 

knowledge  of  the  place,  and  love  to  the  people.  Nor  was  she  at 
all  deterred  or  discc^uraged  when,  a  short  ttme  before  we  sailed, 
the  painful  intelligence  arrived  of  the  death  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Parkinson,  with  their  orphan  child ;  but  calmly  and  heroically 
replied,  on  its  being  made  known  to  her,  "  Well,  this  is  painful 
news  indeed  !  But  if  the  Lord  sees  fit,  he  can  preserve  us,  and 
make  us  useful ;  and  if  not,  he  will  take  us  to  himself  in  hea- 
ven.^* Nor  could  the  last  sickness  with  whicli  she  was  visited, 
with  all  its  withering  effects  upon  her  beautiful  countenance 
and  lovely  form,  quench  the  spark,  or  rather  flame,  of  mission- 
ary fire  and  holy  ardour  that  still  existed  in  the  falling  taberna- 
cle; for,  only  a  very  short  period  before  she  expired,  on  being 
asked  if  she  regretted  coming  again  to  Africa,  she,  with  great 
energy  and  emphasis,  replied,  ''  No,  my  love  !  " 

In  all  the  relations  of  life,  Mrs.  Fox  was  most  exemplary  and 
amiable.  As  a  mother,  she  gave  a  striking  instance  of  a 
mother^s  love  on  the  bed  of  death.  As  already  stated  in  the 
preceding  letter,  we  both  felt  most  keenly  the  loss  of  our  dear 
boy  ;  but  as  the  father  was  once  more  raised  from  "  the  margin 
of  the  grave,^'  she  bore  up  tolerably  well,  saying  it  was  "  a  mat- 
ter of  thankfulness  that  the  Almighty  had  spared  the  tree, 
though  he  had  cut  off  one  of  its  branches."  In  this  Christian 
philosophy  he  could  not  but  acquiesce,  though  he  little  thought 
of  what  was  so  soon  to  follow.  But  the  day  before  she  died, 
suffering  at  the  moment  from  temporary  delirium,  she  asked, 
"  Where  is  Johnny  ? "  And  only  a  few  hours  before  she 
breathed  her  last,  referring  to  the  dear  infant,  she  exclaimed, 
with  a  peculiarity  of  tone  and  feeling  which  I  shall  never  forget, 
"  O  where  is  my  child  ?  "  Being  assured  it  w  as  doing  well  with 
the  nurse  in  the  next  room,  she  was  then  easy ;  and  shortly 
after  she  became  unconscious  of  all  sublunary  things,  and  died 
^'in  sure  and  certain  hope  of  the  resurrection  to  eternal  life 
through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,"  on  Monday,  September  7th, 
J  840,  in  the  thirty-third  year  of  her  age. 


M  at 


CHAPTER  XXIII. 

THE  GOLD-COAST,  GAMBIA,  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 

(1840—1843.) 

Letteks  of  Condolence  to  the  Author — His  other  Trials — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Swallow — The  Judge  (h'owned,  and  the  Sessions  postponed — Departure 
of  Mr.  Moss  for  England — The  Gold-Coast — Mr.  Freeman  in  England — His 
Emharkation  for  Africa  with  a  nohle  Band  of  Missionaries — Their  safe 
Arrival — Return  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Mycock — Death  of  Mr.  Thackwray  and  Mr. 
Walden,  and  Mrs.  Freeman  and  Mrs.  Hesk  —  Mr.  Hesk's  Return  Home  — 
Messrs.  Freeman  and  Brooking  enter  Coomassie —  Sierra-Leone  Mission — 
Liherated  Africans  and  condemned  Slave-vessels — The  Niger  Expedition — Dr. 
Madden— The  Arrival  of  Mr.  Symons  for  the  Gamhia,  with  Messrs.  Raston 
and  Annear  for  Sierra-Leone — Messrs.  William  Allen,  Wyatt,  and  Rowland 
arrive  at  the  Gold-Coast — Death  of  Messrs.  Wyatt  and  Rowland — The  Gamhia 
— Extracts  from  the  Author's  Journal — -Institution — The  Author's  Interview 
with  the  desperate  Chief  Kemmingtan — Moral  Influence  of  the  Mission — 
Fidelity  of  a  Negro  Servant — A  Visit  to  Sierra-Leone — Call  at  Bissao — 
Contrast  hetween  the  two  Places — Mr.  Dove  and  Mr.  Badger  return  to  Eng- 
land— The  Gamhia — ^Rainy  Season — Prince  de  Joinville — The  Author  visits 
the  Upper  Gamhia  in  Company  with  the  Acting  Governor— Extracts  from  liis 
Journal — Cantalicunda  the  highest  Trading-port  on  the  Gamhia — Influence  of 
the  Tide — Return  to  Macarthy's  Island  and  St.  Mary's — Sickness  and  Death  of 
Mrs.  Swallow — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Watldns,  with  Mr.  George  Chap- 
man, at  the  Gold-Coast — And  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Quick  and  Mr.  Amos  at  Sierra- 
Leone — Death  of  Mr.  Shipman  and  Mrs.  Watkins  at  the  Gold-Coast — The 
Gamhia  District-Meeting  —  Arrival  of  Mr.  Lynn,  the  Schoolmaster  —  The 
"  Madagascar"  Frigate — Commodore  Foote — Letter  from  an  African  Chief  on 
the  Subject  of  the  Slave-Trade — The  Arrival  of  Messrs.  Godman  and  Parson- 
son  at  St.  Mary's — Extracts  from  the  General  Report,  showing  the  State  of 
the  Missions  at  each  Station,  with  the  Statistics— Annual  Subscriptions — The 
Author's  Residence  in  Africa  drawing  to  a  Close — Testimonial  from  Europeans 
— Farewell  Sermon — The  Missionary's  Grave — The  Author  embarks  for  Eng- 
land with  Mr.  Swallow,  by  Way  of  France — Reflections  on  leaving  Africa — 
Incidents  on  the  Passage — Arrival  in  England. 

The  communication  from  the  author  which  appeared  in  the 
"  Watchman/'  called  forth  many  letters  of  condolence  and  sym- 
pathy from  his  friends  in  England,  with  fervent  prayers  to  "the 
God  of  all  grace''  on  his  behalf;  and  those  letters  proved  a 
source  of  comfort  and  encouragement  to  him,  during  the  dark 
and  mysterious  dispensations  of  Divine  Providence.  But  though 
these  circumstances  are  indelibly  impressed  upon  his  memory, 
he  has  no  wish  to  dwell  longer  upon  them,  as  others  of  his  bre- 


THE    GOLD-COASTj    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA- LEONE.  531 

threu  were  called  to  pass  through  similar  scenes  of  suffering, 
though  none  of  them,  perhaps,  under  such  peculiar  circum- 
stances as  those  detailed  at  the  close  of  the  preceding  chapter. 
Indeed,  his  friends  in  England  could  not  know  the  whole  of 
what  he  had  to  suffer  for  Christ's  sake  at  this  period,  and  for 
some  months  afterwards.  On  a  previous  page,  he  has  hinted 
at  "  other  trials,'^  in  addition  to  the  "  wave  after  wave  "  that 
rolled  over  him  at  the  time  of  his  wife's  death ;  and  the  letter  in 
the  "  Watchman  "  commenced  with  a  reference  to  "  some  other 
letters  and  documents,"  received  at  the  same  time.  As  he  con- 
ceives it  right  that  the  friends  and  supporters  of  missions  should 
know  what  their  agents  and  servants  have  sometimes  to  endure 
in  Heathen  lands,  he  will  now  refer  to  those  "  other  trials," 
though  it  is  a  painful  subject ;  but  a  faithful  history  of  the  mis- 
sion requires  it,  and  it  is  demanded  in  justice  to  himself.  This 
unwelcome  part  of  his  duty  shall  be  treated,  however,  as  briefly 
as  possible,  and  with  as  gentle  a  hand  as  the  circumstances  of 
the  case  will  admit. 

It  has  been  already  stated  that  in  the  cause  of  missions  the 
writer  expected  to  suffer,  as  he  had  done ;  that  it  was  a  cause 
which  required  the  exercise  of  self-denial ;  and  that  he  embarked 
in  it  the  third  time  on  the  same  principle,  ''  not  knowing  the 
things  that  should  befall  him  there." 

As  a  missionary  to  Western  Africa,  he  knew  that  trials  and 
afflictions  awaited  him,  but  that  the  cause  was  great  and  glo- 
rious, that  it  was  dear  to  his  heart;  and  he  made  not  the 
slightest  pretensions  or  claims  to  being  any  thing  more  than  a 
sincere  Wesleyan  missionary.  Purity  of  motive  he  does  claim ; 
and,  in  all  his  transactions  with  the  parent  committee,  and  with 
others,  from  the  commencement  to  the  close  of  his  missionary 
career,  he  is  bold  to  say,  that  he  remained  sincere  and  faithful, 
that  he  was  an  honest,  upright  man,  and  did  his  utmost  to 
forward  the  views  of  those  by  whom  he  was  sent. 

But  he  had  not  been  at  St.  Mary's  on  this  occasion  many 
months,  before  a  person  then  recently  connected  with  the  mis- 
sion, indulging  in  a  spirit  of  envy  and  jealousy,  thought  other- 
wise of  him  ;  and  by  almost  every  vessel  was  writing,  to  different 
friends  in  England,  a  number  of  unfounded  statements,  most 
prejudicial  to  his  character.  At  the  very  time  he  was  suffering, 
and  when  he  needed  the  soothing  balm  of  real  sympathy,  and 
the  supporting  hand  of  genuine  kindness  and  brotherly  love, 
then  it  Avas  that  this  young  man,  secretly  and  unknown  to  him, 
penned  a  long  letter  to  the  Missionary  Committee,  full  of  mis- 
representation,   slander,  and  falsehoods ;    and,    amongst   other 

2  M  2 


532  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

things,  charged  him  with  being  "  a  betrayer  of  the  trust  reposed 
in  him."  The  first  intimation  which  the  author  had  of  it,  was  in 
October,  when  he  received  from  the  secretaries  in  London  a 
copy  of  the  letter.  At  that  time  he  was  ill  in  bed  through 
severe  inflammation  in  his  eyes,  and  was  unable  to  read  it ;  but 
Mr.  Moss,  being  then  at  St.  Mary's,  read  it  to  him,  with  a 
feeling  of  surprise  and  indignation  at  conduct  so  unbrotherly, 
unchristian,  cruel,  and  sinful,  as  most  of  the  statements  were 
known  to  Mr.  Moss  to  be  either  gross  misrepresentations  or 
palpable  untruths. 

The  reader  will  now  perceive,  that  though  the  author  had,  in 
connexion  with  the  Gambia  mission,  in  former  years,  been  "  in 
journeyings  often,  in  perils  of  waters,  in  perils  of  robbers,  in 
perils  by  his  own  countrymen,  in  perils  by  the  Heathen,  in 
perils  in  the  city,  in  perils  in  the  wilderness,  and  in  perils  in  the 
sea;"  and  though  he  had,  in  a  memorandum  to  a  friend,  on  this 
occasion  "  counted  the  cost,"  and  in  that  account  had  enume- 
rated many  probable  causes  and  sources  of  severe  trial,  not  for- 
getting that  which  frequently  occurs  in  foreign  countries, — an 
opposition  from  "unreasonable  and  wicked  men;"  yet  he  had 
omitted  one  item  in  the  catalogue  of  "  perils  "  mentioned  by  the 
apostle.  In  fact,  in  such  a  land  of  sickness  and  death  as  Western 
Africa,  he  had  never  dreamt  of  "  perils  among  false  brethren." 

After  some  unavoidable  delay,  the  whole  matter  was  laid 
before  the  proper  authorities  at  the  Mission-House  in  London, 
and  the  author  received  a  communication  from  the  general 
secretaries,  in  which  it  was  stated,  "they  were  led  to  believe 
that  he  had  acted  with  integrity  on  the  late  trying  occasion, 
and  that  therefore  there  was  no  sufficient  reason  why  they 
should  withdraw  their  confidence  from  him."  This  was  a  great 
relief  to  him,  though  not  more  than  he  had  expected,  having 
"  the  testimony  of  a  good  conscience,"  and  the  full  confidence 
of  his  other  brethren,  as  well  as  the  respect  and  sympathy  of  all 
who  knew  him.  But  in  all  personal  disputes  it  is  a  common 
saying,  "  There  are  generally  faults  on  both  sides."  As  a  rule, 
it  may  be  substantially  correct ;  but  there  are  exceptions  to 
every  rule;  and  it  is  presumed  the  reader  will  give  the  author 
credit  for  not  having  been  a  great  deal  in  fault,  when  he  is 
informed,  that,  within  the  last  two  years,  the  very  person  who 
charged  him  with  such  flagrant  inconsistencies,  wrote  to  the 
Missionary  Committee  and  to  himself,  and  made  a  voluntary 
confession  of  his  former  imprudence  and  folly,  acknowledging 
his  deep  repentance  for  it,  and  craving  forgiveness  ! 

In  his  letter  to  me,  after  admitting  that  nothing  could  justify 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  533 

the  conduct  which  he  then  pursued,  he  pleads  as  an  extenuation 
"  his  youth,  he  being  then  but  twenty-one  years  of  age  ;"  that 
"  he  had  ill  advisers  :  had  it  not  been  for  that,  he  should  never 
have  penned  a  line  against  rue."  "  No  one  can  more  sincerely 
regret  it  than  I  do  myself.  I  am  sorry  for  it ;  I  repent,  most 
heartily  repent."  "I  have  sufl'ered  much  in  consequence." 
'•'  In  a  moment  of  strange  infatuation,  and  under  the  influence 
of  strong  feeling,  I  wrote."  Both  at  the  commencement  and 
close  of  the  letter  he  says,  "  I  beseech  you  to  pardon  me." 
To  that  penitential  appeal  the  author  listened,  and  not  only  for- 
gave him,  but,  as  it  appeared  that  he  was  then  suffering  from 
personal  and  domestic  affliction,  he  performed  towards  him 
another  act  of  kindness. 

Far  be  it  from  me  to  injure  my  then  youthful  traducer : 
his  name  is  withheld,  and  Avill  probably  never  be  known  by  the 
public  in  connexion  with  this  matter  ;  and  had  he  confined  his 
misrepresentations  of  me  and  of  the  mission  to  the  Missionary 
Committee,  I  should  never  have  introduced  the  aflPair  into  this 
work.  But  having  recently  learnt  that  he  wrote  in  the  same 
strain,  and  that  repeatedly,  to  certain  friends  in  the  south  of 
England,  and  that  those  communications  produced,  as  well  they 
might,  very  unfavourable  impressions  upon  many  minds  respect- 
ing me,  I  have  felt  bound,  in  justification  of  my  own  conduct, 
and  in  vindication  of  my  character,  to  say  thus  much. 

Thus,  after  upwards  of  seven  years  had  passed  away,  was  that 
passage  of  holy  writ  literally  fulfilled  :  "  Commit  thy  way  unto 
the  Lord ;  trust  also  in  him  ;  and  he  shall  bring  it  to  pass. 
And  he  shall  bring  forth  thy  righteousness  as  the  light,  and  thy 
judgment  as  the  noon-day."  (Psalm  xxxvii.  5,  6.) 

As  soon  as  the  author's  health  and  spirits  were  a  little 
recruited,  aud  the  rains  had  closed,  he  again  directed  his 
attention  to  the  new  school-house.  This  was  a  fine  stone 
building  of  sixty  feet  by  twenty-five,  which  was  completed  and 
opened  by  the  middle  of  December;  and  on  that  day  he  sailed 
for  Macarthy's  Island,  to  proceed  with  the  erection  of  the 
Institution.  His  stay  there  on  this  occasion  Mas  necessarily 
sliort ;  and  on  his  return  to  St.  Mary's,  he  was  happ}^  to  find 
that  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swallow  had  arrived  from  England  some 
ten  days  before.  Our  meeting  Avas  very  affecting.  They  had 
been  on  this  ground  before;  and  deeply  did  they  sympathize 
with  the  Avriter  in  his  varied  and  painful  trials.  Having 
iomained  a  short  time  at  St.  Mary's,  Mr.  Swallow  proceeded 
to  Macarthy's  Island,  his  appointed  sphere  of  labour,  about  the 
middle  of  Januarv. 


534  AVESTEUN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

In  the  beginning  of  March,  1841,  His  Honour  Chief  Justice 
Flintoff  arrived  from  England,  and  preparations  were  soon  after 
made  for  holding  the  annual  sessions  of  the  colony.  Applica- 
tion was  made  for  the  loan  of  our  new  and  excellent  school- 
house  for  that  purpose,  which  was  readily  granted.  But,  a  day 
or  two  before  the  time  fixed  upon  for  holding  the  sessions,  His 
Honour,  with  Mrs.  Mantell,  wife  of  the  acting  queen's  advocate, 
met  with  a  watery  grave,  by  the  upsetting  of  a  boat,  in  return- 
ing from  Cape  St.  Mary^s.  Mr.  Mantell  Avas  riding  on  horse- 
back along  the  beach,  and  was  almost  frantic  when  he  saw  the 
boat  capsized,  about  a  quarter  of  a  mile  distant,  and  the  pas- 
sengers struggling  in  the  water.  Before  help  could  be  obtained, 
they  had  both  sunk.  The  bodies  were  afterwards  found,  and 
interred  in  the  burying-ground.  The  next  day  was  the  Chris- 
tian sabbath ;  and  as  the  sessions  were  to  have  commenced  on 
Monday  morning,  when  the  writer  had  engaged  to  read  the 
church  service ;  and  as  many  of  the  jurors,  and  some  of  the  ma- 
gistrates and  assistant  judges,  were  at  our  chapel  on  the  Sunday 
forenoon ;  he  endeavoured  to  improve  the  sad  catastrophe  by 
preaching  from  Heb.  ix.  27:  "It  is  appointed  unto  men  once 
to  die,  but  after  this  the  judgment. ''  The  certainty  of  the 
future  and  final  judgment  of  God  was  dwelt  upon  at  some 
length,  contrasting  that  with  the  uncertainty  and  mutability  of 
every  thing  of  an  earthly  nature ;  and  especial  reference  was 
made  to  the  postponement  of  the  expected  sessions  that  were 
to  be  held  on  the  morrow ;  for  though  the  court  had  been  fitted 
up,  jurors  summoned,  witnesses  collected  and  brought  from 
two  or  three  hundred  miles^  distance,  and  the  prisoners  were 
looking  with  intense  anxiety  to  the  events  of  that  day,  yet 
these  trials  could  not  now  take  place,  because  the  judge  tvas 
dead!  But  there  would  be  no  postpotiement  when  "the  great 
archangel's  trump  shall  sound."  It  was  a  solemn  time ;  and  it 
is  hoped  good  was  done. 

On  the  28th  of  this  month  Mr.  Moss  embarked  for  England, 
having  been  at  the  Gambia  upwards  of  two  years,  during  which 
he  had  suffered  repeatedly  from  the  country  fever  and  ague,  in 
addition  to  the  loss  of  his  amiable  wife.  The  author's  mother- 
less babe  Avas  sent  to  England  in  the  same  vessel,  with  an 
African  nurse ;  Mr.  Moss  kindly  taking  charge  of  them  to 
London,  where  they  were  met  by  friends  from  Smethwick. 
There  being  a  medical  man  on  board,  and  a  European  lady, 
M'ith  some  other  passengers,  all  of  whom  felt  an  interest  in  the 
welfare  of  the  child,  it  was  a  most  favourable  opportunity ;  and 
it  will  be   gratifying  to  many  friends,  both  in  England  and  in 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  535 

Africa,  to  know  that  tlie  dear  child,  deprived  of  its  mother  at 
such  a  tender  age,  is  still  living. 

At  the  ensuing  Conference  Mr.  Moss  received  an  appointment 
to  an  English  circuit.  It  was  his  intention  to  have  returned  to 
tiie  Gambia;  but  after  residing  in  England  for  little  more  than 
twelve  months,  he  was  appointed  to  the  West  Indies,  where  he 
has  been  labouring  ever  since.* 

Soon  after  Mr.  Moss's  departure  for  England,  the  author  pro- 
ceeded to  Macarthy's  Island,  and  he  took  another  journey  there 
in  June,  which  was  the  fourth  since  his  last  arrival  in  Africa. 
But  our  attention  must  now  be  directed  for  a  short  time  to  the 
other  stations. 

During  the  year  1840  considerable  interest  was  excited  in 
England  in  favour  of  the  Gold-Coast  mission,  occasioned  by  Mr. 
Freeman's  visit  to  Coomassie,  the  capital  of  Ashantee.  We 
have  already  referred  the  reader  to  Mr.  Freeman's  Journal, 
containing  the  particulars  of  this  visit.  And  on  his  arrival  in 
England  in  the  month  of  June,  with  Mr.  William  De  Graft,  a 
native  local  preacher,  that  feeling  was  greatly  increased,  and 
became  almost  universal. 

A  special  appeal  was  made  to  the  friends  of  missions ;  and 
Mr.  Freeman  and  Mr.  De  Graft  having  visited  several  of  the 
principal  towns  in  Great  Britain  and  Ireland,  the  noble  sum  of 
^65,000  was  raised  in  a  few  months,  to  enable  the  committee 
considerably  to  augment  the  number  of  missionaries  in  that 
interesting  and  important  part  of  the  society^s  field  of  labour. 
It  is  gratifying  to  add,  that  towards  this  sum  of  money  raised 
on  that  occasion,  some  generous  donations  were  presented  by 
members  of  the  church  of  England,  and  of  other  religious 
denominations. 

Mr.  Freeman,  and  the  party  appointed  to  accompany  him  to 
the  Gold-Coast,  embarked  at  Gravesend  on  the  10th  of  Decem- 
ber. In  addition  to  Mr.  De  Graft,  it  consisted  of  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Freeman,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Hesk,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Shipman, 
with  Messrs.  Watson,  Walden,  and  Thackwray.  In  announcing 
their  departure,  the  committee  remark : — 

Never  was  a  missionary  party  dismissed  from  the  shores  of  England  with  a  more 
intense  feeling  of  interest  and  sympathy.  All  acknowledge  the  very  arduous  and 
difficult  character  of  the  mission,  as  well  as  its  important  hearings  on  the  welfare 
of  the  human  race,  and  one  of  the  boldest  eiforts  yet  made  by  the  church  in 
juodeni  times,  to  introduce  Christianity  and  its  attendant  blessings  to  the  iiide- 
|)cndent  Negro  states  of  interior  Africa.     Thousands  of  prayers  have  been  offered 


*  Till  the  summer  of  1850,  when  he  returned  home,  and  is  now  labouring  in 
England. 


536  WESTEllN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

ill  behalf  of  these  missionaries  and  their  undertaking ;  and  we  do  not  doubt  that 
tliey  will  be  constantly  remembered  at  the  throne  of  grace  by  those  who  are 
concerned  for  the  prosperity  and  extension  of  the  kingdom  of  Christ. 

This  noble  band  of  missionaries  were  favoured  witii  a  safe 
voyage  to  Africa,  and  landed  at  Cape-Coast  Castle  on  the  1st 
of  February,  1841.  But  the  pleasing  prospect  which  this  large 
addition  to  the  missionary  staff  afforded,  was  soon  blighted 
by  the  withering  effects  of  this  deadly  climate.  The  first 
reduction  in  their  strength  was  in  the  return  of  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Mycock  to  England,  occasioned  by  the  failure  of  their  health. 
They  had  been  on  the  coast  little  more  than  twelve  months, 
when,  from  a  sense  of  duty,  they  were  compelled  to  embark 
for  their  native  air.  This  was  in  March ;  and  in  about  six 
months  after  the  mission-party  arrived  at  Cape-Coast,  four  of 
them  were  numbered  with  the  dead,  and  a  fifth  had  to  return 
home  to  save  his  life.  It  is  therefore  once  more  our  painful 
duty  to  dwell  upon  the  ravages  of  death. 

William  Thackwray  died  at  Annamaboe,  May  4th,  1841, 
three  months  and  three  days  after  he  landed  in  Africa.  He 
was  a  young  man  of  amiable  disposition  and  manners,  and  of 
entire  devotedness  to  God  and  his  work.  He  had  nobly  volun- 
teered for  this  part  of  the  Heathen  world,  and  "on  African 
ground"  Avrote  to  the  committee  in  the  spirit  of  a  devoted 
missionar}'.  During  his  brief  sojourn  on  the  coast,  he  had 
gained  the  affections  of  the  people  amongst  whom  he  was 
appointed  to  labour ;  and  deeply  did  they  lament  his  loss.  His 
illness  was  of  about  eight  days'  duration,  which  he  bore  with 
great  fortitude  and  resignation  to  the  will  of  God.  His  remains 
were  removed  to  Cape-Coast,  and  buried  in  the  chapel-yard. 
The  loss  of  a  missionary  so  promising  and  faithful,  and  so 
well  qualified  for  the  peculiar  duties  of  his  station,  was  deeply 
felt  by  the  society,  and  by  all  who  knew  him. 

Charles  Walden  was  the  second  who  fell  on  this  occasion. 
He  addressed  a  letter  to  the  committee,  dated  Cape-Coast, 
May  26th,  at  which  time  he  was  in  excellent  health  and  spirits. 
But  he  was  not  permitted  long  to  labour  in  his  Lord's  vineyard. 
Soon  after  this  date  he  was  attacked  with  the  seasoning  fever, 
from  which  he  partially  recovered ;  but  a  relapse  proved  fatal, 
and  his  valuable  life  terminated  on  the  29th  of  July,  1841. 

Mrs.  Freeman  was  a  native  of  Bristol,  from  which  place 
Mr.  Freeman  married  her,  a  few  weeks  before  the  mission-party 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIEHllA-LEONE.  537 

embarked  for  the  Gold-Coast.  Soon  after  their  arrival  in 
Africa,  it  was  feared  that  ]Mrs.  Freeman  would  not  be  able  to 
endure  the  cHmate,  and  preparations  were  being  made  for  her 
return  to  England ;  but  before  an  opportunity  offered,  she  was 
seized  with  an  illness  which  terminated  fatally,  and  she  expired 
in  the  Saviour's  arms,  on  the  25th  of  August,  1841. 

Mrs.  Hesk  died  on  the  28th  of  August,  three  days  after 
Mrs.  Freeman.  This  event  took  place  at  Annamaboe ;  but  the 
body  was  interred  at  Cape-Coast,  by  the  side  of  others  who, 
with  her,  had  "  fallen  asleep  in  Jesus." 

Thus  the  whole  four  "  died  in  faith,"  and,  though  happy  and 
delighted  with  the  mission  work  on  earth,  they  soon  proved 
that  "  to  depart  and  be  with  Christ  is  far  better." 

Mr.  Hesk^s  health  failed  him  soon  after  he  landed  in  Africa ; 
and  though  he  tried  the  effects  of  one  or  two  short  voyages  on 
the  coast,  he  continued  in  a  very  debilitated  state,  and  in  Sep- 
tember embarked  for  England.  He  arrived  in  London  on  the 
6th  of  November,  with  a  shattered  constitution  ;  but  after  some 
months  he  recovered,  and  has  since,  together  with  Mr.  Mycock, 
1)een  employed  in  the  ministry  at  home. 

The  mission  party  at  the  Gold-Coast  was  now  reduced  more 
than  one-half;  but,  notwithstanding  these  heavy  afflictions  and 
mysterious  bereavements,  Mr.  Freeman,  early  in  November,  in 
company  with  Mr.  Brooking  and  the  two  Ashantee  princes, 
started  for  Coomassie,  which  place  they  reached  about  the  mid- 
dle of  the  following  month,  and  were  favourably  received  by  the 
king,  who  granted  them  a  piece  of  land  on  which  to  erect  suit- 
able mission-premises;  and  the  nucleus  of  a  Christian  church 
was  speedily  formed  in  the  blood-dyed  streets  of  the  capital  of 
the  sanguinary  kingdom  of  Ashantee.  Having  made  the  neces- 
sary arrangements  for  prosecuting  the  mission,  Mr.  Freeman 
returned  to  the  Coast,  leaving  Mr.  Brooking  in  charge  of  one  of 
the  most  important  undertakings  of  modern  days. 

As  the  Journal  of  Mr.  Freeman's  second  visit  to  the  capital 
of  Ashantee,  with  that  of  his  first  journey  thither,  has  been  for 
some  time  before  the  pubhc  in  a  separate  form,  I  must  refer  my 
readers  to  that  most  interesting  little  volume,  and  to  the  "  Mis- 
sionary Notices,"  for  further  details  respecting  this  mission  at 
the  time  of  which  we  are  now  speaking. 

Messrs.  Dove  and  Badger  at   Sierra-Leone  were  mercifully 

'  i)reserved  in  tolerable  health,  under  the  heavy  burden  which 

devolved   upon  them,   in   consequence   of    their  liaving   been 


538  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

deprived  of  the  assistance  of  their  two  colleagues,  one  of  whom, 
it  will  be  recollected,  was  obhged  to  return  to  England,  and  the 
other  had  been  removed  to  a  better  world  in  the  course  of  the  pre- 
ceding year.  Some  very  interesting  communications  from  this 
thriving  station,  bearing  the  date  of  June  and  Jul}^  of  the  5^ear 
1841,  the  reader  will  find  in  the  ninth  volume  of  the  "  Missionary 
Notices,^^  at  pp.  609 — 615,  and  also  in  the  annual  Report  for 
the  following  year.  Two  striking  features  and  interesting  facts 
may  be  here  recorded  in  connexion  with  this  mission.  The 
first  is,  that  some  of  the  liberated  Africans  of  the  Aku  tribe, 
who  Avere  members  of  the  society,  had  purchased  a  condemned 
slave-vessel  with  the  fruits  of  their  industry,  and  had  proceeded 
to  Badagry,  on  the  borders  of  their  own  native  country;  and, 
having  carried  their  religion  with  them,  were  anxious  to  have  a 
missionary.  One  of  these,  in  a  letter  to  Mr.  Dove,  asking  for 
help,  entreats  for  that  help  in  the  following  most  impassioned 
terms  :  "  For  Christ's  sake,  come  quickly.  Let  nothing  but  sick- 
ness prevtJit  you.  Do  not  stoj)  to  cltange  your  clothes,  to  eat,  or 
drink,  or  sleep,  and  salute  no  man  by  the  way.  Do,  for  God's 
sake,  start  this  moment." 

The  other  fact  is,  that  several  of  the  chapels  and  mission- 
buildings  in  the  colony  had  been  partly  erected  by  means  of 
''  tlie  masts,  spars,  and  planks  of  condemned  slave-ships."  What 
a  glorious  change  was  this  !  The  slave-ship,  that  floating  dun- 
geon, where  many  of  the  poor  creatures  had  been  so  closely 
packed  that  they  had  scarcely  room  to  breathe,  and  were  on 
their  way  to  a  life  of  suifering  more  terrible  than  death, — that 
same  ship  is  captured,  the  slaves  are  liberated,  the  vessel  is 
broken  up,  its  materials  converted  into  a  house  of  prayer,  and 
the  slaves,  in  the  mean  time,  having  experienced  another  and 
far  more  important  liberty  than  that  of  civil  emancipation,  are 
rejoicing  in  that  liberty  Avherewith  Christ  makes  his  people 
free;  and,  in  that  house  of  worship,  with  glad  hearts  and  free, 
are  declaring  the  wonderful  works  of  God  !  Surely  "  this  is  the 
Lord's  doing,^^  and  "  it  is  marvellous  in  our  eyes." 

It  was  about  the  middle  of  the  year  1841  that  the  late  Niger 
Expedition  called  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  excited  considerable 
interest  in  the  colony.  Monday,  the  28th  of  June,  was  a  day 
set  apart  for  special  prayer  to  Almighty  God  for  the  success 
of  that  noble  and  philanthropic  undertaking,  when  suitable 
addresses  were  delivered  by  several  of  the  missionaries ;  and  on 
that  day  the  colonial  chaplain,  the  Eev.  D.  F.  Morgan,  preached 
an  appropriate  sermon  from  Zcchariah  iv.  10  :  "  For  who  hath 
despised  the  day  of  small  things?  for  they  shall  rejoice,  and 


THE    GOl.D-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  539 

sliall  sec  the  plummet  in  the  hand  of  Zerubbabel  Avith  those 
seven ;  they  are  the  eyes  of  the  Lord,  which  run  to  and  fro 
through  the  whole  earth. '^ 

That  Expedition  unhappily  proved  a  partial,  though  not  an 
entire,  failure,  which  was  a  source  of  deep  regret  and  disappoint- 
ment to  thousands,  but  to  none  more  so  than  to  the  late  great 
and  good  Sir  Thomas  Fowell  Buxton,  with  whom  the  plan 
mainly  originated. 

The  writer,  when  in  England  for  a  short  time  in  1839,  had 
the  honour  of  a  few  interviews  with  that  noble-minded  Christian 
philanthropist ;  and  from  a  brief  correspondence  with  him,  as 
well  as  from  personal  observation,  he  knew  the  deep  anxiety 
and  interest  which  he  had  felt  in  the  benevolent  enterprise.  He 
knows,  too,  that  Sir  Fowell  looked  to  a  Higher  Powder  than  that 
of  royal  patronage,  backed  though  the  scheme  was  by  the  Bri- 
tish Government,  and  the  countenance  and  support  of  hundreds 
of  the  most  influential,  intelligent,  and  pious  of  his  countrymen, 
lie  looked  to  "the  King  of  kings  and  Lord  of  lords"  for  His 
blessing  to  rest  upon  the  object,  and  endeavoured  that  the 
officers  and  agents  selected  for  the  Expedition  should  be,  if  not 
decidedly  religious  and  God-fearing  men,  at  least  persons  of 
good  moral  character,  who  would  embark  in  the  cause  from  prin- 
ciple, and  from  a  sincere  desire  to  benefit  the  Negroes  :  and  in 
this  he  succeeded  to  a  considerable  extent.  But  there  Avere  not 
wanting  men,  professing  to  be  well-wishers  to  Africa,  who  uttered 
the  bitterest  invectives  against  the  originators  and  counsellors 
of  the  unsuccessful  enterprise,  and  even  against  some  of  those 
w  ho  volunteered  to  carry  out  the  intentions  of  Government. 

It  is  not  my  design  in  this  place  to  investigate  the  various 
reasons  assigned  for  its  failure ;  but  I  hesitate  not  to  give  it  a& 
my  decided  opinion,  that  one  of  the  principal  causes  which  led 
to  that  issue  was  the  withering  and  bhghting  effects  of  the  cli- 
mate :  and  against  that  what  human  power  or  skill  can  contend? 
AVhat  arm  save  that  of  Omnipotence  can  control  the  elements? 
The  Polar  regions,  with  their  mountains  of  ice,  and  perpetual 
wastes  of  snow%  are  not  more  difficult  to  navigate  than  are  the 
unfriendly  and  inhospitable  shores  of  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa ; 
and  are  less  dangerous  to  the  health  and  lives  of  a  large  party 
of  Europeans  who  have  just  landed  fresh  and  fair  from  the  balmy 
air  of  Great  Britain's  healthy  isle.  In  the  former  of  these 
countries  the  words  of  the  Psalmist  are  peculiarly  appropriate : 
'■'  He  giveth  snow  like  wool :  he  scattereth  the  hoar-frost  like 
.ashes.  He  casteth  forth  his  ice  like  morsels :  who  can  stand 
before  his  cold?'^  (Psalm  cxlvii.  16,  17.)     And  in  reference  to 


540  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 

the  latter,  though  the  opposite  extreme  in  the  heat  or  tem- 
perature of  the  chmate  is  not  the  primary  cause  of  the 
great  amount  of  mortahty  which  takes  place  there,  yet  it  must 
be  acknowledged  to  be  one  of  the  causes  :  for,  during  the 
periodical  rains  which  prevail  in  these  latitudes,  when  the  rivers 
are  overflowed,  and  the  surrounding  country  is  covered  with 
water  for  scores  of  miles,  vegetation  is  so  rapid  and  rampant  ; 
and  the  action  of  the  sun  pouring  its  fiercest  rays  upon  those 
stagnant  pools  and  low  swampy  savannahs,  filled  with  a  mass 
of  decayed  vegetable  and  animal  matter,  which  soon  becomes 
putrid,  causes  the  whole  atmosphere  to  be  strongly  impregnated 
with  a  deadly  malaria.  It  may  then  be  asked,  What  Euro- 
pean lungs  can  inhale  these  pestilential  and  poisonous  efiBuvia, 
and  yet  survive  or  withstand  their  efi'ects  ?  The  preceding  pages 
Avill  furnish  abundant  proof  that  those  who  can  are  the  excep- 
tions to  the  rule.  It  is  well  known,  that  Mungo  Parkas  whole 
retinue  was  annihilated ;  that  Captain  Tuckey,  in  1816,  died 
with  nearly  one-half  of  his  officers  and  crew,  and  all  the  scienti- 
fic men,  with  but  one  exception,  perished.  Captain  Owen  also 
lost  nearly  two-thirds ;  and  Laird,  by  the  time  he  arived  at  the 
confluence  of  the  Niger,  had  buried  half  his  white  crew,  and 
more  than  half  his  officers. 

In  the  noble  undertaking  for  the  benefit  of  Africa,  of  which 
we  are  speaking,  every  thing  was  done  which  prudence  and 
foresight  could  dictate,  or  that  skill  and  science  could  invent,  to 
guard  the  members  of  the  Expedition  against  the  prejudicial 
effects  of  the  climate ;  and  ten  thousand  prayers  were  offered  to 
the  Most  High,  that  He  would  be  pleased  to  preserve  them  from 
"  the  pestilence  that  walketh  in  darkness,"  and  from  "  the  destruc- 
tion that  wasteth  at  noon-day.'^  But,  for  reasons  unknown  to 
us,  it  seemed  good  to  Him,  "who  ordereth  all  things  according 
to  the  counsel  of  his  own  will,"  to  disappoint  the  high  hopes  of 
those  who  had  interested  themselves  in  a  mission,  so  merciful, 
so  gracious,  and  so  generous.  There  was  indeed  a  physical 
impracticability,  not  to  say  impossibility,  in  the  present  natu- 
ral aspect  of  that  country,  for  so  large  a  party  of  Europeans 
to  "breathe  in  the  tainted  air"  of  that  land  of  death,  and 
"  pass  unhurt ;"  and  therefore,  like  other  large  expeditions,  they 
sickened  and  died,  or  returned  home  invalided  :  and,  in  reference 
to  many,  what  were  those  beautiful  and  well-built  vessels,  the 
"  Albert,"  "  Wilberforce,"  and  "  Soudan,"  in  which  our  brave 
countrymen  embarked  with  their  wide-spread  canvass  and  flags 
waving  in  the  breeze? — what  were  they  but  the  biers  and  palls  in 
disguise,  bearing  away  scores  of  their  unsuspecting  victims  to 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERIIA-LEONE.  54-1 

"  the  white  rann's  grave,"  and  "  to  the  house  appointed  for  all 
living  ?  " 

But  there  is  still  hope  for  Africa,  and  even  in  that  Expedition 
some  good  seed  was  sown,  which  may  produce  fruit  after  many 
days.  It  is  pleasing  to  add,  in  reference  to  many  of  those  vvho 
fell  victims  to  the  climate  on  this  occasion,  that  they  not  only 
died  in  a  good  cause,  but  "  died  in  the  Lord,"  and  their  record 
is  on  high. 

It  was  during  this  year  also  that  Dr.  Madden  was  sent  to 
Western  Africa  by  the  British  Government,  on  a  commission  of 
inquiry.  He  visited  the  Gold-Coast,  Sierra-Leone,  and  the 
Gambia;  and  his  Heport  of  the  state  of  the  British  settlements, 
with  some  account  of  the  missions  and  schools  connected  with  the 
Church  Missionary  Society,  as  well  as  our  own,  was  published 
the  year  after  in  the  Appendix  to  the  "  Report  from  the  Select 
Committee  of  the  House  of  Commons  on  the  West  Coast  of 
Africa." 

The  doctor,  during  his  short  stay  on  the  Coast,  though  at 
the  best  season  of  the  year,  suffered  considerably  from  the 
effects  of  the  climate ;  and  on  his  arrival  in  May  at  the  Gambia, 
the  last  place  he  called  at,  he  was  in  ill  health.  He  is  too  well 
known  to  the  Christian  public  to  need  any  commendation  from 
the  writer,  who,  however,  felt  happy  in  having  him  under  his 
roof.  The  following  lines  by  a  poet  of  the  present  day  Avill  be 
interesting,  perhaps,  to  the  reader,  from  which  he  will  see  the 
object  of  his  visit,  as  well  as  the  character  of  the  man.  They 
were  kindly  written  in  the  author's  "  Scrap-Book"  daring  the 
commissioner's  brief  sojourn  with  him  at  St.  Mary's. 

LINES  ADDRESSED  TO  DR.  MADDEN,  ON  HIS  DEPARTURE 
FOR  AFRICA. 

BY    DR.    WILLIAM    BEATTIE. 

God  speed  the  herald  on  his  way, 

To  whom  the  task  is  given 
To  check  oppression's  iron  sway. 

That  mocks  at  earth  and  Heaven  ! 
The  word  he  hears  from  Britain's  Isle 

Shall  nature's  rights  restore, 
And  Freedom's  long- forgotten  smile 

Revisit  Afric's  shore ! 

Strike  off  those  fetters  from  her  hand  ! 

Break  off  those  withering  gyves  ! 
Then  see  how  native  mind  expands, 

How  the  crush'd  heart  revives  ! 


542  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

The  blind  shall  see,  the  (lunib  shall  sing, 

The  Slave  forget  his  woe  ; 
And  freedom,  like  a  fountain-spring. 

That  land  shall  overflow. 

Borne  forward  on  the  wings  of  time, 

A  glorious  scene  appears ! 
O'er  man  of  every  class  and  clime 

Her  standard  Freedom  rears  ! 
Go  prosper  in  that  hallow'd  cause 

Which  men  and  angels  plead  ! 
Restore  to  Nature's  trampled  laws 

Her  charter  and  her  creed ! 
God  speed  the  ship  with  wave  and  wind ! 

Our  herald's  life  defend  ! 
In  him  the  captive 's  sure  to  find 

A  brother  and  a  friend. 
January,  1841.  W.  Beattie. 

The  truth  of  some  of  these  "  lines"  has  been  illustrated  and 
confirmed  in  the  preceding  pages,  especially  in  the  liberated 
Africans;  who  having  had  their  "fetters"  and  "gyves  struck 
off"  their  hands  and  feet,  the  "crushed  heart"  has  "revived," 
and  the  "native  mind"  has  "  expanded;"  and,  in  hundreds  of 
instances,  the  oppressed  and  persecuted  Negro  has  speedily 
become  an  useful  member  of  civil  and  religious  society. 

At  the  close  of  the  year,  the  writer  was  at  St.  Mary's,  having 
finished  the  Institution  at  INIacarthy's  Island ;  and  as  Mr. 
English  had  some  months  before  removed  to  the  West  Indies, 
and  Mr.  Crowly,  the  schoolmaster,  had,  previous  to  that, 
resigned  his  office,  and  gone  to  Sierra-Leone,  with  the  expecta- 
tion of  a  situation  under  Government,  he  was  anxiously  waiting 
the  arrival  of  additional  help.  In  December  the  "  Charlotte 
Wylie"  entered  the  Gambia  from  London,  and  the  writer  was 
speedily  on  board  to  give  the  brethren  a  cordial  welcome ;  but 
was  grievously  disappointed  at  the  small  supply  for  the  Gambia. 
This  will  be  seen  from  the  following  brief  extract  from  the 
^'  Missionary  Notices  : " — 

With  much  thankfulness  to  Almighty  God,  we  learn,  by  letters  from  Mr.  Fox 
,and  Mr.  Syraons,  that  the  missionaries,  Symons,  Raston,  and  Annear,  arrived  safe 
and  well  at  St.  Mary's,  on  the  Gambia,  on  the  20th  of  December,  after  a  passage 
of  thirty-nine  days  from  London.  Mr.  Symons  remains  at  the  Gambia  mission. 
Messrs.  Raston  and  Annear,  with  Mr.  May,  a  native  schoolmaster,  sailed  for  Sierra- 
Leone,  on  the  1st  of  January. 

Great  disappointment  and  regret  are  very  naturally  expressed  by  Mr.  Fox,  on 
finding  that,  on  account  of  the  Society's  want  of  funds,  only  one  missionai'V, 
instead  of  the  three  desired  and  expected,  had  been  for  the  present  sent  to  the 
•Gambia  stations.     We  deem  it  an  act  of  justice  to  give  his  own  words. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIxV,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  543 

Extract  of  a  Letter  from  the  Rev.  William  For,  dated  Gambia, 
January  \2)th,  1842. 

I  HOPE  that  poor  Gambia  will  not  be  forgotten  by  the  committee  amidst  their 
very  nnmerous  applications  for  help.  I  know  that  Sierra-Leone  and  Cape-Coast 
need  assistance ;  and  I  deeply  sympathize  with  Mr.  Freeman  in  all  his  bereave- 
ments and  trials.  Bnt  the  River  Gambia,  too,  is  in  Africa ;  and  I  still  maintain 
that  it  is  one  of  the  most  important,  direct,  and  safe  entrances  into  the  interior  of 
this  vast,  and  as  yet  comparatively  unknown,  continent.  Send  us  sufficient  help, 
and,  ere  many  years  have  elapsed,  you  will,  I  trust,  have  a  missionary  station  at 
the  great  emporium  of  Africa,  Timbuctoo. 

The  mission  at  the  Gold-Coast  about  this  time  received  a 
re-inforcement  of  labourers,  the  committee  feeling  it  to  be  their 
imperative  duty  to  send  at  least  three  individvtals  to  supply,  in 
part,  the  vacancies  which  were  so  soon  created  by  the  four 
deaths  we  have  already  noticed,  and  the  unexpected  return  of 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Mycock.  The  three  brethren  were  Messrs. 
William  Allen,  Henry  J.  Wyatt,  and  Thomas  Rowland.  Mr. 
Allen  arrived  at  the  Gold-Coast  on  the  27th  of  January,  and 
the  other  two  brethren  on  the  4th  of  February ;  and  thus  the 
little  band  who  had  still  been  enabled  to  maintain  their  post 
was  strengthened, — strengthened,  alas  !  but  for  a  short  time  ; 
for  two  out  of  the  three  just  mentioned,  in  five  short  months, 
were  summoned  to  "  the  rest  that  remains  for  the  people  of 
God."     These  were  Messrs.  Wyatt  and  Rowland. 

Henry  J.  Wyatt,  by  the  fervour  of  his  spirit,  and  his 
devotedness  to  God,  had  excited  the  hope  of  his  being  made  a 
great  blessing  among  the  oppressed  and  degraded  sons  of  Ham, 
whose  deep  wrongs  he  had  felt,  and  for  whose  salvation  he  had 
fervently  prayed.  But  he  entered  into  rest  in  the  morning  of 
his  day,  having  been  permitted  to  preach  only  two  or  three 
times  before  he  was  seized  with  the  illness  Avhich  proved  fatal. 
He  had  presented  his  body  to  God  "  a  living  sacrifice,"  and 
without  a  sigh  fell  asleep  in  Jesus,  on  the  6th  of  April,  1842,  in 
the  twenty-third  year  of  his  age,  after  a  residence  in  Africa  of 
about  nine  Aveeks. 

Thomas  Rowland,  (2d,)  was  from  the  Uttoxeter  circuit ; 
and,  immediately  after  the  Conference  of  1840,  was  received 
into  the  Theological  Institution  at  Hoxton  as  a  missionary 
candidate.  He  had  not  chosen  any  particular  part  of  the  mis- 
sion-field as  the  scene  of  his  labours,  but  left  himself  at  the  dis- 
posal of  the  Missionary  Committee.  The  circumstances  con- 
nected with  his  appointment  to  Western  Africa  are  interesting. 


544  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

and  have  been  kindly  forwarded  to  me  by  a  brother  minister, 
who  was  at  that  time  a  fellow-student  with  him  at  Hoxton. 

It  appears  that,  during  his  residence  in  the  Institution,  he 
not  only  improved  his  mind,  but  "  made  rapid  progress  in 
piety ; "  thus  becoming  more  fully  prepared  for  the  great  work 
which  awaited  him.  For  some  time  before  his  call  to  Africa,  he 
had  set  apart  Friday  in  every  week  for  fasting  and  prayer;  and 
it  was  on  one  of  those  memorable  days  that  he  received  his  call 
to  that  part  of  the  world.  On  the  day  in  question,  he  seemed 
to  be  more  than  ordinarily  intent  upon  offering  himself 
afresh  to  God ;  and  a  little  before  dinner-time  he  borrowed 
from  the  friend  alluded  to  a  copy  of  the  Covenant-Service  :  the 
reason  why  he  wanted  it  just  then,  it  was  afterwards  learnt, 
Avas,  that  while  the  rest  of  the  students  were  at  dinner,  he  might 
solemnly  renew  his  covenant  with  God.  While  he  was  engaged 
in  that  solemn  act,  Dr.  Beecham  came  to  the  Institution,  Avant- 
ing  two  young  men  for  Western  Africa ;  and  as  Mr.  Kowland 
had  been  thought  of  for  one,  but  was  not  at  dinner,  a  messen- 
ger was  sent  to  his  study,  to  call  him.  He  had  got  as  far  in  the 
Covenant- Service  as  the  fourth  direction  in  the  first  part,  "That 
He  appoint  you  your  work,^^  &c.,  when  a  knock  was  heard  at 
his  study-door,  calling  him  down-stairs  to  see  Dr.  Beecham, 
who  asked  him,  "  Will  you  go  to  Western  Africa  ? "  He 
was,  of  course,  surprised  at  this  question ;  but  most  cheer- 
fully and  emphatically  said,  "Yes,  Sir;  I  will  go  !"  His  heart 
was  set  upon  this  interesting  part  of  the  Heathen  v.  orld ;  and 
he  said,  that  he  would  not  give  up  his  appointment  to  Western 
Africa  for  the  best  circuit  in  the  Connexion. 

In  this  spirit  he  embarked  at  Gravesend,  with  Mr.  Wyatt, 
towards  the  close  of  December,  1841 ;  and,  as  already  stated, 
arrived  at  Cape-Coast  early  in  February.  About  the  middle  of 
May  he  started  for  Coomassie,  to  join  Mr.  Brooking,  who  had 
charge  of  that  very  important  part  of  the  Gold-Coast  mission ; 
but  his  illness  commenced  on  the  journey ;  and  though  he  seve- 
ral times  so  far  partially  recovered  as  to  awaken  hopes  of  his 
entire  restoration,  these  hopes  were  cut  off,  and  this  devoted 
and  promising  young  missionary  entered  into  the  joy  of  his 
Lord,  on  the  10th  of  July,  1842,  at  Coomassie,  the  capital  of 
Ashantee.  He  w^as  the  first  missionary  who  died  there,  and 
there  his  mortal  remains  were  interred. 

We  must  now  return  again  to  the  Gambia.  A  few  extracts 
from  the  author's  journal,  originally  published  in  1843,  in  the 
"Report  of  the  Institution   for  benefiting  the  Foulahs,"  will 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  545 

show  that  the  commencement  of  the  year  1842,  as  well  as  pre- 
viously, was  occupied  by  him  in  visiting  several  of  the  native 
kings  and  chiefs,  for  the  purpose  of  inducing  them  to  seud  their 
sons  to  the  excellent  Institution  which  had  been  erected  princi- 
pally for  that  purpose,  and  which  was  now  finished,  and  used  as 
a  suitable  place  of  worship,  as  well  as  a  place  of  residence  for 
the  mission  family  : — 

JanuaiT  20th,  1842. — An-ived  at  Macarthy's  in  the  schooner  "  Fame."  Talked 
over  our  proposed  visits  to  tlie  kings  of  Kattaba  and  Woolli  with  Mr.  Swallow, 
who  wishes  to  accompany  me.  It  was  suggested  that  it  would  not  he  prudent  to 
visit  king  Kemmingtan,  as  he  is  reported  to  he  both  a  treacherous  and  desperate 
character. 

February  1st. — Brother  Swallow  having  been  urged  to  leave  for  St.  Mary's,  on 
account  of  his  boy's  illness,  both  for  change  of  air  and  medical  advice,  I  set  out 
this  morning  for  Kattaba,  and  returned  in  the  evening,  a  distance  of  about  twenty- 
eight  miles.  I  was  much  gratified  by  the  interview  with  the  king,  his  wife,  and  their 
sons,  with  whom  I  conversed  for  several  hours.  The  parents  appeared  willing  to 
part  with  two  of  their  sons,  but  they  must  first  consult  with  one  who  is  entitled  to 
a  voice  in  such  matters.  Accordingly  he  came,  and,  after  sitting  down  for  a  short 
time,  rose  and  left  us,  saying  he  woidd  never  consent  to  the  project  -,  when  one  of 
the  young  princes  also  declared  that  he  would  not  go.  After  reasoning,  however, 
with  him  on  the  numerous  advantages  that  would  accrue  both  to  his  offspring  and 
Ids  subjects  from  his  accepting  my  offer,  and  pointing  out  the  foUy  of  allowing  his 
wishes  to  be  thwarted  by  one  individual,  especially  as  his  brother,  who  is  heir  to 
the  throne,  was  favourable  to  the  measure,  the  king,  pointing  to  two  of  his  sons, 
said,  "  They  shall  go."  It  was  consequently  determined  that  I  should  either  go  or 
send  for  them  when  all  was  ready. 

4th. — Mr.  Ilichard  Lloyd  having  kindly  offered  to  accompany  me  on  my  visit  to 
Santigeba,  the  chief  of  Lower  Nyaui,  in  Kattaba,  we  set  sail  in  his  canoe,  and  reached 
Yanimaroo  about  two  o'clock,  a.m.  At  dayhght  we  despatched  a  messenger  to  tlie 
king,  who  immediately  sent  us  horses,  with  an  escort  and  a  band  of  music.  Nya- 
bantang,  the  residence  of  Santigeba,  is  a  good-sized,  mud-walled  town,  surrounded 
by  three  large  Foulah,  or  Mohammedan,  towns,  with  three  or  four  others  in  the 
distance.  The  inhabitants  of  the  royal  town  are  a  mixed  race  of  Mandingoes  and 
Jalloofs,  who  speak  both  languages.  They  seem  to  be  a  brave  and  intelligent 
race  of  people ;  the  children,  who  appeared  both  numerous  and  healthy,  were 
running  about  wthout  any  clothing.  I  was  impressed  with  a  conviction  that,  could 
we  establish  a  mission  here,  some  valuable  native  agents  would  soon  be  raised  up, 
to  aid  in  the  great  work  of  evangelizing  this  vast  moral  desert.  I  was  much 
pleased  with  Santlgeba's  quickness  of  perception  and  enlightened  views  :  no  sooner 
had  the  object  of  our  visit  been  opened  by  Mr.  Lloyd,  who  kindly  interpreted  for 
me  in  the  Jalloof,  than  he  replied,  "  I  see  through  the  thing  at  once — it  is  a  most 
disinterested  object."  He  then  proceeded  to  eulogize  rae,  or,  more  pro})erly,  the 
excellent  Dr.  Lindoe,  who  originated  so  noble  a  design.  He  added,  that  he 
thought  I  might  depend  on  having  one  of  his  sons,  vAio  was  very  desirous  of  being 
taught ;  but  there  were  those  whom  he  must  first  consult.  On  my  sounding  him 
on  the  subject  of  founding  a  mission  in  or  near  his  town,  he  immediately  answered, 
"  That  you  may  do  as  soon  as  you  please ;  there  can  be  no  possil)le  objection  to  that ; " 
then,  referring  to  the  immediate  object  of  our  visit,  he  told  me  that  he  only 
wished   he   was   younger   himself,  that  he  too  might  enjoy  the   privilege.     His 

N    N 


546  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

dwelling  in  wliicli  he  received  us  was  a  mud  hut,  ahout  twelve  feet  in  diameter, 
with  two  narrow  entrances,  but  without  window  or  chimney,  whilst  vast  crowds 
stood  within,  and  surrounded  the  doors.  He  shook  hands  with  us  at  parting,  and 
we  were  conducted  into  one  of  the  king's  yards,  Avhere  was  a  comfortable  bentang, 
and  some  kouskous,  beef,  and  fowls  prepared  for  us.  Shortly,  Santigeba  came  in 
to  see  that  all  was  right ;  he  also  paid  us  a  second  visit,  when,  sitting  down  to 
smoke  his  pipe,  we  rehearsed  all  that  had  passed,  and  he  repeated  his  former 
assurance.  He  pressed  us  much  to  stay  all  night ;  but  as  the  morrow  was  Sunday, 
I  declined.  Fresh  horses  were  instantly  got  ready,  and  we  rode  to  Yanimaroo, 
accompanied  by  the  king's  brother,  his  head  servant,  and  one  other,  whence  we 
returned  by  vessel  to  Macarthy's.  Naman  is,  in  fact,  the  mansa,  or  king,  of 
Kattaba;  but  Santigeba  is  looked  up  to  by  the  people  as  such,  who  generally 
flee  to  him  for  protection  against  an  invacUng  or  marauding  force.  The  country 
round  Nyabantang  is  more  elevated,  and  consequently  more  dry  and  healthy,  than 
most  places  I  have  visited.  Within  a  circle  of  eight  or  ten  miles  there  are  not  less 
than  ten  thousand  precious  souls ;  aud  although  composed  of  many  different  tribes, 
they  all  speak  the  Mandingo,  and  are  not  merely  open  to,  but  disposed  cordially  to 
welcome,  the  harbingers  of  gospel  tidings.  What  an  important  field  for  missionary 
culture  is  here  presented,  and  how  favourable  the  opening  for  obtaining  a  footing 
for  the  gospel  of  peace  on  this  desolate  and  blood-stained  continent ! 

8th. — This  afternoon  I  set  sail  for  King  Kemmingtan's  town.  Messrs.  Chown, 
Lloyd,  and  C.  Grant,  with  a  military  officer,  kindly  accompanied  me  to  Fatota, 
where  they  saw  me  on  board,  and  left  me  with  warmest  wishes  for  my  safety  and 
success.  The  following  day  we  passed  Broko  and  Barsan-sang ;  and  on  the  morn- 
ing of  the  9th  we  landed  Laming  at  Foolatenda,  to  proceed  as  my  messenger  to 
Kemmingtan,  at  Dunkaseen,  and  then  to  return  and  meet  me  at  Woolli. 

13th. — I  spent  the  sabbath,  as  I  have  often  been  compelled  to  do,  on  board  a 
small  vessel,  making  little  way,  but  w'cll  engaged  with  reading,  meditation,  and 
prayer. 

14th. — We  reached  Fattatenda  this  afternoon  ;  but  I  was  strongly  advised  by  some 
old  traders  whom  I  met  to  defer  my  visit  for  some  days,  the  countiy  being  agitated 
by  wars  and  rumours  of  wars.  Great  numbers  of  people,  principally  women  and 
children,  had  fled  .and  were  fleeing  from  AVooUi  to  this  port,  bringing  with  them 
their  mats,  calabashes,  &c.,  and  as  much  corn  as  they  could  cany.  There  are  now 
twenty  or  thirty  groups  sheltered  under  the  branches  of  trees,  with  fences  or 
enclosures  of  brambles  and  corn-stakes.  This  warfare  commenced  in  the  following 
manner: — A  band  of  sonninkeas  from  Madina  fell  upon  a  Foulah  town  neai' 
Bambako,  (in  the  same  kingdom,)  took  a  number  of  cattle,  and  about  twenty  of 
the  natives,  whom  they  sold  for  slaves.  Most  of  the  large  towns  have  Foulah 
villages  contiguous  to  them,  as  the  Foulahs  pitch  their  tents  near  fortified  towns, 
to  be  out  of  the  reach  of  still  more  merciless  enemies ;  although  they  are  obliged 
to  give  their  protectors  milk,  butter,  and  even  their  cattle,  when  they  are  demanded, 
or  they  would  be  taken  by  force.  In  this  case  the  Bambako  people,  in  order  to 
be  revenged  on  the  Madinas,  fell  on  a  Foulah  town  near  the  royal  residence,  took 
many  head  of  cattle,  and  fifty-five  free  people,  whom  they  immediately  sold  into 
slavery.  These  people  and  cattle  the  king  of  Woolli,  who  resides  at  Madina,  has 
demanded  them  to  restore.  The  Bambako  people  have  applied  for  help  to  the 
almamy  of  Bondou,  and  there  are  now  about  two  hundred  horse  and  one  hundred 
foot  stationed  at  Bambako.  A  palaver  has,  however,  been  proposed  ;  and  it  is  to 
lie  hoped  the  matter  will  be  settled  without  having  recourse  to  arms. 

To-day  the  messenger  returned  and  brought  me  word  that  Kemmingtan  would  be 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  547 

happy  to  see  me,  and  that  he  had  sent  one  of  his  servants  to  conduct  me  from 
WooUi  to  his  residence;  but  he,  having  had  tidings  of  the  war  whilst  on  the  road, 
returned  to  acquaint  the  king.  About  noon,  three  men  arrived  from  the  king  of 
WoolH,  with  horses  to  convey  us  to  Madina. 

17th. — Early  this  morning  I  started  for  Madina,  accompanied  by  Laming  Burl, 
the  interpreter,  my  servant  Wassa,  and  the  three  men  sent  to  me  by  the  king. 
Taking  my  former  route  through  Bantonding,  we  halted  at  Subaknnda,  where  we 
took  refreshment,  and  proceeded  to  Madina,  distant  twenty-four  miles  from  Fatta- 
tenda.  Here  I  was  soon  recognised  by  great  numbers  as  the  tobauba-fodey,  or 
"  white  priest;"  and  numerous  were  the  salutations  of  Abbe-haeretto  and  Salam- 
alaikum,  with  which  they  accosted  me.  My  quarters  were,  as  formerly,  at  the 
bouse  of  old  Sandi,  the  prime  minister.  Fatembirang,  the  heir  presumptive,  with 
several  influential  persons,  came  to  pay  me  their  compliments ;  and  after  resting  a 
short  time,  we  were  introduced  to  His  Majesty,  Sandi's  servant  carrying  the  present 
I  had  brought  for  him.  I  explained  the  nature,  design,  and  advantages  of  the 
Institution  to  the  hoary-headed  king,  who  listened  with  great  attention,  and 
answered,  "  It  is  very  good  indeed,  and  you  shall  have  one  or  two  of  my  younger 
sons ;"  adding,  "  You  have  come  at  an  unfavoiu-able  time ;  but  when  the  palaver  is 
over,  I  will  fulfil  my  promise." 

On  leaving,  the  king  shook  me  cordially  by  the  hand.  I  next  spoke  on  the 
subject  to  his  two  eldest  sons,  and  urged  the  heir-apparent  to  send  his  children. 
He  allowed  it  was  an  excellent  thing,  and  assured  me  that  as  soon  as  Mansa  Koi, 
the  king,  had  sent  his,  he  would  follow  the  example.  After  conversing  further 
with  the  people,  and  concluding  with  singing  and  prayer,  I  threw  myself  on  a  mat 
in  the  warm  sand,  amidst  the  din  of  dancing,  drum-beating,  and  noisy  merriment. 

1 8th. — This  morning  I  started  with  my  interpreter  to  Dunkaseen  ;  the  latter 
terribly  afraid  of  an  interview  with  Kemmingtan,  Laming  not  having  as  yet  joined 
us  ;  but  he  came  up  shortly  after,  and  we  reached  Dunkaseen,  wearied  and  hungry, 
about  three  o'clock.  Although  the  place  and  circumstances  conspired  to  make  me 
serious,  yet  I  felt  not  only  composed,  but  happy.  I  felt  convinced,  were  my  life 
the  forfeit,  it  would  tm-n  out  to  the  furtherance  of  the  gospel,  and  that,  if  called  to 
make  the  sacrifice,  I  could  willingly  die  in  such  a  cause.  After  resting  awhile,  I 
was  shown  to  the  king's  residence,  and  had  an  interview  with  that  hardened 
sinner;  his  looks  were  depraved,  determinetl,  and  malignant.  "Whilst  I  was 
addressing  him,  he  scarcely  looked  towards  me,  but  amused  himself  by  playing  vni\\ 
a  double-barrelled  gun;  and  truly  I  was  not  sorry  when  I  saw  him  lay  it  down. 
He  made  me  uo  reply,  which  I  am  informed  he  rarely  does  until  a  second 
interview. 

About  eight  o'clock  the  king  sent  some  rice  and  goat-mutton,  with  a  mess  of 
milk  and  komkouK,  the  first  meal  I  had  partaken  of  during  the  day,  for  we  could 
get  nothing  on  the  road. 

19th. — We  rose  at  day-light,  and,  as  soon  as  we  could  be  admitted,  waited  on 
the  king.  He  received  us  veiy  civilly,  and  even  condescended  to  look  at  me.  He 
said  that  too  much  talk  was  not  good,  but  what  he  said  he  meant ;  adding,  he  was 
glad  to  see  me ;  that  the  object  I  came  for  was  very  good,  but  it  was  so  new  and 
strange,  that  he  could  not  promise  me  to  send  his  children ;  however,  he  would 
think  of  it,  and  whenever  I  liked  to  send  a  messenger  to  him,  he  should  be  treated 
with  the  same  respect  as  myself.  I  then  gave  him  an  Arabic  Bible,  and  other 
presents,  and,  after  some  further  conversation,  took  my  leave.  The  king  provided 
us  with  horses,  and  sent  two  men  with  us  to  bring  them  back  from  Fattatenda. 
On  our  return  through  Madina,  I  had  another  interview  with  the  king,  who  repeated 

2   N  2 


548 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


to  me  his  promise  of  yesterday,  and  then  made  for  Fattatenda,  which  we  reached 
about  six  o'clock,  p.m.,  hungry,  faint,  and  e.xhausted,  having  been  for  nine  hours  on 
horseback,  and  ridden  during  the  day  upwards  of  forty  miles. 

20th. — The  vessel  not  being  ready  for  Macarthy's,  I  paid  a  visit  to  the  chief  of 
Bodori,  ten  miles  distant  on  the  south  side  of  the  river.  The  country  is  very  fine, 
most  of  it  elevated,  and  under  cultivation.  I  had  an  interview  with  the  chief, 
who  appears  to  be  an  ignorant,  depraved  old  man ;  consequently,  little,  if  at  all, 
interested  in  the  object  of  my  mission.  As,  however,  he  made  no  objections, 
he  may  be  brought  to  a  better  mind. 

26th. — I  arrived  in  safety  at  Macarthy's,  in  indifferent  health,  and  much 
fatigued ;  but  truly  thankful  that  God  has  been  with  me,  and  brought  me  back  in 
l>€ace.  May  his  blessing  prosper  this  humble  effort  to  promote  his  glory  and 
benefit  my  fellow-men ! 

In  a  few  weeks  after  these  visits,  we  had  several  royal  pupils 
in  the  Institution,  under  the  care  of  Messrs.  Swallow  and 
Symous,  of  which  something  more  will  be  said  anon. 

From  the  preceding  extracts,  and  especially  from  that  under 
date  of  February  18th,  it  will  be  seen  that,  on  the  writer 
approaching  the  town  of  Dunkaseen,  his  feelings  were  of  a 
peculiar  kind,  as  he  knew  not  the  issue,  as  to  himself,  in  seek- 
ing an  audience  with  so  desperate  a  chief  as  Kemmingtan,  whose 
very  name,  from  his  ferocious  deeds,  had  spread  terror  for  many 
miles  round  and  beyond  his  own  locality.  This  much-dreaded 
chieftain  usurped  the  throne  of  Upper  Nyani,  by  putting  to 
death  two  of  his  brothers,  whose  bodies  he  gave  to  the  eagles ; 
and  he  has  ever  since  maintained  it  by  the  same  hardihood  in 
cruelty.  More  than  once,  when  a  messenger  has  brought  him 
some  evil  tidings  from  a  distance,  he  has  instantly  seized  his 
musket,  and  shot  the  unhappy  reporter  dead  on  tlie  spot ;  and 
on  one  occasion,  being  enraged  against  some  marraboo,  whom 
it  is  not  lawful  to  kill,  he  cut  off  his  hands  and  feet,  and  allowed 
him  to  bleed  to  death ;  saying,  *'  It  was  God  who  killed  him, 
not  I ;  for  I  only  cut  off  his  limbs."  His  hands,  as  well  as  his 
"feet,"  have  ever  been  "swift  to  shed  blood." 

But  that  which  rendered  my  interview  with  the  despot  on 
this  occasion  one  of  considerable  hazard,  was  the  following  cir- 
cumstance  : — Kemmingtan  had  not  only  frequently  been  in  the 
immediate  neighbourhood  of  Macarthy^s  Island,  on  his  maraud- 
ing excursions,  "  scattering  firebrands,  arrows,  and  death,"  but 
a  few  years  previously  he  had  also  seized  upon  a  British  vessel  in 
the  upper  river,  and  pillaged  it  of  all  its  merchandise.  Several 
attempts  had  been  made  by  the  local  authorities  to  gain  restitu- 
tion, and  to  bring  the  matter  to  an  amicable  settlement.  These, 
however,  failed ;  and  a  late  lieutenant-governor,  being  deter- 
mined to  chastise  him  for  such  an  outrage,  proceeded  for  that 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SI  ERIIA-LEONE.  049 

purpose  in  a  man-of-war,  accompanied  by  a  few  native  troops 
and  volunteers  from  Macarthy's  Island.  They  anchored  at  a 
creek  in  the  u])per  river,  by  which  they  proceeded  in  boats  as 
far  as  they  could  towards  Dunkaseen ;  and  the  rest  of  the  jour- 
ney they  pursued  by  land,  cutting  their  way  through  the  bush, 
having  with  them  several  field-pieces.  At  length  they  came 
within  sight  of  the  town ;  and  so  eager  were  they  to  be  avenged 
for  the  piratical  deed,  and  so  sure  were  they  of  success,  that, 
without  stopping  to  take  refreshment,  or  make  provision  for 
water,  they  at  once  commenced  an  attack  upon  the  capital ; 
and,  having  expended  a  quantity  of  powder  and  shot  upon  its 
mud-walls,  they  succeeded  in  making  a  breach.  This  brought 
the  lion  from  his  den,  and  a  sharp  fire  was  returned,  when 
several  of  the  native  soldiers  were  killed,  and  two  Europeans 
were  wounded.  By  this  time  our  countrymen  and  the  troops 
Avcre  exhausted  from  want  of  food,  but  especially  of  water ; 
and  some  native  allies  from  Woolli,  with  Mantaraba  at  their 
head,  having  failed  to  enter  the  breach  according  to  promise, 
they  made  a  hasty  retreat,  having  left  two  or  three  pieces  of 
brass  cannon  behind  them ;  and  had  it  not  been  for  JMantamba, 
with  about  five  hundred  Mandingoes  from  Woolli,  who  protected 
them  in  their  retreat,  they  had  probably  every  one  perished. 
As  it  was,  it  was  a  total  failure ;  and  Kemmingtan,  having 
unspiked  the  guns  that  were  left  on  the  field,  had  them 
mounted  upon  his  own  mud  fort,  and  now  bade  defiance  to 
the  world. 

Some  time  after  this,  a  succeeding  governor,  on  a  visit  to 
Macarthy^s  Island,  anxious  to  have  a  good  understanding  with 
Kemmingtan,  as  well  as  with  the  other  chiefs,  sent  a  friendly 
message  to  him,  to  ask  him  to  come  to  Macarthy's  Island,  that 
the  late  affair  might  be  settled  amicably.  The  bearers  of  this 
message  were  a  military  officer  and  a  European  merchant;  but 
Kemmingtan  declined  the  invitation :  he  would  meet  the 
governor  on  his  own  territory,  but  would  not  come  to  Macar- 
thy's Island.  Almost  immediately  after  this,  a  misunderstand- 
ing arose  between  Kemmingtan  and  the  king  of  Kattaba;  and 
as  the  latter  was  looked  upon  as  a  kind  of  British  ally,  about 
thirty  soldiers  were  sent  from  Macarthy's  Island  to  his  assist- 
ance, with  the  same  mihtary  officer  at  their  head.  Kemmingtan 
could  not  understand  this,  and  was  now  more  than  ever 
incensed  against  the  English,  and  swore  he  would  have  the  first 
white  man's  head  he  could  obtain,  and  make  a  greegree  of  it. 
The  matter,  therefore,  was  never  settled,  and  for  some  time  the 
trade  in  the  upper  river  was  suspended,  as  it  was  feared  the 


550 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


goods  on  board  the  vessels  would  be  seized^  and  probably  the 
crews  murdered  or  taken  into  slavery.  But  though  no  further 
outrage  was  committed  by  Kemmingtan,  all  intercourse  between 
him  and  the  local  authorities  was  at  an  end ;  and  the  writer  was 
the  first  European  who  ventured  upon  an  interview  with  this 
chief  after  the  threat  which  he  had  uttered. 

It  will  now  be  seen  that  in  this  visit  there  was  considerable 
personal  risk :  it  was  some  time  before  I  could  obtain  an  inter- 
preter and  guide  to  accompany  me;  and  various  were  the 
opinions  as  to  the  result  of  the  journey  :  the  prevailing  one  was, 
that  I  should  never  return.  There  is  something  in  such  a  situation 
that  for  a  moment  startles  human  nature.  The  place  of  this 
interview  was  in  a  kind  of  citadel,  in  an  open  square  of  about 
twelve  feet  each  way,  surrounded  with  a  high  wall;  and  Kem- 
mingtan  sat  on  a  stool  at  the  door-way  leading  into  a  part  of 
his  residence,  with  a  double-barrelled  gun  in  his  hand,  the 
writer  being  seated  directly  opposite  to  him,  about  six  feet  dis- 
tant, with  his  interpreter  close  by,  and  half  a  dozen  old  men  and 
warriors  seated  all  round.  To  escape,  therefore,  was  out  of  the 
question ;  and  he  knew  not  but  the  next  moment  the  contents 
of  the  gun  would  be  lodged  in  his  breast.  But  He  who  said,  "Lo, 
I  am  Avith  you  alway,^^  was  present;  and  nothing  but  his 
almighty  power  could  give  composure  and  equanimity  in  such  a 
scene  as  Avas  this.  Kemmingtan  knew  that  the  writer  was 
neither  a  military  man,  nor  a  merchant  engaged  in  commerce; 
but  that  he  was  a  niinister  of  the  gospel,  whose  business  it  was 
to  proclaim  "  peace  to  them  that  are  afar  off  and  to  them  that 
are  nigh  : "  he,  in  fact,  referred  to  this  in  the  brief  conversation 
which  ensued,  Avith  an  intimation,  tliat,  had  any  other  Avhite 
man  come  to  Dunkaseen,  he  Avould  have  met  with  a  different 
kind  of  reception. 

It  Avill  be  seen,  from  the  preceding  extracts  from  the  author^s 
journal,  that  he  Avas  not  only  unmolested,  but  treated  Avith  great 
civility  and  respect;  nay,  this  "barbarous  people  showed  him 
no  little  kindness  ;^^  for  Kemmingtan  himself  furnished  him 
Avith  a  good  supply  of  provisions  during  his  stay,  and  gave  liim 
horses  and  guides  back  to  Fattatenda.  Nor  Avas  this  all ;  for  in 
about  eighteen  months  afterwards,  a  royal  pupil  was  sent  to  the 
Institution  at  Macarthy's  Island,  from  Dunkaseen ! 

Another  fact  in  connexion  Avith  this  visit  deserves  to  be 
mentioned.  The  author,  in  going  to  Fattatenda,  did  not  take 
the  direct  route  to  the  residence  of  Kemmingtan ;  and  the 
acute  old  chief  had  asked  mc  Avhy  I  had  not  come  to  his  town 
direct  from  'Aracarthy's  Island  ;  but^  being  informed  tliat  I  liad 


THE    GOLD-COAST^    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  551 

business  at  Woolli,  and  preferred  going  by  water  as  far  as  I  could, 
he  was  satisfied.  My  interpreter,  Laming  Buri,  "  Avas  terribly 
afraid  of  an  interview  with  Kemmingtan ;''  and,  "not  know- 
ing the  things  that  would  befall  me  there,"  and  not  wish- 
ing unnecessarily  to  bring  others  into  trouble,  I  had  pro- 
posed to  my  servant  Wassa,  that  he  should  remain  at  Madina, 
and  take  charge  of  a  few  things  I  was  leaving  there,  and  that 
I  would  call  for  him  on  my  way  back  the  next  day.  But  to 
this  proposal  the  faithful  Negro  nobly  replied,  "  No,  Massa ;  I 
must  go  with  you:  suppose  Kemmingtan  make  you  slave,  he 
make  me  slave ;  suppose  Kemmingtan  kill  you,  he  kill  me 
too!"  I  told  him  I  did  not  think  he  Avould  kill  either  of  us; 
for  I  looked  to  a  Higher  Power  than  that  which  can  kill  the 
body.  He  might  possibly  keep  us  as  hostages  for  the  break- 
ing of  his  town  by  the  English  some  time  ago,  and  then  it 
would  require  a  good  price  to  redeem  us  all.  However,  Wassa 
was  determined  to  go  and  share  with  his  master,  v.hatever 
the  fate  might  be;  and  go  he  did;  and,  without  further  com- 
ment, this  little  incident  is  left  to  speak  for  itself. 

Having  held  our  annual  district-meeting  at  INIacarthy's 
Island  on  the  9th  of  March,  when  all  was  peace  and  harmony, 
the  writer  proceeded  in  a  few  days  to  St.  Mary's ;  and  on  the 
14th  of  April  a  favourable  opportunity  offering  for  Sierra- 
Leone,  he  embarked  on  that  day  for  a  short  visit  to  that  inter- 
esting British  colony  and  mission-station.  The  vessel  in  which 
he  sailed  was  the  "  George  Dean,"  with  Mr.  Ritchie,  a  respect- 
able young  European,  as  supercargo.  On  the  passage  down  we 
called  at  Bissao,  in  the  Rio- Grande;  for  which  I  was  not  sorry, 
as,  though  but  two  days^  sail  from  the  Gambia,  I  had  never 
before  visited  the  place.  But  I  had  soon  enough  of  it.  It  is 
Avell  known  that  this  Portuguese  settlement  has  long  been  a 
noted  slave-depot.  Many  of  the  poor  creatures  I  saw  in  irons, 
and  the  natives  generally  were  in  a  state  of  almost  perfect  nudity. 
Fresh  supplies  were  coming  in  from  the  interior,  and  a  large 
slaver  was  lying  in  one  of  the  creeks,  waiting  for  a  cargo  of  human 
beings.  I  was  introduced  to  the  governor  at  the  fort,  and  to  Cacta- 
nio,  a  merchant  and  notorious  slave-dealer,  who  has  amassed  con- 
siderable wealth,  at  the  expense  of  the  life,  liberty,  flesh,  blood, 
bones,  and  sinev.s  of  his  fellow-creatures  !  On  the  morning  of 
the  19th,  ]Mr.  Ritchie  having  finished  his  legitimate  trade,  we 
left  this  foul  place ;  and  heartily  glad  I  was ;  for,  considering  it 
as  an  European  establishment,  Bissao  is  the  most  filthy,  unci- 
vilized, and  barbarous  spot  I  ever  saw.  And  how  can  it  be 
otiierwise,  when  the  staple  article  of  trade  consists  in  the 
buying  and  selling  of  the  rational  part  of  God's  creation? 


552  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

On  leaving  this  modern  Sodom,  we  had  a  good  run  to  a  far 
different  European  colony;  for,  about  ten  a.m.  on  Saturday, 
23d,  we  discovered  the  mountains  of  Sierra-Leone,  distant  about 
twenty-five  miles,  the  scenery  of  which,  as  we  approached 
"nearer  and  nearer  still,^'  was  most  enchanting.  AVhen  we 
consider  the  philanthropic  principles  on  which  this  British  set- 
tlement was  founded,  and  the  vast  benefits  which  it  has  conferred 
on  tens  of  thousands  of  Negroes  who  have  been  rescued  from 
"  the  man-stealer,^'  and  who,  on  touching  this  colony,  lose  their 
shackles,  and  that  moment  become  free, — we  perceive  how  beau- 
tifully it  contrasts  with  the  miserable,  dark  den  of  slavery  at 
Eissao  ! — the  one,  the  land  of  Egypt ;  and  the  other,  the  pro- 
mised land  of  Canaan  ! 

We  anchored  in  the  harbour  of  Free-Town  between  two  and 
three  p.m.  ;  and  the  writer  soon  found  his  way  to  the  mission- 
house,  where  he  met  with  a  cordial  reception,  and  was  happy  to 
find  the  brethren  were  all  tolerably  well. 

During  this  short  visit  the  Avriter  went  to  Wellington,  Hast- 
ings, Gloucester,  Regent,  and  several  of  the  other  villages,  com- 
posed principally  of  re-captured  Negroes,  where  we  have  inter- 
esting societies  and  good  congregations,  to  whom  he  preached 
with  pleasure  and  profit,  as  well  as  in  the  capital ;  and  during 
his  stay  he  was  treated  with  great  respect  by  all  classes  of  the 
community,  having  by  invitation  dined  with  His  Excellency  at 
Government-house,  with  the  military  at  the  barracks,  several  of 
the  merchants,  and  two  of  the  Church  missionaries.  It  was 
about  this  time  that  a  more  systematic  plan  was  commenced  for 
the  training  of  native  agents;  and  subsequently  a  very  large 
and  commodious  building  being  offered  for  sale  at  King  Tom^s 
Point,  it  was  purchased  during  the  next  year,  and  fitted  up  as 
an  Institution.  This  building,  for  situation,  convenience,  and 
magnitude,  was  every  thing  that  was  desired,  being  sufilciently 
large  for  a  mission-family  at  each  end,  and  for  the  students  in 
the  middle.  It  was  formerly  a  naval  depot,  and  is  said  to  have 
cost  =£7,000 ;  but  was  bought  at  public  auction  by  the  Society 
for  three  hundred  guineas,  several  friends  in  England  having 
liberally  contributed  for  that  specific  object. 

It  was  also  during  this  year  that  the  operations  of  a  printing- 
press  were  begun  at  this  station,  when  upwards  of  <£120 
♦were  raised  in  the  colony  for  printing  purposes;  and,  in  con- 
nexion with  this,  a  monthly  periodical,  or  religious  newspaper, 
was  commenced,  which  was  called,  "  The  Sierra-Leone  Watch- 
man." 

On  the  17th  of  May,  the  author  re-embarked  for  the  Gambia. 
At  this  time,  jMr.  Dove  and  Mr.  Badger  were  preparing  to  sail 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  553 

for  England,  having  been  at  this  station  upwards  of  four  years  : 
they  intended,  however,  to  return,  after  having  recruited  their 
health;  which  they  accordingly  did,  as  will  be  seen  iu  due 
course.  They  left  Sierra-Leone  on  the  27th  of  May ;  but,  hav- 
ing a  long  and  tedious  passage,  they  did  not  arrive  in  England 
till  after  the  middle  of  August. 

On  the  29th  of  May,  the  writer  arrived  at  St.  Mary's,  having 
had  to  beat  up  most  of  the  way  from  Sierra-Leone.  The  rainy 
season  was  now  drawing  nigh ;  and  the  tornadoes,  with  their 
accompaniments,  thunder  and  lightning,  were  terrific.  On  the 
21st  of  June  we  were  visited  by  a  tremendous  one,  with  heavy 
rain,  when  several  vessels  in  the  harbour  were  driven  ashore, 
and  the  roof  of  one  house  was  partly  blown  away. 

The  writer  was  again  engaged  in  the  locality  of  St.  Mary's, 
in  visiting  some  of  the  native  chiefs  ;  and  in  the  month  of  July 
he  took  a  journey  to  Macarthy's  Island  and  its  neighbourhood, 
for  the  same  purpose.  On  his  return,  he  was  attacked  with 
fever,  which  continued  more  or  less  severe  for  several  days  : 
fifty  leeches  applied  to  his  chest  gave  him  considerable  relief. 
About  the  middle  of  August,  Dr.  Goheen,  from  Liberia,  arrived 
at  St.  Mary's,  on  his  way  to  America,  and  took  up  his  abode 
with  the  writer  at  the  mission-house.  On  the  19th  Mr.  Symons 
came  down  from  the  upper  station,  very  unwell :  Dr.  Goheen 
kindly  attended  him.  The  next  day  Mr.  Swallow  and  family 
sailed  for  Boavista,  one  of  the  Cape  Verd  Islands,  principally 
on  account  of  the  illness  and  weakness  of  his  child. 

The  colony  at  this  time  was  in  a  state  of  considerable  excite- 
ment, owing  to  some  personal  disputes  and  law-suits  among 
the  Europeans,  and  some  of  the  authorities.  The  author  kept 
aloof  from  these  as  much  as  possible,  except  that  in  one  or  two 
cases  he  acted  as  a  kind  of  arbitrator ;  and  his  efforts  to  pro- 
mote peace  were  not  in  vain. 

Towards  the  close  of  October,  Mr.  and  Mrs,  Swallow  returned 
from  the  Cape  Verd  Islands,  having  lost  their  dear  child,  who 
had  been  ill  for  eighteen  months.  In  a  few  days  they  pro- 
ceeded to  jMacarthy's  Island,  and  Mr.  Symons  passed  through 
the  rains  tolerably  well.  But,  as  usual,  the  author  had  several 
attacks  of  fever  during  this  season. 

On  December  18th,  His  Royal  Highness  Prince  de  Joinville, 
son  of  the  king  of  the  French,  arrived  at  the  Gambia,  on  board 
a  French  steamer,  and  immediately  tired  a  royal  salute,  which 
was  returned  by  our  guns.  Soon  after  this,  His  Royal  High- 
ness landed,  and  took  a  walk  through  the  town,  and  visited  the 
barracks  and  other  places.      He  also  liouourcd   the  mission- 


554  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

house  witli  a  short  visit,  went  into  the  chapel  and  school-i'oomj 
and  asked  me  several  questions  respecting  the  mission.  In  the 
evening  I  had  the  honour  of  dining  with  him  at  Government- 
house,  with  a  large  party  of  naval,  civil,  and  military  officers, 
merchants,  &c. 

Prince  de  Joinville  appeared  to  be  from  twenty-eight  to 
thirt}'  years  of  age,  was  rather  tall,  easy  and  agreeable  in  his 
manner,  though  but  imperfectly  acquainted  with  the  English 
language.  He  wore  the  uniform  of  a  captain  in  the  navy,  with 
a  star  at  his  breast.  His  frigate,  "La  Belle  Poule,^'  Avas  at 
Goree ;  and  he  was  paying  a  temporary  visit  to  the  small 
French  establishment  at  Albrada  in  the  Gambia,  and  to  the 
Casamanza,  in  the  steamer,  and  then  returned  to  Goree,  and 
proceeded  down  the  Coast  in  the  vessel  just  mentioned.  Since 
that  day,  "  how  are  the  mightj'  fallen  !  '^ 

At  the  end  of  December  the  writer  was  once  more  at 
Macarthy's  Island,  and  Avas  delighted  with  the  services  con- 
ducted in  the  lower  part  of  the  Institution,  Avbich  he  attended 
on  Cbristmas-day,  the  watchnight,  and  on  the  first  sabbath  of 
the  new  3'ear. 

The  acting-governor  from  St.  Mary's,  T.  L.  Ingram,  Esq., 
Avas  on  a  voyage  in  the  upper  river,  for  the  purpose  of  having 
an  interview  with  the  head-men  at  the  difterent  trading-ports, 
and  of  visiting  most  of  the  chiefs  witbin  his  reach,  in  order  to 
promote  trade  and  commerce ;  and,  being  respectfully  invited 
to  accompany  him,  tbe  Avriter  gladly  availed  himself  of  this 
opportunity  of  taking  a  fourth  journey  among  the  natiACS, 
hoping  that  the  benefit  Avould  be  mutual.  We  left  Macartby's 
Island  January  3d,  1843,  on  board  the  cutter  "  Emma."  On 
the  4th  and  folloAving  days  His  Excellency  tried  to  obtain  an 
intervicAv  Avith  Kemmingtan;  but  the  crafty  old  cliief,  Avith  fair 
speeches,  avoided  all  personal  communication  with  the  British. 
I  subjoin  a  fcAv  brief  extracts  from  my  journal : — 

7th. — We  waited  at  Foolatenda  all  day;  but  neither  Kem- 
mingtan came,  nor  any  message  from  him;  and  Avhat  can  be 
the  cause  of  this,  we  are  at  a  loss  to  coisjecture,  unless  it  be  tbat 
he  cannot  forget  the  attack  upon  his  town  by  a  late  lieutenant- 
governor,  and  therefore  Avill  not  trust  himself  near  the  Avhite 
men.  After  breakfast  ayc  rode  to  Bankobata,  a  large  Julor 
toAvn  nearJA'  tAvo  miles  from  the  port,  containing  about  fifteen 
hundred  inhabitants.  The  land  for  some  distance  is  cultivated; 
and  ground-nuts,  indigo,  corn,  and  rice  arc  grown  in  great  plenty. 
We  saAi'  some  date  and  pappa  trees  near  the  town;  and,  baving 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  555 

remained  about  an  hour,  we  returned  to  the  vessel.  A  consi- 
derable trade  is  carried  on  at  this  place,  an  European  trader 
being  now  here  with  a  vessel  from  St.  Mary's,  whose  transac- 
tions amount  to  nearly  fifteen  hundred  dollars  per  month. 

The  governor  entered  into  a  treaty  with  the  head-men  of 
Bankobata  and  Chakunda,  about  a  mile  further  up  the  river, 
relative  to  trade,  and  prohibiting  any  dealings  with  slavery ;  but 
at  the  mention  of  this  I  saw  several  of  them  smile.  In  fact, 
they  think  as  little  of  buying  and  selling  their  fellow-creatures 
as  they  do  of  exchanging  cattle ;  and  though  the  British  mer- 
chants do  not  directly  participate  in  this  nefarious  traffic,  yet,  in 
carrying  on  their  trade  in  the  upper  part  of  the  river,  they 
become  indirectly  connected  with  it.  For  instance  :  a  few  days 
ago  we  were  told  that  thirteen  slaves  were  sold  by  the  Banko- 
bata people  for  country  cloths,  and  these  were  immediately 
sold  again  to  the  European  trader  for  English  goods. 

12th. — To-day  we  saw  some  of  Kemmingtan's  people  from 
Dunkaseen,  but  could  learn  nothing  satisfactory  as  to  why  he 
did  not  come  to  see  the  governor;  and  the  latter  is  not  dis- 
posed to  venture  a  visit  to  him.  The  next  day  we  proceeded 
to  Madina. 

17th. — Cantalicunda.  We  have  been  some  time  in  deciding 
upon  the  best  mode  of  proceeding  higher  up  the  river;  but  it  was 
agreed  we  should  proceed  in  the  boat,  and  start  with  the  tide  at 
two  o'clock  in  the  morning.  Soon  after  this  arrangement  was 
made,  we  heard  a  noise  at  the  village  ashore;  and  on  going  to 
see  what  was  the  cause,  we  found  that  some  people  had  seized 
and  carried  off  one  of  the  Kroo-men  belonging  to  our  vessel, 
because,  as  we  were  told,  the  governor  had  not  given  them  any 
presents,  and  the  ground  belonged  to  them.  We  were  for 
some  time  in  great  excitement.  Several  persons,  however,  were 
immediately  despatched  after  the  stolen  sailor,  and  a  messenger 
sent  off  to  the  old  chief.  But  before  he  arrived,  the  old  man  had 
sent  a  large  party  to  take  the  prisoner  back  to  the  vessel,  and  ex- 
pressed his  regret  at  Avhat  had  happened,  though  as  yet  they 
had  not  brought  the  Kroo-man.  We  sat  up  to  a  late  hour;  but 
were  happy  to  be  disturbed  about  two  o'clock  with  the  joyful 
news  that  John  Freeman  had  come  back,  the  king's  people 
having  rescued  him  out  of  the  hands  of  his  enemies.  The  poor 
fellow  had  fouglit  hard  liefore  they  could  take  him,  in  the  first 
instance,  from  the  village  close  to  the  shore :  he  had  been 
cruelly  treated  on  the  road,  and  was  afterwards  tied  by  the 
neck,  hands,  and  feet,  to  prevent  his  escape.  This  circumstance 
induced  tlie  governor  not  to  proceed  any  further  up  tlie  river. 


556  WESTERN    COAST   OF    ATRICA. 

as  Cantalicunda  is  the  highest  trading-port  in  the  Gambia; 
and  we  had  heard  that  some  of  the  dissatisfied  people  had 
hoped  for  an  opportunity  of  catching  either  himself  or  me,  say- 
ing they  should  have  a  vessel  full  of  goods  for  our  redemption. 

The  trade  just  now  is  not  great  at  this  port,  owing  princi- 
pally to  a  war  with  Bondou  and  Bambarra.  The  river  is  here 
one  hundred  and  forty  yards  broad,  and  three  fathoms  deep, 
and  the  rise  and  fall  of  the  tide  at  this  season  of  the  year  is 
about  three  feet.  Earl}^  on  the  following  morning  we  weighed 
anchor  on  our  return;  and  having  no  places  to  call  at,  and 
being  favoured  Avith  a  fair  wind,  we  reached  Fattatenda  that 
evening.  Two  days  after  we  anchored  at  Bannatenda  on  account 
of  the  tide ;  but  the  governor  and  I  procured  horses,  and  rode 
from  that  place  to  Macarthy^s  Island,  which  we  reached  near 
midnight  on  the  20th,  having  been  absent  seventeen  days. 

On  reaching  Macarthy's  Island,  the  writer  found  that  Mr. 
and  Mrs,  Swallow  had  gone  down  to  St.  IVIary^s,  for  medical  aid 
and  change  of  air,  on  account  of  the  serious  illness  of  the  latter. 
Having,  therefore,  arranged  some  matters  connected  with  the 
mission,  he  proceeded  after  them  as  soon  as  possible;  and,  having 
a  good  run  down  the  river,  arrived  at  that  station  on  the  25th. 
Mrs.  Swallow,  on  the  previous  day,  had  been  prematurely  con- 
fined, and,  on  the  26th,  I  baptized  their  dear  infant  by  the 
name  of  Africanus,  one  hour  before  its  death;  and  in  a  few 
hours  I  had  to  commit  it  to  the  silent  tomb.  Two  days  after, 
the  mother  followed  her  babe  to  the  paradise  of  God. 

Mrs.  Swallow  was  a  native  of  Leeds,  where  she  was  born 
on  the  12th  of  December,  1816.  In  the  sixteenth  year  of  her 
age  she  was  awakened  to  a  sense  of  the  exceeding  sinfulness  of 
sin,  and  of  the  necessity  of  securing  the  favour  of  God,  under  a 
sermon  preached  by  the  late  Rev.  Thomas  Galland,  M.A.;  and 
shortly  after,  at  a  prayer-meeting  held  in  her  father's  house,,  she 
found  "  redemption  in  the  blood  of  Jesus ;  '^  when,  on  rising  from 
her  knees,  she  instantly  threw  her  arms  round  the  neck  of  her 
parent,  and  exclaimed,  "  O  my  dear  father,  praise  the  Lord  I  I 
feel  that  he  has  blotted  out  ray  sins  !  I  am  happy  !  O  praise 
the  Lord,  I  am  happy ! "  About  five  years  after  this  she  Avas 
united  in  marriage  to  Mr.  Swallow,  on  the  eve  of  his  embarka- 
tion for  the  Gambia,  in  the  autumn  of  1837 ;  and  she  continued 
to  labour  with  her  husband,  most  zealously  and  successfully, 
until  ill  health  obliged  him  to  return  to  England  in  the  early 
part  of  1839.     In  the  latter  part  of  the  following  year  she  a 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  557 

second  time  most  cheerfully  accompanied  him  to  Africa,  though 
she  was  then  a  mother,  and  brought  with  her  their  interesting 
little  infant  boy,  aged  only  six  months.  She,  however,  found 
time  to  attend  to  other  duties  besides  those  of  a  domestic  kind, 
and  was  often  seen  teaching  and  instructing  the  black  children, 
with  her  own  dear  child  playing  at  her  feet.  But  the  blighting 
effects  of  the  climate  were  soon  felt  by  this  European  infant ; 
and  after  several  months'  gradual  decline,  the  parents  were 
called  to  mourn  the  loss  of  their  first  and  only  child.  This, 
together  with  the  fatigues  and  anxieties  occasioned  by  its  pro- 
tracted illness,  greatly  affected  Mrs.  Swallow's  health  and 
spirits,  and  she  was  advised  to  return  to  England ;  but  she 
positively  refused,  until  Providence  should  point  out  the  path 
for  her  husband's  return  also.  She  therefore  resumed  her 
duties,  and,  as  far  as  her  health  would  allow,  was  not  weary  in 
well-doing.  On  the  21st  of  January  she  arrived  at  St.  Mary's, 
with  Mr.  Swallow,  hoping  the  change  would  prove  beneficial ; 
and  the  writer,  having  arrived  there  from  the  upper  river  a  few 
days  after,  had  an  opportunity  of  visiting  her  in  her  affliction, 
when  some  profitable  seasons  were  spent  in  spiritual  conversa- 
tion and  prayer.  But  she  gradually  sank  under  the  effects  of 
her  previous  affliction,  followed  as  it  was  by  her  confinement, 
and  that  by  other  diseases;  so  that,  though  every  thing 
was  done  that  skill  or  kindness  could  suggest,  it  was  to 
no  purpose. 

The  day  before  she  died,  she  expressed  herself  as  having 
peace,  but  not  joy ;  but  soon  afterwards  she  said,  "  Christ  is 
precious;"  and,  in  answer  to  some  interrogations  by  her  hus- 
band, respecting  her  father,  she  said,  "  Tell  him  not  to  regret 
having  given  his  daughter  to  be  the  wife  of  a  nnssiouary." 
Shortly  after  this,  the  writer  having  engaged  in  prayer  by  her 
bed-side,  she  expressed  herself  as  being  greatly  refreshed ;  and  on 
my  asking,  "And  what  shall  /tell  your  father?"  "Tell  him," 
said  she,  "  that  I  can  go  to  heaven  just  as  soon  from  the  banks 
of  the  Gambia  as  1  could  from  Leeds  in  Yorkshire."  The 
earthly  tabernacle  was  now  rapidly  falling,  and  her  weakness 
was  so  great  as  to  amount  to  positive  suffering.  Her  husband, 
feeling  this  most  acutely,  had  left  the  room,  and  she  requested 
me  to  call  him  in  shortly  after.  When  he  came  to  the  bed- 
side, she  looked  at  him,  and  very  sweetly  said,  "  William,  I  am 
going."  He  replied,  "  To  heaven,  my  love  ? "  when  she  said, 
"Yes,  yes;"  and  in  a  few  minutes  the  writer  closed  her  eyes 
in  death. 

She  died  at  St.  Mary's  early  in  the  morning  of  January  28th, 


558  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

1843,  aged  twenty-seven  3'ears,  and  was  interred  the  same 
evening  at  the  common  burying-ground.  Mrs.  Swallow  was  a 
pious,  amiable,  intelligent,  and  excellent  woman,  full  of  kind- 
ness and  affection,  ardently  attached  to  our  beloved  constitution 
and  to  the  cause  of  missions :  in  that  she  lived,  laboured, 
suffered,  and  died.  A  more  ample  account  of  this  admirable 
female  may  be  found  in  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Magazine  for 
April,  1846,  written  by  her  husband. 

On  the  23d  of  January,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Watkins,  with  Mr. 
George  Chapman,  arrived  at  the  Gold-Coast ;  and  the  following 
month  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Quick,  with  IVIr.  Richard  Amos,  landed  at 
Sierra-Leone.  But  the  staff  of  standard-bearers  at  the  Gold- 
Coast  was  again  reduced  about  this  time,  by  the  death  of  Mr. 
Shipman,  and  of  Mrs.  Watkins,  who  were  soon  added  to  the  list 
of  '^  those  who  had  gone  before." 

Samuel  A.  Shipman  was  the  son  of  a  Wesleyan  missionary, 
and  was  born  in  Jamaica,  November  2d,  1818,  where  his  father 
Avas  then  stationed.  From  a  child  he  was  amiable,  courteous, 
and  conscientious ;  and  such  was  his  regard  for  the  sacredness 
of  the  ministerial  office,  that  a  recollection  of  his  being  the  son 
of  a  minister  operated  considerably  upon  his  mind  as  a  restraint 
from  sin.  His  conversion  to  God  was  striking  and  manifest. 
His  preaching  was  solid,  yet  simple,  chaste,  and  clear ;  and  his 
discourses  were  delivered  with  zeal  and  energy.  Being  born  in 
the  mission-field,  and  the  son  of  a  missionary,  he  had  early  in 
life  felt  a  great  interest  in  the  cause  of  missions ;  and  Avhen  he 
became  a  candidate  for  the  work,  he  nobly  offered  himself  for 
Western  Africa,  being  anxious  to  "  preach  the  gospel  to  the 
regions  beyond."  His  arrival  at  the  Gold-Coast,  with  Mrs. 
Shipman  and  others,  eai^ly  in  1841,  has  already  been  mentioned. 
After  a  few  weeks^  residence  at  Cape-Coast  Castle,  Mr.  Shipman 
proceeded  to  British  Akra,  to  take  charge  of  that  important 
station,  where  he  continued  to  labour,  with  some  slight  inter- 
ruptions from  ill  health,  up  to  the  time  of  his  death.  In  a  letter 
to  his  father  from  this  station,  about  two  months  before  his 
lamented  removal,  he  expressed  his  thankfulness  that  he  and 
his  dear  wife  were  both  in  the  enjoA^ment  of  good  health,  though 
surrounded  by  sickness  and  death.  At  this  time,  in  addition  to 
his  other  work,  he  was  employed  in  compiling  a  vocabulary  of 
the  Fantee  language,  and  had  then  completed  a  translation  of  the 
Commandments,  the  Lord's  Prayer,  and  part  of  the  Conference 
Catechism.     Here  he  had  also  several  native  converts  under  a 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERllA-LEONE.  559 

course  of  training,  preparatory  to  their  becoming  native  teachers 
and  subordinate  agents  in  the  mission.  But,  in  the  midst  of  use- 
fuhiess,  this  faithful  and  zealous  herald  of  the  cross  was  removed 
from  earth  to  heaven.  lie  died  at  British  Akra,  February  22d, 
1843,  in  the  twenty-fifth  year  of  his  age,  and  the  third  of  his 
public  ministr3\     Ilis  last  words  were, — 

"  In  death,  as  life,  be  thou  my  Guide, 
And  save  me,  who  for  me  hast  died ! " 

Mrs.  Shipman  felt  this  stroke  very  severely,  and  embraced 
an  early  opportunity  of  returning  to  England. 

Mrs.  Watkins  died  at  Cape-Coast  Castle,  on  the  1st  of 
March,  1843.  She,  Avith  her  husband,  and  Mr.  George  Chap- 
man, had  landed  there  on  the  23d  of  the  previous  January, 
having  had  a  long  and  tedious  voyage.  A  fortnight  after  their 
arrival,  Mrs.  Watkins  was  attacked  with  a  disorder,  which 
defied  human  skill ;  and  she  gradually  grew  weaker,  until  she 
exchanged  mortality  for  life,  after  a  residence  in  Western 
Africa  of  only  thirty-nine  days. 

Early  in  February  we  held  our  annual  district-meeting  at 
St.  Mary's  on  the  Gambia,  when  we  were  all  of  one  heart  and 
of  one  mind,  but  found  considerable  difficulty  as  to  the  future 
appointments  of  the  stations,  from  the  paucity  of  missionaries, 
and  my  contemplated  return  home.  Two  days  after,  the 
"  Union"  sailed  for  England,  carrying  our  accounts,  district 
minutes,  &c.  On  the  29th  of  the  month,  the  "Sea  Witch" 
arrived  from  London,  bringing  Mr.  Lynn,  a  schoolmaster,  for 
St.  Mary's,  who  had  had  some  months'  training  at  Glasgow  ; 
and,  being  a  local  preacher,  he  was  a  valuable  acquisition. 

On  the  8th  of  April,  Her  Majesty's  frigate  the  "Madagascar" 
came  into  the  harbour  from  the  lecAvard,  with  the  commodore. 
Captain  Foote,  on  board.  In  the  evening  I  dined  with  him  at 
Government-House ;  and  the  next  day,  being  the  sabbath,  went 
on  board,  and  attended  divine  service,  and  was  much  pleased  with 
the  decorum  and  solemnity  manifested  by  all  parties.  About 
three  hundred,  including  the  officers  and  sailors,  were  present. 
Two  days  after,  I  dined  on  board  the  frigate,  and  gave  back  to 
Captain  Foote  the  two  letters  whicli  he  had  kindly  allowed  me 
to  copy,  and  which  he,  or  rather  one  of  his  officers,  had  received 
from  two  chiefs  at  Calabar,  relating  to  the  Slave-Trade.  One 
of  these  letters  I  introduce  here,  as  a  specimen  of  African 
correspondence   and  phraseology,  of  their  views  of  the  utility 


560  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

and  importance  of  the  British  squadron,  and  of  their  desire  to 
have  Christian  teachers  and  others  to  instruct  thera  in  the  arts 
of  civihzed  hfe. 

TO    COMMANDER    RAYMOND,   MAN-OF-WAR    SHIP. 

I  AM  very  glad  yon  come  up  and  settle  treaty  proper,  and  thank  yon  for  doing 
every  thing  right  for  me.  Yesterday  I  have  been  look  for  some  man-of-war  long 
time ;  and  when  French  man  come  here,  I  sent,  I  think,  last  December,  our  canoe 
to  let  you  know ;  but  too  much  wind  live  to  catch  Fernando  Po ;  and  not  we 
come  for  help,  me  keep  treaty  all  same.  Mr.  Blount  promise  ;  and  when  I  no 
give  slaves,  French  man-of-war  come  here  and  make  plenty  palaver  ;  but  I  no  will. 

One  thing  I  want  for  beg  your  Queen  Victoria.  I  have  too  much  man  now  I 
can't  sell  slaves,  and  don't  know  what  for  do  for  them  ;  but  if  I  can't  catch 
some  small  cotton-tree  and  coffee  to  grow,  and  man  to  teach  me,  and  to  make  all 
sugar-cane  live  for  countiy,  come  up  proper  and  sell  for  trade  side,  I  very  glad. 

Mr.  Blytli  tell  me  England  glad  for  send  man  to  teach  book,  and  teach  for 
understand  God  all  same  as  white  man.  If  queen  do  so,  I  glad  too  much ;  and  we 
must  try  to  do  good  for  England  always.  WTiat  I  think  I  want  for  dollar  side  is 
proper  India  red  romalls,  and  copper  rod.  I  no  want  fool  thing :  I  want  thing 
for  trade  side  for  England. 

I  must  try  to  do  good  thing  for  Queen  Victoria,  and  all  Englishman,  and  hope 
queen  and  young  prince  must  live  long  time  proper. 
I  am.  Sir, 

Yours  friend, 

(Signed)  King  Eyo  Honesty, 

Creek-  Town,  Calehar. 

I  thank  you  again  for  comme  and  done  all  things  proper  for  we,  and  glad  to  see 
you  very  often. 

Creek-Town,  1  December,  1842, 

On  the  5th  of  INIay  we  were  cheered  by  the  arrival  of  Messrs. 
Godtnan  and  Parsonson.  A  few  days  after,  we  held  a  special 
district-meeting,  in  reference  to  the  appointment  of  the  bre- 
thren, the  secretaries  having  left  it  with  us  to  arrange  in  the 
best  manner  we  could.  We  were  united  in  sentiment  and 
affection  ;  and  it  was  decided  that  INIr.  Swallow  should  return  to 
England  with  me,  though  he  would  have  risked  another  rainy 
season,  had  only  one  missionary  been  sent.  The  state  of  the 
missions  at  this  period,  at  ejich  of  the  districts  on  the  Coast,  may 
be  seen  in  the  "  Report  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary 
Society,  for  the  year  ending  April,  1843." 

There  were  several  native  agents,  at  each  of  the  stations, 
actively  co-operating  with  the  European  missionaries  in  preach- 
ing and  teaching  the  sublime  truths  of  our  holy  religion ;  and 
each  district  had  an  Institution  for  training  others  to  be  ulti- 
mately employed  in  the  same  work. 

The  Europeans  generally  on  the  Coast  feel  a  pleasure  in 
annually  subscribing  to  the  support  of  these  missions ;  and  the 
printed  Reports  will  furnish  many  names  of  the  highest  respect- 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  561 

ability,  as  well  as  not  a  few  natives,  who,  having  been  benefited 
temporally  as  well  as  spiritually  by  the  gospel,  feel  it  no  less  a 
duty  than  a  privilege  to  contribute  towards  sending  "  the  gospel 
to  the  regions  beyond." 

From  these  sources  the  following  sums  were  remitted  to  the 
parent  Society  during  the  year,  in  addition  to  the  regular 
weekly  and  quarterly  payments  and  other  collections  : — Sierra- 
Leone,  €154;  Gambia,  €184.  15*.  'dd.;  Gold-Coast,  £132. 
Qs.  M. :  total,  £471.  Is.Wd. 

The  author's  residence  in  Africa  was  now  drawing  to  a  close ; 
and  his  feelings  at  the  prospect  of  leaving  were  of  a  peculiar 
character.  More  than  ten  years  of  the  best  part  of  his  life  had 
been  spent  in  connexion  with  these  interesting  missions,  in 
which  he  had  travelled  many  thousands  of  miles  by  sea  and  by 
land ;  and,  in  the  prosecution  of  his  humble  labours,  had  often 
been  called  to  suffer  in  various  ways.  But  though  frequently 
"brought  low,"  the  Lord  had  as  often  "helped  him;"  and  he 
"  had  not  laboured  in  vain,  nor  spent  his  strength  for  nought." 
In  addition  to  those  special  and  Divine  interpositions  of  Provi- 
dence, and  that  "  grace  to  help  in  time  of  need,"  which  had  been 
imparted,  there  were  other,  though  less  important,  circumstances 
which  called  for  gratitude.  He  had  usually  had  the  hearty 
co-operation  of  his  brethren  in  the  ministry,  with  their  confi- 
dence and  esteem,  and  the  good-will  and  prayers  of  all  con- 
nected Avith  the  mission;  and,  generally,  he  may  say,  he  had 
had  the  respect  and  best  wishes  of  those  who  were  without.  A 
few  days  before  his  embarkation  for  England,  he  received  a 
kind  letter  from  some  influential  gentlemen,  requesting  his 
"acceptance  of  a  silver  tea-service,  with  an  inscription,  as  a 
memento  of  their  friendship  and  esteem."  This  document 
was  signed  by  seven  Europeans;  and  though,  as  they  state, 
they  formed  "  but  a  very  inconsiderable  number "  of  those 
M'ho  Avished  well  to  the  mission,  and  to  the  writer  as  one  of 
the  Society's  agents,  yet  these  seven  were  a  fair  representa- 
tion of  the  European  residents  at  the  Gambia,  as  four  of  them 
were  holding  some  of  the  highest  official  situations  under  Her 
Majesty's  Government,  both  in  the  civil,  judicial,  and  military 
department,  and  the  other  three  were  respectable  merchants, 
two  of  Avhom  were  magistrates. 

A  few  days  after  this  occurrence,  and  the  author's  grateful 
acknowledgments,  he  engaged  a  passage  on  board  a  French 
barque,  the  "Mexicain,"  bound  for  Havre-de-Grace;  and  on 
Sunday,  May  21st,  delivered  his  farewell  sermon  in  the  chapel 
where   are   deposited   the   remains  of  his   dear  wife   and  two 

o  o 


562  "WESTERN    COAST    OE    AEUICA. 

lovely  cliildreii,  and  where  lie  had  so  many  times  proclaimed 
"  Jesus  and  the  resurrection/^  Mr.  Swallow  preached  in  the 
evening :  he,  too,  had  been  called  to  suffer  in  a  similar  way. 

In  the  narrative  of  these  missions  already  given,  it  will  have 
been  seen  that  the  writer,  having  been  the  senior  missionary  at 
the  Gambia  for  some  years,  had  had  charge  of  the  different 
stations  on  this  part  of  the  Coast ;  and  in  his  capacity  of  general 
superintendent  had  been  much  engaged  at  different  times  in 
the  erection  aud  superintending  of  school-houses,  chapels,  and 
other  mission  buildings.  His  last  act  in  this  department  of 
labour  was  to  enclose  a  small  piece  of  ground  at  the  common 
place  of  interment,  which  is  about  three  quarters  of  a  mile 
from  the  town,  and  of  which  a  representation  is  here  given. 
In  the  enclosed  space  were  laid  the  bodies  of  the  Rev.  Thomas 
Wall,  Mrs.  Swallow  and  her  infant  babe,  and  since  then 
of  one  or  two  other  missionaries.  The  railing,  it  will  be  seen, 
is  of  iron,  placed  upon  a  pedestal  or  foundation  of  stone,  vrith  an 
entrance  in  the  form  of  an  iron  gate ;  and  the  attitude  of  the 
Negro  will  be  sufficiently  intelligible  without  further  explanation. 

Several  of  the  old  residents  at  St.  Mary's  have  had  small 
pieces  of  ground  enclosed  for  themselves  or  their  families, 
at  a  sufficient  distance  from  the  sea-side ;  and  as  two  or  three 
Wesleyan  missionaries  had  been  interred  at  this  place  before 
the  author's  arrival  at  the  Gambia  early  in  1833,  and  no  one 
was  able  to  point  out  the  precise  spot  where  they  were  buried, 
he  thought  it  due  to  others  who  might  fall  in  the  field,  that 
their  bodies  also  should  be  preserved  undisturbed  from  the  raging 
elements,  and  from  prowling  beasts ;  and  was  resolved  that 
something  should  be  done,  however  plain,  to  distinguish  and 
point  out  the  missionary's  grave.  This  little  act  of  justice 
would  have  been  performed  at  an  earlier  period,  had  not  several 
of  his  fellow-labourers  been  interred  in  the  chapel ;  but  as  this 
was  becoming  inconvenient,  and  others  preferred  being  buried 
at  the  usual  place  of  interment,  the  time  had  now  arrived  to  do 
something  to  procure  a  suitable  place. 

The  day  of  the  writer's  departure  was  now  at  hand ;  and  on 
Saturday  morning,  May  27th,  1843,  he  went  on  board  the 
''  Mexicain,"  accompanied  by  a  host  of  friends  and  well- 
wishers.  Many  of  the  native  converts  had  loaded  us  with 
presents  of  various  kinds,  in  token  of  their  affectionate  regards, 
and  they  also  "  accompanied  us  to  the  ship  ;"  and  "  the  adieus 
and  farewells^'  were  numerous  and  affecting.  Several  of  the 
natives,  also,  and  other  friends,  sailed  with  us  a  few  miles 
towards  the  Atlantic,  and  then  returned  in  a  small  sloop,  which 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


563 


had  been  kindly  lent  for  the  occasion ;  and  we  had  again  to  say, 
"Farewell."  The  writer  has  often  heard  missionaries  speak  of 
"  the  parting  scene,"  when  called  to  leave  their  native  land  and 
friends,  probably  never  to  see  them  more  till  the  resurrection 
morn ;  and  he  is  no  stranger  to  those  emotions,  having  thrice 
passed  through  the  ordeal, — on  one  occasion,  it  will  be  recol- 
lected, under  very  peculiar  circumstances ;  and  none  but  a  mis- 
sionary can  tell  the  feelings  of  his  heart,  when  he  is  in  the  act 
of  bidding  adieu  to  the  nearest  and  dearest  on  earth,  with  one 
foot  on  land,  and  the  other  on  the  vessel  that  is  to  bear  him  far 
away.  But  none  of  these  scenes,  nor  all  of  them  put  together, 
came  up  to  that  which  it  cost  the  Avriter  to  leave  Africa.  Many 
a  lingering  look  did  he  give,  as  he  Avalked  the  deck,  after  our 
friends  had  returned  :  and  the  telescope  was  again  and  again 
taken  up,  till  the  sun  went  down,  and  the  town  of  Bathurst  and 
St.  Mary^s  were  out  of  sight.  He  then  retired  into  his  cabin  to 
ask  the  Divine  blessing  upon  these  British  settlements,  and 
upon  the  mission-stations,  and  presented  himself  afresh  to  God. 

On  the  afternoon  of  the  29fch  we  anchored  at  Goree,  our 
captain  having  to  call  there  for  a  short  time.  We  found  no  less 
than  seven  French  men-of-war  lying  in  the  harbour,  which,  with 
several  merchant  vessels,  presented  rather  a  lively  appearance. 
Here  we  were  detained  somewhat  longer  than  was  expected, 
from  the  following  very  annoying  and  vexatious  circumstance  : 
The  writer  had  with  him  a  little  black  boy  of  promising  charac- 
ter, the  son  of  one  of  our  local  pi^eachers  at  St.  Mary^s.  His 
parents  had  formerly  resided  at  Goree,  and  Avere  slaves 
belonging  to  a  Mulatto  lady  ;  but  they  had  for  many  years 
lived  at  the  British  settlement  at  the  Gambia,  and  had  both 
obtained  their  emancipation  by  the  payment  of  a  certain  sum  of 
money.  This  boy  was  born  at  St.  Mary^s,  and  had  never  seen 
Goree  in  his  life ;  but  on  going  ashore,  the  lady  claimed  him  as 
her  slave. 

The  following  letter  addressed  to  the  governor,  will  explain 
the  particulars  of  the  former  part  of  this  unexpected  affair : — 

"  Mexicain,"  off  Goree,  May  31s/,  1843. 

Sir, — I  regret  that  a  sense  of  duty  compels  me  to  complain  of  the  conduct  of 
one  of  the  civil  officers  under  your  excellency's  authority  ;  I  refer  to  M.  Duhour- 
dieu,  collector  of  customs. 

I  am  a  passenger  for  England,  hy  way  of  France,  on  hoard  the  above-named 
vessel,  and  have  with  me  a  servant  boy,  about  twelve  years  of  age.  We  left 
St.  Mary's  on  the  27th  instant,  and  anchored  at  this  port  on  the  evening  of 
the  29th. 

Yesterday  forenoon  1  went  ashore,  in  company  with  my  fellow-passengers  and  my 

2  o  2 


564  WESTEllN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

servant  ])oy ;  we  walked  ahout  the  town  for  some  time,  called  upon  one  or  two 
friends,  and  were  preparing  to  go  on  board  again,  when  our  captain  informed  us 
that  there  was  some  talk  about  my  servant  being  a  slave  belonging  to  a  lady  of 
colour  of  the  name  of  Degrigny.  I  told  him  that  such  a  thing  was  impossible,  as 
the  boy  was  born  at  the  British  settlement  of  St.  Man's,  Gambia,  and  had  never 
before  been  to  Goree.  However,  at  the  captain's  request,  I  went  with  him  to  the 
collector :  when  the  passport  for  myself  and  servant  was  presented,  he  coolly 
replied,  that  "  I  might  proceed,  but  that  he  must  see  the  servant  before  he  could  give 
him  permission."  I  then,  with  the  captain  and  the  Rev.  William  Swallow,  accom- 
panied him  to  the  wharf,  (where  the  boy  was  waiting  to  go  on  board  the  ship,) 
showed  him  the  servant,  told  him  that  he  was  born  at  St.  Mary's,  Gaml)ia,  and  again 
showed  him  the  passport  with  the  boy's  name  as  well  as  my  own  upon  it ;  but  all 
this  was  of  no  use ;  he  said  the  boy  must  go  to  the  house  of  Madame  Degrigny, 
and  requested  the  harbour-master  to  take  him.  I  remonstrated  against  this,  and 
said  I  could  not  allow  him  to  be  taken  into  capti\ity ;  that  he  was  as  much  a  Bri- 
tish subject  as  I  was ;  and  once  more  referred  him  to  the  passport,  and  asked  him 
what  was  the  use  of  such  a  document,  if  I  was  to  be  subjected  to  all  these  annoy- 
ances. But  to  all  that  I  said  a  deaf  ear  was  turned ;  and  the  collector  insisted 
upon  the  boy  being  taken,  both  against  his  own  will  and  also  mine ;  and  immedi- 
ately called  a  sergeant  from  the  guard-house.  Seeing  this,  I  made  no  fiulher 
remonstrance,  though  the  boy  still  refused  to  go,  till  requested  by  me,  with  the 
assurance  that  I  would  accompany  him,  which  I  did,  as  did  also  the  captain  and  the 
Rev.  W.  Swallow.  A  long  discussion  took  place  between  the  officer  sent,  the  cap- 
tain, and  Madame  Degrigny ;  the  particidars  I  am  ignorant  of,  as  I  did  not  under- 
stand the  language  ;  the  boy,  however,  whh  myself,  ultimately  left  the  house  and 
came  on  board. 

Your  excellency  will,  I  trust,  excuse  this  detailed  account  of  a  most  vexatious 
affair.  British  subjects,  and  that  especially  from  an  English  colony  so  contiguous 
as  the  Gambia,  would  have  expected  different  treatment ;  and  I  therefore  feel  that 
I  have  just  cause  to  complain  of  M.  Dubourdieu's  insulting  conduct  to  me  per- 
sonally ;  and  I  further  beg  most  earnestly  and  solemnly  to  protest  against  my 
sers-ant  being  forced  along  the  streets,  under  a  guard,  at  the  dictation  of  M. 
Dubourdieu,  and  to  please  the  caprice  of  Madame  Degrigny,  who  never  saw  the  boy 
in  her  life  before  yesterday. 

Craving  your  excellency's  kind  interference  and  protection  during  my  shoit  stay 
under  your  excellency's  administration, 

I  have  the  honour  to  be,  Sir, 

Your  obedient  humble  servant, 

William  Fox. 
To  His  Excellency  Governor  Dagorne,  ^'c.  &;c.  iSj'c,  Goree. 

To  that  letter  I  received  the  following  reply : — 

GoREE,  May  o\st,  1843, 
Sir, — I  have  received  the  letter  which  you  did  me  the  honour  to  WTite  on  the 
subject  of  a  black  boy,  who  accompanied  you  from  St.  Mary's.  I  do  not  doubt 
that  the  jn-oceedings  which  you  complain  of  would  appear  to  you  unnatural,  were 
you  not  ignorant  of  the  French  language  and  M.  Dubourdieu  of  the  English  lan- 
guage, which  has  caused  a  misunderstanding. 

The  fact  is,  it  was  the  duty  of  the  officer  to  assure  himself,  at  the  time,  if  the 
claims  of  Madame  Degrigny  were  legal  or  not.  In  the  latter  case  your  servant 
would  be  completely  at  liberty  to  go  at  large. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  565 

Slavery  is  uot  yet  abolished  in  our  settlement,  ami,  whatever  my  opinion  may  be 
on  this  point,  the  slave  is  legally  the  property  of  its  master. 

The  proximity  of  St.  Mary's,  where  the  law  is  altogether  opposed,  will  cause  our 
slaves  to  desert,  and  the  desertion  is  legally  an  offence  which  cannot  affect  the 
rights ;  then,  if  your  servant  is  born  at  Goree  a  slave,  his  owner  has  the  right  of 
claiming  him,  and  we  must  aid  him  in  ol)taining  his  property.  The  case  must, 
liowever,  necessarily  appear  before  the  courts,  where  it  will  be  judged  with  every 
diUgence  and  imjjartiality ;  and  if  there  is  not  suthcient  proof,  our  courts  shall  not 
permit  a  free  individual  to  be  made  a  slave :  and  this  is  my  reply  to  Madame 
Degrigny. 

When  you  thought  it  necessary  to  go  to  Madame  Degrigny's,  I  must  repeat  to  you 
that  it  was  owing  to  a  misunderstanding  on  your  part ;  and  bad  you  understood  the 
question,  I  dare  say  you  would  have  been  the  first  to  atford  an  investigation. 

Agree  with  me,  Su-,  in  the  assurance  of  my  distinguished  consideration, 

(Signed)  Z.  Dagorne, 

The  Commandant  of  Goree. 

To  tlie  Rev.  TV.  Fox. 

Shortly  after  the  receipt  of  this  letter,  I  received  a  summons 
to  attend  a  bench  of  magistrates  at  seven  o'clock  on  the  follow- 
ing morning.  The  governor  presided,  with  three  other  judges. 
Several  witnesses  kindly  came  forward^  who  declared  that  the 
boy  was  born  at  St.  Mary's  :  this  was  contradicted  by  two  or 
three  witnesses,  produced  by  Madame  Degrigny.  After  a  while 
the  judges  retired  for  a  short  time  to  consult,  then  came  into 
the  court  with  the  decision ;  which  was,  in  substance,  "  that  the 
boy  was  born  at  St.  Mary's,  but  it  was  a  short  time  before  his 
mother  purchased  her  freedom ;  and,  that  being  the  case,  the 
child  was  the  legal  property  and  slave  of  the  owner  of  his 
mother."  I  protested  against  this,  but  it  was  to  no  purpose ; 
and  he  was  not  allowed  to  proceed  Avith  me  to  England,  unless  I 
ransomed  him ;  which  I  did  by  paying  one  hundred  and  fifty 
dollars,  and  four  more  for  the  making  out  his  manumission  ! 

I  sent  the  whole  particulars  to  the  English  authorities  at  the 
Gambia,  and  furnished  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Committee 
with  them,  and  was  in  hopes  that  the  matter  would  not  be 
allowed  thus  quietly  to  drop.  But  I  heard  nothing  more  of  the 
case,  except  expressions  of  regret  and  indignation  at  the  con- 
duct of  the  French  at  Goree  on  this  occasion. 

We  left  this  miserable  place  between  three  and  four  o'clock 
P.M.  on  the  1st  of  June,  and  proceeded  on  our  voyage.  It 
is,  however,  due  to  state,  that  two  or  three  Frenchmen,  who 
frequently  visited  the  Gambia,  and  to  whom  the  waiter  was 
known,  avoAved  their  sympathy  for  him,  and  their  regret  at 
the  annoyance  to  which  he  had  been  subjected,  and  especially  at 
the  decision  of  the  court.  One  of  them,  in  expressing  his 
indignation,  in  imperfect  English,  said,  "  Mr.  Fox,  I  do  think 


566  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

this  Goree  is  de  worst  and  last  place  God  Almighty  did  make." 
The  population  of  this  French  settlement  was  about  seven 
thousand,  of  whom  six  thousand  were  held  in  bondage;  that 
is,  they  were  slaves,  toiling  every  day  for  another's  benefit,  and 
their  children  had  to  do  the  same.  It  afi'orded  the  writer  plea- 
sure, after  all,  that  he  was  able  to  rescue  the  little  boy  from  the 
unnatural  grasp  of  this  female  owner  of  human  beings. 

On  Sunday,  June  4th,  we  held  divine  service  in  the  main 
cabin,  but  Avere  few  in  number ;  Mr.  Swallow,  myself,  Mr.  A. 
Kendall,  who  was  a  fellow-passenger,  and  the  African  boy,  being 
all  that  were  present.  On  Wednesday  afternoon,  the  17th,  we 
observed  a  good-sized  vessel  coming  before  the  wind.  "When 
she  neared  us  a  little,  our  captain  hoisted  his  colours;  but  it 
was  some  time  before  our  neighbour  had  the  civility  to  do  the 
same,  which  caused  us  to  be  a  little  suspicious  as  to  her  real 
character;  and  our  suspicion  was  rather  increased  by  a  sight  of 
the  Spanish  flag,  which  was  exhibited  when  about  two  miles 
distant.  At  this  period  we  perceived  a  number  of  persons  in 
the  fore  part  of  the  ship  busily  engaged  in  what  we  supposed 
Avas  a  preparation  for  an  attack  upon  us ;  and  this  supposition 
was  strengthened  when  she  had  altered  her  course,  and  was 
making  towards  us,  "VVe  were  now  apprehensive  that  she  was  a 
pirate  ;  and  a  consultation  was  held  as  to  the  plan  vre  should 
adopt,  in  case  our  fears  should  be  found  to  be  correct.  The 
captain  gave  it  as  his  decided  opinion,  that  it  would  be  worse 
than  useless  for  us  to  make  any  resistance ;  for  though  ours  was 
a  good-sized  barque,  and  we  had  a  full  complement  of  men  on 
board,  besides  the  passengers,  yet  we  had  no  guns  connected 
with  the  ship,  and  scared}''  any  fire-arms  or  other  weapons  of 
any  description,  except  a  sword  and  one  or  two  pistols  in  the 
captain's  cabin,  belonging  to  himself.  We  therefore  resolved  to 
muster  all  hands  on  deck,  and  called  up  the  watch  from  below, 
in  order  to  exhibit  our  strength ;  and  having  a  rough  sailor's 
jacket,  which  I  had  purchased  for  sea-voyages,  I  put  this  on, 
and,  with  a  spy-glass  under  my  arm,  took  my  stand  or  walked 
the  deck  with  the  captain  and  mates.  Mr.  Swallow  did  the 
same ;  and  we  thus  presented  a  tolerable  appearance  as  to  what 
we  hoped  would  be  considered  officers  and  crcAV.  Our  young 
passenger  was  dreadfully  alarmed  and  excited,  could  not  eat  his 
dinner,  and,  having  some  hard  cash  by  him,  he  went  and  hid  his 
money;  adding,  he  was  resolved  they  should  not  have  that,  even 
if  they  killed  him. 

It  must  be  confessed  that  our  situation  at  this  juncture 
WHS  one  of  painful  anxiety.      The  two  missionaries  on   board 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  567 

had  not  forgotten  "  the  throne  of  grace  :"  it  was  "  a  time  of 
need,"  and  they  laid  the  precious  promises  before  their 
unchangeable  and  Almighty  Lord,  and  as  calmly  as  possible 
awaited  the  result.  But  whether  the  Spanish  barque  which 
was  now  within  one  mile  of  us  was  a  friend  or  a  foe,  we  knew 
not,  though  we  had  reason  to  fear  the  latter  was  the  case  : 
every  moment  was  precious,  and  every  succeeding  moment  we 
expected  a  shot,  which  would  decide  the  point.  She  now 
approached  very  near  to  us ;  and,  supposing  (or  hoping  rather) 
that  she  oidy  wished  to  speak  to  us,  our  captain  close  hauled 
our  ship,  so  as  to  afford  an  opportunity  of  inquiring  our  longi- 
tude, if  that  was  the  object  of  such  close  quarters.  But 
not  a  Avord  was  uttered,  though  quite  near  enough  to  speak ; 
and  after  eyeing  us  with  their  spy-glasses  most  minutely,  they 
at  length  bore  away  a  few  yards  from  our  stern ;  and  we  were 
glad  to  turn  our  backs  upon  them,  and  moved  on  in  our  course. 
It  was  the  opinion  of  our  captain  and  his  othcers  that  this 
luas  a  vessel  of  piratical  character;  for  such  strange  conduct  he 
had  never  witnessed  before ;  and  he  attributed  our  not  being 
molested  to  the  size  of  our  barque,  and  the  number  of  people  we 
had  on  board  ;  but  intimated  that  it  was  probable  she  might 
return  when  the  sun  went  down,  and  fall  upon  us  duriug  the 
night.  This,  however,  was  happilj^  not  the  case.  We  were  at 
the  time  in  the  latitude  of  tlie  Madeiras,  and  almost  west  of  the 
Azores,  and  for  a  week  did  not  make  much  progress,  owing  to 
calms  and  baffling  winds.  These  are  tedious;  a  terrific  storm  is 
perhaps  worse ;  the  prospect  of  shipwreck,  in  the  midst  of  the 
Atlantic,  or  on  a  lee-shore,  worse  still ;  but  ivorst  of  all  the 
"perils  of  the  sea,"  is  that  of  being  boarded  by  a  pirate  ! 

On  the  25th  we  were  passing  between  the  islands ;  Fayal  and 
Pico  being  on  our  lee-beam,  the  peak  of  the  latter  was  seen 
above  the  clouds,  and  looked  majestic.  July  commenced  with 
a  splendid  breeze,  and  our  gallant  barque  showed  her  sailing 
qualities  in  fine  style,  going  at  nine,  ten,  and  ten  and  a  half 
knots  an  hour.  On  the  3d  of  this  month  we  Avere  in  soundings 
fifty-six  fathoms  deep;  three  days  after  we  landed  at  Havre-de- 
Grace  in  France,  where  we  were  detained  a  day  or  two ;  we  then 
embarked  on  board  the  steamer  "  Sphinx "  for  Loudon,  which 
we  reached  on  the  10th,  thankful  to  God  for  all  his  mercies. 
On  Saturday,  15th,  the  author  once  more  arrived  at  Smethwick; 
and,  as  may  be  well  supposed,  under  peculiar  circumstances  and 
emotions. 


CHAPTER  XXIV. 

THE  GOLD-COAST,  GAMBIA,  AND  SIERRA-LEONE. 
(1843—1850.) 

The  Sheffield  Conference — Departure  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove,  with  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Badger,  for  Sierra-Leone ;  and  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Annear,  with  Mr.  Timothy  T. 
Greaves,  and  Mr.  John  Martin,  for  the  Gold-Coast — Death  of  Mr.  Symons  at 
the  Gambia,  of  Mrs.  Badger  at  Sierra- Leone,  and  of  Mr.  Watkins  at  the  Gold- 
Coast — The  Arrival  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Brooking  at  Cape-Coast-Castle — Letter 
from  Mr.  George  Chapman  at  Coomassie — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Quick's  Return  to 
England — Death  of  Mr.  Greaves  at  British  Akrah — The  Gambia  Mission — 
Mr.  Benjamin  Chapman's  Arrival  there — Mr.  Freeman  in  England,  with  his 
Defence  of  himself  and  the  Mission — His  Departure  for  the  Coast  with  Mr. 
Wharton,  a  West  Indian — Return  of  Mr.  George  Chapman — Departure  of 
Messrs.  Raston,  Wajle,  and  Griffiths  for  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Amos's  Retmni 
to  England — Mr.  and  Mrs.  Parsonson's  Arrival  at  the  Gambia — Mr.  and  Mrs. 
.\llen,  with  Messrs.  Findlay  and  Addison,  sail  for  the  Gold-Coast — Return  of 
Mr.  Brooking — Death  of  Mrs.  Raston  and  of  Mr.  Wayte  at  Sierra-Leone,  of  Mr. 
Findlay  at  the  Gold-Coast,  and  of  Mr.  Lynn  the  Schoolmaster  at  the  Gambia — 
Return  to  this  Country  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Annear  and  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove — 
Departure  for,  and  Arrival  at,  Sien-a-Leone  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wrench,  with  Mr. 
Lewis — Messrs.  John  Thomas,  Harrop,  and  Hillard  safely  arrive  at  the  Gold- 
Coast — Death  of  Mrs.  Godman — Return  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wrench,  Mrs.  Par- 
sonson,  and  Mr.  David  Griffiths — Mr.  Raston's  third  Embarkation  for  Western 
Africa,  accompanied  by  Mrs.  Raston  and  Messrs.  Richard  Hart  and  Purslow — 
Arrival  of  Messrs.  Meadows  and  Lean  at  the  Gambia — Return  to  England  of 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Allen  and  Mr.  Martin — Death  of  Mr.  Lean  at  the  Gambia — And 
of  Mr.  Purslow  at  Sierra-Leone — Mr.  Badger  and  the  Gambia  Mission — 
Death  of  the  benevolent  Dr.  Lindoe — Arrival  of  Mr.  Garry  at  Sierra-Leone — 
And  of  Mr.  Frederick  Hart  at  the  Gold-Coast — Return  to  England  of  Messrs. 
Addison,  Thomas,  Harrop,  and  Hillard — Extracts  from  the  annual  Report, 
with  the  Statistics  of  the  Stations — Present  Extent  of  the  Society's  Operations 
on  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa. 

Having  traced  the  rise  and  progress  of  these  missions  from 
the  commencement  up  to  and  beyond  the  period  when  they 
became  three  separate  districts,  under  the  head  of  whicli  were 
several  '^  central  or  principal  stations  called  circuits/^  each  hav- 
ing connected  with  it  an  European  missionary  or  native  teacher, 
with  a  number  of  preaching-places;  and  having  at  different 
stages  of  the  narrative  given  the  statistics,  with  the  number  of 
agents  employed,  embracing  the  number  of  members  in  the 
Society,  with  the  scholars  in  the  schools,  &c. ;  our  task  in 
sketching  the  history  of  these  missions  fur  the  few  subsequent 
}cars  will  be  comparatively  short  and  easy. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  569 

It  will  be  seen,  from  the  close  of  the  preceding  chapter,  that 
the  writer  and  his  colleague,  Mr.  Swallow,  arrived  in  England 
only  a  week  or  two  previous  to  the  annual  Methodist  Confer- 
ence, which  was  that  year  held  in  the  town  of  Sheffield,  We 
attended  its  sittings,  and  both  of  us  received  appointments  to 
English  circuits. 

The  departure  of  Messrs.  Dove  and  Badger  for  their  former 
sphere  of  labour  was  mentioned  by  the  committee  in  their  Report. 
The  brethren  on  this  occasion  were  both  married,  and  the  whole 
party  arrived  safely  at  Sierra-Leone  on  the  21st  of  July,  1843. 

About  the  middle  of  October,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Annear,  witli 
Mr.  Timothy  T.  Greaves  and  Mr.  John  Martin,  embarked  on 
board  the  "  Robert  Heddle/'  for  the  Gold- Coast,  which  place 
they  reached  on  the  12th  of  December.  Mr.  Annear  had  spent 
nearly  a  year  and  a  half  at  Sierra-Leone,  from  which  he  was 
obliged  to  return  to  England  for  a  change  of  air ;  and,  after 
remaining  in  this  country  a  few  months,  most  readily  re- 
embarked  for  the  Gold-Coast. 

The  rains  of  that  year  passed  away  without  any  death  in  the 
mission  families;  but  it  is  our  painful  duty  to  record  three 
removals  from  earth  to  heaven,  which  took  place  soon  after, 
though  at  the  best  season  of  the  year.  These  were  Mr. 
Symons  at  the  Gambia,  Mrs.  Badger  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  Mr. 
Watkins  at  the  Gold-Coast. 

Samuel  Symons  was  born  in  London  in  the  month  of  April, 
1814 ;  and  when  about  eleven  years  of  age  he  removed  with  his 
parents  to  Cornwall,  and  was  afterwards  apprenticed  to  a  draper 
at  Penzance.  At  the  expiration  of  his  apprenticeship,  be 
returned  to  the  metropolis,  and  subsequently  resided  at  Exeter, 
where,  in  the  year  1835,  he  became  truly  converted  to  God.  A 
sermon  preached  by  the  Rev.  Walter  Lawry  was  the  means, 
under  the  Divine  Spirit,  which  led  to  tliis  happy  change. 
Three  years  after  this,  he  returned  to  Penzance,  having  now 
commenced  calling  sinners  to  repentance ;  a  work  in  which  he 
took  great  delight.  In  order  to  his  being  acceptable  and  suc- 
cessful, he  devoted  a  considerable  portion  of  time  to  study  and 
mental  improvement,  believing  that  he  was  called  of  God  to  be 
a  minister  of  the  word  of  life.  After  the  usual  examinations, 
he  w^as  proposed  to  and  accepted  by  the  Conference  of  1841; 
and  in  the  autumn  of  that  year  was  sent  by  the  Missionary 
Committee  to  the  Gambia.  His  heart  had  been  set  on  Western 
Africa,  and  he  preferred  this  appointment  "above  all  other 
places."     The  Avriter  had  the  })lcasure  of  meeting  him  on  liis 


570 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    At'RICA. 


arrival  at  St.  Mary's,  in  the  month  of  December  of  that  year, 
and  was  subsequently  an  eye-witness  to  his  studious  habits, 
fervent  piety,  and  indefatigable  zeal  in  spreading  the  Saviour's 
name,  in  building  up  God's  people,  and  leading  penitent  sinners 
to  Christ.  Mr.  Symons  took  great  interest  in  the  new  mission 
at  Ngabantang,  on  the  continent,  a  little  below  Macarthy's 
Island;  and  in  promoting  the  object  of  the  Institution  at  the 
latter  station,  he  took  several  journeys. 

Some  time  after  his  arrival  at  the  Gambia,  he  had  charge  of 
this  important  branch  of  the  Society's  operations;  and  his  judi- 
cious conduct  and  management  of  the  royal  pupils,  who  were 
placed  under  his  care,  were  alike  creditable  to  himself,  advan- 
tageous to  them,  and  gratifying  to  his  brethren. 

An  interesting  letter  from  this  devoted  missionary,  dated 
April,  1843,  appeared  in  the  "  Quarterly  Papers  "  for  Septem- 
ber in  that  year,  giving  an  account  of  the  conversion  of  a 
Mohammedan  to  the  faith  of  Christ,  Avith  some  further  par- 
ticulars of  the  mission,  and  asking  for  more  help  to  meet  the 
urgent  claims  of  jMacarthy's  Island.  In  the  month  of  June  he 
again  wrote  to  the  Missionary  Committee  from  the  same  place ; 
and  refers  to  "  the  new  mission  at  Ngabantang,"  quoting  a  letter 
from  Pierre  Sallah,  one  of  the  native  teachers,  m  ho  was  stationed 
there,  with  some  encouraging  account  of  the  spirit  of  hearing 
among  the  inhabitants  of  that  locality ;  and  adding,  "  I  think, 
from  the  foregoing  letter,  that  Pierre  is  labouring  among  a 
people  prepared  of  the  Lord,  and  that  we  should  be  criminal 
were  we  to  neglect  them." 

During  the  rains,  Mr.  Symons  had  several  attacks  of  fever, 
which  greatly  prostrated  his  strength ;  and  though  he  took  a 
short  journey  in  the  government-steamer  which,  on  the  29th  of 
November,  left  Macarthy's  Island  for  the  upper  river,  yet  he 
returned  rather  worse  than  better.  But  in  all  his  letters  to  his 
friends  in  England,  he  expressed  himself  as  being  happy  in 
God,  and  delighted  with  his  work  as  a  missionary.  In  one,  refer- 
ring to  heaven,  he  says,  "  How  happy  have  I  been  when  anticipat- 
ing the  meeting  with  my  dear  friends  there,  and  for  ever  rest- 
ing from  my  labours  !  And  how  has  my  soul  been  enkindled, 
when  I  have  thought  that  I  may  throughout  eternity  see  some 
poor  Africans  raised  thither  through  God's  blessing  on  my 
labours !" 

The  last  entry  in  his  journal  is  dated  "  January  7th,  1844," 
and  is  as  follows :  "  Since  I  last  wrote,  I  have  had  another 
attack  of  sickness.  I  was  taken  ill  on  the  30th  ult.,  and  am 
now  nearlv  recovered.     Praise  the   Lord  !     At  the  watchnight 


THE    GOLD-COASTj    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE,  571 

service  one  woman  was  converted  ;  another,  on  Friday;  to-day, 
one  who  had  lost  her  confidence  was  restored.  May  the  Lord 
carry  on  his  work  !  God,  of  his  mercy,  has  preserved  me 
through  another  year.  How  numerous  have  been  the  mercies 
I  have  received,  the  privileges  I  have  enjoyed ;  but  yet  how 
cold  is  my  heart !  O,  my  ingratitude  !  I  am  an  astonishment 
to  myself,  that  I  can  receive  so  many  benefits  from  God,  and 
be  so  insensible.  O  Lord,  fill  my  heart  with  thy  love,  then  I 
shall  feel  my  obligation,  and  love  thee  in  return !  '^  He 
acknowledged  that  "  he  had  many  privations  and  many  trials ; 
but  he  would  not  leave  his  beloved  charge,"  he  said,  "  if  any 
one  would  guarantee  him  a  thousand  a  year  to  live  in  England, 
dear  as  his  home  and  friends  were  to  him." 

But  his  days  of  usefulness  and  labour  liere  below  were  now 
"numbered."  On  Sunday,  the  14tli  of  January,  he  preached 
in  the  forenoon,  with  great  liberty  and  feeling,  and  much  longer 
than  usual ;  so  that  Mr.  Parsonson  had  finished  at  Fattota,  and 
returned  to  George-Town  just  as  he  had  concluded.  He  after- 
wards said  to  his  colleague,  "  I  scarcely  knew  when  to  give 
over."  On  Monday  evening  he  met  his  class,  as  usual ;  and,  as 
two  of  the  members  had  died  but  a  few  days  previous,  he  dwelt 
on  the  nearness  of  death,  and  the  necessity  of  being  fully  pre- 
pared for  it.  The  Tuesday  was  occupied  in  closing  his  accounts 
for  the  quarter.  On  Wednesday  he  was  poorly,  and  early  retired 
to  rest.  Mr.  Godman  arrived  from  St.  Mary's  that  evening, 
bringing  some  letters  for  him  from  his  friends  in  England,  which 
afi'orded  him  great  pleasure.  On  Thursday  morning  he  pro- 
ceeded with  his  accounts,  and  had  engaged  a  passage  in  a 
vessel  for  St.  Mary's,  for  the  benefit  of  the  sea-breeze;  but 
early  in  the  forenoon  he  was  seized  with  a  severe  fit  of  ague, 
with  other  unfavourable  symptoms.  Medical  aid  was  immedi- 
ately called  in ;  but  it  was  of  no  avail.  The  disease  now 
assumed  the  type  of  the  yellow  fever;  and  on  the  Friday  he 
was  apprehensive  of  its  fatal  efl'ects.  On  that  day,  addressing 
the  doctor,  he  said,  "  Now,  doctor,  what  do  you  think  of  me  ? 
Do  not  deceive  me,  nor  be  afraid  of  telling  me  the  truth ;  for 
I  am  not  afraid  of  dying."  He  several  times  requested  his 
brethren  to  pray  with  him,  when  the  Divine  presence  was 
graciously  vouchsafed  in  a  remarkable  manner.  On  one  of 
these  occasions  his  own  servant  was  quite  overwhelmed,  and 
sobbed  aloud.  During  the  day  his  language  was  that  of  prayer 
and  praise.  "  My  blessed  Jesus,"  he  exclaimed,  "  is  about  to  take 
unworthy  me  to  heaven  ! "  Soon  after  this  he  quoted  the  well- 
known  lines  of  Pope, — 


572  WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 

"  Lend,  lend  your  wings, — I  mount !  I  fly  ! 
0  grave,  wliere  is  thy  victory  ? 
0  death,  where  is  thy  sting  ? " 

His  brethren  were  surprised  at  hearing  this^  from  cue  enfeebled 
in  body;  but  still  more  so  at  the  manner  in  which  he  uttered 
the  two  following  lines  : — 

"  Cease,  fond  nature,  cease  thy  strife, 
And  let  me  languish  into  life  !" 

He  desired  his  colleague,  Mr.  Parsonson,  to  write  to  his  parents 
and  friendsj  and  "to  give  his  dying  love  to  them,  and  to  say 
that  he  did  not  regret  coming  to  Western  Africa."  He  died 
in  the  full  triumph  of  faith,  at  Macarthy's  Island,  a  little  before 
seven  o'clock  on  Saturday  morning,  January  20Lh,  1844,  in  the 
third  year  of  his  probation,  and  in  the  thirtieth  year  of  his  age. 

Mrs.  Badger  expired  at  Hastings,  in  the  colony  of  Sierra- 
Leone,  on  the  28tli  of  January,  1844.  This  excellent  woman 
manifested  from  childhood  great  seriousness  of  disposition,  and 
at  a  very  early  age  was  regularly  conducted  to  a  Wesleyan 
chapel  by  her  pious  mother,  who  endeavoured  to  "train  her  up 
in  the  way  she  should  go.''  But  it  was  not  until  she  was  about 
nineteen  years  of  age  that  she  obtained  a  clear  sense  of  God's 
favour  in  the  forgiveness  of  sins.  Her  life  then  became  a  life  of 
faith  in  the  Son  of  God,  and  of  prompt  obedience  to  the  Divine 
commands.  Her  concern  for  the  salvation  of  others  was 
conspicuous,  and  she  availed  herself  of  every  opportunity  of 
doing  good ;  but  while  her  heart  embraced  the  whole  world, 
those  members  of  her  own  family  who  as  yet  Vv^ere  living  in  sin, 
were  the  objects  of  her  special  solicitude  and  regard.  After 
her  marriage  to  Mr.  Badger,  and  before  her  embarkation  for 
Sierra-Leone,  she  felt  much  in  the  prospect  of  separating  from 
those  whom  she  dearly  loved ;  but  the  grace  of  God  was 
sufficient ;  and  hence  she  wrote,  "  From  a  sense  of  duty,  I  am 
willing  to  leave  all  my  dearest  friends :  and  I  go  to  a  foreign 
land,  feeling  assured  that  the  Lord  will  go  with  us."  The 
mission-band  of  whom  she  formed  a  part,  arrived  at  their 
destination  in  the  midst  of  tiie  rainy  season;  and  soon  after 
their  arrival,  Mrs.  Badger  was  seized  with  the  country  fever  ;  but 
she  passed  through  this  very  favourably,  and  shortly  after  she 
accompanied  INIr.  Badger  to  Hastings,  which  was  his  appointed 
sphere  of  labour ;  and  here  she  proved  a  true  help-meet  to  her 
husband,  aiding  him  in  his  "  work  of  faith  and  labour  of  love," 
both   by  her  prayers    and   exertions.      On   January  24th,  she 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  573 

gave  birth  to  a  daughter,  and  up  to  the  day  of  her  death 
appeared  to  be  doing  well.  At  nine  o'clock  on  the  28th  of  the 
same  month,  Mr.  Badger,  after  prayer,  took  an  affectionate 
leave  of  her,  for  an  absence  of  only  a  few  hours,  to  hold  a  reli- 
gious service  at  Wellington ;  and  while  there,  a  messenger 
arrived  to  inform  him  of  her  sudden  illness.  He  hastened 
home;  but,  before  his  arrival,  she  had  "fallen  asleep"  in  Jesus. 
In  the  severest  trial  of  nature,  she  calmly  reposed  on  God ;  and 
her  consolations  were  many.  She  died  in  great  peace,  aged 
thirty  years,  after  a  residence  in  Africa  of  six  mouths  and  seven 
days. 

Benjamin  Watkins,  after  labouring  with  dihgence  and 
success  on  the  Gold-Coast  for  about  twelve  months,  died  at 
British  Akra,  in  that  district,  in  great  peace,  on  the  7th  of 
February,  1844,  in  the  twenty-seventh  year  of  his  age.  He 
was  a  young  man  whose  talents  and  general  fitness  for  the 
missionary  work  gave  much  promise  of  usefulness ;  and  during 
his  residence  in  Africa  he  had  won  the  esteem  and  affection  of 
all  his  brethren,  as  well  as  of  the  societies  to  whom  he  preached 
"  the  word  of  life.''  Soon  after  the  death  of  his  beloved  wife, 
which,  it  may  be  recollected,  took  place  a  few  weeks  after  they 
lauded  at  Cape-Coast,  he  left  that  station,  to  take  charge  of  the 
circuit  and  Institution  at  Akrah,  where  he  continued  till  the 
following  December,  when  he  returned  to  Cape-Coast  to  attend 
the  annual  district-meeting.  Here  he  was  seized  with  an  illness 
which  shattered  his  whole  frame,  and  his  immediate  return  to 
Europe  was  urged  as  the  only  means  of  saving  Ids  life.  Prepa- 
rations were  made  for  his  embarkation,  and  he  proceeded  to 
British  Akra,  in  order  to  join  the  barque  "  Uobert  Heddle;" 
but  before  the  vessel  was  ready  to  sail  for  England,  he  had  a 
relapse  which  terminated  his  earthly  career  on  the  date  Ave  have 
mentioned ;  and  he  was  interred  in  the  fort-yard  the  same  day. 

The  Annual  Report  for  that  year  contains  interesting  details 
of  the  state  of  the  missions  at  each  of  the  stations  on  the  Coast, 
notwithstanding  the  frequent  deaths  which  took  place,  and  the 
unavoidable  absence  of  others,  on  account  of  ill  health.  Mr. 
Brooking  had  returned  to  England,  during  the  preceding  year, 
for  a  change,  having  been  on  the  Coast  upwards  of  three  years : 
but  he  sailed  again  for  Western  Africa,  accompanied  by  Mrs. 
Brooking;  and  they  landed  at  Cape-Coast  on  the  20th  of 
March,  1844.  Mr.  George  Chapman  had,  in  the  meantime, 
occupied   the  important   station  at   Coomassie,  the   capital  of 


574  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Asliantee ;  and  in  addition  to  the  Annual  Report,  which  con- 
tains some  interesting  and  thrilHng  facts  from  the  missionary  at 
this  place,  the  following  letter,  published  in  the  "  Missionary 
Notices"  soon  after,  is  so  interesting,  that  we  must  beg  the 
reader's  attention  to  it : — 

DESTRUCTION    OF    A    FETISH.       VISIT    TO    THE    ClUEEN. 

Kingdom  of  Ashanti. — Extract  of  a  Letter  from  the  Rev.  George  Chajjman, 
dated  Kumasi,  March  2\th,  1844. 

With  feelings  of  deep  and  lively  gratitude  I  write  you,  thankful  that,  in  a  land 
■where  so  many  are  suddenly  called  to  their  great  reward,  my  own  health  has  heen 
mercifully  preserved.  I  regard  it  as  no  small  mercy,  that,  during  the  past  five 
months,  I  have  not  had  a  day's  sickness,  nor  have  heen  hindered,  from  this  cause, 
in  the  discharge  of  my  duty.     To  God  he  all  the  praise  ! 

Our  prospects  still  continue  such  as  to  warrant  the  expectation,  that,  at  a  period 
not  distant,  the  etForts  made  for  the  conversion  of  the  Ashantis  will  be  crowned 
with  great  success.  This,  however,  will  not  be  the  case  without  much  opposition 
on  the  part  of  some,  and  patient,  prudent  perseverance  on  the  part  of  those  whose 
duty  it  may  be  to  labour  in  Kumasi. 

Our  congregations  continue  to  increase ;  on  the  sabbath  afternoon  especially, 
many  attend  to  hear  the  word  of  life.  The  attention  with  which  they  listen  is 
truly  encouraging ;  while,  on  some  occasions,  the  tearful  eye  gives  evidence  that,  in 
a  greater  or  less  degree,  the  heart  is  made  to  feel  the  mighty  influence  of  the  ever- 
blessed  gospel.  In  addition  to  those  I  mentioned  in  my  last,  a  respectable  chief 
(Adu  Osai)  has  begun  to  meet  in  class.  He  attends  witli  great  regularity  the 
means  of  grace,  and  is,  I  trust,  sincerely  and  humbly  seeking  salvation.  The  two 
young  men  to  whom  I  referred,  still  give  pleasing  evidence  of  a  strong  desire  to 
know  more  fully  those  great  truths  by  which  they  may  be  saved.  The  sincerity  of 
one  of  them  was  manifested  a  few  days  ago,  in  his  committing  to  the  flames  his 
fetish, — that  fetish  in  which  he  from  his  childhood  had  trusted.  This  was  done 
under  circumstances  of  some  interest.  The  companions  of  the  youth,  hearing  what 
was  about  to  take  place,  assembled  to  witness  the  destruction  of  the  first  fetish 
destroyed  in  Kumasi  from  conscientious  motives.  Every  thing  being  in  readiness, 
two  or  three  large  (h-ums  were  brought  out ;  and  as  the  god  hung  suspended  over  the 
waiting  flames,  one  of  the  party,  in  imitation  of  the  signal  given  by  the  king's  death- 
drum,  struck  his  drum  to  the  well-known  sound,  "  Cut  liim  down  !  cut  him  down  ! 
cut  him  down  ! "  The  flames  instantly  received  the  long-adored  image  ;  while,  at  the 
moment  of  its  fall,  another  drum  answered  the  first,  and  loudly  responded,  "  Down  ! " 
So  perish  all  the  false  gods  of  Ashanti !  This,  I  believe,  is  the  first  instance  of  the 
kind  which  has  taken  place  in  Ashanti,  and  augurs  well  for  him  who  has  given  so 
noble  an  example. 

In  addition  to  the  few  who  have  joined  tliemselves  with  us,  many  respectable 
and  influential  persons  in  the  town  entertain  the  conviction  that  Christianity  will 
effiectually  accompHsh  its  great  design  ;  and  eventually,  surmounting  all  opposition, 
become  the  religion  of  the  land.  Again  and  again  have  I  heard  this  opinion 
expressed.  But  a  few  days  ago,  at  the  close  of  a  custom  held  at  Bantama,  a 
respectable  old  chief  called  upon  me.  He  stated,  in  confidence,  that,  while  at 
Bantama,  much  had  been  said  by  the  king  and  others  respecting  the  object  of  the 
mission  ;  and  that,  after  much  conversation  on  this  subject,  they  gave  it  as  their 
decided  opinion  that  onr  motive  and  object  are  really  good,  and  that  it  will  be  to 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,   AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  575 

their  interest  and  benefit  to  give  us  every  encouragement.  The  old  man  continued, 
"  Mucli  more  was  said ;  but  I  may  not  tell  you  now.  Wait  a  little,  and  do  not 
be  discom-aged.  I  am  old  and  grey-headed;  but  I  hope  to  live  to  see  you 
successful." 

During  the  past  month,  I  have  visited  Jabin,  my  object  being  to  preach  the  gos- 
pel there  also.  Previous  to  leaving  Kumasi,  the  king  sent  a  messenger,  to  inform 
Sarvi,  the  queen,  that  I  was  about  to  visit  her.  The  venerable  old  lady  was  much 
pleased  to  find  that  herself  and  her  people  were  not  forgotten  by  us.  As  a  proof  of 
good-will  and  friendly  feeling,  she  assembled  all  her  people,  to  the  number  of  from 
nine  to  twelve  thousand,  and  insisted  upon  giving  me  a  public  reception.  On  the 
morning  after  my  arrival  I  called  upon  the  queen,  for  the  purpose  of  stating  the 
object  of  my  visit,  and  also  to  request  permission  to  preach  to  her  people.  This 
was  readily  granted ;  and  at  three  p.m.  I  preached  beneath  the  branches  of  a  beau- 
tiful banyan,  to  about  fourteen  hundred  persons,  most  of  whom  listened  with  deep 
attention  to  the  great  truths  of  the  gospel.  On  the  day  but  one  following,  I  again 
preached  in  the  same  place,  and  again  on  the  morning  and  afternoon  of  the  sabl)ath. 
On  each  occasion  there  M-ere  from  six  to  eight  hundred  persons  present.  My 
intention  being  to  leave  Jabin  for  Kumasi  early  on  the  Monday  morning,  I  had  at 
the  close  of  the  sabbath-afternoon  service  just  announced  this  to  the  people,  when 
a  messenger  arrived  from  Sarvi,  stating  that  Sarvi  greatly  regretted  her  inability  to 
attend  the  services  held  during  the  past  few  days ;  but  that  if  I  would  consent  to 
remain  until  the  following  day,  she  with  her  attendants  and  chiefs  would  assemble 
to  hear  the  word  of  the  great  God.  Though  anxious  to  return  to  Kumasi,  I  could 
not  but  comply  with  sucli  a  request,  and  accordingly  remained  the  day  following, 
on  the  afternoon  of  which  I  preached  from  Rom.  v.  6 — 8,  "  For  when  ye  were  yet 
without  strength,"  &c.,  to  a  large  and  attentive  congregation.  The  questions  pro- 
posed by  many  were  such  as  plainly  evinced  that  they  not  only  heard  the  word,  but 
that  a  desire  had  been  created  in  them  more  fully  to  understand  its  saving  power. 
During  my  stay  here,  I  experienced  every  kindness,  not  a  day  passing  without  an 
abundant  supply  of  food,  &c.,  being  sent  in  for  myself  and  people. 

Upon  leaving  the  town,  the  people  urgenvly  requested  a  speedy  revisit.  "  The 
word  you  speak  to  us  is  good ;  let  us  hear  it  again,"  was  the  argimient  used  by 
them.  "  We  have  not  heard  these  things  before  ;  we  believe  you  speak  the  truth, 
and  we  wish  for  instruction.  Come  to  us  again;  but  come  soon!"  These  and 
many  similar  expressions  fell  fi'om  the  lips  of  these  poor  benighted  people.  Never 
did  I  feel  more  fully  resolved  "  to  spend  and  be  spent  "  for  those  who  as  yet  know 
not  the  Saviour ;  but,  amidst  tens  of  thousands,  may  it  not  be  said,  "  What  am  I 
among  so  many  ? " 

Jabin  is  not  the  only  important  town  near  Kumasi  to  which  we  may  now  carry 
the  message  of  mercy.  A  general  desire  prevails  among  the  people  all  around  to 
be  visited  by  a  missionary.  When  this  can  be  accomplished,  mighty  results  must 
follow.  In  the  capital,  a  strong  restraint  is  felt  by  all  who  desire  to  forsake  the 
customs  of  their  forefathers.  This  would  not  be  the  case  in  any  of  the  provincial 
towns, — a  far  greater  degree  of  liberty  being  experienced  at  a  distance  from  the 
seat  of  government.  When  the  time  shall  come  (and  the  Almighty  grant  it  may 
not  be  far  distant !)  when  two  missionaries  shall  be  employed  in  Kumasi,  a  wide 
and  important  field  may  be  cultivated.  Within  a  day's  journey,  or  even  less,  are 
many  large  and  populous  towns,  to  most  of  which  we  might,  even  now,  have  access, 
and  where  the  gospel  might  be  preached  without  the  least  opposition.  To  some  of 
these  I  have  been  often  invited ;  but  such  has  been  the  natm-e  of  my  duties  in 
Kumasi,  that  though  I  would  most  gladly  have  visited  these  places,  where  unbroken 
darkness  reigns,  I  have  not  been  able  to  do  so ;    and   the  people,  while   asking. 


576 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


"  What  is  it  the  missionary  teaches  ? "  are  left  to  perish  for  lack  of  knowledge. 
0,  laud  of  my  birth,  Christian  England !  shall  these  things  continue  ? 

The  statements  made  respecting  the  greater  healthiness  of  the  climate,  as  we 
penetrate  further  into  the  interior,  are  certainly  founded  on  truth.  This  is  not  only 
the  opinion  of  Europeans  who  have  occasionally  journeyed  to  some  distance  from 
the  Coast,  but  the  natives  themselves  uniformly  acknowledge  the  same  thing.  It 
is  common  even  for  the  Ashantis  to  complain  of  the  sickness  to  which  they  are 
subject  when  visiting  the  Coast ;  but  the  contrary  is  the  case  when  they  journey 
inland.  This,  to  every  friend  of  missions,  cannot  but  be  a  cheering  fact,  as  war- 
ranting the  hope,  that,  in  the  prosecution  of  the  great  work  of  Africa's  salvation, 
there  will  not  be  that  fearful  sacrifice  of  life  which  the  brief  but  sad  history  of 
missions  on  the  Coast  presents.  I  may  be  permitted  to  refer  to  my  own  case  in 
confirmation  of  the  above.  I  left  a  bed  of  sickness  to  commence  my  journey  here  ; 
for  near  fourteen  weeks  I  had  not  been  able  to  preach  more  than  once  ;  and  such 
was  the  state  of  extreme  weakness  to  which  I  was  reduced,  that  during  the  first 
two  days  of  my  journey  I  was  unable  to  walk  even  a  few  steps  to  relieve  my 
hammock-men.  I  had  occasional  sickness  during  the  first  two  months  after  my 
arrival  at  Kumasi ;  but  tliis  was  not  matter  of  surprise,  considering  circumstances. 
The  rains  fell  almost  daily  with  great  violence  ;  and  such  was  the  unfinished  state 
of  the  mission-house  at  that  time,  that,  more  than  once,  while  stretched  upon  a 
sick  bed,  I  was  compelled  to  protect  myself  by  my  umbrella.  But,  under  circum- 
stances certainly  not  favourable,  my  strength  returned;  and,  during  the  past  five 
months,  I  have  enjoyed  as  good  health,  or  nearly  so,  as  that  with  which  I  was 
favoured  when  in  England. 

I  long  to  see  the  saving  power  of  God  more  fully  displayed  among  this  people. 
There  is  "  the  promise  of  a  shower."  A  ready  assent  is  given  to  the  truths  of  the 
gospel ;  but  this  is  not  sufficient  when  eternal  life  depends  upon  the  reception  of 
Jesus  Christ  as  the  only  Saviour.* 

The  same  Number  of  the  "  Notices  "  will  furnish  the  reader 
M'ith  other  important  information  of  the  progress  of  the  missions 
in  this  district,  and  in  the  subsequent  Number  there  is  an  inter- 
esting communication  from  Mr.  Dove  at  Sierra-Leone.  On 
the  1st  of  May,  IMr.  and  Mrs.  Quick,  through  ill  health,  were 
compelled  to  quit  their  useful  labours  in  that  colony,  and 
returned  to  England.     They  arrived  at  Plymouth,  July  4th. 

In  the  month  of  June  IMr.  Freeman,  Avho  had  been  "  in 
labours  more  abundant,"  again  left  the  Gold-Coast,  on  a  tem- 
porary visit  to  England  ;  and  in  a  few  weeks  after  his  depar- 
ture the  mission  sustained  another  loss  in  the  death  of  Mr. 
Greaves  at  British  Akrah. 

Timothy  T.  Greaves  was  a  young  man  of  sincere  piety, 
and  ardent  zeal  for  the  glory  of  God,  and  the  extension  of  the 
kingdom  of  Christ.  He  came  out  from  Birmingham,  and,  for 
some  months  previous  to  the  Conference  of  1843,  was  usefully 
employed  in  the  West  Bromwich  circuit,  as  a  partial  supply  for 

*  "  Missionary  Notices,"  vol.  x.  pp.  605 — 607. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  577 

one  of  the  ministers,  whose  health  had  failed.  At  the  Sheffield 
Conference  he  was  appointed  to  Sierra-Leone;  but  it  was 
afterwards  changed  for  the  Grold-Coast ;  at  which  place  he 
arrived,  in  company  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Annear,  and  Mr.  John 
Martin,  on  the  12th  of  December  of  the  same  year.  About  the 
middle  of  the  following  February  he  left  Cape-Coast  for  British 
Akrah,  to  supply  the  vacancy  occasioned  by  the  death  of 
Mr.  Watkins.  From  that  station  he  wrote  an  interesting 
letter  to  the  Committee,  bearing  the  date  of  the  10th  of  jMay, 
which  was  published  in  the  "  Missionary  Notices.^'  That  letter 
breathes  the  spirit  of  an  affectionate,  zealous,  and  successful 
missionary  of  the  cross.  But  in  the  midst  of  the  "  harvest," 
this  young  reaper  was  called  away ;  and  he  died  in  great  peace 
on  the  14tli  of  July,  1844,  in  the  first  year  of  his  probation. 

The  Gambia  mission,  and  particularly  the  station  at  INIacar- 
thy's  Island,  had  sustained  a  great  loss  in  the  death  of  Mr. 
Symons,  and  ]Mr.  Parsonson  was  frequently  laid  aside  from  his 
active  labours  during  the  sickly  season  of  this  year.  Both  he 
and  Mr.  Godman,  however,  were  preserved  in  tolerable  health ; 
and  the  day-school  at  St.  Mary's,  under  the  excellent  manage- 
ment of  Mr.  Lynn,  was  rapidly  rising  in  importance.  The 
brethren  having  affectionately  and  earnestly  appealed  for  more 
help,  on  the  10th  of  February,  1845,  Mr.  Benjamin  Chapman 
sailed  for  the  Gambia,  and  he  landed  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  19th 
of  the  following  month.  About  this  time  Mr.  Parsonson  at  the 
Gambia,  Mr.  Raston  at  Sierra-Leone,  and  Mr.  Allen  at  the 
Gold-Coast,  returned  to  England,  for  a  temporary  change. 

Mr.  Thomas  B.  Freeman,  whose  departure  from  the  Gold- 
Coast  we  have  recently  mentioned,  remained  in  England  till  the 
month  of  INIay ;  and  during  a  part  of  his  stay  here,  he  was 
called  upon  to  defend  himself  and  the  mission  from  one  of  the 
most  unfounded  and  bitter  attacks  (considering  the  quarter 
from  whence  it  came)  that  was  ever  invented.  The  full  parti- 
culars of  this  painful  and  vexatious  affair  the  reader  may  find 
in  the  December  '^ Notices"  for  the  year  ending  1844.  It  will 
be  sufficient  here  to  say,  that  Mr.  Freeman  came  out  of  this 
trial  "  more  than  conqueror ; "  and  that  it  had  the  effect  of  raising 
him  and  the  mission  still  higher  in  the  estimation  of  the  friends 
of  missions  in  general,  and  also  of  obtaining  some  additional 
supporters  to  the  same  hallowed  cause. 

On  Mr.  Freeman's  return  to  the  Gold-Coast,  he  was  accom- 
panied by  Mr.  Henry  Wharton,  a  man  of  colour,  a  native  of 
Grenada  in  the  West  Indies,  and  himself  the  fruit  of  missionary 

p  p 


578 


WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 


labour.  Having  been  employed  in  those  Islands  as  a  Wesleyan 
missionary  for  two  or  three  years,  he  offered  himself  to  the 
committee  in  London,  to  go  to  Africa;  and  for  that  purpose 
he  came  to  England,  and  was  solemnly  ordained  to  the  work 
and  office  of  the  Christian  ministry  in  the  City-road  chapel,  on 
the  IStli  of  May,  when  he  and  Mr.  Freeman  were  publicly 
commended  to  the  providence  and  grace  of  God. 

Two  days  after,  they  proceeded  to  the  Isle  of  Wight,  to 
embark  for  Cape-Coast  Castle ;  and,  being  favoured  with  a  very 
quick  and  pleasant  passage,  they  reached  their  destination  in 
good  health  and  spirits  on  the  23d  of  June.  All  the  brethren 
who  were  then  in  the  district  were  reported  to  be  in  tolerable 
health,  with  the  exception  of  Mr.  George  Chapman,  who  was 
compelled  in  the  early  part  of  August  to  embark  for  England, 
hoping  again  to  return  to  his  interesting  sphere  of  labour. 
But  he  was  unable  to  do  so ;  and  after  spending  some  time  in 
England,  and  subsequently  in  France,  he  sailed  for  Southern 
Africa,  where  he  is  still  labouring.  Mr.  Wharton  was  after- 
wards appointed  to  the  important  station  of  Coomassie,  in 
Ashantee. 

On  the  27th  of  October,  Messrs.  Raston,  Wayte,  and  Griffiths 
embarked  at  Gravesend  for  Sierra-Leone  by  the  "  Dale  Park.^' 
Mr.  Raston  had  spent  upwards  of  three  years  at  that  interesting 
and  important  station,  and  on  his  voyage  to  England  was  mer- 
cifully preserved  from  a  watery  grave,  the  vessel  in  which  he 
was  journeying  home  having  been  run  foul  of  by  some  unknown 
ship,  when  they  w^ere  about  one  hundred  and  twenty  miles  off 
Cape  Clear.  Though  the  "  Ceres"  (the  vessel  in  which  Mr. 
Raston  had  embarked)  was  dreadfully  shattered,  they  managed 
to  reach  Cove-Hai'bour,  in  Ireland,  where  they  anchored  in 
safety,  though  the  other  vessel,  it  was  feared,  had  gone  down. 

The  two  brethren  who  accompanied  Mr.  Raston  to  Sierra- 
Leone  had  been  in  the  Theological  Institution  at  Richmond, 
but  nobly  offered  themselves  for  this  part  of  the  mission-field, 
and  at  a  few  days^  notice  cheerfully  embarked  with  him.  Mr. 
Raston  was  now  married;  he  was  therefore  accompanied  by 
Mrs.  Raston  and  Mrs.  Gordon,  who  afterwards  became  Mrs. 
Badger;  and  the  whole  mission-party  landed  at  Sierra-Leone 
on  the  1st  of  December,  1845.  Mr.  Amos  had  in  the  mean- 
time sailed  from  this  colony  for  England,  and  has  since  been 
employed  as  one  of  the  society's  agents  in  the  Friendly  Islands. 
Mr.  Parsonson,  from  the  Gambia,  who  had  been  in  England 
a  few  months  during  this  year,  embarked  with  Mrs.  Parsonson, 
on  the  12th  of  November,  on  board  the  "  Sam  Shck,''  for  his 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  579 

former  scene  of  labour ;  and  they  landed  at  St.  Mary's  on  the 
loth  of  December. 

A  few  days  previous  to  their  embarkation,  another  little  band 
of  missionaries  were  preparing  to  sail  for  Western  Africa. 
These  were  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Allen,  with  Messrs.  George  Findlay 
and  Edward  Addison.  They  proceeded  from  London  to  Bristol, 
where  the  writer  had  the  pleasure  of  their  company  for  a  short 
time,  and  they  finally  sailed  from  Newport  in  Monmouthshire, 
on  the  10th  of  November,  and  landed  at  the  Gold-Coast  on  the 
30tli  of  the  following  month.  This  was  Mr.  Allen's  second 
embarkation  for  Western  Africa,  he  having  already  laboured 
there  more  than  three  years.  Mrs.  Brooking,  also,  who  had 
been  compelled  to  leave  the  Coast  on  account  of  ill  health,  after 
a  few  months'  residence  there,  formed  one  of  the  party ;  but, 
unfortunately,  her  husband  had  left  the  Coast  from  the  same 
cause,  only  a  few  days  before  they  landed ;  so  that  the  husband 
and  Avife  missed  each  other  on  the  passage.  Mr.  Brooking 
continued  very  unwell  for  some  length  of  time  after  his 
arrival  in  England ;  but  was  subsequently  appointed  to  North 
America. 

We  have  now  to  turn  from  these  departures  and  arrivals, 
with  the  frequent  returns  to  England  on  account  of  the  failure 
of  health,  to  the  melancholy  subject  of  death;  and  that  not 
of  old  residents  who  had  worn  themselves  out  in  this  field 
of  labour  and  toil,  but  of  newly-imported  missionaries.  It  is 
painful  to  state,  that  three  of  the  society's  agents,  whose  arrival 
in  Africa  we  have  just  chronicled,  were  called  hence  to  be  no 
more  seen  in  less  than  three  months  after  they  landed  in  Africa. 
These  were  Mrs.  Raston,  Mr.  Wayte,  and  Mr.  Findlay  :  the 
latter  died  on  the  Gold-Coast;  and  the  tAvo  former  at  Sierra- 
Leone. 

Mrs,  Raston's  maiden  name  was  Padley;  and  she  was  born 
in  the  year  1815,  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Retford,  in  the 
county  of  Nottingham.  Being  favoured  with  pious  parents, 
she  was  instructed  in  the  ways  of  the  Lord  from  her  earliest 
days.  But  it  was  not  till  she  had  finished  her  education,  and 
returned  home  from  school,  that  she  became  a  true  disciple  of 
the  Lord  Jesus.  This  important  change  took  place  in  her 
native  village,  Bothamsall,  which  was  at  that  time  visited  with 
a  gracious  outpouring  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  Many  were  gathered 
into  the  fold  of  Christ ;  and  Miss  Padley  was  among  the  num- 
ber of  those  who  were  "  added  to  the  church,"  having  obtained 
"  peace  with  God  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ." 

2  p  2 


580  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

But  she  was  not  satisfied  with  the  mere  personal  enjoyment 
of  the  rich  blessings  of  gospel  grace  herself;  the  feeling  of  her 
heart,  the  language  of  her  tongue,  and  the  tenor  of  her  life, 
was, — 

"  If  all  the  world  my  Saviour  knew, 
Then  all  the  world  would  love  him  too." 

Her  desire  for  the  salvation  of  others  was  intense  :  nor  was  it 
the  evanescent  display  of  excited  feeling,  the  offspring  of  first 
love,  so  often  observable  in  the  early  stage  of  Christian  life. 
In  her  it  deepened  and  widened  as  she  pursued  her  onward 
course :  she  drank  deep  at  the  well-stream  of  life,  and  her  full 
soul  overflowed  with  love  to  all  around  her ;  and  there  was  no 
department  of  Christian  usefulness  into  which  she  did  not  enter 
with  the  fervid  feelings  of  a  heart  glowing  with  love  to  God. 
In  addition  to  her  being  usefully  engaged  in  the  sabbath- 
school,  and  in  the  distribution  of  tracts,  her  name  had  long 
been  enrolled  among  those  worthies  of  our  land,  the  missionary 
collectors,  to  whom  the  work  of  God  in  distant  lands  owes  so 
much ;  and,  though  useful  in  other  ways,  there  was  no  work  in 
which  she  engaged  with  so  much  energy  and  delight  as  in  this, 
the  cause  of  missions. 

Soon  after  the  Conference  of  1845,  she  was  united  in  mar- 
riage to  Mr.  Raston ;  and  in  a  few  weeks  after  they  sailed  for 
Sierra-Leone.  The  date  of  their  departure  from  England,  and 
arrival  in  Africa,  has  been  given  in  a  preceding  page ;  and  it 
will  be  recollected  that  they  were  accompanied  by  Messrs. 
Wayte  and  Griffiths.  From  a  paper  now  before  me,  it  appears 
that  their  voyage  was  very  agreeable  and  pleasant,  with  the 
exception  of  a  terrific  thunder-storm,  which  commenced  when 
they  were  off  the  coast  of  Portugal,  and  which  continued  for 
some  days.  During  the  storm,  the  mainmast  was  struck  with 
the  electric  fluid,  which,  passing  down  the  rigging,  exploded 
on  the  deck  with  the  noise  as  of  a  cannon.  This  occurred  at 
midnight;  and  as  gunpowder  composed  a  large  part  of  the 
cargo,  alarm  and  consternation  sat  on  every  face,  lest  the  light- 
ning should  penetrate  the  hold  of  the  ship.  But  they  were 
providentially  delivered  from  a  watery  grave.  One  of  the  young 
brethren  forcibly  described  this  scene  as  follows : — "  Friday, 
November  7th.  Still  the  living,  the  living  to  praise  God.  The 
brittle  thread  is  not  yet  snapped.  The  tempestuous  elements 
have  not  yet  shattered  the  ship,  and  divided  her  fragments  and 
inmates  among  them.  We  are  within  the  jaws  of  death ;  but 
he  is  not  yet  permitted  to  close  them.  Though  the  ocean  is 
almost  white  as  the  stiow,  mountainous  as  the  Alps,  and  voci- 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  581 

feroiis  as  the  loudest  thunder,  the  voice  of  Omnipotence  is 
heard  at  the  top  of  every  threatening  wave,  and  above  '  the 
voice  of  many  waters,^  '  Touch  not  mine  anointed,  and  do  my 
prophets  no  harm/  "  That  day  was  dismal  beyond  description ; 
and  the  dark  night  came  on,  when  those  on  board  knew  not  but 
it  would  be  their  last.  During  this  awful  scene,  Mrs.  Raston 
calmly  awaited  the  issue,  and  spoke  and  acted  like  a  true  Cliris- 
tian.  The  same  missionary  writes : — "  I  visited  Mr.  Raston's  cabin 
at  eleven  a.m.  He  was  lying  in  his  berth,  very  sick ;  but  Mrs. 
Raston  was  better,  and  able  to  pay  him  attentions.  After  we 
had  prayed  together,  and  I  had  read  a  few  passages  on  the  good- 
ness of  God,  which  had  been  a  great  comfort  to  my  own  mind, 
Mrs.  Raston  observed,  '  Ah  !  jNIr.  Griffiths,  these  are  some  of 
the  mysterious  ways  of  God.  Who  can  tell  what  He  is  about 
to  do?  Perhaps  we  have  been  thinking  too  much  of  our 
abilities,  sacrifices,  or  honours ;  marking  out  a  wide  field  of 
usefulness  in  Sierra-Leone,  and  taking  some  of  the  glory  to 
our  little  selves ;  and  now.  He  may  be  about  to  teach  ns 
humility,  and  tell  us,  with  the  Christian  world,  in  this  awfully 
mysterious  manner,  that  He  can  carry  on  his  work,  and  bless 
the  Heathen,  without  us.  O,  what  motives  to  be  humble  will 
these  trials  supply,  should  we  survive  them  ! '  " 

They  did  "survive  them;"  for,  having  "cried  unto  the  Lord 
in  their  trouble,  He  brought  them  out  of  their  distresses.  He 
made  the  storm  a  calm,  so  that  the  waves  thereof  were  still;" 
and  in  about  twenty  days  after  this,  "  they  were  glad  because  he 
brought  them  unto  their  desired  haven." 

On  arriving  at  Sierra-Leone,  Mrs.  Raston  was  delighted  with 
the  scenery,  the  place,  and  the  people,  and  immediately  entered 
with  zeal  and  energy  into  the  various  duties  that  then  presented 
themselves  to  her.  On  the  14th  of  December  she  accompanied 
her  husband  to  the  chapel  at  Kroo-Town,  when  he  preached 
from,  "  I  must  work  the  works  of  Him  that  sent  me,  while  it  is 
day :  the  night  cometh,  when  no  man  can  work."  At  the  close 
of  the  service  she  observed,  "  O  let  us  do  all  we  can  now ;  let  us 
work  for  God  in  the  day  of  health  and  life :  we  cannot  tell  how 
soon  the  night  of  affliction  and  death  may  come  on."  This  was 
the  last  time  that  she  mingled  her  devotions  in  public  with  the 
people  of  God  on  earth.  Two  days  after  she  complained  of 
indisposition,  and  the  usual  symptoms  of  the  African  fever 
shortly  appeared.  Her  progress,  however,  was  favourable;  and 
her  friends  for  some  time  indulged  in  the  pleasing  prospect  of 
her  speedy  restoration  to  health,  particularl}'^  as  the  insalubrity 
of  the  season  had  then  abated.    But  these  hopes  were  cut  off":  the 


582  "WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

ninth  clay  arrived,  and  with  it  came  symptoms  of  a  very  alarming 
nature.  Her  friends  resorted  to  every  means  that  medical  skill 
could  devise,  or  vrhich  kindness  could  suggest ;  but  they  were  of 
no  avail.  The  fever  had  taken  its  seat  deep  in  the  system,  and 
refused  to  be  controlled. 

During  her  affliction,  Mrs.  Rastou^s  mind  Avas  kept  in  peace, 
calm  and  serene.  Two  days  before  her  death,  to  a  friend  stand- 
ing by,  she  said,  "  I  am  drawing  nearer  and  nearer  to  my  hea- 
venly home :  I  cannot  tell  what  keeps  me  back."  To  her  hus- 
band she  said,  "  O  live  to  God ;  you  have  a  great  work  to  do ; 
save  as  many  souls  as  you  can."  On  the  same  day,  in  answer 
to  the  inquiry,  if,  to  her,  death  had  any  terrors,  she  replied, 
"No  :  the  sting  is  drawn.  There  is  no  darkness.  I  feel  the  conso- 
lations of  religion  now.  Never  was  Christ  so  precious  to  me." 
On  the  26th  her  strength  was  greatly  reduced;  but  she  con- 
tinued in  the  same  delightful  slate  of  mind.  Some  of  her  last 
words  were,  "  I  shall  soon  see  the  King  in  his  beauty  :  I  shall  see 
all  my  dear  friends,  and  I  shall  see  Jesus."  In  the  evening  she 
bade  several  friends  a  long  farewell ;  and  while  Mr.  Badger  was 
commending  the  dying  saint  to  God,  her  happy  spirit  took  its 
flight  at  half-past  two  o'clock  in  the  morning  of  the  27th  of 
December,  1845. 

James  H.  Wayte  died  at  Sierra-Leone,  January  16th,  1846. 
The  " Wesleyan-Methodist  Magazine"  for  February,  1849, 
contains  an  interesting  Memoir  of  this  very  excellent  mission- 
ary, from  the  pen  of  the  Eev.  John  D.  Geden,  assistant  classical 
tutor  at  the  Theological  Institution,  Richmond;  to  which  the 
reader  is  refeiTcd  for  further  particulars. 

Mr.  Wayte  was  born  at  Newcastle-under-Lyne,  in  the  county 
of  Stafford,  in  the  month  of  May,  1822 ;  and  being  blessed  with 
parents  who  feared  the  Lord,  he  had  the  advantages  of  an  early 
religious  training.  In  the  seventeenth  year  of  his  age  he  was  a 
consistent  member  of  the  Wesleyan  society  in  the  town  of 
Stafford,  where  he  served  his  apprenticeship;  and  at  that  time 
was  an  active,  zealous  teacher  in  the  Sunday-school,  and  evi- 
dently growing  in  the  knowledge  and  love  of  Christ.  Soon  after 
this  he  became  an  exhorter,  and  afterwards  a  local  preacher; 
and  now  it  was  that  he  began  to  display  that  holy  ardour,  and 
that  firmness  in  the  cause  of  God,  by  which  he  was  afterwards 
distinguished.  At  this  period  he  had  an  impression  that  God 
would  one  day  send  him  forth  as  a  teacher  of  the  Gentiles ;  and 
in  this  he  was  not  mistaken.  Having,  on  account  of  business, 
removed  to  Reading  in  Berkshire,  and  shortly  after  to  the  adja- 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  583 

cent  town  of  Newbnr}'',  the  Great  Head  of  the  cliiirch  opened 
his  way,  and  under  the  kind  and  judicious  direction  of  the  Rev. 
George  Jackson,  the  superintendent  of  that  circuit,  he  became 
a  candidate  for  the  ministry,  and  offered  himself  for  the  mission 
work.  At  the  Conference  of  1844  he  was  accepted  as  such,  and 
was  appointed  to  the  Richmond  Branch  of  the  Theological 
Institution,  with  a  view  to  his  further  training  for  missionary 
labours.  The  missionary  ardour  of  this  young  man  was  seen  at 
the  usual  examination  of  the  candidates  for  the  ministry,  which 
takes  place  in  London,  before  a  large  committee,  a  few  weeks 
previous  to  the  Conference.  On  this  occasion  the  candidates 
were  fifty-six  in  number,  most  of  whom  expressed  their  willing- 
ness to  go  to  any  part  of  the  world,  when  appointed  by  the  Con- 
ference ;  but  when  Mr.  Wayte  was  interrogated  as  to  the  nature 
of  his  offer,  he  replied,  "  I  ofler  myself  for  the  mission  work, 
and  should  'prefer  Western  Africa  to  any  other  part  of  the  mis- 
sion field."  He  remained  in  the  Institution  about  fourteen 
months,  during  which  period  he  applied  himself  to  his  studies 
with  exemplary  diligence,  and  grew  at  once  in  wisdom  and  holi- 
ness. In  December,  1844,  in  a  letter  to  the  Rev.  George  Jack- 
son, he  wrote,  "  I  trust  I  am  growing  in  grace,  in  attachment 
to  Methodism,  and  in  love  for  the  souls  of  men,  especially  of  the 
Heathen.  I  am  exceedingly  thankful  to  my  heavenly  Father 
for  bringing  me  to  this  place;  and  I  trust  my  profiting  will 
appear  to  all."  It  did  so ;  for  though  his  yearning  over  the 
spiritual  destitution  of  unhappy  Africa  was  a  remarkable  feature 
in  his  character,  it  did  not  exclude  from  the  range  of  his  pity 
and  effort  his  perishing  countrymen  around  him.  More  than 
one  village  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Richmond  had  a  day  of 
visitation,  introduced  by  his  fervent  toils ;  and  at  one  of  them, 
having  distributed  religious  tracts,  visited  and  prayed  with  the 
poor  families,  preached  the  gospel  in  the  "  highways  and  hedges," 
he  at  length  procured  a  house  in  which  the  poor  could  assemble 
unmolested,  and  hear  the  truth,  and  idtimately  succeeded  in 
furnishing  them  with  the  regular  ministration  of  the  gospel. 

The  peculiar  circumstances  under  which  Mr.  Wayte  embarked 
for  Africa  deserve  to  be  mentioned.  By  a  reference  to  the 
Minutes  of  the  Conference  for  1845,  the  reader  will  find  the 
name  of  Mr.  Joel  Bate  attached  to  the  Sierra-Leone  district :  in 
the  month  of  October  following  his  passage  was  taken  for  that 
colony;  and  in  another  week  he  was  to  have  sailed;  but  a  sud- 
den emergency  induced  the  Missionary  Committee  to  send  him 
to  the  Friendly  Isles,  to  which  he  consented,  and  set  off  imme- 
diately.     The   Sierra-Leone    ap])ointmcnt   was   therefore   now 


584 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


vacant;  and  a  substitute  was  sought  with  the  utmost  dispatch 
from  among  the  missionary  students  at  Richmond.  The  Rev, 
John  Farrar  had  intimated  to  the  missionary  candidates,  at  an 
eai'ly  part  of  the  day,  that  one  or  more  of  the  general  secretaries 
would  pay  them  a  visit  for  that  purpose.  The  time  arrived,  all 
the  missionary  students,  being  about  twenty  in  number,  were 
convened,  and  the  subject  was  introduced  in  the  kindest  and 
most  judicious  .manner.  The  main  question,  however,  was, 
"Who  will  embark  on  next  Monday  morning  for  Sierra- 
Leone  ?  ^^  Several  were  willing,  but  not  quite  ready ;  the  time 
being  too  short,  and  their  homes  too  distant,  to  allow  them 
even  a  day  to  take  leave  of  their  friends.  Mr.  Wayte  pre- 
sented himself,  was  accepted,  and  appointed;  and,  having 
executed  the  Avhole  work  of  preparation  with  extraordinary 
speed,  was  found  in  less  than  a  week  on  board  the  vessel,  with 
Mr.  Raston  and  Mr.  David  Griffiths,  the  latter  also  having 
offered  himself  for  the  same  perilous  service  ;  and  therefore  two 
were  sent  ou  this  occasion  instead  of  one. 

Mr.  Wayte's  parents,  two  of  his  brothers,  and  several  other 
friends  took  their  affectionate  leave  of  him  at  Gravesend,  on  the 
27th  of  October,  the  day  on  which  he  sailed,  which  was  affect- 
ing to  all  who  witnessed  it.  During  the  voyage  his  conduct 
was  such,  that  all  on  board  were  impressed  with  the  depth  of 
his  piety  and  devotedness  to  God;  and  when  the  mountains  of 
Sierra-Leone  first  rose  before  his  vision,  the  joy  he  manifested 
was  almost  unbounded.  His  frieu;  ,  companion,  and  colleague, 
Mr.  Griffiths,  speaking  of  this,  observes,  "  It  was  quite  in  cha- 
racter with  his  previous  anxiety.  He  felt  that  he  was  for  the 
first  time  actually  looking  upon  the  scene  which  had  often  been 
portrayed  by  his  imagination,  and  fixing  his  eyes  upon  the  land 
that  had  long  been  the  residence  of  his  heart."  In  a  letter 
addressed  to  the  Rev.  George  Jackson,  dated  December  17th, 
Mr.  Wayte  himself  writes,  "As  we  approached  the  land,  our 
feelings  were  overpowering.  We  were  met  upon  the  vessel  by 
j\Ir.  Badger,  and  on  the  beach  by  our  excellent  superintend- 
ent, Mr.  Dove.  We  were  also  greeted  by  the  students," 
(those  of  the  Native  Institution,)  "and  hundreds  of  our  dear 
people  thronged  our  path  to  the  mission-house.  I  took  a  cup 
of  tea,  and  then  went  to  a  large  chapel,  made  of  the  timbers  of 
slave-vessels,  and  opened  my  commission  to  a  congregation  of 
seven  hundred  Africans,  who  filled  the  building  inside,  while 
many  had  to  stand  without.  What  a  sight !  What  emotions  ! 
I  assure  you  I  could  scarcely  speak."  After  enumerating  the 
services  of  the  previous  sabbath,  December  14th,  he  proceeds : 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  585 

''  My  mind  lias  been  variously  exercised  since  I  have  been  here. 
This  great  work,  with  all  its  responsibilities,  coming  upon  me  at 
once,  drives  me  to  close  self-examination.  I  feel  that  I  need 
much  faith,  and  prayer,  and  watchfulness.  I  thank  God,  I  have 
experienced  much  of  my  Saviour's  presence,  and  have  enjoyed 
the  consolations  of  his  Spirit.  I  have  felt  more  ardour  since  I 
have  been  here  than  ever  I  did  in  my  native  land ;  and  I  hope 
to  labour  long  among  this  pious,  devoted  people.  We  are  sur- 
rounded by  much  that  is  heart-rending.  I  do  feel  somewhat 
impatient,  because  I  cannot  work  as  I  could  wish.  Our  dear 
friends  are  anxious  we  should  be  prudent,  lest  we  meet  with  an 
untimely  grave." 

Mr.  Wayte  was  intended  for  the  York  circuit ;  but  before 
he  could  proceed  to  that  station,  he  sickened  and  died.  The 
demise  of  Mrs.  Hasten  so  soon  after  they  landed  in  Africa,  and 
of  several  others  who  were  suddenly  called  to  the  world  of  spirits 
about  the  same  time,  greatly  aifected  him.  On  this  subject  he 
wrote  : — "  December  27th.  Mrs.  Rastou  fell  a  victim  to  the 
climate  at  two  o'clock  this  morning  :  her  remains  to  be  interred 
in  two  hours.  Who  next  ?  Pray,  pray,  pray  ! "  In  attending 
the  funeral  he  said  to  Mr.  Griffiths,  "  Who  can  tell  hoAv  soon 
one  of  us  may  be  accompanied  by  this  vast  assembly  to  our  last 
home?"  In  his  journal  of  the  31st  of  that  month,  he  again 
referred  to  the  subject  of  death  in  general,  and  to  that  of  Mrs. 
Raston  in  particular;  and  then  remarks  concerning  himself: 
"  I  trust  I  am  ready.  I  wish  to  live  with  eternity  in  view.  I 
have  no  will  but  God's.  I  am  the  Lord's  ;  in  Him  do  I  trust; 
and  I  know  I  shall  not  be  confounded."  A  few  days  after,  he 
wrote :  "  Each  succeeding  day  I  am  impressed  with  the  fact, 
that  I  am  surrounded  with  the  realities,  labours,  responsibili- 
ties, and  trials  (delightful  trials  !)  of  a  Christian  mission  in  a 
tropical  climate ;  in  a  colony  which  has  been  called,  (and  proba- 
bly with  much  truth,)  'the  white  man's' — the  missionary's — 
'grave.'  Will  it  be  mine?  My  Father's  will  be  done!  I 
think  I  can  say,  though  I  feel  my  own  unworthiness,  with  the 
great  missionary  of  olden  times,  'For  to  me  to  live  is  Christ, 
and  to  die  is  gain.'  " 

From  the  time  of  his  landing  in  Africa,  Mr.  Wayte  had  suf- 
fered greatly  from  violent  pains  in  the  head ;  but  no  alarming 
symptoms  of  disease  were  apparent  until  January  5th,  1846. 
The  best  medical  skill  was  immediately  procured,  and  the  doc- 
tor at  once  pronounced  it  to  be  the  country  fever;  and  the 
usual  treatment  was  prescribed.  The  day  following  he  was 
worse,  and  his  mind  became  possessed  with  a  conviction  that  his 


586  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

sickness  Avould  terminate  in  death.  "  O,  my  dear  Griffiths/^  he 
remarked,  "  what  should  I  now  do,  if  I  had  not  sought  and 
found  religion  ?  What  would  become  of  me,  if  I  were  without 
God  and  without  hope  in  the  world  ? "  For  several  days  the 
disease  appeared  to  fluctuate ;  but  on  the  night  of  the  13th  it 
assumed  a  more  virulent  form  than  ever.  His  friend,  Mr. 
Griffiths,  who  scarcely  left  his  bed-side  night  or  day,  had  retired 
in  the  hope  of  obtaining  a  little  rest.  "  No  sooner,  however," 
he  writes,  "  had  I  laid  myself  down,  than  I  heard  Mr.  Wayte 
begin  to  shout  Avith  a  loud  and  rapturous  voice.  The  next 
moment  a  messenger  desired  I  would  return  to  his  chamber. 
I  immediately  went  to  him,  and  found  that  Mr.  Dove  had  anti- 
cipated me.  Before  I  entered  the  room,  I  heard  him  rejoicing 
that  he  had  now  given  up  all  his  fiiends,  his  '  dear  mother'  not 
excepted ;  and  that  he  should  soon  depart  and  be  with  Christ, 
which  would  be  far  better.  On  my  entering,  he  instantly  put 
out  his  ever-friendly  hand ;  and,  taking  fast  hold  of  mine,  he 
said,  '  O,  brother  Griffiths,  God  will  soon  take  me  to  Himself ! 
It  will  be  your  privilege  to  live  and  labour  in  Africa ;  but  God 
calls  me,  and  I  must  go.  If  I  wanted  to  live,  it  was  to  be  use- 
ful ;  but  God  has  otherwise  determined,  and  I  am  content. 
We  came  together  to  Africa ;  but  we  are  not  going  together  to 
heaven:  it  is  my  honour  to  go  first!'  He  added,  *  O,  I 
wish  my  dearest  mother  was  here,  to  sing  my  favourite  Vitai 
Spark ! '  He  commenced  it  himself,  and  his  voice  seemed  as 
strong  and  as  musical  as  ever ;  but  he  could  not  keep  on  to  the 
end.  He  then  addressed  his  nurses  and  Mr.  Dove,  who  were 
weeping  by  his  side,  in  most  affecting  language ;  charging  them 
to  live  to  God,  and  meet  him  in  glory.  He  asked  us  to  pray. 
We  knelt  down,  but  for  a  time  could  only  Aveep.  At  length 
Mr.  Dove  attempted  to  pray ;  but  he  was  almost  immediately 
interrupted  by  our  brother,  who  began  to  invoke  the  Divine 
blessing  upon  all  his  brethren  at  Richmond,  and  continued  to 
do  so  for  some  minutes.  He  paused  a  little,  and  then  said,  '  O, 
glory  be  to  Jesus !  I  feared  I  should  depart  without  a  shout 
for  my  Lord ;  but  He  would  not  allow  it,  bless  His  gracious 
name  !  I  have  preached  Christ  in  life,  though  very  unfaith- 
fully ;  and  I  will  preach  Him  in  death  ! '  and  then  exclaimed, — 

'  I  '11  praise  my  Maker  while  I  've  breath  ; 
And,  when  my  voice  is  lost  in  death, 

Praise  shall  employ  my  nobler  powers : 
My  days  of  praise  shall  ne'er  be  past, 
"While  life,  and  thought,  and  being  last. 

Or  immortalil  v  endures  ! ' 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIEKRA-LEONE.  587 

He  then  repeated, — 

'  Happy,  if  with  my  latest  breath 
I  may  but  gasp  His  name ; 
Preach  Him  to  all,  and  cry  in  death, 
Behold,  behold  the  Lamb  ! ' 

Then,  elevating  his  voice  yet  higher,  he  added, — 

'  Mortals  cry,  A  man  is  dead ! 
Angels  sing,  A  child  is  born  ! ' 

In  this  strain  he  continued  for  at  least  two  hours.  None  who 
were  present  could  refrain  from  the  prayer,  '  Let  me  die  the 
death  of  the  righteous,  and  let  my  last  end  be  like  his  ! ' " 

During  most  of  the  two  following  days  he  was  delirious ;  and, 
at  nine  o'clock  in  the  evening  of  Thursday,  15th,  was  evidently 
near  his  end.  He  revived  a  little,  however,  and  talked  fre- 
quently in  a  very  rapid  manner ;  sometimes  he  was  preaching, 
and  at  other  times  exhorting  and  praying.  He  possessed,  dur- 
ing the  greater  part  of  his  painful  affliction, 

"The  soul's  calm  sunshine,  and  the  heartfelt  joy;" 

and  his  death  was  more  than  peaceful,  or  even  triumphant :  the 
apostle's  language,  "  Death  is  swallowed  up  in  victory,''  is  per- 
haps the  most  appropriate  designation  that  can  be  given  to  it. 
His  ear  was  growing  dull  to  external  impressions  ;  but  the  inte- 
rior harmony  survived.  The  world  was  receding  and  disappear- 
ing, and  tlie  visual  nerves  had  lost  their  sensibility ;  but  the 
inner  sense  was  active  : — 

"  Heaven  open'd  on  his  eyes ;  his  eai's 
With  sounds  seraphic  rang;" 

and  at  about  eleven  o'clock  on  that  evening  he  lifted  up  both 
his  hands,  as  if  greatly  astonished,  though  with  closed  eyelids, 
and  exclaimed,  "  Beautiful,  beautiful !  O  how  beautiful !  " 
These  were  some  of  the  last  words  he  uttered ;  and  at  a  qviarter 
before  two  he  gently  breathed  his  last,  in  the  twenty-fourth 
year  of  his  age,  and  the  first  of  his  ministry.  His  remains  were 
committed  to  the  ground  in  the  afternoon  of  the  same  day, 
amidst  the  tears  and  lamentations  of  a  multitude  of  people  who 
followed  him  to  his  burial. 

George  Findlay  died  on  Tuesday,  March  10th,  1846,  at 
Cape-Coast-Town.  He  was  a  native  of  Scotland,  and  was  a 
young  man  of  amiable  temper,  sincere  piety,  and  promising 
talents.     He  was  intended  for  Coomassie,  to  which  important 


588  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

station  he  had  been  appointed  at  the  previous  Conference. 
But  he  was  attacked  with  fever  in  a  few  weeks  after  his  arrival 
on  the  Coast.  During  his  illness  he  was  a  great  sufferer;  but 
his  end  was  eminently  peaceful  and  calm.  The  violence  of  the 
disease,  and  its  prostrating  effects  upon  his  constitution, 
deprived  him  of  those  hours  of  quiet  and  comparative  repose 
which  often  precede  dissolution ;  but  he  gave  abundant 
evidence  that  his  feet  were  fixed  upon  the  "  Rock  of  Ages,"  and 
that  for  him  ^'  to  die  was  gain."  He  was  watched  over  during 
the  Avhole  of  his  illness,  which  lasted  a  fortnight,  with  the  most 
tender  and  assiduous  care;  and  he  expired  amidst  the  prayers 
and  affectionate  sympathies  of  his  brethren,  by  whom  he  was 
greatly  beloved. 

Mr.  Findlay  was  the  first  Scotchman  who  had  been  connected 
with  the  Cape-Coast  district ;  and  by  his  steady  and  uniform 
piety,  and  general  conduct  towards  the  natives,  had  secured  the 
respect  and  esteem  of  all  who  knew  him.  He  died  in  the 
twenty-eighth  year  of  his  age,  and  the  first  of  his  ministry,  after 
a  residence  in  Africa  of  only  two  months  and  ten  days. 

During  the  same  month,  the  Gambia  mission  was  deprived  of 
the  valuable  services  of  Mr.  Lynn,  the  European  schoolmaster 
at  St.  Mary's,  who  was  removed  by  death  to  a  better  world. 
He  had  been  on  the  station  about  three  years,  and  was  very 
useful  to  the  mission,  as  well  as  in  the  school.  He  was  a  most 
devoted  and  excellent  man.  The  writer  has  several  letters  which 
he  received  from  him,  after  his  own  return  to  England;  and 
they  all  breathe  the  spirit  of  genuine  and  consistent  piety,  and 
an  ardent  desire  to  be  useful.  In  one  of  his  last  letters  he 
remarks :  "  With  my  soul  full  of  love  to  God  and  man,  I  am 
aware  that  your  kind  caution  is  not  out  of  place ;  nor  will  I  say 
that  I  do  not  require  a  little  of  it  in  this  sultry  clime.  But  O, 
what  need  for  labour  !  How  dark,  how  ignorant,  I  find  the 
minds  of  the  children  and  the  people  by  whom  I  am  surrounded  ! 
And  shall  I  not  exert  my  every  poAver  to  remove  those  charac- 
teristics ?  I  have,  I  must  confess  it,  laboured  hard,  perhaps  too 
hard  for  my  constitution  ;  but  never  too  hard  for  my  Master, — 
He  is  so  good  ! "  The  removal  of  such  an  agent  was  felt  to  be  a 
loss  not  easily  repaired,  and  was  regarded  as  a  public  calamity 
by  all  classes  of  the  inhabitants  of  that  colony.  Mr.  Lynn  died 
of  intestinal  haemorrhage,  on  the  23d  of  March,  1846,  after  an 
illness  of  ten  days.     His  end  was  peace. 

There  were,  during  the  last  year,  some  cheering  indications 
of  good  at  Sierra-Lconc,  notwithstanding  the  loss  by  death  just 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA- LEONE.  589 

mentioned.     This  will  be  seen  from  the  following  extract  from 
the  Annual  Eeport  for  that  year : — 

In  the  Free-Town  circuit,  the  state  of  things  is  generally  encouraging.  The 
chapel  in  Bathurst-street  is  attended  by  large  congregations  on  the  week-day 
evenings  when  religious  services  are  held,  as  well  as  on  the  sabbath-day.  In  our 
religious  society  at  Portuguese-Town,  there  are  some  who  have  been  steady 
members  from  an  early  period  of  the  history  of  the  society's  mission  in  the  colony. 
At  New-Town  West,  where  we  have  upwards  of  five  hundred  church-merabers, 
the  chapel  is  often  crowded  to  excess,  while  hundreds  of  persons  are  also 
frequently  seen  on  the  outside,  listening  to  the  word  vrith  great  attention.  The 
chapel  at  Soldier-Town  is  generally  "  filled  with  devout  worshippers."  The  same 
may  be  said  of  our  place  of  worship,  which  is  a  good  stone  building,  at  Gibraltar- 
Town.  At  Kroo-TowTi,  a  large  and  commodious  chapel,  contiguous  to  our  Institu- 
tion for  training  native  teachers,  has  been  recently  completed.  Great  local 
exertions  have  been  made  towards  defraying  the  expense  of  these  erections.  The 
labours  of  the  missionaries  have  been  attended  with  much  success  at  New-Town. 
A  few  years  since  the  people  were  in  a  state  of  heathenish  ignorance  and  demo- 
ralization ;  but  many  of  them  have  been  brought  under  the  saving  influence  of  the 
gospel.  At  Regent,  six  of  the  inhabitants  have  lately  presented  their  idols  to  the 
missionary  by  whom  they  have  been  instructed,  requesting  him  to  throw  them  into 
the  neighbouring  stream ;  while  they  have  devoted  themselves  to  the  worship  and 
service  of  the  true  and  living  God.  The  inhabitants  of  Murray-Town  are  Ackus 
and  Kakandas,  many  of  whom  also  have  cast  their  idols  "  to  the  moles  and  to  the 
bats,"  and  are  now  consistent  members  of  our  religious  society.  At  the  other 
places  in  the  circuit  there  are  indications  of  good  among  the  people. 

About  this  time,  a  misuuderstancling  unfortunately  arose 
between  one  of  the  resident  missionaries  and  two  of  the  native 
teachers,  at  the  Gambia;  and,  several  of  the  members  taking 
the  side  of  the  latter,  the  society  was  kept  in  an  unsettled  state 
for  some  months. 

The  operations  of  this  mission  were  also  seriously  interrupted, 
during  that  year  and  some  part  of  the  next,  by  the  return  to 
England  of  Mr.  Benjamin  Chapman,  and  subsequently  of  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Godman,  on  account  of  ill  health;  so  that  Mr.  Par- 
sonson  was  for  some  time  the  only  English  missionary  left  at 
the  Gambia.  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Davie  were  sent  out  as  soon  as 
possible  to  his  assistance,  more  especially  in  the  school  depart- 
ment,— the  former  being  appointed  as  catechist,  and  the  latter 
to  take  part  in  training  the  female  children  attending  the 
mission-school. 

Mr.  and  ]\Irs,  Annear,  of  the  Gold-Coast  mission,  had  also 
been  compelled  to  return  to  Europe,  during  the  early  part  of 
the  year,  and  subsequently  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Dove  from  Sierra- 
Leone.  Mr.  Dove  had  been  connected  with  the  West- African 
missions  since  the  year  1833 ;  and  though  he  had  spent  some 
of  that  time  in  England,  yet  he  had  been  longer  on  the  Coast 
than  any  other  Wesleyan  missionary  up  to  this  period. 


590  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

On  the  1st  of  November,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wrench,  with  Mr. 
John  Lewis,  embarked  at  Gravesend  for  Sierra-Leone,  where 
they  arrived  in  safety  on  the  7th  of  the  following  month ;  and 
in  January,  1847,  the  Gold-Coast  mission  received  a  reinforce- 
ment by  the  arrival  of  Messrs.  John  Thomas,  John  Harrop,  and 
Charles  Hillard. 

Mrs.  Godman,  whose  return  home  we  have  just  mentioned, 
shortly  after  her  arrival  in  this  country,  sank  under  the  disease 
which  had  rendered  necessary  her  removal  from  the  Gambia 
mission.  In  the  possession  of  "  peace  and  joy  through  believ- 
ing,^^ she  entered  into  the  eternal  world  on  the  9th  of  March, 
1847.  Mr.  Godman,  with  Messrs.  Annear  and  Benjamin 
Chapman,  sailed,  in  a  few  months  after,  for  other  parts  of  the 
Heathen  world ;  and  Mr.  Dove,  after  a  short  stay  in  Gibraltar, 
was  appointed  to  an  English  circuit. 

Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wrench,  during  the  summer  of  that  year, 
returned  from  Sierra-Leone,  on  account  of  the  deHcate  state  of 
Mrs.  Wrenches  health ;  and  about  the  same  time,  Mrs.  Parson- 
son,  at  the  Gambia,  was  compelled  by  severe  affliction  to  return 
to  England.  But  Mr.  Parsonson,  being  the  only  European  mis- 
sionary at  that  time  in  the  district,  could  not,  consistently  with  his 
sense  of  duty,  leave  his  work ;  and  therefore  remained  till  Provi- 
dence more  fully  opened  his  way  to  return.  Mr.  Wrench  subse- 
quently sailed  for  the  West  Indies,  where  he  is  now  labouring. 

On  the  1st  of  September,  Mr.  David  Griffiths  took  his 
departure  from  Sierra-Leone  for  his  native  land,  on  account  of 
ill  health,  having  laboured  in  that  colony  nearly  two  years ;  and 
Mr.  Hasten,  who  had  left  Sierra-Leone  a  few  months  previoush^, 
after  a  short  stay  in  England,  a  third  time  embarked  for  that 
important  station.  ]\Ir.  Hasten  was  accompanied  by  Mrs.  Has- 
ten, 2d,  and  by  Messrs.  Richard  Hart  and  Thomas  Purslow. 
They  sailed  by  the  "Dale  Park^^  on  the  3d  of  November, 
and,  after  a  very  pleasant  voyage  of  only  five  weeks,  landed  at 
Sierra-Leone  on  the  8th  of  December,  and  were  received  with 
many  manifestations  of  joyous  greeting.  A  few  days  after 
these  departures,  Messrs.  George^  Meadows  and  Bobert  Lean 
embarked  by  the  "Copy"  for  the  Biver  Gambia;  and  they 
landed  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  same  day  as  the  other  mission-party 
reached  Sierra-Leone. 

On  the  15th  of  January,  1848,  Mr.  and  Mrs,  Allen  and  John 
Martin  were  called  to  leave  their  interesting  spheres  of  use- 
fulness at  the  Gold-Coast,  through  a  failure  of  their  health, 
inore  particularly  that  of  Mrs.  Allen  and  Mr.  Martin.  They 
arrived  in  England  on  the  2d  of  March.     Mr.  Martin  had,  for 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  591 

more  tlian  four  years  in  succession,  laboured  at  the  different 
stations  in  tlie  district,  and  had  suffered  from  repeated  attacks 
of  fever.  Mr.  Allen  had  been  connected  with  the  mission  for 
six  years  and  upwards,  and  had  been  twice  to  Africa.  It  was 
his  intention  to  have  still  laboured  there  ;  and  in  a  few  months 
after  his  arrival  in  England,  he  actually  embarked  for  that  pur- 
pose ;  but  circumstances  having  occurred  which  prevented  his 
further  services  in  Western  Africa,  he  has  since  that  period  been 
connected  with  the  ministry  at  home.  Mr.  John  Martin  and 
Mr.  David  Griffiths  are  also  usefully  employed  as  ministers  of 
the  gospel  in  their  o^rn  country. 

We  have  now  to  record  two  lamented  deaths  which  occurred 
in  connexion  with  these  missions,  during  the  year  of  which  we 
are  speaking.  They  were,  Mr.  Lean  at  the  Gambia,  and  Mr. 
Purslow  at  Sierra-Leone. 

Robert  Lean  Avas  called  to  his  eternal  home,  after  a  resi- 
dence in  Africa  of  only  three  months  and  a  half.  He  was  a 
native  of  Cornwall,  and  was  born  in  the  neighbourhood  of 
Redruth,  in  the  year  1824.  When  about  eighteen  years  of  age, 
he  was  converted  to  God ;  and  about  the  same  time,  the  perusal 
of  Mr.  Freeman^s  Two  Visits  to  the  Kingdom  of  Ashantee  was 
made  a  great  blessing  to  him.  Africa  was  now  impressed  upon 
his  heart ;  and  he  believed  that  God  would  one  day  open  his 
way  to  labour  among  that  degraded  and  suffering  people. 
Having  acted  for  some  time  in  the  capacity  of  a  local  preacher 
in  the  lledruth  circuit,  where  he  was  very  useful,  and  greatly 
beloved,  he  was  proposed  as  a  missionary  candidate,  and  accepted 
as  such  by  the  Conference  of  1847.  He  was  very  desirous  of 
enjoying  the  advantages  of  the  Theological  Institution;  but 
almost  immediately  after  the  Conference,  he  was  sent  by  the 
president  to  assist  one  of  the  preachers  in  his  own  county, 
whose  health  had  failed ;  and  shortly  after  this  he  received  a 
call  from  the  Missionary  Committee  to  go  to  the  Gambia :  he 
therefore  returned  to  his  native  place  to  make  preparations  for 
his  departure,  and  take  leave  of  his  friends  and  "widowed 
mother."  One  of  the  ministers  on  whom  he  called  on  this 
occasion,  writes,  "  I  was  struck  with  his  appearance  :  his  coun- 
tenance was  lit  up  with  delight,  and  soon  his  full  heart  uttered 
itself, — *  I  am  appointed  to  Western  Africa.^  "  In  a  conversa- 
tion he  had  with  this  minister,  he  said  he  would  much  rather 
go  to  Africa  than  to  any  circuit  at  home,  and  that  the  hand  of 
God  was  in  the  call.  During  the  few  days  he  was  amongst  his 
friends,  arranging  his  affairs,  he  assisted  at  one  or  two  of  the 


592  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

circuit  missionary  meetings,  when  the  congregations  were  deeply 
affected  at  hearing  him  in  the  most  cheerful  and  unreserved 
manner  present  his  all  on  the  missionary  altar,  to  live  and  work, 
or  suffer  and  die,  for  Him,  "  to  whom  his  more  than  all  was  due/' 
His  departure  and  arrival  in  Africa  have  already  been  men- 
tioned. From  St.  Mary's,  under  date  of  January  4th,  1848,  he 
wrote :  "  I  had  a  glorious  time  last  Sunday  afternoon  in  our 
little  chapel  at  New-Town :  while  pleading  with  God  for  poor 
Africa,  I  felt  as  I  scarcely  ever  did  before.  On  the  one  hand,  I 
was  led  to  contemplate  the  perishing  millions  by  whom  I  am 
surrounded;  and,  on  the  other,  the  many  young  men  in  my 
native  country,  whose  souls  are  burning  with  zeal  for  their  sal- 
vation, and  yet  cannot  be  sent.  I  felt  the  weight  of  souls  laid 
upon  me,  and  wept  and  struggled  with  God ;  and  then  endea- 
voured to  explain  the  first  Psalm."  Shortly  after  this,  he  again 
wrote  : — "  Last  night,  on  meeting  the  class,  I  had  an  over- 
whelming season  ;  my  cup  was  full  and  running  over  :"such  was 
my  sympathy  for  souls,  the  souls  of  Africa,  that  my  heart  was 
melted.  '  My  head  was  water,  and  my  eyes  a  fountain  of  tears.' 
I  would  rather  be  here  than  any  where  else  in  the  world.  My 
soul  grasps  Africa,  nothing  less  than  the  whole  of  Africa." 
Being  appointed  by  the  district-meeting  to  occupy  the  station 
at  JNIacarthy's  Island,  he  proceeded  thither  in  February,  and 
there  commenced  his  work  under  circumstances  of  much  encou- 
ragement. But  it  pleased  the  Great  Head  of  the  church  to  put 
a  speedy  termination  to  his  labours.  After  preaching  on  Sun- 
day, March  11th,  he  became  unwell;  the  usual  symptoms  of 
fever  soon  made  their  appearance,  and  in  twelve  days  termi- 
nated his  mortal  career.  During  the  short  time  which  Mr. 
Lean  had  spent  in  the  Gambia,  he  had  acquired  the  love  both 
of  the  people  of  his  charge,  and  of  liis  missionary  brethren.  He 
died  at  Macarthy's  Island  in  great  peace,  March  23d,  1848,  in 
the  twenty-fourth  year  of  his  age. 

Thomas  Purslow  departed  this  life,  "happy  in  God,"  at 
Sierra-Leone,  on  the  2d  of  October,  1848.  He  was  the  subject 
of  the  benign  and  gracious  influence  of  the  Spirit  at  an  early 
period  of  his  life.  Possessing  the  advantages  of  parental  example 
and  instruction,  he  was  conducted  to  the  house  of  God,  where 
he  became  impressed  with  those  principles  and  truths  which 
marked  and  adorned  his  after-life.  At  the  age  of  sixteen  he 
obtained  a  clear  sense  of  God's  pardoning  love,  which  he  con- 
tinued to  enjoy  to  the  latest  moment  of  his  existence.  In  the 
year  1839,  he  came  to  reside  in  Birmingham,  and  was  at  that 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  593 

time  a  zealous  and  useful  local  preacher.  He  subsequently 
removed  into  Yorksliire,  and  afterwards  to  the  Dunster  circuit 
in  Somersetshire ;  from  which  place  he  was  recommended  to  the 
Conference  as  a  missionary  candidate.  In  the  autumn  of  1847, 
he  embarked,  with  the  mission-party  before  named,  for  Sierra- 
Leone  ;  where  he  continued  to  labour  with  great  zeal  and  dili- 
gence, with  very  little  interruption,  up  to  a  short  period  before 
his  death.  By  the  district-meeting  he  was  appointed  tutor  at 
the  Educational  Institution  at  King  Tom's  Point ;  where,  by 
the  kindness  of  his  disposition,  the  fervour  of  his  piety,  and  his 
unwearied  attention  to  the  spiritual  and  intellectual  welfare  of 
the  students,  he  soon  secured  their  sincere  respect,  as  well  as 
the  esteem  and  confidence  of  his  brethren,  and  of  all  who  knew 
him.  But  his  career,  like  that  of  many  of  those  who  had  preceded 
him,  was  short.  The  rainy  season  was  well-nigh  over,  and  it 
was  hoped  he  would  have  escaped  the  usual  attacks  of  fever. 
But  on  the  22d  of  September,  he  was  "laid  low."  On  the 
27th,  however,  the  disease  had  so  far  yielded  to  medical  skill, 
that  there  appeared  good  reason  to  believe  the  worst  was  over, 
and  that  he  would  speedily  be  restored.  But  in  this  his  friends 
were  disappointed;  for,  on  the  sabbath  following,  October  1st, 
there  were  symptoms  so  alarming,  that  the  doctor  remained 
with  him  during  the  greater  part  of  the  day.  The  following 
morning  he  was  extremely  feeble ;  yet  he  conversed  freely,  and 
often  expressed  his  thankfulness  to  God  for  his  mercies.  Nei- 
ther he  nor  his  brethren  had  any  idea  that  life  was  so  fast  ebb- 
ing out.  The  delirium  under  which  he  had  at  times  suffered 
now  passed  away,  and  his  mind  was  composed  and  happJ^ 
About  ten  o'clock  he  rallied  a  little,  and  with  peculiar  emphasis 
repeated  that  cheering  promise,  "  My  God  shall  supply  all  your 
need,  according  to  his  riches  in  glory  by  Christ  Jesus."  These 
were  the  last  words  which  escaped  from  his  dying  lips.  At 
eleven  o'clock  he  became  unconscious  of  those  around  him ;  and 
in  another  hour,  while  his  brethren  were  commending  him  to 
God  in  prayer,  his  happy  spirit,  reposing  with  entire  confidence 
upon  the  merits  of  the  Redeemer,  was  gently  borne  away,  with- 
out a  struggle,  or  a  groan,  or  a  sigh,  to  the  paradise  of  God. 

Mr.  Purslow  was  a  man  of  prayer,  and  of  decided  and  consist- 
ent piety.  His  style  of  preaching  was  plain,  earnest,  and  often 
pathetic.  He  carried  out  system  and  order  in  every  thing,  and 
his  sermons  were  marked  by  clearness  of  thought  and  aptness 
of  arrangement.  To  every  duty  and  engagement  he  paid  the 
most  scrupulous  attention,  and  no  private  or  personal  considera- 
tion kept  him  from  fulfilling  the  work  which  the    Lord  had 

Q  Q 


591  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

given  liim  to  do.  He  had  scarcely  been  in  Africa  ten  months, 
when  he  was  thus  mysteriously  removed  by  death ;  but  he  left  a 
savour  behind  him  which  will  not  soon  be  lost  or  forgotten. 
He  was  thirty  years  of  age  when  he  died ;  and  at  his  funeral  it 
is  supposed  there  were  near  two  thousand  persons  present, 
among  whom  were  His  Excellency  the  governor,  and  several 
clergymen  and  respectable  gentlemen  of  the  colony. 

A  few  weeks  before  the  Conference  of  1848,  Mr.  Badger 
returned  from  the  Coast,  where  he  had  been  laboriously 
engaged  during  his  second  term  of  service  of  nearly  five  years. 
He  called  at  the  Gambia  on  his  way  to  England,  having  been 
for  the  few  previous  years  constituted  visiter  of  that  district ;  and 
he  was  at  the  Conference  appointed  to  reside  there,  as  the  gene- 
ral superintendent  of  the  Gambia  missions.  Two  or  three  of 
the  natives  from  Sierra-Leone,  who  were  local  preachers,  had 
accompanied  Mr.  Badger  to  England  on  business ;  and  having 
remained  in  this  country  for  some  months,  they  frequently 
preached,  and  attended  several  missionary  meetings,  in  different 
parts  of  the  kingdom  :  thus  aff'ording,  to  the  friends  of  missions 
in  England,  visible  and  practical  demonstrations  of  the  fruit  of 
missionary  labour  and  toil,  both  in  a  temporal  and  a  spiritual 
point  of  view.  The  following  short  speech,  which  was  delivered 
at  the  Wesieyan  chapel  in  Jewin-street,  in  the  First  London 
circuit,  on  Wednesday  evening,  October  25th,  may  be  intro- 
duced here : — 

Mr.  Joseph  Will,  from  Sierra-Leone,  said,  it  afforded  him  great  i)leasiire  to  meet 
with  them,  and  to  have  the  opportunity  of  saying  something  on  behalf  of  that  glo- 
rious gospel  from  which  he  had  derived  so  much  benefit.  They  had  been  told, 
that  he  was  a  native  of  Sierra-Leone  ;  but  that  was  not  his  birth-place,  for  he  was 
born  in  the  interior  of  Africa,  some  hundred  miles  from  the  sea-shore.  About 
nineteen  years  ago  he  was  kidnapped  from  his  parents,  and  was  sold  for  a  slave  to 
the  Spaniards  ;  l)ut,  after  suffering  much,  they  were  met  on  their  way  to  the  Havannah 
by  an  English  man-of-war,  and,  after  a  hot  battle,  they  were  recaptured,  and  were 
carried  to  Sierra-Leone,  where  they  were  immediately  set  free.  For  that  they  felt 
they  were  veiy  much  indebted  to  the  Government  of  England ;  and  they  were  also 
indebted  to  the  good  people  of  England,  because  they  had  sent  missionaries  out  to 
them,  to  tell  them  of  the  truth  of  the  gospel,  which  produced  the  same  effect  in 
Africa  as  it  did  in  England.  When  he  arrived  in  Sierra-Leone,  he  was  still  a  Hea- 
then ;  but,  about  thirteen  years  ago,  he  was  invited  to  go  to  chapel  to  hear  a  new 
missionary,  whose  name  was  Mr.  Crosby ;  he,  however,  did  not  preach,  Mr.  Wise, 
another  missionary,  preaching  in  bis  stead ;  but  he  preached  the  same  truth,  and  he 
(Mr.  Will)  was  convinced,  and  that  conviction  ended  in  his  conversion.  He  expe- 
rienced, as  it  were,  a  start  from  death  to  life,  from  darkness  to  the  light  of  day ; 
and  since  that  time  he  had  been  always  among  that  body  of  people,  and  had 
rejoiced  with  them  in  the  Lord.     He  had  been  an  exhorter,  a  class-leader,  and  a 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AM)    SIERR  4-LEONE.  ->9J 

local  preacher  among  his  own  coiintrynieu  at  Sierra-Leone ;  and  he  had  endea- 
vonred  to  hring  others  to  the  same  fold.  He  could  tell  them  that  their  labour  had 
not  been  in  vain  ;  for  they  could  look  upon  such  an  one  as  himself,  a  born  Heathen, 
but  who,  througli  the  instrumentality  of  the  missionary  sent  to  Sierra-Leone,  had 
been  brought  to  the  knowledge  of  the  truth  as  it  -was  in  Jesus ;  and  there  were 
hundreds,  nay,  thousands,  besides  himself,  who  had  also  been  converted.  The 
society  altogether  numbered  more  than  four  thousand  members ;  they  had  more 
than  two  hundred  leaders,  and  about  fifty  local  preachers,  all  uniting  their  efforts 
to  pull  down  the  strong-hold  of  slavery.  There  were  besides  a  Church  mission,  a 
Baptist  mission,  and  some  few  persons  connected  with  Lady  Huntingdon's  church  : 
but  they  had  no  Roman  Catholic ;  and  if  they  went  there  now,  they  would  be  too 
late,  as  they  were  all  Bible  Christians  in  Sierra-Leone.  The  sabbath  was  kept  holy 
there ;  and  they  were  all  trying  to  do  all  they  could  to  spread  the  saving  truth  of 
the  gospel  among  their  fellow-countrymen  ;  and  they  had  reason  to  rejoice  and  to 
say,  that  they  lived  in  a  Christian  colony.  As  the  time  was  getting  late,  he  would 
not  detain  them  longer,  but  conclude  by  moving  the  Resolution  intrusted  to  him, 
referring  to  the  election  of  officers  for  the  ensuing  year. 

In  the  early  part  of  September  of  this  year,  the  venerable  and 
benevolent  Dr.  Lincloe,  of  Chfton,  Bristol,  (formerly  of  South- 
ampton,) expired  in  great  peace  and  "  in  a  good  old  age."  The 
author,  during  his  residence  of  three  years  in  that  city,  had  fre- 
quent opportunities  of  seeing  this  good  man  and  liberal  contri- 
butor to  our  missions ;  and  was  the  medium  of  conveying  to  the 
parent  Society  several  handsome  donations,  as  may  be  seen 
from  the  "  Missionary  Notices ;"  and  he  has  great  pleasure  in 
transcribing  into  these  pages  the  following  document,  which 
was  published  in  the  December  Number  of  the  "  Missionary 
Notices  "  of  the  same  year : — 

General  Committee,  September  21  th,  1848. 

A  letter  containing  intelligence  of  the  death  of  Robert  Lindoe,  Esq.,  M.D.,  of 
Clifton,  Bristol,  hanng  been  brought  under  the  notice  of  the  committee,  it  was 
unanimously  resolved, — 

"  That  the  committee  receive  with  deep  feeling  the  mournful  intelligence  of  the 
removal  of  one  by  whose  countenance  and  efficient  aid  they  have  been  encouraged 
and  sustained,  during  many  years,  in  the  prosecution  of  their  missionary  plans 
generally,  and  more  especially  in  regard  to  Western  Africa.  Considering  the  large 
amount  of  his  donations  and  subscriptions  from  his  own  private  property  and 
income,  and  his  unwearied  endeavours  to  engage  the  sympathy  and  assistance  of 
others  in  support  of  measiues  for  promoting  the  Christian  instruction  and  social 
improvement  of  the  native  tribes  and  people  to  whom  access  is  afforded  by  the 
navigation  of  the  river  Gambia, — the  committee  feel  that  the  Society  has  been 
deprived  of  one  of  its  most  attached  and  liberal  supporters,  while  the  Afi'ican  race 
has  lost  one  of  its  best  friends  and  patrons  ;  and  they  further  record  their  full  con- 
viction, that  in  his  untiring  zeal,  which  rose  superior  to  every  discouragement,  and 
in  his  self-denying  exertions  in  the  best  of  causes,  Dr.  Lindoe  has  left  an  example 
of  Christian  philanthropy  worthy  of  general  imitation.  To  Mrs.  Lindoe  the  com- 
mittee convey  their  most  sincere  condolence,  at  the  same  time  that  they  offer  ear- 
nest  prayer  to  Almighty  God  that  He  may  graciously  vouchsafe   unto  her  those 

2  Q  2 


596  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

Divine  consolations  which  will  comfort  and  sustain  her  in  the  circumstances  of 
bereavement  and  trial  in  which  she  has  been  placed  by  the  afflictive  event." 


On  the  10th  of  November,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Badger  embarked 
at  Gravesend,  on  board  the  "Dale-Park,"  for  Sierra-Leone,  on 
their  way  to  the  Gambia ;  and  Mr.  George  Parsonson,  who  had 
returned  from  that  district  in  the  month  of  September,  shortly 
after  sailed  for  Southern  Africa.  Mr.  Parsonson  had  spent 
several  years  on  the  Western  Coast  of  this  continent,  from 
which,  it  will  be  recollected,  IMrs.  Parsonson  was  obliged  to 
return  to  England  during  the  preceding  year ;  but  her  health 
having  now  become  re-established,  she  embarked  with  her  hus- 
band for  their  new  sphere  of  labour,  though  it  was  in  the  same 
quarter  of  the  globe. 

The  object  of  Mr.  Badger's  taking  Sierra-Leone  in  his  route 
to  the  Gambia,  was,  to  procure  from  that  flourishing  station  a 
re-inforcement  of  native  agents  for  the  latter  place,  Pierre 
Sallah  and  John  Cupidon  having  retired  from  the  work ;  and 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  Davie,  who  had  been  connected  with  the  school- 
department,  were  shortly  after  under  the  necessity  of  returning 
to  England  through  serious  indisposition.  Mr.  Badger,  on  this 
occasion,  selected  Mr.  May  and  Mr.  Leigh,  both  married  men ; 
and  the  whole  party  proceeded  without  delay  to  the  scene  of 
their  future  labours,  and  landed  at  St.  Mary's  on  the  21st  of 
February,  1849.  This  was  Mr.  Badger's  third  term  of  arduous 
toil  in  this  part  of  the  mission-field. 

At  the  close  of  January,  Mr.  Walter  Garry  and  Mr.  Frederick 
Hart  sailed  from  London,  for  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa,  as 
Wesleyan  missionaries.  The  former  was  appointed  to  Sierra- 
Leone,  and  the  latter  to  the  Gold-Coast  district;  and  they 
arrived  at  their  respective  places  of  destination  in  the  month  of 
March.  Mr.  Garry,  like  Mr.  Wharton,  is  a  native  of  Grenada 
in  the  West  Indies ;  and  is  the  fruit  of  missionary  labour  in 
those  islands.  Having  passed  his  examination  as  a  candidate 
for  the  ministry  at  the  district-meeting  in  Barbadoes,  and  being 
very  young,  he  was  sent  to  the  Theological  Institution  at  Rich- 
mond, where  he  continued  his  studies  with  great  advantage  for 
three  years,  at  the  expiration  of  which  he  received  his  appoint- 
ment to  Sierra-Leone. 

Mr.  Hart  was  cordially  welcomed  at  the  Gold-Coast ;  but  the 
additional  strength  to  the  ministerial  staff  which  this  one  arrival 
had  created,  was  more  than  counterbalanced  by  the  departure 
from  the  Coast,  about  the  same  time,  of  two  excellent  labourers, 
whose  constitutions  had   been  so  affected  by  the  debilitating 


THE    GOLU-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE,  597 

influence  of  the  climate,  that  they  were  under  the  necessity  of 
returning  to  England.  These  were  Messrs.  Addison  and  Thomas. 
Mr.  Harrop  had  also  returned  some  months  previously,  from 
the  same  cause.  The  first  of  these  brethren  had  spent  more 
than  three  years  on  the  Coast ;  the  second,  upwards  of  two ; 
and  the  other,  not  quite  so  long.  Messrs.  Addison  and  Harrop 
had  so  far  recovered,  however,  that,  at  the  Manchester  Confer- 
ence in  1849,  they  received  appointments  to  English  circuits ; 
but  Mr.  Thomas  remained  an  invalid  for  some  months  longer. 
The  Gold-Coast  district  experienced  a  farther  reduction  and  loss 
at  the  commencement  of  the  year  1850,  in  the  return  to  this 
country,  through  ill  health,  of  Mr.  Charles  Hillard,  who  had 
been  on  the  Coast  rather  more  than  three  years,  and  Avho,  a 
part  of  that  time,  had  laboured  at  Coomassie,  the  capital  of 
Ashantee.  Mr.  John  Lewis,  also,  having  laboured  nearly  three 
years  and  a  half  at  Sierra-Leone,  requiring  a  change,  left  that 
colony  for  England  in  the  month  of  May. 

As  the  present  chapter,  thus  far,  has  been  principally  taken 
up  with  departures,  arrivals,  aud  deaths,  I  must  refer  the  reader 
to  the  annual  Reports  and  other  periodicals  of  the  Wesleyan 
Missionary  Society  for  further  information  respecting  the  spirit- 
ual state  and  progress  of  these  missions,  during  the  past  few 
years,  which  we  have  thus  rapidly  sketched.  In  them,  and  in 
the  "Missionary  Notices"  in  particular,  will  be  found  interest- 
ing communications  from  nearly  all  the  excellent  brethren  whose 
names  have  been  mentioned  in  this  chapter. 

The  last  "  Eeport  of  the  Wesleyan-Methodist  Missionary 
Society,  for  the  Year  ending  April,  1850,"  contains  the  follow- 
ing statements  and  statistics  respecting  these  missions : — 

SIERRA-LEONE. 

Free-Town,  ^"c,  Thomas  Raston,  general  superintendent  of  the  Wesleyan  mis- 
sions at  Sierra-Leone  ;  John  Lewis,  jun.,  Richard  Hart,  Joseph  Wright,  native  mis- 
sionary, and  Walter  Garry. 

Hastings,  H'elUngton,  ls(C.,  Charles  Knight,  native  missionary. 

York,  Plantain's  Island,  S^-c,  George  IL  Decker,  native  assistant  missionary. 

This  important  mission  continues  to  enjoy  much  prosperity.  Through  the  bless- 
ing of  God  accompanying  the  appointed  ordinances  of  religion,  the  work  of  religion 
both  deepens  and  extends.  There  is  an  evident  improvement  in  the  tone  of  per- 
sonal piety  among  our  people,  and  there  has  been  a  net  increase  of  three  hundred 
and  fifty-eight  in  the  number  of  full  and  accredited  church-members  during  the 
last  year. 

The  most  serious  diificulty  which  is  now  experienced  at  this  mission  has  resulted 
from  the  rapid  increase  which  has  taken  place.     The  existing  chapels  scarcely  fur- 


598  WESTKRN    COAST    OF    AFllICA. 

nisb  accommodation  for  half  of  our  own  people ;  and  a  sufficient  amount  of  sub- 
scriptions could  not  be  raised  upon  the  spot,  to  erect  large  new  chapels  to  meet  the 
exigency  ■which  has  arisen.  The  number  of  church-members  and  scholars  con- 
nected with  the  Bathurst-street  chapel,  at  Free-Town,  is  eleven  hundred  and 
seventy-six ;  but  the  chapel  will  not  accommodate  more  than  six  hundred  persons. 
The  Grass-Field  chapel  will  only  contain  seven  hundred ;  but  the  chiu-cb-members 
and  scholars  alone  amount  to  thirteen  hundred  and  seventy-nine  :  and  the  Gibraltar 
chapel,  also,  is  not  half  large  enough  to  contain  the  congregation.  Exertions  have 
been  making  for  some  time  to  raise  a  sufficient  fund  for  the  building  of  the  pro- 
posed new  "  Buxton  chapel,"  and  the  sum  of  seven  hundred  pounds  has  been  con- 
tributed towards  it  by  the  people  ;  but  the  amount  received  from  all  sources  is  not 
yet  sufficient  to  meet  the  expense  of  the  erection.  The  missionaries  write  upon 
the  subject  with  great  feeling  and  earnestness,  apprehensive  that  the  work  must 
eventually  suffer,  if  sufficient  chapel-accommodation  cannot  be  provided  for  our 
religious  societies  and  congregations. 

In  the  education  department  progress  is  made.  "  We  are  using,"  the  mission- 
aries report,  "  the  best  agency  of  which  we  can  avail  ourselves ;  and,  upon  the 
whole,  the  class  of  teachers  now  employed  are  superior  to  any  we  have  ever  before 
had  in  the  service  of  the  mission."  The  details  furnished  respecting  the  several 
schools,  show  that  the  teachers  are  diligently  and  successfully  applying  themselves 
to  their  important  duties.  The  Report  of  the  Institution  for  training  native  teach- 
ers, at  King  Tom's  Point,  is,  on  the  whole,  encouraging ;  although  it  has  been 
found  necessary  to  dismiss  a  few  of  the  students  for  irregularity  of  conduct.  The 
present  inmates  appetir  to  be  truly  pious,  and  are  very  exemplary  in  their  conduct, 
and  in  their  dibgent  attention  to  the  prescribed  course  of  study  in  the  Institution. 
One  of  the  students  has  been  appointed,  in  the  course  of  the  year,  as  an  exhoner, 
and  is  em])loyed  on  the  Lord's  day  in  conducting  public  reUgious  ser\-ices  in  the 
smaller  places.  His  piety  and  general  quaUfications  warrant  the  hope  that  he  will 
prove  an  useful  missionary  agent.  The  names  of  several  others  are  given,  who 
have  been  placed  at  various  schools ;  and  they  are  reported  as  answering  the 
expectations  which  had  been  formed  respecting  them.  The  missionaries  refer  to 
the  Institution  in  a  very  encouraging  strain.  They  say :  "  The  young  men  of  this 
and  kindred  institutions  are  our  hope.  We  look  to  them  as  the  future  instniments, 
under  God,  of  spreacbng  the  knowledge  of  the  Redeemer  throughout  this  vast  con- 
tinent ;  and  we  trust  that,  by  prayerfulness  and  fUligence  on  our  part,  and  with 
God's  blessing  on  the  work  of  our  hands,  they  will  be  prepared  to  sow  the  precious 
seed  of  the  word  in  the  hearts  of  their  benighted  countr3men,  which  shall  spring 
up  unto  everlasting  life." 

The  Hastings  circuit  partakes  of  the  general  prosperity  of  the  mission.  At  the 
town  of  Hastings,  "  the  work  of  God  is  steadily  advancing."  From  Wellington, 
the  report  is  similar.  Our  large  and  substantial  stone  chapel  there  "  is  generally 
filled  on  the  Lord's  day  with  an  overflowing  congregation,"  and  our  people  "  walk 
worthy  of  their  high  vocation."  "  Our  cause  at  Allen-Town  is  aUke  improving  ; " 
and  "  at  Waterloo,"  the  missionaries  say,  "  we  have  everj'  encouragement  to  perse- 
verance, by  the  past  success  which  has  attended  our  labours,  and  by  the  cheering 
prospects  of  doing  good  which  are  before  us."  The  mission-schools  in  this  circuit 
are  reported  as  "  still  very  encouraging." 

York  was  formerly  notorious  for  the  prevalence  of  Heathenish  superstition  and 
practices  ;  but  the  missionaries  now  rejoice  in  the  change  which  has  been  effected. 
In  the  latter  part  of  1842,  a  gracious  religious  awakening  took  place,  and  a  new 
state   of  things  commenced.     "The  chief  of  the  J kii  superstition  turned  'from 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AXD    SIERRA-LEO\  E. 


)9 


tlarkncss  to  light,  and  from  the  ])ower  of  Satan  unto  God,'  and  has  become  a  zeal- 
ous and  laborious  class-leader.  All  his  followers  also  turned  with  him.  Some  of 
these  have  since  died  in  the  faith,  and  left  a  good  testimony  behind  them."  The 
work  steadily  advances.  "  Our  large  chapel  is  well  filled  twice  every  sabbath  with 
serious  and  attentive  worshippers ;  and  we  are  thankful  that  our  society  increases, 
not  only  in  numbers,  but  also  in  piety."  There  is  more  or  less  encom'agement  at 
Sussex,  Hamilton,  and  Goderich.  At  Kent,  a  favourable  commencement  has  just 
been  made.     The  schools  in  the  York  circuit  continue  in  active  operation. 

The  following  is  a  tabidar  view  of  the  Sierra-Leone  district  :^ 


Chapels   

Other  preaching-places  

Missionaries  and  assistant  missionaries 

Subordinate  paid  agents : — 

Catechists,  &c 

Day-school  teachers 

Unpaid  agents : — 

Sabbath-scliool  teachers 

Local  preachers 

Pull  and  accredited  church-members 

On  trial  for  membership 

Sabbath-schools    

Sabbath-scholars  of  both  sexes 

Day-schools    

Day-scholars  of  both  sexes    

Total  number  of  scholars,  deducting  for  those  who 

attend  both  sabbath  and  week-day  schools 

Attendants  on  public  worship,  including  members  and 
scholars 


CENTRAL    OR     PRINCIPAL     STA- 
TIONS   OR    CIRCUITS. 


FREE-TOWN. 

16 
1 
5 

3 
21 


44 
3335 
352 
12 
659 
9 
1314 

1973 

5836 


HASTINGS  AND 

WELLINGTON. 

YORK. 

6 

7 

1 

1 

2 

1 

8 

8 

41 

24 

10 

7 

920 

457 

165 

45 

3 

3 

199 

220 

3 

4 

401 

307 

600 

385 

1561 

1117 

29 
2 
7 

6 

37 

153 
61 

4712 
562 

18 
1078 

16 
2022 

2958 


THE  GAMBIA. 

St.  Mary's,  and  Barra  Point,  Henry  Badger,  general  superintendent  of  the 
Gambia  missions  ;  and  George  Meadows. 

Ngahantang,  (Lower  Nyani,)  vacant. 

Macarthy's  Island,  Joseph  May,  native  assistant  missionary  ;  and  George  Leigh, 
native  teacher. 


The  promising  state  of  things  at  St.  Mary's,  which  Mr.  Badger  reported  last 
year,  continues  to  encourage  the  expectations  which  were  then  formed.  The  work 
has  advanced.  There  has  been  a  decided  improvement  in  the  tone  of  piety  among 
our  people ;  and  a  considerable  addition  to  the  numl)er  of  church-members  has 
been  made.  A  general  interest  in  the  mission  is  manifested  by  all  classes.  The 
subscriptions  to  the  general  mission-fund  have  considerably  increased;  and  the 
chapel  has  been  enlarged,  and  a  gallery  put  up  for  the  accommodation  of  the 
school- children  at  public  worship,  the  expense  of  which  has  been  nearly  met  by 
local  subscriptions.  There  has  also  been  considerable  prosperity  in  the  school, 
although  deprived  of  the  services  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Davie,  who  were  obliged  to  leave 
on  account  of  the  failure  of  their  health.  "  The  girls  have  had  much  attention 
paid  to  them.  They  have  been  taught  in  the  school  twice  in  the  day,  and  the 
most  promising  among  them   receive  additional    instruction  at  the  mission-house 


600 


WESTERN    COAST    OP    AFRICA. 


after  sfhool-liours.  They  are  beginning  to  appreciate  reading,  writing,  and  the 
other  branches  of  useful  education.  They  have  been  urged  to  greater  decorum  in 
their  general  conduct,  and  an  improvement  in  these  respects  is  already  manifest." 
That  the  parents  of  the  children  attach  some  importance  to  their  education  is  evi- 
dent, from  the  circumstance  that  the  missionaries  have  introduced  the  pay-system 
in  the  course  of  the  year ;  and  more  than  twelve  pounds  has  been  received  from 
those  parents  who  have  been  able  to  contribute  one  penny  per  week.  The  school 
has  been  honoiu-ed  by  a  visit  from  the  commodore  of  the  armed  squadron,  who 
called  at  St.  Mary's  on  board  H.M.S.  "Centaur;"  and,  after  having  attended  an 
examination  of  the  scholars,  he  presented,  as  an  expression  of  his  satisfaction,  an 
adfUtional  subscription  of  ten  pounds — having  previously  given  two  pounds — 
towards  the  support  of  the  Institution.  The  missionaries  wTite,  in  reference  to  the 
school,  "  We  have  proof  that  much  moral  and  reUgious  benefit  has  already  resulted 
from  oiu-  efforts ;  and  we  trust  that,  before  we  leave  our  work  for  oiu-  everlasting 
reward,  we  shall  see  many  go  forth  from  the  school  to  become  pillars  in  the  church 
of  God." 

The  station  at  Macarthy's  Island  has  been  placed  in  disadvantageous  circum- 
stances, owing  to  the  ravages  of  the  small-pox,  and  the  war  which  took  place 
between  the  Mandingoes  and  the  local  government ;  during  which  disturbance,  our 
class-leaders  and  several  of  our  church-members  were  called  to  the  barracks,  to 
supply  the  place  of  the  regular  troops.  The  entire  repair  of  the  mission-bouse  and 
premises  had  also  become  necessary.  Mr.  May,  whose  appointment  was  reported 
last  year,  has  been  assiduous  in  his  endeavours,  and  a  corresponding  measure  of 
success  has  been  his  reward.  At  George-Town,  he  reports,  "  Our  society  is  rapidly 
improving;  and  although  many  of  its  members  are  poor,  and  wanting  regular 
employment,  yet  they  are  '  diligent  in  business '  when  they  have  work  to  do,  and 
'  fervent  in  spirit,  serving  the  Lord.'  Though  they  were  deeply  ignorant  of  the 
principles  of  religion,  and  the  power  of  godUness,  yet  they  are  now  rising  from 
their  distress,  poverty,  and  ignorance,  to  knowledge  and  spuitual  prosperity.  The 
sabbath  and  week- night  congregations  are  good,  and  the  chapel  is  often  crowded  on 
sabbath-mornings.  The  congregation  consists  of  a  few  Europeans,  merchants  and 
clerks,  officers  and  soldiers,  sailors  and  Jalloofs,  liberated  Africans,  and  school- 
children. Many  of  the  people  who  had  been  unconcerned  about  reUgion,  and  had 
not,  I  am  told,  been  seen  in  a  place  of  worship  for  years,  are  now  found  regularly 
worshipping  in  the  house  of  God,  and  receiving  instruction  in  the  sabbath-schools. 
Some  have  come  to  me,  deeply  convinced  of  their  sins,  and,  with  tears,  have  asked 
my  help.  Of  those  who  have  been  recently  converted,  there  are  eight  persons  now 
in  my  class,  three  of  whom  are  Jalloofs.  One  of  the  latter  is  a  convert  from 
Mohammedanism.'-  The  school  suffered  much  daring  the  prevalence  of  the  small- 
pox ;  but  it  is  now  in  activity.  Mr.  May  instructs  the  higher  classes,  and  Mr.  Leigh 
the  remaining  classes  of  boys  ;  and  Mrs.  May  and  Mrs.  Leigh  teach  the  giiis.  A 
marked  improvement  is  already  visible ;  and  it  may  be  reasonably  hoped  that  this 
important  Institution,  being  now  placed  under  the  care  of  pious  and  well-qualified 
natives,  will  steadily  advance,  without  experiencing  any  more  such  interruptions  as 
have  formerly  resulted  from  the  frequent  failure  of  the  health  of  European  mission- 
aries and  teachers. 

The  following  is  a  tabular  view  of  the  Gambia  district : — 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


601 


Chapels    

Other  preaching-places  

Missionaries  and  assistant  missionaries 

Subordinate  paidjigents: — 

Catechists,  &c 

Day-school  teachers 

Unpaid  agents: — 

Sabbatli-school  teachers 

Local  preachers 

Full  and  accredited  church  members 

On  trial  for  membership 

Sabbath-schools 

Sabbath-scholars  of  both  sexes 

Day-schools 

Day-scholars  of  both  sexes 

Total  number  of  scholars,  deducting  for  those 
who  attend  both  sabbath  and  week-day  schools 
Attendants  on  public  worship,  including  mem- 
bers and  scholars 


CENTRAL  OR  PRINCIPAL  STATIONS  OR  CIRCUITS. 


Total. 


St.  Mary's. 

Barra- 
Foint. 

Ngabantang. 

Macarthy's 
Island. 

2 

1 

2 

2 

1 

1 
3 

1 

3 

10 
6* 
293* 
51* 
1 
180 

3 

1 
30 

24 
3 
183 
85 
1 
280 

370 

30 

121 

420 

30 

301 

800 

50 

400 

2 
6 

37 
9 

476 

136 
3 

490 
3 

521 

751 
1250 


*  These  three  items  include  Barra-Point. 


THE  GOLD-COAST,  ASHANTI,  AND  OTHER  PARTS  OF  GUINEA. 

Cape-Coast-Town,  Commenda,  Dix-Cove,  Sekundi,  Beulah,  and  Providence,  Tho- 
mas B.  Freeman,  Frederick  Hart ;  John  Hagan,  native  assistant  missionary ;  and 
Joseph  Dawson,  catechist. 

Anamahu,  Akroful,  Sfc,  Timothy  Laing,  catechist. 

Domonasi,  Abasa,  Bonasi,  dfc,  George  P.  Bro\vn,  catechist. 

British  Akrah,  Winnebah,  Sfc,  Henry  Wharton  ;  and  James  Solomon,  catechist. 

Ashanti,  John  Ansah,  catechist. 

Badagry,  (Slave-Coast,)  and  Abbeokuta,  (Yuruba,)  John  A.  Martin,  native  assist- 
ant missionary  ;  and  Henry  Morgue,  catechist. 

N.B.  Charles  Hillard  has  returned  to  England. 

THE    GOLD-COAST. 

The  local  reports  from  tliis  interesting  field  of  missionary  lahoiir  are  generally  of 
a  very  gratifying  character.  "  In  this  chstrict,"  writes  one  of  the  missionaries, 
"  God  is  at  work  in  our  behalf.  We  see  it  in  the  new  and  encouraging  spheres  of 
usefulness  which  are  opening  before  us ;  in  the  increasing  moral  inHuence  which 
the  mission  is  diffusing  in  every  tUrection  ;  in  the  large  and  attentive  congregations 
which  listen  to  our  ministry ;  in  the  prosperous  state  of  our  schools  ;  in  the  earnest 
prayers  of  our  chiu-ch-members  for  a  larger  outpouring  of  the  Holy  Spirit ;  in  the 
giving  way  of  Fetish  prejudices  and  customs :  and  we  feel  it,  too,  in  our  own  hearts, 
in  that  burning  love  for  the  souls  of  our  perishing  fellow-men  which  only  God  can 
inspire  and  sustain."  In  addition  to  the  encouraging  circumstances  enumerated  in 
this  general  view,  the  gratifying  fact  must  be  noticed,  that  six  of  the  native  converts 
have  been  recommended  as  sufficiently  qualified  to  act  as  catechists  in  the  service 
of  the  society. 

At  Cape-Coast,  it  is  stated  that  a  week  had  been  spent  in  a  succession  of 
religious  services  ;  during  which  a  deep  feeling  of  devotion  was  manifested  by  the 
people.  Dix-Cove,  Beulah,  Providence,  Sekundi,  and  Elmina,  are  comprised  in 
this  circuit,  and  would  repay  a  greater  amount  of  ministerial  labour  than  can  be 
afforded  by  the  present  number  of  missionaries.  A  very  promising  commencement 
of  a  school  has  been  made  at  a  large  place  called  Abakrampah,  where  the  cbief 


602  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

has  received  the  missionaries  "  with  many  marks  of  kindness."  The  missionary 
already  quoted,  Mr.  F.  Hart,  remarks,  "  I  was  much  dehghted  a  few  days  ago, 

when  at  Abakrampah, to  see  how  willingly  the  people  received  the  word  of 

life While  I  was  speaking,  they  crowded  the  house,  the  windows,  the  doors, 

and  the  yard,  until  it  was  difficult  to  breathe ;  and  during  the  whole  of  the  time 

they  were  as  quiet  as  any  congregation  in  England The  king  of  Abakrampah 

is  noble  in  both  person  and  conduct,  and  is  wilUng  to  assist  us  to  the  uttermost." 

There  is  an  evident  revival  of  the  spirit  of  true  Christianity  at  Anamabu, 
although  the  number  of  church -members  is  not  so  large  as  formerly.  The  state 
of  the  schools  is  very  encouraging.  The  scholars  are  making  progress  in  useful 
knowledge,  and  some  of  them  are  under  serious  religious  impressions.  The 
importance  of  these  schools  will  be  seen  fi-om  the  following  gratifpng  Report  of 
a  recent  public  examination  : — 

"At  Anamabu,  on  the  24th  day  of  December,  1849,  the  boys  and  girls 
receiving  instruction  in  the  school  under  the  superintendence  of  the  Wesleyan 
Society  were  examined,  in  the  presence  of  His  Excellency  Acting  Lieutenant- 
Governor  Fitzpatrick,  B.  Cruickshank,  Esq.,  J.P.,  Andrew  Swanzy,  Esq.,  J.P., 
C.  Cruickshank,  Esq.,  and  the  Rev.  Messrs.  Freeman,  Hillard,  and  Wharton.     There 

were  present  in  the  school  boys,  and  girls.     The  examiners  took  a 

lively  interest  in  the  proceecHngs,  and  derived  great  satisfaction  from  the  very 
creditable  appearance  of  the  school,  and  the  general  proficiency  of  the  scholars. 
In  the  highest  class,  both  boys  and  girls  exhibited  the  greatest  readiness  in 
answering  the  different  questions  proposed  to  them.  Their  acquaintance  with 
the  historical  portions  of  Scripture,  and  with  the  truths  and  doctrines  of  Chris- 
tianity, gave  ample  token  that  much  pains  had  lieen  taken  to  ground  them 
thoroughly  in  the  knowledge  of  our  most  holy  faith  ;  and  the  very  intelligent 
explanations  which  they  gave  of  what  they  had  read,  showed  that  this  important 
point  had  not  been  neglected.  In  reading,  spelling,  grammar,  and  geography, 
and  the  common  rules  of  arithmetic,  they  generally  displayed  an  advanced  degree 
of  information  and  intelhgence,  for  which  many  of  the  visitors  were  not  pre- 
pared ;  and  as  questions  were  asked  indiscriminately,  according  to  the  taste  and 
inclination  of  the  different  examiners,  it  was  appai-ent  to  all  that  their  answers 
were  founded  on  a  general  comprehension  of  the  several  branches  of  their  study, 
and  not  on  any  special  preparation  for  the  occasion.  On  this  account,  the  pleasure 
of  the  gentlemen  attending  this  interesting  exhibition  was  as  great  as  their  surprise, 
and  induced  His  Excellency,  on  the  part  of  himself  and  the  other  lay-visitors,  to 
exjjress,  in  very  marked  terms,  their  high  approbation  of  the  state  of  the  school, 
which  reflected  much  credit  alike  on  the  pupils,  Mr.  Laing  and  Miss  Button,  the 
teachers,  and  the  Rev.  Mr.  Hillard,  under  whose  zealous  superintendence  the 
cause  of  instruction  has  received  such  a  favourable  impulse.  The  other  classes, 
according  to  their  different  degrees  of  advancement,  displayed  e\'ident  signs  of 
the  same  benevolent  cai-e,  and  gave  the  gratifying  promise  of  a  portion,  at  least,  of 
the  rising  generation  being  elevated  fi'om  their  state  of  natiwal  degradation,  and 
of  the  consequent  more  extensive  dissemination  of  the  truths  of  the  gospel 
throughout  the  masses  of  the  population  of  this  Heathen  land. 

"  (Signed,)     B.  Cruickshank." 

There  is  much  in  the  present  state  of  the  work  at  Domonasi  "  to  afford 
encouragement."  The  public  religious  services  and  the  class-meetings  of  our 
church-members  are  well  attended,  "  and  there  is  that  gradual  breaking  down  of 
Heathen  prejurUces  which  affords  strong  ground  of  hope  that,  ere  long,  the  minds 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE.  603 

of  the  people  will  be  prepared  for  an  extensive  abandonment  of  the  superstitions 
of  Paganism  for  the  elevating  worship  and  service  of  the  true  God."  After 
adverting  to  the  sub-stations  of  Abassa,  Ejimakum,  Donasi,  Duukwa,  Ayerudu, 
Abuadzi,  and  Mansu,  the  missionary  in  the  Domonasi  circuit  states,  "  It  will  be 
quite  consistent  with  truth,  to  declare  that  this  circuit  has  never,  since  its  forma- 
tion, exhibited  in  general  so  pleasing  an  aspect  as  at  the  present  period  :  and  there 
is  every  reason  to  hope  that  wlien  the  partial  ditliculties  arising  from  changes  and 
arrangements  now  in  progress  shall  have  been  overcome,  (a  result  which  we  can 
anticipate  with  confidence,)  the  word  of  God  will  mightily  prevail  among  the  tens 
of  thousands  of  natives  in  the  interior  of  the  Fanti  country." 

The  Alcrah  circuit  suffered  much  during  several  months  in  the  year,  when 
it  was  unavoidably  left  without  the  superintendence  of  a  regular  missionary. 
Things  have,  however,  considerably  improved  since  Mr.  Wharton's  appointment. 
The  exercise  of  church-discipline,  by  vv'hich  the  number  of  members  has  been 
reduced,  has  had  a  salutary  effect  on  the  remainder ;  who  now  give  evidence 
of  much  religious  earnestness,  by  their  diligent  attendance  upon  the  ordinances  of 
reUgion,  and  their  fervent  prayers  for  the  promised  blessing  of  the  Great  Head  of 
the  church.  The  schools  are  doing  well.  "  Many  of  the  elder  boys,  and  a  few 
of  the  girls,  attend  our  religious  class-meetings,  and  appear  to  be  earnestly  seeking 
'  the  pearl  of  great  price.'  Several  of  the  boys  have  been  removed  from  the 
school  during  the  year,  and  are  now  engaged  in  useful  occupations.  There  are 
four  young  men  under  preparatory  instruction  in  the  Training  Institution,  all  of 
whom  are  associated  with  the  day-school  in  the  capacity  of  monitors."  Oiu-  little 
society  and  school  at  Winnebah  "  continue  to  thrive."  The  state  of  Prampram  is 
not  quite  so  favourable :  it  having  been  found  necessary  to  alter  the  plan  of  clothing 
the  children  at  the  expense  of  the  mission,  the  number  of  scholars  has  been  in 
consequence  reduced. 

ASHANTI. 

A  very  gratifying  testimony  in  favour  of  the  society's  mission  in  Ashanti  has 
been  given  by  Sir  WiUiam  Winniett,  the  governor  of  the  Gold-Coast,  in  the 
Journal  of  his  late  visit  to  Kumasi,  contained  in  a  Despatch  addressed  to  the 
Right  Ilonom-able  Earl  Grey,  and  printed  by  order  of  the  House  of  Commons 
during  the  last  session  of  Parliament.  After  describing  the  barbaric  pomp  dis- 
played at  his  public  reception  by  the  Idng,  in  a  large  open  space  in  the  capital.  His 
Excellency  remarks : — 

"  Immediately  after  the  procession  had  closed,  we  repaired  to  the  Wesleyan 
mission-house,  where  we  found  comfortable  arrangements  made  by  the  Rev.  Mr. 
Hillard,  the  resident  missionary  in  Kumasi,  for  convenient  quarters  during  our 
stay.  Greatly  as  I  had  been  interested  with  the  manner  in  which  the  king 
received  me,  the  appearance  of  such  a  vast  number  of  uncivilized  men  under  such 
entire  control,  the  new  style  of  building  exhibited,  and  its  pretty  contrast  with  the 
ever-fresh  and  pleasing  green  of  the  banyan-trees,  I  was  equally  interested  and 
excited  at  the  appearance  of  the  Wesleyan   mission-house, — a  neat  cottage,  built 

chiefly  with  the  teak  or  edoom-wood  of  the  country As  I  sat  down  in  the 

aii"y,  spacious  hall,  in  the  cool  of  the  evening,  after  all  the  toils  and  excitement  of 
the  day,  and  coiitemi)lated  this  little  European  establishment,  planted  in  the  midst 
of  barbarism,  two  hundred  miles  into  the  interior  of  Africa,  exhibiting  to  thou- 
sands of  untutored  Pagans  the  comforts  and  conveniences  of  civilized  life,  and  the 
worship  of  the  true  God,  I  could  not  but  think  deeply  and  feeUngly  on  the  great 
triumph  thus  achieved  by  Christianity  and  civilization." 

In  a  subsequent  part  of  the  journal.  His  Excellency,  in  describing  a  visit  which 
he  received  from  the  king,  observes, — 


604  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

"  He  came  to  the  street  in  the  beautiful  little  phaeton  presented  to  him  by  the 
Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  in  1841 ;  and  I  was  pleased  to  observe,  from  the 
excellent  condition  of  the  phaeton,  the  great  care  which  he  has  taken  of  so 
valuable  and  appropriate  a  present." 

Remarking  upon  a  conversation  with  the  king,  on  another  occasion,  His  Excel- 
lency adds, — 

"  Matters  relative  to  the  Wesleyan  mission  in  Kumasi  were  then  referred  to, 
and  I  was  much  gratified  to  find  how  completely  the  mission  has  secured  his 
confidence  and  esteem."  * 

In  the  coiu-se  of  the  last  year  an  arrangement  has  taken  place  which  may  have 
an  important  bearing  on  the  cause  of  Christianity  in  Ashanti.  John  Ansah,  a 
nephew  of  the  present  king,  has  been  placed  at  Kumasi,  the  capital,  in  the  character 
of  a  Clu-istian  teacher.  This  young  man  and  his  cousin  were  educated  in  England, 
and  were  sent  back  to  Africa  with  the  Niger  expecUtion.  After  spending  some 
time  at  Kumasi,  he  went  down  again  to  Cape-Coast,  where  he  became  a  regular 
attendant  at  our  mission-chapel,  and  an  earnest  seeker  of  the  salvation  which  the 
gospel  offers.  Having  at  length  experienced  the  saving  power  of  Christianity,  the 
pubUc  profession  of  which  he  had  previously  assumed,  he  became  an  agent  of  this 
society ;  and  in  the  offices  of  interpreter,  class-leader,  and  local  preacher,  has 
continued  to  give  such  proof  of  sincere  piety  and  devotedness  to  the  work  of  the 
mission,  that  he  has  been  sent,  by  the  unanimous  voice  of  the  missionaries  in 
the  district,  as  a  catechist  to  Kumasi.  On  his  arrival  there,  in  his  new  capacity  of 
agent  to  the  "Wesleyan  Missionary  Society,  "  he  was  very  kindly  received  by  the 
king  his  uncle,  and  is  now  enjoying  his  confidence  and  esteem."  An  extract  of  a 
letter  addressed  by  him  to  the  Rev.  Mr.  Freeman,  the  general  superintendent, 
afFectingly  indicates  the  spirit  in  which  he  has  entered  upon  his  new  and  important 
sphere  of  labour : — 

"  I  feel  my  helplessness  and  unworthiness  of  the  present  position  I  am  placed 
in  respecting  my  connexion  with  the  mission.  I  look  for  help  from  Him  whose 
promise  is,  *  According  to  thy  day,  so  shall  thy  strength  be.'  I  assure  you,  my 
dear  father  in  Christ,  all  my  mind  is,  that  my  life  may  l)e  spent  in  the  service  of 
Christ.  The  general  aspect  of  the  work  here  is  encouraging.  The  people  atten- 
tively hear  the  word  of  God.  I  preach  in  the  public  street  everj'  sabbath-day,  and 
they  crowd  to  hear  of  the  way  of  salvation,  and  I  am  encouraged  to  preach  to 
them  earnestly.  The  chiefs,  too,  with  whom  I  have  had  conversation,  seem  to  be 
seriously  impressed.  No  doubt  there  are  some  in  this  town  who  will  hke  to  come 
forward  to  join  Christ's  church,  but  are  afraid,  perhaps,  on  their  masters'  part.  I 
trust  that  that  fear  will  be  soon  done  away.  You  vrill  be  glad  to  hear  how  fond 
the  king's  children  are  of  me :  they  are  crowding  into  the  mission-house  every  day, 
for  which  I  bless  the  Lord,  for  it  gives  me  an  opportunity  to  impress  on  their 
tender  minds  the  importance  of  the  religion  of  Christ.  I  think  good  days  are 
beginning  to  come  upon  the  Ashantis  :  may  the  Lord  hasten  them  soon,  that  these 
poor  souls  here  may  know  the  true  and  living  God,  and  Jesus  Christ  His  Son  our 
Lord !  Our  little  church  is  going  on  well.  The  members  are  earnest  for  their 
salvation.  I  am  very  glad  to  hear  the  prosperous  state  of  the  church  at  Cape- 
Coast.  Respecting  the  charge  of  this  station,  I  himibly  submit  to  the  appointment 
you  have  given  me,  beUeving  that  it  is  the  sphere  in  which  the  kind  providence  of 
God  intends  me  to  labour." 

The  friends  of  Christian  missions  vriU  not  fail  to  offer  prayer  to  Almighty  God 

*  For  more  lengthened  extracts  from  the  governor's  journal,  see  the  "  Mis- 
sionary Notices"  for  the  month  of  January,  1850. 


THE    GOLD-COAST,    GAMBIA,    AND    SIERRA-LEONE. 


go: 


ill  behalf  of  this  interesting  young  man,  that  he  may  he  graciously  enahled  to 
maintain  his  integrity,  to  he  a  faithful  witness  for  Christ  at  the  court  of  his  royal 
relative,  and  "to  testify"  to  hoth  the  princes  and  the  people  of  Ashanti  "the 
gospel  of  the  grace  of  Cod."  ' 

THE    SLAVE-COAST. 

In  consequence  of  the  reduction  which  has  taken  place  in  the  number  of  English 
missionaries  in  the  district,  Badagry  and  Abbeokuta  have  been  left  under  the  care 
of  an  assistant  missionary  and  other  native  assistants. 

The  following  is  a  tabular  view  of  the  society's  missions  at  the  Gold-Coast, 
Ashanti,  and  other  parts  of  Guinea: — 


Chapels 

Other  preaching-places 

Missionaries  and  assistant  missionaries. 
Subordinate  paid  agents : — 

Catechists,  &c 

Daj'-school  teachers 

Unpaid  agents : — 

Sabbath-school  teachers 

Local  preachers 

Full  and  accredited  church-members   . 

On  trial  for  membership  

Sabbath-schools 

Sabbatli-scholars  of  both  sexes 

Day-schools 

Day-scholars  of  both  sexes  

Attendants  on  public  worship,  includin, 
members  and  scholars    


CENTRAL  OR   PRINCIPAL  STATIONS  OR  CIRCUITS. 


Cape- 

Coast 

British 

Badagry 

Town, 

Ana- 

Domo- 

Akrah, 

and  Ab- 

&c. 

mabu. 

nasi,  &c. 

&c. 

Ashanti. 

beokuta. 

Total 

4 

2 

2 

1 

1 

10 

2 

6 

2 

I 

2 

13 

2 

1 

1 

1 

5 

3 

2 

1 

2 

1 

3 

12 

14 

8 

12 

14 

1 

5 
5 

.'54 
5 

4 

5 

4 

4 

2 

19 

368 

122 

111 

124 

27 

57 

809 

5 

9 

10 

13 

14 

51 

102 

1 

23 

23 

6 

3 

8 

3 

1 

2 

23 

282 

158 

217 

2/4 

3 

80 

1014 

1300 

3.50 

1000 

600 

1200 

250 

4700 

The  Report  contains,  as  usual,  the  annual  subscriptions  and 
donations  from  each  district,  which,  though  considerable,  are 
not  the  whole  sum  raised  by  the  different  societies  and  congre- 
gations in  support  of  the  ministry. 

From  the  "tabular  views^^  in  the  preceding  Report,  it  will  be 
seen  that  the  extent  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society's  ope- 
rations in  Western  Africa,  at  present,  is  as  follows  : — 

Central  or  principal  stations,  called  circuits,  12.  Chapels  and 
other  preaching-places,  in  connexion  with  these  circuits,  60. 
Missionaries  and  assistant  missionaries,  15.  Catechists,  20. 
Day-school  teachers,  97.  The  unpaid  agents  are  local  preachers 
and  sabbath-school  teachers :  of  the  former  there  are  89 ;  and 
of  the  latter,  195.  There  are  42  day-schools,  with  3,557  scho- 
lars ;  and  the  total  number  of  scholars,  deducting  for  those  who 
attend  both  sabbath  and  Aveek-day  schools,  is  4,723.  The  num- 
ber of  full  and  accredited  church-members  is  5,997,  with  800  on 
trial ;  while  14,464  are  reported  as  attending  the  ministry  of 
the  missionaries. 


CHAPTER  XXV. 

CONCLUDING  OBSERVATIONS. 

Serious  Reflections — Matter  for  Congratulation — Present  State  of  the  Missions — 
Facts  illustrative  of  Negro  Piety,  and  of  the  Importance  of  the  Wesleyan  Mis- 
sions—The three  principal  Ohstrnctious  to  the  rapid  Spread  of  evangelical 
Truth  are,  the  Climate,  the  a\\-fully-degraded  State  of  the  Inhabitants,  and  the 
Slave-Trade — A  few  Facts  in  connexion  with  the  tifty-four  Agents  of  the  Wesleyan 
Missionary  Society  who  have  fallen  in  the  Field — Not  aU  to  be  attributed  to  the 
Climate — Not  too  much  to  hazard  for  the  Salvation  of  immortal  Souls — The 
Agents  who  fell  were  Men  of  the  right  Stamp — Wesleyan  Theological  Institu- 
tion—The Manner  of  their  Death— A  Word  to  the  Friends  of  Wesleyan  Mis- 
sions—The Gospel  a  sufficient  Remedy  for  the  deplorable  Immorality  of 
Africa. 

A  RETROSPECTIVE  vicw  of  the  contents  of  tlie  preceding  pages 
will  furnish  abundant  matter  for  serious  reflection  and  devout 
congratulation,  mingled  with  feelings  of  sorrow  and  regret,  and 
loud  calls  for  more  active  and  energetic  effort,  that  this  degraded 
continent  may  be  speedily  raised  to  its  proper  level  with  other 
civilized  portions  of  the  globe.  On  each  of  these  topics  it  Vv'ouid 
not  be  difficult  to  enlarge ;  but  our  space  forbids  amplification, 
and  we  must  therefore  be  content  with  a  few  concluding  obser- 
vations. 

First.  In  the  brief  account  we  have  given  of  the  early 
discoveries  of  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa,  as  conducted 
by  the  Portuguese,  Spanish,  Dutch,  French,  and  Enghsh,  a 
mournful  picture  is  presented  of  human  ambition  and  selfish- 
ness. For  a  lengthened  period  associations  were  formed,  and 
travellers  and  commercial  men  went  forth,  without  any  refer- 
ence to  the  intention  of  attempting  the  moral  elevation  of 
the  degraded  inhabitants.  Gold  and  slaves  were  the  general 
objects  of  pursuit;  and  the  horrid  traffic  in  human  beings 
soon  became  the  principal  branch  of  commerce,  which  was 
not  only  sanctioned,  but  actually  legalized,  by  the  legislature 
of  our  own  country.  At  a  subsequent  date,  expeditions 
were  sent  to  explore  the  vast  unknown  interior  of  this  conti- 
nent,  with  reference  to  the   advancement  of  science  ;    and  at 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS. 


607 


a  later  period  attempts  were  made  to  introduce  among  the 
natives  the  arts  of  civilization.  But  most  of  these  plans, 
though  humane  and  benevolent  in  their  object  and  design, 
having  been  begun  at  the  -wrong  end,  proved  to  be  failures. 
At  length, — and  that  not  till  after  a  comparatively  recent 
era, — British  settlements  were  formed,  and  Protestant  mission- 
aries were  sent  out,  for  the  purpose  of  discountenancing  and 
putting  a  check  to  the  Slave-Trade,  of  promoting  legitimate 
commerce,  and  of  introducing  the  blessings  of  Christianity,  with 
one  of  its  attendant  results, — the  arts  of  civilized  life,  among 
some  of  the  native  tribes  along  the  Western  Coast  of  that  con- 
tinent. This  new  state  of  things  presented  a  fresh  chapter 
in  the  history  of  Africa ;  and  was  so  strange,  that  for  some 
time  the  inhabitants  of  that  country,  who  had  been  visited 
by  the  maritime  states  of  Europe  for  more  than  three  centuries 
for  very  different  purposes,  could  scarcely  believe  that  ivhite  men 
were  really  sincere  and  in  earnest  in  seeking  their  benefit. 
How  greatly  is  it  to  be  lamented,  that  that  precious  boon,  the 
gospel,  which  has  made  England  what  it  is,  was  not  at  an  earlier 
period  sent  to  Western  Africa  ! 

Secondly.  The  cause  of  congratulation  to  which  we  have 
referred,  arises  from  the  fact,  that,  although  little  more  than  one 
generation  has  passed  away  since  the  first  Wesleyan  missionary 
landed  on  that  coast,  an  amount  of  success  has  attended  the 
labours  of  the  agents  of  this  Society,  which  is  truly  gratifj^ing, 
and  augurs  well  for  Africa's  future  welfare.  The  statistics  at 
the  close  of  the  last  chapter  will  give  the  reader  some  idea  of 
what  has  been  accomplished  during  the  past  thirt^^-eight  or 
thirty- nine  years,  which  includes  the  whole  length  of  time  that 
the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society  has  been  officially  connected 
with  this  part  of  the  Heathen  world.  We  say  "some  idea;" 
for,  fully  to  estimate  the  amount  of  good  that  has  already  been 
effected,  we  should  not  forget  the  hundreds  and  thousands  of 
converted  Africans  who  have,  in  the  course  of  those  years, 
"  died  in  the  Lord/'  with  other  circumstances  connected  with 
the  operations  of  these  missions.  But  if  we  compare  the  docu- 
ment just  referred  to,  with  the  statistics  in  the  Report  for  the 
year  184<3,  it  will  be  seen  that,  during  the  past  seven  years  only, 
there  has  been  an  addition  to  the  Society  of  two  thousand  four 
hundred  and  three  full  and  accredited  church  member's,  and 
that,  in  the  same  space  of  time,  the  number  of  scholars  in  the 
schools  was  more  than  doubled. 

The  first  spontaneous  expression  of  feeling  from  the  writer's 
heart,  when   he   had  peinied  these  statistics,  of  six  thousand 


608  WESTEKN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

church  communicants,  {save  three,]  with  nearly  five  thousand 
children  receiving  Christian  instruction  in  the  schools,  was, 
"  What  hath  God  wrought ! " 

Admitting,  to  some  extent,  at  least,  that  numerical  increase 
is  not  always  a  true  sign  of  spiritual  and  genuine  prosperity, 
and  without  pretending  to  say,  that  all  those  whose  names  are 
enrolled  as  members  of  the  Society  are  "  born  again,"  and  thus 
made  "new  creatures  in  Christ  Jesus;"  this  much  we  do  know, 
— that  an  overwhelming  majority  of  them  have  been  changed, 
not  from  one  set  of  opinions  to  another;  but  they  have 
been  "turned  from  darkness  to  light,  and  from  the  power  of 
Satan  to  God."  And  we  may  add,  that  none  are  admitted, 
even  on  trial,  Avithout  affording  sufficient  evidence  of  "  a  desire 
to  flee  from  the  wrath  to  come,  and  to  be  saved  from  their 
sins." 

Although,  for  the  reason  already  assigned,  we  cannot  enlarge 
here,  we  may  nevertheless  be  allowed  to  state  a  few  facts  in  con- 
nexion with  African  conversions  and  Negro  piety,  which  may  be 
either  fairly  drawn  from  the  preceding  history,  or  given  as  addi- 
tional illustrations  of  the  power  of  the  gospel,  and  "  the  triumphs 
of  grace,"  as  exhibited  in  the  hearts  and  lives  of  hundreds  of 
these  Africans,  and  which  will  also  show  the  utility  and  import- 
ance of  the  Wesleyan  missions  in  this  part  of  the  Heathen  world. 

1.  The  first  fact  which  we  shall  mention  is  this,  that, 
although  the  native  tribes  of  Africa,  skirting  that  long  line  of 
coast  which  is  washed  by  the  great  Atlantic  Ocean,  are  exceed- 
ingly numerous,  and  most  awfully  fallen  and  degraded,  yet, 
wherever  the  gospel  has  been  preached  for  any  length  of  time, 
whether  among  the  INIohammedan  or  Pagan  nations,  there  has 
been  fruit  of  our  labour,  fruit  in  the  real  conversion  of  the  soul 
to  God,  of  some  "  out  of  every  nation  and  every  language,"  and, 
we  may  add,  of  every  clan  and  of  every  tribe.* 

*  It  is  supposed  that  the  Kroomen  are  an  exception  to  this  rule.  One  recent 
•writer  on  Sierra-Leone,  in  speaking  of  this  singular  but  enterprising  tribe,  says, 
"  The  Kroos  are  Pagans,  and  there  has  never  yet  been  an  instance  of  one  of  them 
being  converted  to  Christianity."  And  another  author  remarks,  "  This  tribe  alone 
have,  to  a  man,  withstood  the  efforts  of  the  missionaries."  Dr.  Madden  has  made 
a  similar  statement.  But  as  the  Kroomen  reside  on  the  Grain  Coast,  where  we 
have  no  mission  established,  or  rather  no  attempt  has  there  been  made  to  establish 
one,  "  the  efforts  of  the  missionaries  "  can  scarcely  be  said  to  have  had  fair  play 
upon  them  as  a  nation  ;  nevertheless,  a  few  of  them  have  been  brought  under  the 
"  preaching  of  the  word,"  and  one  or  two,  even  of  these,  have  been  caught  in  the 
gospel  net,  as  will  be  seen  from  the  following  extract  of  a  letter  which  I  received  a 
few  months  ago  from  the  Rev.  Thomas  Raston  : — "  We  had  a  converted  Krooman 
about  eight  years  ago :  he  died  happy  in  God.    We  have  now  one  soundly  con- 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS.  G09 

2.  These  conversions  are  generally  accomplished  b}^  the 
instrumentality  of  the  missionaiy,  "  holding  forth  the  word  of 
life,"  and  "  in  Christ^s  stead  "  beseeching  sinners  to  be  recon- 
ciled to  God.  And  such  have  been  their  agonizing  remorse,  and 
the  outward  circumstances  attending  their  convictions  of  sin, 
that  St.  Paul's  caution  to  the  smitten  jailer  at  Philippi  has  been 
sometimes  quite  necessary :  "  Do  thyself  no  harm :  for  we  are 
all  here."  (Acts  xvi.  28.) 

3.  The  reality  of  these  conversions  is  soon  seen  :  "  old  things 
have  passed  away,  and  all  things  have  become  new."  The  tom- 
tom, the  song,  and  the  dance  are  abandoned  ;  their  former  fool- 
ish rites  and  frantic  ceremonies,  in  which  they  trusted  and 
delighted,  are  all  given  up ;  and  as  soon  as,  or  before,  the  day 
dawns,  instead  of  the  superstitious  yreegree  ov  fetish  practices  to 
which  they  formerly  resorted  at  the  beginning  of  the  day,  they 
are  to  be  found  in  the  sanctuary,  for  the  purpose  of  prayer,  and 
of  singing  the  praises  of  the  true  God.  Thus  the  day  begins  at 
five  o'clock  in  the  morning  v/ith  many  of  the  Weslcyan  societies 
in  that  part  of  the  world;  and  the  genuineness  of  an  internal 
and  real  change  of  heart  is  further  demonstrated  by  '^  the  fruits 
of  the  Spirit,"  as  exhibited  in  the  lives  of  these  people,  and  by 
"  their  showing  forth  the  praises  of  Him  who  hath  called  them 
out  of  darkness  into  his  marvellous  light." 

4.  Another  fact  in  connexion  with  African  conversions  is, 
that,  generally  speaking,  the  fruit  abides  :  they  are  ''  steadfast 
and  unmovable,"  they  endure  unto  the  end.  There  are,  of 
course,  exceptions  to  this  :  instances  of  unfaithfulness  do  some- 
times occur,  and  then  discipline  is  administered,  kindly,  but 
with  fidelity.  But  on  these  occasions,  they  keenly  feel  being 
excommunicated  for  their  offences,  and  in  due  time  most  of 
them,  being  penitent,  are  restored  to  the  fold.  On  more  than 
one  occasion  have  these  jioor  wanderers  come  to  the  writer  at 
the  mission-house,  in  the  greatest  distress,  and,  with  tears  run- 
ning down  their  faces,  begged  to  be  re-admitted  into  the  society. 

verted :  he  has  '  come  ovit '  from  his  countrymen,  which  he  must  do  to  he  a  Chris- 
tian. There  is  as  much  caste  among  Kroomen  as  among  the  Hindoos.  Next  to 
Mohammedans,  I  heUeve  the  Kroomen  are  most  diflicult  to  he  hrought  under  the 
influence  of  the  gospeh  As  soon  as  a  Krooiuan  embraces  Christianity,  he  is 
rejected,  despised,  disowned,  and  cast  out  hy  his  countrymen.  The  principle  is 
estabUshed :  we  liave  both  converted  Kroomen  and  Mohammedans ;  ergo,  all  may 
1)6  converted."  In  a  recent  communication  from  the  Rev.  George  Meadows  at  the 
Gambia,  it  is  stated : — "  Several  conversions  have  taken  i)lace  lately.  A  Krooman 
— one  of  a  class  thought  by  some  to  he  almost  beyond  the  reach  of  the  gospel — 
has  been  awakened,  and  experienced  the  efficacy  of  that  blood  which  '  can  make  the 
foulest  clean.'  "  (See  "  Wesleyan  Missionary  Notices  '  for  December,  1850,  p.  207.) 

R    R 


610  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

5.  Though  the  greater  part  of  the  converted  Africans  are  but 
imperfectly  acquainted  with  the  EugHsh  language,  it  is  delight- 
ful to  hear  them  on  the  subject  of  experimental  religion,  and  to 
observe  the  clearness  with  which  they  speak  of  their  own  conver- 
sion, and  thus  "  give  a  reason  of  the  hope  that  is  in  them/^  At 
the  quarterly  love-feasts,  and  sometimes  in  the  class-meetings, 
in  relating  their  experience,  they  will  name  the  time,  the  place, 
the  minister,  and  the  words  of  the  text  which,  by  the  Almighty 
Spirit,  found  a  way  to  their  hearts,  and  which  ultimately  led  to 
their  emancipation  from  the  thraldom  of  sin,  when  they  found 
peace  with  God  through  faith  in  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 

6.  The  natives  of  this  part  of  the  world  evidence  the  sincerity 
of  their  Christian  profession,  by  a  consistent  and  regular  attend- 
ance upon  the  means  of  grace,  both  public  and  private,  by  a 
careful  attention  to  relative  duties,  personal  and  domestic  reli- 
gion, a  strict  observance  of  the  sabbath-day,  and  a  concern  for 
the  salvation  of  others.  They  liberally  contribute  towards  the 
support  of  the  cause  of  God,  are  "  kindly  affectioned  one  toward 
another:"  when  called  to  suffer  for  Christ's  sake,  they  are 
patient  and  forgiving :  in  sickness  they  are  resigned  and  sub- 
missive ;  and  in  death  are  generally  triumphant.* 

7.  They  are  strongly  attached  to  their  ministers :  they  not 
only   "receive    them    joyfully"    when    they  first    land    from 

*  It  would  be  easy  to  furnish  illustrations  on  each  of  these  topics,  in  addition  to 
those  already  given.  Two  cases  may  be  sufficient :  one  regarding  the  sanctity  of 
the  sabbath-day,  &c.,  aud  the  other  showing  the  sustaining  grace  of  God  in  the 
hour  of  death. 

1.  John  Oga,  a  liberated  African  at  Sierra-Leone,  who  was  a  member  of  the 
society,  and  a  truly  converted  man,  had,  by  his  industrious  habits,  acquired  a  little 
property,  and  he  contributed  liberally  to  the  support  of  the  cause  of  God.  For 
some  time  he  had  supplied  the  liberated  African  Yard  with  vegetables,  &c.,  and 
was  afterwards  offered  the  office  of  supplying  the  gan-ison  with  meat ;  but  he  said, 
"  No  ;  suppose  me  do  dat,  me  have  for  kill  cow  on  Sunday,  and  me  can't  do  dat : 
ray  soul  more  to  me  dan  cow."  In  a  short  time  after  this,  he  died  happy  in  the 
Lord.  He  was  a  man  universally  respected,  both  by  Europeans  and  Africans,  as  was 
seen  at  the  funeral,  when  five  or  six  hundred  persons  followed  him  to  the  grave. 

2.  Thomas  Ticknut,  (also  of  Sierra-Leone,)  before  his  conversion,  was  one  of 
those  who  practised  "  country  fashion,"  and  that  not  only  for  himself,  but  for  his 
neighbours ;  and  was  a  noted  character  as  a  wizard.  But  the  gospel  proved  "  the 
power  of  God  "  to  the  salvation  of  his  soul,  and  blasphemies  were  tmnied  to  praise. 
His  iUness  was  of  long  duration,  and  his  sufferings  were  great ;  yet,  while  he  lay 
gasping  for  breath,  he  constantly  rejoiced  in  God.  This  occurred  about  four  years 
ago.  On  his  class-leader  \isiting  him,  he  said,  "  I  am  going  to  the  King  of  glory." 
A  short  time  before  be  died,  turning  to  his  wife,  he  said,  "  I  commend  you  to 
God  ;"  and  a  few  minutes  before  the  vital  spark  had  fled,  he  lifted  bis  hands,  and 
exclaimed,  "  All  is  well,  all  is  well !  Glory,  glory  ! "  and  be  died  with  the  word 
"  glory"  hanging  on  his  lijis. 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS.  611 

England,  but  they  are  also  constantly  presented  to  the  throne  of 
the  heavenly  grace  in  their  supplications.  When  laid  aside  by 
sickness,  they  are  visited,  waited  upon,  deeply  sympathized 
with,  and  fervent  prayers  are  offered  to  the  Most  High  for  their 
speedy  restoration  to  health.  In  times  of  danger,  they  will  nobly 
stand  by  them,  and  even  risk  their  own  lives  in  their  defence.* 
If  called  to  return  home,  on  account  of  protracted  illness,  "  they 
accompany  them  to  the  ship;^^  and  the  touching  incident  men- 
tioned in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles  (xx.  36 — 38)  has  more  than 
once  been  illustrated  by  the  conduct  of  the  simple-minded,  but 
sincere.  Christians  in  Western  Africa.  And  when  death  has  put 
an  end  to  the  missionary's  labours,  "  devout  men  have  carried 
him  to  his  burial,  and  made  great  lamentation  over  him." 

8,  The  Africans  are  grateful  for  the  benefits  conferred  upon 
them  by  the  British  Government  and  by  British  Christians. 
To  the  former  they  feel  thankful  for  having  rescued  them 
while  on  the  mighty  deep  from  the  horrors  of  slavery ;  and  to 
the  latter,  for  having  sent  them  "the  glorious  gospel  of  the 
blessed  God,"  by  which  they  have  been  made  "  free  indeed." 
Even  in  their  unconverted  and  barbarous  state,  when  captured  by 
Her  Majesty's  cruisers,  as  soon  as  they  understand  the  object 
of  the  slaver  being  boarded  by  our  brave  countrymen,  then  "joy 
beams  in  every  countenance,"  and  they  are  seen  "  rolling  them- 
selves about  with  glee  and  kissing  the  hands  and  clothes  of 
their  deliverer,"  and  when  the  dark  rakish  craft,  with  her 
human  cargo,  arrives  at  Sierra-Leone,  "  the  promised  land,"  as 
they  afterwards  call  it,  then  "  their  acclamations  are  long  and 
loud,"  and  they  "  shout  for  joy  at  the  prospect  of  freedom." 
But  it  is  after  they  have  been  residents  for  some  time  in  these 
British  colonies  on  the  Coast,  enjoying  all  the  privileges  of 
British  subjects,  and  when  they  are  able  to  reflect  upon  the 
providence  and  grace  of  God  manifested  in  their  behalf,  and  the 
way  in  which  He  hath  led  them, — that  they  are  indeed  grateful  I 
Fervent  prayers  are  offered  to  God,  and  that  repeatedly,  for  our 
beloved  sovereign  Queen  Victoria,  for  Her  Majesty's  Govern- 
ment, the  British  officers,  and  "  all  the  good  people  in  England.'^ 

*  In  addition  to  one  or  more  instances  of  this  kind  contained  in  the  preceding 
pages,  we  may  add  the  following  statement  made  hy  the  Kev.  John  Martin,  at  a 
missionary  meeting  held  in  Great-Queen-Street  chapel,  in  London,  ahout  two  years 
ago.  Mr.  Martin  had  spent  two  years  at  Badagry,  on  the  Gold-Coast ;  and  during 
one  of  his  jounieys  in  that  locality,  he  was  accompanied  by  some  of  the  natives. 
Whilst  proceeding  on  his  way,  a  shot  was  fired  in  the  forest  by  some  party  con- 
cealed in  the  bush,  on  which  his  escort  immediately  assembled  around  him,  saying, 
*'  If  they  shoot,  they  shall  shoot  us,  and  not  shoot  you." 

2  K  2 


612  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

And  in  reciting  their  experience,  with  a  brief  history  of  their 
hves,  though  some  parts  were  painful  in  the  extreme^  they  can- 
not forget  that  they  have  been  twice  redeemed, — redeemed  from 
the  house  of  bondage,  when  their  shackles  were  knocked  off 
and  thrown  overboard,  by  the  energy  and  activity  of  British 
cruisers ;  and  again  redeemed  and  hberated  with  "  the  precious 
blood  of  Christ." 

A  recent  writer  of  a  missionarj^  tract,  entitled,  "  Black,  but 
Comely,"  has  mentioned  a  fact  which  occurred  in  the  West  In- 
dies in  the  case  of  one  of  the  same  class  of  individuals,  and  which 
is  just  in  point  here.  It  was  that  of  a  Negress  who  had  obtained 
her  freedom  through  the  liberality  of  a  few  native  Christians, 
and  the  author  writes  : — "  Never  shall  I  forget  that  happy  day, 
when,  coming  from  the  auction-room  direct  to  the  mission- 
house,  this  noble  confessor,  Avith  tears  in  her  eyes,  and  gratitude 
iu  her  heart,  lifted  up  her  hands  to  heaven,  and  loudly  exclaimed, 
'  Massa  !  massa  !  help  me  for  praise  the  Lord  !  Me  twice  free  ! 
Me  soul  long  be  free,  me  body  now  be  free !  Me  twice  free ! 
O  massa,  help  me  for  praise  the  Lord  ! ' "  Hundreds  of  liberated 
Africans  in  connexion  with  the  Wesleyan  missions  in  Western 
Africa  have  sung  the  same  delightful  song,  many  a  time,  in  our 
love-feasts  -,  and  in  such  a  figurative  and  graphic  manner,  with 
such  a  tone  of  voice,  gesture,  action,  feeling,  and  power,  that  no 
correct  description  can  be  put  on  paper.  They  are  thankful  to 
God,  to  the  British  Government,  to  British  Christians,  and  to 
British  missionaries.* 

*  Two  dying  testimonies  in  support  of  this  may  be  here  given. 

1.  The  first  is  that  of  Robert  Clark,  a  liberated  African  youth,  who  died  at 
St.  Mary's  on  the  Gambia  at  the  close  of  1841.  I  had  myself  frequently  seen  him 
during  bis  illness,  and  also  just  after  his  death,  which  -was  under  the  following 
circumstances  :  feeling  that  he  could  not  live  much  longer,  he  inquired  for  Cupidon, 
one  of  the  native  assistants,  who  was  immediately  by  his  side;  when  this  poor 
African  slave,  aged  about  thirteen  years,  said,  in  broken  accents,  "  Massa,  me  bin 
call  you,  for  tell  you,  me  now  bout  for  die ;  but  me  no  fraid  for  die :  Jesus  Christ 
pardon  all  my  sin,  and  my  soul  is  happy  in  de  Lord."  This  was  pleasing,  especially 
to  John  Cupidon,  under  whose  roof  he  had  lived,  and  who  had  often  prayed  with 
and  for  him.  But  this  was  not  all :  the  dying  lad  went  on  to  say,  "  And  me  bin 
call  you  also,  massa,  for  tank  you  for  all  de  goodness  you  bin  do  me.  You  bin 
teach  me  berry  well  in  de  house,  and  berry  well  in  de  school ;  and  now  me  going 
to  Jesus."  And  then,  lifting  up  his  withered  hand,  he  shook  hands  with  his  faith- 
ful friend  and  master,  saying,  "  Tank  you,  massa,  tank  you  ;  good  bye,  good  bye." 
And  in  a  few  minutes  after  this,  he  breathed  his  last. 

2.  The  other  case  occurred  on  the  Gold-Coast,  a  year  or  two  later.  The  Rev. 
George  Chapman  had  been  preaching  on  the  happiness  of  heaven  ;  and  shortly  after 
he  visited  a  sick  and  dying  African,  who  had  heard  the  sermon  with  much  profit. 
This  Negro,  during  Mr.  Chapman's  visit,  refen\d  to  the  sermon,  and  asked  if  it  was 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS. 


613 


9.  The  oft-repeated  calumny,  that  the  Africans  have  no  minds, 
and  therefore  are  incapable  of  improvement,  has,  it  is  hoped, 
been  sufficiently  refuted  in  these  pages.  The  result  of  mis- 
sionary labour,  in  the  conversion  to  God  of  thousands  of  the 
degraded  sons  of  Africa,  and  the  benefits  which  have  invariably 
followed  the  faithful  preaching  of  the  gospel,  in  a  social,  menial, 
and  moral  point  of  view,  are  the  best  answers  to  those  slanderers 
of  the  Negro  race,  who  have  stigmatized  them  with  the  epithets 
of  "  mere  animal  creatures,"  "  a  sort  of  monkey  without  tails," 
"  machines  of  flesh  and  blood,  but  with  no  souls,"  and  the  more 
modified  designation,  "human  beings,  but  inferior  to  the  rest 
of  the  species."  If  the  sceptic  would  but  visit  some  of  the 
mission  stations  in  Western  Africa,  and  were  he  even  to  take 
his  prejudices  with  him,  he  would  soon  have  his  erroneous 
estimation  of  the  African  character  corrected  and  dispelled  from 
his  mind.  Facts  would  stare  him  in  the  face,  that  would  make 
him  "  blush,  and  hang  his  head,  to  think  himself  a  man,"  and 
yet  deny  to  others  what  God  had  given  to  him;  that  is,  the 
power  of  reason,  with  a  capacity  for  improvement.  Amid  much 
that  is  still  dark  and  gloomy,  he  would  find  that  many  a  bright 
spark  of  intellect  and  genius  has  been  discovered,  and  brought 
into  play,  from  the  once  spell-bound  mind  of  the  barbarian,  by 
the  simple  preaching  of  the  cross  of  Christ. 

10.  In  order  to  appreciate,  in  any  proper  degree,  the  result  of 
missionary  labour  in  this  part  of  the  world,  we  ought  to  con- 
sider, first,  what  the  natives  were  before  they  received  the  gospel, 
and  then,  what  they  are  noiv.  The  disadvantages  of  their 
former  condition  must  not  be  overlooked,  in  forming  a  correct 
estimate  on  this  subject;  for,  whilst  repudiating,  as  we  do,  the 
insulting  and  false  epithets  which  we  have  just  quoted  as  appli- 
cable to  the  Africans,  it  must  be  acknowledged,  that  a  more 
degraded,  barbarous,  demoralized,  and  ignorant  set  of  human 
beings  are  not  to  be  found  on  the  face  of  the  globe,  than  are  the 
native  tribes  on  the  Western  Coast  of  Africa.  This  must  be 
acknowledged  by  all;  and  yet  hundreds  of  the  present  mem- 
bers of  the  Wesleyan  society  have  been  dug  up  out  of  the 
dark  and  filthy  hold  of  the  slave-ship  ;  they  have  been  washed, 
redeemed,  disenthralled,  arul  set  at  liberty;    and  again   they 

correct  that  we  should  know  each  other  in  heaven.  Being  assured  that  it  was 
both  correct  and  scriptiu-al,  he  then  said,  "  When  I  get  there,  I  shall  first  go  up  to 
my  Saviour,  and  fall  down  on  my  knees  and  thank  Kim  for  having  sent  a  mission- 
ary. Then  I  shall  go  hack  to  the  gate,  and  wait  till  you  come ;  and  when  you  come, 
I  shall  take  you  by  the  han<l  and  bring  you  uj)  to  my  Saviour,  and  I  shall  say, 
'  This  is  the  first  man  that  sliowed  uie  the  cross  of  Christ.'  " 


614 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


have  been  "  washed,  sanctified,  and  justified  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord  Jesus,  and  by  the  Spirit  of  our  God  :"  and  what  are  they 
now  ?  Not  only  "  princes  in  Israel,"  but  many  of  them  occupy 
a  position  in  civil  society  equal  and  even  superior  to  some  of 
those  of  a  fairer  complexion.*  This  elevation  of  a  people  from 
the  depths  of  barbarism  has  not  been  the  work  of  a  day ;  but  it 
has  been  accomplished  in  the  course  of  a  very  few  years,  and  is 
unquestionably  the  fruit  of  missionary  toil;  and,  when  con- 
trasted with  their  former  Heathen  condition,  it  speaks  loudly  in 
favour  of  Christian  missions,  and  furnishes  another  proof  that  the 
gospel,  and  that  alone,  can  civilize,  and  bless,  and  save  mankind. 

11.  In  looking  at  the  utility  and  importance  of  these  mis- 
sions, it  should  not  be  forgotten  that  there  is  at  present  an 
amount  of  native  agency  at  ivork  beyond  that  of  any  former 
period,  and  that  there  are  several  theological  Institutions  where 
others  are  receiving  a  course  of  instruction  and  training  pre- 
paratory to  their  being  employed  in  the  same  evangelical  and 
benevolent  spheres  of  usefulness;  besides  a  number  of  schools 
of  various  grades,  where  a  multitude  of  youths  ai-e  receiving  a 
Christian  education.  We  need  not  expatiate  on  the  probable 
effect  of  these  schools  and  educational  establishments  :  we  know 
that  in  our  own  country  a  good  sound  religious  education  is  of 
vast  importance,  and  in  a  country  like  Africa  it  is,  if  possible, 
of  still  greater  consequence.f 

12.  The  last  fact  we  shall  mention  is,  that  there  is  a  moral 
influence  in  connexion  with  these  missions  that  is  felt  far  beyond 

*  The  reader  is  here  respectfully  referred  to  the  extracts  from  Mr.  Fergusson's 
letter  on  the  character  of  the  liberated  Africans,  which  will  be  found  in  the  tenth 
chapter  of  this  work.  There  it  will  be  seen,  that  some  of  this  once-degraded  class 
of  men  are  industrious  tradesmen,  and  respecta1)le  merchants  ;  that  they  have  good 
stone  houses,  which  are  weU  fiu-nished ;  and  that  they  send  their  children  to  board- 
ing-schools in  England.  I  may  also  add,  that  I  know  one  mercantile  house  in 
London,  with  whom  two  of  oiu"  members  at  Sierra-Leone  (who  are  liberated 
Africans)  do  business  to  the  amount  of  between  ^62,000  and  £3,000  each  annually, 
and  that  they  are  prompt  in  their  payments,  as  well  as  honourable  and  respectable 
In  all  the  relations  of  life. 

t  Besides  native  teachers,  local  preachers,  &c.,  whose  names  do  not  appear  in  the 
[irinted  Keports,  it  will  Ije  seen,  by  a  reference  to  the  last  annual  Report  and  the 
Minutes  of  Conference,  that  we  have  six  natives  who  are  fully  employed  in  the 
work' of  the  ministry,  as  missionaries  and  assistant  missionaries,  most  of  whom  are 
recaptured  Negroes.  Interesting  communications  are  occasionally  published  from 
these  brethren,  in  the  "  Missionary  Notices  ;"  and  the  reader  is  respectfully  referred 
to  the  November  Number  of  the  year  1850,  where  he  will  find  a  letter  from  the 
Rev.  George  Decker,  native  assistant  nussionary  at  Sierra-Leone.  Mr.  Decker  is  a 
liberated  African,  and  his  communication  is  alike  creditable  to  his  head  and  to  his 
heart ;  and  the  reader  will  be  amply  repaid  by  giving  it  a  careful  perusal. 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS. 


615 


the  boundaries  of  the  British  settlements,  or  the  limits  of  the 
mission-stations,  which  is  of  no  small  importance.  An  evange- 
lical and  Protestant  missionary,  indeed,  may  travel  almost  any 
where  in  Western  Africa ;  and  both  by  Pagans  and  Mohamme- 
dans he  is  respected :  his  name  may  not  be  known,  but  his  cha- 
racter and  profession  are  ;  and  they  will  insure  him  a  courteous 
treatment  Avith  the  generality  of  the  inhabitants.  The  Chris- 
tian reader  Avill  doubtless  recollect,  that  when  Paul  and  his 
companions  "escaped  all  safe  to  land''  at  "the  island  called 
Melita,"  "  the  barbarous  people  showed  them  no  little  kindness  : 
for  they  kindled  a  fire,  and  received  them  every  one,  because  of 
the  present  rain,  and  because  of  the  cold.''  (Acts  xxvii.  44 ; 
xxviii.  1,  2.)  So,  in  -like  manner,  has  the  writer  been  treated 
by  the  natives  of  Western  Africa,  when  hundreds  of  miles  from 
any  white  men.  This  fact  has  more  than  once  been  corrobo- 
rated in  the  preceding  pages ;  and  the  moral  influence  of  the 
missions  on  the  native  inhabitants  more  immediately  connected 
with,  or  contiguous  to,  the  EngHsh  colonies,  has  also  been 
adverted  to. 

Another  fact,  in  connexion  with  this  subject,  deserves  to  be 
mentioned ;  and  that  is,  that  the  missions  have  exerted  a  benefi- 
cial influence  on  the  European  populatio7i  abroad.  This,  it  is  rea- 
dily admitted,  is  not  to  any  great  extent ;  but  that  illicit  inter- 
course between  the  sexes,  which  is  too  prevalent  in  most  of 
our  foreign  settlements,  and  which  still  exists  on  the  Western 
Coast  of  Africa,  has  nevertheless  considerably  diminished  of  late 
years,  especially  in  those  localities  where  Christian  missions  are 
established ;  for  there  many  of  our  countrymen  who  had 
adopted  the  "  country  fashion,"  have  either  abandoned  that  sin- 
ful practice,  or  have  been  lawfully  and  properly  united ;  and 
though  I  am  not  aware  of  any  Europeans  who  are  decidedly 
pious  or  members  of  our  society,  there  is  noAV  little  or  no  oppo- 
sition to  the  labours  of  the  missionaries  from  that  quarter  :  a 
considerable  number  of  them,  indeed,  attend  divine  service,  at 
least  once  a  day ;  and  I  believe  the  greater  part  of  our  country- 
men wish  us  well.  Would  to  God  that  all,  or  even  one-half,  of 
the  Europeans  on  that  Coast  would  give  themselves  to  God,  and 
then  to  his  church  by  his  will ;  and  thus  heartily  co-operate 
with  the  missionaries  !  May  we  not  hope  that,  ere  long,  this 
will  be  the  case  ?  The  Lord  hasten  that  happy  and  auspicious 
day  ! 

These  are  some  of  the  results  and  benefits  of  missionary 
labour  in  Western  Africa,  which  call  aloud  for  gratitude  to 
"  the  God  of  all  grace,"  that  He  has  been  pleased  to  put  the 


616  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

broad  seal  of  His  approbation  upon  the  efforts  of  His  servants. 
"  Not  unto  us,  O  Lord,  not  unto  us,  but  unto  thy  name  give 
glory,  for  thy  mercy,  and  for  thy  truth's  sake  ! "  (Psalm 
cxv.  1.) 

Thirdly.  That  which  is  calculated  to  produce  mingled  feelings 
of  sorrow  and  regret  is,  that  the  good  already  accomplished  has 
been  effected  at  a  considerable  sacrifice  of  European  health  and 
life;  and  that,  though  much  has  been  done,  it  is  very  little 
compared  with  what  remains  to  be  done.  The  present  state  of 
Africa,  therefore,  loudly  calls  for  more  active  and  energetic 
efforts,  that  this  too-long-neglected  continent  may  be  speedily 
raised  to  its  proper  level  with  other  civilized  portions  of  the 
globe. 

It  will,  perhaps,  not  be  denied,  that  there  are  evils  and 
obstructions  in  Africa  to  the  rapid  spread  of  evangelical  truth, 
which  are  to  be  found  in  no  other  part  of  the  Heathen  world. 
But  this  should  only  lead  to  a  corresponding  degree  of  zeal  and 
combined  effort  on  the  part  of  the  Christian  church;  and  ere 
long  these  evils  and  obstructions  will  be  seen  to  dissolve  and 
melt  away,  as  clouds  before  the  mid-day  sun. 

It  was  my  purpose  here  to  have  dilated  at  some  length  on 
the  principal  obstacles  and  obstructions  with  which  we  have 
to  contend  in  Western  Africa,  and  which,  for  the  sake  of 
distinction,  may  be  designated  physical,  moral,  and  diabolical. 
I  refer  to  the  prejudicial  effects  of  the  climate  on  European 
constitutions ;  to  the  awfully  degraded  state  of  its  inhabitants 
generally;  and  to  that  monster  evil,  the  Slave-Trade.  But  as 
this  volume  is  already  extended  much  beyond  ray  calculation, 
I  intend  to  embody  these  and  some  other  collateral  topics  in 
a  pamphlet,  which  will  soon  make  its  appearance.  In  con- 
clusion I  add  only  a  few  paragraphs  on  the  mortality  among 
missionaries. 

The  authoress  of  "Letters  from  Sierra- Leone,"  though  she 
believes,  with  Chamier,  that  this  climate  is  "the  worst  under 
the  sun,"  is  nevertheless  of  opinion,  that  "within  late  years  it 
has  been  less  destructive  to  Europeans."  And  I  have  before 
me  a  letter  which  I  received  only  a  few  months  ago,  from  a 
respected  missionary  at  Sierra-Leone,  that  has  spent  several 
years  in  that  colony,  who  is  of  the  same  opinion.  He  says, 
"  The  climate  of  Sierra-Leone  (I  mean  Free-Town  in  parti- 
cular, as  it  is  the  residence  of  most  of  the  Europeans)  is 
certainly  vastly  improved.  But  all  improvements  in  health 
ai'c  attributable  to  local  improvements.  The  mountains  and 
lands   adjacent  are    completely   cleared    of  timber.     Dwelling- 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS.  617 

houses  are  better  constructed;  with  a  well-orgauized  police,  the 
streets  and  lanes  are  kept  clean.  Drainage  has  been  carried 
on  very  vigorously,"  &c.  My  correspondent  further  states,  "I 
think  another  great  means  of  promoting  the  health  of  the  town 
arises  from  the  roofing  of  the  wattled  and  other  small  houses : 
no  person  is  allowed  to  cover  with  grass ;  shingles  or  bamboo 
must  be  used,  under  a  heavy  penalty.  The  steam  from  some 
thousands  of  houses  covered  thickly  with  grass  must  be  fearfully 
pernicious.  The  medical  treatment  for  diseases  is  entirely 
altered ;  mercury  is  exploded,  excepting  in  desperate  cases  :  I 
believe  I  owe  my  shattered  constitution  to  mercury.''^ 

In  a  recent  publication  I  find  it  is  stated,  that,  "between 
March,  1804,  and  August,  1825,  eighty-nine  Church  mission- 
aries an-ived  at  Sierra-Leone;  and  in  that  period  fifty-four  had 
died,  and  fourteen  returned  to  England  shattered  in  health." 
And  in  the  "  Missionary  Records,"  the  writer,  in  dwelling  upon 
this  subject  up  to  a  later  period,  says,  "  Many  of  the  mission- 
aries and  teachers  were  also  obliged  to  return  to  England ;  so 
that  at  the  time  of  the  publication  of  the  Report  of  the  Church 
Missionary  Society,  in  the  year  1835,  there  remained  only  three 
missionaries  and'  two  catechists.  The  only  female  remaining 
was  the  daughter  of  Mr.  Ny lander.  These  only  remained  in 
Africa  of  one  hundred  and  nine  labourers  Avhich  the  Church 
Missionary  Society  had  sent  out  during  thirty  years."  Taking 
either  of  these  statements,  it  appears  that  the  losses  sustained 
by  the  Church  Missionary  Society  were,  up  to  that  period,  more 
than  fifty  per  cent. 

Taking  the  past  twelve  years  as  our  guide,  it  will  be 
seen  that,  during  that  period,  sixty-seven  European  agents  of 
the  Weslcyau  Missionary  Society,  all  "new  hands,"  have 
been  sent  to  Western  Africa,  out  of  which  there  have  been 
twenty-five  deaths.*  If  we  include  those  brethren  and  sisters 
who  arrived  there  a  second,  and  some  of  them  a  third,  time, 
since  the  year  1838,  the  number  will  amount  to  eighty-two,  but 
with  only  tivo  more  deaths.  During  these  twelve  years,  twenty- 
one  agents  out  of  the  sixty-seven  arrived  at  Sierra-Leone,  from 
whom  we  have  reported  seven  deaths;  fifteen  arrived  at  the 
Gambia,  out  of  whom  six  died;  and  thirty-one  landed  at  the 
Gold-Coast,  out  of  whom  twelve  have  fallen  in  the  field.  This 
analysis  corroborates  the  opinion  that  of  late  years  the  climate  of 
Sierra-Leone  has  improved;  for  these  statistics  only  give  to  that 


*  It  is  right  to  state  that,  out  of  this  sixty-seven,  three  were  persons  of  colour, — 
Mr.  Freeman,  Mr.  Wharton,  and  Mr.  Garry. 


618  WESTERN  COAST  OF  AFRICA. 

colony  one-third  of  the  amount  of  missionary  mortality ;  whereas, 
as  stated  in  a  preceding  page,  the  number  of  deaths  in  that  colony, 
during  the  whole  history  of  the  missions,  amounts  to  rather  more 
than  one-half.  It  will  be  seen,  too,  that  though  the  mortality  on 
the  Gold-Coast  has,  during  the  last  twelve  years,  been  greater  than 
at  either  of  the  other  settlements,  not  only  in  numbers,  but  also 
in  proportion  to  the  number  of  agents  sent  out,  even  there  an 
improvement  is  manifest.  The  six  deaths  out  of  fifteen  at  the 
Gambia  give  about  the  same  average  as  before  stated,  which,  it 
should  be  recollected,  was  considerably  less  than  either  of  the 
other  stations. 

If  we  take  the  last  six  years  as  a  criterion,  the  report  will  be 
still  more  favourable ;  for  during  that  period  only  nine  deaths 
have  occurred  in  our  mission-families  on  the  whole  Coast.  Four 
of  these  were  at  Sierra-Leone,  two  at  the  Gambia,  and  three  at 
the  Gold-Coast. 

But  I  cannot  close  my  remarks  on  the  biographical  sketches 
of  the  fifty-four  agents  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society 
which  we  have  already  given  in  connexion  with  the  history  of 
these  missions,  without  an  observation  or  two  which  they 
naturally  suggest. 

1 .  In  the  first  place,  then,  without  attaching  blame  or  charg- 
ing any  of  our  departed  friends  with  imprudence,  on  their 
arrival  in  Africa,  it  must  be  admitted  that  the  climate  was  not 
the  sole  cause  of  death  in  every  case.  Several  of  them  would 
most  likely  have  died  as  soon,  or  nearly  so,  had  they  gone  to 
other  parts  of  the  mission-field ;  and  probably  some  of  them,  had 
they  remained  in  Europe. 

2.  It  is  a  melancholy  fact,  however,  that  more  than  half  a 
hundred  of  the  agents  of  this  society  have  fallen  in  their  God- 
like work,  and  their  bones  lie  mouldering  far  from  the  graves  of 
their  fathers,  in  that  foreign  soil,  the  miseries  of  whose  inhabit- 
ants had  called  forth  their  tenderest  sympathy,  and  to  mitigate 
whose  wretchedness  they  forsook  their  native  land.  The  writer 
has  often  visited  the  graves  of  his  dear  brethren  and  sisters, 
several  of  whom  it  fell  to  his  painful  duty  to  bury  "side  by 
side ; "  and,  while  standing  by  the  solemn  spot  where  their  ashes 
are  deposited,  he  has  dropped  the  tear  of  sympathy  and  affec- 
tion, and  has  endeavoured  to  imbibe  a  portion  of  their  spirit,  to 
trace  their  footsteps,  and  follow  them  to  the  skies. 

3.  In  reviewing  the  loss  of  life  in  Western  Africa,  though  it  is 
deeply  affecting,  we  know  it  is  not  too  great  a  sacrifice  to  save 
immortal  souls.  Some,  it  is  true,  were  called  away  almost 
before  they  had  put  on  the  harness,  or  before  they  had  time 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS.  619 

fairly  to  thrust  the  sickle  into  the  rich  harvest  ripening  before 
them;  but, — • 

"  That  life  is  long  which  answers  life's  great  end." 

Some  of  the  most  devoted  missionaries  of  other  denomina- 
tions, and  in  other  lands,  such  as  Brainerd,  Martyn,  and  Mills, 
were  called  away  before  they  saw  half  the  number  of  days 
allotted  to  human  existence  on  earth.  But  though  God  has 
indeed,  in  Western  Africa,  "  buried  many  of  his  workmen,  yet 
he  has  carried  on  his  work/^  The  spirits  of  our  departed  mis- 
sionaries, resting  from  their  labours,  are  now  happy  with  the 
Lord ;  and  hundreds  of  their  spiritual  children  have  also  over- 
taken them ;  so  that  both  he  who  sowed,  and  they  who  reaped, 
are  rejoicing  together;  and  many  more  are  on  the  way. 

4.  In  the  perusal  of  the  brief  memoirs  which  we  have  given, 
it  will  have  been  seen  that,  in  the  selection  of  their  agents,  the 
parent  committee  were  directed  to  persons  of  the  right  stamp. 
Some  of  them,  it  is  true,  were  young  men  possessed  of  few 
literary  attainments,  having  enjoyed  no  advantages  beyond 
those  afforded  by  a  plain  English  education;  but  they  were 
men  of  good  common  sense,  of  sterling  piety,  and  largely 
imbued  with  the  spirit  of  their  Master,  "  who  came  to  seek  and 
to  save  that  which  is  lost.^^  They  possessed  a  love  for  souls, 
and  knew  how  to  preach  "Christ  and  him  crucified;"  and 
hence  God  honoured  their  labours,  in  the  awakening  and  con- 
version of  sinners,  and  in  "  bringing  many  sons  to  glory." 
Others  of  them,  however,  were  above  mediocrity,  both  with 
regard  to  gifts  and  graces,  being  highly  intelHgent  and  intel- 
lectual :  they  were  "  faithful  men,  who  were  able  to  teach  others 
also;"  nor  were  they  less  zealous  and  successful  in  winning  souls 
to  Christ,  and  in  thus  extending  the  Eedeemer^s  kingdom  in 
the  earth :  for  which  they  "  counted  not  their  lives  dear  unto 
them." 

5.  Several  of  the  brethren  whose  deaths  we  have  recorded  of 
more  recent  date,  it  will  be  remembered,  had  enjoyed  the 
advantages  of  the  Theological  Institution,  the  benefits  of  which 
they  gratefully  acknowledged.  These  benefits  were  tAVO-fold: 
they  were  mental,  and  they  were  spiritual :  they  related  to  the 
head  and  to  the  heart.  It  will  have  been  observed,  that  their 
scholastic  studies  and  duties  did  not  retard  the  growth  of  their 
personal  piety;  for  while  the  mind  Avas  expanding,  the  heart 
was  kept  warm  with  love  to  God  and  man,  and  they  thus 
"grew  at  once  in  wisdom  and  holiness."  One  of  the  young 
men,  who  was  distinguished  for  holy  ardour  on  his  entering  the 


620 


WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 


Institution,  and  who  "applied  himself  to  his  studies  with  exem- 
plary diligence/^  some  months  after  he  had  been  there,  wrote 
thus  : — "  I  trust  I  am  growing  in  grace,  in  attachment  to 
Methodism,  and  in  love  for  the  souls  of  men,  especially  of  the 
Heathen.  I  am  exceedingly  thankful  to  my  heavenly  Father 
for  bringing  me  to  this  place;  and  I  trust  my  profiting  will 
appear  to  all.'^  A  few  weeks  after  this,  he  again  wrote:  "I 
thank  God,  I  can  testify  that  Christ  is  able  to  cleanse  from  all 
sin.  I  am  happy  in  his  love,  and  can  rejoice  with  joy  unspeak- 
able and  full  of  glory.^^  This  young  man,  on  a  vacancy  occur- 
ring at  Sierra- Leone,  left  the  Institution,  and  was  found  in  less 
than  a  week  on  board  the  vessel  Avhich  conveyed  him  thither. 
The  reader  will  by  this  time  recollect  the  name  of  James 
Wayte,  some  of  whose  last  moments  were  employed  in  "  invok- 
ing the  Divine  blessing  upon  his  brethren  at  Richmond.^^ 

And  who  that  has  perused  the  account  of  the  first  missionary 
who  fell  at  Coomassie,  does  not  at  this  moment  see  in  imagina- 
tion the  devoted  Rowland  at  the  same  Institution,  in  his  closet, 
on  his  knees,  with  a  small  pamphlet  in  his  hand,  fasting  and 
praying,  and  renewing  his  covenant  with  God,  while  the  rest  of 
the  family  were  at  their  usual  meal  ?  And  just  as  he  had  got 
to  that  part  of  the  covenant  service,  "  That  He  appoint  you  your 
work,^-*  &c.,  there  was  "  a  knock  at  his  door,"  calling  him  to 
that  work  in  which  he  so  heartily  engaged,  but  in  which,  alas  ! 
he  so  soon  died  ! 

These  are  facts  whicli  are  most  honourable  to  the  missionary 
candidates  and  students,  as  well  as  creditable  to  our  fathers 
and  brethren  who  have  the  principal  charge  and  management 
of  that  important  establishment;  and  they  are  placed  upon 
record  to  show,  that  those  "  men  who  take  it  as  an  axiom,  that 
knowledge  and  godliness  are  antagonist  interests,  and  who  mourn 
over  the  advance  of  the  one,  as  involving,  of  necessity,  the  decline 
of  the  other," — or,  in  other  words,  that  those  who  imagine  that 
knowledge  is  unfriendly  to  piety  and  subversive  of  holiness, — are 
mistaken,  so  far  as  the  Wesleyan  Theological  Institution  is 
concerned;  for,  in  addition  to  the  brethren  we  have  mentioned, 
it  may  with  perfect  truth  be  said,  that  some  of  the  most  holy, 
devoted,  and  useful  missionaries  have  been  sent  out  from  that 
Institution.  These  facts  are  also  placed  upon  record,  that  pre- 
sent and  future  candidates  for  our  ministry,  who  are  or  may 
become  students,  either  at  Richmond  or  Didsbury,  may  see 
that,  while  their  predecessors  were  not  inattentive  to  mental 
improvement,  but  applied  themselves  with  unwearied  diligence 
to  the  acquisition  of  useful  knowledge,  they  at  the  same  time 


CONCLUDING    OBSERVATIONS. 


621 


made  rapid  pi'ogress  in  piety,  and  thus  became  more  fully  pre- 
pared for  the  great  work  which  awaited  them. 

6.  The  manuer  of  the  deaths  we  have  recorded  cannot  have 
escaped  the  reader's  notice.  The  genuine  piety  possessed  by 
our  dear  brethren^  (and  sisters,  too,)  on  leaving  their  native 
land  for  Africa,  did  not  flag  in  that  warm  climate.  They  were 
not  only  "  faithful  men,"  but  they  were  "  faithful  unto  death.'' 
They  had  not  to  seek  rehgion  on  a  sick-bed,  and  in  a  dying 
hour;  but  were  divinely  supported  and  sustained,  when  their 
heart  and  flesh  failed  them. 

In  some  cases,  it  will  be  recollected,  the  "  one  was  taken  and 
the  other  left/'  in  others,  both  the  missionaries  on  the  same 
station  were  seriously  ill  at  the  same  time ;  and  one  "  got  him- 
self assisted,  weak  as  he  was,  into  the  other's  room,  to  inquire 
the  state  of  his  mind,  when  the  most  afflicted  would  be  helped 
up  in  bed;  and  they  seemed  like  two  dear  friends  meeting  who 
had  long  been  separated."  In  other  cases,  the  missionary  and 
his  wife  have  both  been  burning  with  fever  at  the  same  time, 
and  unable  to  render  one  another  the  least  assistance ;  and  in 
more  than  one  instance,  the  death  of  one  has  taken  place 
under  the  same  roof,  unknown  to  the  other ;  nor  has  the  fact 
been  known  until  the  next  day,  or  the  day  following,  when  the 
husband  and  wife  have  met  "  in  a  nobler  clime  ! " 

But  "these  all  died  in  faith;"  and  not  one  ever  regretted 
having  embai-ked  in  the  work.  "  I  am  in  my  proper  place,"  or 
words  to  that  eff'ect,  were  spoken  by  many  of  them,  not  only 
vhen  in  health,  but  also  in  sickness,  and  in  the  prospect  of 
meeting  "the  last  enemy."  Nor  could  "Jordan's  stream,  or 
death's  cold  flood,"  quench  "  the  yearning  pity  for  mankind, 
the  burning  charity,"  or  "the  pure  flame  of  love"  to  the 
cause  of  missions,  which  they  cherished  while  the  poAver  of 
articulation  remained ;  for  some  of  their  last  words  to  those 
who  stood  by  them,  when  dying,  were,  "Watch  over  the  flock 
Avhen  I  am  gone."  "  Preach  Christ,  and  do  all  you  can  to  save 
souls,"  &c. 

7.  Lastly.  To  the  friends  of  the  Wesleyau  Missionary 
Society,  these  brief  memorials  of  fifty -four  of  their  agents  are 
respectfully  addressed.  To  them  the  writer  would  say.  Such 
are  the  "  messengers"  you  employ,  such  the  sacrifices  they 
make,  the  trials  they  encounter,  in  carrying  out  your  designs. 
The  cause  you  have  espoused  and  love,  they  die  to  extend.    We 

know  that 

"  A  Sacrifice  of  noljler  name 

And  riclier  blood  than  tliev," 


622  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

was  necessary  for  the  redemption  of  Africa ;  and  the  price  has 
been  paid.  The  eternal  Son  of  God  died  on  Calvary  for  this 
as  well  as  for  other  portions  of  the  great  family  of  man.  Bui 
the  Almight}^  is  graciously  pleased  to  employ  human  instru- 
mentality in  accomplishing  the  salvation  of  mankind ;  and  we 
therefore  regard  the  "bones"  of  our  beloved  missionaries  and* 
their  wives  as  prophetical.  "  And  Joseph  said  unto  his  bre- 
thren, I  die  :  and  God  will  surely  visit  you.^^  And  by  faith  in 
the  doctrine  of  the  resurrection  and  the  promise  made  to  Abra- 
ham respecting  Canaan,  Joseph  "  gave  commandment  concern- 
ing his  bones/^  that  they  should  "  carry  them  up  from  hence." 
(See  Gen.  xv.  13, 14;  1.  24,  25 ;  Heb.  xi.  22.)  So  in  hke  manner 
have  the  pious  agents  of  the  Wesleyan  Missionary  Society 
taken  possession  of  Western  Africa,  "the  promised  land," — 
they  sleep,  not  indeed  in  "  the  sepulchres  of  their  fathers,"  but 
in  graves  which  they  have  consecrated  for  their  children,  a 
spiritual  generation  to  be  born  in  due  time ;  and  there  they 
rest  in  glorious  hope  of  the  final  and  universal  triumph  of  the 
world's  Redeemer. 

Let  such  men,  then,  never  want  pecuniary  support ;  let  them 
never  be  forgotten  in  your  prayers.  How  often  did  these 
devoted  men,  when  living  and  toiling  abroad,  urge  the  Mace- 
donian cry,  "  Come  over  and  help  us  ! "  And  as  often  did  they 
reiterate  the  apostolic  request,  "  Brethren,  pray  for  us."  Others 
are  now  making  the  same  affecting  appeals ;  and  shall  they 
plead  in  vain  ?  Heaven  forbid  !  "Whilst  some  misguided  and 
infatuated  men  are  crying,  "Stop  the  supplies!"  be  it  your 
high  duty,  as  it  is  your  privilege,  to  "  come  up  to  the  help  of 
the  Lord,"  to  stand  by  and  support  Christ's  standard-bearei's, 
and  thus  help  forward  "  the  glorious  war."  Would  the  British 
Government  leave  our  soldiers  in  a  foreign  land  to  fight  our 
battles,  without  the  proper  supplies  of  food  and  ammunition? 
Such  a  question  is  almost  an  insult  to  common  sense,  and 
the  proposition  Avould  be  spurned  by  every  British  heart ;  and 
yet  there  are  2}Tofessiny  Christians  Avho  are  adopting  this  prin- 
ciple in  reference  to  the  cause  of  missions  !  "  But  ye  have 
not  so  learned  Christ."  Let  the  "  supplies,"  therefore,  be 
doubled,  rather  than  "  stopped."  With  increased  liberality,  let 
your  fervent  prayers  ascend  to  heaven,  on  behalf  of  this  bene- 
volent and  holy  enterprise.  Not  merely  once  a  month  at  the 
missionary  prayer-meeting,  or  now  and  then  at  a  missionary 
anniversary,  but  every  day  of  the  week,  bear  up  God's  ser- 
vants at  the  throne  of  gra^^e;  and  then  it  shall  be  said  to 
you,  as  well  as   to  them,  ai.  the  great  reckoning-day,  "Well 


CONCLUDING  OBSERVATIONS.  623 

done,  thou  good  and  faithful  servant :  thou  hast  been  faithful 
over  a  few  things,  I  will  make  thee  ruler  over  many  things : 
enter  thou  into  the  joy  of  thy  Lord."  (Matt.  xxv.  21.) 

It  has  already  been  sufficiently  demonstrated  in  this  work 
that  the   gospel   meets  the    case    of   man,   wherever  man  is 
found,    whatever  may   be   his    national,    civil,   intellectual,    or 
moral   condition;    that   the    nature,  the    number,  the   magni- 
tude, or  the  repetition  of  his  iniquities,  are  not  an  insuperable 
barrier  to  his  conversion  and  civilization.     The  gospel  is  "the 
power  of  God."     It  cannot  alter  the  colour  of  the  Negro's  skin ; 
but  it  can  change  the  blackest  heart  of  the  blackest  of  Ham's 
descendants,  and  make  it  "  white  as  snow."     There  is  no  shade 
of  guilt  too  dark,  no  accumulation  of  crime  too  great,  and  no 
enormity  of  transgression,  that  it  cannot  remove.     None  of  the 
sons  and  daughters  of  fallen  Adam  on  that  sin-stricken,  smitten, 
and  afflicted  continent,  are  too  far  from  heaven,  or  too  near 
perdition,  for  the  gospel  to  reach  and  relieve ;  it   can  "  save 
them  to  the  uttermost  that  come  unto  God  by  Him,  seeing  He 
ever  liveth  to  make  intercession  for  them."  (Heb.  vii.  25.)    And 
if  Africa  was  thrice  more  deeply  degraded  and  fallen  than  she 
is,  there  is  in  "  the  glorious  gospel  of  the  blessed  God  "  a  suffi- 
cient and   never-failing  remedy  for   all  her  maladies.     Here, 
then,    is  our  hope, — the  faithful  and  iiersevering   use   of  the 
appointed  means.     The  missionaries  of  the  cross  may  go  forth 
into  this  dark  and  barren  land,  "weeping,"  but  they  are  the 
bearers  of  "precious  seed."  They  go  forth  strengthened  with  that 
consoling  promise,  "  And,  lo,  I  am  with  you  alway,  even  unto 
the  end  of  the  world."    The  "  bread  "  is  therefore  "  cast  upon  the 
waters  -,"  cast  sometimes  with  trembling  hands,  cast  under  seem- 
ingly unpropitious  circumstances ;  but  the  quality  of  the  seed 
being  good,  and  suited  to  aU  climates  and  to  all  moral  soils,  and 
being  "  watered "  with  the  gentle  dew  or  teeming  showers  of 
the  Almighty  Spirit,  "the  seed  shall  surely  grow;"  and  it  shall 
be  "found  after  many  days."     The  "handful  of  corn  in  the 
earth  upon  the  top  of  the  mountains,  the  fruit  thereof  shall 
shake  like  Lebanon ;"  and  the  weeping  sower  shall  become  the 
successful  and  joyous   reaper ;    for  he  "  shall   doubtless   come 
again  with  rejoicing,  bringing  his  sheaves  with  him."     To  those 
who  think  differently,  and  who  imagine  all  these  to  be  mere 
figures  of  speech,  our  reply  is,  "Ye  do  err,  not  knowing  the 
scriptures   nor  the    power    of   God."     For   "thus  saith   the 
Lord,"    "  As   the  heavens  are  higher  than  the  earth,   so  are 
my  ways  higher  than  your  ways,  and  ray  thoughts  than  your 
thoughts.     For  as  the  rain  conit  li  down,  and  the  suoav  from 


624  WESTERN    COAST    OF    AFRICA. 

heaven,  and  returneth  not  thither,  but  watereth  the  earth,  and 
maketh  it  bring  forth  and  bud,  that  it  may  give  seed  to  the 
sower,  and  bread  to  the  cater  :  so  shall  my  word  be  that  goeth 
forth  out  of  ray  mouth  :  it  shall  not  return  unto  me  void,  but  it 
shall  accomplish  that  which  I  please,  and  it  shall  prosper  in  the 
thing  whereto  I  sent  it.  For  ye  shall  go  out  with  joy,  and  be 
led  forth  with  peace  :  the  mountains  and  the  hills  shall  break 
forth  before  you  into  singing,  and  all  the  trees  of  the  field  shall 
clap  their  hands.  Instead  of  the  thorn  shall  come  up  the  fir- 
tree,  and  instead  of  the  brier  shall  come  up  the  myrtle-tree  : 
and  it  shall  be  to  the  Lord  for  a  name,  for  an  everlasting  sign 
that  shall  not  be  cut  off."  (Isai.  Iv.  9—13.) 


TIIF.    END. 


LONDON  :     PRINTED   BY  JAMES   NICHOLS,   HOXTON-SQUARE. 


BY   THE   SAME   AUTHOE: 

Now  ready,  in  8ro.,  Price  2s.  Gd.  seivcd, 

THE 

WESTERN     COAST     OF    AFRICA. 


SUGGESTIONS  ON  THE  BEST  MEANS  OF  EXTERMINATING 
THE  SLAVE-TRADE, 


SOME   ACCOUNT   OF   THE   SUCCESS   OF   THE   GOSPEL, 

AND    THE 

PIJESENT  STATE   AND  PKOSPECTS  OF  THE  WESLEYAN  MISSIONS, 
ON    THAT   COAST. 


REMARKS  ON  THE  CLIMATE, 


HINTS  FOR  THE  PRESERVATION  OF  HEALTH. 


BOSTON  UNIVERSITY 

BV3540.F6  BZMM 

A  brief  history  of  the  Wesleyan  missions 


1    IVn    ODSET    37bfi 


¥ 


BV 

35^0 

.F6 


FOX 

A  brief  history  of  the 
Wesleyan  missions  on 
the  Western  coast  of 
Africa. 


UUL.O     Hv 


n  ATr